217 27 39MB
English Pages 612 Year 2010
Brill’s Encvtlopdedia of the Ancient World
New Pauly
- ANTIQUITY |
_ LISTS AND | TEE
UJisCARUEL
| FROM vie LIBRARY
UNIVERSITY
E of NE w HAMPSHIR
LIBRARY
EDMUND G. MILLER
LIBRARY
FUND
Digitized by the Internet Archive in 2022 with funding from Kahle/Austin Foundation
https://archive.org/details/brillsnewpaulyenOOOOunse
Brill’s New Pauly
ANTIQUITY
INDEX
LISTS AND TABLES
Brill’s New Pauly SUBJECT
EDITORS
OF THIS
VOLUME
Prof. Dr. Walter Eder +, Bochum
Ancient History Prof. Dr. Paolo Eleuteri, Venice Textual Criticism
Prof. Dr. Bernhard Forssman, Erlangen Linguistics Prof. Dr. Konrad Hitzl, Tubingen/Kiel
Weights and Measures, Coins Dr. Christoph Hocker, Kissing Classical Archaeology Prof. Dr. Eckart Olshausen, Stuttgart
Historical Geography Prof. Dr. Johannes Renger, Berlin
Oriental Studies Prof. Dr. Jorg Ruipke, Erfurt Chronology Prof. Dr. Gottfried Schiemann, Tiibingen Law Prof. Dr. Helmuth Schneider, Kassel
Social and Economic History, Military History
Brill’s Encyclopaedia of the Ancient World
New Pauly Edited by Brigitte Egger and Jochen Derlien
English edition compiled by Duncan Alexander Smart
ANTIQUITY
INDEX
LISTS
AND
a Bs
%
>¢ YN
S
TABLES
LEIDEN - BOSTON 2010
© Copyright 2010 by Koninklijke Brill Nv, Leiden, The Netherlands Koninklijke Brill Nv incorporates the imprints Brill, Hotei Publishing, rpc Publishers, Martinus Nijhoff Publishers and vsp.
Originally published in German as DER NEUE PAULY. Enzyklopadie der Antike. Herausgegeben von Hubert Cancik und Helmuth Schneider. Copyright © J.B. Metzlersche Verlagsbuchhandlung und Carl Ernst Poeschel Verlag GmbH 1996ff./rogoff. Stuttgart/Weimar Cover design: TopicA (Antoinette Hanekuyk) Front: Delphi, temple area Spine: Tabula Peutingeriana
ISBN (volume) 978 90 04 18472 5 ISBN (set) 978 90 04 12259 8
All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced, translated, stored in a retrieval system, or transmitted in any form or by any means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording or otherwise, without prior written permission from the publisher.
Authorization to photocopy items for internal or personal use is granted by Koninklijke Brill nv provided that the appropriate fees are paid directly
to The Copyright Clearance Center, 222 Rosewood Drive, Suite 910, Danvers, MA 01923, USA.
Fees are subject to change.
This book is printed on acid-free paper.
Data structuring and typesetting: pagina GmbH, Tubingen, Germany
©
Mixed Sources F S Cc
PRINTED
Product group from well-managed forests and other controlled sources www.fsc.org Cert no, SGS-COC-006767 ©1996 Forest Stewardship Council
BY A-D DRUK
BV - ZEIST, THE
NETHERLANDS
Table of Contents
Preface
VII
INDICES
Index of Subjects
Index of Persons Geographical Concordance Index of Maps List of Maps and Illustrations List of Authors
I
89 175 235 273 287
LISTS AND TABLES
A. Laws and law codes Acire AS EE A. Ill.
Law codes, legal norms and edicts: Ancient Near East (Johannes Renger) Laws, law codes and edicts: Egypt (Sandra Lippert) Roman leges and senatus consulta: selection (Gottfried Schiemann)
299 304 315
B. International treaties BL B. I. B. Ill.
Cuneiform treaties of Mesopotamia and northern Syria (Hans Neumann) Hittite treaties (Gerfrid G.W. Miller and Yasuhiko Sakuma) 1,000 selected international treaties of Graeco-Roman antiquity (Peter Kehne)
332 340 350
C. Weights and measures, coinage systems Cal. CL C. Il.
Ancient Near East (Walther Sallaberger) Egypt (Knut Buroh) Greece and Rome (Hans von Mangoldt)
452 456 459
D. Papyri, ostraka and manuscripts
1D Editions of papyri (Hans-Albert Rupprecht) D.II. — Editions of ostraka (Hans-Albert Rupprecht) D. II. Greek and Latin manuscripts (Christian Reitz)
467 490 492
E. Data on chronology and computation of time Bale Eel. E.I.
Roman and Byzantine rulers (Meret Strothmann) Chronological table of classical archaeology (Balbina Babler) Eclipses
E. Ill.x. E. Ill.2. E. I.3. 1a E.
Eclipses in Assyrian and Babylonian sources (Hermann Hunger)
[2] 8,842
12, 659-660 12, 660
»
lus D.Ius and citizenship rae Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor)
12, 669-670
I. B. Division into historical periods. 12, 670 >» I.C. ‘Regal Rome’. 12, 670-
6, 11307, 4
>
I. D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680
Salarium.
Notitia Romae.
9, 830
nae.
9, 830
Occupatio C. Tax
Ostrakismos
10, 9
10, 287-288
Oppidum
10, 165-169
10, 340-341
Phyle 11, 210-213 Political administration
II, 474-
484 11, 541-542 Praedium. 11,751 Praefectus iure dicundo. 11, 756ies
dicundo | see praefectus iure dicundo » [15] Praefectus vehiculorum 14, 812-
EZ, 756
>
814
[6] Praefectus civitatium
11,754
14, 815-817
14, 818
Urbanae cohortes 15, 122 Vigiles 15, 407-408 Water supply II. F. Legal and organizational aspects 15, 585586
9, 799-
Notitia urbis Constantinopolita-
8, 868-877
Praefectus [11] Praefectus iure
Toxotai [2]
Notitia Africae 9, 828 Notitia dignitatum. 9, 828-830 Notitia Galliarum 9, 830
Migration of peoples
Municipal law 9, 290-293 Municipium 9, 293-297 Nomos. [2] 9, 801-802
Signum [4] 13, 450
>» V.C.Rome
800
7, 475 7, 476
Pomerium.
Liturgy 7, 731-737
Nomos. [1] C. Political
7, 475
Lex Salpensana Lex Ursonensis
Scrinium II. Chancellery 13, 120-121 Scythians [2] 13, 164 Secret police B. Greece. 13, 192
Maiestas
Mores 9, 207-208 Municipal law 9, 290-293 Nomographos I. Greece 9, 796
7, 270
7, 473-474
Lex Malacitana
12, 881-882
State 13, 788-793 Status [3] 13, 810 Sympoliteia 14, 9-10 Town, city V. B. Greece
Market inspection —see Aediles Mastigophoroi 8, 451
Lex Irnitana
Pagus
674
Katachorizein 7, 30 Katalogeion 7, 31 Laterculum 7, 269 Law [2] IV. B. Law and state 7s 316-317 8, 185-187
7, 65
Klerouchoi 7, 66-69 Kome 7, 88-90
12, 87 12,95
Gesta 5, 827-828 Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Incensus 6, 763
1032
6, 496-499
Hyparchia 6, 626-627 Katoikos 7, 37
Rome I. A. General remarks.
6,
Dioikesis Il. Rome 4, 459-460 Eparchia 4, 1016 Epoikia 4, 1159 Exarchate 5, 253-254 Governor 15, 1034-1035 Hellenization 2. Hellenism 6, 98100 >» 3.Imperial period 6, 100-102 » 4. Late antiquity 6, 102-103 Heptanomia 6,145 Horoi
Emergency, state of 4, 939-940 Epistle E. Official Letters 4, 1139
Informers see Secret police Isopoliteia 6, 984 Isoteleia 6, 984-985 lus E. 1. Personal rights in the state and in public administration
3, 545-554
Colonization 3, 557-578 Conciliabulum 3, 679 Deductio [2] 4, 172
Praefectus praetorio B. Late Anti-
quity
11, 758-759
Praetor IIL. Italian cities
11,773 Proconsul II. Imperial Period II, 919-920 Provincia
12, 82-85
Provincial administration
1.2.2. TERRITORIAL ORGANIZATION Ager publicus 1, 329-330 Ager Romanus 15, 984 Autonomia 2, 418-419
Basileus I. E. Hellenistic monarchies 2, 521-523 Castellum [I 2] 2, 1178 City state see Civitas
12, 85-
86
Quaestor II. A. Republican Period 12, 320-321 > II. C. Towns 12, 321-322 Quattuorviri II. Area of Roman citizenship in Italy 12, 328 > III. Municipalities in Italy and in the West 12, 328 Roman Empire see Rome I.
3
I.2. STATE ORGANIZATION
Romanization
12, 663-667 Self-Romanization. 13, 225-226 Socii (Roman confederation)
13, 583-587 State 13, 788-793 Strategos II. Hellenistic states
13, 872-873
> II. Byzantine period 13, 873 Tabula Bantina 14, 91-92 Tetrarches, Tetrarchia III. Incidence in the Classical and Hellenistic Periods, down to the Roman Period 14, 323 > IV. Diocletian’s Tetrarchy
14, 323-327 Topos [1] 14, 784-785 Town, city V. B. Greece
14, 812-
814
>» V.C.Rome 14, 815-817 Tribus 14, 906-912
Trittyes
14, 941-945
Vici magistri II. Italia 15,394 Volksrecht 15, 499-503
1.2.3. POLITICO-SOCIAL STRUCTURE On politico-social groupings cf. Subject Index 1.4. On social groups and peripheral groups cf. Subject Index 2.1.3. Adsiduus 1, 156-157 Aliens, the position of I. General I, 506
>
II. Egypt and Mesopotamia I, 506
>» III. Greece 1, 506-507 >» IV.Rome 1, 507-508 Anteambulones see Clientes Auctoratus, Auctoramentum 2, 332-333
Barbarians 2, 500-504 Barbaroi_ see Barbarians Census 3, 110-111 Citizenship 3, 369-370 Clavus 3, 411 Cliens, clientes 3, 450-452 Clientage, Clients see Cliens
Collegium [1] 3, 533-534 Constitutio Antoniniana 3,726 Dediticii 4, 170-171 Deductio [3] 4, 172 Demos [2] C. Byzantine period
4; 290 Demos [1] 4, 288 Domus 4, 651-652 Eleutherolakones 4, 918
Epeunaktai 4, 1017 Ephebeia 4, 1018-1021 Ethnos 5, 88-89 Genos 5,760 Hetairia [1] 6,292 Homo novus see Novus homo Honestiores/Humiliores 6, 472-
474 Humiliores
see Honestiores
Ingenuus [2] 6, 806-807 Klarotai 7, 64
Klerotai see Kleros Knights see Equites Romani Laeti 7, 169 Latin law 7, 287-288 Locuples 7, 779-780 Naukraria, naukraros 9, 543 Nomen Latinum | see Latin law Obsequium 10, 5 Official dress I. Ancient Near East and Egypt 10, 62-63 Ordo 10, 195-197 Origo 10, 217-218 Paroikoi ro, 549-550 Pater familias. 10, 595-597 Patria potestas. 10, 604-606 Patriarchy C. Society 10, 610-611 Patronus B. Private law 10, 625— 626
Patrum auctoritas
see Senatus People. 10, 735-736 Peregrinus 10, 750-751 Phratria 11, 191-192 Phylarchos 11, 208-209 Phyle 11, 210-213 Phylobasileis 11, 214 Politeuma 11, 474 Princeps iuventutis 11, 859-860 Princeps senatus see Senatus Princeps Privatus. Quirites Ramnes.
11, r1, 12, 12,
855-858 887-888 360-361 391-392
Senator see Senatus Senatus 13, 259-264 Status symbols 13, 810-813 Status [4] 13, 810 Tabula Banasitana 14,91 Thetes 14, 581 Timokratia 14, 698-699 Tities see Ramnes Toga virilis see Age(s) Transitio ad plebem 14, 846 Triakosioi [1] 14, 898 Tribus 14, 906-912 Veterans 15, 350-354 Xenelasia 15, 801 Xenia 15, 801-803 Xenias graphe 15, 803-804 Xenol 15, 814-816 Zeugitai 15, 916-917 1.2.4. POLITICAL INSTITUTIONS 1.2.4.1. INTRODUCTION 1.2.4.2. POPULAR AND CONCILIAR ASSEMBLIES 1.2.4.3. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: GREECE 1.2.4.4. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: ROME AND BYZANTIUM 1.2.4.5. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: OTHER STATES
1.2.4.1. INTRODUCTION
Absentia 1, 34-35 Acclamatio 1, 64-65 Album [2] 1, 434 Archai 1, 976-977 Archairesia 1, 977 Candidatus 2, 1046 Coercitio 3, 508-509 Comitium see Assembly buildings
Commendatio 3, 627 Cooptatio 3, 763-764 Creatio 3, 925-927 Curia [2] 4, 1199 Destinatio 4, 320-321
Diribitores 4, 534 Discessio 4, 536 Dokimasia 4, 614-615 Elections 4, 894-897 Epicheirotonia 4, 1063 Eponymy see Eponyms in Chronology Fasces 5, 359-360 Fasti D. Magistrate lists 5, 364—
365
Intercessio I. Constitutional law 6, 846
Korynephoroi [3] 7, 98
Lectio senatus 7, 343-344 Legislation 7, 372 Liberalitas, largitio A. Etymology and development of the word’s meaning
7, 487
Lituus [1] 7,737 Lot, election by 7, 816-821 Magistratus 8, 157-161 Nomenclator. 9, 793-794 Nominatio. 9,795 Nota censoria. 9, 826-827
Officium [6]
10, 63
Ornamenta. 10, 221-222 Ovatio tro, 298
Petalismos 10, 863 Pinax [4] 11, 264 Pons [2i" 12,587 Potestas. I1, 702 Probole 11, 894 Prorogatio
12, 38-39
Provincia A. Meaning of the word. 12, 82-83 Prytaneia 12, 94-95
Psephisma 12, 110-111 Senatus consultum ultimum 13, 268-269
Subsellium
13, 904
Suffectio see Suffect consul Suffragium 13, 923-924 Tabula Hebana 14, 92 Tabula Lugdunensis 14, 93 Tabulae Caeritum Tabulae censoriae publicae
14, 95 see Tabulae
Tabulae publicae 14, 100 Triumph, Triumphal procession II. Triumphal procession 14, 946-
947
1.2. STATE
ORGANIZATION
> [Il]. Development Triumphal paintings
14, 947-948 14, 953-954
1.2.4.2. POPULAR AND CONCILI-
AR ASSEMBLIES Apella, Apellai 1, 820 Architecture B. IlfI.4. Administration and assembly buildings I, T019 > B. IIl.7. Devotional and memorial architecture 1, 1021 Areopagus 1, 1046-1047 Basileus I. C. Archaic 2, 519-520 Boule 2, 740-742
Bouleutai
2, 743
Bouleuterion 2, 743 Calata comitia 2, 932 Centuria 3, 125-127 Cheirotonia 3, 210
Agoranomoi 1, 356-357 Aisymnetes 1, 407-408
Apodektai 1, 846 Apostoleis 1, 890 Archai 1, 976-977 Archairesia 1, 977 Archontes [I] Office I, 1028— 1030 Astynomoi 2, 213 Autokrator A. Greek 2, 412-413 Boeotarchs 2, 694-695
Deka
4, 194-195
Dekadarchia [1] 4, 195 Demarchos 4, 234 Demiourgos [2] 4, 261 Demosioi 4, 291 Dikastai kata demous 4, 411-412 Dioikesis I. Greece 4, 458-459 Dioiketes 4, 460 Dokimastes see Coin counterfeit,
Choregos 3, 244 Comitia 3, 621-624 Concilium 3, 679-680 Consistorium 3, 703
see Subaeratus Eirenarches see Police
Contio
Ephetai 4, 1032 Ephoroi 4, 1034-1035 Epigrapheis 4, 1107
3, 746-747
Council meetings
3, 881-882
Curia [2] 4, 1199
Curiae 3, 1012-1013 Curialis, Curiales 3, 1013-1014 Curiata lex 3, 1014 Decurio, decuriones [1] 4, 164165
Ekklesia 4, 868-870 Gerontes 5, 816 Gerousia 5, 817-819 Heliaia 6, 68-69 Katacheirotonia 7, 30 Pinax [2] 11, 263 Plebiscitum 11, 369-370 Popular assembly 11, 616 Praerogativa centuria 11, 768 Princeps senatus see Senatus Prohedros II. Byzantine office
11, 949
Prytaneis II. Collegial prytany 12, 96-97 Psephisma 12, 110-111 Sanhedrin see Synhedrion Senatus consultum
13, 264-266
Senatus II. B. Tasks 13, 260-261 > II. C. Procedure 13, 261-262 Synhedrion I. Greek 14, 26-27 > II. Jewish 14, 27
Synodos I. Greek public law Town hall
see Assembly buildings
Triakosioi [2] 14, 898
Tributa comitia
see Comitia
1.2.4.3. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: GREECE Aeisitol 1, 199
Agonothetes
Epimeletai
4, 865 see Hendeka, hoi
4,
1111-1112
Episkopos, Episkopoi [1] 4, 1127 Epistatal 4, 1131 Eponyms in chronology I. Greece
and Rome 4, 1161-1166 Euthynai 5, 236-237
> (2) 45.165 Pol ali, 6S
14, 30
Eisagogeus Eleven, the
1, 348-349
Governor 15, 1034-1035 Grammateis 5, 985-986 Gymnasiarchus see Gymnasiarchy Gymnasiarchy 5, 1050 Gynaikonomoi 5, 1067
Nautodikai 9, 556 Neoroi 9, 654-655 Nomarches 9, 792-793 Nomographos 9, 796-797 Nomophylakes 9, 797-798 Nomothetai 9, 804-805 Oikistes 10, 69 Paidonomoi 10, 346-347 Paredros, Paredroi A. 1. Athens IO, §26
> Peoasparta 10, 526 >» A. 3. Egypt IO, 526 Patronomos IO, 625 Phrourarchos II, 194 Phylarchos [2] II, 208-209 Polemarchos 11, 454 Poletai 11, 462 Poliarchos [1] 11, 462-463 Ponderarium 11, 586 Poristai
11, 637
Praktor 11, 777-778 Proboulos 11, 894-895 Proegoros II, 934 Prohedros 11, 948-949 Prostates 12, 56-57 Prytaneis 12, 95-97
Rhabdophoroi 12, 517 Satrap 13, 20-22 Sitophylakes 13, 514 Somatophylakes 13, 627 Strategos 13, 870-873 Tagos
14,116
Tamias 14, 125-127 Tetrakosioi [1] 14, 320 Tetrarches, Tetrarchia III. Incidence in the Classical and Hellenistic Periods, down to the Roman Pe-
riod
14, 323
Tettarakonta
14, 328
Harmostai 5, 1146 Hellanodikai 6, 80-81 Hellenotamiai 6, 108
Thesmophylakes 14, 565 Thesmothetai 14, 565-566 Toparches 14, 781-782
Hendeka, hoi 6, 133-134 Hodopoioi 6, 442 Katalogeis 7, 31 Katoptai 7, 37-38 Keryx 7, 46 Kolakretai 7, 83-84 Komarches 7, 87-88
Trierarchia
14,918
Xenodikai
15, 813
Komogrammateus
7, 91-92
Komomisthotes 7, 92 Kosmetes 7, 98-99 Kosmoi 7,99
Lawagetas 7, 322-323 Libyarches 7, 514 Liturgy I. C. Hellenistic-Roman
East 7, 732-735 Logistai
7,789 Machairophoroi [1] 8, 92 Market inspection — see Aediles Mastro1 8, 452 Meridarches [2] 8,714
> [3] 8,714 Metronomoi 8, 839-840 Mnemones 9, 95-96
1.2.4.4. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: ROME AND BYZANTIUM
Cf. Lists E.I. (Roman and Byzantine rulers) A commentariis E03 Acubiculo see Cubicularius A libellis see Libellis, a Arationibus see Rationibus, a Ab actis see Actis
Ab epistulis see Epistulis, ab Abdicatio 1, 17 Actarius 1, 118-119 Actis,ab 1, 124 Adiutor 1, 139-140 Adsessor 1, 156 Aediles 1, 168-169 Ambitus 1, 568-569 Anthypatos 1, 738 Apparitores 1, 893 Arcarius 1,971
5
1.3. GOVERNANCE,
Asiarchy 2,157 Augustales [3] 2, 354 Cancellarius 2, 1044-1045 Censores 3, 103-104 Censuales 3, 109-110
Palatini. 10, 384 Parakoimomenos 10, 516 Paredros, Paredroi A. 4. Rome
Centumviri 3, 124-125 Coercitio 3, 508-509
Pedarii see Senatus People’s tribune see Tribunus [7] plebis Poliarchos [2] 11, 463 Ponderarium 11, 586
Collega 3, 532-533
Comes, comites 3, 615-617 Commentariis,a 3, 629-630 Consul(es) 3, 740-742 Consular tribunes 3, 742-743 Consularis 3, 742 Corrector 3, 851-852 Cubicularius 3, 975-976 Curator rei publicae 3, 1009 Curialis, Curiales [3] 3, 1014 Curio [2] 3, rors Curiosi 3, 1015-1016 Custos 3, 1030 Decemprimi [1] 4, 147 Decemviri 4, 147-148 Decuriales 4, 163-164 Defensor II. In constitutional law
4, 174-175 Dekaprotoi
Dictator
4,198
10, 526
Patrikios
Praeco
11,750
UE
Praefectus urbi 11, 760 Praefectus 11, 751-756 Praefectus praetorio 11, 757-759 Praepositus. 11, 767-768 Praeses 11, 768-769 Praetor 11, 771-773 Primicerius. 11, 848-849 Princeps castrorum. 11, 858
Proconsul 11, 919-920 Procurator [1] 11, 928-930
4, 374-375
» [2] 11,930
Domesticus 4, 630 Ducenarius 4,731 Duoviri, Duumviri 4, 739-740
Promagistratus
Duumviri
see Duoviri
Dux [2] 4,754 Epistulis, ab
4,
(C.4.) Propraetor 12, 37 Proquaestor 12, 38
Protasekretis 1148-1149
Eponyms in chronology I. Greece and Rome 4, 1161-1166
Epulones
see Magistratus
12, 65
Protobestiarios 12, 69 Protonotarios 12,72 Protopraepositus see Praepositus
see Septemviri
sacri cubiculi
Exceptor 5,257 Exkoubitai 5, 269
Protostrator
Governor
12, 82-83 Proximus 12, 88
15, 1034-1035
Hypatos 6, 629-630 Imperator 6, 748-751 Interrex 6, 871-872
Katholikos
7, 37 Kouropalates 7, ror Lampadarii 7, 186 Libellis, a 7, 483-484
Lictor
7, 543-544
Logariastes 7,782 Logothetes 7, 799-800 Magister amemoria 8, 150-151 Magister equitum 8, 151-152
Publicani 12, 181-184 Quaesitor 12, 316-317 Quaestor 12, 320-323 Quattuorviri 12, 328 Quinquevirl. 12, 348-349 Rationalis see rationibus, a Rationibus,a 12, 404 Recuperatores 12, 429 Regendarius 12, 436 Sacellarius 12, 824 Sacrosanctus 12, 857 Scriba. III. Scribae of Roman cities
Magister officiorum 8, 154-156 Magistratus 8, 157-161 Megas Logariastes see Logariastes Memoriales 8, 653
>
Mensarius
Septemviri
8, 699
Ministeriales
9, 10
Mintmaster les
see Tresviri Moneta-
Mittendarii Moderator Numerarius
9, 90-91 9, 108 9, 899-900
Nummularius 9, 909-910 Octoviri. 10, 26-27
12,74
Provincia A. Meaning of the word.
13, 104 IV. Other scribae 13, 104-105 Secret police C. Rome. 13, 192-
193
OF STATE
> [4] Tresviri monetales 14, 893 Tribunus [1] Tribunus aerarius
14, 902 >
[3] Tribunus et notarius
>
[5] Tribunus militum consulari potestate 14,904 [7] Tribunus plebis 14, 904-
10, 616
Praefectiani see Praefectus praetorio Praefectus Aegypti. 11, 760-763 Praefectus iure dicundo. 11, 756-
FORMS
>
14, 903
906
Vicarius 15, 390-391 Vici magistri 15, 393-394 Viginti(sex)virl
15, 409
Vilicus 15,410 Vindex [2] 15, 429-430 1.2.4.5. OFFICES AND FUNCTIONS: OTHER STATES Alabarches 1, 418-419 Anax see Wanax Archiereus [2] Jewish. 1, 989 Archontes [III] Byzantium. TOs x Ethnarchos 5, 85-86 Exilarch 5, 267 Gastaldi 5, 702 Great King 5,999 Lawagetas 7, 322-323 Lucumo
7, 864-865
Meddix
8, 546
Nasi [I] 1] 9, 517-518
Pharaoh. 10, 921 Potamophylax 11, 701 Satrap 13, 20-22 Sufetes 13,922 Syennesis 13, 984-985 Toparches 14, 781-782
Wanax
15, 556-557
1.3. Governance, forms of state 1.3.1. INTRODUCTION 1.3.2. ARISTOCRACY 1.3.3. DEMOCRACY 1.3.4. MONARCHY 1.3.5. OLIGARCHY 1.3.6. [TYRANNIS
1.3.7. RULERS AND RULER CULT 1.3.1. INTRODUCTION Adlocutio 1, 141 Adoratio 1, 151 Antonine 1,794 Archai 1, 976-977 Auctoritas I. General meaning
2, 333
13, 287-288
Seviri see Ludi III. H. Silentiarii 13, 456 Suffect consul 13, 923 Tabellarius 14,77 Tabelliones 14, 77-78 Tractatores 14, 819
> II. Publiclaw 2, 333-334 Autokrator 2, 412-413 Autonomia 2, 418-419 Basilikoi paides 2, 537 Bureaucracy
2, 825-827
Ceremony 3, 149-158 Coloniae C. Citizens’ colonies
Tresviri [3] Tresviri (or triumviri) rei
3,546
publicae constituendae
»
14, 892-893
» E.History 3, 553-554
D. Latin colonies
3, 546-553
1.3. GOVERNANCE,
FORMS
OF STATE
Consistorium 3, 703 Constitution 3, 726-729 Control (political) see Censores Court 3, 883-887 Custos 3, 1030
Deditio 4, 171 Diocletianus B. Organization of the rulership 4, 430-437 Dominatus 4, 631 Dominus 4, 632-633 Dynasteia 4, 759-760 Emperors, child 4, 947-948 Empires, Concept of empire 4, 948-952 Freedom I. B. Rome 5, 547-548 Hegemonia
6, 47
Hellenistic states Imperator
6, 89-96
6, 748-751
Imperial family, women of the 6, 751-753 Imperium Romanum see Roman Empire Imperium
6, 754-756 Klerouchoi 7, 66-69 Legal pluralism 7, 350-351 Liberalitas, largitio A. Etymology and development of the word’s meaning 7, 487 > B. Inscriptions of the Principate period 7, 487-488 Maiestas 8, 185-187 Mixed constitution
9, 91-92
Municipal law 9, 290-293 Patrios Politeia 1o, 617-618 Phoenicians, Poeni 3. Constitution and administration 11, 157-
159 Phoros r1, 182-185 Politeia II. Constitution
474
Politeuma 11, 474 Political administration
Il, 473-
Potestass 11, 702 Praefectus Aegypti.
11, 760-763 11, 760
urbi praetorio 11, 757-759 of Diocletian see EdicDiocletiani
Primicerius.
11, 848-849
Princeps II. Institution of the Principate
13,194
Sella curulis Status [3]
11, 856-858
Principate 11, 862-863 Proconsul II. Imperial Period II, 919-920 Procurator [1] 11, 928-930 Provincial administration I]. Rome 12, 86
Religion X. G. History of expansion 12, 495 Res publica 12, 504-506 Rhetra 12, 560-562 Roman Empire see Rome I. Rulers 12, 766-773 Rulership 12, 773-779
13, 230-231 13, 810
Tetrarches, Tetrarchia III. incidence
in the Classical and Hellenistic Periods, down to the Roman Period 14, 323 > IV. Diocletian’s Tetrarchy
14, 323-327 Timokratia 14, 698-699 Tolerance J. Terminology and phi-
>
losophy
14, 758-759
14, 812-
814 >» V.C.Rome
14, 815-817 14, 954-955 15, 136-139
Triumvirate Usurpation
Violence
15, 439-447
4, 194-195
Dekadarchia [1] 4, 195 Eleven, the see Hendeka, hoi Harmostai [1] 5, 1146
» [2] 5, 1146
Hendeka, hoi 6, 133-134 Herms, mutilation of the 6, 241 Hexakosioi see Six Hundred
and Hellenistic Periods
11, 948-949
5,760
Nobiles 9, 783-786 Optimates. 10, 175-177 Ordo II. Public Law ro, 196 Patricil. 10, 611-613 1.3.3. DEMOCRACY Demokratia 4, 271-273 Demos [1] 4, 288 Eleutheria see Freedom Episkopos, Episkopoi [1] 4, 1127 Freedom I. A. Greece 5, 546-547 Isonomia 6, 984 Ostrakismos 10, 287-288 Ostrakon 10, 288-289 12, 56-57
Psephisma Theorikon
15, 556-557
Oligarchia 10, 87-88 Proboulos 11, 894-895 Prohedros I. Greece in the Classical
1.3.2. ARISTOCRACY Aristocracy 1, 1107-1111 Aristokratia 1, 1116 Deductio [3] 4, 172 Genos
Wanax Deka
14, 760-768
Town, city V. B. Greece
>» 3.Principate/Empire 10,795 Pharaoh. 10, 921 Rex 12, 513-515 Rulers 12, 766-773 Rulership 12, 773-779 Syennesis 13, 984-985 Tabula Hebana 14, 92 Tetrarches, Tetrarchia IV. Diocletian’s Tetrarchy 14, 323-327
1.3.5. OLIGARCHY
II. History and religion
Prostates
11, 474-
484 Praefectus Praefectus Price edict tum [3]
Securis
12, 110-111 14, 527
Six Hundred 13, 517 Skytalismos 13, 523 Tetrakosioi [2] 14, 320-321 Thirty Tyrants 14, 588-587 Triakonta 14, 897-898 Triakosioi [2] 14, 898 1.3.6. TYRANNIS Aisymnetes 1, 407-408
Cypselides 3, 1081-1082 Informers see Secret police Korynephoroi 7, 98 Peisistratids 10, 685 Secret police B. Greece. 13, 192 Tyrannicide 15, 61-62 Tyrannidos graphe 15, 62 Tyrannis, Tyrannos 15, 63-66
1.3.7. RULERS AND RULER CULT 1.3.4. MONARCHY
Adoratio Adventus
Acclamatio 1, 64-65 Basileus 2, 517-524 Basilikoi paides 2, 537 Caliph 2, 958 Court ranks
see Court, see Court
titles Court titles
1, 151 1, 161
Asiarchy 2, 157 Augustales [2] 2, 354 Ceremony 3, 149-158 Concilium 3, 679-680 Court poetry
3, 887
3, 888-894 Court 3, 883-887 Despotes 4, 320 Divine kingship 4, 578
Court ranks
see Court, see Court
Great King
Death II. H. Death of a ruler
titles Court 3, 883-887 Damnatio memoriae
5,999
4, 133-135
Illyrian emperors 6,731 Isaurian emperors 6, 957 Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor)
7, 4
King see Basileus Lex de imperio Vespasiani
7, 467-
468
Lituus [1] 7, 737
Monarchia 9, 135-136 Periods, division into 1. Monarchy
10, 794
4, 60-61
Deification 4, 179-182 Despotes 4, 320 Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343 Dies imperli 4, 401-402 Divine kingship 4, 578 Feriale Duranum 5, 390-391 Liberalitas, largitio B. Inscriptions of the Principate period 7, 487488
Zi >»
1.6. INTER-STATE RELATIONS
C. Coins
7, 488-489
Nimbus. [3] III. Classical Antiquity
9, 764-766 Parens. 10, 527-528 Procession IV. Secular processions
IT, 909
Proskynesis 12, 50-51 Ptolemaia 12, 171-172 Purple 12, 231-233 Ruler cult 12, 760-763 Ruler, birth of the 12, 763-766 Rulers 12, 766-773 Sibling marriage 13, 410-411 Tabula Hebana 14, 92 Throne 14, 627-629 Triumph, Triumphal procession II. Triumphal procession 14, 946-
947 >
III. Development 14, 947-948 Triumphal paintings 14, 953-954 Ultima verba 15, 89-91 Usurpation 15, 136-139 Women rulers 15, 721-724
1.4. Politico-social groupings 1.4.1. DYNASTIES AND FAMILY GROUPINGS 1.4.2. POLITICO-SOCIAL GROUPS 1.4.1. DYNASTIES AND FAMILY
GROUPINGS Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79 Achaimenidai see Achaemenids Adoptive emperors 1, 148-151 Aeacides [1] 1, 164 Agiads 1, 339 Alcmaeonid curse 1, 456 Alcmaeonids 1, 455-456 Aleuadae
1, 467
Amali 1, 556-557 Amorian dynasty 1, 594-595 Antonine
1,794
Argeads 1, 1057-1058 Arsacids see Arsaces Attalids see Attalus (fig.) Bacchiadae 2, 446-447 Balthi 2, 481-482 Barcids 2, 506-507 Battiads 2, 560-561 Buzygae
2, 841
Clyti(a)dae 3, 488 Cypselides 3, 1081-1082 Danai
4, 69
Deinomenids 4, 186 Emmenids 4, 942 Eurypontids 5, 219 Flavian Dynasty 5, 454-455 Genealogy II. Greece 5, 747 Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163 Julio-Claudian dynasty 6, 12231224 Lacapeni
7, 141
Lycomidae 7, 923 Macedonian dynasty 8, 80-81 Magonids see Mago
Medontidae 8, 591 Mermnadae 8, 715-716 Merovingians 8, 719-721 Nandas. 9, 498 Peisistratids 10, 685 Philaidae [2] 11, 11-12 Phytalidae see Theseus Ptolemies 12, 175-176 Sassanids II. Political history
135-7
Severan dynasty 13, 352-356 Spartocids 13,711 Syrian dynasty. 14, 65-67 Tetrarches, Tetrarchia IV. Diocletian’s Tetrarchy 14, 323-327
1.4.2. POLITICO-SOCIAL GROUPS Cf. Subject Index 1.2.3. and Ast Ph. Adlectio 1, 140 Aegidae 1, 189 Amphiktyonia 1, 600-601 Aristocracy I, 1107-1111 Assectator 2, 173 Associations VI. Associations of the imperial period 2, 182 Circumceelliones 3, 351-352 Coitio 3, 527 Conscripti 3, 697-698 Eupatridai 5, 179 Factiones 5, 315-317 Funerary clubs see Associations Hetairia 6, 292-293
Kalokagathia 7, 10-11 Parties (political) 10, 580-581 Publicani 12, 181-184 Sodales. 13, 603-604 1.5. Titles, honorifics Acommentariis 1, 103 A libellis see Libellis, a Arationibus see Rationibus, a Ab actis see Actis
Ab epistulis see Epistulis, ab Adlectio 1, 140 Angusticlavius 1, 697-698 Anthypatos 1, 738 Asiarchy 2, 157 Augusta [o] 2, 341-342 Augustus [2]
2, 376
Autokrator B. Byzantine 2, 413 Basileus I. D. Classical 2, 520521 > J. E. Hellenistic monarchies
25 521-523 Basileus II. Late antiquity
524
Clarissimus
2, 523-
see Vir clarissimus
Comes, comites
3, 615-617
Consularis 3,742 Court ranks see Court, see Court titles Court titles 3, 888-894 Curialis, Curiales [2] 3, 1013 Dacicus 4, 33-34
Decemprimi [1] 4, 147
Decurio, decuriones [1] 4, 164165
> [2] 4,165 > [3] 4,165
Dekaprotoi 4, 198 Despotes 4, 320 Dominus 4, 632-633 Ducenarius 4,731 Eminentissimus 4, 941 Epiphanes 4, 1118-1119
Epistulis, ab 4, 1148-1149 Ethnarchos 5, 85-86 Euergetes 5, 153-154 Germanicus [1]
Gloriosus Got(h)icus Great King Illustris vir Imperator
5, 811
5, 875 5,954 5,999 6, 730-731 6, 748-751
Invictus 6, 884-885 Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor) Kinistesie 7,613
7, 4
Libellis, a 7, 483-484 Magister militum
8, 152-154
Magister officiorum C. Judicial functions and Church politics 8,
155-156
Medicus [1] 8, 582-583 Moderator 9, 108 Nobilissimus. 9, 786-787 Parens. 10, 527-528 Pater patriae
Patrikios
10, 597-598
10, 616
Perfectissimus
10, 752-753
Philadelphos 11, 9 Philometor [1] 11, 87 Philopator rr, 88 Philos, Philoi see Court titles Porphyrogennetos 11, 653 Princeps iuventutis 11, 859-860 Princeps II. Institution of the Principate 11, 856-858 Prohedros II. Byzantine office
11,949 Sarmaticus
12, 1000
Soteira see Soter Soter 13, 666-668
Spectabilis
13, 714
Taktika [3] 14, 118 Titles see Ceremony
Victor [3] 15, 395 Vir clarissimus
15, 450
1.6. Inter-state relations 1.6.1. INTRODUCTION 1.6.2. DIPLOMACY/LAW 1.6.3. LEAGUES OF STATES, FEDERAL STATES 1.6.4. WARS
1.6.5. PEACE, CONCEPT OF
Cf. Lists B.I.-UI. (International treaties)
1.6. INTER-STATE
RELATIONS
1.6.1. INTRODUCTION Aliens, the position of 1, 506-508 Amphiktyonia 1, 600-601 Asylia 2,215 Coloniae D. Latin colonies
35 546-553 Contracts I. General points 3,751 Curator rei publicae 3, 1009 Envoys 4, 1008
Ephodion 4, 1034 Epigamia 4, 1095-1096 Fides 5, 414-418 Foederati 5, 476-478 Foedus Cassianum_
Foedus Gabinum
Foedus
5, 479
5, 479-480
5, 478-479
Hellenistic states B. Inter-state relations
6,95
Human rights D. International
6, 565 Immunitas
6, 746-747
International law
6, 854-857
International treaties
6, 857-862
Keryx 7, 46 Latin law 7, 287-288 Metropolis [1] 8, 840-841 Officium [4] 10, 63 Pactos Long 20 Panhellenes, Panhellenism.
10, 444-446 Peregrinus
10, 750-751
Proxenia, proxenos Pylaea [2] 12, 241
12, 87-88
Pylagoras 12,241 Recuperatores 12, 429 Salarium. 12, 881-882 Socit 13, 582-583
Symmachia 14, 3-4 Treaties, upholding of 14, 880 Volksrecht 15, 499-503 Xenodikai [2] 15, 813
Theoros, theorodokos ria [1]
see Theo-
1.6.3. LEAGUES OF STATES, FEDERAL STATES Achaeans, Achaea 1, 69-77 Amphiktyonia 1, 600-601 Armies 2, 6-13 Athenian League (Second) 2, 248250 Boeotarchs 2, 694-695 Confederations see States, confederacies of Corinthian League 3, 791-792 Delian League 4, 201-205 Feriae Latinae 5, 387-388 Isopoliteia 6,984 Italic League
see Socii (Roman
confederation) Koinon 7, 81-83 Latin League
Lycian League
7, 289
7, 915-916
Military technology and engineering 8, 902-906 Nesiotai [2] 9, 679
Panhellenion
to, 446
Peloponnesian League.
10, 702-
704 Social Wars 13, 577-581 Socii (Roman confederation)
13, 583-587
States, confederation of 13, 794795
Sympoliteia 14, 9-10 Synhedrion I. Greek 14, 26-27
Synodos I. Greek public law 14, 30
Synoikismos
14, 34-35
Twelve Cities, League (Etruscan) of
15, 48-49
15, 814-816
1.6.4. WARS 1.6.4.1. INTRODUCTION 1.6.4.2. SPECIFIC WARS
Legatus 7, 354-355
Evocatio
Recuperatores
Metus 8, 845-847 Military technology and engineering 8, 902-906
12, 429
Sagmen 12, 866 Salaminia 12, 878-879 Senatus II. B. Tasks 13, 260-261
Sponsio I. Constitutional law 13,744 Theoria [1]
14, 522-524
1.6.4.2. SPECIFIC WARS
Batavian Revolt
2, 549-550
Chremonidean War 3, 254-255 Civil War 4, 1175-1177 Corinthian War 3, 796-797
Diadochi, wars of the 4, 337-339 Gallic Wars see Caesar Illyrian Wars 6, 731-732 Ionian Revolt 6, 909-910 Jewish Wars 6, 1196-1198 Lamian War 7, 183 Latin Wars 7, 290-292
Lelantine War 7, 379-380 Maccabean Revolt see Judas [1] Macedonian Wars 8, 84-86 Mercenaries’ War 8, 708-709 Messenian Wars 8, 766-767
Mithridatic Wars 9, 85-88 Mutina, War of 9, 377 Nika revolt. 9, 753-754 Parthian and Persian wars. LO, 572-575 Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709 Persian Wars 10, 821-827 Punic Wars 12, 205-213
Sacred wars 12, 830-832 Satrap Revolt 13, 22-23 Social Wars 13, 577-581 14, 67-69
1.6.5. PEACE, CONCEPT OF
1.6.4.1. INTRODUCTION Armies 2, 6-13
Presbeia, Presbeis 11, 803-804 Proboulos [2] 11, 895 Proegoros 11,934 Proxenia, proxenos 12, 87-88
566
War, law of 15, 566 War see War, law of
Deditio
1.6.2. DIPLOMACY/LAW Decemviri [5] Decemviri 4, 148 Diplomacy 4, 528-529 Envoys 4, 1008 Epimachia 4, 1111 Foedus Gabinum_ 5, 479-480 International law 6, 854-857 International treaties 6, 857-862 Legatio 7, 351-352
On military cf. Subject Index 5.
4,171
Foedus Cassianum Homonoia 6, 468 Indutiae 6,795
5, 479
King’s peace
7, 50
Koine Eirene
7, 80-81
Pax
Capitulation see Deditio Civil War 4, 1175-1177 Conscientious objection
563
War, art of see Military technology and engineering War, consequences of 15, 563-
Syrian Wars
> [3] 15, 813 Xenoi
Slave revolts 13, 524-526 Symmachia 14, 3-4 War booty 15, 557-560 War guilt, problem of 15, 562—
10, 657-659
War, consequences of 15, 5633, 696—
566
697 5, 251-252 International law II. Law of war 6, 855-856
Naval warfare 9, 557-559 Obses. 10, 5 Occupatio B. Public law 10, 9 Prisoners of war 11, 875-878 Sacramentum III. Military oath 12, 828
1.7. Historiography On Greek and Roman literature cf. Subject Index rr. see Index ofPersons 3. Alexander historians
1, 486
Annalists 1, 703-704 Anthropology 1, 733-736 Atthis 2, 309-310 Biography 2, 648-655 Chronica minora 3, 270-271 Chronicles A. General 3, 271 > 1C, Greek “Syo72—2773)
9
2.1. SOCIETY
> De Roman Commentarii
ga273 3, 628-629 Ephemeris 4, 1022 Eras A. Definition and origin
5, 8-9 >» C.1 ‘Dynastic’ eras 5, 9-10 >» C.2 Local eras of the Hellenistic period 5,10 Eschatology B. 3. Historiography 9
Fasti D. Magistrate lists
5, 364—
Milestones Miliarium
8, 881-884 see Milestones
Monogram
9, 166-167
2.5. INFRASTRUCTURE
2.6. WEIGHTS AND MEASURES
Preparatory drawing _ see Inscriptions III.D. Squeeze. 13,772 Stele 13, 817-819
Tabulae censoriae see Tabulae publicae Tabulae publicae 14, 100 Votive inscriptions. 15, 524-525
365
Genealogy II. Greece 5, 747 Gospels (literary forms) D. Gospel and Historiography 5, 948-949 Historiography 6, 415-430 Imagines maiorum A. Term 6, 741
>» B. Function 6, 741-742 Lindian Chronicle 7, 607-608 Literary genre II. B. Prose 7, 654 > II. C. General comments
7, 654-655 Literature
Local chronicles, local history
7, 762-763 7, 798-
LI?
Pentekontaetia 10, 729-730 Periods, division into 10, 791-
796
Ultima verba 15, 89-91 Universal history see Historiography II. Greece E. Characteristics 1.8. Epigraphy 1.8.1. INTRODUCTION 1.8.2. INDIVIDUAL INSCRIPTIONS
1.8.1. INTRODUCTION Architectural inscriptions I, [002-1003 Archive B. B.2 The Greek world I, 1025-1026
>
B.B.3 The Roman world I, 1026-1027
Communication C. 3. Inscriptions
3, 659 > C. 4. Written recording of laws 3, 659-660 Communication D. Inscriptions
and monuments as aids for education and propaganda 3, 660— 661
Elogium [1] 4, 928-929
Epigraphy 4, 1107 Funerary inscriptions 5, 606-607 Graffiti 5, 960-964 Honorary inscriptions 6, 475—
476
Inscriptions 6, 823-833 Leiden System 7, 373-374 Liberalitas, largitio B. Inscriptions of the Principate period 7, 487488
tion 5,944-945
Iguvinian Tables
see Tabulae Igu-
vinae Lapis niger 7, 241 Lapis Satricanus 7, 241-242
Laudatio Turiae 7, 299 Lex de imperio Vespasiani
7, 467-
468
7, 672-723
Logos [3] Historiography
1.8.2. INDIVIDUAL INSCRIPTIONS 4, 734-736 Gortyn III. The great law inscrip-
Duenos inscription
Lex Irnitana
7, 473-474
Lex Malacitana Lex Salpensana
7, 475 7, 475 Lex Ursonensis 7, 476 Lindian Chronicle 7, 607-608 Lyons tablet see Tabula Lugdunensis Marmor Parium
8, 380
Monumentum Ancyranum
9, 195-196 Monumentum Antiochenum see Monumentum Ancyranum Price edict of Diocletian see Edic-
tum [3] Diocletiani Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740 Scipionic inscriptions 13, 93-94 Senatus consultum de Bac(ch)analibus 13, 266-267 Senatus consultum de Cn. Pisone patre
135267
Senatus consultum Hosidianum 13, 268
Sinai-Inscriptions tic Script Tablettes Albertini
see Proto-Sinai-
14, 89-90 Tabula Banasitana 14, 91 Tabula Bantina 14, 91-92 Tabula Hebana 14, 92 Tabula Heracleensis 14, 92-93 Tabula Lugdunensis 14, 93 Tabula Siarensis see Tabula Hebana Tabulae duodecim 14, 95-98 Tabulae Iguvinae 14, 98 Twelve Tables see Tabulae Duodecim 2. Social and economic history 2.1, SOCIETY, 2.2. ECONOMY
2.3. FINANCE, FISCAL SYSTEMS 2.4. TECHNOLOGY
2.1. Society 2.1.1. POPULATION, SOCIAL STRUCTURE 2.1.2. FAMILY AND MARRIAGE 2.1.3. SOCIAL GROUPS AND PERIPHERAL GROUPS
2.1.4. SLAVERY 2.1.5. SOCIAL PROBLEMS AND CONFLICTS POA SOCIAL POLICY AND SOCIAL MEASURES gn Wigs GENDER ROLES AND SEXUALITY Deleos NUTRITION
2.1.1. POPULATION, SOCIAL STRUCTURE On individual age categories cf. Subject Index 3.3. Akme 1, 415 Barbarians 2, 500-504 Beggars
2, 578-580
Child exposure 3, 224-225 Child, Childhood A. The conception of childhood and attitude towards the child 3, 221 > B. Birth and acceptance of the child 3, 221-222 > C. Early childhood and carers 3 eo) > D. Sickness and death 3, 222223 Citizenship 3, 369-370 Debt redemption see Debt, Debt redemption Debt, Debt redemption II. Greece and Rome 4, 140-144 Ephebeia 4, ror8-1021 Estimation
5, 76-77
Family planning 5, 348-349 Friendship I. Social History
5> 552-554
Gender roles I. Society 5, 740-744 Gens 5, 760-763 Housing conditions 6, 553-556 Iuvenes (Iuventus)
6, 1149
Kinship, Relatives 7, 50-54 Leisure I. Definition 7, 374 >» II. Greece 7, 374-376 >» [II. Rome 7, 376-377 Life expectancy 7, 545-546 Luxury 7, 905-907 Marriage, Age at 8, 393-395 Migration 8, 866-868 Mobility 9, 104-107
Mortality 9, 214-215 Munus, Munera I. Etymology and definition 9, 301-302 > II. Contributions and municipal offices 9, 302-304 Neighbours, neighbourhood. 9, 617-618
Io
2.1. SOCIETY
Neoi
9, 638-639 Oikos 10, 69-71 Old age 10, 83-85 Orphans 10, 242-243 Paides see Child, Childhood Patrocinium I. Political 1o, 618-
Patronus A. Definition 10, 625 > C, Patronage in relation to the judicial system 10, 626-627 » D. Patronage over cities LO, 627
10, 735-736
Peregrinus
II, 741-744
Private wealth 11, 881-887 Progenitors III. Greece 11, 941-
942
Pubertas 12, 177-178 Reciprocity. 12, 419 Revenge 12, 5t1-513 Rome II. A. Population. 698 II. B. Economy.
12, 697-
12, 699-700
Status [2] 13, 809-810 Strangers see Barbarians Vicus 15, 403-404
Violence 15, 439-447 Wealth, distribution of 15, 591S95
Wealth 15, 587-s91 Wills and testaments C. Jewish law 15, 638
15, 853-856
2.1.2. FAMILY AND MARRIAGE Adoption 1, 146-148 = Adulterium 1, 159 Adultery 1, 159-161
Agnatio
Divorce
4, 581-582
Dos
Dowry
4, 701-702
Family planning
5, 348-349
Family
5, 332-347
Gamos_
see Marriage
1, 267-268
1, 344-345
Ancestors 1, 665 Apotimema 1, 891 Caelibatus 2, 892
Child exposure 3, 224-225 Child, Childhood 3, 221-223 Circumcisio 3, 352-353 Clothing A. 2. Socio-cultural significance 3, 473 Coemptio 3, 507 Cognatio 3, 509-510 Concubinatus 3, 682-683 Confarreatio 3, 688 Consanguinei 3, 694-695 Consilium 3, 702-703
Wet-nurses
15, 628-629 Widow 15, 631-633 Wills and testaments [2] I. General » >»
5, 740-744 5, 747-748
Orient 15, 637 >» B. Egypt 15, 637-638 Woman I. Ancient Orient, Egypt and Iran 15, 693-697 » II. Greece and Rome E Sy 7OE— 706
>
Genos 5,760 Gens 5, 760-763
Gentile 5, 764-765 Hedna 6, 45 Heiress see Epikleros Imagines maiorum 6, 741-742 Kinship, Relatives 7, 50-54 Law [2] IV. C. The family and private hegemony 7, 317-319 Manus
8, 266-267
Marriage II. Greece 8, 386-388 > Ill. Rome 8, 388-391 >» IV. Judaism 8, 391-392
>» V. Christian 8, 392-393 Mater familias 8, 453 Matrimi see Amphithaleis Paides Matrimonium 8, 482 Matrona [1] 8, 483-484 Minores 9, 23-24 Minors see Agoge
Moicheia
9, 123
Naturales liberi 9, 528-529 Nothos 9, 827-828
Obsequium 10, 5 Orbi. ro, 189-190 Orphans 10, 242-243 Partus suppositus. ro, 581-582 Pater familias. 10, 595-597 Patria potestas. 10, 604-606 Patronus B. Private law 10, 625626 Postumus [2]
11, 698-699
Progenitors I. Ancient Near East
IT, 940-941 > >»
Il. Egypt IV.Rome
rz, 941 11, 942-943
Proix 11, 949-950 Puer, puerl 12, 193-194
Repudium 12, 503-504 Sponsalia 13,744 Spurius [2] 13, 769 Succession, laws of IV. Jewish
Lao Ls Tabulae nuptiales
Points 15, 636-637 [2] Ill. Greece 15, 638-639 [2] IV.Rome 15, 639-644
Wills and testaments A. Ancient
4, 582-583
4, 693-694
Marriage contracts 8, 395-396 Marriage, Age at 8, 393-395
Social structure 13, 567-577 Stand see Ordo Status symbols 13, 810-813
Aetas
Diatheke G. Delineation from adoption 4, 364 Diffarreatio 4, 405
Genealogy III. Rome
10, 750-751
I1, 621-627
Poverty.
Youth
3, 758-759 4, 206-207
Gender roles I. Society
Philia see Friendship Population density see Population, demographic history Population statistics see Population, demographic history Population, demographic history
>»
Deliciae
Divortium
620
People.
Conubium
14, 98-99 Tutela [1] 15, 42-45 Tutelage 15, 45-46 Vidua 15, 404 Violence III. 2. Violence towards family members 15, 443
III. Judaism
15, 708-709
2.1.3. SOCIAL GROUPS AND
PERIPHERAL GROUPS Adlectio 1, 140 Adsiduus 1, 156-157 Aliens, the position of 1, 506-508 Aristocracy 1, I107-IIII Aristokratia 1, 1116 Artists V. Status in society 2, 7781 Associations I. Definition 2, 179180 >»
II. Greece
> »
III. State and associations in the Roman Republic 2, 180 IV. Imperial period: legal posi-
»
V. Internal organization
tion 2,
2,180
2, 180-181 181-182
Bagaudae 2, 463-464 Beggars 2, 578-580 Brigandry 2, 768-772 Capite censi 2, 1069-1070 Castratio
2,
1187-1188
Cliens, clientes 3, 450-452 Colonatus 3, 538-541
Crafts, Trade V. G. Social status 3, 905-906
Disability 4, 534-536 Emeriti see Veterans Entertainers IV. Social Status 4, 999-1000 Equites Romani 5, 1-4 Eranos [2] 5,8 Eunuchs 5, 172-174 Eupatridai 5,179 Farmers 5, 354-358
Freedmen
Genealogy Geomoroi Hektemoroi
5, 539-545
5, 746-748 5, 780 6, 60-61
Helots 6, 117-119 Hippeis 6, 341-342 Hippobotai 6, 347-348 Homo novus see Novus homo Homoioi 6, 465-466 Honestiores/Humiliores
6, 472-
474 Humiliores see Honestiores Hypomeiones 6, 641 Kalasirieis 7,7
1
2... SOCIETY
Klerouchoi 7, 66-69 Knights see Equites Romani Magia 316
Anti-Semitism
Latini luniani
Bagaudae
7, 284
Locuples 7, 779-780 Marginalized groups 8, 340-344 Metoikos 8, 810-814 Military clientela 8, 897-898 Ministeriales 9, 10 Mothakes 9, 236-237 Neodamodeis 9, 638 Nobiles 9, 783-786 Nobility see Nobiles Novus homo see Nobiles Optimates.
10, 175-177
Partheniae 10, 562-563 Patriciil. 10, 611-613 Pelatai 10, 694 Penestai [1]
10, 722-723
Pentakosiomedimnoi
ro, 725-
726
Perioikoi 10, 796-797 Pilleus 11, 258 Plebs 11, 370-373 Populares 11, 618-621 Professional associations
II, 937-940 Proletarii Strangers
12, 1-2 see Barbarians
Sykophantes 13, 985-986 Synteleia 14, 37-38 Thetes 14, 581 Tresantes 14, 891 Triakosioi [1] 14, 898 Verbera 15, 292 Veterans 15, 350-354
2.1.5. SOCIAL PROBLEMS AND CONFLICTS
Beggars
1, 739-741
2, 463-464 2, 578-580
Brigandry 2, 768-772 Cura annonae IV. Late antiquity and Byzantine period 3, 1008 Debt redemption see Debt, Debt redemption Debt, Debt redemption 4, 138-
144 Hostis 6, 535-536 Piracy 11, 284-285 Pirates see Piracy Poverty. I1, 741-744 Praefectus [16] Praefectus vigilum
11,756
Rural exodus 12, 785-787 Secessio 13, 184-185 Seditio 13, 195-196 Slave revolts 13, 524-526 Social conflicts 13, 560-565 Stasis see Social conflicts Struggle of the Orders 13, 886888
Tumultus 15, 13 Unemployment 15, 111-112 Vincula 15, 427-428 Violence 15, 439-447
Seisachtheia 13, 208 Sitesis 13, 511-512 Sitometria 13, 513-514 Social politics 13, 565-567 Tabulae novae see Debt, Debt redemption Trierarchia 14,918 Veterans 15, 350-354
2.1.7. GENDER ROLES AND SEXUALITY On body and bodycare cf. Subject Index 3.8. Brothels 2, 790-791 Caelibatus 2, 892 Castratio 2, 1187-1188 Circumcisio
3, 352-353
Deliciae 4, 206-207 Eunuchs 5, 172-174 Family planning 5, 348-349 Gender roles 5, 740-746 Gynaecocracy
5, 1061-1062
Gynaikonomoi 5, 1067 Harem 5, 1143 Hetaerae 6, 290-292 Incest see Incestus Matchmaking 8, 453 Mater familias 8, 453 Matriarchy see Gynaecocracy Matrona [1] 8, 483-484 Matronae see Matres Midwife 8, 865-866 Moicheia 9, 123 Musicians (female) V. Ancient music theory as gender-specific discourse; iconography 9, 367-
cf. Subject Index 1.2.3.
2.1.6. SOCIAL POLICY AND SOCIAL MEASURES Alimenta 1, 509-510 Alms 1, 522-524 Comparatio publica 3, 671-672 Congiarium 3, 691 Cura annonae 3, 1006-1008 Debt, Debt redemption 4, 138-
2.1.4. SLAVERY
Decemviri [3] Decemviri agris (dan-
Nudity C. Everyday life and sport
dis) assignandis Diobelia 4, 422 Divisor 4, 580
Olisbos
Xenoi 15, 814-816 Zeugitai 15, 916-917
144 Ambacti 1, 565 Andrapodistes 1, 680 Apophora 1, 885-886 Child, Childhood E. Slave children
qi 223
Debt, Debt redemption II. B. Debt bondage 4, 140-141 Ergastulum 5, 28-29 Hierodouloi 6, 308 Manumissio 8, 263 Manumission 8, 263-266 Marginalized groups 8, 340-344 Operae libertorum. 10, 151 Paramone
10, 516-517
Partus ancillae. ro, 581 Peculium. 10, 668-669
Signum [3] 13,450
Slave revolts Slave trade Slavery 13, Verbera 15, Vicarius [2] Vincula 15, Violence III.
13, 524-526 13, 526-529 529-540 292 15, 391 427-428 3. Violence towards
slaves 15, 443-444
Dorea
4, 148
4, 673
Endowments 4, 970-973 Euergetism 5, 154-156 Fire-brigades 5, 433-434 Ges anadasmos_
5, 822-824
Grain laws 5, 974-976 Liberalitas, largitio 7, 487-490 Liturgy I. Political 7, 731-735 Munificentia 9, 297-299 Panes aedium 10, 444 Praefectus [10] Praefectus frumenti dandi 11,755 > [3] Praefectus alimentorum
368
» VI. Women and music in the Roman Empire
9, 368-369
9, 874 10, 89 Paederasty 10, 331-332 Pallake 1o, 395-396 Private sphere and public sphere 11, 878-881
Prostitution
Rape
12, 57-61
12, 393-395
Sexuality 13, 374-377 Spado 13, 688 Stuprum 13, 890-891 Univira 15, 116
Price edict of Diocletian see Edictum [3] Diocletiani Private sphere and public sphere IV.
Widow 15, 631-633 Woman 15, 693-710 Woman II. A. Women in the system of symbolic orders 15, 701-702 > II. B. Political and social position of women 15, 702-703 > II. C. Women’s work 15, 703 > II. D. Behavioural norms
Patronage 11, 880-881 Rations 12, 405-406
>
TX; 752-753
Ravenna Papyri
12, 412-413 Rome II. C. Food supply. 12, 700-702
15, 703-704
II. E. Women poets and philosophers 15, 704 Woman I. Ancient Orient, Egypt and Iran 15, 693-697
Iz
2.1. SOCIETY
> >
III. Judaism 15, 708-709 Ja. Minoan and Mycenaean cul-
>
Ila. Etruria
ture
Youth
>» V. Byzantium 13, 537-539 >» VI.Early Middle Ages 13, 539-
540
15, 697-701
15, 706-708
15, 853-856
Societas
13, 581-582 Temple economy 14, 261-265
Coins, finds of 3, 526-527 Counterfeiting 3, 882 Credit see Loan Daneion
4,77
Debt, Debt redemption
144
2.1.8. NUTRITION see Subject Index 3.6.
2.2.2. WORK
2.2.3. MONEY, MONEY SOCIETY, PRICES 2.2.4. AGRICULTURE 2.2.5. FISHERIES 2.2.6. RAW MATERIALS, BASIC MA-
TERIALS 2.2.7. CRAFTS
2.2.8. COMMERCE 2.2.9. MARKET, MARKET CONTROL
cf. CT index volume, Entry Index Za
2.2.1. INTRODUCTION Abinnaeus Archive 1, 21
2, 396-
398
Civil law I. C. Continuation of the >
>
family 3, 372-373
II. B. Continuation of the family
35 374-375
III. B. Family 3, 376 Ill. C. Continuation of the fami-
ly 3, 376-377 Documents I. B. Business documents 4, 588-589
» >
TIL. B. Hieratic and cursive hieratic documents 4, 593-594 III. C. Demotic documents
45 594-595 Documents II. Ancient Orient
4, 589-593 Economical Ethics Economy
4, 795-798
5, 1167-1182
Law [2] IV. D. The laws of the market and trade in goods
7, 319-320 Nutrition
9, 914-921
Oikos economy. Paclex.)
10, 71-73
10, 432
879-880 880 12, 412-413 419
Rome II. Population and economy of the city of Rome 12, 697702 Settlement, forms of 13, 346-347 Slavery III. Greece 13, 531-534
» IV.Rome
Day-labourers 4, 109-110 Engyesis 4, 980 Epigamia 4, 1095-1096 Epikleros 4, 1108 Epitropos [2] 4, 1157-1158 Ergasterion II. Greece 5, 26-28 Exactor 5, 252-253 Fabrica, fabricenses 5, 310-312 Job market 6, 1199-1200 Kakogamion 7, 5 Misthos 9, 66-68 Misthosis C. Work Agreement
9, 70 >»
D.Private Employment
13, 535-537
9, 70-
We Officium [3] 10, 63 Opera. 10, 150 Operae libertorum. 10, 151 Operarii see Day-labourers Paid labour /wage work. 10, 342-
344 Paramone 10, 516-517 Schola 13, 64-67
Unemployment 15, 111-112 15, I§O-I51
Vacatio
Wages
15, 541-544
Work
15, 738-744
Work contract
Working hours
15, 744-745 15, 746-747
2.2.3. MONEY, MONEY SOCIETY,
PRICES On individual coins cf. Subject Index 25.2.5. Cf. also Lists C.III.5. (Greek and Roman coinage) Aeginetan Standard 1, 194
Anatokismos_ 1, 648-649 Argentarius [2] 1, 1060-1061
Arrha, Arrhabon 2, 22-23 Auctiones 2, 331-332 Banks 2, 484-488 Bookprices see Book Calendarium
Philanthropa 11, 12-13 Private sphere and public sphere I. General 11, 878-879 > II. Greece 11, >» Ill. Rome tr1, Ravenna Papyri Reciprocity. 12,
Divisor
Collegium [1] 3, 533-534
2.2. Economy 2.2.1. INTRODUCTION
Adsignatio 1, 157-158 Autarkeia A. Economic
Devaluation of money
2.2.2. WORK
2, 951-952
Centesima 3, 114 Chrematistike 3, 254 Chresis 3, 255 Coactores 3, 491 Coin counterfeit 3, 518-520 Coin production 3, 520-523 Coinage laws 3, 515-516 Coinage reforms 3, 516-518 Coinage system
see Money, mon-
ey economy Coinage, standards of 3, 513-514 Coins, control of 3, 523-524 Coins, debasement of 3, 524-526
4, 138-
4, 325-327
4, 580
Edictum [3] Edictum Diocletiani. 4, 805-807 Emphyteusis 4, 948 Exactor 5, 252-253 Gresham’s law 5, 1030-1031 House 5. Cost 6, 544 Ingots 6, 807-808 Interest 6, 849-854 Loan
7,756-760
Maritime loans 8, 360-362 Mint decree (Athens) see Coinage laws Minting 9, 28-34 Mintmaster see Tresviri Monetales Misthos 9, 66-68
Monetary theory 9, 143-144 Money supply 9, 146-147 Money, money economy 9, 147160
Murecine Tablets 9, 313-314 Nummularius 9, 909-910 Paid labour/ wage work. 10, 342-
344 see Money,
Payment, means of
money economy Peculium. 10, 668-669 Pecunia. 10, 669 Poroi 11, 644
Poverty.
11, 741-744 Price control. 11, 829-830 Price theory. 11, 830-832 Price
11, 821-829
Private wealth 11, 881-887 Purchase I]. Ancient Near East
Renting and hiring
15, 1038-
1043 Salarium.
12, 881-882
Small coins, shortage of.
13, 545-
548
Tabulae novae
see Debt, Debt red-
emption
Telonai 14, 238-239 Test mark 14, 314 Trial minting
Wages
Wealth
14, 898-899
15, 541-544
15, 587-591
2.2.4. AGRICULTURE 2.2.4.1. INTRODUCTION, AGRARIAN WRITING 2.2.4.2. AGRARIAN TECHNOLOGY, TOOLS 2.2.4.3. AGRARIAN STRUCTURE, LAND OWNERSHIP 2.2.4.4. CULTIVATION AND HUSBANDRY
13
2.2. ECONOMY
2.2.4.1. INTRODUCTION, AGRAR-
IAN WRITING Agrarian writers 1, 368-372 Agriculture 1, 373-390 Cura annonae IV. Late antiquity and Byzantine period 3, 1008 Decemviri [3] Decemviri agris (dandis) assignandis 4,148 Dorea 4, 673 Fowling 15, 1033-1034 Geoponica 5, 780-783 Grain Trade, Grain Import 5, 976-981 Grain III. Species of Grain 5, 966-
974 Granarium see Horrea Heroninus Archive 6, 273-274 Horrea [2] H. Agrippina _ see
Storehouses Hunting 6, 576-578 Irrigation 6, 945-947 Praefectus [10] Praefectus frumenti
dandi 11,755 Sitometria 13, 513-514 Storage economy 13, 858-863 Store houses see Storage economy Subsistence farming
Terracing
13, 904-906
14, 300-301
Demioprata 4, 260-261 Deserti agri 4, 314-315 Domain 4, 623-624 Epitropos [1] 4, 1156-1157 Ergastulum 5, 28-29 Fundus see Large estates/Latifundia Ges anadasmos_ 5, 822-824 Gnomon [1] see Groma (survey-
Lease, indenture of 7, 333-335
Leasehold
Sheep 13, 378-384
ing) Groma 5, 1033-1034 Heredium 6, 195-196
Kleros 7, 65 Landlordism 7, 195-196 Latifundia/Large estates 7, 270-
275 7, 335-337
Military lands 8, 899-900 Military tenure 8, 906 Opera. 10, 150 Praedium. 11,751 Stratiotic property see Military lands Suaril 13, 898 Surveyors 13, 967-968 Vilicus 15, 410 Villa 15, 410-420
2.2.4.4. CULTIVATION AND HUSBANDRY On individual animals and plants cf. Subject Index 22.2. and 22.3. On nutrition cf. Subject Index
6, 442-443
Horticulture I. C. Methods of cultivation and irrigation 6, 518520 Hydraletes see Mill Mills 8, 909-915 Mola __ see Mills Myle see Mills Mylos see Mills Pistrina see Mills Plough 11, 405-407 Presses 11, 810-813 Reaping machines 12, 415-416
Scythe 13, 160 Sickle 13, 429-430 Threshing 14, 624-626 Torcularium — see Presses Trapetum _ see Presses Winnowing see Grain Wood B. Agriculture, crafts, house
2.2.4.3. AGRARIAN STRUCTURE, LAND OWNERSHIP Ager publicus 1, 329-330 Agrarian laws 1, 359-362 Colonatus
B50:
Animals 15,994 Apiculture 1, 837-839
Vegetable gardening 15, 248-249 Vindemia see Wine II. C. Wheat see Grain Wine II. A. Viticulture 15, 658666
2, 756-760
Camel 2, 1018-1021 Castration of animals
1, 363-368
3, 538-541
15, 733-735
Zoology and botany 2. Agricultural botany 15,959-960 2.2.5. FISHERIES
On individual fishes etc. cf. Subject Index 22.3.2. Fish dishes (and seafood) 5, 438439
Breeding, of small domestic animals
Fishing, Fishing trade 5, 440-442 Nutrition III. D. Various foodstuffs
O39 88-919 2, 1188—
Piscina [1]
11, 293-294
1189
Cattle 3, 25-31 Domestication 4, 628-629 Donkey 4, 664-670 Farrago
5,358
Fertilizer
Fodder Grain
5, 394-395
5, 475-476
Goat [2]
5, 902-906
5, 965-974
Horse IV. A. General 6, 506 > IV. B. Ancient technical literature, breeding and keeping
6, 506-507
15, 726-727
Agrarian structure
Threshing 14, 624-626 Transhumance 14, 846
Wool
Drainage 4, 710-711 Harrow 5, 1152-1153
15, 1043-
1044
> II. B. Wine trade 15, 666-668 Wine I. Egypt and Ancient Near East 15, 657-658
15, 350-354
OGY, TOOLS
building
>
Sickle 13, 429-430 Stabling of livestock
Limitation 7, 602-605 Locus [1] 7, 780-781
Bigae 2, 640-641 Dolium 4, 618 Donkey 4, 664-670
Hoe
9, 263-264
C. Use in the military and for travel 9, 264 > D. Mule drivers 9, 264 Oils for cooking I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 10, 75-76 Olive oil see Oils for Cooking Pigs 11, 244-247 Pomiculture 11, 543-544 Poultry farming see Breeding, of small domestic animals Saltus 12, 905-906 Scythe 13, 160
Veterans
2.2.4.2. AGRARIAN TECHNOL-
Husbandry 6, 580-588 Linen, flax 7, 619-621 Mule A. Introduction 9, 262-263 > B. Mules in the economy
Brass
2, 750-752
Bronze
2, 786-789
Byssos
2, 845
Cinnabar
>»
IV. D. Economic use
>
IV.E. The horse in art, myth,
and literature
2.2.6. RAW MATERIALS, BASIC MATERIALS On Stones and minerals cf. Subject Index 22.4. Amber 1, 566-567 Aurum see Gold Billon 2, 647 Bombyx see Silk
6, 509
6, 509-511
Horse I. Introduction 6, 500-501 > II. Range and domestication of wild horses 6, 501-502 > III. Ancient Orient 6, 502-506 Horticulture 6, 517-521
Copper Diamond
Ebony
3, 344-345
3, 769-772 see Precious stones
4, 774-775
Elektron 4, 906-907 Euphorbion 5, 181 Faience 5, 319-320 Fuels 5, 568-570 Gold 5, 912-920
14
2.2. ECONOMY
Ingots
Iron
6, 807-808
Iatromaia
6, 938-943
Ivory
6, 1153
Lapis lazuli 7, 240-241 Laurium 7, 303-306 Lead 7, 329-330 Linen, flax 7, 619-621 Marble 8, 281-291 Margarita see Pearl Metalla [1] see Mining Metallurgy 8, 776-783 Mineral Resources
Pitch 11, 303-305 Pottery, production of 11, 725-
Fy 11, 795-796
Purple 12, 231-233 Salt 12, 902-905 Sapropelite 12, 965 Silk 13, 462-464 Silver 13, 471-476 Steel 3.003 Tin 14, 714-716 Wax 15, 587 Wood I. Dendrochronology
> >
15; 735
A. General points 15,726 B. Agriculture, crafts, house building 15, 726-727 >» C. Wood as a material in sculpture
>
15, 727-728
D. Ship building and land transport
Metallurgy I. Ancient Near East 8, 776-778 » II. Prehistory and early history
Iugum [2]
8, 778-780
8, 934-939
15, 728-729
>» E. Other uses 15,729 > F. Wood asa fuel 15,729 > G. Transportation and working of wood 15, 729-730 » H. Wood and politics 15,730
Wool 15, 733-735 Zinc 15,933-934
8, 865-866
Mining 9, 5-9
Murileguli see Purple Pensum _ see Textiles, production of Pigmentarius. 11, 238 Pigments. 11, 239-240 Pitch 11, 303-305 Pottery, production of 11, 725-
732
Purple 12, 231-233 Radius [1] 12, 381 Shipbuilding 13, 387-392 Silk 13, 462-464 Spinning see Textiles, production of Suarii 13, 898 Technitai 14, 201-202 Nector 145, 210 Textiles, production of
Weaving see Textiles, production of Wood A. General points 15,726 > B. Agriculture, crafts, house building 15, 726-727 > G. Transportation and working of wood 15, 729-730
Wool
15, 733-735
2.2.8. COMMERCE Advertising 15, 978-979 Art, trade in
Barber 2, 505-506 Bombyx see Silk Book C. Book production and dissemination (book trade)
Collegium [1] 3, 533-534 5,
310-312
4, 756-757
Fulling, Fuller
5, 576-577
Grammaticus
5, 986-987
latraleiptes
6, 689
Associations VI. Associations of the imperial period 2, 182 > VII. State and associations in late antiquity 2, 183 Bookselling see Book Calibration 2, 953-955 Caravan trade 2, 1088-1090 Chrematistike 3, 254 Commerce 3, 632-650 Commercium 3, 650
Crafts, Trade 3, 894-910 Ergasterion 5, 26-28
Fabrica, fabricenses
1, 615-617
see Art, interest in
Collegium [1] 3, 533-534
2, 724-726 Bookprices see Book Bookselling see Book Brickyards 2, 766-767 Cobbler 15, 1018-1020
Farberei
14, 340-
346
Amphora stamps
2.2.7. CRAFTS Aerarius [2] 1, 239 Ascia 2, 93-94 Bakeries 2, 467-469
importance of harbours Imports / Exports
Midwife
Mining 9, 5-9 Pearl 10, 662-664 Pigments. 11, 239-240
Precious stones
Harbours, docks D. The economic
6, 689-690
latrosophistes 6, 692-693 Linen, flax 7, 619-621 Marmorarius see Marble Materiarius see Wood Metalla [1] see Mining
Comparatio publica 3, 671-672 Dolium 4, 618 Emporikai dikai 4, 956 Emporikoi nomoi 4, 956
Emporion 4, 956-957 Emporos 4, 957-958 Emptio venditio Fenus nauticum
4, 958-960 5, 381-382
Grain Trade, Grain Import 5, 976-981
5, 1138-1139 6, 757-758
Incense Road 6, 762-763 India, trade with 6, 773-777 Institor 6, 836
see Land transport
Ivory 6, 1153 Kapelos 7, 18 Koinonia 7, 83
Kymbe _ see Navigation Land transport 7, 200-209 Lead seals see Toll Libra [2] see Scales Libripens 7, 511 Licitatio 7, 542 Macellum 8, 88-90 Maritime Transport see Navigation Markets see Agora Materiarius see Wood Monopoly 9, 169-171 Naufragium. 9, 541-542 Naukleros 9, 542 Navicularius. 9, 559-562 Navigation 9, 566-571 Negotiator. 9, 612-614 Negotium. 9, 614-615
Nicanor, Archive of. 9, 712-713 Nummularius 9, 909-910 Ponderarium
11, 586
Port of Trade 11, 654 Pottery trade. 11, 724-725 Purchase 12, 222-225 Reciprocity. 12, 419 Redistribution 12, 433 Scales 13, 46 Shipbuilding 13, 387-392 Sitophylakes 13, 514 Slave trade 13, 526-529 Steelyard 13, 813-817 Toll 14, 770-773 Traffic 14, 821-823 Transport amphorae 14, 859-864 Wine I. B. Wine trade
15, 666—
668
2.2.0. MARKET, MARKET CONTROL On legal aspects of buying and selling cf. Subject Index 4. On measure, weight and coinage cf. Subject Index 25. Cf. also Lists C.I.-III. (Coinage systems) Advertising 15, 978-979 Aediles 1, 168-169 Agoranomoi 1, 356-357
Associations VI. Associations of the imperial period 2, 182 » VII. State and associations in late antiquity 2, 183 Calibration 2, 953-955 Documents I. B. Business documents 4, 588-589
3)
>
2.4. TECHNOLOGY
II. C. Business documents
4, 591-593
Kapelos 7, 18 Macellum 8, 88-90 Market inspection see Aediles Market 8, 374-378 Markets see Agora Metronomoi 8, 839-840 Sitophylakes 13, 514
Toll 14, 770-773 2.3. Finance, fiscal systems Abinnaeus Archive
1, 21
Adaeratio 1, 131 Adsiduus 1, 156-157 Aerarium 1, 238 Aerarius [1] 1, 239 Aes equestre 1, 252 Allelengyon 1, 519 Apodektai 1, 846 Apophora_ 1, 885-886 Arcarius 1,971 Argentarius [2] 1, 1060-1061
Ateleia
2, 223-224
Aurum coronarium
Capitatio-iugatio
2, 389-390
2, 1068-1069
Censuales
3, 109-110
Centesima
3, 114
Coactores 3, 491 Collatio lustralis 3, 529-531 Debt, Debt redemption 4, 138-
144 Decate 4, 145 Demioprata 4, 260-261
Eikoste 4, 856-858 Eisphora 4, 865-866 Epidosis 4, 1095 Epigrapheis 4, 1107 Exactor 5, 252-253 Fiscus Iudaicus 5, 438
Fiscus
5, 437-438
Hekatoste 6, 58 Hellenotamiai 6, 108 Idios Logos 6, 714-715 Incensus 6, 763 Indictio 6,778
Inland duties see Toll Iugatio see Capitatio-iugatio Loan II. Greece 7, 757-758 >» [II]. Rome 7, 758-760 Manceps 8, 218-220 Mastroi 8, 452 see LogariMegas Logariastes
astes Mensarius Merismos
8, 699 8,715
Monumentum Ephesenum _ see Toll Nautikon daneion 9, 554-555 Nautikos tokos see Nautikon daneion Occupatio C. Tax 10,9 Patrimonium D. Patrimonium CaeSaris 10, 616-617 Pentekoste 10, 731
Phoros 11, 182-185 Poristai 11, 637 Poroi 11, 644 Portorium.
11, 660
Praktor 11, 777-778 Private wealth 11, 881-887 Procurator [2] 11, 930 Public finances see Private wealth Publicani 12, 181-184 Quadragesima 12, 306 Schedia _ see Toll Societas 13, 581-582 Steuerpacht see Publicani Stratiotika, Stratiotikon 13, 873-
874 Superindictio. 13,952 Susceptor 13,970 Symmoria 14, 7-8 Syntaxis 14, 37 Synteleia 14, 37-38 Tabulae novae —see Debt, Debt redemption Tamieion 14, 127 Taxes 14, 174-188 Tele see Taxes III. Greece Telonai 14, 238-239
Toll 14, 770-773 Tractatores 14, 819 Trapezites 14, 864-865
Tribunus [1] Tribunus aerarius
14, 902
Tribute lists see Phoros Tributum see Taxes Vectigal see Taxes Vicesima 15, 391-392 2.4. Technology 2.4.1. INTRODUCTION
2.4.2. 2.4.3. 2.4.4. 2.4.5. 2.4.6.
AGRARIAN TECHNOLOGY ENERGY METALLURGY CRAFTS CONSTRUCTION TECHNOLOGY 2.4.7. TRANSPORT 2.4.8. MECHANICS 2.4.9. HYDRAULIC CONSTRUCTION 2.4.1. INTRODUCTION Crafts, Trade 3, 894-910 Drainage 4, 710-711
Energy
6, 945-947
Land transport 7, 200-209 Mechanics 8, 540-543 8, 699-700
Metallurgy 8, 776-783 Military technology and engineering
14, 869-870
>
I. C. Times and lengths of travel
>
I. F. Modes of transport
14, 870-871
14, 872
>» I.G. Accommodation
14, 872-
873
>
II. A. Commercial journeys
>
If. C. Official journeys
> >
II. D. Expeditions 14, 875-876 II. E. Educational journeys and
14, 873-874
14, 874-875
tourism
14, 876-877
> II. F. Holiday travels 14, 877 Travels III. Information for travellers 14, 878-879
2.4.2. AGRARIAN TECHNOLOGY cf. Subject Index 2.2.4.2. 2.4.3. ENERGY
Baths 2, 553-557 Charcoal
3, 191-192
Energy 4, 976-979
Fire A. Production 5, 429 >» C.Greek cult 5, 430-431 Fuels 5, 568-570 Hearth 6, 26-27 Heating
6, 27-29
Hypocaustum see Heating Wood F. Wood as a fuel 15,729 2.4.4. METALLURGY Brass 2, 750-752 Catinus [2] 3, 19
> [3] 3, 19-20 Copper 3, 769-772 Gold
Iron
5, 912-920
6, 938-943
Lead 7, 329-330
Metalla [1] see Mining Metallurgy 8, 776-783 Mining
9, 5-9 Silver 13, 471-476 Steel” 13,803 Tin 14, 714-716
Zinc
15, 933-934
4, 976-979
Irrigation
Mensor
Travels I. A. Travel areas and means of payment 14, 869 > J.B. The dangers of travelling
8, 902-906
Mining 9, 5-9 Navies 9, 562-566 Navigation 9, 566-571
Shipbuilding 13, 387-392 Technology 14, 202-209 Transport see Camel
2.4.5. CRAFTS Asphalt™ 2171 Cobbler 15, 1018-1020 Crafts, Trade 3, 894-910 Ergasterion 5, 26-28 Fuels C. Materials and production
5, 569-570 Glass 5, 860-864 Leather A. Overview 7, 337 > B. Conditions and reasons for leather processing 7, 337 > C. Tanning and dyeing 7, 337338
16
2.4. TECHNOLOGY
> »
D. Possible uses 7, 338 EE. Leather processing professi-
>
F. Official prerogatives
ons
7, 338
7, 338-
B32
Lime
7, 559-560
Pigmentarius.
11, 238
Pitch 11, 303-305 Pottery, production of 11, 725-
732 Radius [1] 12. Fo0 Saccarius TRPay toi} Spinning see Textiles, production
of Terebra see Tools Textiles, production of 14, 340346 Tools 14, 778-781 Trutina see Scales Trypanon see Tools Weaving see Textiles, production of Workshop, Shop see Ergasterion 2.4.6. CONSTRUCTION TECHNOLOGY
cf. Subject Index 6.4.4.
Keles see Navigation Keleystes see Navies Kerkyros see Navigation Kymbe see Navigation Land transport 7, 200-209 Manus ferrea see Navigation Maritime Transport see Navigation Mule 9, 262-265 Naufragium. 9, 541-542 Navies 9, 562-566 Navigation 9, 566-571 Pentekonter 10, 730-731
Plaustrum see Wagon, Chariot Radius [3] 12, 381 Raeda_
12, 592-593
Saccarius 12, 823 Shipbuilding 13, 387-392
13, 392-403 Ueataneeleg
tap anes, Traffic 14, 821-823 Transport see Camel Travels II. A. Commercial journeys
>
14, 873-874
II. C. Official journeys
14, 874-875 II. D. Expeditions 14, 875-876 II. E. Educational journeys and tourism
14, 876-877
Akateion istion see Rigging Akatos see Navigation Anchor 1, 668 Ancora see Anchor Antenna see Rigging Apostoleis 1, 890
> JI. F. Holiday travels 14, 877 Travels I. Prerequisites and logistics
Barrels (wooden) 2, 515 Bigae 2, 640-641 Camara [I] 2, ro13 Camel 2, 1018-1021
Viae publicae 15, 373-380 Wagon, Chariot 15, 544-546 Wheel see Land transport
3, 49-55
Donkey 4, 664-670 Hippegos 6, 341 Hodopoioi 6, 442 Horeia, Horia_ see Inland navigation Horse III. A. Oldest evidence of use of the horse (zoth—r7th cents.)
6, 502-503 »
III. B. Driving and riding in the 16th—12th cents. 6, 503 > Til. C. Breeding, keeping, horse medicine 6, 504 Horse I. Introduction 6, 500-501 > II. Range and domestication of wild horses 6, 501-502 Horsemanship 6, 511-513 Horseshoe see Land transport Inland navigation 6, 815-817 Itinerare II. Imperium Romanum 6, 1023-1026
Iugum [2] see Land transport Karchesion [rt] see Navigation
»
>
14, 869-873
III. Information for travellers 14, 878-879
Trireme
14, 937-939
2.4.8. MECHANICS Automata 2, 415-417 Catinus [3] 3, 19-20
Clocks
3, 457-464
Cog wheel Mechanics
15, 1020 8, 540-543
Pneumatics see Vacuum Scales 13, 46 Screw 13, 102-103 Spinning — see Textiles, production of Textiles, production of 14, 340-
346
Theatrical machines see Ekkyklema Trutina see Scales Water clock see Clocks Weaving see Textiles, production of Winch 15, 646-647 2.4.9. HYDRAULIC CONSTRUCTION Canalization 2, 1033-1037
5, 1135-1137
and Sewage 10, 180-181 C. 2. Harbour construction 10, 181
Water supply II. A. General Points 15, 580-581
>
»
II. B. Ground and spring water supply 15, 581 II. C. Water supply by conduits 15, 581-583 II. D. Water storage 15, 583-
>
II. E. Water distribution
>
Shipwrecks, exploration of
2.4.7. TRANSPORT Actarius 1, 118-119
Cavalry
Hellenism
» ‘C.Rome 5, 2537-1138 Irrigation 6, 945-947 Opus caementicium C. 1. Water
see Wagon, Chariot
Rigging
>
Canals 2, 1037-1043 Cattle 3, 25-31
Canals 2, 1037-1043 Castellum [I 3] 2, 1178-1179 Cistern 3, 366-367 Drainage 4, 710-711 Harbours, docks B. Greece and
584
15, 584-585
Water supply I. Ancient Orient
15, 575-580
Water-lifting devices 15, 568-574 see CT index volume, Entry Index 9.
2.5. Infrastructure On city and territorial infrastructure cf. Subject Index 6.3. 2.6. Weights and measures cf. Subject Index 25. (metrology and numismatics). Cf. also Lists C.I.-III. (Coinage systems)
3. Cultural history and everyday culture .I. INTRODUCTION . EDUCATION . PHASES OF LIFE . LEISURE AND FESTIVALS . COMMUNICATION am . NUTRITION AND TABLE CULer WY We ee TURE 3.7. SPORTS 3.8. BODY AND SEXUALITY; Hy-
GIENE 3.9. ENVIRONMENT
See CT index volume, Entry Index 3. 3.1. Introduction Aegean Koine
1, 174-187 Anthropology 1, 733-736 Anti-Semitism 1, 739-741 Barbarians 2, 500-504 Barbaroi_ see Barbarians Cannibalism 2, 1051-1052 Development see Progress, idea of Domestic animals 4, 627-628
Dwarf 4, 754-755
3.3. PHASES OF LIFE
17
Educational journeys see Travels Eroticism 5, 40-51 Golden Age see Origin myths Hanging gardens 5, 1125 Hellenism 6, 85-86 Hellenization 6, 97-108
Luxury 7, 905-907 Man, concept of
ogy
see Anthropol-
Migration 8, 866-868 Mobility 9, 104-107 Origin myths and theories on the origin of culture 10, 212-217 Panhellenes, Panhellenism.
10, 444-446 Period, era 10, 787-790 Philhellenism. 11, 19-21 Philosophical life. 11, 91-94 Private sphere and public sphere 11, 878-881
Progress, idea of 11, 943-947 Romanization 12, 663-667 Seasons 1. General points 13, 178 » 2. Literary treatments of the seasons
13, 178-180
Self-Romanization. 13, 225-226 Strangers see Barbarians Tourism see Travels II. E. Transport see Camel Travel literature. 14, 868-869 Travels 14, 869-879 Twins 15, 49-51 Universal language 15, 113-116 World ages (myth) see Period, Era
Zoo
15, 952-954
3.2. Education
Agoge 1, 347-348
Alexandrian Library see Library Artes liberales 2, 71-73 Banausia_ see Education Bibliophily see Library Bibliothecarius see Library Book 2, 721-727 Bookselling see Book Circles, literary 3, 350-351 Codex I. Cultural history 3, 497500 Curriculum see School Education / Culture 4, 825-835 Education 4, 815-825 Educational journeys see Travels Enkyklios paideia 4, 982-984 Grammaticus 5, 986-987 Grammatistes see Grammaticus Grapheion, Graphis, Graphium see Stylus Gymnasiarchy 5, 1050 Gymnasium II. The Hellenistic Gymnasium 5, 1054-1059 Lector 7, 345 Library II. Libraries 7, 503-511 Literary activity 7, 638-650 Maecenas [2] C. The Maecenas Circle 8, 110-111
Magister (ludi)
see School III.
>
Rome
Mouseion 9, 249-253 Music IV. E. Education, Ethos
9, 335-336
Paidagogos 10, 344-345 Paideia 10, 345-346 Paidonomoi 10, 346-347 Paidotribes 10, 347 Painters (female) 15, 717-718 Patronus 10, 625-627 Pent ston 17 Philosophical life.
11, 91-94 Philosophy, teaching of. 11, ro8— saa) Procurator [3] see Library (II.
>
346 Genos 5,760 Hymenaios 6, 613-615
Ianitor see Wedding customs and rituals Iuvenes (luventus)
Life expectancy
13, 105-106
> »
I.B. Scribal training 13, 106 I.C. School literature 13, 106107 Scribes II. Egypt 13, 108-111
>
III. Greece and Rome
13, 111-
114 Scriptor see Scribes Scriptorium. 13, 121-123 Second Sophistic 13, 185-191 Seven Sages 13, 351-352 Stylus 13, 894-895 Teaching see Education Women authors 15, 710-717 Writing exercises 15, 775-776 Writing materials
Writing tablets
15, 776-779
15, 785-786
3.3. Phases of life 3.3.1. INTRODUCTION 3.3.2. DEATH, MOURNING 3.3.1. INTRODUCTION
On company cf. Subject Index Zoe Age groups 1, 322
Age(s)
1, 331-335
Akme_
see Age(s)
Agelai
1, 323
Amphithaleis paides 1, 607-608 Birth 2, 663-670 Birthday 2, 670-673 Bulla see Ages Child, Childhood 3, 221-223 Circumcisio 3, 352-353 Crepundia 3,931 Deliciae 4, 206-207 Dextrarum iunctio see Wedding customs Epithalamion see Hymenaus Family I. Ancient Orient 5, 332 >
I Egypt
5, 332-333
6, 1149
7, 545-546
Marriage, Age at
8, 393-395 Marriage III. A. Marriage and Matrimonium 8, 388-389 > Ill. B. Age at Marriage and Wedding 8, 389 Marriage I. Ancient Orient
Bez)
Pubertas 12, 177-178 Public recital 12, 178-181 Rhetoric 12, 530-558 Schedographia. 13, 60 School 13, 75-83 Scribes I. A. Scribes and schools
III. Iran, Sassanid period 5> 333-334 IV. Greece and Rome 5, 334-
8, 385-386 >
II. Greece
8, 386-388
>» V.Christian 8, 392-393 Matrimi see Amphithaleis Paides Minores Minors Neoi 9, Nuptiae
9, 23-24 see Agoge 638-639 9,912
Old age 10, 83-85 Paides see Child, Childhood Patrimi see Amphithaleis paides Puer, puerl 12, 193-194 Pueri patrimi see Amphithaleis paides Ruler, birth of the 12, 763-766 Toga virilis
see Age(s)
Wedding customs and rituals 15, 605-612
Wedding see Marriage Youth 15, 853-856 3.3.2. DEATH, MOURNING Ancestor portraits 1, 665 Burial 2, 829-834 Canope 2, 1057
Charon’s fare 3, 205 Columbarium see Funerary architecture Conclamatio 3, 680-681 Consolatio as a literary genre 3, 704-706 Dead, cult of the 4, 110-118 Death 4, 127-135 Ekphora
4, 872 Epitaphios 4, 1152-1153 Funeral see Burial Funerary architecture
Funerary clubs
5, 587-606
see Associations
Funerary oration
see Epitaphios
[2] Funus imaginarium
5, 611
Funus publicum 5, 611-612 Kenotaphion 7, 40-41 Laudatio funebris 7, 297-299 Libitinarii 7, 496 Loculi
7,779
Mourning dress
9, 246-247
Mourning 9, 244-246 Necropoleis 9, 593-608
3.3. PHASES OF LIFE
18
Nenia A. Dirge 9, 634 Obol for the dead see Charon’s fare Perideipnon 10, 782-783 Pollinctor 11, 492 Prothesis 12, 68 Rogus 12, 660 Silicernium 13, 457-458 Threnos 14, 624 Ultima verba
15, 89-91
Undertakers
see Libitinarii
3.4. Leisure and festivals 3.4.1. RECREATION 3.4.2. GAMES 3.4.3. FESTIVALS, FEASTS
3.4.4. COMPETITIVE DISCIPLINES 3.4.5. PUBLIC PERFORMANCE 3.4.1. RECREATION
Animals 15,994 Apodyterion see Baths Automata 2, 415-417 Banquet II. Greece 2, 490-494 >» IIIl.Rome 2, 494-497 Bathing costume 2, 553 Bathing culture see Baths
Baths 2, 553-557
Caldarium see Baths Circles, literary 3, 350-351 Circus II. Games
3, 357-363
Cockfighting 3, 495-496 Dance II. A. Term and Sources
4, 72-74 >»
II. B. History
4, 74-75
Dance I. Egypt and Ancient Orient
4, 71-72
Dolls
4, 619
Enagonius
4, 961
Gardens [2] I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt
5, 692-693
Gardens A. Greece >»
B.Rome
5, 693-694
5, 694-697
Guide see Travels, travelling Gymnasium II. The Hellenistic Gymnasium 5, 1054-1059 Horse IV. C. Use by the military and in games 6, 507-509 Itinerare II. Imperium Romanum 6, 1023-1026
Ludi I. Preface and general remarks 7, 866-867
> IV. Final comment 7, 874-875 Musicians (female) IV. Professional music-making: technitides, hetairai, auletrides 9, 366-367 Nudity C. Everyday life and sport 9, 874 Orchestra see Theatre Periegetes, Perihegetes 10, 783
3.4.3.1. INTRODUCTION
Schola [1] 13, 64
Agon
> [3] 13,64 > [4] 13, 64-66
Spectacles III. Festivals and audience
»
13, 718-719
IV. Church and spectacle
13,720 Theatre 14, 378-399 Theorikon 14, 527 Thermae [1] III. Operation and administration 14, 544-549 Thermae F. The thermal baths of Late Antiquity 14, 544 Travels 14, 869-879 Vivarium see Zoo Zoo II. Classical Antiquity 153953954
3.4.2. GAMES Abacus 1, —-1 Alea [1] see Dice (game) Alveus [2] see Board games
Askoliasmos
2, 163
Astragalos [2]
Ball games
2, 192-193
2, 479-480
Board games 2, 690-693 Calculi see Abacus Children’s Games 3, 225-226 Crepundia 3,931
Dice (game)
4, 372-373
Dolls 4, 619 Duodecim scripta 4, 738-739 Ephedrismos 4, 1022 Epostrakismos 4, 1168 Follis [2] see Ball games Fritillus 5, 560 Games of dexterity 5, 686-687 Games 5, 682-686 Guessing games 5, 1038-1039 Kottabos
7, roo-1or
Kyndalismos terity
see Games of dex-
Latrunculorum ludus
7, 296
Loculi 7,779 Micare see Guessing games Neurospasta see Children’s Games Ostrakinda to, 282-287 Rhombos 12, 578 Rhombus [2] see Top
Running and catching games
12, 783-784 Streptinda see Games of dexterity Tabula lusoria see Board games Tabula 14, 90-91 Top 14,781
Toys see Children’s Games Trigon 14, 920-921 Tropa
11, 889-890
Puppet theatre 12, 220-222 Recreation 12, 420-426
1, 348-349
Aiora 1, 406 Aisymnetes 1, 407-408
Amphitheatre 1, 608-613 Applause 1, 900-901 Architecture B. JII.6. Architecture for sport, leisure time and festivities
I, 1020-1021
Athletes 2, 281-284 Balbis 2, 472 Betting 2, 619-620
Brabeion see Agonothetes Circus I. D. Italy and the provinces
35 356-357 Circus II. Games 3, 357-363 Colosseum C. Function 3, 581 Competitions, artistic II. B. Rome 4, 1185-1188
Competitions, artistic I. Stage competitions
4,
1178-1182
Competitions, artistic 1. Musical and rhetorical competitions at festive events
Feriae
4,
1182-1183
5, 385-386
Feriale Duranum 5, 390-391 Feriale 5, 388-390 Festivals; Feasts 5, 396-406 Gramme
5, 987
Hellanodikai Keroma
6, 80-81
7, 44
Kriobolion [2] 7, 105 Ludi scaenici see Ludi II. C. Ludi 7, 866-875 Meta [2] B. Meta in the Roman circus
8,774
Periodos, Periodonikes
10, 790-
791 Plausus_ see Applause Praefectus [9] Praefectus feriarum Latinarum causa Prohedria 11, 948
11,755
Rhabdophoroi 12, 517 Seviri see Ludi III. H. Spectacles 13, 714-720 Spectacles I. A. Greece 13, 714716
Sports festivals 13, 757-765 Symbolon — see Tokens Tessera 14, 313-314 Theatre tickets/tokens see Tokens Theorikon 14, 527 Trieteris [2]
Tripod
14, 918
14, 932-934
Triumph, Triumphal procession
14, 945-948 Victor statues
15, 398-399
14, 962-963
Turbo [1]
see Top
3.4.3.2. SPECIFIC FESTIVALS Actia
Private sphere and public sphere 11, 878-881 Prizes (games).
15, 985-987
Agonothetes
3.4.3. FESTIVALS, FEASTS 3.4.3.1. INTRODUCTION
3.4.3.2. SPECIFIC FESTIVALS
1,120
Agrionia 1, 390-391 Aiora 1, 406 Akitu Festival 1, 412 Anthesteria 1, 724-725
19
3.4. LEISURE AND
Apatouria
1, 818-819
Augustalia 2, 354 Bacchanal(ia) 2, 445-446 Balletys see Eleusinia Birthday A. 2. Public birthday celebrations 2, 671 > B. 2. Public birthday celebrations 2, 672 Bouphonia 2, 743-744 Brumalia 2, 791-792
Callynteria see Plynteria Capitolea 2, 1070-1071 Capratinae (Nonae)
Caprotina
2, 1078
see Capratinae
(Nonae) Carnea, Carneus, Carnus 2,
L116-1118
Carnus [1]
see Carnea Choes_ see Anthesteria Choiak 3, 240 Chytroi see Anthesteria Compitalia 3, 675-677 Consualia 3,740 Decennalia 4, 148-149
Sementivae Feriae 13, 234-235 Septimontium 13, 296
Dionysia
4, 470 Dipolieia 4, 529 Elaphebolos 4, 888 Eleusinia 4, 913 Equus October 5, 6-7 Feriae Latinae 5, 387-388 Feriae 5, 385-386 Floralia 5, 467 Fordicidia 5, 494-495 Fornacalia 5, 498 Galaxia 5, 652 Iovisepulum 6, 925 Isthmia 6, 988-989 Iuvenalia 6, 1146 Kronia_ see Kronos Kronos C. Kronia 7, 106-108 Kyanopsia_ see Pyanopsia Lampadedromia 7, 186-187 Lectisternium 7, 344-345 Lenaea 7, 385-386 Lucaria 7, 833 Lupercalia 7, 884-885 Matralia 8, 480-481 Matronalia 8, 484-485 Meditrinalia 8, 587 Megalesia see Kybele Mysteria
9, 429-433
Natalis templi 9, 520 Navigium Isidis see Ploiaphesia Nemea [3] 9, 627-628
New Year’s celebration
9, 694-
698
Nonae Capratinae
see Capratinae
(Nonae)
Nonalia sacra. 9, 806 Novendiale sacrum 9, 855
Olympia IV. Agons 10, 107-108 Olympic champions 10, 110-111 Oschophoria
Parentalia. 10, 528-529 Parilia. ro, 531-532 Pesah 10, 859-860 Ploeaphesia 11, 393-394 Plynteria 11, 430-431 Poplifugia. 11, 612-613 Posideia see Poseidon Procharisteria 11, 909 Prometheia 12, 5-6 Ptolemaia 12, 171-172 Pyanopsia 12, 236-237 Pythia [2] 12, 293-294 Pythian Games see Pythia [2] Pythionikai 12, 295 Quinquatrus 12, 347-348 Regifugium 12, 436-437 Rhomaea 12, 577 Robigalia 12, 656-657 Rosalia 12, 734-735 Saturnalia. 13, 25-27 Sebasteia 13, 182 Secular games see Ludi (K.)
10, 273-274
Palilia see Pales Panathenaea 10, 427-429
Severia 13, 357 Tarentini ludi see Ludi Taurokathapsia 14, 169 Terminalia see Terminus
Thallophoria 14, 363 Thargelia 14, 367 Theoxenia see Xenia Thesmophoria 14, 563-565 Troiae lusus 14, 961 Tubilustrium 14, 992 Vinalia 15, 426 Vitulatio 15, 485 Volcanalia see Volcanus
Festivals; Feasts III.
FESTIVALS
11. Agons
55 404
Fist-fighting 5, 443-445
Korykos 7, 97-98 Kriobolion [2] 7, 105 Lampadedromia 7, 186-187 Ludi Il. E. Agones 7, 869 » III. A. Ludi Apollinares 7, 870 > JI. F. Ludi Plebei 7, 872 Nudity B. Cult 9, 873-874 > C. Everyday life and sport
9, 874
Pankration 10, 447-448 Pentathlon 10, 727-728 Plaga [1] 11, 314 Quadriga 12, 314-315 Running (competitions) 12, 782783 Severia 35 4/5 7, Spectacles I. Principal types
13, 714-717
Sports festivals 13, 757-765 Sports I. Introduction 13,746 > II. Question of origin 13, 746-
747 Ill. Egypt 13, 747-748 IV. Ancient Orient 13,749 VI. Greece 13, 750-752 HZ \A, VII. Etruscans 13, 752-753 >» VIII.Rome 13, 753-755
Stadion [2] 13, 775-777 Taraxippus Triga
14, 142
14,919
Troiae lusus 14, 961 Venatio 15, 269 Wagon, Chariot I. Ancient Orient
and Egypt 15, 544-545
Wrestling
15, 764-765
3.4.4. COMPETITIVE DISCIPLINES
On individual sports cf. Subject Index 3.7. Age groups 1, 322 Agitator I, 342-343 Agonothetes 1, 348-349 Akoniti 1, 415 Apobates 1, 842-843 Arena see Amphitheatre Athlothetes see Agonothetes Auriga see Agitator Bigae 2, 640-641 Brabeion see Agonothetes Circus II. Games 3, 357-363 Competitions, artistic [I]. B. Rome 4,
1185-1188
Competitions, artistic I. Stage competitions 4, 1178-1182 Competitions, artistic 1. Musical
and rhetorical competitions at festive events 4, 1182-1183 Diaulos 4, 368-369 Discus throwing 4, 542-543 Dolichos 4, 617 Factiones II. Imperial period
5, 315-317 Fencing
see Sports
3.4.5. PUBLIC PERFORMANCE On Greek drama and lyric cf. Subject Index 11.5.1.4. On Latin drama and lyric cf. Subject Index 11.6.1.2. and 11.6.1.4. On performance cf. Subject Index 15.2. Acclamatio 1, 64-65 Acrobats
see Entertainers
Agonothetes Aloral
1, 348-349
I, 407
Ambubaiae 1, 574 Applause 1, 900-901 Archimimus 1, 998 Architecture B. III.6. Architecture
for sport, leisure time and festivities
I, 1020-1021
Aulaeum see Theatre Bestiarius see Munera Betting B. Rome 2, 619-620 Bronteion 2,786 Calx see Circus Carceres see Circus Cavea 3, 56 Choragium see Theatre Choragos see Choregos Choregia 3, 243-244
3.4. LEISURE
AND
FESTIVALS
Choregos 3, 244 Chorus A. Concept 3, 247 > B. Manifestations, genres 3, 247-248 Circus I. B. Origin 3, 353-354 > I. C. The Circus Maximus and other circus buildings in Rome 35 394-356 > I. D. Italy and the provinces
35 396-357 Circus Il. Games 3, 357-363 Competitions, artistic I. Stage competitions
4,
1178-1182
Deuteragonistes 4, 324-325 Diazoma see Theatre Doctor Echeia
4, 586 4, 781-782
Ekkyklema
4, 871
Entertainers
4, 997-1000
Gladiator 5, 855-857 Gladiatorius ludus_ see Gladiator Histrio
6, 432-434
Hypokrites 6, 638-641 Hyposkenion see Theatre Jesters
see Entertainers
Jugglers see Entertainers Katablemata see Theatre Kordax 7,96 Kybisteter see Entertainers Ludi scaenici see Ludi II. C. Ludi II. C. Ludi Scaenici 7, 868— 869
»
II. F. Gladiatorial games
7, 870 Ill. B. Ludi Ceriales 7, 871 Ill. C. Ludi Florales 7, 871 Ill. D. Ludi Megalenses 7, 871-
20
Plausus see Applause Praestigiator see Entertainers Protagonistes 12, 62
Puppet theatre 12, 220-222 Pyrrhiche 12, 270-272 Retiarius
12, 511
Rhapsodes 12, 521-523 Rudiarius. 12, 749-750 Rudis [2] 12,750 Scenography 13, 53-54 Scurra_ see Entertainers Skene, scaena 13, 518-519 Skenikoi agones see Competitions, artistic
Spectacles 13, 714-720 Spectacles I. A. Greece 13, 714716
Synhedrion III. Architecture 14, 28
Talarius ludus
14, 119
Thaumatopoios, Thaumatourgos see Entertainers Theatre 14, 378-399 Theatrical machines see Ekkyklema Thraex
see Munus, Munera III E.
Tokens 14, 755-756 Tragedy I. C. Performances 14, 826
Tritagonistes
3.5. Communication 3.5.1. INTRODUCTION
Banquet
see Presents
2, 488-497
Books, destruction of ship
see Censor-
Communications
games 9, 304-312 Murmillo 9, 315 Musicians (female) IV. Professional music-making: technitides, hetairai, auletrides 9, 366-367 » V. Ancient music theory as gender-specific discourse; iconog-
Gift exchange _ see Presents, gifts Hospitality Il. Greece and Rome
Neurobates
see Entertainers
Neurospasta
see Children’s
Games Performer see Histrio Persona [1] see Masks
Phlyakes
11, 135-136
Ill. C. Erotic gestures
>
TIL. D. Gestures of tenderness
5, 833
»
TIL. E. Gestures of supplication
>
Ill. F. Dexiosis/Dextrarum iunc-
> »
Ill. G. Reflecting, pondering, considering 5, 835 Ill. H. Finger gestures 5, 835-
»
III. I. Apotropaic gestures
>
Ill. J. Other gestures
5, 833
5, 833-834
tio 5, 834-835
836
5, 836
5, 836-
839
>»
Munus, Munera III. Gladiatorial
VI. Women and music in the Roman Empire 9, 368-369 Naumachia 9, 544-545
5, 832
»
3.5.1. INTRODUCTION Advertising 15, 978-979
Censorship 3, 106-109 Circles, literary 3, 350-351 Communication 3, 655-663
>
3, 661-663
Facial expression 5, 314-315 Gestures III. A. Introduction
Multilingualism II. A. General 9, 270-271 > II. B. Contact phenomena 9, 271-272 Multilingualism I. Concept
Manducus 8, 230 Masks II. Greece and Rome 8, 431-434 Mechane 8, 539
raphy 9, 367-368
Applause 1, 900-901 Communication E. Rhetoric
3.5.2. GESTURES AND LANGUAGE 3.5.3. WRITTEN COMMUNICATION 3.5.4. COMMUNICATIONS
Apophoreta
7, 866-867
Maeson 8, 123-124 Magicians — see Entertainers
3.5.2. GESTURES AND LANGUAGE Advertising 15, 978-979 Apotropaic gestures see Gestures
Gestus 5, 839-841 Greeting 5, 1022-1024 Kiss. 7, 54-63 LekGr “75 FA9
14, 939
872
> Ill. G. Ludi Romani 7, 872 Ludi I. Preface and general remarks
Sigillaria see Presents I]. Travels 14, 869-879 Universal language 15, 113-116
ITIl. Ancient Near East
9, 274-
276
Plausus_
see Applause
Salutatio 12, 909-910 Sermon, Homily 13, 318-321 Sign language see Gestures Silence 13, 454-456
Universal language
15,
113-116
3, 663-670
6, 529-532
Hospitium see Hospitality Humour see Joke Itinerare II. Imperium Romanum
3.5.3. WRITTEN COMMUNICA-
TION On writing materials and media cf. 13.2.-4. On scripts and script styles cf. 13.6. Cf. also Lists D.I.II. Alexandrian Library
6, 1023-1026
Jokes 6, 1200-1202 Literacy/Orality 7, 634-638 Literary activity 7, 638-650 Maecenas [2] C. The Maecenas Circle 8, 110-111 Multilingualism 9, 269-276 Peregrinatio ad loca sancta
10, 749-750 Presents 11, 804-809 Romanization 12, 663-667
Self-Romanization.
9, 269-270
13, 225-226
1, 499 Alphabet 1, 529-541 Anagnosterion see Scribe Analogeion see Scribe Authors II. Classical antiquity
2, 399-403
Bibliophily see Library Bibliothecarius see Library Book 2, 721-727 Books, destruction of see Censorship Bookselling see Book
21
3.6. NUTRITION
Censorship 3, 106-109 Circles, literary 3, 350-351 Code see Cryptography Collegium [2] C. poetarum. 5}) S)o)5)
Communication C. 2. Scribe
3, 658-659 > >
C.3. Inscriptions 3, 659 C. 4. Written recording of laws
661
3, 663-670
Copyright 3, 778-779 Cryptography 3, 967-969
Epistle A. Term, Terminology, Origins 4, 1138 >» B. Material, Conveyance
4, 1138
C. D. E. ve Vir Uy F.
Formulae 4, 1138-1139 Private Letters 4, 1139 Official Letters 4, 1139 Letter Writers and Theory of Letter Writing 4, 1139-1141 Geruli see Communications Graffiti 5, 960-964 Gymnasium II. A. General
§, 1054-1055 Rector a7 ns Library II. Libraries
7, 503-511 Literacy/Orality 7, 634-638 Literary activity 7, 638-650 Literature III. B. Mediality
7, 679-681 >»
V.B. Areas of communication and functions 7, 700-702 Maecenas [2] C. The Maecenas Circle 8, r10-111
Manuale 8, 263 Manuscripts C. 2. Manuscripts in ancient libraries 8, 271 Manuscripts a) The transition from
ancient to medieval book production 8, 272 Multilingualism II. A. General 9, 270-271 > II. B. Contact phenomena
9, 271-272
Multilingualism I. Concept 9, 269-270 Newspaper. 9, 698-699 Pamphlet see Communications Patronus E. Poet’s patronage see Circles, literary Publication 12, 185-186 Scribes 13, 105-114 Scriptor see Scribes Scriptorium. 13, 121-123 Skytale 13, 523 Travels III. Information for travellers 14, 878-879
Writing
Cryptography
3, 967-969
Cursus publicus 3, 1022-1023 Epistle B. Material, Conveyance 4, 1138 Espionage 5, 67-68 Informers see Secret police Itinerare II. Imperium Romanum 6, 1023-1026
35 659-660
Communication D. Inscriptions and monuments as aids for education and propaganda 3, 660Communications
3.5.4. COMMUNICATIONS Communications 3, 663-670
15, 765-775
Postal services. 11, 689-691 Signals 13, 449-450 Skytale 13, 523 Tabellarius 14,77 Telegraphy 14, 223-224 3.6. Nutrition and table culture 3.6.1. INTRODUCTION 3.6.2. MEALS AND TABLE CULTURE 3.6.3. FOOD AND DRINK
On cultivation and husbandry cf. DeanAcAs 3.6.1. INTRODUCTION Alcohol, consumption of 15, 988-
991 Bakeries 2, 467-469 Caupona see Inn Comparatio publica 3, 671-672 Cura annonae
3, 1006-1008
Dietetics 4, 402-404 Ekecheiria 4, 868 Grain laws 5, 974-976
Grain
5, 965-974
Horticulture IL. B. Horticulture and nutrition 6, 517-518 Hunger see Malnutrition Inn 6, 817-821 Malnutrition, Famine Nutrition 9, 914-921
8, 204-209
Pomiculture II. Classical Antiquity IL, 543-544 Praefectus [4] Praefectus annonae
LL, 753 Rations 12, 405-406 Rome IL. C. Food supply. 12, 700-702 Suarii 13, 898 Symposium literature 14, 10-13 Table culture 14, 81-87 Vegetarianism 15, 250-252 3.6.2. MEALS AND TABLE CULTURE Aeisitoi 1, 199
AND
TABLE CULTURE
Cookery books 3, 761-763 Cooking, art of see Cookery books
Crockery 3, 951-953 Culina 3, 978-979 Cutlery
3, 1030-1032
Deipnon
4, 192-193
Dorion see Cookery books Filter 5, 426 Food offerings 15, 1032-1033 Gastronomical poetry 5, 702-703 Gastronomy 5, 703-705 Gustatio see Cena Ientaculum see Meals Karchesion [2] 7, 23 Kline 7, 70-71 Knives 7, 72-73 LENO Gye, GIGH Mantellum 8, 253-254 Mappa _ see Mantellum Meals 8, 525-527 Mensa see Table Nimbus. [1] 9, 763 Perideipnon 10, 782-783 Platennia aac Praegustator 11,763 Prandium see Meals Rudis [1] 12,750 Salinum 12, 888
Sigma
13, 448-449
Spoons. 13,745 Symposion see Banquet Syssition see Banquet
Table manners see Banquet Table utensils 14, 87-89 Table 14, 80-81 Trapezophoron see Table utensils Triclinium 14, 915-916 3.6.3. FOOD AND DRINK
Beer
2, 574-575
Beverages 2, 620-621 Butter 2,840 Caraway I. Ancient Orient
2, 1090 Cheese 3, 208-209 Delicacies 4, 205-206 Dishes, Meals 4, 554-556
Egg 4, 839-840 Fat 6, 1227 Fish dishes (and seafood)
5, 438-
439
Flour 5, 472-473 Food 5, 492-493 Fruit 5, 566-567 Garum see Fish dishes
Honey
6, 474-475
Banquet 2, 488-497 Cena 3,000
Ichthys/Fish [1] 6, 704-705 Karyke see Dishes, Meals
Choes pitchers [CP] 3, 240 Chous [1] 3, 252 Cochlear(e) [2] see Cutlery Comissatio 3, 620 Convivium see Banquet Cook 3, 760-761
Mead 8, 525 Meat dishes 8, 537-538 Milk 8, 907-908 Mulsum see Mead Muria 9, 314-315
Liquamen
7, 629
3.6. NUTRITION
AND
TABLE
Must 9,373
Baptisterium A. Terminology
Oils for cooking I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 10, 75-76 Opson 10, 173 Pastries 10, 592-593 Pelanos
10, 692
Polenta 11, 462 Poultry see Meat dishes Puls see Polenta Saccharon 12, 823 Salgama 12, 885 Salsamenta see Muria Salt Il. Graeco-Roman antiquity
12, 903-905
Seafood _ see Fish dishes (and seafood) Soup
13, 679
Spices 13, 736-737 Sugar
22
CULTURE
2,497 > B. Bathing pool 2, 497-498 Barber 2, 505-506 Beard 2, 566-568 Brothels 2, 790-791 Caelibatus 2, 892 Cosmetics 3, 862-863 Deliciae 4, 206-207 Disability 4, 534-536 Eroticism 5, 40-51 Eunuchs 5, 172-174 Facial expression 5, 314-315 Games II. C. Erotic games 5, 684 Gender roles I]. Medicine 5, 744746 Gynaecology A. Specialized field in the Hippocratic School
see Saccharon
Vegetables
5, 1062-1064
15, 249-250
Hair-net see Phenake Hairstyle 5, 1099-1104 Hedone see Pleasure
Vinegar 15, 436 Wine 15, 657-670
Hetaerae
Hygiene, personal
Akontion see Javelin throwing Ball games 2, 479-480 Bigae 2, 640-641 Bow-shooting 2, 746-747 Caestus see Fist-fighting Diaulos 4, 368-369 Discus throwing 4, 542-543 Dolichos 4, 617 Ephippion see Riding Fencing see Sports
Intoxicating substances 880
Fist-fighting 5, 443-445 Gymnastics see Sports Harpaston 5, 1148-1149 Hunting I. Ancient Orient
6, 576-
Javelin-throwing 6, 1165-1166 Korykos 7, 97-98 Long jump
7, 186-187
7, 811
Marathon running 8, 280-281 Nudity B. Cult 9, 873-874 Pankration 10, 447-448 Pentathlon ro, 727-728 Plaga nl Paras Riding 12, 591-592 Rowing 12, 742-743 Running (competitions)
12, 782—-
783
Sports 13, 746-755 Stadion [2] 13, 775-777 Swimming 13, 978 Troiae lusus 14, 961
Wrestling
6, 604-605
see Incestus
Kekryphalos
15, 764-765
3.8. Body and sexuality; Hygiene On sports cf. Subject Index 3.7. On medicine cf. Subject Index 23. On clothing cf. Subject Index 7.8. On accessories cf. Subject Index 7.7. On jewellery cf. Subject Index 7.9. Abortion 1, 27-29
Swaddling Clothes 13, 972 Thermae [1] II]. Operation and administration 14, §44-549 Unction see Cosmetics Unguentum see Cosmetics
Vulva
15, 539-541 15, 628-629
Wet-nurses
Wig
15, 633
Woman
15, 693-710 cf. Subject Index 3.7.
3.9, Environment Climate, Environmental
6, 877-
7, 39
Kiss II. A. Terminology
7, 55 7, 55-57
change
35452454 Desert 4, 313-314 Environment, Environmental be-
haviour
4, 1002-1008
5, 495-496
Landscape (Scenery) 7, 197-198 Nature, sensitivity for see Environment Noise
Refuse River.
9, 788-790
12, 434-435 12, 615
Kiss I.Typology 7, 54-55
4. Law 4.1. INTRODUCTION 4.2. NEAR East AND EGYPT
Latrines
4.3. GREECE 4.4. ROME 4.5. OTHER LEGAL SYSTEMS
>
JI. B. Formal kiss
Kiss 2. In erotic and sexual relationships 7, 58-59 7,295
Lenocinium
7, 387
Lomentum [1] 7, 806 Menstruation 8, 700-702
ae
Lampadedromia
Incest
13, 953-
954
Forest
6, 290-292
3.7. Sports Acrobats 1, 112
Strigilis [1] 13, 883 Superstitio C. Women
Midwife 8, 865-866 Novacula see Razor
Nudity
9, 873-877
Olisbos 10, 89 Paederasty 10, 331-332 Penis
10,724
See CT index volume, Entry Index 4. 4.1. Introduction Aliens, the position of 1, 506-508 Blood feud
2, 689-690
Citizenship 3, 369-370 Civillaw 3, 371-378
Perfume. 10, 753-754 Phales see Phallos Phallus ro, 912-913 Phenake see Whig
Classicism II. Legal history
Pleasure
Constitution 3, 726-729 Contracts 3, 751-754
11, 366-369
Pornography
11, 637-644
Prostitution 12, 57-61 Pubertas 12, 177-178 Pumice 12, 198 Purpurissum 12, 233 Rape I. Concept 12, 393
>
II. Elements of the crime
>
III. Judgments and legal controls 12, 393-394
12, 393 Razor 12, 413 Sex [2] Sex (medical aspects) 13, 362-363
Sexuality 13, 374-377 Soap 13,559 Solium [2] 13, 618 Sponge II. Hygiene and medicine 13, 743-744
3, 383-384
Codification tion of
see Law, codifica-
Criminal procedure
4,
r195-
1196
Damage, Indemnity 4, 48-49 Documents 4, 588-603
Ecclesiastical/Religious law 4, 778-779 Emergency, state of 4, 939-940 Government, theories of forms of see Aristokratia Human rights 6, 563-565 International law 6, 854-857 International treaties 6, 857-862 Iuris prudentia 6, 1121-1123 Tus 6, 1124-1134 Judge see Dikastes Justice/Right 6, 1224-1226 Killing, crimes involving 7, 46-47
4.3. GREECE
23
Law [1] 7, 310-311 Law [2] 7, 311-320
Death penalty I. Ancient Orient
Law, codification of 7, 320-322 Lawcourt 7, 323
Debt, Debt redemption I. Ancient
Legacy 7, 349
Legal koine 7, 349-350 Legislation 7, 372 Lex, leges 7, 460-466 Liturgy I. Political 7, 731-735 Maritime Law _ see Fenus nauti-
cum Mixed constitution 9, 91-92 Monarchia 9, 135-136 Municipal law 9, 290-293 Natural Law see Aequitas Nomos. [1] Nomos, nomoi 9, 798-801
Oath 9, 937-938
Pledge, law of 11, 373-375 Praefectus praetorio A. Principate
4, 136-137
Orient 4, 138-139 Demotic law 4, 299-300 Divorce 4, 581-582 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 > II. Ancient Orient 4, 589-593
4, 701-702
Ecclesiastical/Religious law I. Old Testament 4, 778-779 Egyptian law 4, 854-855 Hittite law 6, 436-439 Homicide I. General 6, 463-464 Inscriptions I. Ancient Orient 6, 823-825
International law I. Overview
>» IV. Jewish 13, 911 Sumerian law see Cuneiform, legal texts in Surety A. Ancient Near East
13, 957-958
Synhedrion II. Jewish 14, 27 Talion 14, 121-122 Talmudic law, Talmud schools see Judaic law Torah see Judaic law Torture A. Historical foundations
14, 794
15, 636-
Wages I. Ancient Near East
15, 541-542
6, 854-855
Wills and testaments [2] I. General
>
638 Woman III. Judaism
Ill. Hittites
6, 859
Islam IL. C. Religion and law 6, 973-974 Judaiclaw 6, 1211-1214 Justice at the gate
15, 1037-1038
Killing, crimes involving I. Ancient Orient 7, 46-47 Law [2] 7, 311-320 Law, codification of I. Ancient Ori-
ent
7, 320-321
7, 323 Leasehold I. Mesopotamia, Egypt
7, 335-336
Points
>
15, 636-637
[2] II. Middle East
15, 637— 15, 708-709
4.3. Greece 4.3.1. INTRODUCTION 4.3.2. SOURCES OF GREEK LAW
4.3.3. STATE LAW/PUBLIC LAW TRIAL CRIMINAL LAW PERSON AND FAMILY
4.3.4. 4.3.5. 4.3.6. 4.3.7. 4.3.8. 4.3.9.
PROPERTY LAW
LAW OF SUCCESSION PAPYRUS LAW
Manumission A. Early legal sys-
4.2. Near East and Egypt Cf. Lists A.I.-II. (law codes, legal
norms and edicts: Ancient Near East/Egypt) Aliens, the position of II. Egypt and Mesopotamia 1, 506 Aliens, the position of V. Judaism 1, 508
Archive B. B.1 Egypt and the Middle East 1, 1024-1025 Assyrian law see Cuneiform legal texts CivillawI. Ancient Orient 3, 371IJ. PharaonicEgypt
II. Regulations governing peace
Lawcourt
644
>
Sanhedrin see Synhedrion Succession, laws of I. Ancient Near East see Cuneiform, legal texts
International treaties I. General 6, 857 > Il. Ancient Orient 6, 857-859
Vulgar law 15, 534-535 War, law of 15, 566 Wills and testaments [2]
12, 654-
in
> IV. Jewish law 4, 595 Dowry I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
>
II. Ancient Near East
655
6, 854 11, 771-773 11, 875
Procedural law 11, 897-905 Punishment, Criminal Law 12, 214-217 Purchase 12, 222-225 Robbery 12, 654-656 Securities see Surety Succession, laws of 13, 907-911 Talion 14, 121-122 Torture 14, 794-796 Treaties, upholding of 14, 880 Verdict 15, 294-295 Volksrecht 15, 499-503
373
12, 654 >
> Il. Egypt 4, 593-595
Il, 757-758 Praetor I. Rome Prison sentence.
Responsa (rabbinical) 12, 509 Robbery I. General points
3, 374-376
> III. Judaiclaw 3, 376-377 Codex Hermopolis 3, 502 Contracts I. General points 3, 751 > JI. Ancient Orient, region with cuneiform script 3, 751-752 > III. Pharaonic Egypt 3,752 > IV. Judaism 3, 752-753 Cuneiform, legal texts in 3, 9971000 Damage, Indemnity 4, 48-49
tems 8, 263-264 Marriage I. Ancient Orient
8, 385-386 Military tenure 8,906 Municipal law I. Ancient Orient 9, 290-291 Oath I. Ancient Orient 9, 937 Pledge, law of I. Ancient Orient Il, 373-374 Procedural law I. Ancient Orient
II, 897-899 >
>
II. Pharaonic Egypt 11, 899gor III. Judaiclaw 11, 901-902
Punishment, Criminal Law I. Ancient Near East 12, 214-215 >» Il. Egypt 12, 215-216 Purchase I. Introduction 12, 222 >
II. Ancient Near East
12, 222-
224 Rabbi 12, 372-374 Rabbinical literature I. Mishnah
4.3.1. INTRODUCTION Agraphoi nomoi 1, 358-359 Aliens, the position of III. Greece I, 506-507
Apella, Apellai 1, 820 Arbitration 1, 963-964 Asylia 2,215 Asylon 2, 215-217 Athenian law 2, 245-248 Axones 2, 432 Blood feud A. Greek law 2, 689 Building law 2, 808-809 Citizenship 3, 369-370 Civil law IV. Classical antiquity
35 377-378
Coinage laws 3, 515-516 Coins, control of 3, 523-524 Communication C. 4. Written recording of laws 3, 659-660 Constitution II. Concept and typol-
Ogy
12, 374-375
Renting and hiring II. Ancient Orient and Egypt 15, 1041
3, 726-727
> III. Development of the typology
35 727-729 Contracts I. General points
>
V. Classical Antiquity 754
3,751 3, 753-
24
4.3. GREECE Dialysis [1] 4, 356 Dike [2] 4, 416-417 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 > V. Classical Greece and Hellen-
ism 4, 596-599
Dokimasia 4, 614-615 Ecclesiastical/Religious law IL. Graeco-Roman Antiquity
4,779
Emergency, state of 4, 939-940 Emporikoi nomoi 4, 956 Exegetai 5, 264-265 Ges anadasmos_
5, 822-824
Nomothesia _ see Legislation Nomothetai 9, 804-805 Ostrakismos 10, 287-288 Parabyston 10, 500 Paranomon graphe 10, 518-519 Petalismos 10, 863 Pinax [3] 11, 263-264 > [4] 11,264
tion 5, 944-945 Government, theories of forms of
see Aristokratia 5,991 Human rights A. Introduction Graphe
6, 563-564
» C. National 6, 564-565 > D. International 6, 565 >» E. Reception 6, 565 Hypeuthynos 6, 636 International law I. Overview 6, 854 > II. Regulations governing peace
6, 854-855
>
Ill. Law of war 6, 855-856 IV. Diplomatic exchanges and laws governing foreigners
quity 11, 374-375
Probole 11, 894 Procedural law IV. A. Concept
Lawcourt
7, 323
Legal koine 7, 349-350 Legal pluralism 7, 350-351 Legislation 7, 372 Logographos 7, 792 Malnutrition, Famine III. Laws and institutions securing the food supply 8, 206-207 Manumission B. Greece 8, 264 Maritime Law — see Fenus nauticum Mint decree (Athens) see Coinage laws Mixed constitution 9, 91-92 Mnemones
9, 95-96
Monarchia 9, 135-136 Municipal law II. Classical anti-
quity 9, 291-293
Nautodikai
Communication C. 4. Written re-
cording of laws 3, 659-660 Constitution II. Concept and typolOgy 3, 726-727 > III. Development of the typology
3, 727-729 11,903
Suicide 13, 926-927 Surety B. Greece 13,958 Synallagma 14, 16 Syngraphai 14, 25 Syngraphe 14, 25-26 Synodos I. Greek public law
14, 30 Synomosia 14, 35 Syntheke 14, 38 Talion 14, 1214-122 Tettarakonta 14, 328 Thesmos see Law [1]
15, 441
see Martyria
4.3.2. SOURCES OF GREEK LAW Agraphoi nomoi 1, 358-359 Axones 2, 432 Documents I. General
4, 588-589
V. Classical Greece and Hellen-
ism 4, 596-599
Gortyn III. The great law inscrip-
International treaties IV. Greece 6, 859-861
Legislation
6,
1224-1226
7, 372
Manumission B. Greece
Mint decree (Athens)
8, 264
see Coinage
laws Mixed constitution
9, 91-92
Monarchia 9, 135-136 Municipal law II. Classical anti-
quity
9, 291-293
Synodos I. Greek public law 14, 30 War, law of 15, 566 Wells E. Laws relating to wells 15, 626
5, 944-945
Horoi 6, 496-499 Inscriptions II. E. Content 6, 827 > II. F. Dating 6, 827-828
II. G. History of Greek epigra-
phy 6, 828-829 Law, codification of II. Ancient Greece and Rome 7, 321-322
Logographos 7, 792 Papyrus 1. Use 10, 497 Stele III. Classical Antiquity. 13, 818-819
4.3.3. STATE LAW/PUBLIC LAW Cf. Lists B.III. (International treaties of Graeco-Roman anti-
quity)
6, 854-855
>» Ill. Law of war 6, 855-856 » IV. Diplomatic exchanges and laws governing foreigners
Justice/Right
Work contract 15, 744-745 Xenodikai 15, 813 Zetetal 15,915 Zweckverfiigung 15, 975-976
>
II. Regulations governing peace
6, 856
15, 626
tion
6, 563-564
6, 854
War, law of 15, 566 Wells E. Laws relating to wells
»
4, 614-615 Emergency, state of 4, 939-940 Ges anadasmos_ 5, 822-824 Government, theories of forms of see Aristokratia Human rights A. Introduction
>
Thesmothetai 14, 565-566 Treaties, upholding of 14, 880 Verdict 15, 294-295 Violence II. 2. Violence in the law
Witnesses
Dokimasia
>» C. National 6, 564-565 >» D. International 6, 565 >» E. Reception 6, 565 International law I. Overview
9, 556
Nomos nautikos 9, 803 Nomos. [1] Nomos, nomoi
9, 798-801
IV. ByGreece”
1, 743
2, 215
Building law 2, 808-809 Citizenship 3, 369-370 Coinage laws 3, 515-516
IT, 902-903 >
6, 856
International treaties I. General 6, 857 >» IV. Greece 6, 859-861 Judge see Dikastes Justice/Right 6, 1224-1226 Katachorizein 7, 30 Koinonia 7, 83 Kyrbeis 7, 125 Law [1] 7, 310-311 Law, codification of II. Ancient Greece and Rome 7, 321-322
Antidosis
Asylia
Coins, control of 3, 523-524
Pistis D. Law 11, 298-299 Pledge, law of II. Classical Anti-
Gortyn III. The great law inscrip-
Aliens, the position of III. Greece I, 506-507
4.3.4. TRIAL Anadikia 1, 633 Anakrisis 1, 638 Antigraphe, -eus 1, 752-753 Antitimesis
1, 791
Antomosia
1,792
Apagoge 1, 816 Apographe 1, 846 Atimetos agon 2, 291-292 Bebaiosis 2, 569-570 Biaion dike 2, 622 Blabes dike 2, 685 Criminal procedure 4, 11951196
Datetae 4, 103-104 Demeusis 4, 259
4.3. GREECE
729)
Demioprata 4, 260-261 Diadikasia 4, 336-337 Diaitetal 4, 346 Dialysis [1] 4,356 Diamartyria 4, 356-357 Dikaspolos 4, 411 Dikasterion 4, 412-414 Dikastes 4, 414 Dikastikos misthos 4, 414-415 Dikazein 4, 415 Dike [2] 4, 416-417 Diomosia 4, 464 Eisagogeus 4, 865 Eisangelia 4, 865 Eispraxis 4, 867 Eiwan Ekdikos 4, 867-868 Ekecheiria 4, 868 Emporikai dikai 4, 956 Emporikoi nomoi 4, 956 Enechyrasia 4,974 Enepiskepsis 4, 975 Enklema 4, 981 Epangelia 4, 1014 Ephesis 4, 1023-1024 Ephetai 4, 1032 Epikrisis 4, 1108-1109 Epobelia 4, 1158-1159 Exomosia
5, 270
Exoules dike 5, 273 Gnome [2] Legal. 5, 891-892 Graphe 5, 991 Heliaia 6, 68-69 Homologia 6, 467 Hypomosia 6, 643 Judge see Dikastes Kadiskoi 7, 2 Kakotechnion dike 7, 6 Kataballein 7, 26 Katacheirotonia 7, 30 Kategoros
7, 34-35
Katenechyrasia
7, 35
Katengyan 7, 35 Kleter 7, 69 Wawcourt
e7.1323
Lipomartyriou dike
7, 628 Logographos 7,792 Magic, Magi 3. Magic in Greek law 8, 139-140
Martyria 8, 418-419 Menysis 8,706 Nautodikai 9, 556 Oath II. Greece 9, 937-938 Ostrakismos 10, 287-288
Palindikia ro, 388-389 Parabolon 10, 500 Parabyston 10, 500 Paragraphe 10, 513 Parakatabole ro, 513 Parakletos 10, 515 Perjury I. Greece
10, 805
Petalismos 10, 863 Phasis [3] 10, 941-942 Pinax [3] 11, 263-264
> [4] 11, 264 [reeb-ake|[aul)
1030, 7/083
Probole r1, 894 Procedural law IV. A. Concept II, 902-903 IVS BaGreeces nr, 963 Proklesis 11, 950-952 Prosklesis 12, 49-50 Prytaneia
12, 94-95
Pseudokleteias graphe 12, 116mn, Pseudomartyrion dike 12, 120121 Surety B. Greece 13,958 Sykophantes 13, 985-986 Syndikos 14, 22-23 Synegoros 14, 23-24 Thesmothetai 14, 565-566 Timetai dikai 14, 694-695 Timetos agon
14, 695 Verdict 15, 294-295 Vow see Oath; Sacramentum Witnesses see Martyria 4.3.5. CRIMINAL LAW Abortion B. Athenian law 1, 27 Adeia 1, 135-136 Adikema 1, 139 Adultery I. Greece 1, 159-161 Aeiphygia 1, 199 Agamiou dike 1, 307
Agraphiou graphe 1, 358 Aidesis 1, 403 Aikeias dike 1, 404 Amnestia 1, 591 Anchisteia
1, 668 Andrapodistes 1, 680 Androlepsia 1, 684 Apagoge 1, 816 Apeniautismos 1, 823 Argias graphe 1, 1062 Asebeia 2, 108 Atimia 2,292 Balantiotomoi 2, 470 Banishment 15, 1013 Biaion dike 2, 622 Castratio
2,
4,
6, 463-464
6, 464
Hybris 6, 596-597
Kakegoria 7, 5 Kakogamion 7, 5 Kakosis 7, 6 Kakotechnion dike 7, 6 Kakourgoi 7, 6-7 Katadike 7,30 Katakremnismos 7, 31 Katalysis 7, 32 Katapontismos 7, 33 Kategoros 7, 34-35
Killing, crimes involving II. Greece and Rome 7, 47 Klope 7, 71-72 Libel 7, 483 Lipotaxiou graphe 7, 628-629 Loidoria 7, 800 Menysis 8, 706 Moicheia 9, 123 Ostrakismos ro, 287-288 Parabyston 10, 500 Parapresbeias graphe 10, 522 Penalties see Poine Petalismos 10, 863 Pharmakeia 10, 932 Phasis [3] 10, 941-942 Phonos 11, 179-180 Phyge 11, 204 Phylobasileis 11, 214 Poine 11,450 Prodosia 11, 933 Prorrhesis 12, 39 Prostiman 12, 57 Punishment, Criminal Law 12, 216-
217 Rape III. Judgments and legal con-
trols 12, 393-394
1195-
1196
Damnatio incrucem
>» II. Greece
III. Greece and Rome
1187-1188
Criminal procedure
Hierosylia 6, 323 Homicide I. General
4, 60
Death penalty Il Graeco-Roman
4, 137
Robbery I. General points 12, 654 Suicide 13, 926-927 Talion 14, 121-122 Theft see Furtum Time 14, 686 Timetai dikai 14, 694-695 Timetos agon 14, 695 Torture A. Historical foundations
14, 794 > B. Greece 14, 794-795
Death II. D. Homicide and suicide Bes ve Deilias graphe 4, 182-183 Dekasmou graphe 4, 198
Tyrannidos graphe 15, 62 Violence II. 2. Violence in the law
Demeusis Desertion
Xenias graphe 15, 803-804 Zetetai 15,915
4, 259 see Deilias graphe
Desmoterion 4, 318-319 Doron graphe 4, 688-689 Eisangelia 4, 865 Eleven, the see Hendeka, hoi Endeixis 4,969 Epibole 4, 1038-1039 Epiorkia 4, 1117 Hendeka, hoi 6, 133-134 Hetaireseos graphe 6, 292
15,441
4.3.6. PERSON AND FAMILY
Adoption 1, 146-148 Adultery I. Greece 1, 159-161 Amblosis 1, 570 Anchisteia
Androlepsia Apokeryxis
1, 668
1, 684 1, 848-849
4.3. GREECE
26
Apotimema
1, 891 Asylia 2, 215 Civil law IV. Classical antiquity
35 377-378 Despoteia 4, 320 Divorce 4, 581-582
Dowry II. Classical Antiquity
4, 702
Eispoiesis 4, 866-867 Ekdosis [1] 4, 868 Engyesis 4, 980 Epigamia 4, 1095-1096 Epitropos [2] 4, 1157-1158 Exhaireseos dike 5, 266 Gamos_ see Marriage Hedna 6, 45 Hypoboles graphe 6, 636-637 Kakosis 7, 6 Kyrios II. Civillaw 7, 127-128 Manumission B. Greece 8, 264 Marriage contracts 8, 395-396 Marriage II. Greece 8, 386-388 Minimum share 9, 4 Minors see Agoge Moicheia 9, 123 Nothos 9, 827-828 Paramone 10, 516-517 Paranoias graphe 10, 518 Parapherna 10, 520-521 Paratilmos 10, 523-524 Pherne 10, 953-954 Proix 11, 949-950 Sitou dike 13, 514 Widow I. Greece 15, 631-632 Xenias graphe 15, 803-804 4.3.7. PROPERTY LAW Aidesis 1, 403 Arrha, Arrhabon 2, 22-23 Bebaiosis 2, 569-570 Blabes dike 2, 685 Chresis 3,255 Contracts I. General points 3,751 >» V. Classical Antiquity 3, 753-
Lending
7, 386-387
Loan II. Greece
Maritime loans 8, 360-362 Mesengyema 8, 725-726 Military tenure 8, 906 Misthosis
9, 68-72
Nautikon daneion 9, 554-555 Nautikos tokos see Nautikon daneion Nomos nautikos
9, 803
Parakatatheke 10, 514 Pledge, law of II. Classical Anti-
quity
11, 374-375
Poine 11,450 Prasis epilysei 11, 778-779 Proeisphora 11, 934-935 Purchase I. Introduction 12, 222
>
III. Greece and Rome 12, 224ape Renting and hiring I. General 15, 1038-1041
I Greece 15. 1042 Securities see Surety Zweckverfiigung
15, 975-976
4.3.8. LAW OF SUCCESSION Apokeryxis 1, 848-849 Diamartyria 4, 356-357 Diatheke 4, 362-365 Embateuein 4, 937 Emphyteusis 4, 948 Epidikasia 4, 1094-1095 Epikleros 4, 1108 Epitropos [2] 4, 1157-1158 Heiress see Epikleros Inheritance, division of 6, 809
Legacy 7, 349
Emphyteusis
4, 948
Engye 4,979-980 Enktesis 4, 981-982 Eranos [1] 5, 8
Exoules dike 5, 273 Hemiolion 6, 130 Horoi
6, 496-499
Hyperocha 6, 635 Hypotheke [1] A. Greek law 6, 646
>
[1] B. Graeco-Egyptian law 6, 646
Inheritance, division of 6, 809 Kataballein 7, 26 Kratesis 7, 103 Lease, indenture of 7, 333-335 Leasehold II. Graeco-Roman anti-
quity 7, 336-337
6, 646
>
[1] B. Graeco-Egyptian law 6, 646
Katachorizein 7, 30 Katenechyrasia 7, 35 Koinonia 7, 83 Land register 7, 196 Laographia, Laographos
13, 907-908 Wills and testaments [2] I. General Points 15, 636-637 » [2] Ill. Greece 15, 638-639 4.3.9. PAPYRUS LAW
Cheirographon 3, 209-210 Chrematistai 3, 253 Dialysis [2] 4, 356 Diatheke 4, 362-365 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 » V. Classical Greece and Hellen-
ism 4, 596-599 Eisagogeus 4, 865 Eispraxis 4, 867 Eiwan Ekdikos 4, 867-868 Embateuein 4, 937 Engyesis 4, 980
Epibole 4, 1038-1039 Epikrisis 4, 1108-1109 Estate register 5, 74-75 Graphe 5,991 Hemiolion 6, 130 Homologia 6, 467 Hypallagma 6, 626 Hypeuthynos 6, 636
7, 235-
236
Laokritai
7,236
One en pistei
10, 129
Paragraphe 10, 513 Parakatatheke 10, 514 Parapherna 10, 520-521 Paredros, Paredroi A. 3. Egypt LO, 526
Pherne 10, 953-954 Politeuma 11, 474 Praxis [1]
11,785
Securities see Surety Synchoresis 14, 17-18 Syndikos 14, 22-23 Syngraphe 14, 25-26 4.4. Rome 4.4.1. INTRODUCTION 4.4.2. SOURCES OF ROMAN LAW 4.4.3. STATE LAW/PUBLIC LAW 4.4.4. GENERAL PRIVATE LAW
4.4.5. PRIVATE PROCEDURAL LAW 4.4.6. DEBT LAW 4.4.7. PROPERTY LAW
4.4.8. PERSON AND FAMILY 4.4.9. LAW OF SUCCESSION 4.4.10. CRIMINAL LAW 4.4.11. CRIMINAL PROCEDURAL
LAW
Minimum share 9, 4 Succession, laws of II. Greek
754 Daneion 4,77 Despoteia 4, 320 Dosis 4, 694-695
Hypotheke [1] A. Greek law
7, 757-758
4.4.1. INTRODUCTION
On Greek legislators and Roman legists cf. Index of Persons 9. Acta
I, I1§-117
Actarius Adiutor
1, 118-119 1, 139-140
Aequitas 1, 236-237 Album [2] 1, 434 Antiquo
1, 784-785
Beneficium 2, 596-597 Building law 2, 808-809 Byzantium II. D. Administration and law 2, 850-851 Cassiani_ see Law schools Citizenship 3, 369-370 Civitas B. Citizenship 3, 378-379 Coinage laws 3, 515-516 Communication C, 4. Written recording of laws 3, 659-660 Constitution I. Name 3,726 Contracts I. General points 3,751
> V. Classical Antiquity
3,753-
754 Decemviri [1] 4, 147-148 » [2] Decemviri (st)litibus tudican-
dis, 4,148
4.4. ROME
27
Decuriales [5] 4, 163 Defensor II. In constitutional law
45 174-175 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 > VI.Roman Law 4, 599-603 Ducenarius 4, 731 Duoviri, Duumviri 4, 739-740 Fetiales 5, 408-409 Grain laws 5, 974-976 Hostis 6, 535-536 Human rights A. Introduction
6, 563-564 >» C. National 6, 564-565 >» D. International 6, 565 International law 6, 854-857 Interpretatio I. Law 6, 866-869 Iuris consultus 6, 1119 Iuris prudentia 6, 1121-1123 Tus Latur see Ius D.2. lus 6, 1124-1134 Judge see Dikastes Justice/Right 6, 1224-1226 Killing, crimes involving II. Greece and Rome 7, 47 Latin law 7, 287-288 Law [1] 7, 310-311 Law schools 7, 324-326 Law, codification of II. Ancient Greece and Rome 7, 321-322 Lawcourt 7, 323
Legacy
7,349
Legislation 7, 372 Lex, leges 7, 460-466 Lot, election by 2. Courts 7, 818 Malnutrition, Famine III. Laws and
institutions securing the food supply 8, 206-207 Medical ethics C. Ethics in Roman Medicine 8, 554-555 Military law 8, 900-901 Mores 9, 207-208 Mos maiorum 9, 216-218
Natural Law
see Aequitas
Nomen Latinum see Latin law Notary 9, 827 Praefectus iure dicundo. II, 756THE Praefectus [11] Praefectus iure
dicundo — see praefectus iure dicundo Privilegium
11, 888-889
Procedural law IV. C. Rome
II, 904-905
Proculiani see Law schools II. A. Punishment, Criminal Law Ill. Greece and Rome 12, 216Pag) Purchase I. Introduction 12, 222 > III. Greece and Rome 12, 224225 Quaestor III. Quaestor sacri palatii 12, 322-323 Quinqueviri.
12, 348-349
Robbery I. General points 12,654
»
III. Graeco-Roman antiquity 12, 655-656
Sabiniani see Law schools Securities see Surety Tabelliones 14, 77-78 Tabula 14, 90-91 Treaties, upholding of 14, 880 Utilitas publica 15, 144-145 Vacatlo 15, 150-151 Verdict 15, 294-295 Vis 15, 462-463 Vow see Oath; Sacramentum Witnesses see Martyria
4.4.2. SOURCES OF ROMAN LAW Cf. Lists A.III.1.-2. (Roman
leges and senatus consulta) Abinnaeus Archive 1, 21 Adnotatio 1, 143 Ante-Justinianic Law 15, 995-
996 Basilics 2, 536-537 Beneficium 2, 596-597 Citations, law governing 4, 1173 Codex II. Law collections 3, 500502 Coinage laws B. Rome 3, 516 Collatio legum Mosaicarum et Romanarum 3, 529 Consilium 3, 702-703 Constitutio Antoniniana 3, 726 Constitutiones 3,729 Consultatio veteris cuiusdam iurisconsulti 3,743 Controversiae 3, 756-757 Corpus iuris 3, 850 Curiata lex 3, 1014 Decretalia 4, 158-159 Digesta 4, 407-410 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 >» VI. Roman Law 4, 599-603 Edictum [1] 4, 804 » [2] Edictum perpetuum. 4, 805 > [4] Edictum Theodorici. 4, 807 Fragmenta Vaticana 5, 535-536 Fragmentum (fragmenta) de iure
fisci 5, 536-537 Index [1] 6, 768-769 Inscriptio 6, 822-823 Inscriptions III. A. General 6, 829-830
> Il. B. History 6, 830 > Ill. C. Tradition 6, 830-831 Institutiones 6, 836-837 Instrumentum 6, 837-838
International law II. Regulations governing peace
6, 854-855
>
V. The theory of international law 6, 856-857 Interpolation, critique of 6, 865866
Law [1] 7, 310-311 Law, codification of II. Ancient
Greece and Rome 7, 321-322 Lex, leges 7, 460-466
Mores
9, 207-208
Novellae 9, 853-854 Pandectae see Digesta Papyrus 1. Use 10, 497 Rescriptum 12, 507 Responsa 12, 507-509 Sanctio 12,945
Syro-Roman law book 14, 72 Tablettes Albertini 14, 89-90 Tabula Banasitana 14, 91 Tabula Bantina 14, 91-92 Tabula Hebana 14, 92 Tabula Heracleensis 14, 92-93 Tabulae duodecim 14, 95-98 Twelve Tables see Tabulae Duodecim Volksrecht 15, 499-503 4.4.3. STATE LAW/PUBLIC LAW
Cf. Lists B.III. (International treaties of Graeco-Roman anti-
quity)
Abdicatio 1, 17 Abrogatio 1, 33 Absentia 1, 34-35 Adaeratio 1, 131 Adsessor 1, 156 Ambitus 1, 568-569 Angaria 1, 693 Antiquo 1, 784-785 Building law 2, 808-809 Capitatio-iugatio 2, 1068-1069 Census 3, 110-III Citizenship 3, 369-370 Civitas B. Citizenship 3, 378-379 Coercitio 3, 508-509 Coinage laws 3, 515-516 Coins, control of 3, 523-524 Comparatio publica 3, 671-672 Consecratio 3, 698-699
Constitution III. Development of
the typology 3, 727-729
Contracts I. General points Decretum
3,751
4, 159-160
Dediticii 4, 170-171 Discessio 4, 536 Discussor 4, 542 Dispensator 4, 557 Divisor 4, 580 Ecclesiastical/Religious law IL. Graeco-Roman Antiquity
4,779 Edictum [1] 4, 804 Emergency, state of 4, 939-940 Excusatio 5,259 Gesta 5, 827-828 Government, theories of forms of see Aristokratia Hostis 6, 535-536 Human rights A. Introduction
6, 563-564
>» C. National 6, 564-565 » D. International 6, 565 >» E. Reception 6, 565 Immunitas 6, 746-747
4.4. ROME
28
Incensus
6, 763 International law 6, 854-857 International treaties I. General 6, 857 >»
V. Rome
6, 861-862
lugatio see Capitatio-iugatio luridicus 6, 1118-1119 lustitium 6, 1142
Justice/Right 6, 1224-1226 Legislation 7, 372 Manumission C. Rome _ 8, 264266
Military law Missio [1]
Humiliores see Honestiores Ignorantia 6,722 Il. Common
Latini luniani 7, 284 Lease, indenture of 7, 333-335
Libellus B. Libellus to the emperor and others in publiclaw 7, 4847, 511
Manumission C. Rome
Mixed constitution 9, 91-92 Monarchia 9, 135-136
Municipal law II. Classical anti-
quity 9, 291-293
9, 112 9, 827
Nuncupatio.
Operae libertorum. Pactio. Pactum
11, 369-370
Provocatio
12, 87
Sacramentum III. Military oath 12, 828
Sacrilegium 12, 856 Sacrosanctus 12, 857 Sponsio I. Constitutional law
13,744
Transfuga 14, 845-846 Violence III. 5. The public control of violence 15, 445-447 War, law of 15, 566 4.4.4. GENERAL PRIVATE LAW Actio [2] inlaw 1, 122-124 Aetas 1, 267-268
Amentia 1, 578 Capitis deminutio capitis
see
Deminutio
Civil law IV. Classical antiquity 33 377-378 Coitio 3, 527 Commercium 3, 650 Communio
Condicio Confusio Consistere
3, 670-671
3, 684-685 3, 690 3, 703
Contracts I. General points 3, 751 > V. Classical Antiquity 3, 753-
754 Contractus 3, 754-755 Deminutio capitis 4, 259-260 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 > VI.Roman Law 4, 599-603
Domicilium 4, 630-631 Excusatio 5, 259 Fictio 5, 411 Fides Il. Law 5, 415-417 Furor 5, 625-626 Honestiores/Humiliores
474
6, 472-
6, 1029-1030
Iurgium 6, 1118 Juridicus 6, 1118-1119
9, 911
ro, 151
10, 321 10, 322-324
Peregrinus 10, 750-751 Persona [2] 10, 832 Postliminium 11, 691-692 Renuntiatio 12, 499-500 Scriptura 13, 123-124
Iurisdictio 6, 1119-1121 lusiurandum 6, 1134-1135 Judge see Dikastes Legis actio 7, 371-372 Libellus A. Libellus in civil actions 7, 484
Liclum
7, 542-543
Liquet
7, 630
Signum [3] 13, 450 > [4] 13,450
Litis contestatio 7, 725-726 Litis denuntiatio 7, 726-727 Manus iniectio 8, 275 Missio 9, 62-63
Sponsio
Mors litis 9, 213
Spado
13, 688
13, 744-745
Status [2] Stipulatio
13, 809-810 13, 841
Subscriptio I. Ancient legal documents 13, 901-902 Tabelliones 14, 77-78 Tabulae privatae 14, 99-100
N.N.
9, 475
Nervus.
4.4.5. PRIVATE PROCEDURAL LAW Aw AS 3, Abiuratio 1, 22
Accipere
1, 60
Addicere Addictus
1, 134-135 1, 135
Adiudicatio
1, 139
Adsertor 1, 156 Adsiduus 1, 156-157 Advocatus 1, 162-163 Aestimatio litis 1, 267 Agerius 1, 327-328 Altercatio 1, 550 Antestatio
1, 721
Appellatio
1, 894-895
Arbiter 1, 962-963 Arbitration 1, 963-964
Beneficium 2, 596-597 Causidicus 3, 45-46 Centumyviri 3, 124-125 Cognitio 3, 510 Comperendinatio 3, 675 Condemnatio 3, 684 Confessio 3, 688-689 Contumacia 3,758 Decretum
4, 159-160
9, 678
Oath III. Rome _ see Ius iurandum Ordo 10, 195-197 Patronus C. Patronage in relation to the judicial system 10, 626-627 Petitio.
Aliens, the position of IV. Rome
I, 507-508
Hasta [2] 5, 1165 Intentio 6, 844 Intestabilis 6, 875-876
ludicatum 6, 1030-1031 ludicium 6, 1031-1033
9, 23-24 see Agoge
Modus Notary
4, 305
Edictum [2] Edictum perpetuum. 4, 805 Editio 4, 807-809 Formula 5, 497-498 Forum II. Legal history 5, 519520 Furtum tabularum 5, 627-628
ludex
Minores Minors
Patrimonium C. ‘Public law’ 10, 616
8, 264-
266
Nominatio. 9,795 Nota censoria. 9, 826-827
Plebiscitum
Denuntiatio
Intestabilis 6, 875-876 Latin law 7, 287-288
Libripens
9, 62
1, 126
Imaginarius 6, 740-741 Infamia 6,796
485
8, 900-901
noun
Deductio [1] 4, 171-172 Defensor I. In civillaw 4, 174 Demonstratio 4, 286
ro, 868-869
Pluspetitio
11, 408-409
Postulatio
11, 692
Praeiudicium Probatio
11, 763-764
11, 891-894
Procedural law IV. A. Concept II, 902-903 >»
IV.C.Rome
11, 904-905
Pronuntiatio [2]
12, 15-16 Publicatio bonorum 12, 184-185 Quaestio lance et licio
12, 319
Reciperatio see Recuperatores Recuperatores 12, 429
Rei vindicatio 12, 451-453 Reiectio 12, 453 Replicatio 12, 501 Rescript procedure 12, 506 Restitutio Revocatio
12, 509-510 12, 513
Sacramentum I. General remarks 2
827
> II. Civillaw 12, 827-828 Satisdatio 13,17 Scholasticus [rt] 13, 67 Secretarium 13, 193 Sectio bonorum 13, 193 Sententia 13, 282
4.4. ROME
29
Sequester 13, 302-303 Taxatio 14,174
Tempus utile
Litterarum obligatio 7, 728-729 Loan II]. Rome 7, 758-760 Locatio conductio 7, 764-766 Lucrativarum causarum concursus
14, 266-267
Testimonium 14, 316-318 Transactio 14, 843-844
7, 856-857
Trial formula see Formula Trial oath see Sacramentum Vadimonium 15, 154 Verdict 15, 294-295 Vincula 15, 427-428 Vindex [1] 15, 429 Vindicatio see Rei vindicatio Vindicta 15, 431
Mandatum 8, 226-228 Maritime Law see Fenus nauti-
Vocatio inius 15, 487-488 Vow see Oath; Sacramentum Witnesses see Martyria
Naufragium. 9, 541-542 Nexum. 9, 699
4.4.6. DEBT LAW
335
Beneficium 2, 596-597 Causa 3, 41-42 Cautio 3, 47-48 Cessio 3, 166-167 Comparatio publica 3, 671-672 3, 673-675
Condictio 3, 685-687 Conductores see Locatio conductio Consensus
3, 699-700
Contracts I. General points Creditor
Culpa
3,751
3,927
4, 62-63
Gestio
5, 626-627
Iactus 6, 663 Iniuria 6, 814
Inquilinus 6, 822 Institor 6, 836 Intercessio II. Civil law
6, 846
Interesse 6, 849 Iussum 6, 1135
Laudatio [2] 7, 297 Leasehold II. Graeco-Roman anti-
quity 7, 336-337
Lending 7, 386-387 Lex Aquilia 7, 466 Lex commissoria 7, 467
see Poine 12, 222 12, 224-
225 Querela non numeratae pecuniae
12, 329
10, 616
10, 668-669 11, 240-244
11, 687-689
Praedium. 11,751 Praescriptio longi temporis. Il, 768 Precarium
11,795
Rei vindicatio
12, 451-453
Remancipatio
12, 496-497
Res mancipi 12, 504 Securities see Surety Servitus 13, 333 Submissio 13, 901
Superficies
13, 951-952
Terminatio
Receptum 12, 417-418 Recipere see Receptum
Redemptor 12, 430 Renting and hiring I. General 15, 1038-1041
>» IV.Rome 15, 1042-1043 Retentio 12, 510-511 Securities see Surety Sponsio II. Private law 13, 74413, 958-960
4.4.7. PROPERTY LAW Accessio 1, 59-60
Acquisitio
1, 108 1, 128
Adluvio Law 1, 141-142 Adsignatio 1, 157-158 Agrarian laws 1, 359-362 Alienatio 1, 505 Bona 2, 716-717 Communio 3, 670-671 Consecratio 3, 698-699
5, 828
10, 581-582
Patrimonium B. Private law
quity 11, 374-375
Poena. Il, 441-442 Purchase I. Introduction > III. Greece and Rome
Actus [1]
10, 8-9
ro, 581
Partus suppositus.
Possessio.
Turpitudo 15, 38 Work contract 15, 744-745
Debitor 4, 138 Delegatio 4, 200-201 Delictum 4, 207 Dolus 4, 622-623 Donatio 4, 658-659 Emptio venditio 4, 958-960 Exceptio 5, 255-256 Fenus nauticum 5, 381-382
Partus ancillae.
Pledge, law of II. Classical Anti-
Noxalis actio 9, 866-867 Obligatio 10, 1-2 Operae libertorum. 10, 151 Pauperies. 10, 645-646
Penalties
6, 837-838
6, 847-849 780-781 218-220 8, 223-224 8, 224-225
Nuntiatio 9, 912 Occupatio A. Private law
Pignus.
9,793
Surety C. Rome
Custodia 3, 1028-1030 Custos 3, 1030
Furtum
Nomen
Interdictum Locus [1] 7, Manceps_ 8, Mancipatio Mancipium
Peculium.
49, 382-383
745
3, 979-980
Damnum
Mutuum
Novatio. 9, 836 Noxa 9, 865
Acceptilatio 1, 58-59 Accessio 1, 59-60 Adstipulator 1, 158 Aes alienum see Obligatio Anatokismos 1, 648-649 Auctiones II]. Roman law 2, 332 Auctoritas III. Civillaw 2, 334-
Compensatio
cum Maritime loans 8, 360-362 Military tenure 8, 906 Mora [2] 9, 204-206 Multa 9, 267-269
Instrumentum
14, 293-294 Thesaurus 14, 557-558 Traditio 14, 819-821 Translatio [2] 14, 847 Usucapio 15, 135-136 Usus 15, 140 Ususfructus 15, 140-141 Vindicatio see Rei vindicatio
4.4.8. PERSON AND FAMILY 1, 17 Adfinitas 1, 137 Adoption 1, 146-148 Adrogatio see Adoption Adulterium 1, 159 Adultery II. Rome see AdulteAbdicatio
rium Caelibatus Coemptio
2, 892 3, 507
Concubinatus 3, 682-683 Confarreatio 3, 688 Conubium 3, 758-759 Deminutio capitis 4, 259-260 Detestatio sacrorum 4, 321
Dictio dotis Diffarreatio
4, 376 4, 405
Dedicatio 4, 167 Dominium 4, 631-632 Dominus 4, 632-633 Fiducia 5, 418-419 Finis 5, 428-429
Divorce 4, 581-582 Divortium 4, 582-583
Fructus
Emancipatio 4, 935-936 Lex Iulia et Papia 7, 474-475
5, 565-566
Habitatio 5, 1072 Heredium 6, 195-196 Hypotheke [1] C. Roman law
4, 702 Manceps 8, 218-220 Manumissio 8, 263 Manus
6, 646-647
In iure cessio
Dos 4, 693-694 Dowry II. Classical Antiquity
6, 813-814
8, 266-267
Marriage III. Rome
8, 388-391
4.4. ROME
30
Mater familias
8, 453
Matrimonium 8, 482 Matrona [rt] 8, 483-484
Naturales liberi Nuptiae
9, 528-529
Peculium. 10, 668-669 Pubertas II. Legal status 12, 177178 Remancipatio 12, 496-497 Repudium 12, 503-504
Sponsalia 13,744 Spurius [2] 13,769 Status [2] 13, 809-810 Tabulae nuptiales 14, 98-99 Tutela [1] 15, 42-45 Tutelage 15, 45-46 Vacatio 15, [50-151 Vidua 15, 404 Violence III. 2. Violence towards family members 15, 443 > III. 3. Violence towards slaves
15, 443-444
Widow II. Rome
15, 632-633
4.4.9. LAW OF SUCCESSION
Abstentio 1, 36 Ademptio legati 1, 136 Aditio hereditatis 1, 139 Adoption 1, 146-148
1, 344-345
Beneficium
2, 720-721
3, 503
5, 260
Exheredatio 5, 266-267 Fideicommissum 5, 412-413 Immiscere, se
6,744
Inheritance, division of 6, 809 Intestatus
ments, [2] IV
Translatio [2] 14, 847 Vacantia bona 15, 150 Widow II. Rome 15, 632-633 Wills and testaments [2] I. General Points 15, 636-637 >»
[2] IV. Rome
6, 876-877
15, 639-644
4.4.10. CRIMINAL LAW Abortio 1, 27 Abortion E. Roman law I, 28-29 Adulterium 1, 159 Adultery Il. Rome see Adulterium Ambitus 1, 568-569 Aqua et igni interdictio 1, 921 Assectator 2, 173 Banishment 15, 1013 Blood feud B. Roman law 2, 689690
Capitale 2, 1066 Carcer 2, 1091-1092 Carmen famosum 2, 1112-1113 Carnifex 2, 1120 Castigatio 2, 1180 Castratio 2, 1187-1188 Coercitio 3, 508-509 Coitio 3, 527 Concussio 3, 683 Consecratio
3, 698-699
Copyright
3, 778-779
Counterfeiting Crematio
Crimen
3, 882
3, 927-928
3,966
4, 60
Death penalty Il Graeco-Roman
re Ya
Death II. D. Homicide and suicide
4, 131 Decollatio 4, 156 Deportatio 4, 306 Desertion see Deilias graphe Desertor see Building trade Effractor 4, 838 Exilium 5, 268-269 Falsum 5, 330 Furtum 5, 626-627 High treason see Perduellio Homicide I. General 6, 463-464
Legatum 7, 353-354
>
Lex Julia et Papia 7, 474-475 Lex Voconia 7, 476-477 Minimum share 9, 4 Mortis causa capio 9, 216 Postumus [2] 11, 698-699 Praeteritio 11,770 Prodigus. 11, 932-933
Homicidium 6, 464-465 Honestiores/Humiliores 6, 472-
III. Rome
474
Humiliores Incendium Incest see Incestus 6,
Tus iurandum
6, 1134-1135 Killing, crimes involving II. Greece and Rome 7, 47 Lapidation 7, 239 Laqueus 7, 243-244 Latrocinium 7, 295-296 Lenocinium 7, 387
Libel 7, 483 Liclum 7, 542-543 Maiestas C. Political sphere 8, 186-187
Maleficium see Magic; Magi Matchmaking 8, 453 Military penallaw 8, 901-902 Multa 9, 267-269 Occentare. 10, 7-8
Parricidium
10, 557-558
Peculatus. 10, 667-668 Perduellio 10, 749 Perjury Il. Rome tro, 805
Plagium. 11, 315-316 Praeda. 11,750-751 Proditio. 11, 933 Provocatio
12, 87
Punishment, Criminal Law III. Greece and Rome
12, 216—-
217 Quaestio lance et licio
12, 319 Rape III. Judgments and legal controls 12, 393-394 Rapina 12, 395-396 Raptus 12, 396 Relegatio 12, 454 Repetundarum crimen 12, 500501 Robbery I. General points 12,654
>
III. Graeco-Roman antiquity 12, 655-656
Sacrilegium 12, 856 Securis 13,194 Sepulchri violatio 13, 300
3, 940-942
Damnatio in crucem
2, 869
Cognatio 3, 509-510 Communio 3, 670-671 Consanguinei 3, 694-695 Decuma 4, 161 Elogium [2] 4, 929 Executor
Suiheredes 13, 925-926 Testamentum see Wills and testa-
Crux
2, 596-597
Bonorum possessio
Codicilli
Substitutio 13, 906-907 Succession, laws of III. Roman 13, 908-911
10, 5
Orbi. 10, 189-190 Paclex:, 10,932 Parens. 10, 527-528 Partus ancillae. 1o, 581 Partus suppositus. 10, 581-582 Pater familias. 10, 595-597 Patria potestas. 10, 604-606 Patronus A. Definition 10, 625 > B. Private law 10, 625-626 > C. Patronage in relation to the judicial system 10, 626-627
Caducum
12, 329
9,912
Obsequium
Agnatio
Querela inofficiosi testamenti
6, 464
Stellionatus
13, 819
Stuprum 13, 890-891 Suicide 13, 926-927 Supplicium 13, 955-956 Suppositio partus 13,956 Talion
14, 121-122
Testimonium falsum 14, 318 Theft see Furtum Torture C. Rome and after-effects 14, 795-796 Transfuga 14, 845-846 Verbera Verdict
15,292 15, 294-295
Violation of graves see Sepulchri violatio Violentia 15, 447 Witnesses see Martyria 4.4.11. CRIMINAL PROCEDURAL
see Honestiores 6,761 Incestus 763-764
LAW Abolitio 1, 24 Absentia 1, 34-35 Absolutio 1, 35
5-3. OTHER CULTURES
31
Accusatio 1, 65 Ampliatio 1, 617-618 Anquisitio 1, 714-715 Calumnia 2, 1005
Criminal procedure
4, 1195-
1196
5.5. ROME
Delatio nominis 4, 199 Delator 4, 199-200 Denuntiator 4, 305 Divinatio 4, 563-564 Elogium [2] 4, 929 Index [1] 6, 768-769 Indulgentia 6, 793-794 Interrogatio 6, 872-873 Iudicium 6, 1031-1033 Laudatio [2] 7,297 Libellus C. Libellus in criminal cases
5. Military 5.1. INTRODUCTION . ANCIENT NEAR EAST 5.3. OTHER CULTURES . GREECE
7,485
Praevaricatio
11, 776-777
Procedural law IV. A. Concept II, 902-903 >» IV.C.Rome 11, 904-905 Punishment, Criminal Law III. Greece and Rome 12, 216-
2G Quadruplator 12, 316 Quaesitor 12, 316-317 Quaestio pertormentum 12, 319320 Quaestio 12, 317-319 Quaestor I. Quaestores parricidii 125320 Quinguevirale iudicium 12, 348 Receptio nominis
12, 417
.6. LATE ANTIQUITY
5.7. WEAPONS, ARMOUR
.8. FORTIFICATIONS AND SIEGECRAFT 5.9. ARMY SUPPLIES AND LOGISTICS 5.10. MARITIME WARFARE
5.1. Introduction On wars cf. Subject Index 1.6.4. On specific wars cf. Subject Index 1.6.4.2. Cf. CT index volume, Entry Index t. Architecture B. III.5. Military architecture 1, 1019-1020 Armies
2, 6-13
Bow and arrow 2, 745-746 Bow-shooting 2, 746-747
Cavalry 3, 49-55 Communications II. D. The acquiring of information 3, 669-670 Conscientious objection 3, 696-
697 Deportation
Desertion
4, 307-309
see Deilias graphe
Environment, Environmental be-
haviour III. Environmental destruction caused by war
4, 1004
Secretarium 13, 193 Tergiversatio 14,290
Frontier II. The frontier as control
Tormenta see Catapult Torture A. Historical foundations
Horsemanship
14,794
Verdict
15, 294-295
4.5. Other Adaeratio Byzantium and law Canonical
legal systems 1, 131 II. D. Administration 2, 850-851 collections see Collec-
tiones canonum
Decretalia
4, 158-159
Ecloga [2] 4, 794-795 Epanagoge 4, 1014 Leges Homeritarum
7, 355-356 Literature VII. E. Technical literature 7, 722-723 Macedonian Renaissance C, Law 8, 83
Nomos nautikos 9, 803 Nomos stratiotikos 9, 803-804 Syro-Roman law book 14, 72 Tablettes Albertini 14, 89-90 Volksrecht 15, 499-503 Vulgar law 15, 534-535
Espionage system
5, 67-68 6, 1228-1229
6, 511-513
Ilai see Cavalry Informers see Secret police International law III. Law of war 6, 855-856
Levy 7, 456-460 Limes
7, 561-600
Medical services (military)
8, 556-557
Military technology and engineering 8, 902-906 Military writers 8, 906-907 Mutiny 9, 377-380 Navies 9, 562-566
Phalanx
10, 907-908
Prisoners of war 11, 875-878 Recruits, training of 12, 426-428
Soldiers’ pay 13, 611-613 Spolia [2] see War booty Stipendium _ see Soldiers’ pay Strategemata 13, 869 Tactics 14, III-I13 Tropaion 14, 963-964
War booty 15, 557-560 War chariot 15, 560-562 War, artof see Military technology and engineering War, consequences of 15, 563566
War, law of 15, 566 Warships see Navies Weapons
15, 595-601
5.2. Ancient Near East Armies I. Ancient Orient 2, 6-7 Bow and arrow 2, 745-746 Cavalry I. Ancient Orient 3, 4952) Deportation J. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 4, 307-308 Diaspora 4, 361-362 Dromedarii 4, 722 Governor 15, 1034-1035 Helmet A. General 6, 111
> >
B. Early evidence 6, 111-112 C. Cyprus and historic Greece 65, LT 2,
Hippegos 6, 341 Hippotoxotal 6, 379
Horsemanship C. The ancient Oriental principles 6, 513 Kataphraktoi 7, 32-33 Military technology and engineering I. Ancient Orient 8, 902-
903 >
Il. Egypt 8, 903 Military tenure 8, 906 Naval warfare II. Carthage 9, 558 Navies I. General 9, 562-563 Parthian shot. 10, 575-576 Prisoners of war I. Ancient Orient 11, 875-876
Soldiers’ pay 13, 611-613 Wagon, Chariot I. Ancient Orient
and Egypt 15, 544-545
War booty I. Ancient Near East
155 557-558
War chariot I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 15, 560-561 Weapons I. Ancient Near East and
>
Egypt
15, 595-596
III. Phoenician-Carthaginian
region
15, 597
5.3. Other cultures Covinnus 3, 894 Essedarius, Essedum see War chariot Falcata 5, 323 Fortifications II. Early history and neighbouring cultures 5, 5oo-
503 Helmet A. General
6, 111
>» D.Italyand Rome 6, 112-115 » E. Celto-Germanic region (coy
Military technology and engineering Ill. A. Greek 8, 903-905 Murus Gallicus 9, 316-317 Preist construction
11, 802
Sword II. Celtic-Germanic Area 13, 980-981
War chariot III. Celto-Germanic area
15, 562
5-3. OTHER
32
CULTURES
Weapons II. Minoan-Mycenaean
period 15, 596-597 » IV. Iberian-Hispanic region
15, 597-598
>» V. Iron Age Italy 15, 598-599 > VI. Celto-Germanic region
1, 323
Agoge
1, 347-348
Antyx
1, 811 Apobates 1, 842-843 Architecture B. III.5. Military architecture 1, 1019-1020 Argyraspides 1, 1075 Argyrologoi nees 1, 1075 Armament I. Greece 15, 10061008 Armies II. Greece 2, 7-10 Armour 2, 16-17
Attica [1] I. Fortifications
2, 322-
324 Bematistail 2, 593 Bow and arrow 2, 745-746 Bow-shooting 2, 746-747
Catapult A. The invention of catapults 3, 9-10 > B. Hellenistic period 3, 10 >» E, Use and effect 3, 12-13 Cavalry II. Greece 3, 52-53 Chelone 3, 210 Chiliarchos 3, 227 Communications II. D. The acquiring of information 3, 669-670 Decas
4,145
Deilias graphe 4, 182-183 Deportation II. Classical Antiquity
4, 308-309
Desertion
see Deilias graphe
Dromedarii
4, 722 Embaterion 4, 937 Enomotia 4,991 Environment, Environmental behaviour III. Environmental destruction caused by war
4, 1004
Ephebeia 4, 1018-1021 Epibatai 4, 1038 Espionage 5, 67-68 Estimation 5, 76-77 Fortifications I. Greece 5, 499500 Governor 15, 1034-1035 Gymnasium II. A. General
>
5) 1054-1055
II. B. Special cases
5, 105 5-
1056 Gymnetes 5, 1059 Harmostai [1] 5, 1146
> [2] 5, 1146
Helepolis 6, 67-68 Helmet A. General 6, 111 > C. Cyprus and historic Greece (35 Lente)
Strategos
Horse IV. C. Use by the military 6, 507-509
13, 979-980
Synteleia
Lochos
14,
111-112
Taxiarchos 14, 188-189 Yass: 14,190 Tetrarches, Tetrarchia II. Military rank 14, 322-323 Thorax [1] 14, 597
7, 111
7, 766 7, 789-790
Toxotai [1]
Machairophoroi [1] 8, 92 Machimoi 8, 94 Media, Wall of 8, 552-553 Medical services (military) I. Greece
8,556
14, 817-818
Trierarchia 14, 918 Trireme 14, 937-939 War booty II. Greece 15, 558-559 War chariot II. Classical Antiquity I§, 561-562
Mercenaries
War, consequences of I. Greece
8, 706-708
Military technology and engineering III. A. Greek 8, 903-905 Military tenure 8, 906 Military writers
8, 906-907
Misthophoroi see Mercenaries Misthos 9, 66-68 Mitra [1] 9, 89 Mora [1] 9, 204
Mule C. Use in the military and for travel 9, 264 Musculus see Chelone Musical instruments 3. Brass
9, 360-361
Nauarchos 9, 537 Naval warfare I. Greece
558
11, 876-877
Prodromoi [2]
5.5. Rome
Abinnaeus Archive Accensi I, 56 Actarius
1,
Aeneatores
Es 3F
118-119
I, 222
Prylis [2] 12,94 Pyrrhiche 12, 270-272 Recruits, training of I. Greece Ephebeia
Aerarius [1]
15, 981-982
1, 239
Ala [2] military. Angusticlavius
1, 417-418 1, 697-698
Antesignani see Legio Aquila [1] Military see Ensigns Architecture B. IlI.5. Military architecture I, 1019-1020 Armament II. Rome
15, ro08-
IOIL Armamentaria
Armatura
2, I
see Manoeuvres
Armies III. A. The era of the Republic
2, I0—I1
> Ill. B. Principate 2, 11-12 Armillae see Dona militaria Armour
2, 16-17
Aspis see Shield Auxilia 2, 420-421
11, 934
Beneficiarii
see
12,998
Sciritae 13,95 Scythians [2] 13, 161 Shield I. Greece 13, 385 Siegecraft I. Greece 13, 440-444
Signals 13, 449-450
15, 563-564 Warships see Navies Weapons VII. A. Greece 15, 600 Weapons II. Minoan-Mycenaean period 15, 596-597 Xenagos 15,798
Aerarium militare
9, 557-
Navies I. General 9, 562-563 » II. Archaic and Classical Greece 9, 563 > IIL. Hellenism 9, 563-564 Pallake ro, 395-396 Parabatai 10, 500 Peltastay 10,7205 Pelte see Peltastai Pentekonter 10, 730-731 Pez(h)etairoi 10, 891 Phalanx 10, 907-908 Polybolon see Catapult Prisoners of war II. Greece
Sarissa
14, 37-38
Tactics I. Greece Tagos 14, 116
Levy I. Greece 7, 456-458 Lipotaxiou graphe 7, 628-629
Logistics I. Greece Lytron 8, 48-49
13, 873-
874 Sword I. Classical Antiquity
> [2] 7,99 Krypteia
13, 870-873
Stratiotika, Stratiotikon
Idiotes 6,715 Katalogos 7, 31-32 Kataphraktoi 7, 32-33 Kosmetes [1] 7, 98-99
5.4. Greece
Agelai
Hippotoxotai 6, 379 Hoplitai (Hoplites) 6, 480-481 and in games
15, 599-600
Siteresion 13, 511 Skeuotheke 13, 519-520 Slinger 13, 544 Soldiers’ pay 13, 611-613
Hetairoi 6, 293-294 Hippegos 6, 341 Hippeis 6, 341-342
2, 596
Bow and arrow 2, 745-746 Bucellarii 2,799 Bucinatores
Calones Canabae
2, 800
see Impedimenta see Logistics
Capite censi
2, 1069-1070
Captivitas see Prisoners of war Carmina triumphalia 2, rr14 Castellum [Ir] 2, 1178
5.5. ROME
373,
Castra A. Military camp
2, 1183-
1186
Framea
see Pilum
Frumentarii
Catapult A. The invention of catapults 3, 9-10 >» C.Rome 3, 10-12 > E. Use and effect 3, 12-13
Cavalry II]. Rome Centuria Centurio
3, 53-55
3, 125-127 3, 127-128
5, 567
Funditores 5, 587 Gaesati 5, 638 Galea see Armour Gladius see Sword Governor 15, 1034-1035 Hasta [1] Hasta, hastati. 5, 11641165
Chelone 3, 210 Classicum see Signals Clipeus [2] see Shield Cohors 3, 512 Commeatus 3, 626-627 Communications II. D. The acquiring of information 3, 669-670 Conscientious objection 3, 696697 Contaril 3,744 Contubernium 3,757 Cornicines 3, 837
Helmet A. General
Corniculum, cornicularii 3, 837 Corona [z] see Decorations, mili-
Levy II. Rome
tary Corvus [1] 3, 855 Decemprimi [2] 4, 147 Decorations, military 4, 156-158 Decuria see Decurio [4] Decuriales [1] 4, 163 Decurio, decuriones [4] Decurio,
decuria. Decursio
4, 165-166 see Manoeuvres
Deportation II. Classical Antiquity
4, 308-309
Disciplina militaris 4, 537-539 Dona militaria 4, 656-658 Donativum 4, 659-660 Draco [4] see Ensigns/Standards
Dux [1] 4, 753-754 see Veterans 4, 992-996
haviour III. Environmental destruction caused by war Equites singulares
see
War
chariot Estimation
5, 76-77 5,251
Labarum
7, 130
Lancearli
7, 193-194
Legio 7, 356-371 7, 458-460
Librator 7, 511 Limes 7, 561-600 Logistics II. Roman Republic
7,790
@
11, 775-776
11, 877-878
Pugio
see Armament Rations II. Classical antiquity
Manipulus 8, 243 Manoeuvres 8, 252-253 Manubiae see War booty
Rorarii
see Velites
12, 828
Sarcina see Impedimenta Scorpion [2] 13, 102
8,492
Medical services (military) II. Rome
8, 556-557 Mercenaries 8, 706-708 Military camps 8, 896-897
Military clientela 8, 897-898 Military diplomas 8, 898-899 Military feriale see Feriale Dura-
8, 905-906
Military tenure 8, 906 Military writers 8, 906-907 9, 62
Mutiny 9, 377-380 Naval warfare III. Rome
Recruits, training of I]. Rome 12, 426-428
Rudis [2] 12,750 Sacramentum III. Military oath
8, 237
9, 558-
Navies I. General 9, 562-563 > IV. Roman Republic and the Principate 9, 564-565 Numerus.
11, 773-775
Praetorium.
12, 405-406
>» II. Principate 7, 790-792 Magister equitum 8, 151-152 Manicae B. Arm protection
Missio [1]
Praetorians
Primipilus. 11, 849 Principales. 11, 861-862 Principia. 11, 863 Prisoners of war III. Rome
Soy
Exauctorare 5, 254-255 Excubiae see Vigiliae Expeditio 5, 273-274 Exploratores 5, 277-278 Extraordinaril 5, 280-281 Fabri 5, 309-310 Fabrica, fabricenses 5, 310-312 Falarica see Pilum Fortifications III. Rome 5, 503595
6, 1091
Mule C. Use in the military and for travel 9, 264 Musculus see Chelone
5, 4-5
Espionage 5, 67-68 Essedarius, Essedum
Evocati
Iuniores
ing III. B. Roman
Environment, Environmental be-
11, 757-758 Praemia_ see Delator Praetor I. Rome 11, 771-773 Praetoriae cohortes see Praetorians
6, 747-748
num Military law 8, 900-901 Military penallaw 8, 901-902 Military technology and engineer-
Draconarius see Ensigns Dromedarii 4, 722
4, 1004
743
Impedimenta
Mattiarii
Desertion see Deilias graphe Desertor see Building trade Discens 4, 536
Emeriti Ensigns
6, 111 >» D. Italy and Rome 6, 112-115 Horse IV. C. Use by the military and ingames 6, 507-509 Hospitalitas 6, 528 Imaginiferi, Imaginifarii 6, 742-
Phalerae see Dona militaria Pilum. 11, 259-260 Plumbata see Bow and arrow Pluteus [1] 11, 427 Praeda. 11, 750-751 Praefectus [12] Praefectus legionis 11,756 > [2] Praefectus aerarii 11,752 > [5] Praefectus castrorum II, 753-754 Praefectus praetorio A. Principate
9, 902
Obsequium 10, 5 Optio 10, 178 Ordo III. Military 1o, 196-197 Pabulatores see Logistics Palatini. ro, 384 Parma [2] see Shield
Shield II. Rome 13, 386 Siegecraft Il. Rome 13, 444-445
Signals 13, 449-450
Signifer see Ensigns Signum [2] 13, 450 Singulares 13, 496 Soldiers’ pay 13, 611-613 Spatha see Sword Spiculum — see Pilum Spolia [2] see War booty Staff sling 13,778 Statio 13,799 Statores 13, 804 Stellatura see Commeatus Stipendium see Soldiers’ pay Sword I. Classical Antiquity 13, 979-980 Tabernaculum 14,79 Tabulae honestae missionis
14,98 Tactics I]. Rome 14, 112-113 Tainia [3] 14, 117 Taxes1. The military 14, 182-183 Temonarius 14, 243 Tesserarius 14, 314
Testudo
14, 318-319
Tiro [2]
14, 726-727
Transfuga 14, 845-846 Tres militiae 14, 889-890 Triarius [t]
Tribunus
14, 899 14, 902-906
5.5. ROME
TA
Triumph, Triumphal procession II. Triumphal procession 14, 946-
947 Tubicen 14, 991-992 Turma 15, 34 Urbanae cohortes 15, 122 Vallum 15, 198 Velites 15, 261-262 Veterans I. Republic 15, 350-352 > Il. Principate 15, 352-353 Vexillatio 15, 366-367 Vexillum, -arius see Decorations, military Vicarius [t] 15, 390-391 Vigiles 15, 407-408 Vigiliae 15, 408 Volones 15, 506 Voluntarii 15, 515-516 War booty III. Rome 15, 559-560 War chariot II. Classical Antiquity 15, 561-562
War, consequences of II. Rome
Strategikon Strategos
Stratiotic property see Military lands Taktika [1] 14,118 Temonarius 14, 243 Themata, naval. 14, 423 Veterans III. Late Antiquity 15, 353-354
Warships
see Navies
5.7. Weapons, armour Antyx 1, 811
Armament
Armamentaria 2, 1 Armour 2, 16-17
Covinnus
601
15, 600-
5.6. Late antiquity Anonymus de rebus _ bellicis ie to Arithmos 1, 1156 Armament II. D. Late Empire 15, LOLI Armies III. C. Late antiquity 2, 12-13 Armour 2, 16-17 Bandum 2, 484 Bucellarii 2,799 Catapult D. Mechanical hand weapons 3, 12 Comitatenses 3, 620-621 Conscientious objection 3, 696697
Dux
4, 753-754
Exkoubitai 5, 269 Fire, Greek 6, 1227 Fortifications III. B. Principate and Late Antiquity 5, 504-505 Kataphraktoi 7, 32-33 Kletorologion 7, 69-70 Labarum 7, 130 Limitanei 7, 601-602 Magister equitum 8, 151-152
Magister militum 8, 152-154 Military lands 8, 899-900 Mutiny III. Principate and Late An-
tiquity 9, 379-380 Navies V. Late Antiquity
9, 565-
566
Nomos stratiotikos
9, 803-804
Onager [2] 10, 126 Opsikion 10, 172-173
Riparienses milites. 12, 595-596 Scholae Palatinae. 13, 67 Spatha see Sword
see War chariot
Catapult A. The invention of catapults 3, 9-10 > B. Hellenistic period 3, 10 » C,Rome 3, 50-22 >» E. Use and effect 3, 12-13 Chelone 3,210
7, 561-600
Media, Wall of 8, 552-553 Military camps 8, 896-897 Murus Gallicus
9, 316-317 Musculus see Chelone Onager [2] 10, 126 Pluteus [1] 11, 427 Polybolon see Catapult 11, 802
Sambyke [2] 12,924 Scorpion [2] 13, 102 Siegecraft 13, 440-445
Testudo 14, 318-319 Tortoise [3] see Siegecraft (with ill.) Vallum 15, 198 5,
1164-
Vinea
see Siegecraft (I. A. with
ill.)
1165
Lancearil
2, 1183-
1186
Preist construction
see War
Faleatae 5.423 Fire, Greek 6, 1227 Framea_ see Pilum Galea see Armour Gladius see Sword Hasta [1] Hasta, hastati. Helmet
Castra A. Military camp
Limes
Aspis_ see Shield Bow and arrow 2, 745-746 Catapult D. Mechanical hand weapons 3, 12 Clipeus [2] see Shield Corniculum, cornicularii 3, 837 Essedarius, Essedum chariot Falarica see Pilum
Aries [2] 1, 1080 Burgus 2, 828-829 Castellum [I 1] 2, 1178
Corax [2] see Siegecraft Fortifications 5, 499-505 Helepolis 6, 67-68
15, 1006-1011
15, 564-566
Warships see Navies Weapons VII. B. Rome
5.8. Fortifications and siegecraft
13, 870 13, 870-873
6, 111-115 7, 193-194
Manicae B. Arm protection 8, 237 Mitra [1] 9, 89
Parma [2] see Shield Peltastai ro, 715 Pelte see Peltastai Pharetra see Bow and arrow Pilum. 11, 259-260 Plumbata see Bow and arrow Praefectus [7] Praefectus classis
II, 754-755 Pugio see Armament Rhomphaia 12, 579 Rudis [2] 12, 750 Sarissa 12,998 Shield 13, 385-386
Slingers’ lead bullets 13, 544-545 Spatha see Sword Spiculum — see Pilum Staff sling 13,778 Sword 13,979-981 Tama [si 945) 017
Toxon see Bow and arrow Tribuli 14, 902 War chariot 15, 560-562 Weapons 15, 595-601
5.9. Army supplies and logistics Canabae
2, 1032
Commeatus
3, 626-627
Fabrica, fabricenses 5, 310-312 Frumentarii 5, 567 Horse IV. C. Use by the military and in games 6, 507-509 Impedimenta 6, 747-748 Logistics 7, 789-792
Mule C. Use in the military and for travel 9, 264 Pabulatores see Logistics Praefectus [8] Praefectus fabrum
II, 755
Rations II. Classical antiquity 12, 405-406
Stellatura see Commeatus Tabernaculum 14,79 Wagon, Chariot 15, 544-546 5.10. Maritime warfare Argyrologoi nees 1, 1075 Corvus [1] 3, 855 Epibatai 4, 1038 Hippegos 6, 341 Naval warfare 9, 557-559 Navies 9, 562-566 Pentekonter
10, 730-731
Praefectus [7] Praefectus classis
II, 754-755
Shipbuilding II. Phoenicia
13, 387-389
35
6.3. URBAN
Synteleia 14, 37-38 Themata, naval. 14, 423 Trierarchia 14, 918
Trireme
Warships
Polychromy 11, 506-509 Pornography IV. D. Art 11, 643 Pyrenean peninsula 3. Sculpture
14, 937-939
E25) 262—263
see Navies
>
4. Minor arts and artisanal handicrafts 12, 263
6. Archaeology
>»
6.1. ARCHAEOLOGY AND HISTORY OF ART: INTRODUCTION 6.2. THEORY OF ART, INTEREST IN ART 6.3. URBAN DEVELOPMENT AND INFRASTRUCTURE 6.4. ARCHITECTURE 6.5. ARCHAEOLOGY OF ROME AND ATHENS
Scythae 2. Grave goods 13, 155 Seven wonders of the world see Wonders of the world Sexuality III. Sexuality in literature andart 13, 375-376 Wonders of the world 15, 724-
6.1. Archaeology and history of art: introduction On archaeology and art cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 5: On museums cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.5. On excavations and finds cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.6. Cf. also Lists E.L. (Chronological table of classical archaeology)
5,94
» >
II. A. Definition 5, 102-103 II. B. Cultural/general 5, 103 >» TI.C. Art 5, 103-111 Germanic archaeology C. Roman imperial period 5, 807-808 Graeco-Bactria B. Archaeology
Hispania, Iberia V. Archaeology see Pyrenean peninsula Hoard finds I. Celto-Germanic area 6, 439-440 Iberian archaeology see Pyrenean peninsula La Téne Culture 7, 268-269 Late Antiquity II. Archaeology and 7, 261-268
Minoan culture and archaeology D. Art and archaeology 9, 16-23 Mycenaean culture and archaeology C. Art and material culture
9, 397-402 Nudity D. Art
9, 875-877
Paradeigma I. Conceptual and linguistic aspects
10, 500-501 II. In the context of commissioning 10, 501 Personification III. Figurative Art
>
10, 846-850
Phoenicians, Poeni 2. Architecture II,
> >
160-163
3.Sculpture 11, 163 4.Crafts 11, 163-165
INFRASTRUCTURE
Building authorities see Building trade Building committee see Building trade Building law 2, 808-809 Building trade 2, 810-817 Building, supervision of see Building trade Canalization 2, 1033-1037 Canals 2, 1037-1043 Capitolium II. General 2, 1072-
1073 Catacombs A. Function, architec-
725
15,731
Commerce IV. C. Marketplaces and commercial centres 3, 639-
Wood I. Dendrochronology
640
6.2. Theory of art, interest in art Aesthetics 1, 263-266 Anthropomorphism 1, 736-738 Archaism II. Archaeology 15, LOOI-1003 Art criticism see Art, theory of Art, interest in 2, 42-46 Art, theft of; Art collections see Art, interest in see Art, interest in
Artists 2, 75-81 Audacia see Art, theory of Decor(um) see Art, theory of Ekphrasis I. A. Greek 4, 872-875 Ekphrasis II. Archaeology 4, 877880
Ekphrasis 1. Introduction
4, 875-
876
>» >»
2.Epics 4, 876 3.Lyric poetry 4, 877
Elegantia
5,959
AND
ture, development 3, 3-4 Circus i. Architecture 3, 353-357 Cistern 3, 366-367
Art, trade in
Byzantium III. Art 2, 853-858 Christian archaeology see Byzan-
art
13, 9-10
Art, theory of 2, 46-50
Advertising 15, 978-979 Arras Culture 2, 21
tium III Etrusci, Etruria I. C. Sources
5. Pottery 12, 263-266 Sassanids III. F. Art and culture
DEVELOPMENT
see Art theory
Eroticism I]. Art 5, 44-51 Image Il 6, 738-740 Konnensbewuftsein 7, 77-78 Mannerism 8, 251 Signature, artist’s see Artists
Symmetria
see Art, theory of
6.3. Urban development and infrastructure Aequimelium 1, 235
Agora
1, 349-355
Amphitheatre 1, 608-613 Angaria 1, 693 Angiportum 1, 695 Appia aqua see Water pipes Aquaeductus see Water pipes Architectural inscriptions
I, [002-1003 Assembly buildings 2, 174-178 Basilica 2, 525-531
Baths 2, 553-557
Bouleuterion 2, 743 Bridge, Bridge construction —see Construction of roads and bridges
Curia [2] 4, 1199
Cursus publicus 3, 1022-1023 Dockyards 4, 584-585 Environment, Environmental behaviour 4, 1002-1008 Forma Urbis Romae_ 5, 496 Fortifications 5, 499-505 Forum I. Archaeology and urban studies 5, 510-519 Forum A. General 5, 523-524 Frontier II. The frontier as control system
6, 1228-1229
>
Ill. The frontier as habitat
>
IV. Frontier line and frontier
6,
1229-1230
area 6, 1230-1232 Funerary architecture 5, 587-606
Gardens 5, 692-698 Gates; porches 5, 706-709 Harbours, docks 5, 1135-1140
House
6, 537-549
Housing conditions 6, 553-556 Infrastructure 6, 801-805 Insula 6, 838-840 King’s Highway 7, 48 Latrines
7, 295
Library I. Library buildings 7, 498-503 Limes 7, 561-600 Limitation 7, 602-605 Macellum 8, 88-90 Mansio 8, 253
Markets see Agora Minoan culture and archaeology D. 1. Settlements 9, 16 Monumental columns 9, 191-195 Necropoleis 9, 593-608 Odeum 10, 31-32 Oppidum II. Celtic 1o, 166-169 Palace 10, 357-373 Parks see Gardens [2] Private sphere and public sphere 11, 878-881
Propylaea
see Gates; porches
Prytaneion
12,95
Roads and bridges, construction of
12, 647-653
6.3. URBAN
DEVELOPMENT
AND
36
INFRASTRUCTURE
Royal roads 12, 743-744 Scala see Stairs; Stairways Schola [3] 13, 64 Sewers see Canalization Siphon 13, 501 Stairs, Stairways 13, 780-782 Streets, layout of see Town planning Taxes 4. Construction projects
Amphiprostylos 1, 605 Amphitheatre 1, 608-613 Aquaeductus see Water pipes Assembly buildings 2, 174-178
Basilica
Baths
Temple 14, 245-261 Terminatio 14, 293-294 Thermae [1] Baths 14, 536-549 Toiletten see Latrines Town hall see Assembly buildings Town planning 14, 799-808 Town, city I. Definition 14, 808809
> II. The Ancient Near East and Egypt 14, 809-810 > III. Phoenicia 14, 810-811 > IJV. Etruria 14, 811-812 Traffic 14, 821-823 Triumphal arches 14, 948-953 Tunnels, Tunnel construction 15, 28-30
Urban development see Hippodamus Viae publicae 15, 373-380 Wall construction see Masonry
Water pipes 15, 574-575
2, 497-499
2, 525-531
2, 553-557
see Rostrum Castellum [I 3] 2, 1178-1179 Cenaculum 3, 100-101 Central-plan building 3, 118-122 Circus I. Architecture 3, 353-357 Colosseum 3, 580-581 Columbarium see Funerary architecture Comitium see Assembly buildings Dipteros
4, 530-532 Dockyards 4, 584-585 Dome, Construction of domes 4, 624-627 Funerary architecture 5, 587-606 Gates; porches 5, 706-709 Grave-mound see Funerary architecture Grotto 5, 1034-1035 Gymnasium I. Building style
5, 1050-1053 Heroon
see Funerary architec-
Water supply 15, 575-586 Wells 15, 621-627
ture House tomb
6.4. Architecture 6.4.1. INTRODUCTION
House
see Funerary architecture:G-1223
6.4.4. TECHNIQUES AND MATERIALS 6.4.5. BUILDING SYSTEMS AND ELEMENTS
On archaeology cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 5. On museums cf. CT index volume, Entry
Lesche
7, 295
Index 14.5. On excavations and
Library I. A. Definition > I. B. Greece 7, 498
finds cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.6. On architects of antiquity cf. Index of Persons 10.1.
Macellum 8, 88-90 Mastaba 8, 449
Architect 1, Architectural IOI Architecture Hellenization
999-1002
theory
1, 1008—
1, 1tor1—1023 I. C. Art and Archi-
tecture
6, 103-104
Ishtar Gate
6,959
Proportion I. Architecture 34
6.4.2. BUILDING TYPES Aedes 1, 167 Altar Tomb see Tombs
Altar 1, 543-549
Mausoleum
7, 498
7, 551
12, 32-
D. 2. Architecture
D.4. Burials
Rostrum 12, 741-742 Scala see Stairs; Stairways Schola [4] 13, 64-66 4
[5]
13, 66-67
Skeuotheke 13, 519-520 Spelunca 13,722 Stadion [3] 13, 777-778 Stairs, Stairways 13, 780-782 Stoa [1]
13, 842-846
Sublaqueum 13, 900 Synagogue 14, 13-16 Telesterion 14, 232-233 Temple tomb _ see Funerary architecture Temple 14, 245-261 Tetrastylos 14, 327 Theatre II. Architecture 14, 383nition
»
14, 536
[x] II. Architecture
14, 536-
544
Thermal baths see Thermae [1] Thesauros [1] 14, 556-557 Tholos 14, 591-593 Town hall see Assembly buildings Treasure house see Thesauros Triumphal arches 14, 948-953 Tropaea Augusti 14, 963 Tropaion 14, 963-964 Tumulus 15, 13-24
9, 16-17
15, 135 Villa 15, 410-420 Wells 15, 621-627 Ziggurrat 15, 931-932
9, 18
Monopteros — see Tholos Mosque
9, 233-234 Naiskos 9, 493-494 Nymphaeum I. Sanctuary
925
12, 121-122 Ptolemaeum 12, 129 Pyramidtomb 12, 251 Pyramid 12, 247-251 Quadrifrons see Triumphal arches
Ustrinum 8,774
Minoan culture and archaeology >»
Pseudoperipteros
Tunnels, Tunnel construction 15, 28-30
8, 501-503
Megaron 8, 605-606 Meta [2] C. Meta Sudans
6.4.1. INTRODUCTION
Propylaea see Gates; porches Prostylos 12, 61 Pseudodipteros 12, 116
390
7, 431
Lighthouses
11, 257-258
Thermae [1] I. Etymology and defi-
6, 637-638
Katagogeion see Assembly buildings Kenotaphion 7, 40-41 Labyrinth B. The labyrinth in the narrow sense 7, 139-140 Lararium 7, 244-245 Latrines
10, 804 ro, 936
6, 537-549
Hypogaeum
6.4.2. BUILDING TYPES 6.4.3. DECOR
Peristylion Pharos [1]
Pinacotheca 11, 260-261 Porticus 11, 656-657 Praetorium. 11, 775-776 Principia. 11, 863
Bema
14, 183-184
10, 566-570 10, 801-802
Pillar, monumental.
Atrium 2, 300-301 Bit Hilani 2, 676-677 Baptisterlum
Parthenon Peripteros
Obelisk 9, 940-941 Odeum 10, 31-32 Palace 10, 357-373 Palaistra 10, 382 Pantheon [2] 10, 467-468
9, 923-
6.4.3. DECOR Aeginetan Marbles 1, 194 Akroterion 1, 416 Ante 1, 718-719 Anthemion see Ornaments Anulus see Ornaments Apse I, 912-914
Architectural sculpture 1007
Boss
2, 734-736
1, 1003-
3
6.4. ARCHITECTURE
Buildings, decoration of see Ornaments Cannelure see Column Capital see Column Caryatids 2, 1148-1149
Building project planning — see Building trade Building trade 2, 810-817 Canals 2, 1037-1043 Cistern 3, 366-367 Console 3, 706-707 Construction drawing see Building trade Construction technique 3, 730-
6.4.5. BUILDING SYSTEMS AND EL-
Fornix
5, 498-499
EMENTS Aedicula 1, 168 Aithousa 1, 408 Akroterion 1, 416 Ala [x] 12, 417 Amphiprostylos 1, 605 Andron [4] 1, 686-687 Andronitis see Andron Angle triglyph problem 1, 695697 Ante 1, 718-719 Apodyterion — see Baths Apse 1, 912-914 Architrave see Epistylion Arena see Amphitheatre
Incrustation 6, 765-766 Krepis [1] 7, 104
Fresco
5, 550-551
Atrium
Lacunar 7,155 Lithostroton 7,725 Metope [1] 8, 814-815 Mosaic I. Phoenician-Punic
Heating 6, 27-29 Hypocaustum see Heating Hypogaeum 6, 637-638
Console 3, 706-707 Dolphin see Delphini 4, 227 Echinus [3] 4, 786 Egg-and-dart moulding 4, 840 Entasis 4, 996-997 Epistylion 4, 1149-1151 Fresco 5, 550-551
Frieze
Dockyards 4, 584-585 Emplekton see Masonry Fistula see Water-pipes
5, 557-558
Gable 5, 633-634 Geison 5, 720-721 Guttae 5, 1045-1046
Glass
9, 219 Optical Refinements.
10, 174-
175
Inclination 6, 764-765 Lifting devices 7, 546-548
Lime
7, 559-560
Strigilis [2] 13, 883 Stucco, Pargetting II. Classical Antiquity. 13, 889-890 Tainia [4] 14, 117-118
Thermae C. Decoration
14, 540
14,796
Triglyphos
see Masonry
Masonry 8, 434-440 Materiatio 8, 456-457 Murus Gallicus 9, 316-317
Optical Refinements.
175
Opus Africanum.
10, 174-
10, 179
Opus caementicium
to, 179-182 Orthostats 10, 266-267 Pavimentum 10, 655-657 Pitch 11, 303-305 Pons [1] see Roads and bridges, construction of Proportion I. Architecture 12, 32-
34 Quarries
Spira 13,739
14,920
Trochilos 14,957 Tyle [2] see Torus
Volute
5, 860-864
Maceria, Maceries
Ornaments I. Introduction 10, 223-224 » Ill. Greek Architecture 10, 229-230 » V. Hellenism and the Imperial Period 10, 231-234 Pavimentum 10, 655-657 Pigments. 11, 239-240 Pilaster. 11, 248 Polychromy 11, 506-509 Quadriga 12, 314-315 Refinements see Optical Refinements Regula 12, 450-451
Torus
740 Crusta, Crustae 3, 962 Curvature 3, 1027
15, 520
6.4.4. TECHNIQUES AND MATERIALS Anathyrosis 1, 648 Asphalt see Pitch Boss 2, 734-736 Bricks; Brick stamps 2, 763-766 Brickyards 2, 766-767
Bridge, Bridge construction see Construction of roads and bridges Building law 2, 808-809 Building materials see Construction technique Building plans see Building trade
12, 324-326 Refinements see Optical Refinements Reticulatum opus 12, 511 Roads and bridges, construction of 12, 647-653 Sewers see Canalization
Spolia [1] 13, 742-743
Stucco, Pargetting II. Classical Antiquity. 13, 889-890 Tector 14,210 Tegula_ see Bricks; Brick stamps Terebra see Tools Tools 14, 778-781 Tracing (in full size) 14, 819 Vaults and arches, construction of
15, 243-247
Wall construction see Masonry Water pipes 15, 574-575 Water-lifting devices IX. Archaeological evidence 15, 573-574 Waterworks 15, 586-587 Window II. Greece and Rome
15, 647-652
Wood
15, 726-731
2, 300-301 Aulaeum see Theatre Aulenas3 7 Bit Hilani 2, 676-677 Balbis 2, 472
Boss 2, 734-736 Caldarium see Baths Cannelure see Column Capital see Column Capitulum see Column Caryatids 2, 1148-1149 Cavea 3, 56 Cella 3, 70-71 Cenaculum 3, roo-101 Coffered ceiling see Lacunar Column basis see Column Column tomb see Funerary architecture (III. C.2.) Column 3, 586-598 Compluvium 3, 678 Console 3, 706-707 Crusta, Crustae
3, 962
Crypta, Cryptoporticus 3, 967 Cryptoporticus see Crypta, Cryptoporticus Culina 3, 978-979
Diaeta Door
4, 343-344 4, 671-672
Echinus [3] 4, 786 Eiwan see Liwan Entasis 4, 996-997 Epistylion 4, 1149-1151 Euthynteria 5, 237
Exedra
5, 261-262
Fornix
5, 498-499
Frieze 5, 557-558 Frigidarium see Baths Gable 5, 633-634 Geison 5, 720-721 Gramme_ 5, 987 Guttae 5, 1045-1046
Gynaikonitis 5, 1067 Housing conditions II. A. Architec-
ture 6, 553-554 Hypocaustum
see Heating
Hyposkenion see Theatre Igel Column see Monumental columns Impluvium 6,757
38
6.4. ARCHITECTURE
Kaminos
Triclinium 14, 915-916 Triglyphos 14, 920 Trochilos 14, 957
see Hearth
Kolossos 7, 87 Konistra 7, 93 Krepis [1] 7, 104
Tugurium
15, 2 Tyle [2] see Torus Vaults and arches, construction of
Laconicum _ see Baths Lacunar 7,155 Lithostroton 7,725
Liwan
15, 243-247
7,754
Meta [2] A. Definition >
8,773
[2] B. Meta in the Roman circus
8,774 Metope [1]
8, 814-815
Monumental columns Mutulus 9, 380
9, 191-195
Narthex [4] 9, 515 Opaeum 10, 149-150 Opisthodomos see Temple Optical Refinements.
10, 174-
175
Orchestra see Theatre Orthostats 10, 266-267 Palaistra 10, 382 Pastas 10, 590-591 Pavimentum I. Introduction 10, 655-656
> >
II. Terminology 10, 656 III. Local peculiarities 10, 656-
657 Peristasis
1o, 803-804 Peristylion 10, 804 Pilaster. 11, 248 Piscina [2] 11, 294 Pluteus [3] 11, 427 Praefurnium. 11, 763 Pronaos_ see Temple Prostas
see House (II. B.2.)
Prothyron 12, 68-69 Pteron see Temple Puteale 12,234 Quadriga 12, 314-315 Refinements see Optical Refinements Regula 12, 450-451 Roofing 12, 731-734 Sarcophagus 12, 968-978 Scala see Stairs; Stairways Schola [1] 13, 64
> [2] 13, 64 > [3] 13,64 Sima. 13, 477-478 Skene, scaena
13, 518-519
Spacing, interaxial.
13, 687-688
Spina [1] 13, 737
Strigilis [2] 13, 883 Stucco, Pargetting II. Classical Antiquity. 13, 889-890 Stylobate 13, 893-894 Synhedrion III. Architecture 14, 28
Tainia [4]
14,
117-118
Tepidarium see Baths Thalamos 14, 359 Toiletten see Latrines Torus
Tower
Vestibulum see House II. D.1. Via 5539 67 Viergottersteine 15, 406-407 Volute 15, 520 Window 15, 647-652 Xystos 15, 844
6.5. Archaeology of Rome and Athens Aequimelium 1, 235 Ager Vaticanus 1, 331 Amphitheatrum Flavium see Colosseum Aqua Marcia 1, 921-922 Ara Pacis Augustae 1, 951-953 Arco di Portogallo 1, 1034 Arcus I, 1034-1039 Argiletum 1, 1062-1063 Athens [1] Il. Topography 2, 253Dy) Atrium Libertatis 2, 301 Atrium Vestae 2, 301-302 Basilica Aemilia 2, 532 Basilica Argentaria 2, 532-533 Basilica Constantiniana 2, 533 Basilica Fulvia 2, 533-534 Basilica Hilariana 2, 534 Basilica Iulia 2, 534 Basilica Neptuni 2, 535 Basilica Opimia 2, 535 Basilica Paulli 2, 535-536 Basilica Porcia 2, 536 Basilica Sempronia 2, 536 Caelius Mons [1] 2, 895-896 Callichoron see Athens Campus Agrippae 2, 1028 Campus Martius
Capitol see Capitolium I Capitolium I. Capitol 2, 1071-
1073 Circus Flaminius see Circus Circus Maximus see Circus Clivus Capitolinus 3, 456 Clivus Publicius 3, 456-457 Cloaca maxima 3, 457 Colosseum 3, 580-581 Colossus Neronis 3, 582 Columna [1] Antonini Pii. see Columns, monumental >»
[2] Maenia.
>
[3] Marci Aurelii Antonini.
>
[4] Minucia.
3, 599
33599
3, 599
> [s]Phocae. 3, 599 >
[6] Rostrata M. Aemilii Paulli.
> >
[7] Rostratae Augusti. [8] Traiani. 3, 599
14,796
14, 798-799
2, 1028-1029
3,599
3, 599
Domus Augustana see Mons Palatinus Domus Aurea 4, 652-655 Domus Laterani 4, 655 Domus Tiberiana see Mons Palatinus Domus transitoria
4, 655-656 Esquiliae 5, 68-69 Forum JII. Roman forums 5, 521-
530
Horologium (Solare) Augusti 6, 499 Horti Agrippinae, Horti Caesaris see Gardens laniculum 6, 674-675 Kerameikos
7, 41-42
Lacus Curtius 7, 157 Loretum 7, 815
Lysicrates monument Maenianum
see Athens
8, 117-118
Mausoleum Augusti
8, 503-504
Mausoleum Hadriani 8, 504-505 Meta [2] C. Meta Sudans 8,774 Mons Aventinus
Mons Palatinus
9, 175-176
9, 179-180
Mons Quirinalis Mons Testaceus Monte Testaccio
9,
180-181
9, 181 see Mons Testa-
ceus Munichia _ see Peiraeus Olympieum _ see Athens Parthenon 10, 566-570 Piazza Armerina I. General
II, 229-230 Pnyx
II, 436
Pons [3] Pons Aelius; Pons Aemi-
lius; Pons Agrippae; Pons Aurelius; Pons Milvius; Pons Sublicius; Pons Valentinianus BIE 587
Porta Triumphalis. 11, 654-655 Propylaea_ see Gates; porches Pythium [1] 12, 295 Regia 12, 436 Regium atrium _ see Regia
Rome III. Topography and Archaeology of the City of Rome 12, 702-725 Saepta
12, 864
Schola [3]
13, 64
> [4] 13, 64-66 > [5] 13, 66-67 Senaculum 13, 259 Septizodium. 13, 296-297 Subura. 13, 907 Tabularium 14, roo Tarpeium Saxum 14, 147 Templum Pacis 14, 266 Theatrum Balbi 14, 399-400 Theatrum Marcelli 14, 400 Theatrum Pompei(i) 14, 400-401 Trajan’s Column see Forum [III 9] Traiani Velabrum 15, 258 Velia [3] 15, 261
ay)
7.2. PAINTING
Viminalis 15, 425 Zea see Athens Zoster
Cult Facade 3, 989 Cult image I. Ancient Orient
see Attica [1]
7. History of art, material culture 7.1. SCULPTURE 7.2. PAINTING 7.3. Mosaics . GEM CUTTING 7.5. ORNAMENTS 7.6. POTTERY
7.7. HOUSEHOLD EQUIPMENT 7.8. CLOTHING 7.9. JEWELLERY
3, 989-991
II. Phoenicia 3, 991 III. Greece and Rome 3, 991996 Cypselus chest 3, 1083-1085 Discobolus see Victor statues Discus of Phaestus 4, 541-542 Eclecticist sculpture see Sculpture Egyptizing Sculpture see Sculpture Eidolon [1] 4, 855 Eroticism II. D. Representations
5) 47-51
On art cf. CT index volume,
Entry Index 5. On museums cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.5. On excavations and finds cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.6. Cf. also Lists E.II. (Chronological table of classical archaeology). On sculptors, painters and potters of antiquity cf. Index of Persons 10.2. 7.1. Sculpture Aeginetan Marbles 1, 194 Agalma 1, 304 Akrolithon 1, 416 Akroterion 1, 416 Alexander Sarcophagus 1, 494Alexandrinian Relief see Relief Anadoumenos 1, 633 Anathema 1, 648 Ancestor portraits see Imagines Andrias_ see Sculpture Aphrodisias School of sculpture.
Frontality 5, 562 Gold-ivory technique 5, 920-923 Gold I. General 5, 912-916 > II. Historical overview 5, 916-
919
Grave relief see Relief Grylloi 5, 1037 Gypsum 5, 1068-1069 Hermai see Herms Hermathena, Hermeracles Herms 6, 240-241
Fhe PANS)
Marble sculptures 8, 292-293 Marble VI. Techniques of working 8, 287-288
VIII. Use
see Victors’ sta-
IX. Ideological aspects 8, 289291 Metrological Relief see Relief Modell _ see Sculpting, technique of Monumental columns 9, 191-195 Paradeigma II. In the context of commissioning 10, 501 Parthenon IV. Sculpture 10, 569-
>
Cippus 3, 347 Clipeus[1] 3, 454-455
Portraits 11, 661-665 Proportion II. Sculpture
see Monumen-
tal column 3, 766-768 Corinthian alloy 3,791 Corinthium aes see Corinthian alloy
Copies
570 Pasticcio
10, 591-592
Ll; 506-507
om)
7.2. Painting Book illustration 2, 727-729 Caricature 2, 1104-1106 Catacombs B. Paintings in cata-
combs 3, 4-5 Compendiariae 3, 673 Contour see Painting Encaustic (painting) 4, 962 Fresco 5, 550-551 Grave paintings
5, 996-997
see Book illustration
Landscape painting
7, 198-200 Late Antiquity II. D. Painting and mosaics 7, 266 Lomentum [2] 7, 806-807
Marble, paintings on
8, 291-292 Monochromata 9, 164-165 Mummy portraits 9, 281-283 Nimbus. [3] 9, 763-766 Painters (female) 15, 717-718 Painting
10, 348-355
Paintings of historical subjects.
Personification III. E. Hellenistic Period ro, 849 > III. F. Roman Republic and the Imperial Period 1o, 849-850 Polychromy I. Introduction III. Sculpture
15, 406-407 Votive relief see Relief Wax 15, 587 Wood C. Wood as a material in sculpture 15, 727-728 Xoanon 15, 840
Illustration
8, 288-289
tues Ara of Domitius see Architectural sculpture Archaistic sculpture see Sculpture Architectural sculpture 1, 10031007 Branchidae 2,749 Bronze casting see Sculpting, technique of Bronze founders see Artists Bucolic relief see Relief Busts 2, 835-837 Campana Reliefs see Relief Chryselephantine technique see Gold-ivory technique
Colossal columns
6, 211
Historical reliefs 6, 411-415 Idols see Cult image Imagines maiorum A. Term 6, 741 Ivory carvings 6, 1153-1155 Kolossos 7, 87 Kouros, Kouroi see Sculpture Laocoon group 7, 226-227 Late Antiquity II. E. Sculpture
>»
13, 471-475
Solium [3] 13, 618 Sphyrelaton 13,736 Statue 13, 804-807 Stele 13, 817-819 Symplegma 14,9 Tabula Iliaca 14, 93 Terracottas 14, 301-305 Theke 14, 422 Toreutics 14, 785-789 Tyle [2] see Torus Urkundenrelief see Relief II. Greece and Rome A. Techniques and areas of application Victor statues 15, 398-399 ViergOttersteine
>
18% (0610)
Apoxyomenos
> >
Sculptor 13, 130-131 Sculpture 13, 132-143 Severe style [2] 13, 357 Sigillum — see Seals Silver hoards 13, 476-477 Silver II. Historical overview
11, 508-509 12, 34-
Quadriga 12, 314-315 Relief 12, 456-463 Sarcophagus 12, 968-978 Sculpting, technique of 13, 127130
10, 355-357
Paradeigma II. In the context of commissioning 10, 50% Personification III. E. Hellenistic Period 10, 849 > III. F. Roman Republic and the Imperial Period 10, 849-850 Perspective ro, 851-853 Pigments. 11, 239-240 Pinax [6] 11, 265-266 Polychromy 11, 506-509 Pompeian wall paintings see Wall paintings Purpurissum 12, 233
Scenography 13, 53-54
40
7.2. PAINTING
Severe style [2]
13, 357 Silhouette painting see Skiagraphia Skiagraphia 13, 520-521 Still lives. 13, 837-839 Tafelgemalde see Painting Triumphal paintings 14, 953-954 Vase paintings see Pottery
Wall paintings
15, 546-555
7.3. Mosaics Alexander Mosaic
1, 486-490 Emblemata see Mosaic Intarsia 6, 841-842 Late Antiquity II. D. Painting and mosaics 7, 266 Mosaic 9, 219-226 Nile Mosaic 9, 760-761
Opus sectile, tessellatum, vermiculatum see Mosaic Pavimentum 10, 655-657 Pebble mosaic see Mosaic Personification III. E. Hellenistic Period 10, 849 > III. F. Roman Republic and the Imperial Period 10, 849-850 Piazza Armerina III. Mosaics
OEE
Preparatory drawing
see Inscrip-
tions III.D.
7.4. Gem cutting Gem cutting 5, 730-736 Gems, Gemand cameo cutters
see
Gem cutting Intaglio see Gem cutting Ivory carvings III. Greece and Rome 6,
TL54-1155
Seals II. Classical antiquity
13, 174-176
Sphragis 13, 735-736 Tazza Farnese
14, 191-192
7.5. Ornaments Anthemion 1, 722-723
Anulus see Ornaments Appliqués (pottery) 1, 902 Astragalos [1] see Ornaments Brattea
2,752
Buildings, decoration of see Ornaments Clavus 3, 411 Console 3, 706-707 Cup-palmette 15, 1023 Egg-and-dart moulding 4, 840 Enamel 4, 961-962 Fascia see Ornaments Kymation 7, 117 Meander [1] 8, 527-528 Ornamenta triumphalia _ see Triumph, Triumphal procession Ornaments 10, 223-234 Oscillum. 10, 276 Palmette see Ornaments Strigilis [2] 13, 883
Running dog see Ornaments Swastika 13, 975-976 Tendril ornament see Ornaments Textile art 14, 338-340 Tragelaphos 14, 835 Vase decoration
see Ornaments
7.6. Pottery 7.6.1. VESSEL NAMES AND FORMS 7.6.2. PAINTED CLAY VESSELS 7.6.3. UNPAINTED CLAY VESSELS, RELIEF POTTERY 7.6.1. VESSEL NAMES AND FORMS
Potters
11, 708-710
Pottery, shapes and types of
II, 732-740 Pottery
11, 711-724
Psykter Pyxis
12, 125 12, 300-301
Rhyton 12, 584-586 Samia vasa 12,925
Severe style [2] 13, 357 Situla 13, 516-517 Skyphos 13, 523 Stamnos 13,783 Stirrup Jar. 13, 842 Trozella see Nestoris Urn 15, 126-128
[1] 7, 378-379 Acetabulum 1, 69 Alabastron 1, 419 Amphora [1] 1, 614-615 Aryballos [2] 2, 86 Askos [2] 2, 163 Astragalos [3] 2, 193 Catinus [1] 3, 19 Cinerary Urn see Urn Concha 3, 679 Cup 3, 1003 Depas 4, 306 Dinos 4, 422
Dolium 4, 618 Exaleiptron 5, 253 Faience 5, 319-320 Glaze 5, 873-874 Hydria 6, 599-600 Impasto
6,747
Kalpis see Pottery, shapes and types of Kemai 7, 39-40 Keras [2] 7, 42
Kernos
7, 44
Kothon _ see Vessels, shapes and
types of Kotyle [1] Krater
Kyathos [1] see Pottery, shapes and types of Kylix 7, 116-117 Lagynos 7,174 Lakaina 7, 176-177 Lasimus Krater 7, 259 Loutrophoros 7, 824-825 Mastos _ see Pottery, shapes and types of 9, 325-326
Oinochoe | see Pottery, shapes and types of Olpe see Pottery, shapes and types of Omphalos bowl _ see Phiale Patella
see Patera, Patella
Patera, Patella. 10, 598-599 Pelike see Amphora [1]
Pilgrim flasks. Pinax [6]
11, 248
11, 265-266 Pithos 11, 306-307 Potter’s wheel. 11, 711
179 Choes pitchers [CP]
3, 240
Corinthian vases 3, 792-796 Darius Crater 4, 93-94 Daunian vases 4, Io5—I06 Droop cups see Little-master
cups
see Skyphos
7, 102-103
Mushroom-lipped jug Nestoris. 9, 685
7.6.2. PAINTED CLAY VESSELS 1, 598-599 Apulian vases 1, 918-919 Astarita Crater 2, 189 Bichrome ware 2, 639 Bilingual vases 2, 646 Black-on-red ware 2, 685 Boeotian vase painting see Geometric vase painting Boread Painter see Laconian vase painting Cabiri ceramics see Vase painting, black-figured Caeretan hydriae 2, 899-900 Campanian vases 2, 1026-1027 Canosa Vases 2, 1058 Centuripe vases 3, 128 Chalcidian vase painting 3, 178-
Amphiaraus Crater
E Group 4, 844 East Greek pottery 4, 769-772 Eurytius Crater 5, 222
Fish-plate
5, 442-443
Geometric pottery
5, 777-780
Gnathia ware 5, 882-883 Group R_ 5, 1035-1036 Horse head amphorae 6, 511 Kalos inscriptions Kemai 7, 39-40
7,
Kertsch ware
7, 44-45
Komast cups
7, 88
Laconian vase painting 148 Lasimus Krater
11-13
7, 147-
7, 259
Leagrus group 7, 332 Little-master cups 7, 729-730 Lucanian vases 7, 828-829 Mannerists 8, 251
Marine Style see Pottery Messapian pottery 8, 758-759 Minyan Ware _ see Pottery Naiskos vases. 9, 494 Nestor Cup. 9, 683-684
41
7.7. HOUSEHOLD EQUIPMENT
Orientalizing vase painting. IO, 206-208
Owl Pillar Group 10, 307-308 10, 336-337 Palace style see Pottery Panathenaic prize amphorae.
Teano Ware 14, 192 Terra Sigillata 14, 296-300
Lanx
Transport amphorae
Lighting 7, 551-553
14, 859-864
Paestan ware.
10, 429-430
Peucetian pottery.
10, 888-889 Phlyax vases. 11, 136 Pontic Vases. 11, 591-592 Portland Vase 11, 657-660 Pottery 4. Figurative decoration Lt, JLS—-72u
Proto-Corinthian vases 12, 69-70 Pseudo-Chalcidian vases Lie Ba Red slip ware 12, 430 Red Swan Group
see Xenon group Red-figured vase painting.
12, 430-433
Rhodian vases
see East Greek pot-
tery
Samaria ware. 12, 915 Siana cups 13, 410 Sicilian vases 13, 417
South Italian vases
13, 681-683
Teano Ware 14, 192 Transitorial Style see Corinthian
vases Trozella see Nestoris Tyrrhenian amphorae 15, 68-69 Underworld, vases featuring the na ees ao Vase decoration see Ornaments Vase painters 15, 229-231 Vase painting, black-figure 5, 231-238
see Pottery Vase paintings Vases, iconography of see Pottery Lia Ae
West Slope Ware 15, 627-628 White-ground pottery 15, 629631
Xenon Group
15, 818-819
Linen, flax II. Ancient Near East
7.7. Household equipment On agrarian tools cf. Subject Index 2.2.4.2. Abacus
1, -1
Acerra
1, 66
Alveus [1] 1, 552-553 Arca 1, 965-966 Armarium 2, I Askos [1] 2, 163
Astragalos [2] 2, 192-193 Balantion see Purse Bed see Kline Blanket 2, 687 Candela see Lighting Candelabrum see Lighting Cane, club, stick 15, tor5—-1016 Canistrum 2, 1049 Catinus [1]
3, 19
Chamber pot 3, 186 Chests 3, 216-217 Chous [1] 3, 252 Cingulum [2] see Belt G@istama nao Cochlear(e) [2] see Cutlery Comb 3, 601-602 Cradle 4, 1195
Crockery 3, 951-953
RELIEF POTTERY Amphora stamps A. Purpose and use
I, 615-616
Black-glaze ware 15, 1013 Bucchero 2, 798-799 Calenian Pottery 2,952 Everyday crockery 5, 249-250 Figurine vases
5, 425-426
Homeric cups see Relief ware L‘Atelier des Petites Estampilles see Stamped ware Megarian cups _ see Relief ware Patella see Patera, Patella Patera, Patella. 10, 598-599
Phiale x1, 1-2 Pyxis 12, 300-301 Relief ware 12, 463-467 Rhyton 12, 584-586 Stamped ware. 13, 783-785
552
Kalathos
7, 8
Kanoun
7, 17
Karchesion [2] 7, 23 Katoptron see Mirror Kline 7, 70-71 Klismos 7,71 Knives 7, 72-73 Konopion 7, 93
Labronios 7, 137 Labrum 7, 137-138 Lamp 7, 184-186
Mortar 9, 215-216 Mortarium see Mortar
Nails 9, 493
Narthex [2] 9, 514-515 Nimbus. [1] 9, 763 Novacula see Razor Onos 10, 143 Orarium to, 189 Peniculus 10,724 Pera 10, 738 Perirrhanterion 10, 803 11, 274-283
Plaga is 35 Plate srs Pluteus 11, 427-428 Praenestine cistae. 11, 765-766 Purse 12, 233-234 Razor 12, 413 Repositorium. 12, 502 Rudis [rt] 12,750 Rug 12, 758-760 Sabanum 12, 805 Salinum 12, 888 Scissors 13, 96-97 Seat 13, 180-181
Sella curulis Sella
Sigma
13, 230-231
see Litter, Sedan chair
13, 448-449
Simpuvium
6, 549-
Housing conditions II. C. Fixtures
6, 554-555
8, 255 Mappa _ see Mantellum Marble VIII. Use 8, 288-289 Marsup(p)ium — see Purse Matella see Chamber pot Matta 8, 485-486 Mattress 8, 492 Mazonomon 8, 524 Mensa see Table Mirror 9, 56-58 Money boxes 9, 144-145 Monopodium 9, 169
Pins
Culter 3, 988 Curtain 4, 1200 Cushion 3, 1028 Cutlery 3, 1030-1032 Delphica 4, 226 Depas 4, 306 Diphros 4, 527 Dolls 4, 619 Ephedrismos 4, 1022 Epinetron 4, 1114 Fer(i)culum 5, 382-383 Filter 5, 426 Follis [1] 5, 489 Footstool 5, 493-494 Fulcrum see Kline Funale see Lighting Furniture 5, 620-624 Hearth 6, 26-27 Household equipment
7, 619-620
Litter, Sedan chair 7, 727-728 Lock, Key 7, 766-769 Loculi 7,779 Mantica
» [3] 5, 489-490 7.6.3. UNPAINTED CLAY VESSELS,
7,224
Mebesia7g42
13, 492 Situla 13, 516-517 Situlus see Situla Skaphe 13, 517-518 Solium [1] 13, 618 >»
[2]
13,618
Sponge II. Hygiene and medicine
13, 743-744 Spoons. 13,745 Sports equipment. Sportula 13,765
13, 795-756
Stragulum — see Blanket Strigilis 13, 883-884 Stroma see Blanket Subsellium 13, 904 Table utensils 14, 87-89 Table 14, 80-81
42
7.7. HOUSEHOLD EQUIPMENT Tabula 14, 90-91 Tapes see Rug Textile art 14, 338-340 Throne III. Graeco-Roman Antiquity 14, 628-629 Thymiaterion 14, 647-648 Tintinnabulum 14, 720-721 Torch see Lighting Trapeza_ see Delphica Trapezophoron see Table utensils Triclintum 14, 915-916
Tripod 14, 932-934 Urn
15, 126-128
Wineskin
15, 670
Wood K. Furniture
see Furniture
7.8. Clothing Abolla [1] 1, 24-25 Anaxyrides 1, 663 Arbyle see Shoes Barbaron Hyphasmata
2, 504-
505
Bathing costume 2, 553 Belts 2, 591-593 Blanket 2, 687 Blaute see Sandals Calceus 2, 934 Caliga see Shoes Ceremonial dress 3, 148-149 Chiton 3, 234-235 Chlaina 3, 235 Chlamys 3, 235-236 Clavus 3, 411 Clothing 3, 472-481 Coae Vestes 3, 491-492 Coloured weaving see Textile art Cosmetics 3, 862-863 Cothurnus 3, 875-876 Dalmatica 4, 47-48 Dress regulations see Clothing Embas_ see Shoes Endromis see Shoes Epiblema 4, 1038
Fan
5, 349-350
Fasciae
5, 360
Festival dress 5, 395-396 Fibula 5, 410 Fimbriae 5, 427
Follis [3] 5, 489-490
Gallica see Shoes Hair-net see Wig Hairstyle II. Greece and Italy
5, 1099-1104
Hat see Clothing Headgear 6, 18-20 Helmet 6, 111-115 Himation see Pallium Kalasiris 7, 8 Kampyle 7, 15 Karbatine 7, 20 Kausia 7, 38 Kekryphalos 7, 39 Kemos
7, 40
Kosymbe 7, 100 Kredemnon 7, 103
7.9. Jewellery Amulet A. Ancient Orient
Krepis [2] 7, 104 Lacerna 7, 142 Laena 7, 167 Lakonikai 7, 177
Limbus
Amulet B. Egypt 1, 620 Bracelets 2, 747-748
7, 559
Lomentum [1] 7, 806 Luna [2] 7, 882
Manicae 8, 237-238 Mantellum 8, 253-254 Mastruca 8, 452 Mitra [1] 9, 89
Brattea
2,752
Bulla see Ages Crepundia 3, 931 Diadema 4, 335-336 Ear ornaments
4, 765-767
Finger ornaments see Jewellery Foot ornaments see Jewellery Gold I. General 5, 912-916 > II. Historical overview 5, 916-
Mourning dress 9, 246-247 Narthex [3] 9, 515 Nimbus. [2] 9, 763 Nodus _ see Hairstyle Official dress II. Classical Antiquity see Ceremonial dress Pacnulas 10, 433 Palla see Pallium Pallium. 10, 400 Paludamentum. 10, 408-409 Paragaudes 10, 512 Pecten see Comb Pedum [1] 10, 677-678
Jewellery
6,
Luna [2]
7, 882
Peplos [1] 10, 736-737
Ring
Perizoma Petasos
10, 804-805
11, 274-283
Polos
919 Horned crown Inaures
11, 493-494
Probolion rr, 894 Recta 12, 428 Sagum 12, 867
Sakkos 12, 874 Sandals 12, 951-952 Shoes 13, 404-407 Soccus 13, 560 Stola 13, 857 Strophium 13, 885
>
ning 14, 342-344
IL C. Weaving and the loom
14, 344-345 Tiara
14, 652-653
Toga
14, 753-754
Trabea [1] Tribon
14, 818
14, 901
Tunica
15, 28 Umbrella, Parasol 15, 92-93 Underwear see Clothing
Wig
15, 633
Wreath, Garland Zeira
15, 762-764
15, 880
Zone [t]
see Belts II.
1189-1196
see Neck ornaments Neck ornaments 9, 591-592 Pearl 10, 662-664 Periskelis 10, 803 Pins
11, 274-283
12, 594-595
Silver II. Historical overview
13, 471-475 Tainia
14, 117-118
Tettix [2] 14, 329-330 Torques 14, 790-791
8. Pre- and protohistory 8.1. PRE-ROMAN ITALY (EXCLUDING ETRUSCANS) 8.2. ETRUSCANS
8.3. EARLY GREECE 8.4. PHOENICIANS/CARTHAGINIANS 8.5. CELTS, GERMANS, IBERIANS AND CELTIBERIANS 8.6. OTHERS
On archaeology and art cf. Subject Index 6. and 7. On classical
Subligaculum. 13, 900-901 Swaddling Clothes 13, 972 Tainia 14, 117-118
Tarantinon 14, 138 Textile art 14, 338-340 Textiles, production of II. B. Spin-
6, 496
see Ear ornaments
Monile
10, 864
Phenake see Wig Phrygian cap see Headgear Phylakterion «1, 205-208 Pilleus 11, 258 Pilos 11, 258-259 Pins
1, 619-
620
archaeology and ancient art cf. CTindex volume, Entry Index 5. 8.1. Pre-Roman Italy (excluding Etruscans)
Ausonian Culture 2, 392 Copper VI. Copper deposits and smelting methods 3, 771-772 Este Culture 5,75 Fibula 5, 410 Fortifications 1. Prehistory 5, 500 » 2. Sicily and Magna Graecia 5, 500-501 >
4 Latium:
's2 500
»
5. Central and South Italy 5, 501-502 6. Sardinia’ 55502 Golasecca culture 5, 911-912 Hoard finds II. Italy 6, 440 House Il. C. Early Italic and Etruscan houses 6, 544 Impasto
6,747
43
8 -4. PHOENICIANS/CARTHAGINIANS
Iron B.3 Italy 6, 941-942 Italia I. D. Pre-Roman peoples
6, 996-997
Pins VI. Italy 1x, 28x Pottery d) Italian region 11, 723 Praenestine cistae. 11, 765-766 Rome III. B. Bronze and Iron Age (Latial Period), c. 1400-700 BC.
12, 703-704 Situla I. Italic, Celtic and Germanic
13, 516 Temple V. B. Etruscan-Italian area 14, 256-257 Terramare culture 14, 305 Toreutics III. A. The Bronze Age and the rst half of the rst Millennium BC
14, 787
Tumulus 15, 13-24 Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Weapons V. Iron Age Italy 15, 598-599
9, 824-825
Olla. 10, 90 Ostrich eggs. 10, 290-291 Partunu. 10, 581 Pottery d) Italian region 11, 723 Pulena 12, 195 Sarcophagus II. Etruscan
12, 973-
974 Saties sins e13 Tarchna [2] 14, 143 Temple V. B. Etruscan-Italian area
1, 87-88
812
Tumulus 15, 13-24 Turms 15, 35 Unies ser Wall paintings IV. Etruria
899 Dead, cult of the III. Etruria
4, 112-113 Etrusci, Etruria II. Archaeology 5, 102-113 Fibula 5, 410 Fortifications 3. Etruria 5, 501 Fufluns 5, 573 Funerary architecture 1. Etruscan
5, 599-600 Grave offerings see Etrusci Hairstyle II. C. Etruria 5, 1102 6, 279
House II. C. Early Italic and Etruscan houses 6, 544 Hulchnie 6, 556 6,747
Iron B.3 Italy 6, 941-942 Italia I. D. Pre-Roman peoples 6, 996-997 Ivory carvings II. Etruria 6, 1154 Laran 75 244 Lasa 7, 258-259
Remie™ 74374 Liber linteus 7, 493 Limitation I. Etruscan prerequisites 7, 602-603
8, 493
Metallurgy I. B. Etruria
8, 779-
780
Micali Painter
12, 480-481
»
VII. Mycenaean culture
Sea Peoples, migration of 13,
166-169
Stirrup jar.
13, 842 Tumulus 15, 13-24 Wall paintings III. Minoan-Mycenaean culture 15, 547-549
period 15, 596-597 Woman I. Ancient Orient, Egypt
and Iran
Woman II. Greece and Rome
Necropoleis VII. Etruria
8.3. Early Greece Aegean Koine
1, 174-187
Agriculture IV. A. Mycenae and Dark Age 1, 379 Attica [1] B. Prehistoric period
2, 314
15, 693-697
9, 602-
8.4. Phoenicians/Carthaginians Baliares B. Early history 2, 473 Bichrome ware 2, 639 Cistern III. Phoenician-Punic region
3, 367 Colonization III. Phoenician colonization 3, §71-573 Commerce II. Phoenicia
>»
[1] C. Mycenaeanera 2, 314317 Bichrome ware 2, 639 Cypriot Archaeology see Cyprus Faience 5, 319-320 Fibula 5, 410 Funerary architecture 1. CretanMycenaean 5, 595 Gem cutting 1. Minoan-Mycenaean (c. 2600—-c. 1050 BC)
5,732 Grotto
5, 1034-1035 Helmet B. Early evidence 6, r11rein Horse II. Range and domestication of wild horses 6, 501-502 Infrastructure V. Bronze Age 6, 803-804
Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Macedonia, Macedones VI. Ar-
chaeology
8, 72-79
Magna Graecia II. B. Mycenaean
Cult image II. Phoenicia 3, 991 Cup-palmette 15, 1023 Faience 5, 319-320 Fibula 5, 410 Funerary architecture III. A. Phoenician-Punic 5, 593-595 Gem cutting II. Phoenician
55 730-731 Jewellery III. Phoenicia
6, 11911192 Masks I. Phoenicia 8, 428-431 Mauretania IV. Archaeology 8, 496-497 Mosaic I. Phoenician-Punic
9, 219 Navigation II. Phoenicia 9, 567 Necropoleis III. Phoenician-Punic
Culture
9, 593-594
Opus Africanum. 10, 179 Ostrich eggs. 10, 290-291 Pavimentum IV. Pavimenta Poenica 10, 657
and pre-colonial traditions
Phoenicia
8,
Phoenician
166-167
Megaron
see Phoenicians, Poeni
11, 148
Phoenicians, Poeni
8, 605-606
Metallurgy Il. A. Cyprus
8, 778-
11, 148-169
Pins III. Phoenician-Punic culture II, 276
Minoan culture and archaeology 9, 12-23 Mycenae I. Mycenaean period
9, 385
Mycenaean culture and archaeolOZY
3, 634-
636
WUE
8, 849
Mirror II. Etruscan 9, 57 Music V. A. Etruria 9, 344-345 Musical instruments VI. Etruria, Rome 9, 362-363 604
(UTE te 64 Religion VI. Minoan culture
Weapons II. Minoan-Mycenaean
15, 701-706
tion 3, 576-577
Matunas
10, 364-365
12, 481-482
Templum 14, 265-266 Toreutics III. A. The Bronze Age and the rst half of the rst Millennium BC 14, 787 Town, city IV. Etruria 14, 811-
2, 1083
Commerce III. Etruria 3, 636-638 Crafts, Trade IV. Etruria 3, 897-
Impasto
naean palaces
Pins II. Cyprus 11, 275-276 >» V.Greece 11, 277-280 Pottery a) Cretan-Mycenaean cul-
Ay 215O25 7)
Colonization V. Etruscan coloniza-
Hescanas
Necropoleis V. Bronze Age Greece 9, 596-598 Palace IV. B. Minoan and Myce-
15, 549-550
8.2. Etruscans Acheruntici libri
Caput Oli
Nortia.
9, 391-402
Pottery g) Phoenician Period I1, 717-718
Punic archaeology ans, Poent
ReSep
Reshef
12, 415
see ReSep
see Phoenici-
44
8.4. PHOENICIANS/CARTHAGINIANS
Sarcophagus III. Phoenician
12, 974-975
Shipbuilding II. Phoenicia 13, 387-389 Silver II. B. Phoenicia 13, 472 Stele II. Phoenicia. 13, 818 Stucco, Pargetting III. Carthage. Temple IV. Phoenicia Throne II. Phoenicia
14, 249 14, 628
Thymiaterion II. Phoenicia
787 Town, city III. Phoenicia
14, 786-
14, 810—
811
Tree of life. 14, 887-888 Weapons III. Phoenician-Carthaginian region 15, 597 8.5. Celts, Germans, Iberians and Celtiberians Agriculture II. Celtic-Germanic
1, 376-377
Amber III. Celtic-Germanic early history and Roman period
I, 567 2, 21
Aylesford 2, 434 Belts I. Celtic-Germanic
2, 591-
592
Bichrome ware 2, 639 Bog bodies 15, 1013-1014 Bronze B. 5. Central Europe Diy foxes
Castellum [II x] 2, 1179 Celtiberi 3, 75-76 Celtic Archaeology 3, 76-79 Celts 3, 82-99 Copper V. Central Europe 3,771 » VI. Copper deposits and smelting methods 3, 771-772 Coral B. Celtic culture 3,780 Crafts, Trade II. Celtic-Germanic area
3, 896-897
Druids 4, 724-725 Dwellings on flood resistant mounds 4,755 Enamel 4, 961-962 Falcata 5, 323 Fibula 5, 410 Fortifications IL. B. Iberian
5, 502-503
> II. C.Celto-Germanic 5, 503 Funerary architecture III. G. CelticGermanic 5, 605-606 Germania libera see Germanic archaeology Germanic archaeology 5, 804808
Glass VII. Celtic-Germanic
5, 864
115
6, 439-440 6, 575-
576 Iron B.4 Central Europe
6, 942
Jastorf culture 6, 1165 Jevenstedt 6, 1189
14, 648
Toreutics II. Phoenicia
Arras Culture
6,
Hemmoor 6, 132 Hoard finds I. Celto-Germanic area Hunsriick-Eifel culture
13, 890
region
Gundestrup 5, 1041-1042 Hallstatt Culture 5, 1116-1118 Helmet E. Celto-Germanic region
Gold II. B. Celtic-Germanic culturalarea 5, 917-918 Grotto 5, 1034-1035
La Téne Culture Lathe 7,270
7, 268-269
Lock, Key I. The Celtic-Germanic World 7, 768-769 Marne culture 8, 381
Migration of peoples III. History of research 8, 870 > IV. Outline of the migration of peoples 8, 871-877 Minting III. The Celtic-Germanic area 9, 33 Mirror IV. Celtic and Germanic
9, 58
Monsters CelticRegions 9, 183 Murus Gallicus 9, 316-317 Necropoleis [X. Celtic and Germanic cultures 9, 607-608 Nienburg Group. 9,749 Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169 Ostrich eggs. 10, 290-291 Ouroboros stater 10, 297-298 Pins VIII. Prehistoric Central Europe 11, 282-283 Pottery, production of I. CelticGermanic civilisations 11, 725726 Preist construction
»
VI. Celto-Germanic region
15, 599-600 8.6. Others Asia Minor III. A. Neolithic to Bronze Age 2, 112-117 Asia Minor IIL. B. Hittite empire see Hattusa II >
Ill. C. Hittite successor states
>»
2, LI7-131 UI. D. Early Iron Age 132
2, 131-
Copper V. Central Europe
3, 771
»
VI. Copper deposits and smelting methods 3, 771-772 Hittite successor states see Asia Minor
Horse II. Range and domestication of wild herses 6, 501-502 Necropoleis IV. Asia Minor
9, 594-596 Pins IV. Asia Minor 11, 276-277 Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
Scythae I. Archaeology and culture 13, 149-158
Sea Peoples, migration of 13,
166-169
Swastika 13, 975-976 Thraci, Thracia V. Archaeology andculture
»
14, 608-612
VI. Economy, culture and art 14, 613-614
Transport amphorae II. The Bronze Age 14, 860 Tumulus II. Asia Minor 15, 18— 19
>» V.North Africa
15, 21-23
11, 802
Princely graves, princely seats 11, 850-855
9. Linguistics see CT index volume, Entry
Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266 Rainbow cup 12, 388-389 Runic solidi 12, 782 Salt Ill. Celtic-Germanic regions 12, 905 Sapropelite 12, 965 Silver II. C. Celto-Germanic Areas
Index 6.3. 9.1. LINGUISTICS 9.2. SPECIFIC LANGUAGES, LAN-
13, 472-473
GUAGE GROUPS 9.3. WRITING
Cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 6.3.
Situla I. Italic, Celtic and Germanic
13, 516 Swastika 13, 975-976 Sword II. Celtic-Germanic Area 13, 980-981
Thorsberg Moor
14, 599-600
Torques II. Celto-Germanic area
14, 791 Tumulus 15, 13-24 Urnfield Culture 15, 128-129 Viereckschanze 15, 406 Votive offerings in springs. T5520
War chariot III. Celto-Germanic area
15, 562
Weapons IV. Iberian-Hispanic region 15, 597-598
9.1. Linguistics 9.1.1. INTRODUCTION 9.1.2. PHONOLOGY
9.1.3. LEXICON 9.1.4. ONOMASTICS 9.1.5. SYNTAX, STYLE 9.1.6. MORPHOLOGY
9.1.1. INTRODUCTION
Archaism [Latin literature]
1, 978-979 Bilingual inscriptions 2, 642-646 Bilingualism see Multilingualism Dialect 4, 347 Diglossia 4, 410-411
9.1. LINGUISTICS
45
Etymology
5, 123-126
Grammarians
5, 981-985
Hellenization II. Language 6, [05-108
Isogloss see Dialect Jargon see Technical terminology Language change 7, 213-214 Language contact 7, 214-215 Language strata 7, 220-222 Language switching 7, 222-223 Language 7, 210-212 Latinization
7, 285-286
Linguistic affinity 7, 621-622 Multilingualism 9, 269-276 Pronunciation Romanization
12, 13-15 12, 663-667
Substrate see Language contact Syncretism II. Linguistic theory ie 2 Technical terminology 14, 201 Trilingual inscriptions
14, 921-
923
Universal language 15, 113-116 Vernacular see Vulgar Latin
Language change 7, 213-214 Laryngeal 7, 257-258 M (linguistics) 8, 49 Metre V. C. Prosody 8, 822-823 >» VI.B.Prosody 8, 828-829 Metric Lengthening see Prosody Muta cum liquida see Prosody N (linguistics). 9, 475 O (linguistics). 9, 933 P (linguistics). 10, 315 Phi (linguistics). 11, 1 Phonetics and phonology TI, 176-179
Positional length see Metre Proclisis see Accent B. Pronunciation 12, 13-15 Prosody III. Prosody as a part of phonetics and phonology
12, 54 Psi (linguistics)
12, 122 Psilosis 12, 123 Q (linguistics) 12, 301 R (linguistics) 12, 371 Rhotacism 12, 579-580 S (linguistics)
9.1.2. PHONOLOGY A (linguistics) 1, 1
Ablaut
1, 23 1, 56-58 Anomaly 1,710 Aphaeresis see Sandhi Apokope see Sandhi Assimilation see Phonetics
Accent
B (Linguistically)
2, 435-436
Barytonesis see Accent Gi 2859 Consonant see Phonetics Contraction see Phonetics D (linguistics) 4, 27-28 Dissimilation see Graf$mann’s law E (linguistics) 4, 761-763 Elision see Punctuation Enclitic see Accent
Epenthesis see Phonetics F (linguistics) 5, 285 G (linguistics)
5, 629 Graf$mann’s law 5, 992-993 Gutturals 5, 1046 H (linguistics) 5, 1071 Haplology see Phonetics Hyphaeresis see Sandhi Hypostasis [1] see Word formation I (linguistics) 6, 661-662 Iambic shortening see Phonetics Interaspiration see Punctuation Iota subscriptum see Punctuation Itacism 6, 992-993 J (linguistics) 6, 1161 K (linguistics)
7, 1
Krasis see Sandhi L (linguistics) 7, 129 Labiovelar 7, 135-136 Lachmann’s law 7, 144-145
12, 801
Sandhi 12, 952-954 Sound law | see Phonetics and phonology Syllable see Phonetics and phonology Syncope see Phonetics and phonology B. Synizesis see Prosody II T (linguistics) 14,75 Theta 14, 580-581 U (linguistics) 15,77 V (linguistics) 15, 149 Vowel see Metre W (linguistics) 15, 541 Word boundary — see Sandhi X (linguistics) 15,791 Y (linguistics) 15, 847 Z (linguistic) 15, 857 9.1.3. LEXICON
Aspectual classes/Aktionsart B17, O Deminutivum tion
see Word forma-
Etymology 5, 123-126 Euphemism 5, 180 Geographical names A. Types: place names and vocabulary 5, 767 Language change 7, 2143-214 Lexicon / Vocabulary 7, 471-473 Numerals. 9, 898-899 Onomasiology see Lexicon / Vocabulary Onomatopoeia. 10, 142-143 Patronymic see Personal names Personal names 10, 832-842 Semasiology see Lexicon / Vocabulary I. Style, stylistic figures II. A personal phenomenon 13, 892
»
III. Rhetorical element (stylistic figures) 13, 892-893 Swearwords; terms of abuse
13, 976-977
Synonym Taboo
14, 35
14,90
Technical terminology 14, 201 Vocabulary see Lexicon / Vocabulary Word families 15, 736-737 Word formation 15, 737-738 9.1.4. ONOMASTICS Cognomen 3, 510-511
Ethnic names 5, 86-87 Gentile 5, 764-765 Geographical names 5, 767-771 Gods, names of 5, 908-911 Months, names of the 9, 186-191 Names of Animals see Onomastics Names _ see Onomastics Onomastics. 10, 135-138 Patronymic see Personal names
Personal names
10, 832-842
Praenomen. 11, 766-767 Rivers, names of see Ancient European Short form of names see Personal
names Signum [1] 13, 450 Supernomen 13,952 Toponyms see Geographical Names Tribes, names of see Ethnic names 9.1.5. SYNTAX, STYLE
Asyndeton 2, 217 Ellipsis 4, 926 Euphemism 5, 180 Hapax legomenon 5, 1132 Parenthesis. 10, 529-530 Polysyndeton 11, 534 Prolepsis 12, 1 Prosody I. Prosdidia (Ileoowdia) WAR > II. Prosody as an area of metrics 12, 52-54
Style, stylistic figures I. General definition 13, 892
Syntax
14, 35-37
Zeugma [1]
15,917 cf. Subject Index 12. 9.1.6. MORPHOLOGY
Ablaut 1, 23 Abstractum see Morphology Analogy [2] Linguistics. 1, 640 Aspect 2, 168-169 Conjugation see Inflection Declination see Inflection Deminutivum see Word formation Derivation see Word formation
Digamma
4, 406-407
46
9.1. LINGUISTICS
Dual
4, 729-730
Tsakonian
Frequentative see Word formation Geographical names B. Word formation, motifs 5, 767-769 > EE. Place names and Italic prehis-
tory 5, 770-771
Heteroclisis
see Inflection
Inflection 6, 799-801 Patronymic see Personal names Personal names II. C. Word formation 10, 834-835 Prefix see Inflection
Sandhi
12, 952-954
Suffix
see Inflection
Suppletion 13,954 Syncretism II. Linguistic theory 14, 22
Thematic vowel. Tmesis 14,751 Word formation
14, 423 15, 737-738
9.2.1. GREECE Feo) LATIN, 9.2.3. OTHER INDO-EUROPEAN
LANGUAGES 9.2.4. OTHER LANGUAGES 9.2.1. GREECE
9.2.2. ITALY
Elymian
4, 932
Etruscan
5, 90-92
Etrusci, Etruria [V. Language Cy BAG)
Faliscan 5, 325-326 Italic see Oscan-Umbrian Italy, languages of 6, to12-1018 Latin 7, 275-278 Ligurian 7, 557
Messapic 8, 760-761 Northern Picene. 9, 824 Oscan-Umbrian 10, 271-273 Osci C. Linguistics 10, 275-276 Raetic 12, 387
Sabellic see Italy, languages Sicel (Siculan) 13, 416-417 Southern Picene see Oscan-Umbrian
680 Eteo-Cretan
5, 80
[onic 6, 910-915 Koine 7, 78-80
7, 381
Linear B A. Basics
see Oscan-Umbrian
15, 277-278
Vernacular see Vulgar Latin Vulgar Latin 15, 531-534 9.2.3. OTHER INDO-EUROPEAN
LANGUAGES Albanian 1, 428-429 Anatolian languages 1, 649-650 1, 670-671
Armenian 2, 4-5 Asia Minor V. A. Anatolian Indo-
European languages
2, 152-
153
>» V.C. Further Indo-European languages 2,155 Asia Minor VI. Alphabetic scripts Zeal 5556
Baltic languages 2, 482 Belgae B. Tribal culture 2, 583
Greece, languages 5, 999-1001 Greek dialects 5, ror1—1018 Greek literary languages 5, ror9— 1021 Greek 5, 1002-1011 Homeric language 6, 447-450
Lemnian
Venetic
Ancient European
Aeolians [1] G. Ancient knowledge/dialects 1, 228-229 Aeolic (Lesbian). 1, 231-232 Arcadian 1, 966-967 Attic 2, 310-313 Boeotian 2, 699-701 Cypriot 3, 1069-1071 Doric/Northwest Greek 4, 674-
7, 614-615
Macedonian 8, 79-80 Middle Greek see Greek Modern Greek _ see Greek Mycenaean 9, 389-391 Northwest Greek see Doric/Northwest Greek Pamphylian. ro, 418-419 Pelasgian see Greece, languages Pre-Greek languages 11, 798-801 Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740 Thessalian 14, 573-574 Thraci, Thracia III. Language 14, 602
Thracian — see Balkans, languages
10, 820
Phrygian.
Umbrian
9.2. Specific languages, language groups
Persian
14, 990-991
Carian
2,
1102-1104
Celtiberic see Hispania, languages Celtic languages 3, 79-82 Church Slavonic 3, 314-315 Dacian see Balkans, languages Gallic see Celtic languages Germanic languages 5, 808-811 Gothic language 5, 951 Hittite 6, 434-436 Illyricum A. State of research 6, 732-733
> E. Gulture 6, 73'5 Indo-Aryan languages 6, 784-785 Indo-European languages 6, 785789 Indo-European poetics 6,790 Indo-Europeans 6, 790-793 Iranian languages 6, 934-935 Lepontic 7, 415-416 Luwian 7, 899-905
Lydian 8, 11-12 Milyian see Luwian Palaic. 10, 381
11, 196-197 Pisidic see Luwian B.r. Satem languages. 13, 12-13 Sidetic 13, 435 Slavonic languages. 13, 540-541 Thracian see Balkans, languages Tocharian 14,753 9.2.4. OTHER LANGUAGES
Afro-Asiatic 1, 301 Akkadian 1, 413-415 Ammonite 1, 587-588 Amorite 1, 595-596 Ancient Southern Arabian
I, 671I-
672
Arabic
1, 941-942
Aramaic
1, 949-950
Asia Minor V. B. Non-Indo-European languages 2, 154-155 Assyrian see Akkadian Balkans, languages 2, 474-479 Basque 2, 542 Berber 2, 599 Canaanite 2, 1031 Caucasian languages
3, 36-37
Christian Palestinian language and literature A. Language 3, 267 Christianity E. Language
3, 265-
267
Coptic
3,773
Demotic
4, 298-299
Eblaite 4,774 Edomite 4, 814
Egyptian
4, 853
Elamite
4, 887-888
Eteo-Cyprian
Ethiopian Georgian
5, 80 5, 85 5, 784-786
Hamites, Hamitic
see Afro-Asiat-
ic Hasai(ti)c Hatra [2]
Hattic Hebrew Hieratic
5, 1158 6, 2-3 6, 3-4
6, 30-31 6, 304 Himyaritic see Ancient South Arabian Hispania, Iberia Il. Languages
6, 392-395 Hurrian
6, 579
Iberian see Hispania Judaism C. 3. Situation as regards communication 6, 1218-1219 Mediterranean languages 8, 586-
587 Meroitic
8,718
Minaean — see Ancient Southeren Arabian Minoan see Linear A Moabite 9, 104 Nabataean. 9, 478 Neo-Aramaic _ see Syriac Nubian 9, 870-871 Official Aramaic. 10, 61-62
47
II.I. LITERARY
Palestinian-Aramaic.
LO, 385-
Palmyrene.
9.3.2. ITALY
On Latin scripts cf. Subject Index
386
10, 408
Tea tok,
Parni 10, 544 Parnian — see Parni
Communication B. The spread of Greek and Latin in antiquity
Phoenician r1, 148 Pre-Romance (languages)
3, 655-656 Etruscan A. Sources and Script
II, 802-803
5, 90-91
Proto-Euphratic, Proto-Tigridic 12, 70-71 Punic 12, 204-205
Italy, alphabetic scripts 6, 1007-— IOI Literacy/Orality 7, 634-638
Qumran Aramaic 12, 367 Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740 Samaritan 12,918 Semites 13, 238
Messapic
Semitic languages 13, 238-241 Sorothaptic 13, 655 Subarean 13,900 Sumerian 13, 942-943 Syriac 14, 65 Thamudic 14, 364 Ugaritic 15, 81-82 Urartian 15, 121-122
Orthography C. Latin
9.3. Writing 9.3.1. GREECE 9.3.2. ITALY
9.3.3. NEAR East, Asta MINOR, EGypt 9.3.4. OTHERS 9-3-1. GREECE On Greek scripts cf. Subject Index 13.6.
Alphabet II. The Greek alphabet
I, 530-541
Bilingual inscriptions 2, 642-646 Communication B. The spread of Greek and Latin in antiquity
3, 655-656
Discus of Phaestus 4, 541-542 Greece, systems of writing 5, LOOI-1002 Hieroglyphic scripts I. Crete 6, 309 Inscriptions II. D. Script 6, 827 Linear A 7, 612-614 Linear B 7, 614-619 Literacy/Orality 7, 634-638 Minoan culture and archaeology C. Script 9, 15-16 Nestor Cup. 9, 683-684 Orthography B. Greek 10, 263264
Stoichedon see Inscriptions Trilingual inscriptions 14, 921-
Northern Picene. 9, 824 Notae Tironianae see Tachygra-
phy
Raetic
Stoichedon - see Inscriptions Tabulae Iguvinae 14, 98 Trilingual inscriptions II. Trilingual inscriptions with Greek and Latintext 14, 921-922 Writing, direction of II. Latin
15, 787
Writing III. C. Italy and Rome
25, 772 9.3.3. NEAR East, Asia MINOR, EGyPrT
Alphabet I. Ancient Middle Eastern origins 1, 529-530 Amarna Letters 1, 559 Ancient Persian Cuneiform iS oyefal
Armenian B. Writing
Colophon [2] 3, 579
Communication B. The spread of Greek and Latin in antiquity
3, 655-656
Cuneiform script 3, 1000-1002 Cypriot Script 3, 1071-1073 Cypro-Minoan Scripts
Estrangela 5,77 Georgian II. Script 5, 785 Graeco-Babyloniaca 5, 956-958 5, 1158
Hebrew 6, 30-31 Hieroglyphic scripts II. Asia Minor
6, 309-311
Hieroglyphs 6, 311-312 Luwian B. The Luwian dialects (sources)
7, 899-902
Meroitic
III. B. Greece in the Alphabetic Period 15, 771-772 > III. C. Italy and Rome 15,772 cf. Subject Index 13.6.
3, 1073-
1075
15, 786
ih, 77%
2, 4-5
Behistun see Bisutun Carian 2, 1102-1104
Hasai(ti)c
Sidetic 13, 435 Tocharian 14,753 Trilingual inscriptions
8, 440-441
8,718
Official Aramaic. 10, 61-62 Papyrus II. A. Ancient Near East
10, 495-496 > II. B. Egypt 10, 496 Phoenician 11, 148 Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740
14, 921-
923
Universal language I. General points 15, 113-114 > II. Ancient Near East 15, 114 Writing II. Ancient Near East 15, 766-770 9.3.4. OTHERS Glagolithic 5, 857-858 Gothic script 5, 951-953 Hispania, Iberia III. Systems of writing 6, 395-396 Ogam 10, 65 Runes
12, 387
Lydian 8, 11-12 Masorah, Masoretes
Writing III. A. Mycenaean Period
10, 264-
265
923
Writing, direction of I. Greek
>
8, 760-761
SCHOLARSHIP
12, 781-782
Writing III. D. Celts, Germans and
others
15,773
10. Oriental literatures On oriental literature and language cf. Subject Index 26.4. On Jewish literature cf. Subject Index 28. On near and far eastern writers cf. Index of Persons 15.2. On Jewish writers cf. Index of Persons 8. 11. Greek and Latin literature t1.1. LITERARY SCHOLARSHIP 11.2. ANCIENT PHILOLOGY AND TEXTUAL CRITICISM 11.3. SOCIOLOGY OF LITERATURE 11.4. METRE AND PROSE RHYTHM
11.5. GREEK LITERATURE 11.6. LATIN LITERATURE
11.1. Literary scholarship On literature and oratory cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1. Aemulatio 1, 218 Aesthetics 1, 263-266 Aetiology I. Greek literature 1, 271-274 > II. Roman literature
15, 982-
984 Allegoresis 1, 511-516 Allegorical poetry [I] Latin.
I, $16-517 Annales see Annalists Anthology 1, 726-731 Antiquarians 1, 783-784 Apocryphal literature C. Transmission
1, 845-846
Archaism [Latin literature]
I, 978-979 Art, theory of A. Mimesis
2, 46-
47 >» B.Phantasia 2, 47 Art Il. E. Ars asa literary programme 2, 41-42 Atticism 2, 324-325 Autobiography II. Greek 2, 406-
407
I1.1.
LITERARY
48
SCHOLARSHIP
>» C.3. Middle Ages and Renais-
Canon [1] I. General points
2, 1053 >» >
[1] Il. Ancient Orient 2, 1053 [x] Ill. Greek literature
2, 1053-1054 Cento C. Latin 3, 116-117 > D. History of influence 3,
Christianity E. E.3 Church Fathers and Christian literature 3, 266 Classicism I. Literary history
3, 381-383 Commissioned poetry 3, 650-651 Communication C. From oral to
written culture
3, 657-660
3, 774-778
II. Greece
Excursus
9, 321-
sla Myth IV. B. Phoenicia
9, 451
Myth I. Theory of myth 9, 444446 >» V.Greece 9, 452-458 >» VI.Rome 9, 458-459 >»
VII. The Early Church
9, 459-
462
Dictation see Copy Encyclopaedia I. General >»
9, 270-271 Muse, invocation of the
4, 964
4, 964-967
Asterisk
ture
see Literacy/Orality
10, 374-376
Folk-tales I. Term and genre
>» 4.Storage 10, 498 Paradoxographi I. Antiquity
6, 212-214
Imitatio see Intertextuality Indirect tradition 6, 780-784 Intertextuality 6, 873-875 Invective 6, 881-883 Invocatio
see Muse, acclamation
of the Jargon see Technical terminology Kolon [3] 7, 86 Language strata II. Problems 7, 221-222 Leiden System 7, 373-374 Library a) The Greek world
7» 504-506 >»
b) The Roman world
7, 506-
509 Light reading 7, 553-555
Literacy/Orality 7, 634-638 Literary activity 7, 638-650 Literary criticism 7, 650-652 Literary genre 7, 652-657 Literary history 7, 657-662 Literary theory 7, 662-672 Literature I. General
> >
7, 672-673
III. Greek 7, 679-693 IV. Jewish-Hellenistic 7, 694-
699 >»
ILO, 506-509
Philology 11, 77-85 Plagiarism. 11, 315 see Literary theory
Polemics I. Definition.
Hermeneutics
V.Roman
7, 699-712
> VI. Christian 7, 712-720 >» VII. Byzantine 7, 721-723 Macedonian Renaissance A. Characteristics
8, 82
> B. Literature 8, 82-83 Mannerism 8, 251 Manuscripts C. 2. Manuscripts in ancient libraries 8, 271
10, 497-
498
Poetics >
II. Greeks, Romans.
456
Popular literature
TI, 455 11, 455-
see Light read-
ing Pornography
11, 637-644
Pseudepigraphy 12, 111-113 Scholia 13, 69-75 Second Sophistic 13, 185-191 Stichometry 13, 834-835 Techne 14, 194-195 Technical Literature 14, 195-201 Technical terminology 14, 201 Textbook see Encyclopaedia Textual history 14, 346-357 Translations II. Greek Sphere 14, 850-852
> »
1, 783-784
Antisigma_ see Diacritical signs Apex see Punctuation Apostrophe see Punctuation Archaism [Latin literature]
Oral poetry
Papyrus 3. Literary texts
1021
1, 703-704
Antiquarians
I, 978-979
Festivals; Feasts III. ro. Feast and Poetry 5, 403
>» Ill. Greece 5, 486-488 >» IV. Roman Literature 5, 488 Genus see Literary genre Greek literary languages 5, 1o19—
Annalists
Argumentum
5, 327-330
5, 482-484
Allegoresis 1, 511-516 Ancora see Anchor see DiaAnecdoton Parisinum critical signs see DiaAnecdoton Romanum critical signs Annales see Annalists
Mythography 9, 464-471 Ode. 10, 28-29 Palaeologan Renaissance. B. Litera-
5, 258-259
Falsification (of texts)
Alexander historians I, 486 Alexandrian Philology see Philol-
ogy
Multilingualism II. A. General 117-
118
Copy
sance Ǥ,.272=274 Mimesis 8, 926-928 Monobiblos 9, 163-164 Motif research 9, 239-240
III. LatinSphere 14, 852-855 IV. Late Antiquity and Byzan-
1, 1075
2, 190
Canon [1] IV. Latin literature 2, 1054-1055 Catenaé 3,26 Chorizontes 3, 246
Colometry 3, 537 Colon see Punctuation Commentary I. Greek see Hypomnema Copy A. Introductory comments
3,774
>» B. Copying-techniques 3, 774776 >» C. Publication 3, 776-777 Critical signs
4,
1196-1198
Diacritical signs 4, 333-335 Dictation see Copy Didaskaliai Il. Roman
Epimerismi 4, 1113-1114 Epitome 4, 1153-1156
Etymologica 5, 120-123 Exegesis 5, 262-264 Glossary, Glosses
phy
see Glossogra-
tium: Greek and Latin Sphere
Glossography
14, 855-858
Grammarians II. Greece
Typology. 15, 60-61 Woman II. E. Women poets and philosophers 15, 704 Women authors 15, 710-717 Zetema 15, 913-915
Actus [4] Latin.
1, 128-129
5, 876-880 5, 982-
984 > Ill. Rome 5, 984-985 Hermeneutics 6, 212-214 Historia 6, 403-404 Homeric philology see Philology
Hyphen 11.2. Ancient philology and textual criticism On history of texts cf. Subject Index 13. On grammarians and philologists cf. Index of Persons iis Accent aC. Latin 1, 57-58 Accent B. Greek ai95 7
4, 386
Dikolon see Punctuation Diorthotes see Copy Diple 4, 527 Ecloga [1] 4,794 Elision see Punctuation Enclitic see Accent
see Punctuation
Hypomnema
6, 641-643
Hypostigme, Hypoteleia
see
Punctuation Indirect tradition
Interpolation
6, 780-784 6, 863-865
Invective 6, 881-883 Kolon [2] 7, 85-86 Lexicography
7, 468-471
Library a) The Greek world
7» 504-506
49
>
I1I.5. GREEK
b) The Roman world
7, 506-
509 Literary history 7, 657-662 Manuscripts 8, 268-274 Mese stigme see Punctuation Metre V. E. Ancient theory 8, 827 > VI.D. Ancient theory 8, 832 Metre I. Preliminary remark
8, 816
Myth V. D. Critique of myths
9, 456-457 >» V.E. Salvage of myths (allego-
resis) 9, 457-458
>» VI.A.The problem 9, 458-459 » VII. B. Reconciliation 9, 459462
Mythography I. Introduction
11.3. Sociology of literature On written communication cf. Subject Index 3.5.3. Anonymity 1,710 Authors II. Classical antiquity
2, 399-403
Banquet III. C. Banquet literature
2, 496-497 Buntschriftstellerei 2, 820-823 Censorship 3, 106-109 Choregia 3, 243-244 Circles, literary 3, 350-351 Commissioned poetry 3, 650-651 Communication C, 1. Law and rhapsody 3, 657-658 Competitions, artistic 2. Rhetorical competitions in various literary
9, 464
genres
> II. Greek Antiquity 9, 464-467 > Ill. Latin antiquity 9, 467-469 Obelus 9,941 Onomastikon 10, 138-142 Orthography 10, 262-265 Papyrus 3. Literary texts 10, 497498 Philology 11, 77-85 Pinax [5] 11, 264-265 Poems, division of. 11, 439-441 Poetae novelli. 11, 442 Poetry book 11, 444-449 Prosody I. Prosdidia (Ilooomdia)
lly} Publication 12, 185-186 Punctuation 12, 199-204 Quotation marks see Punctuation Scholia 13, 69-75 Scriptio continua see Punctuation Spatium — see Punctuation Speaker, change of 13, 713-714 Spiritus [2] 13,740 Stemma, Stemmatics
see Philo-
logical methods Stichometry 13, 834-835
Syntax
>
347
B. Archaic period 14, 347-348 C. Classical period 14, 348-
D. Hellenistic period
351
>» E. Roman Republic >
14, 346-
14, 34914, 351-
352
;
F. Roman Imperial period
14, 352-354
Translations IV. B. From Greek into Latin
> »
14, 856-857
IV. C. From Latin into Greek
14, 857
IV. D. Late Byzantine Translations
14, 857-858
Rhetoric VI. Ancient orators and their art 12, 549-558 Rhetoric a) Latin Rhetoric
12, 541-542 Sabinum 12, 815 Satirical (mocking) poems see Iambographers Schola 13, 64-67 Second Sophistic 13, 185-191 Sexuality III. Sexuality in literature and art 13, 375-376 Symposium literature 14, 10-13 Technical Literature 14, 195-201 Technical terminology 14, 201 Textbook see Encyclopaedia Travel literature. 14, 868-869 Travels III. Information for travellers 14, 878-879 Woman II. E. Women poets and philosophers 15, 704 Women authors 15, 710-717
Eroticism I. A. Introduction
5) 40-41
>» J.C. Tamed Eroticism 5, 42-43 > I. D. Roman love life 5, 43 >» J. E. The novel 5, 44 Exile, literature of 5, 267-268 Gender roles 2. Gender Roles in Literature 5, 741-742 Kinaidologoi see Pornography Language strata I. Overview 7, 220-221 Laudatio funebris 7, 297-299 Library a) The Greek world
7, 504-506 >»
b) The Roman world
7, 506-
509 Light reading 7, 553-555 Literary activity
7, 638-650
Messalla’s Circle Messalla
>
8, 906-907
VII. B. Reconciliation
9, 459-
462
Neoteric Poets. 9, 655-656 Occasional poetry 10, 6-7 Patronage _ see Circles, literary 10, 625-627
Philosophical literature, genres of. II, 95-101 Poet’s vocation
see Muse, accla-
mation of the Polemics 11, 455-456 Popular literature see Light reading Pornography IV. Rome 11, 641-
644
Propaganda 12, 18-20 Public recital 12, 178-181 Recusatio
verse
6, 448
Iambic shortening see Phonetics Iambics see Metre Iambographers B. Term and metrics Kolon [1] 7, 85 Metre I. Preliminary remark
see Valerius
459
Patronus
11.4. Metre and prose rhythm 1, 56-58 Antistrophe see Metre Canticum 2, 1059-1060 Choliambs see Metre Clausulae see Prose rhythm Colometry 3, 537 Daktylos [2] see Metrics Diacritical signs 4, 333-335 Homeric language C. Language and Accent
6, 671
9, 364-369 Myth VI. A. The problem 9, 458-
media of transmission
349
Court poetry 3, 887 Dedication 4, 167-170
Musicians (female)
14, 35-37
Tetralogy 14, 321-322 Textual history A. Routes and
>
1183-1184
Military writers
Techne 14, 194-195 Teleia (stigme) see Punctuation
»
4,
Copyright 3, 778-779
LITERATURE
12, 429-430
Rhetoric III. A. Sources and self-image 12, 532
8, 816
>» >» >
V.Greek 8, 820-828 VI. Latin 8, 828-834 VIL. Byzantine 8, 834-835
Metric Lengthening see Prosody Period 10, 786-787 Positional length see Metre Proclisis see Accent B. Prose Rhythm 12, 40-44 Prosody I. Prosdidia (Ileoowdia) ToS 2 » II. Prosody as an area of metrics
12, 52-54
Rhythm 12, 582-584 Strophe see Metre I. and V. Synaloephe — see Prosody II Syncope — see Phonetics and phonology B. Synizesis see Prosody II Troparion 14,964 Versification see Metre
11.5. Greek literature 5 UeORMIRY: 11.5.2. PROSE GENRES 11.5.3. OTHER FORMS, MINOR FORMS
I1I.§. GREEK
5O
LITERATURE
On Greek writers cf. Index of
>» V.C. Narrative forms of myths
Persons 1.2.
9, 453-456
New Comedy 11.5.1. 11.5.1.1. 11.5.1.2. {1.5.1.3. I1.5.1.4. I1.5.1.5. I1.5.1.6.
POETRY INTRODUCTION DRAMA EPIC POETRY LYRIC POETRY ELEGY, EPIGRAM OTHER POETIC FORMS
11.5.1.1. INTRODUCTION Alexandrinianism 1, 500 Allegorical poetry [I] Greek. see Orphic poetry Anthology A. Definition 1, 726-
vay >
B. Anthologia Palatina
1, 727
> C. Hellenism 1, 727-728 >» D. Imperial times 1, 728-729 > E. Late antiquity and the Middle Ages 1,729 >» F. Transmission 1, 729 > G. Anthologia Planudea 1,729 >» H. Reception 1, 729-730 Biblical poetry I. Greek 2, 635 Bucolics I. Greek 2, 800-804 Catalogue A. Definition 3, 6 >» B. Poetry 3, 6-7 Comedy I. Greek 3, 603-610 Court poetry 3, 887 Didactic poetry II. Greek &
Latin 4, 379-385 Epideictic poetry
4, 1089-1091
see Comedy
Nomos. [3] 9, 802
Occasional poetry 10, 6-7 Oral poetry see Literacy/Orality Orphism, Orphic Poetry to, 249258
Parody A. General Background
10, 546-547
>» B.Greek 10, 547-548 Philosophical literature, genres of. Il, 95-101 Poet’s vocation
see Muse, accla-
mation of the Poetry book I. Greek 11, 444-447 Prooemium I. Concept. 12, 16 > II. Greek literature. 12, 16-17 Prosimetrum 12, 48-49
Songs II. A. Definition. 13, 632 > II. B. Ancient literature.
13, 632-633
Tragedy I. Greek 14, 824-830 Trilogy 14, 923 Versification see Metre Wisdom literature. If. A. General points 15, 683 > III. B. Archaic Period 15, 683— 684
>
III. C. From the Classical Period to the Roman Empire 15, 684-685
>
III. D. Septuagint, Christianity, Gnosticism 15, 685 Work songs. 15, 745-746
Epistolography G. Poetic Letters
4, 1147 Festivals; Feasts III. ro. Feast and
Poetry 5, 403
Folk songs 5, 480-482 Hellenistic poetry 6, 86-89 Iambographers 6, 671-673 Indo-European poetics 6,790 Literary genre II. A. Poetry
7, 652-654
Lyric poetry I. Greek 8, 21-26 Middle Comedy see Comedy Mime I. Greek 8, 920-924 Mimiambs see Herodas Muse, invocation of the 9, 321322 Musicians (female) I. Introduction
9, 364-365 >
II. Homer; archaic choral and
>
III. Domestic
»
solo lyric poetry 9, 365-366 music-making, wedding and work songs 9, 366 IV. Professional music-making: technitides, hetairai, auletrides
9, 366-367 >
V. Ancient music theory as gen-
der-specific discourse; iconog-
raphy 9, 367-368
Myth V. A. General remarks, sources 9, 452-453
Katharsis
Literary activity 2. Classical polis 7,640 Messenger scenes
hoyle 1, 128
Amoibaion
1, 592-593
1, 635-636 Byzantine Triad see Aeschylus Choregos 3, 244 Chorus A. Concept 3, 247 > B. Manifestations, genres
Monologue
3, 247-248
Drama
4, 711-712
Epeisodion 4, 1016-1017 Epiparodos 4, 1117 Epirrhematic 4, 1123 Exodos 5, 269-270 Hellenistic poetry B. Dramatic poetry
6, 87
Hypothesis A. History of literature 6, 647-648
Intrigue
6, 881
9, 167-168
New Comedy see Comedy Parabasis 10, 499-500 Paraklausithyron ro, 514-515 Parasite Parodos
10, 522-523 10, 545
Peripeteia
10, 798-799
Prologue A. Concept 12, 2 >» B. Greek tragedy 12, 2-3 >» C. Greek comedy 12, 3
Purification F. Tragedy (literary) Ms 228
Rhesis
12, 529
Satyr play 13, 34-36
Speaker, change of 13, 713-714 Stage directions.
Stasimon
13, 778-779
13, 786-787
Stichomythia 13, 835-836 Tetralogy 14, 321-322 Tragedy I. Greek 14, 824-830 Trilogy 14,923 II.5.1.3. EPIC POETRY Aristela 15, 1006
Catalogue B. Poetry
3, 6-7
Epic cycle 4, 1058-1060 Epic, animal 4, 1057-1058 Epic I. A. Problems of definition, characteristics of the genre
4, 1040-1042 II. B. The body of work 4, 1042-1051 Hellenistic poetry D. Hexameter and elegiac distich 6, 88-89 Historical epic 6, 409-411 Homeric language A. Archaic char>
Anagnorisis
> C. Atticdrama 3, 248-249 Comedy I. Greek 3, 603-610 Deus ex machina 4, 323-324 Deuteragonistes 4, 324-325 Didaskaliai I. Greek 4, 385-386
8, 765-766
Middle Comedy see Comedy Mime I. Greek 8, 920-924 Monody 9, 165~166
I1.5.1.2. DRAMA
On performance cf. Subject Index 15.3. On public performance cf. Subject Index 3.4.5. On musical genres cf. Subject Index Actus [3]
7, 36-37
Kommos [2] 7, 91
acter
>» >»
6, 447
C. Language and verse 6, 448 D. Heterogeneity 6, 448-449
»
EE. Tradition and influence 6, 449-450 Homeric philology see Philology Ithaca C. The Ithaca question 6, 1020
>» D.Sources 6, 1020-1021 Ktisis Poems 7, 111-113
Literary activity I. A. Definition and general remarks 7, 638-
639 Literary activity 1. Archaic period 7, 639-640 >» 3.Hellenism 7, 640-641 Muse, invocation of the 9, 321— 322 Parody A. General Background
10, 546-547 Teichoscopy
14, 216
11.5. GREEK LITERATURE
Syl
Theogony 14, 484-485 Titanomachy 14, 735-736 Troy I. B. Homeric tradition and history of the localization
14, 970-971 >
>
II. B. Ancient literature.
Sphragis [3] 13, 735
Threnos 14, 624 Work songs. 15, 745-746
III. C. The Troy legend in literature and history 14, 980-981
I1.5.1.5. ELEGY, EPIGRAM
Anthology A. Definition 11.5.1.4. LYRIC POETRY
On performance cf. Subject Index 15.3. On musical genres cf. Subject Index 15.2. Ailinos 1, 404-405 Amoibaion 1, 592-593 Anabole 1, 627-628 Anacreontea
1, 632-633
Catalogue B. Poetry 3, 6-7 Choliambs see Metre Daphnephorikon 4, 82 Dithyramb 4, 560-562 Eidyllion 4, 856 Embaterion 4, 937 Encomium
4, 963-964 Epicedium 4, 1060-1061 Epinikion 4, 1115-1117 Epithalamion see Hymenaus Epyllion 4, 1170-1173 Erythraean paean 5, 55 Folk songs 5, 480-482 Genethliakon I. Greek 5,754 Hellenistic poetry C. Satirical and iambic poetry 6, 87 Hymenaios I. Greek 6, 613-614 Hyporchema 6, 644 Iambics see Metre Iambographers 6, 671-673 Idyll see Bucolics Kastoreion
7, 26
Lyric poetry I. Greek 8, 21-26 Lysiodia see Simodia Magodia see Simodia Melos [2] 8, 643 Mimiambs — see Herodas Musicians (female) I. Introduction
>
>
>
9, 364-365
II. Homer; archaic choral and
solo lyric poetry 9, 365-366 III. Domestic music-making, wedding and work songs
Technopaegnia.
1, 726-
able
Anthology B. Anthologia Palatina
Ey 727 > C.Hellenism 1, 727-728 >» D.Imperial times 1, 728-729 > E. Late antiquity and the Middle Ages 1,729 >» F. Transmission 1, 729 >» G. Anthologia Planudea 1, 729 >» H. Reception 1, 729-730 Catalogue B. Poetry 3, 6-7 Elegy I. Greek 4, 899-903 Epigram I. Greek 4, 1098-1102 Epitaphios [1] see Funerary epigram Funerary epigrams see Epigram Hellenistic poetry D. Hexameter and elegiac distich 6, 88-89 Hymn I. A. Cult hymns 6, 616618
>» J.B. Literary hymns
6, 618-
619
Threnos
14, 624
2, 1057
Cento A. Definition 3, 115 >» B. Greek 3, 115-116 > D. History of influence 3, 117118
Cookery books II. Greece and Rome
3, 762-763
Didactic poetry Il. Greek &
Latin 4, 379-385
Epistolography G. Poetic Letters
4, L147
Gastronomical poetry I. Greek
5, 702-703
Hilarodia see Simodia Hymn III. A. Definition of the term 6, 622
> TIL. B. Greek 6, 622-623 Hymn I. The Greek hymnos
9, 366-367
>
Nomos. [3] 9, 802 Paean 10, 328-330
Paraklausithyron 10, 514-515 Partheneion. 10, 562 Poetry book I. Greek 11, 444-447 Propemptikon 12, 20-21 Prosodion 12, 51-52 Satirical (mocking) poems _ see Iambographers Simodia 13, 481-482 Skolion 13, 521-522 Songs II. A. Definition. 13, 632
11.5.2. PROSE GENRES On Greek Historiography cf. Subject Index 1.7. Acts of the Apostles 1, 127 Adventure Novel see Novel Agrarian writers A. Greece
I, 368-369 >» C. Reception 1, 372 Alexander historians 1, 486 Alexander Romance [I] Greek.
6, 616-620
IV. The Byzantine hymn 6, 625-626
Idyll see Bucolics Kontakion 7, 95-96 Literature d) Varia 7,715 Lysiodia see Simodia Magodia see Simodia Menippian Satire see Menippus [4] of Gadara Oracula Chaldaica. 1o, 188-189 Prooemium II. Greek literature. I2, 16-17
Simodia
13, 481-482
see
Ps.-Callisthenes Annalists 1, 703-704 Apocryphal literature C. Transmission
I, 845-846
Apostles, Letters of the
1, 889-
890
Atthidographers see Atthis Atthis 2, 309-310 Atticism 2, 324-325 Autobiography II. Greek 2, 406-
407
Bible translations I. General 2, 628-633
Bible A. Definition
2, 623-624
>»
C. New Testament
>
D. Quotations in Greek and Latin authors
2, 626-628
2, 628
Biographical novel Biography I. Greek
see Novel 2, 648-651 > Ill. Late antiquity 2, 653-655 Buntschriftstellerei A. Greek
1.5.1.6. OTHER POETIC FORMS Canon [2]
9, 366
IV. Professional music-making: technitides, hetairai, auletrides
14, 209
13, 632-633
2, 820-822
Catalogue A. Definition >» C.Prose 3, 7-8 Christianity E. Language
3, 6 3, 265-
267
Chronica minora 3, 270-271 Chronicles A. General 3, 271
> C. Greek 3, 272-273 >» E. Christian 3,274 Church History 3, 305-309 Church regulations B. Overview 3,312
»
C. Characteristics of the genre
>
D. Question regarding authors
35312
3> 313
Commentary I. Greek see Hypomnema Consolatio as a literary genre 35 704-706 Consolatio
see Consolatio as a
literary genre Cookery books II. Greece and Rome 3, 762-763 Dialogue 4, 352-356 Diatribe A. Concept 4, 366 > B. Older diatribes 4, 366-367 Didache 4, 378-379 Doxography 4, 702-704 Encyclopaedia I. General 4, 964 >» II. Greece 4, 964-967 Epistle A. Term, Terminology, Origins 4, 1138
I1.5. GREEK
v
§2
LITERATURE
B. Material, Conveyance 4, 1138
C. Formulae 4, 1138-1139 D. Private Letters 4, 1139 E. Official Letters 4, 1139 -¥ ¥ vYov F. Letter Writers and Theory of Letter Writing 4, 1139-1141 Epistolary novel 4, 1143-1144 Epistolography 4, 1144-1148 Epitaphios [2] 4, 1152-1153 Epitome 4, 1153-1156 Fable Il. Greek Literature 5, 301-
Folk-tales I. Term and genre
5, 482-484
10, 508-509
Perioche 10,786 Periplous 10, 799-801
Philosophical literature, genres of. 11, 95-101 Princes’ mirror.
11, 860-861
Prooemium I. Concept.
see Epitaphios
[2]
Geoponica I. Collective term for agricultural technical literature 5, 780-782
Glossography 5, 876-880 Gospels (literary forms) 5, 947-
is 7S
949
JI. Greek 12, 75-77 Pseudepigraphy I. General edge shes Rhetoric VI. A. Greek oratory
12, 549-554
Speech II. Sub-genre 13, 721-722 Symposium literature 14, 10-13 Technical Literature 14, 195-201 Textbook see Encyclopaedia Travel literature. 14, 868-869 Troy, romance of
14, 981-983
Heresiology 6, 207 Historia 6, 403-404
Visionary literature.
Historical novel see Novel Historiography IV. A. Greek 6, 426-427 Historiography II. Greece 6, 418421
Vitae Sanctorum
Vita
Hypomnema 6, 641-643 Hypothesis B. Rhetoric 6, 648
Isagoge 6, 951-954
7, 439-440
Letter A. Types of letter 7, 436 > B. The letter as a medium of communication 7, 436-437 Lexicography I. Greek 7, 468-
470 Literature 1. Prose works
7, 712-
715
Local chronicles, local history
7, 762-763 Logographos 7,792 Logos [3] Historiography
7, 798-
feo
Martyrdom, literature of 8, 417418
Menologion 8, 697 Military writers 8, 906-907 Miracle Stories see Paradoxographoi New Testament Apocrypha 9, 691-694 Novel I. Definition 9, 837 > Il. Greek 9, 837-842 >» V.Byzantine 9, 849-850 Novella I. Greek 9, 850-852 Panegyrics I. Greek 10, 439-441 > III. Byzantine 10, 443 Paradoxographi I. A. Terminology
15, 472-474
10, 506-508
I. C. History of reception 10, 509
Pinax [5] 11, 264-265 Priamel. 11, 816-817 Prosimetrum 12, 48-49
Proverbs III. Classical Antiquity 12, 80-81
Rhesis
III. B. Archaic Period
»
III. C. From the Classical Period to the Roman Empire
12, 589-591
>
Ill. D. Septuagint, Christianity, Gnosticism 15, 685 Zetema 15, 913-915 cf. Subject Index 1.7. 11.5.3. OTHER FORMS, MINOR FORMS On Greek writers cf. Index of Persons 1.2. Acrostich 1, 113-115 Agrapha 1, 357-358 Ainos I, 405-406 Anecdote 1, 690-691 Aphorism 1, 826-827 Apophthegma 1, 886-887 Catalogue 3, 6-8 Commentary I. Greek _ see Hypomnema
Comparison 3, 672-673 Dedication I. Greek 4, 167-169
4, 872-875
Excursus 5, 258-259 Folk-tales III. Greece 5, 486-488
Funerary literature IV. Classical Antiquity 5, 610 Glossary, Glosses see Glossogra-
phy
5, 885-887
Gnome A. Meaning of the word 6, 126
15, 913-915
11.6. Latin literature 11.6.1. POETRY 11.6.2. PROSE GENRES 11.6.3. OTHER FORMS, SMALL
FORMS
On Latin writers cf. Index of PerSONS 1.3. 11.6.1. POETRY 11.6.1.1. INTRODUCTION 1.6.1.2. DRAMA
11.6.1.3. EPIC POETRY 11.6.1.4. LYRIC POETRY I1.6.1.5. ELEGY, EPIGRAM 11.6.1.6. OTHER POETIC FORMS
11.6.1.1. INTRODUCTION Anthology I. Latin literature I, 730-731 Biblical poetry I. Latin 2, 63 5638
Bucolics II. Latin
2, 804-806 Catalogue B. Poetry 3, 6-7 Comedy II. Latin 3, 610-615 Court poetry 3, 887 Didactic poetry II. Greek & amp;
Latin
4, 379-385
Epic ll. A. Republic 4, ros1—-1053 > II. A. Problems of definition, characteristics of the
Gnome 1. Individual gnomai
Hemerologion
13, 766-767
Strategikon 13,870 Synkrisis 14, 28
15, 683-
684
5, 884
12, 529
Riddles I. Definition 12, 587-588 > III. Classical Antiquity
Zetema
15, 683
»
Ekphrasis I. A. Greek
“eae Onomastikon II. Greek IO, 138— 141 Palindrome. to, 389 Parody A. General Background LO, 546-547 >» B. Greek 10, 547-548 Paroimia 10, 550-551 Paroimiographoi 10, 551-552
Spoudogeloion
Wisdom literature. Il]. A. General points
Hypomnema 6, 641-643 Hypotheke [2] 6, 647 Jokes 6, 1200-1202 Menippian Satire see Menippus [4] of Gadara Muse, invocation of the 9, 321-
15, 468-469
see Autobiography
15, 684-685
Letter D. 2. Greece and Rome
>
12, 16
Protreptics I. Definition and origin >
306
Funerary oration
Paradoxographi II. Modern Period 10, 509-511 Paradoxographi 1. Greece
> >
genre 4, 1040-1042 II. B. Augustan Period and first century AD 4, 1053-1054 HI. B. The body of work 4, 1042-1051
53
> »
11.6. LATIN LITERATURE
II. C. Mythological Epics under the Principate 4, 1054 II. D. Historic Epics under the
Principate II. E. Second tiquity 4, Epistolography
4, 1055-1056 century to Late an1056-1057 G. Poetic Letters
>
4, 1147 Florilegium 5, 470-471 Lyric poetry II. Latin 8, 26-28 Mime II. Roman
8, 924-926
Muse, invocation of the
9, 321-
320) Occasional poetry 10, 6-7 Parody A. General Background
10, 546-547
>
II. B. The body of work 4, 1042-1051 > II. C. Mythological Epics under the Principate 4, 1054 > II. D. Historic Epics under the Principate 4, 1055-1056 > II. E. Second century to Late antiquity 4, 1056-1057 Parody A. General Background
18
Prosimetrum 12, 48-49 Songs II. A. Definition. 13, 632 > IL. B. Ancient literature. 13, 632-633
Tragedy II]. Roman Versification
14, 830-835
see Metre
Wisdom literature. III. A. General points 15, 683 >» Ill. E.Rome 15, 685-686 I1.6.1.2. DRAMA
On performance cf. Subject Index 15.3. On musical genres cf. Subject Index 15.2. On public performance cf. Subject Index S145. Actus [4] Latin. 1, 128-129 Atellana fabula 2, 224-226 Canticum 2, 1059-1060 Comedy II. Latin 3, 610-615 Didaskaliai Il. Roman 4, 386 Diverbium 4, 562 Mime II. Roman 8, 924-926 Monologue 9, 167-168 Palliata. 10, 399 Pantomime 10, 472-474 Praetexta. II, 770-771
Prologue A. Concept 12, 2 >» D.Romandrama 12, 3-4 Stichomythia 13, 835-836 Tabernaria_ see Togata
Togata.
14, 754-755
Trabeata see Comedy II D. Tragedy I]. Roman 14, 830-835 I1.6.1.3. EPIC POETRY Ekphrasis 2. Epics 4, 876
Epic II. A. Republic 4, ros1-1053 > IL. A. Problems of definition, characteristics of the genre 4, 1040-1042 >» II. B. Augustan Period and first century AD
4, 1053-1054
Acta Sanctorum
1, 119-120 Adventure Novel see Novel Agrarian writers B. Rome 1, 369-
a7 ba Cy Reception any 3772: Alexander Romance [II] Latin
1, 490-493
10, 546-547 Prooemium I. Concept.
12, 16
>
Il. Roman literature. 12, 1718 Recusatio 12, 429-430 Troy Ill. C. The Troy legend in literature and history 14, 980-
>» C. Latin 10, 548-549 Poet’s vocation see Muse, accla-
mation of the Poetry book IL. Latin 11, 447-449 Prooemium I. Concept. 12, 16 > III. Roman literature. 12, 17-
11.6.2. PROSE GENRES
On Latin Historiography cf. Subject Index 1.7.
Annalists 1, 703-704 Atticism 2, 324-325 Autobiography III. Roman >
2, 407-408
JV. Roman late antiquity 2, 408-410
981
> V.Influence 2, 410 Banquet III. C. Banquet literature
1.6.1.4. LYRIC POETRY
Bible translations I. C. New Testa-
2, 496-497
On performance cf. Subject Index 15.3. On musical genres cf. Subject Index 15.2. Bandusia [2] 2, 484
Ecloga [1] 4,794
Ekphrasis 3. Lyric poetry Hymenaios Il. Latin
4, 877
6, 614-615
Hymn III. A. Definition of the term 6, 622
>» III. C. Latin
6, 623-624 III. D. Middle Ages and early modern period 6, 624-625 Hymn II. The Latin hymnus
>
6, 620-622
Lyric poetry II. Latin 8, 26-28 Ode. 10, 28-29 Recusatio 12, 429-430
Satirical (mocking) poems _ see Jambographers Songs II. Classical antiquity
ment
2, 631-633
Bible A. Definition 2, 623-624 > D. Quotations in Greek and Latin authors 2, 628 Biographical novel see Novel Biography Il. Roman 2, 652-653 > Ill. Late antiquity 2, 653-655 >» IV. Later influence 2, 655 Breviarium 2, 762 Buntschriftstellerei B. Latin 222
S23
Catalogue A. Definition & 1G. Prosemesin7—3
3, 6
Catenae
3, 16 Chronicles A. General 3, 271 >» D.Roman 3, 273 Church regulations B. Overview
»
3, 312
C. Characteristics of the genre 35 312
13, 632-633
>
11.6.1.5. ELEGY, EPIGRAM
Clementines
D. Question regarding authors 35 313
Elegy II. Latin elegy 4, 903-906 Epigram I. Latin 4, 1103-1105 Funerary epigrams see Epigram Priapea.
11, 818-819
11.6.1.6. OTHER POETIC FORMS Carmina figurata 2, 1114 Cento 3, 115-118 Epode see Horace Fescennini versus 5, 395 Gastronomical poetry II. Latin
5,703
Genesis poetry see Biblical poetry Genethliakon II. Latin 5, 754-755 Menippian Satire see Menippus [4] of Gadara Occasional poetry 10, 6-7 Prooemium III. Roman literature. 12, 17-18
Prosimetrum 12, 48-49 Satire 13, 13-16
Technopaegnia.
14, 209
see Novel
Commentaril 3, 628-629 Commentary II. Latin 3, 630-631
Consolatio as a literary genre
3, 704-706 Consolatio see Consolatio as a literary genre Cookery books II. Greece and Rome 3, 762-763 Declamationes 4, 155-156
Dialogue A. Definition
4, 352
>» E. Roman Period 4, 354 > F. Christianity 4, 354-355 >» G. Survival 4, 355-356 Diatribe A. Concept 4, 366
>
C. Christian diatribes
4, 367-
368
Differentiarum scriptores 4, 405406 Ekphrasis 4. Prose 4, 877 Encyclopaedia III. Rome 4, 967969 Epistle G. Literary Letters 4, [141-1142
11.6. LATIN
>
54
LITERATURE
H. Anthologies of Letters
4, 1142-1143
Exempla see Valerius [III 5] Maximus Exitus illustrium virorum 5, 269 Fable III. Latin Literature 5, 306-
309 Florilegium
5, 470-471
Folk-tales J. Term and genre
5, 482-484
>» IV. Roman Literature 5, 488 Funerary oration see Epitaphios
[2] 5, 827-828 Glossography 5, 876-880 Historical novel see Novel Historiography IV. B. Latin 6, 427-430
Suasoriae
13, 898-899
Symposium literature A. Definition 14, 10 > Crlopies stax >» D. Thematic groups 14, 11-13 Textbook see Encyclopaedia Travel literature. 14, 868-869 Troy, romance of 14, 981-983 Visionary literature. 15, 468-469 Vita see Autobiography Wisdom literature. III. A. General points 15, 683 >» Il. E.Rome 15, 685-686
Gesta
Historiography II]. Rome
6, 422-
426
Laudatio funebris 7, 297-299 Laudatio [1] 7, 297 Letter D. 2. Greece and Rome
7, 439-440
Letter A. Types of letter 7, 436 > B. The letter as a medium of communication 7, 436-437 Lexicography II. Latin see Glossography Martyrdom, literature of 8, 417418
Memoirs see Autobiography Military writers 8, 906-907 Miracle Stories see Paradoxographol Novel I. Definition 9, 837 >»
III. Latin 9, 843-846 > IV. Christian 9, 846-849 Novella II. Latin 9, 852 Panegyrics II. Roman 10, 441-
443
Paradoxographi I. C. History of reception
10, 509
Paradoxographi 2. Definition 10, 507-508
>» 2.Rome 10, 509 Passio 10, 589-590
Philosophical literature, genres of. II, 95-101 Princes’ mirror.
11, 860-861
Prooemium I. Concept. 12, 16 > III. Roman literature. 12, 17-
11.6.3. OTHER FORMS, SMALL
FORMS On Latin writers cf. Index of PerSONS 1.3. Catalogue 3, 6-8 Commentary II. Latin Comparison
3, 630-631
3, 672-673
Dedication II. Latin Ekphrasis I. B. Latin
4, 169-170 4, 875-877
Excursus 5, 258-259 Folk-tales I. Term and genre
5, 482-484
Funerary literature IV. Classical Antiquity 5, 610 Gnome [2] Legal. 5, 891-892 Hemerologion 6, 126 Jokes 6, 1200-1202 Lunaria
7, 883 Muse, invocation of the 9, 321322 Onomastikon III. Latin IO, I4I142 Oracle of the dead see Divination Palindrome. 10, 389 Parody A. General Background
10, 546-547 >»
C. Latin to, 548-549 Praefatio see Authors
Priamel. 11, Prosimetrum
816-817 12, 48-49
Proverbs III. Classical Antiquity 12, 80-81
Riddles IIL. C. Latin literature
12, 590-591 Sator square. 13, 17-19 Spoudogeloion 13, 766-767 Synkrisis 14, 28
18
Antiatticist
I, 741 Antithesis 1,791 Antonomasia see Figures Aposiopesis 1, 889 Argumentatio 1, 1073-1074 Argumentum 1, 1075 Ars memorativa see Memoria
Art II. D. Rhetoric and aesthetics oer is Asianism 2, 156-157 Atticism 2, 324-325 Behaghel’s law 2, 580-581 Brevitas
2, 762-763 Canon [1] III. Greek literature 2, 1053-1054 > [x] IV. Latin literature 2, 1054-1055 Captatio benevolentiae 2, 10791080
Carmen de figuris 2, 1111 Catalogue C. Prose 3, 7-8 Chiasmus
see Parallelism
Chreta, -33.2:53 Cohortatio see Adlocutio Communication E. Rhetoric 3, 661-663
Comparison
3, 672-673 Competitions, artistic 1. Musical and rhetorical competitions at festive events 4, 1182-1183 Conclusio see Partes orationis Confirmatio see Argumentatio
Confutatio see Argumentatio Consolatio as a literary genre D. Influence 3, 705-706 Constitutio see Status [1] Controversiae 3, 756-757
Declamationes Decor(um)
4,
155-156
see Art, theory of
Descriptio see Ekphrasis Diatribe C. Christian diatribes
4, 367-368 Discourse, standards of 4, 540-
541 Dispositio
4, 559
Education / Culture C. 3. Development in the Imperial period
4, 832-833 Ekphrasis I. A. Greek 4, 872-875 Ekphrasis 1. Introduction 4, 875— 876
Protreptics I. Definition and origin
Lan 75 >
Wi Roman’
»
IV. Christian
02577
12, 77-78 Public recital I. Origins and development.
12, 178-179
>
II. Venues and occasions.
>
III. Genres.
Te L7.9 12, 179-180
Rhetoric VI. B. Roman oratory
12, 554-558 Speech
Amplificatio 1, 618 Anapher see Figures
13, 721-722
12. Rhetoric On literature and oratory cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1. On orators and writers on rbeto-
ric cf. Index of Persons 2. Abbreviatio 1,9 Actio [1] in rhetoric 1, 121 Adlocutio 1, 141 Aesthetics D. The criteria of the beautiful 1, 265-266 Allegoresis 1, 511-516 Allegory 1, 517-519 Alliteration 1, 520-521
Elenchos 15, 1025-1027 Elocutio 4, 927-928 Enallage see Figures I Encyclopaedia III. Rome 4, 967969 Enthousiasmos 4, 1000-1001 Epanalepsis see Figures I Epideixis 4, rog1-1092 Epilogue 4, 1110 Ethopoeia 5, 89 Ethos 5, 89-90 Excursus 5, 258-259
13.2. BOOKS AND MANUSCRIPTS (CODICOLOGY)
35)
Exempla
see Valerius [III 5]
Maximus Exercitatio 5, 265-266
Exordium
Prolepsis
5, 272-273
Figura etymologica see Figures Figures 5, 421-425 Genera causarum 5, 749-751
Genera dicendi 5, 751-754 Gestus 5, 839-841 Gnome [1] IJ. Roman Reception: Sententia
>
5, 888-890
[x] Ill. Later history of reception 5, 890-891
Gnome 2. Gnomics 5, 887-888 Grammarians II. Rome 5, 984-
985 Hypothesis B. Rhetoric
6, 648
Invective 6, 881-883 Inventio 6, 883-884
Irony 6, 943-945 Jokes B. Theory of the joke 6,
Kolon [2] 7, 85-86 Laudatio [1] 7, 297 Literary criticism 7, 650-652
Literary history D. Latin
7, 660-
662
Literary theory II. Latin
7, 669-
672
Literature III. E. Functions and change in function 7, 685-687 7, 713-714
> f)Letter 7,714 Locus [2] see Memoria Mannerism 8, 251 Melete see Exercitatio Memory, Recollection 8, 653-
654
Metaphor
9, 96-97
Narratio see Partes orationis Obscuritas 10, 3-4
Officium [7] Officium, officia oratoris.
10, 63-64
Onomastikon III. Latin 142 Oratory see Rhetoric Ornatus. 10, 234-235 Panegyrics
Prosopopoiie —see Personification Public recital 12, 178-181 Puritas see Virtutes dicendi Ratiocinatio see Status Refutatio see Argumentatio Rhetoric textbooks see Rhetoric Rhetoric 12, 530-558 Second Sophistic 13, 185-191 Sententia [1]
13, 282
Sophists 13, 636-639 Speech I. Genre 13, 721 Status 13, 807-810 Stoicism III. Logic 13, 853 Style, stylistic figures 13, 892-893 Suasoriae
13, 898-899
14, 194-195
Tropes
14, 965-966
Tropos, Tropus _ see Figures Virtutes dicendi 15, 460-462 Zetema III. Exegesis and Rhetoric 15, 914-915
13. History of texts 13.1. [EXTUAL SCHOLARSHIP 13.2. BOOKS AND MANUSCRIPTS
13.4. WRITING MEDIA 357 SPECIFIC ERS AND 13.6. SCRIPTS,
10, 439-443
Copy 3,774-778
Correction marks 3, 851 Correction see Copy Critical signs 4, 1196-1198 Dark Ages [2] 4, 100 Dating
see Manuscripts Diacritical signs 4, 333-335 Dictation see Copy Diorthotes see Copy Documents VI. B. External form 4, 600
Editions, second 4, 809-812 Ekdosis [2] see Publication Emendation of texts 4, 938-939 Glossary, Glosses see Glossogra-
phy
Indirect tradition 6, 780-784 Inscriptio 6, 822-823 Inscriptions 6, 823-833 Interpolation 6, 863-865 Katalogeion 7, 31 Leiden System 7, 373-374 Macedonian Renaissance
» III. Educational books 14, 195 Tetralogy 14, 321-322 Textbook see Encyclopaedia Topics 14, 782-784 Topos [2] see Topics Translatio [1] see Status [1] A.
MATERIALS AND CHARACTERS, MARKCORRECTION MARKS SCRIPT STYLES
10, I4I-
Paradeigma III. Philosophy and rhetoric 10, 502-503 Parallelism to, 516 Paronomasia see Figures Partes orationis. 10, 560-561 Pathos 10, 599-600 Personification I. A. Personification in Rhetoric and Poetry 10, 842 Perspicuitas see Virtutes dicendi Phonaskoi 11, 175 Pistis C. Rhetoric 11, 298 Polyptoton see Figures Praefatio see Authors Presuppositions of rhetoric Ir, 814-815
Pronuntiatio [1] 12, 15 Prooemium 12, 16-18 Propositio see Partes orationis
(CODICOLOGY) 13.3. PAPYRUS (PAPYROLOGY)
8, 785-788
Mnemonics
12, 1
Techne II. Theoretical reflection
1201-1202
Literature e) Sermon > e)Sermon 7,718
Probatio II. Rhetoric 11, 892-894 Progymnasmata II, 947
On ancient philology and textual criticism cf. Subject Index 11.2. On education cf. Subject Index 3.2. On written communication cf. Subject Index 3.4.3. On literature cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1. On scholarly disciplines cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.2.
13.1. Textual scholarship Abbreviations 1, 9-15 Anthology F. Transmission 1, 729 Athetesis see Interpolation Author’s variants 2, 403-405 Autograph 2, 411-412 Book illustration
2, 727-729 Collation see Copy Conjecture see Emendation of texts
8, 82—
83 Manuscripts Monobiblos
8, 268-274 9, 163-164
Monokondylion
see Cryptogra-
phy
Nag Hammadi B. Classification
9, 489
Orthography 10, 262-265 Palaeologan Renaissance.
10, 373-376
Publication 12, 185-186 Rubric(a) 12, 746-748 Rubrikator see Rubric(a) Scribes III. Greece and Rome 13, LLI-114 Scriptio plena 13, 121 Scriptor see Scribes Scriptorium. 13, 121-123 Squeeze. 13,772 Stage directions.
13, 778-779
Stemma, Stemmatics
logical methods Text, corruption of the
see Philo14, 336-
338
Textual history 14, 346-357 Writing exercises 15, 775-776
13.2. Books and manuscripts (codicology) Cf. Lists D.III. (Greek and Latin manuscripts)
Book illustration 2, 727-729 Book 2, 721-727 Books, subdivision of
see Codex
Byblos 2, 842 Cartonnage 15, 1017 Cera 3,140 Codex II. A. General meaning
3 500
Codex J. Cultural history 3, 497500 Colophon [3] see Subscription
13.2. BOOKS
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
Eisthesis see Rubrication Ekthesis see Rubrica Gospel book see Liturgical manuscripts Illustration see Book illustration Layout 7, 326-328 Liturgical manuscripts 7, 730-
731
Manuale
8, 263
Manuscript fragments 8, 267— 268 Manuscripts 8, 268-274 Membrana __ see Parchment
Missale see Liturgical Manuscripts Palimpsest 1o, 387-388 Parchment. 10, 525-526 Pecia 10, 665-667 Pricking see Ruling (of MSS)
Psalterium [2]
see Liturgical
manuscripts (A 2)
Pugillares 12, 194 Quire. 12,358 Rubric(a) 12, 746-748 Rubrikator see Rubric(a) Ruling (of MSS). 12, 779-780
Scheda
13, 59
Scrinium I. Meaning > JI. Book container
13, 119-120 13, 120
Scroll 13, 124-127 Sphragis [2] see Seals Subscriptio Il. Manuscripts
13, 902-904
Watermark
see Codicology
13.3. Papyrus (papyrology) Cf. Lists D.I. (Editions of papyri) Abbreviations B. Papyri_ 1, 10-12 Abinnaeus Archive 1, 21 Acta Alexandrinorum 1, 117 Bulrush 2, 820 Byblos 2, 842 Codex I. B. Parchment and papyrus-codex 3, 499-500 Feriale Duranum 5, 390-391 Herculanean Papyri 6, 185-187 Index [2] see Scrolls Katalogeion 7, 31 Kollema see Scroll Manuscript fragments 8, 267268
Omphalos [2] _see Scroll Opisthographos 10, 161-162 Oxyrhynchus B. The Oxyrhynchus Papyri 10, 313 Palimpsest 10, 387-388
Papyrus
10, 493-498
Plaga [3] 11, 315
Quire. 12,358 Ravenna Papyri 12, 412-413 Recto/verso. 12, 428-429
Scheda 13, 59 Scroll 13, 124-127 Sillybos _ see Scroll Titulus —see Scroll
56
(CODICOLOGY)
Tomos synkollesimos 14, 777 Umbilicus [2] see Scroll Verso see Recto/Verso
13.4. Writing materials and media Album [1] 1, 434 Bast see Writing utensils
Bulrush
2, 820 Calamus see Pen Calamus [2] 2, 930-931 Cartonnage 15, 1017
Codex I. Cultural history 500
3, 497-
Colophon [2] 3, 579
Deltion, Deltos see Writing tablet Diptychon 4, 532 Documents VI. B. External form 4, 600
Grapheion, Graphis, Graphium see Stylus Ink 6, 814-815 Kyrbeis 7, 125 Linear B C. Writing materials
7, 615 Ostrakon
8, 268-274 10, 288-289
Palimpsest
Papyrus
10, 387-388
10, 493-498
Parchment. Peneenl
10, 525-526
ose
Pugillares 12, 194 Scheda 13, 59 Scrinium I. Meaning 13, 119-120 > II. Book container 13, 120 Scroll 13, 124-127 Stilus see Stylus Stylus 13, 894-895 Tabella duplex see Writing tablets Tabula 14, 90-91 Wax tablet see Cera Writing materials
Writing tablets
15, 776-779
15, 785-786
13.5. Specific characters, markers and correction marks Abbreviations I, 9-15 Ancora see Anchor Anecdoton Parisinum
see Dia-
critical signs Anecdoton Romanum
see
Dia-
critical signs Asterisk 2, 190 Collation see Copy Colon see Punctuation Coronis [2]
7,549
Monogram
Neums_
see Punctuation 9, 166-167
see Music
Nomina Sacra.
9, 794-795
Paragraphos see Punctuation Parepigraphe see Stage directions Poems, division of. 11, 439-441 Punctuation 12, 199-204 Question mark see Punctuation
3, 140
Manuscripts
Ligature
Mese stigme
Book A. The Book in its oldest form Ly Loo >» B.Scrolland codex 2, 722-724
Cera
Hyphen see Punctuation Hypostigme, Hypoteleia see Punctuation Initial 6, 809-811 Jota subscriptum see Punctuation
see Punctuation
Correction marks 3, 851 Correction see Copy Critical signs 4, 1196-1198 Diacritical signs 4, 333-335 Dikolon see Punctuation Elision see Punctuation
Quotation marks see Punctuation Scriptio continua see Punctuation Spatium see Punctuation
Speaker, change of 13, 713-714 Spiritus [2] 13,740 Teleia (stigme) see Punctuation Word division 15, 735-736
13.6. Scripts, script styles On writing cf. Subject Index 9.3. Abbreviations
1, 9-15 see MinusAlemannic Minuscule cule Alexandrinian Uncials see Uncials Alphabet 1, 529-541 Anastasius style 1, 647 Archaizing Script 1, 977-978 As de pique see Southern Italian script Bastarda 2, 545-546 Beneventana 2, 597-598 Beta-gamma style 2, 614 Biblical Uncials see Uncials Book hand
see Writing, styles of
Bouletée script 2,743 Boustrophedon see Script Capital scripts 2, 1066-1068 Capitalis quadrata_ see Capital scripts Capitalis rustica see Capital scripts Chancellery script see Document hand Coptic cursives see Writing, styles of (Cursive) Coptic Uncial see Uncial Cryptography B. Encoding with letters and numbers 3, 968-969 Cursive see Writing styles Cypriot scripts (medieval) 15, 1024 Discus of Phaestus 4, 541-542 Display scripts 4, 557-559 Document hand 4, 587-588 Ductus 4,734 Estrangela 5,77 Gothic script [2] 5, 952-953
> [a],.5; 953
Grease-drop script
5,998
D7,
14.2. PHILOSOPHICAL
Hair-stroke see Writing, styles of Hodegon style 6, 441-442
Christianity B.1 Cultural adapta-
Humanist script 6, 559-560 Humanistic scripts (Latin) 6, 558-
Enkyklios paideia B. Nature
Spy)
Initial 6, 809-811 Inscription style 6, 833-834 Irish script 6, 937-938 Ligature 7, 549 Linear A 7, 612-614 Linear B 7, 614-619
Majuscule 8, 190-192 Merovingian scripts 8, 721-722 Metochites style 8, 809-810 Minuscule (print) 9, 45 Minuscule 9, 40-45 National scripts. 9, 520-521 Ornamental style. ro, 222-223 Otranto minuscule — see South Italian minuscule Pearl script. 10, 664-665 Proto-Sinaitic script 12,74 Ptolemaic cursive see Writing styles Reggio style see South Italian minuscule Roman cursive see Writing styles Roman uncial see Uncials Severe style [1] 13, 356-357 Shorthand see Tachygraphy Sinai script. 13, 494 South Italian minuscule. 13, 680— 681
Square script
13, 771-772 Subscript see Writing styles II. A. Superscript see Writing styles Tachygraphy 14, 102-105 Textualis, Textura see Gothic script [2]
Uncials
15, 101-104
Underscore
see Writing styles Visigothic script 15, 464-465 Writing styles 15, 779-785 Writing, direction of 15, 786-787 Writing, inclination of 15, 787
tion
Humanitas C. Complementary character 6, 562-563 Phantasia B. History 10, 918-919 Philosophical life. 11, 91-94 Philosophical literature, genres of. Il, 95-101 Philosophy, teaching of. 11, ro8II2
Philosophy 11, 101-107 Physics II. Concept and assumptions 11, 219-220 > IIL. Subject 11, 220-221 > IV. Differentiations 11, 221— Hele >» V. Questions and methods of investigation I1, 222-223 Popular philosophy. 11, 617-618 Practical philosophy 11, 744-749 Science I. Mesopotamia 13, 84-
85 >»
II. Egypt
13, 85-87
Seven Sages 13, 351-352 Theology 14, 489-496
ey
14.2. Philosophical concepts and themes On social history cf. Subject Index 2. On cultural history cf. Subject Index 3. On mythology cf. Subject Index 16. On religion cf. Subject Index 17. On Christianity cf. Subject Index 18. Aequitas 1, 236-237 Affects 1, 288-289 Analogy [1] Philosophical 1, 639640
14. Philosophy 14.1. INTRODUCTION
14.2. PHILOSOPHICAL CONCEPTS AND THEMES 14.3. APPROACHES, METHODS AND THEORIES 14.4. PHILOSOPHICAL LITERARY FORMS LAGS. PHILOSOPHICAL SCHOOLS AND INSTITUTIONS
Anamnesis
Ananke Apatheia see Affects see Infinity Apeiron Aporia 1, 888-889 Arche see Principle Arete [4] see Virtue Argumentum 1, 1075
Art 2, 38-42 Ascesis/Ascetism 2, 93 Ataraxia 2, 218-219
Autarkeia B. Philosophical 14.1. Introduction On sciences cf. Subject Index 22. On ancient philosophy cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 7. On
philosophers ofantiquity cf. Index of Persons 4. Artes liberales B. Canon of subjects 2, 7I-72
II. B. General overview
2, 398-399 Axiom 2, 430 Categories 3, 13-16
Causality 3, 42-45 Chaos 3, 188 Coincidence 15, 1020-1022 Conscience 3, 695-696 Constitution 3, 726-729
4, 129-
130 > II. C. Criteria of death 4, 130ron > II. D. Homicide and suicide 4, 131 > JI. E. Philosophy 4, 131 Demiourgos [3] 4, 262-263 Desire 4, 316-318 Doxa see Opinion
Duty 4, 751-752 Dyas 4, 755-756
Eidolon [3] 4, 855 Elenchos 15, 1025-1027 Emanation 4, 934-935 Emptiness see Space Endoxa see Opinion
Energeia
4, 975-976
Enkyklios paideia B. Nature 4, 982-983 >»
C. History
4, 983-984
Entelechy
see Energeia
Episteme
see Epistemology
Epoche 4, 1159 Eschatology A. Term and subject matter
5, 58-61
>
B. Graeco-Roman domain
>
C. Hebrew Bible and Hellenistic
55 61-64
Judaism 5, 64-65 >» D.Christianity 5, 65-66 Eusebeia 5, 223-224 Experience 5, 275
Fas 5, 358-359 Fate
5, 366-368
Fire 5, 429-432
First Philosophy see Metaphysics Freedom II. Philosophical 5, 548549
Friendship II. Philosophy
5, 555-
557
Happiness 5, 1132-1135 Heimarmene see Fate Homonoia
I, 641 1, 641-642
THEMES
4, 129 >
Woman II. E. Women poets and
philosophers 15, 704 Women philosophers 15, 718-
AND
Death II. A. Preliminary remark
3, 256-258
4, 982-983
CONCEPTS
6, 468
Human dignity 6, 556-558 Human rights B. Natural law and other speculations 6, 564 Humanitas A. Definition 6, 560 > B. Levels of meaning 6, 560562
Hyle [2] 6, 610 Hypostasis [2] 6, 644-645 ImageI 6,737 Image II 6, 738-740 Imitatio see Intertextuality
Impulse
6, 758-759
Infinity 6, 797-799 Intellect 6, 842-844 Irony II. Philosophy 6, 944-945 Justice/Right 6, 1224-1226
Kalokagathia 7, 10-11 Katharsis 7, 36-37 Law [1] 7, 310-311
14.2. PHILOSOPHICAL
CONCEPTS
AND
Liberalitas, largitio D. Political thought in the late Republic and in the Principate period 7, 489-
490
58
THEMES
Sophia see Wisdom Soul, migration of the
13, 670-
672
Logos [1] A. Term 7,792 > [1] B. Pre-Socratics 7, 792-793
Soul, theory of the A. Concept of the soul 13, 672-673 Space 13, 685-687
>
Spiritus [1] I. Graeco-Roman
[1] C. Plato and Aristotle
> ([z]D.Stoa »
7,794
[1] E. Philo of Alexandria
7, 794-795 > [1] F. Plotinns 7,795 Marat 8, 51 Matter 8, 486-489
Memory, Recollection
8, 653-
654 Mesotes 8, 747 Mimesis 8, 926-928 Motion 9, 240-242
Natural Law — see Aequitas Nature, Natural philosophy
9, 529-536 Necessity
concept
Virtus.
theory of
quity see Purification Purpose, end 12, 233 Rationality 12, 398-404 Reason see Intellect Sapientia see Wisdom Science III. Classical antiquity 13, 87-92 Self-knowledge 13, 223-225
II. Greece Il. Rome
Education / Culture B. 1. Educational ideals and concepts 4, 826-830
»
>
religious communities
14, 759
Tranquillitas.
Virtue
E. Tradition of ancient education
4, 834-835
14, 843 14, 844-845
Truth 14, 984-986 Utilitas publica 15, 144-145 Utopia 15, 145-148
15, 457-459
15, 459-460 Will 15, 633-635 Wisdom 15, 671-679 World soul see Middle Plato-
Enkyklios paideia B. Nature 4, 982-983 Epistemology 4, 1131-1137 Eristic see Sophists Eroticism I. B. The nature of Eros 5» 41-42
>» I.C. Tamed Eroticism 5, 42-43 >» J.E.Thenovel 5, 44 Eschatology A. Term and subject matter
>»
5, 61-64
15, 747-749
14.3. Approaches, methods and theories Aesthetics 1, 263-266 Aetiology III. Philosophy — see Causality Aisthesis see Aesthetics Allegoresis 5. Philosophical-literary allegorical interpretation
I, 513-514
Analogy [1] Philosophical
1, 639-
640
Anatomy C.1 Alexandria 1, 652 Anthropology 1, 733-736 Anthropomorphism 1, 736-738 Art criticism see Art, theory of Art, theory of A. Mimesis 2, 46—
47
B.Phantasia 2, 47 C. Theory and practice
2, 47-
48
Ascesis/Ascetism 2, 93 2, 294-296 Causality 3, 42-45 Chthonic deities II. E. History of research 3, 299-300 Cosmogony see World, creation
Atomism
of the
5, 58-61
B. Graeco-Roman domain
nism,D. 2.
World
> >
4, 795-797 4, 797-798
4, 825-826
[2] Sero x63 Oikeiosis 10, 68-69 Opinion 10, 158-161
Prudence 12, 88-90 Psyche [2] see Soul, theory of the Purity IV. Graeco-Roman Anti-
4,795 >» >»
14, 758-759
Transcendence
Protos Heuretes 12, 72-74 Providence see Predestination,
Dialectics 4, 348-351 Doxography 4, 702-704 Economical Ethics I. Definition
education 4, 833-834 Education / Culture A. Term
J.B. Latin tolerantia: word and
Number III. C. Numbers in philosophy 9, 889-891 > III. D. Numerical mysticism 9, 891-893 Officium [1] 10, 63
11, 298-300
4, 278-
14,758
Tolerance I. A. Modern concept
> I. C. Tolerance between state and
Pistis
D.Chaldaean Oracles
C. 3. Development in the Imperial period 4, 832-833 >» D. 2. Christianity and ancient
9, 587-589
Pleasure 11, 366-369 Pneuma 11, 431-433 Praxis[2] see Practical philosophy Principle 11, 863-867 Prohairesis see Will
4, 276-
278
quity 14, 687-694
Nomos. [1] B. Social 9, 799 » [1] D. Theoretica! and Philosophical 9, 800-801 Nous 9, 832
Paradeigma III. Philosophy and rhetoric 10, 502-503 Peace of mind see Ataraxia Person. 10, 830-832 Persona [3] see Person Phantasia 10, 918-919 Philosophical life. 11, 91-94 Philosophy A. Word and meaning II, LOI-102 Phronesis see Prudence
C. Plato and Platonism
279
Stoicheion 13, 851-852 Substance see Hypostasis [2] Syllogism see Logic Techne 14, 194-195 Telos [2] 14, 239 Temperament 14, 244-245 Theodicy 14, 446-448 Theology I. A. Concept 14, 489 Theoria 14, 522-527 Time, concepts of II. Classical Anti-
>
>
»
13, 739-740
7 793-794
Cosmology 3, 864-871 Cosmopolitanism 3, 871-873 Demonology A. Definition 4, 275 >» B.Preplatonic 4, 275-276
>» C. Hebrew Bible and Hellenistic Judaism 5, 64-65 » D. Christianity 5, 65-66 Ethics 5, 82-85 Ethos 5, 89-90 Hermeneutics 6, 212-214 Homo mensura maxim _ see Protagoras Ideas, theory of 6, 712-714 International law V. The theory of international law 6, 856-857 Light, metaphysics of 7, 550 Literary theory I. Greek 7, 662669
Logic
7, 782-788
Lyseis see Zetemata Maieutic method 8, 187-188
Materialism 8, 453-455 Mental illness D. Plato and Aristotle 8,703 Metaphysics 8, 788-792 Meteorology II. B. Presocratics 8, 796-797 > II. C. Aristotle 8, 797-798 > II. D. Hellenistic and Roman meteorology 8, 798-800 Mixed constitution 9, 91-92
Monetary theory
9, 143-144
59
15.1. INTRODUCTION,
Nature, Natural philosophy
9, 529-536
Ontology ro, 143-148 Origin myths and theories on the origin of culture 10, 212-217 Perception, theories of 10, 741-
Diatribe A. Concept 4, 366 > B. Older diatribes 4, 366-367 Didactic poetry 4, 379-385 Exoteric/Esoteric see Philosophical literature, genres of Genera dicendi B. Development
745
55 752-753
Physics II. Concept and assumptions I1, 219-220 > III. Subject 11, 220-221
Hermetic writings
>
> C. Formal elements 6, 952 > D. Subjects 6, 952-953 Letter D. 2. Greece and Rome
IV. Differentiations
11, 221-
298) V. Questions and methods of investigation I1, 222-223 Political philosophy 11, 484-490 Popular philosophy. 11, 617-618 Practical philosophy 11, 744-749 Predestination, theory of I. General >
comments
>
I1,796
Ill. Christian
6, 222-223 Isagoge A. Definition 6, 951 >
E. Musical
II, 455-456 Princes’ mirror.
11, 860-861
Protreptics I. Definition and origin >»
Signs, theory of see Language, philosophy and theory of Sophists 13, 636-639 Soul, migration of the 13, 670672
Soul, theory of the 13, 672-675 Suicide 13, 926-927 Syllogism see Logic Theology I. B. Literary Genres
14, 489 I. C. Main themes and historical development 14, 490-493 Theoria 14, 522-527 Theurgie 14, 583-585 Time, concepts of II. Classical Anti-
II. Greek 12, 75-77 Pythagorea pseudepigrapha
15, 679-688
14.5. Philosophical schools and institutions
Academy 1, 41-46 Alexandrian School 1, 499-500 Anaxagoreans 1, 657 Aristotelianism
Time, theories of
Atomism 2, 294-296 Cynicism 3, 1052-1060 Cyrenaics 4, 4-6 Democriteans 4, 266
see Time, con-
cepts of Vegetarianism
15, 250-252
World, beginning of
see Cosmol-
ogy World, creation of the VI. A. Hel-
lenistic Judaism and Christianity of the Apostolic period 15, 756-757 >»
VI.B. Gnosticism
15, 757-758
World, creation of the I. Definition
15,750 Zetema
15, 913-915 Zoroastrianism IV. The end of time and life 15, 967-968 > V. Ethics and behaviour 15,968
14.4. Philosophical literary forms Consolatio as a literary genre A. General 3,704 Consolatio as a literary genre B. Content 3, 704-705 > C. Principal works 3,705 Cynics’ letters see Cynicism
15. Music 15.1. INTRODUCTION, MUSIC THEORY 15.2. MUSICAL GENRES 15.3. PERFORMANCE PRACTICE 15.4. MUSIC AND MATHEMATICS 15.5. MUSICAL INSTRUMENTS 15.6. MILITARY MUSIC
Entry Index 6.1. On music cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 6.2.
15.1. Introduction, music theory On musicians and musicologists cf. Index of Persons 5. Acoustics
1, 103-107 Artes liberales 2, 71-73 Dance II. Classical Antiquity
4, 72-76
Education / Culture A. Term
02, 292-293
Wisdom literature.
>
quity 14, 687-694
see Stoicism Stoicism 13, 852-857 Therapeutai 14, 533-534
On drama cf. CT index volume,
12,75 12, 228
Stoa [2]
7, 439-440
12, 227-228
>
6, 951-952
Literature 7. Philosophical works 7, 697-699 Philosophical literature, genres of. II, 95-101 Polemics II. Greeks, Romans.
11, 797-798
Psychology _ see Soul, theory of the Purification C. Philosophical
B. Functions
1,
1147-1152
Aristotle, commentators on I, 1153-1154
Dialecticians 4, 347-348 Dogmatists [1] Philosophers. 4, 611-612
Eclecticism 4, 789 Eleatic School 4, 891-893 Elis and Eretria, School of 4, 925 Empiricists D. Connection with Philosophy 4,954 Epicurean School 4, 1071-1075 Eretrian School see Elis and Eretria, School of
Hairesis 5, 1097-1098 Heracliteans 6, 175-176 Kepos 7, 40-41
Megarian School 8, 604-605 Middle Platonism 8, 858-864 Milesian School 8, 879-880 Neoplatonism 9, 643-648 Neopythagoreanism. 9, 653-654
Peripatos
10, 797-798
Presocratics.
MUSIC THEORY
11, 809-810
Pythagorean School 12, 284-287 Schola 13, 64-67 Socratics. 13, 601-603 Sophists 13, 636-639
4, 825-826
Education 4, 815-825 Enkyklios paideia 4, 982-984 Helicon [4] see Music Isagoge A. Definition 6,951 >»
B. Functions
6, 951-952
> C. Formal elements 6,952 >» D. Subjects 6, 952-953 Mathematics 1. Theoretical arithmetic 8, 470-471 Metre I. Preliminary remark 8, 816
Mousike 9, 253-254 Muses C. Character and deeds >
9, 323
D. Historical aspects and influ-
ence 9, 323-324 Music
9, 326-346 Musical Notation see Music Musicians (female) 9, 364-369 Neums
see Music
Prosody I. Prosdidia (Ilooomdia) ean Purification E. Musical 12, 228 Recreation C. Leisure time alone
and incompany 12, 421-422 Rhythm 12, 582-584 Science III. B. Concept and structure
>
13, 88-90
III. C. Significant characteristics
and individual disciplines 13, 90-92 Songs II. A. Definition. 13, 632 Sound theory 13, 676-679 Spheres, harmony of. 13, 731 Technical Literature 14, 195-201
15.1. INTRODUCTION,
15.2. Musical genres On Greek and Latin poetry and drama cf. Subject Index 11.4.,
IV.C. Myth 9, 332-333 IV.D. Tradition and history DSS
OO
IV. E. Education, Ethos
9, 335-336
1, 18
Ailinos 1, 404-405 Anabole 1, 627-628 Canon [2] 2, 1057 Canticum
> > >
VOLE Sei Beary)OoUn of
Abecedarii
60
MUSIC THEORY
9, 326-328
» Il. Egypt 9, 328-329 > >
2, 1059-1060
Ill. Ancient Israel 9, 329-331 V. Etruria, Rome, early Christi-
anity 9, 344-346
Carmina triumphalia 2, r114 Dithyramb 4, 560-562 Epithalamion see Hymenaus Hilarodia see Simodia
Musicians (female) 9, 364-369 Pantomime 10, 472-474 Pyrrhiche 12, 270-272
Hymenaeus 6, 612-613 Hymn 6, 616-626
Rhapsodes 12, 521-523 Talarius ludus 14, 119 Techne I. Term and areas of usage 14, 194
Kastoreion
Technitai
Komos
7, 26 see Musical
1114
16. Mythology 16.1. INTRODUCTION 16.2. MYTHOLOGICAL THEMES, SUBJECTS
16.3. MYTHICAL GEOGRAPHY 16.4. MYTHICAL GROUPS AND PEOPLES 16.5. FABULOUS CREATURES/MONSTERS, MYTHICAL ANIMALS 16.6. GROUPS OF GODS AND DEMONS
14, 201-202
On individual mythic and legendary creatures cf. Index of Per-
14, 991-992
1, 103-107
Mathematics 1. Theoretical arithmetic 8, 470-471 Music IV. G. Systems
9, 338-341 >» V.A.Etruria 9, 344-345 Proportion II]. Music 12, 35-36 Rhythm 12, 582-584
16.1. Introduction Demonology B. Preplatonic 4, 275-276
Demonology C. Plato and Plato>»
nism 4, 276-278 D.Chaldaean Oracles
4, 278-
279
13, 629-
630
Songs 13, 630-633 Talarius ludus 14, 119 Thriambos_ see Dionysus I C 5
15, 745-746
15.3. Performance practice
Ambubaiae 1, 574 Chorus A. Concept 3, 247 » B. Manifestations, genres
3, 247-248
Competitions, artistic 1. Musical and rhetorical competitions at festive events 4, 1182-1183 Dance I. Egypt and Ancient Orient
hy i
Histrio III. Requirements of the his-
trio 6, 433-434
Hypokrites II. Duties (including supernumeraries) 6, 639 7, 92-93
Molpoi 9, 132-133 Mouseion A. Definition 9, 249 > C. The Mouseion in Alexandria 9, 250-252 > D.Influence 9, 252-253 Music IV. A. Concept, characteristics 9, 331-332 > IV.B. Sources, problems 9,332
Tubicen
Acoustics
10, 786-787
Prosodion 12, 51-52 Psalmody 12, 98-102 Pyrrhiche 12, 270-272 Simodia 13, 481-482 Song of Sicilus (Seikilos).
Komos
2,
15.4. Music and mathematics
Lysiodia see Simodia Magodia see Simodia Nenia A. Dirge 9, 634 Ode. 10, 28-29 Paean 10, 328-330
Work songs.
Carmina triumphalia Cornicines 3, 837
SOns 6.3.
7, 92-93
Kordax 7,96 Lyric poetry 8, 21-28
Period
1, 222 2, 800
Music I. Ancient Near East
Carmen Arvale 2, 1110 Carmen Saliare 2, 1113 Carmen see Song
Kithara, Kitharodia instruments
15.6. Military music Aeneatores Bucinatores
15.5. Musical instruments Askaules 2, 162 Aspendioi Kitharistai see Musical instruments Aulos [1] 2, 378 Barbitos see Musical instruments Bucinatores
2, 800
Cornicines 3, 837 Echeia 4, 781-782 Hemisphairion 6, 130-131
Hydraulis see Musical instruments Kithara, Kitharodia see Musical instruments
Lituus [2] ments Lyra
see Musical instru-
see Musical instruments
Magadis see Musical instruments Monochord — see Musical Instruments
Musical instruments
9, 346-363
Organ see Musical instruments Phorminx see Musical instruments,V. A.
Plectrum see Musical instruments,V.A.1.
Rhombos 12, 578 Rhombus [3] see Rhombus Rhoptron — see Musical instruments (V. D.)
Sambyke [1] 12, 924 Sistrum 13, 509-510 Syrinx [2] 14,71
Tibia see Musical instruments VI. Tympanon, Tympanum see Gable
>» E. Christian Eponymus 4,
4,279 1166-1167
Eroticism II. C. Basic motifs 5, 46-47 Fate A. General 5, 366-367 Fire B. Greek Mythology 5, 429-
430
Folk-tales I. Term and genre
5, 482-484
Heros
see Hero cult
Historiola
6, 430
Interpretatio II. Religion
6, 869-
871 Motif research
9, 239-240
Music IV. C. Myth
Myth
9, 444-462
9, 332-333
Myth II. Mesopotamia
9, 446—
447 Mythography I. Introduction 9, 464 » II. Greek Antiquity 9, 464-467 > Ill. Latin antiquity 9, 467-469 Personification II. A. The Greek World 10, 844-845 Protos Heuretes
12, 72-74
Religion Ii. A. Gods and perceptions about them 12, 470-471 Saga see Myth Tragedy I. D. Myth and tragedy 14, 826-827
16.2. Mythological themes, subjects Aegis
1, 195-196
Afterlife, concepts of 1, 301-304
61
16.5. FABULOUS
Ambrosia [2] 1, 572 Anthropogony 1, 732-733 Anthropomorphism 1, 736-738 Argo 1, 1064 Aristeia 15, 1006
Arthur Legend see Arthur Balius 2, 474 Calydonian Hunt see Meleager Cannibalism 2, 1051-1052 Chaos 3, 188 Cosmogony
see World, creation
of the Death II. A. Preliminary remark
4, 129 >
> »
II. B. General overview
4, 129-
130 II. C. Criteria of death 4, 130Tear II. F. Religion and Mythology
4, 131 Deluge, legend of the 4, 229-230 Dragon slayers 4, 709-710 Eroticism I. B. The nature of Eros
59 41-42 >»
II. D. Representations
5, 47-
51 Eschatology 5, 58-66 Exposure, myths and legends of 5, 278-280
First man
15, 1029-1030
Funerary literature III. E. Cosmographical Texts 5, 609-610 Gigantomachy 5, 848-849 Gilgamesh, Gilgamesh Epic
5, 852-853
Gorgoneion 5, 939-940 Hieros Gamos II. Ancient Orient 6, 321
Pali Greece
65-422) Katabasis 7, 27-29 Katasterismos 7, 33-34 Labyrinth 7, 139-141 Manalis lapis 8, 216-217 Metamorphosis 8, 783-785 Nectar
9, 610
Nimbus. [3] I. Ancient Orient and Bible 9, 763-764 > [3] III. Classical Antiquity
9, 764-766
Nudity A. Myth 9, 873 Origin myths and theories on the origin ofculture I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 10, 212-213 Pedasus [2] 10, 674 Phaea
10, 891
Planets II. Astrology and Mythol-
ogy
I1, 328-334
Psychostasia see Soul, weighing of the Purification A. Introduction ity pM >» B. Religious 12, 225-227 > C. Philosophical 12, 227-228 >» E. Musical 12, 228 Rape IV. Mythological context 12, 394-395
CREATURES/MONSTERS,
Ruler, birth of the V. B. Myths and legends of exposure 12, 766 Sarcophagus 1. Mythological themes 12, 970-971 Seven against Thebes. 13, 349-
351
MYTHICAL
Olympus [1] II. Myths
ANIMALS
ro, r1r5—
116
Ortygia
10, 268 Panchaea 10, 430 Paradise 10, 504-506 Parthenope [2]
Teichoscopy 14, 216 Theban cycle see Thebes [2] Thebes [2] III. Mythology: the Theban cycle 14, 414-419 Theogony 14, 484-485 Titanomachy 14, 735-736
10, 570 Phlegethon [2] rz, 132 Phthia [1] 11, 202-203 Planctae 11, 318-319 Pylos [1] Homeric P. 12, 242-243 Pyriphlegethon — see Phlegethon [2] Rhipaia oré 12, 566-567 Sambation 12, 923 Scaeae 13, 44-45 Scheria 13, 60-61
Trojan War
Styx 13,897
Soul, weighing of the 13, 676 Stars, legends about _ see Katasterismos
see Troy III Troy II. Mythology: the Trojan
cycle 14, 979-981
World, beginning of
see Cosmol-
ogy
World, creation of the II. Mesopotamia 15, 750-751 >» Ill. Egypt 15,751 » IV. Greece and Rome 5751 WS,
16.3. Mythical geography Acheron [2] 1, 87 Acraea |r| 1, 108 eae 163 Aedoneus 1, 171 Aeolia 1, 225-226 Aether 1, 269-270
Curetes
Cocytus [1] 3, 496-497 Elysium 4, 933-934 Ephyra [1] 4, 1037 > [2] 4, 1038
see Underworld 5, 32
Hades 5, 1076-1077 Helus [1] 6, 120 Hercules C. Springs 6, 191 Hyperborei 6, 630-632 Insulae fortunatae see Makaron Nesoi
see Makaron
Nesoi
Lethe see Underworld Makaron Nesoi 8, 192-193
Meropis [1] Messeis
8,718
8, 762
Oceanus I. Myth to, 10-12 Oechalia [1] 10, 42 bBo y2 Oenone [1] 10, 54
Ogygia
10, 67
2, 599-600
3, [009-1011
Daktyloi Idaioi 1, 440 1, 542
Arethusa [7] 1, 1055 Batieia, Bateia 2, 557 Chaos 3, 188 Charybdis 3, 206
Isles of the Blessed
Amazons 1, 563-565 Argonauts 1, 1066-1069
Berecyntes
Aganippe [1] 1, 307
Eridanus [1]
16.4. Mythical groups and peoples Aborigines 1, 26 Aeacides [1] 1, 164
Arimaspi 1, 1081 Askioi 2, 162-163 Ausones 2, 391-392
Alcathoe, Alcithoe [2] Alpheius [2] religious. Aonia 1, 814 Apsi 1,915
Erebos
Symplegades 14, 8-9 Tartaros 14, 156-157 Thaumacia 14, 371 Thrinacie 14, 627 Thryon 14, 630 Underworld 15, ro4-111
4, 40-41
Danai 4, 69 Danaus, Danaids 4, 70-71 Dardani [1] 4, 86
> [2] 4, 86 > [4] 4, 86 Dardanidae 4, 86-87 Epii 4, 1108 Galactophagi 5, 645-646 Galeoi see Galeotae Galeotae 5, 662 Gegeneis 5,718 Giants 5, 846-848 Hellusii
6,
110
Heraclidae 6, 164-165 Hippemolgi see Galactophagi Horatius [1] Horatil. 6, 484-485 Idaioi Daktyloi see Daktyloi Idaioi Istaevones
6, 987
Laestrygones 7, 168-169 Lapithae 7, 242
Lotophagi Phaeaces
7, 821 10, 891-892
Pygmies 12, 238-239 Spanuuewse 7 0o Trogodytae 14, 960-961 16.5. Fabulous creatures/monsters,
mythical animals Aethon [3] 1, 271 Agdistis 1, 321
LOS
FABULOUS
Akephalos
CREATURES/MONSTERS,
1, 411-412
Basilisk 2, 539 Campe 2, 1027
Demons
17. Religion 17.1. HISTORY OF RELIGION: TERMINOLOGY AND CONCEPTS
4, 279-286
Dryads see Nymphai Eidolon [2] 4, 855 Eumenids see Erinys Furiae 5, 612-613 Genius A. Roman Development
Carcinus [1] 2, 1092 Caucones [2] 3, 38 Centaurs 3, 111-113 Cerberus 3, 143 Cercopes 3, 146-147 3, 228-229
Cynocephali 3, 1060 Draco [rt] see Dragon slayers Echidna 4,784 Erymanthian Boar see Hercules Geryoneus 5, 821-822 Griffin 5, 1031-1032 Gryps see Griffin Hekatoncheires 6, 57-58 Hercynia silva II. The Hercynian Birds 6, 194 Hippalektryon 6, 333 Hyantes 6, 593
5 7SE-757
Gyges [2] 5, 1049 Harpies 5, 1149-1150 Healing Deities, Healing Cults II. Mesopotamia and Syria 6, 21 >
Ill. Egypt
9, 182-184
Horae
Lamia [1]
7, 181-182
Lares [1] B. Myths 7, 247 > [x] C. Cult of the lares publici
7, 247-248 >
[1] D. Cult of the lares privati
7, 248-249 Larvae 7, 256-257 Lemures, Lemuria 7, 384-385
Lymphae
8, 17-18
Maenads 8, 115-117 Manes, Di. 8, 231-232 Matres/Matronae 8, 481-482
Megaloi/-ai Theoi/-ai Megaloi Meliae 8, 631
see Theoi
11, 437 12, 298 Scylla [x] 13,146
Mythical creatures see Monsters Nereids 9, 665-666
Seraph(im)
Novensides, Di. 9, 855-856 Nymphs 9, 928 Olympic gods see Olympus [1] IL.
Sirens
Nomioi Theoi
13, 453-454 13, 504-505
Snake II. Myth and religion
13, 556-558
Sphinx
13, 732-734
Stymphalian birds. 13, 895 Teleboae 14, 220 Tiamat 14, 652 Tragelaphos 14, 835 Triton [tr] 14,940
Unicorn
16.6. Groups of gods and demons On individual deities and epithets cf. Index of Persons 6.1. and 6225
I, 1030—
1031 Biviae
2, 684 Cabiri 2, 860-864 Charites (Graces) 3, 197-199 City deity I. Ancient Orient
4, 1173
9,796
Oreads see Nymphs Pantheon [1] 10, 462-466 Parcae 10, 524-525
GROUPS OF GODS
On religion and myth cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 8.
Penates (Di Penates)
Sirens
Uraniones
Cult image 3, 989-996 Cult 3, 980-988
Damnatio memoriae I. Historical
4, 129
see Dioscuri Heyy Wei:
>»
>
»
II. B. General overview
4, 129-
130 II. C. Criteria of death 4, 130131 II. D. Homicide and suicide
4,131
13, 628-629
48
1, 739-741
Apotheosis see Dead, cult of the Asebeia 2, 108 Atheism 2, 232-233 Birth II. Cultural and Religious Aspects 2, 665-670 Cave sanctuaries 3, 56-57
> >
Telchines 14, 218-219 Tempestates see Winds Titans 14, 736-738
Twelve (Olympian) gods
I, 513-514
6. Allegorical interpretation of holy scripture 1, 514-516 Anthropomorphism 1, 736-738
10, 717-719
13, 504-505
Tyndarids
>
4, 60-61
13, 453-454
Sondergotter
17.1. History of religion: terminology and concepts Afterlife, concepts of 1, 301-304 Agnostos Theos 1, 346-347 Allegoresis 3. Allegoresis as hermeneutic technique 1, 512 » 4. Allegoresis as a method for learning and adaptation I, 512-513 » 5. Philosophical-literary allegorical interpretation
Death II. A. Preliminary remark
Quadruviae _ see Biviae Querquetulanae virae 12, 330 River gods 12, 615-618 Satyr II. Features of the iconogra-
Silen(s)
Archontes [II] Gnostic.
9, 183
phy 13, 33-34
15, 112-113
17.9. MYSTERIES 17.10. RELIGIOUS GROUPINGS,
Anti-Semitism
Podargus
Silen(s)
17.6. RELIGIOUS TEXTS AND SONGS 17.7. DIVINATION, SOOTHSAYING 17.8. MAGIC AND SORCERY
6, 482-483
Iynx [1] 6, 1157
Moira 9, 124-126 Monsters CelticRegions Muses 9, 322-325
13, 303-304
17.5. CULT OBJECTS
6, 21-22
Orthus 10, 267 Ouroboros 15, 1038 Pegasus [1] 10, 678 Python [1]
17.2. RELIGIOUS ACTS 17.3. PRIESTS AND CULTIC PERSONNEL, RELIGIOUS ASSOCIATIONS AND SPECIALISTS 17.4. SANCTUARY
Healing Deities, Healing Cults 3. Later Developments 6, 24
Hydra [1] 6, 598-599
Ichthyocentaur see Triton Ichthyophagi 6, 704 Ladon [1] 7, 162 Laelaps 7, 164 Lampus [2] 7, 192 Maera [3] 8, 122 Mantichoras 8, 255 Memnonides 8, 652-653 Minotaurus 9, 26-27 Mixoparthenos 9, 92-93 Monsters
62
ANIMALS
Clyti(a)dae 3, 488 Consentes Dei 3, 700 Daemon see Demons DaktyloiIdaioi 4, 40-41
Areion 1, £043 Asterion [2] 2, 190
Chimaera
MYTHICAL
15, 47-
II. E. Philosophy 4, 131 Il. F. Religion and Mythology 4, 131 Deification 4, 179-182 Deisidaimonia 4, 193-194 Demigod see Hero cult Demonology A. Definition 4, 275 > B.Preplatonic 4, 275-276 >» C. Plato and Platonism 4, 276278
>» D.Chaldaean Oracles
279
4, 278-
63
17.2. RELIGIOUS
Disciplina arcani
4, 537 Divine kingship 4, 578 Ecclesiastical/Religious law
4, 778-779 Ecstasy
4, 799-801 Ekecheiria 4, 868 Emanation
comments
Enthousiasmos 4, 1000-1001 Epiclesis 4, 1064-1066 Epiphany 4, 1121-1123 Eponymus 4, 1166-1167 Eschatology 5, 58-66 Etrusci, Etruria III. C. Afterlife 5, LEG
5, 223-224
Exorcism
5, 270-272
Fas 5, 358-359 Fate
5, 366-368 Festivals; Feasts 5, 396-406 Gods, names of 5, 908-911 Healing Deities, Healing Cults
tion
6, 763-764
6, 869-
871
Kamephis 7, 14 Katabasis 7, 27-29 Katharsis 7, 36-37 Kosmetes [3] 7,99 Kosmoi [2] 7,99 Ktistes 7, 113 Law [2] IV. A. Law and religion
7, 315-316 Logos [2] Magical 7, 796-798 Ma’at 8, 51 Magic, Magi 8, 128-143
Maiden sacrifice see Human sacrifice Manalis lapis 8, 216-217 Monotheism I. Concept 9, 171 > II. Mesopotamia and Egypt
9, 171
III. Ancient Israel 9, 171-172 IV. Greece and Rome 9, 172 V. Judaism and Christianity
9173-174
Mountain sanctuaries
Mysteries
9, 433-444
Nimbus. [3] 9, 763-766 Nudity B. Cult 9, 873-874 Number III. D. Numerical mysti9, 891-893 9, 893-895
Omphalos Pantheon Pantheus Paradise
Sanctuaries Sanctus
12, 945-949
12, 949-950
Scapegoat rituals 13, 48-49 Sekind 13,210 Sondergotter 13, 628-629 Stone worship see Cult image Superstitio 13, 952-954 Theodicy A. Definition 14, 447 Theogony 14, 484-485 Theologia tripertita see Theology Theologos 14, 488 Theology 14, 489-496 Tolerance I. A. Modern concept >
14,758
J.B. Latin tolerantia: word and
concept
>
B. Egypt and the Near East 2, 829-831
Charon’s fare 3, 205 Conclamatio 3, 680-681 Confarreatio 3, 688 Consecratio 3, 698-699 Cult 3, 980-988 Daphnephoria 4, 81-82 Dead, cult of the 4, rro-118 Dedicatio 4, 167
14, 758-759
> I. C. Tolerance between state and religious communities
14,759
Tolerance II. History and religion
Divination
ing 15,749
Writing III. E. Religious use of writ-
ing 15,773-775
[1] 10, 124-126 [1] 10, 462-466 10, 468-470 10, 504-506
17.2. Religious acts On festivals cf. Subject Index Beans On specific festivals cf. Subject Index 3.4.3.2. Cf. also Lists E.IV. (Calendars) Adoratio 1, 151 Adventus 1, 161 Agon III. Greek and Roman agons 15, 986
Ambarvalia Amburvalia
I, 566 see Ambarvalia
4, 564-577
Donkey cult 4, 670 Ecstasy 4, 799-801 Ekphora 4, 872 Empyra_ see Sacrifices Evocatio 5, 251-252 Exorcism 5, 270-272 Expiatory rites 5, 275-276 Festivals; Feasts III. ro. Feast and Poetry 5, 403 » Ill. rr. Agons 5, 404 > III. 12. Feast and market; economic aspects 5, 404-406
» > >
14, 760-768
Tree of life. 14, 887-888 Trinity II. Triadic structures in ancient religion 14,924 Twins I. In religion 15, 49 Votive practice 15, 528-530 World V. The world as a way of be-
4, 327-329
Diabateria see Sacrifices Diffarreatio 4, 405
>
>
III. 4. Categories based on Cultural Studies 5, 400-401 III. 5. Types of Greek Festivals
5, 401
III. 6. Elements of complex rituAlSuaSarA OT III. 7. Feast and Religion
5, 401-402
III. 8. Feasts as loci of the identity of social groups 5, 402-
403
>
III. 9. Regulations: verbal instructions and written fixation 5, 403 Festivals; Feasts I. The Ancient Ori-
ent 9, 243-244
Myth 9, 444-462
cism Numen
2, 667-668
>» 3.Naming 2, 668 Birthday 2, 670-673 Bouphonia 2, 743-744 Burial A. General 2, 829
Devotio
12, 870-873
Interpretatio II. Religion
> > »
12, 61
Purification 12, 225-228 Purity 12, 229-231 Religion 12, 467-496 Ritual 12, 597-615 Ruler cult 12, 760-763 Sacer 12, 824 Sacerdos [1] 12, 824 Sacra 12, 825-826 Sacrifice 12, 832-856 Sacrilegium 12, 856 Saints, Veneration of saints
6, 21-26
Heresiology 6, 201 Heresy 6, 201-203 Hero cult 6, 247-251 Heros see Hero cult Hierarchy 6, 303-304 Human sacrifices 6, 566-571 Incest see Incestus Incestus
11,796
JI. Graeco-Roman theories of predestination 11, 796-797 Prostitution II. D. Sacral prostitu-
Apopompe 1, 888 Apotheosis see Dead, cult of the Apyra_ see Sacrifice Aretalogies. 15, 1003-1004 Baptism 3, 1085-1088 Birth 2. Birth Rites and Customs
>
4, 934-935
Eusebeia
Patrii di. 10, 614-616 Pax deorum (deum). 10, 659-660 Personification 10, 842-850 Polytheism 11, 535-537 Predestination, theory of I. General
ACTS
5, 396-398
> Il. Egypt 5, 398-399 >»
IV.Rome
5, 406
Food offerings 15, 1032-1033 Fordicidia 5, 494-495 Funeral see Burial Funus imaginarium 5, 611 Funus publicum
Hair sacrifice Hemerology
5, 611-612
see Sacrifice 6, 126-129
Hero cult 6, 247-251 Hieromancy, Hieroscopy — see Divination
17.2. RELIGIOUS
64
ACTS
Hieros Gamos I. Term 6, 321 Hiketeia 6, 323-324 Human sacrifices 6, 566-571 Immolatio 6, 744-746 Inauguratio 6,761 Incantatio see Magic
Parilia. 1o, 531-532 Pharmakos [2] 10, 933 Piaculum. 11, 228-229 Pilgrimage 11, 249-257 Pithoigia see Anthesteria Plynteria 11, 430-431
Aretalogoi 1, 1052 Arrhephoroi 2, 23-24 Arvales fratres 2, 83-85 Associations I. Definition
Incense offering
Praepes. 11, 767 Prayer 11, 789-794 Procession I. Definition
»
see Sacrifice
Incubation 6, 766-767 Indigitamenta 6, 779-780 Initiation 6, 811-813 Invocatio
>
6, 925
Kiss III. A. Formal kiss
7, 59-60
Kiss IV. Christianity 7, 60-62 > V. Visual representations 7, 62-63
Kiss 3. In religious contexts
7, 56—-
$7
Kriobolion [1] 7, 104-105
Lapis [3] 7,240 Lectisternium 7, 344-345 Lernaea 7, 426-427 Libation 7, 481-483
Lot, election by II. A. Definition >
7, 819
JI. B. Locations and procedures 7,
819-820
Ludi II. A. Sacred and priestly games
Lupercalia
7, 884-885
Lustratio 7, 892-893 Lustrum A. General 7, 893-894
>
C. Lustrum as a period of time 7, 894-895 Maiden sacrifice see Human sacrifice Music IV. A. Concept, characteristics
>
9, 331-332
IV.B. Sources, problems
9,332
>» IV.C. Myth 9, 332-333 » IV. D. Tradition and history =I
Myesis
9, 329-331
9, 402-403
Nephalia
9, 656-657
Novendiale sacrum 9, 855 Nudipedalia. 9, 872-873
Oath
LQ. O207
Sacrifice
12, 832-856
Saeculares Ludi
see Ludi (K.)
see Ludi (K.)
Sellisternium 13, 232 Septerion 13, 288 Silicernium 13, 457-458 Suovetaurilia 13, 950-951 Supplicatio 13,955 Syncretism I. In the context of religious studies 14, 18-22 Taurobolium
14, 168-169
Telete 14, 233-234 Thalysia 14, 363-364 Theoria [1] 14, 522-524 Theoxenia see Xenia Theurgie 14, 583-585 Thriambos see Dionysus I C 5 Tree cult
Tubicen
14, 886-887
14, 991-992 15, 289-290
15, 523
Votive offerings Votive practice
15,
525-528
15, 528-530
Vow — see Oath; Sacramentum
Wedding customs and rituals Ts 005=ol2
Xenia
>
V. Internal organization
17.3. Priests and cultic personnel, religious associations and specialists Aedituus 1, 170 Alites see Augures
Amphithaleis paides Antistes 1, 785 Archiereus
1, 607-608
1, 989
Archisynagogos
tion 2,
2, 180-181 181-182
>
VI. Associations of the imperial period 2, 182 Augures 2, 339-341 Augustales [1] 2, 353 Basilinna 2, 538 Boukoloi 2,739 Brahmin 2, 748-749 Buzygae 2, 841
Clyti(a)dae 3, 488 Cooptatio 3, 763-764 Cult Ill. F. Participants
3, 984-
Dadouchos see Mysteria Decemviri [4] Decemviri sacris faciundis 4,148 Dendrophoroi 4, 302-303 Druids 4, 724-725 Epulones see Septemviri
Eteobutadae Exegetal
5,79
5, 264-265
Fetiales 5, 408-409 Fictores 5, 411-412 Flamines 5, 448-450 Galli
5, 668-669
Harioli 5, 1143-1144 Haruspices 5, 1154-1158 Hierodouloi 6, 308 Hieromnemones 6, 312 Hierophantes see Mysteria Hieropoioi see Sacrifices Keryx
7, 46
Lot, election by 3. Priests, magi-
Magic, Magi II. Judaism 8, 132133 > III. Greece and Rome 8, 133141 > IV. Christianity 8, 141-143 >» V.Islam 8, 143 Magos_ see Magic, Magi Mantis
15, 801-803
9, 937-938
Offerings to the dead _ see Libation Omophagy see Dionysus Orgia 10, 202-203 Orphism, Orphic Poetry I. B. Ritual activity 10, 249 Orphism, Orphic Poetry II]. Orphic Rites 10, 254-255 Os resectum 10, 269-270 Palilia see Pales
>
strates 7, 818 Lycomidae 7,923
14, 937
Ver sacrum
2,180
986
Saints, Veneration of saints A. Jewish OT tradition 12, 870-871 Salaminia 12, 878-879 Scapegoat rituals 13, 48-49
Vota
9, 326-328
> IL Egypt 9, 328-329 TI. Ancient Israel
Procuratio see Expiatory rites Proerosia 11, 935-936 Promanteia 12, 4-5 Prosodion 12, 51-52 Purification rites see Purification Purification A. Introduction a 225 >» B. Religious 12, 225-227 Ritual 12, 597-615 Sacra 12, 825-826 Sacramentum I. General remarks
Tripudium
)3)ae)
>» V.C. Early Christianity 9, 346 Music I. Ancient Near East
>
L1, 905-907
Secular games
7, 867-868
Ludi II. Most important games in Rome 7, 870-874
11, 905
2, 179-
III. State and associations in the Roman Republic 2, 180 IV. Imperial period: legal posi-
II. Graeco-Roman antiquity
see Muse, acclamation
of the Iovis epulum
180 Ul. Greece
1,999
8, 259-260
Matrimi see Amphithaleis Paides Matronae see Matres Melissa [1] 8, 633-634 Metragyrtai 8, 815 Miracles, Miracle-workers I. Gre-
co-Roman 9, 52-53 Molpoi 9, 132-133 Mystagogos
Naopoioi
9, 428-429
see Neopoioi
Nazirite, Nazir
Neokoros
9, 576
9, 639-640
65
TAO
Orgeones 10, 202 Orphics ro, 248
Panhellenion ro, 446 Pastophoroi ro, 592 Peleiades 10, 694 Pharmakos [1] 10, 933 Phytalidae see Theseus Pontifex, Pontifices 11, 593-596 Praesul 11,769 Priest king see Basileus Priests 11, 838-847 Promantis 12, 5 Prophets 12, 25-31 Pueri patrimi see Amphithaleis paides Pythia [1] 12, 291-293 Pythioi 12, 294 Quindecimviri sacris faciundis
12, 345-347 Rabbi 12, 372-374 Regina sacrorum — see Rex sacrorum Rex sacrorum. LA, $E5—S17 Sacerdos [1] 12, 824 Salii [2] 12, 886-887 Sellieiaeasy: Septemvirl 13, 287-288 Sodales. 13, 603-604 Therapeutal 14, 533-534 Thiasos 14, 586 Titii sodales see Sodales Vates 15, 239-240 Vestals 15, 340-342 Victimarius 15, 394 Virgo Vestalis see Vestals 17.4. Sanctuary
On architecture and art cf. Subject Index 6.4. Abaton 1, 7-8 Adyton see Abaton Aedes see Temple Agalma 1, 304 Altar Tomb see Tombs
Altar 1, 543-549
Amphiareion see Amphiaraus Apollinare 1, 849 Architecture B. III.1. Residential and funerary architecture >
Heraion
Horned crown 6, 496 Idols see Cult image Imagines maiorum 6, 741-742 Incense 6, 762 Infula 6, 805-806 Intoxicating substances IV. Cultic and ritual use 6, 880 Labrys 7, 138
see Funerary architecture Hierosylia 6, 323 Hospital B. Temple medicine
6, 524
Labyrinth C. The labyrinth in the broad sense 7, 140
2, 837
3, 56-57 Cella [1] 3, 70-71 Celts 2. Cult sites 3, 99
Cippus
3, 347
Cult Facade 3, 989 Delubrum 4, 228-229 Esagil 5, 57-58 Fanum 5, 351-352 Grotto 5, 1034-1035
Herms
Lapis [1] 7, 239-240
Manalis lapis 8, 216-217 Minoan culture and archaeology D. 3. Sanctuaries 9, 17-18
Liclum 7, 542-543 Lituus [1] 7, 737
Moriai
9, 209-210
Mosque 9, 233-234 Mountain sanctuaries
9, 243-244
Mouseion B. Individual Cult Locations 9,250 Mundus 9, 288-290 Natalis templi 9, 520 Pantheon [1] III. Classical Antiquity 10, 463-466 Pantheon [2] 10, 467-468 Pylaea [2 m2, 2a Rogus 12, 660 Sacellum 12, 824 Sanctuaries 12, 945-949 Sepulchri violatio 13, 300 Spelaion see Grotto Synagogue II. Institution 14, 1516
Telesterion 14, 232-233 Temenos 14, 240-241 Temple economy 14, 261-265 Temple 14, 245-261 Templum 14, 265-266 Terminus
14, 294-295
Thesauros [1] 14, 556-557 Tree of life. 14, 887-888 Votive inscriptions. Xoanon 15, 840
15, 524-525
1, 304
Sistrum 13, 509-510 Stips 13, 840-841 Strena 13, 882-883 Strenia_ see Strena Strues 13, 886 Tensa 14,272
Thesauros [2] 14, 557 Thymele 14, 647 Thyrsos 14, 651 Tintinnabulum 14, 720-721 Turibulum 15, 32 Tutela [3] T. navis 15,45 Tutulus 15, 46-47
15, 525-528 see Votive practice;
15, 670
1, 619-620
Wreath, Garland see Imagines
25 450-451
Charon’s fare 3, 205 Corona [1] see Wreaths Cult image 3, 989-996 Culter 3, 988
Eidolon [1] 4, 855
> [4] 4,855 4, 864-865
Fire C. Greek cult
Magic doll 8, 149-150 Mantellum 8, 253-254 Mola salsa 9, 127 Nebris see Dionysus Obol for the dead see Charon’s fare Palladion 10, 391-392 Panspermia see Food offerings Patella see Patera, Patella Patera, Patella. 10, 598-599 Phales see Phallos Phallus ro, 912-913 Phylakterion 11, 205-208 Pulvinar. 12, 197 Sagmen 12, 866 Simpuvium 13, 492
Wine II. F. The cultic use of wine
Argoilithoi see Baitylia Bacchus I. C. Bundle of rods
Eiresione
7, 512
Votum, Votive
1, 406
Anathema 1, 648 Ancestor portraits Ancile 1, 672
Libum
Votive offerings
1, 66
Agalma
> [2] 7,240
Verbena 15, 291 Vitta 15, 484-485
17.5. Cult objects Acerra
5, 431-432
6, 240-241
Lararium 7, 244-245 Limitation I. Etruscan prerequisites 7, 602-603
Amulet
Cave sanctuaries
6, 182
Heroon
B. IIl.3. Religious architecture
Bustum
SONGS
>» E.Roman religion Hermai see Herms
Aiora
Asylon 2, 215-217 Baitylia 2, 466-467 Bidental 2, 639-640
TEXTS AND
5, 1036-1037 Gymnasium II. C. The significance for the cults 5, 1056
Grove
I, LO16—I1017 I, 1018-1019
RELIGIOUS
5, 430-431
Xoanon
15, 762-764
15, 840
17.6. Religious texts and songs Abecedarii 1, 18 Abraxas 1, 31-32 Acheruntici libri 1, 87-88 Acta Alexandrinorum 1, 117 Antiquarians 1, 783-784 Apotropaic texts 1, 892-893 Aretalogies. 15, 1003-1004 Avesta see Zoroastrianism Bible 2, 623-628
Carmen ad quendam senatorem on Kole)
D7EOs RELIGIOUS
TEXTS AND
Carmen Arvale 2, 1110 Carmen Saliare 2, 1113 Corpus Hermeticum 3, 846-850
Ephesia Grammata 4, 1023 Erythraean paean 5, 55 Euangelion 5, 126-127 Feriale 5, 388-390 Fulgurales libri see Etrusci Funerary literature 5, 607-610 Hermetic writings 6, 222-223 Historiola 6, 430 Hymenaeus 6, 612-613 Hymn 6, 616-626 Indigitamenta 6, 779-780 Logos [2] Magical 7, 796-798
Magical papyri 8, 144-146 Magical spells 8, 147-149 Marsanes 8, 402-403 Maskelli Maskello 8, 428 Menetekel 8, 687-688 Music I. Ancient Near East 9, 326-328
>»
II. Egypt
> »
Ill. Ancient Israel 9, 329-331 V. Etruria, Rome, early Christi-
9, 328-329
anity 9, 344-346 Nag Hammadi 9, 488-490 Nenia A. Dirge 9, 634 Oracula Chaldaica. 10, 188-189 Orphicae Lamellae 10, 247-248
Orphism, Orphic Poetry 258 Paean tI0, 328-330 Papyri Graecae magicae
10, 249-
Ecstasy II. A. Greece 4, 800-801 Pell Bykomer 7.50"
Pharmakos [1] 10, 933 Philtron 11, 126
Effatio, effatum 4, 837-838 Epopteia 4, 1167 Eschatology B. 6. Oracular practice
Phylakterion 11, 205-208 Wizardry, Witchcraft see Magic
5, 64
Fulgurales libri see Etrusci Harioli 5, 1143-1144 Haruspices 5, 1154-1158 Hepatoscopy see Divination Hydromanteia see Divination Katoptromanteia see Divination Koskinomanteia see Divination Kraniomanteia — see Divination Necromancy 9, 592-593 Omen 10, 122-123 Oracle of the dead see Divination Oracles 10, 183-188 Ostentum _ see Prodigium Pars antica, postica. 10, 559-560 Portent see Divination Prodigium. 11, 931-932 Prophets I. Introduction 12, 2526
>
II. Mesopotamia, Syria-Palestine, Old Testament 12, 26—
a > Ill. Egypt 12, 27-28 Pythia [1] 12, 291-293
Sibyllini libri, Sibyllina oracula.
13, 412-413
Templum 14, 265-266 Vates 15, 239-240 see Magi-
cal papyri Psalmody 12, 98-102 Psalms 12, 102-105 Qoheleth 12, 304-305 Quran
66
SONGS
12, 368-370
Rabbinical literature 12, 374-377 Responsa (rabbinical) 12, 509 Sacrificial calendar _ see Feriale Seder Olam Rabba 13, 195 Septuagint III. Significance
17.8. Magic and sorcery Abraxas 1, 31-32 Analogy, magic of see Magic Apotropaic texts
1, 892-893
Defixio 4, 175-177 Deisidaimonia 4, 193-194 Demons V. B. Development of word meaning 4, 283-284 >» V.C. Popular belief 4, 284286
13, 299
Devotio 4, 327-329 Exorcism 5, 270-272
13, 412-413
Healing Deities, Healing Cults
Sibyllini libri, Sibyllina oracula. Theologos 14, 488 Theosophia 14, 528 Tonitrualia 14,778 Writing III. E. Religious use of writ-
ing 15, 773-775 Zostrianus
15,974
17.7. Divination, soothsaying Acheruntici libri 1, 87-88 Augury 15, 1011-1012 Auspicium see Augures Delphic Oracle see Pythia Divination 4, 564-577 Dodona, Dodone III. Oracle 4, 606-607
Dreams; Interpretation of dreams II. Classical Antiquity 4, 715-
719
6, 21-26
Incantatio
see Magic
Logos [2] Magical
7, 796-798
Mageia see Magic, Magi Magic doll 8, 149-150 Magic Medicine see Magic, Magi Magic, Magi 8, 128-143 Magical papyri 8, 144-146 Magical spells 8, 147-149 Magos_ see Magic, Magi Maskelli Maskello 8, 428 Menetekel 8, 687-688 Miracles, Miracle-workers 9, 5256
Nekydaimon 9, 620-621 Papyri Graecae magicae see Magical papyri Paredros, Paredroi B. Magic 10, 527
17.9. Mysteries Afterlife, concepts of 1, 301-304 Andania B. Mysteries
1, 674-675 Bacchus I. Greece 2, 449-451 Cabiri 2, 860-864 Curetes 3, 1009-1011 Dadouchos see Mysteria Demeter 4, 235-242 Dioscuri I. Religion 4, 518-520 Disciplina arcani 4, 537 Ecstasy II. A. Greece 4, 800-801 >»
II. B.Rome
4, 801
Epiphany 4, 1121-1123 Epopteia 4, 1167 Eschatology B. 5. Individual Eschatology in Mysteries and Cult
5, 63-64
Hierophantes
see Mysteria
Isis 6, 966-972 Katabasis 7, 27-29 Lernaea 7, 426-427
Metragyrtai
8, 815
Mithras
9, 73-77
Myesis
9, 402-403
Mystagogos Mysteria
9, 428-429
9, 429-433
Mysteries
9, 433-444
Navigium Isidis see Ploiaphesia Omophagy see Dionysus Orpheus B. Cult 10, 245 Orphics 10, 248 Orphism, Orphic Poetry 258
10, 249-
Ploeaphesia 11, 393-394 Purification B. 4. In mysteries iWin peed) Samothrace II. Religion 12, 938-
942 Sarapis Serapis
see Serapis 13, 305-308
Taurobolium
14, 168-169
Telesterion 14, 232-233 Telete 14, 233-234 Theoi Megaloi, Theai Megalai
14, 485-486 17.10. Religious groupings, groups of gods On Christianity cf. Subject Index 18.
On Judaism cf. Subject Index 19. On Islam cf. Subject Index 20. Hattusa II. D. State and Religion 6, 16-17
Agnostos Theos 1, 346-347 Apotropaic gods _1, 891-892 Asia Minor IV. Religion 2, 14852) Astral deities 2, 193-194 Birth 1. Birth Deities 2, 665-667
67
18.2. TERMINOLOGY
Celts V. Religion 3, 96-99 Cereres see Ceres Christianity A. Definition 3, 256 > B.x Cultural adaptation
Pantes theoi see Theoi pantes Pantheus 10, 468-470 Patrii di. 10, 614-616 Phoenicians, Poeni VI. Religion
3, 256-258
II,
> B.2 Cult 3, 258-259 > C. Cult officials 3, 259-260 Chthonic deities 3, 295-300 City deity 4, 1173-1174 Consentes Dei 3,700 Cyprus [2] IV. Religion 3, 10791080 Demons
12, 653-654 Ruler cult 12, 760-763 Sadducees 12, 858-860 Samaria, Samaritans IJ. A. History 12,
15, 1024-1025
Donatists
see Donatus [1]
Donkey cult 4, 670 Epulo [2] (Jupiter) 4, 1169-1170 Essenes 5, 69-74 Etrusci, Etruria II]. A. Introduction
5, 113-114 >» Ill. C. Afterlife 5, 116 >» Il. D. Rituals 5, 116-120 Gate, deities associated with
5, 705-706 Germani, Germania [1] III. Religion 5, 801-802 Gnosis, Gnostics, Gnosticism
5, 893-901
Great Gods_ see Theoi Megaloi Healing Deities, Healing Cults 6, 21-26
Hero cult B. The cult 6, 249-250 >» C. The interpretations 6, 250251 Hispania, Iberia IV. Religion
6, 396-398 Idaea [1] 6,710 Iran IV. Cultural and religious traditions 6, 933-934
Islam
12, 615-618
Roads, deities associated with.
4, 279-286
Devil.
6, 973-975
Italia II. Religion 6, roo1-1003 Judaism 6, 1214-1221 Karaites
7,19
Lares [1] A. Nature of the /ares
PELs
Mandaeans 8, 225-226 Mani, Manichaeans 8, 233-236 Megaloi/-ai Theoi/-ai see Theoi Megaloi Meilichios, Meilichioi Theoi
768
Stone worship see Cult image Sufism 13,924 Sunnites 13,950 Theoi Megaloi, Theai Megalai
CONCEPTS
Christianity 3, 256-267 Christians, persecutions of see Tolerance Church History 3, 305-309 Church property 3, 309-311 Church regulations 3, 311-314 Church 3, 300-304 Concilium 3, 679-680 Decretalia 4, 158-159 Education / Culture D. Late Antiquity and Christianity 4, 833-
834
Ekklesia II. Christian 4, 870 Epiphany 4, 1121-1123 Exegesis B. Christianity 5, 263264
Hellenization 4. Late antiquity 6, 102-103
Heresiology 6, 201 Heresy I. Christian 6, 201-203 Heretics, baptism of 6, 203-204 Hierarchy 6, 303-304 Iconoclasm V.
see Constantinus [7]
Martyrdom, literature of 8, 417-
14, 485-486
418
Theoi pantes 14, 486-487 Theoi patrioi 14, 487-488 Tritopatores 14, 941 Twelve (Olympian) gods 15, 47-
Martyrs Martys
48 Valentinians
64 > II. Christianity 9, 64-65 Monotheism I. Concept 9, 171 > V. Judaism and Christianity
15, 159-160
Winds II. Wind cult Zoroastrianism
15, 654-657
15, 965-970
8, 420-421 see Martyrs
Metaphysics F. Posterity 8,792 Mission I. General points 9, 63-
9, 173-174
18. Christianity 18.1. INTRODUCTION 18.2. TERMINOLOGY AND CONCEPTS
18.3. RITUALS AND LITURGY 18.4. PRIESTS AND CULTIC PERSONNEL; OFFICIAL AND HONORIFIC TITLES 18.5. ARCHITECTURE AND ART 18.6. TENDENCIES AND GROUPINGS 18.7. LITERATURE AND LANGUAGE 18.8. THEMES OF CHRISTIAN INTE-
REST (SELECTION)
On religion and myth cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 8. On individuals playing a part in church history cf. Index of PerSONS 7.1.
Minoan culture and archaeology D. 3. Sanctuaries 9, 17-18 9, 685-—
Nomioi Theoi 9, 796 Novensides, Di. 9, 855-856 Olympic gods see Olympus [1] IL. Ophites. 10, 154 Palmyra II. A. Sanctuaries and their location 10, 402-405 > II. B. Images of gods and cult rituals 10, 405-406 > II.C. Burial 10, 406
916-917
Sassanids III. E. Religious conditions 13,9 Sea gods 13, 163-166 Sethianism. 13, 342-343 Shiites 13, 386 Sondergotter 13, 628-629 Springs (Spring gods) 13, 767—
8, 610-611
Naassenes. 9, 476-477 Nestorius, Nestorianism 687
168-169
River gods II. Greece and Rome
AND
Myth VII. The Early Church
9, 459-462
Nicaeno-Constantinopolitanum.
9, 703-704 Nicaenum.
9, 704-705 Paradise III. Christianity
10, 505-
506
Polemics III. Christians. 11, 456 Predestination, theory of I. General comments
11,796
Propaganda 12, 18-20 Relics 12, 454-455 Saints, Veneration of saints 12, 870-873
Schism
13, 61-62
Simony.
13, 489-490
Synodos II. Christian 14, 30-34 Theology II. Christian 14, 493-
496 Trinity
14, 923-927
World, creation of the V. A. Early
18.1. Introduction Afterlife, concepts of 1, 301-304 Angels 15,994 Byzantium II. B. Language 2, 849-850
>
Judaism/Hebrew Bible
15, 754-755 World, creation of the I. Definition
>
15,750
VI. Christianity
15, 756-760
II. E. Religious development Aes leslie
Chalcedonense 3, 178 Chorus D. Christianity 3, 249250
18.2. Terminology and concepts Agape 1, 307-308 Agnostos Theos 1, 346-347
18.2. TERMINOLOGY
AND
68
CONCEPTS
Anathema 1, 648 Ascesis/Ascetism 2, 93
>
Atheism 2, 232-233 Chorus D. Christianity 3, 249250 Church Fathers 3, 304-305
> I. C. Tolerance between state and
Conscience
J.B. Latin tolerantia: word and concept
»
5, 65-66
E. Reception 5, 66 Euangelion 5, 126-127 Exegesis B. Christianity 5, 263-
>
14,759
II. D. The Roman state and the Christian religion 14, 763764 II. E. Late Antiquity/early Byzantine period: Christianity as a permitted religion or state reli-
gion 14, 764-766 Trinity 14, 923-927
Truth II. Christianity Typology. 15, 60-61
14, 986
Virtue D. Christianity
15, 459
Wisdom III. Christian 679
15, 678-
>»
264
Fides III. Christian Hairesis
5, 417-418
5, 1097-1098
Kyrios I. B. Christian
7, 29
7, 126-127
Lapsi 7, 243
Leisure IV. Biblical-Christian Tiwewld!
Light, metaphysics of 7, 550 Logos [1] G. Christianity 7, 795-
796
Lot, election by II. C. Judaeo-Christian 7, 820-821 Lucifer [1] 7, 846 Messiah 8, 767-769 Miracles, Miracle-workers II. Bibli-
cal—Early Christian Mysterion, Mysterium
9, 53-56 see Sacra-
mentum Myth VII. The Early Church 9, 459-462 Nomina Sacra. 9, 794-795 Paganus. 10, 338-339 Pistis E. Christian 11, 299-300 Pneuma C. Christian 11, 432-433
Predestination, theory of III. Christian
11, 797-798
Principle F. Bible 11, 866 Rationality F. Christian Reception 12, 402-404 Sacramentum IV. Christianity 12, 828-830
Sol II. Christianity 13, 610-611 Sophia see Wisdom Spes II. Christian 13, 727
Sphragis[4] 13, 735-736 Spiritus [1] 13, 739-740 Substance
see Hypostasis [2]
Theodicy 14, 446-448 Tolerance I. A. Modern concept
14,758
1089
3, 1085-1088 3, 1089-1090 Christianity E. Language
Infinity 6, 797-799
Intellect 6, 842-844 Katabasis IJ. Christianity
18.3. Rituals and liturgy Ascesis/Ascetism 2, 93 Baptism, symbol of. 3, ro88— Baptism Blessing
Hypostasis [2] 6, 644-645
3, 265-
267
Cult image IV. Christian 3, 996 Cult IV. Biblical 3, 986-988 Dead, cult of the VI. Christianity 4,
116-118
Easter computation see Calendar Enyana 4, 1010 Epiclesis C. Later influence 4, 1066
Epiphany Exorcism
4, 1121-1123 5, 270-272
Funerary inscriptions
5, 606-607
Historiola 6, 430 Intoxicating substances IV. Cultic and ritual use
6, 880
Literature e) Sermon
7,718
Liturgical manuscripts
7, 730-
731
Liturgy II. Christian 7, 735-737 Martyrs B. Cult 8, 421 Missa
9, 61-62
Music V. C. Early Christianity 9, 346 Onitha 10, 133 Pilgrimage IL. Christianity II, 254-256
Pompa _ see Procession Prayer IV. Christianity
11,794
Procession III. Christianity
LI, 907-909 Psalmody I. Definition. 12, 98 > III. Christian culture. 12, ro1— 102 Regula Magistri 12, 451 Relics 12, 454-455 Ritual VIII. Christianity see Cult Sacramentarium 12, 826-827 Sacramentum IV. Christianity 12, 828-830
Sacrifice IV. E. Sacrifice and Early Christianity 12, 853-854 Sacrifice V. Judaism and Christianity 12, 854-856 Saints, Veneration of saints
religious communities
3, 695-696
Deisidaimonia 4, 193-194 Demonology E. Christian 4, 279 Devil. 15, 1024-1025 Ecstasy I. C. Christianity 4, 801 Eidolon [4] 4, 855 Ekthesis pisteos 4, 881 Empires, Concept of empire II. E. Pagan and Jewish-Christian Translatio imperil 4,952 Eschatology D. Christianity
14, 758-759
12, 870-873
Sermon, Homily
13, 318-321 Travels Il. G. Pilgrimages 14, 877-878
Votive offerings Ii. C. Afterlife 15, 527-528 18.4. Priests and cultic personnel; official and honorific titles Aedituus 1, 170 Anagnostes [2] 1, 636
Bishop see Episkopos Chartophylax 3, 205 Christianity C. Cult officials 3, 259-260
Despotes Diakonos
4, 320 4, 346-347
Episkopos, Episkopoi [2] 4, 1127-1131 Hierarchy 6, 303-304 Katholikos 7, 37 Magister officiorum C. Judicial functions and Church politics 8,
155-156
Monasticism
9, 138-141
Notitia Africae
9, 828
Nuns_ see Monasticism Ordo IV. Christianity 10, 197 Patriarch. 10, 606-607 Pope, Papacy see Petrus [1] Priests VI. Christian 11, 846-847
Prophets V. Christianity Synod _ see Synodos II Theologos 14, 488
12, 29
18.5. Architecture and art Altar B. B.3. Early Christian period
1, 547-549 Atrium 2, 300-301 Baptisterium C. Baptistry
2, 498-
499
Basilica E. Christian basilicas 2, 530-$31
Catacombs 3, 3-5 Central-plan building 3, 118-122 Chorus D. Christianity 3, 249-
250 Church property 3, 309-311 Exedra C. Christian exedras Bin tele
Funerary architecture III. F. Begin-
nings of Christian funerary architecture
5, 605
Hypogaeum
6, 637-638
Late Antiquity I. Archaeology and art
7, 261-268
Library c) Christian libraries
7, 509-511 Menorah 8, 698 Monumental columns III. Roman antiquity and the early Christian
period 9, 193-194
69
18.7. LITERATURE
Narthex [4] 9, 515 Patrocinium II. Christian 10, 620-621
Acta Maximiliana 1, 118 Acta Sanctorum 1, 119-120
Exegesis B. Christianity
Acts of the Apostles
Fasti C. Dissemination
1, 127
Phylakterion 11, 205-208 Relics 12, 454-455 Rome Ill. H. Late Antiquity and Early Christianity (3rd—sth
Agrapha 1, 357-358
cents. AD). 12, 723-725 Sacramentarium 12, 826-827
Allegorical poetry [II] Latin.
Sarcophagus IV. Early Christian
Apocalypses
15, 527-528
Xenodocheion
Allegoresis 6. Allegorical interpretation of holy scripture 1, 514—516
15, 813-814
C. Transmission
1, 845-846
Apologists 1, 885 Apophthegmata patrum_ 1, 887 Apostles, Letters of the 1, 889-
18.6. Tendencies and groupings Amorion, martyrs of 1, 595 Antiochene School 1, 761 Arianism
1, 1078-1079
Athingani 2, 281 Bogomils 2,710 Circumceelliones 3, 351-352 Doketai 4, 613-614 Donatists
see Donatus [1]
Donatus [1] D. of Carthage, Donatists 4, 660-663 Ebionaei 4, 772-773 Gnosis, Gnostics, Gnosticism
5, 893-901 Hairesis
Genethliakon II. Latin 5, 754-755 Gospel book _ see Liturgical manuscripts Gospels (literary forms) 5, 947Henotikon 6, 137 Heresiology 6, 201 Hexapla_ see Bible translations Historiography IV. Christianity 6, 426-430
Historiola 6, 430 Hymn III. The Christian hymn 6, 622-625
Heresy I. Christian 6, 201-203 Irish-Scottish monks 6, 937 Macedoniani 8, 81-82 Mandaeans 8, 225-226 Maronites 8, 384-385 Melchites 8, 623 Messaliani 8,749 Modalism 9, 108 Monarchianism 9, 136-138 Monasticism 9, 138-141 Monophysitism 9, 168-169 Monotheletism 9, 174-175 Montanism 9, 184-185 Naassenes. 9, 476-477 Nestorius, Nestorianism 687
1, 890-891
Apostolical Constitutions 1, 890 Autobiography IV. Roman late antiquity 2, 408-410 Bible translations 2, 628-634 Bible 2, 623-628 Biblical epic see Biblical poetry Biblical poetry 2, 635-638 Biography IIL. Late antiquity
2, 653-655
9, 685-
Nuns see Monasticism Ophites. ro, 154 Paulicians 10, 628-629 Pneumatomachoi 11, 434-435 Priscillianus, Priscillianism. 11, 870-873
Sarabaitae 12, 966 Semipelagianism 13, 235-236
Sethianism. 13, 342-343 Stylites. 13, 893 Valentinians 15, 159-160 18.7. Literature and language Abecedarii 1, 18 Abgar Legend 1, 19-20 Acta Martyrum see Acta Sanctorum
>
Book of Letters 2,729 Bucolics I. C. Christian bucolics
6, 625-626
Isagoge E. Christianity
Itinerare II. C. Christian Itineraria 6, 1025
Kontakion 7, 95-96 Library c) Christian libraries
7, 5O9-SII
reception
7, 554-555
Literature III. C. Genre system 7, 681-684
> >
Canon [1] V. Bible 2, 1055-1057 Canon [2] 2, 1057 Canonical collections see Collectiones canonum Catenae 3, 16 Cento C. Latin 3, 116-117 Christian Palestinian language and literature 3, 267-268 Christianity E. Language 3, 265-
>
>
Ill. D.Epochs 7, 684 III. E. Functions and change in function 7, 685-687 Ii. F. Canonization processes and mechanisms of forgetting 7, 687-690 III. G. As an instance of reception and communication 7, 690-693
>»
V.C. Genre system
»
V.D. Division into periods
>»
V.H. Late Antiquity
7, 702
>
ae VII. D. Theological prose literature 7,722
7, 703-704
267
Chronicles E. Christian 3, 274 Chronicon paschale 3, 274-275 Church Fathers 3, 304-305
Church Slavonic 3, 314-315 Collectiones canonum 3, 531-
532 Constitutiones apostolorum — see
Apostolical constitutions
Literature VI. Christian
720 Liturgical manuscripts
7, 710-
7, 712-
7, 730-
731
Martyrdom, literature of 8, 417-
Coptic
4, 354-
2p)
>» G. Survival 4, 355-356 Diatessaron 4, 362 Diatribe C. Christian diatribes
4, 367-368
6, 953-
954
2, 806
Byzantium II. B. Language
3,773 Dialogue F. Christianity
IV. The Byzantine hymn
Light reading III. Affective forms of
2, 849-850
5, 1097-1098
5, 362-
364
890
Apostolic Fathers
5, 263-
949
1, 843-844
1, 845 >»
LANGUAGE
264
I, 516-517 Apocryphal literature B. Christian
12, 975-978 Schola [5] 13, 66-67 Swastika 13, 975-976 Votive offerings II. C. Afterlife
AND
Didache 4, 378-379 Easter chronicle see Chronicon paschale Ekphrasis 4. Prose 4, 877 Ekthesis pisteos 4, 881 Elegy II. B. Development in the imperial period 4, 904-905 Enyana 4, 1010
418
Menologion
8, 697
Missale see Liturgical Manuscripts Music V. C. Early Christianity 9, 346 Mythographi Vaticani 9, 462-463 Nag Hammadi
9, 488-490
New Testament Apocrypha 9, 691-694 New Testament see Bible Notitia Africae
9, 828 Novel IV. Christian 9, 846-849 Onitha 10, 133
7O
18.7. LITERATURE AND LANGUAGE
Palestinian-Aramaic.
10, 385-
386
Panegyrics III. Byzantine Passio 10, 589-590
10, 443
Patrology see Church Fathers Pentateuch 10, 726-727 Philology 1. Christian philology
Conscientious objection
Ir, 81-82
Polemics II. Christians. Protreptics IV. Christian
II, 456 L25.77—
78
Psalmody I. Definition. >
III. Christian culture.
12, ror—
a2
to the
Ontology H. Later influence
and 108-
Perception, theories of VI. Reception during the Imperial and Christian period 10, 744-745 Period, era IV. Imperial age after
10, 147-148
Anti-
3, 696—
697 Damnatio incrucem 4, 60 Deification II. Greece and Rome
12, 98
102 Psalms II. Christianity 12, ro4— 105 Psalterium [1] see Psalms >
Censorship IV. C. 4th. cent. end of Antiquity 3, 108 Censorship V. Middle Ages Early Modern Period 3, 109 Chronography V. Classical quity 3, 283-284
4,
4, 795-798
Education / Culture D. 2. Christianity and ancient education
4, 833-834
>» D.3. The Christian idea of edu-
reams
cation
Education D. Late Antiquity and Christianity 4, 822-824 Eras B. Calculation 5,9 > C.3 Eras of the Roman period
Sermon, Homily
Festivals; Feasts III. 3. Criticism
315
Theology II. Christian 496 Theosophia 14, 528 Visionary literature.
14, 493-
15, 468-469
Vita see Autobiography Wills and testaments [1] 15, 636 Wisdom literature. III. D. Septuagint, Christianity, Gnosticism
15, 685
and continuity in Early Christianity
5,400
Hagia Sophia 5, 1094 Homosexuality IV. Christianity and late antiquity 6, 471-472 Hospital E. Early Christianity (up to AD 300) 6, 525 » F. Eastern Christianity in the 4th cent.
>
6, 525
G. Hospitals in the Latin West 6, 525-526
» H. Hospitals in the East after 400
18.8. Themes of Christian interest
On social history cf. Subject Index 2. On cultural history cf. Subject Index 3. On philosophy cf. Subject Index 14. Abortion G. Christianity 1, 29 Agon II. Figurative usage
15, 985-986
Allegoresis 6. Allegorical interpretation of holy scripture 1, 514516
Alms B. Judaism and Christianity
I, 523-524 > C. Late antiquity 1, 524 Anatomy D. D.3 Late antiquity
I, 654-655
Biology II. D. Imperial period and late antiquity 2, 658-659 Birth II. B. Christian Late Antiquity 2, 668-670
Birthday C. Christian late antiquity 2, 672-673
Brigandry G. Christian awareness
2 re
Calendar B. 5. Christianity 2,945 Calendar D. History of Influence and Science 2, 946-951
12, 765
13, 376-377 Spectacles IV. Church and spectacle
13,720 Teleology II. Hellenism and Chris14, 227
Temple 4. The fate of temples in the Christian Period 14, 261 Theoria [2] V. Roman and Chris-
tian Philosophy 14, 526-527 Underworld V. Christianity 15, I1O-I11 Vaticanus
15, 240-241
Wealth IV. Late Antiquity
15, 590-591
Will IV. Roman philosophy and Latin Christianity 15, 635 Women philosophers B. Historical overview
15, 719-720
World V. The world as a way of be-
6, 526
(selection)
Principle F. Bible 11, 866 Rationality F. Christian Reception 12, 402-404 Ruler, birth of the IV. Byzantium
tlanity
5, LO-13
Songs II. C. Influence. 13, 633 Testamentary literature 14, 314-
Pleasure D. Christian II, 368— 369 Political philosophy H. Augustine
Sexuality IV. Christianity
4, 834
Pseudepigraphy II. Christian 12, LI2-113 Regula Magistri 12, 451 Rhetoric 3. Christian rhetoric 12, 545-546 13, 318-321
10, 789-790
10, 830-832
I1, 488-490
180-182
Economical Ethics
Augustus
Person.
Human dignity B. Jewish-Christian
ing 15,749
6, 557
Interest II. C. Late antiquity and Christianity 6, 853-854 Kiss IV. Christianity 7, 60-62 > V. Visual representations 7> 62-63
Logos [1] G. Christianity
7, 795-
796 Magic, Magi IV. Christianity 8, I4I-143
Marriage V. Christian 8, 392-393 Medical ethics D. Ethics in Christian Medicine 8, 555-556 Medicine IV. J. Christianity 8, 580-581
Metaphysics F. Posterity 8,792 Music V. C. Early Christianity
9, 346 Musicians (female) VI. Women and
music in the Roman Empire 9, 368-369 Mysteries D. Mysteries and Christi-
anity 9, 442-444
Nature, Natural philosophy I. L. Christianity 9, 535 Neoplatonism G. Neoplatonism of the Greek Church Fathers 9, 647
19. Judaism See Subject Index 28.
On individuals playing a part in the history of the Jewish religion cf. Index of Persons 8.1. 20. Islam See Subject Index 29.
On individuals playing a part in the history ofthe Islamic religion cf. Index of Persons 8.2. 21. Historical geography 21.1. GEOGRAPHY, INTRODUCTION 21.2. SETTLEMENT GEOGRAPHY 21.3. GEOLOGY 21.1. Geography, introduction On geographers and periegetes cf. Index of Persons 13. Adluvio Geography 1, 141 Bematistai
2, 593 Cardo, kardo 2, 1094-1095
Yak
22.1.
Cartography
2, 1138-1144
Decumanus 4, 161-162 Dioptra 4, 513-514 Exploration, voyages of 5, 276—-
277 Forma Urbis Romae_ 5, 496 Fossatum 5, 533 Frontier 6, 1228-1232 Geographical names A. Types: place names and vocabulary
5, 797 >»
B. Word formation, motifs
>»
C. Old Age, afterlife
5, 767-769 5,769
>» D. Place names and Greek prehistory 5, 769-770
Geography
5, 772-776
Gnomon [1]
see Groma (survey-
ing) 6, 1022-1026
King’s Highway
7, 48
Landscape (Scenery)
7, 197-198
Limes 7, 561-600 Limitation 7, 602-605
Madaba mosaic see Medaba Nilometer _ see Nile North and South 9, 823-824 Occident see Orient Oikoumene 10, 73-75 Orient and Occident. 10, 205206
Pagus 10, 340-341 Peregrinatio ad loca sancta
LO, 749-750 Periplous
Limes
of peoples 8, 868-877 8, 866-868 9, 104-107 tro, 165-169 469-473 continuity 13, 345-
346
Settlement, forms of 13, 346-347 Silk Road 13, 464-465 Toponyms see Geographical Names Town planning
14, 799-808
10, 799-801
Polis I. Topographical background and early development Il, 469-470 Roads and bridges, construction of
12, 647-653
Royal roads 12, 743-744 South see North and South Surveyors 13, 967-968 Tabula Peutingeriana 14, 93-94 Traffic 14, 821-823 Viae publicae 15, 373-380 see Index of Persons 13.
21.2. Settlement geography On urban development and infrastructure cf. Subject Index 6.3.
Anthropogeography 1, 731-732 Apoikia 1, 846-848 Coastline, changes in 3, 492-493 Colonization 3, 557-578 Deportation 4, 307-309 Diaspora 4, 361-362 Emporia 4,954 Emporion 4, 956-957 Environment, Environmental behaviour 4, 1002-1008 Epoikia 4, 1159
21.3. Geology Climate, Environmental
change
3, 452-454
>»
C. History 4, 983-984 Nature, Natural philosophy
9, 529-536
Physics Science
Forest 5, 495-496 Geology 5, 776-777 Landscape (Scenery)
Arithmetic see Mathematics Division of angles and circles
4, 578-580
Duplication of the Cube
Geometry see Mathematics Gnomon [3] 5, 892
Mathematics 8, 461-477 Mechanical method 8, 539-540 Mesolabium 8, 726 Music IV. F. Harmonics 9, 336-
338 >» IV.G. Systems
EDs (60 5
13,974
Tides see Sea Volcanoes 15, 495-496 22. Sciences 22.1. SCIENTIFIC DISCIPLINES
9, 338-341
9, 690
Number I. A. Numerical systems 9, 880-881
>
III. A. Concept of number and
>
III. B. Number signs and number
7, 197-198
Sea 13, 162-163 Steppe 13, 826-827
4, 740-
743
sources
Moor see Swamp Mountain passes 9, 242-243 Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528
1, 639-
640
Neusis
Coastline, changes in 3, 492-493 4, 313-314 Earthquake 4, 767-769
Swamp
11, 218-225 13, 84-92
22.1.2. MATHEMATICS Analemma_ 1, 638-639 Analogy [1] Philosophical
Desert
RUVEEs
DISCIPLINES
7, 561-600
Migration Migration Mobility Oppidum Polis 11, Settlement
Town, city 14, 808-817 cf. Subject Index 6.3.
Groma 5, 1033-1034 Hodometron 6, 442 Itinerare
Ethnography see Anthropology Frontier 6, 1228-1232 Incense Road 6, 762-763 Ionic Migration see Colonization Landscape (Scenery) 7, 197-198
SCIENTIFIC
systems
9, 882-887 9, 887-889
>
III. C. Numbers in philosophy 9, 889-891 Number II. Egypt 9, 881-882 Numbers, theories of see Mathematics II.A.r1. Physics VI. Mathematics and physics II, 223-224 Proportion
12, 32-37
Quadrature of the circle Bien Radius [2] 12, 381 Rhombus [1] 12, 579
12, 3 10-
22.2. BOTANY
22.3. ZOOLOGY
22.1.3. ASTRONOMY AND AS-
22.4. STONES AND MINERALS
On sciences cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 9. On scientists cf.
Index of Persons 11.1.
22.1. Scientific disciplines 22.1.1. INTRODUCTION 22.1.2. MATHEMATICS 22.1.3. ASTRONOMY AND ASTROL-
OGY 22.1.4. METEOROLOGY
22.1.5. OTHER SCIENCES 22.1.1. INTRODUCTION Artes liberales B. Canon of subjects 2, 71-72 Artes liberales C. Historical development 2, 73 Enkyklios paideia B. Nature
4, 982-983
TROLOGY Cf. Lists E.II. (Eclipses) Aegocerus I, 198
Aequinoctium see Kykloi Amaxa_ see Constellations Analemma_ 1, 638-639 Aquarius see Constellations Aquila [2] Science see Eagle Arcturus see Constellations Aries [3] see Constellations Arktos see Constellations Astrolabium 2, 195-196 Astrology 2, 196-199 Astronomy 2, 199-210 Bootes 2, 729-730
Calendar A. Basic Principles
2, 938-940
> B. Historical Calendars
>
945
2, 940-
D. History of Influence and Science
2, 946-951
22.1. SCIENTIFIC
Canicula see Constellations Canis see Constellations Capra see Constellations Capricorn see Constellations Carcinus [1] 2, 1092 Centaurus [3] 3, 114
Cepheus [3] see Constellations Cetus see Constellations Chorus E. Stars 3, 250 Circulus lacteus see Constellations Clepsydra [3] see Clocks Constellations 4, 1188-1194 Corona [3] see Constellations Corvus [2] see Constellations Crius [5] see Constellations Cycnus [4] see Constellations Cynosura [5] see Constellations Dog [2] see Constellations Dolphin [2] see Constellations (Volume 4, Addenda) 4, 622 Eclipses 4, 790-792
Ecliptic 4, 792-794
Equus see Constellations Fixed stars 5, 445-447 Gemini see Constellations Heavenly cycles see Kykloi Helice [2] see Constellations Hemerology IV. Astrological Hemerology 6, 128-129 Hemisphairion 6, 130-131 Hesperus see Planets Horoscope II. Graeco-Roman
6, 499-500 Hyades 6, 590-591 Iatromathematics A. Definition 6, 690
>» >
72
DISCIPLINES
B. Sources 6, 690 C. History of science
6, 690-
691
Ichthyes (Pisces)
see Constellati-
ons Kykloi 7, 116 Libra [3] see Constellations Lucifer [3] see Planets Luna [1] 7, 881-882 Lunaria 7, 883 Milky Way 8, 908-909 Moon 9, 196-199 Orion [2] see Constellations
Ornis see Constellations Paranatellonta 10, 517-518 Pegasus [2] see Constellations Phosphoros 11, 186 Planets 11, 320-334 Pleiades 11, 375-376 Procyon see Constellations Seasons II. A. Astronomical and calendrical seasons 13, 176—178
Shooting stars 13, 407-408 Sirius see Constellations Skorpios (Scorpio)
13, 522
Solar eclipse see Eclipses C. Sothis 13, 668-669
Spheres, harmony of.
Sun
13,731
Synchronism Taurus [3]
Elements, theories of the
see Chronography
Geology Matter
Ursus [2]
>
Zone [2]
see Constellations 15, 951-952
22.1.4. METEOROLOGY
On specific constellations cf. Subject Index 22.1.3. Africus ventus 1, 301 Aparctias 1, 818 Apeliotes 1, 819-820 Apheliotes 1, 824 Apogei 1, 846 Argestes 1, 1062 2, 730-
731 Caecias 2, 871 Cassiepea, Cassiopea, Cassiope [4]
see Constellations Caurus 3, 41 Circius 3, 349-350 Climate, Environmental change
3, 452-454
Comets see Meteorology Donkey 4, 664-670 Etesiai 5, 81 Eurus
5, 211-212 Libs 7, 511-512 Meteorology 8, 795-800 Monsoon
8, 453-455
8, 486-489
Mechanics III. A. Mechanical Technology 8, 542
15, 937-946
Boreas A. Meteorology
5, 776-777
Materialism
14, 172
Taygete see Pleiades Time of day 14, 686 Ursa see Constellations Zodiac
4, 907-
909
13, 944-947
9, 181-182
Notos I. Meteorology 9, 831 Ornithiae see Winch Pleiades 11, 375-376 Prodromoi [1] 11, 933-934 Seasons 13, 176-180 Tempestates see Winds Tides see Sea Volturnus [3] 15, 512-513 Weather portents and signs
8, 542-543
22.2. Botany 22.2.1. INTRODUCTION 22.2.2. TREES AND BUSHES 22.2.3. FLOWERING PLANTS, HERBS, VEGETABLES, FUNGI 22.2.4. SPICE AND FIBRE PLANTS
22.2.1. INTRODUCTION
On using plants for economic purposes cf. Subject Index 2.2.4. On nutrition cf. Subject Index 3.6. Botany 2,737 Drugs see Poisons Environment, Environmental behaviour VI. Decline and destruction of animal populations 4, 1006-1008
Euphorbion 5, 181 Glykyrrhiza 5, 881-882 Gum (kommi) 5, 1040 Horticulture I]. A. General
6, 517
>
IL. B. Horticulture and nutrition
>
IL. C. Methods of cultivation and
>
irrigation 6, 518-520 II. D. Dominion over nature and innovation 6, 520
6,
517-518
Horticulture I. Ancient Orient and
15, 603-605
Weather see Meteorology Winds 15, 652-657
III. B. Pneumatics
Mechanics I. Term and Definition, Content and Scope 8, 540-541 > II. The Beginnings of Theoretical Mechanics 8, 541 Optics see Physics Physics VII. Optics 11, 224 Pneumatics see Vacuum Stoicism IV. Physics 13, 854-855
Egypt 6, 517 Medicinal plants 8, 558-568 Oils for cooking II. A. Olive oil
10, 76-79 22.1.5. OTHER SCIENCES
On natural philosophy and atomism cf. Subject Index 14. On time calculation and concepts of time cf. Subject Index 24. On geography and geology cf. Subject Index 21. On metallurgy cf. Subject Index 2.4. On building techniques cf. Subject Index 6.4.4. On mechanics cf. Subject Index 2.4.8. On music theory cf. Subject Index 15. Acoustics 1, 103-107 Alchemy 1, 442-445 Biology 2, 656-659 Cosmology 3, 864-871
Plants see Zoology and botany Pomiculture 11, 543-544 Saccharon
12, 823
Vegetable gardening 15, 248-249 Zoology and botany I. A. Concept and sources 15,955 > I.C. Botany 15, 955-956 >
II. B. Botany
15, 958-962
Zoology and botany II. Egypt 15, 956-957 22.2.2. TREES AND BUSHES Acacia 139
Alaternus 1, 425-426 AJausa 1, 426 Alder 1, 463
72
22.2.
Almond tree see Amygdale Alnus see Alder Amygdale 1, 623 Anagyris 1, 637 Apple 1, 901-902 Apricot 1,910 Arbutus see Strawberry tree Ash(tree)
2, r0o8—1o9
Aspalathos 2, 165-166 Beech 2, 574 Birch 2, 662 Bittersweet 2, 683
Agnos
1, 345-346
Agrostis
1, 397
2, 789-790
Cedrus 3, 62-63 Cherry Tree 3, 211-212 Chestnut 3, 216 Gitruss 35.5'70 Cornus [2] 3, 839 Cypress 4, 1202 Daphne [1] 4, 80 Dates see Horticulture Elder 4, 890-891
Flax see Linen Foenum Graecum see Fenugreek Fucus 5, 568 Garden rocket 5, 692 Gentiana 5,764 Gossypium see Cotton
Grain
Allium see Leek IALOC Mn 25, Althaea [2] 1, 550-551 Amomum 1, 593 Anastatica
Blackberry bush 2, 685-686 Boxwood 2,747 Broom
22.2.3. FLOWERING PLANTS, HERBS, VEGETABLES, FUNGI Acanthus [2] 1, 48 Aconitum 1, 103
5, 965-974
Graminea Helenium
5, 981 6, 65
Hellebore 6, 83 Hemlock 6, 131-132
1, 647
Anchousa_ 1, 669 Andrachle 1, 679 Anemone 1, 692
Hemp
Anthemis 1, 723-724 Anthyllis 1,738 Apium see Celery Aracus Arakos 1, 947 Argemone_ I, 1060 Artemisia [3] 2, 68-69 Artichoke 2, 74-75
Hops
Arum
6, 132-133
Henbane 6, 133 Hippomanes 6, 371 6, 481-482
Hyakinthos 6, 591-592 Hyoskyamos see Henbane Inula see Helenium Iris [2]
6,936 Ivy 6, 1155-1156 Knot-grass Kactucal|r|)
2, 82
7, 74-77 Gaga
Leek 7, 346-348
Ephedra 4, 1021-1022 Ereike 5, 21-22 Fagus see Beech
Asparagus 2, 166 Asphodelos 2, 171 Balsam 2, 481 Barba Jovis 2, 500 Bean trefoil/Buckbean Beans 2, 565
Fig 5, 419-420
Beet
Fir 15, 1028-1029 Hawthorn 6, 17-18 Hazel 6, 18
Bolbos
Bulrush 2, 820 Byssos 2, 845
>
Ilex see Oak Iuglans 6, 1034
Cabbage 2, 859-860 Calamus [2] 2, 930-931 Camomile 2, 1023 Caraway II. Greece and Rome 2, [090-1091 Carbasus 2, 1091 Carnation 2, 1115-1116
Lotus 7, 822-823 Lupine 7, 886-887 Lupinus 7, 887
Elm
4,927
Juniper
6, 1224 Karyotos Phoinix Kneoron
7, 24
7,72
arch)
7.245
Laurel
7, 300-302
Maple 8, 277 Mastic 8,451 Mulberry Tree
Celery 3, 69 Chamaimelon 3, 185 Chicory 3, 219-220 Chondros 3, 242 Clover 3, 481 Cotton 3, 877-878 Crocus, [2] 3,955 Cucumber 3, 977 Daphnoides 4, 84 Delphinium 4, 227 Dictamnus 4, 374
9, 261
9, 934-935
Palm tree see Phoenix [6] Peach. 10, 660-661 Pear tree.
10,662
Phoenix [6] 11, 172-173 Pine. 11, 273-274 Pinus (Stone pine)
11, 283
Pistachio 11, 297 Plane tree 11, 319 Plum r1, 408 Pomegranate, Pomegranate tree
II, 540-541 Poplar. 11, 612 Quince 12, 332-333 Rhododendron 12, 569 Spruce 13, 768
Strawberry tree Taxus
13, 882
14,190
Terebinth 14, 274-275 Walnut see Iuglans Willow 15, 635-636
7) 372-373
Lentils 2, 565
Ebony 4, 774-775 Emmer
4, 942
7, 388
Lily 7,558 Linen, flax I. General 7, 619 > II. Ancient Near East 7, 619620
2,714
Carrot) 2, 1128 Casia 2, 1151
Oak
Leguminous plants (pulses)
2, 576-577
Lime-tree 7, 600 Malum Punicum see Pomegranate
BOTANY
III. Ancient cultivation and processing 7, 620
Maidenhair see Fern Mallow 8, 203-204 Medlar 8, 588-589 Melon 8, 641 Mespila [2] 8,748 Millet see Grain Mint
9, 27
Minthe [2] see Mint Mistletoe 9,72 Moss 9, 235 Motherwort 9, 239 Mullein 9, 265-266 Mushrooms 9, 326
Myrrine see Myrtle Myrtle 9, 423-424 Nardos 9, 508-509 Narthex [1] 9, 514 Nasturtium 9, 519-520 Nuts see Hazel
Endive 4,970 Equisetum 45, I
Oats 9, 938-939 Ocimum 10, 16
Erica
Oleander see Rhododendron Onion — see Leek Opobalsamum 10, 163 Orache 10, 182
see Ereike
Eupatorium 5, 178 Faba see Beans
Far 5, 353-354 Farnus Farrago
see Ash (tree) 5,358
Fennel 5, 380 Fenugreek 5, 380-381 Fern
5, 391-392
Paeonia 10, 334 Peas. 10, 665
Persica see Peach Plantago. 11, 334-335 Plantain see Plantago
22.2.
74
BOTANY
22.3. Zoology 22.3.1. INTRODUCTION 22.3.2. WATER CREATURES/FISH 2.2.3.3. BIRDS 22.3.4. MAMMALS AND OTHER VERTEBRATES
Polygonon 11, 526 Poppy. I1, 615-616 Pumpkin 12, 198
Radish 12, 381 Radius [4] 12, 381 Ranunculus 12, 392 Reed 125433 Rhubarb 12, 581 Rice see Grain
22.3.5. LOWER ANIMALS (INCL. INSECTS)
Rose 12, 738 Rosemary 12,739 Rue 12,750 Rye see Grain
Scilla
2.2.3.1. INTRODUCTION On using animals for economic purposes cf. Subject Index 2.2.4. On nutrition cf. Subject Index
see Squill
BL 0%
Silphion 13, 466-467 Spurge see Tithymal(l)os
Animals 15,994 Apiculture 1, 837-839 Breeding, of small domestic animals
Squill 13, 772-773
Storax see Styrax Strawberry 13, 881-882 Strychnos 13, 888-889 Styrax
13, 896-897
Swede
13, 977-978
2, 756-760
Domestic animals 4, 627-628 Domestication 4, 628-629
Egg 4, 839-840
Environment, Environmental behaviour VI. Decline and destruction of animal populations
Telis see Fenugreek Thistles 14, 589 Thymelaia 14, 646-647 Tithymal(l)os 14,740 Truffles see Mushrooms Umbilicus [1] 15, 92 Wrticar 155.332 Veratrum see Helleborus Verbascum see Mullein Verbenaca 15, 291-292 Violet 15, 447-448 Water nut
4, 1006-1008
Fishing, Fishing trade
Fodder
5, 684-685 Hippiatrica
Honey
15, 762
1 70%
Caraway 2, 1090-1091 Gasae 2; 1150 Castor bean 2, 1182-1183 Cinnamon 3, 345-346 Cloves 3, 481-482 Dill 4, 417 Ginger 5, 853 Henna [2] 6, 136 Incense 6, 762
Libanomanteia Libanos cense Myrrh 9, 419-420 Origano
10, 209
6, 345-346
6, 474-475
Hunting
22.2.4. SPICE AND FIBRE PLANTS Abrus 1, 34 ANISEe!
5, 475-476
Fowling 15, 1033-1034 Games II. D. Games with animals
15, 574
Wormwood
see In-
6, 576-578 Husbandry 6, 580-588 Leather A. Overview 7, 337 B. Conditions and reasons for leather processing 7, 337 > C. Tanning and dyeing 7, 337-
338
Silk 13, 462-464 Stabling of livestock
Fishes
5, 439-440
Galeos see Shark Glanis [1] 5, 858-859 Gurnard 5, 1044-1045 Hippocampus 6, 348-349 Jellyfish 6, 1167 Lobster 7,762 Mackerel 8, 96 Milvus 8,919 Moray
9, 206-207
Mullus 9, 266 Mussels 9, 370-372 Narke see Electric ray Oyster. 10, 314
Parrot-fish
10, 558
Pearl Perch
10, 662-664 10, 745-746
Pike.
11, 247
Plaice. 11, 316-317 Purple 12, 231-233 Ray see Electric ray Salmon 12, 897 Sea urchin 13, 169-170
Seafood _ see Fish dishes (and seafood) Seahorse see Hippocampus Seal 13, 171-172 Shark 13, 377-378 Silurid see Glanis [1] Sponge I. Science 13,743 » II. Hygiene and medicine
13, 743-744
Sturgeons 13, 891 Thynnos_ see Tuna Trout 14, 967-968 Tuna
15, 1043-
Whale
15, 24-26
15,629
1044
Transhumance 14, 846 Veterinary medicine 15, 354-356
ZOO
15, 952-954
Zoology and botany I. A. Concept and sources 15,955 > I.B. Zoology 15,955 > Ill. A. Zoology 15, 957-958 Zoology and botany II. Egypt 15, 956-957
22.3.3. BIRDS Alcyonides [1] 1, 462 Anser [1] see Goose Aquila [2] Science see Eagle Bee-eater 2, 573-574 Black grouse see Capercaillie Blackbird
2, 686
Capercaillie 2, 1063 Charadrios 3, 189-190 Chicken (Rooster)
Pepper 10, 738 Piper see Pepper Sesame 13, 335-336
Acipenser
Vitrum see Woad Weld 15, 621
Acus 1, 129 Anchovy (Sardine)
Woad
Burbot 2, 824 Carpuz.rr22 rg
15, 689-690
5, 440-442
Echinoderms 4, 785 Eel 4, 836 Electric ray 4, 898 Ellops see Sturgeon
22.3.2. WATER CREATURES/FISH
1, 101 1, 669
Channe 3, 187 Chrysophrys 3, 294-295 Conger 3,690 Coral 3, 779-780 Crab see Crustaceans Cuttlefish 4, 1200-1202 Dolphin [1] 4, 621-622
3, 217-219
Cock see Chicken Cormorant 3, 805 Crané
3,915
Crow
3, 960-961
Cuckoo 3, 976-977 Cynamolgus 3, 1051 Divers 4, 562 Dove/Pigeon 4, 698-701
Duck 4, 732-733 Eagle 4, 763-764
Falcons 5, 323-324 Finches 5, 427-428 Flamingo 5, 450
75
22.4. STONES
Flycatcher 5, 474-475
Fowling 15, 1033-1034 Francolin 15, 1034 Goose 5, 924-927 Goshawk 5, 945-946 Guineafowl 5, 1039-1040 Heron 6, 272-273 Hoopoe 6, 479 Ibis 6, 696-697 Iynx [2] see Wryneck Jackdaw 6, 1162-1163 Jay 6, 1166 Keiris 7, 38-39 Kingfisher 7, 47-48
Lagopus
7, 173
Wan kamaee 55 Magpie 8, 182 Nightingale. 9, 749-751 Nightjar 9,751 Nuthatch. 9, 913-914 Oriole. 10, 219 Ostrich 10, 289-290 Owls 10, 308-310 Parrots 10, 558-559 Partridge. 10, 581
Dog [1] 4, 608-611
4, 664-670
Dormouse
4, 688
Dromedary see Camel Elephant 4, 910-912 Elk 4, 926 Ferret 5.1393 Flying fox (Badul)
see Bat
Fox 5, 534-535 Frog
5, 560-562 Gazelle 5, 716-717 Giraffe 5,854 Goat [2] 5, 902-906 Hamster 5, 1125 Hare 5, 1140-1142
Hedgehog
6, 44-45
Hippopotamus 6, 375-376 Horse 6, 500-511 Hyena 6, 601-602
Purple swamphen 12, 233 Quail 12, 323-324 Raven
Lizard 7, 755-756
Peacock
10, 661
12, 407-408 Rock partridge 12, 657-658 Sea-gull 13,170 Shearwaters see Divers Sparrow hawk 13, 690-691 -Sparrow 13, 689-690 Stork 13, 863-864 Strix (Striges) see Owls Swallow 13, 972-974
Swan
13, 974-975
Tetrax see Capercaillie Thistle finch 14, 589 Thrush 14, 629-630 Titmouse 14,744
Vulture
15, 537-539
Woodpecker Wren
15, 732-733
15,764
Wryneck
15, 787-788
22.3.4. MAMMALS AND OTHER
VERTEBRATES Achlis 1, 98 Antelope see Gazelle Aries [1] see Sheep Aurochs 2, 389 Badger 2, 458
Bat 2, 547-548
Lynx 8, 19-20 Mannus 8, 252 Marmot 8, 380-381 Marten 8, 408 Mole 9, 127-128
Monkey Mouse
9, 161-162 9, 247-249
Mule 9, 262-265 Onager [1] see Donkey
Panther see Leopard Paraveredus see Horse Phoke see Seal Pigs
11, 244-247 Pithekos see Monkey Polecat. 11, 453 Rabbit see Hare Rat
12, 397
Reindeer 12, 453-454 Rhinoceros 12, 564-565 Rock hyrax 12, 657 Roe
Arachnids 1, 944-946 Bedbug 2, 573
Bees
2, 575-576
Beetle 2, 577-578 Cantharides 2, 1058-1059 Cicada 3, 316-317 Cockroach 4, 1178 Cricket 3,940 Flea 5, 465-466
Fly 5, 473-474 Gadfly 5, 637
Glow-worm 5, 880 Grasshoppers 5, 991-992
Insects 6, 834-835 Lepidoptera 7, 413-415 Louse 7, 823
Mite
9, 72-73
Molluscs 9, 128-129 Mosquito 9, 234-235
Murex see Snail Scorpion [1] see Arachnids Snails and slugs 13, 550-553 Ticks 14, 666 Wasps 15, 568 Wax
15, 587 Woodlouse 15, 731-732 Worms 15, 760-762
22.4. Stones and minerals On raw materials and basic ma-
terials cf. Subject Index 2.2.6. Achates [1] 1, 84-85 Aerugo I, 240-241 Almandine see Precious stones
Alum «x, 552 Amber 1, 566-567 Amethyst see Precious Stones Amiantos see Asbestos Ammoniacum 1, 587 Antimony 1, 755-756 Arsenicum 2, 33 Asbestos 2, 91%
Asphalt
12, 877-878
Sheep 13, 378-384 Shrew
13, 408-409
Snake
13, 553-558
Squirrel 13,773 Talpa see Mole
see Pitch
Asteria [1]
Aurum
12,659
Salamander
22.3.5. LOWER ANIMALS (INCL. INSECTS) Ants 1, 809-810
Ibex 6, 696 Ichneumon 6, 703 Jackal 6, 1161-1162 Leopard 7, 410-411 Leucrocota 7, 452 Lion 7, 623-626
Pelican 10, 697 Pheasant. 10, 942-943
4, 172-
174 Donkey
Beryllos
see Precious stones
see Gold see Precious stones
Bitumen see Pitch Chalk 3, 184 Chrysolith see Precious stones Cinnabar 3, 344-345
Copper
3, 769-772
Bear 2, 566 Beaver 2, 568-569
Tiger
14, 668-669
Diamond
Toad
see Frog
Bidens Bison Buffalo Camel Cat 3, Cattle
Tortoise [1]
Eagle-stone 4, 764-765 Elektron 4, 906-907 Emerald 4, 939 Gold 5, 912-920
2, 639 see Wisent 2, 807 2, 1018-1021 1-2 3, 25-31
MINERALS
Wolf 15, 690-693 Zebra 15,879
Chamaeleon [2] 3, 185 Chamois 3, 186 Crocodile 3, 953-954 Deer, red (Cervus, dama)
AND
14, 792-793 Umber 15, 92 Vertragus 15, 325-326 Weasel 15, 601-602 Wisent 15, 688
see Precious stones
Granite 5,988 Gypsum 5, 1068-1069 Haematite 5, 1090
22.4. STONES
AND
Hydrargyrum
Iron
see Mercury
Kyanos 7, 115-116 Lapis lazuli 7, 240-241
Lead 7, 329-330 Lime 7, 559-560 7, 723-725
Magnets
8,174
Marble I. Terminology, properties, identification 8, 281-282 » II. Occurrence 8, 282-285 Mercury 8,713 Minium
X. D. Practices 12, 492-493 X. E. Discourses 12, 493-494
9, 239
9, 781-782
Obsidian 10, 5-6 Ochre 10, 16 Onyx 10, 149 Pitch 11, 303-305 Plumbum _ see Lead
ewe Ye
X. F. Local history 12, 494 X. H. General assessment
>
Iatromaia
estine V.Iran
v
VI. Minoan culture
v
VII. Mycenaean culture
12, 480-
15, 988—
Definitiones medicae 4, 175 Disability 4, 534-536 Gender roles II. Medicine 5, 744-
746
Healing Deities, Healing Cults 6, 21-26
Hospital 6, 523-527 Ichor 6,704 Intoxicating substances 6, 877880 Logos [2] C. Incantations 7,798
Magic, Magi 3. Magical healing 8, 136-137
Magical spells IV. Popular medicine
thetics 6,879 Keroma 7, 44 Kollyrion 7, 84-85 Konche
7, 93
Lomentum [1] 7, 806 12, 482-488
13, 90-92 Sex [2] Sex (medica! aspects)
13, 362-363
Temperament 14, 244-245 Training (medical) 14, 840-841 Transmission of disease 14, 858-
859
Twins II. In medicine 15, 50 Valetudinarium — see Hospital C. Valetudinaria Woman II. F. Medicine 15, 704— 706
23.2. Medical disciplines, methods
991
tion 6, 877 II. Alcohol 6, 877-879
Il. Pharmaceuticals and Anaes-
12, 476-477 12, 477-480
medicine cf. CT index volume,
23.1. Introduction
6, 689-690
v
Science III. C. Significant characteristics and individual disciplines
Entry Index 9.
5, 270-272
Family planning 5, 348-349 Gynaecology 5, 1062-1067 Healing Deities, Healing Cults 2. Incubation 6, 25-26 Humoral theory 6, 571-572 Hysteria 6, 658-660
>»
>» VIII. Greece
On sanitary and hygienic equipment cf. Subject Index 7.7. On
4, 974-975
Exorcism
IV. Old Testament and Syria-Pal-
12, 481-482
23. Medicine 23.1. INTRODUCTION 23.2. MEDICAL DISCIPLINES, METHODS AND APPLICATION 23.3. DISEASES 23.4. VETERINARY MEDICINE 23.5. MEDICAL SCHOOLS AND MEDICAL HEALING PROFESSIONS
Medical ethics 8, 553-556 Medicine 8, 569-582
Enema
MA
12, 467-
481
14, 714-716
4,718
II. E. Mythology and poetry 4, 718-719 Drugs see Poisons
» Ill. Egypt 12, 473-476
Sapphire 12, 961 Sardonyx 12,995 Silver 13, 471-476 Sulphur 13, 929
8,149
pretation
>
470
Religion I. Introduction
Quarries 12, 324-326 Salt 12, 902-905
Alcohol, consumption of
>
II. B. Theories of sleep and dream genesis 4, 715-716 II. D. Technique of dream inter-
Iatromathematics 6, 690-692 Infibulation 6,797 Intoxicating substances IJ. Defini-
12, 495-496
Precious stones 11, 795-796 Pumice 12, 198
Tin
ro, 83
quity see Purification Religion II. A. Gods and perceptions about them 12, 470-471 » X.A. The status of scholarship 12, 489 >» X.B. Concept and constitution of the subject matter 12, 489-490 » X. C. Differentiation of religion in Rome 12, 490-492
9, 10
Mother-of-pearl Nitrum
Old age B. Medicine
Purity IV. Graeco-Roman Anti-
6, 938-943
Lithika
76
MINERALS
and application On plants used for medical purposes cf. Subject Index 22.2. Abortifacients 1, 26 Abortion 1, 27-29
Alexipharmaka 1, 501-502 Anatomy 1, 651-655 Antidotarium 1, 743-744 Birth I. Medical 2, 663-665 Cauterization 3, 46-47 Chondros 3, 242 Circumcisio 3, 352-353 Contraception 3, 749-750 Cosmology C. 4. Medical theories
3, 867 Death II. C. Criteria of death 4, 130-131 Dentistry 4, 303-305 Dietetics 4, 402-404
Dreams; Interpretation of dreams Il. A. General points 4,715
Magic Medicine Medicinal plants Menstruation
see Magic, Magi 8, 558-568
8, 700-702
Ophthalmology 10, 154-157 Penis 10,724 Pharmacology 10, 927-932 Philtron 11,126 Phlebotomy. 11, 131-132 Physiognomy 11, 225-227 Poisons 11, 450-452 Psychotherapy see Mental illness Puls see Polenta Purification B. 2. Greece 12, 226227 >
B. 3. Rome?
>»
B.4.Inmysteries
135,927
12, 227 Purification A. Introduction T2225
ee Philosophical 12, 227-228 >» D. Medical 12, 228 > E. Musical 12, 228
F. Tragedy (literary) 12, 228 Ritual IV. C. Purificatory, apotropaic and healing rituals 12, 603
a
Soap
13,559
Speculum muliebre 13, 720-721 Sponge II. Hygiene and medicine
13, 743-744
Strigilis [3] 13, 883 Surgery 13, 960-963 Surgical instruments Uroscopy 15, 129 Uterus 15, 141-142
Vulva
15, 539-541
13, 963-967
Zoology and botany 3. Medicinal and pharmaceutical botany 15, 960
Te
25.1. MEASURES
23.3. Diseases
Methodists
Disease 4, 543-554 Epidemic diseases Epilepsy 4, 1109
4, 1092-1094
Fever 5, 409-410 Hysteria 6, 658-660
Intoxicating substances I. Definition
6,877
II. Alcohol 6, 877-879 III. Pharmaceuticals and Anaesthetics 6, 879 Lead poisoning 7, 330-331 Leprosy 7, 417-418 Lippitudo 7, 629 Malaria 8, 195-196 Malnutrition, Famine V. Malnutrition and infectious diseases 8, 208
Melancholy 8, 614-615 Mental illness 8, 702-704 Pest, Pestis see Epidemic diseases Plague see Disease Transmission of disease 14, 858-
859 Venereal diseases 15, 270-271 Worms 15, 760-762
23.4. Veterinary medicine On individual animals cf. Subject Index 22.3. Animals 15,994 Castration of animals 1189
2, 1188—
Cauterization 3, 46-47 Donkey C. The domestic donkey
4, 666-667
6, 345-346
Horse III. C. Breeding, keeping, horse medicine 6, 504 Mulomedicina Chironis 9, 266267
Veterinary medicine
15, 354-356
23.5. Medical schools and medical healing professions On physicians, healers and medical theorists cf. Index of Persons 169), Archiatros 1, 986-987 Cnidus 3, 489-490 Corpus Hippocraticum see Hippocrates Cos IV. Cultural influence 3, 858-
859
Dogmatists [2] Schools of medicine. AjOlL2—613
Empiricists 4, 953-954 Hairesis 5, 1097-1098
Iatraleiptes Iatromaia Iatros [1]
6, 689 6, 689-690 6, 692
Iatrosophistes 6, 692-693 Medicine IV. Classical Antiquity
8, 573-582
Medicus [2]
10, 771-772 Physicians (Ancient Near East).
» >
Hippiatrica
8, 801-802 Midwife 8, 865-866 Nature, Natural philosophy I. D. Physicians 9, 530 Obstetrix 10, 6 Pergamum IV. D. Roman period
see Medicine
Ir, 218
Pilgrimage I. A. Greek world II, 249-250 Pneumatists
11, 433-434 Summaria Alexandrinorum
13,944 Training (medical) Uliadae 15, 83
14, 840-841
OF LENGTH
Mensis see Calendar Military feriale see Feriale Duranum Month — see Calendar Months, names of the 9, 186-191 Nefasti dies see Fasti Nonae see Calendar Nonalia sacra. 9, 806 Nundinae 9, 911-912 Octaeteris see Calendar,A.3. Ogdoas see Week Olympiad see Chronography Parapegma 10, 519-520 Period, era 10, 787-790 Periods, division into 10, 791-
796 Prognostic
24. Chronography and calendar On sciences cf. CT index volume,
Entry Index 9. Cf. also Lists E.V.1. (Synopsis of important eras), E.1V.1. and E.IV.2. (Greek and Roman calendars) Apophrades hemerai_ 1, 886 Calendar 2, 938-951 Callynteria see Plynteria Choiak 3, 240 Chorus E. Stars 3, 250 Chronography 3, 277-285 Clepsydra [3] see Clocks
Clocks
3, 457-464
Dating systems see Chronology Depositio see Feriale Dies atri see Hemerology Dies fasti see Fasti Easter computation see Calendar Epochs and their divisions _ see Era Eponyms in chronology I. Ancient Orient 4, 1160-1161 Eponymy see Eponyms in Chronology Eras 5, 8-13 Fasti Ostienses 5, 366 Fasti 5, 361-365 Feriae Latinae 5, 387-388 Feriae 5, 385-386 Feriale Duranum 5, 390-391 Feriale 5, 388-390 Fissi dies see Fasti Hebdomas_ see Week Hemerologion 6, 126 Hemerology 6, 126-129 Horologium (Solare) Augusti
6, 499 Horologium
see Clocks
Idus
see Calendar Indictio 6,778 Indiction see Chronography Intercalation see Calendar Intercisi dies see Fasti Kalendae see Calendar Lunaria 7, 883 Lustrum C. Lustrum as a period of
time
7, 894-895
see Parapegma Sacrificial calendar _ see Feriale Saeculum 12, 861-862 Seasons 13, 176-180
Sunday see Week Sundial see Analemma Synaxarion [3] 14, 17 Synchronism see Chronography Time of day 14, 686 Time, concepts of 14, 686-694 Trieteris 14, 918 Water clock see Clocks Week 15, 612-614 Year see Calendar Years, names of see Chronogra-
phy Zoroastrianism III. Calendar
15, 967 25. Metrology and numismatics 25.1. MEASURES OF LENGTH 25.2. MEASURES OF VOLUME 25.3. MEASURES OF AREA 25.4. WEIGHTS 25.5. COINS
Cf. Lists C.1.-III. (Weights and measures; coinage systems)
25.1. Measures of length Actus) (2) en r28 Akaina 1, 410-411 Amma _ 1, 582 As
2, 88-90
Calibration Cubitus
2, 953-955
3, 976
Daktylos [1] 4, 41-42 Decempeda 4, 146-147 Deunx 4, 323 Dextans 4, 331
Dodrans
4, 607
Dupondius Leuga
4, 743-744
7, 452-453
Measures
8, 531-535
Mensor 8, 699-700 Metronomoi 8, 839-840
Orgyia
10, 203
Palaiste Palmus.
10, 381 10, 400-401
25.1. MEASURES
Parasanges Passus.
lugerum 6, 1033-1034 Jugum [1] 6, 1034-1035 Mensor 8, 699-700 Pentonkion see Quincunx Pertica. 10, 853-854
10, 522
10, 590
Pechys 10, 665 Pertica. 10, 853-854 Pes. 10, 859 Plethron 11, 381 Pous
78
OF LENGTH
Quincunx Scripulum
11,740
12, 344-345 13, 124
25.5.1. COINS, GENERAL Aeginetan Standard 1, 194 Aes rude 1, 262 Aes signatum 1, 262-263 Attic Standard see Coinage, standards of Billon
2, 647
Calibration 2, 953-955 Campanian Standard see Coin-
Schoinos 13, 63-64 Scripulum 13, 124 Semuncia 13, 257-258 Sescuncia 13, 336 Sicilicus 13, 417 Spithame 13,741
Semuncia 13, 257-258 Sescuncia 13, 336 Sextula 13, 369 Sicilicus 13, 417 Square measures 13, 770-771
Stadion [1] 13, 774-775
25.4. Weights
Coinage laws 3, 515-516 Coinage reforms 3, 516-518
Ulna
Bes (x)
Coinage system
15, 84
avons Calibration 2, 953-955
25.2. Measures of volume
Amphora [2] Measure of volume. Din Oils, Artabe
2,54
Calibration 2, 953-955 Choinix 3, 240-241 Chomer see Measure of volume
Chous [1] 3, 252
Cochlear(e)[1] 3, 494-495 Congius 3, 692 Culleus 3,979
Cyathus
3, 1034
Kypros [2] 7, 125 7, 781-782
8, 528-531
Metretes 8, 835 Metronomoi 8, 839-840
Modius [3] 9, 111 Oxybaphon to, 311 Pentonkion see Quincunx Ponderarium 11, 586 Quadrantal 12, 308 Quartarius 12, 326 Quincunx 12, 344-345 Ro
Keration
4, 743-744 7, 42
Kollybos 7, 84 Lepton 7, 425
Pentonkion
6, 333
Measure of volume Medimnos 8, 583
Dupondius
Ditran7 727, Lupinus 7, 887 Metronomoi 8, 839-840 Mina [1] 8, 930-931
Kados 7, 2-3 Kapetis 7, 18-19 Kotyle [2] 7, ror
Log
Dichalkon 4, 373 Didrachmon 4, 389-390 Dodrans 4, 607 Drachme [2] Weight. 4, 705-706
Libra [1] 7, 497
Deunx 4, 323 Dextans 4, 331 Hekteus 6, 61 Hemina 6, 129-130
Hin
Decussis 4, 166 Deunx 4, 323 Dextans 4, 331
12, 618
Saton 13, 17 Sextarius 13, 364-365 Urna 15,128 Xestes 15, 838
see Quincunx Phoenician Standard see Coinage, standards of Ponderarium 11, 586 Pondo. 11, 586-587 Quadrans. 12, 307-308 Quadrantal standard 12, 308-
309 Scripulum 13, 124 Semis 13, 238 Semuncia 13, 257-258 Sescuncia 13, 336 Sextans. 13, 364 Sextula 13, 369 Sicilicus 13, 417
Siglos 13, 447-448
Siliqua 13,458 Siqlu 13, 502 Stater I. Weight 13, 793 14, 120-121
Uncia 15, 100-101 Weights 15, 614-621
25.3. Measures of area Actus [2]
1, 128
Akaina 1, 410-411 Aroura 2, 19-20 As 2, 88-90 Decempeda 4, 146-147 Deunx 4, 323 Dextans 4, 331 Dodrans 4, 607
Gye 5, 1047
3, 518-520 3, 520-523
see Money, mon-
ey economy Coinage, standards of 3, 513-514 Coins, control of 3, 523-524 Coins, debasement of 3, 524-526 Coins, finds of 3, 526-527 Contorniati 3,748 Control-marks 3,756 Corinthian Standard see Coinage, standards of Counterfeiting 3, 882 Countermarks 3, 882-883 Damnatio memoriae II. Archaeo-
logical/coins
4, 61
Devaluationofmoney 4, 325-327 Dokimastes see Coin counterfeit,
see Subaeratus Elektron II. Greece and Rome 4, 906-907 Embossing see Coin production Eretria [1] D. Minting Exagium 5, 253
25.5. Coins 25.5.1. COINS, GENERAL 25.5.2. SPECIFIC COINS On money and monetary societies cf. Subject Index 2.2.3. On museums and their exhibitions cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.5.
5, 24
Gresham’s law 5, 1030-1031 Heracles coinage 6, 163 Hybrid coins 6, 595 Incusi (hammered coins)
Quartuncia 12, 326 Quincunx 12, 344-345
Talent
age, standards of Coin counterfeit Coin production
6, 765
Liberalitas, largitio C. Coins 7, 488-489 Massa 8, 441 Medallion 8, 545-546 Mensor 8, 699-700 Metronomoi 8, 839-840 Minimi — see Small coins, shortage ot Mint decree (Athens) see Coinage
laws Mint workers’ rebellion _ see Felicissimus Minting 9, 28-34 Mintmaster see Tresviri Moneta-
les Money supply
9, 146-147
Money, money economy 160
9, 147-
Multiplum 9, 276 Nummularius 9, 909-910 Nummus. 9, 910-911 Obol for the dead see Charon’s fare Owls (coins). 10, 310 Pecunia. 10, 669
“Us
26.1. HISTORY AND POLITICS
Persian monetary system
see
Dareikos Phoenician Standard see Coinage, standards of Ponderarium rr, 586 Pondo. 11, 586-587 Potin. 11, 705 Quadratum Incusum. 12, 309 Quadrussis 12, 316 Quartuncia standard
12, 327 Recoining see Small coins, shortage of Scripulum 13, 124 Semilibral standard. 13, 235 Semiuncial standard. 13, 241 Senatus consultum [2] 13, 2652.66
Sextantal standard.
13, 364
Sigla. 13, 447
Small coins, shortage of.
13, 545-
Chalkos 3, 184 Cistophori 3, 367-368 Danake 4, 69-70 Dareikos 4, 90 Decussis
4, 166 Dekadrachmon 4, 196 Dekalitron 4, 196 Dekanoummion 4, 196-197 Demarateion 4, 232-233 Denarius 4, 301-302 Dichalkon 4, 373 Didrachmon 4, 389-390 Diobolon 4, 422-423 Dodekadrachmon 4, 604 Dodrans 4, 607 Drachme [1] Coin. 4, 704-705
Dupondius
4, 743-744
Fel Temp Reparatio coins Maiorina
Follis [3] 5, 489-490 Hekte
548 Subaeratus 13, 899-900 Subferratus see Subaeratus Tessera 14, 313-314 Test mark 14, 314 Travels I. A. Travel areas and means of payment 14, 869 Tresviri [4] Tresviri monetales 14, 893 Trial minting 14, 898-899 Value, marks of 15, 198-199 Vota 15, 523 Weights III. B. Materials and Forms
6, 60 Hemiobolion Hexas
6, 130
6, 296-297
Kaletedou type 7, 8-9 Keration 7, 42 Kodrantes 7,77 Kollybos 7, 84 Koson
Lampsakenos
7, 191
15, 615-616
>
III. C. The General Structure of the System of Weights
tra 7567 27 Maiorina 8, 189-190
>
III. D. The Greek Systems and
their Mutual Relations 15, 616-617
Nomos. [4] 9, 802-803
IV.B. Historical Development 15,
618-619
>
IV. C. The Structure of the Roman System of Weights 15, 619 >» IV.D. Units 15, 619 >» IV.E. Materials and Forms 15, 619-620
>
IV.F. Sliding Weights 621 15, 614-615
Il. Egypt
15, 615
25.5.2. SPECIFIC COINS Aes grave I, 253-254 Antoninianus 1, 794-795 Argenteus 1, L061 As 2, 88-90 Assarion 2, 173 Aureus 2, 386-388 Bes [1] 2, 611 Bigatus 2, 641 Binio 2, 648
Centenionalis
15, 620-
Obolos_ 10, 2-3 Oktadrachmon 10, 79-80 Ouroboros stater 10, 297-298 Paduans. 10, 326-327 Pentadrachmon, Pentedrachmia
LO, 724-725
Pentalitron 10, 726 Pentanummium 10, 726 Pentekontadrachmon to, 728729
Weights I. Ancient Orient >»
Lepton
Metalla [2] 8,776 Miliarensis 8, 896 Nike stater 9,756
15, 616
Pentobolon 10, 735 Pentonkion see Quincunx Phanes stater. 10, 915-916 Philippus (stater) 11, 42-43 Quadrans. 12, 307-308 Quadrantal standard 12, 308-
309
Quadrigatus. 12, 315 Quadrunx 12, 315-316 Quartuncia 12, 326 Quaternio 12, 327 Quinarius 12, 331-332 Quincunx
3, 114
Siglos 13, 447-448
Siliqua 13,458 Solidus 13, 615-616 Spintria 13, 738 Stater II. Coin 13, 794 Strigilis [4] 13, 884 Taurophores 14, 171-172 Terruncius 14, 306 Tetrachalkon 14, 320 Tetradrachmon 14, 320 Wethas453 27 Tetrobolon 14, 327-328
Tortoise [2] 14, 793-794 Tremissis 14, 889 Tressis 14, 891 Trias 14,900
Trichalkon
14, 914
Trichryson
14, 914-915
Tridrachmon
7, 100
Kroiseios 7, 105 Kyzikenos 7, 128-129 7, 425 Libella 7, 483 Libyon type 7, 516
>
see
Runic solidi 12, 782 Scyphates 13, 148 Semis 13, 238 Semuncia 13, 257-258 Serratus 13, 322 Sescuncia 13, 336 Sestertius 13, 338-339 Sextula 13, 369 Sicilicus 13, 417
12, 344-345
Quincussis 12, 345 Rainbow cup 12, 388-389
Triens
14, 917
14, 917-918
Trihemiobolion 14, 921 Triobolon 14, 927-928 Tritetartemorion 14,940 Uncia 15, 100-101
Victoriatus
15, 400-401
26. Near East and Egypt 26.1. HISTORY AND POLITICS 26.2. ART AND ARCHITECTURE 26.3. RELIGION AND MYTHOLOGY 26.4. LANGUAGES, LITERATURE 26.5. SCIENCES AND MEDICINE 26.6. LAW
26.7. HISTORY OF SOCIETY, CULTURE AND EVERYDAY LIFE 26.8. ECONOMY AND TECHNOLOGY On museums cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.5. On exca-
vations and finds cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.6. On ancient deities, heroes, literary creatures and near and far eastern writers cf. Index of Persons Dijin cd wen 26.1. History and politics Cf. Lists B.I.-I. (International treaties)
Achaimenidai
1, 83
Aristocracy [1] Ancient Orient. I, 1108
Armies I. Ancient Orient 2, 6-7 Ceremony I. Mesopotamia 3, 149 >» ITI. Egypt 3,150 > W.Iran 3, 150-153
26.1. HISTORY
AND
Communications I. Ancient Orient 3» 663-664
Court titles A. Antecedents in the ancient Orient
80
POLITICS
3, 888-889
Deification 4, 179-182 Divine kingship 4, 578 Dromedarii 4, 722 Empires, Concept of empire II. A. Introduction: “Three-Empire Scheme’ 4,950 Empires, Concept of empire I. Ancient Orient 4, 948-949
Secret police A. Ancient Near East. 13, 191 Seleucid era see Chronography State I. General 13, 788-789 >»
II. Ancient Near East
13, 789-
6, 537-538
» Il. Egypt
13, 790-792
Throne IL. Phoenicia 14, 628 Town, city Il. The Ancient Near East and Egypt 14, 809-810 Wagon, Chariot I. Ancient Orient
and Egypt
15, 544-545
War booty I. Ancient Near East
Great King 5,999 Historiography I. Ancient Orient
War chariot I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 15, 560-561 War, art of see Military technology and engineering Weapons I. Ancient Near East and
6, 415-418
15, 557-558
Egypt
6, 823-825
International treaties I. General 6, 857 > II. Ancient Orient 6, 857-859 > III. Hittites 6, 859 Kalasirieis 7,7
903 Il. Egypt
8,903
Municipal law I. Ancient Orient 9, 290-291 Naval warfare II. Carthage 9, 558 Parthian shot. 10, 575-576 Pharaoh. 10, 921 Political administration I. General
LI, 474-475 >»
JI. Ancient Near East
11, 475-
476 >»
Ill. Egypt
> >
IV. Hittite Anatolia 11, 476 V.Syria/Palaestina 11, 476-
11, 476
477 >» VI. Iran 11, 477-478 Potamophylax 11, 701 Prisoners of war I. Ancient Orient 11, 875-876
Provincial administration I. Ancient Near East 12, 85-86 Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740
Ruler, birth of the V. B. Myths and legends of exposure 12, 766 Rulers I. Ancient Orient 12, 766768 > II. Egypt
>
Il. Iran
12, 768-769
12, 769-771
Rulership I. General points >
C2973
II. Mesopotamia, Anatolia and Syria-Palestine 12, 773-775
> Ill. Egypt >»
IV. Iran
12, 775-776 12, 776-777
Satrap Revolt 13, 22-23 Sea Peoples, migration of 13,
[66-169
»
15, 595-596
Intarsia I. Ancient Orient
6, 841
Irrigation I. Near East and Egypt 6, 945 Ishtar Gate 6,959 Ivory carvings I. Middle East and Phoenicia 6, 1153-1154 Jewellery 6, 1189-1196 Lighting I. Near East and Egypt
7, 5§1-552
Lion I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 7, 623-624 Liwan
7,754
Mastaba 8, 449 Memnon [2] Memnon Colossus
II. Minoan-Mycenaean period
8, 650-651
155 596-597
Necropoleis I. Ancient Near East
region
Nimbus. [3] I. Ancient Orient and Bible 9, 763-764
III. Phoenician-Carthaginian
15, 597
Women rulers I. Ancient Orient
Kandake 7, 15 Kings’ lists 7, 48-49 Military technology and engineering I. Ancient Orient 8, 902>»
»
see
Seals Griffin 5, 1031-1032 Horned crown 6, 496 House I. Near East and Egypt
790
Eponyms in chronology I. Ancient Orient 4, 1160-1161
Indus Culture 6, 794-795 Inscriptions I. Ancient Orient
Gem cutting I. Ancient Orient
15, 721-722
and Egypt 9, 593
» [3] Il. Egypt 9,764 Obelisk
26.2. Art and architecture On museums cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.5. On excavations and finds cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 14.6. Amulet A. Ancient Orient 1, 619620
Amulet B. Egypt 1, 620 Architectural sculpture I. Ancient Near East 1, 1003-1005 Architecture A. I. Middle East I, LOLI-Lo12 Bit Hilani 2, 676-677 Bricks; Brick stamps I. Ancient Orient
2, 763-764
Building trade I. Near East and Egypt 2, 810 Canope 2, 1057 Cistern II. Ancient Orient 3, 367 Column I. Egypt and the Ancient Orient 3, 586-587 Construction technique I.Near East
and Egypt 3, 730-731
Cult image I. Ancient Orient 3, 989-991 Cup-palmette 15, 1023 Cylinder seal see Seal Door I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 4, 671 Eiwan_ see Liwan Faience 5, 319-320 Finger ornaments see Jewellery Foot ornaments see jewellery Funerary architecture III. E. Palestine and Israel 5, 604-605 Funerary architecture I. Definition
>
5, 587-588
II. Egypt and the Near East
5, 588-592
9, 940-941 Orthostats I. Ancient Near East and Egypt
10, 266
Ostrich eggs. 10, 290-291 Paintings of historical subjects.
10, 355-357
Palace IV. B. Minoan and Mycenaean palaces 10, 364-365 Palace II. Ancient Near East >
10, 358-362 Ill. Egypt 10, 362-364
Pearl I. Near East and Egypt 10, 662
Pottery I. Ancient Orient
11, 711-
7E2 Pottery c) Phoenician-Punic culture
Il, 722-723 >»
g) Phoenician Period 718
11, 717-
Pyramid 12, 247-251 Relief I. Egypt and Ancient Near East 12, 456-457 Rhyton II. Ancient Near East. 12, 585
Roofing I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 12, 731-732 Rug I. Ancient Near East and Egypt
12, 758-759 Sarcophagus II]. Phoenician
12, 974-975
Scarab 13, 50-51 Sculpting, technique of I. Near East 03,
227—128
Sculpture I. Ancient Near East. ey wens > US Eeypt. 9135) 032-134 Seals I. Ancient Near East
13, 172-174
Seven wonders of the world Wonders of the world
see
81
26.3. RELIGION AND MYTHOLOGY
Simia 13, 480 Stairs, Stairways I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 13, 780-781 Stele I. Near East and Egypt. 13, 817-818
Stucco, Pargetting I. Ancient Near East. 13, 889 Synagogue I. Architecture 14, 13-
15
iiclleacane:s 5 Temple I. Mesopotamia
14, 245-
247 > IL Egypt >
14, 247
IV. Phoenicia
Tepe
14, 249
14,274
Curse I. Ancient Orient, Egypt, Old Testament 3, 1017-1018 Dead, cult of the I. Mesopotamia 4, IIO-II1 > I. Egypt 4, 111 Death I. Ancient East and Egypt
4, 127-129
Deification 4, 179-182 Deluge, legend of the I. Ancient Orient 4,229 Demons I. Mesopotamia 280 > Il. Egypt 4, 280-281
> III. Syria-Palestine 4, 281 Divination I. Mesopotamia
Terracottas II. Ancient Near East
Il.Egypt 4, 567
I4, 627-628
14, 785-789 Tower of Babel see Tower of Babel Town planning I. General 14,799 > II. The Middle East 14, 799800
>»
Ill. Egypt 14, 800 Town, city II. The Ancient Near East and Egypt 14, 809-810 Treasure of the Oxus 14, 879-880 Vaults and arches, construction of I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
15, 243
YY. vw ¥Y
Ancient Orient
Testament 4, 778-779 Ecstasy I. Ancient Orient 4, 799800
Enama eli§ 4, roo1-1002 Extispicin see Divination Folk-tales II. Ancient Orient
5, 484-486
15, 575-580
Window I. Ancient Orient and
15,647
Winged sun 15, 670-671 Ziggurrat 15, 931-932
26.3. Religion and mythology On deities, heroes and literary creatures cf. Index of Persons gyi Amulet A. Ancient Orient 1, 619620
Amulet B. Egypt Angels 15,994
1, 620
Astral deities 2, 193-194 Bull cults 15, ror4—1015 Burial A. General 2, 829 > B. Egypt and the Near East 2, 829-831
Canope
Chthonic deities I. Ancient Near East
7,
Kamephis 7, 14 Libation I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt
7, 481
Lion I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
II. Genres
Oath I. Ancient Orient 9, 937 Obelisk 9, 940-941 Omen I. Ancient Orient see Divination Oracies I. Ancient Near East see Divination Origin myths and theories on the and Egypt 10, 212-213 Ostrich eggs. 10, 290-291 Pantheon [1] 10, 462-466 Pastophoroi
and Egypt 11, 537 Prayer J. Ancient Orient
Monotheism II. Mesopotamia and Monsters I. Ancient East and Egypt
3, 989-991 Cult II. Ancient Orient
Myth II. Mesopotamia
3, 980-
Priests 1. Mesopotamia
11, 838-
839 >»
Il. Egypt
>
III. Syria/Palestine and Old Tes-
>»
tament 11, 841-842 IV. Hittite area 11, 842-843
11, 840-841
Progenitors J. Ancient Near East >»
II. Egypt 11,941 Prophets I. Introduction
12, 25-
26
>
II. Mesopotamia, Syria-Palestine, Old Testament 12, 26-
>»
Ill. Egypt
27 12, 27-28
Psalmody II. Jewish culture. 12, 98-101
Purification B. 1. Ancient Orient and Egypt 12, 225-226 Purity I. Mesopotamia 12, 229 > Il. Egypt 12, 229-231 > III. Old Testament 12, 231
Pyramid texts see Funerary literature Religion Il. Mesopotamia
[2, 470-473 > Ill. Egypt
12, 473-476
>
IV. Old Testament and Syria-Pal-
>»
estine V.Iran
12, 476-477 12, 477-480
Ritual VI. A. Introduction 12, 605
> >
VI. B. Prehistory and early Biblical Period 12, 605-606 VI. C. First Temple Period; Northern and Southern Kingdoms
>
9, 182-183 Mummies 9, 277-278
447
11, 789-
790
Egypt 9, 171
3, 295-296
10, 592
Polytheism II. Ancient Near East
8, 144-145
Cosmology C. The Mesopotamian heritage 3, 865-867 Cult image I. Ancient Orient
981
» [3] Il.Egypt 9,764
7, 623-624
Magic, Magi I. Ancient Orient 8, 125—131 Magical papyri I. General information 8,144 >»
2, 1057
and Egypt 9, 593
Nimbus. [3] I. Ancient Orient and Bible 9, 763-764
II, 940-941
II. Hattusa 5, 607-608 Ill. Egypt 5, 608-610
Griffin 5, 1031-1032 Healing Deities, Healing Cults II. Mesopotamia and Syria 6, 21 >» Il. Egypt 6, 21-22 Hepatoscopy see Divination Hieromancy, Hieroscopy see Divination Hieros Gamos I. Term 6, 321 > II. Ancient Orient 6, 321 Horned crown 6, 496 Human sacrifices II. Old Testament and Syria/Palestine 6, 568 Ibis Il. Egypt 6, 696-697 Ka
Anthropogony B. Egypt 1, 732 >» C. Mesopotamia 1, 732 Apotropaic texts 1, 892-893
Necropoleis II. Ancient Near East
5, 607 » >
Water supply I. Ancient Orient
» Ila. Egypt 9, 447-449
4, 714-715
Ecclesiastical/Religious law I. Old
Funerary literature I. Mesopotamia
15, 546-547 > IL Egypt 15, 547
Egypt
IIL. Hittites 4, 567-568 IV. Syria and Palestine 4, 568 V. Iran 4, 568-569
Dreams; Interpretation of dreams I.
Wall paintings I. Ancient Orient
III. Asia Minor 9, 449-450 IV. Syria/Palestine 9, 450-452
origin of culture I. Ancient Orient
4, 564-567
and Egypt 14, 301-302 Throne I. Ancient Orient and Egypt Toreutics
4, 279-
> »
12, 606
VI. D. Babylonian Exile 12, 606-607
9, 446-
Ritual Il. Egypt 12, 597-598 > III. Mesopotamia 12, 599-601
ZiOw3. RELIGION
AND
82
MYTHOLOGY
>
IV. Hittites 12, 601-603 >» V. Old Testament and Syria
Avesta script
2, 423
12, 837-845
12, 974-975
Canaanite
2, 1031
Minaean
Carian
1102-1104
Arabian Moabite 9, 104 Months, names of the I. Ancient
12, 603-605
Sacrifice II. Ancient Orient Sarcophagus III. Phoenician
Temple I. Mesopotamia
14, 245-
247
2,
Chronicles B. The ancient Orient Bee Colophon [2] 3, 579 Cookery books I. Near East and
Egypt 3, 761-762 Coptic 3,773
4,379 Eblaite
4,774
4, 814
4, 853
>
cient Orient 4, 948-949 Enuma eli§ 4, 1001-1002
Elamite
Ushebti 15, 134 Votive offerings I. Ancient Near East and Egypt 15, 525-526 World, creation of the I. Definition
15,750
>» II. Mesopotamia 15, 750-751 > TT Esypt 15.1750 >» V. Judaism 15, 754-756
World II. Egypt and Mesopotamia
26.4. Languages, literature cf. Index of Persons 15.2. Afro-Asiatic 1, 301 Akkadian 1, 413-415 Alphabet I. Ancient Middle Eastern origins I, 529-530 Ammonite 1, 587-588 Amorite 1, 595-596 Anatolian languages 1, 649-650 Ancient Persian Cuneiform I, 671
1, 671-
672
Arabic 1, 941-942 Aramaic 1, 949-950
Archive B. B.1 Egypt and the Middle East 1, 1024-1025 Asia Minor V. A. Anatolian IndoEuropean languages 2, 152-
153
V.B. Non-Indo-European languages 2, 154-155 Asia Minor VI. Alphabetic scripts 155-156
Assyrian see Akkadian Authors I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 2, 399
Autobiography I. Ancient Orient 2, 405-406
4, 10391040 Ethiopian 5, 85 Fable I. Ancient Orient 5, 300301 Folk-tales II. Ancient Orient
5, 484-486 Funerary literature I. Mesopotamia II. Hattusa
Ill. Egypt
9, 274-276
9, 326-328
>» I. Egypt 9, 328-329 > ITI. Ancient Israel 9, 329-331 Musical instruments II. Ancient Near East 9, 349-350
447 >»
II. Asia Minor
9, 449-450
» IV. Syria/Palestine 9, 450-452 Nabataean. 9, 478 Neo-Aramaic _ see Syriac Nubian 9, 870-871 Official Aramaic.
10, 61-62
Palaic. 10, 381 Palestinian-Aramaic.
10, 385-
386
5, 607-608
5, 608-610
Graeco-Babyloniaca
On near and far eastern writers
2,
Epic I. Ancient Near East
>
9, 186-188
>» IV. Ancient Israel 9, 353-354 Myth I. Mesopotamia 9, 446-
4, 887-888
>
see Ancient Southeren
» Ill. Egypt 9, 350-352
5, 607
15, 847-849
Ancient Southern Arabian
Orient
Empires, Concept of empire I. An-
15, 106-107
8, 819-820
Multilingualism I. Ancient Near
3, 1000-1002
Demotic 4, 298-299 Didactic poetry I. Ancient Orient
Egyptian
Yahweh
IV. Old Testament and Ugarit
East
Underworld I. Mesopotamia 15, 104-105 >» II. Egypt 15, 105-106
15, 747
III. Egypt
>
Music I. Ancient Near East
Edomite
14, 648
Ill. Asia Minor
>»
8, 820
Cuneiform script
> Il. Egypt 14, 247 > II. Judaism 14, 247-249 >» IV. Phoenicia 14, 249 Thymiaterion II. Phoenicia
8, 816-
819
2, 642-645
Scapegoat rituals 13, 48-49 Scarab 13, 50-51 Soul, weighing of the 13, 676 Tefnut, legend of 14, 212-213 Temple economy I. The Ancient Orient and Egypt 14, 261-263
>
Meroitic 8,718 Metre II. Mesopotamia
Avroman documents 2, 429 Babylonian see Akkadian Bilingual inscriptions B. Ancient East (Middle East and Egypt)
5, 956-958
Hasai(tijc 5, 1158 Hatra [2] 6, 2-3 Hattic 6, 3-4
Hebrew 6, 30-31 Hieratic 6, 304 Hieroglyphic scripts II. Asia Minor
6, 309-311
Hieroglyphs 6, 311-312 Historiography I. Ancient Orient
6, 415-418
Palmyrene. 10, 408 Papyrus II. A. Ancient Near East 10, 495-496 >» I. B. Egypt 10, 496 Personal names IV. Mesopotamia, Syria/Palestine and Egypt 10, 840-841
>» V.Asia Minor 10, 841-842 Phoenician 11, 148 Proto-Euphratic, Proto-Tigridic
12, 70-71 Proto-Hattic see Hattic Proto-Sinaitic script 12,74 Proto-Tigridic see Proto-Euphratic, Proto-Tigridic Proverbs I. Mesopotamia 12, 78—
Hittite 6, 434-436 Hurrian 6, 579 Inscriptions I. Ancient Orient 6, 823-825
>» Il. Egypt 12, 79-80 Psalmody II. Jewish culture.
Iranian languages 6, 934-935 Kings’ lists 7, 48-49 Letter D. 1. Near East and Egypt
Punic 12, 204-205 Pyramid texts see Funerary litera-
7, 438-439
Library II. A. Egypt and Mesopotamia 7, 503-504 Lists 7, 632-633 Literature II. Ancient Orient
7, 673-679 Luwian
7, 899-905
Magical papyri I. General informa>»
tion 8,144 II. Genres 8, 144-145
Menetekel
8, 687-688
79
12, 98-ror
ture Qumran Aramaic
12, 367 Riddles II. Ancient Orient 12, 588 Rosetta Stone. 12, 739-740 Samaritan 12,918
Semitic languages 13, 238-241 Sinai-Inscriptions see Prote-Sinaitic Script Songs I. Ancient Near East. 13, 630-631
Square script
13, 771-772
83
Zaye HISTORY
Subarean 13,900 Sumerian 13, 942-943 Syriac 14, 65 Thamudic 14, 364 Translations I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt
14, 847-850
Trilingual inscriptions III. Other trilingual inscriptions 14, 922-
923
15, 81-82
Universal language II. Ancient Near Bast 915504. Urartian 15, 121-122 Wisdom literature. I. Ancient Near >»
East 15, 679-681 Il. Egypt 15, 681-682
Wisdom 1. General comments 15, 675-676
World, creation of the II. Mesopo>
tamia 15, 750-751 Ill. Egypt 15,752
World I. Egypt and Mesopotamia
15,747
Writing materials I. Writing media
15, 776-779 Writing I. Definition »
Epidemic diseases I. Prehistory and early history 4, 1092 Fixed stars I. Ancient Orient
15,766 II. Ancient Near East 15, 766-
770
ent
1,651
2, 196-197
Astronomy B. Pre-Greek astrono-
my 2, 200-202 Calendar B. 1. Ancient Orient and
Egypt
2, 940-941
Choiak 3, 240 Chronography II. Mesopotamia 3, 279-281
>»
Ill. Egypt 3, 281-282 Climate, Environmental change I. General points 3, 452-453 Clocks I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
35 457-460
Constellations I. Ancient Orient 4, 1188
Copper I. Definition and properties 3,769 > JI. The Near East 3, 769-770 > VI. Copper deposits and smelting methods 3, 771-772 Cosmology C. The Mesopotamian heritage 3, 865-867 Dentistry I. Ancient Orient
4, 303-304
Disease B. Mesopotamia and Egypt
4, 544
Division of angles and circles I. Ancient Orient see MathematicsI Earthquake I. Mesopotamia An 767:
LIFE
Orient
14, 686-687
Egypt 5, 772-773
Weights I. Ancient Orient
Ill. Egypt
Leprosy
7, 417-418
Mathematics I. A. Mesopotamia
8, 461-465 J.B. Egypt 8, 465-468 I. C. Mesopotamian and Egyp-
tian influences on Greek mathematics 8, 468-469 Measure of volume I. Ancient Orient
Orient
15, 354-355
15, 614-615
World I. Egypt and Mesopotamia
15,747
6, 21-22
Horoscope I. Ancient Orient 6, 499
Year see Calendar Zodiac Il. A. Babylon 15, 938 Zoology and botany I. Mesopota-
mia 15, 955-956 > IL. Egypt 15, 956-957 26.6. Law
cf. Subject Index 17.2. (Law in Ancient Near East and Egypt)
8, 528-529
» Il. Egypt 8, 529 Measures I. Ancient Orient
8, 531-532 Medicine I. Mesopotamia
8, 569-
571 Mental illness A. Near Eastern
8,795 Midwife I. Ancient Orient 8, 865 Milky Way I. Ancient Orient
» II. Egypt 9, 197 see Nile
Number I. Mesopotamia
Obsidian
Aristocracy [1] Ancient Orient. I, 1108 Banquet I. Egypt and the ancient Orient 2, 488-489
Beer I. Ancient Orient 2, 574 Board games A. Ancient East 2,
9, 880-
690-691
2, 829-831
Calendar B. x. Ancient Orient and 9, 881-882 10, 5-6
Ophthalmology A. Egypt
10, 154-155
Egypt
IO, 928-929 Physicians (Ancient Near East). Tale ezalnes
Plants see Zoology and botany Satoneus 27 Schoinos 13, 63-64 Science I. Mesopotamia 13, 84-
2, 940-941
Caraway I. Ancient Orient
2, 1090 Cat I. Egypt and the Near East
zy
Pharmacology III. Mesopotamia
Cavalry I. Ancient Orient 3, 4952 Choiak 3,240 Communications I. Ancient Orient
3, 663-664
Cookery books I. Near East and
Egypt 3, 761-762
Dance I. Egypt and Ancient Orient
85 >» Il. Egypt 13, 85-87 Seasons I. Asia Minor/ Egypt
4y 71-72 Dead, cult of the I. Mesopotamia
4,
13; 176
Seleucid era
2, 566-
567
Bread A. Ancient East 2,754 Burial A. General 2, 829 > B. Egypt and the Near East
197
881 >» Il. Egypt
15, 989
Animals see Animal epic Archive B. B.1 Egypt and the Middle East 1, 1024-1025
Beard I. Ancient Orient
8, 908
Monsoon 9, 181-182 Months, names of the I. Ancient Orient 9, 186-188 Moon I. Ancient Orient 9, 196-
Nilometer
26.7. History of society, culture and everyday life Akitu Festival 1, 412 Alcohol, consumption of II. Ancient Near East
> Il. Egypt 8, 571-572 8, 702
Animals see Animal epic Astrolabium A. Babylonia 2, 195 - Astrology B. Ancient Orient
EVERYDAY
Veterinary medicine I. The Ancient
Meteorology I. Ancient Orient
26.5. Sciences and medicine Cf. Lists E.III. (Eclipses) Anatomy A. Egypt and ancient Ori-
AND
55445
Healing Deities, Healing Cults II. Mesopotamia and Syria 6, 21
>» >
CULTURE
>» B. Babylonian 13,960 Time, concepts of I. The Ancient
Geography I. Ancient Orient and
>»
Ugaritic
OF SOCIETY,
see Chronography
Siglos 13, 447-448
Siqlu 13, 502 Square measures I. Ancient Near
ILO-111
liskeypt
4, 010
Death I. Ancient East and Egypt 4, 127-129 Deportation I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 4, 307-308
Basteas, 770
» Il. Egypt 13,770 Surgery A. Egyptian
>
13, 960
Documents I. General 4, 588-589 >» JI. Ancient Orient 4, 589-593
» Ill. Egypt 4, 593-595
26M. HISTORY
OF SOCIETY,
CULTURE
> IV. Jewishlaw 4, 595 Dowry I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 4, 701-702 Eponyms in chronology I. Ancient Orient 4, 1160-1161 Family I. Ancient Orient
> Il. Egypt
>
AND
>»
>»
Il. Egypt
> Il. Egypt 11, 941 Prostitution I. Ancient Near East
5, 396-398
5, 398-399
Funerary architecture III. E. Palestine and Israel 5, 604-605 Furniture I. Ancient Orient 5, 620 >» Il. Egypt 5, 620-622 Games I. Egypt and Ancient Orient 5, 682-683
Gestures I. Ancient Orient
12, 57-58
12, 405
5, 1099
2, ro1g9 Cattle II. The Near East and Egypt
Commerce I. Ancient Orient (Egypt, South-West Asia, India)
3, 632-634
School I. Ancient Near East see Scribes Scribes I. C. School literature 135, (O6—107
and Egypt 3, 730-731 Contracts I. General points
>
Slavery I. Ancient Near East
13, 529-530
6, 102
Horsemanship 6, 511-513 Hospitality I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 6, 528-529
Copper Il. The Near East
6, 529
Hunting I. Ancient Orient
6, 576-
Social structure Ancient Near East
Sports festivals Il. Egypt 13,757 > II. Ancient Orient 13, 757-
7> 438-439 Library II. A. Egypt and Mesopotamia 7, 503-504 Marriage I. Ancient Orient
Midwife I. Ancient Orient
8, 865
Monsoon
9, 181-182 Multilingualism HI. Ancient Near East 9, 274-276 Necropoleis II. Ancient Near East
and Egypt 9, 593 New Year’s celebration
9, 694-
698
Nutrition II. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 9, 915-916
Official dress I. Ancient Near East and Egypt 10, 62-63 Papyrus I. A. Ancient Near East 10, 495-496 >
II. B. Egypt 10, 496 Paradeisos. 10, 503-504 Personal names IV. Mesopotamia, Syria/Palestine and Egypt 10, 840-841
Sports II]. Egypt 13, 747-748 >» IV. Ancient Orient 13,749 »
Jewellery 6, 1189-1196 Kalasirieis 7,7 Kalasiris 7, 8 Kinship, Relatives I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 7, 50-51 Letter D. 1. Near East and Egypt
8, 385-386
13, 569-570
758
6, 1022-1023
V. Hittites
13,749-750
Surety A. Ancient Near East
13, 957-958
Synchronism see Chronography Traffic I. The Ancient Orient 14, 821-822
Wagon, Chariot I. Ancient Orient
and Egypt
15, 544-545
Woman I. Ancient Orient, Egypt and Iran
15, 693-697
Women rulers I. Ancient Orient iS a2, Wrestling I. Egypt and the Ancient Middle East 15, 764-765 Writing materials I. Writing media
15, 776-779
Xylophoria 15, 843 Year see Calendar Zoo I. Ancient Orient
VI. Copper deposits and smel-
Egypt >»
13, 567-569
$77
Inn I. Ancient Orient 6, 817-818 Itinerare I. Ancient Orient
»
3, 769-
770
ting methods 3, 771-772 Crafts, Trade I. Ancient Orient and
> IL Egypt 13, 530-531 » Egypt
3,751
II. Ancient Orient, region with
cuneiform script 3, 751-752 > III. Pharaonic Egypt 3,752 >» IV. Judaism 3, 752-753
4) 7.6
Hat see Clothing Hellenization c) Exceptions
3, 49-
52 Cheese !. Ancient Orient 3, 208 Cistern II. Ancient Orient 3, 367 Clocks I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 3, 457-460
Construction technique I.Near East
> I.D. Schools 13, 107-108 Scribes I]. Egypt 13, 108-111 Seasons I. Asia Minor/ Egypt
> Il. Egypt 5, 831-832 Hairstyle I. Ancient Orient
Egypt 2, 810 Camel II. Ancient Orient
Rations I. Ancient Near East
5, 828-
831
Building trade I. Near East and
3, 25-26 Cavalry I. Ancient Orient
11, 637-638
II, 940-941
Festivals; Feasts I. The Ancient Ori-
II. Iran
to, 841-842
Orient 11, 937-938 Progenitors I. Ancient Near East
55 333-334
>
V.Asia Minor
Population, demographic history F. Ancient Near East 11, 627 Pornography I. Ancient Near East
Professional associations I. Ancient
5, 332-333
» Il. Egypt
84
LIFE
LL N637.
5, 332
IIL. Iran, Sassanid period
ent
EVERYDAY
3, 894-896
II. Iran
3, 896
Debt, Debt redemption I. Ancient Orient 4, 138-139 Documents I. General 4, 588-589 >» Il. Ancient Orient 4, 589-593
>» Ill. Egypt 4, 593-595
>» IV. Jewish law 4, 595 Economy I. Mesopotamia 5,
1167-1169
>» II. Egypt 5, 1170-1171 >» Ill. Levant 5, 1171-1172 >» IV.Iran 5, 1473-1174 Elektron I. Middle East 4, 906 Emmer 4, 942 Ergasterion I. Ancient Orient
5, 26 Fishing, Fishing trade I. Ancient Orient
5, 440-441
» Il. Egypt
5,441
Gardens [1] Horticulture. 5, 692 Glass II. Glass in the Ancient Orient 5, 861
Goat [2] I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt
5,902
Gold Il. A. Middle East and Egypt 15, 9§2-
26.8. Economy and technology Cf. Lists C.1.-II. (Weights and measures; coinage systems) Agriculture I. Near East and Egypt 15373-3709 Amber II. Ancient Orient
5,
916-917
Grain I. Ancient Orient 5, 965 Honey I. Ancient Orient 6, 474-
953
1, 567
Animals see Animal epic Banks I. Ancient Orient 2, 484 Bread A. Ancient East 2,754 Breeding, of small domestic animals I. Ancient Orient 2,756
475 Horse II. Ancient Orient
6, 502-
506
Horsemanship 6, 511-513 Horticulture I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
6, 517
Husbandry I. Ancient Orient 6, 580-581
>» Il. Egypt
6, 581-583 Interest I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 6, 849-850
85
27.1. BYZANTIUM
Iron B.r Ancient Orient
6,940 Irrigation I. Near East and Egypt 6, 945 Lapis lazuli 7, 240-241 Leasehold I. Mesopotamia, Egypt
7, 335-336 Linen, flax II. Ancient Near East 7, 619-620
Lion I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 7, 756-
oy
Market I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 8, 374 Metallurgy I. Ancient Near East 8, 776-778 Mills I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 8, 909-910 Mining I. Middle East and Egypt SES)
Minting I. The Orient 9, 32-33 Money, money economy I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 9, 147 Months, names of the I. Ancient Orient
9, 186-188
Navigation I. Ancient Orient and
Egypt 9, 566
» II. Phoenicia 9, 567 Nilometer see Nile Oikos economy. 10, 71-73 Oils for cooking I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 10, 75-76 Origin myths and theories on the origin of culture I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 10, 212-213 Paradeisos. 10, 503-504 Payment, means of see Money, money economy Pearl I. Near East and Egypt see
Dareikos Pharos [1] 10, 936 Pigs I. Near East and Egypt
LI, 244-245 > Il. Judaism 11, 245-246 Pitch I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
II, 303-304 Plough I. Ancient Near East and
11, 405-406
Price I. Ancient Near East II, 821-823
Professional associations I. Ancient Orient
> IL. Phoenicia 13, 387-389 Sickle I. Ancient Orient and Egypt
13, 429-430
Silk Road 13, 464-465 Silver IL. A. Ancient Orient
13, 471-472
Slavery I. Ancient Near East
» IL Egypt
13, 530-531
Spinning see Textiles, production of Storage economy I. Ancient Near East 13, 858-859 Taxes I. Mesopotamia 14, 175
® US Beypt
tay 075-177,
Technology II. The Ancient Orient and Egypt 14, 203-204 Temple economy I. The Ancient Orient and Egypt 14, 261-263 Textiles, production of I. The Ancient OrientandEgypt 14, 340-
342
Tin Il. C. Tin alloys 14,715 Tin IV. Ancient Orient and Egypt 14, 716 Toll Il. Ancient Near East and
Egypt
14,770
Tools I. Ancient Near East and
Egypt
14, 778-779
Orient
15, 354-355
Veterinary medicine I. The Ancient Wages I. Ancient Near East
15, 541-542
Water supply I. Ancient Orient
15, 575-580
Wheat see Grain Winch I. Ancient Near East 15, 646
IO, 662
Persian monetary system
Egypt
Egypt 13, 387
13, 529-530
7, 623-624 Loan I. Ancient Orient
Shipbuilding I. Ancient Orient and
Wine I. Egypt and Ancient Near East 15, 657-658 Wool I. Ancient Near East L5> 733-734
Work [1] The Ancient Near East
15,739
12, 222-224 Rations J. Ancient Near East
12, 405
Renting and hiring I. Ancient Orient and Egypt 15, 1041 Roads IIL. Iran: Achaemenid Empire 12, 619-620 Salt I. Ancient Near East and Egypt 12, 902-903 Sheep I. The Near East and Egypt
13, 378-379
1, 636 Anthypatos 1,738 Archive B. B.2 The Greek world I, 1025-1026
Archontes [III] Byzantium. Ty LO i Arithmos 1, 1156 Basileus I. Late antiquity 2, 523-
524
Byzantium II. Culture 2, 846-853 >» II. Art 2, 853-858 Ceremony V. Byzantium 3, 156158
Chrematistai
27. Byzantine culture, Hellenized Near East 27.1. BYZANTIUM 27.2. EASTERN CHRISTIANITY 27.3. HELLENIZED NEAR EAST
27.1. Byzantium
3, 253
Chronica minora
3, 270-271
Comes, comites B. Byzantine period
3, 617 Commerce VI. Byzantium
3, 645-
648
Court titles D. Byzantium
3, 893-
894 Crafts, Trade VI. Byzantium 3, 907-908 Cubicularius 3, 975-976 Cura annonae IV. Late antiquity and Byzantine period 3, 1008 Curiosi 3, Lors—1o016 Dekaprotoi 4, 198 Demarchos II. Byzantine period
4) 235
Demos [2] C. Byzantine period
4, 290 Despotes
Dishypatos
4, 320
4, 556
Ecloga [2] 4, 794-795 Economy VI. Byzantium
5, 1179-
1182
Education / Culture D. 1. Continuation of ancient educational concepts 4, 833 Ekthesis pisteos 4, 881 Epanagoge 4, 1014 Epidemic diseases IV. Byzantium
4, 1093-1094 Ethnarchos Exkoubitai Fire, Greek
11, 937-938
Purchase II. Ancient Near East
Anagnostes [2]
5, 85-86 5, 269 6, 1227
Hospital H. Hospitals in the East after 400 6, 526 Hypatos 6, 629-630 Iconoclasm see Constantinus [7]
Ve Isaurian emperors 6, 957 Kletorologion 7, 69-70 Kouropalates 7, 101
On Greek-Byzantine literature and philology cf. Subject Index ae On history of texts cf. Subject
Lacapeni 7, 141 Late Antiquity 7, 260-268 Literature VII. Byzantine 7, 721-
Index 13. On Byzantine culture
Literature d) Varia
cf. CT index volume, Entry Index UT.
Logariastes Logothetes
Agriculture VI. Byzantium 1, 386-388
Allelengyon 1, 519 Amorian dynasty 1, 594-595
723 7,715
7,782 7, 799-800
Macedonian dynasty
8, 80-81
Macedonian Renaissance
83
8, 82-
86
27.1. BYZANTIUM
Magnates
see Archontes (III.)
Mantzikert see Turks Megas Logariastes see Logariastes Mental illness G. Late Antiquity 8, 703-704 Metre VII. Byzantine 8, 834-835 Military lands 8, 899-900 Minting IV. Byzantium 9, 33-34 Money, money economy IV. Byzan-
tlum 9, 157-159 Narthex [3] 9, 515 Nomos nautikos 9, 803 Nomos stratiotikos 9, 803-804 Novel V. Byzantine 9, 849-850 Opsikion 10, 172-173 Palaeologan Renaissance.
10, 373-376 Panegyrics III. Byzantine to, 443 Parakoimomenos 10, 516 Patrikios 10, 616
Pharmacology VII. Byzantium, Arab world, Renaissance
10, 931-932
Political administration IX. Byzantium ri, 483-484 Procession IV. Secular processions
TI, 909
Protonotarios 12,72 Protopraepositus see Praepositus
sacri cubiculi 12,74
Ruler, birth of the IV. Byzantium
12, 765
Sacellarius 12, 824 Schedographia. 13, 60 Scriptorium. 13, 121-123 Sebastos 13, 183 Slavery V. Byzantium
13, 537-
539
I, 493-494 Alms B. Judaism and Christianity
I, 523-524 >»
C. Late antiquity 1, 524 Arsacids see Arsaces Artabazes
see Artavasdes [2]
Bible translations IJ. Syriac 2, 633-634 > Til. Arabic 2, 634 Christian Palestinian language and literature B. Literature 3, 267268
Christianity E. Language
3, 265-
267
486
Edessa Chronicle
4, 803
Georgian III. Literature 786 Harem 5, 1143
5, 785-
Hellenistic states A. Historical development 6, 89-95 >
B. Inter-state relations
Iezdegerd
6,95
see Yazdgird
Leges Homeritarum Madrasha 8, 107
Mandaeans
7, 355-356
8, 225-226
8, 656
9, 451-452
13, 873
see Military lands Suda 13, 912-914 Superindictio. 13, 952 Syrian dynasty. 14, 65-67 Taktika 14,118 Stratiotic property
14, 188
Themata, naval. 14, 423 Theme 14, 423-424 Translations IV. Late Antiquity and Byzantium: Greek and Latin Sphere 14, 855-858 Turks. 15, 32-34 Villa IV. The late antique domain
15, 419-420
On ancient eastern writers cf.
Index of Persons 15.2. Abbasids 1, 8-9 Alexander Romance [JI] Oriental.
Myth IV. D. Old Testament
Strategos III. Byzantine period
Taxes VI. Byzantium
27.3. Hellenized Near East On modern countries and regions cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 12.
Memra_
Spatharios 13,713 Stephanus [8] 13, 824 Strategikon 13, 870
Vindex [2] 15, 429-430 Xenodocheion 15, 813-814
Amoraim
1, 593-594
Anthropogony D. Old Testament
Ep7G2 Anti-Semitism
1, 739-741
Apocryphal literature A. Jewish
Dionysius [23] The chronicle by [Ps.]-D. of Tell-Mahré. 4, 485-
Protasekretis 12, 65 Protobestiarios 12, 69
Protostrator
27.2. Eastern Christianity cf. Subject Index 18. On individuals playing a part in church history cf. Index of Persons 7.
Onitha
10, 133
Paulicians 10, 628-629 Pharmacology VII. Byzantium, Arab world, Renaissance
10, 931-932 Soghitha 13, 606 Sound theory II. Semitic transmission. Surén
13, 678-679 13,957
Syro-Roman law book
14, 72
28. Judaism On religion cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 8. Adonai 1, 144-145 Alabarches 1, 418-419 Aliens, the position of V. Judaism I, 508
Alms B. Judaism and Christianity
I, 523-524
1, 844-845 Archiereus [2] Jewish. 1, 989 Archisynagogos 1,999 Bar Pandera 2, 514 Bible translations I. A. Introduction 2, 628-629
>»
J.B. Old Testament
2, 629-
631
Bible translations II. Syriac
2, 633-634
>» III. Arabic 2, 634 Bible B. Hebrew Bible 2, 624-626 Boethusaeans see Sadducees Canon A. Old Testament 2, 10551056
Censorship II. Judaism 3, 106 Chronography IV. Judaism 3, 282-283
Circumcisio
3, 352-353
Civil law III. Judaiclaw
3, 376-
ba
Contracts IV. Judaism
3, 752-
753
Cult IV. A. Old Testament/ Early Judaism 3, 986-987 Death, angel of 4, 136 Devil. 15, 1024-1025 Diaspora 4, 361-362 Documents IV. Jewish law 4, 595 Donkey cult 4, 670 Ebionaei 4, 772-773 Ecclesiastical/Religious law I. Old Testament
4, 778-779
Empires, Concept of empire II. D. World Empires in Jewish Tradition 4,951 Eschatology C. Hebrew Bible and Hellenistic Judaism 5, 64-65 Essenes
5, 69-74
Exegesis A. Judaism 5, 262-263 Exilarch 5, 267 Fiscus Iudaicus 5, 438 Funerary architecture III. E. Palestine and Israel 5, 604-605 Gaon
5, 691
Genizah 5,758 Gerousia II. Jewish
Haggadah Halakhah
5, 819 5, 1092-1093 5, 1106-1108
Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163 Hekhalot Literature 6, 59
Hospital D. Jewish hospitals 65425
Jewish Wars 6, 1196-1198 Jewish-Hellenistic Literature Literature Jezira, Sefer ha- 6, 1198
Judaiclaw 6, 1211-1214 Judaism 6, 1214-1221 Karaites 7,19
see
29. ISLAM
87 Kiss II. Old Testament and Judaism 7 59-60 Law [2] I. General 7, 311-312 > Il. The historical and philosophical origins of law
7, 312-313
Levites 7, 455-456 Literature IV. Jewish-Hellenistic
7, 694-699 Lot, election by II. C. Judaeo-Christian 7, 820-821 Maccabean Revolt see Judas [1] Maccabees 8, 55-56 Magic, Magill. Judaism 8, 132-
133
Marriage IV. Judaism 8, 391-392 Masorah, Masoretes 8, 440-441 Medicine III. Jewish Medicine 8,572 Menorah 8, 698 Messiah 8, 767-769 Midrash — see Rabbinical Literature Miracles, Miracle-workers II. Biblical—Early Christian 9, 53-56 Mishnah _ see Rabbinical Literature Monotheism III. Ancient Israel 9, I7I-172 » V. Judaism and Christianity
9, 173-174 Music III. Ancient Israel
9, 329-
331
Musical instruments IV. Ancient
Israel 9, 353-354
Myth IV. D. Old Testament
9, 451-452 Nasi [II 1] 9, 517-518 Nazirite, Nazir 9, 576
Paradise I. Concept 10, 504 > II. Old Testament and Judaism Pesah
10, 504-505
10, 859-860
Pharisaei, Pharisees
10, 923-927
Pigs II. Judaism 11, 245-246 Prayer II. Judaism 11, 790-791 Priestly document. 11, 837-838 Principle F. Bible 11, 866 Procedural law III. Judaic law II, 9OI-902
Proselytes 12, 45-46 Psalms I. Old Testament, Judaism 12, 102-104 Purity III. Old Testament 12, 231 Qoheleth 12, 304-305 Rabbi 12, 372-374 Rabbinical literature 12, 374-377 Responsa (rabbinical) 12, 509 Ritual VI. Judaism 12, 605-611 Sabbath 12, 808-809 Saboraeans 12, 818-819 Sacrifice V. A. Judaism around the beginning of the Common Era
12, 854-855 Sadducees 12, 858-860 Saints, Veneration of saints A. Jewish OT tradition 12, 870-871 Sanhedrin see Synhedrion Satan 13, 11-12 Scapegoat rituals 13, 48-49 Seder Olam Rabba 13, 195 Sekind 13,210 Septuagint 13, 297-299 Seraph(im) 13, 303-304 Sicarii see Zealots Sirach 13, 502-503 Sound theory Ii. Semitic transmission.
13, 678-679
Succession, laws of IV. Jewish
285 Eiwan Harem Hejira
see Liwan 5, 1143 6, 56
Heresy II. Islamic 6, 203 Hospital I. Influence 6, 527 Imam
6,743
Islam 6, 973-975 Kalam
7,7
Liwan
7,754
Magic, Magi V. Islam 8, 143 Mission III. Islam 9, 65-66
Muezzin 9,259 Paradise I. Concept
see
Tannaites 14, 133 Targum 14, 145 Temple III. Judaism
9, 174
10, 504
> TV. Islam 10, 506 Pilgrimage III. Islam 11, 256-257 Prophets VI. Islam 12, 30-31 Quran
14, 247-249 Tobiads 14, 752-753 Toledot Yeshu 14,757 Tolerance II. F. Judaism 14, 766767 Torah — see Judaic law Typology. 15, 60-61 Wills and testaments C. Jewish law 15, 638
12, 368-370 Ritual IX. Islam 12, 613-615 Shiites 13, 386 Sufism 13,924 Sunnites 13,950 Tolerance II. G. Early Islam 14, 767-768 Umayyads 15, 91-92 Wisdom literature. V. Islam 15, 687-688
Wisdom IV. Islamic
Wisdom literature. IV. Judaism 15, 686-687
Woman III. Judaism
29. Islam On modern countries and regions cf. CT index volume, Entry Index 12. Caliph 2,958 Chronography VI. Islam 3, 284-
Mosque 9, 233-234
Synagogue 14, 13-16 Synhedrion II. Jewish 14, 27
Wisdom II. Jewish
period 15, 756-757
Xylophoria 15, 843 Yahweh 15, 847-849 Zadokids 15, 863 Zealots 15, 877-879
Monotheism VI. Islam
13, 911
Talmud 14, 122-123 Talmudic law, Talmud schools Judaic law
World, creation of the V. B. Postexilic Judaism 15, 755-756 > VI. A. Hellenistic Judaism and Christianity of the Apostolic
15, 675-678
15, 708-709
15, 679
World, creation of the VII. Islam
15, 760
89
I.I. GRAMMARIANS
AND
PHILOLOGISTS
Index of Persons
The Index of Persons offers a systematic arrangement of the entries on individual persons. Many of these persons appear in several groups. The brief definition is only intended for purposes of rapid identification. Dating is usually given; where it is not, it is uncertain or unknown. Dates BC are marked as such; dates without such an annotation are AD. The table of content of individual sections frequently contains references to related groups of people in the Index of Persons, to relevant subjects in the Subject Index and/or to the Entry Index in
1. Greek and Latin language and literature
1.1. Grammarians and philologists List of Greek, Roman and
Byzantine grammarians. On
ancient philology and textual criticism cf. Subject Index 11.1. and sein, Acro Roman grammarian, prob-
ably from the 2nd half of the 2nd Fo) LZ
Aelius [II 20] Stilo Praeconinus, L. Roman scholar, c. 100 BC
TAZ Or; 1,218
Agroecius Bishop of Sens, gram-
I, 396 Alexander [21] Aetolus. Gramma-
rian and tragic poet, 3rd cent. BC
1, 478-479
[23] Polyhistor. Grammarian from Miletus, 2nd/1st cent. BC
1, 479
[32] of Cotiaeum. Greek grammarian, tst/2nd cent. AD
Antyllus [1] Grammarian and rhetor of unknown time 1, 810 Apion Grammarian and Lexicographer 1, 840-841 Apollodorus [7] of Athens. Scholar, 2nd cent. BC 1, 859-861 [13] of Cyrene. Grammarian
Alexion [2] Greek grammarian, tst cent. AD 1, 501 Amerias Greek grammarian from Macedonia, during the Alexan-
Apollonides [2] of Nicaea. Gram-
9. Law
ro. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15.
Architecture and art history Science and technology Medicine Geography Byzantium Ancient Near East
Aristarchus [4] of Samothrace. Alexandrian grammarian, 216?144 BC 1, 1090-1093 Aristocles [3] of Rhodes. Orator and grammarian 1, 1107 Aristodemus [7] Greek grammarian
2X, TIL4—1115
Aristonicus [5] Greek grammarian
I, 1122-1123 Aristophanes [4] of Byzantium. Alexandrian grammarian, c.
265/257 — 190/180 BC
1132-1135
Arruntius [II 9] A. Celsus. Latin
Greek grammarian of the rst
grammarian of the Imperial age, lived before Constantine 2, 30 Artemidorus [4] of Tarsus. Greek
cent. BC 1, 874 [8] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent.
grammarian 2, 59-60 Artemon [1] Greek grammarian
marian
1, 867
Apollonius [7] Son of Chaeris.
BC 1, 874-875
Alexandria, rst cent. AD 1, 875-876
[11] Dyscolus. Greek grammarian, tst half of the 2nd cent. AD_ 1, 876-878 [12] Sophista. Greek grammarian and lexicographer, tst 1, 878-879
Apthonius Latin grammarian 4th cent. AD see Asmonius Arcadius [2] Greek grammarian
I, 971 Archias [8] Greek grammarian 1,986
BC
. Rhetoric . Historiography . Philosophy . Music PV HAnAwW . Greek and Roman religion and mythology 7. Christianity 8. Judaism
I,
I, 862
cent. AD
I, 485-486
I, 588-589
Antidorus Grammarian 1,743 Antigonus [8] from Alexandria. Grammarian 1, 751-752
library at Alexandria, 2nd cent. BE in875 [ro] Anteros. Grammarian from
marian, middle of 5th cent. AD
[4] Spurious author of a dictionary of synonyms 1, 589
1. Greek and Latin language and literature
[9] Greek grammarian 1, 875 [9a, Eidographos| Greek grammarian, chief librarian of the
Aemilius Asper Roman gramma-
drian period 1, 578-579 Ammonius [3] from Alexandria. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent.
and cf. Preface, last paragraph). Politico-social groupings (1.4), mythical groups/peoples, fabulous creatures/monsters and mythical animals, and groups of gods and demons (16.4 — 16.6) are to be found in the Subject Index.
I, 590
1.3. LATIN AUTHORS
rian
and Byzantine rulers, see Lists E. 1;
[11] Commentator of Homer
1.1. GRAMMARIANS AND PHILOLOGISTS 1.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Cert
the index volume to the Classical Tradition series. Not included are persons who were active exclusively as politicians or rulers (for table of Roman
Arethas Bibliophile commentator on classical MSS, editor of theological-exegetical writings, and polemicist 1, 1054
2, 69-70
[6] Greek grammarian 2,71 Asclepiades [8] From Myrleia. Greek grammarian 2nd/rst cent. BC
2, 98-99
Asconius Pedianus, Q. Commentator on the works of Cicero, 1st cent. AD 2, 106-107 Asmonius Latin grammarian from the 4th cent. AD 2, 163-164 Ateius [5] A. Philologus, L. Scholar,
teacher of grammar and rhetoric, rst cent. BC 2, 222-223 Athenocles [1] From Cyzicus.
Grammarian, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 2, 252 Attalus [10] Greek grammarian from an unknown time
2, 308
Boethus [6] Greek grammarian 2,708
Caesellius Vindex Roman lexicographer 2,921 Callias [11] Greek grammarian 2,964 Callicles [5] Greek historian or grammarian of the Hellenistic period 2,965
I.I. GRAMMARIANS
AND
Callimachus [3] C. of Cyrene Hellenistic poet and grammarian, 4th/3rd cent. BC 2, 973-978 Callistratus [I 4] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC: 2, 990-991 Carminius [6] Latin grammarian,
4th cent. BC
2,
1114-1115
Cassius [III 7] C. Longinus.
2,
1174
Censorinus [4] Grammarian, tst
half of the 3rd cent. AD 3, 105 Chaeremon [2] Stoic philosopher, ist cent. AD 3,174 Chaeris Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 3, 175-176 Chares [6] Greek grammarian, 3rd and 2nd cents. BC 3,194 Charisius [3] C., Flavius Sosipater. Latin grammarian, 4th cent. AD
3, 197
[36] D. Chloros. Greek grammarian of uncertain dating
4) 254-255
[37] D. of Magnesia. Grammarian and scholarly compiler, rst cent. BC 4,255 [38] D. of Tarsus. Grammarian
aes [39] D. Gonypesus. Greek grammarian 4, 255-256 [40] D. Pyctes. Greek grammarian 4,256
[41] Author of the treatise ‘On style’ 4, 256-257 [42] D. from Troezen. Greek grammarian
4,257
[43] D. Triclinius. Philologist and textual critic of the early Palaeologi period 4,257 Demo [5] Interpreter of Homer
Cincius [1] C., L. Antiquarian
author, rst cent. BC?
3, 340-
341
Cledonius Latin grammarian, 5th cent. AD 3, 416 Cleitarchus [3] Greek grammarian and lexicographer 3, 421 Cloatius Verus Roman lexicographer, perhaps from the early Augustan period 3, 457 Clodius [I 6] C. Scriba. Quoted in Servius Auctus as a glossographer 3, 468 [Ill 1] C., Ser. Eques and philologist, rst half of the rst cent.
BC
90
PHILOLOGISTS
3,470
Comanus [1] Greek grammarian,
2nd cent. BC 3, 600 Cominianus Latin grammarian of the rst half of the 4th cent. in Constantinople 3, 618 Consentius Latin grammarian of the 5th cent. AD, perhaps from Narbo 3,701 Cornelius [I 30] C. Epicadus. Freedman ofSulla 3, 812 Cosconius [I 5] C., Q. Witness of the poet Terence’s death in 159 BC 3, 859-860 Crates [5] C. of Mallus. Grammarian and philosopher 3, 91%7-
919 Curtius [I 4] C. Nicias. Gramma-
rian and tyrant of Cos in the late republican period 3, 1024 {II ro] C. Valerianus. Latin gram-
marian, presumably 5th cent. AD 3) 1026 Cyrillus [6] Lexicographer 4, 13 Daphitas Greek grammarian 2nd cent. BC 4, 79-80 Demetrius [34] D. Scepsius. Scho-
lar, 2nd cent. BC 4, 253-254 [35] D. Ixion. Greek grammarian from the Alexandrian period
4,254
Didymus [1] of Alexandria. Important Greek grammarian of the
latter half of the rst cent. BC
[4] Ti. Claudius D. Author ofa corimmentary on Virgil’s Aeneid c. AD 400 4, 664 Dorotheus [3] Greek grammarian and lexicographer, probably from the early imperial period
4, 689 Dositheus [9] Latin grammarian,
probably late 4th cent. AD
4, 696-697 Draco [3] Greek grammarian 4, 797
Duris [3] D. of Samos. Pupil of Theophrastus, tyrant of Samos,
[2] Minor. Greek grammarian
4, 398-399
[3] Claudius. Greek grammarian
4; 399
[4] Son of Heraclides. Greek grammarian and musician
4,747
Eirenaeus, Irenaeus [1] Greek grammarian 4, 860-861
Epaphroditus [3] Greek grammarian
4, 396-398
4, 1015
Epitherses Greek grammarian
4, 1153 Erotianus Greek grammarian 5> 39-40
Eugenius [2] Greek grammarian
5,158 Eugraphius Latin grammarian,
mo
Diocles [11] Greek grammarian 4, 428 Diodorus [13] Greek grammarian and lexicographer 4, 442-443 [14] of Tarsus. Greek gramma-
rian 4, 443
Diogenianus [2] from Heraclea. Greek grammarian 4, 457 Diomedes [4] Latin grammarian of the 2nd half of the 4th cent. AD
4, 463
Dionysius [13] D. Scytobrachion. Greek grammarian 4,477 [14] D. from Phaselis. Greek grammarian of the Alexandrian period 4, 477 [15] D. ambos. Greek grammarian, 3rd cent. AD 4, 477-
478 [16] D. from Sidon. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 4, 478 [17] D. Thrax. Greek philologist and grammarian 4, 478-480 [19] D. Tryphonus. Greek gram4, 484
[20] D. Musicus. Greek grammarian
664
c. 340-270 BC
4, 264
marian
Dioscorides [9] D. the Younger, Grammarian and editor of Hippocrates, 2nd cent. AD 4, 517 Donatus [3] Aelius D. Latin grammarian 4th cent. AD 4, 663-
4, 484
[21] Aelius D. of Halicarnassus. Greek grammarian 4, 484-
485 [22] Greek grammarian of unknown date 4, 485 Dionysodorus [6] D. of Troezen. Greek grammarian 4, 495
author ofa Terence comm., possibly 6th cent. AD 5,160 Eulogius Greek grammarian 5,
162
Euphronius [3] Greek poet and grammarian, 3rd cent. BC 5, 191-192 Eutyches [2] Lat. grammarian of
the 4th cent. AD 5,240 Eutychius Proculus Lat. grammarian of the 2nd cent. AD 5,241 Evanthius Lat. grammarian ofthe rst half of the 4th cent. AD in Constantinople 5, 247 Festus [6] Sex. Pompeius F. Author ofanencyclopaedia 5, 407-408 Filocalus, Furius Dionysius Rom. calligrapher of the 4th cent. AD 5, 426 Flavius [II 14] F. Caper. Grammarianc. AD 200 5, 460-461 Gaudentius [6] Gaudentius. Commentator on Vergil, c. AD 400
Tes: Gavius [I 2] G. Bassus. Roman
grammarian and antiquarian of the late Republic 5, 713-714 Glaucus [7] of Rhegium Scholar
5, 870-872 [8] of Samos Greek grammarian Sor
Grillius Latin grammarian and rbetor, probably 5th cent. AD 5, 1032
91
I.I. GRAMMARIANS
Habron Greek grammarian, rst
cent. AD 5, 1072-1073 Harpocration [2] (Valerius) H.
Rhetor and lexicographer 5, LI5O-1151 Helenius Acron Roman grammarian, dated 2nd half of 2nd cent. AD 6, 65-66 Heliodorus [6] Metrician, rst cent.
AD
6,72-73 6, 75-76
6,'77-78
[2] Grammarian and priest of Zeus, 4th/sth cent. AD 6,78 Hellanicus [2] Alexandrian grammarian, c.200 BC
6, 80
Hephaestion [4] Metrician, 2nd cent. AD 6, 139-140 Heracleon [3] Greek grammarian and author ofa lexicon 6,155 [4] H. Grammarian 6, 155-156 Heraclides [21] H. Ponticus the Younger. Greek grammarian, tst
marian, c. AD 100
6,172
Herennius Philo Antiquarian, grammarian, historian, 1st cent.
6, 199-201
Hermippus [2] H. of Smyrna. Greek grammarian and biographer, 3rd cent. BC 6, 227-228 [3] H. of Berytus Greek grammarian, c. AD 100
6, 228
Hermonax [2] Writer of ‘Cretan
glosses’
6,239
Herodianus [1] Aelius H. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. AD 6, 260-262
Hesychius [1] Alex. scholar, author of alexicon 6, 288-289 Homerus [2] H. of Byzantium. Grammarian and tragedian, 3rd cent. BC 6, 463 Hyginus, C. Iulius Philologist and polymath, Augustan period
6, 606-607
Iohannes [15] I. of Caesarea. Grammarian and presbyter, 6th cent. AD
marian, presumably 3rd cent. AD 6, 1087 Iunius [III 2] I. Filagrius. Gallo-
Roman grammarian, 5th cent. 6, 1105
Juba [3] Metrician, 3rd cent. AD Konstantinos [1] K. VII Porphyrogennetos. Byzantine emperor
7, 93-94
7, 290 bably 2nd cent. AD 7, 310 Leogoras [2] Of Syracuse, Greek BC
7> 396 Lesbonax [1] Greek grammarian
7,428
6,894
Iulianus [6] (Iulianos) Grammarian
and lexicographer, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1045
Julius [IV 6] I. Exuperantius. Gram-
marian of late antiquity, author of a breviarium on the early Roman civil wars 6, 1081 [IV ro] I. Honorius. Latin grammarian and orator, 4th/s5th cent. AD 6, 1082-1083 [IV 12] I. Modestus. Author, late Augustan period 6, 1083
from Tarrha, 1st cent. AD
7, 853-854
Lupercus Greek grammarian from Berytus, 3rd cent. AD 7, 885 Lutatius [6] L. Daphnis Freedman grammarian, 2nd to 1st cent. BC
7, 898
Lycophron [5] L. of Chalcis Grammarian and tragedian, 4th cent.
BC
Menogenes Greek grammarian 8, 696-697
Methodius [2] Lexicographer 8, 803
Mnesimachus [2] Greek gramma-
rian from Phaselis
9, 101
Moiro Poet, c. 300 BC?
9, 126-
er, Moschopoulos, Manuel Byzantine philologist, c. 1265-1316 9, 228 Munatius [1] Grammarian from
Tralleis, 2nd cent. AD
9, 287
Mythographus Homericus Anony-
9, 463 Naucrates [2] Greek grammarian
9, 538
Neoptolemus [9] Of Parium, Hel-
Lavinius Roman grammarian, pro-
grammarian, 2nd cent.
PHILOLOGISTS
mous commentator on Homer
[3] K. of Sicily. Poet, philosopher and grammarian 7,95 Latinus [4] Greek grammarian
Lucillus [1] Greek grammarian
6, 171-172
[22] H. Milesius. Greek gram-
AD
{IV 19] 1. Romanus. Latin gram-
6, 1206
Helladius [1] From Antinupolis/Egypt, grammarian, 4th cent.
cent. AD
Naucratis, author of an Onomastikon, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1085-1087
AD
[9] Grammarian, 7th cent. AD
AD’
[IV 17] I. Pollux. Rhetor from
AND
7,927
Lysanias [2] Greek Grammarian, ZTUcentaD ©) 8932. Lysimachides Greek grammarian 8, 38
Lysimachus [6] Greek mythographer and grammarian, c. 200 BC 8, 42
Marcius [II 13] M. Salutaris High state official in Egypt, interpretated Virgil, approx. mid 3rd cent. AD 8,317 Marcomannus Commentary on Cicero’s rhetorical works 8, 321=—322
Martyrius Latin grammarian,
around the first half of the 6th
lenistic theoretician of literature,
3rd cent. BC 9, 652-653 Neoteles Greek grammarian, pupil of Aristarchus 9, 655 Nicander [5] Of Thyateira, Greek grammarian, Hellenisic period 9, 708 Nicanor [9] Of Cos, Greek grammarian, Hellenistic period
95 710 [10] From Cyrene, Greek gram-
marian, Hellenistic period?
9,711
[12] N. of Alexandria. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. AD
9, 711-712 Nicias [9] Greek grammarian, 1st cent. BC 9,721 Nicocles [5] Greek Grammarian
from Sparta, c. 310-c. 388
9,723
Nigidius Figulus, P. Naturalist and grammarian, ist cent. BC
9, 751-752 Nisus [II 1] Latin grammarian, 2nd
half of the rst cent. 9,779 Octavius. [I 14] O. Lampadio, C. Roman scholar and freedman,
2nd cent. BC 10, 24-25 Opillus, D. (?) Aurelius. Scholar
from the Republican period 10, 157 Orbilius Pupillus, L. Latin grammarian, 1st cent. BC
10, 190
cent. AD 8, 419-420 Mavortius [1] Vetttus Agorius Basi-
Orion [3] Grammarian from Thebes, 5th cent. AD 10, 220
lius M. cos. AD 527, 8, 507 Megaclides Homeric interpreter, 4th cent. BC 8, 595 Melampus [2] Byzantine gramma-
Orus Greek grammarian from Alexandria, 5th cent. 10, 268—
rian 8, 613 Melissus (MéAtoo0c; Mélissos). [3] C. Maecenas. Roman grammarian, librarian under Augustus, Melissus II [3] 8, 636
Menecrates [13] Interpreter of Homer from Nysa_ 8, 674
269
Palamedes [2] From Elea, Greek grammarian and lexicographer, 2nd cent. AD 10, 383 Palladius [I 4] Latin grammarian, 4th cent. BC 10, 392-393 Pamphila Female philologist and writer of Epidaurus, rst cent. 10, 411
1.1. GRAMMARIANS
AND
92
PHILOLOGISTS
Pamphilus [6] Greek grammarian and lexicographer, rst cent. AD
LO, 413-414
Pomponius. [III 6] P. M. Porcellus.
Roman grammar teacher, early
from Byzantium, tst cent. BC?
Imperial Period 11, 584 [III 7] P. Porphyrio Commentator on Horace 11, 584 Porphyrio, Pomponius. Author ofa commentary on Horace, 3rd cent. AD 11, 645
10, §41
Poseidonius [2] Greek grammarian,
Pamprepius Greek grammarian of Panopolis, 5th cent. 10, 419-
420 Parmenion [2] Greek grammarian
Parmeniscus Greek grammarian, 2nd/tst cent. BC 10, 542 Parthenius [I 2] Greek grammarian, tst/2znd cent. 10, 565 Paulus [I 4] P. Diaconus Lombard grammarian, 8th cent. 10, 644-
645
Pausanias [9] Greek lexicographer, 2nd cent. 10, 652-653 Philargyrius Gallo-Roman Grammarian, 5th cent. AD _ see lunius
{III 2] Filagrius Philemon [7] Atticist and grammaT1GH GC. LOO"
Till, ey
[8] Latin grammarian, rst half of the 3rd cent. 11,17 Philocalus, Furius Dionysios see Filocalus, Furius Dionysius Philoponus, lohannes Christian polymath in Alexandria, c. 490-
575
11%, 89-91
Philoxenus [8] Greek grammarian from Alexandria, 1st cent. BC
Ty 125, Phocas (Focas). Latin Gramma-
rian, early 5th cent.? 11, 139140 Photius [2] Byzantine humanist Patriarch of Constantinople c. AD 810-c. AD 893 11, 186187
11, 682-683
Priscus [1] Greek grammarian 11, 873 Probus [4] P., M. Valerius Latin philologist, second half of the rst cent.
11, 896-897
Ptolemaeus [60] Greek grammarian from Alexandria, 2nd cent.
Be
Teens. [61] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent.BC
12,158
[62] Greek grammarian, tst cent.
25h 50
[63] P. of Ascalon Greek grammartian at Rome, tst cent.
T2558 [67] Peripatetic, 2nd cent.
WD, LEA Remmius [2] R. Palaemon, Q. Roman teacher of grammar, 1st cent.
12,499
Rhianus Poet and Homeric philologist, 3rd cent. BC 12, 562563 Rufinus [II 2] Of Antioch, Latin grammarian, 2nd half of the 5th cent.
12.752
Salustius [1] Greek grammarian 12,908
Pius [2] Greek grammarian, 2nd or 3rd cent. AD? 11, 311 Placidus [2] Compiler ofaLatin lexicon, 5th/6th cents. 11, 313 Planudes, Maximus Monk, allround scholar, c. AD 125 5-c. AD
130§ I1, 335-336 Platonius Literary theorist
11, 354 tor, 1st cent.
11, 383-390
Plotius. [II 5] Marius P. Sacerdos.
Latin grammarian, late 3rd cent. 11, 404-405
Polemarchus [3] Greek grammarian ist cent. BC/rst cent. AD
11, 455 Pollux [2] Grammarian and rhetor
II, 493
Pompeius. [III 1] African grammarian, second half of the 5th cent.
IL, §71
Pompilius. [1] P. Andronicus, M. Grammarian,
LI, 574
Scribonius [II 2] S. Aphrodisius Grammarian, freedman of Scribonia [rt], rst cent. BC
13, 117-
118
Seleucus [13] S. Homericus Greek
grammarian from Alexandria, Ist cent.
13, 222-223
Semus Greek antiquarian, c. 200 TS yao
Plinius [1] P. Secundus, C. (Pliny the Elder). Roman historian and ora-
AD
2nd cent. BC
Priscianus. Latin grammarian, sth/6th cents. 11, 868-870
tst cent. BC
Servius [2] Grammarian, Virgil commentator in c. AD 400 TI399 999)
Simias From Rhodes, Alexandrian poet and grammarian, c. 300 BC 13, 480-481
Simmias [2] S. of Rhodes — see Simias Sinnius Capito. Latin grammarian, tst cent. BC 13, 496-497 Sisenna Cornelius S., L., historian and translator of the 2nd/1st cent. BC 13, 508-509 Solinus. Grammarian and buntschriftsteller, 3rd/ 4th cent. 13, 616-618
Statilius [II 6] S. Maximus Latin
grammarian, late 2nd cent.
13,797
Stephanus [7] S. of Byzantium Greek grammarian, 6th cent. 13, 822-824 [10] Byzantine grammarian,
early 7th cent. 13,825 [13] Grammarian, 12th cent. 13, 826
Stesimbrotus From Thasus, rhapsode and exegete of Homer, sth cent. BC 13, 831-832 Sulpicius. [II 2] C. S. Apollinaris. Latin grammarian, tst half of 2nd cent. 13, 937-938 Symmachus [I 1] Author ofacommentary on Aristophanes, tst halfof the 2nd cent. 14, 4-5 Tauriscus [1] Grammarian, 2nd cent. BC
14, 168
Telephus [3] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. AD 14,230 Terentianus Maurus African grammarian, middle of the 3rd cent. 14, 276
Terentius [III 3] Q. T. Scaurus, the most influential grammarian of the era of Trajan and Hadrian 14, 289
Theagenes [2] Greek scholar and author of a treatise on Homer, 6th cent. BC 14, 374-375 [4] Greek grammarian, rst half
of the 2nd cent.
14,375
Theodoretus [2] Byzantine grammarian and author ofa pneuma-
tological lexicon 14,451 Theodorus [I 17] Greek glossographer, probably rst half of the rst cent.
14,458
Theodosius [I 3] Greek grammarian from Alexandria 14,470 Theognostus Byzantine grammarian, 9th cent. 14, 484 Theon [4] Alexandrian grammarian, Augustan Period
14, 498
Thoas [6] Greek glossographer, before the 4th cent. BC 14,590
Timaeus [5] Greek lexicographer 14, 680
Timotheus [14] T. of Gaza Byzan-
tine Grammarian and Popular Scientist, c. 500
14,712
Triclinius Philologist and textual critic, c. AD 1280-1340 Demetrius V [43]
see
Tryphon [3] Greek grammarian,
2nd half of the rst cent. BC
14, 988-989 [7] Greek grammarian of undetermined period 14,990 Tyrannion [1] Greek grammarian, ist cent. BC 15, 62-63 [2] The Younger, Greek grammarian, tst cent. BC 15, 63
93
I.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Tzetzes [1] Isaac T. Byzantine scho-
lar, c. AD 1110-1138 15,74 [2] lohannes T. Byzantine scholar and author of an extensive oeuvre, c. AD 1110-1185
15, 74-77
Urbanus Commentator on Vergil, 4th cent. 15, 122-125 Valerius [III 3] V. Cato, P. Roman poet and grammarian, rst cent. BCR rasqn92) Varro [2] V. Terentius, M. (Reatinus) Roman polymath author, 116-27 BC 15, 209-226 [3] V. Terentius, P. (Atacinus)
Roman poet, early rst cent. BC LS 220-227
Velius [3] V. Longus Latin grammarian, 2nd cent. AD 15, 263 Verrius [1] M. V. Flaccus Latin grammarian, Augustan era
15, 323-325
cent. BC
1,79
Achilles Tatius [1] Of Alexandria I, 94-96 [2] Greek astronomer 1,96 Acilius [I 2] A., C. Roman historian, 2nd cent. BC 1,99 Acusilaus Ionian logograph, c. 600 BC 1, 129-130 Adaeus [2] Macedonian epigram[3] Greek rhetorician (rst cent. BG)
grammarian, 2nd cent.
BC
T5, 358
Virgilius Maro Latin grammarian, 7th cent. 15, 451-453 Volcacius [2] Commentary on
32
BC
TL, 165
Aelianus [2] Claudius A. Greek
sophist, 2nd cent. AD 1, 200201 Aemilianus [I 1] Epigrammatic poet I, 208
Cicero’s speeches 15, 493 Xenocritus [3] From Cos, Greek grammarian 15, 812
Aeneas [2] Tacticus. The earliest Greek military author (mid 4th
Xenon [5] Alexandrian gramma-
Aeschines [2] Attic orator and politician (4th cent. BC) 1, 241-
rian, 2nd cent. BC
15, 817
Zeno [14] Z. of Myndus Greek grammarian, early Imperial Period 15,894 Zenobius [2] Z. Grammaticus Greek scholar in Rome, at the time of Hadrian 15, 901-902 Zenodorus [2] Greek grammarian
from the Hellenistic period 15, 903 Zenodotus [1] Of Ephesus, Alexandrian philologist 15, 904-906 [4] Z. of Alexandria Greek grammarian, 2nd or rst cent. BC 15, 906-907 [7] Z. Aetolus Commentator on Aratus 15,907 Zoilos [8] Greek grammarian
15, 948-949 Zopyrion [2] Greek grammarian c. I0O
15,962
Zosimus [6] Z. of Ascalon Greek grammarian, c. AD 500 15,973
1.2. Greek authors On Greek literature cf. Subject Index 11.5. and CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1. Ablabius [2] Illustrius. Epigrammatist 1, 23
cent. BC)
1, 221-222
243
[5] of Sardis. lambographer
I, 244
I, 256-260
Agamestor Writer of elegies from Pharsalus 1, 306-307 Agapetus [1] Deacon of Hagia Sophia in Constantinople I, 308
I, 344 Agrippa [5] Anti-gnostic writer
I, 393
Agroetas Greek historian of the Hellenistic era 1, 396 Alcaeus [4] Lyric poet 1, 436-438 [5] Attic poet of the outgoing Old Comedy 1, 438 [6] of Messene. Epigrammatic poet, c.200 BC
1, 438-439
Alcenor Attic writer of comedies,
probably 4th cent. BC 1, 441 Alcidamas Pre-aristotelian rhetor from Aeolian Elea 1, 448-449 Alcimenes [4] Attic comic poet
I, 450
early 3rd cent. AD 1, 452-453 Alcman Spartan poet, 7th cent. BC
I, 457-460 Alexander [21] Aetolus. Gramma-
rian and tragic poet, 3rd cent. BC 1, 478-479 [22] of Ephesus. Orator, statesman and historian 1, 479 [23] Polyhistor. Grammarian from Miletus, 2nd/rst cent.
BC
1, 479 [24] Attic poet of the New Comedy 1, 480 [25] Orator, 2nd cent. AD [28] of Seleucea. Sophist, 2nd cent. AD 1, 483-484
[32] of Cotiaeum. Greek grammarian, tst/2nd cent. AD 1, 485-486
Alexion [2] Greek grammarian, rst cent. AD 1, 501 Alexis Comic poet from Thurii, 4th cent. BC 1, 502 Alpheius [3] of Mytilene. Epigram poet
1,542
Amarantus Greek grammarian,
Agatharchides of Cnidus Historian and geographer, c. 200 BC 13 00 Agathenor Comic poet from Ephesus, ist cent. BC 1, 312 Agathias Historian and poet, 6th GETIEMALD Mester aris Agathocles [9] Poet of the New Comedy 1, 317 [10] Historian (5th or 4th cent.
2nd cent. 1,558 Ameinias Poet of the Attic New Comedy, 4th/3rd cent. BC
I, 574-575
Ameipsias Attic poet of the Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC 1, 575 Amerias Greek grammarian from Macedonia, during the Alexandrian period 1, 578-579 Aminias Satyr play poet from Thebes, rst. cent. BC
1, 317
Agathon [1] Attic tragedian T, 317-31 8
1, 342
Aglaosthenes Author of Naxiaka
I, 480
Aeschrion Epic writer 1,244 Aeschylus [1] of Athens Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 1, 244-251 [2] of Alexandria. Tragedian, rst cent, BCS i, 25 Aesop Fable writer, 6th cent. BC
BOPI, 317 [11] Historian
Agathyllus Hellenistic writer of elegies, from Arcadia 1, 320 Agis [5] Epigrammatic poet
Alcimus [3] Historian from Sicily, 4th cent. BC 1,451 Alciphron Atticist of the 2nd or
1,132
Aeantides Tragedian, 3rd cent.
15, 343
Vettius [I 4] V. Philocomus Roman
;
I, 39-40 [3] Ascetic and monk, later bishop of Beroea (Aleppo) I, 40 Aceratus Grammaticus 1, 65-66 Acestor [4] Tragedian 1, 68 Achaeus [2] of Eritrea. Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 1,79 [3] of Syracuse Tragedian, 4th
matist
Vestinus [3] L. Iulius V. Greek lexicographer, first half of the 2nd cent.
Abydenus Author of a ‘History of the Chaldaeans’ 1, 38 Acacius [2] Bishop of Caesarea
1, 581
Ammianus Epigrammatic poet 1, 584
Ammonides Epigrammatist
15,992
1.2. GREEK
94
AUTHORS
Ammonius [3] from Alexandria. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent, I, 588-589
BC
[4] Spurious author of a dictio-
nary of synonyms
1, 589
[6] of Lamptrae. Greek author of a cultic text 1, 589 [8] from Alexandria. Christian writer
1, 589
[10] Epigrammatic poet 1, 590 [11] Commentator of Homer
I, 590 Amphis Attic comic poet, 4th cent. BC
1, 606
Amymon Tragedian 1, 623 Amyntas [7] Bematistes of Alexander [II 4] 1, 625 Anacreon [1] the Elder Lyric poet, 6th cent. BC 1, 629-631 [2] The Younger. Author from Alexandrian times 1, 631 Ananius lambographer 1, 641 Anastasius [6] Traulus. Byzantine poet
1,646
Anaxandrides Attic comic poet
Anaxion Tragedian
1, 659-660
1, 663
Anaxippus Comic poet
Andreas [2] of Crete.
1, 663 1, 681
Andriscus [2] Of Naxos, historian,
3rd cent. BC 1, 682 Andron [2] From Halicarnassus,
4th cent. BC, author of Synge1, 686
Andronicus [5] Epigrammatic poet I, 688
Androtion Athenian politician and Atthidograper (4th cent. BC) I, 690
Antagoras Epic poet 1, 716-717 Antander [1] of Syracuse. Brother
of Agathocles [2], end of the 4th cent. BC
1,718
Antheas Comic poet from Rhodes Me pele Anticlides Historian from Athens, CopOCrB
Cie Int iAg:
Antidorus Grammarian 1,743 Antidotus Comic poet 1,744 Antigenes [1] Dithyrambic poet
1, 744 Antigonus [7] from Carystus. Bio-
grapher and paradoxographer, 3rd cent. BC 1,751 [8] from Alexandria. Grammarian
1, 751-752
[9] from Carystus. Epigrammatic poek
matic poet
T752
Antimachus [3] of Colophon. Epic poet and elegist 1, 753-754 [4] of Teos. Epic poet 1,755 Antiochus [19] of Syracuse. Historian, 5th cent. BC 1,767 [21] of Athens. Tragedian I, 769
1, 773-774
[9] of Thessalonica. Epigrammatic poet
1,774
{12] P. Aelius A. Sophist from Hieropolis, c.200 1,775 Antiphanes [1] Attic comic poet, 4th cent. BC 1, 775-776 [2] Attic comic poet, 3rd cent. BC i Gighes
[3] Epigrammatic poet 1,776 Antiphilus [2] Tragidician, 3rd cent. Be W778 [3] of Byzantium. Epigrammatic poet
Antiphon [3] Tragedian 1,779 [4] of Rhamnus Orator and author of rhetorical writings, sophist, 5th cent. BC 1, 779782
Antistius I. Greek Epigrammatic poet
Antoninus [2] Liberalis. Mythographer, between the 2nd and 3rd 1,797-798
Antonius [1] Thallus. Epigrammatic poet, 2nd half of the rst cent. BO 1y798 [2] Epigrammatic poet 1,798 [3] Diogenes. Novelist, 2nd cent.
1,798-799
Anubion Writer of an astrological didactic poem 1, 811-812 Anyte Epigrammatic poetess 1, 812-813
Aphareus [2] Tragedian 1, 824 Aphthonius Rhetorician of the 4th and the 5th cent. AD 1, 836-
837 Apion Grammarian and Lexicographer 1, 840-841 Apolinarius From Laodicea, Church writer, 4th cent. AD 1, 849 Apollinarius [5] Epigrammatic poet 1,850
1, 859
[7] of Athens. Scholar, 2nd cent. 1, 859-861
[8a] From Artemita, Greek historian, tst cent. BC
1,998
{13] of Cyrene. Grammarian I, 862
Apollonides [2] of Nicaea. Grammarian
1,874
1, 874 [8] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC
x, 874-875
[9] Greek grammarian
1, 875
[9a, Eidographos] Greek grammarian, chief librarian of the
library at Alexandria, 2nd cent. BC
1, 875
[ro] Anteros. Grammarian from
Alexandria, rst cent. AD [11] Dyscolus. Greek grammarian, ist half of the 2nd cent. AD
1, 876-878
[12] Sophista. Greek grammarian and lexicographer, 1st cent. AD
1, 878-879
cian, c. 260-190 BC. 881
1, 867
[3] from Smyrna? Epigrammatic poet 1, 867 [4] Tragedian 1, 867-868 Apollonius [2] Rhodius. Alexandrian librarian and writer, 3rd cent. BC 1, 869-874
1, 879-
[23] Paradoxograph 1, 883 Apollophanes [1] Attic poet ofthe Old Comedy 1, 884 Appianus [I] Historian (c. AD 90160)
1, 897-899
Apsines Sophist from Gadara, 3rd cent. AD 1,914 Aquila [3] Proselyte from Sinope, Bible translator
1,928
Arabius Scholasticus Epigrammatic
poet 1,942-943
Ararus Writer of comedies, son of Aristophanes [3] 1,953 Aratus [4] Hellenistic writer, 3rd cent. BC 1, 955-960 Arcadius [2] Greek grammarian I, 971 Arcesilaus [6] Poet of the Old Comedy
1,974
Archebulus Poet
1,979 Archedicus Poet of the New Comedy
Apollodorus [4] of Tarsus. Tragedian 1, 858-859 [5] of Carystus. Comedy writer 1, 859 [6] of Gela. Comedy writer
BC
BC
[4] Comedy writer 1, 874 [7] Son of Chaeris. Greek grammarian ofthe rst cent. BC
[13] of Perga Greek mathemati-
1, 787-788
AD
[3] of Athens. Tragedian, c. 100
1, 875-876
1,778
cents. AD
1,658
Anaxilas Comic poet
nika
[22] Writer of epigrams 1,769 Antipater [8] of Sidon. Epigram-
1,980
Archelaus [11] The Egyptian see Paradoxographi (10, 507-5 12) Archenomus Tragedian 1, 984 Archestratus [1] Actor and Tragedian 1,984
[2] Author of a gastronomic poem from Gela, 4th cent. BC
1, 984 Archias [7] Aulus Licinius Archias. Poet
1,986
[8] Greek grammarian 1,986 [9] Epigrammatic poet 1, 986 Archicles [2] Attic comic poet
1, 987 Archilochus Poet from Paros and Thasos, 7th cent. BC 1, 990993
Archimedes [2] Epigrammatic poet
1, 998
5)
I.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Archimelus Epigrammatic poet 1,998 Archippus [1] Poet of the Old Comedy 1,999 Archytas [3] of Amphissa. Epic poet, 3rd cent. BC 1, 1033 Arctinus Epic poet 1, 1034 Arethas Bibliophile commentator on classical MSS, editor of theo-
logical-exegetical writings, and polemicist 1, 1054 Argas Poet and kitharist 1, 1056 Argentarius [1] Marcus. Epigrammatic poet
1, 1060
Arion Lyric poet from Methymna on Lesbos, 7th cent. BC I, 1083-1084
Ariphron Choral lyricist 1, 1086 Aristaenetus Author of a collection oflove letters 1, 1086 Aristagoras [4] Poet of the Old Comedy 1, 1089 Aristarchus [2] of Tegea. Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 1, 1089 [4] of Samothrace Alexandrian
Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC
I, 125-1132 [4] of Byzantium. Alexandrian grammarian, c. 265/257 190/t80 BC 1, 1132-1135 Aristophon [4] Writer of Middle Comedy 1, 1135 Aristoteles [6] Aristotle, son of Nicomachus, of Stagira Philosopher and natural scientist, 4th
cent. BC 1, 1136-1147 Aristoxenus [1] Musician, Musical
theoretician, philosopher, biographer, from Tarentum
grammarian, 216-144 BC
I, 1154-1155 Aristus Late Hellenistic Alexander historian 1, 1155
I, L090-1093
Aropus Writer of New Comedy
Aristeas [1] Epic poet
1, 1093-
1094
[3] P. Aelius Rhetorician, 2nd cent. AD
1, 1096-1100
Aristobulus [7] Alexandrian histo-
rian, 2nd half 4th cent. BC
[2] A. of Nicomedia Greek philosopher and historian, died
Aristocles [3] of Rhodes. Orator
and grammarian 1, 1107 [4] of Pergamum. Orator TLLO7, [5] see Paradoxographi (10, 507-512) Aristocrates [4] Spartan historian, gst cent. AD
1, 1112
[5] Tragedian 1, 1112 Aristocreon Nephew and pupil of Chrysippus, author of a text in his memory after his death in 207
novel’, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 2, 54 Artemidorus [2] Elegiac poet “55 3)
25 59-60
[6] of Daldis. Author of a treatise
on dream interpretation, 2nd
iarrLz
Aristodemus [7] Greek grammarian I, 1114-1115 Aristodicus Epigrammatic poet UUM Aristomenes [3] Poet of the Old Comedy 1, 1119 Ariston [1] of Athens. Tragedian I, 1119 [6] Epigrammatic poet 1, 1120 [8] of Pella/Decapolis. Christian Greek writer of the 2nd cent. AD Tie
2, 162 Asopodorus Writer of iambics 2, 164
Aspasius [2] From Byblos, Sophist of the 2nd cent. AD 2, 167 [3] Sophist from Ravenna 2, 167-168
Astydamas [1] The Elder. Tragedian 2,212
[2] The Younger. Tragedian Ac, BOD [3] Tragedian 2,212 Athanis Syracusan, c. 360 BC,
accompanied Dion, historian De 2 Athenaeus [7] Choral lyricist
2, 245
Athenagoras Christian apologetic, 2nd cent. AD 2,245 Athenias Tragedian, rst cent.
BC
2,250 Athenion [5] Late poet of the New Comedy 2,251 Athenocles [1] From Cyzicus. Grammarian, 3rd/2nd cent. BC Do 259 [2] Comedic poet, ath cent. BC Py, ule Attalus [7] Of Rhodes. MathematiAD 2, 308 [10] Greek grammarian from an unknown time 2, 308 Aufidius [I 4] Au., Cn. Praetor c. AD 107 in Asia 2, 336 Augeas Attic comic poet 2, 338 Autocrates Attic comic poet
2,400 Automedon [2] Greek epigrammatic poet from the Augustan era 2, 418
[4] Epigrammatic poet [5] Tragedian 2,70
2,70
Axionicus Poet of the Middle Comedy 2, 430 Axiopistus Greek author of the Kanon and the Gnomai 2, 430-
[6] Greek grammarian
2,71
Babrius Author offables
cent. AD?
2, 60-61
Artemon [1] Greek grammarian 2, 69-70
Asclepiades [1] Of Samos. Epigrammatic poet
2, 94-95
[2] From Adramyttium. Epigrammatic poet
LTT
Aristocritus Historian from Miletus (asheetaBG)
2, 26-27
Artapanus Author of a ‘Moses
[4] of Tarsus. Greek grammarian
LLO5—1106
Asius Epic poet
cian and astronomer, 2nd cent.
26
around AD 85-90
I, 1096
BOM
By 1S) Arrianus [1] Author, 2nd cent. AD
Aristias [2] of Phlius. Tragedian I, 1094 Aristides [2] of Miletus. Historian
I,
Aristonicus [5] Greek grammarian I, 1122-1123 Aristonous [4] Poet 1, 1124 Aristonymus Poet of the Old Comedy 1, 1124 Aristophanes [2] Corinthian, Roman official under Julian [xr], 4th cent. AD 1, 1124-1125 [3] of Athens Poet of the Attic
2,95
[4] Tragedian, 4th cent. AD
2,95 [5] Tragedian, rst cent. BC 2, 96
[7] A. Greek commentator or
historian 2,98 [8] From Myrleia. Greek grammarian 2nd/tst cent. BC 2, 98-99 Asinius [I 5] A. Quadratus. Author of an epitaph 2, 160 [II 13] A. Protimus Quadratus, C. Cos. suff. under Septimius Severus, probably historian Ay sileyat
431
2, 440-
441
Bacchylides Author of choral lyric, sth cent. BC 2, 452-455 Barbucallus, lohannes Epigram poet of the ‘kyklos’ of Agathias, 6th cent. AD 2, 506 Basilius [1] Basil the Great. Theo-
logian and bishop 2, 539-540 [7] B. Megalomytes. Epigrammatic poet 2, 542 Bassus Lollius Epigrammatic poet
2,544
Baton [2] Attic comic poet, 3rd cent. BC 2,558 Besantinus Greek author in Hadrian’s era 2, 612-613 Bianor [2] Writer of epigrams in the ‘Garland’ of Philippus 2, 622
1.2. GREEK
96
AUTHORS
Bion [2] Bucolic poet 2, 660-662 Biottus Comic poet, 2nd cent. BC
Capiton Epigrammatic poet
2, 662 Biotus Greek tragedian
Carcinus [2] Epic poet
2, 662
Biton Author of works on military, c.200 BC 2, 682-683 Boethus [5] Epigrammatic poet 2, 707-708 [6] Greek grammarian 2,708 Boeus Author of a didactic poem, 3rd cent. BC 2,709 Boio Poetess
2,712
Boiscus Greek poet from Cyzicus
2/723 a
Butas Greek elegiac poet 2, 837 Caecalus Epic poet 2, 871 Caecilius [III 5] C. from Cale Acte. Greek rhetor from the Augustan 2,900 Calcidius Christian philosopher, 4th cent. AD 2, 936-937 Calleas Epigrammatic poet
2,959
Calliades [1] Writer of New Comedy 2,960 Callias [6] Writer of Old Comedy
2, 962-963 [10] From Syracuse, favourite and historian of Agathocles [2]
2,964 [11] Greek grammarian 2,964 Callicles [5] Greek historian or grammarian of the Hellenistic period 2,965 Callicrates [4] Poet of the Middle Attic Comedy 2, 967 Callicter Epigrammatic poet
2, 969-970 Callimachus [3] C. of Cyrene Hellenistic poet and grammarian,
4th/3rd cent. BC
2, 973-978
[4] Epic poet 2,978 Callinicus [2] Rhetor 2,981 Callinus [1] Elegiac poet 2, 981982
Callippus [4] see Callipus Callipus Comic poet 2, 986 Callistratus [I 1] Tragedian 2, 989 [1 4] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC
2 TSG Cassius [III 1] L. Cl(audius) C. Dio Cocceianus, Greek historian, c. AD 300 2, 1171-1172
{II 2] C. Dionysius. Translator of the Mago, rst cent. BC
oie, Tatts
age 2,885 Caerius Tragedian
2, 990-991
{I 5] (Domitius) C. Local histo2,991
[1 6] Author of descriptions
2,991 Callistus Epic poet
2, 991-992 Callixeinus Of Rhodes, probably 2nd cent. BC, wrote On Alexan-
dria 2,992 Candidus [4] Historian, late 5th cent. AD
2, 1092 [3] Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 2, 1092 [4] Tragedian, 5th/4th cent. BC 2, 1092-1093 [5] Presumably to be equated with C. [4] 2, 1093 Carphyllides Epigrammatic poet Dai Carystius Polygraph 2, 1149 Cassia [4] C. Byzantine poet and abbess, died c. AD 800/805
Bolos Greek author c. 200 BC
rian
2 OVH
2, 1047
Cantharus [3] Poet of the Attic Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC 15, 1016
{III 6] C. latrosophistes. Greek author of a collection of medi-
cal and biological Problemata 2, TGA Cephalium [2] Hadrianic historian and orator 3, 130-131 Cephisodorus [1] Writer of Old Comedy 3, 135 [7] Author of a history of the Third Sacred War 3, 136 Cercidas [3] Poet 3, 144-145 Cerealius Poet of epigrams 3,148 Chaereas [3] Historian of Hannibalkex oor Gi(s) eae Chaeredemus One of the brothers of Epicurus, c. 300 BC 3,174 Chaeremon [1] Tragedian, middle of the 4th cent. BC 3,174 [2] Stoic philosopher, rst cent.
AD
3,174
[3] Poet of epigrams, from 4th to 3rd cent. BC (2?) 3,174 Chaerephon Follower of Socrates, late 5th cent. BC 3,175 Chaerion Writer of comedies, 2nd cent. BGa35075 Chaeris Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 3,175-176 Charax Greek historiographer, 2nd cent. AD
3,191
Chares [2] Anecdotalist, 4th cent.
BC
3,193
[3] Poet, late 4th to early 3rd cent. BC 3, 193-194 [6] Greek grammarian, 3rd and 2nd cents. BC 3, 194 Charinus [3] Poet (?) 3, 196 Chariton Writer of an historiographical work 3, 199-201 Charon [3] Greek author 3, 203204 [4] Author of a chronicle, hellenistic period (2?) 3, 204 Chersias Greek poet, end ofthe 7th/beginning 6th cent. BC Beata
Chion Pupil of Plato, author of letters, 4th cent. BC 3,230 Chionides Attic writer of comedies, sth cent. BC 3,231 Chionnes Writer of comedies, rst Cet BG,
13,231
Choerilus [1] from Samos. Poet, 5th cent. BC 3, 238-239 [2] from Athens. Attic tragedian,
end of the 6th cent. BC
3,239
[3] from lasus. Epic poet, end of the 4th cent. BC 3, 239-240 Choiroboskos Georgios Byzantine grammarian, 9th cent. AD
3, 241-242 Chrestus Professor of rhetoric c. AD 180
3,255
Christodorus Poet, early 5th cent. AD
3, 268-269
Chrysippus [2] Stoic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC 3, 288-293 Cinaethon Epic poet, 7th or 6th cent. BC
3,340
Cincius [2] C. Alimentus, L. Roman senator and historian
3,341
Cinesias Dithyrambic poet
35 342-343 Claudianus [2] Claudius C. Graeco-Latin poet, c. AD 400
3, 386-389 [3] (Claudius C.) Poet of the sth cent. AD 3, 389 Cleaenetus Tragedian 3, 412 Clearchus [5] Writer of comedies
3,415
Cleidemus From Athens, wrote c. 350 BC an ‘Atthis’ 3, 417 Cleitarchus [2] Son of Dinon, Alexander historian, 4th cent. BC 3, 420-421 [3] Greek grammarian and lexicographer 3,421 Cleitus [9] Tragedian 3, 424 Clemens [3] T. Flavius Clemens Christian philosopher, c. AD 200
3, 426-427
Cleobuline Poet 3, 429 Cleobulus [1] Tyrant of Lindus, fl. 7th-6th cent. BC, poet 3, 429 Cleomachus Pornographic author 3, 430
Cleon [6] C. Poet 3, 436 Cleophon [2] Tragedian 3, 447 Cloatius Verus Roman lexicographer, perhaps from the early Augustan period 3,457 Clonas Poet and musician 3, 472 Clytus Of Miletus, pupil of Aristotle 3, 488 Cocceianus Historian c. AD 300 see Cassius [III 1] Colluthus Epic poet 3, 535-536 Comanus [1] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 3, 600
OY,
1.2. GREEK
Cometas [1] Poet of epigrams 3, 617-618
[2] C. Chartularius. Poet of epigrams 3, 618 Conon [4] Greek mythographer
3, 694 Constantinus [9] C. VII = Constan-
tine VII Porphyrogennetus. Byzantine Emperor AD 912 or
945-959
3, 721-722
Corinna Lyric poet
3, 789-790
Cornelius Longinos Poet of epigrams
author or prescriptions in iambic triameters, 1st cent. AD 4, 64 Damostratus Poet of epigrams
Cosmas [3] Bishop and composer of hymns 3, 862 [4] Poet 3, 862 Crates [1] Writer of comedies, 5th cent. BC 3,915 [2] Writer of comedies 3, 915916
[5] C. of Mallus. Grammarian and philosopher 3, 917-919 [7] Scholar 3, 919-920 Cratinus [1] Poet of the Attic Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC 3, 922-
924
[2] C. the Younger. Writer of comedies 3,924 Cratippus [1] Of Athens, contemporary of Thucydides, continued Th.’s work 3,924 Creophylus [1] Epic poet and one of the Homeridae 3, 930-931
4, 67 Daphitas Greek grammarian 2nd 4, 79-80
4, 104
3, 943
Critias Politician and poet 946
3, 945-
Deinolochus Writer of comedies,
5th cent. BC 4,185 Demetrius [19] of Tarsus. Poet
4, 250
[25] Writer of Old Comedy 4, 251 [26] Tragedian, 5th cent. BC
4, 251-252
[27] Writer of New Comedy
4, 252 [28] D. of Byzantium. Hellenistic historiographer 4,252 [29] Jewish-Hellenistic chronographer 4,252 [30] D. of Callatis. Historian and geographer, 3rd cent. BC 4, 252 [32] Poet of epigrams 4,253 [33] Argive local historian
4, 253
Criton [2] Writer of comedies
45275
Demophilus [3] Writer of comedies Demosthenes [2] Attic Orator and Politician. 4th cent. BC 4, 292-
297
[3] from Bithynia. Epic poet and prose author 4, 297
Dexicrates Writer of comedies
Deinias Historian from Argos, 3rd cent. BC 4, 183
[31] Epic poet 4,253
3, 931
Crinagoras Epigrammatist
Demodocus [2] Poet 4, 271 Demonicus Writer of comedies
4, 286-287
4, 67 Damoxenus Writer of comedies
cent. BC
Democrates [2] Tragedian 4, 266 Democritus [3] Poet of epigrams
4, 270
4, 63-64 Damocrates (M.?) Servilius D.,
Datis Tragedian from Thoricus
3, 837
[2] Historian
Damocharis Grammarian and poet of epigrams, 6th cent. AD
AUTHORS
[34] D. Scepsius. Scholar, 2nd
4) 329-330 Dexippus [2] P. Herennius D. Athe-
nian historian 3rd cent. AD
4, 330 Diagoras [2] Lyric poet from
Melos, sth cent. BC 4, 344 Dicaeogenes [2] of Athens. Tragedian and dithyrambic poet
4) 371-372
Didymarchus Poet 4, 396 Didymus [1] of Alexandria. Important Greek grammarian of the latter half of the rst cent. BC
4, 396-398
[2] Minor. Greek grammarian
4, 398-399 [3] Claudius. Greek grammarian 4,399
[4] Son of Heraclides. Greek grammarian and musician
4,399
Dieuches [2] Writer of New Comedy 4, 405 Dieuchidas Son of Praxion of
3, 948
cent. BC 4, 253-254 [35] D. Ixion. Greek grammarian
35.950
from the Alexandrian period
Dinarchus Attic orator, 4th/3rd
4,254
cent. BC 4, 419-421 Diocles [5] Writer of comedies
Crobylus Writer of comedies Ctesias Of Cnidus, 5th or 4th cent. BC, historian and physician
3, 969-970 Ctesicles [1] Author of Chronika in at least 3 vols. in the Hellenistic
period 3,973 Curtius [I 4] C. Nicias. Gramma-
rian and tyrant of Cos in the late republican period 3, 1024 Cydias [1] Erotic poet 3, 1044 Cyllenius Poet of epigrams
3, 1047
Cyrillus [6] Lexicographer
4, 13
[7] Poet 4, 13-14
Cyrus [4] C. from Panopolis Poet and politician 4, 21 Daimachus [1] Historian from Plataeae, 4th cent. BC 4, 40 [2] Historian from Plataeae, 3rd cent. BC 4, 40 Damagetus Poet of epigrams
4, 49
Damianus Sophist from Ephesus 4,59
[36] D. Chloros. Greek grammarian of uncertain dating
4, 254-255
[37] D. of Magnesia. Grammarian and scholarly compiler, tsticentaBC 4,255 [38] D. of Tarsus. Grammarian
4, 255 [39] D. Gonypesus. Greek grammarian 4, 255-256 [40] D. Pyctes. Greek grammavlan 4,256
[41] Author of the treatise ‘On style’ 4, 256-257 [42] D. from Troezen. Greek grammarian
4,257
[43] D. Triclinius. Philologist and textual critic of the early Palaeologi period 4,257 Demiourgos [1] Poet of epigrams of unknown dating 4, 261% Demo [5] Interpreter of Homer
4, 264
Megara, author, 4th cent. BC
4, 405
4, 424 [7] Probably the first author of a history of Rome, c. 3rd cent. BC 4, 426-427 [9] of Magnesia. Hellenistic author of biographies and summaries of the teachings of philosophers 4, 427-428 [ro] Iulius D. Poet of epigrams
4,428 [11] Greek grammarian
4, 428 Diodorus [9] from Sardeis. Poet of epigrams 4, 441-442 [x10] of Sinope. Writer of comedies 4, 442 [11] Periegetic writer, c. 300 BC
4, 442
[12] of Elaia. Alexandrian poet of elegies 4, 442 [13] Greek grammarian and lexi-
cographer 4, 442-443
[14] of Tarsus. Greek gramma-
rian 4,443
1.2. GREEK
98
AUTHORS
[17] Zonas. Poet of epigrams
4, 443-444
Diogenes [10] Bishop of Amisus, 6th cent. AD, author of an epita-
phios 4, 448 [17] Laertius Author of a history
of Greek philosophy
4, 452-
455 [19] from Athens. Poet of satyr
plays 4,456
[20] from Tarsus. Philosopher and poet 4,456 [21] from Thebes. Tragedian rst cent. BC 4,456 [22] Tragedian 5th/4th cent. BC
4,456
Diogenianus [2] from Heraclea. Greek grammarian 4, 457 Diognetus [3] Tragedian 4, 458 Diomedes [2] Writer of New Comedy 4, 463 Dion [I 3] D. Cocceianus of Prusa. Orator and philosopher in the rst cent. AD, from Prusa (also called
Chrysostomus)
4, 466-468
Dionysiades Tragedian
4, 471
Dionysius [13] D. Scytobrachion. Greek grammarian 4, 477 [14] D. from Phaselis. Greek grammarian of the Alexandrian period 4, 477 [15] D. lambos. Greek grammarian, 3rd cent. AD 4, 477-
478 [16] D. from Sidon. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 4, 478 [17] D. Thrax. Greek philologist and grammarian 4, 478-480 [18] D. of Halicarnassus. Greek
historian and teacher of rhetoric in Rome, rst cent. BC
4, 480-484
{19] D. Tryphonus. Greek grammarian
4, 484
[20] D. Musicus. Greek grammarian
4, 484
[21] Aelius D. of Halicarnassus. Greek grammarian 4, 484-
485
[22] Greek grammarian of unknown date 4, 485 [26] Son of Calliphon 4, 486 [27] D. Periegetes. From Alexandria, author of ageopgraphical poem, c. AD t00 4, 486-487 [29] Ornithologist 4, 487 [30] D. Chalcus. Elegist and rhetor 4, 487 [31] Writer of comedies 4, 488 [32] Epic poet 4, 488 [33] D. of Rhodes. Poet ofepigrams 4, 488 [34] D. of Cyzicus. Author of an epitaph 4, 488 [35] Writer of New Comedy
4, 489
[36] D. from Cyprus. Tragedian 4, 489 [37] D. from Athens. Tragedian 4, 489 [38] D. from Anaphlystus. Tragedian 4, 489 [40] D. from Miletus. Orator 4, 489 [41] D. from Scymnus. Tragedian and writer of comedies
4, 489
[42] D. from Heraclea. Poet
[5] Astrologist, rst cent. AD 4, 689 Dosiadas Poet of epigrams 4, 694 Dositheus [9] Latin grammarian,
probably late 4th cent. AD 4, 696-697 Draco [3] Greek grammarian
4,707 Dromon Poet 4,723 Duris [1] Poet of epigrams
4,746 [3] D. of Samos. Pupil of Theophrastus, tyrant of Samos, c.
340-270BC 4,747
4, 489-490 [43] D. of Corinth. Poet 4, 490 [44] D. of Andros. Poet ofepi-
grams 4, 490
[45] D. Sophistes. Poet ofepi-
grams 4, 490 [55] Exiguus. Canonist, computist and translator 4, 494 Dionysodorus [6] D. of Troezen. Greek grammarian 4, 495 Dionysodotus Author of paeans
4, 495
Dymas [5] Tragedian 4,758 Echembrotus Aulode and elegist 4, 782 Ecphantides Writer of comedies 4,798 Eirenaeus, Irenaeus [1] Greek grammarian 4, 860-861 [2] E. (Irenaeus) of Lyons Bishop
of Lyon 4, 861-862 Emmenides Writer of comedies
4, 942
Diopeithes [1] Writer of Old Comedy 4, 509 Diophanes [3] Poet of epigrams
Empedocles [2] Tragedian
Diophantus [1] Writer of comedies
Ephippus [1] Author in the period
4, 510 4, 510
4, 513
4,947
4,991
Epaphroditus [3] Greek grammarian
Diophilus, Diophila Name of a poet
4, 1O15
ofAlexander the Great 4, 1033 [2] Writer of Middle Comedy
4, 1033
Dioscorides [2] Polyhistor ofthe 4th and 3rd cents. BC 4, 514 [3] Poet of epigrams 4, 514-
515
[4] Writer of New Comedy
4, 515
4,518
4, 523-524 4, 524
[7] of Adramyttium. Poet of epigrams 4,524 Dioxippus Writer of comedies
4, 524
Diphilus [3] Poet 4, 525 [5] D. of Sinope Writer of the New Comedy 4, 525-527 Diyllus Greek historian 4, 583 Dorieus [3] Epigrammatic poet 4, 686 Dorillus Tragedian
4, 686
Dorotheus [3] Greek grammarian and lexicographer, probably from the early imperial period 4, 689 [4] Poet, tragedian, from Chalcis
4, 689
Comedy 4, 1067 [5] Writer of New Comedy Epigenes [o] Of Sicyon, Greek tragedian, 6th cent. BC
4, 1096
[1] Writer of comedies
4, 1096 Epigonus [3] Poet of epigrams 4, 1098
Diotimus [4] of Athens. Poet of epigrams 4, 523 [5] of Miletus. Poet ofepigrams [6] Epic poet
Epicharmus Writer of Doric comedy 4, 1061-1063 Epicrates [4] Writer of Middle
4, 1067
[9] D. the Younger, Grammarian and editor of Hippocrates, 2nd cent. AD 4, 517 Dioscorus [2] Coptic advocate and poet
Ennoeus Poet
Epilycus [1] Writer of comedies
4, IIIO-I1I1 Epinicus [1] Writer of comedies 4, TIT4-1115 Epitherses Greek grammarian
4, 1153 Eratosthenes [3] Scholastikos. Writer of epigrams 5, 19-20 Erinna Poetess 5, 33-34 Eriphus Comedian 5, 35-36 Erotianus Greek grammarian
53 39-40 Erycius Writer of epigrams
5, 52 Eteagoras Comedian 5,78 Etruscus Writer of epigrams 5, 120 Euboeus Poet of parodies 5, 130 Eubulides [2] Comedian 5, 131 [3] Comedian ofthe 3rd cent. BC
5,131
Eubulus [2] Comedian 134
5, 133-
99
I.2.
Euclides [4] Poet 5, 142 Eudaemon Correspondent of Libanius 5,144 Eudemus [5] Elegiac poet 5, 147 [8] Rhetor of an uncertain period from Argos 5,148 Eudoxus [2] Comedian 5, 153 Eugam(m)on Epic poet 5, 156157
Eugenes Writer of epigrams
SHES
Evagrius [3] Scholasticus. Anc. Greek church historian 5, 244-
245
5,158
5,250
55 862:
Eumedes Comedian 5, 163 Eumelus [5] Early Greek literator 5, 164 Eunapius Greek sophist and historian, c. AD 400
5, 169-170
Eunicus Comedian 5,170 Euodus [4] Writer of epigrams
55175
Ezechiel [2] Jud.-Hell. tragedian Faustus [4] Faustus of Byzantium.
Greek-Armen. writer
Euphanes Comic poet Euphantus Historian
5,179 5, 179
Euphorion [2] of Athens. Tragedian
5, 373-
374
Favorinus Rhetor, Buntschriftsteller, beginning ofthe 2nd cent.
AD 5, 375-376
Flaccus [1] Statilius F. Writer ofepi-
grams
5,448
Florentinus [2] Greek author from the first quarter of the 3rd cent.
AD
5, 469
Fortunatianus AD 370-377 comes
rerum privatarum in the East
55 509 Gabriel [2] Writer of epigrams
5, 182
[3] Greek author with varied interests 5, 182-184 Euphron [4] Writer of New Comedy 5,190 Euphronius [1] Writer of Old Comedy 5,190 [3] Greek poet and grammarian, 3rd cent. BC 5, 191-192 Eupithius Writer of epigrams
5, 192
Eupolemus [1] Jew.-Hell. historian
5, 192
55 634-635
Gaetulicus Writer of epigrams 5, 639 Gallus [3] Writer of epigrams 5, 680
Gauradas Writer of epigrams
5/923
5, 225-226
Eustathius [4] Monk and deacon,
later archbishop of Thessalonica
Gelasius [1] Bishop of Caesarea [2] Maritima/Palaestina 5,723 [2] G. of Cyzicus. Anonymous church historian 5, 723-724
5,238
5, 242-243
sus. Writer of satyr plays
551145 Harpocration [2] (Valerius) H.
Rhetor and lexicographer 5, LI5O-1151 Hecataeus [3] H. of Miletus. Greek author, 6th cent. BC 6, 35-37 [4] H. of Abdera. Philosopher and historian, 4th cent.
BC
6, 37-38
[5] H. of Thasos. Epigrammarian 6, 38
Hedyla Poetess, early 3rd cent. BC 6,45 Hedylus Epigrammatic poet, 3rd cent. BC 6, 45-46 Hegemon [1] Of Thasos, poet of Comedies, first professional parodist, 5th cent. BC 6, 46-47 [2] Epigrammatist
6, 47
Hegesander [2] H. Of Delphi, author of anecdotes, 2nd cent.
AD
6,49
(Troad), author, grammarian,
diplomat, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 6, 49-50
Heliodorus [2] Periegetic, after 175
[6] G. Glaucon dian Glaucus
Pisides. Byz. poet 5,788 [6] from Ephesus. Trage5, 868 [7] of Rhegium Scholar
5, 870-872
[8] of Samos Greek grammarian
bee grams
5, 872-873
Glycon [1] Poet 5, 881 [2] Rhetor 5, 881 Gnesippus Tragedian 5, 883-884 Gorgippus [2] Author ofsatyr plays 5» 937
6, 52-53
BG we6y 0
[4] From Athens, tragedian (oh 7fit
[6] Metrician, 1st cent. AD
6, 72-73 [7] H. Arabius. Sophist, c. AD 240-235
5, 872 [x1] of Nicopolis Writer of epi-
grams
1083
788
55 231
Euxenides Comedian 5,241 Evaeon Tragedian 5,242 Evages Comedian 5, 242 Evagon Greek historian in the last quarter of the 5th cent. BC
cent. AD 5, 1072-1073 Hadrianus [I] [1] Rhetor 5, 1082-
53 738-739
Georgius [5] G. Monachos. Author of aByzantine chronicle, some time in the 9th cent. AD 5, 787-
[xo] of Athens Writer of epigrams
Eutecnius Rhetor 5, 231-232 Euthias Comedian 5, 233 Euthycles Comedian 5, 233 Euthycrates [3] Comedian 5, 233 Eutolmius Illustrius Writer of epi-
Habron Greek grammarian, 1st
Hegesinus [2] Epic poet 6, 51 Hegesippus [2] Poet of the New Comedy 6, 52 [3] Epigrammatist 6, 52 [4] Greek historian, c. 300 BC
5, 229-230
[8] Writer of aworld history
[I 4] G. of Corinth Bishop, tith/t2th cent. AD 5, 10281029
Hegesianax Of Alexandria
Geminus [2] Writer of epigrams
[2] Pseudo-Eupolemos, Samaritan author 5,193 Eupolis Comedian 5, 193-195 Euripides [1] Tragedian 5, 196205 [2] Minor tragedian 5, 205 [3] Minor tragedian 5, 205 Eusebius [7] Eusebius of Caesarea. Bishop and Church Father
[I 3] G. of Nazianzus. Theologian, 4th cent. AD 5, 1027-
Harmodius [2] Harmodius of Tar-
5, 281=—282
Euhemerus Utopian 5, 160-161 Eulogius Greek grammarian
AUTHORS
1028
Evandridas Tragedian 5,246 Evangelus Comedian 5,246 Evanthes Poet 5, 246 Evaretus Tragedian 5,247 Evenus [1] of Paros 5, 248 [2] Writer of epigrams 5,249 Evetes [1] Tragedian 5,250 [2] Comedian
Eugenius [2] Greek grammarian
GREEK
Gregorius [I 1] Thaumaturgus. Lawyer and theologian, 3rd cent. AD 5, 1024-1025 [I 2] G. of Nyssa Theologian, 4th cent. AD 5, 1025-1027
6,73
[8] Author of anovel 6, 73-75 [9] Grammarian, 7th cent. AD
6, 75-76 Helladius [1] From Antinupolis/Egypt, grammarian, 4th cent. AD
6,77-78
[2] Grammarian and priest of Zeus, 4th/5th cent. AD 6,78 [3] Epigrammatist 6,78 Hellanicus [1] H. of Mytilene. Greek historian, end of5th cent. BC
6, 79-80
[2] Alexandrian grammarian, c. 200 BC
6, 80
I.2. GREEK
I00
AUTHORS
Heniochus Poet of Comedies
6,135
Sophist and rhetor from Pho-
Hephaestion [4] Metrician, 2nd cent. AD 6, 139-140
[5] H. of Thebes. Astrologer, c. AD 381
6,140
Heracleon [3] Greek grammarian
and author ofalexicon [4] H. Grammarian
6,155
6, 155-156
Heraclides [17] Poet ofthe Middle Comedy 6,170 [19] H. Lembus. Originally platonistic philosopher, politician, doxographer, 4th cent. BEWG 7 Tt [20] H. of Athens. Poet of satyr plays, rst cent. BC 6,171 [21] H. Ponticus the Younger. Greek grammarian,
AD
tst cent.
6, 171-172
marian, c. AD t00
6,172
[23] Sophist from Lycia, approx. AD 193 to 209
6,172
[24] H. of Sinope. Epigrammatist [27] H. of Tarentum. Empiricist physician, 1st cent. BC
6, 173-174 Heraclitus [3] H. of Halicarnassus. Epigrammatist 6, 178-179 [4] Poet of comedies 6,179 [5] Mythographer 6,179
[6] H. of Rhodiapolis. Doctor and philosopher, 1st-2nd cent. 6,179
[7] Paradoxographer 6,179 Heraclius [4] Epigrammatist
[4] Of Miletus, tragedian, rst cent. BC 6,230 Hermocreon [2] Epigrammatist,
3rd cent. BC matist
6, 195 Herennius Philo Antiquarian, grammarian, historian, rst cent.
AD 6, 199-201 Hermaeus [2] Ethnographer, rst cent. BC 6, 206
Hermeias [1] Of Methymna, author of Sikelika, dated 4th cent. BC (3), 720%
[2] Of Curium, iambic poet, Hellenistic period 6,211 Hermesianax Elegiac poet 6, 221 Hermias [7] Author of amocking
work against Greek philosophers 6, 224
[1] Poet of the Old sth cent. BC 6, 226-
230 6, 234-235
Hermolochus Poet 6, 237 Hermon [4] Writer of didactic poetry, Hellenistic period 6, 238 Hermonax [2] Writer of ‘Cretan
glosses’ 6,239 Herodas, Herondas Herondas
Herodes [16] L. Vibullius Hipparchus Ti. Claudius Atticus Herodes. Rhetor and politician, approx. AD 1o1/3-177
6, 259-
cent. BC
6, 227-228
[3] H. of Berytus Greek grammarian, c. AD roo 6,228 Hermocles [1] From Cyzicus, poet
of paeans (amongst other things), 6,229
480/479 BC
grammarian, 2nd cent. AD
[2] H. rian BC Honestus
of Byzantium. Grammaand tragedian, 3rd cent. 6, 463 Epigrammatic poet
6, 474 Horapollo Egyptian author, c. 500 AD
6, 483-484
Hybrias Poet from Crete in Athenaeus
6,595
Hypereides Attic orator, 4th cent. BC 6, 632-634
Hyperochus Author of a local history of Cyme 6, 636 Jason [3] I. of Cyrene. Jew.-Hell. 6, 686
Ibycus Lyric poet, 6th cent. BC 6, 697-698
Idaeus [4] I. of Rhodes. Epic poet
6, 260-262
Herodorus From Heraclea on the Pontus, c. 400 BC 6, 264-265 Herodotus [1] The historian Herodotus, approx. 485-424 BC 6; 265—271
Hesiodus The poet Hesiod, c. 700 6, 279-284
Hesychius [1] Alex. scholar, author of alexicon 6, 288-289
[4] H. Illustrius. Greek chroni6, 289-
290 Hieronymus [5] Tragedian and dithyramb poet, 5th cent. BC 6, 316
[6] H. of Cardia. Greek historio-
grapher and politician, born approx. 360 BC 6, 316-317 [7] H. of Rhodes. Peripatetic, 3rd cent. BG 6,317 Hipparchus [2] Poet of Comedies 6, 335 [5] Author of epic-gastronomical poetry, Hellenistic period 6, 336
Hippias [5] Sophist from Elis, sth/4th cent. BC 6,344 Hippobotus Writer on the history of philosophy, Hellenistic period Hippodamas [3] Poet 6, 364 Hippodromos Hippodromus Sophist and rhetor from Larissa, CoD a DOmOws 67 Hippolytus [2] H. of Rome. Presbyter, Church author, 3rd cent.
AD 6, 369-371
6, 379-380
6, 450-463
historian
260
6, 348
Smyrna. Greek gramand biographer, 3rd
6th cent. BC 6, 373-374 Hippostratus [4] Historian, approx. 3rd cent. BC 6,376 Hippothoon [2] Author of sententious trimeters 6,378
Homerus [1] The poet Homer
6,231
Hermogenes [7] H. of Tarsus. Greek rhetor, approx. AD 160-
BC
Hipponax lambic poet, middle of
Hippys Of Rhegium, historian, c.
6,230
Hermodorus [3] Syrian epigram-
cler, 6th cent. AD
6, 180
Hereas From Megara, historian
c. 300 BC
6,230
Herodianus [1] Aelius H. Greek
Gsnu72
Hermippus Comedy, 227 [2] H. of marian
caea,c.200 AD
6, 251-254
[22] H. Milesius. Greek gram-
AD
Hermocrates [2] L. Flavius H.
6.782
Ignatius [1] Bishop ofAntioch 6, 720-721
[2] I. Magister. Poet, metropolitan of Nicaea, 8th/9th cent. AD. 65.72% [3] Epigrammatist 6, 721-722 Iohannes [4] I. Chrysostomos
Bishop of Constantinople AD 397-404, homilete 6, 890-892 [14] I. Diacrinomenus. Monophysite church historian, 6th cent. AD
6,894
[15] I. of Caesarea. Grammarian
and presbyter, 6th cent. AD 6, 894 [18] I. Malalas. Author ofa Byzantine world chronicle, c. 490/500 —after AD 570 6, 895
[21] L. from Antioch. Author of
Byzantine historical works 6, 896
lolaus [4] Writer of Comedies, 2nd cent. BC
6,904
lomedes Poet, 21d/3rd cent. AD 6, 905 Ion [2] I. from Chios. Author, approx. 480-423/2 BC 6, 907908
lophon [2] Athenian tragedian, 5th cent. BC
6,916
losephus [4] I. Flavius (Flavius Iosephus), Jew. Hell. historian, rst cent. AD 6, 920-922 [5] I. of Thessalonica. Archbishop of Thessalonica, hymnodist, AD 762-832
6,922
HOU
I.2. GREEK AUTHORS
[6] I. Genesius. Conventional name of an anonymous Byz. hist. work 6,922 Irenaeus Referendarius Epigrammatist, 6th cent. AD 6,935 Irenaeus see Eirenaeus Isaeus [1] Attic orator, 4th cent. BC
6, 949-950
Isagoras [2] Tragedian, 2nd cent.
AD
6,955
Isidorus [8] Poet 6, 962 [ro] I. Scholasticus. Epigrammatist from Bolbythia, 6th cent.
AD
6, 964-965
[rx] I. of Aegeae. Epigrammatist
6, 965 Isigonus Of Nicaea
see Parado-
xographi (10, 507-512) Isocrates Attic orator, 436-338 BC
6, 979-983 Ister, Istrus [2] Pupil of Callimachus, 3rd cent. BC 6, 988 Isyllus Poet from Epidaurus, c. 300 BC
6,992
Iulia [10] I. Balbilla. Epigrammatist, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1039 Iulianus [6] (ulianos) Grammarian
and lexicographer, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1045 [x1] Fl. Claudius I. Apostata’,
Roman emperor AD 360-363 6, 1046-1049
[20] Epigrammatist, 6th cent. AD? 6, 1051-1052 Iulius [IV 5] I. Cerealis. Poet, rst cent. AD
6, 1081
{IV 17] I. Pollux. Rhetor from
Naucratis, author of an Onomastikon, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1085-1087
[IV 21] I. Secundus. Rom. rhetor from Gaul, rst cent. AD 6, 1088
{[V 23] I. Valerius Alexander Polemius. Author of a translation of the Greek Alexander
Romance, middle of4th cent. AD
6, 1088
Junior Poet
6, to9t Iustus [2] I. of Tiberias. Jew. historian, rst cent. AD 6, 1142 Kaminiates, Iohannes Cleric, author of an account of the conquest of Thessalonike by the Arabs in 904 7,14 Kedrenos Georgios Author of a world chronicle ranging up to
1057
7; 38
Konstantinos [1] K. VI Porphyrogennetos. Byzantine emperor
7, 93-94
[2] K. of Rhodes. Poet, 9/roth cent. AD 7, 94-95 [3] K. of Sicily. Poet, philosopher and grammarian 7,95
Lacon Epigrammatic poet
7, 146-
147 Laenes Comic poet, 2nd cent. BC
7, 167 Lamprocles Musician and poet,
early 5th cent. BC 7, 189 Lampytus Poet of the New Comedy To sus) Lamynthius Lyric poet from Mile-
tus 7,193
[2] see Pseudo-Longinus Longus [1] Author of ‘Daphnis and Chloe’ 7, 812-814 Lucianus [1] L. of Samosata Greek rhetorical-satirical writer, 2nd cent. AD 7, 836-845
Lucillius Epigrammatist in Rome, ist cent.
7, 852-853
Lucillus [1] Greek grammarian from Tarrha, 1st cent. AD
Laon Writer of the New Comedy,
3rd cent. BC
7, 237-238
Lasus [1] L. of Hermione Poet, c. 500 BC 7, 259-260 Latinus [4] Greek grammarian
7, 290 Laureas Epigrammatic poet, rst cent. BC 7, 300
Leandr(i)us Of Miletus, Greek historian 7, 333 Leogoras [2] Of Syracuse, Greek grammarian, 2nd cent.
BC
7, 396 Leon [8] OfPella, author of awork on the Egyptian gods 7, 398 [11] L. Diakonos Historian and deacon in Constantinople,
toth cent. AD 7, 398-399 Leonidas [3] L. of Tarentum Epigrammatic poet, late 4th to mid 3rd cent. BC 7, 400-401 Leonides [4] L. of Alexandria Epigrammatic poet, originally an
7, 853-854
Lucius [I] [4] L. of Patrae Author of the ‘Transformations’ (or name of the protagonist) 7,855 Lupercus Greek grammarian from Berytus, 3rd cent. AD 7, 885 Lyceas Epic poet from Argus 7,912
Lycis Writer of the Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC 7,920 Lycophron [4] Poet of ‘Alexandra’
7> 926-927 [5] L. of Chalcis Grammarian
and tragedian, 4th cent. Lycophronides Lyric poet
7» 403
7, 928
Lycurgus [9] Attic statesman and
orator, 4th cent.BC 7, 933-935 Lycus [12] L. of Rhegium Ethnographer and historiographer, 3rd cent. BC 7,939 Lydus [3] Iohannes L. Official and antiquarian writer, c. AD 490560)
astronomer, rst cent. AD
BC
7,927
Sy lA 5
Lynceus [4] Writer and comedy
Leontius [7] L. Scholasticus Epi-
writer
8,19
grammatic poet, 6th cent. AD
Lysanias [2] Greek Grammarian,
7s 409
3rd cent. BC 8, 32 Lysias [1] Attic logographos, 5th/4th cent. BC 8, 32-35 Lysimachides Greek grammarian
Lesbonax [1] Greek grammarian
7> 428 [2] Rhetor from Mytilene, 2nd cent. AD 7, 428 Lesches Early epic poet 7, 431-
432
pher and grammarian, c. 200 BC
Leschides Epic poet, 2nd cent. BC
Tear
Sieg Ziv
[8] Tragedian, 2nd cent. BC
Leucon [2] Author of Old Comedy, sth cent. BC 7, 448 Libanius From Antiochia/Syria,
Greek rhetor, 314-393
7,477-
480
Licymnius [2] Dithyrambic poet and rhetorician from Chios, c.
420 BC
Athens, 2nd cent. BC
7, 561
Lobon Biographer from Argus, 3rd CENT A
Gmina 62
Lollianus [1] Author ofthe novel ‘Phoenician stories’, late 2nd cent. BC
7, 801
[2] Rhetor from Ephesus, 2nd cent. AD
7, 801-802
Longinus [1] Cassius Longinus.
Grammarian, Rhetor and platonic philosopher, c. AD 2107, 808-810
8, 43 Lysippus [1] Writer ofthe Old Comedy, c. 400 BC 8, 44 Lysistratus [1] Tragedian from Chalcis, rst cent. BC 8, 46 Macedonius [1] Writer of apaean, CaQ0o BEE
887
[2] Epigrammatist from Thessa-
7, 544
Limenius [1] Choral lyric poet from
272/3
8, 38
Lysimachus [6] Greek mythogra-
lonica
8, 87
[3] Epigrammatist and imperial
official 8, 87-88
Machon lambographer 8,95 Maeandrius [2] M. of Miletus
Greek historian of the early Hellenistic period 8, 108 Maecius [II 7] Epigrammatist 8, 113
Magnes [3] Poet ofAttic Old Comedy 8,171
1.2. GREEK
102
AUTHORS
Magnus [9] Epigrammatist
8,177
Maiistas Author of the aretalogy of Sarapis 8,188 Malchus [4] Byzantine historian of the late 5th cent. AD 8,198 Mamercus [1] Tragedian of the 4th cent. BC
8,210
Marcellinus [I 2] Biographer
Melinno Poetess 8, 632 Meliton [1] Author of a text called “On the Clans in Athens”
8, 639 [2] Tragedian, rst cent. 8, 639 Memnon [5] M. of Heraclea
Author of a local history of Heraclea, probably Imperial period 8, 652
8, 295
Menaechmus [1] M. of Sicyon
8, 298
Menalcas Bucolic poet (?) 8, 660
{I 3] Author of Aithiopika, [3]
Menander [4] Athenian Poet of the New Comedy, 342/1-291/0 BC
Marcellus [I 2] From Side, physician and poet, 2nd cent. AD
8,298
Marcus [I 2] Rich Sophist of Byzantium, [2] 8, 323-324 {II 2] Marcus Aurelius Roman emperor AD 161-180 and philosopher, [2] Marcus Aurelius
8, 353 Scholasticus Epigramma8,353 [2] Three historians in the Suda 8, 406-407
Matron Poet, 4th cent. BC
Mauropous, Iohannes Byzantine scholar and bishop, founder of a school of law c. AD ro00 8, 498 Maximus [I 1] Maximus of Tyre. Author of lectures mainly on ethics and theology, 2nd cent. AD 8,516 [I 2] Astrologer, 2nd cent. AD,
[2]. 08,517 Medius [2] Hetairos of Alexander
the Great and author ofawork about him 8, 588 Megaclides Homeric interpreter, 4th cent. BC 8,595 Melampus [2] Byzantine gramma8, 613
8, 617-618
Melanthius [4] M. from Athens Tragedian and elegist, 5th cent.
8, 672
Menecrates [1] Attic comic poet,
5th cent. BC 8, 672 [2] Tragic poet, 5th cent. BC [4] Menecrates of Xanthus Greek historian of the 4th cent. BC 8, 673 [6] Author ofdidactic poems, 3rd cent BC
[6] M. of Athens Historian and writer on cults, 4th cent. BC
8.1673
[12] Epigrammatist
[7] M. of Rhodes Academic Philosopher, 2nd cent. BC 8, 620
Meleager [8] M. of Gadara Epi8, 626-
Meletus [3] Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 8, 630
[4] Tragedian and prosecutor of Socrates 8,630
8, 928-929
Mnasalces Epigrammatist of Sicyon, c.250 BC? 9,93 Mnaseas [2] From Patara/Lycia,
author of Periplous 9,93 Mnasicles Attic poet of Old Comedy 9,94 Mnesilochus [3] Second son of the tragedian Euripides 9, 101% Mnesimachus [1] Poet of Middle Comedy 9, 101 [2] Greek grammarian from Phaselis 9, 101 Mnesiptolemus Greek historian at the court of king Antiochos III of Seleucia (222-187 BC)
102 Moeragenes Author
9, 101-
9, 113
Moeris [2] Grammarian and lexi-
cographer, 2nd/3rd cent.?
9,114 9, 126-
127 Morsimus Oculist and tragedian,
5th cent. BC 9,213 Morychus Tragedian, 5th cent. BC 9, 216
8, 674
[13] Interpreter of Homer from Nysa 8, 674 Menelaus [7] Greek tragedian, rst cent. BC 8, 682 [9] M. of Aegae Epic poet 8, 682
Menestheus [3] Attic comic poet,
3rd cent. BC 8, 686 Menippus [7] Comedy writer 8, 692
Menodotus [1] M. of Perinthus 8, 695
Menogenes Greek grammarian
8, 696-697 Menophilus Poet from Damascus
Moschion [1] Tragedian, 3rd cent. BC 9, 226-227 [5] Comic poet 9, 227
[6] Author of sayings
9, 227-
228
Moschopoulos, Manuel Byzantine philologist, c. 1265-1316 9, 228
Moschus [2] M. from Lampsacus Tragedian, 3rd cent. BC 9, 229 [3] Poet from Syracuse, 2nd cent. BC
9, 229-230
Munatius [1] Grasmarian from Tralleis, 2nd cent. AD 9, 287 Mundus Munatius Epigrammatist
9,290 Musaeus [2] Comedy writer
8, 698
Mesatus Tragedian, 5th cent. BC
Mesomedes Cithara player and lyric poet from Crete, about AD 144
8, 620
8,918
Mimnermus Elegist, 7th cent. BC
Moiro Poet, c. 300 BC?
8,725
8,619
grammatist, c. 100 BC 627
Menecles [2] Greek historian and antiquarian, 2nd cent. BC
Historian, c. 200 BC
Melanippides Dithyrambic poet from Melos, 5th cent. BC
BC
[5] M. of Ephesus Greek historian, approx. 200 BC 8, 666 [13] M. Protector Byzantine historian, 6th cent. 8, 668—
S672:
8, 482-483
rian
8, 662-666
669
8, 325-330 Marianus [1] Poet c. AD 500 [2] M. tist Marsyas named
Greek historian and antiquary, 4th cent. BC 8, 658-659
Michaelios Grammatikos Epigrammatist 8, 853 Miltiades [4] Rhetorically trained Greek apologist, 2nd cent. [4]
8,726
Metagenes [1] Attic poet of the Old
Comedy, 5th/4th cent. BC 8,775 Methodius [2] Lexicographer 8, 803
Metrodorus [5] Poet of the New Comedy, 2nd cent. BC 8, 838 [9] Epigrammatist 8, 839 Michael [8] M. Chartophylax Editor and epigrammatist, roth cent. AD 8, 853
9, 319 [3] M. of Ephesus Epic writer, 2nd cent. BC 9, 319 [4] M. Grammaticus Writer
9, 319-320 Musicius Epigrammatist? 9, 369 Musonius [3] Rhetor, 4th cent. BC
9, 370 Myllus Attic writer of comedies/actor?
9,410
Myrinus Epigrammatist 9, 415 Myron [4] M. of Priene Greek
historian, perhaps 3rd cent. BC 9, 418 Myrsilus [2] Historian, middle of 3rd cent. BC 9, 422
103
1.2. GREEK
Myrtilus [2] Writer of Attic Old Comedy, c. 400 BC 9, 423 Mythographus Homericus Anonymous commentator on Homer
9, 463 Naucrates [2] Greek grammarian
9, 538 Naumachius Author of a didactic poem, 4th cent. 9,545 Nausicrates Middle Comedy poet
9, 552
Neanthes [2] Poet of the New
Comedy
9,579
Neleus [4] A Poet of the New Comedy, 3rd cent. BC 9, 622 Neophron Tragedian from Sicyon, 5th cent. BC 9, 642
Neoptolemus [9] Of Parium, Hellenistic theoretician of literature, 3rd cent. BC 9, 652-653 Neoteles Greek grammarian, pupil of Aristarchus 9, 655 Nicaenetus Poet, 3rd cent. BC
9, 703
Nicander [3] Of Colophon, historian and antiquarian, c. 200 BC 9, 706 [4] N. of Colophon. Poet 9, 706-708 [5] Of Thyateira, Greek grammarian, Hellenisic period
9, 708 Nicanor [9] Of Cos, Greek grammarian, Hellenistic period?
9, 710 [10] From Cyrene, Greek gram-
marian, Hellenistic period?
9,711 [x2] N. of Alexandria. Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. AD
9) 71-712
Nicarchus [2] New Comedy poet, c. 200 BC 9,713 [3] Epigrammatist 9,713 [4] Epigrammatist in Rome, tst cent.
9,713-714
Niceratus [2] Epic poet, 5th cent.
BC
9,715-716
Nicetes [1] Greek rhetor at Rome, Augustan period 9,717 [2] Rhetor from Smyrna, tst cent.
AD
9,717
Nicias [4] From Miletus; physician and poet, 3rd cent. BC 9,720 [5] Writer of comedies, 3rd cent. BO 93720 [9] Greek grammarian, tst cent. BORO, 725 Nicochares Comic poet, 5th/4th cents; BC 95. 722 Nicocles [5] Greek Grammarian from Sparta, c. 3 10-c. 388
9,723
Nicodemus [3] Writer of comedies, 2nd cent. BC 9,724
[4] Writer of epigrams from Heraclea, rst/2nd cent. AD?
9,724 Nicolaus [2] Comic poet, 2nd cent.
BC?
9,725
[3] N. of Damascus. Greek author and court historian, born c. 64 BC 9, 725-728 [4a] N. Sophistes Rhetor and sophist, 5th cent. 9, 728-729 Nicomachus [3] Athenian tragedian, 5th cent. BC? 9,730 [5] Tragedian from Alexandria (Troad), 3rd cent. BC 9,730 [6] Athenian comedian, 3rd cent.
BC
9, 730-731
[7] Poet of epigrams 9,731 [8] Comedian, 3rd/2nd cent. BC?
9,731 Nicon [2] Comedy writer, 4th/3rd cent. BC 9,739 Nicophon Comic poet, sth/4th cents. BC 9,741 Nicostratus [4] Comic Poet, 4th cent. BC 9,746 [5] Comic Poet, 4th/3rd cents.
BC
9, 746-747
Oppianus [1] From Corycus, Author of a didactic poem on fishing 10, 163-164 [2] From Apamea, Author of an didactic poem on hunting 10, 164-165
Orion [3] Grammarian from Thebes, 5th cent. AD
[10] T. Aurelianus N. Macedo-
nian Orator, 2nd cent. 9, 747-748 Nilus [1] N. of Ancyra Author of monastic letters and stories, c. 400 9,762 [2] N. Scholasticus Epigrammatist
9,762
Nonnosus. Author of a lost report ona legation 9, 812 Nonnus Epic poet from Panopolis
10, 220
Orus Greek grammarian from Alexandria, sth cent.
10, 268-
269
Palaephatus Mythographer (pseudonym) 10, 376-377 Palamedes [2] From Elea, Greek grammarian and lexicographer, 2nd cent. AD 10, 383 Palladas Epigrammarian in Alexandria, 4th cent. 10, 390-391 Pamphila Female philologist and writer of Epidaurus, rst cent. 10, 411 Pamphilus [3] Tragedian, 4th cent. BC tro, 412 [5] Greek rhetor, 2nd half of 2nd cent. BC? 10, 413 [6] Greek grammarian and lexicographer, 1st cent. AD
10, 413-414
[6] Comic Poet, 3rd/2nd cents.
9; 747
AUTHORS
[7] Sicilian poet 10, 414 [8] Epigrammatist 10, 414
Pamphos Early, perhaps mythical author of hymns to deities
10, 414-415
Pamprepius Greek grammarian of Panopolis, 5th cent. 10, 419420 Panarces Author ofriddle epigrams
10, 427 Pancrates [2] Poet, 3rd—2nd cent. BEM LO;430
9, 812-815 Nossis Epigrammist from Locri
[3] Of Alexandria, epic poet, 2nd
Epizephyrii, c. 300 BC 9, 825 Nothippus Athenian tragedian, 5th
[5] Epigrammatist
cent. BC 9, 827 Nouius Comic poet, 2nd cent. BC
9, 831 Numenius [1] Author of didactic poems from Heraclea, c. 300 BC
9, 895
[7] Poet from Tarsus 9, 898 Nymphis From Heraclia on the Pontus, Greek historian c. 3 to — after 246 BC 9,927 Oeniades Musician and dithyrambic poet from Thebes, 4th cent. BC 10, 50 Olympiodorus [3] Late ancient historian 10, 112 Onesicles Versatile poet and writer of prose 10, 130 Onomacritus Oracle interpreter for the Peisistratids c. 600 BC
10, 134-135
Ophelion Attican comedian, 4th cent. BC 10, 151
cent.
10, 430-431
10, 431
Pandaetes Comic writer, 3rd cent.
BG 10, 43% Panteleius Epic writer 10, 461 Panyas(s)is Epic poet of Halicarnassus, sth cent. BC
10, 474-
476 Paramonus Attic comic writer, 2nd cent. BC 10, 517 Parmenides From Elea, Presocratic
philosopher, author of a didactic poem, 5th/4th cent. BC
10, 537-540 Parmenion [2] Greek grammarian
from Byzantium, tst cent. BC? 10, 541 [3] Epigrammatist from Macedonia 10, 541-542 Parmeniscus Greek grammarian,
2nd/tst cent. BC 10, 542 Parmenon Poet from Byzantium
10, 542 Parthenius [I 1] Prolific writer from Nicaea or Myrlea, rst cent. BC 10,
563-565
1.2. GREEK
104
AUTHORS
[Il 2] Greek grammarian, tst/2nd cent.
10, 565
Patrocles [4] Tragedian from Athens, 4th cent. BC
10, 621
[5] Tragedian from Thurioi IO, 621
Paulus [I 4] P. Silentiarius. Greek poet and court official in Constantinople, 6th cent. 10, 634-
635 Pausanias [8] P., the Periegete 2nd cent. AD 10, 648-652
[9] Greek lexicographer, 2nd cent.
10, 652-653
Peisander [6] From Camirus in
Rhodes, Epic poet, 7th/6th cent. BC to, 682-683 [9] Mythographer, Hellenistic period 10, 683 [10] From Laranda, Mythographer, 3rd cent. AD 10, 683684
Peisinus Author of an epic 10, 684 Peritas Epigrammatic poet
Pherenicus [2] Epic poet from Heraclea, Hellenistic period?
10, 952
Cont. | Diy LL
Philemon [2] Writer of the Attic New Comedy, c. 300 BC
Perses [5] Epigrammatist 10, 816 Persinus Epic writer from Ephesus of Miletus, Hellenistic period
Doo wii, 7 Philetaerus [1] Attic poet of the Middle Comedy, 4th cent. BC II, 17-18
Philiadas Poet of Megara 11, 21 Philicus Poet and tragedian of Corcyra (Corfu), 3rd cent. BC Ties Pat Philinne Poetess 11, 21-22 Philinus [2] Attic orator, 4th cent. [3] Tragedian, 4th cent.
BC 1) 6a 29) [5] P. of Acragas. Historian, 3rd cent. BC
official and historiographer, 6th 10, 886-887
[5] P. Sikeliotes Anti-Paulician historian, 9th cent. 10, 887 Phaedimus [7] Elegist, 3rd cent. BC 10, 894
Phaenippus [2] Tragedian 3rd cent. BC 10, 902 Phaennus Epigrammatist, 3rd cent. BC? 10, 902 Phaestus [3] Epicist, Hellenistic period 10, 903 Phalaecus [2] Epigrammatist, c. 400 BC?
10, 906
Phanes [2] Tragedian from Chios, 3rd cent. BC? 10,915
Phanias Epigrammatist, 2nd/rst cent. BC?
10,916
Phanocles Elegist, Hellenistic Period 10, 916-917 Phanodemus Greek historian, 4th cent. BC
carnassus, c. 300 BC
10, 918
Pharadas Satyr play from Athens, 1st cent. BC
10,920
Pherecrates Poet of the Old Comedy, 5th cent. BC 10, 949-
951
Pherecydes [1] P. of Syrus. Mythographer and cosmologist, 6th Cente BEY Toyo 51 [2] P. of Athens. Author of a genealogical work, 5th cent. 10, 951-952
11, 22-23
Philippides [3] Attic poet of the New Comedy, c.300 BC 11, 25 Philippus [I 30] Middle Comedy poet
11,40
[I 32] P. from Thessalonica. Epigraphist in Rome tst cent. II, 40 Philiscus [1] Poet of Middle Comedy 11, 43 [4] Tragedian of Aegina 11, 44 [5] Comic poet, 3rd cent. BC
II, 44 Philistides Scholar from Mallus
LI, 45
Philistion [3] Mimographer, Augustan period 11, 47 Philistus Greek officer and historian, 5th/4th cent. BC 11, 48-
49
73
Philonicus Comic poet, c. 400 BC tet
Philonides [1] Attic poet of Old Comedy 11, 87 [2] Of Laodicea, Epicurean and mathematician, 3rd-—2nd cents. BC
II, 49-50
Comedy
11, 88
Philoponus, Iohannes Christian polymath in Alexandria, c. 490575 11, 89-91 Philostephanus [1] P. of Cyrene. Pupil of Callimachus, 3rd cent. BC 11, 112-113 [2] Comic poet, 3rd/2nd cent. Bes Aaa, ei Philostorgius Church historian,
2nd half of the 4th cent. II, 113-114 Philostratus [1] Attic orator, 4th cent. BC
11,114
[2] Comic poet, 3rd cent. BC 1 ep [3] P. of Lemnos Tragic and comic poet, 3rd/2znd cent. BC 1) ag [4] Epigrammatist 11,114 [5] Rhetor and versatile author, 2nd/3rd cent.
11,
114-117
[6] Rhetor, father of Ph. [5]? PEL EES
[7] Sophist in Athens 11, 118 [8] Author, c. 250% 11, 118120 Philoxenides Writer of satyr plays from Oropos rst cent. BC ney Eos Philoxenus [2] Of Cythera, dithyramb poet, from 435/34 to 380/79 BC
11,123
[3] OfLeucas, gastronomic poet
123-124
[4] Epigrammatist, c. 250 BC?
biplane
|
[8] Greek grammarian from
iat 6% Philo [I ro] Ph. Historicus. JewishHellenistic historian, before 40
BC Xi, 54-55 [I 18] From Metapontion, Aulus player and writer 11, 62 [Il 19] Epigrammatist 11, 62 Philocles [4] P. of Athens. Trage-
dian, 5th cent. BC 11, 64 [6] P. of Athens. Tragedian, 4th cent. BC 11, 65 [7] Writer of New Comedy, 2nd cent. BC
11, 87-88
[3] Poet of Middle or New
II,
Philitas [1] P. of Cos Poet and philologist, Hellenistic Period [2] P. of Samos. Epigrammatist
10, 917
Phanostratus Tragedian from Hali-
BC
iLL, LG
[5] Attic lexicographer around 200 BG 1, 16 [7] Atticist and grammarian c.
10, 827
Petrus [4] P. Patricius Byzantine
Philodemus Epicurean philosopher and poet, c. r10-40 BC 11, 68-
1a
D0, 1416.
[3] P. the Younger. Attic comedy writer, 3rd cent. BC 11, 16 [4] Attic comedy writer, 2nd
BEM
10, 804
cent.
68
Philagrus Rhetor from Cilicia, 2nd
Cent; DG
Philodamus Choral lyricist from Scarpheia, 4th cent. BC 11, 67-
11, 65
Alexandria, tst cent. BC PELL Philyllius Writer of comedies, sth/4th cents. BC 11, 127 Phlegon Of Tralleis, writer of miscellanies and courtier to Hadrian
ray aes Phocas [2] P. Diaconus. Poet EI,
138-139
Phocylides [1] Poet from Miletus, c. 540 BC 11,145 [2] Pseudo-Phocylides. Hellenistic-Jewish author ofa didactic poem
11, 145-146
105
1.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Phoenicides Comic poet from Megara, 3rd cent. BC 11,170 Phoenix [4] lambic poet from Colophon, 4th/3rd cent. BC 11, 171 Phormis Comic poet of Syracuse, 5th cent. BC 11, 181 Photius [2] Byzantine humanist Patriarch of Constantinople c. AD 810-c. AD 893 11, 186187
Phrynichus [1] P. from Athens Tragedian, around 500 BC I1, 198-199
[3] Writer of Attic Old Comedy II, 200 [4] Atticist lexicographer 2nd cent. AD
11, 200-201
[5] Tragedian from Athens TL Ow. Pigres Poet from Halicarnassus, c. ASO BG = 11.244 Pindarus [2] Choral lyricist LY, 266-272
Pinytus Poet from Halicarnassus, c. 480 BE 11,283 Piso [2] Epigrammatist
11, 297
Pius [2] Greek grammarian, 2nd or 3rd cent. AD? 11,311 Planudes, Maximus Monk, all-
Polybius [2] Greek historian, 3rd/2nd. cent. BC 11, 496-503 Polychares Poet, 4th cent. BC
hate Sites
Polyphrasmon Tragedian, 5th cent. KG) ani, Gey) Polystratus [2] Epicurean, 3rd cent.
11, 533-534
[3] Epigrammatist 11, 534 Polyzelus [1] Comic poet, c. 400 BC
II, 540 Pompeius. [I 2a] P. Macer, Cn. Author (Latin and Greek)
II, 556 Poseidippus [1] Comic poet from Cassandrea, c.290 BC 11, 670671
{2] P. of Pella Elegist and epi-
348/7 BC x1, 338-352
[2] Poet of the Old Comedy, 5th/4th cents. BC 11, 352553
[5] P. the Younger. Epigrammist, ESE Cents
11, 354
Platonius Literary theorist
IT, 354
205-270
I1, 395-403
Plutarchus [2] Greek author from Chaeronea, c. AD 45 — before AD 125 11, 410-425 Polemaeus [2] Tragedian of Ephesus, ist cent. BC 11, 454 Polemarchus [3] Greek grammarian tst cent. BC/rst cent. AD
IT, 455
Polemon [2] P. of Ilium Hellenistic periegetic writer
11, 458-459
[3] Author of a satyr play, 2nd cent.
11,459
[6] M. Antonius P. Rhetor, c. 90146
I1, 460-461
Poliochus Attic comic poet, 5th cent. BC 11, 469 Pollianus Epigrammatist 11, 492 Pollux [2] Grammarian and rhetor
IT, 493
Polyaenus [2] Rhetor, c. 60 BC II, 495
grammatist
[3] Epigrammatist 11, 495 [4] Rhetor and lawyer at Rome, and ceni. 11, 495
11, 671-672
cent. BC 11, 672 Poseidonius [2] Greek grammarian,
2nd cent. BC 11, 682-683 [4] Corinthian author of a didactic poem
11, 687
Poses Comedian from Athens, rst 11, 687
Pratinas Of Phlius, poet, inventor of satyr plays, c. 500 BC I1, 781-782
Praxilla Lyric poetess from Sicyon, c.450 BC 11,784 Priscus [1] Greek grammarian Tio
[4] Greek historian and rhetor,
sth cent.
11,874
Proaeresius Of Caesarea, Christian Sophist, born c. 276 11,890
Procleides Attic comic poet, 4th cent. BC
12,114
historian, emissary to Rome in 204 BC 12, 152-153
[60] Greek grammarian from Alexandria, 2nd cent. BC
LIPESy
[61] Greek grammarian, 2nd Cent, DG i255 [62] Greek grammarian, rst cent.
[63] P. of Ascalon Greek grammarian at Rome, tst cent. 1, TG Ge
[64] P. Chennus Mythographer and paradoxographer from Alexandria, 1st cent. 12,159 [65] Claudius P. Astronomer, author of seminal scientific works, 2nd cent. 12, 159170 [67] Peripatetic, 2nd cent.
i), tert
[3] Athenian comic poet, 2nd
cent. BC
Plotinus Founder of Neoplatonism,
Romance
Pseudo-Longinus Hypothetical author of the treatise ‘On the Sublime’ 12, 117-120 Ptolemaeus [31] Of Megalopolis,
ItPap, SoS!
1305
Plato [1] The philosopher, 428/7 -
12, 108-109
Pseudo-Callisthenes Supposed author of the Alexander
IT, 540 [2] P. of Rhodes Author ofa local history of Rhodes, c. 300 BC
round scholar, c. AD 1255-c. AD
LL, 335-336
BO@NI25 97, Psellos Byzantine writer, jurist and politician, born c. AD 1018
II, 506
Polyclitus [6] Comic poet, 3rd cent. TRC, stil Gay) Polycritus Historian from western Greece, middle of the 4th cent. BG res 08 Polyidus [5] Dithyrambic poet, 4th Contin DOy Ties 27, Polymnestus Epic and elegiac poet of Colophon, 7th cent. BC
BC
Prytanis [3] Peripatetic, 3rd cent.
11,910
Proclus [2] Neoplatonist philosopher, sth cent. 11, 911-917 Procopius [3] Historian 11, 92192 Promathidas From Heraclea on the Pontus. Local historian, before Zou Go 2.05) Protagoras [1] Of Abdera, the first sophist, sth cent. BC 12, 62-64 Protarchus [1] Comic poet from
Thespiae, rst cent. BC 12, 65 [3] Tragedian from Thebes, rst cent. BC 12, 65
[Go| Poet maar Publius. [1] Tragedian
12, 192 Pyres Poet from Miletus 12, 266 Pyrrhen Attic comedian, 4th cent. BiG
Wiea 27
Pythangelus Tragedian, 5th cent. BG
ie 87
Pytheas [5] From Phigalia, poet, Hellenistic period? 12, 289290 Pythermus Lyricist from Teos, 6th cent. BC
12,290
Python [2] Author ofa satyr play 12, 299 Quintus [3] Q. Of Smyrna, epic poet, 3rd cent.?
12, 355-357
[4] Epigrammatist
12, 357-358 Quirinus [2] Of Nicomedia, sophist, c.200 12, 360 Rarus Epigrammatist 12, 397 Rhianus Poet and Homeric philologist, 3rd cent. BC 12, 562-
563
Rhinthon OfSyracuse, burlesque poet, c.300 BC 12, 565 Romanos [1] R. Melodos, ‘the Melodist’ Byzantine hymnographer, sth/6th cent. AD 668
12, 667-
Rufinus [I 1] Epigrammatist ees Goya [I 2] R. (Rufus?) Domesticus Epzgrammatist
12,751
106
I.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Rufus [8] Rhuphos Historian and paradoxographer, Roman imperialera 12,758 Sabinus [3] S. Grammaticus Epigrammatist
12, 816
Salustius [1] Greek grammarian 12,908
Samius Epigrammatist
12, 925-
926
Sannyrion Attic comedic poet, end of the 5th cent. BC 12,956 Sappho Greek poet c. 600 BC 12, 961-964
Satyrion Poet of New Comedy, 3rd cent. BC 13, 36 Satyrius Epigrammatist of uncer-
tain identity 13, 36-37 Satyrus [7] Biographer, 3rd cent.
BC?
13, 38-39
[8] Epigrammatist 13, 39-40 Sciras From Tarentum, poet of ‘Ttalic comedy,’ c. 300 BC
13,94 Sclerias Tragic poet, dates unknown
13,97
Scopelianus Of Clazomenae, sophist c. 80-115 13, LOL Scythinus lambic poet from Teos, perhaps 5th or 4th cent. BC 13) bou—1 62
Secundus [2] S. of Tarentum Epigrammatist
13,194
Seleucus [13] S. Homericus Greek grammarian from Alexandria, rst cent.
13, 222-223
[14] S. from Emesa Poet of an indeterminate period
13, 223
Semonides of Amorgos Early iambographer, 7th cent. BC
13, 242-243
Semus Greek antiquarian, c. 200
258
Serapion [3] Friend of Plutarchus, tst/2nd cents. 13,304 [6] S. of Alexandria Author of a funerary epigram 13, 305 Sextus [II 2] S. Iulius Africanus Author of the first Christian world chronicle, c. 200
13, 372-373
Silenus [1] S. from Caleacte Greek historian, 2nd cent. BC 13, 456 [2] Glossographer, c. 2nd cent.
BC
13, 457
[3] Tragedian, rst cent. BC
13,457
[4] S. of Chios Mythographer
13,457 Simias From Rhodes, Alexandrian poet and grammarian, c. 300 BC 13, 480-481
Simmias [2] S. of Rhodes — see Simias Simonides [1] lambographic poet
13, 486
[2] Lyric poet, 6th/s5th cents. BC 13, 486-488
[3] Greek historian? 13, 488 [4] Epic poet of Magnesia, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 13, 488 Simos [2] S. of Magnesia Hellenistic lyricpoet see Simodia (13, 481-
482) Simplicius Neoplatonic philoso-
pher, c. 490-560
13, 490-492
Simylus [1] Poet of the New Comedy, 3rd cent. BC 13, 493 [2] Poet, around the birth of Christ 13, 493 Socrates [7] S. of Argos. Author from the Hellenistic Period [9] Greek Church historian, c. 13, 600-601
Sodamus Poet 13, 604 Sogenes Poet of the New Comedy, 2nd cent. BC 13, 606 Solon [1] S. of Athens Poet, legislator, c.600 BC 13, 620-625
Sopater [1] Greek rhetorician, 4th cent. AD 13, 633-634 [2] Hellenistic poet, c. 300 BC
13, 634
Sophilus [2] Poet of Middle Comedy, 4th cent. BC 13, 636 Sophocles [1] Attic tragedian, 5th cent. BC 13, 640-648 [3] Tragedian, rst half 4th cent. BC 13, 648 [4] Tragedian and poet, rst cent.
BC
13, 649
Sophocleus Grammarian, late 2nd cent.
13, 663
[2] Hellenistic poet, 3rd cent. BC 13, 665-666
Soterichus Epic writer, 3rd/4th cents.
13, 668
Sotion [2] Author of a history of philosophy, 2nd cent. BC 13,670
Sozomenus Church historian, 5th cent.
13,684
Spintharus Tragic poet, 4th cent.
BC
13,738
Stasinus Of Cyprus, epic poet of unknown date
13,787
Stephanus [2] New Comedy poet
13, 600
400
[5] Hellenistic poet
Sotades [1] Attic poet of the Middle Comedy, 4th cent. BC 13, 664
13,649
Sophron [1] Poet, 2nd half of the 5th cent. BC 13, 649-651 Sosibios [3] Grammarian, chrono-
grapher and cult author, c. 200 BC 13, 657 Sosicrates Comic poet 13, 658 Sosigenes [2] Comedy writer, 2nd
cent. BC 13, 658 [4] Peripatetic, 2nd cent. 13,658
Sosipater Poet of New Comedy
13, 658-659
Sosiphanes [1] Tragedian, died 336/333 or 324/321 BC 13, 659
[2] Tragedian, born 306/5 BC
13,659
Sosippus Comedy writer 13,659 Sosistratus [3] Tragedy writer, mid— 2nd cent. BC 13, 660 Sositheus Satyr playwright and Pleias tragedian, rst half of the 3rd cent. BC 13, 660 Sostratus [2] Of Chalcis, tragedian, tst cent. BC 13, 663 [3! Of Nysa, Greek geographer, tst cent. BC 13, 663
£3, 32%
[7] S. of Byzantium Greek grammarian, 6th cent. 13, 822824
[10] Byzantine grammarian, early 7th cent. 13, 825 [13] Grammarian, 12th cent. 13, 826
Stesichoros [1] Lyric poet, 6th cent. BC 13, 828-830
[2] Dithyrambic poet, 4th cent. BC
13, 830
Stesimbrotus From Thasus, rhapsode and exegete of Homer, sth cent. BC 13, 831-832 Sthenelus [5] Tragedian, end of the sth cent. BC 13, 833 Stobaeus. Greek author of an anthology, 5th cent. 13, 846850
Strabo [1] Greek geographer and historian, Augustan Period 13, 865-869
Stratagus Comic poet, 3rd cent. BC 13, 869
Straton [1] Attic comedy writer, 4th cent. BC 13, 875 [8] S. of Sardeis. Epigrammatist 13, 877 Strattis [2] Attic comic poet, sth/4th cents. BC 13, 881
Susarion Allegedly the earliest Attic comic poet
13,969-970
Symmachus [I 1] Author of acommentary on Aristophanes, rst
half of the 2nd cent. 14, 4-5 [I 2] Translator of the Hebrew Bible into Greek, 2nd/3rd cent.
4,5
Synesius [1] S. of Cyrene Neoplatonist philosopher and bishop, c. AD 400 14, 24-25 [2] S. Scholastikos Epigrammatist, 6th cent. AD 14,25 Tauriscus [1] Grammarian, 2nd
cent. BC 14, 168 Telecleides Writer of the Attic Old Comedy, 2nd half of the 5th cent. BC
14,220
107
I.2. GREEK AUTHORS
Telephus [3] Greek grammarian, 2nd cent. AD 14, 230 Telesilla From Argos, poet, c.
451/450 BC 14, 231 Telestes [2] From Selinus, dithyramb poet, c.400 BC 14, 233 Terpander Cithar player, early 7th cent. BC 14,295 Terpsion [2] Founder of gastronomical poetry, presumably ath cent. BC 14,296 Teucer [3] Greek historian, rst cent.
BC
14, 330
Thaletas Choral lyricist, 7th cent. BG, 14,362: Theaetetus [2] Writer of epigrams, first half of the 3rd cent. BC
14, 374
[3] T. Scholasticus Writer ofepigrams, 6th cent. 14,374 Theagenes [2] Greek scholar and author of a treatise on Homer,
6th cent. BC 14, 374-375 [4] Greek grammarian, rst half of the 2nd cent. 14,375 [7] Greek historian 14, 376 Themistogenes Author of awork on Cyrus [3], c. 400 BC?
14, 430-431 Theocritus [2] Poet, 3rd cent. BC
14, 433-437
Theodectes Athenian rhetor and tragedian, 4th cent. BC
14, 439-441 Theodoretus [2] Byzantine gram~ marian and author ofapneumatological lexicon 14, 451 Theodoridas Poet from Syracuse,
2nd half 3rd cent. BC 14, 451 Theodorides Tragic poet, 4th cent.
BC
14,451
Theodorus [I 3] T. of Byzantium Orator, 5th/4th cent. BC
14, 454
[I 10] Tragedian, 2nd cent. BC
14,456 [I 11] Epigrammatist
14, 457 [I 16] T. of Gadara, Greek rhetor, 2nd half of the rst cent. BC
14, 457-458
[1 x7] Greek glossographer, probably rst half of the rst cent.
14,458
[I 18] Author of a satirical monodistich, 1st cent.? 14, 458 [I 24] Several undatable poets
14, 460
{I 26] Author of an hexameter epitaph 14, 461 [1 33] T. Proconsul Epigrammatic poet, 6th cent. 14, 463 [137] T. Prodromos Versatile Byzantine author, 12th cent.
14, 465-466
Theodosius [I 3] Greek grammarian from Alexandria 14, 470
Theodotos [9] Iulius T. Sophist from Melite, 2nd cent. 14, 479 [10] Gnostic, period of Valenti-
nus [1] 14, 479
Theognetus Comic poet, 3rd cent. BC
14, 480-481
Theognis [1] Elegiac poet, 6th cent. BC
14, 481-483
[2] Athenian tragic poet, late 5th cent. BC 14, 483 Theognostus Byzantine grammarian, 9th cent. 14, 484 Theolytus Author of Bacchic songs Theon [2] Comedy writer, 3rd cent.
14,497
[4] Alexandrian grammarian, Augustan Period 14, 498 [6] Orator and earliest author of rhetorical progymndsmata, 1st
cent. 14, 499-500 Theophanes [2] T. Homologetes Author ofa world chronicle, late 8th/early 9th cents. 14, 503 Theophilus [1] Comic poet, 4th cent. BC 14, 505 Theophrastus Peripatetic philosopher, c. 371/0-287/6 BC
14, 508-517 Theophylactus [1] T. Simocatta Byzantine historian, 7th cent.
14, 517-518 Theopompus [2] Athenian comic poet, 5th/4th cents. BC
14, 518-519 [3] Th. of Chios Greek historian, 4th cent. BC 14, 519-521 [5] C. Iulius Th. Of Cnidus,
mythographer and friend of Caesar, rst cent. BC 14, 521 [6] Th. of Colophon Epic poet
14, 521
Theosebeia Poet, probably 6th Cent.
TA, §27
Theotimus Greek historian ofthe Hellenistic period 14, 529 Thespis Tragedian, second half of the 6th cent. BC 14, 567-568 Theudotus Greek tragedian, rst cent. BC
circle, rst cent. BC
14, 645
Thymocles Epigrammatist, 3rd cent. BC
14, 648
Thymoteles Athenian comedy writer, late 2nd cent. BC 14, 649 Tiberius [I 1] Greek rhetor, prob. late 3rd/4th cent. 14,656 Timaeus [2] T. of Tauromenium Western Greek historican, c.
350-260 BC
14, 496
BC
Thugenides Poet of the Old Comedy, first half of the 5th cent. BC 14, 638 Thyillus Epigrammatist in Cicero’s
14, 583
Thoas [6] Greek glossographer, before the 4th cent. BC 14, 590 Thomas [2] T. Scholasticus Epigrammarian, probably 6th cent.
14, 594 [3] T. Patricius Epigrammarian,
€..900 14, 594-595 [4] T. Magistros Byzantine
author and philologist from Thessalonica, c. 1275-1350
14, 595 Thrasymachus From Chalcedon,
sophist rhetorician, late 5th cent. BC 14, 622-623 Thucydides [2] T. of Athens Greek historian, 2nd half of 5th cent. BC 14, 632-637
14, 677-679 [5] Greek lexicographer 14, 680
Timagenes [1] T. of Alexandria Greek rhetor and historian, rst
cent. BC 14, 680-681 Timesitheus [1] Tragedian
14, 694 Timocles [1] Athenian author of
comedies, 2nd half of the 4th cent. BC 14, 696 [2] Author of comedies and tragedies, mid 4th cent. BC
14, 697
Timocreon From Ialysus in Rhodes, lyricist and elegist, early 5th cent. BC 14, 698 Timolaus [3] From Larisa, Greek rhetor, c. 3rd cent. BC 14, 699 Timon [2] Greek poet and skeptic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC
14, 703-704 Timostratus [1] Tragic poet, 4th cent. BC 14,706 [2] Athenian comedy writer, beginning of the 2nd cent. BC 14, 706
Timotheus [2] Citharist and poet from Miletus, early 4th cent. BC 14, 707-708 [3] Tragedian, early 4th cent. BC 14, 708
[6] Poet of the Attic Middle Comedy 14,709 [9] Attic Comic poet, early 2nd cent. BC 14,710
[13] T. IV Patriarch of Alexandria 517-535 14,712 [14] T. of Gaza Byzantine Grammarian and Popular Scientist, Coy OOM eIAS tea: Timoxenos [2] Athenian comic
poet, mid—2nd cent. BC
14, 713
Triclinius Philologist and textual critic, c.AD 1280-1340 Demetrius V [43]
see
Triphiodorus Epic poet, 2nd halfof 3rd cent. 14, 929-930 Troilus [2] T. from Side Sophist, 4th—-5th cents. 14,962 Tryphon [3] Greek grammarian, 2nd half of the rst cent. BC
14, 988-989
I.2. GREEK
[5] Epigrammatist 14, 989-990 [7] Greek grammarian of unde-
termined period 14,990 Tullius [I 14] Epigrammatist, rst cent. BC see Laureas [Il 15] T. Sabinus Epigrammatist Hop eae {Il 4] T. Geminus Epigrammatist FiGyn Wat Tymnes Epigrammatist, 3rd or 2nd cent. BC? 15, 56 Tynnichus Choral lyricist, 7th cent. BC? 15, 58-59 Tyrannion [1] Greek grammarian, tst cent. BC 15, 62-63 [2] The Younger, Greek grammarian, 1st cent. BC 15, 63 Tyrannus Greek rhetor, 4th or 5th cent. AD
15, 66
Tyrtaeus Spartan elegist and aulete, c.640 BC 15, 69-70 Tzetzes [1] Isaac T. Byzantine scholar, c. AD 1110-1138 15,74 [2] lohannes T. Byzantine scholar and author of an extensive oeuvre, c. AD 1110-1185 15, 74-77
Varus [2] Sophist from Perge, c. 150
wyyaay Vestinus [3] L. Iulius V. Greek lexicographer, first half of the 2nd Gent.
(155343
Vettius [II 9] V. Valens Author of astrological treatises, 2nd cent.
15, 359-360
Xanthus [2] Poet, before the 6th cent. BC 15,795 [3] X. the Lydian. Author of Lydiaca, c.450 BC 15,795796 Xenagoras [1] Greek historian and geographer, probably in the 3rd Cent aBG G5, 707; Xenarchus [1] Comedy writer, 4th cent. BC 15, 798-799 [2] Poet, c.400 BC 15,799
Xenion Author of an historical treatise on Crete, 3rd cent. BC
15, 804 Xenocles [2] Attic tragic poet, end of sth cent. BC 15, 806 [8] Rhetor and politician of the 2nd and rst cents. BC 15, 807
Xenocrates [3] Tragic poet, 3rd ihe JG, it, tenure) Xenocritus [1] Choral lyricist of the 7th cent.BC 15, 811 [3] From Cos, Greek gramma15, 812
[4] X. of Rhodes Poet 15, 812 Xenodamus Choral lyric poet, 7th cent. BC
Xenomedes Of Ceos, logographer, sth cent. BC 15, 816 Xenon [4] Writer of New Comedy, 3rd cent. BC 15, 817 [5] Alexandrian grammarian, 2nd cent. BC 15, 817 Xenophanes [1] X. of Colophon Greek poet, philosopher of nature, 6th/5th cent. BC 15,
819-822
[3] From Lesbos, iambographer
15, 823 Xenophon [2] X. of Athens Greek historian, Socratic, c. 430-354 BC 15, 824-833 [3] Comic poet, c. 400 BC
15, 833
[ro] X. of Ephesus Novelist, probably 2nd cent. 15, 834-836 Zelotus Epigrammatist, rst cent. 15, 881 Zenis [2] From Chios, author of a
work on his homeland, 4th cent. BC? 15, 882 Zeno [14] Z. of Myndus Greek grammarian, early Imperial Period 15,894 [15] Greek rhetorician, 2nd cent.
AD
15, 812
Zopyrus [4] Z. from Heraclea Orphic poet 15,963 [6] From Magnesia, Greek historian, 4th/3rd cents. BC
15,963
[10] Greek tragedy writer 15, 964 Zosimus [1] Of Thasos, epigrammatist, probably between 150 BCand AD 50 15,970 [3] Confidant and medical advisor of Aelius Aristides, 2nd
15, 823
Xenophilus [1] Comedy writer of the sth cent. BC 15, 823 [4] Greek historian, after 600 BC
15,894
Zenobius [2] Z. Grammaticus Greek scholar in Rome, at the time of Hadrian 15, 901-902 [3] From Elusa in Palestine, rhe-
tor, 4th cent. 15, 902 Zenodorus [2] Greek grammarian from the Hellenistic period
15, 903
Zenodotus [1] Of Ephesus, Alexan-
drian philologist 15, 904-906 [2] Z. of Troizen Greek historian of the Hellenistic period 15, 906
[3] Z. ‘the Stoic’ Author of an epigramme in praise of Zeno of Citium
Xenocleides [2] Athenian poet, 4th cent. BC 15, 805
rian
108
AUTHORS
15,906
[4] Z. of Alexandria Greek grammarian, 2nd or rst cent. BC
cent.
15,970
[5] Historian, c. 500
15,971I-
973
[6] Z. of Ascalon Greek grammarian, c. AD 500 15,973
Zotion Tragic poet, 2nd cent. BC 15,974
1.3. Latin authors On Latin literature cf. Subject Index 11.6. and CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1. Ablabius [3] Historiographer, 4th5th cent. AD 1, 23 Accius, L Roman poet of tragedies I, 61-64
Acilius [I 2] A., C. Roman historian, 2nd cent. BC 1,99 Acro Roman grammarian, prob-
ably from the 2nd half of the 2nd cent. see Helenius Acron Actorius Naso, M., author of a work about Caesar 1, 127
Aelius [I 14] Ae. Tubero, L. Legate 61-58 BC, historian 1, 203 [I 17] Ae. Tubero, Q. Jurist and historian, rst cent. BC 1, 204 [II 20] Stilo Praeconinus, L. Roman scholar, c. roo BC 1, 207 Aemilius Asper Roman grammarian
1,218
Aemilius [II 10] Macer. Poet from Verona, 1st cent. BC 1, 217 Afranius [4] L. Roman comic poet
I, 290-291 Agrestius Author of epistle
I, 372-373
[7] Z. Aetolus Commentator on
Agricola [2] Son of the emperor Avitus, 5th cent. AD 1, 373 Agroecius Bishop ofSens, grammarian, middle of 5th cent. AD
Aratus 15,907 [10] Tragic poet 15,908
Aithanarid Scholar, c. AD 500
15, 906-907
[5] Z. aus Mallus Philologist, 2nd or 1st cent. BC 15,907
Zoilos [1] Greek Sophist from Ampbhipolis, 4th cent. BC
15, 947 [8] Greek grammarian
15, 948-
949 Zonaras Byzantine historian and ecclesiastical jurist 15, 950-951 Zopyrion [2] Greek grammarian c. TOO
15,962
I, 396 I, 408
Albinovanus [4] Celsus, private secretary of the young Tiberius
I, 430 [5] Pedo. Friend of Ovid, poet I, 430 Albius [6] see Tibullus Albucius [3] Silus, C. Roman orator,c.50 BC-AD 16 1, 433
109
1.3. LATIN AUTHORS
Alcimus [5] Latinus A. Alethius. Rhetorician, writer of panagyrics and poet 1,451 Alfius [1] Historian, rst cent. BC
15, 504
[4] Avitus. Latin poet of the 2nd/3rd cents. AD 15, 504 Amatfinius, C. Author of didactic writings 1,555 Ambrosius Bishop of Milan after
374 5572-574
Ammianus Marcellinus Historian,
4th cent. AD 1, 584-587 Ampelius, L Author of an encyclopaedia, probably 4th cent. AD
I, 596 Ampius [2] Balbus, T., Praetor 59 BC, historian 1, 617 Annianus Latin lyricist of the 2nd cent. AD
1,705
Annius Fetialis Roman historian,
tst cent. AD
1,709
Anser [2] Love poet, probably rst Conta,
Asinius [I 4] A. Pollio. C. Cos. 40 BC, historian
2, 159-160
Asmonius Latin grammarian from the 4th cent. AD 2, 163-164 Ateius [5] A. Philologus, L. Scholar, teacher of grammar and rhetoric, ist cent. BC 2, 222-223 Atilius [I 1] Author ofpalliata, 2nd cent. BC 2, 287 Aufidius [II o] A. Bassus. Roman historian, rst cent. AD 2, 336Sf
Augustinus, Aurelius (Augustine) Church father, theologist, AD
354-430
2, 355-362
Ausonius, Decimus Magnus From
Auspicius of Toul Bishop, corre-
1 FOR
Antonius [6] Biographer of Symeon Stylita, 5th cent. AD
1, 800
Antonius [I 12] Gnipho, M. From
Gallia, Teacher of the younger C. Iulius Caesar 1, 805-806 Ap(p)uleius [II] A. of Madaura Roman literator ofthe 2nd cent.
1, 905-909
Apicius Cookbook author see Caelius Apicius Apollinaris Sidonius see Sidonius Apollinaris Aprissius Atellana poet from the 2nd/tst cent. BC 1,910 Apthonius Latin grammarian 4th cent. AD see Asmonius Aquila [5] Romanus. Orator ofthe 2nd half of the 3rd cent. AD
I, 929 Aquillius {I 15] A. Niger. Historian, c. 1st cent. AD 1,934 [I 16] Poet of the Roman comedy ( Palliata) in the 2nd cent. BC
I, 934
Aquinus [1] Poet of the rst cent. BC
spondent of Sidonius 2, 395 Avianus Author ofa collection of 42 fables, beginning ofthe 5th cent.
AD
2, 423-424
Avienus Roman poet of the mid 4th cent. AD
2, 426-427
Avitus [2] Alcimus Ecdicius. Bishop of Vienna in 494, author ofBible epics
2, 428-429
Bassus [1] Friend of Ovid
2, 544
Bavius, M. Roman poet, rst cent.
BG
2a5(6A
Beda Venerabilis (The Venerable
Bede) Anglo-Saxon, theologian and historian 2, 570-573 Benedict of Nursia Founder of religious order, c. AD 500 2, 594-
596
Blossius [1] Latin poet and advocate, 5th cent. AD see Dracontius Boethius, Anicius Manlius Severi-
maticus (1st cent. BC)
1,
1104
Arnobius [1] of Sicca. Christian Rhetor ofthe 3rd/4th cent. AD 2, 17-19 Arruntius [II 2] L. Cos. ord. 22 BC, historian 2, 30 [Il 9] A. Celsus. Latin grammarian of the Imperial age, lived before Constantine 2,30 [Il 12] A. Stella, L. Cos. suff. AD totr/2, Patron of Statius and
Martialis
2, 31%
senator and historian, 2nd cent. BC 2, 1003
{III 2] C. Flaccus. Latin rhetor, c. AD 100 2, 1003-1004 [III 3] C. Siculus, T. Bucolic poet 2, 1004 Canius Rufus Known through Martial, best known as a historian
2D LOSS Cannutius [1] P. Orator, rst cent.
BiGm 2052) Carminius [6] Latin grammarian,
4th cent. BC 2, 1114-1115 Carus [1] [2] Poet friend of Ovid
2, T1145 Carvilius [2] C., Sp. Leader of a scribal school 2, 1146 Cassiodorus Roman politician and scholar, c. AD 490-590 2, LUOL E63 Cassius [III 3] C. Etruscus. Poet with a rapid and vast output, rst Cents BO 2,7 172)
[III 4] C. Felix. Physician and translator, 5th cent. AD
2 LL m73 {Ill 5] C. Hemina, L. Roman Annalist, 2nd cent. BC
PD, ily) {ll 7] C. Longinus. 2, 1174 {III 8] C. Severus. Orator in Rome 2, 1174
Cato [1] Porcius C., M. Cato the Elder, 234-149 BC 3, 20-23 Catullus [1] Valerius C., C. Roman poet, rst cent. BC 3, 31-34 [2] C. Mimographus. Writer of mimes, ist cent. AD 3, 34 Catulus [1] Epigrammatist. see Lutatius Catulus, Q. Celsus, [II] [7] Cornelius C., A. Author of encyclopedias, rst cent. AD 3, 74-75 Censorinus [4] Grammarian, 1st
706
Cestius [II 4] C. Pius, L. From
rian, rst cent. BC
2,793
Caecilius [III 6] C. Statius. Roman
1,954
Aristius [2] Fuscus, poet and gram-
Caesius [II 8] C. Bassus. Lyrical poet of the rst cent. AD 2,923 Calpurnius [I rr] C. Piso, C. Roman historian 2, 997 [III 1] C. Piso Frugi, L. Roman
nus Latin writer and philosopher, c. AD 480-524 2, 701-
Bruttedius Niger Rhetor and histo-
1,936
Arator Christian poet of the 6th cent.
tor on the works of Cicero, 1st cent. AD 2, 106-107
Burdigala, poet and politician, 4th cent. 2, 392-395
ai. i7bs
Anthimus [1] Greek doctor
AD
Arulenus [2] Iunius A. Rusticus, Q. Cos. suff.92 AD 2, 82 Arusianus Messius Teacher ofrhetoric in Late Antiquity 2, 82 Asconius Pedianus, Q. Commenta-
comic poet, ca. 230/220-168 BC 2, 885-887
Caelius [II 10] C. Apicius. Author of aRoman cookbook, 4th cent.
AD
2, 893-894
Caesar C. Julius, Roman politician,
orator and author, died AD 44 2, 9OO-916
Caesarius [4] of Arelate. c. AD 470-
542 2, 919-920 Caesellius Vindex Roman lexicographer 2,921
half of the 3rd cent. AD
3, 105
Smyrna, rhetor from the Augustan period 3, 168-169 Cetius Faventinus, M. Latin
author, 3rd cent. AD (?) 3,170 Charisius [3] C., Flavius Sosipater. Latin grammarian, 4th cent. AD
3, 197 Chirius Fortunatianus, C. Author
of didactic writings
see Con-
sultus Fortunatianus, C.
Cicero Roman orator, philosopher and politician, 106-43 BC
353073327 Cincius [1] C., L. Antiquarian author, rst cent. BC? 3, 340-
341
1.3. LATIN
IIo
AUTHORS
Claudianus [2] Claudius C. Graeco-Latin poet, c. AD 400
3, 386-389
[4] C. Mamertus. Presbyter in Vienne (Gaul), 5th cent. AD
3, 389-390 Claudius [I 2] C. Caecus, Ap. Censor 312 BC 3, 391-392 [I 30] C. Quadrigarius, Q. Histo-
riographer, rst half of the rst cent. BC
3, 395-396
[Ill x] Emperor, AD 41-54
Cledonius Latin grammarian, 5th cent. AD 3, 416 Clemens [1] of Rome. 3rd bishop of Rome, 2nd cent. AD (?) 3, 424426
Cloatius Verus Roman lexicographer, perhaps from the early Augustan period 3, 457 Clodius [I 6] C. Scriba. Quoted in Servius Auctus as a glossographer 3, 468 [II 6] C.C. Licinus. Cos. suff. AD 4, historiographer 3,469 [Ill xr] C., Ser. Eques and philologist, rst half of the rst cent.
3,470
[HI 2] C., Sex. Rhetor from Sicily, tst cent. BC 3, 470 Cluvius [II 3] P.C.Rufus. Cos. suff. before AD 65, historiographer
3, 486 Coelius [I 1] C. Antipater, L. Histo-
riographer, late 2nd cent.
BC
3, SO5-S06
Columella Writer on agriculture, ist cent.
3, 831 [II 18] C. Gallus. Creator of the
Roman love elegy, born 69/68 BC 3, 831-832 {II 19] C. Labeo. Author of works on Roman religion 3, 832 {Il 55] C. Severus. Augustan epic poet
35 405-409
BC
Cornelius [I 30] C. Epicadus. Freedman ofSulla 3, 812 Cornelius [II 15] M.C. Fronto. Author, cos. suff. AD 142
3, 584-586
Cominianus Latin grammarian of the rst half of the 4th cent. in Constantinople 3, 618 Cominius [II 1] C.C. Roman eques,
tst half of the rst cent. AD 3, 619 Commodianus Christian Latin poet between the 3rd and 5th cent. AD 3, 652 Consentius Latin grammarian of the sth cent. AD, perhaps from Narbo 3,701 Constantius [8] of Lugdunum.
Author of a Vita S. Germani c.
AD 475 3,725
Consultus Fortunatianus Author of a Latin manual 3,743-744 Corippus, Flavius Cresconius Latin epic poet, 6th cent. AD 3, 804805
Cornelius Bocchus Source of Pliny’s Naturalis Historia 3, 836-837 Cornelius Sisenna_ see Sisenna Cornelius [I 7] C. Balbus, L. Roman citizen from 72 BC, official, poet ofaPraetexta 3, 809
3, 836
Cornificius [4] C. Longus. Roman scholar, late rst cent. BC 3, 838 Cornutus [4] L. Annaeus Cornutus.
Stoic philosopher and scholar, tst cent. AD 3,840 Cosconius [I 5] C., Q. Witness of
the poet Terence’s death in 159 BC 3, 859-860 Crassicius Pasicles (Pansa), L. From
Tarentum, known for his com-
mentary tst cent. Cremutius grapher,
on Cinna Zmyrna, late BC 3, 913 Cordus Roman historioAugustan senator
3,929 Curiatius [1] C. Maternus. Roman
orator and tragedian 15, 10231024 Curtius [II 8] Q.C. Rufus. Author of an Alexander monograph 3, 1025-1026
{II ro] C. Valerianus. Latin grammarian, presumably 5th cent. AD 3, 1026 Cyprianus [1] C. Gallus. Heptateuch poet see Heptateuch
poet(6, 145) Dares [3] Supposedly a witness of the Trojan War 4,91 Dictys Cretensis Fictitious author of an eyewitness account of the Trojan War 4,378 Diomedes [4] Latin grammarian of the 2nd half of the 4th cent. AD
mented by an Oscan-Greek coin 4, 697 Dracontius [3] Blossius Aemilius D. Latin poet, late 5th cent. AD,
advocate in Carthage
4, 708-
799
Egnatius [I 4] Spaniard, author of a didactic poem 4, 842 Endelechius Probably the rhetor of Gallic origin, teacher in Rome in AD 395, friend of Paulinus of Nola 4,969 Ennius [1] E., Q. Latin writer ofthe pre-classical period
4, 984-990
Ennodius, Magnus Felix Probably from Arles, Bishop of Pavia from
AD 513 4,990-991
Epiphanius [3] E. Scholasticus, translator 4, 1120 Eucheria Epigram, written during the 5th cent. AD in Gaul
5) 134-135
Eucherius [3] Bishop of Lyon AD 434-450, author of a Passio
5,135
Eugenius [4] Latin writing cleric, from AD 646 archbishop of Toledo 5, 158-159 Eugippius Abbot, author of a writing about S. Severin 5,159 Eugraphius Latin grammarian,
author ofa Terence comm., possibly 6th cent. AD 5,160 Eutropius [1] Author of a Lat. historical work 5, 238-239 Eutyches [2] Lat. grammarian of the 4th cent. AD 5,240 Eutychius Proculus Lat. grammarian of the 2nd cent. AD 5,241 Evanthius Lat. grammarian of the tst half of the 4th cent. AD in Constantinople
5, 247
Fabius [I 35] F. Pictor, Q. First Roman historian, works written in Greek, 3rd/2nd cent. BC
5, 295-296
45 463 Domitius [II 1] Cn. D. Afer. Latin orator of the Claudian period,
from Nemausus, praetor 4, 649-650 [II 2] D. Marsus. Poet of epigrams, contemporary of Ovid 4, 650-651
Donatus [3] Aelius D. Latin gram-
marian 4th cent. AD
Dossennus [2] Proper name, docu-
4, 663-
664
[4] Ti. Claudius D. Author ofa commentary on Virgil’s Aeneid c. AD 400 4, 664 Dorcatius Probably author of humorous didactic poems
4, 673 Dositheus [9] Latin grammarian, probably late 4th cent. AD 4, 696-697
[II 19] F. Rusticus. Friend of Seneca and historian 5,300 Fannius [I 1] F.M. f., C. Rom. senator and historian, partaker in the storming of Carthage 5,350 Fastidius Bishop in Britannia in the sth cent. AD 5, 365-366 Favonius [2] F. Eulogius. Student of Augustinus, later rhetor in Car-
thage 5,375
Fenestella Rom. historian of the early Imperial period 5, 379380
Festus [4] PF. Rufius. Author of a breviarium of Roman history, AD 372 proconsul of Asia
55 407 [6] Sex. Pompeius F. Author of an encyclopaedia 5, 407-408
1.3. LATIN AUTHORS
LiL
Filocalus, Furius Dionysius Rom. calligrapher of the 4th cent. AD
55 426 Firmicus Maternus, Iulius Author
of the most comprehensive Lat. astrological handbook, 4th cent.
AD
5, 434-435
Flaccus [2] Poet from Patavium, about AD 93/4 5,448 Flavius [II 14] F. Caper. Grammarianc. AD 200 5, 460-461 Florus [1] P. Annius F. Lat. poet and writer, rst/2nd cent. AD
5, 471-472
[2] Probably instigator of a sententia inepte tumultuosa
55472
Fonteius [I 9] Rom. writer on cults
5,491
Frontinus, S. Iulius High state official, military and technical specialist author, rst cent. AD
5, 562-563 Fronto [6] M. Cornelius F. From Cirta, orator in the time of the
adopted emperors 5, 564-565 Fuficius [3] Oldest Rom. author of a non-extant work on architecture
5,570-571
Fufius [I 2] F., L. Rom. orator in the tst cent. BC 5, 571-572 Fulgentius [1] F. Mythographus Christian, about AD 500, author of several prose works 5, 574-
55 727-728
5,
850-851
Gracchus [1] Writer of Lat. trage-
dies 5,955
Granius [I 3] G. Flaccus. Author of a commentary on cult laws of the pontifices 5,989 {Il 2] G. Licinianus Historian
probably of the 2nd cent. AD 5, 989-990 Grattius Lat. didactic poet of the Augustan period 5,995-996 Gregorius [II 2] G. of Elvira (Illiberis) Bishop of Baetica, 4th cent. AD
5, 1029
AD 6. 65-66
617-618
Fuscus, Arellius Rhetor in the
Augustan period 5, 628 Gallus [1] see Cornelius [II 18] Gallus Gargilius [4] Q. G. Martialis. Horticultural and pharmaceutical writer in the 3rd cent. AD
5, 700
Gargonius Rhetoric teacher of the Augustan period 5, 700-701 Gaudentius [6] Gaudentius. Commentator on Vergil, c. AD 400
FUT Gavius [I 2] G. Bassus. Roman
grammarian and antiquarian of the late Republic 5, 713-714 Gellius [2] G., Cn. Rom. historian, end of the 2nd cent. AD 5,726
6, 1088
[IV x] I. Africanus. Orator from Gaul, rst cent. AD 6, 10791080
[IV rb] I. Aquila Author of De disciplina Etrusca 6, 10801089
[IV 3] I. Atticus. Writer on agriculture 6, 1080
marian of late antiquity, author of a breviarium on the early Roman civil wars 6, 1081
[IV 7] Sex. 1. Gabinianus. Roman rhetor, Flavian period 6, L081r
[IV 9] I. Graecinus, L. From Forum Iulii, writer of an agra-
rian work, senator, rst cent.
Helvius [I 3] H. Cinna, C. Author of the Zmyrna, tst cent. BC 6, 124-125
6, 317-321
Hirtius, Aulus Aulus, author of book 8 of De Bello Gallico, Cos.
43 BC, fell at Mutina
6, 382-
383 Horace
6, 1052
Tulius {I 11] I. Caesar Strabo (Vopiscus), C. Aedile 90 BC, orator, tragic poet 6, 1055-1056 Iulius [[V 13] I. Montanus. Author of hexametric and elegiac poetry in the early Principate period see Montanus [IV 22] I. Caesar Strabo
[IV 6] IL. Exuperantius. Gram-
{II 4] G. of Tours Bishop of Tours, 6th cent. AD 5, 1030 Grillius Latin grammarian and rhetor, probably 5th cent. AD 5, 1032 Guido Lat. compilator of an encyclopaedia c. AD 1119 5, 1039 Helenius Acron Roman grammarian, dated 2nd half of 2nd cent.
Church father
lulianus [21] I. of Toledo. Archbishop ofToledo, approx. AD 642690
Gennadius [2] Priest in Marseilles, sth cent. AD 5,759 Gildas Oldest historian of the Britons, born before AD 500
Hieronymus [8] Jerome The
We)
Fundanius [2] F., C. In the Civil War first on the side of the sons of Pompey, later of Caesar 5, 586 Furius [I 7] F. Antias Poet, to whom Lutatius Catulus (cos. 102 BC) dedicated a work about his own consulate 5, 614 {I 9] F. Bibaculus, M. Neoteric from Cremona 5, 615 [I 28] F. Philus, L. Belonged to the circle offriends of P. Cornelius Scipio Aemilianus 5,
[6] A.G. Author of the Noctes Atticae, 2nd cent. AD
see Q. Horatius [7] Flac-
cus Horatius [7] H. Flaccus, Q. The poet Horace, 65-8 BC
6, 486-
493 Hortensius [7] H.L. f. Hortalus, Q. Roman orator, tst half of rst cent. BC 6, 515-516
Hostius [1] Author of an epic with the title Bellum Histricum 6, $37 Hydatius [2] Chronicler from Spain, bishop in AD 427 6, 598 Hyginus, C. Iulius Philologist and polymath, Augustan period 6, 606-607
Iohannes [20] I. Abba Biclarensis. Goth, continuer of Victor Tunnunensis, approx. 540-621 6, 896
Isidorus [9] Bishop of Hispalis, theologian and author of encyclopaedic writings 6, 963964 Isigonus Of Nicaea see Paradoxographi (10, 507-512)
AD 6, 1082 [IV ro] I. Honorius. Latin grammarian and orator, 4th/5th
cent. AD 6, 1082-1083 {IV 12] I. Modestus. Author, late
Augustan period
6, 1083
{IV 14] I. Paris. Late antique epitomator of the exempla of Valerius Maximus 6, 1083 [IV 15] I. Paulus. Poet, 2nd cent.
AD 6, 1083-1084 {IV 19] I. Romanus. Latin gram-
marian, presumably 3rd cent. AD
6, 1087
[IV 21] I. Secundus. Rom. rhetor from Gaul, rst cent. AD 6, 1088
[IV 23] I. Valerius Alexander Polemius. Author of a translation of the Greek Alexander Romance, middle of 4th cent. AD
6, 1088
{IV 24] I. Victor. Author of a textbook of rhetoric 6, 1088-1089
Iunianus see Iustinus [5] Iunius [I 20] I. Congus (Graccha-
nus?), M. Antiquarian 2nd/tst cent. BC
6, 1097
Tunius [I 28] I. Silanus, D. Directed the translation of the works of Mago in 146 BC 6, 1098 Tunius [III 2] I. Filagrius. GalloRoman grammarian, 5th cent.
AD
6, 1105
1.3. LATIN
[III 3] I. Gallio. Declamator, early Imperial period 6,
LIO5—-1106
{III 5] M. lunius Nypsus. Surveyor, 2nd cent. AD ¢ 6,
1106
Tustinus [5] M. Iunian(i)us I.
Author of an Epitome historiarum Philippicarum, c. AD 400 6,
LL4O=1 rq
luvenalis, D. Iunius Satirical poet, tst/znd cent. AD 6, 1146-1148 luvencus, C. Vettius Aquilinus Spanish presbyter and author of epics, 4th cent. AD 6, 1148 Iuventius [I 2] Poet of Comedies, Republican period 6, 1149 Juba [2] King of Mauretania, author, approx. 50 BC-AD 23 6,
1205-1206
[3] Metrician, 3rd cent. AD 6, 1206
Laberius [I 4] L., D. Mimographer, 106-43 BC 7, 132-133 Lactantius [1] Christian Theologist and apologist, c. 250-325
Jy TSEai53
[2] L. Placidus Editor of acommentary on Statius’ Thebais, late 4th cent. AD 7,153 Laevius [2] Probably the first lyric
love poet of Rome, 2nd or early csi cent. BE 7a tt Lampridius [2] Poet and teacher of rhetoric in Burdigala, 5th cent. AD
7,189
Largus Epic poet of the Augustan period 7,250 Lavinius Roman grammarian, probably 2nd cent. AD 7,310 Lenaeus [2] L. Pompeius Satyrist and freedman of Pompey Magnus 7, 386 Lentulus [1] Mimographer in the early Imperial Period 7, 389 Licentius Patron of Augustinus
We Si7. Licinius [I ro] L. Crassus, L. Politi-
cian and orator, consul 95 BC
7, 523-524
{I 22] L. Imbrex Probably a poet ofcomedies, 2nd cent. BC
7, 528
[I 30] L. Macer, C. Senator and historian, people’s tribune 73
BC
7, 531-532
{I 3x] L. Macer Calvus, C. Roman orator and poet, rst cent. BC 7, 532-533 {1 45] L. Tegula, P. Author ofa hymn of expiation in 200 BC 13995
Liutprandus of Cremona, bishop of Cremona, roth cent. 7,738 Livius [II r] L. Andronicus, L. Dramatic and epic poet 280/60-200
BC
IIz
AUTHORS
7, 745-749
{I 2] L., T. Roman historiogra-
pher, 59 BC-17 AD 7,749-
754
Lucanus [1] M. Annaeus L. Epic poet Lucan, rst cent. AD
7, 829-833 Lucceius [I 3] L., L. Historiographer, praetor urbanus 67 BC
Marcomannus Commentary on Cicero’s rhetorical works $5 320-322 Marcus [I 4] M. Eremites Ascetic,
monastic teacher and author of ascetic treatises, 5th cent., [4] M. Eremites 8, 324-325 Marianus [3] Poet, rst half of 3rd cent. AD?, Marianus II Roman
7, 835
Lucilius [I 6] C. L. Satirical poet 7, 848-850
{II 4] L. lunior Friend of the Younger Seneca, author
7, 851
8, 353 Marius [II 20] Claudius M. Victor (or Victorius) Teacher of rhetoric in Marseille, c. AD 425, [II 20] Claudius M. Victor (or Victorius)
Lucretius [III 1] L. Carus, T., The
8, 370-371
Roman poet Lucretius, rst cent. BC 7, 860-864 Lupus [2] Poet 7, 887
[II 21] C. M. Victorinus Philologist, philosopher and theologian, 4th cent. AD 8, 371-
[3] Alleged author of a funerary inscription from the surrounding area of Aquincum 7, 887-888
Luscius [I 2] L. Lanuvinus Writer of
fabula palliata, rival of Terentius
7, 888-889
Lutatius [3] L. Catulus, Q. Consul AD 102, author 7, 896-897 [6] L. Daphnis Freedman grammarian, 2nd to rst cent. BC 7, 898
Luxurius Author of abook of epigrams edited in AD 534 7,905 Lydus [3] Iohannes L. Official and antiquarian writer, c. AD 490560 8, 14-15 Macer [1] Licinius M., C.
see Lici-
nius [2] Licinius M. Calvus, C. 8, 90 Macrobius |r] M., Theodosius
Writer of the Saturnalia, c. 400 8, LOI-103
8, 109-111
Maecius [I 2] M. Tarpa, Sp. Designed the game plan in 55 BC for the dedication of the theatre of Pompey 8,112 Magnus [8] M. of Carrhae Historian, 4th cent. AD
8, 176-177
Mago [12] Carthaginian comman-
der and author of work on agriculture 8, 180-181 Manilius [I 1] M. (or Manlius?), L. Writer, senator AD 97, [I 1] M.
(or Manlius?), L. 8, 238 [I 4] P. (2) M. Vopiscus Friend of Domitianus, poet 8,240 {Ul 1] Roman didactic poet at the time of Tiberius 8, 240-243 Marcellinus [II 14] M. Comes Official under emperor Justinian I, author of aworld chronicle, [14] M. Comes
8, 373
Martialis [1] M. Valerius M. The poet Martial, epigrammatist in the 1st cent. 8, 408-412 Martianus Capella Author of ‘De nuptiis Philologiae et Mercurii’, sth cent. AD 8, 412-414 Martinus [3] M. of Bracara Author of christian works, founder of a monastery in Pannonia, c. AD sis-s80 8,416 Martyrius Latin grammarian,
around the first halfof the 6th cent. AD
8, 419-420
Marullus [2] Literary mimographer from the time of Marcus Aurelius 8, 422
Maecenas [2] Patron of literature, tst cent. BC
372
{Il 22] Bishop of Aventicum AD 574-594, author of aworld chronicle, [II 22] 8, 372-373 {II 23] M. Mercator Opponent of the Pelagians, 5th cent. AD
8, 297
Marcius [II 13] M. Salutaris High state official in Egypt, interpretated Virgil, approx. mid 3rd cent. AD 8, 317
Matius [2] M., C. Author oftextbooks on home economics, Augustan period, [2] Matius, C.
8, 479 [3] M., Cn. Poet of the early rst cent. BC, [3] Matius, Cn. 8, 480
Mavortius [1] Vettius Agorius Basi-
lius M. cos. AD 527,
8, 507
Maximuianus [4] Elegiac poet, 6th cent. AD 8, 512
Maximus [II 13] M. of Madaura. Correspondent of Augustine, grammarian, 2nd half 4th cent. AD, [13] Maximus of Madaura Osh ae
{Il 14] M. Taurinensis Bishop of Turin from AD 398, [14] Maximus 8, 522 Melissus (MéAtoooc; Mélissos). [3] C. Maecenas. Roman grammarian, librarian under Augustus, Melissus II [3] 8, 636
Mercurinus Arian bishop of Milan, biographer of Ulfila, 4th cent. 8, 709
113
I.3. LATIN AUTHORS
Merobaudes [2] Flavius M. Writer and Panegyric author, 5th cent.
8, 716-717
Mevius [I 1] Poet and critic of Virgil, Augustean period 8, 847 Minucius [II 1] M. Felix, Christian Latin author, 2nd/3rd cent.
95 39-40
9, 278-279 Munatius [I 6] M. Rufus Comradein-arms and biographer of M. Porcius Cato Uticensts, rst cent.
BC 9, 286 Murredius Roman rhetor of the
Augustan-Tiberian period 9, 315-316 Musa [2] Roman rhetor of the Augustan-Tiberian period
9, 317 Naevius. {I 1] N., Cn. Dramatist
and epic poet, 3rd cent. BC
9, 484-486 Naucellius [1] From Syracuse, poet,
member of Symmachus’ circle of friends, 4th cent. AD 9, 537-
538 Nemesianus [1] M. Aurelius N. Author of bucolic writings, before AD 284? 9, 628-629 Nennius. Author of the Historia Brittonum, c. 829 9, 634-635 Nepos [2] Cornelius N. Biographer and historian, tst cent. BC
Nicetas. Bishop in Dacia Mediterranea. Christian author, died in
414 9, 716-717 Nigidius Figulus, P. Naturalist and tst cent. BC
9x 751-752
Ninnius [2] N. Crassus Republican writer, translator of the Iliad in 9, 766-767
Nisus [II 1] Latin grammarian, 2nd
half of the 1st cent. 9,779 Nonius [III 1] N. Marcellus. Grammarian and author, late 4th or early 5th cent. AD 9, 810-812 Novius [I 1] Representative of the literary Atellana, early rst cent. BC 9, 863 Obsequens, Iulius. Author ofa liber prodigiorum for the years 190-11 BE MIO. Octavianus. [2] Poet, probably early 6th cent. 10, 21-22 Octavius. [I 14] O. Lampadio, C. Roman scholar and freedman, 2nd cent. BC 10, 24-25 Opillus, D. (?) Aurelius. Scholar from the Republican period
10, 157
10, 190
cent.
10, 209
cent.
IO, 240-242
Ovidius Naso, Publius The poet Ovid, end ofrst cent. BC/beg. of tst cent. AD
10, 298-306
Pacianus. Bishop of Barcinona, 4th cent. AD 10, 319 Pacuvius. Tragedian, 220 — to
shortly before 130 BC
to, 325-
326
Palladius [I 4] Latin grammarian, 4th cent. BC 10, 392-393 [II 1] P. Rutilius Taurus Aemilianus. Writer on agriculture
10, 393-394
[Il 3] One of the Twelve Wise Men of the 4th/s5th cent., poet
10, 395
Passennus Paulus Propertius Blaesus, C. Elegiac and lyric poet, late tst cent. AD tro, 588 Paulinus [3] P. of Milan. Secretary to and biographer of Ambrosius, c.400
10, 629
[4] P. of Pella Author of an autobiographical poem, 4th cent. 10, 630
[5] P. of Nola Bishop of Nola, Christian poet, 353-431 10, 630-632 poem
10, 632
[7] P. of Petricordia Author ofa hexametric biography ofSt. Martin, c. 460 10, 632 Paulus [II 4] P. Diaconus Lombard grammarian, 8th cent.
10, 644-
645 Paulus II Roman
10, 636-645 Pelagius [2] Epic poet and historian, 5th cent. 10, 689 Pentadius. Late antique author of unknown period 10,724 Persius [2] Aulus P. Flaccus. Satiri-
cal poet of the Neronic period
rian, early 5th cent.? 11, 139140 Placidus [2] Compiler ofa Latin lexicon, sth/6th cents. 11, 313 Plautus. Comic playwright, 2nd cent. BC 11, 361-366 Plinius [1] P. Secundus, C. (Pliny the Elder). Roman historian and orator, rst cent. 11, 383-390 [2] P. Caecilius Secundus, C. (Pliny the Younger) Politican and prose author, AD 61/2 —
before 117 11, 390-392 Plotius. [II 5] Marius P. Sacerdos. Latin grammarian, late 3rd cent. AD 11, 404-405 Polemius Silvius. Author of a chronographical index, c. AD 448/9
II, 456-457 Pompeius. [I 2] Freedman of Pompeius see Lenaeus {III 1] African grammarian, second half of the 5th cent.
ELAS TE [III 2] P. Silo Augustean author and rhetor 11, 571-572 [III 3] P. Trogus Roman historian of Gaulish or Vocontian origin, writer of ‘De animalibus’
Il, §72-574 Pompilius. [r] P. Andronicus, M. Grammarian, tst cent. BC
LI, 574 Pomponius. [III 1] Poet, late 2nd cent. BC 11, 581
tst cent. BC 11, 581 {II 4] P. Bassulus, (M.) Comedian, tst/2nd cent. 11, 582 [III 5] P. Mela. From Tingentera
in southern Spain, geographer, tst cent.
10, 876-
880
Phaedrus [II 1] First fabulist, early Imperial period 10, 897-900 Philargyrius Gallo-Roman Grammarian, 5th cent. AD _ see Iunius {II 2] Filagrius Philemon [8] Latin grammarian, 1st half of the 3rd cent. 11,17 Philocalus, Furius Dionysios —see Filocalus, Furius Dionysius
11, 582-584
{III 6] P. M. Porcellus. Roman grammar teacher, early Imperial Period 11, 584 {Ill 7] P. Porphyrio Commentator on Horace 11, 584 {III 8] P. P. Secundus. Politician and man of letters, rst cent.
Lr, 584-585 Ponticus. Epic poet, Augustan
period
10, 828-830
Petronius [5] P. Niger (Arbiter)
Novelist, rst cent. AD
Phocas (Focas). Latin Gramma-
{UI 2] From Bononia, comedian,
[6] Author ofa Latin Christian
9; 659-660
Latin
marian, tst cent. BC:
Orientius Christian poet, early 5th Orosius Christian author, early 5th
Montanus [4] M., Iulius Poet of the early Principate 9, 186 Mummius [I 1] Author ofAtellan farces, propably Augustan
grammarian,
Oppius. [I 2] O., C. Follower of Caesar, author of a Caesar biography 10,170 Orbilius Pupillus, L. Latin gram-
11,593
Porcius. [I 12] P. Licinus. Poet, pro-
bably second half of the 2nd cent. BG TU 63;5 Porphyrio, Pomponius. Author ofa commentary on Horace, 3rd cent. AD 11, 645 Postumius. [I 4] P. Albinus, A. Roman senator and historian, c. 150 BC 11, 693-694 Priscianus. Latin grammarian, sth/6th cents. 11, 868-870 Priscillianus. Ascetic and theologian, 4th cent. 11, 870-873
114
1.3. LATIN AUTHORS
Proba. Christian poetess, 4th cent.
Probus [4] P., M. Valerius Latin philologist, second half of the rst cent.
Prosper Tiro Of Aquitania, Christian poet, historian, 4th/5th 12, 55-56
Prudentius. Christian poet, 4th/5th cent.
Scribonius [II 2] $. Aphrodisius bonia [1], rst cent. BC
13, 117-
189-190
{II 3] P. Optatianus Porfyrius. Poet and public official, 3rd/4th cents. 12, 190-191 Pupius [I 1] In Horace, the author of tragedies, rst cent. BC
12); 209, Quinctius. [I 4] Q. Atta, T. A leading playwright of fabulae toga-
Scriptores Historiae Augustae see Historia Augusta Sedulius. Christian Latin poet, rst half of the 5th cent. 13, 196—
Domitianus 13,930 Sulpicius. [II 1] S. Alexander. Author of an historical work on the late Imperial Period
13, 937
grammarian, rst half of 2nd
cent.
13, 937-938
(II x4] S. Severus. Latin hagiographer, c. 363-420
13, 940-941
Seneca [1] L. Annaeus S. The Elder, Latin rhetor and historian, first
years of Princtpate 13, 269-270 [2] L. Annaeus S. Politician and Stoic philosopher, rst cent. 135 271=2735
Sentius [II 2] S. Augurinus Poet, tst/2nd cents. 13, 283 Septimius [II 4] S. Serenus. Lyric
poet, prob. 3rd cent.
13,290
[II 5] S. Serenus Sammonicus.
Poet, 3rd cent. (?)
tae, rst cent. BC 12, 338 Quintilianus [1] Professor of and
[4] Poet during the reign of
{II 2] C. S. Apollinaris. Latin
118
197
12, 90-91
Publilius [I 4] P. Syrus. Mime and mimographer, rst cent. BC 12,
12, 957
Grammarian, freedman of Scri-
11, 896-897
Propertius [1] P., Sextus Elegiac poet, rst cent. BC 12, 21-25
cent.
Santra Tragic poet and scholar whose, mid-rst cent. BC
11, 890-891
13, 290-
291
[II 17] S. Victor Roman rhetor, 4th cent.? 13,941 Sura [2] Aemilius S$. Author of a work of history 13,956 Symmachus [II 4] Q. Aurelius S. Eusebius Foremost orator of the 2nd half of the 4th cent. AD 14, 6-7
{II 6] Q. Aurelius Memmius S. Historian, cos.in 485
14,7
Tacitus [1] (P.2?) Cornelius T. Latin
historiographer, c. AD 5 5—c. 120 14, IOS-I1I
author on rhetoric, late rst cent.
Serenus [2] S. Sammonicus Poet
Tanusius Geminus Roman histo-
12, 349-354
and moral critic, c. 200 13, 311-312 Servius [2] Grammarian, Virgil commentator in c. AD 400
rian, 1st cent. BC 14,134 Tarquitius [I 1] T. Priscus Technical
Quintipor Clodius Palliata poet, late Republican era 12,354 Rabirius [2] R., C. Epic poet ofthe Augustan period 12, 378-379 Remmius [2] R. Palaemon, Q. Roman teacher of grammar, 1st cent.
12,499
Reposianus. Author of an hexameter poem, 3rd cent. 12, 501502 Romulus [5] Fictitious name of the author of a prose collection of Aesopian fables in the 4th/sth Cent,
2, 730-731
Rufinus [II 2] Of Antioch, Latin grammarian, 2nd half of the 5th cent,
12,752
[II 6] Tyrannius R. Of Aquileia, Christian, translator of Euse-
bius, died 410
12, 753-754
Rufius [2] Author of a historical
brevarium 12,754 Ruricius of Limoges. Bishop and author, 5th cent. 12, 787-788 Rusticus [4] R. Helpidius Poet, perhaps c. 500 12,792 Rutilius. [I 3] R. Rufus, P. Roman politician and jurist, 2nd/rst
cents. BC 12, 794-795 {11 1] R. Claudius Namatianus. Author of a travel poem, praefectus urbiin 414 12,795796
Sabinus [II 3] Elegiac and epic poet of the Augustan period 12, 817 Saleius Bassus. Epic poet ofthe late 1st cent.
12, 883
Sallustius [II 3] C. S. Crispus Roman politician and historian, 86-34 BC 12, 890-894
13, 333-335
Siculus Flaccus Surveyor and technical author, probably 2nd cent.
13, 431
Sidonius Apollinaris Most important Gallic author, 2nd half of the 5th cent. 13, 438-439 Silius [II 5] S. Italicus Epic poet, rst cent.
13, 460-462
Sinnius Capito. Latin grammarian, tst cent. BC 13, 496-497 Sisenna Cornelius S., L., historian and translator of the 2nd/rst cent. BC 13, 508-509 Solinus. Grammarian and buntschriftsteller, 3rd/ 4th cent. 13, 616-618
Statilius [II 5] S. Flaccus Epigrammatist, beginning of the rst cent.
13, 797 {Il 6] S. Maximus Latin gram-
marian, late 2nd cent.
13,797 Statius [II 2] P. Papinius S. Epic
poet, late rst cent. 13, 800-803 [Il 5] S. Sebosus Compiler of paradoxes or geographer, probably rst cent. BC 13, 803804
Sueius. Poet of the late Republican era
13,916
Suetonius [2] S. Tranquillus, C. Bio-
grapher and antiquarian, c. 100 13,
918-922
Sulpicia [2] Poet in the Corpus Tibullianum 13,929
author, 1st cent. BC?
14,153
Terentianus Maurus African gram-
marian, middle of the 3rd cent. 14, 276
Terentius [I 15] T. Varro, M. Polymathic Roman author, 116-27 BC see Varro [2] (Reatinus) {I 16] T. Varro, P. Poet, rst cent. BC 14,280
{II 1] T. Afer, P. The comic poet Terence, 2nd cent. BC 14, 283-288
{II 3] Q. T. Scaurus, the most
influential grammarian of the era of Trajan and Hadrian 14, 289
Tertullianus [2] Q. Septimius Flo-
rens T. Theologist and apologist, 2nd/3rd cents. 14, 307-312 Tiberianus Author of at least three short poems 14, 654-655 Tibullus, Albius The elegiac poet Tibullus, rst cent. BC 14, 661— 664
Ticida Writer of love poetry, rst cent. BC 14, 665 Tiro [1] T., M. Tullius Cicero’s secretary, 1st cent. BC 14, 725726
Titianus [1] Iulius T. Tutor ofprinces, teacher of rhetoric, late 2nd cent.
14,740
Titinius [1] Comedy writer, end of the 3rd / beginning of the 2nd cent. BC 14,741 Titius [1 1] T., C. Equestrian, orator
and poet, 2nd half of the 2nd cent. BC
14,742
qty,
2. RHETORIC
Trabea [2] Comedy writer, rst half of the 2nd cent. BC 14, 818 Tullius [I 9] T. Cicero, M. Politician and author 15,8 {I 16] T. Tiro, M. Secretary of Cicero, rst cent. BC 15, 11 Turnus [2] Famous satirist, c. t00
15, 36
Turpilius [1] Comic poet, 2nd cent. BC 1x5, 37 Tuticanus Boyhood friend of Ovidius 15,46 Tyconius. Author of the first
Aius Sanctus, T Rhetoric instructor
Vergilius [4] V. Maro, P. The poet Vergil, 70-19 BC 15, 295-314 [5] V. Romanus Comic and mimiambic poet around AD ZOO 5a ara Verrius [r] M. V. Flaccus Latin grammarian, Augustan era
Albucius [3] Silus, C. Roman orator, c. 50 BC-AD 16 1, 433
15, 323-325
Christian hermeneutics, 4th cent.
15,54
Vespa Imperial period, writer of an occupational agon 15, 333 Vettius [I 4] V. Philocomus Roman grammarian, 2nd cent. BC
15,358
Umbricius Technical author, Haruspex Caesarum, rst cent. 15,98 Urbanus Commentator on Vergil,
4th cent.
15, 122-125
Author of an antiquarian compilation, ist cent. 15, 167 Valerius [II 16] M. V. Messala Corvinus Cos. with Octavian in 31 BC, author 15, 187-188 {Il 1] V. Aedituus Author of erotic epigrams, 2nd cent. BC icky eet
{III 2] V. Antias Roman historian, tst cent. BC
15, 386-387
397
[8] V. Tunnennensis Bishop in Africa, chronicler, 6th cent.
15,397
[9] V. Vitensis Bishop in Africa, historian, 5th cent. 15, 397398 Victorinus V. of Poetovio Bible commentator, martyred AD 304
15, 402
15, 191-
192
Vincentius of Lerinum Theologist,
{Ill 3] V. Cato, P. Roman poet and grammarian,
Vibius [II 19] V. Sequester Latin author of a gazetteer, c. AD 400 Victor [7] S. Aurelius V. Roman historian, 4th cent. 15, 396-
Valerianus [1] Q. Cornelius V.
by)
Venantius Fortunatus. Poet, 6th cent. 15, 268-269
1st cent. BC
ioby dey {III 4] C. V. Flaccus Setinus Balbus Cos. with Octavian in 31 BC, author 15,193 [I 5] V. Maximus Author of a handbook ofhistorical examples, rst cent. 15, 193-194 {III 7] Q. V. Latin orator and
5th cent. AD 15, 426-427 Virgilius Maro Latin grammarian,
7th cent. 15,451-453 Volcacius [1] V. Sedigitus Author of a didactic poem, 2nd cent. BC
15, 493 [2] Commentary on Cicero’s
speeches 15, 493 Volnius Author of Etruscan tragedies, 1st cent. BC 15, 504
antiquarian, end of the 2nd/be-
ginning of the rst cent. BC
2. Rhetoric
15, 195
List of ancient orators and technical writers cf. Subject Index 12. and CT index volume, Entry Index 6.1.
Valgius [2] C. V. Rufus Roman author at the time of Augustus 15, 196
Vargunteius [1] Recitator, 2nd cent.
Acacius [1] Rhetorician and poet
BG 153,206 Varius [I 2] V. Rufus, L. Roman poet, c. 70-15 BC 15, 207 Varro [2] V. Terentius, M. (Reati-
from Caesarea 1, 39 Adaeus [3] Greek rhetorician (rst (Lphe eKOy) ae 30230)
Aelius [II 2] Ae. Aristides, P. The rhetorician, see P. Aelius Aristi-
nus) Roman polymath author, 116-27 BC 15, 209-226 [3] V. Terentius, P. (Atacinus) Roman poet, early rst cent.
des [3] BC
Lip 2 LO— 227
Vegetius Author of vetinary medicine and military texts 15, 252253
Velius [3] V. Longus Latin grammarian, 2nd cent. AD
15, 263
Velleius [4] V. Paterculus Roman
historian, around the beginning ofthe commonera 15, 265-267
Aemilius [II 14] Scaurus Mamercus. AD 34, prosecuted for adultery with Iulia Livilla 1, 218 Aeneas [4] Christian rhetor from Gaza, 5th cent. AD 1, 222 Aeschines [2] Attic orator and politician (4th cent. BC) 1, 241-
243
[3] Rhetorician from Miletus
I, 244
Aeschylus [3] of Cnidus. Rhetorician and Asianist 1, 251-252
of Commodus
1, 409
Alcidamas Pre-aristotelian rhetor from Aeolian Elea 1, 448-449 Alcimus [5] Latinus A. Alethius. Rhetorician, writer of panagyrics and poet 1, 451 Alciphron Atticist of the 2nd or early 3rd cent. AD 1, 452-453 Alexander [25] Orator, 2nd cent. AD 1, 480 Alfius [5] Flavus. Rhetor and poet
15, 504
Amphicrates Rhetorician from Athens 1,599 Anaximenes [2] of Lampsacus. Orator and historian, 2nd half of 4th cent. BC 1, 662-663 Andronicus [7] Vicarius Thraciarum under Procopius, AD 365-
66 1, 688
Anonymus Seguerianus Author of a rhetorical treatise, 5th cent.
1,714 Antipater [11] Orator, end of the tst cent. BC 1,775 [12] P. Aelius A. Sophist from Hieropolis, c.200 1,775 Antiphon [4] of Rhamnus Orator and author of rhetorical writings, sophist, 5th cent. BC 1,779782
Antyllus [1] Grammarian and rhetor of unknown time 1, 810 Ap(p)uleius [I rr] A. Saturninus, L. Tribunus plebis 103, 100 BC
1, 904 Aper [1], M. Homo novus, rst cent.
AD, dialogue partner in Tacitus’s Dialogus 1, 823 Aphthonius Rhetorician of the 4th and the 5th cent. AD 1, 836-
837
Apollodorus [8] of Pergamum. Celebrated rhetor from Pergamum, Atticist
1, 861-862
Apollonius [5] Malakos. Orator from Alabanda, c. 160 BC
1, 874
[6] Molon see Molon [2] Aquila [5] Romanus. Orator ofthe 2nd half of the 3rd cent. AD I, 929 Arborius [1] Aemilius Magnus, professor of rhetoric and lawyer in Tolosa 1, 964-965 Aristides [3] P. Aelius Rhetorician, 2nd cent. AD 1, 1096-1100 Aristocles [3] of Rhodes. Orator and grammarian 1, 1107 Artemidorus [5] Rhetorician from Knidos
2, 60
Artemon [2] Rhetorician of the early imperial period 2,70
EnG6
2. RHETORIC
Arusianus Messius Teacher of rhetoric in Late Antiquity
2, 82
Aspasius [2] From Byblos, Sophist of the 2nd cent. AD 2, 167 [3] Sophist from Ravenna 2,
167-168
Ateius [5] A. Philologus, L. Scholar, teacher of grammar and rhetoric,
rst cent. BC 2, 222-223 Athenaeus [3] Sophist or grammaticus from Naucratis, c. AD 190
2, 240-243 [4] Rhetorician of the 2nd cent. BGean243 Athenion [1] Peripatetic rhetorician in Athens 2, 250-251 Aurelius [I 13] A. Opillus. Freedman, rst cent. BC, teacher ofphi-
losophy, rhetoric and grammar
2, 383 Autocles [2] Athenian rhetor and strategos, 472/1 BC; peace envoy in Sparta 2, 411 Avidius [2] A. Heliodorus, C. Epicurean philosopher and rbetor, Praef. Aegypti between 137-142
2,425
Charmadas Teacher of rhetoric, late
2nd cent. BC 3, 201 Chirius Fortunatianus, C. Author of didactic writings see ConChoricius Sophist and rhetorician, 6th cent. AD 43, 245-246 Chrestus Professor of rhetoric c. AD 180 3,255 Cicero Roman orator, philosopher and politician, 106-43 BC
35 317-327
Claudius [II 45] M.C. Aeserninus. Praetor peregrinus AD 19
35 402
Cleochares Greek rhetor from Bithynia, 3rd cent. BC 3, 429-
430
Clodius [III 2] C., Sex. Rhetor from Sicily, rst cent. BC 3, 470 {III 3] C. Sabinus. Rhetor of Augustan period 3,470 Cocondrius Greek rhetor
AD2) 537
Blandus Probably the first teacher ofrhetoric in Rome from the ranks of the equites 2, 687 Bruttedius Niger Rhetor and historian, ist cent. BC 2,793 Caecilius [III 5] C. from Cale Acte.
Greek rhetor from the Augustan age 2,885 Caesar C. Julius, Roman politician, orator and author, died AD 44 2, 9OO-916
3, 496
Coelius [I x] C. Antipater, L. Histo-
Callinicus [2] Rhetor 2, 981 Calpurnius [III 2] C. Flaccus. Latin rhetor, c. AD 100
2, 1003-
1004 Caninius [6] C. Celer. Greek rhetor
and teacher, 2nd cent. AD 2, 1049 Capito [1] Orator of the Augustan period 2, 1070 Carrinas [II 2] C. Secundus. Rhetor 2, LL20
Cassius [III 8] C. Severus. Orator in Rome 2, 1174 Castor [2] C. of Rhodos. Greek historian, rst cent. BC 2, 1181 Castricius [1] C., Ti. Teacher of
Latin rhetoric and orator, 2nd 2, 1189
Cephalium [2] Hadrianic historian
and orator 3, 130-131 Cephisodorus [5] Athenian rhetor, pupil of Isocrates, 4th cent. BC
3, 136 Cestius [II 4] C. Pius, L. From
Smyrna, rhetor from the Augustan period 3, 168-169
35 SO5-$06
Consultus Fortunatianus Author of a Latin manual 3,743-744 Corax [3] C. From Syracuse, inventor of rhetoric 3, 781-783 Cornelianus [2] Ab epistulis Graecis under Marcus Aurelius and Commodus 3, 807 Cornificius [3] Q. C. Orator, Atticist, Neoteric poet, augur, quaestor pro praetore
3, 838
Craton Greek rhetor rst cent. AD
3,925
Cydias [2] Attic orator 4th cent. BC
3, 1044-1045
Damas [4] Declamator from the Augustan period with the surname 0 OXOUBEOG 4, 51 Damianus Sophist from Ephesus
4559 Demades Orator from Athens, politician, 4th cent. BC 4,231 Demochares [3] Athenian orator, historian and politician, c. 300 BC 4,265 Democles [2] Attic orator of the school of Theophrastus 4, 266 Democrates [1] Attic orator of the 4th cent. BC from Aphidna 4, 266
Demosthenes [2] Attic Orator and Politician. 4th cent. BC 4, 292-
297 Dinarchus Attic orator, 4th/3rd cent. BC 4, 419-421 Diocles [12] Declamator of the Augustan period from Carystus
4, 429
Diodorus [15] Rhetorician 4, 443 Dion [I 3] D. Cocceianus of Prusa.
Orator and philosopher in the rst cent. AD, from Prusa (also called Chrysostomus) 4, 466-468 Dionysius [18] D. of Halicarnassus.
Greek historian and teacher of
sultus Fortunatianus, C.
riographer, late 2nd cent. BC
Basilicus [1] Rhetor in the 2nd cent.
cent. AD
Charisius [I] Attic orator, late 4th cent. BC 3,196
rhetoric in Rome, rst cent. BC
4, 480-484 [30] D. Chalcus. Elegist and rhetor 4, 487 [40] D. from Miletus. Orator
4, 489 [46] D. of Antioch. Author, christian sophist from Antiochia
4, 490
Diophanes [2] Greek rhetor from Mytilene, 2nd cent. BC 4, 510 Domitius [III 1] Cn. D. Afer. Latin orator of the Claudian period, from Nemausus, praetor 4, 649-650 Egnatius [II 12] L.E. Victor Lollianus. Orator and politician, 3rd cent.
4, 843
Empylus Rhetor of the rst cent. BC from Rhodes 4,961 Ephialtes [3] Athenian rhetor and strategos, 4th cent. BC 4, 1033 Epidius, M. Rhetor and teacher of rhetoric in Rome
4, 1095
Epiphanius [4] Syrian, teacher of rhetoric in rst half of the 4th cent. Ey 4s RUSS [5] Member of the Sophist circle of Gaza 4, 1121 Eudemus [8] Rhetor of an uncertain period from Argos 5,148 Eugenius [1] Flavius Eugenius. Roman usurper, rhetor and emperor, about AD 400 5,157 Eustathius [1] from Caria. Rhetor of the 4th cent. AD, imperial administrator, consularis Syriae
5,229 [2] Neoplatonic philosopher and rhetor 5,229 [3] Greek rhetor of the 4th and sth cents. AD
5,229
Fabianus [2] Papirius F. see Papirius Favorinus Rhetor, Buntschriftsteller, beginning of the 2nd cent.
AD
5, 375-376
Fronto [6] M. Cornelius F. From
Cirta, orator in the time of the adopted emperors 5, 564-565 Fufius {I 2] F., L. Rom. orator in the Est cent.BG, 55571-5772 Furnius [1] F., C. People’s tribune 50 BC, orator 5, 625 Fuscus, Arellius Rhetor in the Augustan period 5, 628 Gargonius Rhetoric teacher of the Augustan period
5, 700-701
007.
2. RHETORIC
Gaudentius [2] Rhetor of the 4th OF INE) 55 7/6) Gavius [I 2] G. Bassus. Roman grammarian and antiquarian of the late Republic 5, 713-714 [Ul 7] G. Sabinus. Lat. rhetor of the Augustan period 5, 714-
715 {II 8] G. Silo. Rhetor in Tarraco in the early Augustan period
55715
Genethlius Greek rhetor from Petra, 3rd cent. AD 5,755 Gorgias [2] G. of Leontini Father of
Sophistic 5, 933-935
[4] Greek rhetor ofthe rst cent.
BC
5, 935-936
Hybreas Greek orator and politician, 1st cent. BC 6, 594-595 Hypereides Attic orator, ath cent. BC 6, 632~634 Ianuarius Nepotianus Revisor ofa coll. of exempla for rbet. instruction, probably 4th cent. AD 6, 675 Iohannes [25] I. of Gaza. Greek rhetor and poet, 6th cent. AD
6, 897 Isaeus [2] The Assyrian, Greek rhetor, rst and 2nd cent. AD 6, 950 Isocrates Attic orator, 436-338 BC
6, 979-983 Julianus [9] From Caesarea/Cappa-
Grillius Latin grammarian and rhetor, probably 5th cent. AD
§, 1032
docia, Greek rhetor, approx.
275-340 6, 1046 [17] I. Pomerius. Christian priest
Hegesander [1] Athen. rhetor, middle of 4th cent. BC 6, 48-49 Hegesias [2] Of Magnesia, Greek rhetor and historian, 4th/3rd cent. BC 6,50 Hegesippus [1] Athen. rhetor and envoy, 4th cent. BC 6, 52 Heliodorus [7] H. Arabius. Sophist, c. AD 210-235 6,73 Heraclides [23] Sophist from Lycia, approx. AD 193 to 209 6,172 Hermagoras [1] From Temnos, Greek orator, 2nd cent. BC
and teacher of rhet. 5th cent. AD
Tulius [II 59] I. Florus. Orator from Gaul in the Augustan period 6, 1068
{IV 1] I. Africanus. Orator from Gaul, rst cent. AD 6, 10791080
[IV 4] I. Bassus, C. Latin rhetor of the Augustan-Tiberian period 6, 1081 [IV 7] Sex. I. Gabinianus. Roman rhetor, Flavian period 6, 1081
6, 206
[2] Greek rhetor, rst cent. BC/AD 6, 207 [3] H. the Younger, Greek orator,
2nd cent. AD 6,207 Hermocrates [2] L. Flavius H.
Sophist and rhetor from Phocaea,c.200 AD 6,230 Hermogenes [7] H. of Tarsus. Greek rhetor, approx. AD 160-
230
6, 1051
AD
Herodes [16] L. Vibullius Hipparchus Ti. Claudius Atticus Herodes. Rhetor and politician,
marian and orator, 4th/5th cent. AD 6, 1082-1083 {IV 17] I. Pollux. Rhetor from Naucratis, author of an Onomastikon, 2nd cent. AD
6,259-
[IV 20] I. Rufinianus. Author ofa guide to figures, 3rd/4th cent. AD
Hierocles [2] From Alabanda/Caria, Greek rhetor c. 100 BC
from Gaul, rst cent. AD 6, 1088
[IV 24] I. Victor. Author of a
textbook of rhetoric
6, 305-306
Himeraeus From Phalerum, rhetor, priest of Poseidon, approx. 4th cent. BC 6, 328-329 Himerius Greek rhetor, 4th cent.
AD 6, 329-330 Hippodromos Hippodromus Sophist and rhetor from Larissa, c. AD 200 6, 367 Hortensius [7] H.L. f. Hortalus, Q. Roman orator, tst half of rst cent. BC 6, 515-516 Hostius [2] H. Capito, Q. Rhetor of the Augustan period see
6, 1087-1088
[IV 21] I. Secundus. Rom. rhetor
260
Capito [1]
6, 1081
{IV ro] I. Honorius. Latin gram-
6, 1085-1087
6, 234-235
approx. AD 1o1/3-177
[IV 8] I. Genitor. Rhetor, advisor of Pliny the Younger, rst cent.
6, 1088-1089
Junius [III 3] I. Gallio. Declamator, early Imperial period 6, 11051106
[III 6] 1. Otho. Declamator ofthe early Imperial period, favourite of Seianus 6, 1106 Juba [3] Metrician, 3rd cent. AD 6,
1206
Labienus [4] T.L. Legal orator, declamator and contemporary historian of the Augustan epoch 72 135
Lachares [2] Greek rhetor and sophist, 5th cent. AD 7, 143-
144 Leodamas [1] Athenian orator, c.
400 BC
7, 395
[2] Athenian rhetor, 4th cent. BC Uh hoes)
Leosthenes [1] Athenian rhetor and strategos, 4th cent. BC 7, 411 [2] Athenian rhetor and strategos, 324/3 BC 7, 411-412 Lesbonax [2] Rhetor from Mytilene, 2nd cent. AD 7, 428 Libanius From Antiochia/Syria,
Greek rhetor, 314-393
7,477-
480
Licinius [I 31] L. Macer Calvus, C. Roman orator and poet, rst cent.
BC 7, 532-533
Licymnius [2] Dithyrambic poet and rhetorician from Chios, c.
420 BC
7, 544
Lollianus [2] Rhetor from Ephesus, 2nd cent. AD 7, 801-802 Longinus [1] Cassius Longinus. Grammarian, Rhetor and plato-
nic philosopher, c. AD 210272/3 7, 808-810 Lucianus [1] L. of Samosata Greek rhetorical-satirical writer, 2nd cent. AD 7, 836-845 Lycoleon Attic orator, 4th cent. BC
7, 922 Lycurgus [9] Attic statesman and orator, 4th cent. BC 7, 933-935 Lysias [1] Attic logographos,
sth/4th cent. BC 8, 32-35 Magnus [5] M. of Nisibis Physician, orator and teacher in Alex-
andria, c. AD 370 8,176 Marcellus [I 1] From Pergamum, orator, 2nd cent. AD, [rt] 8,298
Marcomannus Commentary on Cicero’s rhetorical works 8, 321-322
Marcus [I 2] Rich Sophist of Byzantium, [2] 8, 323-324 Marius [II 21] C. M. Victorinus
Philologist, philosopher and theologian, 4th cent. AD
8, 371-372
Martianus Capella Author of ‘De nuptiis Philologiae et Mercurii’, 5th cent. AD 8, 412-414 Marullus [1] Roman teacher of rhetoric from Cordoba, rst cent. BC 8, 421-422
Meidias [2] Athenian rhetor, c. 400-330 BC 8, 608 Menander [12] M. Rhetor From
Laodicea by the Lycus, Greek rhetor, 3rd cent. 8, 668 Menecleidas Theban orator and politician, 4th cent. BC 8, 671%
118
2. RHETORIC
Menecles [4] From Alabanda/Ca-
Persius [1] P., C. Roman teacher of
ria, rbetorician, 2nd/1st cent. BC
rhetoric and orator, 2nd cent. BC
8, 672
10, 828
Menesaechmus Attic rhetorician, 4th cent. BC 8, 685 Menippus [5] M. Rhetor From Stratonicea, Greek orator, 2nd/tst cent. BC
author of rhetoric textbooks A 3%)
[2] 3rd cent. AD Greek rhetor
9, 35-36
Augustan-Tiberian period
9, 315-316 Musa [2] Roman rhetor ofthe
Augustan-Tiberian period
9,317 Musonius [3] Rhetor, 4th cent. BC
9, 370
iz, aucrates [1] Of Erythrae, rhetor, 4th cent. BC 9, 538 Nazarius Orator, panegyricist, 4th
9, 575-576
Neocles [5] Author of aGreek manual on rhetoric, tst/2nd cent.
9, 637 Nicagoras [4] Of Athens. Rhetor, Platonist, 2nd/3rd cents. AD
rlanc.200
1aKOy
9, 747-74
Olympius neOfAntioch, fellow student of Libanius 10, 113114 Onetor Respected Athenian, pupil of Isocrates 10, 132 Optatus [2] Flavius O. Imperial grammar teacher, 4th cent. AD
105,173
wins!
Philiscus [3] P. of Miletus. Rhetor, 4th cent. BC 11, 44 [8] Greek rhetor, 2nd-3rd cent.
11, 45 envoy, 4th cent. BC
11, 65-66
Philostratus [1] Attic orator, 4th GCnti BG ik, mira [5] Rhetor and versatile author,
2nd/3rd cent. 11, 114-117 [6] Rhetor, father of Ph. [5]? MIE, ABIES,
120 Phocion Athenian strategos and rhetor, 4th cent. BC 11, 140142 Phormio [2] Athenian rhetor, 4th cent. BC 11, 181
Plinius [1] P. Secundus, C. (Pliny the
Elder). Roman historian and orator, Ist cent.
11, 383-390
Plotius. [I 1] P. Gallus, L. Lat. rhe-
toric teacher, rst cent.
BC
tor, c. 90-146
I1, 460-461
Polyaenus [2] Rhetor, c. 60 BC
II, 495 [4] Rhetor and lawyer at Rome, 2nd cent. 11, 495 Polycrates [3] Of Athens, rhetor, c. 400 BC it, 516-517 Polyeuctus [2] Athenian rhetor, 2nd half of 4th cent. BC 11, 522 [3] Athenian rhetor, 4th cent. BC
522-523
BC 10, 392-393 {Il 2] Rhetoric teacher from
Athens, 4th cent.
10, 394-
2pe)s)
Pamphilus [5] Greek rhetor, 2nd half of 2nd cent. BC? 10, 413 Papirius. [II 3] P. Fabianus. Orator and stoic philosopher, c. 30 BC10; 489
Passienus [1] Roman orator, Augu-
stan period
10, 589
and teacher of rhetoric, sth cent.
II, 542-543
Ponapaiuse [III 2] P. Silo Augustean
author and rhetor
10,392
[I 2] Rhetoric teacher from Athens 10, 392 [1 4] Latin grammarian, 4th cent.
12,309
Quintilianus [1] Professor of and author on rhetoric, late rst cent.
12, 349-354
Quirinus [2] Of Nicomedia, sophist, c. 200 12, 360 [3] Of Antiochia, rhetor, highranking civil servant, 4th cent. 12, 360
Remmius [2] R. Palaemon, Q. Roman teacher of grammar, ist cent.
12,499
Romanius Hispo. Rhetor and advocate, early Imperial Period
Rufus [7] Rhuphos OfPerinthus, rhetor, 2nd cent.
12,758
Rutilius. [I] 6] P. R. Lupus. Translator of awork on the theory of figures of speech 12,797 Sabinus [2] Rhetor, 2nd. cent.,
commentator on Thucydides 12, 816
Saenianus Rhetor from the Early Imperial Period 12, 863 Seneca [1] L. Annaeus S. The Elder, Latin rhetor and historian, first years ofPrincipate 13, 269-270
[3] S. Grandio Roman declaimer,
Polemon [6] M. Antonius P. Rhe-
Pomerius, lulianus. Christian priest
Pacatus. Proconsul ofAfrica, rhetor, 4th/sth cent. 10, 315-316 Palladius [I 1] Greek rhetor, 4th
12,296
£2,662
[7] Sophist in Athens 11, 118 [8] Author, c. 250° 11, 118-
TI,
cent. BC
Python [4] Of Byzantium, orator, 4th cent. BC 12,299 Quadration Orator, 2nd cent., identical to L. Statius Quadratus?
11,17
II, 403
95 705
Nicetes [1] Greek rhetor at Rome, Augustan period 9,717 Nicostratus [10] T. Aurelianus N. subiae's Orator, 2nd cent.
AD 3G"
Ries
Philocrates [2] Athenian rhetor and
Molon [2] (real name Apollonius) of Alabanda, rhetorician, 2nd/trst CentiaBC 9)730 Murredius Roman rhetor of the
cent.
Cele
Philemon [7] Atticist and grammaPhilinus [2] Attic orator, 4th cent.
8, 690
Minucianus [1] 2”d cent. AD Athenian rhetor, rhetoric teacher and
cent.
Philagrus Rhetor from Cilicia, 2nd
Pythocles [1] Athenian rhetor, 4th
11, 571-572
Porcius. [II 3] M. P. Latro. From
Spain, Augustean declamator and rhetoric teacher 11, 636 Potamon Of Mytilene on Lesbos, rhetor 11,701 Priscus [4] Greek historian and rhetor, 5th cent. 11,874 Proaeresius Of Caesarea, Christian Sophist, born c. 276 11, 890 Procopius [2] P. of Gaza. Rhetor
and theological writer 11, 920921 Pytheas [3] Athenian rhetor, 4th cent. BC
12, 287-288
rst cent.BC
13,278
Severianus [2] From Gallia, Latin rhetor, 5th cent. 13,358 Sextius [I 4] S. Calvinus, C. Orator c.100-90 BC 13, 367-368 Siricius Sophist, 4th cent. 13, 505 Sopater [1] Greek rbetorician, 4th cent. AD 13, 633-634 Stratocles [3] Athenian, 4th cent. BG 0335875 [4] Stoic biographer, late 2nd/early rst cents. BC 1 a A A)
Sulpicius. [II 17] S. Victor Roman rhetor, 4th cent.? 13,941 Symmachus [II 4] Q. Aurelius S. Eusebius Foremost orator of the 2nd half of the 4th cent. AD 14, Oa
Theodectes Athenian rhetor and tragedian, 4th cent. BC
14, 439-441
Theodorus [I 3} T. of Byzantium Orator, 5th/4th cent. BC
14,454
[I 16] T. of Gadara, Greek rhetor, 2nd half of the rst cent. BC
14, 457-458
Theodotos [9] Iulius T. Sophist from Melite, 2nd cent. 14,479
T19
3.1. GREEK
Theopompus [3] Th. of Chios Greek historian, ath cent. BC
14, 519-521
Thrasymachus From Chalcedon, sophist rhetorician, late 5th cent. BC 14, 622-623 Tiberius [I 1] Greek rhetor, prob. late 3rd/4th cent. 14, 656
Timolaus [3] From Larisa, Greek rhetor, c. 3rd cent. BC
14, 699
Tisias [1] From Syracuse, founder of rhetoric, 5th cent. BC
14, 732
Titianus [1] lulius T. Tutor ofprinces, teacher of rhetoric, late 2nd
cent.
14,740
Triarius [2] Latin declamator under Augustus 14, 899 Troilus [2] T. from Side Sophist, 4th—sth cents. 14,962
Tyrannus Greek rhetor, 4th or 5th cent. AD
15, 66
15, 195
1, 686
I, 690
Antander [1] of Syracuse. Brother of Agathocles [2], end of the 4th COMED Cm 7.08
15, 319 orator, rst cent.
15, 523-524
Xenocles [6] Rich Athenian rhetor,
2nd half 4th cent. BC 15, 806 Zeno [12] From Laodicea; Greek rhetorician and politician, rst cent. BC
15, 894
[15] Greek rhetorician, 2nd cent.
15,894
Zopytus [5] Greek rhetor, 3rd cent.
15, 963
Antiochus [19] of Syracuse. Historian, sth cent. BC 1,767 Apollodorus [8a] From Artemita,
Cleitarchus [2] Son of Dinon, Alex-
Greek historian, rst cent. BC
Appianus [I] Historian (c. AD 90160)
I,
LLO$—D106
Aristocrates [4] Spartan historian, 41112
Aristocritus Historian from Miletus (ust centeB@),
Tree
Aristus Late Hellenistic Alexander historian 1, 1155 Arrianus [2] A. of Nicomedia Greek philosopher and historian,
died around AD 85-90
2, 26-
27 Asclepiades [7] A. Greek commentator or historian 2,98
dratus, C. Cos. suff. under Septimuius Severus, probably historian 25 LOM
3.1. GREEK HISTORIANS 3.2. LATIN HISTORIANS
Cf. Subject Index 1.7. and CT index volume, Entry Index tr. 3.1. Greek historians
Abydenus Author of a ‘History of the Chaldaeans’ 1, 38 Acilius [I 2] A., C. Roman historian, 2nd cent. BC 1,99 Agatharchides of Cnidus Historian and geographer, c. 200 BC iy teat Agathias Historian and poet, 6th aH
IND)
atte)
Agathocles [10] Historian (5th or 4th cent. BC) 1, 317 [11] Historian
1, 317
Agroetas Greek historian of the Hellenistic era 1, 396 Alcimus [3] Historian from Sicily, 4th cent. BC 1,451
350 BC an ‘Atthis’
3, 417
ander historian, 4th cent.
BC
35 420-421
Clytus Of Miletus, pupil of Aristotle 3, 488 Cocceianus Historian c. AD 300 see Cassius [III r]
1, 897-899
Aristobulus [7] Alexandrian histo-
Asinius [II 13] A. Protimus Qua-
3. Historiography
3, 136
Chaereas [3] Historian of Hannibal, c. 200 BC (?) 3,173 Charax Greek historiographer, 2nd cent. AD 3,191 Charon [3] Greek author 3, 20320 [4] Author of a chronicle, hellenistic period (?) 3, 204 Cincius [2] C. Alimentus, L. Roman senator and historian 3, 341% Cleidemus From Athens, wrote c.
rst cent. AD)
Votienus Montanus From Narbo,
Cephalium [2] Hadrianic historian and orator 3, 130-131 Cephisodorus [7] Author of a history of the Third Sacred War
Anticlides Historian from Athens, E300 BC 1, 742
rian, 2nd half 4th cent. BC
Verginius [II 2] V. Flavus Roman rhetorician, rst cent. AD
BC
nika
Androtion Athenian politician and Atthidograper (4th cent. BC)
1, 998
Valerius [III 7] Q. V. Latin orator and antiquarian, end of the 2nd/beginning ofthe rst cent. BC
AD
Alexander [22] of Ephesus. Orator, statesman and historian 1, 479 Amyntas [7] Bematistes of Alexander [II 4] 1, 625 Andriscus [2] Of Naxos, historian, 3rd cent. BC 1, 682 Andron [2] From Halicarnassus, 4th cent. BC, author of Synge-
HISTORIANS
Athanis Syracusan, c. 360 BC, accompanied Dion, historian Ap, pags Aufidius [I 4] Au., Cn. Praetor c. AD 107 in Asia 2, 336 Callias [10] From Syracuse, favourite and historian of Agathocles
[2] 2,964
Callicles [5] Greek historian or grammarian of the Hellenistic period 2,965 Callimorphus Military doctor 2,980
Callistratus [I 5] (Domitius) C. Local historian 2,991 Callixeinus Of Rhodes, probably 2nd cent. BC, wrote On Alexandria 2,992
Candidus [4] Historian, late 5th cent. AD 2, 1047 Cassius [III 1] L. Cl(audius) C. Dio Cocceianus, Greek historian, c. AD 300 2, 1171-1172
Cratippus [1] Of Athens, contemporary of Thucydides, continued Th.’s work 3,924 Creophylus [2] Historian 3, 931 Ctesias Of Cnidus, 5th or 4th cent. BC, historian and physician
3, 969-970
Ctesicles [1] Author of Chronikd in
at least 3 vols. in the Hellenistic
period 3,973
Daimachus [1] Historian from Plataeae, 4th cent. BC 4, 40 [2] Historian from Plataeae, 3rd cent. BC 4, 40 Deinias Historian from Argos, 3rd cent. BG 4,183 Demetrius [28] D. of Byzantium.
Hellenistic historiographer
4, 252 [29] Jewish-Hellenistic chrono-
grapher
4,252
[30] D. of Callatis. Historian and
geographer, 3rd cent. BC Ave [33] Argive local historian
4, 253
Dexippus [2] P. Herennius D. Athenian historian 3rd cent. AD
4 330
Dieuchidas Son of Praxion of Megara, author, 4th cent. BC
4, 405
Diocles [7] Probably the first author of a history of Rome, c. 3rd cent. BC 4, 426-427 Dionysius [18] D. of Halicarnassus.
Greek historian and teacher of rhetoric in Rome, tst cent. BC
4, 480-484 Diyllus Greek historian 4, 583 Eunapius Greek sophist and historian, c. AD 400
5, 169-170
3.1. GREEK
I20
HISTORIANS
Euphantus Historian
5,179
Eupolemus [1] Jew.-Hell. historian
5, 192 Eusebius [7] of Caesarea. Bishop
and Church Father 5, 225-226 Eustathius [8] Writer of aworld history
5,231
Evagon Greek historian in the last quarter of the sth cent. BC
5) 242-243
6th cent. AD 6, 894 [18] I. Malalas. Author ofa Byzantine world chronicle, c. 490/500 —after AD 570 6, 895 [21] I. from Antioch. Author of Byzantine historical works 6, 896
Evagrius [3] Scholasticus. Anc.
Greek church historian
5, 244-
245
losephus [4] I. Flavius (Flavius Iose-
phus), Jew. Hell. historian, rst cent. AD
Fabius [I 35] F. Pictor, Q. First Roman historian, works written
in Greek, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 5, 295-296 Faustus [4] of Byzantium. GreekArmen. writer 5, 373-374 Georgius [3] G. Continuatus. Byz.
chronicle 5,787 [5] G. Monachos. Author ofa Byzantine chronicle, some time in the 9th cent. AD 5, 787-788 Hecataeus [3] H. of Miletus. Greek author, 6th cent. BC 6, 35-37 [4] H. of Abdera. Philosopher and historian, 4th cent. BC
6, 37-38
Hegesippus [4] Greek historian, c. 300 BC 6, 52-53 Hellanicus [1] H. of Mytilene. Greek historian, end of 5th cent. BC 6,79-80 Hereas From Megara, historian
6, 195
Herennius Philo Antiquarian, grammarian, historian, rst cent.
AD
lohannes [14] I. Diacrinomenus. Monophysite church historian,
6, 199-201
Hermaeus [2] Ethnographer, rst cent. BC
6, 206
Hermeias [1] Of Methymna, author ofSikelika, dated 4th cent. BC 6.211
Hermippus [2] H. of Smyrna. Greek grammarian and biographer, 3rd cent. BC 6, 227-228 Herodotus [1] The historian Herodotus, approx. 485-424 BC 6, 265-271
Hesychius [4] H. Illustrius. Greek chronicler, 6th cent. AD 6, 289-290
Hieronymus [6] H. of Cardia. Greek historiographer and politician, born approx. 360 BC 65, 3m6=3 171
Hippostratus [4] Historian,
approx. 3rd cent. BC 6, 376 Hippys Of Rhegium, historian, c.
480/479 BC
6, 379-380
Hyperochus Author of a local history of Cyme 6, 636 Iason [3] I. of Cyrene. Jew.-Hell. historian
6, 686
[6] I. Genesius. Conventional name of an anonymous Byz. hist. work 6,922 Ister, Istrus [2] Pupil of Callimachus, 3rd cent. BC 6, 988 lustus [2] I. of Tiberias. Jew. histo6, 1142
Kaminiates, lohannes Cleric, author of an account of the conquest of Thessalonike by the Arabs in 904 7,14
Kedrenos Georgios Author of a world chronicle ranging up to
L057
7,38
Leandr(i)us Of Miletus, Greek historian 7, 333 Leon [11] L. Diakonos Historian and deacon in Constantinople,
toth cent. AD 7, 398-399 Longinus [1] Cassius Longinus. Grammarian, Rhetor and platonic philosopher, c. AD 210272/3 7, 808-810
Lycus [12] L. of Rhegium Ethnographer and historiographer, 3rd cent. BC
7,939
Lydus [3] Iohannes L. Official and antiquarian writer, c. AD 490560 8, 14-15
Maeandrius [2] M. of Miletus Greek historian of the early Hellenistic period 8, 108 Malchus [4] Byzantine historian of the late 5th cent. AD
8, 198
Marsyas [2] Three historians named in the Suda 8, 406-407 Medius [2] Hetairos of Alexander the Great and author of awork about him
8, 588
Melanthius [6] M. of Athens Historian and writer on cults, 4th cent. BC
8, 666
[13] M. Protector Byzantine historian, 6th cent. 8, 668— 669
Menecles [2] Greek historian and antiqvarian, 2nd cent. BC 8, 672 Menecrates [4] Menecrates of Xan-
thus Greek historian of the 4th cent. BC
8, 673
Menodotus [1] M. of Perinthus
6, 920-922
rian, rst cent. AD
Menander [5] M. of Ephesus Greek historian, approx. 200 BC
8, 620
Meliton [1] Author of a text called “On the Clans in Athens” 8, 639 Memnon [5] M. of Heraclea Author of a local history of Heraclea, probably Imperial period 8, 652 Menaechmus [1] M. of Sicyon Greek historian and antiquary, 4th cent. BC 8, 658-659
Historian, c. 200 BC
8, 695
Mnesiptolemus Greek historian at the court of king Antiochos III of Seleucia (222-187 BC)
9, to1-
102 Myron [4] M. of Priene Greek historian, perhaps 3rd cent. BC 9, 418 Myrsilus [2] Historian, middle of 3rd cent. BC 9, 422 Nicander |3] Of Colophon, historian and antiquarian, c. 200 BC 9, 706 Nicolaus [3] N. of Damascus. Greek author and court historian, born c. 64 BC 9, 725-728 Nymphis From Heraclia on the Pontus, Greek historian c.
after 246 BC
310 -
9,927
Olympiodorus [3] Late ancient historian
10, 112
Petrus [4] P. Patricius Byzantine
official and historiographer, 6th cent.
10, 886-887
[5] P. Sikeliotes Anti-Paulician historian, 9th cent. 10, 887 Phanodemus Greek historian, 4th cent. BC 10,917 Pherecydes [2] P. of Athens. Author
ofagenealogical work, 5th cent. BC
10, 951-952
Philinus [5] P. of Acragas. Historian, 3rd cent. BC
11, 22-23
Philistus Greek officer and historian, 5th/4th cent. BC 11, 48-
49 Philo [I ro] Ph. Historicus. JewishHellenistic historian, before 40
BC
11, 54-55
Philostorgius Church historian, 2nd half of the 4th cent. Tie nea Plutarchus [2] Greek author from Chaeronea, c. AD 45 — before AD 125 11, 410-425 Polybius [2] Greek historian, 3rd/and. cent. BC: 11, 496-503 Polycritus Historian from western Greece, middle of the 4th cent. Bw unasns
Polyzelus [2] P. of Rhodes Author ofa local history of Rhodes, c. 300 BC 11, 540
121
3.2. LATIN HISTORIANS
Priscus [4] Greek historian and rhetor, sth cent. 11,874 Procopius [3] Historian 11, 921-
925 Promathidas From Heraclea on the Pontus. Local historian, before ATO) JKC! 1d. 5 Ptolemaeus [31] Of Megalopolis, historian, emissary to Rome in
204 BC 12, 152-153 Rufus [8] (Rhuphos) Historian and paradoxographer, Roman imperialera 12,758 Sextus [II 2] S. Iulius Africanus
Author ofthe first Christian world chronicle, c. 200
13, 372-373
Silenus [1] S. from Caleacte Greek historian, 2nd cent. BC
13,456
Simonides [3] Greek historian?
13, 488 Socrates [9] Greek Church historian, Cc. 400
13, 600-601
Sosibios [3] Grammarian, chrono-
grapher and cult author, c. 200
BC
13, 657
Sozomenus Church historian, 5th cent.
13, 684
Strabo [1] Greek geographer and historian, Augustan Period 13, 865-869
Teucer [3] Greek historian, rst cent.
BC
14, 330
Theagenes [7] Greek historian
Xenomedes Of Ceos, logographer, sth cent. BC 15, 816 Xenophilus [4] Greek historian, after 600 BC 15, 823 Xenophon [2] X. of Athens Greek historian, Socratic, c. 430-354 BC
Canius Rufus Known through Martial, best known as a historian
2, 1050 Cassius [III 5] C. Hemina, L. Roman Annalist, 2nd cent. BC
Liye ATA
Chronographer of 354
15, 824-833
[x0] X. of Ephesus Novelist, probably 2nd cent. 15, 834-836 Zenis [2] From Chios, author of a work on his homeland, 4th cent.
3, 275-
276
Claudius [I 30] C. Quadrigarius, Q. Historiographer, rst half of the tst cent. BC 3, 395-396
BC? 15, 882 Zenodotus [2] Z. of Troizen Greek
{Ul 1] Emperor, AD 41-54
historian ofthe Hellenistic period 15, 906 Zoilos [1] Greek Sophist from Amphipolis, 4th cent. BC
Clodius [II 6] C.C. Licinus. Cos.
15,947
Zonaras Byzantine historian and ecclesiastical jurist 15, 950-951 Zopytus [6] From Magnesia, Greek historian, 4th/3rd cents. BC
35 405-409 suff. AD 4, historiographer
3, 469
Cluvius [II 3] P.C.Rufus. Cos. suff. before AD 65, historiographer 3, 486 Coelius [I 1] C. Antipater, L. Historiographer, late 2nd cent. BC 3, 505-506 Cremutius Cordus Roman historio-
15, 963 Zosimus [5] Historian, c. 500 E59 972-973
grapher, Augustan senator
35 929
3.2. Latin historians Cf. Subject Index 1.7. and CT index volume, Entry Index tr.
Ablabius [3] Historiographer, 4th— 5th cent. AD 1, 23 Acilius [I 2] A., C. Roman historian, 2nd cent. BC 1, 99
Eutropius [1] Author of a Lat. historical work 5, 238-239 Fabius [I 35] F. Pictor, Q. First Roman historian, works written in Greek, 3rd/2nd cent. BC
55 295-296 [II 19] F. Rusticus. Friend of
Seneca and historian
5, 300
Actorius Naso, M., author of a
Fannius [I 1] F.M. f., C. Rom. sena-
14, 430-431
work about Caesar 1, 127 Aelius [I 14] Ae. Tubero, L. Legate 61-58 BC, historian 1, 203 [I x7] Ae. Tubero, Q. Jurist and
tor and historian, partaker in the storming of Carthage 5,350 Fenestella Rom. historian ofthe early Imperial period 5, 379-
Author of a world chronicle, late
Alfius [1] Historian, rst cent. BC
14, 376
- Themistogenes Author of awork on Cyrus [3], c. 400 BC? Theophanes [2] T. Homologetes 8th/early 9th cents.
14, 503
Theophylactus [1] T. Simocatta Byzantine historian, 7th cent.
14, 517-518
Theopompus [3] Th. of Chios Greek historian, 4th cent. BC
LAY SL9=520
Theotimus Greek historian of the Hellenistic period 14, 529 Thucydides [2] T. of Athens Greek historian, 2nd half of 5th cent. BC 14, 632-637 Timaeus [2] T. of Tauromenium Western Greek historican, c. 350-260 BC
14, 677-679
Timagenes [1] T. of Alexandria Greek rhetor and historian, rst cent. BC 14, 680-681 Xanthus [3] X. the Lydian. Author of Lydiaca, c. 450 BC 15,795-
15,797
Xenion Author of an historical treatise on Crete, 3rd cent. BC
15, 804
1, 204
15, 504 4th cent. AD 1, 584-587 Ampius [2] Balbus, T., Praetor 59 BC, historian 1, 617 Annius Fetialis Roman historian, tst cent. AD 1,709
Aquillius [I 15] A. Niger. Historian, G. tsi cent. AD
1,934
Arruntius [II 2] L. Cos. ord. 22 BC, historian 2,30 Asinius [I 4] A. Pollio. C. Cos. 40 BC, historian 2, 159-160 Aufidius [II o] A. Bassus. Roman
historian, rst cent. AD
2, 336-
SOT.
Beda Venerabilis (The Venerable
Bede) Anglo-Saxon, theologian and historian 2, 570-573 Bruttedius Niger Rhetor and histo2, 793
Calpurnius [I rr] C. Piso, C. Roman historian 2, 997 {Il x] C. Piso Frugi, L. Roman senator and historian, 2nd
cent. BC
380
Festus [4] F. Rufius. Author ofa breviarium of Roman history,
Ammianus Marcellinus Historian,
rian, 1st cent. BC
796
Xenagoras [1] Greek historian and geographer, probably in the 3rd cent. BC
historian, 1st cent. BC
2, 1003
AD 372 proconsul of Asia
5, 407 Filocalus, Furius Dionysius Rom.
calligrapher of the 4th cent. AD
5, 426 Gellius [2] G., Cn. Rom. historian, end of the 2nd cent. AD 5,726 Gildas Oldest historian of the Britons, born before AD 500
5, 850-851 Granius [II 2] G. Licinianus Histo-
rian probably of the 2nd cent.
AD
5, 989-990
Gregorius [II 4] G. of Tours Bishop of Tours, 6th cent. AD 5, 1030 Guido Lat. compilator of an encyclopaedia c. AD 1119 5, 1039 Hirtius, Aulus Author of book 8 of De Bello Gallico, Cos. 43 BC, fell at Mutina
6, 382-383
Hydatius [2] Chronicler from Spain, bishop in AD 427 6, 598 Iohannes [20] I. Abba Biclarensis. Goth, continuer of Victor Tun-
nunensis, approx. 540-621 6, 896
3.2. LATIN
I22
HISTORIANS
Iulius [IV 6] I. Exuperantius. Grammarian of late antiquity, author ofa breviarium on the early Roman civil wars 6, 1081 Iunianus see l[ustinus [5] Tustinus [5] M. Iunian(i)us I.
Author of an Epitome historiarum Philippicarum, c. AD 400 6, 1140-1141 Licinius [I 30] L. Macer, C. Senator
and historian, people’s tribune
73 BC 7, 531-532 F738
Livius [III 2] L., T. Roman historiographer, 59 BC-17 AD
7» 749-754 Lucceius [I 3] L., L. Historiographer, praetor urbanus 67 BC
7, 835 Macer [1] Licinius M., C. nius [I 30]
see Lici-
Magnus [8] M. of Carrhae Historian, 4th cent. AD 8, 176-177 Marcellinus [II 14] M. Comes Official under emperor Justinian I, author ofa world chronicle, [14] M. Comes
8,297
Marius [II 22] Bishop of Aventicum AD 574-594, author ofa world chronicle, [Il 22] 8, 372-373 Nennius. Author of the Historia Brittonum, c. 829
work of history 13,956 Symmachus [II 6] Q. Aurelius Memmius S. Historian, cos. in
485
14,7
Tacitus [1](P.?) Cornelius T. Latin
rpc eo eec. AD 5 5-c. 120 14, LOS-I11 Tanusius Geminus Roman historian, rst cent. BC 14, 134
Terentius [I 15] T. Varro, M. Polymathic Roman author,
Liutprandus of Cremona From Cremona, bishop of Cremona, toth CONES
Sura [2] Aemilius $. Author of a
9, 634-635
Paulus [II 4] P. Diaconus Lombard grammarian, 8th cent. 10, 644-
116-27
BC see Varro [2] (Reatinus) Valerius [III 2] V. Antias Roman historian, tst cent. BC 15, 191-
192 {I 5] V. Maximus Author of a handbook ofhistorical examples, rst cent. 15, 193-194 Varro [2] V. Terentius, M. (Reatinus) Roman polymath author, 116-27 BC 15, 209-226 Velleius [4] V. Paterculus Roman historian, around the beginning of the commonera 15, 265-267 Victor [7] S. Aurelius V. Roman historian, 4th cent. 15, 396B27,
[8] V. Tunnennensis Bishop in Africa, chronicler, 6th cent.
15,397
[9] V. Vitensis Bishop in Africa, historian, 5th cent. 15, 397-
398 Zosimus [5] Historian, c. 500
15, 971-973
645
Pelagius [2] Epic poet and historian, 5th cent. to, 689 Plinius [1] P. Secundus, C. (Pliny the Elder). Roman historian and orator, 1st cent.
11, 383-390
Polemius Silvius. Author of a chronographical index, c. AD 448/9
II, 456-457 Pompeius. [III 3] P. Trogus Roman historian of Gaulish or Vocon-
tian origin, writer of ‘De animalibus’ 11, 572-574 Postumius. [I 4] P. Albinus, A. Roman senator and historian, c. 150 BC 11, 693-694 Rufius [2] Author of a historical breviarium 12,754 Rutilius. [1 3] R. Rufus, P. Roman
politician and jurist, 2nd/rst cents. BC
12, 794-795
Sallustius [II 3] C. S. Crispus Roman politician and historian,
86-34 BC 12, 890-894 Seneca [1] L. Annaeus S. The Elder,
Latin rhetor and historian, first years of Principate 13, 269-270 Sulpicius. [II 1] S. Alexander. Author of an historical work on the late Imperial Period
13,937
4. Philosophy Cf. Subject Index 14. and CT index volume, Entry Index 7. Acron Greek philosopher 1, 113 Adrastus [3] of Aphrodisias. Peripatetic philosopher 1, 155 Aedesius [1] Neoplatonist from Cappadocia 1, 167 Aeficianus Greek doctor and philosopher, c. AD 150 I, I7ITo7) Aelianus [3] Pythagorizing Platonist of the 2nd cent. AD 1, 201 Aeneas [4] Christian rhetor from Gaza, 5th cent. AD
1, 222
Aenesidemus Founder of Pyrrhonism 1, 223 Aeschines [1] Student ofSocrates Tez A [4] from Neapolis. One of Carneades’ youngest students
I, 244 Aetius [2] Doxographer ofrst cent. AD 1, 274-276
Agapius Neoplatonic philosopher, 6th cent. AD 1, 308-309 Agrippa [3] Sceptic (1st or 2nd cent. AD) 1, 393
Albinus [3] Of Smyrna. Platonic Se is of the 2nd cent. AD I, 431-4 Albucies a]T, follower of Epicurus (end of 2nd cent. BC) 1, 433 Alcinous [2] Platonic philosopher of the 2nd cent. AD 1, 452 Alcmaeon [4] of Croton. Natural philosopher of the early 5th cent.
BC
1, 454-455
Alexander [26] of Aphrodisias. Commentator on Aristotle
I, 480-483
Alexinus Megarian from Elis I, 5OO-5ol Amafinius, C. Author of didactic writings 1,555
Amelius Gentilianus Philosopher of the 3rd cent. AD 1, 575-576 Ammonius [5] Platonic philosopher of the rst cent. AD 1, 589 [9] Saccas. Platonic philosopher, teacher of Plotinus 1, 589-
590 [12] Son of Hermias. Neoplato-
nist of the 6th cent. AD
I, 590-591 Anacharsis Scythian ofprincely family, 6th cent. BC 1, 629 Anaxagoras [2] Natural philosopher, 5th cent. BC 1, 656-657 Anaxarchus Democritean philosopher, 4th cent. BC 1, 658-659 Anaxilaus [2] Pythagorean, banned from Rome as magus 1, 660 Anaximander Natural philosopher, 6th cent. BC 1, 660-661 Anaximenes [1] Natural philoso-
pher, 6th cent. BC 1, 661-662 Anchipylus Philosopher, student of Phaedo of Elis
1, 666
Andronicus [4] of Rhodes. Peripatetic head of philosophical schools, rst cent. BC
1, 687-688
Annaeus [II 6] A. Seneca, L., philosopher. 1,702 Anniceris of Cyrene, 4th/3rd cent. BC. 1,705 Antigonus [7] from Carystus. Biographer and paradoxical writer, 3rd cent.BC 1,751 Antiochus [20] of Ascalon. Platonic
phiosopher of the rst cent. BC, teacher of Cicero 1,768 Antipater [6] from Cyrene. Pupil of Aristippus
1,773
[10] of Tarsus. Stoic philosopher, 2nd cent. BC 1,774-775 Antiphon [4] of Rhamnus Orator and author of rhetorical writings, sophist, sth cent. BC 1,779782
Antisthenes [1] Student of Socrates
1, 785-787 [2] of Rhodes. Doxographer
1, 787
123
4. PHILOSOPHY
Apollodorus [9] Of the attic deme of Phalerum 1, 862 [10] Kepotyrannos. Head of the Epicurean School of the 2nd cent. BC
1, 862
[x1] Stoic. Pupil of Antipater of Tarsus, 2nd cent. BC 1, 862 [12] of Seleucia. Of Tigris, Stoic, 2nd cent. BC 1, 862 Apollonius [14] of Tyana. Pythagoraean ofthe 1st cent. AD I, 881
Vin ise Gia in by
Apsines Sophist from Gadara, 3rd cent. AD 1,914 Arcesilaus [5] Student of Theophrastus 1,973-974 Archedemus [2] of Tarsus. Stoic philosopher in Babylon, died c. 140 BC 1,980 Archelaus [8] of Athens. Alleged teacher of Socrates 1, 983 Archippus [2] Pythagoraean
1,999 Archytas [1] of Tarentum. Pythagoraean philosopher 1, 1031-
1033
Arete [2] Daughter ofAristippus [3] and mother ofAristippus [4]; introduced her son to philosophy LekOSS Aristion [1] Epicurean philosopher, ‘Tyrant’ of Athens (88-86 BC)
I, 1102 Aristippus [3] the Elder. Student of Socrates
1, 1103
[4, the Younger] Grandson of Aristippus [3] 1, 1103 [5] Member of the New Academy I, [104 Aristocles [1] of Messene. Peripatetic philosopher of the early imperial era 1, 1106 Aristocreon Nephew and pupil of Chrysippus, author of a text in his memory after his death in 207 BG
aetrr Tr,
Ariston [2] of Alexandria. Peripatetic philosopher, rst cent. BC Tap wane ee [3] of Ceos. Peripatetic philosopher 1, 1119-1120 [4] of Cos. Peripatetic philosopher 1, 1120 [5] of Cos. Philosopher, opponent of rhetoric, 3rd cent. BC 1h, wexo, [7] of Chios. Stoic, pupil of Zeno I, I120-1121 Aristoteles [4] From Sicyon, dialectician, middle of the 3rd cent. BC re
[7] of Cyrene. Cyrenaic, c. 300 BO. 1047, [8] of Mytilene. Peripatetic of the 2nd cent. AD 1, 1147 Aristoxenus [1] Musician, Musical theoretician, philosopher, biographer, from Tarentum I, IL§4-1155 Arius [1] Didymus Doxographer, possibly identical with the Stoic philosopher, rst cent. BC
36
[6] Aristotle, son of Nicomachus, of Stagira Philosopher and natural scientist, 4th cent. BC I, L1L36-L147
[2] Stoic philosopher of the rst cent. BC 1, 1157-1158 Arnobius [1] of Sicca. Christian Rhetor of the 3rd/4th cent. AD 2, 17-19 Arrianus [2] A. of Nicomedia Greek philosopher and historian, died around AD 85-90 2, 26-
27
2, 701-
706
Boethus [2] Of Sidon. Stoic Philosopher, 2nd cent. BC 2,707 [3] From Marathon. Academic philosopher, died 120 BC
S707 [4] Of Sidon. Peripatetic philosopher 2,707 Bryson Philosopher of the Megarian school, 4th cent. BC 2, 797 Calanus Indian sage, 4th cent. BC
2, 931-932
Calcidius Christian philosopher, 4th cent. AD 2, 936-937 Callicratidas [2] Probably the pseudonym of the author of the Pythagorean treatise ‘On the Felicity of Families’ 2, 969 Callinus [2] Peripatetic philosopher 2, 982
Asclepiades [3] From Phleius. Student with Stilpon, around the 3rd COHEIB EG R2s 95 Asclepiodotus [3] Neoplatonic philosopher 2, 100 Aspasius [1] Commentator on Aristotle 2, 167 Asterius [2] Sophis from CappadoGd
pher, c. AD 480-524
2si9L
Athenodorus [2] From Tarsus, Stoic
of the rst cent. BC 2,252 [3] Calvus. Stoic of the rst cent. BC 2, 252-253 Attalus [8] Stoic, head of a philosophical school in Rome (rst. cent. AD)
2, 308
Atticus [1] Platonic philosopher, c. AD 176
2, 325-326
Augustinus, Aurelius (Augustine) Church father, theologist, AD
354-430
2, 355-362
Aurelius [I 13] A. Opillus. Freedman, ist cent. BC, teacher ofphilosophy, rhetoric and grammar 2, 383
Avidius [2] A. Heliodorus, C. Epi-
curean philosopher and rhetor, Praef. Aegypti between 137-142 ALS Axiothea Woman from Phleius, interested in philosophy 2, 431 Bardesanes Aramaic philosopher and astrologer, AD 154-222
2, 507-508 Basileides [1] Leader of the Epicurean School (since 201/o)
2, 516-$17 Bion [1] Of Borysthenes. Peripatetic philosopher (c. 335-c. 245 BC) 2, 659-660 Blossius [2] of Cumae. Politician and philosopher, died 128 BC 2, 690
Boethius, Anicius Manlius Severi-
nus Latin writer and philoso-
[3] Of Hermione. Peripatetic philosopher 2, 982 Carneades [1] Academic philosopher from the 3rd/2nd cent. BC 2,
[LEL8=1119
[2] C. the Younger. Academic philosopher from the 2nd cent. BO 23 1119 Carneiscus Student of Epicurus 2, 1120 Cassiodorus Roman politician and scholar, c. AD 490-590 2, [161-1163 Cassius [III 7] C. Longinus. He eligi Castricius [2] C. Firmus. Student of Plotinus, 3rd cent. AD
2, 1189
Cebes Friend of Socrates 3, 58 Celsus, [I] Platonist, 2nd cent. AD
3) 72-73
Chaeredemus One ofthe brothers of Epicurus, c.300 BC 3,174 Chaeremon [2] Stoic philosopher, tst cent. AD 3,174 Chaerephon Follower of Socrates, late 5th cent. BC 3,175 Charmides [2] Epicurean philosopher 3,202 Chion Pupil of Plato, author of letters, 4th cent. BC 3, 230 Chrysanthius Neoplatonist, 4th cent. AD 3, 286 Chrysippus [2] Stoic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC 3, 288-293 Claudianus [4] C. Mamertus. Presbyter in Vienne (Gaul), 5th cent.
AD
3, 389-390
Claudius [II 64] Cn. C. Severus Arabianus. Cos. ord. AD 146, philosopher 3, 405 Cleanthes [2] From Assus, Stoic philosopher 3, 413-414 Clearchus [6] Peripatetic 3, 415416
4. PHILOSOPHY Cleinias [6] Pythagorean from Tarent
3, 417-418
Cleinomachus Student of Euclides [2] of Megara 3, 418 Cleitomachus [1] Academic philosopher 3, 421-422 Clemens [3] T. Flavius Clemens Christian philosopher, c. AD 200
3, 426-427
Clement of Alexandria see Clemens [3] of Alexandria (1.2: Greek authors) Clodius [II 15] P.C. Thrasea Paetus. From Patavium, tst cent. AD 3, 469-470 Colotes [2] Pupil of Epicurus
3, 583
Coriscus Socratic, sth cent. BC
3, 805 Cornutus [4] L. Annaeus Cornutus.
Stoic philosopher and scholar, tst cent. AD 3, 840 Crantor Academic philosopher 3rd cent. BC 3, 912-913 Crates [3] C. of Athens. Academic philosopher 3rd cent. BC 3,916 [4] C. of Thebes. Cynical philosopher, Diogenes of Sinope’s student 3,916-917 [5] C. of Mallus. Grammarian and philosopher 3, 917-919 [6] of Tarsus, academic philosopher, later 2nd cent. BC
3,919
Cratippus [2] Of Pergamum, peripatetic
3,925
Cratylus Heraclitean 3,925 Crescens [2] Cynical philosopher mid-2nd cent. AD 3, 932 Crinis Stoic logician 3,943 Critolaus [1] Of Phaselis, peripatetic head of school 3,948 Criton [1] Wealthy friend of Socrates, of the same age 3,948 Cronius [1] Platonist 3, 958-959 Damascius Neoplatonist, last head
of the Academy in Athens
4, 51-53
Damon [2] Pythagorean from SyraCuse
4, 64-65
[3] Sophist and theoretician of music, 5th/4th cent. BC 4, 65-66 Dandamis Indian sage, came into contact with Greeks at the beginning of 326 BC 4, 76-77 Dardanus [3] from Athens. Stoic philosopher 4, 89 David [2] David of Armenia. Commentator on Aristotle 4, 108— 109 Deinomachus Philosopher 4, 185 Demetrius [4] D. of Phalerum. Politician and philosopher, 4th cent.
BC 4,245
124
[21] D. Lacon. Epicurean 2nd cent. BC 4,250
[22] D. of Byzantium. Peripatetic Est cent, Boe 4, 25a [24] Cynical philosopher rst cent. AD 4,251 Democritus [1] of Abdera Atomist
philosopher, 2nd half of the 5th cent. BC
4, 267-269
[2] Platonic philosopher 4, 269-270 Demonax [3] of Cyprus. Cynic philosopher rst cent. AD 4,275 Dercylides Philosopher, rst cent. BC 4, 311-312 Dexippus [4] Neoplatonic philosopher, 4th cent. AD 4, 331 Dicaearchus From Messene, stu-
dent of Aristotle 4, 369-371 Diocles [9] of Magnesia. Hellenistic author of biographies and sum-
maries of the teachings ofphilosophers 4, 427-428 Diodorus [3] of Aspendus. Pythagorean of the 4th cent. BC
4, 438-439 [4] Son of Aminias 4, 439-440 [16] of Tyrus. Peripatetic, 2nd cent. BC 4, 443 Diogenes [11] of Ptolemais. Stoic philosopher 4, 448 [12] Natural philosopher, 5th cent. BC 4, 448-449 [13] of Smyrna. Democritean
4,449 [x4] of Sinope 4, 449-451
[15] of Babylon. Head ofthe Stoic school, 3rd/2znd cent. BC
4) 451-452 [16] of Tarsus. Epicurean
4, 452
[17] Laertius Author of a history of Greek philosophy 4, 452-
455
[18] of Oenoanda. Epicurean, 2nd/3rd cent. AD 4, 455-
456 [20] from Tarsus. Philosopher and poet 4,456 Diogenianus [1] Epicurean
4, 456-457 Diognetus [5] Teacher of Marcus Aurelius 4,458 Dion [I 2] Alexandrian philosopher c.90 BC 4, 466 [I 3] D. Cocceianus of Prusa.
Orator and philosopher in the rst cent. AD, from Prusa (also called Chrysostomus) 4, 466-468 [I 1] Close friend of Plato and defender ofhis philosophy
4, 465-466 Dionysius [6] D. Petosarapas,
influential Egyptian philosopher mid-2nd cent. BC 4, 475
[8] D. of Heraclea. Pupil of Zeno, 4th/3rd cent. BC 4, 476 [9] D. from Chalcedon. C. 350
BC
4,476
[ro] D. from Cyrene. Stoic philosopher and mathematician 4,476 [x1] D. of Lamptrae. Head ofthe Epicurean school 4, 476 [12] Stoic philosopher 4, 476 Diotogenes Author of pseudoPythagorean treatises 4,524 Ecdemus Academic philosopher 3rd cent. BC 4,779-780 Echecrates [2] Pythagorean from Phleius 4,781 Ecphantus [2] Pythagorean from Syracuse, probably of the 4th cent. BC
4,799
Elias [2] Neoplatonic philosopher 6th cent. AD 4,919 Empedocles [1] from Agrigentum. Pre-Socratic
4, 943-947
Epictetus [2] Stoic philosopher 4, 1069-1071
Epicurus Philosopher, founder of Epicureanism, 342/1 — 271/0 BC 4, 1075-1084
Epiphanius [5] Member ofthe Sophist circle of Gaza
4, 1121
Erastus From Scepsis, pupil of Plato, 4th cent. BC 5,15 Eubulides [1] E. from Miletus. 4th cent. BC 5,131 Euclides [2] of Megara. Student of Socrates
5,137
Eudemus [2] of Cyprus. Friend of Aristotle 5, 145 [3] of Rhodes Student of Aristotle
5, 145-147 [7] Peripatetic of the 2nd cent. AD 5, 147-148 Eudorus [2] of Alexandria. Platonic philosopher of the rst cent. BC
5, 49-150 Eugnostus Author of a letter about cosmogony 5,159 Euphrates [1] Stoic philosopher from Syrian Tyre 5, 185 Eurytus [2] Pythagorean from Croton
5,223
Eustathius [2] Neoplatonic philosopher and rhetor 5,229 Eustochius Adherent of Plotinus 525 Euthydemus [4] Sophist 5, 234 Evander [3] from Phocaea. Academic philosopher of the 3rd/2nd cents. BC 5,246 Fabianus [2] Papirius F. see Papirius Fabius [I 18] F. Gallus, M. Roman Epicurean and friend of Cicero
5,291
Favorinus Rhetor, Buntschriftsteller, beginning of the 2nd cent.
AD
5, 375-376
125
4. PHILOSOPHY
Flavius [II ro] F. Archippus. Philosopher of the rst cent. AD 5,459
Gaius Platonic philosopher of the 2nd cent. AD 5, 642 Galen of Pergamum Greek physician and philosopher 5, 654661
Gaudentius [1] G. Philosophus. Musician and philosopher
5,710 Glaucon [3] Son ofAriston and of Perictione
5, 867
Gorgias [2] G. of Leontini Father of
Sophistic 5, 933-935
Gregorius [I 2] G. of Nyssa Theologian, 4th cent. AD 5, 10251027 Hagnon [3] of Tarsus. Student of Cameades 5, 1096 Harpocration [1] Platonic philosopher from Argos 5, 1150 Hecataeus [4] H. of Abdera. Philosopher and historian, 4th cent.
BC
6, 37-38
Hecaton Stoic of Rhodes, pupil of Panaetius, tst cent. BC
6, 42
Hegesias [1] Cyrenaic, c. 300 BC 6, 50
Hegesinus [1] Teacher of Carneades, 2nd cent. BC
6, 51
Hegias [4] Neoplatonist, 5th cent.
AD
6, 55-56
Heraiscus Neoplatonist from Alexandria, 5th cent. AD
6, 183
Heraclides [16] H. Ponticus the Elder Platonist, 4th cent. BC
6y27m
[19] H. Lembus. Originally platonist philosopher, politician, doxographer, 4th cent. BC
cuse
6, 301
Hierax [4] Middle-Platonist philosopher, 2nd cent. AD 6, 305 [5] Neoplatonist, 5th cent. AD
6, 305 Hierocles [3] Stoic philosopher, 2nd cent. AD 6, 306 [5] Sossianus H. High ranking imperial official in the admtnistration and a neoplatonist, C. 300
63 E7L
Heraclitus [1] H. of Ephesus Ionian philosopher, c. 500 BC 6, 176-
nic philosopher 6, 307 Hieronymus [7] H. of Rhodes. Peripatetic, 3rd cent. BC 6, 317 Hipparchia Cynic philosopher from Maronea 6, 334-335 Hipparchus [3] Pythagorean
6, 335
cent. BC 6, 339-340 Hippias [5] Sophist from Elis, sth/4th cent. BC 6, 344 Hippobotus Writer on the history of philosophy, Hellenistic period
6, 348
Hippon Pythagorean natural philosopher, 5th cent. BC 6, 372 Hypatia Neoplatonic philosopher,
Heraclius [3] Cynic, 4th cent. AD 180
Herculanius Neoplatonist, c. AD 400
6,189
Herillus Stoic philosopher from Carthage, 3rd cent. BC 6, 204 Hermarchus Student and successor of Epicurus, c. 300 BC 6, 208209 Hermeias [3] of Alexandria. Neoplatonist philosopher 6,211 Hermias [7] Author of amocking work against Greek philosophers
Hermodamas Alleged teacher of Pythagoras, 6th cent. 6,230
BC?
Hermodorus [2] H. of Syracuse. Student of Plato 6, 23%
Idomeneus [2] Epicurean from
BC 7,447 Longinus [1] Cassius Longinus. Grammarian, Rhetor and plato272/3
7, 808-810
Lucius [I] [2] Follower ofthe Roman Stoic Musonius Rufus
7, 855
(I) [3] Platonic philosopher, 2nd cent. AD 7,855 Lucretius [III 1] L. Carus, T., The
[3] Peripatetic from Lampsacus, approx. 350-270 BC 6,717 Iohannes [9] I. Stobaeus. see Sto-
baeus [19] Philoponus
see Philoponus
Isidorus [7] Neoplatonist from
Alexandria, 5th cent. AD 6, 962
Isocrates Attic orator, 436-338 BC
7, 860-864
7, 887-888
Lycon [4] From the Troad, leader of the Peripatetic School, 3rd cent.
BC 7,924
[5] Pythagorean, 2nd half of the 4th cent. BC 7,924 Lycophron [6] L. ‘the Sophist’ L. ‘the sophist’ 7, 927-928 Lysis Pythagorean of Tarentum Macrobius [1] M., Theodosius Writer of the Saturnalia, c. 400 8, 101-103 8, 216
Marcellinus [I 3] Philosopher Marcus [II 2] Marcus Aurelius. Roman emperor AD 161-180
and philosopher 8, 325-330 Marinus [I 4] Neoplatonist philo-
sopher from Neapolis (Samaria), end of the sth cent. AD, [I 4]
8, 358-359 Maximus [I 1] of Tyre. Author of lectures mainly on ethics and theology, 2nd cent. AD, [1]
6, 979-983 Iustinus [6] Iustinus Martys. Philo-
sopher and martyr, died AD 165 Konstantinos [3] K. of Sicily. Poet, philosopher and grammarian, roth cent.
BC
Lupus [3] Alleged author of a funerary inscription from the surrounding area of Aquincum
8,295
BAT 07:
7,95
Lachares [2] Greek rhetor and
sophist, 5th cent. AD
144
Founder of atomism, 5th cent.
Manaechmus Platonic philosopher
6,704
6, I141
6, 224
Herminus Peripatetic, 2nd cent. AD Gy 2215
9th cent. AD 7, 398 Leonteus [2] Of Lampsacus, student of Epicurus 7, 404 Leontium [1] Student of Epicurus, 342/1-270 BC 7, 407 Lesbonax [3] Philosopher from Mytiline, rst cent. BC 7, 429 Leucippus [5] L. from Miletus, Elea
8, 45-46
6, 627-628
Iamblichus [2] Neoplatonist, 3rd/4th cent. AD 6, 666-669 Ichthyas Pupil of Euclides, 4th cent.
Lampsacus, 4th/3rd cent. BC
178
7, 161
Roman poet Lucretius, tst cent.
[4] H. of Stagira. Student of Aristotle 6, 336 Hippasus [5] Pythagorean, 5th
BC
cent. BC
Leon [10] Byzantine philosopher,
nic philosopher, c. AD 210-
6,306
[7] H. of Alexandria. Neoplato-
415
Lacydes Academic philosopher, 3rd
mathematician and astronomer,
Hestiaeus Student of Plato 6, 287 Hicetas [3] Pythagorean from Syra-
editor of the Almagest, died AD
6, 169-170
6,
Hermogenes [1] Companion of Socrates 6,232 Herodotus [2] Student of Epicurus
7, 143-
Maximus of Tyrus 8, 516 [I 3] M. of Lycia Neoplatonist, 4th cent. AD, [3] Maximus of Lycia 8,517 [1 4] From Byzantium, possibly addressee of a letter from Basilius, [4] [I 5] M. of Ephesus Neoplatonist, 4th cent. AD, [5] Maximus of Ephesus 8, 517-518
126
4. PHILOSOPHY
Medius [3] 3rd cent. Megaclides 4th cent. Melanthius
Stoic philosopher ofthe AD 8, 588 Homeric interpreter, BC 8, 595 [7] M. of Rhodes Aca-
demic Philosopher, 2nd cent. BC 8, 620
Melissa [2] Anon. (female?) author ofa Pythagorean letter, c. 100?
[3] Partner of Carneades 8, 634 Melissus (MéAtoooc; Meélissos). [2] M. of Samos Eleatic philosopher, 5th cent. BC 8, 635-636 Menedemus [4] M. of Pyrrha Pupil of Plato [1], 4th cent. BC 8, 675 [5] M. of Eretria 3 50/45-265/60 8, 675-676
[6] Pupil of Colotes, 3rd cent. BC 8, 676-677
Menippus [4] M. of Gadara Cynical philosopher, rst half 3rd cent. BC
9,747
Nigrinus Middle Platonist philosopher, 2nd cent. AD 9,753 Novius [II 2] N. Priscus Senator,
friend of Seneca’s 9, 864 Numenius [6] N. of Apameia. Platonist, 2nd cent. AD
9, 896-
8, 689-690
Menoeceus [3] Friend of Epicurus 8, 696
Metrocles 3rd cent. BC 8, 835 Metrodorus [1] M. of Chios Democritan philosopher, 5th/4th cent. BC 8, 836-837 [3] Epicurean philosopher, 331/0-278/7 BC 8, 837-838 [6] M. from Stratonicea Academic philosopher, 2nd cent. BC
8, 838
tst cent. AD, mentioned by Seneca 8, 839
Mnesarchus [2] Son of Pythagoras and Theano (?) 9,98 [3] Stoic philosopher from Athens, c. 100 BC
9, 98
Moderatus Neo-Pythagorean, rst cent. AD
9, 108-109
Monimus [1] From Syracuse, pupil of Diogenes 9, 160-161 Moschion [6] Author of sayings 9, 226-228
54
Olympiodorus [4] Neo-Platonist philosopher, 6th cent. 10, 112nie Onesicritus Cynic philosopher and Alexander historian, 4th cent. BC 210; 1306 Origenes [1] Platonic philosopher, 3rd cent. AD 10, 209-210 Pachymeres, Georgios Universal scholar and humanist, 1242LZTO*GOGF LS
Panaetius [4] P. of Rhodes. Stoic philosopher, 2nd cent. BC
10, 425-427 Panthoedes Dialectician, 3rd cent.
BG 165470 Papirius. [II 3] P. Fabianus. Orator
and stoic philosopher, c. 30 BC10, 489
Paraebates Cyrenian, ath cent.BC
TON 52 Parmenides From Elea, Presocratic
philosopher, author of a didactic poem, 5th/4th cent. BC
10, 537-540
Pasiphon Eretrician, 3rd cent. BC 10, 587 Patron Epicurean, rst cent. BC
wandering Cynical preacher, c. LOO=165
10, 751-752
Perictione [2] Pseudonymic author of awork in the style of the Pythagoreans 10, 782 Persaeus [2] From Citium, Stoic
9, 369-370 Myia Daughter of Pythagoras and
Petron Of Himera, Pythagorean
Theano 9, 405 Myllias Pythagorean from Croton
Phaedo From Elis, c. 400 BC
9, 409-410
Nausiphanes Democritean, 4th cent. BC 9, 552-553 Neleus [3] Of Scepsis, Son of Coris9,622
Nemesius Bishop of Emesa, 4th/5th cent. AD 9, 630-631 Nicagoras [4] Of Athens. Rhetor, Platonist, 2nd/3rd cents. AD
philosopher, 4th/3rd cent. BC 10, 810
10, 894
Phaedrus [I 1] sth cent. BC 10, 896
[14] Epicurean philosopher, 13 8— to, 897
Phaenias Peripatetic of Eresus, approx. 375-300 BC? 10, 901902 Phaleas Greek philosopher, 5th/4th cent. BC
Judaeus), Jewish philosopher c.15 BC-c.AD50 1x1, 55-61 Philodemus Epicurean philosopher and poet, c. 110-40 BC 11, 68— ifs,
Philolaus [2] Pythagorean philosopher 11,75-77 Philometor [2] Pupil of Themistius, CEAINS 55 VED DT Philonides [2] Of Laodicea, Epicurean and mathematician, 3rd2nd cents. BC 11, 87-88
Philoponus, Iohannes Christian polymath in Alexandria, c. 490FTF» Ely 89=9L Phintys Pseudonymous author of a work in Pythagorean spirit
II, 130-131 Plato [1] The philosopher, 428/7 348/7 BC 11, 338-352 Plotinus Founder of Neoplatonism, 205-270 II, 395-403 Plutarchus [2] Greek author from Chaeronea, c. AD 45 — before AD 125 11, 410-425 [3] Neoplatonist, 4th and 5th cent. AD 11, 426-427
Polemon [1] Academic philosopher, 4th-3rd cents. BC 11,458
Polus [1] Sophist from Agrigentum Polyaenus [1] Epicurean, c. 300 BC
TI, 494-495 Polystratus [2] Epicurean, 3rd cent.
BC. 11, 533-534
Polyxenus [5] Platonic philosopher, 4th cent. BC 11, 539-540 Porphyrius Of Tyre, Neoplatonist philosopher, c. 234-305/10 II, 646-652
10, 874
70 BC
LI, 54 [I x2] Ph. of Alexandria (Philo
TI, 494
10, 624
Peregrinus Proteus Of Parium,
Moschion [2] Of Mallus, academic philosopher 9, 227 Moschus [1] From Elis, pupil of Phaidon 9, 228-229 Musonius [1] C. M. Rufus Stoic philosopher, c. AD 30-100
9,705
11, 43-44
[6] Epicurean 11, 44 Philo [I 4] Pupil of Diodorus Cronus, c. 300 BC tit, 51 [I 9] Ph. of Larisa. Academic phi-
losopher, 2nd/tst cents. BC
Ocellus Pythagorean from Lucania, c.100 BC 10, 14-15 Oenomaus [3] O. of Gadara Cynic philosopher, c. AD 100 10, 53-
AD 30
Metronax Philosopher, rst half of
cus
Philippus [I 29] P. of Opus. Pupil of Plato, 4th cent. BC 11, 39-40 [I 31] Megarian 11, 40 Philiscus [2] Student of Diogenes
898
8, 634
BC
Nicostratus [9] Claudius N., Platonic Philosopher from Athens
10, 910-911
Poseidonius [3] Stoic philosopher, scientist and geographer, 2nd cent. BC 11, 683-687 Praxiphanes Peripatetic philosopher, 4th/3rd cent.BC 11, 784785 Priscianus Lydus Neoplatonic philosopher from Lydia, 6th cent. Ir, 870
Priscus [3] Neoplatonist philosopher 4th cent. 11, 873-874 Proclus [2] Neoplatonist philosopher, 5th cent. 11, 911-917
127
4. PHILOSOPHY
Prodicus Sophist from Ceos, 5th cent. BC
11, 930-931
Protagoras [1] Of Abdera, the first sophist, sth cent. BC 12, 62-64 Protarchus [2] Epicurean from Bargilia, 2nd cent. BC 12, 65 Prytanis [3] Peripatetic, 3rd cent. BG 125197, Psellos Byzantine writer, jurist and politician, born c. AD 1018 12, 108-109
12, 296
Pythodorus [2] Pupil of Zeno of Elea, 5th cent. BC 12, 297 Salustius [2] Philosopher of the Imperial era 12, 908-909 [3] S. of Emesa Philosopher
12, 909 Seneca [2] L. Annaeus S. Politician and Stoic philosopher, rst cent. I3, 271-278
Severus [1] Platonist, 2nd cent.
13,359
Sextius [I 1] S., Q. Founder ofthe philosophical school of the Sextians, mid 1st cent. BC 13, 367 Simmias [1] S. from Thebes Friend of Socrates, 5th cent. BC 13, 481
Simon [3] S. the shoemaker He
recorded his conversations with 13, 483 Simplicius Neoplatonic philosopher, c. 490-560 13, 490-492 Siricius Sophist, 4th cent. 13, 505 Siron Epicurean philosopher, ist Socrates
13,507
Soclarus [2] Friend of Plutarch 13, 587
Socrates [2] The Athenian philoso-
pher, 469-399 BC 13, 588-599 [4] S. the Younger Greek mathematician or philosopher
Sosigenes [4] Peripatetic, 2nd cent. 13, 658
Sotion [1] Several individuals of the 13, 669-670
[2] Author of a history of philosophy, 2nd cent. BC 13, 670 Speusippus Academic philosopher, c.410-339/8 BC 13, 727-730 Sphaerus Stoic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC
Staseas First Peripatetic active in Rome, c.91 BC 13, 786
Sthenidas Author ofapseudo-Pythagorean work 13, 833 Stilpo Megarian, 4th/3rd cent. BC
13, 839-840
Stobaeus. Greek author of an anthology, 5th cent. 13, 846Stratocles [4] Stoic biographer, late 2nd/early rst cents. BC 13, 875 Straton [2] Academic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC 13, 875-876 Syrianus Neoplatonist philosopher, rst half of 5th cent. 14, 69-71 Tarrutius Astrologer and philosopher, rst cent. BC 14,155 Taurus [5] Lucius Calbenus T. Middle Platonic philosopher, 2nd cent. 14, 172-173 Telecles Academian philosopher, 3rd/ 2nd cent. BC 14, 220-221 Teles Cynic, 3rd cent. BC 14, 230gy it Tertullianus [2] Q. Septimius Florens T. Theologist and apologist, 2nd/3rd cents. 14, 307-312 Thales One of the Seven Sages, philosopher, astronomer and mathematician, 1st half of 6th cent. BC 14, 360-362
Theaetetus [1] T. of Athens, mathematician, c.400 BC 14, 372Theagenes [5] Cynic, 2nd cent. 14, 375
Theages Pseudepigraphical author of a work in Pythagorean style 14, 376 Theano [3] Wife of Pythagoras, c.
600 BC
13, 730-731
Theosebius Neo-Platonic philosopher ofthe 5th cent. AD
14, 527-528
Theudius Of Magnesia, mathematician and philosopher, 4th cent. BGs 14,583 Thrasyalces Natural philosopher from Thasos, probably 5th cent. BG, x14, 607 Thrasyllus [2] Philosopher and astrologer, about the time of the birth of Christ 14, 620-621 Thrasymachus From Chalcedon, sophist rhetorician, late 5th cent.
BC 14, 622-623 Timaeus [1] Main speaker in Plato’s [1] Timaeus 14, 677 Timagoras [3] Epicurean 14, 682-681 Timasagoras Epicurean ‘deviant’, 2nd cent. BC? 14, 684
Timocrates [4] Follower and critic of Epicurus, c.300 BC 14, 697698
Timolaus [2] T. from Cyzicus Philosopher, 4th cent. BC: 14, 699 Timon [2] Greek poet and skeptic philosopher, 3rd cent. BC
14, 703-704
Timycha Spartan Pythagorean, 4th or end of 6th cent. BC 14,714 Tryphon [6] Philosopher and Christian martyr, 2nd cent.
14,990
Tzetzes [2] lohannes T. Byzantine
scholar and author of an extensive oeuvre, c. AD 1110-1185
372
14, 377-378
Themista Woman philosopher of the Epicurean School, 4th cent. BOA, 427 Themistius Commentator on Aristotle and politician, c. 4th cent. AD 14, 427-428
Theodorus [I 2] Of Cyrene, mathematician, sth cent. BC 14, 453-
454 {I 9] T. of Cyrenaic, c. 300 BC
[I 19] Neoplatonist from Asine
[2], 4th cent. 14, 458-459
13, 599
same name
13,734
850
Ptolemaeus [66] Follower of the Valentinians 12, 170-171 [67] Peripatetic, 2nd cent. ede ILA [68] Neoplatonist philosopher 2 ce Pyrrho OfElis, c. 365-275 BC 12, 272-273 Pythagoras [2] Philosopher, c. 600 BC 12, 276-281 Pythocles [2] Epicurean, c. 300 BC
cent. BC
Sphodrias Cynic philosopher
[I 28] Engineer and philosopher, sth cent. 14, 462 Theodosius [I 2] Pyrrhonian Sceptic and Empirical physician, end of the 2nd cent. 14, 469-470 Theon [5] Th. of Smyrna, mathematician and philosopher, 2nd cent. 14, 498-499 Theophrastus Peripatetic philosopher, c. 371/0-287/6 BC
14, 508-517
15; 74-77 Varius [I 2] V. Rufus, L. Roman poet, c. 70-15 BC 15, 207 Xenarchus [4] Peripatetic philosopher, rst cent. BC 15, 799-800 Xeniades [1] Proto-sceptic philoso-
pher from Corinth, 5th cent. BC
15, 803
Xenocrates [2] X. of Chalcedon Academic philosopher, 4th cent. BC 15, 807-810 Xenophanes [1] X. of Colophon Greek poet, philosopher of nature, 6th/s5th cent. BC 15, 819-822
Xenophilus [2] X. of Chalcidice Pythagorean and music theorist, c. 400 BC 15, 823 Xenophon [2] X. of Athens Greek historian, Socratic, c. 430-354 BC 15, 824-833 Zeno [1] Z. of Elea Eleatic philosopher, 5th cent. BC 15, 882884
[2] Z. of Citium Founder of the Stoic school, c. 300 BC 15, 884-888
[3] Z. of Sidon Stoic philosopher, c.300 BC 15, 888-889
128
4. PHILOSOPHY
[8] Z. of Tarsus Stoic philosopher, c.200 BC 15, 892 [10] Z. from Sidon Epicurean philosopher, c. roo BC 15, 892-893 Zenodotus [3] Z. ‘the Stoic’ Author of an epigramme in praise of Zeno of Citium 15,906 [9] Neoplatonic philosopher, 5th cent. AD
15,908
5. Music
List of ancient musicians and music theorists Cf. Subject Index 15. and CT index volume, Entry Index 6.2. Aelianus [3] Pythagorizing Platonist of the 2nd cent. AD 1, 201% Agathocles [8] Musician 1, 317 Aglais Trumpet player, 3rd cent. BC
I, 343
Albinus [2] Caeonius Rufus. City prefect, philosopher, music theoretician
1, 431
Alypius [3] Musical theoretician of the Late Antiquity 1, 554 Anthes, Anthas [2] Singer of hymns
I, 724
Antigenidas Aulos player from Thebes 1,745 Archestratus [3] Musical theoretician, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 1, 984985 Aristides [7] Quintilianus Musical Theoretician 1, 1101-1102 Aristoclides Kitharist 1, 1107 Aristoxenus [1] Musician, Musical theoretician, philosopher, bio-
grapher, from Tarentum I, 1154-1155 Augustinus, Aurelius (Augustine) Church father, theologian, AD
354-430
2, 355-362
Bacchius [2] Author of an introduction to music 2, 448 Boethius, Anicius Manlius Severinus Latin writer and philosopher, c. AD 480-524 2,701706
Canus Roman aulete
2, 1061 Cassiodorus Roman politician and scholar, c. AD 490-590 2,
TL6l—Un63
Cleonides Author of an introduction to Harmonics 3, 437 Clonas Poet and musician 3, 472 Crexus Poet of iambic poetry
3,940
Damon [3] Sophist and theoretician of music, 5th/4th cent. BC 4, 65-66
Didymus [1] of Alexandria. Important Greek grammarian of the latter half of the rst cent. BC 4, 396-398
Dionysius [20] D. Musicus. Greek grammarian
4, 484
[39] D. from Thebes. Musician and poet from Thebes 4, 489 Epigonus [2] Musician from Ambracia 4, 1098 Eratocles Harmonic 5, 16 Eratosthenes [2] of Cyrene Natural scientist and philologist, 3rd cent. BC
5, 17-19
Euclides [3] (Euclid) Mathemattcian and music theorist, c. 300 BC 5, 138-142 Favonius [2] F. Eulogius. Student of Augustinus, later rhetor in Car-
thage 5,375
Gaudentius [1] G. Philosophus. Musician and philosopher
5,710 Glauce [4] G. of Chios. Cithara player 5,866 Glaucus [7] of Rhegium Scholar 5, 870-872 Heraclides [16] H. Ponticus the Elder Platonist, 4th cent. BC 6,
169-170
Heraclitus [2| Kithara-player and jester
6,178
Hyagnis Mythical musician from Phrygia 6,591 Isidorus [9] Bishop of Hispalis, theologian and author of encyclopaedic writings 6, 963-964 Ismenias [4] From Thebes, player and teacher of the aulos 6, 978 Lamprocles Musician and poet, early 5th cent. BC 7, 189 Lamprus Greek musician
7, 190
Limenius [1] Choral lyric poet from Athens, 2nd cent. BC
7, 561
Menaechmus [1] M. of Sicyon Greek historian and antiquary, 4th cent. BC 8, 658-659 Nicomachus [9] N. of Gerasa Neoplatonic mathematician, c. 100
9, 731-734 Norbanus. [II 2] L. N. Balbus. Cos. in 19, tuba player 9, 817
Olen Founder of a cult, perhaps from Lycia 10, 86 Olympus [14] Culture hero from Asia Minor
10,118
Pachymeres, Georgios Universal scholar and humanist, 12421310
10,318
Pancrates [1] Musician, archaic style 10, 430 Philo [I 18] From Metapontion, Aulus player and writer 11, 62 Phrynis Citharist, 5th cent. BC ig, Xo) Plutarchus [2] Greek author from Chaeronea, c. AD 45 — before AD 125 11, 410-425 Porphyrius Of Tyre, Neoplatonist philosopher, c. 234-305/t0 II, 646-652
Pronomus Theban aulete, end of 5th cent. BC 12,12 Pseudo-Bakcheios Music theoretician, beginning ofthe roth cent. £2,203 Ptolemaeus [65] Claudius P. Astronomer, author of seminal scien-
tific works, 2nd cent. 12, 159170 Ptolemais [2] P. from Cyrene Ancient scholar of music, rst cent. AD 12, 172-173 Pythagoras [2] Philosopher, c. 600 BC
12, 276-281
Rufus [8] Rhuphos Historian and paradoxographer, Roman imperialera 12,758 Sacadas Poet and aulos player from Argos, 6th cent. BC 12, 821 Stratonicus Greek kithara teacher, 4th cent. BC 13, 880
Terpander Kithara player, early 7th cent. BC
14,295
Terpnus Citharode, rst cent. 14, 296 Thaletas Choral lyricist, 7th cent. BG waa 6s
Theophrastus Peripatetic philosopher, c. 371/0-287/6 BC 14, 508-517
Thrasyllus [3] Music theorist 14, 621
Xenophilus [2] X. of Chalcidice Pythagorean and music theorist, c.400 BC 15, 823 Zethos [2] Kithara player 15,916
6. Greek and Roman religion and mythology
6.1. DEITIES AND PERSONIFICATIONS . DIVINE EPITHETS AND EPICLESES fon =) . MYTHICAL AND LEGENDARY PERSONS In CT cf. CT index volume Entry Index 8. 6.1. Deities and personifications Includes individual deities, ghosts and demons. On groups of gods and demons cf. Subject Index 16.6. Abeona Deity of childhood Acesidas Healing god 1, 67 Achelous [2] Greek water-god 1, 86
Acheron [2] River of the Underworld 1,87 Adad_ see Hadad Adolenda Sacrifice receiver of the Arvales brethren 1,144 Adonai Substitute for the divine name Yahweh 1, 144-145
129
6.1. DEITIES AND
Adranus City deity of the Sicilian city of the same name 1, 153 Adrastea Greek goddess 1, 153-
154
Aedoneus Another name of Hades I gt Aeolis [1] Name of a goddess associated with agrarian wealth in the imperial period 1, 233 Aeolus [2] Homeric ruler of the winds 1,234 Aesculapius Roman healing heros see Asclepius Aeternitas Personification of duration ofpoliticalrule 1, 268-269 Agathos Daimon ‘Good deity’, a deity of blessing 1, 319 Ahriman One of the twin gods in the system of Zoroaster; also god in the pantheon of some Mithraea 1, 401 Ahura Mazda Persian god 1, 401402 Aidos Personification of shame, demureness, respect 1, 403 Aisa The destiny allotted by the deity 1,407 Aius Locutius Warning voice that was honoured by the gods
I, 408-409 Alastor Greek Spirit of vengeance, also epithet of avenging deities, resp. people 1,425 Alcon [4] Attic healing hero, see Halon 1, 461 Alecto Erinys see Erinys Aletheia Personification of ‘Truth’ 1, 466
Alexanor Healing hero in the Asklepieion of Sikyon 1, 500 Alpheius [2] Greek river god
I, 542
Amphitrite Sea goddess and ruler of the aquatic creatures 1, 613 Amun Ammon, Egyptian god, equated with Zeus 1, 620-621 Amynus Athenian god ofhealing I, 626
Anaetis Iranian goddess
1, 634 Anahita Iranian deity of water and fertility 1, 637-638 Anaideia ‘Indecency’, divine power 1, 638
Anat Goddess from Ugarit 1, 647-648
Andraste Britannic goddess
1, 891-892
Ares Greek god of war 1, 10471051 Aristaeus [1] Greek rural deity
Angerona Roman goddess of the oldest circle 1, 694 Angitia Goddess of the Marsi, helpful against poisonous snakes 1, 695 Anna Perenna Roman goddess of 1,704
Anteros Personified requited love Ty 20
2, IOI—106
Assur [2] City god ofthe city of Assur
2, 186
Astarte Goddess of love, fertility and war 2,189 Ate Personification of Blinding 2, 221-222 Athena Greek deity 2, 233-240 Atropos see Moira Aurora see Eos Autumnus Personification of autumn
2,419
Auxesia, Auxo One of the Charites venerated in Athens see Chari-
tes (3,197-199) Averruncus Roman deity that wards off evil 2, 423 Baal Syrian-Phoenician term for
2, 437-439
Bacchus II. Rome 2, 451-452 Bar Pandera Figure mentioned in connection with magic and ido-
latry; name of Jesus in rabbinical literature 2, 514 Bastet Egyptian goddess, represented asacat 2, 546-547 Belenus Celtic deity 2, 581-582 Bellona Roman war goddess 2, 589-590 Belos see Baal Bendis Thracian goddess 2, 593-
594
Bes [2] Dwarfish Egyptian god with hideous face 2, 612 Bethel [2] Divinity name 2, 615616 2, 621
Biviae One of the Roman goddesses of intersections and forks in roads 2, 684 Bona Dea ‘Good Goddess’, a female deity 2, 717-718 Bonus Eventus A Roman deity originally associated with agriculTUE
TS
Brizo A deity who predicted the future as a person lay sleeping 2, 785 Cadmus [2] God of the mountain
iy 7 2
2, 868
Caelestis Latin name for the female counterpart of the highest PunicBerber deity Saturnus 2, 890891
Caelus, Caelum Divine personification of Heaven 2, 896 Caicus [2] Personification of the Mysian river
I, 1087
Aristomachus [2] Healing hero in Rhamnus 1, 1117 Artemis Greek goddess 2, 62-68 Asclepius Greek healing heros
God
Brigantia Goddess of the Briton tribe of the Brigantes 2,772-
with the same name
842
Apollo Greek god 1, 850-857 Apotropaic gods Gods who keep away or ‘avert’ misfortune
Bia Personification of violence
I, 680
uncertain nature
Anubis Egyptian god with the head ofadog 1, 812 Aphaea see Dictynna Aphrodite Greek goddess of sexuality 1, 831-836 Apis [1] In Egypt, cult offertility and physical strength 1, 841-
PERSONIFICATIONS
2,924
Calais and Zetes Wind gods 2, 927-928
Caligo Personification of darkness
2,955
Calligenea Goddess of birth
2,971
Camulos Celtic god 2, 1030 Carco Personification of Death 2, 1093 Carmentis Roman goddess of birth 2, II13-1114 Carna Roman goddess with temple on the Caelius mons 2, 1115 Carpo Goddesses offertility Pap AIG}
Castor [1] see Dioscuri Ceres Italian goddess, connected
with grain and the realm of the dead 3, 158-162 Cernunnos Celtic god with deer’s antlers 3, 163-164 Chloris [1] Goddess 3, 236 Chnubis [1] Greek form ofthe Egyptian Chnum 3, 237 Chnum Egyptian god see Chnubis Chronos Personification of Time 3, 285-286
Clementia Personification ofclemency
3, 427-428
Concordia Personification and deification of harmony 3, 681-682 Consus Roman god of the harvest of the grain crop 3,744 Copia Personification offullness 3, 765-766 Cottyto Thracian-Phrygian goddess 3, 878-879 Cupid Personification of love and sexual desire see Eros Cupido see Eros Cura [1] Personification of worry 3, 1003 Cybele Goddess offertility, city protectress, prophetess and healer. 3, 1035-1040 Dagan Western Semitic god 4, 3839
Dagon Western Semitic god Dagan
see
6.1. DEITIES
AND
Dea Dia Roman goddess to whom the Arvales fratres devoted a sacrifice 4,118 DeaRoma_
see Roma [tr] (12,660-
661)
Dea Syria Syrian goddess see Syria Dea Deima Female personification of fear 4, 183 Deimos Male personification of fear 4, 183 Demeter Greek goddess ofagriculture, womanhood and the Mysteries 4, 235-242 Demo [4] Together with Deo a shortened form of Demeter 4, 264 Dia [1] Female equivalent of Zeus
4, 332
[2] Heroine in the local cults of Phlius and Sicyon 4, 332 Diana Italian goddess, patron ofthe dividing line between inside and outside, huntswoman, cattle herd
45 357-360
Dictynna Goddess offishing in
Eirene [1] Personification and deification of peace 4, 862-863 El Semitic god 4, 881-883 Elagabalus [1] Name of a deity
4, 884-885 Eleos Personification of compassion
4,930
Empusa Female ghostly figure in Greek popular belief 4, 960961
Enlil City-god of Nippur 4,984 Enodia see Hecate Enyalius Deity of close combat 4, 1008-1009
Enyo Female counterpart of Enyalius 4, 10r0 Eos Greek goddess of the dawn 4, IO1O-1011 Epona Celtic goddess of horses 4,
law made concrete in legal pro4, 415-416
Dione Greek goddess, perhaps Zeus’ original wife 4, 469-470 Dionysus Greek god of theatre, wine and erotics 4, 496-509 Dioscuri The divine twins Castor and Polydeuces 4, 518-521 Dis Pater Roman equivalent of the Greek ruler of the Underworld Hades resp. Pluto 4, 556-557 Discordia Personification of dis-
cord 4, 539-540
Ericepaeus Deity associated with Bacchian mysteries 5, 30-31
Esmtn Old Phoenician deity
Esus Celtic god 5,77 Eunomia Personification of good order 5, 170-171 Fama Personification of public speech 5, 330-331 Fames Personification of hunger
+ 958
5, 990-991
Great Goddess
see Cybele; Mater Magna; Mother goddesses
(9237-239) Hadad Western Semitic name ofthe weather god 5, 1074-1076 Hades Personification ofthe Underworld 5, 1076-1077 Halios geron Old sea deity 5, BELG Halosydne [1] Sea goddess 5,
1118
see Amun, Ammon
Harmachis [1] Name ofthe great
Heliopolitanus Chief god of the Biqa‘ Plain
6, 76-77
Helios see Sol Hemithea Healing goddess on the Chersonnese 6, 131 Hephaestus Greek god offire 6, 140-144
Faunus Rom. god ofthe outdoors
5, 368-370 fever 5, 376-377
Hera Greek goddess, wife of Zeus 6, 145-149 Heracles [1] Greek hero 6, 156163
Fecunditas Personification offerti-
lity 5,377
Hercle Etruscan name of Heracles 6,
184-185
luck 5, 377-378
Hercules Rom.-Ital. god of commerce (amongst other things)
5, 414-418
Hermes Greek god of shepherds, messengers and mysteries
Feronia Sabine goddess 5, 392 Fides Personification offidelity Flora Rom. goddess of flowering
5, 466 Formido [1] Personification of fear
55497 [2] Personification of madness
Educa Roman ‘special deity’ 4, 815 Egeria [1] Deity of the inlet of the
Fortuna Rom. goddess of fortune
Eileithyia Greek goddess, worshipped in the context of pregnancy and birth 4, 858-859
5, 881 Grannus Celtic god (of welfare)
Hecate Greek goddess, mistress of ghosts 6, 38-40
5,36
4, 788-
same name into Lake Nemi near Aricia 4, 838-839
Glycon [3] Deity of welfare
5, 66
raus
Eris Personification ofStrife 5,36 Eros [1] Personification of sexual
Felicitas Personification of good
789
55 755-756
Genius Tutelary deity 5, 756-758 Geras Personification of old age
desire 5, 37-39
5, 34-35
Doto One of the Nereids, occupied
thon 4,783-784
5,690
Sphinx 5,1144 Harmonia Personification of harmony 5, 1145 Hathor Human or cow shaped Egyptian goddess 6,2 Hebe Personification of the beauty of youth 6,30
Erinys Avenging deities
Febris Personification of malarial
Echo [2] Personification
soners
Genita Mana Goddess ofbirth
Hammon
1159-1160
Dius Fidius see Sancus Dolichenus Jupiter Optimus Maximus D., highest divinity of Doliché in Commagene 4, 616-617
a sanctuary in Syrian Gabala 4, 698 Dusares Head of the Nabataean pantheon 4,751 Echetlus, Echetlaeus Peasant, worshipped as a hero, killed many Persians in the battle of Mara-
Ganymeda Patron goddess of pri-
55791
4,909
Eleuthia see Eileithyia Elpis Personification of expectation
Eriphyle Wife of the seer Amphia-
Crete 4,376-377 Diespiter see [uppiter Dike [1] Personification of human nouncements
130
PERSONIFICATIONS
55497
55 505-509
Fufluns Ital. god
5, 573
Fur(r)ina Anc. Rom. goddess 55 613-614
Furiae Avenging deities
6, 214-221
Hestia Goddess of the hearth 6, 285-287 Himeros Personification of affectionate longing 6, 331 Hipta Goddess of western Asia Minor 6, 380 Honos Personification of honour
6, 478-479 Horus Egyptian hawk god Oh ye
5, 612-
613
Gaia Personification of Earth
5, 639-640
6, 190-193
ees
Hyacinthides Athen. goddesses
6, 588
Hybris Dishonouring behaviour and the personification thereof
6, 596-597
131
6.1. DEITIES AND
Hygieia Personification of health 6, 603-604
Hymenaeus [1] Greek god of weddings 6, 612-613 Hypnus Personification of sleep see Somnus Iacchus Deity of the Mysteries
6, 662-663
Ianus God of passage 6, 676-678 Icauna Gall. river goddess 6,701 Icelus Brother of Morpheus see Morpheus Icovellauna Celtic deity 6,708 Incubus Sender of nightmares 6, 767 Inferi Gods of the Underworld 6, 796-797 Ino [2] Daughter of Cadmus see Leucothea Intarabus Celtic deity 6, 841 Inuus Tutelary god of cattle
Mars
7, 445
Leucothea Greek deity 7, 451 Levana Roman goddess of the new-
born 7,455
Iris [1] Messenger of the gods, personification of rainbow 6, 936 Ishtar Semitic goddess 6,959 Isis Goddess from Egypt 6, 966-
972 Isodaites Deity identified with Pluto see Pluto Iuno Most important goddess ofthe Roman pantheon 6, 1107-
TII1 luppiter Roman supreme god 6, DLLI-LULL
luventus(-as) Personification of youth 6, 1152 Iynx [1] Demon related to the genesis of the world 6, 1157 Kairos Personification of the right 7, 3-4
Ker Malignant spirit 7, 41 Kolias akra Goddess of love 7, 84 Kore [1] Goddess of the Underworld see Persephone Kratos Personification of violence see Bia Kronos Greek pre-Olympic deity 7, IO§-I1I Kumarbi Hurrite god 7, 114 Kypris Greek goddess of sexuality see Aphrodite Kythereia Greek goddess of sexuality see Aphrodite Laran Youthful Etruscan god of
war 7,244 Larunda, Mater Larum Mater
Larum, Roman goddess, mother of the lares 7,256 Lasa Young Etruscan goddess, mostly represented as winged
7, 258-259
Latona Latin rendition of Leto, mother of Apollo and Diana
7» 295
Laverna Roman goddess of thiefs and the Underworld
7,309
Matuta Goddess of dawn see Mater Matuta Mavors God of war 8, 507 Mefitis Goddess 8, 592 Melgqart Phoenician Deity 8, 644-
Liber, Liberalia [talic-Roman god of nature, fertility and wine 7, 485-486 Libera Female counterpart and consort of Liber 7, 486-487
Men Moon-god 8, 656-658 Mena Roman goddess of menstruation, daughter of Jupi-
Libertas [1] (Religion) Roman god-
Mene Divine personification of the
dess of freedom 7,494 Libitina Roman goddess of funeral
Menerva, Menrva Italo-Etruscan
duties 7, 495-496
Linus Personification of the ritual (Oriental?) cry ailinon, son of
Apollo anda Muse 7, 622-623 Lityerses Personification of a harvest song and a flute melody
7> 737-738
Lua Italic goddess
7, 825-826
Luna [1] Roman Goddess of the
6, 881
moment
Leucetius Celtic god, equated with
PERSONIFICATIONS
moon
7, 881-882
Lyssa Personification of (battle) rage and madness 8, 47 Ma Anatolian divinity 8, 49-51 Ma’at Principle of order and its personification (Egypt) 8, 51 Magna Mater The goddess Cybele in Rome
see Mater Magna
Maiesta The wife of Volcanus and eponym of the month of May 8, 185
Malachbelus Palmyrene god 8, 194-195 Mamers Oscan or perhaps Sabine form of Mars 8, 211 Mana genita Goddess ofbirth see Genita Mana Mandulis Local deity of Kalabsha 8, 230
Mania [1] Greek personification of madness 8, 236 [2] Name of the Roman goddess Larunda 8, 236-237 Manturna Goddess of marriage 8, 262-263
Mantus Etruscan god 8, 263 Marduk City god and chief god of Babylon 8, 332-333 Marica Goddess ofagrove near Minturnae 8,354 Mars Roman god of warfare
8, 397-402
Marsyas [1] Phrygian rivergod and Celaenae’s god ofprotection
8, 405-406 Mater Larum Roman goddess see Larunda Mater Magna Goddess from Asia Minor in Rome 8, 458-459 Mater Matuta Italic-Roman goddess of dawn 8, 460 Matres/Matronae Celtic goddesses represented in three 8, 481-482
645
ter
8,658
sun
8, 671
deity see Minerva Mens Roman personification of mind 8, 698-699 Mercurius II. Roman (the god Mercury) Roman (the god Mercury), II 8, 710-713
Messor Roman god ofgrain harvest 8,771 Meter see Cybele Metis Goddess, personification of wisdom, first wife of Zeus 8, 809
Metus Personification of fear
8, 845-847 Min Egyptian god of the desert
8, 929-930
Minerva Italo-Etruscan deity
8, 939-944
Mise Deity associated with Cybele 9,59
Mistress of animals Ancient hunting goddess _ see Potnia Theron Mithras Indian/Persian deity, Roman mystery deity 9, 73-77
Mitra [2] Persian goddess 9, 8990 Mnemosyne Greek Goddess of Memory
9, 97-98
Mnevis Name ofthe holy bull of Heliopolis 9, 102 Moira Personification of Fate 9,
124-126
Moles Martis Cultic addressee in the cult of Mars Momos Personification of censoriousness
9,134
Moritasgus [1] Celtic deity from Alesia 9,211 Morpheus Personification of dream life 9,212 Mors Roman personification of death 9,213 Morta Latin counterpart of the Greek Moira 9, 213 Murcia Roman goddess 9, 313 Mut Egyptian goddess 9,375 Mutunus Tutunus Rom. deity, also
Mutinus Titinus 9, 380-381 Myiager, Myiodes Recipient of preliminary sacrifices 9, 405 Mylissa, Mylitta The Babylonian Aphrodite 9, 409
6.1. DEITIES
AND
Nabi Babylonian god of writing and wisdom 9, 483 Nanaja Goddess ofsexual love
from Uruk Natio
see Personification
Navia [1] Goddess in the west ofthe Iberian Peninsula, poss. Celtic oyey)
Nebutosualeth Light-bringing deity
9, 585-586
Nehalennia. Germanic mother goddess 9,615 Neith Egyptian Goddess ofSais
9, 620-621
Nemausus [1] God ofthe sacred
spring of the place of the same name (mod. Nimes)
9, 623
Nemesis Goddess and personification of retribution 9, 629-630 Nenia Goddess of the end oflife 9, 634 Nephele [1] Personification of a cloud 9, 657 Neptunus Roman god of the sea 9, 661-663
Nerio Deity of Sabine origin Nerthus. Germanic mother deity 9, 675 Nethuns Etruscan god identified with Poseidon see Neptunus Nike Greek Personification/Goddess of Victory 9, 754-756 Ninurta God of Nippur, son of Enlil 9,767 Nodens Celtic god from Britain
9, 787 Nortia. Etruscan and Roman god-
dess 9, 824-825 Notos Personification of the south wind 9, 831 Numeria. Roman goddess offate and birth 9,900
Palaemon Object of cultic veneration for those in distress at sea see Melicertes (8,632) Pales. Roman deity of shepherds
Numiternus. Volscian god
9, 907-
908
Nut Egyptian goddess of the sky
9,913
Nyktophylax Nocturnal daemon
9,923
Palici Sicilian twin deities Pan Arcadian shepherd god 10, 420-422 Panda [2] see Sondergétter Panis [1] Sabinian deity 10, 447 Parthenos [2] Greek local goddess
10, 571 Pavor Personification of fear
9, 939-940
Occasio. Female personification of opportunity, Roman counterpart of Kairos 10,6 Ogmius. Celtic god 10, 66 Oistros Personification offrenzy
10, 79 Onuris Egyptian god
10, 149 Ops [3] Personification ofthe har10, 172
11,462
11, 544
11, 587
Pontos Greek personification ofthe sea 11,599 [Poros] Greek personification of
Portunus Roman god 11, 665 Poseidon Greek god of the sea,
among other things
11, 673-
678
Postverta (Postvorta) Roman god-
dess of childbirth 11,700 Pothos Personification of yearning
II, 703
10, 657
Pax [2] Roman personification of 10,659
Peitho Greek personification of ‘persuasion’ 10, 687-688 Penia Personification of poverty
10, 723-724 10, 740-
741
Perna. Oscan goddess with a cult in Agnone 10, 806 Persephone, Kore Greek goddess of growth and the Underworld 10, 811-814
Phanes [1] Primordial god of the Orphic cosmogony 10, 914-
915
Phantasos Personification of a dreamer’s life see Morpheus Pheme Goddess or personification of public speech, rumour and
10, 947
Philotes Greek personification of sexuality and sensual love War, 17) Phobos Personification of terror
Lipugy Phorcys [1] Sea god 11, 180 Picumnus. Roman deity 11, 235236
Nyx Goddess and personification of the night 9, 931-933 Obarator. Roman god of ‘reploug-
war
Pomona. Roman goddess of fruit
ways and means and of riches TI, 645 Porrima Roman deity 11, 653
10, 385
ZOssip
II, 438-439
Ponos Greek personification of toil
LOy, 2:7 6-2.7-7
Perasia Cilician goddess
9, 668-669
vest and plenty
Orthia Greek goddess, identified with Artemis 10, 260-261 Osiris Egyptian god of the afterlife
peace
Poemandres Source of divine revelation in the Corpus Hermeticum
Polemos Greek personification of
10, 386-387
9, 619-620
Nekydaimon The spirit ofadead
hing’ the seed
Orbona. Child-stealing goddess 10, 190 Orcus Lord ofthe realm ofthe dead
10, 195
9, 497-498
(10,842-8 50)
person
12)
PERSONIFICATIONS
Pietas. Personification of dutiful behaviour 11, 237-238 Pilumnus. Deity; one of the dei con-
iugales or dei infantium II, 260
Pistis Greek religious etc. concept I1, 298-300
Pittheus Ancient oracular deity II, 309-310 Ploutos Personification of (agrarian) wealth 11, 407-408 Pluto [3] Alternative name for Hades, Greek and Roman deity II, 428-430
Potnia theron Ancient goddess of hunting 11, 706-708 Praxidice Greek goddess of oaths Il, 784 Priapus God offertility and sexuality 11, 820-821 Propylaios
see Gate, deities asso-
ciated with Prorsa Roman goddess of childbirth
12,39
Proserpina Roman deity, identified with Persephone
12, 46-48
Prosymnus Deity in Dionysus’ retinue
12, 61
Proteus Greek sea god 12, 67 Providentia Roman personification
of providence 12, 82 Ptah Creator god of Memphis I2,
126-127
Pudicitia Roman personification of chastity 12,192-193 Pudor Roman personification of shame
12,193
Quies Roman personfication of quiet
12, 331
Quirinus [1] Roman god
12, 359-
360
Re The most important god in the Egyptian pantheon 12, 413-
414 ReSep Syrian god 12, 415 Rhea, Rheia Rheia, Greek goddess
12, 524-525
Rome Personification of Roman power
12, 669-725
Rosmerta Celtic goddess Rumina Roman goddess
12,740 12, 780-
781
Runcina. Roman goddess of weeding 12,781 Sabazius God of Asia Minor 12, 806-808
1£5)3)
6.2. DIVINE
Salacia [2] Roman goddess
12, 877 Salambo Babylonian goddess 12, 878
Salus Personification ofwell-being 12, 907-908
Sama’ Sun god_
see Sun god
Sancus Semo Sancus Dius Fidius,
Roman god 12,950 Sandon Weather and vegetation god from Asia Minor 12, 954DN)
Sarapis Egyptian bull god see Serapis Satis Egyptian goddess 13, 16-17 Satrapes [2] Graecized name of the Canaanite god Sadrapa’ 13, 23 Saturnus Roman god of the Underworld, wealth and agriculture 13, 28-30
Securitas Personification of security
13, 194
Segetia Roman goddess ofgrain
13, 199
Sekhmet Egyptian goddess 13, 209-210 Selene In Greece, the moon
(thought of as female) 13, 210211 Selkis Egyptian goddess 13, 229230 Semo Sancus Dius Fidius, Roman
god see Sancus Senecta, Senectus Personification of old age 13,279 “Serapis Egyptian bull god
13, 305-308
Seth Egyptian god 13, 341-342 Sethlans. Etruscan god of smithing
13, 343-344 Silvanus [1] Roman god ofthe forest 13, 468-470
Sin Semite moon deity see Moon deities Sirona. Celtic goddess ofsprings and healing 13,507 Smertrios Celtic god of war
13,548
Stercut(i)us Roman god of manurespreading 13, 827 Sucel(l)us Celtic god of indeterminate function 13,912 Suchus Graecized form (XovyxocdSotchos) of Sobek see Sobek Sul Celtic goddess of springs and healing 13, 927-928 Syria Dea Syrian Goddess 14, 64 Tacita Underworld deity 14, 105 Tanit Phoenician fertility goddess see Tinnit
Taranis Celtic god of thunder
14, 137-138
Telesphorus [1] God ofhealing in the form ofa boy 14, 232 Telluno, Tellurus see Tellus Tellus [2] Roman goddess ofthe Earth 14, 236-237 Terra mater Roman earth goddess see Tellus Tessup, TeSop see Weather gods Tethys In Homer, ancestor ofall the gods 14, 319-320 Teutates Celtic god, similar to Mars or Mercury 14, 333 Thanatos Personification of death
[2] Male daemon or god
13, 659
Soteria Personification of (physical) well-being 13, 668 Spes The Roman personification of hope 13, 724-727 Stata Mater Roman goddess, protector from fires 13,788
15 195-196
Vanth Female Etruscan Underworld daemon 15, 202-203 Varuna Vedic god of order
15, 227
Vediovis Roman chthonic deity see Veiovis (15, 257-258) Velch(ans) Etruscan god, possibly of vegetation 15,258 Venus Roman goddess of love 15, 284-287
Verminus Roman god 15, 320 Vertumnus Etruscan and Roman
god 15, 326-327 Vesta Roman goddess
340
Vesuna Italic goddess
15, 339-
15, 344-
345)
Vica Pota Roman goddess
15, 390
Victoria [1] Roman goddess and personification of victory
15, 399-400
Virbius Male deity from the circle of Diana 15,451 Viriplaca Goddess of the city of
Rome
15,454
Vitiris Deity in Britain
Thoeris Egyptian protector-goddess 14,591 Thot Egyptian god of wisdom, knowledge and writing 14, 600-601
15, 459-460 15, 478-
479 Volcanus God offire 15, 496-498 Voltumna Latinised form of the orig. Etruscan god Vertumnus see Vertumnus
Thyone Name of Semele 14, 650 Tiberinus God of the Tiber see
Volturnus [2] Addressee of the Volturnalia festival
River gods II (12,615-618) Tinia God at the centre ofthe Etruscan pantheon 14, 718-719 Tinnit Phoenician goddess offertility 14, 719-720
Vortumnus Archaic name form of the god Vertumnus see Vertumnus Vulcanus God offire see Volcanus Wepwawet Egyptian god of the dead 15, 627 Yahweh Name of the God of the Israelites and Judaeans 15, 847-849 Zalmoxis God ofthe Getae
Tolma God of adventurousness
14,774
Trismegistus Greek form ofthe Egyptian god Thot see Hermes Triton [1] Sea deity 14, 940
female deity 15,30 Turms Etruscan deity 15, 35 Tutela [2] Tutelary goddess of the Roman Imperial period 15, 45 Tyche [1] Greek goddess offate
13, 659
Valetudo Personification of health
14, 424-425
Themis Personification of law
Sol Roman sun god 13, 627-628
EPICLESES
Virtus. Personification of Virtue
Trivia
Sophrosyne Personification of prudence and moderation 13, 652 Sosipolis [1] Protective goddess
AND
14, 365-366
Sobek Crocodile-headed chief god of the Faiyum 13, 559-560 13, 607-611 Somnus Personification ofsleep
EPITHETS
see Biviae; Hecate
Turan [1] Important Etruscan
15, 51-53
Tychon [1] Ithyphallic god 15, 53 Ubertas Personification offertility and abundance 15, 77-78 Uni Supreme Etruscan female deity ihe, tes) Uranus Divine personification of the sky 15,120 Vacuna Deity similar to Victoria Te eaLaS Ds
LAGE teh 738
Zelos Personification ofzeal 15, 881
Zenoposeidon Zeus Osogo in Mylasa 15,908
Zephyrus Personification ofthe west wind 15, 911-912 Zeus The highest Greek Olympian god 15, 918-926 Zurvan Iranian god 15, 974-975 6.2. Divine epithets and epicleses Acestor Literary epithet of Apollo I, 68
Acidalia Epithet of Venus 1, 99 Acraea [2] Also Acraeus: epiclesis of goddesses 1, 109
6.2. DIVINE EPITHETS
AND
Actaeus [2] Epiclesis of Apollo and of Dionysus 1, 118 Aeantis [2] Athena’s epiclesis in Megara
1, 166
Aepytus [3] Epithet of Hermes in a temple at Tegea 1, 235 Aeria [3] Aphrodite’s name in Paphus Aérias 1, 239 Aethon [2] Epithet of Erysichthon, also son of Helios 1, 27% Agetor Epiclesis of Zeus in Sparta i336
Agoraeus Epiclesis of several gods
I, 356
Agrotera Epithet of Artemis see Artemis Agyieus Epithet of Apollo see Apollo Alcaeus [2] Original name of Hercules 1, 436 Alcides Epithet of Hercules as son of Alcaeus 1, 449 Alea [2] Epiclesis of Athena in Arcadia 1, 463 Allogenes Name ofSeth as son of Adam and Eve in Gnosticism ite, yee Anaces Cultic title of the Dioscuri I, 628-629
Antheus Epithet of Dionysus in Patrae 1,725-726 Apotropaios (epiclesis) Epiclesis of Apollo see Apollo Archegetes Functional title of heroes and epiclesis of Apollo and Hercules 1, 980-981 Areia [2] Epiclesis of a goddess I, 1043 Arsinoe [I 6] Epiclesis of Aphrodite
2,34
Asterius [1] Cretan epiclesis of Zeus Pip, Tei B(o)ugenes Epithet of Dionysus 2, 807-808
Bacchus I. Greece Bacchus I]. Rome
134
EPICLESES
Chloe Epiclesis of Demeter 3, 236 Chrysaor(i)us [1] Attribute of Zeus in Caria 3, 286 Chrysaor(i)us [3] Epithet of various gods 3,286 Cissus Epithet of Dionysus 3, 366 Clymenus [1] Epithet of HadesPluto 3, 486 Corythus [1] Epiclesis of Apollo
3, 856
Daphnaeus [2] Epiclesis of Apollo 4, 80 Delius Epithet of Apollo 4, 208 Delphinius Epiclesis of Apollo 4, 227-228
Demaenetus [1] Epithet of Asclepius in Elis 4, 231 Despoina see Artemis; Demeter; Persephone Dindymene see Cybele Dolius [1] Epithet of Hermes 4, 618
Elaphebolos Poetic and cultic epiclesis of Artemis 4, 888 Eleutherios Epiclesis of Zeus see Zeus
Elicius see Iuppiter Enagonius Epiclesis of the deities responsible for the Gymnasium 4, 961 Ephesia Epithet of Artemis see Artemis Epulo [2] (Jupiter) Epithet ofJupiter
4, 1169-1170
Euclea Cultic name of Artemis
5, 135-136
Feretrius Epithet of Jupiter
5, 384-385
5,940
Brisaeus Epiclesis of Dionysus
Hekaerge [1] Epithet of Artemis
5, 1119 6, 56
Briseus, Brises 2,774 Bromius see Dionysus
Hekaergos Epithet of Apollo and
Buthoinas indigitation of Hercules in Lindus see Buphagus
Hekebolos Epithet of Apollo and 6,59
goddess in Crete
6, 110
Henioche [1] Eptibet of Hera
2, 841
Callinicus |x] Epithet of Heracles 2, 980-981
Carnea, Carneus, Carnus Epithets
2, 1116-
1118
Carnus [1] Epithet of Apollo and Zeus see Carnea Casius see Baal; Typhoeus; Zeus Charops [1] Epithet of Heracles
3, 205
6, 57
Hellotis Epithet of Athena and of a
Buzyges [2] Epithet of Heracles
of Apollo and Zeus
Artemis
7,98
Kourotrophos Name or epiclesis of numerous Greek gods and goddesses 7, 101-102 Ktistes Epiclesis or honourific title
7,113
Lairbenos Epiclesis of Apollo in Phrygia 7,174 Leukophryene Epiclesis of Artemis of Magnesia 7,454 Leukos Boeotian epithet of Hermes
7,454
Loxias Epiclesis of the God Apollo 7, 825 Lucina Epithet of Juno 7,854 Lykaios Epiclesis of Zeus 8, 17 Lykeios Epiclesis of Apollo 8, 17 Maleatas Epiclesis for Apollo 8, 199 Malophoros Epithet for Demeter in Megara
8,209
Manticlus Fictive (?) founder of sanctuary of Heracles Mantiklos 8, 255-256
Mantis Epiclesis of deities in sanctuaries with prophetic functions
Matusia Apellation of Minerva in Sentinum 8, 493 Moneta Epithet of Juno 9, 142Mulciber Epithet for Vulcan 9, 261-262
Halosydne [2] Epithet of Thetis
(2,823-824)
7,30
143
5, 641
Gorgophone [1] Epithet of Athena
Artemis
Hermes
Klarios Epithet of Apollo see Apcllo Kore Kosmou Epithet of Isis 7, 96-97 Kory(n)thos Epithet of Apollo
8, 259-260
Fors Fortuna Epithet of Fortuna see Fortuna Gaieochos Epithet of Poseidon
2, 449-451 2, 451-452
2,774
Isodaites Deity identified with Pluto see Pluto Karpophoros Epithet of Demeter see Demeter Kataibates Epiclesis of Zeus and
6,134 Hypsistos Epiclesis of the gods, especially of Zeus 6, 650-652 latros [2] Epiclesis of Apollo 6, 692
[3] Title of four Att. healing heroes 6, 692 Idaea [1] Epithet of Cybele 6,710 Idaeus [1] Epithet of Zeus 6,711 locheaira Epithet of Artemis see Artemis
Musagetes Epithet of Apollo see Apollo Naios Epithet of Zeus 9, 493 Neikos Personification of hate and strife 9, 619 Nutrix Name of female deities 9, 921 Opis, Upis Epithet of Artemis TO, Tox
Pallas [3] Athena’s epithet
10, 397 Panamaros Epiclesis of Zeus see Zeus Pandemos Epiclesis of Aphrodite
10, 434
Parthenos [1] Divine epithet primarily of Athena 10, 57% Periclymenus [1] Epithet of Pluto 10, 781
Phaéthon [1] Epithet of the sun god
Helius
10, 905
135
6.3. MYTHICAL
Phthonos Personification of envy and jealousy 11, 204 Pierides [1] Epithet of the Muses 121316
Pluvialis Epithet of Jupiter
TI, 430
Polydectes [2] Epithet of Hades II, 520 Polyxenus [1] Sobriquet for Hades
II, 539 Pronuba. Epiclesis of Juno 12, 13 Pylaea [1] Epithet of Demeter E2024 Quadriformis Sobriquet of Janus 12, 313-314 Regina Epithet of Iuno see luno Saxanus Epithet of Hercules
13, 42-43
13,659
Soteira Epithet of several female deities see Soter Soter Epithet of various male deities
13, 666-668
Sothis Constellation and epiclesis 13, 668-669
Synnaos Theos God sharing the temple of another deity 14, 28-
29 Tarpeius [2] Epithet of Iuppiter as lord of the Capitolium 14, 147148
Tauropolos Deity of the armies of the Macedonians and Diadochi see Artemis
Telesphoros. Epithet of Gaia Macaerain Thebes 14,232 Thesmophoros Epiclesis of Demeter as provider of laws see Thesmophoria Tifatina Aspect of Diana see Capua E. (2,182)
Ultor see Mars I. C. Urania [3] Epithet of Hera Heyes Jets)
[4] Epithet of Aphrodite as the Oueen of Heaven 15, 118 Verticordia Epiclesis of Venus see Venus Victor [2] Roman epithet for gods
15,395
Virgo Caelestis Epiclesis of the goddess Tinnit see Tinnit Virilis Epithet of Fortuna see Fortuna (B.)
Xeine Manifestation of Aphrodite/ Astarte, with a temple in Mem-
phis 15,797
Zagreus Epithet of Dionysos
15, 865
Zephyritis Cognomen of Aphrodite
15, 909-910
On composite creatures and mythical animals cf. 16.5. On the Classical Tradition see vol. 2, 8.
Abantiades Descendant of Abas
oy
LEGENDARY
PERSONS
[2] In an early Greek theogony son of Gaia, father of Uranus Tho, 1402 Acoetes [1] Mythical Helmsman nig, Nop [2] Evander’s weapon bearer in the Aeneid 1, 102 Acontius see Cydippe Acrisius In Greek mythology father of Danae 1, 112 Actaeon Theban hero; variant
Abaris Mythical figure derived from the cult of Apollo 1, 4-5 Abartus Descendant of the Athenian king Codrus 1, 5 Abas [1] Figure from Myth of the Peloponnese and central Greece TO
Smintheus Portrayal of Apollo with amouse_ see Apollo Sosipolis [3] Epithet of Zeus in Magnesia
6.3. Mythical and legendary persons On mythical groups and peoples cf. Subject Index 16.4.
AND
Abderus Son of Hermes or Poseidon 1,16 Abrote Wife of Ninus, the king of Megara 1, 33 Academus Attic hero 1, 40-41 Acalanthis Slave of the Pieros and the Antiope see Pierides Acamas Figure from Greek mythology; Son of Theseus 1, 46-47 Acanthis and Acanthus Figures from Greek mythology transformed into birds 1, 47 Acantho Figure from Greek mythology; Mother ofaHelios 1, 47 Acarnan Eponym of Acarnania and of the Acarnanians 1, 48 Acastus Mythical king of lolcus
rey
Acca Larentia Roman mythical
name of Actaeus 1%, 117-118 Actaeus [1] Attic primal king DOP
Actorione Monstrous pair of Sia-
mese twins from Greek mythology 1, 126-127 Admete Mythical priestess of Hera in Argus and Samos 1, 142 Admetus Participant in the Argonaut expedition 1, 142 Adonis Mythical shepherd youth, of Phoenician origin 1, 145146
Adrastus [1] Mythical figure, leader of the campaign of the Seven against Thebes 1, 154-155 [2] Trojan ally, son of the seer Merops, brother of Amphius
1, 155 Aeacus Mythical founding hero of Aegina 1, 164-165 Aeaea Epithet of Circe 1, 165 Aedon Figure from Greek myth Hy Lp Aeetes Mythical king of Aea/ColChis Terg0
figure 1, 55-56
Aegaeon Hundred-armed monster, son of Uranus see Hecaton-
Pieria
cheires Aegestus Mythical warrior of Troy and founding hero ofEgesta/Se-
Acesamenus Mythical King of 1, 67
Acesis Healing hero in Epidaurus I, 68
Aceso Healing heroine, daughter of Asclepius 1, 68 Acestes Soldier from Troy see Aegestus Acestor [1] Figure from Greek myth; Son of Ephippus of Tanagra
1,68
[2] Hero in the genealogy of the Philaedians 1, 68 Achaeus [1] Son of Xuthus and Creusa
1,79
Achates [2] Companion of Aeneas 1,85
Acheloides Daughters of Achelous 1, 85
Achilles [x] Hero from Greek
mythology 1, 89-94 Achlys Personification of darkness 1,98
Acis Son of Faunus and a daughter of the river god Symaethus ity dep) Acmon [1] One ofthe Idaeaic dactyls in the Phoronis 1, 102
gesta
1,187
Aegeus Mythical king of Athens, gave his name to the Aegean sea I,
187-188
Aegialea Mythical wife of Diomedes 1, 188-189 Aegialeus [1] Figure from Greek myth, Son of Adrastus
1, 189
[2] Eponymous hero ofAegialea, name of part of Sicyon. also other name for Achaia 1,189
[3] Another name for Medea’s brother Apsyrtus 1, 189 Aegimius [1] Mythical progenitor of the Dorians in the Oete mountains
1,191
Aegisthus Son of Thyestes, murderer of Agamemnon 1, 196-197 Aegle [1] Naiad, with Helios, mother of the Charites 1, 197 [2] Daughter of Helios 1, 198 [3] Hesperid 1,198
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[4] One ofthe wives of Theseus 1,198
[5] Mother of Asclepius 1, 198 [6] Youngest daughter of Asclepius
1,198
Aello Harpy see Harpies (5,1149-1150) Aenarete Also Enarete
1, 218
Aeneas [1] Mythical figure from Trojan war
1, 219-221
Aeneus Figure from Greek myth, son of Apollo 1, 223 Aeolus [1] Eponym of the Aeolean tribe 1, 233-234 [3] Son of Poseidon and of Melanippe 1,234 Aepytus [1] Arcadian hero
I, 234-235
[2] King of Arcadian Trapezus
I, 235
[3] Figure of Greek myth: Son of Hercules and Omphale
eee
[4] Figure of Greek myth: Son of the Heraclid Temenus 1, 323 [5| Figure of Greek myth: Son of Oeneus
1, 323
[6| Figure from the Iliad: Slave of Priam 1, 323 Agesilaus [1] I, legendary Spartan king (c. 900 BC) 1, 336 Aglaea [1] Youngest of the Charites
1, 343
[2] Figure from Greek myth: Spouse of Charopus 1, 343 Aglaonice Witch, daughter of Hegetor 1, 343 Aglaurus [1] Figure of Greek myth: Daughter the first king in Attica
I, 344
[4] Son of the Heraclid Cresphontes and Merope 1, 235 Aeria [4] Figure from Greek myth
I, 239
Aerias Founder of the sanctuary of Aphrodite at Paphos 1,240 Aerope Daughter of Catreus I, 240 Aeson [1] Figure from Greek mythology, eponym ofthe city of Aeson 1, 254-255 Aethalides [1] Herald during the Argonauts’ campaign 1, 269 [2] Eponymic hero of the Attic deme Aethalidae 1,269 Aethilla Mythical figure, sister of Priam
136
PERSONS
1,270
Aethlios Father of Endymion see Endymion Aethon [1] Great-grandfather of Odysseus 1, 271 Aethra Figure from Greek mythology, mother of Theseus 1, 271 Aetius [1] Mythical king of Troezen
1, 274 Aetolus Eponym of the Aetolians I, 286
Agamede Figure of Greek mytho-
logy 1, 304
Agamemnon King of the Argives in Mycenae 1, 305-306 Aganippe [2] Mythical person, also known as Eurydice 1, 307 Agapenor Mythical king in Tegea I, 308
Agave Daughter of Cadmus I, 320-321 Agdistis Mythical hermaphrodite from the Phrygian Attis myth tips Set Agelaus [1] Figure from the Iliad: Greek, whom Hector kills Tin, Hebe [2] Figure from the Iliad: Greek, whom Diomedes kills 1, 323
[2] Figure of Greek myth: Daughter of Actaeus [1] and of Cecrops
1, 344
Agraulus see Aglaurus Agrius [1] Mythical Calydonian
1,395 Agron [1] Mythical figure: inhabitant of Cos 1, 396 [2] Legendary Lydian king 1, 396 Ajax [1] Greek hero before Troy, son of Telamon 1, 409-410 [2] Greek hero before Troy, son of Oileus 1, 410 Akephalos Headless demon I, 411-412 Alcaeus [1] Grandfather of Hercules 1, 436 [3] Son ofHercules 1, 436 Alcander Figure in the Lycurgus myth, also protecting hero in Lebadeia 1, 440 Alcanor [1] Figure in the Aeneid: Trojan from Mount Ida_ 1, 440 [2] Figure in the Aeneid: a Rutulian 1,440 Alcathoe, Alcithoe [1] Figure of Greek myth: One of the Minyades 1,440 Alcathous [1] Megarian hero, connected with the town that was also called Alcathoe 1, 440-441 [2] Mythical Aetolian 1, 441 [3] Figure of the Iliad: Trojan brother-in-law of Aeneas
1, 441 Alcestis Daughter of Pelias 1, 441 Alcimede Figure of Greek myth; Jason’s mother 1, 449-450 Alcimedon [1] Arcadian hero I, 450 [2] Figure of the Iliad: chariotdriver 1,450 [3] One of the Tyrrhenian pirates turned into dolphins by DionNysus 1, 450
Alcimenes [1] Figure of Greek myth: brother of Bellerophontes
I, 450
[2] Figure of Greek myth: son of Jason and Medea 1, 450 Alcimus [1] Spartan hero 1, 450 [2] Figure of the Illiad 1, 451 Alcinous [1] Mythical king ofthe Phaeacians 1, 452 Alcippe [1] Figure of Greek myth: daughter of Ares 1, 453 [2] Figure of Greek myth: grandmother of Daedalus 1, 453 [3] Figure from the Iliad: slave of Helena 1, 453 Alcmaeon [1] Figure of Greek myth: son of Amphiaraus
1, 453 [2] Figure of Greek myth: grandchild of Nestor 1, 453-454
Alcmene Figure of Greek myth: mother of Heracles 1, 460 Alcon [1| Figure of Greek myth: son of Erechtheus 1, 461 [2] Figure of Greek myth: son of Hippocoon of Amyklai I, 461
[3] Figure of Greek myth: Cretan archer 1, 461% Alcyone [1] Daughter of Atlas I, 461
[2] Daughter of Aeolus and Enarete
1,461
Alcyoneus [1] Figure of Greek myth: Giant 1, 461-462 [2] Figure of Greek myth: son of Telamon; priest of Poseidon I, 462
Alector [1] Figure from the Odyssey: servant of Menelaus 1, 463 [2] Mythical Argive king 1, 464 [3] Mythical king of Elis 1, 464 [4] Figure of the Argonaut cycle
I, 464 Alectryon [1] Ares’ minder during his meetings with Aphrodite I, 464
[2]. An Argonaut
1, 464 Aletes [1] Mythical conqueror of Corinth
1, 466
[2] Figure of Greek myth: son of Aegisthus 1, 466 Aleus [1] 1, 467-468 [2] Figure of Greek myth: son of Aegisthus
1, 468
Alexander [1] see Paris Alexanor Healing hero in the Asklepieion ofSicyon 1, 500 Aloads Gigantic sons of Iphimedea and Aloeus 1, 525 Alope Mistress of Poseidon
I, 525-526 Alphesiboea Daughter of Phegeus of Psophis, possesses the necklace of Eriphyle 1, 542
137
6.3. MYTHICAL
Althaea [1] Mythical figure: daughter of Thestius 1, 550 Althaemenes Rhodian hero
i, 552
Amycus [1] Son of Poseidon and the Bithynian nymph Melia 1, 622 [2] Name ofacentaur 1, 622 [3] Trojan, spouse of Theano
Amalthea [1] Cretan Nymph
1, 557
[2] Mother of Dionysus 1, 557 [3] Daughter of Phocus 1,557 [4] Cumaean Sibyl 1, 557 Amarynceus [1] King of the Epeians I, 560
[2] Thessalian ally of king Augelas 1, 560 Amata Wife of Latinian king Latinus, mother of Lavinia 1, 563 Ambigatus King ofall the Celts during the reign of Tarqinius Priscus 1, 568 Ambrosia [1] One of the Hyads
Es57i-572 Ampelus [4] Satyr, loved by Dio-
nYSUS 1,597
Amphiaraus Argive seer 1, 598 Amphictyon [1] Mythical third king of Athens 1, 599 [2] Son or grandson of Deucalion and Pyrrha 1,599 Amphidamas [1] Hero from Tegea in Arcadia 1,600 [2] Opuntic Locrian 1, 600 [3] From Cythera 1, 600 [4] Egyptian, 1, 600 Amphilochus [1] Mythical seer I, 603
[2] Son of Alcmaeon and Manto I, 603
Amphimachus [1] Son of Electryon I, 603
[2] Son of Molionic Cteatus I, 603
[3] Son of Nomion 1, 603 [4] King of the Lycians 1, 603 Amphinomus [1] A. and Anapias. Pious pair of brothers from Catana 1, 603-604 [2] Suitor of Penelope 15,992 Amphion [1] Son of Zeus and of Antiope 1, 604 [2] Son of Jason 1, 604 Amphissus Son of Apollo and Dryope 1, 607 Amphithea [1] Wife of Autolycus I, 608
[2] Wife of the Tyrrhenian king Aeolus 1, 608 [3] Wife of Lycurgus 1, 608 Amphitryon Husband of Alcmene I, 614
Amphius [1] Son ofthe seer Merops of Percote 1, 614 [2] Son of Selagos from Paesus I, 614
Ampyx, Ampycus Mythical seer I, 619
Amulius Brother of Numitor I, 620
T6225
[5] Trojan, Priamid 1, 623 Amymone Daughter of Danaus and Europa 1, 623-624 Amyntor [1] Son of Ormenus, domiciled in Eleon 1, 626 [2] Likewise son of Ormenus, father of Phoenix 1, 626 [3] King of Ormenion in Thessaly I, 626
Amyris Syris, father of Damasus gop
ling
Amythaon Argonaut 1, 627 Ancaeus [1] Son of Lycurgus of Tegea
1, 664-665
[2] Son of Poseidon 1, 665 Anchiale [1] Cretan nymph I, 665
Anchises Father of Aeneas
1, 667—
668
Andraemon [1] Mythical founder of Amphissa 1, 679 [2] Son of Oxylus 1, 680 [3] Pylian, founding hero of Colophon 1, 680 Andreus Eponymous king of the island of Andros 1, 681 Androclus Son of king Codrus of Athens 1, 683 Androgeos Son of Minos and Pasiphae 1, 683 Andromache Wife of Hector 1, 684
Andromeda Wife of Perseus I, 686
Anius Mythical king ofthe island of Delos 1,701 Anna Sister of Dido 1, 701% Antaeus Libyan giant, son of Poseidon 1,716 Antea [1] Daughter of the king of Lydia 1,719 Antenor [1] Son of Hicetaon or Aesyetes
1,720
Anthas see Anthes Anthes, Anthas Son of Poseidon and Alcyone [t] 1,724 Anthes, Anthas [2] Singer of hymns
I, 724
Antho Figure of Roman myth nog?
5)
Anthus Figure of Greek myth: son of Autonous and Hippodameia 1, 738 Antiades Son of Heracles and Aglaea 1,741 Anticlea Mother of Odysseus
740
Anticlus One ofthe Greeks in the wooden horse 1,742
LEGENDARY
PERSONS
Antigone [1] Daughter of Thessalian Phere 1,745 [2] Daughter of king Eurytion of Phthia 1,745 [3] Daughter of Oedipus
[4] Trojan, killed by Turnus M623
AND
I, 745-746
[4] Daughter of the Trojan king Laomedon 1,746 Antilochus Eldest son of Nestor
E753
Antimachus [1] Trojan, opponent of Antenor 1,753 Antinous [1] Most unrestrained of the suitors of Penelope 1,756 Antiope [1] Daughter of the river god Asopos 1, 769-770 [2] Amazon queen 1,770 Antiphates King of the Laestrygo-
es
Ish 77
Antiphus [1] Son of Priam and Hecabe 1,782
[2] Figure of the Odyssey, son of the Ithacan Aegyptus 1, 782 Aphareus [1] Son of Perieres and Gorgophone 1, 824 Aphidas [1] Figure of the Odyssey I, 825
[2] King of Athens 1, 825 [3] King of Tegea 1, 825 Aphidnus Eponymous king of the Attic town of Aphidna 1, 825826
Apsyrtus [1] Son of Aeetes and Idyia 1, 915-916 Arachne Spider: mythical figure
1,944
Arcas Eponym of the Arcadians
I, 971-972 Archander and Architeles [1] Sons or Grandsons of Achaeus
1, 979 [2] Sons of Acastus 1,979 Arcisius Father of Laertes, grandfather of Odysseus 1, 1033-
1034
Areithous [1] Arcadian hero I, 1043-1044 [2] Club-carrier from Arne I, 1044 Arestor Figure of Greek myth: father of Argos 1, 1051 Arete [1] Wife and sister of the Phaeacian king Alcinous losS Arethusa [7] Freshwater spring at the port of Syracuse 1, 1055 Argea [1] Daughter of Oceanus I, 1056 [2] Older daughter of Adrastus and Amphithea 1, 1056 [3] Daughter of Autesion Gy LOST Argeius [1] Son of Licymnius
I, 1059 [2] Son of Pelops and Hippodameia
1, 1059
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[3] Suitor of Penelope 1, 1059 Arges One of the three Cyclopes Is Iieyey?
Argiope [1] Nymph 1, 1063 [2] Thracian wife of Orpheus I, 1063
[3] Daughter of Teuthras I, 1063
[4] Daughter of Neilus 1, 1063 Argos [I 1] Son of Zeus and Niobe I, 1070 [I 2] Son of Arestor 1, 1070 [I 3] Son of Phrixus 1, 1070 [1 4] Eponym of the Roman municipal vicus Argiletum I, 1070 (I 5] Guardian of Io, who had been turned into a cow I, 1070 Argynnus Beautiful Boeotian youth Talowis Ariadne Figure of Greek myth with a multi-faceted cultus 1, 1076-
1077 Aristodemus [1] Great-grandson of Heracles 1, 1112 Aristomachus [1] Great-grandson of Heracles 1, 1117 Armilus Legendary name of an anti-Messiah 2, 13 Arsinoe [I 1] Daughter of Leucip-
pus 2,34
[I 2] One of the three Minyadae in Orchomenus 2, 34 {I 3] Daughter of Phegeus from Psophis 2,34 [I 4] Wet-nurse of Orestes 2, 34 [I 5] Daughter of king Nicocreon of Salamis 2,34 Ascalabus Son of Misme from EleuSis
138
PERSONS
[3] Daughter of Pelops 2, 213 Astyoche [1] Sister of Agamemnon and Menelaus 2, 213 [2] Daughter of Laomedon 2s [3] Daughter of one Actor 25 204. [4] Daughter of Phylas of Ephyra Ze amd Atalante Young woman and huntress
2, 217-218
Athamas Mythical ruler in Halus and Orchomenus 2, 229-230 Atlas [2] Mythic giant 2,294 Atreus Ancestor of the Atreides 2, 299-300 Attis Young shepherd of Phrygian myth, worshipped in a cult shared with Cybele 2, 327-329 Atymnius [1] Son of the Carian king Amisodarus 2, 330 [2] Son of Zeus 2, 330-331 Atymnus Cretan hero 2, 331 Atys [1] Lydian proto-king 2, 331 [2] Son of the Lydian king CroeSUS 2.3 3il Auge Mythical princess from Tegea
2, 338
Augeias King of the Epeians in the Iliad 2, 338-339 Auson Son of Odysseus (or Atlas) and Circe (or Calypso) 2, 391 Autolycus [1] Son of Hermes and Chione 2, 413 [2] Mythical founder of Sinope
2, 413-414 Automedon [1] Charioteer to Achilles and Patroclus 2, 417 Autonoe Mother of Actaeon 2, 418
Baton [1] Charioteer to Amphiar-
2, 91-92
Ascalaphus [1] Demon ofthe Underworld 2,92 [2] Son of Ares and Astyoche Fa Gs Ascanius Son of Aeneas and Creusa of Troy see Tulus Asteria [2] Titaness 2, 190 Asterion [1] Mythical king of Crete 2,190 [2] The Minotaurus 2, 190 Asteropaeus Leader of the Paeonians, allies of Troy 2, 19% Astra(m)psychus Legendary magi-
aus
2,558
Andromache
Doe (owed
2, 212
Astydameia [1] Daughter ofthe Dolopian king Amyntor 2, 213 [2] Wife of Acastus of Iolcus Dy 716A
Cadmilus Son of Hephaestus and Cabiro see Cabiri Cadmus [1] Son of Agenor and Telephassa 2, 867-868 Caecilia [1] C. Gaia. Wife of Tarquinius Priscus
2, 871
Caeculus Mythical founder of Praeneste
2, 889-890
Caeles Vibenna
see Mastarna
Caeneus Lapith ruler 2,896 Calamites Attic hero 2,930
Calamus [1] Son of Maeander
2, 930 Calchas Augur for the Greeks during the Trojan war
2,934-
I55
Calchus Beloved of Circe 2, 936 Calesius Trojan ally 2,953 Caletor [1] Father of Aphareus
2,953
Callidice [1] Daughter of Celeus
Bisaltes [1] Son of Helius and Ge
Astyanax Son of Hector and
2, 841-842
Cabye, Cambyse Heroine 2, 865 Cacus Cave-dwelling monster on the Palatine or Aventine 2,866
Baucis Phrygian woman who gave
Ages 2,192 Astraeus Titan
2, 192
2, 841
Byblis Daughter of Miletus
Caliadne Naiad 2,953 Callias [1] Mythical son of the
Astraea Virgin from the Myth of the
2, 192
25 774 Brontes Cyclops 2,786 Broteas [1] Son of Tantalos 2,790 [2] Son of Zeus 2,790 Budeia Wife of Clymenus 2, 807 Busiris [3] Name of a king of Greek myth 2,835 Butes [1] Attic hero 2, 837-838 Buzyges [1] Athenian heros
Battus [5] Mythical messenian shepherd 2, 562 Baubo Mythical original inhabitant of Eleusis 2, 562-563 shelter to the gods Jupiter and Mercury 2, 563 Bellerophontes, Bellerophon Grandson ofSisyphus or son of Poseidon 2, 587-588 Bellovesus Mythical Celtic founder of Mediolanum 2, 590 Bianor [1] Son of Tiber and Manto, founder of Mantua 2, 622 Bias [1] Mythical son of Amythaon
clan 2, 194-195 Astrabacus Spartan hero
Bormus Young Mariandynian, taken by nymphs 2,731 Botres Turned into the bird Aeropus by Apollo 2,738 Briseis Prisoner of war and beloved of Achilles 2,774 Briseus, Brises [1] Father of Briseis
2, 673 [2] Father of Theophane 2, 673 Bitias [1] Companion of Aeneas 2, 682
[2] Man in Dido’s retinue 2, 682
[2] Cousin of Hector
Heraclid Temenos and Metaneira
2,953
2, 961
2,970
[2] Wife of Odysseus 2,970 Calliope [1] A Muse 2, 982-983 Callirhoe [1] Daughter of Oceanus 2, 986
[2] Daughter of Achelous 2, 987 [3] Daughter of Scamander 2, 987 [4] Mistress of the Dionysian priest Coresus
2, 987
[5] Bride from Ilium 2, 987 Callisto Arcadian Nymph 2, 988-
989 Callithoe [1] Daughter of Celeus and Metaneira 2,992 [2] First priestess of Hera
2,992
139
Gs
Calybe [1] Mistress of Laomedon 2, 1007 [2] Priestess ofJuno 2, 1007 Calyce [1] Daughter of Aeolus [1] and Enarete
2, 1008 [2] Mistress of Poseidon
Castor [1] see Dioscuri
Catillus Mythical founder of Tibur
2, 1008
[3] Woman whose love is unrequited 2, 1008 [4] Girl’s name 2, 1008 Calydnus First king of Thebes
2, [008-1009
[2] Son of Ares and Astynome 2, 1009 Calypso Mistress of Odysseus 2, LOLI-1013 Cambles Mythological king of Lydia 2, 1015 Camilla A Volscian Amazon maiden warrior 2, 1022 Canace Daughter of Aeolus [1] and Enarete 2, 1032 Candalus Son of Helios and of Rhodes 2, 1045 Candaules Last ruler of the Heraclid dynasty 2, 1045 Cantharus [2] Name attributed to a 15, 1016
2, 1060
_ Capaneus One of the Seven against Thebes
2, 1062
Caphene Carian maiden 2, 1064 Capys [1] Father of Anchises 2, 1083
[2] Founder of Capua 2, 1083 [3] Samnite general 2, 1083 [4] King of Alba Longa 2, 1083-1084 Car [1] Son of Phoroneus
2, 1084
[2] Son of Zeus and Crete 2, 1084
Caranus [1] Founded the Macedonian royal house 2, 1088 Carcabus Founder of Zeleia at Cyzicus 2, 1091 Carmanor [1] Cretan seer 2, 1108 Carme Mistress of Zeus 2, 1108 Carpus [1] Son of Zephyrus and a Hore
2, 1126
Carya Mistress of Dionysus
2, 1147
Cassandra Daughter of Priamus and Hecabe 2, 1157-1158 Cassiepea, Cassiopea, Cassiope [1] Mistress of Zeus 2, 1160 Cassiepea, Cassiopea, Cassiope [2] Wife of Epaphus, son of Zeus 2,
1160
[3] Mother of Andromeda 2,
3523 Caucon Hero of the Caucones
3, 37-38
1160
town C. [2] 3,39 Cautes, Cautopates Companions of Mithras 3,47 Cebriones Son of Priamus 3, 59 Cecrops Mythical first king of Athens 3, 59-60 Cedalium Blacksmith, teacher of
Hephaestus 3, 6% Ceisus Son of the Heraclid Temenus 3, 65-66
Celaeno [1] Lover of Poseidon 3, 67 [2] One of the Harpies 3, 67 Celeus Eleusian hero 3, 69-70 Celeutor Nephew of the Aetolian king Oeneus 3,70 Celmis One of the Daktyloi 3,71 Centaurus [1] Father of the centaurs
Canthus An Argonaut 15, 1017 Canuleia One of the first Roman Vestals
3, 19
Catreus Son of Minos and Pasiphae
Caunus [1] Eponym ofthe Carian
2, 1008
Calydon [1] Eponymous ofthe Aetolian city of the same name
giant
Cassiphone Daughter of Odysseus and Circe 2, 1164 Castianera Concubine of Priamus 2, 1179
3, 113
Cephalus [1] Athenian hero
35 133-134
Cepheus [1] Arcadian hero 3, 134 [2] Son of Belos 3, 134-135 Cerambus Grandson of Poseidon 3, 140-141 Cercaphus One of the seven Heliadae 3, 143 Cercyon [1] Son of Poseidon
3; C47
[2] Son of Agamedes 3, 147 Cerdo Wife of the primordial man Phoroneus 3, 147 Cerebia Wife of Poseidon 3,148 Ceryx Progenitor of the Eleusinian priestly lineage 4, 166 Cestrinus Son of Helenus [1] and Andromache 3, 169 Ceteii Warriors of Eurypylus [2]
3, 169
Ceteus Mythical king in Arcadia 3, 169 Ceto Mother of the Gorgons yaltigo, Ceyx King of Trachis 3, 171-172 Chaeron [1] Mythical son of Apollo and Thero 3,176 Chalciope [1] Daughter of Chalcodon 3,180 [2] Sister of Medea 3, 180 [3] Daughter of King Eurypylus of Cos 3, 181 Chariclo [1] Wife of Chiron
35 195
MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[2] Nymph
PERSONS
3, 195
Charon [1] Ferry-man of the Underworld 3, 202-203 Charops [2] Grandfather of Orpheus 3,205 [3] Ruler on Syme 3, 205 [4] Son of Hippasus 3, 205 Cheslimus Eponym of a tribe descended from the Egyptians 3, 215-216
Chilonis [1] Legendary wife of king Theopompus 3,228 Chione [1] Daughter of Boreas and Oreithyia 3,230 [2] Daughter of Daedalion
39250 Chiron Centaur
3, 233-234
Chloris [2] Daughter of Niobe, the only one spared by Artemis
3, 236
[3] Mother of the seer Mopsus
3, 236
[4] Wife of the Pylian Neleus
35 236-237
Chromis [1] Ally of the Trojans
3,270 {2] Satyr or centaur 3,270 Chromius [1] Brother of Nestor
3 270 [2] Companion at arms of Nestor
3,270 [3] Son of Priam
3,270 [4] Trojan, killed by Teucer
92270 [5] Lycian, killed by Odysseus
3,276
[6] Ally of the Trojans 3,270 Chrysaor(i)us [2] Eponymous hero of Caria 3,286 Chrysaor(i)us [4] Son of Medusa 3, 286
Chryseis Daughter of Chryses, reason for the conflict between Achilles and Agamemnon
3, 287
Chrysippe Danaid 3, 288 Chrysippus [1] Favourite son of Pelops 3,288 Chrysothemis [1] Beloved of Apollo 3,295 [2] Daughter of Agamemnon and Clytaemnestra 3,295 [3] Cretan expiation priestess
3,295 Cilix Son of Agenor [1] and Telephassa 3,332
Cilla [2] Daughter of Laomedon Bien )eN63)
Cillas Charioteer of Pelops 3, 333 Cinadus Helmsman of Menelaus
3340
Cinyras Mythical founder of the temple of Aphrodite of Paphus
35 346-347
Circe Beloved of Odysseus
3, 347-349
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
Cisseus Name ofseveral mythical kings 3, 365-366 Cleinis Rich Babylonian 3, 418 Cleio Muse 3, 418 Cleisonymus Son of Amphidamas
[2] 3,419 Cleite Daughter of Merops 3, 421 Cleitus [1] Nephew of the seer Melampus 3, 423 [2] Great nephew of C. [1]
3,423 [3] Son of Peisenor
3, 423
[4] Lover of Pallene 3, 423 [5] King of Thracia 3, 423 Cleobis and Biton Son of Cydippe
3,428
Cleoboea [1] Virgin of the mysteries of Demeter 3, 428 [2] Wife of Phobius 3, 428 Cleopatra [I 1] Daughter of Boreas and Oreithyia 3, 438 [I 2] Daughter of Idas and Mar-
pessa
3, 438
{I 3] Daughter of Tros and Callir-
hoe [3] 3, 438-439
[I 4] Sacrificial servant of Athena
35439 Cloelia [1] Young Roman woman,
example of female bravery
3,471 Clonius [1] Commander ofthe Boeotian contingent at Troy 3, 472 [2] Companion of Aeneas
35472
Clymene [1] Mother ofAtlas [2]
3, 486 [2] Nereid
3, 486
[3] Nymph 3, 486
[4] Daughter of Minyas and Euryale 3, 486 [5] Wife of Nauplius 3, 486 [6] Maidservant to Helena |r]
3, 486
Clymenus [2] Son of Helios
3, 487
[3] Founder of the Olympic Games 3, 487 [4] King of Orchomenus 3, 487 [5] Son of Oeneus and Althaea
[1] 3, 487 [6] Lover of Epicaste 3, 487 Clytaemnestra Wife of Agamemnon
3, 487-488
Clytia, Clytie [rt] Daughter of Oceanus and Tethys 3, 488 Clytia, Clytie [2] Daughter of Pandareus from Crete 3, 488 [3] Beloved of Helios 3, 488 Clytius [1] Giant 3, 488 [2] Son of Alemaeon and Arsinoe
[13] 3, 488 [3] Argonaut 3, 488 [4] Brother of Priam 3, 488 Cocalus Mythical king of Sicily
35493
140
PERSONS
Codrus Mythical king of Athens
35 503
Coeranus [1] Descendant of Melampus
3,508
[2] Charioteer of Meriones
3, 508
[3] Lycian side 3, [4] Victim Miletus
hero on the Trojan 508 of shipwreck, from 3, 508
Coeus Titan 3, 509 Comaetho [1] Lover of Amphitryon 3,599 [2] Priestess of Artemis Triklaria at the sanctuary of Laphria near Patrae 3,599 Combabus Founder of the temple of Atargatis in Hierapolis 3, 602
Combe Daughter of Asopus and Metope 3, 602 Cometes [1] Lover of Aegiale(ia) 3, 618
[2] Son of the Aetolian king Thestius 3, 618 Coon Son of Antenor [1] 3,763 Copreus [1] Servant of Eurystheus 35772
[2] Boeotian friend of Heracles
55 77a
Coroebus [1] Hero founder of Tripodiscus in the Megaris 3, 840 [2] Suitor of Cassandra 3, 840 [3] Inventor of pottery 3, 841 Coronis [1] Mistress of Apollo
3, 843-844
Coronus King of the Lapithae
3, 844 Corythus [2] Eponym theis deme in Tegea [3] Tyrrhenian king [4] Son of Paris and
ofthe Cory3,856 3,856 Oenone
3, 856 3, 856
3,949
[3] King of Euboea [1] 3,949 [4] Teacher of Phrixus
3,949-
950
Crocon Mythical king who ruled in the border area of Eleusis and
Athens
3,954-955
Crotopus Mythical king of Argos 3,960 Ctimene [1] Odysseus’ youngest sister
3,975
[2] Daughter of the Locrian Phegeus from Oenoé 3,975 Curtius [I 1] C., M. Hero of Roman legend 3, 1024 [I 2] C., Mettius. Sabine, fought against Romulus 3, 1024 Cyanippus [1] King of Argus
3, 1033
[2] Son of Phares of Thessaly
3, 1033-1034
Cychreus Protective hero of the island of Salamis 3, 1040-1041 Cycnus [1] Son of Ares and Pelopea
35 1043
[2] Son of Poseidon and the nymph Calyce 3, 1043 [3] Son of Sthenelus 3, 1043 Cydippe [1] Wife of Acontius
3, 1045
[2] Priestess of Hera 3, 1045 [3] Daughter of Ochimus and Hegetoria
3, 1045-1046
Cymodoce Nereid 3, 1050-1051 Cyparissus [1] Of Ceos 3, 1065 Cypselus [1] Son of Aepytus [2]
Cytissorus Grandson of Athamas 4, 26
Cragaleus Son of Drypos, arbitrator in dispute about the city Ambracia 3,910 Cranaus Attic hero 3,
911
Crataeis Mother of Scylla 3,913 Creon [1] Regent and King of 3,929-930
[2] Mythical King of Corinth
3,930
Cres Eponym ofthe island of Crete 33 95
Cresphontes [1] Heraclidus 32 935
[2] Son of Cresphontes [1] 33935
Cretheus Founder and ruler of Tolcus 3,939 Creusa [1] Daughter of Gaia and Oceanus
3,949 [2] Seer from Sparta
3, 1082
[5] Foster father of Telephus
Thebes
[3] Daughter of the Corinthian king Creon 3,940 [4] Daughter of Priamus and Hecabe 3,940 Crius [1] The third ofthe six titans
3,939
[2] Youngest daughter of Erechtheus 3, 939-940
Daedalion Mythological character, transformed into a hawk by Apollo 4,35 Daedalus [1] Mythical craftsman, sculptor and inventor
Say
Damas [1] Hero from Aulis 4, 51 [2] Eponymous founder of Damascus in Syria 4, 51 Damasichthon [1] One of the sons of Niobe 4, 58 [2] Son of the Athenian Codrus
4, 58
Damasistratus Mythical king of Plataeae 4,58 Damnameneus One ofthe mythical inventors of the blacksmith’s craft 4,60 Damon [1] Prince ofthe Telchines 4, 64 Danae Mythical daughter of Acrisius, the king of Argus 4, 68-69
141
sj
Daphne [2] Nymph, transformed into a laurel tree 4, 80-81 Daphnis [1] Mythical cowherd
4, 83 Dardanus [1] Son of Zeus
4, 87—
88
[2] Founder of the Samothracian Mysteries
4, 88-89
Dares [1] Trojan priest of HephaestuS
4,90
[2] One of Aeneas’ companions
4, 90-91
Dascylus [1] Son of Tantalus and Anthemoisia 4, 101 [2] Son of Lycus 4, 10x [3] Father of Gyges 4, 101 Daunus [1] Eponymous hero ofthe Daunians
4, 107
[2] Father of Turnus and Iuturna
4, 107
Deianira Mythical daughter of king Oeneus of Calydon 4, 178 Deidamia [1] Daughter of king Lycomedes on the island of Scyros
4, 178-179
[2] Daughter of Bellerophon
4, 179
Deileon Participants in the Amazon expedition of Heracles 4, 182 Deion(eus) [1] Mythical king of Phocis 4,189 Deiopea Extraordinarily beautiful nymph 4,189 Deiopites Trojan
4, 190
Deiphobus Trojan prince 4, 191192 Deiphontes Great-great grandson of Heracles 4, 192 Deipyle Daughter of Adrastus
4,193
Deucalion Hero of the Flood 4, 321-322 Dexamenus [1] Mythical king of Olenus in Achaea 4, 329 Dexion see Amynus; Sophocles Dia [2] Heroine in the local cults of Phlius and Sicyon 4, 332 [3] Wife of Ixion 4, 332 [4] Daughter of the Arcadian Lycaon 4, 332 Dictys [1] Son of Magnes and a Naiad 4,377 [2] Mythical Tyrrhenian sailor
As 377 [3] Centaur
[4] Son of Neptune and Agamede
4, 377
[5] Foster child of Isis 4, 377 Dido Mythical founder of Carthage
4, 389 Diocles [1] Hero in Megara 4, 423 [2] Prince in Messenian Pherae
4, 423
Diomede [2] Mistress of Achilles 4, 461 Diomedes [1] Cultic hero ofthe city of Argos 4, 461-462 Diomus Eponymous hero ofthe Attic deme Diomea 4, 464-465 Dione Greek goddess, perhaps Zeus’ original wife 4, 469-470 Diores [1] Son of Amarynceus
4, 514 [2] Father of Automedon
4, 514
Diotima Priestess from Mantinea,
teacher of Socrates
4, 522-523
Demaenetus [2] From Parrhasia,
Dolon Son ofthe Trojan herald Eumedes 4, 619 Doris [I 1] One of the Oceanids, mother of the Nereids 4, 687 [I 2] Daughter of Nereus, one of the Nereids 4, 687 Dorus Mythological first ancestor of the Dorians 4, 69% Doto One of the Nereids, occupied a sanctuary in Syrian Gabala 4, 698 Dryas [1] Thessalian Lapith
Demo [1] Daughter of Celeus
4, 263
[2] Name of the Cymaean Sibyl
4, 263-264
Demodice Second wife of the Boeotian king Athamas 4, 270 Demodocus [1] Singer at the royal court of the Phaeaces 4, 270AGik Demonassa [1] Daughter of the Argive seer Amphiaraus 4,274 [2] Mother of Philoctetes
4,274
Demophile see Sibyl Demophon [1] Youngest son of the Eleusinian prince Celeus 4, 287 [2] Mythical king of Athens 4, 287-288
4, 533-534
Dolius [2] Old slave of Penelope 4, 618
[2] Son of Ares, Thracian 4, 728 [3] Father of the Thracian king Lycurgus 4,728 [4] Thracian, killed in chariot 4,728
Dryope [1] Nymph, transformed into a tree
PERSONS
4,729
Dymas [1] Phrygian king on the Sangarius, father of Hecuba
4,758 [2] Phaeacian 4,758 [3] Trojan in the Aeneid 4,758 [4] D. Son of the Dorian king Aegimius 4,758
Dysaules Brother of Celeus in Eleu4,761
Echeclus [1] Son of the Trojan Agenor 4,780 [2] Trojan, killed by Patroclus
4, 781 [3] Centaur 4,781 Echemmon [1] Son of Priamus
4, 782 [2] Nabataean 4,782 Echemus [1] King of Tegea in Arcadia 4, 782-783 [2] Associated with the revenge campaign of the Dioscuri to Attica
4,783
Echephron [1] Son of Nestor
4, 783
[2] Son of Hercules and Psophis
4, 783
Echepolus [1] Pelopid
4,783
[2] Trojan 4,783 Echetlus, Echetlaeus Peasant,
many Persians in the battle of Marathon 4, 783-784 Echetus Cruel king in the Odyssee
4, 784
Echion [1] One ofthe five ‘Spartoi’, men who grew from dragon teeth
4, 787 Eeriboea [1] Stepmother of the Aloads 4, 836 [2] Spouse of Telamon, mother of Ajax
4, 836
Eetion [1] King of the Cilicians in
Mysian Thebe 4, 836-837 [2] Imbrian, character in the Iliad 4, 837 [3] Trojan, respected by Hector
4, 837 [4] see lasion
[5] Eponymus ofAttic Eetioneia 4, 837 [6] Corinthian, father of Cypse-
lus 4, 837
4, 728
contest
LEGENDARY
worshipped as a hero, killed
[3] Son of Priamus 4, 514 Dioscuri The divine twins Castor and Polydeuces 4, 518-521
Dirce [1] Daughter of Ismenus
4, 231
AND
[2] Nymph, mother of Rutulian Tarquitus by Faunus 4,729 Dryops Eponym of the Dryopians with cult in Asine in Messenia
SiS
4,377
Deipylus Son ofthe Thracian king Polymestor and ofIlione 4, 193 Delphus Eponymous hero of Delphi 4,228 allegedly transformed into a wolf
MYTHICAL
4,729
Egerius [1] Son of Arruns Eioneus Father of Dia [3]
4, 839 see Dia
Elate Sister of the Aloads Otus and Ephialtes 4, 888 Elatus [1] Centaur 4, 890 [2] Prince of the Lapiths in Larisa 4, 890 [3] Eponymus ofElateia in Phocis 4, 890
6:3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[4] Trojan ally from Pedasus 4, 890 [5] Suitor of Penelope 4, 890 Electra [1] Daughter of Oceanus and Tethys 4, 897 [2] Daughter of Danaus and the Naiad Polyxo 4, 897 [3] Daughter of Atlas and Pleione 4, 897 [4] Daughter of Agamemnon and Clytaemnestra 4, 897-898 Electryon Tirynthian or Mycenaean hero
4,898
Electryone [1] Patronymic of Alcmene
4, 898
[2] Heroine on Rhodes 4, 898 [3] see Electra [3] Elephenor Suitor of Helena
4, 912-913 Elpenor One of Odysseus’ companions 4,929 Elymus Trojan, eponymous forefather of the Elymi 4, 932-933 Enalus Lesbian hero 4, 961 Enarete see Aenarete Enceladus Giant 4, 962 Endeis Wife of Aeacus see Aeacus Endymion Mythical king of Elis
4, 973
Epaphos Son of Io see Io Ephialtes Giant son of Iphimedia
4, 1032-1033
Epicaste [1] Daughter of Augeias
4, 1058 [2] see locaste, mother and wife
of Oedipus Epimenides Cretan religious figure 4, I112-1113 Epimetheus see Prometheus Epione Wife of Asclepius 4, 1117 Epius [1] Builder of the Trojan Horse 4, 1158 [2] Son of the mythical king Endymion 4, 1158 Epopeus King of Sicyon, husband of Antiope see Antiope [1] Er Returned from the Underworld in Plato 5,7 Erato [1] One of the nine Muses 5, 16
Erechtheus Mythical king of Athens
5,21
Erginus Mythical king of Orchomenus in Boeotia
5, 29
Erichthonius [1] Earthborn from Athens 5,31 [2] Son of the Trojan Dardanus and Bateia 5, 31-32 Eridanus [1] Personification of a river in the west of France or Spain 5,32 Erigone [1] Daughter ofIcartus, welcomer of Dionysus 5, 32 [2] Daughter of Aegisthus and Clytaemnestra 5, 33
142
PERSONS
Erysichthon Eternally hungry youth 5, 53 Erythea One of the Hesperids
Eurydice [1] Frequently occurring name of Greek heroines 5, 215 Euryganea Second wife of Oedipus Gr 20
550)
Eryx [2] Hero of the city E. [1] from the myth of Heracles 5, 57 Eteocles [1] Committer of fratricide, son of Oedipus and Iocaste
Eurylochus [1] Relative and companion of Odysseus 5,216 Eurymachus Suitor of Penelope 55 ZLOS2LF
Eurymedon [1] King of the Giants
579
[2] Founder of the Charites cult
5, 217
[2] Charioteer of Agamemnon
5, 80
Eubuleus Saviour of Kore from the Underworld 5, 130-131 Eudorus [1] One ofthe five leaders of the Myrmidons under Achilles
§, 217 [3] Servant to Nestor
5, 217
Eurymedusa Maidservant of Nausicaa
5,218
5,149
Eurynome Mother ofthe Charites
5, 162
Eurypylus [1] Suitor to Helen
Eumaeus Swineherd of Odysseus Eumelus [1] Leader of the Pheraean fleet against Troy 5, 163
[2] Father of Agron [1] 5, 163 [3] Father of Botres 5, 163 Eumolpus Mythical progenitor of the Eumolpids 5, 168-169 Euneus [1] Great-grandson of Dionysus, warrior on both fronts in the Trojan War 5,170 [2] Trojan, son of Clytius
5, 170
Eunomus [1] Cup-bearer and relative of king Oeneus 5, 171% [2] King of Sparta 5, 171 Eupalamus Father of Daedalus [1] 5, 176 Euphemus Mythical progenitor of the kings of Cyrene 5, 180-181 Euphorbus Fellow fighter of Hector 5, on
Euphorion [1] Winged son of Achilles and Helena 5, 181-182 Euphrosyne One of the Charites
x, 192 Europe/Europa [2] Beloved of Zeus on Crete
5,210
Euryale [1] One of the Gorgons S202 [2] Mother of Orion 5, 212 Euryalus [1] Argive hero 5, 212 [2] Phaeacian, son of Naubolus pai [3] Son of Odysseus and Euippe in Epirus 5,212 [4] Companion ofAeneas Sass Eurybates [1] Herald of Agamemnon 5, 212-213 [2] Quick-witted herald of Odysseus 5, 213 Euryclea Servant in the house of Odysseus 5, 213 Eurydamas [1] Prophesying elderly man 5,214 [2] Suitor to Penelope 5,214 [3] Inventor ofa Thessalian custom
5,214
5,218
5,219 [2] Son of Telephus, the son of Heracles 5, 219-220 [3] King of the Meropes on Cos Geto [4] Mythical king of Libya 5, 220 [5] Mad hero of Patrae 5,220 Eurysaces Son of Ajax 5,220 Eurystheus Argive king, antagonist of Heracles 5,221
Eurytion [1] Leader of the centaurs Gn 22s [2] Peloponnesian centaur Preraeies [3] Herdsman of Geryoneus Leese [4] King of Phthia 5,222 [5] Companion of Aeneas 5s eae: Eurytus [1] Homeric character
5, 222-227 Euterpe
A Muse 5, 232 Euthyphron Athen. seer in Plato 5» 237
Evadne [1] Daughter of Poseidon
and Pitane 5,242 [2] Wife of Capaneus, with whom she died 5, 242 Evander [1] Mythical founder of the first settlement on the Palatine
5, 245-246
[2] Lycian king 5,246 Faustulus Foster father of Romulus and Remus 15, 1027-1028 Galanthis Assistant at the birth of Heracles see Galinthias Galatea [1] Nereid 5, 647 [2] Wife of Lamprus in Phaestus (Crete)
5,647
Galaxaure Oceanid 5, 652 Galene Nereid 5, 661 Galinthias Alcmene’s helper 5, 667 Ganyctor [1] Son of king Ampbidamas [5] of Chalcis 5, 689 [2] Son of the Locrian Phegeus from Oenoé 5, 689
143
6.3. MYTHICAL
[3] Father of Ctimenus and Antiphus 5, 689-690
Ganymede [1] Cupbearer to Zeus 5, 690 Gelanor Mythical original king of
Argus
5,723
Gelonus [1] Son of Heracles and the snake maiden Echidna 5,730 Gerana Pygmy woman, who was changed by Hera into a crane
55790
822
Gilgamesh Ruler of Uruk
5, 852-
853
Gilgamos_ see Gilgamesh Glanis [2] Prophet in Aristophanes
5, 859 Glauce [1] Nereide 5, 866 [2] Spring nymph, bride of Jason 5, 866 [3] Amazon, wife of Theseus 5, 866
Glauconome Nereid 5, 868 Glaucus [1] Sea demon 5, 868869
[2] Son of Sisyphus 5, 869 [3] Son of Minos and Pasiphae
5, 869 [4] Leader of the Lycians at Troy
5, 869-870
[5] Name of several other Tro5,870
Glaukopis Epithet of Athene 5, 873 Goat [1] Goat or nymph, who nourished Zeus as a child
5, 901
Gordius [1] Mythical founder ofthe Phrygian state 5, 929-930 Gorgasus and Nicomachus Healing heroes in Messen. Pharae
55 930-933
[4] Theban, father of Maemon
5, 1091 [5] Beloved of Antigone
5, LO9X
Hagnias Father of Tiphys, helmsman of the Argo 5, 1096 Halcyone Heroine see Alcyone Halesus Companion or son of Aga-
55941
Graecus Son of Zeus and Pandora 5, 960 Guneus Leader of a fleet before
Troy 5, 1043
Gyas [1] Companion of Aeneas
5, 1047
[2] Latin giant with a club
5, 1047
Gyes Incorrectly written form of
5, 1047
Haemon [1] Eponym ofthe Thess. Haemones
5, 1108-1109
Halia [1] Nereid 5, 1109 [2] Beloved of Poseidon
5, 1109 Halirrhothius Rapist of Alcippe
SpkTES
Halitherses [1] Son of Ancaeus [2] and Samia 5, 1116 [2] Soothsayer and companion of Odysseus 5, 1116 Harpalyce [1] Huntress and livestock thief 5, 1148 [2] Daughter of Epicaste and Clymenus 5, 1148 [3] Athen. maiden 5, 1148 Harpalycus [1] Trac. king 5, 1148 [2] Teacher of Heracles in wrestling 5, 1148 [3] Trojan 5, 1148 [4] Son of Lycaon 5, 1148 Hecabe Wife of Priamus 6, 33-34 Hecademus Att. Hero
5, 1090-1091
[2] Founder of Haemoniae in Arcadia 5, 1091
see Aca-
Hecamede Spoil of war of Achilles 6, 35 Hector Opponent of Achilles in the Trojan War 6, 42-44 Hekaerge [2] Maiden active in the cult of Artemis 6, 56-57 [3] Kore from the island of Ceos 6, 57 [4] A Hyperborean 6, 57 Heleius Founder ofthe city of Helus
6, 69
Helle Daughter of Athamas and Nephele 6, 82 Hellen Progenitor of the Hellenes 6, 83
Helorus [1] Ally of the Trojan Telephus 6,116 Henioche [2] Wife of Creon 6, 134 [3] Daughter of Creon 6, 134 [4] Daughter of Pittheus of Troezen
6,134
[5] Daughter of Armenius
6,134
[6] Wet-nurse of Medea 6, 135 Heracles [1] Greek hero 6, 156163
Hermione Daughter of Menelaus and Helena 6,226 Hermochares Founder of a sanctuary of Aphrodite in Iulis 6, 228229 Hero [2] Priestess of Aphrodite in Sestus, mistress of Leander
6, 244 Herse One of the Att. Cecropids 6x27,
Hersilia Abducted Sabine woman 6, 277-278
Hesione [1] Oceanid
6, 284 [2] Wife of Nauplius 6,284 [3] Progenitor of the Trojan royal house 6,284 [4] Sister of Priamus 6, 284 Hesperides Daughter of Night 6, 285
Hiarbas [1] H., Iarbas. Mythical African King 6, 297 Hippasus [1] Father of Actor, the Argonaut 6, 339 [2] Father of Charops 6, 339 [3] Father of Hypsenor 6, 339 [4] Father of Apisaon, Prince of the Paeonians 6, 339 Hippe [1] Mistress of Theseus 6, 340 [2] Daughter of the centaur Chiron and of Chariclo
6, 340-341
[2] Amazon
6, 346
6, 346
[3] Daughter of Chiron 6, 346 [4] Wet-nurse of Dionysus
6, 346
Hippocoon Son of Oebalus and Bateia
6,350
Hippocoon [2] Thracian ruler with Greek name 6,350 [3] Unknown son of Hyrtacus 6, 350 6, 364
[2] Name ofTrojans 6, 364 Hippodamia [1] Daughter of king Oenomaus
6, 66-67
Helicaon Husband of Priam’s daughter Laodice
PERSONS
Hippodamas [1] Brother of Orestes
6, 61
Helena [1] Beautiful wife of Menelaus (‘Helen of Troy’) 6, 62-64 Helenus [1] One of the great early seers
LEGENDARY
Hippo [1] Oceanid
demus
in Laconia
Gorgophone [2] One ofthe Danaids 5,941 [3] Daughter of Perseus 5,941 Gorgophonus/-os [1] Epithet of Athena 5,941 [2] Epithet of Perseus 5,941 [3] Son of Electryon and Alcmene
Gyges
5, L091
memnon
Geryoneus Three-headed giant, opponent of Heracles 5, 821-
jans
[3] Companion of Nestor
AND
6, 364-365
[2] Daughter of Butas 6, 365 [3] Mother of Phoenix 6, 365 [4] Proper name ofBriseis 6, 365 [5] Maid of Penelope 6, 365 [6] Wife of Autonous 6, 365 Hippolochus [1] Son ofBellerophontes 6, 367 [2] Trojan
6, 367
Hippolyte [1] Amazon, daughter of Ares
6,368
[2] Daughter of Dexamenus 6, 368
[3] Slanderer of Peleus
6, 368 Hippolytus [1] Son of Theseus and an Amazon 6, 368-369 Hippomedon [1] One ofthe Seven against Thebes 6,371
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
Hippomenes [1] Victor in foot race against Atalante
6, 372
Hipponous [1] Name of Bellerophontes 6, 375 [2] Son of Adrastus 6, 375 [3] Father of Capaneus 6, 375 Hippostratus [1] Seducer of Periboea 6,376 Hippotes [1] Father of Aeolus
Gat
[2] Founder of the cult of Apollo Karneios
6, 377
6, 378
Hippothous [1] Son of Priam 6, 378 [2] Commander of the Pelasgian troops in the Trojan War 6, 378 [3] Son of Aleus [1] and Neaera 6, 378
6,430
Hyacinthus Greek hero
6, 589-
590
Hyagnis Mythical musician from Phrygia 6,591 Hyas Son ofAtlas [2] and Aithra
6, 593 Hylaeus Centaur 6, 609 Hylas Hero of Cius 6, 609 Hyllus [1] Son of Heracles and Deianira
6, 610-611
[2] Son of Heracles and the Naiad Melite 6, 611
Hyperion Titan, father of Helios 6, 634 Hypermestra [1] Daughter of Danaus 6, 634-635 [2] Heroine 6, 635
[3] Daughter of Erysichthon
6, 635
Hypseus King of the Thessalian Lapithae 6,649 Hypsipyle Regent of the Lemnian woman state see Iason Hypso Mother of the Argonaut twins Deucalion and Amphion 6, 652-653
Hyrie Nymph 6, 656 Hyrieus Founder of the Boeotian town Hyria
6, 656
Hyrnetho Daughter of Temenus
enGre
Hyrtacus Hero at Troy 6, 657 Ialemus Brother of Orpheus 6, 664
Iphianassa [1] Daughter of Proetus and Stheneboea 6,925 [2] Daughter of Agamemnon and Clytaemnestra 6,925 Iphianira Name of several heroines
Iason [1| Leader of the Argonauts
Iphiclus [1] Son of Phylacus
6, 681-682
6, 687
[2] Father of Atalante 6, 687 [3] Leader of the Athenians at Troy 6, 687 [4] One of the Daktyloi Idaioi
6, 687
Icarus [1] Son of Daedalus 6,700 Ida [1] Nymph ofthe Ida mountains in the Troad 6,710 [2] Nymph ofthe Cret. Ida
Idaea [2] Nymph of the Ida moun6,710
[2] Son of Thestius 6,926 Iphidamas Son of Antenor [1] and Theano 6,927 Iphigenia Daughter of Agamemnon and Clytaemnestra 6, 927-929 Iphimedea [1] Lover of Poseidon [2] Daughter ofAgamemnon and Clytaemnestra 6,929 Iphinoe Name ofseveral heroines 6,929
Iphis Name of several heroines 6, 930
Iphitus Son of Eurytus [1] and Antiope 6, 930-931
Iphthime Sister of Penelope 6,931
[3] Daughter of Dardanus 6, 710
6,711
Idaeus [2] Son of Chryse and Dardanus 6,711 [3] Two Trojans 6,711
Idas Son of the Messen. king AphaTEUS
6, 926
Iphicles Brother of Heracles
6,929
Icarium [2] Att. hero see Icarius Icarius [1] Att. hero 6, 699-700 [2] Father of Penelope 6,700
[4] Nymph
6,916
6,926
lasus [1] Several kings of Argus
tains
ciope
6,926
65700
[4] Participator in the hunt for the Calydonian boar 6, 378 [5] Hippothoon [1] 6, 378 Historis Daughter of the seer Tei-
lophossa Another name of Chal-
lalmenus Suitor of Helen 6, 664 Iambe Maid of Celeus 6, 665 lamus Forefather of the Elean family of seers 6, 674 Ianira Nereid 6, 675 lanthe Daughter of Oceanus and Tethys 6,675 lapis Son of Iasus 6, 679 lasion Hero of the Mysteries
6, 682-685
[3] Son of Creon 6, 377 Hippothoe [1] Nereid 6, 377 [2] Daughter and murderess of Pelias 6,377 [3] Daughter of Mestor and Lysidice 6,377 Hippothoon [1] King in Eleusis
resias
144
PERSONS
16, 7.02:
Idmon [1] Seer 6, 715-716 [2] Father of Arachne 6,716 Idomeneus [1] Commander of the Cret. troops at Troy 6, 716-717 Idyia Mother of Medea 6,718
Ilione Daughter of Priamus and Hecabe 6, 726-727 Ilioneus Trojan hero 6,727 Ilus [1] Founder of Troy 6,736 [2] Son of Aeneas 6,736 Imbrius Husband of Priamus’ daughter Medesicaste 6,743 Immaradus Son of Eumolpus
6,744 Inachus [1] Progenitor of the Argive royal house 6, 759-760 Ino [2] Daughter of Cadmus see Leucothea lo Mistress of Zeus 6, 885-886 lobates King of Lydia 6, 886 locaste Mother and wife of Oedipus
6, 886-887
Iodama Sister of Athena
6, 887 lolaus [1] Nephew of Heracles 6, 903 Tole Mistress of Heracles 6, 905 lon [1] Hero ofthe Ionians 6, 906-907
Irus [x] Son of Actor 6,947 [2] Derisive nickname for the beggar Arnaeus 6,947 Ischys Husband of Coronis 6,958 Ismene [1] Theban heroine 6,977 [2] Water nymph in Thebes
6,977 Italus Forefather of the Italians 6, 1006
Itonus Father of Boeotus 1028
6, 1027-
Itylus Son of Zethus and Aedon 6, 1029
Itys Son of Tereus and Procne 6, 1029
Julius [I 3] I., Proculus. Affirmed Romulus’ apotheosis 6, 1054 lulus Progenitor of the gens Iulia 6, 1089-1090
luturna Water nymph
1145
Ixion King of Thessaly
1157
6, 11446, 1156-
Labda Daughter of Bacchiad Amphion 7,131 Labdacus Son of the Theban king Polydorus and Nicteis 7, 131 Lacedaemon [1] Son of Zeus and Taygete 7,141 Lacinius lapygian king, eponym of the Lacinium Mountains near Croton 7, 145-146 Lacius [1] Attic hero 7,146 [2] Rhodian from Lindus 7,146
Laerces [1] Myrmidon
7, 168
145
ric MYTHICAL
[2] Goldsmith from Pylos
[7] Hyperborean 7, 235 Laogonus Name oftwo Trojan war-
7,168
Laertes Father of Odysseus 7, 168 Laias [1] Son of the Aegid Hyraeus
7,174
[2] Son of Oxylus 7,174 Laius [1] Mythical Theban king TAZ 5=076 [2] Cretan 7,176 [3] Boxer, opponent of Hercules 7,176 Lamache Lemnian, mother of Leucophanes 7,177 Lampas Proper name and name of a
dog 7,187
7, 192 Lamus [1] Son of Poseidon, king of the Laestrygones 7, 192 [2] Eponym of the Thessalian
Troy
7, 236-237
Laonome [1] Daughter of Guneus 7> 238 [2] Daughter of Amphitryon and Alcmene 7, 238 Laothoe [1] Daughter of Thespius 7, 238 [2] Lover of Apollo 7, 238 [3] Concubine of Priamus Lapithes Mythological ancestral father of the Lapithae 7,242 Latinus [1] Mythical ancestor ofthe Latin people 7, 289-290 [2] L. Silvius King of Alba
7,225
Laocoosa Daughter of Oibalus and wife of Aphareus 7,227 Laodamas [1] Son of Eteocles 7, 227-228
[2] Trojan, son of Antenor Ty 228
7,228
Laodameia [1] Daughter ofBeller-
ophon and a daughter ofthe Lycian king Iobates 7, 228 [2] Wife of Protesilaus 7, 228 [3] Daughter of king Amyclas of Sparta and Diomede 7, 228 [4] Wet nurse of Orestes
7, 228
[5] Daughter of Icarius and Asterodia 7,228 Laodice [I 1] Daughter of Priamus and Hecuba 7, 228-229 [I 2] Daughter of Agamemnon
and Clytaemnestra 7,229 [I 3] Daughter of Agapenor
ee
Laodocus [1] Son of Apollo and Phthia 7,234 [2] Participant in the campaign of the Argonauts 7,235 [3] One of the Seven against Thebes 7,235 [4] Greek before Troy 7,235 [5] Trojan, son of Antenor
hae) 7,235
Leucon [1] Boeotian hero 7, 448 Leuconoe [1] Daughter of Phos-
phorus 7, 449
Leucosia [1] One of the three postHomeric Sirens 7, 450 Leucothoe Daughter of the Persian king Orchamus and Eurynome
Tease
Leucus [1] Companion of Odysseus
7,452
[2] Son of Talus, the steadfast guard of Crete 7,452 Libys [1] One of the Tyrrhenian pirates
7,516
MS ET
Licymnius [1] Son of Electryon 7 544
Lausus Son of the Etruscan king Mezentius 7, 308 Lavinia [1] Daughter of Anius
Lotis Character in Ovid
7, 290
7 309
7,309
Leagrus [1] Companion of Odysseus 7, 331 Leda Beloved of Zeus 7, 345-346 Leimone Daughter of Hippomenes
[2] 7,374 72374
Leitus Boeotian hero 7, 378 Lelante Wife of the mythological Moiossian king Munichus Leocritus [1] Greek participant of
the Trojan War 7,395 [2] Suitor of Penelope 7, 395 Leonteus [1] Leader of the Lapiths’ contingent at Troy
7, 404
Lepreus Founder and eponum of Lepreum (Triphylia) 7, 417 Lernus [1] Aetolian 7, 427 7, 427
[3| King in the region ofLerna
Wy A27
Lethus Pelasgian 7, 433 Leto Mother of Apollo and Artemis
7» 433-435
Leucarion Variant of the name Deucalion see Deucalion Leucaspis Name of Greek heroes
7,444
Leucippe Female counterpart of Leucippus
7, 821
7, 825 Lucretia [1] Wife of Numa Pompihustar S57 [2] Wife of Collatinus 7, 857 Lycabas [1] One ofthe Tyrrhenian pirates
7,907
[2] One of the Centaurs
Leiodes Priest, son of Oenops
[2] Argive
7,779
Loxo Hyperborean woman
oo.
[3] Favourite son of the Phaea-
PERSONS
Locrus [1] Mythical ancestor of the Locrian tribe 7,779 [2] Son of Zeus 7,779 [3] Son of Phaeax from Scheria
Amata
Molossian dynasty 7, 193 Laocoon [1] Trojan 7, 224-225 [2] Son of Parthaon/Partheus
LEGENDARY
Lichas [1] Messenger of Hercules
[2] Daughter of Latinus and
town Lamia 7,192 [3] Rutulian 7,192 Lanassa [1] Ancestress of the
[6] Son of Priamus
ANS
Wyte
Lampetia [1] Daughter of Helios and the nymph Neaera 7, 187 Lampetus Hero of Lesbos 7, 188 Lampon [2] Seer, co-founders of Thurii 7,188 Lampus [1] Brother of Priam
cian king Alcinous
TOTS
Laogoras Dryopian king 7,235 Laomedon [1] Mythical king of
AND
7,445
Leucippids Daughter of Leucippus
7,446
Leucippus [1] Son of Lamprus
7> 446 [2] Son of Oenomaus 7, 446 [3] Son of Xanthius 7, 446-447 [4] Mythical Achaean founder of Metapontium 7, 447
7, 907-
908
Lycaon [1] Oldest mythical king of Arcadia 7,909-910 [2] Son of Priamus and Laothoe
7,910 Lycomedes [1] King of the Dolopes on Scyros 7,922 [2] Greek warrior at Troy
7, 922 Lycopeus Son of the Aetolian hero Agrius 7,925 Lycurgus [1] Son of Dryas 7, 931 [2] Mythical king of Tegea in Arcadia 7, 931-932 [3] Mythical ruler of Nemea
7, 932 Lycus [1] Son of Poseidon and the Pleiad Celaeno 7,937 [2] Son of Prometheus and Celaeno 7,937 [3] Telchine 7,937
[4] Libyan king 7, 937
[5] King of the Mariandyni Ne oe
[6] Boeotian, deputy in Thebes TROD DH.
[7] Euboean 7,937 [8] One of Pandions four sons
7 937-938
[9] Athenian hero 7,938 Lydus [1] Mythological king of Lydia 8, 13 Lynceus [1] Son of Aphareus 8, 18
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[2] Son of Aegyptus and Argyphie 8,18 [3] Companion ofAeneas in Italy 8,18
Lysidice [1] Daughter of Pelops and Hippodamia 8, 37 [2] Female companion of Theseus and Ariadne 8, 37 [3] Daughter of the Lapith Coronus
146
PERSONS
8,37
Marcius [I 1] Marcii Sons of king Ancus Marcius 8, 309
[1 3] Ancus M. Roman king, grandson of Numa Pompilius
Mariandynus Aeolian, son of Phi-
neus and Idaea 8, 353 Maris Son of king Amisodarus 8,359 Marmax Suitor of Hippodameia
8, 48 Macar(eus) Mythical king of
Maron Priest of Apollo in the Thracian city Ismarus 8, 383 Marpessa [1] Daughter of the Aetolian river god Evenus 8, 385
and Deianira 8, 53 Macedon [1] Son of Zeus and Thyia 8,57 [2] Son of Aeolus 8, 57 [3] Son of Lycaon 8, 57 [4] Son of Osiris, ruler in Macedonia 8,57 Machaereus see Neoptolemus Machaon Son ofAsclepius 8, 93 Macris Daughter of Aristaeus [tr], wet-nurse of Dionysus 8, 100 Maeander [1] God ofthe homonymous river 8, 107-108 Maenads Companions of Dionysus 8, LI§-117
Maeon [1] Son of aman named Haemon 8, 119 [2] Child of Creon’s son Haemon [5] and Antigone [3] 8, 120 Maera [1] Daughter of Proetus 8, 121-122
[2] Arcadian heroine 8, 122 [4] Nereids 8, 122 Maesis Grandson of Aegeus 35 Le)
Magnes [1] Eponymous ruler of the central Greek territory of MagneSiZm
oye
L
[2] Son of Aeolus 8, 171 Magog Biblical proper name 8,
181-182
Maia [1] Tochter des Atlas [2] und der Pleione 8, 184 Maleus [2] Tyrrhenian robber (myth.) 8, 200 [3] King of the myth. Pelasgians 8, 200
Malus [1] Son of Amphictyon 8, 209
Mamurius Veturius Blacksmith under king Numa Pompilius S205
Maneros Son of the first Egyptian king 8,231 Manto Seer, daughter of Teiresias foley 2251!
8, 380
Mastarna Etruscan, later king Ser-
vius Tullius 8, 450 Mecisteus Son of the mythical king Talaus of Argos 8, 543 Meda [1] Wife of Idomeneus 8,544 [2] Sister of Penelope 8, 544 [3] Daughter of Phylas 8,544 Medea Sorceress, wife of Jason
8, 546-549
lante 8, 616 Melanippe [1] Daughter of Aeolus 8, 617
[2] Amazone
8, 617 [3] Daughter of Oineus and Althaea 8, 617 Melanippus [1] Theban who fought against the Seven 8, 618 [2] A son of Agrius 8, 618 [3] Son of Theseus and Perigune 8,618
[4] Son of Hicetaon 8, 618 [5] Greek at Troy 8,618 [6] Lover of Comaetho, priestess
of Artemis 8, 618 Melanthius [1] Treacherous goatherd of Odysseus 8, 619 Melantho [1] Daughter of Deucalion, mother of Delphus
8, 620
[2] Unfaithful servant of Penelope 8,620 Melanthus [1] From Messenia,
descendant of Neleus of Pylos 8, 620-621
Medesicaste [1] Daughter of the Trojan king Priamus 8, 550-
551
[2] Pirate of the Tyrrhenian Sea 8, 621
Melas [1] Brother of Oeneus
[2] Daughter of Laomedon 8, 551 Medon [1] Son of Oileus and Rhene 8, 590 [2] Herald in the palace of Odysseus
8, 612-613
Melampyges see Cercopes Melaneus Son of Apollo 8, 615 Melanion Arcadian, suitor of Ata-
8, 309-310
[I 5] M., Numa Father of king Ancus Marcius 8, 310 Mares [2] Progenitor of the Ausones, Mares [2] 8, 337
Lysimache Daughter of Abas 8, 37 Lysippe Daughter of Proetus and Stheneboea 8, 43 Lytaea One of the Hyacinthides
Lesbos 8, 52-53 Macaria [1] Daughter of Heracles
Melampus [1] Mythical seer
8,590
[3] Tyrrhenian pirate 8,590 [4] Son of Pylades and Electra 8, 590 [5] Son of Codrus, ruler over Athens 8,590 Medusa One of the three Gorgons 8, 592
Megaclo Daughter of Macar, King of Lesbos 8,595 Megaera Erinys 8, 595-596 Megapenthes [1] Son ofKing Proetus of Argos 8, 598 [2] Son of Menelaus [1] and a slave woman
8,599
Megara [1] Daughter of Creon 8,599 Megareus [1] Son of Poseidon 8, 604
[2] Son of Creon [1] and Eurydice 8, 604
Meges Son of Phyleus, one of Odysseus’ men
8, 606-607
Meilanion Arcadian suitor of Atalante see Melanion Meilichus Mythical king of Spain 8, 611
Mekionike see Euphemus
8, 621
[2] Son of Phrixus and Chalciope 8, 621
[3] Son of Ops 8, 621 [4] Alleged progenitor of the Chian school of sculpture 8, 622
Meleager [1] Hero from the preTrojan period, Argonaut, [1] Hero from the pre-Trojan period, Argonaut 8, 624-625 Meles Athenian 8, 628 Meliboea [1] Heroine 8, 631
Melicertes Son of Athamas and Ino 8, 632
Melisseus Mythical king of Crete
8, 634 Melite [1] Oceanid 8, 637 [2] Nereid 8, 637 [3] Naiad 8, 637 [4] Lover of Hercules 8, 637 Melpomene One of the nine Muses
8, 644
Meltas The last king of the Argives 8, 645 Membliarus Mythical Phoenician colonist 8, 645 Memnon [1] Mythical King ofthe Ethiopians 8, 649-650 Menalippus Brother of Tydeus 8, 661
Menelaus [1] Ruler of Sparta, married to Helena 8, 678-679
147
6.3. MYTHICAL
Menestheus [1] Athenian leader at Troy 8, 685-686 Menesthius [1] Boeotian at Troy 8, 686
[2] Myrmidonian, a general of Achilles 8, 686 Menestratus [1] A son of Niobe 8, 687
[2] Sacrifices himself for his lover Cleostratus 8, 687 Menippe [1] Nereid or Oceanid
8, 688
[2] Mother of Orpheus 8, 688 [3] Daughter of Orion 8, 688— 689
Menoeceus [1] Father of Creon
8, 696
[2] Son of Creon 8, 696 [3] Friend of Epicurus 8, 696 Menoetes Mythical herdsman of Hades 8, 696 Menoetius [1] Son of Actor and Aegina 8, 696 Mentes [1] Ciconian leader in the Trojan War 8,704 [2] Prince of the Taphians in the Trojan War
8,704
Mentor [1] Father of Imbrios of Pedaion 8,704 [2] Son of Alkimos, companion of Odysseus 8,704
Meta [1] First wife of Aegeus
Metion Son of Erechtheus, brother to Cecrops 8, 809 Mezentius (Mezenties) Etruscan
Myrina [1] Amazon 9, 414 [2] Daughter of Teucer 9, 414
ruler 8, 848-849 Midian [1] Son of Abraham and Keturah 8, 864 Miletus [1] Mythical founder ofthe city of Miletus 8, 884 Milye Daughter of Zeus 8,919 Mimas [1] Titan 8,920 [2] Centaur 8,920
[3] Man of the Bebrycian tribe 8, 920
[4] Trojan in the army of Aeneas 8,920
Minos Mythical king of Crete 9, 24-26 Minyades The three daughters of Minyas
9, 45-46
Minyas [1] Grandson of Zeus
95.47
[4] Wife of the mythological king Polybus of Corinth 8,718 Merops [1] Mythical king of the Meropians
ans
the city of Cures
9,
110-111
Molorchus Farmer from Cleonai, host of Hercules 9, 130-131 Molossus Eponym of the Molossi
9,132
Molpadia [1] Daughter of Staphylus and Chrysothemis 9, 132 [2] Amazon 9, 132 Molpus Flute-player from Tenedos, also Eumolpus 9, 133 Molus Son or brother of Deucalion
9, 133-134 Mopsopus Attic king or hero Mopsus Seer, one of the Argonauts
9, 203
Mulius [1] Son-in-law of Augeias
8,719
[4] Mythical seer 8,719 [5] Father of Pandareus 8,719 [6] Follower of Aeneas 8,719 Messapus Son of Neptune, eponym of the mountain name Messapius/Messapium
ee)
9, 202
8,719
[2] Father of Eumelus 8,719 [3] Mythical king of the Ethiopi-
8, 761
Messene [1] Daughter of Triopas of Argos 8,762 Mestor [1] Son of Perseus and Andromeda 8,772 [2] Son of Priam 8,772
[3] Son of Locrian Ajax, companion of Agamemnon 8,772 Mestra Daughter of Aithon 8, 772-773
9, 265
[2] Herald of Penelope’s suitor
Amphinomus 9, 265 Munichus, Munitus Hero ofAttica
9, 290 [2] Son of Acamas and Priam’s daughter Laodice [It] 9,290 [3] King of the Molossians
9, 290
Musaeus of the Mycena chus Mygdon
9, 403
sty 9,411 Myrmex [1] Father of the eponymous heroine ofthe Attican deme of Melite 9, 416 [2] Attic girl 9, 416 Myrmidon [1] Progenitor of the Myrmidones 9, 416 Myrrha Cyprian king’s daughter
9, 420
Mpyrtilus [1] Son of Hermes and Phaethusa 9, 422-423 Myrto [1] Daughter of Menoetius
5424 Myscelus Founder of Croton
95 425
Mysius Argive host of Demeter
9, 428 Nanas, Nanus Leader of the Pelasgians
Misenus [I 1] Trumpeter of Hector
Modius [2] M. Fabidius Founder of
8,718
9, 403
Mylas One ofthe Telchines 9, 407 Mynes [1] Ruler of a city in the Troad 9, 411 [2] Progenitor of the Attic dyna-
Trojan campaign 8,714-715 Mermerus [1] Trojan 8,715
Merope [1] One of the seven Pleiades 8,718 [2] Daughter of Oenopion and Helice 8,718 [3] Daughter of Cypselus
PERSONS
Metabus Volscian king, father of Camilla see Camilla Metaneira [1] Wife of the Eleusinian king Keleos 8,785
Meriones Cretan, participant in the
8,715
LEGENDARY
[2] Ruler of the Phrygians
8,773
9, 60 [I 2] Companion of Odysseus 9, 60 Mneme Personification of Memory
[2] Father of the mythical King Ilus of Ephyre 8,715 [3] A son of Jason [1] and Medea
AND
[1] Mythical companion Muses 9, 317-319 Achaean, daughter of Ina9, 385 [1] King of the Bebrycians
9,498
[2] Epithet of Odysseus 9, 498 [3] King of the Segobrigii
9, 498
Nannacus King of Phrygia 9, 498 Naoclus Son of Codrus 9, 499 Narcissus I. Mythical character
9, 506-507
Nasamon Great-grandson of Minos; progenitor of the Nasamones
9, 516
Nastes Commander of the Trojans’ Carian allies 9, 519 Naubolus [1] King of Tanagra EAL
ee
[2] Of Argus, father of an Argo-
naut 9,537
[3] Father of the Phaeacian Euryalus 9, 537 Nauplius [1] Hero who founded Nauplia 9,550 [2] Argonaut 9, 550 Naus Mythological founder of the Eleusinian Mysteries in Pheneus/Arcadia 9,551 Nausicaa Daughter of the Phaeacean royal couple 9,551 Nausithous [1] Son of Poseidon and Periboea 9,553 [2] Son of Odysseus and Calypso ODS
[3] Ship’s officer of Theseus Cees;
Nautes Companion of Aeneas 9,554
Navius Attus Legendary Roman augur 9, 571% Ne(i)leus [1] Founder ofMiletos
9, 619
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
Neaera [1] Helios’ mistress 9, 577 [2] Strymon’s mistress 9, 577
[3] Daughter of Pereus 9, 577 [4] Spouse of Aetas 9, 577 [5] Daughter of Amphion [1] and
Nioba
148
PERSONS
Numa Pompilius Second king of Rome after Romulus 9, 877878
Numitor King of Alba Longa; father of Rhea Silvia
9,908
Nycteus Grandson of Poseidon
9, 577
Nealce Wife of Hippomedon 9, 578 Neleus [1] King of the Messenian Pylos 9, 621 [2] Mythological Founder of the City ofMiletus [2] 9, 621 Nemanus Oueen of Byblus
9, 922-923
Nyctimene Daughter of Epopeus, transformed into an owl by Athena
9,923
Nyctimus Son of Lycaon 9, 923 Nysa [1] Wet nurse of Dionysus 9, 928-929 Nysus Tutor of Dionysus
9, 622-623
9, 931
Nemea [1] Nymph after whom
Obriareus
Nemea [2,3] was named Nemertes Nereid 9, 628
Oceanus Divine representative of
9, 624
Neoptolemus [1] Son of Achilles and Deidamia 9, 649-650
Nephele [2] Phantom figure of Hera created by Zeus 9, 658 Nereus Old Man ofthe Sea 9, 667
Nerites Brother of the Nereids 9, 669-670 Nesaea Nereid 9, 679 Neso [1] Nereid 9, 680 [2] Daughter of the Trojan king Teukros 9, 680 Nessus Centaur 9, 680 Nestor [1] Son of Nesleus 9, 681683
Nicaea [1] Naiad 9,700 Nicagora Sicyonian 9,705 Nicodamas Pygmy, turned into a crane 9,724 Nicomachus [1] Healing hero see Gorgasus and Nicomachus Nicostrate Nymph and prophetess Nicostratus [1] Son of Menelaus [1]
and Helen
9,745-746 9,748
Nicothoe Harpy
Nimrod Hunter, ruler of Babylon,
Uruk and Akkad 9,766 Niobe Daughter of Tantalus
9, 779-772 Nireus [1] Son of Poseidon and Canace
9,775
[2] Second most beautiful Greek in the Trojan War 9,775 [3] From Catane 9, 775-776 Nisus [I 1] King of Megara 9,779
[I 2] Trojan hero in Virgil eye,
Noemon [1] Lycian, follower of Sarpedon at Troy 9,788 [2] Pylian, companion of Antilochus at Troy 9,788 [3] Ithacian 9,788 Nomia [1] Nymph, with the same name as the Arcadian mountain
range 9,794
[2] Sicilian nymph 9,794 Norax Son of Hermes, founder of the city of Nora 9, 816
see Hekatoncheires
the world river and world sea 10, 10-14 Ochimus Mythological king of Rhodes 10, 15 Ocnus Character punished in the underworld 10, 17 Ocrisia Mother of the Roman king Servius Tullius 10, 18 Ocypete Harpy 10, 27
Troy 10, 32 Odysseus King of Ithaca 10, 3540 Oeagrus Father of Orpheus 10, 41 Oeax Son of Nauplius 10, 41-42 Oebalus [1] Spartan king 10, 42 [2] Italic hero 10, 42 Oedipus Central figure in the Theban myths 10, 44-48 Oeleus King of Locris 10, 48 Oeneus King of Calydon 10, 49 Oenoe [1] Arcadian nymph, mother of Pan to, 51 [2] Wife of Nicodamas 10, 51 Oenomaus [1] King of Pisa 10, 53 Oenone [2] Nymph from the Troad
10, 54
Oenopion Son of Dionysus and 10, 56
Oeonus Companion of Heracles
10, 57-58
Ogygus/Ogyges King of Boeotia 10, 67
Oicles Seer from Argus
10, 68
Olen Founder of a cult, perhaps from Lycia 10, 86 Olympus [14] Culture hero from Asia Minor
ro, 151
[2] Paeonian warrior at Troy
TO, 5 Opheltes Son of Lycurgus, killed by a snake 10, 152-153 Ophion [1] First ruler of the world 10, 153 [2] Giant in the shape ofaserpent TO; n53 Opis, Upis Epithet of Artemis IO,
I61
Opora Goddess of rich harvests 10, 163
Ops [1] Father of Melas to, 172 [2] Son of Peisenor 10,172 Oreithyia Nereid 10, 198 Orion [1] Gigantic mythical hunter 10, 219-220 Orpheus Singer from Thrace
10, 243-247 Orsilochos [1] King of Pherae 10, 258
[2] Fought at Troy 10,258 [3] Trojan, killed by Teucer 10, 258
Ocyr(r)hoe [1] Daughter of Oceanus 10, 27 [2] Playmate of Persephone 10, 27 [3] Samian nymph 10, 27 [4] Daughter of Chiron and Chariclo 10,27 Odius [1] Herald of the Greeks at Troy 10, 32 [2] Leader of the Halizons at
Ariadne
Ophelestes [1] Trojan
to, 118
Omphale Queen of the Lydians IO, 123-124
[4] Trojan in the entourage of Aeneas 10,258
Orthopolis Son of Plemnaeus of Sicyon
10, 265-266
Ostanes [2] Persian magician 10, 279-280
Othryoneus [1] Warrior from CabeSUS
10,296
[2] Teacher from Opus 10, 296 Otos Giant see Aloads Otreus [1] Son of Dymas 10, 297 [2] Mariandynian 10, 297 Oxylus [1] Son of Ares and Protogenia
10,312
[2] Aetolian, King of Elis TOs Sn Palaemon Object of cultic veneration for those in distress at sea see Melicertes Palamedes [1] Son of Nauplius and Clymene 10, 382-383 Pallas [1] Attic hero 10, 396 [2] Arcadian hero, eponym of Pallantium
10, 396
Pallene [1] Daughter of the giant Alcyoneus 10, 397 [2] Daughter of Odomanti King Sithon and the nymph Mendeis
10, 397-398 Pammon Son of Priamus and Hecabe 10, 411 Pandareus Son of Merops
10, 431-432 Pandarus [1] Trojan troop commander 10, 432-434 [2] Trojan, companion of Aeneas
10, 434
Pandia Daughter of Zeus and Selene 10, 434 Pandion [1] Attic King 10, 434$5)5)
149
6.3. MYTHICAL
[2] Weapon-bearer of Teucer
10, 435
[3] Father of Lamprus 10, 435 Pandionis [1] see Procne Pandocus [1] Trojan 10, 436 [2] Father of Palaestra 10, 436 Pandora First woman 10, 436437
Pandrosus Attic heroine, Kekropid
10, 437-438
Panope [1] Daughter of Nereus and Doris [It]
10, 454 [2] One of the daughters of TheSplus
10,454
abe, abductor of Helena
Parthenopaeus One of the Seven Against Thebes 10, 570 Parthenope [1] One of the three Sirens in southern Italy 10, 570 Pasiphae Wife of Minos, mother of
the Minotaur 10, 586 Pasithea [1] Daughter of Nereus and Doris [I r] 10, 588 [2] One of the Charites (Graces) 10, 588
Patroclus [1] Companion to Achilleus 10, 622-623 Pedaeus Trojan 10, 669 Pedasus [1] Trojan 10, 674 Peiras [1] Father of Echidna 10, 679
[2] Founder of the Heraeum of
Peiren [1] Son of Argus and Euadne 10, 679-680
[2] Son of Glaucus 10, 680 Peirene [1] Danaid 10, 680 [2] Eponym of the spring of the same name in Corinthus 10, 680-681
Peirithous Thessalian hero, king of the Lapithae 10, 68% Peirous Leader of the Thracian treaty partners of the Trojans IO, 682
Peisander [1] Son of Maimalus IO, 682
10, 682
[3] Trojan killed by Menelaus in single combat 10, 682 [4] Son of Polyctor 10, 682 [5] One of the seven Plataean heroes 10, 682
Peisenor [1] Father of Ops and grandfather of Euryclea 10, 684
[2] Herald of Telemachus 10, 684
10, 684
[6] Son of Neleus 10, 684 [7] Centaur 10, 684 Peisidice [1] Name of various mythical figures 10, 684 [2] Daughter of King Lepethymnus of Methymna_ 10, 684 Peisistratus [1] Companion of Telemachus 10, 686 [2] Son of Peisistratus [1]
696
Pelias Mythical king ofIolcus
10, 784
[2] Argive
10, 784
Perimede [1] Sister of Amphitryon 10, 785 [2] Queen of Tegea in Arcadia 10, 785 Perimedes [1] Companion of Odys10,785
[2] Son of Eurystheus 10,785 [3] Son of Licymnius 10, 785 Perimele [1] Daughter of Admetus 10, 785
[2] Daughter of Amythaon 10, 785 Periphas [1] Hero at Troy, killed by Ares
Pelopeia [1] Daughter of Pelias 10, 701 [2] Daughter of Thyestes 10, 701 Pelops [1] Son of Tantalus 10, 712-713 Pelor(us) [1] One of the five surviving Sparti 10,714 [2] Eponym ofthe Thessalian harvest festival 10,714 [3] Giant 10,714 Peneleus Argonaut and suitor of Helen 10,720 Penelope Wife of Odysseus 10, 720-722 Penthesilea Amazon 10, 732-733 Pentheus Son of Echion and Agaue
10, 734
gone 10,735
10,799 [2] Hero at Troy, comrade of Neoptolemus 10,799
[3] Trojan 10,799 [4] Archaic Attic king before even Cecrops 10,799 Periphetes [1] Son of Hephaistos
10, 799 [2] Mycenaean of Troy 10,799 Pero [1] Daughter of Neleus and Chloris 10, 806
[2] Mother of the river god Asopus 10, 806 Persaeus [1] Father of Hecate 10, 809
Perse(is) [1] Daughter of Oceanus and Tethys 10, 810 [2] Epithet for Hecate as the daughter of Perses 10, 811 Perseptolis Son of Telemachus 10, 816
Perdix Inventor, nephew of Daedalus 10, 748-749 Pereus Son of the Arcadian king Elatus and Laodice 10,752 Periboea [1] Naiad, mother by Icarius of Penelope 10,776 [2] Youngest daughter of Eurymedon, King of the Titans 10, 776
[3] One of the first two girls chosen by lots to pacify Athena 10, 776
[4] Wife of King Polybus of Corinth 10,776 [5] Daughter of Alcathous 10, 776 [6] Daughter of Hipponous L0;,779-777 Periclymenus [2] Son of Poseidon
Perses [1] Son ofthe Titan Crius
and Eurybea to, 816 [2] Son of Helios 10, 816 [3] Son of Perseus and Andromeda, eponym of the Persians 10, 816
Perseus [1] Son of Danae and Zeus,
Argive hero 10, 816-818 Peteos King of Athens 10, 865 Petraeus One of the Centaurs 10, 873 Phaéthon [2] Son of Eos and Kephalos 10, 905 [3] Luckless passenger on Helius’ sun chariot 10, 905 [4] Colchisian epithet for Apsyrtus
10,905
Phaeax [1] Ancestor of the Phaeaces
10, 892
[2] Mythical naval officer of The-
10, 781
[3] Son of Neleus and Chloris LO, 781-782
Perieres [1] Son of Aeolus
PERSONS
[3] Pirate from Cyme 10, 784 Perigune Daughter ofSinis, mother of Melanippus 10,784 Perilaus [1] Son of Icarius and Periboea 10,784
seus
Pelarge Refounder of the cult of Demeter in Thebes 10, 692 Pelasgus Progenitor and eponym of the Pelasgi 10, 693-694 Peleus Father of Achilles 10, 694-
Penthilus Son of Orestes and Eri-
10, 679
LEGENDARY
[2] Chariot driver of Menoeceus
10, 696-697
10, 532-534
[2] Son of Antimachus
10, 684
[4] Suitor of Penelope 10, 684 [5] Lycian, father of Chlemon
10, 686
Panthous Member of the Trojan Council of Elders 10, 471 Papposilenus Form of Dionysus see Silens Paraebius Owner of a farm 10, 512 Paris [1] Son of Priamus and Hec-
Argos
[3] Trojan
AND
10,784
seus
10, 892
Phaedimus [1] Son of Amphion and Niobe 10, 893
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
[2] King of the Sidonians 10, 893
[3] One of the 50 Thebans who
enticed Tydeus into an ambush 10, 893 [4] Son of the Spartan lasus 10, 893 [5] Athenian youth 10, 893 Phaedra Daughter of Minos and Pasiphae; second spouse of Theseus
10, 894-896
Phaenops [1] Hector’s friend from Abydus 10, 903 [2] Father of the Trojan warriors, Xanthus and Thoon 10, 903 [3] Father of the Phrygian leader Phorcys 10, 903 Phaestus [1] Mythical king of Sicyon 10, 903 [2] Ally of the Trojans in the Trojan War
10, 903
Phaethusa Daughter of Helios
150
PERSONS
see
Lampetia
Philomeleides Mythical king of Lesbos x1, 85 Philomelus [1] Son of lasion and Demeter
11, 86
Philonis Daughter of Deion
Phalces Heraclid, son of Temenos
10, 910
Cassiepeia 11, 128-129 [2] Son of Belos and Anchinoé
I, 129 Phlegyas Eponym of the Phlegyans
II, 134
10, 919-920 Phegeus [1] Son of Alpheius
10, 944
II, 145 Phoebe [1] Titan, daughter of Gaia and Uranus 11, 146 [3] One of the Leucippids
Phoenix [1] Mythical king of Sidon or Tyrus 11,170 [2] Son of Amyntor 11, 170-
I1, 180
Troy 10,944 Ganyctor
Phrixus Son of Athamas and
[3] Father of Amphiphanes and 10,944
Pheidippus [1] Son of Thessalus, naval commander at Troy
10, 945 Phemius Mythical singer 10, 947 Phemonoe First seeress in Delphi, inventor of the hexameter
10, 947 Phereclus [1] Troianer 10,949 [2] Helmsman of Theseus
10, 949 Pherusa [1] Daughter of Nereus and Doris 10,954 [2] One of the Horae 10, 9541215 Philaeus [1] Legendary first ancestor of the Attican Philaidai family Titty EO, [2] Son of Munichus 11, 10 Philammon [1] Singer and lyrist ia 16 Philemon [1] Husband of Baukis Titeebs Philoctetes Thessalian hero I1, 66-67
Philoetius Odysseus’ cowherd
1573
Philomele, Philomela daughter of Pandion, sister of Procne 11, 85
glan race
nian region Pieria
11,237
[2] Son of Magnes
11, 237
Piraeus [2] Companion to Telemachus 11,290
Pistis Sophia Proper name of a figure in Gnosticmyth 11, 300301 Pleione Mother of the Pleiades Pleisthenes [1] Son of Pelops or Atreus, father of Agamemnon and Menelaus
11,182
Nephele, brother ofHelle
II, 193
Phronime Daughter ofEtearchus, mother of Battus 11, 193 Phrontis [1] Son of Phrixus and Chalkiope, daughter of Aietes II, 194 [2] Helmsman of Menelaus
11, 194 [3] Wife of the Trojan Panthus II, 194 Phylacus [1] Mythical founder and eponym of Phylacia 11, 205 [2] Local hero ofDelphi II, 205 Phylas [1] King of the Thesprotians ti 200 [2] King of the Dryopians aay Tn Phyleus Eldest son of Augeas Testy, as Phyllis [1] Eponymous heroine of the territory on the lower Strymon 11,214 [2] Name of shepherdesses nag, Baul Phylonoe [1] Wife of Bellerophon Welk law [2] Daughter of Tyndareos and Leda 11,214
11, 378
[2] Son of Helene [1] and Menelaus [1] 11,378 [3] Son of Acastus 11,378 Plemnaeus King of Aegialea (= Sicyon)
11, 381
Plexippus Participant in the Calydonian Hunt 11, 383 Pluto [1] Mother of Tantalus (by Zeus)
Phoito — see Sibyl Pholus Centaur 11, 174-175 Phorcides Daughters of Phorcys
Phorcys [2] Phrygian on the side of the Trojans 11, 180 Phoroneus Ancestor of the Pelas-
[2] Son of Dares [1], killed at
I1, 236
Pierides [2] The nine daughters of Pierus 11, 236-237
II, 377
Phocus [1] Mythical hero of Aegina II, 145 [2] Grandson ofSisyphus
7
Phalerus Greek hero 10, 911-912 Phaon [1] Ferryman from Lesbos
Laurentes, ‘woodpecker’
Pierus [1] Eponym ofthe Macedo-
11, 88
Philotis Roman maid _ see Tutola Philyra [1] Oceanid 11, 127-128 [2] Wife of Nauplius 11,128 Phineus [1] Son of Phoenix and
LL, 146-147
Phalanthus Mythological founder of Taranto 10, 906-907
Picus. King of the ancient Italic
11, 428
[2] One of the Oceanids II, 428
Podaleirius Son ofAsclepius and Epione 11, 436 Podarces [1] Leader of the Thessalians at Troy 11, 437 [2] Son of the Trojan king Laomedon 11, 437 Poeas Argonaut, father of Philoctetes
LI, 437
Poemander Founder of the Boeo-
tian city Poemandria
11, 438 11, 474 [2] Companion of Odysseus
Polites [1] Son of Priamus
II, 474 Pollux [1] Latin name of Polydeu-
ces 11, 493 Polybotes Giant 11, 503-504 Polybus [1] Name ofnumerous peripheral figures in Greek mythology 11, 504 [2] Mythical king of Corinth II, 504 [3] Mythical king ofSicyon II, 504 [4] Mythical king of Anthedon (Boeotia) 11, 504 [5] Father of Alcinoe 11, 504 Polycaste [1] Daughter of Lygaeus in Acarnania
11, 506
[2] Daughter of Nestor
11, 506
Polyclea Heroine from the family of the Heraclidae 11, 509-510 Polycrite Heroine of Naxos BOM SY ie}
Polyctor [1] Inhabitant ofIthaca rn, 508
[2] Father of Peisander, a suitor of Penelope 11, 519
tsa
6.3. MYTHICAL
[3] Myrmidon 11, 519 Polydamas [1] Trojan 11, 519 Polydectes [1] Mythical colonist and king of Seriphus 11, 520 Polydeuces [1] One of the Spartan Dioscuri, brother of Castor
see
Dioscuri Polydora [1] Oceanid
11, 520 [2] Daughter of Danaus II, 520 [3] Half-sister of Achilles II, 520 [4] Wife of Protesilaus 11, 520 [5] Wife of Peleus and mother of Menesthius 11, 520 [6] Amazon
11, 520
Polydorus [1] King of Thebes, son of Cadmus 11, 520 [2] Son of Priamus and Laothoe II, 520-521 [3] One of the Epigoni that conquered Thebes 11, 521 [4] Defeated by Nestor in the javelin 11, 521 Polyhymnia Muse 11, 526 Polyidus [1] Mythical seer and miracle-worker from Corinth
TIg§27 [2] Trojan 11, 527 [3] Hero ofPlataeae
11, 527
Polymele [1] Mother of Jason Tie 5271 [2] Lover of Hermes
11, 527
[3] Wife of Peleus before Thetis
LS
Polyneices Son of Oedipus EI 520-520
Polypheides Mythical seer
II, 530
Polyphemus [1] Lapith, Argonaut who fought agains the centaurs ib, GBXe, [2] Cyclops 11, 530-531 Polyphonte Companion of Artemis, punished by Aphrodite 11, 531% Polyphontes [1] Theban in the Iliad
Lip 55%
[2] Opponent of Capaneus in the War of the Seven against Ui ebesmantarss a [3] Herald of Laeus 11, 531 [4] Descendant of Heracles, ruler of Messenia 11, 531-532 Polypoetes [1] Participant in the Trojan War 11, 532 [2] Son of Odysseus and Callidice
IT, $32
Polytechnus Husband of Aedon, father of Itys 11, 534 Polyxena Daughter of Priam
II, 538-539
Polyxenus [2] Mythical king ofElis
IT, 539
[3] Mythical king ofElis
IT, 539
[4] Son of Jason and Medeia
II, 539
II, 540
11,540
Porphyrion King of the Giants II, 645-646
Porthaon King in Pleuron and Calydon 11,655 Praxithea [2] Athenian heroine 11, 788
Priam King of Troy 11, 817-818 Priolas Hero 11, 867
Procne Mother of Itys
11, 917-
918
Procris Hunter and wife of Cephalus 11, 925-926 Procrustes Attic highwayman, killed by Theseus 11,926 Proetids The three daughters of Proetus 11,936 Proetus Mythical king of Argus
II, 937
Promachus and Echephron Sons of Heracles 12, 4 Prometheus Greek hero and bringer of culture 12, 6-10 Pronoe [1] Nereid 12, 12 [2] Soothsaying Lycian naiad TG, TE) Protesilaus Suitor of Helen, fought at Troy 12, 66-67 Prothous [1] Mythical member of the Calydonian royal family
Pyrgo Nurse in Priamus’ household Pyrrha [1] Daughter of Epimetheus [2] Name of Achilles on Scyros 12, 269
Pyrrhus [1] Son of Achilles and Deidamia see Neoptolemus [1] Pythagoras [1] Fictitious Spartan and adviser to Numa Pompilius T2276
Rea Silvia see Rhea Silvia Remus Twin brother of Romulus see Romulus [1] Rhadamanthys Judge in the Underworld 12, 517-518 Rhadine and Leontichus Pair of lovers in a Greek folk legend 12, 518
Rhea Silvia Mother of Romulus and Remus
12,94
Prytanis [1] Mythical king of Sparta
12907 Psamathe [1] Nereid 12, 105 [2] Mother of Linus 12, 105106
Psyche [1] Lover of Amor 12, 124-125 Pterelaus Mythical king of the Teleboae 12,128 Pygmalion [1] King of Tyre, brother of Dido 12,238 [2] Grandfather of Adonis T2210)
Pylades [1] Friend of Orestes Pylaemenes Ally of the Trojans Too Ai Pyraechmes Ally of the Trojans 1), AMG Pyramus [2] Lover of Thisbe, TIa5e Pyreneus Mythical king of Daulis
12, 524
Rhesus Mythical king of Thrace
12, 529-530
Rhexenor [1] Brother of Alcinous and father of Arete, Alcinous’s wife 12, 562 [2] Father of Chalciope [1], the second wife of Aegeus 12502
Rhode Eponym ofthe island of Rhodes 12, 568 Rhoeo Daughter of Staphylus and Chrysothemis [1], mother of Anius 12, 576 Rhoikos [1] One of the Centaurs
12, 574 [2] Character in a Greek tale
12, 574
12.65
[2] Participant in the Calydonian boar hunt 12, 68 [3] Combatant at Troy 12, 68 Prylis [1] Mythical seer from Lesbos
12, 266
PERSONS
12, 269
[2] Mother of Antiope 11, 540 [3] Wife of Tlepolemus 11, 540 [4] Midwife of Hypsipyle on
12, 239
LEGENDARY
12, 268
Polyxo [1] One of the Hyades
Lemnos
AND
Romulus [1] Legendary founder of Rome 12, 726-729 Sagaritis Nymph with whom Attis broke his vow of chastity 12, 865-866
Salacia [1] Maiden and worshipper of Apollo 12, 876-877 Salmacis Spring and associated nymph in Caria 12, 896 Salmoneus Blasphemer in Greek mythology 12, 898 Sao Daughter of Nereus 12,958 Saron Third king of Troezen 12, LOOI-1002 Sarpedon [1] Son of Zeus and Laodameia [rt] 12, 1002 Scedasus Hero ofLeuctra 13, 52ye)
Schedius [1] Son ofking Iphitus 13, 60
[2] Phocian prince 13, 60 [3] Suitor of Penelope 13, 60 Schoeneus [1] Son of Athamas and Themisto 13, 62-63 [2] Son of Autonous and Hippodamia 13, 63 [3] Foster-father of Orestes me), (236)
6.3. MYTHICAL
AND
LEGENDARY
n5Z
PERSONS
Sciron Eponym of the Sctronian
Cliffs 13, 95-96
Syrinx [1] Arcadian nymph
14, 71
13, 341
Tages Legendary Etruscan cultural hero 14, 115-116 Talaus Mythical king of Argos 14, 119 Talos [1] Crete’s iron guardian TA, 123 [2] Athenian 14, 123 Talthybius Herald of Agamemnon
13,435
Tammuz Prehistoric king of Uruk and husband of Inanna
Scylla [1] Sea monster 13,146 [2] Daughter of Nisus 13,146 Scythes [1] Son of Heracles 03 LOL
Semele Daughter of Cadmus
13, 233-234
Setaea Trojan prisoner of war Sibyl Inspired seer 13, 411-412 Sidero First wife of Cretheus
Silen(s)
13, 453-454
Silvius Son of Lavinia [2] and Aeneas 13,477 Sinis Robber 13, 496 Sinon Cousin of Odysseus
13, 497 Sirens
13, 504-505 Sisyphus Fraudster and penitent in the Underworld 13, 510-511 Sithon Thracian king 13, 512 Skamandrios [1] Son of Hector and Andromache see Astyanax [2] Trojan, son of Strophius
13, 47
Socus Trojan, son of Hippasus
13, 603 Sous Member of the Spartan royal house 13, 679-680 Sphyrus Peloponnesian hero
13,736
Staphylus [1] Son of Dionysus and Ariadne 13,785 [2] Son of the Silen 13,785 [3] Assyrian king 13, 785-786 [4] Goatherd ofking Oeneus 13, 786 Stentor Greek warrior at Troy 13, 820
Sterope [1] One of the Pleiades TOL 7
[2] Daughter of Cepheus 13, 827-828
Sthen(n)o One ofthe three Gorgons 3/5 OF 2)
Stheneboea Daughter of the Lycian king Iobates 13, 832 Sthenelus [1] Son of Actor
13, 833
[2] Son of Androgeos 13, 833 [3] Son of Perseus [1] and Andromeda 13, 833 [4] Son of Capaneus and Euadne
13, 833
Stichius [1] Athenian military leader at Troy 13,834 [2] Lover of Heracles 13, 834 Strophius Foster-father of Orestes
13, 885 Sybaris [1] Monster on the moun-
tain Cirphis near Crisa 13, 981 [2] Name of ayouth 13,981 Syleus Son of Poseidon 13,986
14, 124
4, 127-128
Tanaquil Wife of the fifth King of Rome
14, 131-132
Tantalus Mythological king on the Sipylus, punished in the underworld 14, 133-134 Taphius Descendant of Perseus
14, 135-136
Taras [1] Son of Poseidon and a South-Italian nymph 14, 138 Tarchetius [1] Eponym of Tarquinii
14, 143
{2] Name ofa mythical king of Alba Longa 14, 143 Tarchon Legendary son or brother of Tyrrbenus or Telephus
14, 143-144
Tarpeia Daughter of Titus Tatius
14, 147
Tarpeius [3] T., Sp. Father of Tarpeia
14,148
Tatius, T. Legendary king of the Sabines 14, 163 Tecmessa Phrygian princess, prize woman of Ajax 14,210 Tectamus Thessalonican settler in Crete see Teutamus Tegyrius Mythical king ofthe Thraclans 14, 215-216 Teiresias Blind seer from Thebes 14, 216-217
Telamon [1] Son of the king Aeacus and of Endeis in Aegina 14, 217-218
Teledamus [1] Son of Odysseus and
Calypso
14,221
Telegonus Son of Odysseus and Circe 14, 221-222 Telemachus Son of Odysseus and
Penelope 14, 224-225 Telemus Son of Eurymus 14, 225 Telephassa Wife of the Phoenician ruler Agenus 14, 228-229 Telephontes Son of Polyphontes see Polyphontes [4] Telephus [1] Son of Heracles and Auge
14, 229-230
Telon King of the Teleboae 14, 238
Tenages Son of Helios
Mysia
14, 334
Thagimasades Presumed ancestor and protector of the Royal Scythae 14,358 Thalia [1] Muse 14, 362 [2] Nereid 14, 362 [3] One of the Charites 14, 362 [4] Sicilian nymph, mother ofthe Palici 14, 362 Thallo A Hore 14, 362-363 Thalpius Leader of the Epeians at Troy 14, 363 Thamyris Mythical singer from Thrace 14,365 Thaulon Ancestor of the Thaulon family see Bouphonia Thaumas Son of Pontus
14, 371
Theano [1] Priestess of Athena in
Troy 14, 377 [2] Wife of Metapontus in Icaria
14, 377 Theia [1] Titan 14, 420 Theias Son of Belus 14, 421 Themisto [1] Daughter of the
Lapith Hypseus 14, 428-429 [2] Ancestor of the Arcadians
14, 429
14,221
[2] Son of Agamemnon and Cas-
sandra
Tenerus Mythical seer in Thebes 14, 270 Tennes [1] Eponym of the island of Tenedos 14,270 Tenthredon Descendant of Magnes Ty aye Terambus Shepherd, inventor of syrinx and lyra see Cerambus Tereus Mythical king from Thrace 14, 290 Termerus Carian pirate 14,292 Terpsichore Muse 14, 296 Tettix [1] Founder of a city at the entrance to Hades 14, 329 Teucer [1] Mythical king in the Troad 14,330 [2] Trojan warrior, son of Telamon [1] and Hesione 14, 330 Teutamus [1] Assyrian king, ally of Priamus 14, 333 [2] Son of Dorus 14, 333 Teuthras King of Teuthrania or
14, 268
Theoclymenus Mythical seer from Argos 14, 432 Theodamas King of the Dryopes
14, 438
Theophane Daughter of Bisaltes
14, 502 Thersander Son of Polynices and
Argea
14,555
Thersilochus [1] Paeonian
14, 556 [2] Trojan, son of Antenor in Vergil 14,556 Thersites Greek warrior at Troy
14, 556
Theseus Mythical king and national hero ofthe Athenians 14, 558562
1S)3)
7. CHRISTIANITY
Thessalus [1] Eponym of the Greek territory of Thessaly 14, 577 Thestius Mythical ruler of Pleuron 14, §79-580 Thestor [1] Son of Apollo and Laothoe 14, 580 [2] Trojan 14, 580 [3] Companion of Odysseus
14, 580
Thetis Daughter of Nereus and Doris [I rt] 14, 582-583 Thiodamas Seer, son of Melampus Thisbe [2] Lover of Pyramus see Pyramus [2] Thoas [1] Mythical ruler ofLemnos [2] Son of Hypsipyle and Iason
14, 590
[3] Leader of the Aetolians at Troy 14,590 [4] Son ofIcarius and the Naiad Periboea 14,590 [5] King of the Tauri 14, 590 Thoon [x] Trojan, son of Phaenops 14, 596 [2] Trojan killed by Odysseus
14, 596 [3] Trojan killed by Antilochus
14, 596 [4] Phaeacian
14, 596
14, 596
[6] Companion of Dionysus in India 14,596 Thoosa [1] Sea Nymph 14, 596 [2] Daughter of Poseidon
14, 596
Thootes Herald of Menestheus
14, 596
Thrasymedes [1] Son of Nestor and Anaxibia 14, 623 Thyestes Son of Pelops 14, 644-
645
Thyia, Thy(i)ades [1] Eponymous Nymph of a Delphic sanctuary
14, 645
Thymoetes [1] Son of Laomedon 14, 649 [2] Son of Oxyntes 14, 649
14, 649
Tilphusa Boeotian well nymph 14, 676
Timandra [1] Daughter of Tyndareus and Leda 14, 682 Tiphys Son of Hagnias 14,722 Tisamenus [1] Son of Thersander
14, 817
14, 842-843
Triopas Eponym of the Cape of Triopium in Caria
14, 928
ds 79%
Sis 14, 935-936
Troilus [1] Son of Priamus 14, 962 Trophonius Hero of the Boeotian Lebadia 14, 966-967 Tros [1] Eponymous king of the Trojans 14,967 [2] Trojan, son of Alastor
14, 967 Trygon Nurse of Asclepius 14, 987 Turnus [1] King of the Rutuli
15, 36
Tutola Legendary maidservant at the time of the Latin wars 15, 46 Tydeus [1] Son of Oeneus and Per-
iboea
15, 54-55
Tyndareos King of Sparta 15, 57 Tyro Daughter of Salmoneus
15, 67
Tyrrhenus Legendary son of the Lydian king Atys 15, 69 Ucalegon Member of the Trojan council of elders 15,79 Ulixes Latin name for Odysseus see Odysseus Urania [1] Muse who surveys the course of the world 15, 118 [2] Nymph, daughter of Oceanus and Thetis 15,118 Valeria [5] Plague sacrifice to Juno 15, 166
Valerius [I 1] V. Legendary figure from Tusculum 15, 170 Vegoia Etruscan nymph 15, 253-
254
Vibenna Friend of Servius Tullius 15, 381-382
Vindemitor. Name of a satyr as a
[2] Son of Orestes and Hermione
14, 731
star
15,429
Xanthippe [1] Daughter of Dorus
Tisiphone [1] Erinys, avenger of murder 14,733 [2] Daughter of Alcmaeon and Manto
14, 817 [3] Son of Thestius in Ovid
Triptolemus Mythical hero of Eleu-
14, 589-590
[3] Trojan
14, 747-748
Tlepolemus [1] Son of Heracles and Astyochia 14,749 Toxeus [1] Son of Eurytus 14, 817 [2] Son of the king Oeneus of Calydon and Althaea
Trambelus Son of Telamon
14, 587
[5] Giant
Titus [II 1] Legendary king of the Sabines see Tatius, T. Tityus Son of Zeus and Elara
14,733
Tithonus Member of the Trojan royal family 14,739
15,792
[2] Mythical feeder of her imprisoned father Mycon 15,792 Xanthius [1] Father of Leucippus from the Bellerophontes family 15, 794
[2] Boeotian king 15,794 Xanthus [1] Name of several figures in Greek mythology 15, 794725
Xenoclea Promantis of the Delphi Oracle 15, 805 Xenodice [1] Daughter of Minos 15, omb2
[2] (also Xenodoce). Daughter of Syleus 15, 812 [3] Trojan prisoner 15, 812 Xisuthrus Character in the Flood legend 15, 839-840 Xuthos [1] Son of Hellen and Orseis/Othreis 15, 841-842 [2] Son of Aeolus 15, 842 [3] Father of two oikistai 15, 842
Zethos [1] Son of Zeus and Antiope 15, 915-916 Zeuxippe [1] Daughter of the river god Eridanus 15,927 [2] Wife of the Trojan king Laomedon 15,927 [3] Daughter of King Laomedon
15,927
[4] Daughter of Hippocoon
15,927
[5] Lover of Apollo 15,927 Zeuxippos [1] Father of Cyclops
15, 927
[2] Son of Apollo and the Nymph Syllis 15,927 [3] Legendary king and founder of Byzantium 15,927 7. Christianity Persons from ecclesiatical history On subjects cf. Subject Index 18. and CT index volume, Entry Index 8 Abdias Supposedly the first bishop of Babylon 1, 16-17 Abraham [2] Christian South Arabian king 1, 30-31 Acacius [2] Bishop of Caesarea
I, 39-40 [3] Ascetic and monk, later bishop of Beroea (Aleppo) I, 40 [4] Patriarch of Constantinopolis from 471 to 489 1,40 Aelia [4] Eudoxia. Wife of Arcadius I, 199-200 Aemilianus [II 2] L. Mussius Ae.
signo Aegippius. Praefectus Aegypti from AD 259 1, 208-
209 Aeneas [4] Christian rhetor from Gaza, 5th cent. AD 1, 222 Agapetus [1] Deacon of Hagia Sophia in Constantinople I, 308
[2] Pope from 535 to 536 I, 308
154
7. CHRISTIANITY
Agathangelus [2] Secretary to the king of the Arsacides, Tiridates IV
1, 310-311
Agrestius Author of epistle
I, 372-373
Agricola [2] Son of the emperor Avitus, 5th cent. AD 1, 373 Agrippa [5] Anti-gnostic writer
1, 393
cent. AD
1, 1121
Arius [3] Alexandrian presbyter
Agroecius Bishop of Sens, gram-
marian, middle of 5th cent. AD I, 396
Alaricus [3] I, King of West Goths,
AD 484-507
1, 424-425
Alcimus [6] Ecdicius Avitus Bishop of Vienna, ecclesiastical politi-
cian and poet see Avitus [2] Alexius Legendary ascetic, 5th cent.
I, 503
Ambrosius Bishop of Milan after
374 1,572-574 Ammonius [8] from Alexandria.
Christian writer 1, 589 [9] Saccas. Platonic philosopher, teacher of Plotinus 1, 589-
590
1, 1158
Arnobius [1] of Sicca. Christian Rhetor of the 3rd/4th cent. AD 2, 17-19 [2] of Africa. African Monk (?), theological opponent ofSt. Augustine, 5th cent. AD 2,19 Arsenius [1] Saint 2, 33 Asterius [2] Sophis from Cappadocia 2,191 Athanasius Bishop of Alexandria from 328 2, 231-232 Athenagoras Christian apologetic, 2nd cent. AD 2, 245 Augustinus, Aurelius (Augustine) Church father, theologist, AD
Amphilochius of Iconium Rhetorician and Bishop of Iconium, 4th cent. AD
1, 602
Anastasius [3] Apocrisiarius. Stu-
dent of Maximus Homologetes [4] monachus. Student of Maximus Homologetes 1, 646 [5] Sinaites. Abbot of the monastery of St. Catharine 1, 646 Andreas [2] of Crete. 1, 681 Anthimus [2] Bishop of Trapezunt Tove
Antonius [5] the Great. Founder of hermit monasticism, 3rd cent.
1, 799-800 Apelles [3] Independent follower of Marcion the Gnostic
354-430
1, 821
Aphrahat Leading Syrian theologian, 4th cent. AD 1, 827-828 Apollinarius [2] of Laodicea. Priest and teacher of grammar 1, 850 [3] of Laodicea. Nicaean-orthodox theologian, son of[2] 1, 850
[4] Claudius A. of Hierapolis 1, 850
Apollonius [24] Roman martyr, died 184/5 1, 883-884 Aponius Commentator on the Song of Solomon, from AD 451 1, 885
Aquila [3] Proselyte from Sinope, Bible translator 1, 928 [4] Jew in Corinth, gave hospitality to St.Paul 1, 928-929 Arator Christian poet of the 6th 1,954
Arethas Bibliophile commentator on classical MSS, editor of theo-
2, 355-362
Auspicius of Toul Bishop, correspondent of Sidonius 2, 395 Avitus [2] Alcimus Ecdicius. Bishop of Vienna in 494, author ofBible epics
I, 645-646
cent.
logical-exegetical writings, and polemicist 1, 1054 Aristides [4] of Athens. Author of an Apology of Chrisitanity I, [100 Ariston [8] of Pella/Decapolis. Christian Greek writer of the 2nd
2, 428-429
Barnabas Co-worker of the Apostle Paulus 2, 513-514 Basileides [2] Christian Gnostic in Alexandria, 2nd cent. AD
Dei 5k7: Basilius [1] Basil the Great. Theologian and bishop 2, 539-540 [3] Of Seleucia. Bishop, c. AD
435-468
2,541
Beda Venerabilis (The Venerable
Bede) Anglo-Saxon, theologian and historian 2, 570-573 Benedict of Nursia Founder of religious order, c. AD 500 2, 594596 Boethius, Anicius Manlius Severi-
nus Latin writer and philosopher, c. AD 480-524 2,701706
Bonifatius [2] B.I. Pope from AD 418-422
2,719
[3] B. Il. Pope from AD 530-532
2, 719 Caecilianus [1] Bishop of Carthage, from AD 311/12 2, 872 Caecilius [II 6] C. Capella. Persecutor of Christians, 2nd cent. AD 2, 882
{I 17] C. Natalis. Pagan conversation partner in the dialogue Octavius by Minucius Felix 2, 883 Caesarius [2] Physician, brother of Gregory of Nazianzus 2, 918-
919
[4] of Arelate. c. AD 470-542
2, 919-920
Calcidius Christian philosopher, 4th cent. AD 2, 936-937 Callinicus [4] C. I. Patriarch of Constantinople 2,981 Carpocrates, Carpocratians Author
of awork on angels 2, 1126 Cassia [4] C. Byzantine poet and abbess, died c. AD 800/805 DCLG Cassianus Iohannes, theologian,
360-430/35
2, 1159
Cassiodorus Roman politician and scholar, c. AD 490-590 2,
II61-1163
Cerialis [3] Bishop of Castellum Ripense 3, 163 Cerinthus [2] Jewish-Christian Gnostic 3, 163 Charisius [2] Presbyter and diakonos in Philadelphia, 5th cent. AD
3,197
Chilperic [2] Merovingian king, 6th cent. AD 3,228 Choricius Sophist and rhetorician, 6th cent. AD 3, 245-246 Clemens [1] of Rome. 3rd bishop of Rome, 2nd cent. AD (?) 3, 424426
[3] T. Flavius Clemens Christian philosopher, c. AD 200 3, 426-427 Clement of Alexandria see Clemens [3] of Alexandria Clovis I (Chlodovechus) Merovingian king, 5th/6th cent. AD
3, 482-483
Commodianus Christian Latin poet between the 3rd and 5th cent. AD O52
Constantinus [1] C. I. The Great, Roman Emperor AD 306-337
3, 715-720 [7] C. V. Byzantine Emperor AD 74I-776
3; 721
[8] C. VI. Byzantine Emperor AD 780 Or 790-797
3,721
Constantius [8] of Lugdunum.
Author of a Vita S. Germani c.
AD 475
3,725
Corippus, Flavius Cresconius Latin epic poet, 6th cent. AD 3, 804805
Cornelius [II 1] Bishop in Rome AD 2525S
FS 82H
Cosmas [2] C. Indicopleustes. Seafarer and geographical author, 6th cent. AD 3, 861-862 [3] Bishop and composer of hymns 3, 862 Cresconius Arranged in the 6th cent. AD a collection of synodal laws and papal decisions 3,932 Cyprianus [1] C. Gallus. Heptateuch poet see Heptateuch poet
(6, 145)
T55
7. CHRISTIANITY
[2] C. Thascius Caecili(an)us From AD 248/9 bishop of Carthago 3, 1067-1069 Cyrillus [1] C. of Jerusalem. Bishop
asia [2] C. of Alexandria Bishop 4, [I-12 [3] C. of Scythopolis. Monk
4, 12-13
[8] The Apostle of the Slavs
4,14 Dalmatius [3] Former guards officer, participated in the Council of Ephesus in 431 AD 4, 48 Damasus Bishop of Rome 366-384
4,58 Demetrius [17] From Thessalonica.
Martyred saint and patron of the city of Thessalonica 4, 249 [18] Bishop of Alexandria
4; 249-250
Didymus [5] ‘the Blind’ Theologian from Alexandria [1] 4, 399400 Diodorus [20] of Tarsus. Christian theologian, died before AD 394 4, 446 Diogenes [10] Bishop of Amisus, 6th cent. AD, author of an epita-
phios 4, 448
Dionysius [46] D. of Antioch. Author, christian sophist from Antiochia 4,490 [51] Bishop of Corinth 4, 491 [52] Bishop of Alexandria
4, 491-492 [53] Bishop of Rome 4, 492 [54] (Ps.)-D. Areopagites.
4, 492-494 [55] Exiguus. Canonist, compu-
tist and translator 4, 494 Dioscorus [1] Patriarch of Alexandria 4, 517-518 Domitianus [4] One of the main figures in Palestinian Origenism, Bishop of Ancyra c. AD 540
4, 639-640
Dorotheus [6] Antiochian presbyter 4, 689-690
[7] Bishop of Marcianopolis 4, 690
[8] Legendary Bishop and martyr 4, 690 [9] Monk in Alexandria 4, 690
[x1] 4,690
Dositheus [8] Christian writer 4, 696
Dracontius [3] Blossius Aemilius D. Latin poet, late 5th cent. AD,
advocate in Carthage
4, 708-
709 Egeria [2] see Peregrinatio ad loca
sancta Eghigse see Elishe Eirenaeus, Irenaeus [2] E. (Ire-
naeus) of Lyons Bishop of Lyon 4, 861-862
Elias [3] Metropolite of Nisibis
4, 919-920
250
Elisaios Wardapet
see Elisché
(Etige)
Elishé Armenian historian 4, 925 Endelechius Probably the rhetor of Gallic origin, teacher in Rome in
AD 395, friend of Paulinus of Nola 4,969 Ennodius, Magnus Felix Probably from Arles, Bishop of Pavia from
AD 513 4,990-991
Ephrem Syrian poet and theologian, 4th cent. AD 4, 1036-
1037
num (Pavia)
4, 1120
[6] (Epiphanius), Latin bishop Asal ont Eucherius [3] Bishop of Lyon AD 434-450, author of a Passio
5135
Eugenius [3] Bishop of Carthage AD 480-505
5,158
[4] Latin writing cleric, from AD 646 archbishop of Toledo
5, 198-159
Eugippius Abbot, author of a writing about §. Severin 5,159 Eunomius Bishop of Cyzicus, 4th Cent
eS 07.
Eusebius [7] of Caesarea. Bishop
and Church Father 5, 225-226 [8] Bishop of Nicomedia i, 226-227.
[9] Bishop of Emesa 5, 227 [10] Dorylaeum. Rhetor and lawyer, bishop of Dorylaeum 5,228
[rr] Alexandria. 5, 228 [12] Vercellae. 5, 228 Eustathius [4] Monk and deacon, later archbishop of Thessalonica
5, 229-230
[5] Bishop of Antioch 5, 230 [6] Bishop of Sebaste 5,230 [7] Translator of the Homilies of Basilius [1] 5, 230-231 Eutherius [2] Bishop of Tyana, 5th
[5] F. IL. Counterpope AD 355-
358 5,379
Ferrandus Deacon in Carthage 331595
Emperor Leo VI
of the most comprehensive Lat. astrological handbook, 4th cent.
AD
5, 434-435
Firmillianus Bishop from Caesarea/Cappadocia, 3rd cent. AD
5 435
Fortunat(ian)us African, bishop of Aquileia AD 342-368/370
55 509
Frumentius Ethiopian apostle of the 4th cent. AD 5, 567 Fulgentius [2] F. of Ruspe Bishop,
AD 507
5, 575-576
Gaius [3] G. of Rome. Theologian of the 2nd cent. AD 5, 644 Gaudentius [5] Bishop of Brixia AD 386/7 5,711 Gelasius [1] Bishop of Caesarea [2] Maritima/Palaestina 5,723 [2] G. of Cyzicus. Anonymous church historian 5,723-724 [3] Bishop of Rome AD 492-496
55724 Gennadius [1] Patriarch of Con-
stantinople 5th cent. AD 5,759 [2] Priest in Marseilles, 5th cent.
AD
5,759
Georgius [1] Bishop of Laodicea 5> 787 [4] G. Cyprius. Byz. saint
5, 787 [5] G. Monachos. Author of a Byzantine chronicle, some time in the 9th cent. AD 5, 787-788 Germanus [3] Patriarch of Constantinople AD 715-730
5,233
Euthymius Father confessor of 5, 236
Eutyches [3] Monophysite monk 5,240 Evagrius [1] Ponticus. Christian writer and monastic leader
5244
5,286
Fastidius Bishop in Britannia in the 5th cent. AD 5, 365-366 Faustinus [4] Presbyter, 4th cent. AD aso 27, Faustus [3] F. Reiensis. Since about AD 460 bishop of Rett 5, 373 Felix [4] F. I]. Pope AD 268-273 5,378
Firmicus Maternus, Iulius Author
Epiphanius [1] of Salamis Ascetic and priest 4, 1119-1120 [2] (Epiphanius), Bishop of Tici-
cent.
Fabianus [1] Rom. bishop AD 23 6-
[2] of Antioch. Bishop 5, 244 [3] Scholasticus. Anc. Greek church historian 5, 244-245 Eznik of Kolp Armenian-Syriac translator, Bishop of Bagrewand, 5th cent. AD 5, 282-283
5, 815
Germinius Bishop of Simium in the 4th cent. AD 5, 815-816 Gregorius [I 1] Thaumaturgus. Lawyer and theologian, 3rd cent. AD 5, 1024-1025 [I 2] G. of Nyssa Theologian, 4th cent. AD 5, 1025-1027 [I 3] G. of Nazianzus. Theologian, 4th cent. AD 5, 10271028
{I 4] G. of Corinth Bishop, t1th/12th cent. AD 5, 10281029
156
7. CHRISTIANITY
{II 2] G. of Elvira (Illiberis) Bishop of Baetica, 4th cent. AD MSHTO29) {II 3] G. L. the Great Pope from AD 590 5, 1029-1030 {II 4] G. of Tours Bishop of Tours, 6th cent. AD
5, 1030
Hadrianus [I] [2] Author ofthe first
‘Introduction to the Holy Scriptures’ 5, 1083 Hegemonius Alleged author of the
‘Acta Archelai’ 6, 48 Hegesippus [5] Christian author, 2nd cent. AD 6, 53 Heraclas Student of Origenes, bishop of Alexandria, 3rd cent. AD 6, 149-150 Heracleon Valentinian, 2nd cent. AD 6,155-156
[ro] I. of Scythopolis. Theologian, 5th cent. AD 6, 893 [xx] I. I. Mandakuni. Archbishop in Armenia AD 478-490, a saint 6, 893 [12] I. IL., Bishop ofJerusalem. C. AD 400
6, 893
[13] Bishop of Antioch. AD 429-
441/2
6, 893
[14] I. Diacrinomenus. Mono-
physite church historian, 6th cent. AD 6,894 [15] I. of Caesarea. Grammarian
and presbyter, 6th cent. AD 6, 894 [18] I. Malalas. Author of a Byzantine world chronicle, c.
Hiba Bishop of Edessa, 5th cent.
490/500 —after AD 570 6, 895 [19] Philoponus. 6, 896 [20] I. Abba Biclarensis. Goth, continuer of Victor TunnunenSis, Approx. 540-621 6,896 [22] I. Diaconus. Author of an Epistula ad Senarium important for liturgical history
AD 6, 297-298 Hieronymus [8] Jerome The
[23] I. Diaconus. Author of a
Hermias [3] Of Jerusalem, priest and exegete, 5th cent. AD 65223-2244
[7] Author of amocking work against Greek philosophers 6, 224
Church father 6, 317-321 Hilarianus, Q. Iulius see Julius Hilarius [1] H. of Poitiers 4th cent. AD
6, 324-326
65326-3277
Hildericus, Hilderic Son of Hunericus, king of the Vandals, 6th (ah, INDY (Soph Hippolytus [2] H. of Rome. Presbyter, Church author, 3rd cent.
6, 495
Horsiesi Abbot general of the association of monasteries of Pachomuius (Egypt), 4th cent. AD 6, 513 Hydatius [1] (Ydacius) Bishop of Emerita, removed in AD 388 6,598
[2] Chronicler from Spain, bishop in AD 427 6,598 Ibas_ see Hiba Ignatius [1] Bishop of Antioch 65 720-721
EtG ont
[3] Epigrammatist
6, 897-
898
[27] I. IV. Nesteutes. Patriarch of Constantinople, AD 582-595
6, 721-722
Innocentius I Bishop of Rome 402Ossian
theologian, 6th cent. AD 6, 898-899
monk in Palestine, 6th cent. AD 6,899 [30] I. Klimakos (I. Scholastikos/Sinaites), monk, abbot of
cent. AD
6, 961-962
[9] Isidorus Bishop of Hispalis, theologian and author ofencyclopaedic writings 6, 963964 186‘yahb III. Syr. author and patriarch of the eastern Church, 7th cent. AD 6,985 Iulianus [10] Uncle of emperor I. [11] 6, 1046 [16] Pelagian, bishop of Aeclanum AD 416
6, 1050
[18] I. of Halicarnassus. Mono-
physite bishop and theologian, sth/6th cent. AD 6, 1051 [21] I. of Toledo. Archbishop of Toledo, approx. AD 642-690 6, 1052
lulius [III 1] Bishop of Rome AD 337-352 6, 1079 (II 2] Q. I. Hilarianus. Bishop and theologian in Africa, 4th cent. AD
6, 1079
Iustina Roman empress, mother of 6, 1135
lustinianus [1] Flavius Iustinianus I. Roman emperor AD 527-565 6,
6th/7th cent. AD
6, 899-900
[31] L. of Thessalonica. Archbishop and saint 6,900 [32] I. Eleemon, the Merciful. Patriarch of Alexandria from AD 610
6,900
[33] l. of Damascus 6, 901 [34] L. of Nikiu. Egyptian bishop,
6,
[39] I. the Baptist The son of a priest, predecessor to Jesus according to the Gospels
II41
[7] Gnostic, around AD 300 6,
nish presbyter and author of epics, 4th cent. AD 6, 1148 Jacob [2] J. Baradaeus. Syr. orthodox bishop of Edessa, 6th cent.
AD
6,1163 [3] J. of Sarug. Syr. orthodox bishop and poet, 6th cent. AD 6,
1164
[4] J. of Edessa. Syr. author and scholar,c. AD 700 6, 1164T165
Jesus
6,
1178-1189
Joshua Stylites Pillar saint, c. AD 500
losephus [5] I. of Thessalonica.
LI4I—ET4A2
luvencus, C. Vettius Aquilinus Spa-
6, 901-902
[38] 1. Mauropus. Byz. scholar and bishop 6, 902
1136-1138
lustinus [6] Martys. Philosopher and martyr, died AD 165
the monastery of Catharine,
6, 902
Johannes [1] I. the Evangelist
6, 935-936
Isaac [2] I. of Antioch. Author of Syrian homilies 6,948 [3] I. of Nineveh. East Syr. author and monk, 7th cent. AD 6, 948-949 Isidorus [4] Early Christian Gnostic, 2nd cent. AD 6, 960-961 [6] I. of Pelusium. Presbyter in Pelusium (Egypt), 4th/sth
Valentinianus II, 4th cent. AD
6, 898
[28] I. Scholastikos. Jurist and
c.700
[2] I. Magister. Poet, metropolitan ofNicaea, 8th/9th cent.
Ant
[26] I. of Ephesus. Sy.-Orthodox
[29] I. Moschus. (I. Eucrates),
AD 6, 369-371 Hormisdas [8] Roman bishop AD
AD
catene commentary, 6th cent. AD 6,896 author, 6th cent. AD
[2] Bishop of Arles AD 429-449
514-523
6, 896
Irene Byz. empress AD 797-802
6,1204
6, 887-890
Archbishop of Thessalonica,
Judas [2] J. Iscariot. One ofJesus’ twelve disciples 6, 1222
[3] I. of Lycopolis. Hermit, end of 4th cent. AD 6, 890 [4] I. Chrysostomos Bishop of Constantinople AD 397-404,
hymnodist, AD 762-832
Kaminiates, Iohannes Cleric,
homilete
6, 890-892
6,922
Irenaeus
see Eirenaeus
author of an account of the conquest of Thessalonike by the Arabs in 904 7,14
E57
7. CHRISTIANITY
Lactantius [1] Christian Theologist and apologist, c. 250-325 7»
TSI-1§3
Leo [3] L. I (The Great) Pope of
Rome 440-461
7, 389-390
[4] Leo I East Roman emperor
457-474 75 390-391
Leon [11] L. Diakonos Historian and deacon in Constantinople, toth cent. AD 7, 398-399 Leontius [6] L. of Byzantium ProChalcedonian theologian, died c.
543
7, 408-409
[8] L. of Neapolis, Cyprus Bishop and biographer of Iohannes [32] Eleemon, c. 590-c. 650
7, 409 Leucius [2] L. Charinus Ostensible author of apocryphal Acts of the
Apostles
7, 447-448
Liberius [1] Roman pope 352-377
7s 492
Liutprandus of Cremona From Cremona, bishop of Cremona, toth CHL. 735
Lucas (Luke) [1] Gospel-writer
7, 833-834 Lucianus [2] L. of Antioch Presbyter and director of a school, martyr in AD 312 7, 845-846
Lucifer [2] Bishop of Calaris, banis-
hed in 353 7,847 Lucius [I] [5] L. of Alexandria Arian, bishop of Alexandria in
361
7, 855-856
Macarius [2] M. of Alexandria
Monk, 4th cent. AD 8, 53-54 [3] M. Magnes Christian Greek author 8, 54 [5] Imperial envoy in north Africa in AD 343 8,55 Macrina Sister of Basilius the Great, Petrus of Sebaste and Gre-
gorius of Nyssa, 4th cent. AD 8,98
Mar Aba Katholikos ofSeleucea/Ctesiphon 540-552 8,277 Marcella [1] Founder of monastic community in Rome, 335-410 8, 293-294 Marcellina Sister of Ambrosius bishop of Milan, died c. AD 400 8, 294 Marcellinus [II 1] Roman bishop since AD 296, [1]
8, 295-296
[II 12] Flavius M. Delegate of emperor Honorius [3] 410, [12] Flavius M. 8, 297
Marcellus [I 4] Bishop of Ancyra
(died) AD 374, [4] 8, 298-299
[I 5| Bishop of Apamea [3] on the Orontes, [5]
8,299
Marcianus [5] Novatian bishop in Konstantinopel AD 384-395, [4]
8, 305
Marcion Founder of a counterchurch, AD 85-160 8, 307-308 Marculus Donatist bishop in Numidia, killed in AD 347 toy Siete)
Marcus [I 1] The Evangelist, [1]
8, 322-323 [1 3] Bishop of Arethusa (Syria), 4th cent., [3] 8,324 [I 4] M. Eremites Ascetic, mona-
stic teacher and author ofascetic treatises, 5th cent., [4] M. Eremites 8, 324-325 Maria [II 1] Mother of Jesus
8, 347-349 [I] 2] M. Magdalene Disciple of Jesus, [II 2] M. Magdalen
8, 349-350 Marinus [I 3] Arian bishop in Constantinople from 386 8, 357-
monastery
8, 616
[2] The Younger, Christian benefactress c. AD 400 8, 616 Meletius of Antioch Bishop of Sebaste from 357 8, 629-630 Melitius of Lycopolis Bishop of Lycopolis in Middle Egypt (died c. AD 327) 8, 639 Meliton [3] M. of Sardes Bishop of Sardes, 2nd cent., [3] M. of Sar-
deis 8, 639-640 Menas [4] Egyptian martyr, d. 295 8, 670
Mercurinus Arian bishop of Milan,
358
Marius [II 20] Claudius M. Victor (or Victorius) Teacher ofrhetoric in Marseille, c. AD 425, [II 20]
Claudius M. Victor (or Victorius)
8, 370-371 {Il 21] C. M. Victorinus Philologist, philosopher and theologian, 4th cent. AD 8, 371-
372
[Il 22] Bishop of Aventicum AD 574-594, author of aworld chronicle, [II 22] 8, 372-373 [I 23] M. Mercator Opponent of the Pelagians, 5th cent. AD 8, 373 Martinus [1] Bishop of Tours, AD
316/7-397
8, 415
[3] M. of Bracara Author ofchri-
stian works, founder of a monastery in Pannonia, c. AD
515-580
8, 416
Maruthas [1] Bishop of Maiperqat, G. A00)
[I 7] M. Homologetes Christian Theologian, 7th cent. AD, [7] M. Homologetes 8, 518-519 {II 14] M. Taurinensis Bishop of Turin from AD 398, [14] Maximus 8, 522 Melania [1] The Elder, founder of a
[2] Syrian Orthodox Metropolitan of Tagrit/Mesopotamia, died AD 649 8, 422-423 Maternus [2a] Bishop in Cologne,
885
8, 803-804
Michael [2] M. Syncellus Arabian Christian monk and priest 8, 851
[9] M. Syrus Syrian Orthodox patriarch of Antioch, AD 1166-1199
8,853
Miltiades [4] Rhetorically trained Greek apologist, 2nd cent. [4] 8,918 8,918
Minucius [II 1] M. Felix, M. Christian Latin author, 2nd/3rd cent.
9, 39-40 Misenus [II 1] Bishop of Cumae, c.
8, 489-
491 Mauropous, Iohannes Byzantine
scholar and bishop, founder of a school of law c. AD tooo 8, 498 Maximianus [3] of Pola. Bishop of Ravenna from AD 546 8, 511 Maximilla [2] Cofounder of Montanism in the 2nd cent. AD S55 ks
Maximinus [5] Bishop ofTrier, died after 346 8,515 [6] Arian bishop of Gothic origin, around AD 400
8, 748-749 Methodius [1] Bishop of Olympus, 3rd-4th cent. AD 8, 802-803 [3] Author ofa Syriac Apocalypse, c. AD 690 8, 803 [4] Apostle of the Slavs, AD 8 r0-
[5] Bishop of Rome 310-314
“8.422:
COT 20455, AO Matthaeus The Evangelist
biographer of Ulfila, 4th cent. 8, 709 Mercurius I. Greek (soldier saint) Greek (soldier saint), I 8,710 Mesrop Armenian scholar and theologian, 4th/s5th cent.
8, 516
Maximus [I 6] Christian Cynic from Alexandria, 4th cent. AD, [6] 8,518
yOO
9, 60-61
Monnica Mother of Augustine, 331/2-387 9, 162-163
Montanus [5] Founder of Montanism
9, 186
Nebridius [3] Friend of Augustine’s, died 390 9, 586 Nestorius, Nestorianism Bishop of Constantinople 428-431 9, 685-687
Nicetas. Bishop in Dacia Mediterranea. Christian author, died in
414 9, 716-717 Nicolaus [4] N., Saint. Bishop of Myra, 4th cent. (?) 9,728 [5] Patriarch of Constantinople and historian, 8th/9th cent. 9,729
158
7. CHRISTIANITY
Nikephorus [1] Patriarch of Constantinople, died 828 9,756VEST
Nilus [1] N. of Ancyra Author of monastic letters and stories, c.
400
9,762
[2] N. Scholasticus Epigrammatist
9,762
Noetus of Smyrna Early Christian theologian, 2nd cent. 9,788 Novatianus. Christian theologian in Rome c.250 9, 835-836 Novatus. Bishop of Mauretania,
died 440 9, 836-837 Optatus [4] Donatist bishop of Thamugadi in about 390
10, 174
[5] Theologian, bishop of Mileve WECr 366,
Own 74
Orientius Christian poet, early 5th cent.
10, 209
Origenes [2] Theologian, 185/6254 10, 210-212 Orosius Christian author, early 5th Cent.
WO, ZAO=242,
Ossius Bishop of Corduba from 295 ON 10,279 Pachomius Founder of cenobitic monasticism in Egypt, 4th cent. 10, 317-318
Pacianus. Bishop of Barcinona, 4th cent. AD 10,319 Palladius [I 3] Monk, bishop of Helenopolis, c. 400 10, 392 Pamphilus [4] Follower ofthe school of Origenes [1] at Caesarea [2], c. AD 240-310 10, 413 Pantaenus Christian teacher in Alexandria, end of the 2nd cent.
10, 459
Paphnutius Bishop of Upper Thebias, died c. 360 10, 479 Papias Bishop or congregational leader in Hierapolis [1], 2nd cent. 10, 482-483
Parmenianus. Primate of the Donatist church of Carthage around
362
10, 537
Patricius [1] British saint, 5th cent. IO, 613-614
Patroclus [3] Bishop of Arelate 412 10, 624
Paula Aristocratic Roman Christian woman c. 400 10, 628 Paulinus [3] P. of Milan. Secretary to and biographer of Ambrosius, C.400
10,629
[4] P. of Pella Author of an autobiographical poem, 4th cent. LO, 630
[5] P. of Nola Bishop of Nola, Christian poet, 353-431 10, 630-632
[6] Author of a Latin Christian poem
10, 632
[7| P. of Petricordia Author of a hexametric biography of St. Martin, c. 460 10, 632 Paulus [I 1] Bishop of Antioch [r], died after 272 10, 633 [1 3] P. of Constantinople. AntiArian bishop of Constantinople from about 335 10, 634 {I 4] P. Silentiarius. Greek poet and court official in Constantinople, 6th cent. 10, 634-
Praxeas. Christian teacher in Rome and North Africa, c. 200
11, 783
Primianus. Primate of the Donatist Church in 393 11, 848 Prisca [1] Missionary, rst cent. II, 867-868
635
Priscilla Co-founder of Montanism, 2nd cent. AD 11, 870 Priscillianus Ascetic and theologian, 4th cent. 11, 870-873 Proaeresius Of Caesarea, Christian
10, 636-643
Proba. Christian poetess, 4th cent.
[II 2] P., the Apostle The apostle {11 4] P. Diaconus Lombard grammarian, 8th cent.
10, 644-645
Sophist, born c. 276
11, 890
11, 890-891
Proclus [1] Bishop of Constantino-
ple 434-446
11,911
Pelagius [4] Christian theologian
Procopius [2] P. of Gaza. Rhetor
around 400 10, 689-691 Perpetua. Martyr, 203 10, 809
and theological writer 11, 920921 Proculus. [4] Bishop of Massilia, c. 400 11,927 Prosper Tiro Of Aquitania, Christian poet, historian, 4th/5th
Petilianus. Donatist bishop in Africa after 394 10, 866 Petrus [1] Apostle 10, 881-886 [2] Bishop of Alexandria, died in 3II
10, 886
cent.
[3] P. the Iberian 10, 886 [5] P. Sikeliotes Anti-Paulician historian, 9th cent.
10, 887
Philaretus [2] Ph. Eleemon Chri-
stian landowner and benefactor, 8th cent. AD 11, 13 Philastrius Preacher, bishop of Brixia 381 11, 13-14 Philippus [I 28] An apostle and an evangelist 11, 39 Philoponus, Iohannes Christian polymath in Alexandria, c. 490575 1, 89-91 Philostorgius Church historian, 2nd half of the 4th cent. II, 113-114 Philoxenus [9] P. of Mabbug. Theologian, Metropolitan of Mabbug from 485 11, 125-126 Phocas [1] Martyr around AD 305 Pr, 138
Photius [2] Byzantine humanist Patriarch of Constantinople c. AD 81o-c. AD 893 187
11, 186-
Pinianus [2] Christian ascetic
4th/s5th cent. 11,274 Polycarpus of Smyrna Bishop and martyr, 2nd cent. 11, 505-506 Pomerius, lulianus. Christian priest
and teacher of rhetoric, 5th cent.
II, 542-543 Pontianus Bishop of Rome, AD 230 It, 591 Pontius. [II 9] P. of Carthage. 11, 598
Possidius. Bishop of Calama in Africa, 5th cent. 11, 689 Potamiaena Martyr in about 360 II, 700-701
12, 55-56
Ptolemaeus [66] Follower of the Valentinians
12, 170-171
Pulcheria [2] Augusta in 414
12, 194-195
Quadratus. Author of what is believed to be the oldest Christian apology 12, 313 Quintilla. Montanist prophetess, 3rd cent. 12,354 Quodvultdeus Bishop of Carthage, AG PORED SAAS Rabbula, Rabulas Bishop of
Edessa, 412-435 Or 436 12, 377-378 Reparatus [2] Bishop of Carthage, 6th cent. 12, 500 Romanos [1] R. Melodos, ‘the
Melodist’ Byzantine hymnographer, 5th/6th cent. AD
12, 667—
668
Rufinus [I 6] Tyrannius R. Of Aquileia, Christian, translator of Eusebius, died 410 12,753-
754
Ruricius of Limoges. Bishop and author, 5th cent.
12, 787-788
Rusticus [1] Theologian from Rome, from 547 in Constantinople and Egypt 12, 791-792 Sabellius Christian theologian in Rome c.200 12,810 Sahak Patriarch of Armenia, 340 or
350-438/9 12, 868-869 Salvianus. [1] S. of Massilia Chri-
stian theologian at Massilia, died after 465 12, 910-911 Satorninus Christian teacher, rst
half of the 2nd cent.
13, 19-20
Saturninus [7] see Satorninus Sedulius. Christian Latin poet, rst
half of the 5th cent.
197
13, 196-
159
7. CHRISTIANITY
Serapion [5] S. of Thmuis Bishop of Thmuis/Lower Egypt, 4th cent.
13, 305
Sergius. [II 9] S. lof Constantinople Patriarch, 601-638 13, 316—
317
Severianus [1] Bishop of Gabala/Syria, c. 400 13, 357-358 Severinus [2] S. of Noricum Monk in Noricum ripense, 5th cent.
13,358 Severus [2] Gnostic, end of the 2nd cent.
13,359
[3] S. of Antioch Theologian and Syrian Orthodox patriarch,
yt2-s18
13, 359-360
Shenoute of Atripe Abbot and author of Coptic literature, 5th cent.
13, 384-385
Sidonius Apollinaris Most important Gallic author, 2nd half of the sth cent. 13, 438-439 Silvester. Bishop of Rome 31 January 314-31 December 335
13,477
Simeon Stylites Syrian ascetic, 5th cent.
13,479
Simon [8] S. Magus Magician in Samaria 13, 484-485 Sirin [1] Persian Martyr, died in 599
Thalassius [4] Abbot ofaGreek monastery in the Libyan desert, 7th cent. 14, 360 Thecla Pupil of Paul and prominent saint of Late Antiquity, rst cent.
14, 420
Theodore Abi Qurra Bishop of Hazzan, 7th/8th cent. 14, 44950 Theodoretus [1] Bishop of Cyrrbus, tsthalf of the 5th cent. 14, 45051 Theodorus [I 25] T. of Mopsuestia Christian theologist, 4th/5th cent.
14, 463
{1 34] T. of Raithu Theologian, 7th cent. 14, 463-464 [135] Bishop of Paphos / Cyprus, mid-7th cent. BC 14, 464 [136] T. Studites Byzantine abbot and theologian, end of the 8th/beginning of the 9th cent.
14, 464-465
Socrates [9] Greek Church histo-
Sophronius Patriarch of Jerusalem, 634-638
Byzantine author, 12th cent.
13, 600-601 13, 651-652
Sozomenus Church historian, 5th cent. 13, 684 Stephanus [4] S. Protomartys First Christian martyr, approx. 40/50 13, 821-822
[6] Roman bishop, c. 400 Lyte)
[11] S. Melodus Byzantine hymn writer, 8th cent. 13, 825 [12] S. Diakonos Author of a vita of St. Stephanus the Younger, c. 800 13, 825-826
Sulpicius. [II 14] S. Severus. Latin hagiographer, c. 363-420
14, 465-466 Theodosius [II 2] T. I (the Great) Roman emperor 379-395
14, 471-475
Theodotion Proselyte from Ephe-
SUS
2nd/3rd cent. 14, 5 Synesius [1] S. of Cyrene Neoplatonist philosopher and bishop, c. AD 400 14, 24-25 Tarasius Patriarch of Constantinople, c. 730-806 14, 141-142 Tatianus [I 1] Christian apologist and theologian, 2nd cent. I4, 161-162
Tertullianus [2] Q. Septimius Florens T. Theologist and apologist, 2nd/3rd cents. 14, 307-312
stian hermeneutics, 4th cent.
15,54
Tzetzes [2] Ilohannes T. Byzantine scholar and author of an extensive oeuvre, c. AD 1110-1185
15, 74-77
Uranius [1] Bishop of Emesa, mid 5th cent. 15,119 [2] Bishop of Himeria, mid 5th cent.
15,119
4th cent. 15,130 Valens [3] Bishop of Mursa, 4th cent.
15,158
[4] Bishop of Poetovio, 4th cent.
15, 159 Valentinus [1] Christian theologian and poet, 2nd cent. 15, 165
Valerianus [4] Bishop of Aquileia, 2nd half of the 4th cent. 15, 168
Verecundus. Bishop and biblical exegete, 6th cent. 15,295 Victor [4] Name in Christian martyr texts and cults 15,395 [5] V. I. Bishop of Rome, AD
15, 395-396
Theognis [3] Bishop of Nicaea, early 4th cent. 14, 483-484 Theophanes [2] T. Homologetes Author of a world chronicle, late 8th/early 9th cents. 14, 503 Theophilus [4] T. of Antioch Christian apologist, late 2nd
[9] V. Vitensis Bishop in Africa, historian, 5th cent. 15, 397398 Victorinus V. of Poetovio Bible commentator, martyred AD 304
cent.
14, 505
[8] T. of Edessa Christian and astrologer, c. 695-785
Hebrew Bible into Greek,
15,53
Tyconius. Author of the first Chri-
[8] V. Tunnennensis Bishop in
cent. AD
Symmachus [I 2] Translator ofthe
Byzantine saint, 4th cent.?
189-198
14, 476-477
[6] Bishop of Alexandria, 4th/s5th
14, I-2
14, 990
Tychon [2] T. Thaumaturgus
Theodotos [10] Gnostic, period of Valentinus [1] 14, 479 [11] T. the Cobbler 14, 479
13, 940-941
Symeon [1] Monk and priest, 4th
14, 745
[I 2] Bishop ofBostra in Syria, 4th cent. 14,745 Tryphon [6] Philosopher and Christian martyr, 2nd cent.
Ursinus Christian deacon in Rome,
{1 37] T. Prodromos Versatile
13, 505-506
rian, C.400
14, 460-461
{I 29] Christian recruit 14, 462 [130] T. Anagnostes Lector at the Hagia Sophia, rst half of the 6th cent. 14, 462 [I 31] T. Askidas Bishop of Caesarea/Cappadocia, 6th cent.
Titus [I 1] Companion of Paul
cents.
14, 507
15, 402
Victricius Bishop of Ratomagus, c.
340 ~404/409 15, 402-403 Vigilius. Deacon, 6th cent. AD
Vincentius of Lerinum Theologist, sth cent. AD 15, 426-427
Wulfila Bishop of the Goths, c. 3 11-
ciples of Jesus 14, 593-594
Timotheus [12] T. II Ailuros Patriarch of Alexandria 457-460 and
14, 711-712
[13] T. IV Patriarch of Alexan-
dria 517-535
14,712
Tiridates [8] T. (IV?) ‘the Great’
14, 725
15, 397
15, 408-409
14, 506
[9] Cleric in Cilicia 14, 507 Theophylactus [2] Bishop of Nicomedia, c. 800 14, 518 Thomas [1] One ofthe twelve dis-
475-477
Africa, chronicler, 6th cent.
382/3
15, 788-791
Xiphilinus Byzantine jurist, and John VIII, patriarch of Constantinople, AD 1064-1075 15, 839 Xystus [1] (presumed) bishop of Rome 117-125 15,844 [2] Sixtus II, bishop of Rome,
257-258
15, 844-845
[3] Sixtus III, bishop of Rome,
432-440
15, 845-847
160
7. CHRISTIANITY
Zeno of Verona. Bishop of Verona, c.370
Zephyrinus. Bishop of Rome, c. 200 15,909 Zonaras Byzantine historian and ecclesiastical jurist
15, 950-951
Zosimus [4] Bishop of Rome, 417-
418
Ezechiel [1] Prophet
see Prophets
[2| Jud.-Hell. tragedian
15, 895-896
5, 283
Gabriel [1] (Archangel) Archangel
5 634
Gamaliel [1] G. I. ‘The Old Man’;
5, 681
[2] G. IL. Successor to Jochanan
8. Judaism Aaron Brother of Moses
1, 1-2
Abbahu Jewish teacher and rabbi, c. AD 250-320 1,8
Abraham [1] Biblical figure 1, 30 Adam Biblical first man 1, 132-
133
Alcimus [4] Jewish archiereus
I, 451
Aqiba Rabbi, c. AD 50-135 I, 920-921 Armilus Legendary name of an anti-Messiah 2, 13 Artapanus Author ofa ‘Moses novel’, 3rd/2nd cent. BC 2, 54 Baruch Jeremiah’s companion and scribe 2,516 Caiphas High priest, AD 18-36
2,925 David [1] King David 4, 107-108 Demetrius [29] Jewish-Hellenistic chronographer 4,252 Dositheus [7] Founder of the Samaritan sect of Dositheans 4, 696 Eleazarus [1] Son of Aaran and father of Pinhas 4, 893 [2] Guardian of the Ark of the Covenant in Kiryat-Yearim
4, 893
[3] High priest 4, 893
[4] Brother of Judas Maccabaeus
4, 893
[5] Pharisee 4, 893 [6] Priest and guardian of the temple treasure in Jerusalem 4, 893 [7] Son of Boethus, high priest
4, 893 [8] Son of Dinai, zelot 4, 893 [9] Son of the High Priest Ananias
4, 893
[14] E. ben Qallir. Representative
of piyyut poetry 4, 894
Elias [1] The prophet Elijah 4, 918-919 Eliezer ben Hyrkanos Rabbi, c. end tst/early 2nd cent. 4,920 Elisha ben Abuja Jewish scholar of the rst half of the 2nd cent. AD
4, 925
Esther Main figure of the book of the same name 5, 75-76 Eupolemus [1] Jew.-Hell. historian
5,192 [2] Pseudo-Eupolemus, Samari-
tan author
5,193
ben Zakkai 5, 681 [3] G. IIL. Son of Rabbi Jehuda ha-Nasi 5, 681 Ham Son of Noah 5, 1120 Hannas [1] Jew. high priest AD 6-25)
55 L125
[2] Son of H. [1]. AD 62 high priest
5, 1126
Henoch Biblical patriarch
6, 136-
137
Hesychius [2] A Jerusalem presbyter, sth cent. AD
6, 289
Hillel Rabbi, rst cent. BC/rst cent. AD 6, 327 Iannes and Iambres Two Egyptian magicians
6, 675
Iason [3] I. of Cyrene. Jew.-Hell. historian 6, 686 Iosephus [4] I. Flavius (Flavius Iosephus), Jew. Hell. historian, rst cent. AD 6, 920-922 Isaac [1] Son of Abraham and Sarah
6, 947-948
Isaiah Prophet and title of a biblical book 6,955 Ishmael, Ishmaelites Son of Abraham and Hagar 6,958 Jacob [1] Son of Isaac and Rebecca 6,
1163
Jehuda ha-Nasi Rabbi, approx. AD L7 5-217
6,
LL66-L167
Jeremiah Prophet and title of a biblical book 6, 1167-1168 Job Central figure in the eponymous book of the Bible 6,
1198-1199
Jonathan Name of several biblical figures 6, 1202-1203 Joseph Son ofJacob 6, 1203 Jossipon
6, 1204
Judith Jew, central figure of the eponymous book 6, 12221223 Kerub Composite creature 7, 4546
Magog Biblical proper name 8,
181-182
Manaemus [1] Essenian, rst cent. BC “834716
[2] In his youth, a companion of Herodes [4] Antipas 8,216 [3] see Menahem ben Yehuda Matthias Father of the historian losephus [4] Flavius 8, 491 Menahem ben Yehuda Leader in the Jewish-Roman War AD 6674
Menelaus [5] Jewish high priest of the Temple in Jerusalem, 2nd cent. BC
282
Ezra [1] Priest
grandson of Hillel
15,970-971
5, 281-
8,660
8, 680-681
Metatron Prince of angels in Jewish mystical literature 8, 793-794 Michael [1] Archangel 8, 850851
Moses Moses [1] Leader of the Israelites and conveyer of the Ten Commandments 9, 230-233 Nehemiah Jewish politician, 5th cent. BC
9, 616-617
Noah Main character in the story of the Flood 9,782 Onias [1] O. I. High Priest, father of Simon the Just, 4th/3rd cents. BC LO, 132-133 [2] O. Il. High Priest 10, 133 [3] O. Ill. High Priest, c. 200 BC EO, 133 [4] O. IV. High Priest, c. 160 BC IO, 133 Philo [I ro] Ph. Historicus. JewishHellenistic historian, before 40
BC
11, 54-55
{I 12] Ph. of Alexandria (Philo Judaeus), Jewish philosopher c.I5 BC-c.AD 50 11, 55-61 Phocylides [2] Pseudo-Phocylides. Hellenistic-Jewish author of a didactic poem 11, 145-146 Raphael Archangel in Jewish archaeology 12,395 Sambethe Jewish Sibyl 12, 923-
924 Sammael Negative angel figure in Jewish tradition 12,926 Sammai, Shammai Representative
of Pharisaic Judaism, c. 50 BCAD 30
12,926
Sandalphon Angel in rabbinic angelology 12, 950-951 Simon [5] Two Zadokid high priests at the temple of Jerusalem, 3rd cent. BC 13, 483 [7] 8. ben Setah Representative of
the Jewish Pharisees, rst cent. BC 13,484 [9] S. bar Giora Radical leader of
the Zealots, rst cent. 13, 485 Sirach Author ofa book ofaphorisms of the same name, c. 190 BC 13, 502-503 Solomon [1] Son of King David 13, 619
Yahweh Name of the God ofthe Israelites and Judaeans
15, 847-849 Zacharias [1] Stoned to death at the command of the king Joash, 9th cent. BC
15, 860
[2] The Old Testament prophet Zechariah, 520-518 BC 15, 860
[3] Father of Iohannes [39] the Baptist 15, 861
9. LAW
I61
[4] Son of Bareis, rst cent.
Cincius [1] C., L. Antiquarian
15, 861
Zerubbabel ‘Author’ of a pseudepigraphic Hebrew apocalypse, 7th cent. 15,912 9. Law
Cf. Subject Index 4. and CT index volume, Entry Index 4. Cf. Lists A.III.1-2. (Roman leges and senatus consulta) Cf. Subject Index 6.4. Acilius [I 4] A., L. Legal scholar, 2nd cent. BC 1, 99-100 Aelius [I 3] Ae. Gallus, C.Jurist, rst cent. BC 1, 202 {I rx] Ae. Paetus Catus, Sex.
Consul in 198 BC, jurist 1.208 {I 17] Ae. Tubero, Q. Jurist and historian, rst cent. BC 1, 204 {1 147] Marcianus. Jurist 3rd cent. IND aeons Aemilius [II 11] Macer. Jurist 3rd cent. AD
1, 217-218
Alaricus [3] II, King of West Goths,
AD 484-507
1, 424-425
Alfen(i)us [4] Consul suff. 39 BC
I, 503-504
Anatolius [1] Praefectus praetorio for Illyria, AD 356-360 1,650 [3] Professor of law in Berytus I, 650-651
Annius [I 8] T. Legal scholar at the _ time of Sulla 1,706 Antistius [II 3] Labeo, M. Lawyer, died before AD 22 1, 789-790 Aquillius [I 12] Gallus, C. Roman jurist, praetor in 66 BC 1, 933-
934 Arulenus [1] Caelius Sabinus, Cn. Pp teak
Ateius [6] A. Capito, C. Jurist, cos.
suff. AD 5 2,223 Atilicinus Jurist, probably a student of Proculus 1st cent. AD 2, 287 Aufidius [I 7] Au. Namusa. Jurist, student of Servius Sulpicius Rufus, rst cent. BC 2, 336 {II x] Au. Chius. Juridical responGent 2337 Blaesus [2] Roman jurist
2, 687
Caecilius [III 1] C. Africanus, Sex. Jurist under Hadrian, 2nd cent. AD 2, 883-884 Callistratus [II 1] Provincial jurist, beginning of the 3rd cent. AD
2,991
Cascellius Roman jurist and official, rst cent. BC 2, 1150-1151 Charisius [x] C., Aurelius Arcadius. Roman jurist, c. AD 300
3, 197
Charondas Lawgiver, mid-7th cent. to end of the 6th cent. BC
3, 204-205
author, 1st cent. BC? 3, 3404I Claudius [I 2] C. Caecus, Ap. Censor 312 BC
3, 391-392
[IV 4] C. Saturninus. Jurist, 3rd Cent AD 3A Cocceius [5] M.C. Nerva. Cos. suff. AD 21 or 22, jurist 3,494 [6] (M.C.) Nerva. Son of C. [5], Coruncanius, Ti. Consul in 280 BC,
first plebeian pontifex maximus
3,855
Craterus [3] C. ‘the Macedonian’ Author of a collection of Athenian referenda 3,915 Cratinus [3] Comes sacrarum largitionum, professor of law, 6th cent. AD 3,924 Cyrillus [4] C. the Elder. Teacher of law in Berytus in the rst halfof the sth cent. AD 4, 13 [5] C. the Younger. Lawyer; under Justinian I wrote a Greek paraphrase (index) of the Digesta 4, 13 Diocles [3] Syracusan lawmaker and popular leader c. 410 BC
4, 423-424 Domitius [I 3] D. Ahenobarbus, Cn. Roman legatus and jurist c. 130 BC 4, 640-641 Dorotheus [10] Professor of law, 6th cent. AD 4,690 Draco [2] Athenian lawmaker c. 620 BC 4, 706-707 Euricus, Euric King of the West GothsAD 466-484 5, 195-196 Fabius [II 15] F. Mela. Roman jurist in the Augustan period 5,299 Fidelis Lawyer in Rome; quaestor
palatii AD 527/8 5, 413-414 Flavius [I 2] F., Cn. Published the judicial forms about 300 BC
and theologian, 6th cent. AD 6, 898-899
lulianus [1] L. Octavius Cornelius P. Salvius I. Aemilianus. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1043-
1044 anus. From Sardeis, official end of rst cent. AD 6, 1065-1066 [IV 2] I. (Gallus?) Aquila. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD
6, 1080
[IV 16] I. Paulus. Roman jurist, approx. AD 150-230 6, 1084-1085 Iunius [II] 1] I. Brutus, M. Praetor c. 140 BC, jurist 6, 1105 {UI 4] I. Mauricianus. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1106 Tuventius [II 2] P. I. Celsus T. Aufidius Hoenius Severianus. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD 6, 1151
Laelius [II 4] L. Felix Roman lawyer, 2nd cent. AD 7,167 Leontius [4] Professor of law in Berytus, 5th cent. AD 7, 408 [5] Professor of law in Berytus, 6th cent. 7, 408 Licinius [II 22] M. Cn. L. Rufinus Knight, jurist, 3rd cent. AD
7, 540-541 Livius [I 5] L. Drusus, C. Respected Roman jurist
7,742
Lycurgus [4] Legendary founder of the order of Sparta 7, 932-933 Marinianus [1] Jurist, teacher of law in Rome, 4th cent. 8,354 Mauropous, Iohannes Byzantine
scholar and bishop, founder of a school of law c. AD tooo 8, 498 Minicius [1] rst-cent. Roman jurist
9, I
5.457
Florentinus [3] Author of abook of legal doctrine, 2nd cent. AD
5, 469
Fufidius [3] Lawyer of the rst cent.
AD 5, 571 Fulcinius [II 2] F. Priscus Jurist in
5, 574
Fulvius [II 2] L.F. Aburnius Valens
Jurist in the 2nd cent. AD
5 583-584
Iohannes [28] I. Scholastikos. Jurist
Iulius [II 40] Ti. I. Celsus Polemae-
jurist 3,494
the Augustan period
Iavolenus [2] C. Octavius Tidius Tossianus L.I. Priscus. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD 6, 693
Furius [II 1] F. Anthianus Jurist of the 3rd cent. BC 5, 618 Gaius [2] Jurist of the Antonine period 5, 642-644 Gregorius [II 1] Lawyer, magister libellorum, 3rd cent. AD 5, 1029 Hermogenianus Jurist, magister libellorum AD 293-295 6,236
Modestinus Herennius Roman
jurist, pupil of Ulpian, 3rd cent. 9, 109-110 Moses [1] Leader of the Israelites and conveyer of the Ten Commandments 9, 230-233 Mucius [I 9] M. Scaevola, Q. (“Pontifex”) Cos. 95 BC 9, 258 Neratius [5] L.N. Priscus Consul suff. 97, Roman jurist 9, 664— 665
Nicodorus Athlete and legislator in Mantinea
9,725
Octavenus. Roman jurist, rst-2nd cents. AD to, 18 Ofellius. [2] O., A. Roman jurist ILO, 60
Ofilius, Aulus Friend and agent of Caesar, jurist, rst cent. AD 10, 64
9. LAW
162
Pactumeius [2] P. P. Clemens.
Roman senator and lawyer 10, 324 Papinianus, Aemilius. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD 10, 483-
Terentius [III 2] T. Clemens Roman jurist, mid—2nd cent. AD 14, 288-289
Tertullianus [1] Roman jurist, c.
200
14,307
Papirius. [II 4] P. Fronto. Roman jurist, 2nd cent. AD £0, 490 (IL 5] P. lustus. Roman jurist or
archive official, c. AD 170
10, 490
cent.
14, 360
Theodorus [I 32] T. Scholastikos Byzantine legal scholar from Hermupolis, 2nd half of the 6th cent.
14, 463
Patricius [2] Professor of Law at
Titius [II 2] T. Aristo Roman jurist,
Berytus 10, 614 Paulus [II 1] Senator of praetorian rank, rst cent. AD 10, 636-645 Pedius. [2] $.P. Roman lawyer, tst/2nd cent. 10, 676 Pegasus [3] Roman jurist, city pre-
member of Trajan’s consilium in Cc. 100 14,743 Trebatius [2] T. Testa, C. Roman lawyer, rst cent. BC 14, 881 Tribonianus Minister of Justice under Iustinianus [1] I 529-532 14, 9OI-902 Tryphoninus. Roman jurist, c. 200
fect, end of the rst cent. 10, 678-679
Pheidon [1] From Corinth, legisla-
tor, early 7th cent. BC 10, 945 Pittacus Tyrant of Mytilene, one of the Seven Sages, c. 600 BC II, 308-309
Plautius. [I] 1] Roman lawyer, end of the rst cent. AD 11, 359 Polydorus [8] Legislator in Syracuse, 3rd cent. BC 11, 522 Pomponius. [III 3] S. P. Roman lawyer and author, 2nd cent. Tse Ore 5,02) Porcius. [I 9] P. Cato Licinianus, M. Roman lawyer, legate, eldest son
of Cato [1], died in 152 BC
IT, 634 Proculus. [1] Roman jurist, rst cent. Il, 926-927
Romanius Hispo. Rhetor and advocate, early Imperial Period 12, 662
Rutilius. [I 3] R. Rufus, P. Roman politician and jurist, 2nd/rst cents. BC 12, 794-795 {Il 7] R. Maximus. Roman jurist,
3rd cent. 12,797 Sabinus [II 5] Mas(s)urius S. Jurist
ofthe Sabinian school of law, rst cent.
12, 817-818
Scaevola [1] Q. Cervidius S$. Roman
lawyer, 2nd cent. 13, 45 Solon [1] S. of Athens Poet, legislator, c.600 BC 13, 620-625 Stephanus [8] Law professor in Constantinople, 6th cent. 13, 824
Sulpicius. [I 23] S. Rufus, Ser. Roman politician and jurist, rst cent. BC 13, 936-937 Symmachus [II 3] Memmius Vitrasius Orfitus Honorius Respected Roman lawyer, 4th cent. 14, 6 Taruttienus Paternus Jurist, leader of the chancellery ab epistulis Latinis 171-173 14, 159-160
14,990 Tuscianus Lawyer, head of the Sabine law school, beginning of
the 2nd cent. 15, 40 Ulpianus Roman jurist of the Severan period, c.200 15, 85-86 Ulpius [8] U. Marcellus Roman jurist of equestrian origin, 2nd Genta ES 15 Urseius Ferox Roman lawyer, 1st cent.
1, 864 Bathycles Sculptor and architect
2, 557
Bupalus Sculptor and Architect 550-525 BC 2, 823 Byzes Architect from Naxos, c. 600 BC 2, 858-859 Callicrates [3] Greek architect and builder (2) of the 5th cent. BC 2, 966-967
Celer [4] Nero’s architect, rst cent. AD 3, 68 Cestius [I 1] C. Architect in the late republican period 3, 168 Cetius Faventinus, M. Latin author, 3rd cent. AD (?) 3,170 Chersiphron Architect, 6th cent.
BG 35t2—2 3 Cocceius [1] C. Auctus, L. Architect, late 1st cent. BC 3, 493 Coroebus [4] Greek architect in Eleusis 3, 841 Cossutius [1] Architect mentioned by Vitruvius 3, 874 Daphnis [2] Greek architect from Miletus 4, 83-84 Deinocrates [3] Architect and
15, 130
Venuleius [5] Q. V. Saturninus
Roman jurist under the Antonines, 2nd cent. AD
1, 862-863
[x7] of Athens. Architect
Thalelaeus Professor of law, 6th
484
Apollodorus [14] of Damascus. Engineer and military architect of the Roman imperial period
15, 283-284
Vindius Verus Roman jurist, cos.
suff. 138 15, 432
Vivianus Roman lawyer, end of the tst cent. AD 15, 486 Volusius. [II 1] L. Volusius Maecianus Roman lawyer, pupil of Tulianus [1], 2nd cent. AD
15, 518-519
Xiphilinus Byzantine jurist, and John VIII, patriarch of Constantinople, AD 1064-1075
15, 839 Zacharias |5| Legal adviser and historian, 465/6 — after 536 15, 861
Zaleucus Legendary Greek legislator from Locri, 7th/6th cents. BC 15, 870
10. Architecture and art history 1o.t. ARCHITECTS LIST OF SCULPTORS, PAINTERS AND POTTERS. 10.2. ARTISTS AND CRAFTSMEN Cf. List E.II. (Chronological table of classical archaeology) 10.1. Architects List of sculptors, painters and potters Cf. Subject Index 6.4. Anthemius [3] of Tralles. Mathematician and architect 1,723
urban planner of the early Hellenistic period 4, 184-185 Eupalinus Architect and engineer on Samos 5,176 Hermocreon [1] Greek architect, 3rd cent. BC 6,230 Hermodorus [4] Greek architect, 2nd cent. BC 6, 231-232 Hermogenes [4] Hellenistic architect from Alabanda 6, 232-234 Hippodamus Of Miletus, Greek architect, town planner and political theorist, 5th cent. BC 6, 365-366 Ictinus Architect, 5th cent. BC 6, 708-709
Isidorus [12] — [13] Two architects of the Hagia Sophia in Constantinople, 6th cent. AD
6,965
Leonidas [8] Greek architect from Naxos, worked in Olympia 7, 401-402 Libon Greek architect from Elis,
mid. 5th cent. BC
7, 496-497
Mandrocles Architect of Samos,
built the pontoon bridge over the Bosporus in 513/2 BC 8,229 Megacles [7] Greek architect, 5th cent. BC 8, 594-595 Metagenes [2] From Knossos, architect, 6th cent. BC 8,775 [3] From Attica, Greek architect
8,775 Mnesicles [1] Greek architect, c.
430 BC 9, 99-100
163
10.2. ARTISTS AND CRAFTSMEN
Paeonius [2] From Ephesus, Greek architect, 4th cent. BC 10, 335 Philo [I 6] Ph. of Eleusis. Greek architect, 4th cent. BC 11, 5232)
Philocles [5] P. of Acharnae. Athenian architect 11, 65 Polyclitus [3] Of Argos, a perhaps legendary architect 11,514 Pothaeus Greek architect mentioned by Pausanias see Megacles vi
Pytheus Late Classical Greek architec and sculptor from Priene 12, 290-291 Rhoecus [3] From Samos, Greek architect of the archaic Period
12, §74-575 Satyrus [2] Greek architect and sculptor of the late Classical period 13,37 Sostratus [1] Of Cnidus, Greek architect, rst half of 3rd cent. BC 13, 662-663
Stasicrates Hellenistic architect in Plutarch 13,786 Theodorus [I 1] Of Samos, Greek architect, bronze sculptor and inventor, Archaic period
14, 452-453 {I 6] T. of Phocaea Architect, late
Classical period 14,455 Theodotos [1] Greek architect,
c.370 BC 14, 477
Vettius [I 3] V. Chrysippus Architect?, rst cent. BC 15, 357 Vitruvius [2] Roman Architect and writer on Architecture, 1st cent.
BC 15, 480-484 Zeno [16] Architect, c. 140-170 15, 894
10.2. Artists and craftsmen On lists of sculptors, painters and potters cf. Subject Index 7.i.-7.6. Achelous Painter Painter of Attic vases, c. 520-500 BC
1, 86
Achilles Painter Important Attic vase painter
1, 96-97
Acropolis 606, painter of Attic black-figured vase painter, c. 570/560 BC 1, 113 Aeson [2] Attic red-figured vase painter, c. 435-415 BC 1,255 Aetion Greek painter of the late classical period 1,274 Affecter Attic black-figured vase painter
1, 288
Agasias [2] Sculptor from Ephesus, tst cent. BC 1, 309-310 [3] Sculptor from Ephesus, 130Too BG 1,310 Agathangelus [1] Gem cutter, 1st cent. BC 1,310 Agatharchus Greek painter, 5th Cent, BE Wye El 312
Ageladas Bronze sculptor from Argus, recorded since 520 BC
I, 322-323 Agesander Son of Paeonius 1, 335 Aglaophon [1] the Elder. From Thasos, father and teacher of Polygnotus [1] 1, 343 [2] the Younger. Possibly grand-
son of [t] 1, 343
Agoracritus Sculptor from Paros, master of the high-classical period in Athens 1, 355-356 Alcamenes [2] Sculptor of the high classical period in Athens
I, 439-440 Alexander [33] Son of Menides, sculptor 1, 486 Alexas Father of Aulus [2] 1, 500 Altamura Painter Attic red-figured vase painter
1, 883 Arcesilas Painter Laconian vase painter 1,972
Arcesilaus [7] Sculptor, in Rome during the late Republic 1, 974O75
Archelaus [9] Sculptor from Priene,
2nd/tst cent. BC 1, 983 Archermus Sculptor from Chios
1, 984 Archicles [1] see Little-master cup
1, 543
Alxenor Sculptor from Naxos
1, 553
Alypus Bronze sculptor from Sikyon 1,554 Amasis Painter Attic black-figured vase painter c. 5 60/5 50-5 20/50 BC 1, 561-562 Ammonius [7] Artist, c. AD 159
1, 589 Amphion [3] Sculptor on Cnossus, 5th cent. BC 1, 604 Anaxagoras [1] Bronze sculptor of Aegina, 5th cent. BC 1, 656 Andocides Painter Anonymous Attic vase painter of the late Archaic Age, 530-515 BC 1, 678-679
Angelion Sculptor in archaic times 1, 694 Antenor [2] Sculptor from Athens, sth cent. BC 1, 720-721 Antignotus Bronze sculptor in Athens 1,745
Antigonus [6] Bronze sculptor in Pergamum, c. 241-159 BC
55%
(7, 729-730) Argeadas Bronze sculptor from Argus 1, 1058 Aristander [2] Bronze sculptor from Paros, c. 405 BC 1, 1089 Aristias [1] Sculptor from Aphrodisias, early 2nd cent. AD
I, 1094 Aristides [5] Bronze sculptor, c. 400 BGw
Paros, 1st cent. BC
1, 776-777
Antiphilus [4] Hellenistic Greek
painter, from Egypt 1,778 Antiphon Painter Attic red-figured vase painter
1,782
Apellas [1] Bronze sculptor, 4th cent. BC
1, 820-821
[2] from Pergamum
1, 821 Apelles [4] Greek painter, 4th cent. 1, 821-822
Aphrodisius Son of Lybius 1, 831 Apollodorus [15] of Athens. Greek painter
1, 863
[16] Sculpted bronzes in Athens, rst half of 4th cent. BC 1, 863-864
Tar TOS
[6] Tivo Greek painters
1, 1101
Aristion [2] Sculptor of Paros, 2nd half of the 6th cent. BC 1, 1102 Aristocles [2] Sculptor in Athens towards the end of the 6th cent. BC 1, 1106-1107 Aristophon [3] Greek painter from Thasos, 2nd half of the 5th cent. BEwie rm 3\5 Asclepiodorus Greek painter from Athens 2, 99-100 Aspasius [4] Name of two gemcutters
2,168
Asteas Leading representative of
Paestan red-figured vase painting 2,
Antimenes Painter Attic black-figured vase painter 1,755 Antiochus [24] Athenian sculptor, late rst cent. BC 1,769 Antiphanes [4] Sculptor from
BC
Apollonius [18] Sculptor from Tralleis 1, 883 [19] Sculptor from Athens, rst cent. BC 1, 883 [20] Sculptor from Athens, late republican period 1, 883 [21] Sculptor of the early imperial period 1, 883 [22] Hellenistic gem-cutter
189-190
Athanadorus Son of Agesander Ap PES, Athenion [3] Stonecutter in the 3rd Cent, BE 252.51 Athenis Sculptor from Chios 2, 251-252 Attalus [9] Sculptor from Athens, 2nd cent. BC 2, 308 Attillus Mosaicist 2, 327 Aulos [2] Stonemason of the rst cent. BC 2, 378-379 Baltimore Painter Apulian vase painter from the last quarter of the 4th cent. BC 2, 482 Bathycles Sculptor and architect
b, 557 Baton [3] (Bathon) Hellenistic sculptor 2,558 Berlin Painter Painter of Attic redfigured vases 2, 604-605
10.2. ARTISTS
AND
Boedas Sculptor in Byzantium c. 300 BC 2, 694 Boethus [7] Artist 2, 708 [8] Bronze sculptor from Calchedon 2,709 [10] Artist 2, 709 [12] Sculptor 2,709
[13] Gem cutter of the 2nd cent. BO 25 709 Bryaxis Carian sculptor c. 350 BC
2, 795-796 Brygus Painter Attic vase painter, sth cent. BC 2, 796-797
Bupalus Sculptor and Architect 550-525 BC
2, 823
Butades Legendary sculptor of kouroi, 7th cent. BC 2, 837 Butes [2] Sculptor, 4th cent. BC 2, 838 C-Painter
164
CRAFTSMEN
see Siana cups
(13, 410) Caecosthenes Bronze sculptor from Athens 2, 889 Calamis Greek sculptor 2, 928-
930
Calliades [2] Sculptor 2,960 Callicles [2] Sculptor in bronze from Megara 2,965 [3] Greek painter 2,965 [4] Son of Eunicus 2,965 Callicrates [2] Sculptor in Laconia 2,966
[7-8] Two sculptors 2, 968 Callimachus [2] Sculptor 2,972 [6] Sculptor from Athens 2,979
Callistratus [I 3] Bronze sculptor 2,990
Calon [1] Sculptor from Aegina 2,993
[2] Bronze sculptor from Elis
2,994 Canachus [1] Sculptor from Sicyon
2, Og 2 [2] Bronze sculptor from Sicyon
2, 1032-1033 Cantharus [4] Bronze sculptor from Sicyon, 3rd cent. BC 15, 10161017 Cavalcade Painter Main master of
[5] Late Corinthian vase painter from around 560/550 BC
3,194
Chicago Painter Attic vase painter, mid—sth cent. BC 3, 217 Chigi Painter Late proto-Corinthian vase painter, c. 640 BC 3, 220 Chirisophus [2] Silversmith of the Augustan period 3, 233 Cimon [4] Greek painter from Cleonae, c. 500 BC 3, 339 Cleanthes [1] Painter from Corinth
35 413
Clearchus [1] Bronze sculptor from Rhegion 3, 414 Cleiton Sculptor 3, 422 Cleomenes [9] Name used by Greek sculptors 3,434 Cleon [2] Bronze sculptor from
Sicyon 3, 435 [7] Gem cutter
3, 436
Cleophon Painter Attic red-figured vase painter
3, 447-448
Cleophrades Painter Attic vase painter, c. 510-475 BC 3, 448-
449 Clitias Attic black-figured vase
painter 3, 455-456
Codrus Painter Attic red-figured vase painter 3, 504 Colotes [1] Sculptor from Heraclea im Elis 3, 582 Coponius [2] Roman sculptor, c. 55
BC
3,769
Cossutius [2] Kossutios Cerdo, M.
Greek sculptor 3,874 [3] C. Menelaus, M. Greek sculp-
tor 3, 874-875
Cresilas Bronze sculptor from Cydonia 3,932 Critius Bronze sculptor from Athens 3, 946-947 Criton [3] Sculptor from Athens
3.949 35.949 3973
3, 136
Daedalus [1] Mythical craftsman,
Cephisodotus [4] Sculptor from Athens 3,137 [5] Sculptor from Athens Oe 1th)
Cesnola Painter Vase painter of the late geometric period 3, 166 Chaereas [4] Sculptor in bronze
3,174
Chaerestratus Attic sculptor, c. 300
BC
3,175
Chares [4] Sculptor in bronze from Lindos, c. 300 BC 3, 194
3 1045
sculptor and inventor
45-3 537
[2] Bronze sculptor from Sicyon, sth/4th cent. BC 4, 37 Daitondas Bronze sculptor from Sicyon
4,94 Deinomenes [4] Bronze sculptor,
around 4th cent. BC 4, 186 Demetrius [44] Sculptor in Miletus, CTOOBG 4,258
[45] Sculptor or workshop proprietor,c.155 BC 4,258 [46] Greek painter, from the 1st half of the 2nd cent. BC 4,258
[47] Sculptor from Rhodes, 2nd/tst cent. BC
4, 40
Dameas [1] (also: Demeas) Sculptor from Croton 4, 59
[2] Bronze sculptor from Cleitor,
c. 405 BC 4,59
Damocritus Sculptor from Sicyon 4,64
4,258
[48] Attic bronze sculptor, 4th cent. BC 4, 258-259 Dexamenus [2] of Chios. The most important gem cutter of the period c.400 BC 4,329 Dinos Painter Attic red-figured vase painter
4, 422
Diogenes [23] Sculptor from Athens, c.25 BC 4,456 Dionysius [47] Bronze sculptor from Argus 4, 490-491
[48] Son of Timarchidus, from the Athenian sculptor family of Polycles 4, 491% [49] Son of Apollonius, sculptor from Athens 4,491 [50] Roman portrait painter of the 1st cent. BC 4,491 Dioscorides [7] Mosaicist from Samos, rst cent. BC 4, 516 [8] Gem cutter of the Augustan era 4,516 Dipoenus Sculptor from Crete 4, 529
Dipylon Painter Attic vase painter 4, 532-533
Dodwell Painter Middle Corinthian 4, 607-608
Doedalses [1] Sculptor whose existence is contested
Ctesicles [2] Sculptor from Athens
580 BC 3,49
Cephisodorus [3] Bronze sculptor
Darius Painter Apulian vase painter
vase painter
[4] Sculptor from Athens
[3] Hellenistic painter 3,973 Ctesidemus Greek painter 3,973 Cydias [3] Painter of Cythnus
the Gorgoneion group active c.
Damophilus [1] Coroplast and painter, c. 493 BC 4, 66 Damophon Sculptor from Messene 4, 67
4, 608
Dokimasia Painter Attic red-figured vase painter 4, 615 Dontas Sculptor from Sparta 4, 670
Dorotheus [1] Bronze sculptor from Argos, 5th cent. BC 4, 689 [2] Painter, from the mid rst cent. AD
4, 689
Duris [2] Painter of Attic red-figure bowls, c. 505-465 BC 4,746-
747 Ecphantus [1] Greek painter from Corinth, active probably in the mid 7th cent. BC 4,799 Eetion [7] (also Aetion). Sculptor who created an Asclepius statue for the physician Nicias 4, 837
165
10.2. ARTISTS
Endoeus Sculptor in Athens
4, 970 Epictetus [1] Attic red-figured vase painter, c. 520-490 BC 4, 1068-1069
Epigonus [1] Sculptor in Pergamum
4, 1098 Eretria Painter Attic rf. vase painter
5525 Ergotimus Attic potter
5, 29-30
Eubulides [4] Sculptor 5, 131-132 [5] Sculptor 5, 132 Eucharides Painter Attic vase pain-
ter 5,134
Eucheir Sculptor in Athens 5, 134 Euclidas [2] Syracusan die cutter, c. 410-100 BC 5,136 Euclides [5] Sculptor from Athens
5,142
Eudemus [1] Sculptor in Miletus, tst half of the 6th cent. BC
55145
Eumares Painter in Athens 5, 163 Eumenus One of the earliest Syracusan stamp cutters
5,168
Euphranor [1] Sculptor, painter
and art critic in Athens, c. 364-
Gitiades Bronze sculptor from Sparta 5,854 Glaucias [1] Bronze sculptor from Aegina 5, 866-867 Glaucus [6] Bronze sculptor from Argus, middle ofthe 5th cent. BC 5, 870 Glaukytes see Little-master cups
(7, 729-730)
Glycon [4] Sculptor from Athens, 3rd cent. AD 5, 881 Gnaeus Glyptographer of the Roman republic 5, 882 Gorgias [1] Sculptor, late 6th cent.
BC
5,933
Gorgo Painter Attic red-figured vase painter 5,940 Hectoridas Sculptor, approx. 370
BC
6, 44
Hegias [1] Sculptor, c. 490-480 BC 6, 55 Helena [4] Painter from Egypt, 2nd half 4th cent. BC 6, 64-65 Helicon [3] Weaver from Salamis/Cyprus 6,70 Heliodorus [3] Sculptor from Rhodes, c. 100 BC
6,71
AND
CRAFTSMEN
Iason [5] Sculptor from Athens, 2nd cent. AD
6, 686
Iliupersis Painter Apul. vase painter, 4th cent. BC 6,729 Inscription Painter Leading master of the early Chalcidian vase painting, c. 560-540 BC 6, 823 Iphion Greek painter from Corinth, probably rst half 5th cent. AD
6, 929-930
Ismenias [5] Greek painter from Chalcis, end of 4th cent. BC 6, 978-979 KX painter see Komast cups (7, 88) Leochares Greek sculptor, 4th cent.
BC
7, 393-394
BC
7,936
Lewis Painter Attic red-figured vase painter, c. 470/460-4 50/440 BC 7, 460 Lucillus [2] Roman wall painter, late 4th cent. AD 7,854 Lycius Bronze sculptor from Eleutherae, 5th cent. BC 7, 921 Lycurgus Painter Apulian vase painter, middle of the 4th cent.
361 BC 5, 184-185 Euphron [1] Sculptor from Paros,
Hephaestion [2] Sculptor from Athens, c. r00 BC’ 6, 138-139
Lydus [2] Attic black-figured vase
sth cent. BC 5,189 Euphronius [2] Attic vase painter and potter of the late archaic period, c. 520-500 BC 5, 190191 Euthycrates [2] Sculptor from Sicyon 5, 233 Euthymides Attic red-figured vase
Heraclidas Sculptor from Atrax,
Lysias [8] Son of Pyrrhandrus
painter 5, 235-236 Eutyches [1] Gem-cutter of the 1st cent. AD 5,240
Eutychides Sculptor and painter from Sikyon 5,241 Evaenetus The most famous and best of the Syracusan coin-engravers 5,242 Evander [4] (C. Avianus) Sculptor, toreutic artist, restorer in Athens 5,246 Evarchidas Syracusan coin-engra-
ver 5,247
Evenor [1] Athenian sculptor, c.
490-470 BC
5, 247
Evergides Painter Anonymous Attic
bowl painter 5,249 Execias Influential potter and vase painter
5, 259-260
Felix [1] Gem-cutter of the Roman Republican period 5,378 Florence Painter Attic red-figured vase painter 5, 468 Foundry painter Attic red-figured vase painter
5, 533
Gamedes Boeotian potter 5, 682 Geneleus Sculptor of the archaic period 5,748
4th cent. BC 6, 166 Heraclides [28] Greek painter, 3rd cent. BC 6,174 [29] Sculptor from Ephesus, 2nd cent. AD 6,174 [30] Painter from Macedonia, 2nd cent. BC 6,174 Hermocles [2] Bronze sculptor from Rhodes 6, 229 Hermogenes [5] Sculptor from Cythera 6,234 [6] Painter from Antioch, approx. 175-205 AD 6,234 [11] see Little-master cups
(7, 729-730) 6, 237
Hermonax [1] Att. red-figure vase painter, approx. 475-450 BC
6, 239 Herodotus [4] Sculptor from Olynthus 6,272 Herophilus [2] Gem-cutter of the Imperial period 6,276 Hirschfeld Painter Att. vase painter, after 750 BC 6, 381-382 Hunt Painter Main master of the Lacon. vase painting, c. 560-540
6,579
Hyllus [3] Gem-cutter of the Imperial period 6, 611-612 Hypatodorus Bronze sculptor from Thebes, middle of 5th cent. BC 6, 629
Hyperechius Gem-cutter, Roman
Imperial period
8, 13
8, 36
Lysippides Painter Attic black-figure vase painter 8, 43-44 Lysippus [2] Bronze sculptor from Sicyon, c. 372-309 BC 8, 44-
45
Lysistratus [2] Bronze sculptor from Sicyon 8,46 Lyson [3] Greek bronze sculptor 8, 47 Macron Attic red-figure vase painter, c. 490-470 BC 8, 104 Marsyas Painter Attic red-figure vase painter, 4th cent. BC
8, 407
Hermolaus [2] Sculptor
BC
painter
6, 632
Medon [6] Spartan sculptor 8, 590
Meidias Painter Attic painter of red-figured vases, active c. 420405 BC
8, 609-610
Meidias [4] Greek bronze sculptor, before 202/201 BC. 8, 609 Melanthius [5] (also Melanthus)
Representative of the Sicyonian school of painting, c. 370-330 BC
8, 619-620
Melas [4] Alleged progenitor of the Chian school ofsculpture 8, 622
Meleager Painter Attic relief vase painter, early 4th cent. BC 8, 628
Menaechmus [4] Sculptor of Naupactus, 5th cent. BC? 8,659 Menander [7] Sculptor of Athens, 2nd cent. BC
8, 667
10.2. ARTISTS
AND
[10] Sculptor of Docymeum 8, 667-668
Menas [3] Sculptor from Pergamum, 2nd cent. BC 8, 670 Menecrates [8] Greek sculptor, 2nd cent. BC 8, 673 [10] Sculptor from Thebes, fl. 140 BC 8, 674 Menelaus [10] Greek sculptor,
early imperial period
Niobid Painter. Attic red-figured vase painter, 5th cent. BC
9; 772-773 525-500 BC
10, 92-93
Onatas [1] Bronze sculptor from Aegina, sth cent. BC 10, 127128
[2] Gem cutter, Classical period LG. 025
Onesas Gem cutter, Hellenistic period 10, 129-130 Onesimus [1] Gem cutter Syries
see
8, 698
Mentor [4] Greek Toreutic 8,705 Micali Painter Etruscan vase-painter of the black-figure style, c. 530-500 BC 8, 849 Micciades Founder of a family of sculptors from Chios? 8,850 Micon Athenian painter and sculptor, 5th cent. BC 8, 855 Mnasitimus [1] Greek painter from Rhodes, later 3rd cent.
BC
95.94
[2] Various sculptors from one Rhodes family, 4th to 2nd cents. BC
9, 94-95
Myrmecides Sculptor in marble and toreutics, 6th cent. BC?
9, 415
Myron [3] Bronze sculptor from Eleutherat, 5th cent. BC
10, 334-
299
Pamphilus [2] Founder of the
school ofpainting at Sicyum, 4th cent. BC
10, 412
Pan Painter. Attic red-figured vase painter, 5th cent. BC 10, 422-
423
Panaenus Painter and sculptor from Athens, 5th cent. BC 10, 424 Paris Painter. Master of Pontic vase
painting of Etruria, 6th cent. BC
TO, 535
Parrhasius Greek painter from Ephesus, c. 440-380 BC
10, 556-557 Pasiteles Sculptor in Rome, rst cent.
BC to, 587-588 Patrocles [6] Bronze sculptor, c. 400-397 BC to, 621-622
[7] Sculptor, archaic period?
9, 417-418 Myron l[5] Sculptor from Thebes, 2nd cent. BC 9, 418-419 Mys [2] Toreutic sculptor and and fellow artist of Phidias 9, 425 Naucydes Bronze sculptor from Argos, c. 4th cent. BC
Mende, 5th cent. BC
9, 541
Nealces Member of the Sicyonian school ofpainting, 3rd cent. BC
IO, 622
Pausias Greek painter from Sicyon, 4th cent. BC 10, 653 Pauson Greek painter from Athens (2), sth cent. BC 10, 654 Penthesilea Painter. Attic red-figured vase painter, about 470-450
BC
10, 733-734
Nearchus [1] Attic Black-Figure vase painter, c. 560 BC 9, 584
Pergamus. Gem cutter, Classical Period 10, 772-773 Periclytus Sculptor, pupil of Poly-
Nettus Painter Attic black-figured vase painter, c. 620-600 BC
clitus, 4th cent. BC 10, 782 Perilaus [3] Greek worker in
9, 578
9, 688-689
Niceratus Athens, Nicias [3] Athens,
[3] Bronze sculptor from 3rd cent. BC 9,716 Greek painter from 4th cent. BC 9,719
Nicomachus [4] Painter ofthe late Classical period, c. 360-320 BC
9, 730
Nicophanes Painter of the Sicyonian school, 2nd half of the 4th cent. BC 9,740 Nicosthenes Attic potter, Black-
Figure vase painter (?), 6th cent.
BC
9, 744-745
bronze, 6th cent. BC
10, 784-
785 Phaedimus [6] Sculptor in Attica, 6th cent. BC 10, 893-894 Phiale Painter. Attic red-figured and white-ground vase painter, c. 450-425 BC 11,2 Phidias Athenian sculptor, sth cent. BC 1t, 3-5 Philiscus [7] Sculptor from Rhodes II, 44-4§
Philoxenus [5] Greek painter, end ofthe 4th cent. BC in Macedonia
ie, 1c
Liyi29
Phintias [2] Attic vase painter, 6th cent, BG £1, 130 Phradmon Bronze sculptor from Argos, 5th cent. BC 11, 190 Phrynus Painter. Attican black-figure vase painter, 6th cent. BC Eipzor Phyles Bronze sculptor from Halicarnassus, 3rd cent. BC
11, 213
Phyromachus Sculptor of Athens LL, 255-216
[2| Attic red-figured vase painter, CG 500 BC Lo, igZ1—132 Paeonius [1] Greek sculptor from
8, 695-696
Menophantus Greek sculptor, rst
Phineus Painter. Chief master of Chalcidian vase painting, c. 540520 BG
Oltus Attic vase painter, around
8, 682
Menestratus [7] Sculptor from Athens 8, 687 Menodorus [2] Name ofseveral Greek sculptors 8, 694-695 Menodotus [3] Several Greek sculptors of the same name
cent. BC
166
CRAFTSMEN
Pistoxenus Painter. Attic Vase Painter, c. 480-460 BC 11, 301-
302 Pleistaenetus Greek painter, middle of sth cent. BC 11,377 Polycles [2] Sculptor in bronze from Argos, 4th cent. BC 11, 510 [3] Several sculptors from Athens, 2nd cent. BC II, 510 Polyclitus [1] Greek bronze sculptor from Sicyon, 5th or 4th cent. BC 11, 511-513 [2] Sculptor from Argos EX; 9EF Polyeuctus [5] Greek sculptor in bronze, 3rd cent. BC 11, 523 Polygnotus [1] Greek painter and bronze sculptor 11, 523-525 [2] Attic Red-Figure vase painter, sth cent. BC 11, 525-526 Praxias Sculptor from Athens, 4th cent. BC
11, 783-784
Praxiteles Sculptor from Athens, 4th cent. BC 11, 786-788 Priam Painter. Attic late-black-figure vase painter, c. 500 BC 1, 816
Pronomus Painter Attic Red Figure vase painter, end of the 5th cent. BC 12, 12-13 Protarchus [5] Cameo sculptor, Hellenistic period 12, 65 Protogenes Hellenistic painter and bronze sculptor from Caunus 12, 71-72
Providence Painter Attic red-figured and white-ground vase painter
12, 81-82
Psiax Painter of Attic black-figured and red-figured vases, c. 525-505 BC 12, 122-123 Pyrgoteles Gem cutter, 4th cent. BC 12, 268
Pyrilampus Bronze sculptor probably 2nd or rst cent. BC 12, 269
Pyrrhus [2] Bronze sculptor from Athens, c. 430 BC 12,273 Pythagoras [4] Sculptor in bronze from Regium, sth cent. BC 12, 281-282
167
IL. SCIENCE
Python [5] Vase painter from Paestum, c. 360-330 BC
12, 299-
300 [7] Dish/bowl potters, 5th cent. BG a22300 Rycroft Painter. Late Attic blackfigure vase painter, c. 500 BC 12, 800
Sabouroff Painter. Attic red-figure vase painter, 5th cent. BC 12, 819
Sappho Painter. Attic vase painter, c. 510-490 BC
12,964
Satyrus [2] Greek architect and
sculptor of the late Classical period 13,37 Scopas [1] Sculptor from Paros, mid 4th cent. BC 13,99 [2] Sculptor from Paros, 2nd cent. BC 13,100 [4] Gem cutter, mid rst cent. BC
13, 100 Shuvaloy Painter. Attic red-figure vase painter, c. 440-410 BC
13, 409
Silanion Bronze sculptor from Athens, c. 325 BC 13,452 Simon [1] Sculptor in bronze from Aegina, c. 480-460 BC 13, 482 Skylax [2] Imperial Period gemcutter
14, 168
[3] Metal-worker of the late Hel-
lenistic period 14, 168 [4] Greek painter 14, 168 Tectaeus Greek sculptor, mid—6th
cent. BC 14,210 Thamyras Gem-cutter from the circle of Dioscurides 14, 364-
365
Smilis Sculptor from Aegina, 6th 13, 548-549
c.470 BC
13, 588
painter, c. 600-570 BC
13, 635-636 Sostratus [4] Gem cutter, rst cent. BC 13, 663
Sosus Greek mosaicist, 2nd cent. BC
13, 664
ter,c.450 BC
13, 666
Stephanus [3] Roman sculptor, 2nd half of the rst cent. BC 13, 821 Sthennis Bronze sculptor from Olynthus, 4th/3rd cents. BC
13, 834
Strongylion Bronze sculptor, sth/4th cents. BC 13, 884 Styppax Bronze sculptor from Cyprus, 5th cent. BC 13, 896 Swing Painter. Attic black-figure vase painter, c. 540-520 BC
13,979 Syries Gem-cutter in Euboea, 2nd
half 6th cent. BC 14,71 Syriscus Attic Red Figure vase painter, active c. 480-460 BC
14; 71-72
Taleides Painter Attic Black Figure vase painter, c. 550-530 BC
14, 120
435-410BC 15, 567 Xenocles [1] see Little-Master cups
(7, 729-730) Xenocrates [4] Sculptor from Athens, 3rd cent. BC 15, 810 Xenophon [4] Sculptor from Athens, 4th cent. BC 15, 833
Megara, late 5th cent. BC
14, 432
Zenodorus [4] Bronze sculptor and
Theon [1] Greek painter from Samos, 300 BC and after
14, 497 Thericles Corinthian potter, c.
sth/4th cent. BC 14, 535 Theseus Painter Attic late Black Figure vase painter, c. 505-485 BC 14, 562-563
Thrasymedes [2] Sculptor from Paros, c. 380-370 BC 14, 623 Timagoras [1] Greek painter and poet from Chalcis, c. 450 BC 14, 681
Timanthes [1] Greek painter from Cythnus, 5th/4th cents. BC
toreutist of the early Imperial period 15, 903-904 Zenodotus [6] Sculptor from Cnidus, c.150 BC
15,907
Zeuxiades Bronze sculptor, pupil of Silanion, after 307 BC 15, 926-
27 Zeuxis [1] Greek painter and sculptor, c. 435/25-390 BC 15, 928-
929 Zoilos [2] Name ofseveral sculptors of the 2nd-1st cents. BC
15,948 Zopyrus [9] Toreutist, rst cent. BC
15, 964 Zosimus [2] Marcus Canuleius
[2] Greek painter of the 2nd half of the 3rd cent. BC 14, 682-
Zosimus. Toreutic, rst cent.
I5, 970
683
Timarchides [1] Name in an Attic family of sculptors, 2nd cent. BC
14, 683
Timarchus [2] Sculptor from Athens, early 3rd cent. BC 14, 683 Timomachus [4] Greek painter from Byzantium, tst cent. BC
c. 580 BC 14,705 Timotheus [5] Greek sculptor, c.
380-350 BC
14, 709
Tisicrates Bronze sculptor from
Sicyon, beginning of the 3rd cent.
BC
14, 732-733
Tityus Painter Etruscan Black Figure vase painter, end of the 6th cent. BC 14,748 Tleson see Little-master cups (7, 729-730) Triptolemus Painter Attic Red Figure vase painter, c. 490-470
BC
mer
1,96
Agrippa [4] Astronomer, c. AD 100
painter, c. 560 BC
Amyntas [7] Bematistes of Alexander [II 4] 1, 625 Anthemius [3] of Tralles. Mathematician and architect
15,55
Villa Giulia Painter Attic Red Figure vase painter of the early Classical period (470-450 BC) Vulca Etruscan terracotta sculptor from Veit, 6th cent. BC 15, 531
1,723
Antiochus [23] Astrologist from Athens 1,769 Anubion Writer of an astrological didactic poem 1, 811-812 Apollonius [13] of Perga Greek mathematician, c. 260-190 BC 1, 879-881
Aratus [4] Hellenistic writer, 3rd cent. BC 1, 955-960 Archimedes [1] of Syracuse C. 287—
232 BC
14, 936-937
Tydeus Painter Corinthian vase
15, 420
11. Science and technology On nature philosophers cf. also Index of Persons 4. as well as Subject Index 11. and CT index volume, Entry Index 9. Achilles Tatius [2] Greek astrono-
1, 393
14, 702 Timonidas Corinthian vase painter,
Sotades Painter. Attic RF vase pain-
Washing Painter Athenian Red Figure vase painter, working c.
Roman portrait busts, early 2nd cent. AD 15, 881-882 Zeno [11] Frequently occurring sculptor’s name 15, 893
Socrates [1] Sculptor from Thebes, Solon [3] Intaglio artist, late 1st cent. BC 13, 625-626 Sophilus [1] Early Attic BF vase
TECHNOLOGY
Zenas Sculptor’s name on two
Theocles Sculptor from Sparta, mid-—6th cent. BC 14, 431-432 Theocosmus Sculptor from
14, 682
13,145
cent. BC
Tauriscus [2] Sculptor from Tralleis
AND
1, 993-998
Aristaeus [2] of Samos. Greek mathematician 1, 1087-1088
Aristarchus [3] of Samos. Greek mathematician 1, 1089-1090 Aristoteles [6] Aristotle, son of Nicomachus, of Stagira Philosopher and natural scientist, 4th cent. BC 1, 1136-1147
I1. SCIENCE AND
Asclepiodotus [3] Neoplatonic philosopher 2, 100 Attalus [7] Of Rhodes. Mathematician and astronomer, 2nd cent. AD
2,308
Autolycus [3] of Pitane. Mathematician, c.310 BC 2, 414-415 Bardesanes Aramaic philosopher and astrologer, AD 154-222 2, 507-508
Callinicus [3] Engineer from Heliopolis 2, 98% Callippus [5] C. of Cyzicus. Astronomer
Campestris Roman astrologer, possibly ofthe 3rd cent. AD
De LOL Carpus [2] C. of Antioch. Mathematician 2, 1126-1127 Cassiodorus Roman politician and
Cidenas Chaldean astronomer
35328
Cleomedes Astronomical author
35 431-432
Cleostratus Astronomer
3, 449-
450 Clodius [III 4] C. Tuscus. Author
3, 470-471
Conon [3] C. of Samos. Astrono-
mer and mathematician, friend of Archimedes 3, 693-694 Cornelius Bocchus Source ofPliny’s Naturalis Historia 3, 836-837 Critodemus [1] Astrologer of the Hellenistic period 3,947 Ctesibius [1] Inventor of pneumatics, rst half of the 3rd cent. BC
35 971-973 Deinostratus Mathematician, 4th cent. BC 4, 186-188
Diocles [8] Mathematician 4, 427 Diodorus [8] Mathematician in Alexandria 4, 441% [19] Metrologist 4, 445 Dionysius [25] Astronomer
[29] Ornithologist
4, 487
Dionysodorus [3] Mathematician
4, 494-495
Diophantus [4] Greek mathematician 4, 5tI-513 Dorotheus [5] Astrologist, 1st cent. AD 4,689 Dositheus [3] Pupil of the astronomer Conon
4, 695
Epigenes [5] Astrologer from Byzantium in 2nd cent. BC 4, 1096-1097 Eratosthenes [2] of Cyrene Natural scientist and philologist, 3rd cent. BC
5, 17-19
Euclides [3] (Euclid) Mathematician and music theorist, c. 300
BC
5, 138-142
gist and geographer 5, 143 Eudoxus [1] of Cnidus. Ancient mathematician and astronomer
55 150-153
5, 237-
238
Favonius [2] F. Eulogius. Student of Augustinus, later rhetor in Car-
thage 5,375 of the most comprehensive Lat. astrological handbook, 4th cent. Geminus [1] Astronomer and
mathematician 5, 737-738 Harpocration [3] Alexandrian author 5, 1152 Helicon [2] H. of Cyzicus. Mathe-
matician and astronomer, 4th 6,70
Hermotimus [2] Mathematician from Colophon 6,240 Hero [1] Of Alexandria, mathematician and engineer, tst cent. AD
6, 244-247 Hipparchus [6] H. of Nicaea Astronomer and geographer, 2nd cent.
Hippocrates [5] H. of Chios. Mathematician and astronomer,
5th cent. BC 6, 351-354 Hyginus, C. Iulius Philologist and polymath, Augustan period
8, 681-682
Menestor Pythagorean from Sybaris, botanist, 5th cent. BC 8, 686-687
mer und Geometrist end of 4th cent. BC 8, 814 Metrodorus [7] Astronomer of
unknown date 8, 838 Naburianus Babylonian astronomer
9, 483
Nechepso Pseudonyms of the authors of an astrological hand book, c. 150-120 BC
9, 590
Nepualius Medical-magical author, 2nd cent.? 9, 663 Nicagoras [3] Of Cyprus. Paradoxograph (?) 9,705 Nicomachus [9] N. of Gerasa Neo-
9, 731-734 Nicomedes [3] Greek mathemati-
clan 9,734-735 Nicon [4] N. from Pergamon.
Architect and geometrician
9,740
6, 606-607
Hypatia Neoplatonic philosopher, editor of the Almagest, died AD 6, 627-628
Hypsicles Hell. mathematician and astronomer, c. 175 BC 650
8; $7
Menaechmus [3] Mathematician, c. 400 BC 8,659 Menelaus [6] M. of Alexandria Greek mathematician and astro-
platonic mathematician, c. 100
BC 6, 336-338
6, 649-
Tulianus [19] I. of Laodicea. Astrological writer, c. AD 500 6, LO51
[22] I. of Ascalon. Probably Byz. writer on measurements of length, distance and acreage (among other things) 6, 0052
Lasus [2] L. of Magnesia Early Alexandrian astronomer 7,260
Leodamas |3] L. of Thasos Mathematician, c. 400 BC 7, 395 Leon [6] Greek mathematician, c.
7,397
[10] Byzantine philosopher, mathematician and astrono-
mer, 9th cent. AD 7,398 Leonides [4] L. of Alexandria Epigrammatic poet, originally an astronomer, tst cent. AD
» 403 Manetho [2] Author of an astrological hexametric didactic poem
8, 233
8, 240-243 Maximus [I 2] Astrologer, 2nd cent.
Meton [2] From Athens, Astrono-
5, 434-435
400 BC
poet at the time of Tiberius
nomer, c. AD 98
Firmicus Maternus, lulius Author
415
Manilius [III 1] Roman didactic
AD; [2]
Eutocius Mathematician
cent. BC
scholar, c. AD 490-590 2 yUOM—= WG 3
4, 486
Euctemon Astronomer, meteorolo-
AD
2,985-986
and orator
168
TECHNOLOGY
Niconidas Greek engineer, rst. cent. BC
9,740
Nigidius Figulus, P. Naturalist and grammarian, 1st cent. BC
9, 751-752 Oenopides Of Chios, astronomer and mathematician, 2nd half of the 5th cent. BC 10, 55 Pappus of Alexandria Greek mathematician, first half of the 4th cent. 10, 491-493 Paulus [I 2] P. of Alexandria. Writer on astrology, 4th cent. 10, 633634 Pedanius [1] Pedanius Dioscorides. Author on medicines, rst cent. AD 10, 670-672 Phaeax [4] Engineer of the drainage channels in Acragas, 5th cent. BC 10, 893
Phileas [1] Of Athens, Greek geographer, middle of the sth cent. BG ate 1 Philo [I 7] Ph. of Byzantium. Greek mechanic, beginning of 2nd cent. AD? 11, 53 {I 15] Of Gadara, mathematician, probably 2nd cent. AD Viste (2
Philonides [2] Of Laodicea, Epicurean and mathematician, 3rd2nd cents. BC 1x1, 87-88
169
12. MEDICINE
Plinius [1] P. Secundus, C. (Pliny the Elder). Roman historian and orator, 1st cent.
11, 383-390
Polemarchus [2] P. of Cyzicus. Greek astronomer, c. 380-370
BC
11, 454-455
Polyidus [4] Thessalian engineer, 4th cent. BC 11, 527 Porphyrius Of Tyre, Neoplatonist philosopher, c. 234-305/10 II, 646-652
Poseidonius [3] Stoic philosopher, scientist and geographer, 2nd cent. BC 11, 683-687 Priscianus Lydus Neoplatonic philosopher from Lydia, 6th cent. 11, 870
Proclus [2] Neoplatonist philosopher, sth cent. 11, 911-917 Ptolemaeus [65] Claudius P. Astronomer, author of seminal scientific works, 2nd cent. 12, 159170 Pythagoras [2] Philosopher, c. 600 BC 12, 276-281 Rhetorius Greek writer in Egypt, authority on astrology, before 640 12, 560 Seleucus [10] From Tarsus; specia-
list author on fishing; 2nd cent. BCSa 135220 [11] From Babylon; astronomer; GUsorB C13) 220 Serapion [1] S. of Antioch Mathematical geographer, rst cent. BC
13, 304
[4] Egyptian astrologer, 3rd cent.
13, 304 Serenus [3] Mathematician, pre-
sumably 4th cent.
13,312
Socrates [4] S. the Younger Greek
mathematician or philosopher
13, 599
Sosigenes [3] Astronomer, compu-
ted the Julian calendar for Caesar 13,658
Sporus [1] Mathematician, c. AD ZOO N 1351705706
Tarrutius Astrologer and philosopher, rst cent. BC 14,155 Theaetetus [1] T. of Athens, mathematician, c.400 BC 14, 372373
Theodorus [I 2] Of Cyrene, mathematician, sth cent. BC 14, 453-
454
[I 28] Engineer and philosopher, 5th cent. 14, 462 Theodosius [I 1] Greek mathematician and astronomer, 2nd/tst cent. BC 14, 468-469 Theon [5] Th. of Smyrna, mathe-
matician and philosopher, 2nd cent.
14, 498-499
[8] Th. of Alexandria, mathematician and astronomer, 4th cent.
14, 500-502
Theophilus [8] T. of Edessa Christian and astrologer, c. 695-785
14, 507
Theophrastus Peripatetic philosopher, c. 371/0-287/6 BC
14, 508-517
Theudius Of Magnesia, mathematician and philosopher, 4th cent. BCS 14,583 Timaeus [4] Greek astrologer, rst cent. BC 14, 680 Timocharis Greek astronomer, c. 300 BC 14, 695-696
Vettius [II 9] V. Valens Author of astrological treatises, 2nd cent.
15, 359-360
the 2nd cent. BC
15, 902-903
12. Medicine On physicians and medical writers cf. Subject Index 23. and CT index volume, Entry Index 9. Abas [2] Greek doctor 1, 6 Acesias Greek doctor 1, 67 Acron Greek philosopher 1, 113 Acumenus Greek doctor 1, 129 Adamantius [1] Doctor 1, 133 Aeficianus Greek doctor and philosopher, c. AD 150 1, 171172: Aegimius [3] of Elis. Greek doctor Teco Aelius Promotus Doctor and author, 2nd cent. AD 1, 207 Aetius [3] of Amida. Greek doctor and writer ofthe rst half of the 6th cent. 1,276 Africanus [1] Greek doctor 2nd or tst cent. BC 1, 300-301 Agathinus Greek doctor 1, 313-
314
Agathocles [12] Greek doctor of the 1, 317
Agnellus [of Ravenna] latrosophist
1, 345
Ahron Christian physician and presbyter in Alexandria, c. 600
15, 987-988 Alcamenes [1] of Abydus Greek
physician 1, 439 Alcon [5] Surgeon 1, 461 Alexander [29] of Tralleis. Greek doctor, c. AD 565 1, 484-485 [30] Author of medical treatises 1, 485 [31] Philalethes. Herophilean doctor, Augustan period
I, 485
681
Andromachus [4] the Elder, from Crete. Personal physician of Nero 1, 685 [5] the Younger. Author of books on medications, rst cent. AD
1, 685-686
Andronicus [6] Greek doctor and
author ofa medical formula
1, 688
Anthimus [1] Greek doctor In 726
Xenagoras [2] Mathematician and geographer, rst 3rd ofthe 2nd cent. BC or earlier 15,797-798 Xenocrates [5] X. of Ephesus Author of Lithika 15, 810-811 Zenodorus [1] Greek mathematician, probably at the beginning of
Augustan era
Alexion [1] Physician and friend of Cicero’s 1, 501 Andreas [1] Personal physician of Ptolemaeus Philopator 1, 680-
Antiochis [2] of Tlos. Female physician, middle ofthe rst cent. BC Ten OM 7162,
Antonius [II 19] Musa. Doctor, freedman of Augustus
1, 808-809
Antyllus [2] Greek physician and surgeon of the imperial period I, 810-811
Apollonius [16] A. of Citium. Doctor of the rst cent. BC
1, 881-882
[17] A. Mys. Herophilean physician from Alexandria, late tst cent. BC 1, 882-883 Apollophanes [2] Personal physician of Antiochos III 1, 884 Apsyrtus [2] of Clazomenae. Veterinary 1,916 Archagathus [3] Surgeon
1, 975-
976 Archigenes Physician
1, 989-990
Aretaeus Greek physician I, LOS I-1052 Aristoxenus [2] Greek physician Thy OGY Arruntius [II 1] Personal physician to Claudius 2,30 Arsenius [2] Fictitious author of a handbook on medicine 2, 33Artemidorus [7] of Alexandria.
Greek physician
2, 61
[8] Capiton. Published an edition
of the Hippocratic writings 2 Ol
Artorius, M. Doctor, rst cent. BC aI eto
Asclepiades [6] Of Bithynia Greek doctor in Rome 2, 96-98 [9] A. Pharmakion. Greek author of pharmacological writings
2,99 Athenaeus [6] From Attaleia, Pneumatic physician, rst cent. BC
2, 244-245
Bacchius [1] From Tanagra, physician, c. 250-200 BC 2, 448 Caelius [II 11] C. Aurelianus. Physician from Sicca Veneria, c. AD
400
2, 894-895
170
12. MEDICINE
Caesarius [2] Physician, brother of Gregory of Nazianzus 2, 918-
919
Callianax Physician, middle of the 3rd cent. BC 2,960 Callimachus [5] Physician, middle of the 3rd cent. BC in Alexandria
2, 978-979 Callimorphus Military doctor 2, 980
expert
Calpetanus [1] Famous physician according to Pliny
2,994
Cassius [III 4] C. Felix. Physician and translator, 5th cent. AD
2, L172-1173 [III 6] C. Iatrosophistes. Greek author of a collection of medi-
cal and biological Problemata 2
aA
Charmis Greek physician, rst cent. UDB. 202, Chrysippus [3] of Cnidus. Physician, c. 300 BC 3, 293-294 Claudius [IV 1] C. Agathemerus. Greek physician in Rome, early tst cent. AD 3, 410 {IV 2] Ti. C. Menecrates. Emper-
or’s personal physician c. AD
50 3,410
Cleanthes [3] Physician 3, 414 Cleophantus [2] Greek physician, 3rd cent. BC 3, 447 [3] Greek physician, rst cent. BC
or AD
3, 447
Clodius [I 5] C. of Ancona. Travelling drug-seller 3, 467-468 Cosmas [1] C. and Damianus. Doctor’s saints and patrons of healing 3, 861 Craterus [4] C. Personal physician and archiatros of Antiochus VII, sidetes 3,915 Crateuas Pharmacologist 3, 920921 Crinas Physician 3, 943 Ctesias Of Cnidus, sth or 4th cent. BC, historian and physician 3, 969-970 Cydias [4] Herophilean physician from the Hellenistic period
35 1045 Decimius [4] P. Decimius Eros
Merula. Physician in Assisi 4, 151 Democedes Greek physician
4, 264 Demosthenes [4] D. Philalethes. Physician 4, 297-298 Dexippus [3] of Cos. Physician
4, 330
Dieuches [1] Physician and author of medical texts 4, 404-405 Diocles [6] of Carystus Greek physician, 4th/3rd cent. BC 4, 424426
Dionysius [24] Physician 4, 486 Dioscorides [5] Physician 4, 515 [9| D. the Younger, Grammarian and editor of Hippocrates, 2nd cent. AD 4, 517 [x10] Pedanius D. see Pedanius Diphilus [6] of Siphnos. Greek phySiclan 4, 527 Epaenetus [1] Medicinal plant 4, IOLI
Erasistratus Greek doctor and writer, 4th/3rd cent. BC 5, 13-15 Erotianus Greek grammarian
55 39-40 oid
Eudemus [4] Greek anatomist
5) 147
AD 6,275 Herophilus [1] From Chalcedon, Greek physician and medical author, approx. 330/20—260/50 BC
6, 274-276
Hicesius Greek physician in Smyrna, early rst cent.
BC
6, 300
Hierocles [6] Jurist and medical AD 500
6,307
Hippocrates [6] H. of Cos Greek physician, 2nd half 5th cent. BC
6, 354-363
[6] Physician 5, 147 [7] Peripatetic of the 2nd cent. 5, 147-148
Euryphon of Cnidus Greek physician 5, 218-219 Eustochius Adherent of Plotinus Seren Euthydemus [5] Physician from Athens 5, 234-235 Evenor [2] Greek physician
55247
Gaius [1] Physician ofthe school of Herophilus 5, 642 Galen of Pergamum Greek physician and philosopher 5, 654661
Gesius Physician and teacher
5, 824-825
Glaucias [3] G. of Tarentum. Physician 5, 867 Glaucon [7] Physician and friend of Galen 5,868 Harpocration [3] Alexandrian author 5, 1152 Hegetor Alex. doctor, 2nd cent.
BC?
6, 264
Herodotus [3] Greek physician practising in Rome, rst/2nd cent.
specialist on horses, dated before
Eryximachus Athenian doctor
AD
[2] From Cnidus, physician (?)
6, 54-55
Heliodorus [5] Greek surgeon, Hellenistic period 6, 71-72
Heracleianus Physician and anatoMUSt C. ALD L526, 055 Heraclides [25] H. of Cos. Doctor, c.440 BC 6,173 [26] H. of Erythrae. Herophilean doctor, end of rst cent. BC 6, 173 [27] H. of Tarentum. Empiricist physician, rst cent. BC
6, 173-174 Heraclitus [6] H. of Rhodiapolis. Doctor and philosopher, rst-2nd cent. AD 6,179
Heras Greek doctor practising in Rome, between 100 BC and AD 40 6,183-184
Herodicus [1] From Megara, teacher in Selymbria, 5th cent. BC 6, 263-264
Iacobus Psychrestus Doctor of emperor Leo, early 6th cent. AD 6, 663
Iohannes [24] I. Alexandrinus.
Latrosophist and writer, 6th/7th cent. AD
6,897
Ionicus Teacher and physician, c. 390 AD
6,915
Iulianus [2] (Iulianos) Doctor, between AD 140and175 6, 1044-
1045 lustus [4] Name of various physiclans 6, 1143 Largius Designatianus Medical writer, 4th cent. AD 7,250 Leonides [3] Greek physician in
Alexandria, 1st cent. AD 7> 402
Lucius [I] [1] L. Kathegetes Author
ofpharmacological texts, rst cent. AD 7, 854-855 Lycus [10] L. of Neapolis Empirical physician, c. 100 BC 7, 938-— 939
[13] L. of Macedon Physician in Rome, 2nd cent. AD 7, 939-
940 Lysias [9] Greek physician 8, 36 Lysimachus [7] L. of Cos Greek physician, c. too BC 8, 42 Magnus [1] M. of Emesa Author of
works on prognostics 8, 175 [5] M. of Nisibis Physician, orator and teacher in Alexandria, c. AD 370 8,176 Mantias [2] Greek pharmacologist, 2nd cent. BC 8,255 Marcellinus [I 1] Greek author of a treatise on pulses, 2nd cent. AD?,
[1] 8, 294-295 Marcellus [I 2] From Side, physician and poet, 2nd cent. AD 8, 298
{Il 8] M. Empiricus Author of treatise on medicine, 4th/ 5th cent. AD, [8] M. Empiricus 8, 300-301
ye
12. MEDICINE
Marinus [I 2] M. of Alexandria Anatomist and teacher, c. AD
120, [I 2] M. of Alexandria
8, 357 Menecrates [3] M. from Syracuse. Greek physician, c. 350 BC 8, 672-673 Menodotus [2] M. of Nicomedia Greek doctor of the Empiricist school, c. AD 125
8, 695
Metrodora Medical author 8, 836 Metrodorus [8] Hippocratic commentator at Alexandria, c. AD Tso 8, 838-839
Mnesitheus Athenian doctor, fl. Z500BG ‘oy rez. Morsimus Oculist and tragedian, Dcenha Ds G.mo,i203 Moschion [4] Greek physician, 1st cent. AD 9,227 Mustio Translator of Soranus of Ephesus, c. 500? 9,374 Ne(i)leus [2] Greek surgeon and pharmacologist, before 217 BC 9, 619 Nicias [4] From Miletus; physician and poet, 3rd cent. BC 9, 720 [6] Conspirator, physician (2), 3rd cent. BC 9,720 Ninyas [2] Egyptian physician, before 350 BC 9,770 Numisianus Anatomist and teacher of medicine, 2nd cent. AD
9, 906 Olympias [2] O. of Thebes. Medical
writer, presumably in the rst cent. BC
10, 118-119
Onasander [1] Physician on Cos, c. 250 BC. LO. £26 Oribasius Greek doctor, 4th cent.BC 10, 203-205 Paccius [2] P. Antiochus. Pharmacologist in Rome, tst cent. LO,
11, 41
Philistion [1] P. of Locri. Greek physician, 4th cent. BC 11, 46-
47
[2] Physician of Pergamum, 2nd cent.
cologist, rst cent.
11, 126-127
Phylotimus Physican and yearOfficial in Cos, 3rd cent. BC Tass Placitus Papyriensis. Author of medical texts 11, 313-314
10, 691-692
Peteesis Priest in Heliopolis/Egypt 10, 864
Petron(as) Greek physician, before 400 BC to, 874-875 Phanostrate Greek midwife and BC
13,796
Statilius S. Crito Physician at the court of Trajan, rst-2nd cent.
13,797 Stephanus [9] Physician and com-
mentator on medical works in Alexandria, c.600 13, 824-825 Stertinius [4] C. S. Xenophon Physician and courtier, between AD
30 and 60 13,828 Straton [4] Physician, pupil of Erasistratus, c.270 BC
13, 876-
877 Sulpicius. [II ro] S. S. Hecataeus. Physician and friend of the empe13,939
Themison [2] T. of Laodicea Greek
14, 426 Theodas Greek physician c. AD
125
14, 438-439
Theodorus [I 27] Physician, 4th—5 th cent.
14, 461
[II 3] T. Priscianus Physician, 4th—-5th cent. AD 14, 466-
467 Theodosius [I 2] Pyrrhonian Sceptic
and Empirical physician, end of the 2nd cent. 14, 469-470 Theodotos [7] Greek doctor and eye specialist, 2nd/tst cent. BC
14, 478 Theomnestus [2] Greek author on veterinary medicine, c. 320
14, 497
II, 379-380 Polybus [6] (also Polybius) Greek physician, early 4th cent. BC
IT, 504-505 Poseidonius [1] Doctor, end of the
4th cent. BC 11, 682 Praxagoras Doctor, teacher of Herophilus, 4th cent. BC IL, 782-783
Quintus [2] Doctor in Rome, 2nd
COLE TO 55 Rufus [5] R. of Ephesus Greek docLy 7RO—757
[6] R. of Samaria Hippocrates commentator, c. 150
12,758
Sabinus [1] Hippocratic physician and commentator on Hippocra-
tes, rst-2nd cent. AD 12, 816 Salpe Midwife, author of cosmetic recipes, Hellenistic era
10, 670-672
Pelagonius Saloninus Author of medical writings, 4th cent.
to Roman emperors, c. 160
doctor, 2nd/tst cents. BC
11, 6%
{I 14] Ph. of Hyampolis. Doctor, late 1st cent. 11, 61-62 Philotas [3] P. of Amphissa Doctor and official guest of the town of Delphi rst cent. BC 11,121 Philoxenus [7] Egyptian surgeon and pharmacologist, end of the 2nd cent.BC 11,125 Philumenus Author of a treatise on poisonings
Statilius [II 1] S. Attalus Physician
ror, C.68
1, 47
Philo [I 13] Ph. of Tarsus. Pharma-
LOT PC. LO OF
316-317
Palladius [I 5] Greek physician in Alexandria, 6th cent. 10, 393 Paulus [I 5] P. of Aegina Greek physician, 7th cent. 10, 635-636 Pedanius [1] P. Dioscorides. Author on medicines, rst cent. AD
doctor, end of the 4th cent. 10, 918
Minor, tst cent.
Pleistonicus Doctor, c. 270 BC
10, 109
Olympius [1] Court doctor of Constantine [2] II, 4th cent. 10, 113 Olympus [15] Historian and physician to Cleopatra [II 12] VII., tst cent. BC
Philagrius Doctor and author from Epirus, 3rd-4th cents. 11, 10 Philaretus [1] Greek writer on medicine 11, 13 Philinus [4] P. of Cos. Founder of the Empirical School of mediCME WC 25 OND Ge ints.) Philippus [I 12] Acarnanian physician, cured Alexander the Great 11333 BE 12, 36 [1 33] Greek physician and pharmacologist in Rome and Asia
12, 901
Satyrus [9] Greek physician, teacher of Galen, c. AD 150 13,40 Scribonius [II 3] S. Largus Author ofa book ofprescriptions, rst cent. AD 13,118 Serenus [1] Quinctius S. Sammonicus Author of a collection ofreciES aby 2) reat Soranus Physician in Rome around AD 100 13, 653-655
Theon [7] T. of Alexandria Doctor and writer on hygiene, 2nd-3rd quarter of the 2nd cent. 14, 500 [9] Greek physician, probably 4th or 5th cent. 14, 502 Theophilus [11] T. Protospatharios Author of medical treatises, 7th or 9th/toth cents. 14, 507-508 Thessalus [5] T. of Cos Greek doctor, son of Hippocrates [6], 5th— 4th cent. BC 14, 578 [6] T. of Tralles Greek doctor in Rome around 60 14, 578Ae
Timotheus [1] T. of Metapontum Greek physician, c. 400 BC
14, 707 Tryphon [4] Name of two surgeons in Rome, from AD to 14,989 Vegetius Author of vetinary medi-
cine and military texts
15, 252-
253
Vettius [II 10] V. Valens Roman
physician, astrologer, executed AD 48 15, 360-361 Vindicianus Helvius V., 4th-cent.
AD physician, of African origin
15, 430
£72.
12. MEDICINE
Xenocrates [6] X. of Aphrodisias Pharmacologist, c. AD 70 Tage oer
Xenophon [5] Greek doctor, c. 300 BGs .s33 Zeno [9] Greek Herophilean doc-
tor, rst half of the 2nd cent. BC 15, 892
[13] Z. of Laodicea Doctor and pharmacologist, rst cent. BC
15, 894 [17] Greek doctor in Alexandria, c. AD 360 15, 894-895 Zeuxis [3] Greek physician, 2nd cent. BC 15,930 [4] Physician and leader of a medical school, c. 85/75 —c. to
BC?
15, 930-931
list, end of the rst cent. AD
15,948
Zopytus [8] Greek physician in Alexandria, c. 100 BC 15,964 Zosimus [3] Confidant and medical advisor ofAelius Aristides, 2nd 15,970
13. Geography On geographers and periegetics cf. Subject Index 21. Agatharchides of Cnidus Historian and geographer, c. 200 BC ie ies Agathon [2] Of Samos, Greek geographer 1,318 Aithanarid Scholar, c. AD 500 I, 408
Andron [3] Son of Cabeleus of Teos 1, 686
Androsthenes [4] From Thasus. Trierarch and explorer under Alexander the Great 15, 993-
994 Apollodorus [8a] From Artemita, Greek historian, rst cent. BC
1, 998
Apollonides [1] Greek geographer of the time of Mithridates VI 1, 867
Aristeas [1] Epic poet
[27] D. Periegetes. From Alexan-
dria, author ofageographical poem, c. AD 100 4, 486-487 [28] D. of Byzantium. Greek geo-
grapher of the 2nd cent. AD
4, 487
Eratosthenes [2] of Cyrene Natural scientist and philologist, 3rd cent. BC
5, 17-19
Euctemon Astronomer, meteorolo-
Zoilos [7] Greek physician and ocu-
cent.
Creophylus [2] Historian 3,931 Damastes Greek geographer and historian, 5th cent. BC 4, 58 Demetrius [30] D. of Callatis. Historian and geographer, 3rd cent. BC 4,252 Dionysius [26] Son of Calliphon 4, 486
1, 1093-
1094
Arrianus [3] Anonymus author of a Periplus Ponti Euxini 2, 27-28 Artemidorus [3] Greek geographer from Ephesus 2, 59 Avienus Roman poet of the mid 4th cent. AD 2, 426-427 Castorius Roman geographer ofthe 4th cent. AD 2, 1183 Colaeus Greek trader and seafarer,
beyond the Columns of Hercules PSD)
Cosmas [2] C. Indicopleustes. Sea-
farer and geographical author, 6th cent. AD 3, 861-862
gist and geographer 5, 143 Eudoxus [3] of Cyzicus. 5, 153 Euthymenes of Massalia 5, 235 Geographus Ravennas Anonymous author of the Cosmographia, early 8th cent. AD 5,772 Guido Lat. compilator of an encyclopaediac. AD 1119 5, 1039 Hanno Carthaginian suffete, seafarer and author, probably early 5th cent. BC 5, 1129-1132 Hecataeus [3] H. of Miletus. Greek author, 6th cent. BC 6, 35-37 Heraclides [18] H. Creticus/Criticus. Greek periegete, 3rd cent. BC 6,170 Hierocles [8] Author ofaByz. index of provinces and towns 6, 308 Hippalus [2] Greek seafarer
6, 334 nomer and geographer, 2nd cent.
6, 336-338
work On Greece 6, 686 Isidorus [2] I. of Charax. Geographer, end of 1st cent. BC 6,960 lulius [IV ro] I. Honorius. Latin
grammarian and orator, 4th/5th 6, 1082-1083
Tunius [II 5] M. lunius Nypsus. Surveyor, 2nd cent. AD ? 6,
author of Periplous
9, 93
Nearchus [2] Participant in Alexan-
der’s campaign and writer of a
periplus 9, 584-585
Nymphodorus [1] Greek author of travel literature from Syracusai, 3rd cent. BC 9, 927-928 [2] Ethnographer from Amphipolis, 3rd cent. BC 9, 928 Orthagoras [2] Greek seafarer and author, c. 320 BC 10,259 Patrocles [3] Greek commander and admiral 285-282 BC 10, 621
Pausanias [8] P., the Periegete 21d
cent. AD 10, 648-652 Phileas [1] Of Athens, Greek geo-
grapher, middle of the 5th cent. Braise
Philemon [6] Greek geographer, 1st CONE
EEGRT
Philo [I 17] From Byzantium, Late
Classical writer on the wonders of the world 11, 62 Plutarchus [2] Greek author from Chaeronea, c. AD 45 — before AD 125 11, 410-425 Pomponius. [III 5] P. Mela. From Tingentera in southern Spain,
geographer, 1st cent.
11, 582-
Poseidonius [3] Stoic philosopher, scientist and geographer, 2nd 11, 683-687
Protagoras [2] Author of a ‘geometry’, 2nd/3rd cents.
12, 64-
65 Ptolemaeus [65] Claudius P. Astronomer, author of seminal scientific works, 2nd cent. 12, 159-
170 Pythagoras [6] Greek navigator and geographer, 3rd cent. BC 1g ae 3 2
1106
Juba [2] King of Mauretania,
author, approx. 50 BC-AD 23 6,
8, 690-692
Mnaseas [2] From Patara/Lycia,
cent. BC
Iason [4] I. of Argus. Author of a
cent. AD
8, 672
Menippus [6] M. of Pergamum Greek geographer, rst cent. BC
584
Hipparchus [6] H. of Nicaea Astro-
BC
Menecles [3] Author or reviser of a periegetic work, before 86 BC
1205-1206
Pytheas [4] Greek seafarer from Massalia, astronomer and geographer, 4th cent. BC 12, 288-
Marcianus [1] Greek geographer from Heraclea, between AD 200 and 530, Marcianus I Greek [1]
Scymnus [1] Author of a periegesis of Asia and Europe, 2nd cent. BC
8, 304-307 Marinus [I 1] M. of Tyre Greek geographer, 2nd cent. AD 8, 355-
Siculus Flaccus Surveyor and technical author, probably 2nd cent.
S17
Megasthenes Diplomat and historian, c. 300 BC
8, 606
Menander [12] M. Rhetor From Laodicea by the Lycus, Greek rhetor, 3rd cent. 8, 668
289
13, 147
13, 431
Skylax [1] From Caryanda, explorer 519/18 BC 13,145 Sostratus [3] Of Nysa, Greek geographer, rst cent. BC 13, 663
173
15.1. DEITIES, HEROES
Stephanus [7] S. of Byzantium Greek grammarian, 6th cent. 13, 822-824
Strabo [1] Greek geographer and historian, Augustan Period 13, 865-869
Thrasyalces Nature philosopher from Thasos, probably 5th cent. BG
TAS 617
LITERARY
CHARACTERS
FROM
Anahita Iranian deity of water and fertility 1, 637-638 Anat Goddess from Ugarit 1, 647-648
Anubis Egyptian god with the head ofadog 1, 812 Apis [1] In Egypt, cult offertility and physical strength 1, 841842
Timagetus Author of a work on harbours, 4th cent. BC
AND
14, 681
Timosthenes [2] From Rhodes, naval commander and geographical author, 3rd cent. BC 14, 706 Uranios [3] Greek geographer, author of Arabikd, 6th cent. (?)
15, 119 Vibius [II 19] V. Sequester Latin author of a gazetteer, c. AD 400
15, 386-387 Xenagoras [1] Greek historian and geographer, probably in the 3rd cent. BC 15,797 [2] Mathematician and geographer, 1st 3rd ofthe 2nd cent. BC or earlier 15, 797-798 Xenophon [8] Of Lampsacus, geographer, c. 100 BC 15, 833-
834
Zenis [2] From Chios, author of a
work on his homeland, 4th cent. BC? 15, 882 Zopyrus [7] Greek geographer, early rst cent. BC at the latest 15, 963-964 14. Byzantium On persons from the Byzantine
cultural sphere (e.g. authors, jurists, architects) cf. the relevant
subcategories in the Index of Persons
15. Ancient Near East
15.1. DEITIES, HEROES AND LITERARY CHARACTERS FROM THE ANCIENT NEAR EAST AND EGyPt
15.2. NEAR EASTERN AND FAR EASTERN WRITERS
15.1. Deities, heroes and literary characters from the Ancient Near East and Egypt Cf. Subject Index 26.3. and CT index volume, Entry Index ro.
Abradatas Fictitious king of Susa I, 30 Achaemenes [1] Founder ofthe Persian royal house 1,77 Ammon see Amun Amun Ammon, Egyptian god, equated with Zeus 1, 620-621
Assur [2] City god ofthe city of Assur
2,186
Astarte Goddess of love, fertility and war 2,189 Aton The sun disc as the seat of the sun god 2,296 Atrahasis Protagonist of an Akkadian Mythic Poem 2,297 Baal Syrian-Phoenician term for
God
2, 437-439
Bastet Egyptian goddess, represented asacat 2, 546-547 Bes [2] Dwarfish Egyptian god with hideous face 2, 612 Calasiris Priest, one of the main figures in Heliodorus’ [8] novel Aithiopikad 2,932 Chnubis [1] Greek form of the Egyptian Chnum 3, 237 Chnum Egyptian god see Chnubis Cyaxares [2] Unhistorical last king of Media in Xenophon 3, 1035 Dagan Western Semitic god
4, 38-
39
Dusares Head of the Nabataean pantheon 4,751 El Semitic god 4, 881-883 Elagabalus [1] Name of a deity
4, 884-885
Enlil City-god of Nippur 4,984 Esmun Old Phoenician deity 5, 66 Gilgamesh Ruler of Uruk 5, 852-
853
Gilgamos see Gilgamesh Hadad Western Semitic name of the weather god 5, 1074-1076 Hathor Human or cow shaped Egyptian goddess 6,2 Heliopolitanus Chief god of the Biga‘ Plain 6, 76-77 Hermes Greek god of shepherds, messengers and mysteries Ch anit pla
Horus Egyptian hawk god Oy p ela jee
Ishtar Semitic goddess 6,959 Keret (Kirta) Protagonist of an Ugaritic epic 7, 42-43
Kumarbi Hurrite god 7,114 Ma’at Principle of order and its personification (Egypt) 8, 51 Mandulis Local deity of Kalabsha 8, 230
Marduk City god and chief god of Babylon 8, 332-333
THE ANCIENT
NEAR
EAST AND
Melgart Phoenician Deity
EGYPT
8, 644-
645
Min Egyptian god of the desert
8, 929-930 Mitra [2] Persian goddess
9, 89-
90 Mut Egyptian goddess 9, 375 Mylissa, Mylitta The Babylonian Aphrodite 9, 409 Nanaja Goddess ofsexual love
from Uruk
9, 497-498
Nebutosualeth Light-bringing deity
9, 585-586
Neith Egyptian Goddess of Sais 9, 619-620
Za ephthys Egyptian goddess, helper of Isis 9, 658-659 Ninurta God of Nippur, son of Enlil 9,767 Nut Egyptian goddess of the sky
9, 913
Oannes Babylonian mythical crea-
ture 9, 935-936
Onuris Egyptian god 10, 149 Opis, Upis Epithet of Artemis IMOY, 100
Osiris Egyptian god of the afterlife LO, 276-277
Ptah Creator god of Memphis 12, L26—-12.7
Re The most important god in the Egyptian pantheon 12, 413-
414
Sandon Weather and vegetation god from Asia Minor 12, 954oy
Sarapis Egyptian bull god see Serapis Satis Egyptian goddess 13, 16-17 Satrapes [2] Graecized name of the Canaanite god Sadrapa’ 13, 23 Sekhmet Egyptian goddess 13, 209-210 Selkis Egyptian goddess 13, 229230 Serapis Egyptian bull god
13, 305-308 Sin Semite moon deity
see Moon
deities(9, 199-202)
Sinuhe Hero of an Egyptian story
13, 499
Sobek Crocodile-headed chief god of the Faiyum
13, 559-560
Sothis Constellation and epiclesis 13, 668-669
Tammuz Prehistoric king of Uruk and husband ofInanna 14,
127-128
Tanit Phoenician fertility goddess see Tinnit Tessup, TeSop see Weather gods Thoeris Egyptian protector-goddess 14,591 Thot Egyptian god of wisdom, knowledge and writing 14, 600601
15.1. DEITIES,
HEROES
AND
LITERARY
Tiamat Primaeval divine monster 14, 652
Tinnit Phoenician goddess of fertility 14, 719-720 Trismegistus Greek form of the Egyptian god Thot see Hermes Varuna Vedic god of order
b5yaa7
Virgo Caelestis Epiclesis of the goddess Tinnit see Tinnit Wepwawet Egyptian god of the dead 15, 627 Xeine Manifestation of Aphrodite / Astarte, with a temple in Mem-
phis 15,797
Xisuthrus Character in the Flood legend 15, 839-840 Yahweh Name of the God of the Israelites and Judaeans
15, 847-849 15.2. Near Eastern and Far Eastern writers Cf. Subject Index 26.4. (Ancient Near East) and 27.3. (Islam).
Abydenus Author of a ‘History of the Chaldaeans’ 1, 38 Aphrahat Leading Syrian theologian, 4th cent. AD 1, 827-828 Balai Syrian poet, sth cent. AD
2, 470
CHARACTERS
FROM
THE ANCIENT
NEAR
Bardesanes Aramaic philosopher and astrologer, AD 154-222
2, 507-508 Cyrillonas Author of six poems in the Syrian language 4, 10 Elishe Armenian historian 4,925 Ephrem Syrian poet and theologian, 4th cent. AD 4, 1036-
1037
Eznik of Kolp Armenian-Syriac translator, Bishop of Bagrewand, 5th cent. AD 5, 282-283 Fan Ye Chinese author 5, 353 Faustus [4] F. of Byzantium. GreekArmen. writer 5, 373-374
Horapollo Egyptian author, c. 500
AD 6, 483-484
Iohannes [26] I. of Ephesus. Sy.Orthodox author, 6th cent. AD 6, 897-898
Isaac [2] I. of Antioch. Author of Syrian homilies 6,948 [3] Ll. of Nineveh. East Syr. author and monk, 7th cent. AD
6, 948-949
Iso‘yahb Il. Syr. author and patriarch of the eastern Church, 7th
cent. AD 6,985 Jacob [4] J. of Edessa. Syr. author and scholar, c. AD 700 6,
[164-1165
EAST AND
EGYPT
174
Manetho [1] Egyptian priest and Greek writer 8, 232-233 Methodius [3] Author of a Syriac Apocalypse, c. AD 690 8, 803 Moses [1] Leader of the Israelites and conveyer of the Ten Commandments 9, 230-233 Narsai. Syrian poet, sth cent.
9, 512 Pan-Chao see Pan-Ku Pan-Ku, Pan-Chao. Authors of the Chinese History of the Han Dynasty, ist cent. 10, 422 Philoxenus [9] P. of Mabbag. Theologian, Metropolitan of Mabbug from 485 11, 125-126 Sergius. [II 8] S. of ReS‘aina Syrian physician, translator and scholar, CELOO VESZ3ES
Sima Qian Author of the first Chinese dynastic history, 2nd-1st cent. BC
13, 478-479
175
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Geographical concordance The geographical concordance associates modern geographical designations with their corresponding ancient place names. Each name is specified in separate columns indicating the geographical type (settlement, island, mountain/range of mountains or body of water) and the region, respectively. The names of the regions follow ancient delineations, not the borders of modern states. In frontier areas, multiple regions are given (e.g. for Cyprus, Greece and Asia Minor).
Abbreviations
localization disputed or uncertain Greece Italy Peloponnese Sardinia Sicily Thessaly
() Gr. It.
Pelop. Sard. Sic. Thess. mtn.
Mount/mountain/mountain range (also passes and capes)
other settl. wtr.
bridges, harbours, fortresses etc. settlement (town, village, station) body of water (river, sea, lake, bay)
The left-hand column contains the modern name or,
where the ancient and modern settlements do not coincide, an indication of the location. Alphabetical sorting disregards the articles in Arabic and Romance names (e.g. ar-, az-, es-, la, le), so that terms are found listed under the second part of the name. Geographical
Africa Alpine region Asia Minor (mainly modern Turkey) Balkan (Dacia, Dalmatia, Illyria, Thrace, modern Romania) Black Sea area (North and East)
names with Gabal/Gebel, Tall/Tell,
Monte/Monti/Mont, Cape and Lago are likewise sorted under the second name element. Conversely, Hagios/Hagia, San/Santo/Santa and St. are sorted under H or S respectively. The concordance was prepared on the basis of the location details given in the articles in the ‘Antiquity’ series (vols. 1-20) of Brill’s New Pauly. Orthography of the modern names generally follows the information given by the authors of the articles concerned. Variant spellings may occur in modern Greek and Arabic names because of discrepancies in transcription. The ancient name (fourth column) corresponds to an entry title in Brill’s New Pauly (with location). Numbers differentiating homonymous entries are therefore also given. Modern names of archaeological find sites (Heuneburg, BogazkGy) are also given in this column, ‘but in italics. Ina few cases involving very familiar locations, the entry titles in the encyclopaedia uses the modern form. In those cases, column four gives the entry title followed by the ancient name (Athens, Athenae). The abbreviation (M) following a place name refers to the corresponding entry in the Maps index (cf. below p. 235 ff.), by way of which the location may be found in the Pauly maps.
Egypt
Greece (incl. Aegean islands and Crete)
Iberian peninsula Italy (incl. Sicily, Corsica, Sardinia) Near East (Arabian peninsula,
Mesopotamia, Near East, but also India, Far East) Western Europe (Britain, Gaul,
Germany, but also Northern and Eastern Europe)
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/en try name
Volume, Column
Aachen Aalen Tall Abi Huraira (?)
settl. settl. settl.
WE WE NE
Aquae [III 3] Gran(n)i Aalen
T9255 eat
Gerar(a)
5,791
Gaba Zaldapa Sippar Canopus Thonis »-Abu Simbel Busiris [1] Taposiris [1] Alalah Aceruntia Acerrae [1] Achelous [x] Echinus [1]
5, 629-630 15, 869-870 13, 5OI-502 2, 1057-1058 14, 596 te 37 BERG 14, 136 I, 419 ar, I, 66 1, 85 4, 785-786
Tall Abi Saga
sett].
NE
Abtaat
settl.
Bal.
Abu near near Abu
settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE Egy. Egy. Egy. Afr. Egy. NE It. It. Gr. Gr.
Habba Abu Qir Aba Qir (?) Simbel
Abu Sir Bana (Abusir)
settl.
Abusir Tell Agana Acerenza (Southern It.) Acerra (Southern It.)
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Acheloos near Achino (Central Gr.)
wtr. settl.
GEOGRAPHICAL
176
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
near Acqualagna Acquataccio Acqui Terme (Alessandria)
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
settl. wtr.
Pitinum [1] Mergens Almo
£15,307 Leah
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Aquae I. Statiellae
Adameclisi near Adan Adana Adanda Kalesi Adda Aden Adige Adony (Hungary) Adrano (Sic.) near Adrano (Sic.) (?)
1, 922-923 I, 133-134
Adriatic (Sea) Aegean (Sea)
wtr. wtr.
Aeolic isl.s
isl.
Affile (Latium)
settl.
Afrasiab Afsin near Agin Agde near Agheila Aghurmi Agin Agira (Sic.) near Aglasun Agliana near Agrapidochori (Pelop.) Agrigento (Sic.) near Agrigento (Sic.) Cap del ‘Agua Ahmim
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl.
Adriatic Sea Aegean Sea Aeolia Afilae Maracanda Arabissus
Ahmim
settl.
Ahtopol settl. Ai Chanum settl. Ai Chanum (?) settl. Oros Aigaleo mtn. Aigiale (Amorgos) settl. Aigion (Pelop.) settl. Air-tam settl. near Aithaia settl. Aix-en-Provence settl. Aix-les-Bains settl. Akalan settl. Akar Cay wtr. near Akgaabat (?) settl. Akcadag settl. Akcakoca settl. near Akcakéy (?) settl. Akgay wtr. near Akgiin (formerly Ahretkéy) _ settl. NW part of Niksar Akhisar settl. near Akhisar (?) settl. Akko settl. near Akpinarkoyii settl. Akra Kalamas (promontory) mtn. near Akrai (Sic.) settl. near Akraiphnion (Central Gr.)
settl.
Akron Masticho Akrotiri Spiri (bay of
isl. settl.
Frangolimano) (?)
Region
Adamclisi Saraca [1] Adana Lamus [6] Addua Adane Atesis Vetus Salina Adranum Piacus
Dascusa
Agatha Arae [2] Philaenorum Ammoneion Dascusa Agyrium Sagalassus Hellana
12, 966
1,134 7> 193 I, 135 I, 134 per deba
15, 366 15,978 TX,.229 6, 915-916 ye7 Ey 225-226
1, 289 8, 277-278
I, 942 4, 100 I, 310 1,949 I, 588 4, 100
1, 398 12, 865 6, 78
Pylos [4]
12,
Acragas
I, 110-111
Neapolis [5]
9, 582
Metagonium [1]
8,775
Chemmis [2]
3, 210-211
Panopolis Agathopolis Ai Khanum Alexandria [12] Aegaleos Aegiale [1] Aegium
10, 455-456 SEE I, 404
Air-tam
Thuria Aquae [III 5] Sextiae Aquae [III 1] Akalan Caystrus |2] Hermonassa [2] Arca Dia [6]
Thymbra Harpasus [1] Kainon Chorion, Kainon
Phrourion Thyatira Mostene
246
I, 499 ERG 1,188
I, 197 I, 407 14,
639-640
I, 926
I, 924 E, ALE oie¥!
6, 238 I, 966
4, 332 14, 646
5, 1149 RS
14, 643 9, 235-236
Ptolemais [8] Cebren Thyamis
bi Js ti |
Casmenae
2, TIE§52-1153 I, IO9-110 LO, 913
Acraephia Phanae [1] Spiraeum
3, 58-59 14, 643
13,739
177
Modern name
GEOGRAPHICAL
Type
Akrotiri Trachili (bay of Korfos) _ settl.
CONCORDANCE
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Gr.
Spiraeum
135 PAG:
Archelais Garsaura, Garsauira
I, 981 5, 701
(?) Aksaray Aksaray
settl. settl
AM AM
near Aksu
settl
AM
Perge
103.773-775
near Aksu Aksum Akyaka near Alacam (?) Alagam Suyu (?)
settl settl settl settl settl.
AM Afr. AM AM AM
Timbriada Axum, Axomis Mandane [3] Zaliches Zaliches
Aladag Cay Alahan Manastir Alanya Alapli (?) Alasani near Alasehir Alatri Alba Alba (Northern It.) Alba Julia Albenga (Northern It.) Albisola Superiore (near Vado
wtr. settl settl. settl wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM AM AM AM BS AM It. WE It. Bal. It. It.
Scopas [5] Apadnas Coracesium Cales [1] Alazonius Philadelphia [x] Aletrium Alba Alba Pompeia Apulum Album Ingaunum Alba Docilia
14, 686 2, 432-434 8, 226 15, 870 15, 870 13, LOO-1OL I, 816 35779 DOS 2 I, 426 iran, 1, 467 1, 426-427 I, 429 I, 919-920 1, 434-435 27
Albula (?)
wtr.
It.
Albula [3]
[, 434
near Alcala de Henares Alcala del Rio
settl. settl.
Ibe. Ibe.
Complutum Ilipa
3, 678 6e727
Alcantara (Sic.)
wtr.
It.
Acesines [1]
TO
Alcudia near Alea Alento near Alepochori Aleppo Aléria (Corsica) near Alexandrupolis (?) Alezio (near Gallipoli) Alfedena Algier Alibey (Adas1) Alicante (?) Alice near Alifahrettin Alife near Aliki (Central Gr.) Aliphaka (Thess.) Alisar Alise-Sainte-Reine Alivaina near Aliveri Allier Alma Dagi ? Almanarre near Almeria near Almunécar Alphios Altilia near Altinkaya
settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. wtr. mtn. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
Ibe. Gr. It. Gr. NE It. Gr. it ts Afr. AM Ibe. It. AM It. Gr. Gr. AM WE Gr. Gr. WE AM WE Ibe. Ibe. Gr. ite AM
Pollentia [2] Tegea Hales Pagae Beroea [3] Aleria, Alalia Sale Aletium Aufidena Icosium Pordoselene Acra Leuce Halex Lagbe Allifae Siphae Atrax Alisar Alesia Minthe [x] Porthmus [2] Elaver Taurus [2] Olbia [3] Murgis Sexi Alpheius [1] Saepinum Selge
II, 491 14, 213-215 5, 1108 10, 338 2, 608 I, 464-465 12, 883 I, 466-467 Pp BEN 6, 707-708 II, 636-637 I, [11-112 5, 1109 7, 171-172 ToL PXe) 13, 500 2, 298 Tso I, 465 9,28 Il, 656 4, 890 CAs 072 10, 81-82 9, 314 13, 363-364 I, 541-542 12, 863-864 13, 226
Altino
settl.
It.
Altinum
ry Gye
near Altinoluk Altinova Altrip near Alvignano (?)
settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM AM WE It.
Antander [2] Helenopolis Alta Ripa Cubulteria
Degns 6, 66 1, 549 3,976
near Amantea
settl.
its
Lampetia [2]
7, 187-188
Ligure)
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Tall al-Ahmar Amarna Amaseno
settl. settl. wtr.
NE Egy. It.
Til Barsip Amarna Amasenus
Amasra Amasya
settl. settl.
AM AM
Amastris [4| Amasea
1,559 I, 561 I, 562-563 I, 560
near Ambar Tepe Amelia (Terni) Amendolea (Sic.) Amiens ‘Amman Tell ‘Ammata Amphikleia near Amphilochia Amphipolis (Northern Gr.) near Amphipolis (Northern Gr.)
settl. sett] wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl sett.
AM It. lt. WE NE NE Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Marathesium Ameria [1] Caecinus Samarobriva Rabbath-Ammon Am(m)athous [1] Amphicaea, Amphiclea Limnaea Amphipolis Cerdylium
8, 278-279 Ly 678 2, 889 12, 919-920 LI, 572 I, 583 1, 599 7, 606 I, 605 BEAT
14, 674
Amphissa (Central Gr.)
settl
Gr.
Amphissa
1, 606-607
Ampurias ‘Amrit
settl. settl.
Ibe. NE
Emporiae Marathus
4, 954-955 8, 281
Amu-darja Amu-darja (?)
wtr wtr.
NE NE
Araxes [2] Oaxes
I, 961 9,939
‘Amwas ‘“Amwas near Analipsis (Arcadia) (?) Anamur Anapa al-Anbar (near Rapiqu) Ancona
settl settl. settl settl. settl settl. settl
NE NE Gr. AM AM BS NE ihe
Emmaus [1] Nicopolis [7] Caryae [2] Anemurium Gorgippia Ambarra Ancona
4, 941-942 9,744 DOEEAT I, 692-693 5, 936-937 I, 565 I, 672-673
Andernach Andros
settl isl.
WE Gr.
Antunnacum Andros
E850 1, 689
on Andros near Angelokastro Anglesey
settl settl. isl.
Gr. Gr. WE
Zagora Conope Mona
15, 864-865 3,694 9,135
Aniene
wtr.
Ife
Anio
1, 700-701
Ankara near Ano Apostoloi near Ano Kastelli (Central Gr.) near Ano Kastelli (Central Gr.)
settl settl settl settl
AM Gr. Gr. Gr.
Ancyra Morrylus Acyphas Pindus [2]
1, 673-674 Spee I, 130 II, 272-273
Ano Zakros (Crete) Ansedonia Antakya (Turkey)
settl
settl settl
Gr. It. NE
15, 866-869 3, 859 I, 757-759
near Antakya (Turkey) Antalya Bay of Antalya
settl settl wtr.
NE AM AM
Zakros Cosa(e) Antioch [1] on the Orontes Daphne [4] Attaleia [1] Mare Pamphylium
4, 81 273502: 8, 337
near Antemnae (?)
settl
It.
Caenina
2, 897
near Antheia settl Antibes settl near Antikyra settl Antikythera (?) isl. Antiokya settl Antiparos isl. near Antissa (Lesbos) settl near Antochori (near Sparta) (?) _ settl. Anzio (Latium) settl.
Gr. WE Gr. Gr. AM Gr. Gr. Gr. It.
Thuria Antipolis Anticyra [2] Ogylus Antioch [6] Oliaros Antissa Messapeae Antium
14, 639-640 1, 783 £5742 10, 67 I, 760 10, 87
near Anzio (Latium)
settl
It.
Longula
Sie
Aosta Aparhant (Hungary) (?) Aphytos (Northern Gr.) Appennino Apt Aptara (Crete)
settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl.
Alp. Bal. Gr. Ihe WE Gr.
Augusta [3] Praetoria Pons [10] Pons Sociorum§ Aphytis Appenninus Aptara, Aptera
2, 342-343 11, 589 Lose 1, 896-897 1, 916-917 Tuy
‘Aqaba
settl.
NE
‘Aqaba
1, 920
Apta Iulia
1,785 8,758
1, 791-792
179
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Tell ‘Agar (near Rapiqu) Gabal al-Aqra‘ Aquileia (Northern It.) Aquino
settl mtn. settl. settl.
NE NE Me It.
Ambarra Casium Aquileia [1] Aquinum
1, 565 Diepeate 52) I, 929-930 I, 936
Oros Arachnaio near Arachova (Arcadia) (?) Arachthos
mtn. settl. wtr.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Arachnaeum Caryae [2] Arachthus
I, 943-944 2h GA, I, 946
Arad
settl
NE
Aradus [2]
1, 948
Hirbat al-‘Arag
settl.
NE
Bethsaida
2, 617-618
Aragvi Ararat Aras ‘Arav (?) near Aravissos
wtr mtn. wtr. settl. settl.
BS NE AM BS NE Gr
Aragus Baris Oros Araxes [1] Gabara Cyrrhus [1]
1,949 2 5 I, 961 5, 630 Ay LS
Arayit
mtn
AM
Dindymum
4, 421
Aréar (Bulgaria) near Ard Artuz (near Tarabulus
settl. settl.
Bal. NE
Ratiaria Orthosia [2]
12, 398 10, 266
S‘Archittu (Cuglieri, Sard.) Ardanion (Northern Gr.) Ardea Arezzo Mont Argentario Argos
settl. sett. settl. settl. mtn. settl.
It. Gr. It. It. It. Gr.
Cornus [1] Dyme [2] Ardea Arretium Mons Argentarius Argos
3, 838-839 4,759 I, L041 De OP OS 7S I, I070-1073
Argos near Argos near Argostoli
settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Larisa [1] Temenium Cran
Tn 25OC 14, 240
near Argyropolis (Crete)
settl.
Gr.
Lappa
35912) Th AD
Ariccia
settl.
I, 1080
settl. settl. mtn. wtr. mtn. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl settl settl. mtn
It. WE WE It. It. Gr. Ite Its If NE WE Gr. AM BS It.
Aricia
Arles Arlon-Arel Capo del’Armi Arno (Oros) Aroania Tellaro Arpi (Southern It.) Arpino (Frosinone) ‘Arraba (?) Arras (Dep. Pas de Calais) Arta Artashat (Armenia) Artemisio (Albanian mountain chain)
Arelate Orolaunum Leucopetra Arnus Aroania ore Helorus [2] Arpi Arpinum Gabara Nemetacum Ambracia Artaxata Algidus
I, 1044-1045 IO, 237-238 7,449 pag ake) 2, 19 6, 116 228 DO 5, 630 9, 631-632 I, 570-571 2, 56 I, 504-505
near Artemision
settl
Gr.
Maera [5]
Sai
Arvalia Cayi Arzan (near Ikiképrii) Arzew near (Asagi) Golkoy near Asagibey al-‘Asala Asar Tepe Asar Tepe near Asarkéyti Asarlik near Asarlik
wtr. sett] settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl
AM BS Afr. AM AM NE AM AM AM AM AM
Cenchreus Tigranocerta Portus [5] P. Magnus Panormus [1] Perperene Mesala Casae [1] Physcus [1] Sillyum Bargylia Termera
3, 102 TA, G72. 11, 668 10, 456 10, 807 8, 722-723 2, 1150 Il, 216-217 13, 465-466 2, 509-510 14, 291-292
Asartepe near Urganll (?)
settl
AM
Mostene
9, 235-236
Asberg Ascoli Piceno Asea (Pelop.) near Ashabad Asilah (?) Asin Kalesi
settl settl settl sett] settl settl
WE It. Gr. NE Afr. AM
Asciburgium Asculum Asea Namazga-Tepe Zulil lasus [5]
2,94 pi 1O}7/ 2, 107 9, 496
Askris
wtr
Gr.
Permessus
10, 805-806
15,974 6, 687-688
GEOGRAPHICAL
180
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
al-ASmunein near al-ASmunein near Asomati (Pelop.) near Asopia (Central Gr.)
settl sett] settl sett]
Hermupolis magna Antinoupolis Taenarum [2] Eilesium
Asopos (Megalovunia) Asopos (Southern Boeotia) Asov Sea Aspromonte (?) Aspropotamos Assisi Assoro (Sic.)
wtr wtr wtr mtn wtr. settl. settl.
Assuan near Astakos Asti ASwan Asyut Atena Lucana near Athen Athenai [1] near Athienu (near Nikosia)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. isl.
Egy. Egy. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. BS It. Gr. It. It. Egy. Gr. It. Egy. Egy. It. Gr. Gr. Gr. AM
Syene Astacus [2] Hasta [4] Syene Lyconpolis Atina [2] Philaidae [1] Athens/Athenae [1] Golgi
6, 242 I, 756 EAy EEA 4, 859 2, 165 2,165 PR es 13,451 1, 85 2, 162 2, 183-184 13, 984 2, 188 5, 1166 13, 984 Tg G25 PE Dlops II, 11 2, 253-280 pee ee:
Atina (Frosinone)
settl.
ts
Atina [1]
pK
Atlas
mtn
Afr.
Atlas [1]
2, 293-294
Atri Tall Atrib near Atsicholo (Pelop.) Aude
settl. settl. settl. wtr.
ihe Afr. Gr. WE
Hadria Athribis Gortys Atax
5, 1079-1080 2, 285-286 5,945 2, DEE
Augila Augsburg Augst (Switzerland)
settl. settl. settl.
Afr. WE WE
Augila Augusta [7] Vindelicum Augusta [4] Raurica
2, 339 2, 350-351 2, 343
Aumale
settl.
Afr.
Auzia
Ags
Ausim
settl.
Egy.
Letopolis
7> 435
Asopus [3] Asopus [2] Maeotis Sila [1] Achelous [1] Asisium Assorus
Autun
settl.
WE
Augustodunum
2, 362
Auxerre near Avaritsa
settl settl
WE Gr.
Autessiodurum Melitaea
2, 399 8, 636-637
Avella (Southern It.)
Avenches
settl settl
It. WE
Abella Aventicum
I, 18 2, 422-423
Avenza (?) near Avezzano
wtr. settl
It. he
Aventia Alba Fucens
2 AS, I, 427
near Avignon near Avlonari Avola (Sic.) near Avsar Kale
settl settl settl settl
WE Gr. It. AM
near Avsar Tepesi
settl
AM
near Ayag Ayasofya Ayatekla Aydap Iskelesi near Aydin
settl settl settl settl sett
AM AM AM AM AM
15, 428 14, 128-129 £5 25 9, 474-475 35 £033 9, 102 3,599 5, 1094-1095 6, 923 14, 841-842 8.777 2, 434 75940 2, 987 2 ABS 12, 789 6,714
‘Ain az-Zara
settl
NE
Azaila Azeffoun Azziz-ben-Tellis Baalbek Bab al-Mandab near Babadat Babylon Bacchiglione Bacchiglione
settl settl sett] sett] settl settl settl wtr wtr.
Ibe. Afr. Afr.
Vindalium Tamynae Abolla [2] Myus Cyaneae [2] Mnizus Colybrassus Hagia Thekla lotape [2] Tralleis [2] Mes(s)ogis Aylesford Lycus [17] Callirhoe [7] Azaila Rusazus Idicra
NE
Baalbek
2, 439-440
Bacoli
settl
NE AM NE It. Alp. It. It.
Ocelis Germa, Germokoloneia Babylon Meduacus Togisonus Misenum
10, 14 5, 794 2, 441-442 8, 591 14,755 9, 59-60
Aydin daglari
mtn
AM
Aylesford Ayndinlar Cay
settl wtr.
WE AM
18t
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Bacoli (?)
settl.
Ihe
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
WE WE Ibe. WE WE
Bafa Goli Bafa Goli
settl. settl.
AM AM
Bagni Sant’ Agostino Bagni di Sardara (Sard.) Bagni di Stigliano (?) Bagni di Vicarello (?) Bagni di Viterbo Bagram near Bahiret el-Biban (?) Al-Bahnasa Bailen near Bailleul sur Thérain (?) Bakir Cay Bakireiko near Bakla Burnu Bakla Liman (?) Balabolu Tall al-Balamun Balat Balaton Balawat Balch Baléik (Bulgaria) Balhab near Balina Glavica Balkan mountains Balkiz Ballihisar Baltic Sea near el-Balyana near Bambini Bamyan Bana
settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl. settl. wtr wtr. settl settl settl settl settl wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. mtn. settl. settl wtr. settl. settl settl settl
It It. It. te It. NE Afr, Egy. Ibe. WE AM Gr. Bal. Gr. AM Egy. AM Bal. NE NE Bal. NE Bal. Bal. AM AM WE Egy. Gr. NE Egy.
Bauli Iversheim Bad Nauheim Baetulo Aquae [III 2] Helveticae Aquae [III 6] Civitas Aurelia Aquensis Heraclea [5] Ioniapolis Rapinium Aquae I. Neapolitanae Aquae I. Apollinares Aquae I. Apollinares Aquae I. Passeris Capisa
2, 563-564
Bad Miinstereifel-Iversheim Bad Nauheim Badalona Baden an der Limmat (Aargau) Baden-Baden
Xuchis
15, 841 LO, 312-313 2, 461 Be G2 2, 924 LO, 563 8, 37-38 2, 1093-1094 I, 155-156 4, 522 8, 884-895 Fn E59 2, 470 2,479 4, 495-496 Dh ING Sans 5, LO9I-1092 4, 26-27 Lo, 861-863 8, 337-338 I, 38-39 II, 174 2, 483 3, 1061
Banos de Gigonza (Paterna de
settl
Ibe.
Saguntia
12, 867
Bansko (?) Banzi (Southern It.) in the bay of Baratti
settl settl settl
Gr. It. It.
Doberus Bantia Populonia
4, 584 2, 497 II, 628-629
Barcelona Bardzochia
settl mtn
Ibe. Gr.
Barcino(na) Tisaeum
2507, nen Ba
Bari Barka Gabal Barng Bartin Cayi Basel
settl settl settl wtr. settl
It. Afr. Egy. AM WE
Barium Barke Nitriae Parthenius [I 3] Basilia
2, 510-511 hy ate 9, 781 LO, 565 2, 524-525
Basento
wtr
It.
Casuentus
2, LIGO
Basli Cayi
wtr.
AM
Caprus [1]
Basmakci Basra Lago di Bassano Tell Basta Bath near (Batn) Ihrit La Batie-Montsaléon
settl settl wtr. settl settl settl settl
AM NE It. Afr. WE Egy. WE Alp
Faustinupolis Basra Lacus Vadimonis Bubastis Aquae [III 7] Sulis Theadelpheia Seleucus mons
2, 1079 6, D227 2, 542-543 7, 160 2,798 I, 926-927 Tea aera ae
Oxyrhynchus Baecula Bratuspantium Caicus [1] Parthenias Lysimachia [1] Cardia Adrasus Diospolis [3] D. Inferior Miletus [2] Lacus Pelso Balawat Balkh Dionysopolis Bactrus [2] Magnum Municipium Haemus Cyzicus Pessinus Mare Suebicum Abydus [2] Phoetiae Bamyan Cynopolis, Cynopolites
6, [152-1153 2,458 2, 462 1, 924-925 I, 926 6, 151 6, 910 12, 396 I, 922-923
I, I, 1, 2,
922-923 922-923 922-923 1066
[2] Rivera)
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Batrun (Libanon) near Batumi Bavai near Bayat near Bayburt al-Bayda’ Baza
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE BS
Botrys Kobuleti-Pichvnari
2.738 Tar
Beas (Pakistan)
wtr.
Beauvais Bebekli (?) Be‘er Seva‘ (?)
settl. settl. settl.
Behramkale
settl.
Beirut Beisug
settl. wtr.
Beja Bejaia
settl. settl.
Bekarlar Belasica Belene
settl. mtn. settl.
WE AM AM BS NE Ibe. NE WE AM NE AM NE BS Afr. Afr. AM Gr. Bal. Bal.
Bagacum Seleucia [6] Gymnias Nascus Baza Hyphasis Caesaromagus Castolus Bersabe Assos Berytus Rhombites [2] R. Elatton Vaga Saldae Nazianzus Orbelus Dimum
2, 462-463 LANA 5, 1060 D5 517) 2, 564 6, 636 2,920 7 as28 pe 2, 609-610 2, 184-185 2, 610-611 12, 578 ES HESS 12, 883 9, 576 10, 189 4,419
near Beleni
settl.
AM
Olbasa
10, 80
near Belenli
settl.
AM
Isinda [1]
6,965
near Belési (Central Gr.) Belgrad (Serbia) Belice (Sic.) Belkis
settl. settl. wtr. settl.
Gr. Bal. It. AM NE
Parapotamii Singidunum Hypsas [1] Seleucia [7]
IO, 521 13, 495-496 6, 648 EAE
Belkis
settl.
AM NE
Zeugma [2]
15, 917-918
Bene Vagienna
settl.
It. Alp.
Augusta [1] Bagiennorum
2, 342
Benevento
settl.
It.
Beneventum
2, 598
Bengazi
settl.
Afr.
Berenice [8]
2, 602
Beni Fouda
settl.
Afr.
Novar
9, 834
El-Benian
settl.
Afr.
Quiza
12, 361
near Berat Bergama
settl. settl.
Gr. Bal. AM
Gerrunium Pergamum
5, 820 IO, 754-772
Bergamo Bergaz Koyu near Bernbeuren
settl. settl. settl.
It. AM Alp.
Bergomum Percote
Damasia
2, 603-604 10, 746 45 57
Besagil
settl.
AM
Can(n)a
2, LOZE
Besangon near Besik near Besik Tepes Besparmak Daglari
settl. settl. settl. mtn.
WE AM AM AM
Vesontio Colonae [3] Hamaxitus Latmus [1]
L5, 330-333 3, 538 $5, LEDS 7,292
Bet Maqdum (?) bet ramta
settl. settl.
NE NE
Maceda Libias
8, 56-57 7,495
Bet Se‘arim
settl.
NE
Beth Shearim
2, 618
Bethany
settl.
NE
Bethania [1]
2, 614-615
Betharamata Bethlehem
settl. settl.
NE NE
Libias Bethlehem
TAGS 2, 616-617
Hirbat at-Tall (near Bétin) Bétin
settl. settl.
NE NE
Ai Bethel [1]
I, 402 Teno thy
Bettona on Mont-Beuvray Bevagna Beykoz near Beyova
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. WE It. AM AM
Vettona Bibracte Mevania Nicopolis [4] Hiera Kome,
15, 361 2, 638 8, 847 9,744 6, 301-302
Beypazari Beysehir Golu
settl. wtr.
AM AM
Hierocaesarea Syceon Coralis
Beziers Bicvinta (Abkhazia/Georgia) Biferno Biga Biga Cay1
settl. settl. wtr. isl. wtr.
WE BS It. Egy. AM
Baeterrae Pityus Tifernus Senis Granicus
13, 983 3, 780 2, 462 Tay eit 14, 667 135279 5,988
183
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Binchester Bingen Bingerbriick
settl. settl. settl.
WE WE WE
Vinovia Bingium Bingium
15, 439 2, 647 2, 647
near Bir-kot-Gundai (Pakistan) (?)
settl.
NE
Bazira
2, 565
Birnbaumer Wald
settl.
Bal.
Ad Pirum
Teg 2)
Birs Nimrud
settl.
NE
Borsippa
Pty
near Birten near Bisaccia Monte Bisenzio Bitburg Bitola (Macedonia) Bitonto Bizerte
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
WE It. It. WE Gr. It. Afr.
Vetera Romulea Visentium Beda Heraclea [2] H. Lyncestis Butunti Hippo [5]
15, 346-350 12, 726 15, 464 Ds TAD) 6, 150-151 2, 840 6, 346-347
Bjelgorod Dnestrovski Black Forest
settl. mtn.
Tyras Silva Marciana
Black Sea
wtr
Bal. WE AM BS
15, 66 13, 468 II, 599-600
Blera (Viterbo)
settl.
It.
Blera, Bieda
Bliouris (?)
wtr.
Gr.
Pamisus [3]
10, 410
Bodrum Bogaskoy (Turkey) Bogazi Bogazici Bogazkale (Turkey) near Bogdanou (Central Gr.) Bogdanou (Central Gr.) Bohtan Su near Bolaman Bolayir Iskelesi Bolbe Bologna Bolsena Boltana near Bolu Bolu Bolu Cay
settl settl wtr. wtr. settl settl settl wtr. settl settl wtr. settl settl settl settl. settl. wtr.
AM AM AM Bal AM Bal. AM Gr. Gr. AM AM Bal. Gr. It. It. Ibe. AM AM AM
Halicarnassus Hattusa Bosporus [1] Bosporus [1] Hattusa Cleonae [2] Hyampolis Centrites Polemonium Pactye Bolbe Bononia [1] Volsinii [2] Boletum Trapezopolis Claudioupolis [1] Ladon [4]
5, [110-1113 6, 4-17 25 733-734 2, 733-734 6, 4-17 35437 6, 592-593 35) 128 II, 461-462 IO, 324-325 Ded 2720 Vee i1KO) DEA 14, 865 3,390 Fy 163
near Bolzano near Bombay (India)
Ihe, NE WE
Pons [8] Pons Drusi Calliena Bonna
IT, 588-589 2. 97m
Bonn
settl settl settl
Boppard Bordeaux Ain el-Bordj Bordj el-Ksar near Borgo Montello Borgo San Dalmazzo (near Cuneo) Borgo Tufico Boscoreale
settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl.
WE WE Afr. Afr. It. it It: Ibi,
Bodobrica Burdigala Tigisis Sila [2] Satricum Pedona Tuficum Boscoreale
2, 693-694 2, 824-825 14, 669 13,451 T3524 10, 676 ye 2 Dis73 0
Boscotrecase Bosporos
settl wtr.
It. AM Bal.
Boscotrecase Bosporus [r]
2, 732-733 2, 733-734
La Bottaccia (near Castel di
settl.
lite
Lorium
Westley
Bou Arada Bou Arada Bou Djelida Bou Grara Bou Kornein Cap Bougaroun Boulonge-sur-mer Bourges
settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. mtn. settl. settl.
Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. WE WE
Apisa Minus Aradi Gens Bacchuiana Gigthis Bou Kornein Metagonium [2] Gesoriacum Avaricum
1, 842 I, 947 5, 763 5, 850 2, 739-740 8,775 5, 825-826 Dy Ae:
near Boza (Pelop.) (?)
settl.
Gr:
Cyparissia [2]
3, 1064-1065
Bozburun Bozdag
settl. mtn.
AM AM
Tymnus Tmolus [1]
15,56 7 ope
Pontos Euxeinos I.
ys
Geography 2, 688-689
27 ES
Guido)
GEOGRAPHICAL
184
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Bozen
settl.
It.
Pons [8] Pons Drusi
II, 588-589
Bozuk kale Bozyazi Lago di Bracciano Bratislava-Rusovce Breéeva (near Gornji Muc) Bregenz Brenta Brescello Brescia
settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
AM AM It. Bal. Bal. WE Alp It. Alp Iie Tee
Loryma Nagidus Sabatinus Lacus Gerulata Andetrium Brigantium Meduacus Brixellum Brixia
7, 815-816 9,491 12, 806 5, 820 1, 676 pg igie” 8, 591 2,784 2, 784-785
near Breteil sur Noye (?)
settl.
WE
Bratuspantium
DIGS
Briangonnet (?) near Bribir
sett. settl.
Alp. Bal.
Rigomagus [2] Varvaria
12, 594 15, 227-228
Brindisi near Brion
settl. settl.
It. WE
Brundisium Noviomagus [1]
2,792 9, 859
near Brnjica
settl.
Bal.
Ad Novas [2]
I, 144
near Broach (India) Broach (India) Bracoli (Sic.) (2) Capo Bruzzano Buccino
settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl.
NE NE It. It. It.
Ozene Barygaza Trotilum Zephyrium [3] Volcei
Buchara near Buchiotis Budapest near Budapest-Rakospatak Bug near Bugiati (Pelop.) near Bugojno (Bosnia and Herzegovina) near Bulis Cape Bulustra
settl.
NE
Buchara
settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
Gr. Bal. Bal. BS Gr. Bal.
Elis [2] Aquincum
2, 516 14, 967 15,910 15,498 2, 800 4,924 1, 935-936
Transaquincum Hypanis [1] Alea [3] Bistua Nova
6, 626 I, 463 2, 674
settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Bal.
Mychus Abdera [1]
9, 402
settl.
Bal.
Beos
2, 598
Buphagos wtr. Hirbat al-Burg (near at-Tantura) _ settl. Burgas (Bulgaria) settl. Burgle (near Gundremmingen) settl. Bursa settl. near Buruncuk (?) settl. Busra settl.
Gr. NE Bal. WE AM
2, 823-824 4, 672-673 2, 827-828 2, 807 12, 91-92
NE
Buphagus Dora Burgas Burgle Prusa, Prusaad Olympum Larisa [6] Bostra
Butera (Sic.) (?)
settl.
or
Omphace
10, 123
Butrint (Albania)
settl.
Bal.
Buthrotum
2, 838-839
near Buyuk Karistiran (Turkey) Buytikbunardere (?)
settl. wtr.
AM AM
Drusipara Tearus
4,725 14, 193
Bunarli
AM
LO, 314-315
14, 844
1,16
7,254
2. 73g
Buyukkaletepe
settl.
AM
Nyssa
near Buytiknefes Buyiiksu
settl. wtr.
AM AM
Tavium Ladon [4]
9,931 14,174 7563
Buzi (Pelop.)
wtr.
Gr.
Neda
9, 610
Caceres
settl.
Ibe.
Norba [2]
9, 816
Cadiz
settl.
Ibe.
Gades
5) 63 5-637
Caerleon Caernarfon
sett. settl.
WE WE
Isca Silurum Segontium
6, 957-958 13, 201-202
Caerwent near Caglarca Cagliari Cahors Caiazzo near Cairo
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
WE AM It. WE It. Egy.
Venta Silurum Trebenna Carales Divona Caiatia Gizeh
15, 281 14, 883 2, 1086-1087 4, 581 2,924 55 S55
near Cairo near Cairo
settl. settl.
Egy. Egy.
Saqqara Serapeum [1]
12,965 13,303
_ settl. settl. settl.
Bal. Ibe. Ibe.
Metulum Calagurris [2] Nasica Nertobriga [1]
8, 845 B92 7) 9, 675-676
Cakovac (near Ogulin, Croatia) Calahorra Calatorao
185
Modern name
Caldana (Campiglia Marittima)
GEOGRAPHICAL
Type
_ settl.
CONCORDANCE
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
It.
Aquae I. Italy
I, 922-923
It. It. te It. It. AM It. AM AM Bal AM
Triocala Betriacum Cales [2] Camarina Camerinum Cremna Aquilonia [1] Abydus [rz] Hellespontus Pitane
14, 928 2, 618
AM Ite ike Ibe. WE WE It.
Gangra Cannae Canusium Lutia Durovernum Uxellodunum [1] Capena
ie Ibe.
Rostrata Mirobriga [1]
It. It. It. Ibe. Gr. AM Ibe. WE It.
Capitium Cliternia [1] Casilinum Carambolo, El Isthmus Istria Paesus Cortona [2] Vorgium Hykkara
AM WE
Melas [ro] Luguvallium
Ibe. lie It. Ibe. Ibe.
Carmo Cale Acte Valet(i)um Carthago Nova Cartima
WE Ife Ite ke
Magnae Thurii Eretum Leon [13]
It.
Ficulea
3,928 I, 935 1g, ite 6, 109 Tek, 303 5, 688 2, L050 2, LO61 7, 898-899 A ohse 15, 148 2, 1063 LAA 9,56 2, 1070 3,455 Pie SESE 2, 1087 6, 991-992 10, 337 3, 855 15, 521-522 6, 608 8, 622 VERY AS) Oy, Tells § 21937 15,195 Dp, LT Pe SNAG 8, 163 14, 640-641 5, 25-26 7,399 Gi. Ante
It. It.
Vardagate Valvata
15, 204 15, 199
It. BS It. It. It. It.
Cluviae Caspian Sea Cacyparis Casinum Clastidium Castel d’Asso
3, ay 2, 2, 3, 23,
(?) near Caltabellotta (Sic.) (?) near Calvatone (Cremona)
settl. settl.
Calvi Risorta settl. Camerina (Sic.) settl. Camerino settl. near Camlik settl. near Campobasso settl. Canakkale settl. Canakkale Bogazi wtr. near Candarli settl. Cankir1 settl. Monte di Canne settl. Canosa (Southern It.) settl. Cantalucia (?) settl. Canterbury settl. Capdenac (?) settl. near Capena settl. near Capena settl. near Capilla settl. Capizzi isl. Capradosso settl. Capua settl. E] Carambolo settl. Caranasif, Kreis Constanta settl. near Cardak (?) settl. Cardona (?) settl. Carhaix settl. near Carini (Sic.) settl. Cark Dere wtr. Carlisle settl. _ Carmona settl. near Caronia Marina (Sic.) settl. Carovigno settl. Cartagena settl. Cartama settl. Carvoran settl. near Casa Bianca settl. Casa Cotta di Montelibretti settl. near Casa delle Finanze (Sic.) (?) _ settl. near Casale di Marco Simone settl. Vecchio Casale Monferrato (?) settl. near Cascina settl. near Casoli (Chieti) settl. Caspian Sea wtr. Cassibile (Sic.) wtr. Cassino (Prov. Frosinone) settl. Casteggio settl. Castel d’ Asso settl.
2.952 2, LOL3-IOI5 2, 1021
485 ere 866 LI5I-I1§2 384 IM Fy
near Castel di Decima (?)
settl.
Thies
Politorium
II, 490
Castel di Decima near Castel Dragona (?) Castel di Sangro Castel Volturno near Castelfranco Emilia near Castelgandolfo (Latium) near Castellamare di Velia (Southern It.) near Castellammare (Sic.) Castellina del Marangone
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl,
It. Its It. Its ihe It. It.
Castel di Decima Gerunium Aufidena Volturnum [1] Forum [IV 3] F. Gallorum Alba Longa Velia [2]
Pie aunty 5, 821 2.33)5 Tey Gata 5, 530 I, 427-428 15, 260-261
settl.
It.
Segesta [1]
settl.
If
Castellina del Marangone
13, 197-198 2, 1178
GEOGRAPHICAL
186
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Castellina-in-Chianti Castiello (near Rutigliano) Castiglione (?) Castillo de Mulva Catalbadem Catania (Sic.) Cavallata (Sic.) (?) Monte Cavo Cavtat (Croatia) near Cayirbagi near Cayagzi Cazlona (Prov. Jaén) (?) near Ceccano Cefalu (Sic.) Ceglie del Campo (Southern It.) Ceglie Messapico (Southern It.) Célje (Cilli)
settl settl settl settl settl settl wtr mtn. settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl
It. It. Afr. Ibe. AM It. It. It. Bal. AM AM Ibe. It. It. It. It. Bal. Alp.
2, 1177-1178 2,435 pao) 9, 299-300 4, 863-864 3, 8-9 6, 205 9,575 4, 1085 6, 931 15, 866 2, 1190 5, 309 35 33a 2, 891 2, 891 BaGr
Cerablus (Northern Syria) Cerna gora (Bulgaria) on Cerro de Bambola (near
settl settl settl
NE Bal. Ibe.
Castellina-in-Chianti Azetium Casae Calbenti Munigua Eirenoupolis Catane Herineus Mons Albanus Epidaurum Ipsus Zakoria Castulo Fabrateria [1] F. Vetus Cephaloedium Caelia [1] Caelia [2] Celeia Karchemish Cillae Bilbilis
7, 20-23 5433 2, 641
on Cerro de Montecristo (Prov. Almeria)
settl
Ibe.
Abdera [2]
I, 16
Cert Osman Kalesi near Cerveteri
settl. settl.
AM It.
Pidasa Caere
Li5236 2, 898
Cesena Cesme Cetina near Cevril (?) near Ceyhan (?) Ceyhan (Kilikia)
settl. settl wtr. settl. settl. wtr
It. AM Bal. AM NE AM
Caesena Erythrae [2] Nestus [2] Peltae Maiocariri Pyramus [1]
2, 921 55 54-55 9, 688 LO, 714 Sree 12, 251-252
Chah Bahar near Chaironeia
wtr. settl.
NE Gr.
Omana Chaeronea
LO) EZE 3, 176-177
Chalitani Chalkis (Central Gr.)
isl. settl.
It. Gr.
3, 183 3, 181-182
Chalon-sur-Sa6ne near Chamakou (Pelop.)
settl. settl.
WE Gr.
2, 860 7, 889-890
Chania (Crete) Chanzy
settl. settl.
Gr Afr.
Chalitani Chalcis [1] Cabillon(n)um Lusi Cydonia Kaputtasaccura
Charadra
wtr.
Gr.
Charadra [1]
3, 189
Charikar (Afghanistan)
settl.
NE
Alexandria [9]
Chateau Roussillon Chateaumeillant Chella Chemtou Chenab Cheniscqali Cherchel Chester Chesterholm Chesters Chiana Chiaramonte Gulfi (Sic.) (2) Chiaruccia Chichester Chieti near Chiliomodion
settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr wtr. settl settl settl settl wtr. settl settl settl settl settl
WE WE Afr. Afr. NE BS Afr. WE WE WE It. It. Ii, WE It. Gr.
Ruscino [2] Mediolan(i)um [2] Sala [2] Simitthus Acesines [2] Hippus [1] Caesarea [2] Deva Vindolanda Cilurnum Clanis Acrillae Castrum [2] C. Novum Noviomagus [9] Teate [1] Tenea
I, 499 12, 789 8, 584 12, 875-876 13, 481 1, 68 6, 379 2, 917-918 ASS 25 15, 434 35 333-334 3, 380 Nee tiaes 2, 1189 9, 862-863 14, 193 14, 269
Chios near Chiusa di S. Michele (?) Chiusi near Chotusa (Pelop.) near Chryso (Central Gr.)
settl settl settl settl settl
Gr. It. Alp. It. Gr. Gr.
Chios Ocelum [1] Clusium Caphyae Crisa
aaeoe LO, 15 3, 484-485 2, 1065 3, 944-945
Calatayd, Prov. Zaragoza)
3, 1046 7,19
187
GEOGRAPHICAL
Region
Modern name
Type
near Chrysovitsa
settl.
Gr
Coronta
3, 844
Chur
settl.
Alp.
Curia
3, IOLI-1012
Ciani (near Syrakus) near Cicamuri (Georgia) near Cieza (Prov. Murcia) Cihisjiri (near Batumi, Georgia) Ciineni (Romania) Cile Dagi
Cilician Gates [2]
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. mtn.
It. BS Ibe. BS Bal. AM AM NE
By Lose. 13, 347-348 2, [129-1130 10, 870-873 II, 590 10, 117 3, 332
Cimiez (near Nizza)
settl.
WE Alp
Cyane Seusamora Carteia Petra [3] Pons [14] Pons Vetus Olympus [ro] Cilician Gates /Ciliciae Pylae [2] Cemenelum
Monte Cimino Cimone (?) Cine Cayi
mtn. mtn. wtr.
It. Ite AM
Mons Ciminius Auginus mons Marsyas [4]
9,176 Py BKC) 8, 407
Cingoli (Macerata) near Cirakman (Bulgaria) Circeo Cirik-Rabat-Kala near Cisterna Citluk (near Sinj) Citta di Castello near Cittadella a Vindicari (Sic.) (?) near Cittaducale
settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. sett.
It. BS It. NE It. Bal. Tt It.
Cingulum [1] Bizone Mons Circeius
Aequum Tifernum Tiberinum Tyracinae
3,344 2, 684 9, 176-177 Be ae) 14, 890 Ds 237 14, 667 15, 61
settl.
It.
Aquae I. Cutiliae
I, 922-923
Civita (near Paterno) (?)
settl.
It.
Aetna [2]
278,
near La Civita near Civita Castellana Civita Castellana Civita d’Antino Civita (near S. Maria di Licodia, _
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. It. It. It. It.
Cupra Maritima Narce Falerii [1] Antinum Inessa
3, 1003 9, 505-506 S324 Lg 57 6,796
Sic.) (2) near Civita (Sic.)
settl.
It.
Hybla [2] H.
6, 594
Geleatis/Gereatis Abellinum Laterium Foruli
I, 18-19 7, 27
near Civita (Southern It.) near Civita Falconiera
settl. settl.
It. It.
Civitatomassa (Scoppito, L‘Aquila) Civitavecchia near Civitella (?) Civitella di Nesce Clermont-Ferrand Climiti Cluj (Romania) near Cobanisa (?) Coca (Prov. Segovia) Colchester near Colleferro (?) Collo Cologne Cologne-Deutz near Cologne-Worringen (?) Comlekci (Turkey) Como Lago di Como Monte Compatri Comune di Bacoli Lake Constance Constanta (Romania) Constanta (Romania) Constanta (Romania) Constanta (Romania) Constantine
settl.
It.
settl. settl.
It. It.
settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
te WE It. Bal. AM Ibe. WE It. Afr. WE WE WE AM Ihe Alp. It. ts WE Alp Bal. Bal. Bal. Bal. Afr.
Ancient/entry name
CONCORDANCE
Cirik-Rabat-Kala Tres Tabernae [1]
Centumcellae Vitellia [2] Nersae, Augustonemetum Thybris Napoca Mostene Cauca Camulodunum Verrugo Chullu Colonia Agrippinensis Divitia Segorigium Theangela Comum Lacus Larius Labici Baiae Lacus Brigantinus Capidava Carsium Cius, [2] Tomi Cirta
Volume, Column
3,99
5, 509
35,023 15,474 9, 675 2, 363
14, 643-644 9, 500-501 9, 235-236 BN 35 2, 1030 HS aks 3, 300 35 541-545 4, 580-581 £352.08 14, 376-377 3, 678-679 7, 157-158 aad: 2, 465-466 7, 156-157 2, 1065-1066 DT T2I9 3, 370 14, 776-777 3, 364-365
GEOGRAPHICAL
188
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
near Consuegra sett] Conza della Campania settl Corbridge settl Cordoba settl. Corfinio (L‘Aquila) settl. Cori settl. Corinth settl. Corinthian Gulf wtr. near Corioli settl. Corlusuyu Deresi (?) wtr Coroch wtr Coroch wtr Corohi wtr Corohi wtr. near Corridonia settl. Cortijo de la Coria (Utrera, Prov. — settl. Sevilla) Cortona settl. Coruh Nehri wtr Coruh Nehri wtr. near Cosenza settl. Cosenza settl. Cozzo settl. Mont Cramont mtn. Crati
wtr.
Cremona Crna Reka Crotone Crustumeri near Cuenca (?) Cukur Su
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr.
near Cukurbag Cumall (?) Curiik Su Cyprus near Dereh ha-Nisahon Tall Dafana
settl.
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Consabura
3,694
Compsa, Cossa
3, 678 3, 854
Corstopitum Corduba Corfinium Cora Ephyra [1] Corinth, Gulf of Mugilla Xerogypsos Acampsis Harpasus [2] Acampsis Harpasus [2]
Pausulae Salpensa Cortona [1] Acampsis Harpasus [2] Pandosia [2] Consentia Cottiae Iugum Cremonis Crathis [3] Cremona Erigon Croton Crustumerium
3, 786-788
3, 789 3,779 4, 1037 3, 790-791 9,259 15, 836
ce 5, 1149 EAT 5, 1149 10, 655 12, 9OI
3, 854 I, 47 5, 1149 IO, 437 3, 700-701
3, 877 6, 1035 3, 921-922
3, 928-929 5,32
3, 959-960 3, 965-966
Ercavica
55 20
Cadmus [5] Phellus
2, 869
settl. wtr. isl.
Aigos Potamos (Potamoi)
10, 946-947 I, 404
Lycus [18]
7> 940
Cyprus [2]
3, 1075-1080
settl.
Ascalon Daphnae Daphne [3] Coropissus
Sak?bs
settl.
Hirbat Dafna Dagpazari (?)
settl. settl.
near Daimonia (?) ad-Dakka Dalaman Cay1
settl. settl. wtr.
Dalas Dalheim near Dali (Cyprus) near Dalyan near Dalyankoy Dalyankoy
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
near Dam Kale (?) near Damasion
settl. settl.
Damgan near Danilo Kraljice Dar es-Safi Dardanelles Dargabind near Daroca near Daruvar Daryab near Dasolophos (?) near Datga (?) near Davlosis (Central Gr.) Dchar Djedid (?)
settl. settl settl. wtr wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
4, 80 4, 81
3, 844
Cotyrta Pselcis
3, 879
Indus [2] Nilopolis [1] Dalheim Idalium
6,794
I2,
107-108
» 761
4,42 6, 711-712
Caunus [2]
3,5 39-41
Neandrea Alexandria [2] Marpessus Mylae [1] Damghan Rider Kerkouane Hellespontus Daras [2] Contrebia Aquae [III 9] Balissae Daras [2] Thetideion Cnidus Medeon [2] Zulil
9, 578-579 1, 498 8, 385 9, 406
4,59 12, 591 7> 43 6, 109
4, 85 3505) I, 927-928
4, 85 14, 581-582
3, 489-490 8,549 15,974
189
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Dead Sea Debelt (Bulgaria) Decize near Degirmendere near Degirmendere
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE Bal. WE AM AM
Asphaltitis limne Deultum Decetia Colophon [1] Notium
Dekedes (near Agia Paskevi) (?) Dekedes (near Agia Paskevi) (?)
settl. settl.
Gr. Gr.
Eleusis [2] Athens [2]
mtn.
Afr. AM AM AM It. it Afr. Gr. Gre AM AM AM Bal.
Metagonium [r] Pinarus Cappadox Olympus [r1] Leucopetra Albulae I. Italy Rusuccuru Plygonium Midea [x] Laodicea [4] Lethaeus [3] Cadyanda Delcus
27a 4, 322-323 4,150 3, 578-579 9, 830-831 4,917 2, 280-281 8,775 L204 2, 1078 10, 117-118 7,449 I, 922-923 12, 793 II, 430 8, 864 Tea TABS 2, 870 4, 200
Cap del’Agua Deli Cay1 Delice Irmagi Deliktas Capo dell’Armi Lago della Soforata Dellys near Delphi near Dendra (Pelop.) near Denizli Derbent ¢ay1 near Derekoy Derkoz Golii
wtr wtr. settl.
mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. wtr.
near Derveni (Pelop.)
settl
Gr
Aegira
I, 194-195
Despefiaperros Monte Desusino (Sic.)
settl settl
Ibe. ie
Despenaperros Phalarium
4,319 10, 909
Deveboynu
mtn.
AM
Triopium
14, 928-929
Devehéyiik Devri Sehri near Dhavleia (Central Gr.) Diban Dicle Die
settl settl settl settl wtr. settl
AM AM Gr. NE NE WE
Devehoyuk Derbe Daulis, Daulia Dibon Tigris Dea Augusta
4,327 4, 310-311 4, LO4-105 4, 369 14, 673 4, I10
Dieburg Digla Dion
settl wtr. settl.
WE NE WE
Dieburg Tigris Divio
4, 400 14, 673 4, 578
near Dikili (Western Turkey) near Dikili (Western Turkey)
settl. settl.
AM AM
Atarneus Attaleia [3]
Pp PONS) 2B OS
near Dikmen Hiiyiik Dilek Dagi near Dilekkaya near Dilesi (Central Gr.) Dima Dimini
settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. mtn. wtr wtr. settl settl. settl.
AM AM AM Gr. Egy. Gr.
Anastasioupolis Mycale Anazarbus Delium [1] Soknopaiou Nesos Dimini Aeson [4] Lusius [I] Teuthis Apamea [2] Celaenae Marsyas [5] Pimpleia Tegyra Trogilium Chrysas Tornadotus Amida Zigua Thysdra
I, 644 9, 384 1, 663-664 4, 208 13, 607 4, 418-419
Vocontiorum
Dimini (?) Dimitsana near Dimitsana (Pelop.)
Dinar Dinar Dinar Suyu near Dion near Dionisos (Central Gr.) Dip Burun
Dittaino (Sic.) Diyala Diyarbakir near Djebel Zaghouan El Djem Djemila Djerma Djidjelli Dnjepr Doana near Dodurga
settl. settl settl wtr
wtr. settl
Gr. Gr. Gr.
AM AM AM Gr. Gr. AM
It. NE AM Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. BS Gr. AM
Cuicul Garama Igilgili Borysthenes Erymanthus [2] Sidyma
I, 255-256 7, 891 14, 334
res
7
3, 66 8, 407 II, 260 TA, 205 14, 960
3, 286 14, 789 1, 580-581 15,932 14, 588 3,978 5, 691 6,719 732 bake 13, 440
GEOGRAPHICAL
190
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
near Dodurga (?)
settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl.
near Doganbey Dogandere Tepe near Doganhisar Dogansgehir Dolen Kozjak (Macedonia) Dolsach and NufSdorf-Debant (Austria) Domeno (Prov. Valencia) (?)
Domoko (Central Gr.)
settl. settl.
Don Donau Donnstetten-Romerstein
wtr. settl.
wtr.
(Baden-Wurttemberg) (?) Dora Baltea Dora Riparia
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Themisonium Thebes [4] Mons Magaba Thymbrium Sozopetra Bargala Aguntum
14, 426-427
Damania
Thaumaci Tanais [1] Ister, Istrus [1] Clarenna Duria Duria Duranus
Dordogne Dormagen Dort Direkli Doubs Dougga
Durnomagus Magarsa Dubis
Douro Dover
Drago (Sic.)
Stream of Dragogi Drau
Drepanon (Cyprus)
Drepanon (Pelop.) Drepanon (Western Crete) Drim
Drina Drina (?) Drini
Drnovo (Slovenia)
settl.
Drome
wtr. settl.
near Drosia (Central Gr.) near Drvmea Dubrovnik Dudhal (near (New-)Delhi) (?) Duero Dugi Otok (?) near Duino (?) ‘Ain Duk Duklista (Central Gr.)
Region
settl. settl. settl.
wtr. isl. settl.
14,419 9, 178 14, 646 13, 684
2, 509
I, 397-398 4, 5° 14, 371 14, 130-131 6, 987-988
3, 380
4,746
4, 746
4,745 4,748 8, 125
4,730
Thugga
14, 638
Durius
4, 748
Dubrae Hypsas [2] Lymax
4,730 6, 649
Dra(v)us Drepanon [3] Drepanon [2]
4,714 4, 719-720
Drepanon [1] Drilon
4,719
Drinus Noarus
Aa Ft
Drilon Neviodunum Druna
8,17
4,719 4,721
9, 782 4, 725
9, 690 4,725
Salganeus Drymus [1] Ragusa Daedala [4]
12, 885 4,728 12, 388
Durius Portunata Pucinum
4,748
Dok Tripolis [1] Doclea
4, 613
Doliche [2] Eduma
4, 616
4,34 II, 665
Duma
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Dimrek Cay
wtr.
Simoeis
13, 482
Dunaszekcs6 (Hungary) Dunaujvaros (Hungary) Dura-Europos Duran Ciftlik (?) Durance Durrés (Albania)
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Lugio
7, 878
Dirrnberg Tall Datan
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Duklja Diuluk
near Diver Diuzic¢i Dzalisa
near East Bridgefort Eauze
Eberdingen-Hochdorf
wtr. settl.
T2552: 14, 934
4, 585-586
4, 835
Intercisa [1]
6, 847
Dura-Europus Callipolis [1]
4, 744-745
Druentia
Dyrrhachium Diirrnberg Dothan Tlos Neronias Zalissa
Margidunum Elusa Hochdorf
2, 983-984 4,724 4, 760-761
4,736 4, 697 14, 750-751
9, 674-675 Se Ome
8, 339-340 4,930
6, 441
191
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Ebro near Eceabat (Turkey) Ecija Eder (?) Edessa Edirne (Turkey) near Edremit Edremit Hirbat Ehdeb Ehl-Benfeld (Dep. Bas-Rhin) Eining (Bavaria) near Elasson (Central Gr.) Elateia (Central Gr.) (?) Elatia (Central Gr.) near Elazig Elbe Elburs Elche Elefsina near Eleftherochori (?) Elne Elunda (Crete) Elymbos Embrun Ems Endisegiiney
wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. wtr. settl.
Ibe. AM Ibe. WE Gr. Bal. AM AM NE WE Alp. Gr. Gr. Gr. AM WE AM Ibe. Gr. Gr. Ibe. Gr. Gr. WE WE AM
Iberus [1] Elaeus [1] Astigi(s) Adrana Edessa [1] Hadrianopolis [3] Thebe [2] Adramyttium Gamala Helellum Abusina Ortha, Orthe [1] Elatea [2] Elatea [1] Dascusa Albis Paryadres Ilici Eleusis [1] Methone [3] Iliberis [2] Olous Olympus [7] Eburodunum [1] Amisia [1] Antioch [3]
6, 696 4, 883 Py Wye i, B53 4, 802 5, 1081-1082 14, 402 Vig Held hye) 5, 681 6, 62 ty 37 10, 258 4, 890 4, 888-889 4, 100 Ty AG)22 10, 582 6, 726 4, 913-917 8, 805 6, 726 10, 91-92 10, 117 4,776 I, 581 Te 759
near Engomi Enkomi (Cyprus)
settl. settl.
Gr. AM Gr. AM
Salamis [2] Salamis [2]
12, 880-881 12, 880-881
Enna (Sic.) Enns-Lorch (Austria) Ensérune Entremont
settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. Alp. WE WE
Henna [1] Lauriacum Ensérune Entremont
6, 135-136 75 302-303 4,991 4, LOOL
Epano-Belesi
wtr.
Gr.
Cephis(s)us [4]
Big AO)
Epfach near Episkopi
settl. settl.
WE Gr.
Abodiacum Tegea [x]
Ti, 2! 14, 213-215
Episkopi (Central Gr.) Epitalio (Pelop.) Eraclea Minoa (Sic.) Erbil Erciyes Dagi Ercolano Eregli Eretria (Euboea) near Ergili Erimupolis (Crete) Ermenek Ermioni (Pelop.) near Erythrai Erythrai near Erythres (Central Gr.) Erythres (Central Gr.) Erzerum Erzgebirge (?) Escau(t)pont Esen Cayi Esence Esino Eski Kahta Eski Malatya Eskihisar Eskigehir Esler Dagi
settl.
Gr.
Ascra
settl settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl settl settl settl settl settl settl sett] settl settl mtn. settl wtr. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn.
Gr. Iii NE AM It. AM Gr. AM Gr. AM Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. NE WE WE AM AM It. NE AM AM AM AM
Epitalium Heraclea [9] Arbela [x] Argaeus [2] Herculaneum Heraclea [7] H. Pontike Eretria [1] Dascylium [2] Itanus Germanicopolis Hermion(e) Erythrae [1] Hysiae Erythrae [1] Hysiae Theodosiopolis [2] Mons Melibocus Scaldis Pons Xanthus [5] Dascylium [1] Aesis Arsamea [2] Melitene Stratoniceia [2] Dorylaeum Cadmus [4]
Peal ly/ A LES 6, 153-154 I, 962 I, 1056 6, 187-188 6, 152-153 5, 23-24 4, LOO-101 6, LO19 5 ona 6, 225-226 5, 54 6, 657 Sees: 6, 657 14, 467-468 9,179 13, 46 US 797, 4, 100 D254 Pp Bi 8, 638-639 13, 879-880 4, 691-692 2, 869
GEOGRAPHICAL
192
CONCORDANCE
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Esna Este
Esna Ateste
2, 227-228
near Etoliko (?) near Etoliko (?)
Proschium
Region
Modern name
Etain (near Yenne) (?) Etna
Euphrat Eurotas
near Evangelistria near Evdilos (Ikaria) near Evenochori Evora near Evpatorya Evreux
settl. settl. settl.
near Exarchos (Central Gr.) Faenza Falacrino in Collicelle (Cittareale,
settl. settl. settl.
Fano
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Rieti)
near Fano (Central Gr.) Faquts Farah (Afghanistan) (?) Tall Farama Farfa Farsala (Central Gr.)
Hirbat Fasail Fejér (near Székesfehérvar, Hungary) near Fenaket
settl.
settl.
settl. settl. Fener Burnu mtn. Feodosiya settl. Ferentino settl. Ferento settl. Fermo (Ascoli Piceno) settl. near Ferrara settl. near Ferrara settl. near Fethiye settl. near Fethiye settl. Fibreno wtr. Fidenza settl. Fiesole settl. near Figalia (Pelop.) settl. Cape Figla (?) settl. near Filerimos (Rhodos) settl. Filicudi isl. Filyos wtr. near Finike settl. near Finike settl. near Finike settl. near Finig (Albania) settl. settl. Fiorenzuola d’Arda Firenze settl. settl. Firuzabad Florentin (near Vidin, Bulgaria) (?) settl. settl. Foga Foligno settl. Fondi settl. Fontaine-Chaude (near settl. Khenchela) near Fontana Grande (?) settl.
Fenékpuszta (Hungary)
5» 66-67
Pylene
12,39 12, 242,
Etanna
5,78
Aetna [1] Euphrates [2]
I, 278
Eurotas Permessus Oene
Calydon [3] Ebora [2] Cercinitis
Mediolan(i)um [7] M. Aulercorum Abae Faventia
Falacrinae, Falacrinum Fanum Fortunae
Antron Phacusa
Prophthasia Pelusium Farfarus Pharsalus Phasaelis Gorsium
Phoenix [7] Valcum Hieron oros [2] Theodosia
5, 185-188 §, 22 10, 805-806
10, 48 2, 1009 4,775 3,146 8, 584
I, 3-4 5,374 5,323 S> 352 I, 809 10, 891 i200 10, 716-717
5> 354
10, 936-937 10, 939 5, 942 FESETS ES, R§6—-E57 6, 314 14, 467
Ferentinum Ferentis, Ferentium Firmum Picenum
5, 383 5, 383-384
Trigaboli Vercellae [2] Lydae
14,919 15, 293 S25
Telmessus Fibrenus Fidentia Faesulae
5,410 5,414
Phigalia Ptolemais [9] lalysus
ELS, S-7 12, 174 6, 664-665
Phoenicussa, Phoenicodes Billaeus
2, 646-647
5, 435-436
14, 237-238
5, 318
ite stgAe.
Arycanda Limyra Myra Phoenice Florentia [2] Florentia [1] Firuzabad Florentiana Phocaea Fulginiae Fundi Aquae [II 5] Flavianae
2, 87. 7, 606-607
Stabiae
13, 773-774
9, 412-413
II, 147-148
5, 468-469 5, 468 55> 437
5, 469 EL, 037-138
5, 576 5, 586-587 T, 924
193
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Fontane Bianche (Sic.) (?)
settl
It
settl isl. settl wtr wtr wtr. settl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl.
It. Ibe. It. It. It. It. Afr. WE It. Ibe. WE It. Ibe. NE Egy. Afr. It. Afr. It. Afr. NE Gr. It. It. It. Gr. WE NE
Naustathmus [1] Trebula [4] Pityussae Formiae Alma Allia Numicus Furnus [1] Maius Nida Atella Nertobriga [2] Forum [IV 4] F. lulii Frusino Mellaria [2] Ptolemais [8] Pathyris Tacape Gabii Cidame Caieta Capsa Galaad [1] Telethrion Pedum [2] Callipolis [4] Gallunianum Ganus Vapincum Karchemish
9,553
near Forchia (?) Formentera Formia Fosso Alma Fosso della Bettina Fosso di Pratica di Mare (?) Ain Fourna Frankfurt-Heddernheim near Fratta Minore (Campania) near Frejenal Fréjus Frosinone near Fuente Ovejuna Tall al-Fuhhar near Gabalain Gabés Gabi Gadames Gaeta Gafsa Hirbat Gal‘ad Galitsades Gallicano (?) Gallipoli Galognano (near Siena) Ganos Gap Garabulus (Northern Syria) aras
14, 886 Terie, BUCO) 5,496 195122, 520 9, 903 55 625 9, 748-749 2,224 9, 676 Gr Soi 5, 568 8,640 12,174 10, 601 14, LOO-IOL 5, 630-631 35 327-328 DO 25 2, 1079 5, 645 igi IEP 10, 678 2, 984 5, 680 5, 689 15, 203 7, 20-23
settl.
NE
Gerasa
55 791-792
Gard Lago di Garda Gardon
wtr wtr wtr.
WE Alp. WE
Vardo Lacus Benacus Vardo
15, 205 7,156 15, 205
Gardun (Bosnia)
settl.
wtr
Bal. Its
Tilurium
Garigliano
Liris
14, 676 7, 630
Garonne and Gironde near Gartsiko (?) Garvan, Tulcea (Romania)
wtr. settl. settl.
WE Gr. Bal.
Garumna Opus [2] Dinogetia
5, 701-702 10, 179 AwAgee
Gaurion (Andros) near Gavalu near Gabal Gayabir (?) Tall Gazar
sett] settl settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. NE NE
Gaurium Trichonium Charax Spasin(o)u Gezer
aes 14,914 yy any 5, 845
near Gazipasa
settl
AM
Selinus [5]
13, 228-229
Gazza near Gediz Gediz ¢ayi Gediz nehri near Gelengik near Gelibolu (?) Gelibolu (Turkey) Gemlik near Gendive Lake Geneva Geneva Mont Genévre
settl settl wtr wtr. settl settl settl settl settl wtr. sett] mtn.
NE AM AM AM BS AM Gr. AM AM Alp. Alp. Alp.
Gaza Cadi Hermus [2] Hermus [2] Pagrae Callipolis [1] Callipolis [3] Cius, [1] Candyba Lacus Lemanus Genava Matrona [3]
5, 715-716 2, 866-867 6, 243 6, 243 10, 340 2, 983-984 2,984 3, 370-371 2, 1047 7,158 5, 739-740 8, 484
Monte Gennaro (?)
mtn.
It.
Lucretilis
Feneisi7
Genova Geoagiu (Romania) Gephyraion near Geraki (Pelop.) Gerdekkaya (NO-Galatia) Gerede
sett] settl wtr. settl settl settl
It. Bal. Gr. Gr. AM AM
Genoa Germisara Chrysorrhoas Geronthrae Mithridatium Cratea
5, 759-760 5, 816
3,295 5, 816 9, 88 3, 913-914
GEOGRAPHICAL
194
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Ancient/entry name
Gerede Cay Gerger Gergovie
Billaeus
2, 646-647
Arsamea [1]
2, 31-32
Gergovia Antioch [2]
5,794 1,759
Gerunda Nymphaeum [4] Calycadnus Aphrodisias [1] Ghiaccio Forte
9,925 2, 1007-1008
Alexandria [5] Antioch [7]
1,499
Gibeon Pylae [1] Pylae Gadeirides Cytorus Gophna
5, 848
near Germanikeia Gerona
Geroyevka Gevne Cayi Geyre Ghiaccio Forte Giaur Kala (Mery) Giaur Kala (Merv) al-Gib (near Jerusalem) (?) Gibraltar (strait of G.) Gideruz Gifna Gigen (Bulgaria) near Gyon (?) Gilindire Ginolu (?) Ginosa Gioia Tauro Giona near Monte Giove (?) Giresun Girliciu Giudicello Giulianova
near Gjirokaster (Albania) Glauberg Globasnitz (Austria) Gloucester near Goce Deléev (Bulgaria) Gok Cayi Gok Irmak Gokbel near Gokceler near Gokceéren Gokg¢esu near Gokkaya (?) near Gokpinar Goksu near Gola del Furlo near Golbasi near Golciik Oren Golhisar Golyaz near Gomation (Northern Gr.) Tall Gomil (near Gabal Maqlib) near Gomphoi Gonen Cay Gonio (near Batumi)
near Goritsa (near Volos) Gortyn (Crete)
near Gostilitza Gozcucler Harabeleri Gozene Gracanica (Serbia)
Gradina (near Srebrenica, BosniaHerzegovina) near Gradista de Hekal
near Grammichele (Caltagirone)
(?)
Oescus [2] Noega [1] Celenderis Cinolis Genusia
Volume, Column
5, 820-821
I, 828-829
5, 845-846 I, 760
12,240 4, 26 5,927 10,58
9, 787-788 3, 67-68
35 346 5> 767
Mataurus
8,453
Corax [1] Corioli Pharnaceia Cius, [2]
3, 804
3,781
10, 934-935 3,371
Amenanus
I, 576
Castrum [3] C. Novum Antigonea [4]
2, 1190
Glauberg
5, 865-866 6, 1033
Iuenna
Glevum
Nicopolis [1] Calycadnus Amnias Cotenna
I, 747
5, 874 9,741 2, 1007-1008 I, 591-592
3, 875
Pedasa Maeonia [2]
10, 673-674 8, 120
Rhebas [2] Tmolus [2] Tolastochora Calycadnus Intercisa [2] Trysa
EDLGRS E45 i752 14, 756-757 2, 1007-1008
6, 847 14,990
Sennea
13, 280
Cibyra [1] Apollonia [6]
3,316
Assera
Gaugamela Gomphi Aesepus Apsarus [rT] Olympias [5] Gortyn Discoduratera Epiphaneia [1] Epiphaneia [1] Ulpianum
1, 867 2,178 55 Vane
5,924 ATE EY sey by 10, I10 5, 942-945 4,539 4, 1117-1118 4, I117-1118 15, 84-85
Domavia
4, 624
Byllis Echetla
2, 843-844 4, 783
195
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Grammichele (Sic.) near Granada (?) Grand
settl. settl. settl.
it Ibe. WE
Hergetium lliberis [x] I., Iliberri Grand
La Graufesenque
settl.
WE
Condatomagus
near Gravia (Central Gr.) (?)
settl.
Gr.
Boium
Great St. Bernhard
mtn.
WE It. Alp.
Mons Poeninus
Cape Gremea Gremnos-Magula (Central Gr.)
mtn. settl
Gr. Gr.
Sarpedon [2] Larisa [3]
6, 204 6,725 5, 987-988 3, 684 Dp Vie) 9, 180 12, 1002-1003 7, 251-253 5, 1034 I, 166-167
Grofromstedt
settl.
WE
Grofromstedt
Grotte (near Passo di Mirabella Eclano) near Grumento
sett]
It.
Aec(u)lanum
settl. wtr wir wtr. settl. settl.
It.
Guadalaviar Guadalquivir Guadiana Gubail (Libanon) La Guardia
Ibe. Ibe. Ibe. NE Ibe.
Grumentum Turia [2] Baetis Anas Byblus Mentesa [1] M.
near Gubbio Gubbio Guelma La Guerche Gilek Bogazi
settl settl settl settl mtn
It. it Afr. WE AM
Aquilonia [3] Iguvium Calama Gorgobina Cilician Gates /Ciliciae
near Gullik k6rfezi near Gilnar Gulpaigan (?) Gimius Dagi Gimiskonak Gimiislik Gundestrup near Giiney (?) Giney Kalesi Gunizii Dag near Gurab near Gurece Gyor near Gyth(e)ion (Pelop.) Habur Hacet Kalesi (near Kisla) (?) Hagia Irini (Cyprus) Hagia Mariani
settl settl settl mtn. settl settl settl settl settl mtn. settl. settl. sett] settl. wtr. settl. settl. isl.
AM AM NE AM AM AM WE AM AM AM Egy. AM Bal. Gr. NE AM Gr. AM Gr.
Pylae [x] Caryanda Meydancikkale Andriaca Thorax [4] Germia Myndus Gundestrup Sala [3] Carallia Dindymum Ptolemais [5] Telmissus Arrabona Gytheumium Araxes [4] Klannudda Hagia Irini Oenussae [1]
2, 1147-1148 8, 848 I, 681-682 14, 598 Garo 9, 410-411 5, 1041-1042 12, 876 2, 1087 4, 421 12, 173-174 14, 238 Pi Yt 5, 1069-1071 1, 961 7, 64 5, 1093 TONS 7,
551037
hy 32) 2, 462 1, 644 2, 842 8, 704
Bastitanorum
1, 935 6, 722-723 2,928 5,939 3, 331-332
near Hagia Marina (Central Gr.) © settl.
Gr.
Patronis
10, 624
near Hagia Marina (Pelop.) Hagia Sotira (near Kamenitsa,
settl. settl.
Gr. Gr.
Tritaea Torthyneum
14, 939 14, 791-792
Pelop.) Hagioi Saranda (Albania)
settl.
Bal.
Onchesmus
10, 128
near Hagioi Theodoroi (Central __ settl.
Gr.
Medeon [1]
8,549
Gr) Hagioi Theodoroi (spring near
wtr
Gr.
Oedipodia
10, 44
Thiva) Hagios Antonios (Crete) Hagios Athanasios (near Kakaletri) (?)
settl sett]
Gr. Gr.
Drerus Hira
4, 720 6, 380
Hagios Elias (Aigina) Hagios Elias (Argolis)
mtn. mtn.
Gr. Gr.
Oros Coccygium
10, 240 3,494
near Hagios Elias (Central Gr.)
settl.
Gt
Ithoria
6, 1022
Hagios Elias (Lesbos) (?)
mtn.
Gr.
Olympus [8]
near Hagios Elias (Pelop.) (?) near Hagios Elias (Thess.) Hagios Georgios and Tes Panagias (off the coast of Attica)
settl. settl. isl.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Pyrgi [2] Lapathus Pharmacussae
10, 117 12, 267-268 75238 LO, 932
GEOGRAPHICAL
196
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
near Hagios Georgios (opposite settl. Lefkas) (?) Hagios Ioannes (Western Arcadia) _ settl.
near Hagios Ioannis (?)
settl.
Cape Hagios Ioannis (Crete) (?) Hagios Konstantinos (Central Gr.)
settl. settl.
Hagios Minas (Boeotia)
settl.
Hagios Myron (Crete)
settl.
Hagios Nikolaos isl. Hagios Nikolaos (Crete) settl. near Hagios Nikolaos (Northern _ settl.
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Gr.
Nericus
9, 668
Heraea Letrini
Zephyrium [1] Daphnus Chalia Rhaucus Myonnesus Camara [II] [1]
6, 182
7435-436 15,910 4, 84 3, 183 12, 523-524 9, 412 BE, LOLS
Singus
13, 496
3, 1061
Gr.)
near Hagios Nikolaos (Pallene) near Hagios Pantelemon (?)
settl. settl.
near Hagios Pavlos (Northern Gr.)
settl.
Scione Cynosarges Antigonea [2]
settl. settl. settl.
Chorsiae Tegea [1] Crommyon
3, 247
Cleonae [1] Panopeus Xoana Ammaedara Beroea [3]
3, 436-437
Aleppo Salvium Onchestus [1] Halieis Zenobia [3]
I, 464
13,93
1, 746-747
(?) near Hagios Sarandi near Hagios Sostis near Hagios Theodori (near
14, 213-215
3, 957-958
Corinth) (?)
near Hagios Vasilios (Pelop.) settl. near Hagios Vlasios (Central Gr.) _ settl. near Haiderabad settl. Haidra settl. Halab settl. Halab settl. near Halapi¢ (Bosnia) settl. near Haliartos settl. near Halieis (Pelop.) Halibtya (Syria)
near Haliloglu Hamadan Hamah Hamam Karahisar (?) al-Hammam Hammam Hammam Bou Hanifia (near Maskara)
settl. settl.
settl. settl.
settl. settl.
settl. settl. settl.
Astyra [1] Ecbatana Epiphaneia [2] Eudoxias Am(m)athous [2] Aquae [II 7] Persianae Aquae [II 9] Sirenses
Hammam Daradji Hammam Meskoutine Hammam Righa Hammam Saiala Hammam Sidi el-Hadj Han ‘Irbid Hanis al-Kubra
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Hanoi (?)
settl.
near Harma (Central Gr.) Tall Haror (?) Tall Hariri (Syria) Harran near Harsadda (near Pesawar,
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Eleon
Pakistan) Harz (?)
mtn.
Hatunsaray
settl.
Haur Ruri (Jemen) (?) Gabal Hayabir (?) near Hebron
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Silva Bacenis Lystra Moscha Charax Spasincosu
Hebron Heidenheim Helmand Rud Hemmoor Henchir Bechilga
wtr. settl. settl.
Bulla Regia Aquae [II 11] Thibilitanae Aquae [II 2] Calidae Aquae {II 12] Traianae Aquae [II 6] Herculis Arbela [2] Malichu insula Cattigara Gerar(a)
Mari
Harran Peucelaotis
Mamre
Hebron Aquileia [2]
Etymander Hemmoor Zabi
10, 454-455 15, 840 I, 582-583 2, 608
£Z, GED. 10, 128-129
5, 1114 15, 900 2, 214-215 4, 777-778 4, 1118
5, 150
1, 583 I, 924 I, 924 2, 820 I, 924 BVO23 I, 924 I, 924 I, 962
8, 200-201
35 23-24 4, 909
5,791 8, 346-347 ive, iaetyo? 10, 888
13, 467
8, 47-48 9, 226
3, 191 8, 214 6, 31-32
I, 930 Sp ss) 6; 132
15, 859
197
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Region
Ancient/entry name
Henchir Bedd on Henchir Bou Baker Henchir Bou Chateur Henchir Bou Djaoua (?) Henchir Bou Ftis Henchir Douemis Henchir Frass
Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. NE WE
Avedda Nepheris Utica Abba Avitta Bibba Uchi Maius Gillium Agbia Thuburbo [1] T. Maius Aquae [II 8] Regiae Abbir [3] Sasura Numluli Mididi Althiburus Tegea [2] Abba Lamasba Furnus [2] Minus Abbir [2] Abbir [4] Cediae Aggar [2] Abthugni Apisa Maius Lambafundi Zeta Alexandria [6] Heuneburg
WE
Bremenium
2, 760-761
NE NE
Babylon Imaon
2, 441-442
NE
Emesa
4, 940-941
WE Afr. WE Bal. AM AM
Tabernae [2] Hippo [6] H. Regius Hirschlanden Carsium Troy Castabos
AM NE NE
Tius Beisan Diacira
Hulman Hunedoara, Hateg (Romania)
NE NE AM AM Bal. Egy. Ibe. NE Bal.
Ichnae Albania [2] Colossae Cadmus [4] Ad Pirum Diospolis [2] D. Parva Osca Albania [2] Sarmizegetusa
near Hiseyingazi (?)
AM
Ameria [2]
Hvar fles d’Hyéres Hylike Hypate near Hypaton Ibiza
Bal. WE Gr. Gr. Gr. Ibe. NE Ibe. Gr. Gr.
Pharos [2] Stoechades Hylice Hypata Glisas Ebusus Borsippa Lancia [2] L. Oppidana Hierapytna Hierapolis [3]
Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir
Hedja Kasbat Katera el-Khandak el-Ksour el-Matria Meded Medeina
Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir Henchir
Merbesse (?) Merkeb (?) Merouana Msaadine en-Naam (?)
Henchir en-Naam (?) Henchir Ounkif Henchir Sidi Amara Henchir es-Souar Henchir Tarf ech-Chena Henchir Touchine Henchir Zeiat (?) Herat (Afghanistan)
Heuneburg (near Hundersingen) near High Rochester near Hilleh Himalaja
Hims
near Hinzerath (?)
Hippone Hirschlanden-Ditzingen Hirsova Hisarlik near Hisaronu near Hisaronii
Tall al-Hisn near Hit (?) Hnez (?)
Holwan near Honaz Honaz HruSica Hu Huesca
Ibrahim al-Halil near Idanha a velha lerapetra (Crete) lerapetra (Crete) (?)
Volume, Column 2, AD
9, 658 TS, 143-144 1,8
2, 427-428 15,79
5, 853 T, 42m 14, 630
1,924 1,9 13, IO-II 95 999 8, 864-865 T, 551-S§2 14,215 1,8
7,178 5, 625 1,9 1,9
3, 61
I, 338-339 t,.46 I, 842 7, 180
15,913 1, 499
6, 294-296 6, 743 14, 80
6, 347 6, 382 Psi yA, 14, 968-981 2 LETO6
14, 748-749 26 55%
4, 333
6, 703 I, 428 eee Se,
2, 869
£52: 4, 522 10, 270 I, 428
12, LOOO-1001 E, 575 10, 936
13, 850-851 6, 610 6, 627
5, 874-875 4,777 Big TD 7,194
6, 303 6, 303
GEOGRAPHICAL
198
CONCORDANCE
Region
Modern name
Zarax [1] Acanthus [1] Uranopolis |r} Troesmis
lerax
near lerissos (Northern Gr.) near lerissos (Northern Gr.)
Iglita (Romania) Igneada Burnu Thnasiyat al-madina IJsselmeer Ilgaz Daglari near Ilgin
AM NE
Imam a8-Saih Gabir Imera Meridionale Imera Settentrionale (Sic.) Imittos
l’Impernal de Luzech (?) Imputitia Imsi Oren (?) Imvrasos
Inachos near Incealiler near Incealiler near Incekemer
Incekum Burnu Indus
near Inebolu Inebolu Inlice Asari
Ancient/entry name
mtn. settl. wtr. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl. settl. mtn.
wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Volume, Column
15, LL9-120
14, 957-958
Thynias Heracleopolis magna Flevum Olgassys Tyraeum Sittace
14,650 6,156
Himeras Himeras Hymettus
6, 329 6, 329 6, 615-616
Uxellodunum [r]
15,148 93 $02
Naracustoma
5, 466 10, 87 15,61
15, 5145
Philadelphia [2]
Riso
Imbrasus Inachus [2] Oenoanda
6, 743
Termessus [2] Gerga Sarpedon [3] Indus [1] Neapolis [6]
14, 293 50 795 12, 1003 6,794 9, 582 Ej DS
Abonutichus Daedala [1]
6, 760
10, 51
4,34 ty 225
wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl.
Aenus [2]
Pons [6] Pons Aluti
11, 588
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Hipparis Cypsela Amnisus Heracleum |1]
6, 339
near Iravati Isar
settl.
near Iscehisar
settl. isl.
Sangala Isara [3] Dokimeion Pithecussae
Inn
near Inofita near Inoi (?) Inous near Ionestii Govorii (Romania)
0)
Ippari (Sic.)
Ipsala near Iraqlion (Crete)
Iraqlion (Crete) near Iraqlion (Pelop.)
Ischia Isére Isernia
Isikhi Iskanderun Iskar
near Iskele
near Islahiye near Islamabad Isona Isonzo
near Istanbul Istanbul
Itylon (Pelop.) IvoSevci (Croatia) Ivrea Izmir
Izmit Iznik Iznik Goli Fiume di Jaci (Sic.) (2) Jaffa
wtr.
wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
settl. settl. wtr. wtr. settl.
Oenophyta Oenoe [8] Oenus [1]
Nemea [2]
Isara [1]
Aesernia Eumeneia [1] Alexandria [3] Oescus [1] Idyma Nicopolis [5] Taxila Aeso Sontius
Melantias Byzantium
Oetylus Burnum Eporedia Smyrna Nicomedia Nicaea [5] Askania Limne Acis loppe
£0; 55 10, 53 TO, §7
3, 1081 I, 592 6, 163 9, 624-627
12, 955-956 6,956
4, 615 II, 305-306
6,955 I, 252-253 5, 164-165 1, 498 10,58
6, 718
9,744 14, 189
T, 254 13, 633 8, 621 2, 846-858 10, 59
2, 834-835 4, 1167 13, 549-550 Bo 0a fe 9, 7OI-702 Pe AAS iigpatoys 6, 916-917
199
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Tell el-Jahudija Jalon near Jannitsa (Pelop.) Jativa
settl wtr. settl settl.
Jeja Jericho Jerusalem Jesenice (Croatia) Jevenstedt
wtr. settl. settl settl. settl.
Jhelum (Pakistan)
wtr.
Joldelund Jordan Jublains Jiilich Jinkerath Jupa (Romania)
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Egy. Ibe. Gr. Ibe. BS NE NE Bal. WE NE WE NE WE WE WE Bal.
Leontopolis [2] Salo Calamae Saetabis Rhombites [1] R. Megas Jericho Jerusalem Nareste Jevenstedt Hydaspes Joldelund lordanes [2] Noviodunum [4] Tuliacum Icorigium Tibiscum
Ta ALO 12, 899 2, 928 12, 864 12, 578 6, 1168-1169 6, 1169-1178 9, 509 6, 1189 6, 597-598 6, 1202 6, 918-919 9, 858 6, 1043 6, 707 14, 661
Jura
mtn
WE
Iura
6,
al-Kab near Kabile (Bulgaria)
sett. settl.
Egy. Bal.
Eileithyiaspolis Cabyle
4, 859 2, 865
Kabul (?)
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. mtn wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl settl
NE
Cabura
2, 865
Kabul (Tributary of the Indus) near Kadikale near Kadirli (?) Kahraman Maras Kahtagai Kaidu (?) Kaki Skala Kakorrema Kalaa Kebira near Kalabaksaray near Kalakté (Sic.) near Kalamakion Kalamata (Pelop.) near Kalambaka (?) near Kalamoton near Kalandra (Northern Gr.) near Kalavarda (Rhodos) near Kalavryta (Pelop.)
NE AM AM NE AM NE Gr. Gr. Afr. AM It. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Cophen Anaea Flaviopolis Germanicaea Nymphaeus Andriaca Scironides petrae Cachales Gurza Myrina [4] Amestratus Schoenus [3] Pharae [x] Aeginium Calindoea Mende Camirus Cynaetha
3,765 15,993 5er4 Suz 5, 803-804 9,926 I, 681-682 13,96 2, 866 5, 1045 9, 414-415 579 134 2 LO, 920-921 1,194 ZAOST 8, 670-671 2, 1022-1023 3, LOSI
Kale
mtn
AM
Mons Magaba
9,178
Kalecik Kalekisla near Kalekoy (?) Kalekéy near Kalerga (?) Kaliakra near Kalivia (Pelop.) Kalkriese near Kalyvia near Kamarina Kambos near Kambos (Pelop.) near Kampo (Pelop.) Kandahar near Kandila Kangawar Kanlidivane Kanli Kastelli (Crete) El-Kantara (?) near Kantiraga Kanya Kumari near Kaphirio (Pelop.) (?)
settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl settl sett] sett] settl settl sett] settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM AM AM AM AM BS Gr. WE Gr. Gr Gr. Gr. Gr. NE Gr. NE AM Gr. Afr. Gr. NE Gr.
Malus [2] Ekkobriga Chabakta Symposium Teuthrania Tirizis Pheneus Kalkriese Elis [2] Cassope Potidania Gerenia Mases Alexandria [7] Alyzeia Kangavar Canytelis Lycastus [1] Calceus Herculis Amphanae Komaret Colonides
8,210 Asia Ben 14, 10 14, 334 14, 725 10, 947-948 7, 9-10 4,924 Dye ity/i Ty 7ZOS 5,793 8, 426-427 1, 499 554! Gig iyi 2, 1061-1062 Asi Ole 2, 934 I, 597 7, 88 B55
near Karincali
settl.
AM
Gergis
53
II17-1118
793-794
GEOGRAPHICAL
200
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Kara Baba
sett]
Kara Burun
mtn
near Kara Selendi Kara-su Karaburun (Albania) Karaburun (Albania)
settl wtr mtn mtn.
Ceraunian Mountains Acroceraunia
Karadeniz Daglari Karahamzali near Karahoyiik
mtn
Paryadres
settl.
Cinna, [1]
settl
3,344
8, 856
near Karakent
settl
near Karakog
settl
near Karalar Karaman near Karamirsel (?)
settl settl settl
Midaeum Lysinia Lebedus Blucium Laranda
Karanlik Kap near Karantinnaya
mtn settl.
Karasu
wtr
Karasu Karasu
wtr wtr.
near Karatepe Karatepe-Aslantas near Karavostasi (Cyprus) Karbala’ (Iraq) near Kardamena (Kos) near Kardamyle (Pelop.) near Karia Karima
Kassiopi (Korfu) near Kastelli (Central Gr.) near Kasthanaia (?) Kastoria Kastron (Central Gr.)
settl. settl. settl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr mtn. settl. mtn. mtn. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. isl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Kastron (near Harma)
settl.
Harma
Kastri (Kythera) near Kastri Maziu (Central Gr.) Kastritsi (near Hagios Vlassis, Pelop.) (?) Kastro (near Diakophto) (?) Kastro (near Lavda) Katakolo (Pelop.)
settl. settl. sett]
Scandea Haliartus
settl. settl. settl.
near Kato Achaia (Pelop.)
settl.
Kato Belesi (?) near Kato Doliana (Pelop.) (?)
settl. settl.
Bura Lycaea [2] Phea, Phia Dyme [1] Lyrceia, Lyrceum Neris
near Kato Paphos (Cyprus)
sett]
Kato Phana (Chios)
settl.
near Kato Retsina near Kato Stavros
settl settl
near Karincali near Karkalou (Pelop.) Karkhe Gabal Karmel
near Karnesi (Pelop.) Karpaten Karpaten
near Karpuzlu Karin Karvunarja Karystos (Euboea) al-Karyun Kas El-Kasbat Kassandra
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Canethus Melaina Akra Silandus Athyras
2, 1048
Preietos
Pylae [3] Pylae Amanicae Myrmecium Melas [8] Melas [9] Teleboas [2] Castabala Karatepe-Aslantas Soloi [1] Kerbela Halisarna [2] Cardamyle Dierum Napata
Gergis Theisoa [1] Choaspes [1] Carmel Cleitor Carpathians Peuce [3] Alinda
Choaspes [1] Asopus [r] Carystus [1]
Menelaus [11] Antiphellus Gemellae Phlegra Cassiope Erineus
Menelais Celetrum Copae
Leontium [1]
Paphus Phanae [2] Pleuron Bormiscus
8,612
13, 4S51-4§2 2, 286 pesieie? ie os 10, §82
8, 43 7,341 2, 690 7> 244 I1, 801
12, 240
9, 415-416 8, 622 8, 622 14,220 By FETS 7, 19-20
13, 613-614 7,42 5, 1116
2, 1093 4, 401 9, 499-500 5» 793-794 14, 421 3, 237 2, 1108-1109 35 423 2, 1123-1124 10, 887 L555 99I-992
3, 2, 2, 8, by
237 164-165 I149-I150 682-683 TTF.
5,736 TI, 133-134 2, 1463-1164
53 33 8, 677
3, 69 3, 764 5, 1144
13, 47-48 5, IIO9-IIIO 7> 497
2, 824
7, 908 10, 942
4,758 8, 20
9, 669
10, 479-482 LO, 913
IL, 382-383 Zo
201
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Kato near near
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr Gr. Gr. Gr.
Chalcis [2] Zakros Oeniadae [1] Medion
Besa) 15, 866-869 IO, 49-50 8, 585-586
near Katzaru (near Sparta) (?)
settl.
Gr.
Messapeae
8,758
Kaum Ausim Kaum Faris (near Medinet el-Fajjum) Kaum Ge‘if Kaum al-Girza Kaum al-Hisn Kaum al-Idris Kaum Ombo near Kaum e8-Sugafa Kaum et-Terban (?)
settl. settl
Egy. Egy.
Caranis Arsinoe [III 2]
2, 1087-1088 a A)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Egy. Egy. Egy. Egy. Egy. Egy. Egy.
Naukratis Philadelphia [4] Momemphis Marea Ombi [2] Necropolis Taposiris [2]
9, 538-541 11, 8-9 9,134 8, 334 IO, Tep2t 9, 608-609 14, 136
Kavak Deresi
wtr.
Gr.
Melas [7]
8, 622
Kavalla Kaveripattinam (India) (?)
settl. settl.
Gr. NE
Neapolis [1] Camara [II] [2]
9, 579-580 ip, AHO)
Kayseri
settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. isl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl.
AM
Gr. AM Gr. Gr. Afr. Afr. AM BS AM Gr. Afr. AM WE
Caesarea [1] Eleutherai Ida [2] Palaerus Ortha, Orthe [2] Sicca Veneria Zattara Thynia Calpe [2] Cenchreae [2] Clupea Lycus [19] Caelius Mons [2]
2, 916-918 4, 917 6, 709-710 10, 377-378 LO, 258-259 13, 415-416 15, 877 14, 650 2,994 3, 102 3, 484 7, 940-942 2, 896
Kato Vasiliki Zakros (Crete) Katochi Katuna
near Kaza (Central Gr.) Kazdaglari Kechropoula Kedros (Central Gr.) (?) El-Kef Kef Bezioun Kefken Adasi near Kefken (Kerp) near Kehries Kélibia Kelkit Cay Kellmiinz Kemer
settl.
AM
Parium
IO, 536
Kemer Suyu Kemerdere (near Oren) Kemerhisar Kempten in the Allgau Kentrikos limen near Kepez Kerala (India) near Keramidion (Central Gr.) near Kerc Keré
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM AM AM Alp. Gr. AM NE Gr. BS BS
Thymbrius Ceramus Tyana Cambodunum [r] Cantharus [1] Rhoeteum Muziris Casthanaea Zephyrium [9] Iluraton
14, 646 3, [41-142 oie 2, IOIS5—1016 TS aeOmG 12576 9, 384 Pie tate) Vay ERE 6,735
Kercé
settl
BS
Panticapaeum
10, 471
Kerempe Burnu Kérilien-en-Plounéventer (?) Kerkenes Dagi Kermer (?) Kern el-Kebch near Kestridze
mtn settl mtn. settl settl settl.
AM WE AM AM Afr. Bal.
Carambis Vorganium Kerkenes Dagi Camulianae Aunobaris Aprus
2, 1087 ibys bac TAB 2, 1029-1030 2,379 TOUT
near Kestritza (?)
settl
Gr.
Tecmon
14, 210
El Khadra Khamissa
settl settl
Afr. Afr.
14, 667-668 14, 631
Khenchela El Kherba Kherbet Ouled Arif Khirbet Hushe near Kierion (Central Gr.) near Kilikli Kilimandjaro Kingsholm near Kinik (?)
settl settl settl settl settl settl mtn. settl settl
Afr. Afr. Afr. NE Gr. AM Afr. WE AM
Tigava [2] Thubursicum [2] T. Numidarum Mascula Tigava [1] Lambiridi Usha Celaetha Comana [2] C. Pontica Selenes oros Glevum Gambrium
8, 426 14, 667 ee TO 15, 133-134 3, 67 3, 600 Tae 5, 874 5, 681
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
202
Modern name
Ancient/entry name
near Kinik Kinkiwar near Kirkuk (Iraq) Kirmir Cay
Xanthus [4] Kangavar
Kirpil’skij liman Kisarpas (Hungary) (?) Kislar (near Korkuteli) Kissavos
Kazilca Kizil Irmak near Kiziltahta (?) Kizkalesi Kjustendil (Bulgaria) near Klaraki (Pelop.) (?) kleinerer) (?) Kleve-Rindern (?) near Klima Klokova (Central Gr.)(?) near Klokova (Central Gr.) (?) Knossos (Crete) Koblenz (Aargau) Koblenz (Rheinland-Pfalz) Koca Burun Koca Cay Koca Cay Koca Kaya Kocaeli near Kogas Kocasu Cay1 Kodzent
Koilada Tempon near Kokkinorachi (Pelop.) (?) near Kokkora (Pelop.) (?) near Kokovatos near Kolaka (?) Kolonos Komarom (Hungary) near Komboti Komma (Central Gr.) Kommos (Crete) Kongen near Konstamonitu (Northern Gr.)
Konuralp Konya Konz
near Koprinka (Bulgaria) Koprii Cay
Kopriti Cay Kor-Bandemir Korana (?)
Korba Korbous Koréula Korfu Korkai (?) Koron(i) (Pelop.) Korteke near (Kosovka) (?) near Kostolac (Serbia) Kotselovuni near Kozan
Nuzi Siberis Rhombites [2] R. Elatton Mursella [1] Isinda [2] Ossa [1] Sebastopolis [1]
Halys Mallus Corycus Pautalia Issorium Caprus [2] Arenacium Oeneon
Volume, Column
15, 796-797 7,17 9,922 13,410 12, 578
9, 316 6,965 LO, 278
13, 182-183 5, 1120 8, 204
15, 1022-1023 10, 655 6, 986 2, 1079 I, 1045 10, 49 14, 135
Taphiassus Macynia
8, 106
Knossos
7> 73-74
Confluentes [2] Confluentes [1] Zephyrium [4] Rhyndacus Rhodius Gargara, Gargaris Nicomedia Hadrianopolis [2] Rhyndacus Alexandria [8] Eschate Tempe Thornax [2] Melaeneae
3,690
Pylos [3] Cyrtones
Alpenus Brigetio Torybeia
3, 689 15,910 12, 581 12, 569
5, 699 93731-7352 5, 1081 biee T, 499 14, 243-244 14,599 8, 612 12, 245-246 4,16 ry 526-527 2 TIS 14,796
Anticyra [1]
I, 742
Amyclae [2] Grinario Thyssus
I, 622
5, 1032-1033 14, 652
Prusias [3] P.-on-Hypius Iconium Contionacum
6, 706-707
Seuthopolis Eurymedon [5] Aspendus
13,349 5, 217-218 2, 196
Araxes [3] Noarus Curubis
12, 93-94
3, 747-748
I, 961
9, 782 3, 1026
Aquae [II 3] Carpitanae Corcyra [2] C. Melaina Corcyra [1] Colchi Asine [2] Xystis Hermonaktos kome
T, 923 3, 786
Viminacium
TS, 424-425 IO, 116 10, 676
Olympus [5] Pednelissus
3, 783-786 35 527 2 ESS
15, 843-844 6, 238
203
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Kozan Kozani (?) near Kozani (Macedonia) near Kozpinar Krathis Krefeld-Gellep Krestena
settl. settl. settl.
Sisium Elimea Aeane
13, 509 4, 920-921 I, 165
settl. wtr. settl. wtr.
AM Gr. Gr. AM Gr. WE Gr.
Calynda Crathis [1] Gelduba
2, LOLO-1011 Buon S24
Selinus [1]
13226
Le Krib
settl
Afr.
Musti
9, 373-374
Krich el-Oued Kriopigadhi Krka Krokeés (Pelop.) Ksar Baghai Ksar Baghai Ksar ez-Zit near Ksour es-Saf (?) Ktypas Kuban Kuban Kiiciik Menderes Kiuciikkaletepe al-Kufa near Kuklia (Cyprus) near Kukura (Central Gr.) Kiultepe (near Kayseri) Kum Cayi near Kumani (Pelop.) near Kumaris (Pelop.) (?) near Kumluca Kunar Tell Kuneise (?) Kiinzing (Bavaria) Kura
settl wtr. settl. settl settl wtr. settl settl mtn. wtr wtr. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl wtr. settl settl settl wtr. settl settl wtr.
Afr. Gr. Bal. Gr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Gre NE NE AM AM NE Gr. Gr. AM AM Gr. Gr. AM NE NE Alp. BS
Tisidium Hippocrene Scardona Croceae Bagae Bagradas Siagu Aggar [1] Messapium Hypanis [2] Vardanes [1] Caystrus [1] Nyssa Kufa Paphus Hippotae Kanesh Hyllus [4] Lasion Rhypes Rhodiapolis Choaspes [2] Cunaxa Quintanis Cyrus [5]
14, 733 6, 363-364 Ley a 3,950 2, 463 2, 465 13, 410 1 33:8 8,761 6, 626 15, 204 Be 57 9,931 7, 113-114 10, 479-482 (5 Baa Fey AO 6, 612 Fy 259 Tones Oo 12, 568-569 Bai 3,997 12, 349 4, 21-22
near Kurna (?)
settl
NE
Apamea [6]
1, 818
Kursunlu Tepe Kutaisi (Georgia) Kutri (Crete)
settl settl settl
AM BS Gr.
Scepsis Cytaea Phalasarna
Kutsi near Kydonia (?) Kyllene (Arcadia) Kyllene (Pelop.) Kyparissi (Pelop.) Kyparissia (Pelop.) near Kypsela Kyrenia (Cyprus) near Labove (Albania) Lacedonia Ladenburg Ladik (near Konya)
mtn
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. AM Gr. It. WE AM
Tricaranum
sett] mtn settl sett] settl settl. settl settl. settl. settl. settl.
13, 54 is 533 10, 909-910 14, 913 3,975 3, 1047 351047 3, 1065 3, 1064 Te 526 3, 165-166 10, 124 I, 935 7, 814-815 7, 233-234
near Ladik (Pontos) (?)
settl.
al-Ladiqiya (Syria) Ladonas Ladon (Pelop.) near Lafistion (?) near Lagos
settl. wtr wtr. settl. settl.
Lahn near al-Lahtn
wtr. settl.
near Lambia (?)
settl.
WE Egy. Gr.
Lambia Lambro near Lambusa (Cyprus)
mtn wtr. settl
Gr. It. Gr. AM
AM NE Gr. Gr. Gr. Ibe.
Ctimenae Cyllene [1] Cyllene [2] Cyphanta Cyparissia [1] Alorus Cerynea [2] Omphalium [3] Aquilonia [2] Lopodunum Laodicea [3] L. Catacecaumene Laodicea [5] Laodicea [1] Ladon [2] Ladon [3] Eleusis [2] Lacobriga [2] La(u)gona
recy
7, 232-233 7,162 7, 162-163 4, 917 7,146
Pharaea
veaniige) 12, 173-174 10, 921
Lampeia Lambrus Lapethus
7, 187 7, 181 7, 238-239
Ptolemais [5]
GEOGRAPHICAL
204
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Lamta Langres Lanuvio
settl settl sett]
Afr. WE It.
Leptis Minor Andematu(n)num Lanuvium
7, 424-425 1, 676 7, 223-224
Lampsacus Lix [1]
7, 190-191 7, 754-755
Aquae I. Volaterranae Larinum Lacus Larius
I, 922-923 FOE: 7> 157-158
Argissa Citium Larymna Laodicea [1] Lousonna Forentum Phraaspa Quadriburgium [3]
I, 1063-1064 3, 368-369 Tag 7, 232-233 7, 823-824 5,495 11, 187-188 bids oe
Lapseki
settl
AM
near Larache (Morocco) Larderello (?) near Larino Lago Lario near Larisa (Central Gr.) Larnaka (Cyprus) near Larymna (Central Gr.)
settl. settl settl. wtr. sett] settl sett]
Afr. It. It. Alp. Gr. AM NE Gr.
Latakia (Syria) Lausanne Lavello near Laylan (?) Lebény-Baratfoldpuszta (?)
settl settl settl settl settl
NE Alp. It. NE Bal
near Lecce
settl
It.
Rudiae
12,749
Lecce Lech near Lechonia (Central Gr.)
settl wtr. settl
It. Alp. Gr.
Lupiae Licca Methone [2]
7, 886 7, GEG 8, 805
Lecourbe Lectoure near Ledesma Lee (?)
settl settl settl wtr.
Equizeto Lactora Mirobriga [2] Nabalia
near Lefkandi Lefta (Central Gr.) near Lele (near Sparta) (?)
settl settl settl
near Lendas (Crete) Leninabad Lentini (Sic.) Lentini (Sic.) Lentini (Sic.) Lepanto
settl settl settl settl settl settl
Afr. WE Ibe. WE Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. NE It. It. ta Gr.
Lebena Alexandria [8] Eschate Leontini Neapolis [4] Phocaeae Naupactus
5,6 i, BGA 9,56 9,477 7, 348-349 4, 888-889 8,758 7, 341-342 I, 499 7, 405-406 9, 582 oop et.) 9, 546-548
near Lepreon
settl
Gr.
Lepreum
7, 416-417
near Leptokarya Lérida les Abdellys
settl settl settl
Gr. Ibe. Afr.
Leibethra Ilerda Aquae [II 10] Tepidae
7 373 6, 723 T5924
Lefkandi Elatea [1] Messapeae
Lestenitsa
wtr.
Gr.
Enipeus [1]
4, 980-981
near Leuktra (Central Gr.) Leyna (near Turgut) near Lezhé (Albania)
settl settl settl
Gr. AM Gr. Bal.
Eutresis Lagina Lissus
5, 238 75 LIZ
Licata (Sic.) Licenza
settl wtr
It. It.
Phintias [1] Digentia
II, 129-130 4, 407
7, 631-632
Lieser
wtr.
WE
Lesura
7> 432
near Ligurio (?) Likodimo Lima
settl mtn wtr.
Gr. Gr. Ibe.
Lessa Mathia Limia
Fae 8,477 7, 600-601
Limani Murzo near Limantepe (?)
settl settl
Gr. AM
Sybota [2] Larisa [5]
13, 982-983 7, 253-254
settl
Gr. AM Gr. Gr. AM
Am(m)athous [3] Prasias limne Limenia
Gr. WE AM AM
Narthacium Augustoritum
near Limassol (Cyprus) Limni Kerkinis near Limniti (Cyprus) near Limogardion (Central Gr.) Limoges
Limonlu Limonlu Cay near Linares Lincoln Linz Liparic isl.s Ligeni i Butrintit (Albania) Lisboa
wtr. settl settl settl sett] wtr.
settl settl settl isl. wtr.
sett]
Ibe. WE Alp. Ihre Bal. Ibe.
Lamus [5] Lamus [4] Egelasta Lindum Lentia Aeolia Pelodes limen Olisippo
I, 583-584 11,778 7, 560-561 9, 514 215362 7, £93 75 LOD
4, 7, 7, I,
838 608-609 388 225-226
10, 701
10, 89
205
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Lisieux
settl.
WE
Noviomagus [3]
9, 859-860
al-List al-Lit (Saudi-Arabia) Literno near Liti near Livadhia (Central Gr.) Livadostras near Livanates (Central Gr.) Livenza
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. wtr.
Egy. NE It. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. It. Alp.
Lisht Zaabram Liternum Lete Lebadea Oeroe Cynus Liquentia
7, 630 15, 857-858 7> 723 7, 432-433 7, 339-341 10, 58 3, 1064 7, 629
near Livorno
settl.
It.
Triturrita
14,945
near Lixuri Ljubljana Ljubljanica Llobregat Loarre (Prov. Huesca) (?) near Locri
settl. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl.
Gr. Bal Bal. It. Ibe. It.
10, 384 4, 943 9, 550 12, 748 2, 927 7, 774-778
Lod Lohiyya (?) Loire London Lorbeus Lorca (?) Lodi Vecchio
settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE NE WE WE Agr Ibe. It.
Lozeére
wtr.
WE
Gabal Lubnan ai-Sarqiya near Lubrik (?) Lucca Lucera Ludd
mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE Afr, It. It. NE
Pale Emona Nauportus [2] Rubricatum flumen Calagurris [r] Fibularia Locri, Locris [2] Locri Epizephyrii Lydda Mamala Liger Londinium Lares [2] Llorci Laus Pompeia Lesura Antilibanos Zagazaena Luca Luceria Lydda Anthedon ip [fea] Bergule Collatia Lacus Velinus Luna [3] Luni sul Mignone Aedepsus Omphalium [2] Euripus [2] Therma, Thermae Mondaea Phoenix [8] Doriscus Traianopolis [1] Hyettus
8,1 8,210 7, 549-550 7, 807-808 7,249 6.57355 7, 308 7, 432
Ta 15, 863-864 7, 826 7, 836 Sar
near Lukisia (Central Gr.)
settl.
Gr.
Lukkos Lule-Burgas Lunghezza (?)
wtr. settl. settl.
Afr. Gr. It.
i OD
Lago Lungo
wtr.
Luni Luni sul Mignone near Lutra Aidepsu (Euboea) near Lutra Smokovu (Central Gr.) near Lutraki (Arkanania) (?) Lutraki (Pelop.) (?) near Lutron Elassonos Lutro (Crete) Lutros Lutros near Lutsi (Central Gr.)
settl. settl. sett. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. It. It. Gr. Gr Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Bal. Bal. Gr.
near Lympne (Kent)
settl.
WE
Portus [4] P. Lemanae
I1, 667-668
Lyrkeia (?) near Lysimachia (Central Gr.) Lysimachia (Central Gr.)
settl. settl. wtr.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Lyrceia, Lyrceum Lysimachia [2] Hydra [2]
See 8, 38 6, 599
Maas
wtr.
WE
Mosa [1]
9, 218
Macar Kalesi Maccarese
settl. settl.
AM It.
Cestri Fregenae
3, 169 5, 549
near Macerata near Macerata Feltria
settl. settl.
lt; Ihe
10, 655 iky 3teys
Macon al-Mada‘in near Hirbat Ma‘in Monti di Maddaloni
settl. settl. settl. mtn.
WE NE NE It
Pausulae Pitinum [2] Pitinum Pisaurense Matisco Ctesiphon [2] Maon [1] Tifata
Madar-e Sulaiman Fiume della Maddalena
settl. wtr.
NE It.
Qasr-e Abu Nasr Sebethus
Tens) 2, 604 35 529 7, 160-161 7, 882-883 7, 883 iy ay IO, 124 5, 206 14, 535 9, 142 Tet, 7 4, 688 14, 835-836 6, 603
8,479 By yi! S25
14, 666-667 12, 303 13, 183-184
GEOGRAPHICAL
206
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Madeba Madinat Habu Monti Madonie (Sic.) Madonna di Mezzagosto (near
settl settl. mtn. settl.
NE Egy. It. hy
Medaba Thebes [1] Mons Nebrodes Privernum
8, 544-545 14, 403-408 9,179 11, 888
settl. settl. wtr mtn. settl.
NE Alp. Alp. lie: Gr.
Magdala [1] Virunum Lacus Verban(n)us Callicula Akrothoon /Akrothooi
8, 126-127 15, 462 7 LOL 2,970 I, 416
near Magliano
settl.
Its
Heba (Magliano)
6, 30
Magra near Magreta Magzir (Jemen) (?)
wtr. settl. settl.
It. lta NE
Macra Macri campi Magusum
8, 96-97 8,98 8, 183
near Mahallat Minuf (?) E] Mahder al-Mahgar al-‘Ala (?) Mahon (Menorca) Ma‘in Main
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr.
Egy. Afr. NE Ibe. NE WE
Onuphis Casae [2] Magulaba Mago [13] Maon [2] Moenus
10, 148-149 2. F550 8, 182 8, 181 8, 275-276 9, 12-113
Priverno)
al-Magdal Magdalensberg (Austria) Lago Maggiore Monte Maggiore (?) near Magistis Lavras (Northern Gr.) (?)
Mainz
settl.
WE
Mogontiacum
9,
Mainz-Kastel
settl
WE
Kastel
7, 25-26
119-123
Maklouba near Makra Kome (Central Gr.) Makri near Makrichori (?) near Makrigialos near Makrisia
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Afr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Aggar [1] Makra Kome Serrheium Mopsium Pydna Scillus
I, 338 8,193
155422 9, 202 12,237 23,192,
Maktar Malaga
settl. settl.
Afr. Ibe.
Mactaris Malaca
8, 105 8, 193-194
Malak Preslavec (Bulgaria)
settl.
Bal.
Candidiana
2, 1047
near Malandrino near Malathria Malevos
settl. settl mtn.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Physcus [2] Dion [II 2] Artemisium [2]
EY S07 4, 468-469 2, 69
Malia (Crete)
settl.
Gr.
Malia, Mallia
8, 200
Mana Manavgat
wtr. settl
Cr: AM
Larisus Manaua
TI2S5 8, 218
Manbig near Manchester
settl settl
NE WE
Bambyce Mamucium
2, 482-483 8,214
Manching Mandela (near Vicovaro) near Mandudion (Euboea)
settl settl settl
WE It. Gr.
Manching Mandela Cerinthus [1]
8, 220-223 8, 228 3, $63
Manduria
settl
Mangalia (Romania)
settl
It. Bal.
Manduria Callatis
8, 230-231 2,959
Manisa
settl
AM
Magnesia [3] M. on
8, 173-174
Manisa Dag Mannheim-Neckarau Mangal (?) Le Mans near Mansilla de las Mulas (Northern Spain)
Sipylus Sipylus Munimentum [2]
mtn settl settl settl settl
AM WE NE WE Ibe.
Vindinum Lancia [1]
13, 502 9, 300 8,56 15, 431-432 7,194
Maccala
Mantova
settl
It.
Mantua
8, 261-262
Magna ( of ‘Aqaba) Gabal Mar Ilyas Maras Harabeleri March Tall Mardih (Syria) Mardin
settl. mtn settl. wtr. settl. settl.
NE NE AM Bal. Alp. NE NE
Macna Carmel Arsinoe [III 3] Marus Ebla Marde
8,96 2, [108-1109 2.317 8, 422 4 773-774 8, 330-331
Marecchia
wtr.
It.
Ariminus
Ty LOs2
Tell Maresa
settl.
NE
Marissa
8, 360
207
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Marga (Romania) Margamin (Syria) Margherita di Savoia near Marianopoli (?)
Bal. NE It. It.
Pons [7] Pons Augusti Mariamme [3] Salpia Mutustratum
11, 588 8, 351-352 12, 902 9, 381-382
NE NE NE Gr. Bal. It.
Mara [2] Mariaba Marsyaba Hebrus Selinus [4]
8,277 8, 350-351 8, 405 6, 32 13, 226-228
Gr. AM
Marmarium Proconnesus
Bal.
Afr. Gr. Bal. Afr. Egy. Egy. It. It. its WE Ibe. Gr. It. NE NE NE It. it:
Perinthus Gygaie limne Matrona [2] Numerus Syrorum Maronea [1] Leukos Limen Portus [6] P. Menelaus Paraetonium Lilybaeum Marsiliana d’Albegna Lacus Alsietinus Octodurus Tucci Idomenae Callipolis [5] Geth [3] Ogyris Emar Alba Fucens Massa Veternensis
8, 379 II, 918 10, 785-786 5, 1047-1048 8, 484 9, 902 8, 383-384 7,454 IT, 669
Marsa Matrth Marsala (Sic.) Marsiliana d’Albegna Lago di Martignano Martigny Martos Marvinci (?) near Mascali (Sic.) al-Mashad Masira (?) near Maskana near Massa d’Albe near Massa Marittima (?)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. isl. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. isl. settl. settl. settl.
iO, Syed 7, 558-559 8, 404 7, 155-156 10, 26 TES 6, 716 2, 984 5, 845 10, 68 4, 936 427 8,445
Monte Massico Matala (Crete) Matapan (Pelop.)
mtn. settl. settl.
Iie Gr. Gr.
Mons Massicus Matalum Taenarum [1]
9, 178-179 8,452 14, 114
Matarije
settl.
Egy.
Heliopolis, Heliupolis [1] 6, 76
Mausig (Saudi-Arabia) Mavisehir
settl. settl.
NE AM
near Mavrogija (?) near Mavromati (Pelop.) Mavroneria Mavropotamos Mavropotamos
settl. settl. wtr. wtr. wtr.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Muza Panormus [2] Eleusis [2]
Mazara del Vallo (Sic.)
settl.
Mazin Kalesi
settl.
Mccheta near Mdaourouch near Mechta Nahar Médéa
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Marib Marib Marib Marica near Marinella Marmara (Euboea) Marmara Adasi Marmara Ereglisi Marmara Golii Marne Marnia Maronia Marsa Koseir el-qadim Marsa Lahora (?)
AM WE
9, 383 10, 456
Melas [6] Melas [5]
A, 8, 8, 8, 8,
It.
Mazara
8, 523
AM
Amyzon
15, 992-993
BS Afr. Afr. Afr.
Harmozice Madaurus Caldis Lambdia
5, 1146 8, 106-107 PCE 7, 7, 181
Messene [2] Melas [6]
9X7 762-765 622 622 622
Mediana (Prov. Zaragoza) (?)
settl.
Ibe.
Damania
4, 50
Medina Medinet el-Kdima
settl. settl.
NE Afr.
Yatrib Thelepte
15, 849 14, 422
Mediterranean
wtr.
Medulin (Croatia) Megala Balomenu
settl. settl.
near Megali Chora Megali Dilos Megalomati Megalovuni near Megara near Megara Megara
settl. isl. wtr. mtn. settl. settl. settl.
WE It. Af. Gr. NE Ibe. It. Bal. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gi Gr. Gr. Gr. It.
| Mare Nostrum
8, 335-337
Mutila Arne [1]
Oyei7 Ms 17
Agrinium Rheneia Macaria [2] Celossa Rhus Tripodiscus Megara [2]
I, 390 12, 526 8, 53 Bu We 12, 581 14, 934 8, 599-603
GEOGRAPHICAL
208
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Megara Hyblaia (Sic.)
It.
Megara [3]
8, 603-604
near Megara (Sic.)
It. NE NE AM
Xiphonia Macoraba Mecca Miletupolis, Miletopolis
15, 839 8,96 8, 538 8, 884
AM AM It. Afr. Gr. Gr.
Hypius [1] Melanthium Melpis Rusaddir Olympus [5] Melitaea
6, 636 8, 619 8, 644 12, 788 IO, 116 8, 636-637
Alp. WE It. Egy. AM
Mella Meclodunum Melpum Memphis Maeander [2]
8, 8, 8, 8,
AM Its
Scamander Nomentum
Afr.
Celtianis
ger
AM
Lycastus [2]
OED
Ibe. WE AM
Augusta [2] Emerita Marcodurum Zephyrium [6]
yes 8, 318 15,911
Mekka Mekka near Melde (near Mustafa
Kemalpaga) Melen Cay1 Melet Irmagi Melfa Melilla Melissi near Melitaia Mella Melun Melzo (?) Memphis Menderes Menderes Suyu Mentana
El Meraba Merd Irmagi (?) Mérida Merken near Diiren (?) Mersin Merzumen Dere
640 544 644 654-656
8, 108 13,47 9,794
NE
Marsyas [7]
8, 407
on Mesa de Asta near Meseleri (Crete) near Meskla (Crete) Mesopotamon Mesovuni (Central Gr.) Cape Mesrata
Ibe.
Hasta [5]
5, 1166-1167
Gr.
Olerus
10, 86-87
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Polichne [2] Ephyra [3] Teumessus
II, 465 4, 1038 re ey i a
Afr.
Cephalae
3, 130
near Messina Messina Metauro Methoni (Pelop.)
It It. It. Gr.
Naxos [2] Messana, Messene [1] Metaurus [2] Methone [r]
9, 574-575 8, 752-753 8,794 8, 804-805
near Methydrion (Pelop.)
Gr. Gr. AM
Methydrium Methymna
8, 806 8, 806-807
Gr. WE
8, 842-843 4, 581
WE WE Bal.
Metropolis [4] Divodurum Mosa [3] Mosa [2] Salmydessus [2]
It.
Minio
9,9
Gr. Gr.
Aulis Thebes [3]
2, 377-378 14, 419
Afr.
Mileu(m)
8, 895
its
Mediolan(i)um [1]
8, 583-584
AM AM
Olymus Mylasa
10, 119 9, 407-409
Methymna (Lesbos) near Metropolis (Central Gr.) Metz
Meuvy Méziéres
Midye Mignone
9, 218 9, 218
12, 898
Mikro Vathy (Boeotia) near Mikrothivai Mila Milan near Milas Milas Milatos (Crete) Capo di Milazzo (Sic.) Milazzo (Sic.) Miliana near Milas Tall al-Milh al-Mina al-Mina
Gr. Ite It. Afr. AM
Miletus [3] Mylae [2] Mylae [2] Succhabar Olymus
NE NE NE
Malatha Al-Mina Tripolis [5]
near Minare Mincio
AM
Pinara
II, 261
It.
Mincius
8, 932
Mineo (Sic.)
8, 895 9, 406-407 9, 406-407 03, 90 10, 119 8, 196 Legit, 14, 935
It.
Menaenum, Menae
8, 659-660
Mino
wtr.
Ibe.
Minius
Oy ie
al-Minsat (between Sauhag and
settl.
Egy.
Ptolemais [3|
12, £73
Girga)
209 Modern name
GEOGRAPHICAL
Type
Region It. It. Gr. It. Gr. lit: It. Gr. Bal. Gr. BS Gr.
Minturno
settl.
Miseno
settl.
Mitropolianos Modena Modi Modica (Sic.) Modione (Sic.) Modon (Pelop.) Moigrad-Jas (Romania) near Molo Moloénaja voda
wtr. settl. mtn. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr.
near Molos
settl.
near Monasterace Marina Monastir Monemvasia Mons near Montagano (near Campobasso) Montagna di Marzo (near Piazza _
settl. settl. isl. settl settl. settl.
settl.
CONCORDANCE
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Minturnae Lethaeus [2] Mutina Dicte Motyca Selinus [3] Methone [1] Porolissum Scarphea Gerrhus [1]
9, 34-35 9, 59-60 7,433 9, 376-377 ANB 75 9, 242 13, 226 8, 804-805 Il, 644-645 13, 51-52 5, 820
Misenum
Nicaea [4]
9, 700-701
It. Afr. © Gr. Afr. Ihe.
Caulonia Ruspina Minoa [1] Mopth... Fagifulae
2513.9 Lao Gh ii 9, 203-204 5, 318-319
It.
Herbessus
6, 184
Armerina, Sic.)
Montalba
settl.
Ibe.
Ebora [1]
ANTES
Montana (Bulgaria)
settl.
Bal.
Montana
9, 184
Montargis Montecristo (?) near Monteleone Sabino Montesarchio near Montesilvano Marina Monteu da Po Montilla Monviso Tell Moqdam Morava Morava near Morbach-Wederath (?) Morro de Mezquitilla Moselle near Mossul near Mossul
settl. isl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
WE lee It. It. It. lin, Ibe. Alp. Egy. Bal. Bal. WE Ibe. WE NE NE
Vellaunodunum Oglasa Trebula [1] Caudium Salinae [1] Industria Munda [1] Vesulus Leontopolis [1] Brongus Margus [3] Tabernae [2] Morro de Mezquitilla Mosella Mespila [1] Ninus [2]
15, 264 10, 65-66 14, 885-886 3, 38-39 12, 888 6,795 9, 287 15,344 7, 410 DATOS 8, 345 14, 80 Oy 22) 9, 230 8,748 9,768
Mothoni (Pelop.)
settl.
Gr.
Methone [1]
8, 804-805
Moulouya Mouzon Mozia (on San Pantaleo) near Mraissa (?)
wtr. sett. settl. settl.
Afr. WE It. Afr.
Mulucha Mosomagus Motya Carpis
9, 276-277 py esate 9, 242 2, [125-1126
Mtkvari Mtskheta (Georgia)
wtr. settl.
BS BS
Cyrus [5] Mestleta
4, 21-22 8. 77a
near Mudanya Mudurnu Cay1 on Muela de Garray
settl. wtr. settl.
AM AM Ibe.
Apamea [1] Gallus [x] Numantia
re Siz 5, 680 9, 879
near Munébrega Tall al-Mugqayyar Mur (?)
settl. settl. wtr.
Ibe. NE Bal.
Munda [2] Ur Noarus
9, 287-288 15, [16-117 9, 782
Murcens-Cras (?) Murgani Muriki Muro Lucano
settl. wtr. wtr. settl.
WE Gr. Gr. It.
Uxellodunum [1] Ion [4] Schoenus [1] Numistro
15,148 6, 908 13, 63 9, 907
Gabal Masa near Muskar Mut Tall al-Mutasallim near Muzkent Mykene (Pelop.) Mykinai (Pelop.)
mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE AM AM NE AM Gr. Org.
Sinai Trebendae Claudioupolis [2] Megiddo Nephelium Mycenae Mycenae
13, 493-494 14, 883 3,390 8, 607 9, 658 9, 385-388 9, 385-388
GEOGRAPHICAL
210
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Mykonos Mylen
isl. settl.
Gr. WE
Mykonos Mediolan(i)um [3]
9, 405-406 8, 584
Myli (near Argos)
settl.
Gr.
Lerna
7, 425-426
Myrkinos Mytilene (Lesbos) Nabeul Tall Nabi Mand Tall Nabi Mand near Nablus Nablus Nadin (Croatia) Nafplio Nag‘ el-Mescheich Nagarahara (near Jalalabad, Afghanistan) (?)
settl. settl. settl. settl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Afr. NE NE NE NE Bal. Gr. Egy. NE
Myrcinus Mytilene Neapolis [9] Laodicea [2] Qadesh Sychem Neapolis [11] Nedinum Nauplia Lepidotonpolis Nagara [2]
9,413 9, 471-474 9, 582-583 Fi, LA 12, 303-304 13, 983-984 9, 583 9, 611 9, 549 7,415 9,491
Nagran Nahe Nahr al-‘Asi
settl. wtr wtr.
NE WE NE
Nagara [1] Nava Orontes [7]
9, 490-491 9, 556-557 10, 239
Nahr Diyala Nahr al-Kalb
mtn. wtr
NE NE
Pylae [4] Pylae Zagru Lycus [15]
Nahr Marzban Nairab (near Aleppo)
wtr settl. settl. settl.
NE NE
Marsyas [6] Nerabus Nasium Dadastana
7,940 8, 407 9, 663 9, 519 4, 34
3, 1050 3, 1049 9, 580-581 10, 570 10, 377 S725 9, 501 9, 501 9, 504-505 9,496 9, 510 9, 518
near Naix-aux-Forge near Nallihan
WE AM
12, 240-241
Namurt limani
settl.
AM
near Napoli
settl.
It.
Napoli Napoli Napoli (?) Nagab al-Hagar Naq§-e Ragab Naq§s-e Rostam Narbonne Narmada Narni
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl.
Ite Gr. It. NE NE NE WE NE It.
Nasik (India) (?)
settl.
NE
Cyme [3] Cyme [2] Neapolis [2] Parthenope [2] Palaepolis Maepha Nagqs-e Ragab Nagqs-e Rostam Narbo Namades Narnia Nasica [2]
Natisone Natissa
wtr. wtr.
It. It.
Natiso Natiso
S, Suz. 9, 522
Naupaktos
settl.
Gr.
Naupactus
9, 546-548
near Naussa (?)
settl.
Gr.
Mieza
8, 866
Navia Naxos (Cyclades)
wtr. settl. isl
Ibe. Gr.
Navia [2] Naxos [1]
9,559 9, 571-574
Nazareth
settl.
NE
Nazareth
9, 575
near Nazilli
settl.
AM
Mastaura
8, 451
Nea Anchialos (Pelop.)
settl.
Gr.
Pyrasus
ln)
near Nea Apollonia settl. near Nea Iraklia (?) settl. near Nea Kallikrateia (Northern __ settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Apollonia [3] Scapsa Gigonus
1, 866 13,49 5, 849
Gr.) near Nea Kamarina
settl.
Gr.
Anactorium
I, 633
near Nea Kordylia
settl.
Gr:
Argilus
I, 1063
near near Nea near
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr
Aenea Potidaea Praesus Scione
I, 218-219 II, 703-705 II, 769 £3,193
Neai Pagasai (Central Gr.) near Neapolis
settl. settl.
Gr. NE
Pagasae Mabartha
10, 339-340 8, 51
near Neapolis (Pelop.) Monti Nébrodi (Sic.)
settl. mtn.
Gr. te
Boiae Mons Nebrodes
eat 9, 179
Neckar Nedon (Pelop.) near Nedvigovska
wtr. wtr. settl.
WE Gr. BS
Nicer Nedon Tanais [2]
9,715 9, 611 14, 131
Nea Mudania (Northern Gr.) Nea Poteidaia Praisos (Vaveli, Crete) Nea Skioni
211
Modern name
GEOGRAPHICAL
Type
CONCORDANCE
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Nehavand (Iran) settl. Nemea, Arhea (Pelop.) settl. Lago di Nemi wtr. Nemrud Dagi mtn. Nemrut Kalesi (near Gorece) settl. near Nemuta (?) settl. near Neochorakion (Central Gr.) _ settl. near Neofaliron (Central Gr.) oth. Stream of Neohori (?) wtr.
NE Gr. It. AM AM Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Nihawand Nemea [2] Lacus Nemorensis Nemrud Dag Temnus Pharaea Scolus Echelidae Malus [3]
Oy WSS) 9, 624-627 7, 158-159 9, 633 14, 242-243 10, 921 13,98 4, 782 8, 210
Nepi Nera near Néraida (Pelop.) (?) Neretva Nesebar (Bulgaria)
wtr. settl. wtr. settl.
It. It. Gr. Bal. Bal.
Nepete Nar Salmone [r] Naro Mesambria/Mesembria
9, 502 12, 897 9, 510 8, 723-724
near Nestane (Pelop.) Neto Nettersheim-Marmagen Neumagen
settl. wtr. settl. settl.
Gr. It. WE WE
Neuss Nevers
settl. settl. settl. settl.
WE WE It. Ibe.
Nestane Neaethus Marcomagus Noviomagus [7] N. Treverorum Novaesium Noviodunum [3]
9, 832-834 9, 857-858
Nicotera Ilipula [3] I., Ilipla Nakida Noviomagus [6] Nicopolis [2] N.adIstrum Leucosia [2] Neocaesarea [1] Cabira Nile Nemausus [2] Kalhu
9,748 6, 727 9,496 9, 860-861 9, 741-742 7,450 9, 635-636 2, 860 9, 758-760 9, 623-624 TD
settl.
9, 656
[x]
Nicotera Niebla Nigde Nijmegen Nikiup (Bulgaria) Nikosia (Cyprus) near Niksar Niksar Nile Nimes Nimrid (Iraq)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM WE
Bal. Gr. AM AM AM
wtr.
Egy.
Nis (Serbia) Nisida Nisita near Nissoria (?) Nocera Nocera Umbra Noia (?)
settl. settl. settl. settl. isl. isl. settl.
WE NE Bal. Bal. It. It. It.
settl. settl. settl.
Nokalakevi Nola Nola (?) Norcia Norma North Sea Noto Antica (Sic.) Noto (Sic.) Novara Novilara (?) Novion-Porcien
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Nuffar
settl.
I It. Ibe. BS It. It. It. iki WE It. It. It. It. WE NE It. Ibe. It.
Nin (Croatia)
Numana settl. near Numantia settl. near Nuova Cliternia (Southern ___ settl.
It.) (2)
Nur Daglari Nusaibin Nyergesajfalu (Hungary) Nyon Nyon
mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl.
9, 9, 8, 9,
681 578 318-319 861-862
Aenona
L225
Naissus Nesis Nesis Imachara Nuceria [1] N. Alfaterna Nuceria [3] N. Camellaria Noega [2]
9, 494-496 9, 679-680 9, 679-680 63737 9, 871-872 9, 872 9,788
Archaeopolis Nola Uria [5] Nursia Norba [1] Mare Germanicum Netum Assinarus Novaria Novilara Noviomagus [5]
1,975 9, 790-791 T5526 9, 913 9, 816 8, 334-335 9, 689 Dl79) 9, 835 9, 857 9, 860
Nippur
9, 773-775
Numana Lagni Cliternia [2]
9, 878 Pam 2h 355
AM NE
Amanus
I, 558
NE
Nisibis
9, 777-779
Bal. WE Alp. WE
Crumerum Noviodunum [5] Noviomagus [4]
3, 961-962 9, 858-859 9, 860
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
settl. settl. settl.
Noviomagus [2] Orthosia Vitudurum
9, 859
settl.
9, 942 9, 544
settl.
Oberdorla Naulochus Gyenus Opitergium Aufidus Eion [1] Ollius Gorbeus, Corbeuntus Lychidnus
wtr.
Isara [2]
6,955
settl.
Olbia [4] Uliaros
10, 82
Olympus [6] Olympia
IO, L16—-I17 10, 94-108
Modern name
Type
Nyons (?)
near Nysa near Ober-Winterthur (Switzerland) Oberdorla Obzor near Ocamc¢cire
settl. settl.
Oderzo Ofanto near Ofrini (Northern Gr.)
settl.
Oglio near Ogulbey Ohrid (Macedonia) Oise Olbia (Sard.) Oléron (Dep. Charente-Maritime) Olymbochoria Olympia (Pelop.) near Olympias Olympos Ombrone near Omolion (Central Gr.)
wtr.
Oneion
Orange Orasje (Serbia)
Orchomenos (Central Gr.) near Orchomenos (Pelop.) Ordona near Ordu (?) near Orfani (Northern Gr.) (?)
Orhaneli Cayi Oria Orkney-isl. near Capo di Orlando (Sic.) (?) Orléans (?) near Ormilia near Oropos Orsova (Romania) near Ortaca
near Ortakisla near Ortaklar
near Ortakéy near Ortakéy (?) Orte Orte near Orvieto (?) Orvieto Orvieto
Osam (?) Osijek (Croatia) Osimo
Osma (near Coruna del Conde) Ossa Osteria della Fontana
Osteria della Molara (?) Ostia
Ostiglia Osuna Otranto
Otricoli Otylon (Pelop.) Oudna
Region
wtr.
settl. settl.
isl. mtn. settl. settl. mtn. wtr.
settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
mtn.
Stagira Olympus [1] Umbro Homole, Homolium Oneum [1] Arausio Margus [4] Orchomenus [1] Orchomenus [3] Herdoniae Cotyora Galepsos [1]
10, 266
15, 485
5, 1047 IO,
162
2, 338 4, 860 10, 90 55927 7> 914-915
15,83
13, 779-780 IO,
114-116
15,98 6, 466-467
LO, E32Z I, 960
8, 345-346 10,
191-193
ITO, 193-194
6, 194-195 3, 879 5, 662
wtr.
Rhyndacus
12, 581
settl. isl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Uria [2]
15,126
Orcades Agathyrnon Cenabum Sermylia Psaphis
IO, 190 I, 320 3, 100 13, 321-322 TAROT’
Dierna
4, 401
wtr.
settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl.
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Thyssanus Cuballum Magnesia [2] Orcistus Traianopolis [2]
14, 651-652 4, 1198 8, 173
10, 194 14, 836
Horta Hortona
6, 514
Salpinates Urbs Vetus Volsinii [1]
12, 902 15,125 15, 509-510
Novas Mursa
9, 316
6, 521
9, 835
Auximum Clunia Ossa [1] Anagnia Roboraria Ostia Hostilia Urso
2 AD
Hydruntum Ocriculum Oetylus Uthina
6, 600-601
3, 483-484 16;.278
1, 634 Ez Oy
10, 280-281 6, 532 15, 130-131
10, 17-18 10; 59 TS, 142-143
Zi
GEOGRAPHICAL
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
CONCORDANCE
Volume, Column
Oued Bou Regreg
wtr.
Afr.
Sala [1]
12, 875
Oued Caam Oued Djedi (?)
wtr. wtr.
Afr. Afr.
Cinyps Niger
3, 346 9,749
Oued Dra
wtr.
Afr.
Daras [1]
4, 85
Oued Dra (?)
wtr.
Afr.
Lix [3]
TESS
Oued Guir (?) Oued Mellégue (?) near Ouled Mimoun
wtr. wtr. settl.
Afr. Afr. Afr.
Gir Muthul Altava
Ouled-Agla Oulx Ovacik Burnu
settl. settl. sett.
Afr. Alp. AM
near Pachi near Pachten (Dillingen)
settl. settl.
Padova Padua
settl. settl.
Padula (?)
settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
Gr. WE It. It. It. It. It. NE Gr.
Equizeto Martis, ad [1] Aphrodisias School of sculpture Nisaea [1] Contiomagus Patavium Patavium Cosilinum Portus [7] P. Pisanus Pallia Paikuli Glympeis
Gro 518 9, 375 I, 549-550 5,6 8, 417 I, 830
Gr. Gr.
Cypaera Abia
settl. settl.
Gr. Gr: Gr. Gr. Gr.
Phytaeum Amarynthus Elimea Mpyrina [3] Oechalia [4]
near Palaiokastro (Central Gr.) Palaiokastro (Euboea) near Palaiokastro (Pelop.) Palaiokastro (Pelop.) (?) near Palaiopolis near Palamari (?) Palamut Kalesi Palasé (Albania)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. AM Gr.
Thronion Amarynthus Carystus [2] Lycaea [1] Elis [2] Zoeteium Apollonis Palaeste
14, 629 I, 560 ap aes 7,908 4,924 15, 947 I, 868 10, 378
Palazzolo Acreide (Sic.)
settl.
it
Acrae
I, 108
near Palea near Palencia
settl. settl.
Gr. Ibe.
Pella [1] Lacobriga [1]
Palencia near Paleochori (Central Gr.) Paleokastro (?) Paleokastro (on Koriphasion, Pelop.) Paleokastro (near Neon Paos, Pelop.) near Paleokastro (near Rhengini, _
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Ibe. Gr. Gr. Gr.
Palantia Stiris Pylos [2] Pylos [2]
10, 698-699 7,146 10, 383 13, 842 12, 243-245 12, 243-245
settl.
Gr.
Paeum
10, 337-338
settl.
Gr.
Naryca
9, 515-516
near Paleomanina
settl.
Gr.
Metropolis [3]
8, 842
Palermo near Palermo (Sic.)
settl. settl.
It. It.
Panormus [3] Cannita, Pizzo
10, 456-458 2, 1052
near Palermo (Sic.)
settl.
It.
Grotta Regina
5, 1034
Palestrina near Palio Thiva (Central Gr.)
settl. settl.
It. Gr.
Praeneste Pedieis
Il, 764-765 10, 675
near Paliochori
settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr.
Cytenium Pelinna Olizon
4, 22-23 10, 697-698 10, 89-90
Gr.
Mal(l)oea
8, 203
Padule di Stagno Paglia Paikuli Palaeochora (near Hagios Vasilios, Pelop.) near Palaia Giannitsu Palaiochora (Pelop.) near Palaiochori Palaiochoria (Euboea) Palaiogratsiano (?) Palaiokastron (Lemnos) Palaiokastron (near Neochori,
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
9, 776-777 BAT
10, 595 10, 595 3, 860 Il, 669 10, 399 10, 347 5, 882 3, 1064 120 Li 22 5 I, 560 4, 920-921
9,414 10, 43
Euboea) (?)
Central Gr.)
Paliogardiki (Central Gr.) settl. Paliokastro (near Lavko, Central _ settl. Gr.)
Paliokastro (near Sykia, Central __ settl. Gr.)
GEOGRAPHICAL
214
CONCORDANCE
Region
Modern name
Ancient/entry name Callithera Therambos Pamisus [3] Pallantium Palma Palmaria
near Paliuri (Central Gr.)
near Paliuri (Chalkidike) (?) Paliuris (?) Pallantion
Palma (Mallorca)
Volume, Column
Palmyra
10, 400 10, 401-408
Pamisos (Pelop.)
Alsium Pamisus |r|
I, $42-$43 10, 409
Pamplona Pamukkale
Pompaelo Hierapolis [1]
6, 302
Panaro
Scultenna Pangaeum
Palmarola
Palmyra Palo (near Ladispolli)
Pangaion Pangkora (India)
Guraeus
Pantano Secco
Pantelimon de Sus (Romania) near Paradisia (?) near Parco di Cavallo near Parco dei Tori
7,160
Cromnus
3,958
Thurii
14, 640-641 14, 640-641 7, 898
10, 536-537
Parnassus Parnes Parnon
TO, 10, 10, IO,
near Patrai (Pelop.) Pavia Pavlon (Central Gr.)
10, 80-81
Batavis Las
2, 55O-S$53 FiZ25S 10, 319 14, 886
EE O55
Oneum [2]
LOyass
Patmos Patrae Ticinum
10,
Olmones Sarpedon [2]
Paxi Paxos
542-543 543-544 $44 563
Olbia [x] Portae Caspiae
Pachynus Trebula [2] T. Suffenas
Pateras Oros Patmos
15,84
Parma [1]
Parthenium
Pass of Sirdara Passau-Altstadt near Passava (Pelop.) Capo Passero Passo della Fortuna (near Ciciliano)
13,144 10, 444 5, 1944
Lacus Regillus Ulmetum
Thurii Lutecia Parisiorum
Paris Parma Parnassos Parnitha Parnon Partheni near Parutino (Ukraine)
TI, $44-545
Paxos
601-602
10, 602-604 14, 665-666 IO, 90 12, I002—1003 10, 660 2, 613 13, 652-653
Pazardzik (Bulgaria) Pécs (Hungary)
Bessapara Sopianis
Peiros
Peirus
10, 682
near Pelasgia
Larisa [2] Heircte Mons Neptunius
7, 2§O-251
Tritea Pant(e)ichium
14, 939-940 TO, 459 Io, 719
Monte Pellegrino (Sic.) (?)
Monti Peloritani (Sic.) near Pendeoria (near Galaxidi) (?) Pendik Pendzhikent
Penisola di Magnisi Penne
near Perticale Perugia near Pésaro
Petalidi (Pelop.) near Pétange (Luxembourg) Petrijevci (Croatia) Petronell near Petrovei Pfaffenhofen on the river Inn Pforzheim
Pfyn (Switzerland) near Phaistos (Crete)
settl.
settl. settl. isl. settl. settl. settl.
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Pendzhikent Thapsus [1]
6, 56 95 E79
14, 366-367
Pinna Sinuessa Perusia Pisaurum Corone
10, 857-858 II, 292-293 3, 841-842
Titelberg Mursella [2] Carnuntum
9,316 2, TI2I-1122
Bassiana(e) [2] Pons [5] Pons Aeni Portus [2]
Fines, ad Fines [2] Kommos [1]
EL
274.
13, 498-499
14, 738-739 2,543 II, 588 Il, 666-667 5, 428 T9O=9XL
AW
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Phaistos (Crete) near Phanarion (Central Gr.) near Phaneromeni near Pharai (Pelop.) Pharkadon (Central Gr.) Pharsalitis (Thess.) Pheidias Phidaris Phidaris near Philia (Central Gr.) Phleius (Pelop.) near Phloka (Pelop.) Pholegandros Pholoi Oros near Phrixa (Pelop.)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. wtr. wtr.
Phaestus [4] Ithome [2] Budorum Phara Pharcadon Apidanus Ophis Evenus [3]
10, 903-905 6, 1022 D807, IO, 920 IO, 922 I, 839-840 10, 154 5, 249
wtr. settl. settl. settl. isicettlon mtn. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr Gr. Gry Gr. Gr.
Lycormas Iton Phlius Marganeis Pholegandros Pholoe Phrixa
7,928 6, 1027 II, 134-135 8, 339 cep 4 vey ae II, 192-193
Phrixa (Pelop.) (?)
settl.
Gr.
Phaesana
LO, 903
Phylakopi (Milos)
settl.
Gr.
Phylakopi
TE ZOOS
Piacenza Piano della Carlotta Pianosa Piazza Vecchia
settl. settl. isl. settl.
It. It. It. Te
Placentia Aquae I. Caeretanae Planasia Suessula
IL, 3LI-312 I, 922-923 Tele Bally E35 Ob,
Picunda Pidias Lago di Piedilugo Pietole (near Mantua) (?) Pietrabbondante near Pikerni (Pelop.) Pilion Pilismarot (Hungary) (?) Pinarbasi Pinos Puente (near Illora La Vieja)
settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl.
BS Gr. Ihe ite It. Gr. Gr. Bal. AM Ibe.
Pityus Pediaeus Lacus Velinus Andes Pietrabbondante Melangea Pelium Quadriburgium [4] Ariarathia Il(L)urco
Ly 3ue 10, 675 7, 160-161 I, 676 EL, 238 8, 616 Io, 698 I, Si I, 1080 6, 736
near Piombinara (?)
settl.
It.
Sacriportus
12, 856
Piombino Pioraco near Piordo
settl. settl. settl.
It. It. It.
Falesia Prolaqueum Veii
5325 £2, 0 15, 254-257
near Pirgos (?)
settl.
Gr.
Letrini
7, 435-436
Pisa
settl.
It.
Pisae
Piscomontano near Pisik6y near Pisses Pistoia near Pitigliano
mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. AM Gr. It. ifr
Lautulae Pisye Poeeessa Pistoriae Poggio Buco
ietig ALM 7, 308 II, 302-303 Il, 437-438 EIAgOr IT, 449-450
Pizzighettone Plakiotissas Plataiai near Platamon Platani (Sic.) near Platiana near Pliska (Bulgaria) Plitra Plomin (Croatia) Po Podgorica (Montenegro) Podgradina (near Glamoépolje,
settl. wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl.
It: Gr. Gr. Gr. It. Gr. Bal. Gr. Bal. It. Bal. Bal.
Acerrae [2]
Dirce [2] Plataeae Heracleum [2] Halycus Typaneae Pliska Asopus [4] Flanona Padus Meteon Salvium
I, 66 4, 534 Il, 336-337 6, 164 (py auiuyal 15,59 TINOs 2, 165 5, 452-453 10, 327-328 8,795 Tea ie
It.
Musarna [2]
9, 320
It. WE Bal.
Telamon [2] Lemonum
14, 218 7, 384 1, 864-865
Bosnia)
Poggio della Civita (near Viterbo) _ settl.
(?)
Poggio di Talamonaccio Poitiers
settl. settl.
near Pojani (Albania) Policastro Bussentino
settl. settl.
near Policoro (Southern It.)
settl.
It.
Apollonia [1] Buxentum
It.
Siris
2, 840
13, 506
GEOGRAPHICAL
216
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
near Policoro (Southern It.) Poliochni (Lemnos) near Politiko (Cyprus) Pollenzo (Northern It.)
Polyrrhenia (Crete) near Pommiers Pomorije near Pompia (?)
Pontoux-sur-le-Doubs Ponza Porcaria Porec
near Poros (Kephallenia) Porsuk Cay Port’Ercole Port-Vendres Port-Vendres near Porta Westfalica Portes Portiglione di Scarlino (Etruria) near Porto
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Heraclea [10] Poliochni
6, 154-155 II, 465-469
Tamassus
14, 124-125
Pollentia [1] Polyrrhenia Noviodunum [1] Anchiale [2] Boebe Pons [9] Pons Dub(r)is
1,491 IT, 32-533
Pontia [2] P., Pontiae Pantacyas
9, 857 1, 665-666
2, 694 11, 589 Il, 591
Tembris
10,459 TO, 530 IZ, 12 14,240
Herculis portus
6,193
Parentium Pronni
Portus [9] P. Veneris Pyrenaei Portus Idistaviso Climax [1] Salebro
II, 669
E2G253 6,715 35454 12, 883
Lacobriga [3]
7,146
Graviscae
5, 997-998
Aegosthena Geraestus [2]
5, 789-790
Incitaria
6, 764
I, 1070
near Praeneste near Prasino
Argoos Limen Sane [2] Pantalica Phasis [2] Puteoli Carventum Panactum
Pratica di Mare
Lavinium
near Prestia (?)
Plistica Phara Nicopolis [3] Eleutherna Hipana Prochyta Mons Garganus Pucinum
Porto Clementino (Tarquinia) near Porto Germeno (Porto) Kastri (Euboea) Porto Santo Stefano Portoferraio (Elba) near Poteidaia near Poterno (Sic.) (?) near Poti
Pozzuoli
near Prevedos (Pelop.) near Preveza near Prinés (Crete) near Prizzi (Sic.)
Procida
Promontorio del Gargano near Prosecco (?) Proti Prim Prut Psiloritis (Crete)
Psittalia
near Psophis (Pelop.) Ptuj (Slovenia) Puerto de Morata near Puerto de Santa Maria near Puig Pula on Capo di Pula (Sard.)
Pulvar Pumbedita Punta del Pezzo near Puri
near Puteoli near Putinci le Puy d’Issolu (?) Pyrenees
near Pyrgos (Central Gr.)
Prote Promea Pyretus
Ida [x] Psyttalea Psophis Poetovio Saltus Manlianus
1,198
12,955 10, 460-461
10, 941 12, 234-236 2, 1146
IO, 423-424 7, 309-310 II, 393 10, 920 9, 742-744 4, 917-918 6, 333 II, 909 12, 192 12, 65-66
£25 I2, 266 6, 709
12, 126
12, 123-124
Castillo Dona Blanca
II, 443-444 12, 906-907 2 LOO
Lauro [1]
7, 306-307
Pola Nora [1] Cyrus [6] Pumbedita Caenus Sepias [2] Aquae I. Ciceronianae Bassiana(e) [2] Uxellodunum [1] Pyrene [2] Aspledon
II, 452-453 9, 815-816 4, 22 12, 198
2, 897
13, 285
T, 922-923 2, 543
15,148 12, 253-254 Peig7
Dy
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Pyrgos Kieriu (Central Gr.) near Pyrrhichos (Pelop.) Pythagorion near Pythion (Central Gr.) Pythion (Central Gr.) Tall al-Qadi Qal‘at al-hisn (Israel) near Qal‘at al-Mudik (Syria) Qal‘at Sergat al-Qalu‘a al-Qaliniya (?) Qana’ Qanawat (Syria) near Qasr al-‘Abd Qasr al-Hair a3-Sarqi Qasr al-Hair al-Garbi Qasr al-Hallabat Qasr [brim Qasr al-Lusis Qasr al-Lusiis Qasr-e Sirin near al-Qatif near Qena near Qom Qualburg (?) Qusar al-Qubaiba al-Quds Qunduz Qusair ‘Amra Quwailibeh (Jordan) Ra’s al-‘Ain (Northern
sett. settl settl settl settl settl settl settl. settl sett. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. NE NE NE NE Egy. NE NE NE NE NE NE NE Egy. NE NE NE NE Egy. NE WE Egy. NE NE NE NE NE NE
Cierium Pyrrhichus Samos Pythium [2] Tripolis [x] Dan [2] Hippus [2] Apamea [3] Assur [1] Coptus Emmaus [3] Cane Canatha ‘Traq al-Amir Qasr al-Hair a8-Sarqi Qasr al-Hayr al-Garbi Qasr al-Hallabat Primis Kangavar Kangavar Oasr-e Sirin Labae Dendara Chorhe Quadriburgium [2] Myos Hormos Emmaus [2] Jerusalem Drapsaca Qusair ‘Amra Abila Theodosiopolis [1]
36328 10d, gpd 12, 930-937 12, 295-296 14, 934 4, 67-68 6, 379 Ty Ou, 2EUS5 Be Ie 4, 942 2, 1048 2, 1043-1044 6, 935 12, 302 1232) 12, 301-302 I1, 849-850 We eel TOF 7,130 4, 302 35245 py a 9, 412 4, 942 6, 1169-1178 4, 713-714 I2, 305 Tee 14, 467
Mesapotamia)
Ra’s Samra
settl.
NE
Ugarit
15, 80-81
Rachgoun Radés Raffe di Mussomeli Agrigento
isl. settl. settl.
Afr. Afr. It.
Rachgoun Maxula Cimissa
12, 380 8, 522 By Bis
near Ragusa (Sic.) (?)
settl.
Nts
6, 594
(Sic.)
Rakhsi
wtr.
AM BS
Hybla [x] H. Megale/Heraea Araxes [1]
Rapihu ar-Raqqa
sett. settl
NE NE
Rhaphia Nicephorium
Tee), Gy 9,714
ar-Raqqa
settl
NE
Ras al-Abja Ras Bergavad Ras Bou Tria Ras Bou-Chaifa Ras Dimasse Ras Guardafui near Ras el-Hilal Ras el-Kheil Ravenglass (?) Ravenna Ravi (Pakistan) near Razgrad (Bulgaria) Red Sea Regensburg Reggio di Calabria Reggio nell’Emilia Reims
settl settl. settl mtn. settl. settl settl. mtn. settl settl settl wtr. settl wtr. settl settl settl settl
Egy. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. WE It. NE Bal. NE WE tt It. WE
Raqqa Leuke Akte Zagazaena Acholla Cephalae Thapsus [2] Notou keras Nauststhmus [2] Notou keras Glannaventa Ravenna Hydraotes Abritus Erythra thalatta [2] Regina Castra Regium Regium Lepidum Durocortorum
12, 396-397 Ay ASB 15, 863-864 1,98 AL Argo 14, 367 9, 831 9,553 9, 831 5, 859 12, 408-412 6, 599 ay By 5,56 12, 437-438 12, 441-443 12, 443 4, 748-749
Reka
wtr
Bal.
Timavus
14, 685-686
I, 961
GEOGRAPHICAL
218
CONCORDANCE
Region
Modern name
Reka Devnia (Bulgaria) Relizane Remagen Reno Rentina (?)
Rethymnon (Crete) near Retortillo Revma Mileas Réza e Kanalit (Albania)
Rheinzabern
Rhevma tu Mylu Rhine near Rhitsona
Rhodopi Rhodos Rhone near Rhopotopi Rhotasi (Crete) Richborough near Riegel (Breisgau)
Rifrascolaro (Sic.) (?) Rila mountains (?) Rimini Riol Riolitiko Rioni
near Risingham near Ris6n la Sijjon Riva Deresi Rizana near Rizokarpaso (Cyprus) near La Rocca (Sic.)
Rocca d’Arce near Rocca d’Entella (Sic.) Rocca d’Entella (Sic.) Roccapriora (?)
near Roccelletta di Borgia (Southern It.) Rodez near Rodosto Rodosto
Marcianopolis
8, 303-304
Mina [2]
8,931
wtr.
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
settl.
settl. settl. settl. near Rodovani (Crete) settl. near Rodi Garganico (Southern It.) settl. near Roma settl. Rosarno settl. Roselle settl. Rosia Montana (Romania) settl. Rossano di Vaglio settl. Rottenburg settl. Rottweil settl. Rouen settl. Rovies (Euboea) settl. near Roxolany settl. Tall al-Rub‘ settl. Rubicone wtr. Rufias wtr.
14, 928-929 12, 567 6, 1052-1053
10, 410
Tabernae [1] Phoenix [9] Rhenus [2] Mycalessus Rhodope Rhodos Rhodanus
14, 79-80 LI5479 12, 527-528
9, 384-385 12,570 12, §57°-$74 12, 567-568 10, 588
Rhytium Rutupiae Helvetum Cutilia
12, 799-800 6, E22
Reate Oanis Dunax Ariminum
93: 9355
Larisus
settl. settl. settl.
I, 694 Gaye
3, 142
Rigodulum
wtr.
12, $93 E2, §26—-§27
Ceraunian Mountains
Passaron
near Rieti Rieti
Risan (Montenegro)
Volume, Column
Rigomagus [1] Rhenus [1] Angeae Hlipula [2] I. Minor Triopium Rhithymna luliobriga Pamisus [2]
Repla Resadiye Yarmadas1
Lago di Ripa Sottile
Ancient/entry name
Phasis [1] Lacus Velinus Risinum (Rhizon)
12, 584 3, 1030 12, 416-417
4,738 I, 1081-1082
12, $93 7255S 10, 941 7, 160-161 12, 596
Habitancum Geth [2] Rhebas [1] Formio Carpasia Palice
5» 497 PED 10, 386
Fregellae
5, 545-546
Petra [4] Entella Corbio [1] Scylletium
Segodunum Rutenorum Neon Teichos [1] Bisanthe Elyrus Unia [3] Saxa Rubra Medma Rusellae Alburnus maior Rossano di Vaglio Sumelocenna Arae [1] Flaviae Ratomagus Orobiae Niconia
Mendes Rubico Ladon [2]
55 2e7 Zz
5, 845 LoAS
10, 873 4, 997
3, 783 13, 147
13, 201
9, 642 2, 673 4, 933 £55
2G
13, 42
8, 589 12, 789-790 T, 435 12,740 13,942
1, 948-949 12, 406 LO, 236
9,740 8, 671 12,745 Flo?!
219
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Rugm al-Misnaga near Runovic
settl. settl.
NE Bal.
Machaerus Novae [2]
8, 91-92 9, 832
Rusafa Tall ar-Rusas near Rusé (Bulgaria) Ruvo di Puglia ar-Ruwad Sa |-Hagar near Sa |-Hagar Gabal as-Saih Saalburg (near Bad Homburg)
settl. settl.
NE Egy.
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. wtr.
Bal. It. NE Egy. Egy. NE WE WE
Rusafa Nilopolis [2] Transmarisca Rubi Aradus [1] Sais Buto Hermon [1] Saalburg
12, 788 9, 762 14, 858 12, 744-745 1, 948 12, 873-874 2, 839-840 63237 12, 802-803
wtr.
WE
Salas Saravus
12, 882 12, 968
NE NE NE
Masada Bersabe Sabbatha
8, 425 2, 609-610 12, 809
Saale (Thiringen) Saar
Tall as-Sab‘ settl. tall as-sab‘ (?) settl. Sabbatha settl. near Sadag settl. Sadouri (?) settl. near Saelices (Prov. Cuenca) settl. Tall as-Saft (?) settl. Sagunto settl. Sagvar (Hungary) settl. Saha settl. Sahr-e Kohna settl. Sahr-e Qumes (near Damghan) (?) settl. Saida (Libanon) settl. Saih Sa‘d settl. near Saint-Amand-sur-Ornain settl. Saint-Blaise settl. Saint-Blaise (?) settl. Saint-Mard settl. Saint-Quentin (Dép. Aisne) settl.
Bal. Egy. NE NE NE NE WE WE WE WE WE
Saint-Rémy-de-Provence Saintes (Charente-Maritime)
settl. settl.
WE WE
Sakarya Sala Consilina near Salamanca Salamanca near Sale Salerno Salif (?) Salm
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. isl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM It. Ibe. Ibe. Gr. Bal. It NE WE
BS
Satala
een
Afr.
Ausum
2, 396
Ibe. NE
Segobriga [1] Geth [1]
13, 200 5, 844
Ibe.
12, 867-868
AM NE AM AM It.
Saguntum Tricciana Xois Kandahar Hecatompylus Sidon Karnaim Nasium Ugium Mastramela Vertunum Augusta [ro] A. Viromanduorum Glanum Mediolan(i)um [4] M. Santonum Sangarius Sala Consilina Mirobriga [2] Salmantica Tempyra Salernum Mamala Salmona Salpia Iuvavum Sebennytus Maracanda Samarra Sambra [1] Same Zames Samothrace Beth Shemesh Samosata Akalan Amisus Aefulae
near San Angelo Muxaro (Sic.) (?) _settl. San Antioco settl.
Ge If,
Inycon Sulci(s)
6, 885 13, 928
San Antonio della Rasina
It.
Tadinae
1403
Monte di Salpi Salzburg Samannud Samarkand Samarra’ Sambre Sami (Kephallenia) Sammar (?) Samothrake near ‘Ain Sams Samsat Hoyiigu (submerged) near Samsun (Turkey) Samsun (Turkey) Monti di San Angelo in Arcese
It. Alp. Egy. NE NE WE | Gr. NE Gr. NE
14,914 15, 841 Fey 1S 6, 41 13, 436-438 75 23-24 9,519
ayes. 8,452 15, 327-328 asa 5, 859 8, 584 12,956 12, 876 9, 56 12, 897 14, 267 12, 883-884 8,210 12, 897
12, 902 6, I145-I146 13, 183 8, 277-278 12, 920-923 12,924 12, 924-925 1a ods) 12, 937-942 2, 618
1251937 I, 411 1, 581-582 T,072)
(near Tivoli) (?)
settl.
GEOGRAPHICAL
220
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
near San Arpino (Campania) settl. San Bartolo di Marcellina settl. near Colle San Basilio (Scordia) (?) settl.
Its I It.
Atella Laus [1] Bricinniae
Volume, Column 2,224
San Benedetto dei Marsi
settl.
It.
Marruvium
near San Benedetto del Tronto
settl.
It.
Truentum
Ts FOF. 2, 763 8, 397 14, 983
near San Cipirello (Sic.)
settl.
It.
letae
6,719
near San Cipirello (Sic.) (?) San Eleuterio (near Ariano Irpino) San Felice a Ruvo
settl. settl. settl.
It. It. IG;
laitia Aequum Tuticum Rufrae, Rufrium
6, 664 wa ts! 12, 754-755
San Felice Circeii
settl.
It.
Circeii
3,349
San Fratello (Sic.) (?)
settl.
It.
Apollonia [4]
1, 866
near San Gemini
settl.
It.
Carsulae
TEES
Monte San Giorgio (Regalbuto, settl. Sic.) near San Giovanni Incarico (near _ settl.
It.
Ameselon
Ey 579
It.
Fabrateria [2] F. Nova
5, 309
Bal.
Nymphaeum [5] Porton
9, 925-926
FISH 4s
La Civita) San Giovanni di Medua (Albania) _ settl.
San Giovenale
settl.
It;
the Illyrian coast San Giovenale
San Giuliano
settl.
It.
Manturanum
8, 262
Monte San Giuliano (Sic.) San Giuliano Terme (near Pisa)
mtn. settl.
It. Ite
Eryx [1] Aquae I. Pisanae
5, 56-57 I, 922-923
near San Giuseppe Iato (Sic.) near San Giuseppe Iato (Sic.) (?)
settl. settl.
le It:
Tetae laitia
6,719 6, 664
(Tell) San el-Hagar San Leonardo in Frigido
settl. settl.
Egy. It.
Tanis [x] Taberna [2] T. Frigida
14, 132-133 14,79
San Leonardo di Lentini (Sic.)
wtr.
It.
Terias
14, 290-291
Colle di San Lorenzo settl. San Marco d’Anunzio (Sic.) settl. San Mauro di Caltagirone settl. Monte San Mauro di Caltagirone _ settl. (Sic.) (2) near San Paolo di Civitate settl. (Southern It.)
It. Ife It. ts
Sur(r)ina Haluntium Galaria Euboea [2]
13,956 5, 1119 5, 646 5,130
Ihe
Teate [2]
14, 193-194
San Paolo di Peltuino San Paolo (Sic.) (?)
settl. wtr.
It. res
Peltuinum Longon
10, 716 7, 811-812
San Pietro in Fine (Caserta) San Rocco (near Mondragone) near San Salvatore Telesino
settl. settl. settl.
It. It
Ad Flexum [2] Aquae I. Sinuessanae
It.
Telesia
se Be Uy, I, 922-923 FAs 297
near San Severino Marche
settl.
It.
Septempeda
13, 287
near San Vittore
settl.
It.
Ocriculum
10,
near Sancakliboz (?)
settl.
AM
Mostene
9, 235-236
Tell Sandahanna
settl.
NE
Marissa
8, 360
Sangro
wtr.
It.
Sagrus
Sanli Urfa (Turkey)
settl.
NE
Edessa [2]
12, 867 4, 802-803
near Sant’ Agata dei Goti (?) Sant’ Anna (Sic.) Sant’Angelo Muxaro (Sic.) (?)
settl. wtr. settl.
It. ite It.
Saticula Hypsas [2] Camicus
TGLE3 6, 649 2, IO2I—I022
17-18
Santa Cecilia
settl.
It.
Anagnia
I, 634
near Santa Eufemia Vetere (?) Santa Felicita in Cerfenna (near
settl. settl.
if Iii
Terina Cerfennia
I4, 291 ZuLow
Collarmele) near Santa Flavia (Sic.) Santa Maria Capua Vetere
settl. settl.
It. It. ie
Solus Capua
13, 626 2, 1080-1083 15, §lI-5i2
Santa Maria Capua Vetere near Santa Maria di Falleri (near Civita Castellana) near Santa Maria di Furfona Santa Maria in Pantano
settl. sett.
It.
Volturnum [2] Falerii [2] F. Novi
settl. settl.
It. It.
Furfo Martis, ad [3]
5, 612 8, 417
near Santa Maria di Palatii (near __ settl. Tusa, Sic.)
Iie
Halaesa
5,
near Santa Maria di Pistia
its
Plestia
II, 381
settl.
5) 324-325
1106
221
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Santa Maria di Vereto near Santa Severa Santerno near Santiago de Cacem near Santiponce Santorini
settl. settl wtr. settl. settl. Settilmislemy
It. It. It. Ibe. Ibe. Gt
Uria [1] Pyrgi [1] Vatrenus Mirobriga [3] Italica Thera
15, 125-126 12, 266-267 Tig 242) 9, 56 6, L005—1006 14, 529-532
Saone
wtr
WE
Arar
I, 953
Saone Sapientza Sapkas
wtr. isl. mtn.
WE Gr. Gr.
Sauconna Oenussae [1] Titarus
13, 40 OMG 7 14, 738
near Saphi Adasi settl. Saqlabiya settl. Sar settl. Sar Planina mtn. Sar-e Pol-e Zahab settl. Sarandé (Albania) settl. near Sarantaporo (Northern Gr.) © settl. Sarantapotamos wtr. near Saraykoy settl.
AM NE AM Gr. Bal. NE Bal. Gr. Gr. AM
Teichioussa Seleucia [3 | Comana [1] Skardon oros Sar-e Pol-e Zahab Onchesmus Doliche [1] Cephis(s)us [3] Carura [1]
14, 216 13) 2H 3, 600 13, 518 12, 996 Io, 128 4, 616 Bo UZO) Pe, ALAS
Sarayu (?)
wtr.
NE
Sambus [1]
0, Sy
near Sar¢ali near Saricali near Sarigerme
settl. settl. settl.
AM AM AM
Callicolone Callicolone Pisilis
2,966 2, 966 II, 296
Sarih6ytik near Sarikemer Sarikaya near Sarikoy Sarki Karaagag (?)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM AM AM AM AM
Aspona Pyrrha [4] Basilica Therma Zeleia Neapolis [7]
Pig, Bef 125270 2, 536 15, 881 9, 582
Sarno
wtr.
It.
Sarnus
TEI, IOVS)IL
Saromata Bay of Saros Sarsina Sart Cayi Sart-Mahmut Sart-Mustafa near Sarti (?) near Sarvar near Sasamon near Sassoferrato Satlag (Pakistan) Saturnia Sauer Sava
mtn. wtr. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl wtr. settl. wtr wtr
Gr. Bal. It. AM AM AM Gr. Bal. Ibe. It. NE It. WE Bal.
Callidromus Melas Kolpos Sarsina Pactolus Sardis Sardis Sarte Bassiana(e) [1] Segisamo Sentinum Hyphasis Saturnia Sura [5] Savus
2,970 8, 622 I2, 1003 LOy3 20 12, 984-995 12, 984-995 12, [003-1004 2, 543 13 PCO) 13, 282-283 6, 636 tear 369 57 13, 42
Save (lower course) (?)
wtr.
Bal.
Noarus
9, 782
Saverne Savio (Northern It.) Savio (Umbria)
settl wtr wtr
WE Alp It.
Tres Tabernae [2] Sabis [2] Sapis
14, 890-891 12, 818 12,959
Sazlijka near Sazova
wtr. settl
Gr. Bal AM
Arzus Hiera Kome,
Dy SY) 6, 301-302
Sbeitla Scarponne Scedro Schelde Schiza SCitarjevo (near Velika Gorica) Scoltenna Seba Biar (?)
settl settl isl. wtr isl. settl. wtr. settl
Afr. WE Bal. WE Gr. Bal. It. Afr.
Sufetula Scarponna Tauris Scaldis Oenussae [1] Andautonia Scultenna Zama [1] Z. Regia
Hierocaesarea
13, 922-923 masa) 14, 167 13, 45-46 TOM 57, 1,675 13,144 15, 872
Sebeto
wtr.
ite
Sebethus
13, 183-184
Sebinkarahisar
settl
AM
Colonea
tyra
Seferihisar Sefi Rud
settl wtr
AM NE BS
Teos Amardus
14, 272-274 1, 559
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
222
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Segorbe La Ségourie (?) Segovia Segre Tall Seh Hamad Tall Séh Hamad (?) on Sehir Adasi Sehitlik Batarya Seine near Seki near Selgikler near Selcikli Sele
settl sett] settl wtr. sett] settl settl. settl wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr.
Ibe. WE Ibe. Ibe. NE NE AM AM WE AM AM AM It.
Segobriga [2] Segora Segovia [1] Sicoris Séh Hamad, Tall Magdala [2] Cedreae Dardanus [4] Sequana Syedra Sebaste Attaleia [2] Silarus
13, ZO" Tae OO 13, 203 13, 430 13, 207-208 S427 3, 62 4, 89 13, 300-301 13,984 IZ VEOI 2, 302-303 13, 452-453
near Selenica (Albania)
settl.
9,926
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Bal. AM Gr. Gr. WE Bal. AM Afr. It. Bal. BS WE
Nymphaeum [6]
near Selimiye Selinus near Sellasia (Pelop.) Seltz (Selz) Selva del Pero Semail Senegal (?) Senigallia Senj (Croatia) near Sennaja Sens
Euromus Selinus [2] Sellasia Saletio Ad Pirum Hadrianopolis [1] Nias Sena Gallica, Senagallia Senia Phanagoria Agedincum
5, 206 13, 226 13, 231-232 12, 884-885 igre it? 5, 1081 5 700 13, 258-259 13,279 10, 913-914 I, 322
Serchio
wtr
It.
Auser
2, 391
Seret (?)
wtr.
Bal.
Tiarantus
Sériana Seriphos
settl isl.
Afr. Gr.
Lamiggiga Seriphos
14, 653 7, 184 ee
near Sermoneta Serravalle Scrivia Serre (?) Sesklion Sesklo (Central Gr.) Sessa Sestino
settl. settl mtn. isl. settl. settl. settl.
It. It. It AM Gr. It. It.
Ulubrae
Libarna Sila [1] Teutlussa Sesklo Suessa Aurunca Sestinum
15,91 7, 481 E35, 452 54,334 £5) 356 13, 916 13, 339
Sestri Levante
settl.
It.
Segesta [2] S. Tigulliorum
13, 199
Sétif near Sevastopol
settl settl
Afr. BS
Sitifis Chersonesus [3]
£35 523 3, 214-215
Severn
wtr.
WE
Sabrina
12, 820
Sevilla
settl
Ibe.
Hispal(is, Spalis)
6, 384
Seyhan Seyitgazi Sezze Sfaktiria near Sfax Sfintu Gheorghe (?) Shéngjin (Albania)
wtr. settl settl isl. settl isl. settl
AM AM It. Gr. Afr. Bal. Bal.
12, 1004 9, 483-484 13, 344-345 £35730 14, 431 10, 887 9, 925-926
Shkodra (Albania)
settl
Bal.
Sarus [1] Nacolea Setia Sphacteria Thena Peuce [1] Nymphaeum [5] Porton the Illyrian coast Scodra
Sicak Iskelesi
settl
AM
Aperlae
15,998
Siciliy Sialkot (2) Monti Sibillini Sidaskale
isl. settl mtn. settl
It. NE We AM
Sicily Sagala Tetrica mons Saittai
13, 12, EA, 12,
418-428 865 27 874
Cape Sideros
mtn.
Gr.
Sam(m)onium
12,
914-915
Sidi Ali bou Djenoun Sidi Brahim Sidi Daoud Sidi Dekril (?) Sidi-Mediene Sidi Mohammed ben Aissa
settl settl settl. settl. settl. settl.
Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr.
Banasa Gunugu Missua Tegea [2] Vallis Bezereos
2, 483 5, 1044 9, 66 TAs 2n5 15, 198 2, 621
13, 97-98
22g
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Sidi Moulay Yakoub Sidi Nejah (?) Sidi Reiss Sidi Youssef Siena Sierra de Ronda (?) Hirbat Sifat Sigacik Siguienza Sigus Sikinos Silchester near Siledik Silifke Silistra (Bulgaria) Silivri Sillégue Simav Cay1 Simbolo Simeto near Sinabic (?) Sinekkale Singar (Iraq) Sinis (Sard.) Sinitovo (Bulgaria) Sinni near Sinop Sinop Siphnos Siponto Sipovo (Bosnia-Herzegovina) near Siracusa (Sic.) near Siracusa (Sic.)
settl settl settl settl settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. isl settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. mtn. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settleisie” settl. settl. settl. settl.
Afr. Afr. Afr. Afr. It. Ibe. NE AM
Aquae [II 4] Dacicae Zeta Aulodes Naraggava Saena Ilipula [4] lotapata Teos Segontia Sigus Sicinos Calleva Atrebatum Stratoniceia [1] Seleucia [5] Durostorum Selymbria Novar Macestus, Mecestus Symbolum Symaethum Dalisandus Hamaxia Singara Tharrus Bessapara Siris Carus(s)a Sinope Siphnos Sipontum Baloia Bidus Labdalum
I, 924 E55923 2, 378 9, 502-503 12, 862 6,727 6, 922-923 14, 272-274 13, 201 135/45 13, 429 2,959 13, 879 EZ e204 4,750 Li 2538) 9, 834 8,91 LAs © izle at 4,42 5, 121-1122 13,495 14, 367-368 2, 613 13, 506 2, 1146 13, 497-498 13, 5OO-50L 13, 5O1 2, 481 2, 640 Te ERE
near Siracusa (Sic.)
settl.
It.
Merusium
Sage
near Siracusa (Sic.) Siracusa (Sic.) Siracusa (Sic.) Sirmione Sirtkéy
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. Tes It. Ite AM
Tyche [2] Achradine Neapolis [3] Sirmio Etenna
L553 1, 98-99 9, 581-582 13, 506 5, 78-79
Sisak (Croatia) Sisteron
settl. settl.
Bal. WE Alp
Siscia Segustero
13, 508 13e 205
Siz (Azerbeidzjan) Skala (?) near Skala Atalandis (Central Gr.)
settl. settl. settl.
NE Gr. Gr.
Is Lyrceia, Lyrceum
13, 507-508 8, 20
Calliarus
2, 960
Gr.
Ibe.
Afr. Gr. WE AM AM Bal. Bal. Afr. AM
Gr. Its AM AM NE It. Bal. ite AM AM Gr: It. Bal. It. It.
(?) near Skala Eresu (Lesbos)
settl.
Eresus
is vp
Skala Oropu Skiathos Skikda Skikda (?) Skopelos near Skopje
settl. Gr. settl. isl © Gr. settl. Afr. settl. Afr. settl. isl. © Gr. settl. Bal.
Oropus Sciathos Rusicade Thapsa Peparethos Scupi
10, 13, 12, 14, 10, 13,
near Skotussa
settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. sett.
Gre
Scotussa
Gr. Bal. Bal. Afr. Bal. It. AM WE
Scyllaeum Marsonia Discoduratera Chidibbia Serdica Aquae I. Albulae Billaeus Augusta [9] A.
£31102 Las la7, 8, 404-405 4, 539 Ee Xe) 13, 309-310 I, 922-923 2, 646-647 2, 351-352
Cape Skyli Slavonski Brod (Croatia) Slawejkowo Slouguia Sofia Lago della Soforata Soganli Suyu Soissons
Suess(i)onum
240 83-84 790-791 366 736 144-145
GEOGRAPHICAL
224
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
near Solin, Split Sollum near Solos (Pelop.) (?) Solothurn
settl sett] sett] settl settl
Somme Somme Son
wtr wtr wtr.
near Sophades (Central Gr.) Sopron (Hungary) Sora Sorapani (Georgia)
settl settl. settl. settl.
Soratte
near Solinarion (Central Gr.) (?)
Region
Afr. Egy.
WE Alp.
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Salona
12, 900-901
Alalcomenae [1]
T, 419-420 ee 9, 805-806
Catabathmus Nonacris [1] Salodurum Samara
Sambra [2]
12, 899 12,915 12,924
Erannoboas Arne [2] Scar(a)bantia Sora
Fa te £3, 50
Sarapanis
12, 967
mtn.
Soracte
near Sorgun Sorrento near Sougia (Crete) Souk el-Abiod Souk el-Arba (?) Souk-Ahras Soulosse-sous-Saint-Elophe Sour Djouab Sour el-Ghozlane Sousse South Cadbury Sovana (near Pitigliano) Sozopol (Bulgaria) near Spadafora (Sic.) (?) near Sparti (Pelop.) near Sparti (Pelop.) Sparti (Pelop.) Sparti (Pelop.) Sparti (Pelop.) Sparti (Pelop.) Spello Sperlonga Speyer Split Spoleto Sremska Mitrovica Sri Lanka near St. Agata di Militello (Sic.) St. Albans St. Peter im Holz (Austria) St. Polten near Sta Nera (?) near Stanwix Stara planina Stara Zagora (Bulgaria)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl settl settl settl isl. settl settl settl settl settl settl mtn. settl
Podanala
13, 653 IT, 437
Starigrad-Paklenica (Croatia)
settl
near Sterna (?) near Sterna (?)
settl settl
Sterzing Stilida (?) Stobreé (Croatia) Strait of Keré Strait of Keré Strasbourg Stratoni (Northern Gr.) near Stratos Straubing near Strephi (Pelop.)
sett] settl settl wtr wtr. settl settl settl settl settl
Stromboli
Surrentum Lisus, Lissus
Pupput Gilda
Tagaste Solicia
Rapidum
5> Toes)
13, 653
13, 967 7> 633 12,297, 5, 850 14, 115 13, 614-615 12, 395 2S ALT
Auzia
Hadrumetum South Cadbury
5, 1088-1089
Suana/Sovana
13, 897-898
Apollonia Naulocha, Cnacion Therapnae Cynosura Mesoa Pitana Sparta
[2] Pontica Naulochus
13, 680 I, 865-866 9, 543-544
3, 489 [2] [3]
Hispellum Sperlonga Noviomagus [8] Spalatum Spoletium Sirmium Taprobane Halaesa Verulamium Teurnia Cetium Cenchreae [1] Uxellodunum [2] Haemus Beroea [2]
Argyruntum Lyrceia, Lyrceum Orneae Vipitenum
Phalara Epetium Bosporus [2] Panticapes Argentorate Stratonice [8] Stratos
Sorviodurum Marganeis Strongyle
14, $34 3, 1062
8,726 II, 303
13, 691-708 6, 401-402
13, 723-724 9, 862 13, 688-689
13, 741-742 13, 506-507 Ld, £36=137; 5, 1106
15, 328-329 14, 331-332
BUFO 3201 15, 148 5, 1091-1092 2, 607-608 I, 1075-1076
8,20 10,235
15, 448 10, 908 4, IOI7 2,5 734
10, 471-472 I, LO61—1062
13, 879 13, 880-881
13, 655-656 8, 339
13, 884
225
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Strongoli Strophadia Struma near Styra (Euboea) Subarna rekha Subiaco Suhumi (Abkhazia) Suhut Sulak (?) Sulmona near Sultanhisar near Sultanhisar near Sulukli near Suliimenli near Siliinlii Sulusaray Suplja crkva (Croatia) Supljaja (Croatia) as-Sur (Libanon)
settl. isl. wtr. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
It. Gr. Gr. Bal. Gr. NE It. NE BS AM BS It. AM AM AM AM AM AM Bal. Bal. NE
Petelia Strophades Strymon Styra Adamas [2] Sublaqueum Dioscurias Syn(n)ada Gerrhus [3] Sulmo Nysa [3] Orthosia [1] Vegistum Blaundos Blaundos Sebastopolis [2] Burnum Burnum Tyrus
10, 865 13, 885 13, 889 13, 896 T1033 13, 900 4, 521-522 14, 29-30 5, 820 13, 928-929 9, 930-931 10, 266 1 Fe: 2, 688 2, 688 13, 183 2, 834-835 2, 834-835 15, 71-74
as-Suriyya (Syria)
settl.
NE
Sura [3]
13, 956-957
Sas Sas Daniel Susa (Northern It.) Susaki
settl. settl. settl. settl.
NE NE Alp. Gr.
Susa Susa Segusio Sidus
13,969 13, 969 13, 204 13, 439-440
Susanoglu
settl.
AM
Corasium
3, 781
(Mt.) Susita (Israel)
settl.
NE
Hippus [2]
6, 379
Sutlej Sutri
wtr. settl.
NE It.
Zaradrus Sutrium
15, 874 135 Syl
Sutton Hoo SveStari (Bulgaria) near Svina
settl. settl.
WE Bal. Gr.
Sutton Hoo Sveshtari
eat ead 13, 971-972
near Svistov (Bulgaria) Swat Switzerlander Jura
settl. settl. settl. mtn.
Bal. NE WE
Thalamae [1] Novae [1] Massaga Iura
14, 358-359 9, 832 8,441 6, IL17-1118
Syr-darja
wtr.
NE
Iaxartes
6, 693-694
Syros Szazhalombatta (Hungary) Szombathely (Hungary)
settl. isl. | Gr. settl. Bal. settl. Bal.
Syros Matrica Savaria
14, 72-73 8, 482 13, 41-42
Szony (Hungary)
settl.
Bal.
Brigetio
sais:
Tabanoglu Kalesi Tabaqat Fahl Tabarka
settl. settl. settl.
AM NE Afr.
Peion Pella [2] Thabraca
10, 689 10, 699 14, 357
Monte Taburno
mtn.
II.
Mons Taburnus
9, 181
Tac (near Székesfehérvar, Hungary)
settl.
Bal
Gorsium
5, 942
near Tachi (Central Gr.)
settl.
Gr.
Potniae
11, 708
Tagliamento Taht-e Gamiid
wtr. settl.
It. Alp. NE
Tiliaventum Persepolis
14, 675 10, 814-815
Tajo Tajuna near Ta‘izz
wtr. wtr. settl.
Ibe. Ibe. NE
Tagus Tagonius Sabe [2]
14, [116-117 14, 116 12, 810
Takembrit Hirbat at-Tall (near Bétin) Talhum on Taman (?) Tametfoust Tamil Karur (Karuvar) Tammaro Tamzerat near Tanagra (Central Gr.) Tanaro Taneto (near Sant’ Ilario d’Enza) _
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl.
Afr. NE NE BS Afr. NE It. Afr. Gr. Alp. It.
Siga Ai Capernaum Achilleion Kome Rusguniae Carura [2] Tamarus Kerkouane Tanagra Tanarus Tannetum
13, 445-446 I, 402 2, 1063-1064 1, 88 12,790 2, 1145 14, 124 TAs 14, 129-130 14, 132 ey ae
GEOGRAPHICAL
226
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Tang-e Muhammad Reza (?)
mtn.
Pylae [2] Pylae Persides
2,240
Tanger
Tingis Halaesa
14,718
near Tapa Sardar
settl. settl. settl. settl.
Tapti (?) Taranto Tarascon
wtr. settl. settl.
near Taormina (Sic.)
Taormina (Sic.)
Tarascon sur Ariége near Tarifa Tarmaslak Burnu Tarn Taro
near Tarquinia near Tarquinia near Jarracina
Tarragona Tarsus
Tarsus Cayi (Irmagi) near Tartarli Tartaro
Tas Silg (Malta) near Tasbukii Taschkent Taschkurgan (?) near Taskoprii Tasyaka Taunus
Tavsangil Deresi Taxt-i Ta’us Taygetos Tazoult-Lambése Teano
Teébessa Tebourba Teboursouk Tedzen Tefased near Tegea Teggiano (Southern It.) Tegirdag near Teheran Tehne (el-Gebel) near Teire
Tejo near Tekirova Tekkeonii near Tekrit near Tel Aviv
Tel Malhata near Telese et-Tell Tenaron (Pelop.) Tenés Tenos (Tinos)
near Teplju
14, 169-171
Ghazni Nanagunas Taras [2]
5, 845
Tarusco |r| Tarusco [2]
Mellaria [1] Grynium Tarnis Tarus Tarchna [1]
Tarquinii Lucus Feroniae [2] Tarraco Tarsus Cydnus Metropolis [6] Tartarus
Tas Silg Cedreae Tashkent Aornus [1]
9,497 14, 138-141 14,159 14,159 8, 640 5, 1038
14, 146-147 14,159 14, 143 14, 148-150
7, 865 14, 154-155
14, 155-156 3, 1046
8, 843-844 EA; EST 14, 160
3, 62 14, 161 K, S25
Pompeiopolis
11,555
Crya Taunus Libyssa
3, 967
Istachr Taygetus Lambaesis Teanum Sidicinum Theveste Thuburbo [2] T. Minus Thubursicum [1] Th. Bure
Tedzen Tipasa [1] Alea [4] Tegianum Hieron oros [1]
Rhagae Acoris [1] Larisa [7] Tagus Phaselis Cromna Caenae
Jabne Malatha Telesia Bethsaida Taenarum [1] Cartennae Tenos Promona
Ter Teramo
Tagara Interamna [3] Interamna Praetuttiorum
near Terme Terme Caronte
Themiscyra Aquae I. Angae Thermodon [2]
Terme Cay1
5, 1106
Tauromenium
14, 164-165 75516 6, 986-987 14, I90-191 7, 178-179
14, 192-193
14, 585-586 14, 631 14, 631
TAD ED neBe
I, 463 14, 21§ 6, 314 12, 518-519
tcos 72 254 14,
LLI6—-LL7
10, 939-940
3,958 2, 896 6, I161
8,196 1 ea 2, 617-618 14, 114 soap tas fa) I4, 271-272 rz, LO 45 aus
6, 845 14, 425-426 I, 922-923
14, 550
Dy)
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Terme Taurine (Central It.) near Termini
settl settl.
It. It.
Aquae I. Tauri Interamna [2] Interamna_
6, 845
I, 922-923
Lirenas, Interamna
Termini Imerese (Sic.) Terni near Terracina Terracina Tét near Tétouan (Morocco) Tetrazion Tevere Teverya (Tiberias)
Thala Thames Thasos Theifs Theifs near Theisoa near Thelphusa (Pelop.) Themse near Theologos (Central Gr.) Thera (Thira) near Thermo near Thérouanne near Thespeia near Thessalonike (?) Thessalonike near Thetidion (?) Thil-ChAtel Thiva Thuringian Forest (?) Thurion Thyamis Thyrion Tiber Ticino near Tiermes Tifech near Tigzirt Tiklat Tilkoy Timavo (Tall) Timay Timgad Timia Tindari (Sic.) Tintagel Rio Tinto Tipasa near Tirnavos Tiryns Tisa Tisa Tisza Tisza near Titane (Pelop.) Tivoli Tiz Todi
Tokra Toledo
settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. mtn. wtr. settl.
It. It. ite Ite Ibe. Afr. Gr. It. NE
settl
Afr.
wtr. Settiaisia: wtr wtr. settl.
WE (Gr Bal Bal. Gr.
settl wtr. settl. settl. isl. settl. settl settl settl settl settl settl settl mtn mtn. mtn. settl wtr wtr. settl settl settl settl settl wtr. settl settl wtr. settl settl wtr. settl settl settl wtr wtr wtr wtr. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl
Gr. WE Gr. Gr. Gr. WE Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. WE Gr. WE Gr. Gr. Gr. It. It. Alp Ibe. Afr. Afr. Afr. AM Bal. Egy. Afr. It. i WE Ibe. Afr. Gr. Gr. Bal Bal Bal Bal. Gr its NE It. Afr. Ibe.
Sucasina Thermae [2] Interamna [1] Spelunca Tarracina Ruscino [1] Tamuda Nomia [3] Tiber Tiberias
Thala Tamesa Thasos Pathissus Tisia Theisoa [2] Thelphusa Tamesa Halae [3] Thera Thermus Tervanna Thespia Therme Thessalonica [1] Thetideion Tilena Thebes [2] Mons Melibocus Thurium Thyamis Thyrrheum Tiber Ticinus Termes Tipasa [2] lomnium Tubusuctu (Thubuscum) Diocaesarea [2] Timayus Thmuis Thamugadi Clitumnus Tyndaris Tintagel Iberus [2] Tipasa [1] Phalanna Tiryns Pathissus Tisia Pathissus Tisia Titane Tibur Omana Tuder
Tauchira Toletum
14, 549 6, 844-845
an 722 14,154 12, 789 14, 128 9,794 14, 653-654 I4, 655-656 14, 358 TA Lay 14, 368-371 10, 599 I4, 731-732 14, 421 14, 422 14,125 5, LLO5-L106 14, 529-532 14, 554 TAN 14, 566-567 I4, 550 14, 575-577 14, 581-582 14, 674-675 14, 408-419 9,179 14, 641 14, 643 14, 650-651 14, 653-654 14, 666 14, 292 14, 721-722 6, 905-906 14, 992 4, 423 14, 685-686 14, 589 14, 364 3,456 15, 58 A720 6, 696 LA, Fae 10, 906 I4, 727-731 10, 599 14, 731-732 10, 599 14, 731-732 LA, 735 14, 664-665 TOP, UPN 15, 1-2 14, 163-164 14, 768-769
GEOGRAPHICAL
228
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Tolmeta
settl
Ptolemais [7]
2,
near Tolon (near Nauplia)
settl
2,158
Tomaros
mtn.
near Tomislavgrad
settl.
Asine [1] Tomarus Delminium
Tont Kalesi
settl.
Afr. Gr. Gr. Bal. AM
Topalu
settl
Bal.
near Toroni Toros Daglari
settl
Torre Torre Annunziata Torre Astura (Latium)
wtr. settl wtr.
Gr. AM It. fie
Torone Taurus [1] Natiso
near Torre d’Egnazia Torre Tre Ponti
settl settl wtr. settl settl settl. settl settl settl. settl. settl. settl settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl
It. It. It.
Astura Gnathia
Torrente Tanagro Torretta Tortona Tortosa Toscanos Toul Toulouse Tournai Tournus Tours Towchester Trabzon
Trapani (Sic.) Lago Trasimeno near Monte Traviano
mtn
It. its ity
Ibe. Ibe. WE WE WE WE WE WE AM It. It. ie
Trayamar (Proy. Malaga)
settl.
Ibe.
Trebbia
wtr.
Treglia
sett]
It. It:
near Trento Trento Trevi Trevico (?) Trevini nel Lazio Treviso near Trient Trient Trier Trieste Trikaliotiko (2) near Trikastron Trikeraton Trikeri Trik(k)ala Trikkalinos
settl. settl. settl settl. settl settl settl settl settl settl wtr. settl mtn mtn settl wtr
Trilj near Trilofo (?) near Trinitapoli Trinkitat Trino Vercellese (?) near Tripi (Sic.) Tripoli Tripolis (Libanon) Trogir Troia (Southern It.)
oth. settl settl settl settl settl settl. settl settl settl
Troina (Sic.) near Troizen Trojane (Slovenia) Tronto
settl settl settl wtr
ite ite it.
It. Ite
Alp. ts It. WE
Alp.
Cybistra Capidava
Oplontis
Tripontium Tanager Turrita Dertona Dertosa Toscanos
Tullum Tolosa Turnacum Tinurtium
Volume, Column L74
14, 775-776 4, 209 3, 1040 2, 1065-1066
14, 789-790 1 Op hy 9, $22 10, 163 2, 210-211 5, 882 14,935 14,129 15,39 4, 313 45 313
14, 796-797 ES; 22
14, 774-775 E55 35-36 14, 721 2, 920
Caesarodunum Lactodurum Trapezus Drepanon [4]
4,720
Lacus Trasumenus Taurianum
7, 160 14, 166
Trayamar Trebia Trebula [3] T. Balli(ni)ensium
14, 879
Sanzeno
12, 957-958 14, 917
Tridentum Trebiae
7> 153 14, 865-867
14, 883 14, 886
14, 883
Trivicum Treba Tarvisium Sanzeno Tridentum
14,955
Augusta [6] Treverorum Tergeste Sythas Pandosia [1]
2, 344-350
Cerata Cerata Tricca
3, 142 3, 142 14, 913-914 7 433 Ir, 589 4, 369
Lethaeus [1] Pons [12] Pons Tiluri Dicaea
Salinae [2] Ptolemais [6] P. Thér6n Rigomagus |3] Abacaenum Oea
Orthosia [2] Tragurium
14, 880 14,
160
12, 957-958 14, 917 14, 290
14, 74-75
10, 437
12, 888 12,174
12, 594 a eS
10, 40-41 10, 266
14, 835
Aecae
I, 166
Engyon
4,980
Troezen Atrans Truentus
2,297
14, 958-959 14, 983-984
229
Modern name
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
settl.
settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl wtr. settl wtr. settl wtr. mtn. settl.
It. Alp. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Egy. Bal. Afr. Ie ite Bal. AM Ibe. It. It. Bal. It. It. Bal. Bal. AM AM AM Gr. It. AM ts AM NE
settl settl. settl settl settl settl settl settl settl wtr. settl settl settl settl. wtr. isl. settl settl. settl.
Bal. Egy. NE NE AM Egy. AM AM It. NE NE AM WE AM Ii It. WE It. It. Alp.
wtr.
WE
settl.
WE
Tarsatica Enipeus [2] Eretria [2] Amyclae [1] Halus Condylum Ombi [1] Aegissus Carthage Tolenus Sagra Potaissa Gazioura Turia [2] Augusta [5] Taurinorum Taurasia [2] Drobeta Tuscana Tusculum Moge(n)tiana Transmarisca Tatta Tragasae Satnioeis Tylissus Mare Tyrrhenum Leucae [2] Ufens Olympus [13] Seleucia [1] S. on the Tigris Magnum Municipium Tebtynis Gadara Aornus [2] Chabakta Hermonthis Diocaesarea [1] Olba Urvinum Mataurense lordanes [2] Edessa [2] Clazomenae Ad Lunam Temenothyrae Utens Ustica Ucetia Vada Volaterrana Vada Sabatia Cusus Vasio
near Vakfikebir
settl.
AM
Cerasus
zy 042
Vakif Val di Comino near Valchetta Valence Valencia Valesio (Southern It.)
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
AM It. It. WE Ibe. It.
Heraclea [6] H. Salbace Cominium Veii Valentia [2] Valentia [1] Baletium
6, 151-152 3, 618-619 15, 254-257 15,159 L559 2, Age
Valle d’Ansanto near Valtopina
wtr. settl.
It. It.
Ampsanctus Nuceria [2] N.
I, 618-619 9, 872
Trsat (near Rijeka) Tsanarlis near Tsangli (Central Gr.) near Tsausi (Pelop.) near Tsengeli (Central Gr.) (?) near Tsurba-Mandria near Tuh Tuléa (Romania) Tunis Turano Turbolo Turda (Romania) near Turhal Turia Turin Turin (?) Turnu Severin (Romania) Tuscania Tusculo Tiiskevar (Hungary) (?) near Tutrakan (Bulgaria) Tuz Goli near Tuzla Tuzla Cay near Tylissos (Crete) Tyrrhenian Sea Uc Tepeler Uffente Uludag Tall ‘Umar
near Umljanivici ~ Umm al-Buraigat (Fajum) Umm Qais Una (?) near Unye (?) near al-Ugqsur (Luxor) near Ura (Turkey) Ura (Turkey) Urbino al-Urdunn Urfa (Turkey) near Urla Urspring-Lonsee (?) near Usak Uso Ustica (vor Sic.) Uzes Vada Vado Ligure (near Savona) Vah (?) Vaison-la-Romaine
wtr.
settl. settl. settl.
settl. settl. settl. sett. wtr wtr. settl. sett. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Favoniensis
Volume, Column AR TS 5 4, 981
S25 I, 622 5, ILI9-1120 3, 687-688 10, 121 I, 196 2, 1130-1136 14, 757-758 12, 867 II, 700 Guy EG ae, 7 2, 343-344 14, 165 4, 721-722 5439 15, 40-41 9, 119 14, 858 14, 163 14, 823-824 Gi 105/ 15, 55-56 8, 338-339 7, 441-442 15, 80 10, 118 13, 211-213
8,175 14,194 5 O35 1, 815 3572) 6, 239 4, 423 10, 80 5.33 6, 918-919 4, 802-803 3, 411-412 iy Tela 145.242) 5 eae 5035 15,79 Wey Kye D553 3, 1030
15, 238-239
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Van Golii
wtr.
NE
Thospitis Limne
14, 600
Vannes
sett]
WE
Darioritum
4,91
Vaphio (Pelop.) (?) settl Var wtr Varadia (near Oravita, Romania) _ settl. Varazdinske Toplice settl.
Gr. WE Alp. Bal. Bal.
Pharis Varus [3] Argidava Aquae [III 8] lasae
LO, 923 EGH227) I, 1062 I, 927
Vardar near Vardates (?) Varea (near Logrono) near Varna
wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Ibe. BS
Axius Sosthenis Vareia Odessus
2, 431-432 13, 662 15, 205-206 IO, 29-30
Vassallaggi (Sic.) (?) Vasto Vaticano Vaticano near Veles near Velestino (Central Gr.) Velestino(n) (Central Gr.) near Veliani Velleia Velletri
settl.
It. It. It. It. Gr. Bal. Gr. Gr. Gr. Ihe: ite
Motyum
settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Histonium Ager Vaticanus Vaticanus Bylazora Armenium Pherae Elea [1] Velia [x] Velitrae
9, 242 6, 403 meee e: 15, 240-241 2, 842 2, 5-6 10, 948-949 4, 891 15, 259-260 I5, 262-263
Venafro Vence (near Nizza) Venezia
settl. settl. settl.
It. WE Alp It.
Venafrum Vintium Venetia
15, 267 15,439 15, 276-277
Venosa (Southern It.)
settl.
It.
Venusia
15, 287-288
Ventimiglia (Northern It.) Ventotene
settl. settl. isl.
It. It.
Album Intimilium Pandateria
I, 435 10, 434
Mont Ventoux (?)
settl.
WE
Aeria [2]
Vera Lago Verbano near Vercelli Vercelli Verdun near Vergina Vermion Veroli Verona Verria near Vescovado di Murlo Vesuvio, Vesuv Vetritza near Vetulonia Vevey (Switzerland) near Vezirk6prii Vezza near Vibo Valentia Vicenza Vicovaro
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. mtn. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Ibe. Alp. It. Alp. It. Alp. WE Gr. Gr. It. It; Gr, It: It. Gr. Its Alp. AM It: It. It. It.
Baria Lacus Verban(n)us Victumulae Vercellae [1] Virodunum Aegae [1] Bermium Verulae Verona Beroea [1] Murlo/Poggio Civitate Vesuvius Hadylium Vetulonia Viviscus Neoclaudiopolis Vesidia Vibo Valentia Vicetia Uria [4]
T5239 2, 510 7, 161 15, 403 15, 292-293 15, 455-456 Ree a7 8 2, 605 15, 328 15, 320-321 2, 606-607 9, 315 15, 345-346 5, 1089 15, 362-363 15, 486 9, 636 I5, 330 15, 388 15, 392-393 15,126
near Vid (near Metkovic, Croatia)
settl.
Bal.
Narona
9, 511
near Vidavi (Central Gr.) Vidin (Bulgaria) Vido (?) Vidy
settl. settl. isl. settl.
Gr. Bal. Gr. Alp.
Tolophon Bononia [2] Ptychia Lousonna
Vienna Vienne
settl. settl.
WE Bal WE
Vindobona Vienna
14,774 2.720 M2: eT7 7, 823-824 15, 432-434 15, 404-406
Vietri sul Mare (?)
settl.
It.
Marcina
8, 307
Vieux-Laon
settl.
WE
Bibrax
2, 639
Vieux-Virton
settl.
WE
Vertunum
15, 327-328
Vigne di San Pietro (near Licenza) Vijosé (Albania) near Villanueva de la Fuente Vinkovei (Croatia) Vinxt (near Sinzig/Rhine)
settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl.
Its Gr. Ibe. Bal. WE
Sabinum Aous Mentesa [2] Cibalae Fines, ad Fines [1]
12, 815 I, 815-816 8, 704 Be Sills) 5,428
PV
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
near Viokastro
settl.
Gr.
Oenoe [6]
IO, 52
Viosa (Albania)
wtr
Gr.
Aous
1,
Vipacco Vipiteno near Viransehir Viransehir Virapatnam Monte Viso near Viterbo near Vitrinitsa Vittorino (near |’Aquila) Vix near Vizace (near Pula, Croatia) Vize (Turkey) near Vlochos near Vlochos Vloré (Albania) Vogesen Voghera Volano near Volimnos (Pelop.) near Volo (Central Gr.) Volos (Central Gr.) Volterra Monte Volture Volturno Vonitsa Vosges Vraona (Central Gr.) Vrav, Vidin (Bulgaria) Vrhnika (Slovenia) near Vunaria (Pelop.) (?) Vuni (Cyprus)
wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. sett. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn. settl. wtr. wtr. settl. settl settl settl mtn. wtr. settl mtn. settl settl settl settl settl
It. Bal. Alp. AM AM NE Alp. It. Gr. It. WE Bal. Bal. Gr. Gr. Bal. WE It. It. Gr. Gr Gr. te Ihy, It. Gr. WE Gr. Bal. Bal. Gr. Gr. AM
Frigidus Vipitenum Soloi [2] Mocis(s)us Arikamedu Vesulus Norchia Oeanthea Amiternum Vix Nesactium Bizye Limnaeum Peirasia Aulon [2] Vosegus Iria Olana Limnae [2] Demetrias [1] Tolcus Volaterrae Voltur Volturnus [1] Echinus [2] Vosegus Brauron Dorticum Nauportus [1] Colonides Vouni
815-816 5,558 15, 448 13, 614 9, 108 I, 1081 15, 344 9, 818 LO} AL I, 582 15, 486 9, 679 2, 685 7, 606 10, 679 an gk 15, 522-523 6, 936 10, 80 7, 606 4, 242-243 6, 904-905 15, 491-493 Tbs, yieat TGs, Gise 4, 786 15, 522-523 25 753-754 4, 690-691 9, 550 Bos 57; T5530
Vurkano
mtn.
Gr.
Ithome [1]
6, [021-1022
near Vuvala (Central Gr.) near Vuvala (Central Gr.) Waag (?) Waal Wadi Musa (Jordan)
settl sett] wtr wtr. settl
Gr. Gr. WE WE NE
Tripolis [1] Azorus Cusus Vacalus Petra [1]
14, 934 Asis 3, 1030 15, 149
Wagna (Austria)
settl
Alp.
Flavia Solva
10, 869-870 5,456
Waldalgesheim Walila al-Warka al-Wasit near Wederath Weichsel
settl sett] settl. settl. settl. wtr.
WE Afr. NE NE WE WE
Waldalgesheim Volubilis Uruk Wasit Belginum Vistula
15, 546 15, 513-514 15, 132-133 15, 567-568 2, 585 15, 469-470
WeifSenburg (Bavaria)
settl.
WE Alp
Biriciana
2, 662
Wels Wertach Weser Whitchurch (?) Wiesbaden Wilten (Innsbruck) Windisch Wippach
settl. wtr wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr.
Alp. WE Alp WE WE WE Alp. Alp. It. Bal.
Ovilavis Virdo Visurgis Mediolan(i)um [5] Aquae [III 4] Mattiacae Veldidena Vindonissa Frigidus
10, 306-307 rece Aga 15,470 8, 584 1, 925-926 15,259 15, 434-436 5,558
Woerden
settl.
WE
Laur(i)um
TBO7
Wolga Worms Wroxeter near Xanten Xanten Xerias (?)
wtr. settl. settl. settl. sett] wtr
BS WE WE WE WE Gr.
Rha Borbetomagus Viroconium Vetera Colonia Ulpia Traiana Callas
Tones 7 25 730 15,455 15, 346-350 3, 554-557 2,958
GEOGRAPHICAL
PD:
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Xerilas
wtr.
Gr.
Carnion
2,
near Xerokampos (Crete) Xeropotami
near Yenikoy near Yenisehir (?)
settl. wtr wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. mtn settl. wtr. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. Gr. AM Bal. AM AM NE NE AM AM AM AM AM
Ampelus [1] Pleistus Callas Lyctus, Lyttus Histiaea Xyniae Mopsu(h)estia Sestus Antioch [5] Cragus Iambia lordanes [2] Gordium Yazilikaya Tripolis [4] Metropolis [5] Sigeum
I, 596 II, 380 2,958 7, 930-931 6, 402 15, 843 9, 202-203 13, 340-341 I, 760 3, 910 6, 666 6, 918-919 5,929 15, 851 14, 934-935 8, 843 13, 446
Yenne (?)
settl.
WE
Etanna
5,78
near Yerim
settl.
NE
Saphar
12,959
Yesil Hiyiik Yesil Irmak near Yesilyayla York Youks (near Tébessa) Yumurtalik Yverdon-les-Bains Zab (great tributary of the Tigris) Zab (the Greater) Zab (the Lower) Zabern near Zabid Zadar (Croatia )
settl. wtr.
AM AM
Issus Iris [3]
6, 986 6, 936-937
settl.
AM
Nicopolis [6]
Seger
settl.
WE
Eboracum
4, 775-776
settl. settl. settl.
Afr. AM WE
Aquae [II 1] Caesaris Aegeae Eburodunum [2]
I, 923 I, 173-174 4,776
wtr wtr wtr. settl.
NE NE NE WE
Lycus [14] Lycus [14] Caprus [2] Tres Tabernae [2]
7,940 7,940 2, 1079 14, 890-891
Zabida lader Zeta Zacynthos Salla Cancho Roano
15, 859-860 6, 663-664 15,913 15, 861-863 12, 888 2, 1045
Xeropotamos (?) near Xida (Crete) near Xirochori (Boeotia) (?) near Xynial
Yakapinar near Yalikavat (?) near Yalva¢ Yan Dag
Yanbu‘ al-bahr hay-Yardén near Yassithiiyiik Yazilikaya near Yenice
Zalamea de la Serena (Prov.
settl. settl. settl. settl. isl settl. sett.
Badajoz) Zamora Ain Zana ‘Ain az-Zara
settl. settl. settl
Ibe.
Ocelum [2]
Afr. NE
Diana Veteranorum Callirhoe [7]
10, 15 4, 360 2, 987
near Zaragoza (?)
settl.
Ibe.
Complega
3, 677
Zaragoza near Zarakes (Eubéa) near Zarka (Eub6a) Zarten (near Freiburg 1. Br.) Zaruchlas (Arcadia)
settl. settl. mtn.
Ibe. Gr.
Caesaraugusta Lavras}
2. OG 15, 876
settl. mtn.
Gr.
favaxe:)
15, 876
settl. mtn.
WE Gr.
Tarodunum Crathis [2]
14, 147 3, 921
near Zdravik near Zefre Zengibar Kalesi Cape Zephyros (Cyprus) Zeravshan
settl. settl. settl. settl. wtr. settl. settl. mtn. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl. settl.
Gr. AM AM Gr. AM NE Afr. Afr. AM AM NE Bal. Gr. Gr. Afr. Gr.
Drabescus Zephyrium [8] Cyzistra Zephyrium [2] Polytimetus Choba Zita Theches Zela Ziwiye Ad Novas [1] Thyssus Zoeteium Zarai Pellene
4, 704 ES HOEX 4, 27 15,910 II, 538 S37 15, 936 14, 419-420 15, 880-881 15; 936-937 iy ye 14, 652 15,947 15, 874-875 10, 700-701
Zaiet (near Sousse)
Zakynthos (Zakynthos) Zalalov6 (Hungary)
Ziama Ziane
Zigana Gegidi (?) Zile Ziwiye near Zmajevac (near Osijek) (?)
near Zographu (Northern Gr.) near Zoni (?) Zraia near Zugra
NE Bal. Afr. = Gr. Bal. Ibe.
II2ZO-11I21
233
GEOGRAPHICAL
CONCORDANCE
Modern name
Type
Region
Ancient/entry name
Volume, Column
Ziulpich Zirich al-Ziima (?)
settl. settl. settl.
WE Alp. Afr.
Tolbiacum Turicum Zamnes
An 57, T5e32 15, 874
ial
iistha!
ee
-
a
ewe
,
Rye’ ,e°
=6e
11
vy
‘a +3)iin peapety
1
aa
ae
,26 ay rT
>.
ipen
ae. ae
ibe
| ||
_
é
235
INDEX
OF MAPS
Index of Maps The map index contains the place names recorded in the maps of Brills New Pauly. The spelling of the ancient place names in this index corresponds to the entries in the encyclopaedia. The spelling in the maps will frequently deviate from this, mainly because on the maps, the Greek names have not been Latinized, e.g. the entry Abae appears as Abai on the maps. After the place name, the region is given in parentheses. This is followed by the entry to which the map in question is assigned, and the entry’s location (volume, columns).
Acanthus [1] (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] NOW S20 —o207
Accis (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Acerrae [1]
Acholla
Abbreviations Afr. Alp. AM
BS
Egy.
Egypt
Gr.
(Afr.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and
Topography r1, 149-153 Africa Alpine region Asia Minor (mainly modern Turkey) Balkans (Dacia, Dalmatia, Illyria, Thrace, modern Romania) Black Sea area (North and East)
Bal.
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Etrusci,
Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—ro1; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419
Greece (incl. Aegean islands and Crete)
Acquarossa
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Ter-
ritory 5, 94 Acra Leuce
(Ibe.): Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period
6, 388-391 Acrae (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Theatre 14, 378-399 Acraephia (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Acragas (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo-101; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization
Ibe.
Iberian peninsula
It. NE
Italy (incl. Sicily, Corsica, Sardinia) Near East (Arabian peninsula, Mesopotamia, Near East, but also
3, 557-578; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-
241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic
WE
India, Far East) Western Europe (Britain, Gaul,
War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sicily E. Roman Prov-
Germany, but also Northern and
ince 13, 424-425; Roads A. General and Italy
Eastern Europe) Abae
(Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman
rule 8, 65; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Abdera [1] (Gr. Bal.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C.
Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564; Punic Wars IJ. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601615
Abdera [2] (Ibe.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography
IL, 149-153 Abella
(It.): Italy, languages of 6, ro12-1018; Villa
Ill. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Abellinum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Abia (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73 Abila (NE): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. r1, 5 56-
564
Abodiacum
(WE): Raeti, Raetia Il. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Abritus (Bal.): Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Abydus [1] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Abydus [2] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-
853
12, 622-626
Adana (AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12 Adoulis (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Adramyttium (AM): Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Xeno-
phon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Aec(u)lanum (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587 Aecae (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Aegae [1] (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Education/Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones A. Late Bronze age to Geometric period 8, 72-75; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821827
Aegae [2] (AM): Oracles B. Oracie Sites 10, 184; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771 Aegeae (AM): Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583588
Aegira (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184 Aegium (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Macedonia, Macedones
D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Aegosthena (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Attical. Fortifications 2, 322-
324 Aenea
Aenona
647
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205
(Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646—
INDEX
236
OF MAPS
Aenus[1]
(Bal.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian
League (Second) 2, 248-250; Byzantium 2, 846-
858; Colonization 3, 557-578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pom-
peius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Aequum
Moesi, Moesia 9,
15-119
Aesernia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Tribus 14, 906-912
Agatha
(WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars II. The 2nd
Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212 Agedincum (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907 Agrinium (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Aguntum (Alp.): Pannonia 10, 448-454 Agyrium ([It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425 Aigos Potamos (Potamoi)
(AM): Peloponnesian War
10, 704-709 Akalan (AM): Urartu 15, 121 Akrothoon /Akrothooi (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-
205 Alabanda
(AM): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399 Alalah
(NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine
I, 183-187; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
Alba Fucens (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History
3, 553-5543 Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-
912 Album Ingaunum Album Intimilium
£(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Alea [3] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History I, 968-969
Aleppo (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th-13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states 2, 117-131; Mesopotamia
8, 727-746
Aleria, Alalia (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria L. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264241) 12, 205-206; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27
BC) 12, 674-680; Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Alesia (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Celts 3, 82-
99; Oppidum II. Celtic ro, 166-169; Theatre
14, 378-399 Alexandria [1] (Egy.) Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Athletes 2, 281-284; Education / Culture B. Histo-
ry: Greece 4, 826-832; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773777; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Prin-
cipate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (5o930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666;
Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Alexandria [2] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399 Alexandria [3] (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265
Alexandria [4] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Alexandria [5] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960;
Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army
and culture 13, 7-10 Alexandria [6] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960;
Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Alexandria [7] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; Mauryas 8, 498—so1
Alexandria [8] Eschate. (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959960; Graeco-Bactria 5,
959-960
Alexandria [9] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960
Alexandria [10]
5, 959-960;
(NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960
Alexandria [rr]
(NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960
Alexandria [12]
(NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960
Alinda
(AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832
Allifae
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre
14, 378-399
Alsium
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94;
Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Altava (Afr.): Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600;
Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Althiburus (Afr.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Altinum
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Raeti,
Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382— 387; Venetic 15, 277-278; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Alyzeia (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Amasea (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146;
2
INDEX
Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Regnum
Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (s0930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Amastris [4] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Ambracia (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Colo-
nization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Ameria [1] (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Amida (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Amisus (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Pontos Euxeinos
II, 599-607; Syria 14, 53-64 Amiternum
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. His-
tory 13, 584-587; Theatre 14, 378-399
Ammaedara (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Ammoneion (Egy.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639 Amnisus (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Mycenaean culture and archae-
ology 9, 391-402 Amphicaea, Amphiclea
(Gr.): Oracles B. Oracle Sites
10, 184
Amphipolis
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Mace-
donia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until
359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D.
Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Amphissa (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Amyclae [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Sparta 13, 691-708 Anactorium (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55;
Colonization 3, 557-578; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Anagnia (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Anazarbus (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Asia Minor H. Under Roman
rule 2, 145-146; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Anchiale [2] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Ancona (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-5813 Soci (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-5873 Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Prin-
OF MAPS
cipate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, ror21018; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Ancyra (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period to, 766-771; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [13] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Andautonia
(Bal.): Pannonia 10, 448-454
Andematu(n)num
(WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550;
Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Anemurium (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Antander [2] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833
Antas
Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topog-
raphy 11, 149-153
Anthedon
(Gr.): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Antigonea [1] (NE): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-
343
Antigonea [4] (Gr.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Antinoupolis (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Antioch [5] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Antioch [6] (AM): Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Antioch [7] (NE): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with
6, 773-777; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-3 58; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East
7, 583-588; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Pilgrimage II. Christianity II, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645
Antiphellus
(AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399
INDEX
238
OF MAPS
Antipolis
(WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Coloni-
zation 3, 557-578; Theatre 14, 378-399 Antissa (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250 Antium (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socil (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53-5 54; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-5 54; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Regio, regiones
7, 561; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Aquae [III 2] Helveticae. (WE): Batavian Revolt
2, 549-550 Aquae [III 5] Sextiae.
(WE): Caesar C. The War in
Gaul 2, 907; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Aquae [III 7] Sulis. (WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779
12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Apamea [1] (AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Aquileia [1] (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christian-
Greece 4, 826-832; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period
ity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History
10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399
Apamea [2] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Natu-
ral catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645 Apamea [3] (NE): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399 Aperlae (AM): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Aphrodisias [1] (AM): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399 Aphytis (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Apollonia [1] (Bal.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (2148-202) 12, 206-212; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Apollonia [2] Pontica. (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-
119; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646—
647
Apollonia [6] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771
Apollonis (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771
Aprus (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Apsarus [1] (BS): Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Apta Iulia (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265
Aptara, Aptera (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Apulum (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General
3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pannonia 1o, 448—
454; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province
of Raetia 12, 382-387; Regio, regiones 12, 438—
441; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674680; Venetic 15, 277-278; Wine A. Viticulture
15, 658-666; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622626
Aquilonia [2] (It.): Roads A. General and Italy I2, 622-626
Aquincum (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Panno-
nia 10, 448-454 Aquinum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399 Arabissus (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260— 265
Aradus [1] (NE): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. II, 556-564; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Aradus [2] (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Arae [1] Flaviae (WE): Limes III. Germania 7, 566-
Tie: Arae [2] Philaenorum.
(Afr.): Africa 3. Roman prov-
ince 1, 296-298; Colonization 3, 557-578; Crete C.
Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600 Arausio (WE):ChristianityD.Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202)
12, 206-212; Theatre
14, 378-399 Arbela [1] (NE): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Sassanids
III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Archaeopolis (BS): Sassanids III. Kingdom, society,
economy, army and culture 13, 7-10 Archelais (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Ardea _(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912
Arelate (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate
239
INDEX
3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pilgrimage
II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626—
633 Arenacium (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Arethusa [8] (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248250 Argentorate (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia I]. The Roman
province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Argilus (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Argos (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Athletes 2, 281-284; Delian League 4, 201~205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Doric Migration 4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Grain Trade, Grain Import II.
Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399 Aricia (It.): Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912
Arikamedu (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Ariminum (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II. Christianity II, 254-256; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Arrabona Arretium
(Bal.): Pannonia 10, 448-454 (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socil
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—1o7; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Commerce B. Princi-
pate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Arsamosata (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588 Arsinoe [III 2] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680 Artaxata (AM BS): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Syria 14, 53-64 Arycanda (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399
OF MAPS
Ascalon (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity I1, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
IL, 556-5645 Syria 14, 53-64 Asciburgium (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Asculum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Asea
(Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age
I, L75§-177 Asine [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100 Asine [2] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Asine [3] (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Asisium (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria
15, 93-98 Asopus [4] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Sparta 13, 691-708
Aspendus
(AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399 Aspledon (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Aspona (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae)
3590-94 Assos (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827;
Theatre 14, 378-399 Assur [1] (NE): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Mesopotamia 8, 727746; Writing 15, 765-775; Urartu 15, 121 Astacus [1] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578 Astacus [2]
(Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55;
Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709
Astigi(s) (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-63 5 Ateste (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Athens [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Athletes 2, 281-284; Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322324; Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 93 4939; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece
5, 979; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Celts 3, 82-99; Limes I. General 7, 561; Macedonia, Macedones D.
Under Roman rule 8, 65; Marble I. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome E. Im-
perial Period 12, 680-697; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399 Atrax (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853855; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979
INDEX
240
OF MAPS
Atria
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, too—r101; Italy, languages of 6, tor2-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Theatre 14, 378-399; Venetic 15, 277-278 Attaleia [1] (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-— 265; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920;
Pergamum C. Hellenistic period ro, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Augila (Afr.): Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Augusta[1]Bagiennorum. (It. Alp.): Theatre 14, 378399
Y
Augusta [2] Emerita. (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania,
Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680;
Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-
635
Autessiodurum
(WE): Christianity D. Expansion
3, 260-265
Auximum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Auzia (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; VIII. African provinces 7, 592600
Avaricum
(WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907;
Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Celts 3, 8299; Oppidum II. Celtic ro,
166-169; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Aventicum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Celts 3, 82-99; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Axum, Axomis (Afr.): Arabia 1, 938-941 Aylesford
(WE): Celts 3, 82-99
Augusta [3] Praetoria.
Baalbek (NE): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Syria
B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Augusta [4] Raurica. (WE): Coloniae E. History
Babylon (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Limes I. General 7, 561; Meso-
(Alp.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549550; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads
3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes III.
14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399
potamia 8, 727-746; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-
399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia
697; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Bad Nauheim (WE): Celts 3, 82-99
12, 626-633
Baecula
Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Theatre 14, 378-
Augusta [5] Taurinorum. (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Augusta [6] Treverorum.
(WE): Batavian Revolt
(Ibe.): Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War
(218-202) 12, 206-212
Baeterrae (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul
B. Roman period 5, 670-673 Bagacum
(WE): Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572;
Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-
2, 549-5 50; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B.
633 Baiae (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Villa III. The villa
Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Ger-
for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Balboura (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Thea-
mania 7, 566-572; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-—
697; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Augusta [7] Vindelicum. (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia I. The Roman
province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697
Augustodunum (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Augustonemetum (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Augustoritum (WE): Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B.
Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Aulis
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Macedo-
nia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65
tre 14, 378-399
Baloia (Bal.): RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Bambyce (NE): Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583588; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Banasa_
(Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554
Bantia
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581
Barcino(na)
(Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260—
265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads E. Iberian peninsula
12, 634-635
Bargylia
(AM): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399
Baria (Ibe.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266
Barium (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
241
INDEX
Barke (Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Colonization 3, 557-578; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Barygaza (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; GraecoBactria 5, 959-960; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Mauryas 8, 498-501 Basilia (WE): Celts 3, 82-99
Bassiana(e) [1] (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Pannonia 10, 448-454 Batavis
(WE): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province
of Raetia 12, 382-387 Bauli (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Bazira (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ I, 469-475 Beda (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Beisan
(NE): Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Syria
14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Belginum (WE): Celts 3, 82-99 Beneventum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622626
Berenice [8] (Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260— 265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Berenice [9] (Afr.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Arabia 1, 938-941; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Bergomum £(lIt.): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Beroea [1] (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Beroea [2] (Bal.): RoadsJ. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
Bisanthe (Gr.): Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Bishapur (NE): Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10 Bistua Nova (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Bizye (Bal.): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Blaundos (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399 Blera, Bieda (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Blucium (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae)
3, 90-94 Boiae
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
sical period 1, 73 Bonna (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572 Bononia [1] (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Socii
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Villa-
nova Culture 15, 420-423; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Bononia [2] (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-1193; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 Borsippa
Bosa_
(NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
(It.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and To-
pography 11, 149-153
Boscoreale
(It.): Villa II. The villa for the purpose of
otium 15, 416-419 Bostra (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53-5 54; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Sassanids III.
Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture
13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639
647 Beroea [3] (NE): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Berytus (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5545 Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hasmonaeans
5, 1162-1163; Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564;
Syria 14, 53-64; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Bethel [1] (NE): Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163 Bethlehem (NE): Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254256
Bethsaida
OF MAPS
(NE): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
IT, 556-564 Betriacum (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Bezereos (Afr.): VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600
Bibracte (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Celts 3, 82— 99; Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169 Bilbilis (Ibe.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Bingium (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Biriciana (WE Alp.): Raeti, Raetia Il. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387
Bovianum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399 Brauron (Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324;
Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Brigantium (WE Alp.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666 Brigetio (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pannonia to, 448-454; Pertinax. 10, 85 4—
857
Brixellum
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Colo-
niae E. History 3, 553-554
Brixia (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy I2, 622-626
Brundisium
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, ro12—1018; Pilgrimage II.
INDEX
242
OF MAPS
Christianity 11, 254-256; Punic Wars II. The 2nd
10, 184; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and To-
Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones
pography rr, 149-153; Theatre 14, 378-399;
12, 438-441; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666;
Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Bubastis (Afr.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853 Bucephala (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Budorum (Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324 Bura (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184 Burdigala (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907;
Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Pe-
riod 12, 680-697; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626—
633 Burnum
(Bal.): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358;
Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Buthrotum (Bal.): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Theatre 14, 378-399 Buxentum (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Byllis (Gr. Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads J. Balkan proyinces 12, 646-647 Byzantium (Bal.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian
Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Caesaraugusta (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II.
Christianity 11, 254-256; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Caesarea [1] (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christi-
anity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Caesarea [2]
(Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-
298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Limes I. General 7, 561; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography II, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F.
North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Caesarea [3] C. Maritima. (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-
League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Colonization 3, 557-578; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia
554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P.
9, 115-119; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Per-
Caesarodunum (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Caesaromagus (WE): Theatre 14, 378-399
gamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pilgrimage I. Christianity I1, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. I1, 556-564; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Wine A. Viticulture
Magnus, Cn. 11, 5 56-564; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 5364; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639
Caiatia (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Calagurris [1] Fibularia. (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265
15, 658-666; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645; Roads J. Balkan
Calagurris [2] Nasica.
provinces 12, 646-647
Calama (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Theatre
Cabillon(n)um (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Cabira (AM): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Cabyle (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Thraci,
Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Cadyanda
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Theatre
14, 378-399 Caenae
(NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-
833
Caere (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic
Territory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, ro12-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Oracles B. Oracle Sites
(Ibe.): Christianity D. Expan-
sion 3, 260-265
14, 378-399 Calchedon (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Peloponnesian War LO, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pil-
grimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Pontos Euxeinos
II, 599-607 Cales [2] (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912
243
INDEX
Callatis
(Bal.): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Coloniza-
tion 3, 557-578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxei-
nos 11, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Calleva Atrebatum (WE): Britannia A. Name 2, 774779; Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-
633
Calliena
(NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777
Calydon [3]
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285 Calynda (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Camarina (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Roads A. General
and Italy 12, 622-626 Cambodunum [1] (Alp.): Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Camerinum (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Camuirus (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Dark Ages [x] 4, 94-100; Mycenaean culture and archaeology
9, 391-402 Camulodunum (WE): Britannia A. Name 2, 774-779; Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Caesar
C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Limes II. Britannia 7, 562-566; Pertinax. 10, 854857; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Canatha (NE): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
I1, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399 Candyba (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Cane (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Cannae (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212 Canusium (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Capena (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Caphyae (Gr.): Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968969 Capidava (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-1193 Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Capisa (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Capsa (Afr.): Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; VII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Roads F. North
Africa 12, 635-639 Capua (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-
554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo-107; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D. Republic (s09-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-
399; Tribus 14, 906-912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
OF MAPS
Carales (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680;
Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658— 666; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Cardamyle (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Cardia (Gr.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Carmo (Ibe.): Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266
Carnuntum (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5545 Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pannonia 10, 448-454 Carpasia (Gr. AM): Kypros [1] 7, 118-125; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Carsioli, Carseoli (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912
Carsium
647
Carsulae
(Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
(It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria
15, 93-98
Cartennae
(Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543
Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic
Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212 Carthage (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria [. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Limes I. General 7, 561; VIII. African provinces 7, 592600; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Phoenicians, Poeni II.
Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Punic Wars I. The tst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre
14, 378-399; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Carthago Nova (Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Com-
merce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Phoenicians, Poeni II.
Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-63 5 Carura [2] (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Caryae [2] (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Carystus [r] (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian
League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Grain Trade, Grain Import Il. Greece 5,979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
INDEX
244
OF MAPS
Casilinum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Cercinitis
Casinum
Cerynea [2] (Gr. AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-
(It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. Gener-
al and Italy 12, 622-626 Casmenae (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578 Cassope (Gr.): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece Castabala
(AM): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. II, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC)
12, 674-680 Castellina del Marangone (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94 Castellina-in-Chianti (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geo-
graphic Territory 5, 94 Castrum [2] C. Novum. (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. His-
tory 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Castrum [3] C. Novum. (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. His-
tory 3, 553-554; Iribus 14, 906-912 Castulo (Ibe.): Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-63 5 Catane (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Caudium (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581 Caulonia (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578 Caunus [2] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycu, Lycia 7, 916-920; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827;
Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Caystru pedion [2] (AM): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833
Cebren (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205 Cedreae (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399 Celaenae (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Celeia (Bal. Alp.): Pannonia 10, 448-454 Celenderis (AM): Colonization 3, 557-578 Cemenelum (WE Alp.): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Limes I. General 7, 561; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697 Cenabum (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626—
633
Cenchreae [1] (Gr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Centuripae (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-
Ceramon agora
(AM): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833 Ceramus
343; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Chaberis
(NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777
Chaeronea
(Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism
1, 283-285; Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832
425
(BS): Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448;
Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
(AM): Delian League 4, 201-205
Cerasus (AM): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Xenophon [2]
X. of Athens 15, 824-833
4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Chalcis [x] (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages
[x] 4, 94-100; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule
8, 65; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Charax Spasin(o)u (NE): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade
with 6, 773-777 Chersonesus [3] (BS): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Scythae 13, 149-
160; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Chios (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization
3, 557-578; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. II, 556-564; Writing 15, 765-775
Chullu (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography II, 149-153 Cibalae (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454 Cibyra [1] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Theatre
14, 378-399 Cidame
(Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298
Circeii (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912 Cirta (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298;
Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Citium (AM NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339343; Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Writ-
ing 15, 765-7753 Kypros [1] 7, 118-125
245
INDEX
Cius, [x] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period LO, 766-771
Claudioupolis [1} (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146 Clazomenae (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre
14, 378-399 Cleitor (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History
I, 968-969 Cleonae [1] (Gr.): Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Clunia (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula
12, 634-635
Clupea (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206 Clusium
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-
OF MAPS
Comum
£(It.): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Villanova Culture 15, 420-
423 Condatomagus
(WE): Commerce B. Principate
3, 642-644 Conope (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism Ly 203 —2515 Consentia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Punic Wars I. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212 Copae (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Coptus (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; India, trade
with 6, 773-777 Cora (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912 Corduba_(Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Corfinium (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months
578; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Villanova Culture
2, 909-910; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A.
15, 420-423
General and Italy 12, 622-626
Cnidus (AM): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Colchi (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Colonea (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858 Colonia Agrippinensis (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549550; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680—
697; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia I2, 626-633
Colonia Ulpia Traiana (WE): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannla 12, 626-633 Colophon [1] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79;
Corinthus/Corinth
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Ar-
chaic and classical period 1, 73; Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Education / Culture
B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Doric Migration 4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100;
Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization
35 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399
Cornus [1] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984 Corone Coronta
(Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55
Corsote
(NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-
833
Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B.
Cortona [1] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Terri-
History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-
tory 5, 94; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria
578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Colossae (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion
3, 260-265; Theatre 14, 378-399; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Comana [1]
(AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Comana [2] C. Pontica. (AM): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564
Comana_ Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Complutum (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260— 265
15, 93-98 Corycus
(AM): Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Cos
(Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399
Cosa(e)
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
246
INDEX OF MAPS
Cotyora (AM): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Xenophon [2]
X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Cotyrta
(Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708
Cranii (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250 Crannon (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Cratea (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae)
3, 90-94 Cremna
(AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543
Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Cremona (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5503 Socil (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-5545 Regio, regiones 12, 438-441 Creusis
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615 Croceae (Gr.): Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Sparta 13, 691-708 Croton
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization
35
557-578; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-
Cyme [2] (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, 1042-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Tribus 14, 906-912; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Cyme [3] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Cynaetha (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History I, 968-969 Cyparissia [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Cyphanta
Cypsela Cyrene
(Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708
(Gr.): Byzantium 2, 846-858 (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298;
Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Commerce B. Principate
3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Wine A. Viti-
culture 15, 658-666; Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639
202) 12, 206-212; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Crya (AM): Lycu, Lycia 7, 916-920
Cyrrhus [2] (NE): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358;
Ctesiphon [2] (NE): Arabia 1, 938-941; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes I. General 7, 561; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC)
Theatre 14, 378-399 Cythera (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine
Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Syria 14, 53-64;
I, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean
12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy,
koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Grain Trade, Grain Import II.
army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Greece 5, 979; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sparta 13, 691-708
Cuballum
(AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae) 3, 90-94 Cuicul
(Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399
Cunaxa
(NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-
833
Cures (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Curia (Alp.): Raeti, Raetia Il. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Curium (AM NE): Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography r1, 149-153; Theatre 14, 378-
399; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Cyaneae [2] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Cybistra (AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12 Cydonia (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Cyme [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182
Cytorus (AM): Colonization 3, 557-578 Cyzicus (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education/Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule
2, 145-146; Colonization 3, 557-578; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Cyzistra (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858 Dadastana (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae) 3, 90-94 Daedala [1] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Damascus Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909—
910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hasmonaeans
5, 1162-1163;
Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773777; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Phoenicians, Poeni
II. Geography and Topography r1, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Writing
15, 765-7753 Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-
399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Daphnae (Egy.): Colonization 3, 557-578 Daphne [4] (NE): Theatre 14, 378-399
Dara [1] (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-
Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96
247
INDEX OF MAPS
Dardanus [4] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Dascylium [2] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-3 43; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 824-827; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824—-
833
Delium [1]
(Gr.): Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709
Delminium
(Bal.): RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian
League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B.
History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94100; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Ionic I.
Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre
14, 378-399 Delphi
10, 704-709 Dion [II 3] (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-
250 Dionysopolis (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Dioscurias
Daulis, Daulia (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Dea Augusta Vocontiorum (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Delos
Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War
(Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism
115-119;
(NE BS): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-
644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607 Divodurum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5503 Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Divona (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and BritanNla 12, 626-633 Doclea (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Dodona, Dodone (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94too; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Dokimeion (AM): Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285 Doliche [2] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Limes VI. Northern Near East
1, 283-285; Athletes 2, 281-284; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1]
Domavia
4, 94-100; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece
Dora
5, 9793 Celts 3, 82-99; Macedonia, Macedones D.
ponnesian War to, 704-709; Persian Wars [x]
ans, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399 Doriscus (Bal.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399
Dorticum
Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Pelo-
Demetrias [1]
(Gr.): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Theatre 14, 378-399 Derbe (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265 Dertona (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio,
regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Dertosa
(Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Punic
Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-63 5 Deultum (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Deva
(WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779;
Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes II. Britannia 7, 562-566; Roads B.
Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Dicaea
(Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250
Didyma (AM): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Dierna (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30 Dimini (Gr.): Mycenaean culture and archaeology
9, 391-402 Dimum (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Dinogetia (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Dion [II 2] (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-
250; Education /Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826—832; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Macedonia,
7, 583-588 (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119
(NE): Hasmonaeans 5,
1162-1163; Phoenici-
(Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119
Dorylaeum (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. I1, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645 Drabescus
(Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Develop-
ments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61 Drepanon [4] (It.): Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Sicily E. Roman Province
13, 424-425
Drerus (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Drobeta (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30;
Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Dura-Europus (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern
Near East 7, 583-588; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Durocortorum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550;
Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-
633
INDEX
248
OF MAPS
Durostorum (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119;
Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Durovernum (WE): Britannia A. Name 2, 774-779; Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Dyme [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Mace-
dones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Dyrrhachium (Bal.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Coloni-
zation 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Per-
sian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Wine A.
Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Ebla
(NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
Eboracum (WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358;
Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes II. Britannia 7, 562—566; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Rome D. Republic (§09-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Eburodunum Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697 Ecbatana (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777; ae Aa 8, 727-746 Echinus cerGr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55
Edessa [1] (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedants A. Developments ea in 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Edessa (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 25 4256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia |2] TSe i Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Eion [1] (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Macedonia, ee A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Peloponnesian War ro, 704709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Ekkobriga (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae)3,90-94 Elaeus [1] (AM): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248—250; Colonization 3, 557-578
Elaeussa (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399 Elatea [x] (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Eleon
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Elephantine (Afr.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Eleusis [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [x] 4, 94-100; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709
Eleutherai
(Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324
Eleutherna
(Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Elis [2]
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709;
Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399
Elusa (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680
Elyrus
(Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period
BX ISH
Emar (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (r4th—13th cent.) 6,
746 Emesa
11-12; Mesopotamia
8, 727-
(NE): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hellen-
istic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96;
Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896—
900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Emona_ (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Legio B. Principate 7,
357-358; Moesi, Moesia 9,
11 5—
119; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Emporiae (Ibe.): Etrusci, Etruria II. Archaeology 5, 102-113; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars Il. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635
Engomi
(AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean
koine 1,
183-187; Kypros [1] 7,
118-125
Entella (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425 Ephesus (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Athletes 2, 281-284; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th-13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Ionic I. Pre-classical pe-
249
INDEX OF MAPS
riod to the Koine 6, 910-914; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states 2, 117-131; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor V. Languages
2,
152-155; Limes I. General 7, 561; Marble II. Oc-
currence 8, 282-285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704—-
709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus,
Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-
697; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399;
Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Ephyra [3] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Epidaurum (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Falerii[1] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5 54; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Falerii [2] F. Novi. (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Fanum Fortunae (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Faustinupolis (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Faventia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo-
ry 13, 584-587 Ferentinum
(It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Ficulea (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Fidenae (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Firmum Picenum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-
Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Moesi,
587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E.
Moesia 9,
History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399
115-119; Roads J. Balkan provinces
12, 646-647
Flanona
Epidaurus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Athletes 2, 281-284; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; My-
cenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [tr]
10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Epiphaneia [2] (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
Eporedia (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Theatre 14, 378-399 Eresus (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Eretria [1] (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians
2, 695-699; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Erythrae [1]
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Erythrae [2] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557-578; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars |r| 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399
Eumeneia [1]
(AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771
Eupatoria [1]
(AM): Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-
448
Euripus [2] (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Euromus (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827;
Theatre 14, 378-399 Eutresis (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Myce-
naean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Faesulae (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-5813 Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
(Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Pannonia
10, 448-454
Flavia Solva (Alp.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Florentia [1] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A.
General and Italy 12, 622-626 (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae
Formiae
E. History 3, 553-554 Forum [IV 4] F. Iulii.
(WE): Coloniae E. History 3 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Theatre
14, 378-399; Venetic 15, 277-278; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Fregellae (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Tribus 14, 906-912 Fregenae (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Fulginiae (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Gabii (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Gadara (NE): Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P.
Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Gades (Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Wine A. Viticulture
15, 658-666; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-
635
Galepsos [1] (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Devel-
opments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Gangra (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
250
INDEX OF MAPS
Garama
(Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298;
Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600;
Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Gaugamela (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833
Gaza (NE): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Arabia 1, 938— 941; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Gazioura (AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343 Gela (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100101; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Coloniza-
tion 3, 557-578
Gelduba
(WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550
Glisas (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Glympeis (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Gorbeus, Corbeuntus (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94 Gordium (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states 2, 117-131; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Writing 15, 765-775; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-
833
Gorgippia
(AM BS): Colonization 3, 557-578;
Regnum Bosporanum
12, 445-448; Pontos Euxei-
nos I1, 599-607; Scythae 13, 149-160 Gorsium (Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647
Gortyn (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Grain Trade, Grain
Gemellae (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600
Import II. Greece 5, 979; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Crete C. Classical and
Genava (Alp.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Celts 3, 82-99; Roads B. Gallia,
Hellenistic period 3, 937; Limes I. General 7, 561;
Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Genoa (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680;
Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Gerasa
(NE): Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Pilgrim-
age II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708
Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre
14, 378-399 Graviscae
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94;
Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Grumentum
Gerenia
Grynium
Gergovia
Gunugu (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography
(WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907;
Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Celts 3, 8299; Oppidum II. Celtic to, 166-169 Germa, Germokoloneia (AM): Byzantium 2, 846858; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Germanicaea (NE): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588 Germisara (Bal.): Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615
(AM): Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184
II, 149-153
Gymnias
(AM BS): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833 Gytheumium (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Caesar E. The final
lia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce
months 2, 909-910; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Sparta 13, 691-708; Theatre 14, 378-399 Hadria_ (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Tribus 14, 906-912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Hadrianopolis [3] (Bal.): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27
B. Principate 3, 642-644; Roads B. Gallia, Germa-
BC) 12, 674-680; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645;
Geronthrae
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Gerrha (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Gerunda (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266 Gesoriacum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Gal-
nia and Britannia 12, 626-633 Gezer (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine I,
183-187
Glanum
(WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-
673
Glauberg (WE): Princely graves, princely seats C. Iron Age 11, 853 Glevum
(WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia
2, 779; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Hadrumetum (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome
D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639
25a
INDEX OF MAPS
Hagia Irini (Gr. AM): Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Halae [3] (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Haliartus (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Halicarnassus (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. II, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Haluntium (It.): Sicily E.Roman Province 13, 424—-
425 Halus (Gr.): Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Harappa (NE): Mauryas 8, 498-501 Harma
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Harmozice
(BS): Limes VI. Northern Near East
7, 583-588 Harran (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Mesopotamia
8, 727-746 Hasta [5] (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Hatra [x] (NE): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Syria
14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Hattusa (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor
states 2, 117-131; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152155; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Writing 15, 765— Hehe
Heba (Magliano) (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Hebron (NE): Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127
Hecatompylus (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Helice [x] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522528
Heliopolis, Heliupolis [1] (Egy.): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187 Helorus [3] (It.): Sicily E.Roman Province 13, 424-
425; Theatre 14, 378-399 Helus [2] (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Henna [rx] (It.): Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264241) 12, 205-206; Sicily E. Roman Province
13, 424-425; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622—626 Heraclea [x] H. Trachinia
(Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia
B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War
10, 704-709 Heraclea [2] H. Lyncestis
(Gr.): Macedonia, Mace-
dones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Heraclea [5] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282285; Theatre 14, 378-399 Heraclea [7] H. Pontike (AM): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89— 96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum
12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Xeno-
phon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Heraclea [9] (It.): Sicily E.Roman Province 13, 424425; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Heraclea [ro] (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—1ro1 Heraclea[r1] (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-5 5
Heracleopolis magna (Egy.): Pilgrimage II. Christianity II, 254-256 Heraea (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History I, 968-969 Herbessus_(It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-
425 Herbita (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425 Herculaneum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-107;
Theatre 14, 378-399; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Herdoniae (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Hermion(e) (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-7093 Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Hermonassa [1] (BS): Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448 Heuneburg (WE): Etrusci, Etruria I. Archaeology
5, 102-113; Princely graves, princely seats C. Iron Age 11, 853 Hierapolis [1] (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399
Hierapytna
(Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937
Himera (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, r00-101; Colonization 3, 557-578; Sicily E. Roman Province
13, 424-425
Hippo [5] (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography II, 149-153; Theatre 14, 378-399 Hippo [6] H. Regius. (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman provyince 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography II, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254256; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North
Africa 12, 635-639 Hippus [2] (NE): Syria 14, 53-64 Hispal(is, Spalis) (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634—
635
Hispellum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5545 Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Histiaea (Gr.): Persian Wars [1] ro, 821-827 Histonium (It.); Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184
Hochdorf (WE): Etrusci, Etruria II. Archaeology 5, 102-113
INDEX
Horta (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Hostilia (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Roads A.
General and Italy 12, 622-626 Hyettus
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Ora-
cles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184 Hyle [1]
Hypata
(Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
(Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832 Hyria (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Hysiae (Gr.): Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184
Iader
(Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi,
Moesia 9, 115-119 Ialysus (Gr. AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Tasus [5] (AM): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean
koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period ro, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378392
Iconium
(AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6,
252
OF MAPS
11-12; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states
2, 117-131; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Ioppe
(NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162—
1163; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
IT, 556-564 Ipsus (AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343 Isca Silurum (WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes II. Britannia 7, 562-566; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626—
633
Isinda [x] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Isinda [2] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Issus
(AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’
1, 469-475; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-
833 Isthmus Istria
(Gr.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Moesi,
Moesia 9,
115-119; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607;
Scythae 13, 149-160; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Isthmus (Gr.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Italica (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Roads E.
Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Itanus (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853855; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Ithaca Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Ithoria (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism I, 283-285
luliobriga
(Ibe.): Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period
6, 388-391
Icorigium (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Icosium (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Iulium Carnicum (It. Alp.): Coloniae E. History 35 553-554; Venetic 15, 277-278
Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644 Idalium (Gr. AM): Kypros [1] 7, 118-125
Iuvavum
Igilgili (Afr.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153 Iguvium (It.): Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 I(l)urco (Ibe.): Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266 Ilerda (Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Iliberis [x] I., Iliberri. (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266 Ilici (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Punic
Jericho
Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Ilipa (Ibe.): Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218202) 12, 206-212 Interamna [1] (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Interamna |2] Interamna Lirenas, Interamna Sucasina
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912
Interamna [3] Interamna Praetuttiorum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Iolcus (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean
koine 1, 183-187; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402
(Alp.): Pannonia ro, 448-454; Raeti, Raetia
Il. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 (NE): Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Dead Sea
(textual finds) 4, 118-127 Jerusalem (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
Great’ 1, 469-475; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hasmonaeans
5, 1162-1163;
Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Natural catas-
trophes. 9, 522-528; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127; Zenobia [2] 15, 896900 Kalhu (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Urartu 15, 121; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Kalkriese (WE): Kalkriese 7, 9-10 Kanesh (AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa
(14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Mesopotamia 8, 727— 746; Urartu 15, 121 Karatepe-Aslantag cessor states 2,
(AM): Asia Minor C. Hittite suc117-131; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Ge-
ography and Topography 11, 149-153; Writing 15, 765-7753 Urartu 15, 121 Karchemish (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6,
11-12; Asia Minor C. Hit-
255
INDEX
tite successor states 2, 117-131; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Writing 15, 765-775; Urartu 15, 121
Kerkouane (Afr.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206 Knossos (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Writing
OF MAPS
Lapethus (Gr. AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339343; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Lappa (Gr.): Crete C, Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 5 56-
564
Laranda Roads Larinum ry 13,
(AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; H. Asia Minor 12, 645 (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo584-587; Roads A. General and Italy
I2, 622-626
Kommos [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Colonization 3, 557-578
Larisa [3] (Gr.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 3 59 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC)
Labici (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Lacobriga [3] (Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula
Larisa [6] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean
LSn765=77'5
12, 634-635 Lagbe
Lagina
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
(AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832
Lambaesis (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman 298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes
province 1, 296— and Islamic period 3, 553-554; Legio I. General 7, 561;
VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Lamia [2]
(Gr.): Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528
Lampsacus (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pom-
peius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Xenophon
[2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Lanuvium
(It.): Latini, Latium D. Political develop-
ment 7, 280-284; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912
Laodicea [1] (NE): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenis-
12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399
Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Larymna (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Las (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical
period 1, 73; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Sparta 13, 691-708
Latmus [2] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205 Lato (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 35.937)
Lauriacum (Alp.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Pannonia
10, 448-454
Lavinium (It.): Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Tribus 14, 906-912 Lebadea (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Ora-
cles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Lebedus (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Lebena (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age
IyL7§-177 Lechaeum
(Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under
Roman rule 8, 65
tic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern Near East
Lefkandi
7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Lemnos (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Peloponnesian War to, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period ro, 766-771; Persian Wars [1]
II, 556-5643 Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Laodicea [3] L. Catacecaumene
(AM): Education/
Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858
Laodicea [4] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Laodicea [5] (AM): Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-
448
(Gr.): Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Mycenaean
16, $20—2:7
Lemonum (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Limes I. General 7, 561; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Leontini
(It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Sicily E.
Roman Province 13, 424-425 Leontium [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic
and classical period 1, 73 Leontopolis [1] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period
4, 849-853
INDEX
254
OF MAPS
Leptis Magna (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5 54; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600;
Lix [x] (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153 Locri, Locris [2] Locri Epizephyrii (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, roo—ro7; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic
Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264— 241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic
Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399;
War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads F. North Africa
Londinium (WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Christi-
12, 635-639 Leptis Minor (Afr.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Lerna (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine
anity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes J. General 7, 561; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Loryma (AM): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832
I, 177-182
Lesbos (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period
Luca (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
10, 766-771
Leucas, Leucadia
Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
(Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early
Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250;
Luceria
Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D.
loniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Lucus Feroniae [1] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-
Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War Io, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212 Leuctra (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Leuke Kome [2] (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 LeukosLimen (Afr.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644 Libarna (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Lilybaeum (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 1oo—101; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography r1, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic
Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425 Limnae [3] (Gr.): Colonization 3, 557-578 Limnaea (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Limyra (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399 Lindum (WE): Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads B.
Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Lindus Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Lissa [2] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Lissus (Gr. Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Lisus, Lissus (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Liternum (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912; Villa III.
The villa for the purpose of otium 15,
416-419
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Co-
554
Lugdunum, Lugudunum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-
633 Luna [3]
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo-
ry 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy I2, 622-626
Lunisul Mignone Territory 5,94
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic
Lupiae (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Lutecia Parisiorum (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul
2, 907; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169; Theatre 14, 378-399; Wine A. Viti-
culture 15, 658-666; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Lychidnus
(Bal.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Devel-
opments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 6r Lycosura (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184
Lyctus, Lyttus (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic peri-
od 3, 937
255
INDEX
Lydae
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Lydda (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Syria 14, 53-64 Lysimachia [1] (Bal.): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339343; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Lysimachia [2] (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism I, 283-285 Lystra (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th-13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 M(a)enaca (Ibe.): Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography
and Topography r1, 149-153 Mactaris (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Madaurus (Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Magnesia [2] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Education /Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399
Magnesia [3] M. on Sipylus (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Malaca (Ibe.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391;
Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography rr, 149-153; Punic Wars Il. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Theatre 14, 378399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-63 5 Malia, Mallia (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615 Mallus (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Malus [2] (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae) 3, 90-94 Manching IO,
(WE): Celts 3, 82-99; Oppidum II. Celtic
166-169
Mantinea Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968—
969; Athletes 2, 281-284; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre
14, 378-399 Mantua (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-107; Italy, languages of 6, ror2-1018;
Colonization 3, 557-578 Maracanda (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; GraecoBactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960;
Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10 Marathus (NE): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography
LI, 149-153
Marcianopolis
(Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion
3, 260-265; Moesi, Moesia 9,
rr5—119; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680 Marcodurum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Margus [4] (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119
OF MAPS
Mari (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Mariana (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Sar-
dinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Marissa
(NE): Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564
Marium (AM NE): Diadochiand Epigoni 4, 339-343; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Maronea [1] (Gr. Bal.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615
Marsiliana d‘Albegna
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94 Masada (NE): Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127 Massaga Bactria Massalia Caesar
(NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco5, 959-960 (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christian-
ity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Theatre
14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Mastaura (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399
Mataurus
(It.): Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War
(2148-202) 12, 206-212
Mathura [1] (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Mauryas 8, 498-5o1 Mathura [2] (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Matisco (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265
Maxula (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Mecyberna (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Medaba (NE): Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127 Medeon [2] (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Mediolan(i)um [1] (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584587; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254256; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378— 399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Mediolan(i)um [2] (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Limes I. General 7, 561; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Mediolan(i)um [4] M. Santonum
(WE): Theatre
14, 378-399 Medion (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Megalopolis (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968-969; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-
250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Theatre 14, 378-399 Megara [2] (It.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Attical. Fortifications 2, 322324; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Doric Migra-
tion 4, 680-683; Grain Trade, Grain Import IL.
Greece 5, 979; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedo-
INDEX
256
OF MAPS
nia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Megara [3] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries
5, 100-101; Colonization 3, 557-578; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425
Megiddo (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Phoenicians, Poeni I]. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153 Meliboea [3] (Ibe.): Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Melitene (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 1r-12; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states 2, 117-131; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Legio B. Principate 7, 3573.58; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 5 56-564; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-64; Urartu 15, 121; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Memphis (Egy.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II. Christianity r1, 254-256; Zenobia [2] 15, 896— 900; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Menaenum, Menae
(lIt.): Sicily E. Roman Province
13, 424-425 Mende
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Mesambria/Mesembria [1] (Bal.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Colonization 3, 557578; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Pontos Euxeinos
I1, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Mespila [1] (NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833 Messana, Messene [1] (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Commerce B. Prin-
cipate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, ro12— 1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars
Il. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Roads A.
General and Italy 12, 622-626 Messene [2]
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218202) 12, 206-212; Sparta 13, 691-708; Theatre 14, 378-399 Metapontum (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, too-107; Italy, languages of 6, to1r2-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regio, regiones 12, 43 8441; Theatre 14, 378-399 Methana (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65
Methone[r]
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Sparta 13, 691-708 Methone [3] (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Methymna (Gr. AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Metropolis [3] (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48— 5S
Metropolis [4] (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855 Mevania (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Midea [1]
(Gr.): Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; My-
cenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Miletupolis, Miletopolis (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Miletus [2] (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean
Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Commerce B.
Principate 3, 642-644; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Ionic I. Preclassical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states 2, 117-131; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Colonization
3, 557-578; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Per-
gamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Miletus [3] (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Minturnae (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Tribus 14, 906-912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Mirobriga [1] (Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula
12, 634-635
Misenum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Villa Il. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-
419 Mithridatium (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94 Mogontiacum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550;
Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Principate 7, 3 57-358; Limes
I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Zi)
INDEX
OF MAPS
Mohenjo Daro (NE): Mauryas 8, 498-501 Montana (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Roads J.
Myrina [4] (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Perga-
Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Mopsu(h)estia (AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Myrmecium
Greece 4, 826-832; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564 Morgantina
425
Moscha Motya
(It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-
(NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians,
Poeni Il. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153 Munda [x] (Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909910; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391 Murgis (Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-
635 Murlo/Poggio Civitate
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geo-
graphic Territory 5, 94; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Mursa
(Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Mursella [2] (Bal.): Pannonia 10, 448-454 Mutina (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, tooro1; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Muza _ (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Muziris (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777; Mauryas 8, 498-501
Mycalessus (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Mycenae (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 93 4-939;
Doric Migration 4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94100; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399
Mylae [2] (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206
Mylasa
(AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399 Myos Hormos (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; India, trade
with 6, 773-777 Myra
(AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Asia Minor H.
Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916920; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Myrcinus (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61 Myriandrus (AM NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833
Myrina [3] (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832
mum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771 (Bal.): Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-
448
Mytilene (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846858; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Myus (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian League 4, 201-205; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Nacolea (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858 Nagidus (AM): Colonization 3, 557-578 Naissus (Bal.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Pertinax. 10, 854-857;
Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Napoca. (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30;
Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ. Balkan proyinces 12, 646-647
Narbo. (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pilgrimage II. Christianity rr, 254256; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680— 697; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads B.
Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Narnia (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Narona (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-1193 Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Naukratis (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578 Naupactus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-
709 Nautaka (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; GraecoBactria 5, 959-960
Naxos [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Naxos [2] (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578
Neapolis [1] (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Devel-
opments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Neapolis [2] (It.): Athletes 2, 281-284; Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260—
265; Coloniae tastrophes. 9, II, 254-256; 912; Villa III.
E. History 3, 553-554; Natural ca522-528; Pilgrimage II. Christianity Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906The villa for the purpose of otium
INDEX
258
OF MAPS
15, 416-419; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622626 Neapolis [7] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Pompeius. [1 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564
Neapolis [9] (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Neapolis [11] (NE): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Nelcynda (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Nemausus [2] (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Nemea [2] (Gr.): Athletes 2, 281-284; Education/
Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Neocaesarea [1] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Asia Minor H.
Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society,
economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 53-
64
(WE): Theatre 14, 378-399
Ninus [2] (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Writing L5, 765-775; Urartu 15, 121 Nippur (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Nisa [2] (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-
Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Nisibis (NE): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. II, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society,
economy, army and culture 13, 7—10; Syria 14, 5364; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Nola. (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—-1o7; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Villa IIL. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Nomentum (lIt.): Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912
Nepete (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Nersae, (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Neviodunum; (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454 Nicaea [5] (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Theatre 14, 378Be)
Norba [1] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284;
Tribus 14, 906-912 Norba [2] (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Terri-
tory 5, 94; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Noreia.
(Bal. Alp.): Caesar E. The final months
2, 909-910
Bactria 5, 959-960
Nicaea [7] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ I, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; GraecoBactria 5, 959-960 Nicephorium (NE): Limes VI. Northern Near East
7, 583-588 Nicomedia (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89—
96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645 (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9,
Nora [1] (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153;
Norchia.
Nicaea [6] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-
Nicopolis [1]
Nida.
115-119;
Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Nicopolis [2] N. ad Istrum. (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Nicopolis [3] (Gr.): Athletes 2, 281-284; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399 Nicopolis [6] (AM): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564
Notium
(AM): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709 Novae [1] (Bal.): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119;
Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Novae [2] (Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646— 647 Novaesium.
(WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550;
Legio B. Principate 7, 3 57-3 58; Limes III. Germania 7s §$O6=S72
Novaria.
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Novilara (It.): Italy, languages of 6, ror2—ro1r8; Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Noviodunum [1] (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169; Theatre 14, 378-399 Noviodunum [4] (WE): Theatre 14, 378-399 Noviomagus [6] (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Legio B. Principate 7, 3 57-3 58; Limes II]. Germania 7, 566-572; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Noviomagus [7] N. Treverorum. (WE): Coloniae E.
History 3, 553-554 Nuceria [1] N. Alfaterna (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—ro1;
Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-
419
259
INDEX
Nuceria [2] N. Favoniensis.
(It.): Regio, regiones
12, 438-441; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Numana. (It.): Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Numantia. (Ibe.): Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266 Numerus Syrorum. (Afr.): Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639 Nursia (It.): Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Nuzi. (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
Nymphaeum [3] (AM): Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
Nymphaeum [4] (Bal.): Regnum Bosporanum
12, 445-448 Nysa [3] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399 Nyssa (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858 Ocalea (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Ocelum [2] (Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula
12, 634-635 Ocriculum. (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Odessus (BS): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557— 578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pontos Euxeinos II, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads
J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Oea (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni
II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Oene (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250 Oeniadae [1] (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Theatre 14, 378399
Oenoanda
(AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa
(14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916920; Theatre 14, 378-399 Oescus [2] (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 Oetylus
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Olba (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564
Olbasa (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Olbia [x] (BS): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-
OF MAPS
Olbia [5] (AM): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Olenus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73 Olisippo. (Ibe.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography II, 149-153; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-
635
Olophyxus (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Olous (Gr.): Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937 Olpae (Gr.): Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709 Olympia (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Athletes 2, 281-284; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Olympias [5]
(Gr.): Grain Trade, Grain Import II.
Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Olympus [11] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Theatre
14, 378-399 Olynthus (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94100; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910— 914; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments
from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Ombi[z] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853 Onchestus [1] (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Opis, Upis [3] (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833
Opitergium.
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Colo-
niae E. History 3, 553-554; Venetic 15, 277-278
Oplontis.
(It.): Villa IIL. The villa for the purpose of
otium 15, 416-419 Opus [1] (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 69 5-699; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979 Orchomenus [1] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Myce-
naean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Orchomenus [3] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968-969; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399
Oricus
(Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under
Roman rule 8, 65 Oropus (Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324;
578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Regnum
Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education/
Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (50930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Scy-
Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia,
thae 13, 149-160; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666 Olbia [2] (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Olbia [4] (It.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Boeotians 2, 695-699; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Theatre 14, 378-399 Orthura (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Ostia
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socil
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate
INDEX
260
OF MAPS
3, 642-644; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666;
Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Ovilavis. (Alp.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Pannonia 10, 448-454; Rome D. Republic (s0930/27 BC) 12, 674-680 Oxyrhynchus (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256 Ozene (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Pagae (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Pagasae (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Palaerus (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979
Pale (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Palimbothra (NE): Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; India, trade with 6, 773-
777; Mauryas 8, 498-501 Pallantium (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Palma. (Ibe.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391;
Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Palmyra (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Limes
VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Syria 14, 5364; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900;
Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Panactum (Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324 Panormus [3] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, 100-101;
Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography
Writing 15, 765-775; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125 Paraetonium (Egy.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600 Parentium. (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Venetic 15, 277-278; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Parium (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pom-
peius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre
14, 378-399 Parma [1]
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. His-
tory 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I.
6th/5th Centuries 5, too—101; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399 Pasargadae (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475 Patala (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ I, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-
Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Mauryas 8, 498-so1 Patara (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Lycu, Lycia 7, 916-920; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro,
184; Pom-
peius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Patavium. (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441;
Venetic 15, 277-278; Villanova Culture 15, 420423; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Patrae (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
II, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic
sical period 1, 73; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Macedones
War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sicily E. Roman Proy-
D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Oracles B. Oracle Sites
ince 13, 424-425; Roads A. General and Italy
ro, 184; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Theatre 14, 378-
I2, 622-626
Pantalica. (It.): Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Panticapaeum (BS): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (s5o0930/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-
607; Scythae 13, 149-160; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666
Paphus (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-3433 Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10;
399
Pausilypum Pautalia
(It.): Theatre 14, 378-399
(Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Thraci,
Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Pedasa (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian League 4, 201-205; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Pednelissus (AM): Theatre 14, 378-399 Pedum [2] (It.): Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912
Pella [1] (Gr.): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212;
Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
261
INDEX
Pella [2] (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria
14, 53-64
Pellana [1] (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Pellene (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Peltae (AM): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Pelusium (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Pergamum (AM): Athletes 2, 281-284; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827;
Theatre 14, 378-399; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Perge (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Perinthus (Bal.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Colonization 3, 557578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Natural catastro-
phes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Persepolis (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexan-
der [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Perusia. (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Coloniae
E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, too—1o07; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Regio, regiones 12, 43 8441; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Pessinus (AM): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenis-
tic states 6, 89-96; Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Asia Minor H. Under Roman
rule 2, 145-146; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Petra [1] (NE): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Limes I. General 7, 561; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680— 697; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639
OF MAPS
Petra [4] (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425 Peucelaotis (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Phaestus [4] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Phalanna
(Gr.): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832
Phalara (Gr.): Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Phalasarna (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Phanagoria (BS): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607;
Scythae 13, 149-160 Pharae [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73 Pharis (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Pharsalus (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65 Phaselis (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education/Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 35 557-578; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378399; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Phasis [2] (BS): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557578; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
Phellus (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Pheneus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History
1, 968-969 Pherae (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Macedonia, Macedones
A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Phigalia (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Philadelphia [1] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265
Philae (Afr.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Philippi (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Chris-
tianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Theatre 14, 378399
Philippopolis
Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’
1, 469-475; Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Chris-
INDEX
tianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399;
Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ.Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Philomelium (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 35 260-265
Phintias [1] (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-
425 Phlius (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968-969; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Phocaea
(AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian
League 4, 201-205; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Phoenice (Bal.): Punic Wars Il. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Phoenix [8] (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Phoetiae
(Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55
Phraaspa
(NE): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenis-
tic states 6, 89-96
Phylakopi
(Gr.): Mycenaean culture and archaeology
95 391-402
Pinara
262
OF MAPS
(AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa
(14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916920; Theatre 14, 378-399 Pinna (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587
Piraeus [1] (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Pisae. (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Soci (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. Gen-
eral and Italy 12, 622-626 Pisaurum. (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Pisilis (AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Pitana (Gr.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644 Pitane (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771 Pityus (BS): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607
Placentia (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-5545 Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—101; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regio, regiones 12, 43 8— 441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Plataeae (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia,
Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Plestia (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Pleuron (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Theatre 14, 378-399 Podanala (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae) 3, 90-94 Poetovio. (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260— 265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pan-
nonia 10, 448-454; Pilgrimage IJ. Christianity II, 254-256; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646647 Pola (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Theatre 14, 378-399; Venetic
15, 277-278; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622626; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Polichne [2] (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937
Poliochni. (Gr.): Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402 Pollentia [1] (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Pollentia [2] (Ibe.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Polyrrhenia (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937 Pompeii (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Colonization 3, 557-578;
Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Theatre 14, 378399; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium
I$, 416-419 Pompeiopolis (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858 Pons [5] Pons Aeni. (Alp.): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Pons [8] Pons Drusi. (It.): Roads A. General and Italy I2, 622-626
Pontecagnano. (It.): Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Populonia (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Colo-
nization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Villanova Culture 15, 420-423; Roads
A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Porolissum (Bal.): Daci, Dacia C. The Roman provyince 4, 29-30; Limes I. General 7, 561; Thraci,
Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Portus [1] (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399
Portus [5] P. Magnus.
(Afr.): Punic Wars II. The 2nd
Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Poseidonia, Paistos, Paestum
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, Lor2-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Potaissa (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30;
2.63
INDEX
Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 65 8666; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Potidaea (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Coloniae E. History
35 553-554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343;
Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman
rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Praeneste
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284;
Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Tribus 14, 906-912 Praesus (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic peri-
od 3, 937 Priene (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Preclassical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Privernum (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912
OF MAPS
Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Doric Migration
4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] ro, 821-827 Pyrgi[z] (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Pyrrhichus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Qadesh (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th-13th cent.) 6, 11-12 Quintanis (Alp.): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman proyince of Raetia 12, 382-387 Qumran (NE): Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127 Rabbath-Ammon (NE):Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Theatre 14, 378-399; Dead Sea (textual finds) 4, 118-127 Rapidum (Afr.): VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600 Ratae (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Ratiaria
(Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543
Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30;
Prolaqueum. (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Pronni (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250 Prophthasia (NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Thraci, Thracia
Great’ I, 469-475 Prusias [3] P.-on-Hypius (AM): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Theatre 14, 378-399
647
Psophis
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73 Pteria (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Urartu 15, 121
Ptolemais [3] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853 Ptolemais [7] (Afr.): Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Ptolemais [8] (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Hellenistic states 6, 89— 96; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography r1, 149-153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. Il, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Puteoli (It.): Athletes 2, 281-284; Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Christianity D. Expansion
3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53-554; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Tribus 14, 906-912; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Pydna (Gr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Pylene Te
(Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism Os 2.85,
Pylos [2] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The
14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646Ratomagus
(WE): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642—
644 Ravenna (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—10o1; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, tor2— 1018; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Reate (It.): Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Tribus 14, 906-912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Regina Castra (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-
387
Regium Lepidum. (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Regium (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205206; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Rome D. Repub-
lic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Rhaucus (Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic pe-
riod 3, 937 Rhithymna
(Gr.): Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic
period 3, 937
INDEX
264
OF MAPS
Rhodiapolis (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920 Rhodos (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Athletes 2, 281-284; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B.
History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846— 858; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman
rule 2, 145-146; Colonization 3, 557-578; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompetus. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-
697; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399 Rhoeteum
(AM): Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Sabratha (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Colonization 3, 557-578; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads F. North
Africa 12, 63 5-639 Saena (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94 Saepinum (It.): Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399 Sagalassus (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
II, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399 Saguntum
(Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, go9-
910; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispa-
Rhosus
(NE): Syria 14, 53-64
nia, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Punic
Rhypes
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula
sical period 1, 73 Rigodulum (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Risinum (Rhizon). (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 Rome (It.): Athletes 2, 281-284; Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo-
ry 13, 584-587; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, roo—ro1; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, 1o121018; Celts 3, 82-99; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Limes I. General 7, 561; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage I. Christianity 11, 254-256; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones
12, 438-441; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Villanova Culture 15, 420-423; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Rudiae.
(It.): Italy, languages of 6, ro12—1018; Thea-
tre 14, 378-399
Rusaddir (Afr.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography TI, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads F. North
Africa 12, 635-639 Rusafa (NE): Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256 Rusellae (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo-1017; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Rusguniae. (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Rusicade. (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639 Rusuccuru. 265
(Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-
12, 634-635 Sala[z]
(Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298;
Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Salamis [1] (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826— 832; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Salamis [2] (Gr. AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and
Epigoni 4, 339-3433; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Saldae (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202)
Salernum
12, 206-212
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo-
ry 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Salmantica (Ibe.): Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634635
Salmydessus [2] (Bal.): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833 Salona (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pilgrimage II. Christianity rr, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E.
Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Samarobriva (WE): Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and BritanNla 12, 626-633 Same (Gr.): Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250;
Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Persian Wars [1] 10, 8321-827
265
INDEX
Samos (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Preclassical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography I1, 149-153; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre
14, 378-399 Samosata (AM NE): Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Legio B. Principate 7, 3 57358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus,
Cn. 11, 556-564; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Syria 14, 5364; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Samothrace (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-
709; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399 Sane [1] (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Colonization 3, 557-578; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Sangala
(NE): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’
I, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960
Sardis (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Athletes 2, 281-284; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Byzantium
2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-3 43; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145146; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Rome
D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645 Sarmizegetusa (Bal.): Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30; Limes I. General 7, 561;
Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Satala (BS): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588;
Syria 14, 53-64; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Saticula (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912
Satricum
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543
Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284 Saturnia. (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5545
Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Umbri, Umbria
15, 93-98
Savaria
OF MAPS
(Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Scandea (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708 Scardona (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119 Scarphea (Gr.): Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528 Scepsis (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Schoenus [3] (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Scione (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] ro, 821827
Scodra. (Bal.): Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Scolus (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Scupi (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Rome D. Republic (§09-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Sebastopolis [2] (AM): Christianity D. Expansion Zo LOO=2O15
Sebennytus
(Egy.): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832 Segesta [1] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries
5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, tor2-1018; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Theatre
14, 378-399 Segodunum Rutenorum. (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Segontia.
(Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4—-
635
Segovia [1] (Ibe.): Roads E. Iberian peninsula
12, 634-635 Segusio
(Alp.): Limes I. General 7, 561; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680 Seleucia [1] S. on the Tigris (NE): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; India, trade with 6, 773-777 Seleucia [2] S. Pieria (NE): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pom-
peius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Seleucia [4] Seleucia [5]
(AM): Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christian-
ity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule 2, 145-146; Pilgrimage II. Christianity II, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
IIT, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society,
economy, army and culture 13, 7—10; Syria 14, 5364; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Seleucia [6] (AM): Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184 Seleucia [7] (AM NE): Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Selge (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Theatre
14, 378-399
INDEX
266
OF MAPS
Selinus [4] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Roads F. North Africa
12, 635-639 Selinus [5] (AM): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Theatre 14, 378-399 Sellasia (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
sical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Selymbria (Bal.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Byzantium
2, 846-858; Colonization 3, 557-578; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821—
827; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Sena Gallica, Senagallia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones 12, 43 8441; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Senia (Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Sentinum (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Serdica (Bal.): Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pilgrimage IJ. Christianity 11, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647
Sermylia (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Sestus (Bal.): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557578; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Setia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912 Seuthopolis (Bal.): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615
Sexi (Ibe.): Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202)
12, 206-212; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-
635
Sicca Veneria (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Sicyon Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5,979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Side (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Roads H. Asia Minor
12, 645 Sidon (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557578; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Natural catastro-
phes. 9, 522-528; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64
Sidyma
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Siga (Afr.): Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) £2, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Sigeum (AM): Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Silandus (AM): Education / Culture B. History:
Greece 4, 826-832 Simitthus. (Afr.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Singara (NE): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Syria 14, 5364; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Singidunum (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615;
Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Singus Sinope
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832; Caesar E. The final months 2, go9910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Colo-
niae E. History 3, 553-554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-
96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Pilgrimage II. Christlanity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Xenophon [2]
X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Sinuessa _ (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. Histo-
ry 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912 Siphae (Gr.): Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699 Sipontum (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554;
Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Sippar
Siris
(NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746
(It.): Colonization 3, 557-578
Sirmium (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454;
Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; RoadsJ. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Siscia (Bal.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia ro, 448-454; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads J.
Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Sitifis. (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639
Sittace (NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833 Smyrna (AM): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age 1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Athletes 2, 281-284; Education/
Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Chris-
tianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites ro, 184; Pergamum C. Hel-
267
INDEX
lenistic period 10, 766-771; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Soloi [x] (Gr. AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-
3435 Theatre 14, 378-399; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125
Soloi [2] (AM): Colonization 3, 557-578 Solus (It.): Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Theatre 14, 378-399 Sopianis (Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC)
12, 674-680; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 Sora.
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Co-
loniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912 Sparta
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
sical period 1, 73; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Athletes 2, 281-284; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Doric Migration 4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96;
Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Sparta 13, 691-708; Theatre 14, 378-399
Spartolus
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Pelopon-
nesian War 10, 704-709 Spina [2] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Colonization 3, 557-578; Venetic
15, 277-278
Spoletium (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202)
12, 206-212; Theatre 14, 378-399; Iribus 14, 906912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
Stabiae (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Stagira (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709
Stobi
(Gr.): Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Christi-
anity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-554; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads J. Balkan provinces I2, 646-647
Stolus [2]
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Stratoniceia [1] (AM): Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771 Stratoniceia [2] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399
Stratos (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-5 5; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Theatre 14, 378399
Strepsa
(Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205 Stymphalus (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History I, 968-969
OF MAPS
Styra (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Delian League 4, 201-205; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Suana/Sovana
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic
Territory 5, 94 Suessa Aurunca (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Coloniae E. Histo-
ry 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906-912 Suessa Pometia
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Suessula (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Sufetula. (Afr.): Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53-
554; Theatre 14, 378-399 Sulci(s)
(It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Sar-
dinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Sulmo_ (It.): Italy, languages of 6, ror2z-1ro18 Sumelocenna (WE): Theatre 14, 378-399 Sunium (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324; Laurium7, 303306 Sura [3]
(NE): Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-
588; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Surrentum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587;
Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, roo—ro1; Theatre 14, 378-399; Villa III. The villa for the purpose of otium 15, 416-419 Susa (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96;
Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Sutrium (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Iribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Sybaris [4] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Italy, languages of 6, ror2-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578
Syene (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-8 53; India, trade
with 6, 773-777 Tacape (Afr.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644 Tadinae (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Tagara (NE): India, trade with 6, 773-777 Tamassus (AM NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Kypros [1] 7, 118-125; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Tanagra (Gr.): Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Tanais [2] (BS): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448;
Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Scythae 13, 149-160 Tanis [1] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853 Tapae (Bal.): Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province 4, 29-30; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615
INDEX
268
OF MAPS
Taras [2] (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Soci
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Etrusci, Etruria I.
6th/5th Centuries 5, roo-101; Commerce B, Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, tor2— ror8; Colonization 3, 557-578; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Wine A. Viticulture 15, 658666; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Tarodunum (WE): Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169 Tarquinii (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries
5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98;
Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 Tarracina (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Tribus 14, 906912; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Tarraco
(Ibe.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-
910; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Colo-
niae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Princi-
pate 3, 642-644; Hispania, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Limes I. General 7, 561; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Pyre-
nean peninsula 12, 254-266; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Pe-
riod 12, 680-697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Wine A.
Viticulture 15, 658-666; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 634-635 Tarsatica (It. Alp.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Tarsus (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule
2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Tarvisium
Tauchira
(Alp.): Venetic 15, 277-278
(Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260—
265; Colonization 3, 557-578; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic period 3, 937; VII. African provinces 7, 592-600
Taurasia [2] (It.): Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (2148-202) 12, 206-212
Tauromenium (It.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Theatre
14, 378-399 Tavium (AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Hellenistic states 6, 89— 96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Celts B. Celts in Asia
Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum
12, 445-448; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Taxila (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; India,
trade with 6, 773-777; Mauryas 8, 498-sor Teanum Sidicinum (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378899
Teate [1] (It.): Theatre 14, 378-399 Tegea (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History 1, 968-969; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250;
Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule
8, 65; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre
14, 378-399 Tegianum (lIt.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Tegyra (Gr.): Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Telamon [2] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Ter-
ritory 5,94 Telandrus (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Telesia (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Telmessus (AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Delian League 4, 201-205; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Theatre 14, 378-399 Tenedos Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Colonization 3, 557-578 Teos (AM): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Delian League
4, 201-205; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Ionic I. Pre-classical period to the Koine 6, 910-914; Colonization 3, 557-578; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282-285; Peloponnesian War
10, 704-709; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period
10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399
Tergeste (Alp.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115-119; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Venetic 15, 277-278; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Termera (AM): Delian League 4, 201-205 Termessus [1] (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre
14, 378-399 Termessus [2]
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Teurnia (Alp.): Pannonia 10, 448-454 Thabraca (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Thalamae [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Sparta 13, 691-708 Thamugadi (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; VIII. African provinces 7, 592-600; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Thapsacus (NE): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824—
833 Thapsus [2] (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Phoenicians, Poeni Il. Geography and Topography rr, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
269
INDEX
Tharrus (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, L00—-101; Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians,
Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Sardinia et Corsica 12, 983-984; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Thasos (Gr.): Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Marble II. Occurrence 8, 282— 285; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Pompeius. {I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. rx, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378— 399
Theangela (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Thebes [1] (Egy.): Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849853; Egypt F. The Late Period 4, 849-853; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644
Thebes [2] (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean
koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the
OF MAPS
rule 8, 65; Macedonia, Macedones A. Late Bronze age to Geometric period 8, 72-75; Pilgrimage II. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D. Republic
(509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Theveste (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; VIII. African provinces 7, 592600; Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Thisbe [1] (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699
Thmuis
(Egy.): Education/ Culture B. History: Greece
4, 826-832
Thorae (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Thoricus (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-324; Education /Cul-
Great’ 1, 469-475; Attica I. Fortifications 2, 322-
ture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Laurium
324; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education/ Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Christianity D. Expan-
7, 303-306; Mycenaean culture and archaeology
9, 391-402; Theatre 14, 378-399
sion 3, 260-265; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Linear B
Thria (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Thuburbo [1] T. Maius (Afr.): Coloniae E. History
B. Find spots 7, 615; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Oracles B. Oracle Sites
Thuburbo [2] T. Minus
10, 184; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian
35
553-554
2)
(Afr.): Coloniae E. History
ei oke|
Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Thelepte (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554
Thubursicum [2] T. Numidarum
Thelphusa (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Arcadians, Arcadia B. History
Thugga (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Thuria (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Sparta 13, 691-708 Thurii_ (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Punic Wars II. The
I, 968-969 Themacus (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Themisonium (AM): Education / Culture B. History: ' Greece 4, 826-832 Theodosia (BS): Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607 Theodosiopolis [2] (NE): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588 Thera (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine I, 177-182; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1]
(Afr.): Coloniae E.
History 3, 553-554; Theatre 14, 378-399
2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads A.
General and Italy 12, 622-626 Thyatira (AM): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265
Thymaetadae
(Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-
318
Thymbrium
(AM): Xenophon [2] X. of Athens
15, 824-833
10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Therapnae [2] (Gr.): Sparta 13, 691-708
Thyrrheum (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55 Thysdra (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554
Thermae [2] (It.): Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 42.4425; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Therme (Gr.): Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 359 BC 8, 61; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827
Tibiscum
Thermus (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250;
Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Thespia (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Boeotia, Boeotians 2, 695-699; Mace-
donia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Theatre 14, 378-399 Thessalonica [x] (Gr.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Limes I. General 7, 561; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman
(Bal.): Daci, Dacia C. The Roman province
4, 29-30; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615 Tibur
(It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History
13, 584-587; Latini, Latium D. Political development 7, 280-284; Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912
Ticinum
(It. Alp.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550
Tigava [2] (Afr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265
Tigranocerta
(BS): Asia Minor H. Under Roman rule
2, 145-146; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompetus. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399
Til Barsip (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Tilurium (Bal.): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358 Tingis (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296-298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period 1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5 54; Com-
INDEX
270
OF MAPS
merce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Limes I. General 7, 561; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Wine A. Viticulture
15, 658-666; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639 Tipasa [1] (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Colonization 3, 557-578; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Theatre
14, 378-399 Tiryns
(Gr.): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age
1, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939; Doric Migration 4, 680-683; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94—-
100; Linear B B. Find spots 7, 615; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Persian Wars |1] 10, 821-827
Tissa_ (It.): Sicily E.Roman Province 13, 424-425 Tius (AM): Colonization 3, 557-578
Tlos
(AM): Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th-
13th cent.) 6,
11-12; Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920;
Theatre 14, 378-399 Tolastochora (AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Galatae) 3, 90-94 Toletum (Ibe.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hispa-
nia, Iberia E. Roman period 6, 388-391; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-
635 Tolosa
(WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul
B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212; Roads B. Gallia, Germania
and Britannia 12, 626-633 Tomi (Bal.): Balkans, languages 2, 474-479; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Moesi, Moesia 9, 115— 119; Pertinax. 10, 854-857; Rome D. Republic
(509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680-697; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615; RoadsJ. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Torone (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-
100; Colonization 3, 557-578; Macedonia, Macedones A. Developments from the 7th cent. until 3 59 BC 8, 61; Macedonia, Macedones A. Late Bronze age to Geometric period 8, 72-75; Peloponnesian
II, 556-564; Regnum Bosporanum 12, 445-448; Sassanids II]. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607;
Syria 14, 53-64; Urartu 15, 121; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Roads H. Asia Minor 12,645
Trebenna
(AM): Lycu, Lycia 7, 916-920
Trebula [1] (It.): Tribus 14, 906-912 Tricca (Gr.): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265 Trichonium (Gr.): Aetolians, Aetolia B.3. Hellenism 1, 283-285
Tricorythus (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Tridentum (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Raeti, Raetia I]. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Trinemeia (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Tripolis [5] (NE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pilgrimage IJ. Christianity 11, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Syria 14, 53-64; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5-639; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Tritaea (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and clas-
sical period 1, 73 Troesmis
(Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9, Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Troezen
115-119; Roads J.
(Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and
classical period 1, 73; Apollo B.4 Catharsis and politics 1, 853-855; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Grain Trade, Grain Import II. Greece 5, 979; Macedonia, Macedones D. Under Roman rule 8, 65; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827;
Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564 Troy (AM): Aegean Koine B.2 Early Bronze Age I, 175-177; Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4,
826-832; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939;
Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-9 10; Diadochi
and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (14th—13th cent.) 6,
11-12; Asia Minor C. Hittite successor states
2, 117-131; Asia Minor V. Languages 2, 152-155; Mycenaean culture and archaeology 9, 391-402; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. 11, 556-564; Writing 15, 765-775; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Trysa
(AM): Lycii, Lycia 7, 916-920
Tucci
(Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554
War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827 Torybeia (Gr.): Acarnanians, Acarnania 1, 48-55
Tuder (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Theatre 14, 378-399;
Toscanos (Ibe.): Colonization 3, 557-578 Traianopolis [1] (Bal.): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Rome
Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Tuficum (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98
D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Thraci,
Thracia 14, 601-615 Tralleis [2] (AM): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260265; Natural catastrophes. 9, 522-528; Theatre
14, 378-399 Trapezus (AM): Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Coloniza-
tion 3, 557-578; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Pompetus. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
Tuscana
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Terri-
tory 5,94 Tusculum
(It.): Latini, Latium D. Political develop-
ment 7, 280-284; Theatre 14, 378-399; Tribus 14, 906-912
Tyana
(AM): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Byzantium 2, 846-858; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (x4th—13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Asia Minor C. Hittite
27
INDEX OF MAPS
successor states 2,
117-131; Asia Minor H. Under
Roman rule 2, 145-146; Writing 15, 765-775; Syria 14, 53-64; Xenophon [2] X. of Athens 15, 824-833; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645 Tylissus (Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine 1, 177-182; Crete C. Classical and Hellenistic peri-
od 3, 937
Tyndaris
(It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5 54; Punic
Wars I. The rst Punic War (264-241) 12, 205-206;
Sicily E. Roman Province 13, 424-425; Theatre
14, 378-399 Typaneae (Gr.): Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832 Tyras (Bal.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89— 96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Regnum Bospora-
num 12, 445-448; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680— 697; Pontos Euxeinos 11, 599-607; Scythae 13, 149-160; Thraci, Thracia 14, 601-615
Tyrmeidae (Gr.): Attica E. Classical era 2, 317-318 Tyrus (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265;
Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642— 644; Hasmonaeans 5, 1162-1163; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Colonization 3, 557-578; Mesopotamia 8, 727-746; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Pilgrimage II. Christianity LI, 254-256; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn. I1, 556-564; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Sassanids III. Kingdom, society, economy, army and culture 13, 7-10; Writing
15, 765-775; Syria 14, 53-64; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-
900 Ugarit (NE): Aegean Koine B.4 The Mycenaean koine 1, 183-187; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (r4th-13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Mesopotamia 8, 727746 Ulpianum
(Bal.): Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119
Ur (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Urso (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Theatre 14, 378-399
Uruk (NE): Mesopotamia 8, 727-746 Utica (Afr.): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Colonization 3, 557-5783 Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Uxellodunum [1] (WE): Celts 3, 82-99; Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169 Vada Sabatia (It. Alp.): Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Vaga (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Valcum (Bal.): Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-
647 Valentia [x] (Ibe.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Pilgrimage II.
Christianity 11, 254-256; Pyrenean peninsula 12, 254-266; Roads E. Iberian peninsula 12, 63 4-
Vasio
(WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Theatre
14, 378-399 Vegistum
(AM): Celts B. Celts in Asia Minor (Gala-
tae) 3, 90-94 Veii
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, roo101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Colonization 3, 557-578; Tribus 14, 906-912; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98; Villanova Culture
15, 420-423
Veldidena
(Alp.): Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387
Velia [2]
(It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii
(Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries 5, to0o—101; Italy, languages of 6, ror2—1018; Colonization 55575578 Velitrae (It.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Latini, Latium D. Po-
litical development 7, 280-284; Tribus 14, 906-912 Vellaunodunum (WE): Theatre 14, 378-399 Venafrum (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554 Venusia (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History 3, 5 53-554; Coloniae E. HistoLy 3, 553-554; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626 Vercellae [1] (It. Alp.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550 Verona (It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-5 50; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Raeti, Raetia II. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622626 Verulamium (WE): Britannia A. Name 2, 774-7793 Britannia B. Rome and Britannia 2, 779; Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Theatre 14, 378-399
Vesontio (WE): Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910; Christian-
ity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Celts 3, 82-99; Oppidum II. Celtic 10, 166-169; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Vetera (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Legio B. Principate 7, 3 57358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannla 12, 626-633 Vetulonia
(It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries
5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Terri-
tory 5, 94; Phoenicians, Poeni II. Geography and Topography 11, 149-153; Umbri, Umbria 15, 9398
Vibo Valentia (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History
3» 553-5543 Theatre 14, 378-399
635
Vicetia
265; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Vienna (WE): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Caesar C. The War in Gaul 2, 907; Christianity D. Expan-
Valentia [2] (WE): Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260—
(It.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Theatre
14, 378-399; Venetic 15, 277-278
INDEX
as
OF MAPS
sion 3, 260-265; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Gallia/Gaul B. Roman period 5, 670-673; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633 Viminacium (Bal.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-5543 Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Moesi, Moesia 9,
115-119; Rome D.
Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Thraci,
Thracia 14, 601-615; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647
Vindobona (WE Bal.): Commerce B. Principate 3, 642-644; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Pannonia ro, 448-454 Vindonissa_ (Alp.): Batavian Revolt 2, 549-550; Legio B. Principate 7, 357-358; Limes III. Germania 7, 566-572; Raeti, Raetia I. The Roman province of Raetia 12, 382-387 Virunum (Alp.): Limes I. General 7, 561; Pannonia 10, 448-454; Rome D. Republic (509-30/27 BC) 12, 674-680; Rome E. Imperial Period 12, 680697; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads J. Balkan provinces 12, 646-647 Visentium (It.): Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Volaterrae (It.): Social Wars [3] 13, 578-581; Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, 100-107;
Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Theatre 14, 378-399; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Volei/Vulci (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/s5th Centuries 5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Colonization 3, 557-578; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98;
Villanova Culture 15, 420-423 (NE): Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900 Volsinii [x] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/5th Centuries Vologesocerta
5, 100-101; Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Terri-
tory 5, 94; Italy, languages of 6, 1012-1018; Umbri, Umbria 15, 93-98 Volsinii [2] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria D. Geographic Territory 5, 94; Regio, regiones 12, 438-441; Umbri,
Umbria 15, 93-98; Roads A. General and Italy 12, 622-626
Volturnum [1] (It.): Socii (Roman confederation) D. History 13, 584-587; Coloniae E. History
3, 553-5545 Tribus 14, 906-912 Volturnum [2] (It.): Etrusci, Etruria I. 6th/sth Centuries 5, IOO-1O1 Volubilis (Afr.): Africa 3. Roman province 1, 296298; Africa 4. Vandal, Byzantine and Islamic period
1, 298-300; Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554; Limes
I. General 7, 561; Roads F. North Africa 12, 63 5639 Vorgium (WE): Roads B. Gallia, Germania and Britannia 12, 626-633
Waldalgesheim (WE): Celts 3, 82-99 Xanthus [4] (AM): Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Education / Culture B. History: Greece 4, 826-832; Hattusa 3. The Empire of Hattusa (r4th—-13th cent.) 6, 11-12; Lycui, Lycia 7, 916-920; Pergamum C. Hellenistic period 10, 766-771; Pompeius. [I 3] P. Magnus, Cn.
11, 556-564; Theatre 14, 378-399; Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Zabi (Afr.): Roads F. North Africa 12, 635-639 Zacynthos (Gr.): Delian League 4, 201-205; Athenian League (Second) 2, 248-250; Peloponnesian War 10, 704-709; Persian Wars [1] 10, 821-827; Punic Wars II. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) 12, 206-212
Zadracarta (NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander [4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96 Zagora
(Gr.): Dark Ages [1] 4, 94-100
Zakros
(Gr.): Aegean Koine B.3 The Minoan koine
1, 177-182; Mineral Resources 8, 934-939
Zama ([t1]Z.Regia (Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553554; Punic Wars I. The 2nd Punic War (218-202) I2, 206-212
Zarax [1] (Gr.): Achaeans, Achaea B.2 Archaic and classical period 1, 73; Sparta 13, 691-708 Zariaspa
(NE): Achaemenids [2] 1, 77-79; Alexander
[4] Alexander ‘the Great’ 1, 469-475; Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-343; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Graeco-Bactria 5, 959-960; Hellenistic states 6, 8996; India, trade with 6, 773-777; Mauryas 8, 498-
501 Zela
(AM): Caesar E. The final months 2, 909-910;
Christianity D. Expansion 3, 260-265; Hellenistic states 6, 89-96
Zeleia (AM): Oracles B. Oracle Sites 10, 184 Zenobia [3] (NE): Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Zenobia [2] 15, 896-900
Zephyrium [6] (AM): Diadochi and Epigoni 4, 339-
343 Zeugma [2]
(AM NE): Legio B. Principate 7, 357-
358; Limes I. General 7, 561; Limes VI. Northern Near East 7, 583-588; Zenobia [2] Roads H. Asia Minor 12, 645
Zulil
15, 896-900;
(Afr.): Coloniae E. History 3, 553-554
273
LIST OF MAPS
List of Maps and Illustrations The following List of Maps lists all maps and town plans, the List of Illustrations lists all images, stemmata, tables and building plans. The entry term in the lists is the (sub)lemma to which the map or image is assigned, followed by the title of the map/illustrations (some abbreviated) and the (sub)entry’s location (volume, column{s]). Cross-references provide additional help in locating maps and illustrations.
Asia Minor: Development of provinces in Asia Minor: Galatia, Cappadocia, Cilicia (1st cent. BC — 5th cent. AD) 2,145-146 Asia Minor: Asia Minor during the Hittite period (1580-1200 BC) / Asia Minor c. 270 BC 2,1452-155 Asia Minor: Restructuring by Pompeius, see Pompeius
[13] 11,556-564
Athenian League (Second) 2,248-250 Athens [1]: City 2,253-272 Athletes: Locations of the victories won by the pancratiast M. Aurelius Asclepiades of Alexandria 2281-284
List of Maps Acarnanians, Acarnania: The Acarnanian League from 389 BC until its dissolution under Augustus (?) 1,48— oe)
Achaeans, Achaea, [1]: The Achaean League from the 7th cent. to 146 BC 1,73 Achaeans, Achaea, [1], province, see Macedonia,
Macedones 8,57-79 Achaemenids, [2]: Achaemenid empire (6th to the 4th cent. BC)/military operations in the Aegean area ET mie
Aegean Koine: 1. Early Bronze Age (ca. 2700-2200 BC)
1,17§-177 Aegean Koine: 2. Middle and incipient Late Bronze Age: ‘Minoan Koine’ (ca. 2200-1400 BC) 1,177-182 Aegean Koine: 3. Late Bronze Age: the ‘Mycenean Koine’ in the age of Egyptian and Hittite hegemony. Eastern Mediterranean ca. 1400-1200 BC 1,183187
Aegean Region, see Mineral Resources 8,93 4-939 Aegean Region, see Dark Ages 4,94-100
Aetolians, Aetolia: The Aetolian League until 167 BC 1,283-285
Africa, see Limes 7,592-600 Africa: Development of provinces in North Africa (146 BC — AD 395) 1,296-298
Africa: North Africa from the Byzantine Period until the Islamic conquest (5th to 8th cents. AD) 1,298-
300 Alexanders’s campaigns (336-323 BC) 1,469-475 Alexandria, [1] in Egypt 1,496-498
Anatolia, see Urartu 15,121 Antioch, [1] on the Orontes: Antioch in the late Byzantine and early Islamic period 1,75 8-759
Apollo: Sanctuaries of Apollo as central city shrines
1,853-855
Aquae [III 7] Sulis 1,926-927 Aquileia [1] 1,929-930 Arabia: Arabia between Byzantium and the Sassanids (6th cent. AD) 1,938-941 Arcadians, Arcadia: Members of the so-called Second Arcadian League 371-33 8/337 BC 1,968-969 Argonauts: Voyage of the Argonauts according to Apollonius of Rhodes 1,1067-—1068 Asia, Rom. province, see Asia Minor 2,145-146 Asia Minor: During the Hittite period (1580-1200 BC):
Attalids, kingdom, see Pergamum 10,766-771 Attica: Phyles of Attica (after 508/7 BC) 2,317-3 18 Attica: Fortifications in Attica (5th—3rd cents.) 2 322-
324 Augst (Switzerland), see Augusta [4] Raurica 2,3 43 Augusta [4] Raurica 2,343 Augusta [6] Treverorum: archaeological ground plan (ast — 4th cent. AD) 2,344-350 Babylon: Babylon at the time of the New Babylonian Kingdom (7th/6th cents. BC) 2,441-442 Balkans, languages 2,474-479 Balkans: Language groups and political structures around AD 800 2,477-479 Batavian Revolt 2,549-550 Bath, see Aquae [III 7] Sulis 1,926-927 Berytus: Beruta/Berytus: the pre-Hellenistic remains 2,610-611
Bithynia et Pontus, Rom.
province, see Asia Minor
2,145-146
Boeotia, Boeotians: The Boeotian League from the 6th century to 146 BC 2,695-699 Bosporan kingdom, see Regnum Bosporanum 12,444-
450
Bosporus: Ancient sanctuaries on the shores of the Bos-
porus 2,733-734
Britannia: Albion, Britannia: the indigenous tribes (c. rst cent. BC — 3rd cent. AD) 2,774-779 Brittania, Limes, see Limes 7,562—566
Britannia: Provincial development in Britannia 2,779 Britannia: The British Isles c. AD 650/ Christianization (6th — late 8th cents. AD) 2,780-783 Byblus [1]: City in Libanon 2,842 Byzantium: The Byzantine Empire, 7th — 9th cents. AD 2,846-8 58
Caesar: Caesar in Gaul (58-5 1/50 BC) 2,907 Caesar: The Roman empire at the time of Caesar (until 44 BC): 2: 909-910 ,
Canals: Putative course of the waterway between the Sangarius and Lake Sapance (6th cent. AD) 2,10371038
Cappadocia, Rom. province, see Asia Minor 2,14 5-146 Carthage: Punic Carthago (znd cent. BC); Roman Car-
thago (late 2nd cent. AD) 2,1130-1136 Celtic languages 3 3,79-82 Celtic Oppida, see Oppidum 10, 166-169 Celtic Oppidum, see Manching 8,220-223 Celts 3,82-99
Languages 2,152-155 Asia Minor: Successor states of the Hittites (12th-8/7th cents. BC) 2,117-131
Celts: the Galatian tribal states in Asia Minor 3,90-94
Asia Minor: Development of provinces in Asia Minor: Asia, Bithynia et Pontus, Lycia et Pamphylia (1st cent. BC-sth cent. AD) 2,145-146
Cilicia, Rom. province, see Asia Minor 2,145-146 Cologne, Rom. City (1st — 5th cents. BC), see Colonia
Christianity: The spread of Christianity (1st—4th cents. AD) 3,260-265
Agrippensis 3541-545
LIST OF MAPS
AND
274
ILLUSTRATIONS
Colonia Agrippensis: Colonia Claudia Ara Agrippensium; the Roman town (rst — 5th cents. AD) 3,541-
545
Etruscans
in the
Mediterranean,
see
Colonization
35557-578 Etrusci, Etruria: The Etruscan heartland: settlements
Colonia Augusta Nemausus, see Nemausus [2] 9,623624 Colonia Ulpia Traiana (Xanten); map of the town (2nd
cent. AD) 3,554-557 Coloniae: Colonies founded after the Gracchi in the Imperium Romanum 3,5 53-554 Coloniae: Colonies founded in Italy up to the Gracchi
and production centres 5,94 Etrusci, Etruria: Etruscan expansion 5,100—-101 Etrusci, Etruria: Etruscan exports (7th-5th cents. BC)
5,102-113 Eupalinus: The aquaduct of Eupalinus on Samos 5,176 Europe, [1]: Europe, according to Claudius Ptolemaeus (c. AD 150) 5,206—210
(c. 500-133 BC) 3,553-554
Coloniae: Colonies founded in Italy after the Gracchi
35553-5594
Galatia, Rom. Province, see Asia Minor 2,145-146 Galatian tribal states in Asia Minor, see Celts 3,90-94
Colonies founded in Italy and in the Imperium Romanum after the Gracchi, see Coloniae 3,5 53-5 54
Gallia/Gaul: Development of provinces (1st cent. BC — 4th cent. AD) 5,670-673
Colonization: Phoenicians, Greeks, and Etruscans in the Mediterranean area (ca. 11th — 6th cents. BC)
Garrisons in Germania, see Limes 7,566-572
3357-979 Commerce: trade routes in imperial Roman times according to ancient sources (1st — 3rd cents. AD) 3,642-644 Constantinople: Byzantium-Constantinopolis: Archeaological site-map with extant and reconstructed monuments (up to the 8th cent. AD) 3,709-715
Gerasa 5,791-792
Corduba: Colonia Patricia Corduba 3,786-788 Corinth: lower city 3,797-804 Corsica,
Rom.
province,
see
Sardinia
et
Corsica
12,983-984 Creta et Cyrenae, see Crete 3 937,
Crete: Hellenistic Crete, up to the Roman conquest (4th — 1st cents. BC); The double province of Creta et Cyrenae (96 BC- c. AD 395) 3,937 Cuneiform script, see Writing 15,765-775 Cyrenaica, see Limes 7,592—600 Cyrene, Grain donations, see Grain Trade 5,979 Daci, Dacia: The Province of Dacia (AD 106-271)
Gaul, see Caesar 2,907
Germanic
Archaeology:
Germanic
Cultural
Groups
5,804-808
Germanic Languages: Distribution 5,808—811 Germanic Migration and their incursions in the Roman Empire, see Migration of peoples 8,871-877
Gold: Gold deposits in Antiquity 5,912-913 Gordium: site-map and Acropolis 5,929 Graeco-Bactria: The Hellenistic Kingdoms
of Indo-
Bactria of the 2nd cent. BC 5,959-960
Graeco-Bactria: The Hellenistic Kingdoms of IndoBactria of the early rst cent. BC (c. roo — 90 BC) 5,959-960 Grain, important areas ofcultivation, see Wine 15,65 8—666
Grain Trade, Grain Import: Grain donations made by the city of Cyrene 5,979 Greece, see Dark Ages 4,913-917
Damascus/Dimasqa 4,5 4-57
Greek: Greek-speaking areas before Hellenism 5,1007 Greek dialects 5,1011-1018 Greeks in the Mediterranean, see Colonization 3,5 57-
Dark Ages [1]: Greece and the Aegean during the Dark Ages (12th — 9th cents. BC): the most important sites
Hadra ware: Distribution of Hadra ware 5,1077-—1078
4529-30
4,94-100
Dead Sea: Textual finds by the Dead Sea and in the Judaean desert 4,118-127 Delian League (478-404 BC) 4,201-205 Delphi: I, Layout plan 4,216 Diadochi and Epigoni: Kingdoms of the Diadochi (c.
303 BC) 4,339-343 Dialects, Greek, see Greek dialects 5,r0r1-1018
Didyma 4,390-395
Dioceses (Diocletian, in the early 4th century), see Diocletianus 4,437-438 Diocletianus: Dioeceses and provinces in the early 4th
century 4,437—438 Doric Migration 4,680—683 Doric / Northwest Greek (in the Greek mother country)
4,674-680 Dura-Europus 4,744-745 Earthquake, see Natural catastrophes 9,522-528 Education / Culture 4,826-832 Educational establishments in the Hellenistic period
(330-133 BC) 4,826-832 Egypt: Economy (4th- 2nd cent. BC) 4,849-853 Egypt in Roman times; administration 4,849-853
Ephesus: archaeological site-map 4,1024-1032 Etruria, Romanization, see Umbri, Umbria 15,93-98
578 Hasmonaeans: The Hasmonaean kingdom in Judaea and its perifery at the time of King Alexander Iannaeus (103-76 BC) 5,1162-1163
Hattusa
[1]: Archaeological
site-map of the empire
6,4-6
Hattusa [1]: Political map of the Hittite Empire (13th cent. BC) 6,11-12 Hellenistic States: 2nd cent. BC 6,89-96 Hellenistic States: 3rd cent. BC 6,89-96
Herculaneum: site plan 6,187-188 Heuneburg: the “prince’s seat” of the Heuneburg (6th/ 5th cents. BC) 6,294-296
Hieroglyphs, see Writing 15,765-775 Hispania, Iberia: Development of provinces in Hispania 6,388-391
Hispania, Iberia: Pre-Roman tions 6,392-395
languages and inscrip-
Hittite Empire, see Hattusa 6,11-12
Iberian culture, see Pyrenean peninsula 12,254-266 Illyricum, Development of provinces, see Moesi Moesia 9,415-119
Imperium Romanum, Development, see Rome 12,67 4680 Imperium Romanum, the provinces, see Rome 12,680-—
697
,
LIST OF MAPS
27,5
India, trade with: Overland and maritime routes to
India, based on ancient sources 6,773-777 Indo-Bactria, hellenistic kingdoms, see Graeco-Bactria
5959-960
Indo-European languages 6,78 5-789 Ionic: The Ionic language area in the Aegean 6 910-914
6,910-914 Iron Age cultures
in Italy, see Villanova
Culture
15,420-423 Italy, Augustan regions, see Regio, Regiones 12,438-
441 Italy, languages: Languages in ancient Italy before the spread of Latin 6,1012-1o018 Jerusalem: Jerusalem from the Middle Bronze Age to the invasion of Nebuchadnezzar (1800 — 587 BC) 6,1169-1178
Jerusalem: Jerusalem from the reconstruction in Achaemenid times to the destruction by Titus (520BC- AD 70) 6,1169-1178
Jerusalem: Jerusalem from the new founding by Hadrian to the Umayyad period (132 BC - 8 AD) 6,1169-1178
Kalkriese: topography and distribution of finds 7,9-10 Kypros: Settlement phases (7th millennium BC- 4th cent. AD) 7,118-125
Lambaesis: The three legionary camps and zones of urban construction (1st — 3rd cents. AD) 7,178-179 Latin Leagues, see Latin, Latium 7,280-284 Latini, Latium: Latin Leagues 7,280—284
Laurium: The ancient ore mining district of Laurium
7303-306
Legio: Distribution of the (25) legions in the Roman
empire (c. AD 14) 7,357-358
Legio: Distribution of the (33) legions in the Roman empire (c. AD 200) 7,357-358
Leptis Magna: City 7,419-424 Leptis Magna: Harbour (znd — 3rd cents. AD) 7,419-
424
Levant, Rom. Province, see Syria 14,53-64 Limes: The frontiers of the Roman Empire 7,561 Limes: The Britannic Limes 7,562-566 Limes: Lower and Upper Germanic and Raetian limes
Massalia: Archaeological finds (600 - 75 BC) 8,441Mauryas: The development of the Mauryan empire in the 4th-3rd cents. BC 8,498-5o01 Mediterranean area, important areas of cultivation, see Wine 15,65 8-666 Mesopotamia: Mesopotamia and the adjacent regions (3rd millennium — 6th cent. BC) 8,727-746 Migration of peoples: Migration of Germanic tribes (2nd to 6th cents. AD) 8,871-877 Migration of peoples: Migration of Germanic tribes and their incursions in the Roman Empire 8,871-877 Migration of peoples: Germanic Empires and settlement areas at 476 AD 8,871-877 Miletus [2]: Miletus (7th cent. BC- 6th cent. AD) 8,884-
895 Miletus [2]: Millawa(n)da/Miletus, settlement areas (ca. 19. — 6th cents. BC) 8,884-895 Mineral resources: Mineral raw material in the Aegean Region (ca. 4000 to 1100 BC) 8,934-939 Moesi, Moesia: Provincial development in Illyricum,
Moesia and Thracia 9,115-119 Mogontiacum: Schematic lay-out of the Roman camp and the civil settlements (ca. 13 BC to 4th cent. AD)
9119-123
Mycenae: Mycenae (14th — rrth cents. BC) 9,385-388 Mycenaean culture and archaeology: The spread of Mycenaean culture in the Aegean area 9,391-402
Naples (Bay of): Important towns and relevant villas, see Villa 15,416-419 Natural catastrophes: datable earthquakes based on ancient sources 9,522-528 Naucratis: Archeaological site-map (late 7th — 3rd cents. BC) 9,538— 541 Near East, see Pompeius 11,5 56-564 Nemausus [2]: Colonia Augusta Nemausis:
Archeo-
logical map of finds 9,623-624 Nimes, see Nemausus 9,623-624
Noricum, Development 10,448-454
of provinces, see Pannonia
Novaesium (Neuss): The legionary camp of Novaesium
9,832-834
7566-572
Odea in the Imperium Romanum, see Theatre 14,378-
588
Shh) Olives, important 15,658-666
Limes: The eastern frontier of theRoman empire 7, 583-
Limes: Territory of the Roman limes in Africa and Cyrene 7,592-600 Linear B: finding places and media (c. 1420 — 1180 BC)
7,615
Lycia et Pamphylia, Province, see Asia Minor 2,145146
Lycia: Settlement history from the 7th cent. BC to the 3rd cent. AD 7,916-920 Macedonia, Macedones: Development from the 7th cent. to 336 BC 8,61 Macedonia, Macedones: Macedonia, Epirus, Achaea: provincial development 8,65 Macedonia, Macedones: Macedonia in prehistoric times (14th — 8th cent.BC) 8,72-75 Manching: The Celtic oppidum of Manching (c. mid 3rd to 1st cents. BC) 8,220-223 Marble: Ancient marble deposits of supra-regional importance 8,282-285 Marzabotto: Plan of the Etruscan town (ca. E. 6th cent. —ca. M. 4th cent. BC) 8,423-425
areas
of cultivation,
see
Wine
Oppidum: Celtic, see Manching 8,220-223 Oppidum: Late Celtic oppida, based on literary and archaeological sources (2nd/rst cents. BC) 10,166-169
Oracles: The most important oracles of the GraecoRoman world (6th cent. BC — AD 392) 10,184 Ostia: site plan of the excavated areas (4th cent. BC — 4th cent. AD) 10,280-281 Paestum, see Poseidonia 11,678—682
Palmyra (Tadmor): Palmyra (Tadmor): Oasis and trade center in the centre of the Syrian desert 10,401-408
Palmyra/Palmyrene Empire, see Zenobia [2] 15,896900 Pannonia: Provincial development in Noricum and Pannonia (rst cent. BC — 3rd cent. AD) 10,448-454 Peloponnesian War: The Peloponnesian War (43 1-404 BC) 10,704-709
Pergamum: Citadel and Acropolis (7th cent. BC to late Roman time) 10,754-772 Pergamum: Urban development (7th BC to late Roman time) 10,75 4-772
LIST OF MAPS
AND
276
ILLUSTRATIONS
Pergamum: The Pergamene kingdom of the Attalids (240-c. 185 BC) 10,766-771 Pergamum: waterpipes, see Water supply 15,581-5 83 Persian Wars (c. 500-478/449 BC) 10,821-827
Roads: Public roads in North Africa in Roman times 12,63 5-639 Roads: Public roads in Asia Minor in Roman Times
12,645
Pertinax: Stages in the career of Publius Helvius Per-
Roads: public roads in the Balkan area in Roman times
tinax (AD 126-193) 10,854-857 Phoenicians in the Mediterranean,
12,646-647 Roman Empire, Frontiers, see Limes 7,583—-588
see Colonization
35557-578 Phoenicians, Poeni: [2] The Phoenician cities in the Eastern Mediterranean (c. 12th-7th cents. BC)
IT,149-153
Phoenicians, Poeni: [2] The Phoenician-Punic world in the western Mediterranean 11,149-153 Phyles, Attic, see Attica 2,3 17-318 Pilgrimage: Centres and approximate routes of Christian pilgrimages (4th-7th cents. AD; selection) I1,254-256
Pilgrimage routes, see Pilgrimage 11,25 4-256 Pireaeus: Ancient port of Piraeus 11,286-290 Poliochni: significant settlement phases (ca. 3200-2 100 BC) 11,465-469
Roman Empire, The Roman Empire at the time of Caesar, see Caesar 2,909-910 Roman Empire, Development, see Rome 12,680-697 Roman Empire, The Eastern frontier, see Limes 7,583588
Roman
Empire,
Division
of provinces,
see
12,680—697 Rome: Rome 1. Roma: The major monuments
Rome 12,669-
725
Rome: Rome z. Roma: Ancient city centre 12,669-725 Rome: Rome 3. Roma: The tribus (from the 6th cent. BC) and the Augustan regions 12,669-725 Rome: Rome 4. Roma: The aqueducts and arterial roads 12,669-725 Rome: The development of the Imperium Romanum
Pompeii: Pompeii (col. Veneria Cornelia Pompeianorum, 80 BC to 62/24.08. AD 79) 11,546-555 Pompeius [I 3] P. Magnus: Restructuring of the Near East by Pompey (67-48 BC) 11,5 56-564
Rome: The provinces of the Imperium Romanum (tst2nd cents. AD) 12,680-697
Pontos Euxeinos: ethnic groups, cities and significant
Saint-Bertrand-de-Comminges,
archaeological find spots (until c. 6th/7th cents. AD) 11,599-607 Pontos Euxeinos, Economic area, see Regnum Bospo-
ranum 12,443-450 Poseidonia, Paistos, Paestum 11,678-682
Priene 11,83 2-837
Princely graves, princely seats: Princely graves and princely seats in Central Europe (late Hallstatt and early La Téne periods) 11,853 Provinces, Roman (early 4th cent. BC), see Diocletianus Provinces, Roman in the Levant, see Syria 14,53-64
Ptolemaeus [65], Europe, according to Claudius Ptolemaeus (c. AD 150), see Europe/Europa [1] 5,206-210 Punic Wars: The First Punic War (264-241 BC) 12,205206
Wars:
The
Second
Punic
War
(218-201
BC)
forum,
Sardinia et Corsica: The Roman province(s) of Sardinia and Corsica (2nd half 3rd cent. BC to 2nd/3rd cents.
AD) 12,983-984
Pyrenean peninsula: Archaeological sites and finds of the Iberian culture (7th—1st cents. BC) 12,254-266
Hirbat Qumran
(ca. too BC to 68 AD)
12,3 61-367
Raeti, Raetia: Provincial development
in Raetia (1st
cent. BC - 3rd cent. AD) 12,382-387 Ravenna: Ravenna, Caesarea, Classis: Urban development (1st cent. BC-E. 6th cent. AD); and early chris-
tian sacred and profane buildings (5th — 8th cents. AD) 12,408-412 Regio, regiones: The Italian regions at the time of Augustus 12,438-441
Regnum Bosporanum: The Bosporan kingdom (5th cent. BC - rst cent. AD) 12, 443-450 Regnum Bosporanum: The economic area of the northern Black Sea region in Hellenistic times 12,443-450 Roads: Viae publicae in Italy in Roman times 12,622626
Roads: Public roads in Britain in Roman times 12,626—-
633
Roads: Public roads in Gaul in Roman timesRoads: Public roads in the Iberian peninsula in Roman times 1212,626—63 3634-63 5
Sardis : Sardis and vicinity 12,984-995 Sassanids: The Sassanid kingdom (up to ca. 300 AD) 13,7-10 Scythae: Groups within Scythia 13,149-160 Scythae: The Scythians: culture and finds (7th — 4th/3rd cents. BC) 13,149-160
Sicily: The Roman province of Sicilia (ca. 241 BC - 535
12,206-212
Qumran:
Gallo-Roman
see Forum 5,512-516 Samarra (up to ca. 850 AD) 12,920-923 Samos, see Eupalinus 5,176 Sanctuary: Sanctuaries of Apollo as central city shrines, see Apollo 1,85 3-855 Sanctuary: Sanctuary of Hercules in Ostia of the early 2nd cent. AD 12,946-949
Sardis: Sardis, layout plan 12,984-995
4,437-438
Punic
(3rd cent. BC — 2nd cent. AD) 12,674-680
AD) 13,424-425
Social Wars [3] 13,578-581 Soci: Italy under Roman rule: the Roman confederation (338—89/82 BC) 13,584-587 Sparta (1): Sparta, Lacedaemon, Laconica: Settlement
and more precisely state area of the Spartans/Lacedaemonians and the Perioikoi 13,691-708
Sparta (2): Sparta, Lacedaemon: Reconstruction according to Pausanias, Book 3 (ca. 160 AD) and archaeological findings 13,691-708 Successor states of the Hittites, see Asia Minor 2,117-
131 Syracusae (8th cent. BC — 3rd/4th cents. BC) 14,40-43 Syria: Roman
provinces in the Levant (rst cent. BC -
4th cent. AD) 14,53-64 Tadmor, see Palmyra 10,401-408
Theatre: Theatra and odea in the Imperium Romanum (2nd cent. AD) 14,378-399 Thebes [1]: W3st/Njwt, the “Hundredtowered” Thebes/Diospolis Magna: City, temple and necropoleis
14,403—408
277
LIST OF MAPS
Thraci, Thracia: Territory of the Thracian tribes and the regions of Dacia, Moesia and Thracia 14,601-615 Thracia, Provincial Development, see Moesi, Moesia 9,11§-119 Tiryns: Upper and Lower Citadel 14,727-731 Tribus: Populus Romanus: the 4 urban and 31 rural tribus 14,906-912 Trier, see Augusta [6] Treverorum 2,3 44-350 Triumph, triumphal procession: Pompa triomphalis: route of the triumphal procession through Rome
14,945-948 Troy: Troy: Citadel and lower city 14,968-981
Tyrus and Palaetyrus 15,71-74 Umbri, Umbria: The Romanization
of Umbria Etruria (3rd — 2nd cents. BC) 15,93-98
and
Urartu and eastern Anatolia 15,121 Veii: Veii Vei(s)/Veii (Municipium Augustum Veiens):
City and Necropoleis 15,254-257 Venetic: The major find spots of Venetic inscriptions, in Venetic or Latin script (5th — rst cents. BC) 15§15,254-257277-278
Victories won by M. Aurelius Asclepiades 2,28 1-284 Villa: important towns and relevant villas on the Bay of Naples (Puteolanus sinus) 15,416-419 Villanova Culture: Iron Age cultures in Italy (from c. 12th cent. BC) 15,420-423 Water pipes on Samos, see Eupalinus 5,176 Water supply: 2: Pergamum, course of the water pipes (lay-out plan) 15,581-583 Wine: important areas of cultivation in the Mediterranean area 15,658—-666
Writing: the approximate core distribution areas of hieroglyphic, cuneiform, alphabetic and_ syllabic scripts in the eastern Mediterranean (ca. 12th — 7th cents. BC) 15,765-775 Xenophon [2]: The ’Anabasis’ of Cyrus the Younger and the return march of the Ten Thousand led by Xenophon (spring 401 to winter 399 BC) 15,824-
833
Zenobia [2]: The Palmyrene Kingdom (AD 235-271) and Empire (AD 272-273) 15,896-900
278
LIST OF MAPS AND ILLUSTRATIONS List of Illustrations
Asia Minor: The development of provinces in Asia
Abacus: Abacus
Assembly buildings: Different types of bouleuteria from Asia Minor (ground-plans) 2, 174-177
Minor 2, 145-146
(ancient calculating table), rst cent.
AD (schematic reconstruction) 1, 2-3
Achaemenids [2]: Stemma 1, 77-79 Achilles, [1] Myth: Stemma 1, 89-94
Assyria, Rulers, see Mesopotamia 8, 730-733 Athens [1]: City 2, 253-272
Acragas, Temple of the Dioscuri, see Column 3, 5 58-
Athens, Athens Athens, Athens,
590 Adoptive emperors: Stemma 1, 148-151
Aegae, see Palace ro, 358-360 Age(s): Five roman models for classifying the stages of life (3 to 7 stages) 1, 332-333 Agora: Megara Hyblaea, agora. Archaic 1, 349-355 Agora: Priene, agora. End of 3rd cent. BC 1, 349-355 Akephalos: Depiction of an akephalos according to P. Berol. inv. 5026 (PGM II 166) 1, 411-412 Alexander Mosaic 1, 486-490 Alphabet: Stemma 1, 529-541
Alphabetic scripts, see Asia Minor 2, 15 5-156 Alphabetic scripts, see Writing 15, 765-775 Altar: Olympia, ash altar of Zeus (reconstruction)
1,
544-546 Altar: Pompeii, altar of Zeus Meilichios, with volutes;
3rd cent. BC 1, 546-547 Altar: Auriol, table-shaped altar, 5th cent. AD 1, 547-
549 Altar: Magnesia on the Maeander, monumental altar 1,
544-546 Altar: circular altar with bucrania (Hellenistic-Roman)
I, 546-547
Amphitheatre: Rome, Colosseum (ground-plan). Flavian (2nd half of the rst cent. AD.) 1, 610
Amphitheatre:
Rome, Colosseum
(cross-section and
front elevation). Flavian (2nd half of the rst cent.
[1]: Acropolis 2, 253-261 [1]: Agora (site map) 2, 263-265 Agora, Fountain-house, see Wells 15, 621
Agora, Southern Stoa I, banqueting room, see
Banquet 2, 490-494
Athens, Agora, tholos, cylinder construction, Tholos 14, 591-592 Athens, Asclepieum, see Asclepius 2, 104-105
see
Athens, Erechteion, see Window 15, 647-652 Athens, Parthenon, Athena Parthenos, see Gold-ivory
technique 5, 920-923 Athens, Parthenon, Cella frieze, see Frieze 5, 557-558 Athens, Parthenon, Groundplan, see Parthenon 10, 566 Athens, Parthenon, Drawing depicting the structure of an epistylion, see Epistylion 4, 1149-1151 Attalids [5]: The dynasty of the Attalids 2, 305-307 Augustus: The Julio-Claudian dynasty 2, 363-376 Aulis, Stepped well, see Wells 15, 621-624 Aureus: Table 2, 386-388 Auriol, table-shaped altar, see Altar 1, 547-549 Automata: Compressive force 2, 415-417 Automata: Rotative motion 2, 415-417 Automata: Steam power 2, 415-417 Auxiliary fort, see Limes 7, 561
Babylon, Late Babylonian house, see House 6, 537-538 Babylon, ‘Esagil’ temple complex, see Esagil 5, 57-58 Babylon, Etemenanki temple tower, see Ziggurat 15,
931-932
Babylonian, Rulers, see Mesopotamia 8, 730-733
AD.) 1, 610
Amulet for protection, see Magic, Magi 8, 128-131 Anathyrosis: contact surfaces of two column sections 1, 648
Bacchus: Eleusinian initiation scene 2, 449-451
Banquet: Athens, banqueting room with seven klinai. 2nd half of the 5th cent. BC (reconstruction) 2, 490-
494
Angle triglyph problem 1, 695-697 Antigonus [1] Monophthalmus: descendants (stemma) 1, 748-749 Antioch [1], St. Babylas, see Central-plan building 3,
Baptisterium: Dura-Europus, house church with baptisterium, ground-plan 2, 498-499 Barcids: The dynasty of the Barcids 2, 506-507
T18-122 Antipater [1]: Descendants (Stemma) 1, 770-771
Bases, see Columns 3, 590-595 Basilica: Leptis Magna, basilica, after AD 210 (recon-
Antissa, apse house, see Apse 1, 912-914 Apse: Antissa, Apse house (Geometrical; groundplan reconstructed) 1, 912-914 Apse: Olympia, workshop of Phidias (converted into an early Christian church) 1, 912-914 Apse house, see Lefkandi 7, 348-349 Ara Pacis Augustae: Rome, Ara Pacis. Ground-plan with names of figures represented on it 1, 951-953 Arausio (Orange), Theatre, see Theatre 14, 387-390 Arches, construction of, see Vaults and arches, construction of 15, 243-245 Archimedean Screw, see Water lifting devices 15, 571 Argeads: Stemma 1, 1057-1058 Arzawa, The dynasty of the kings, see Mira 9, 48-50 As: Table 2, 88-80 Asclepius: Athens, Asclepieum. East part of the Asclepieum as reconstructed by TRAVLOS in the form of a dual sanctuary; 4th cent. BC 2, ro4—105 Asia Minor: The dynasties of Karchemish and Malida 2 Lo —128
Asia Minor: Alphabetic scripts 2,
15 5-156
struction of interior) 2, 525-531 Basilica: Leptis Magna, forum and basilica, after AD
210 (groundplan) 2, 525-531 Basilica: [1] Pompeii: basilica, c.
120 BC (reconstructed
elevation) 2, 525-531 Basilica: [1] Pompeii: basilica, c. 120 BC (groundplan) 2, §25-531 Basilica: Ravenna, S. Appollinare in Classe: basilica, rst half of the 6th cent. AD (reconstructed ground-plan with hypothetical atrium) 2, 525-531 Bassae, temple of Apollo, see Phigalia 11, 6-7 Baths: Gortys, bath, 3rd cent. BC; groundplan 2, 5 53-
554
Baths: [1] Olympia: Greek bath (building ITI), c. 3 50 BC (reconstruction) 2, 553-554 Baths: Timgad: the small central baths, 2nd cent. AD (ground-plan) 2, 554-556 Battiads: The dynasty of the Battiads of Cyrene 2, 560— 561
Beard 2, 567-568 Belevi, Mausoleum, see Funerary architecture 5, 597599
279
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
Berytus 2, 610-611
Bible, differences of numbering, see Vulgate 15, 535— 337
Bible, booktitles in the Hebrew bible, see Vulgate 15,
Codex: Cover of the Nag Hammadi codices; schematic representation of the inside 3, 497-502 Codex: Structure of the codex 3, 497-502 Colonization: Chronological synopsis 3, 557-578 Coins, Roman, see Aureus 2, 386-388
53) yeoewe
Bisutun 2, 675-676
Board games: stone gaming-table from Epidaurus for the ‘five-line game‘ (Epidaurus museum, 4th — 3rd cents. BC) 2, 691-693
Book: Scroll (opened) 2, 722-724
Boscoreale, see Villa 15, 414-416 Bouleuteria from Asia Minor, see Assembly buildings 2,
174-177
Colonization: Doric colonization 3, 558-559 Colonization: Ionian colonization 3, 560-561 Columns: Doric column Agrigento, Temple of the Dioscuri (480 — 460 BC) 3, 588-590 Columns: columns and bases 3, 590-595 Columns: Corinthian capitals 3, 595-596 Columns: Tuscan half columns, Rome, Colosseum, 80
AD 3, 596-597
Bricks; Brick stamps: Types of roofing using brick tiles 2, 764-766 Bronze casting, see Sculpting, technique of 13, 128-129 Cadmus and the Spartoi, see Thebes [2] 14, 414-419 The Caecilii Metelli: Stemma 2, 874-882 Calendar: Reconstruction of the Fasti Antiates, i.e. the pre-Julian Roman calendar 2, 938-951 Calendar: Intercalation in the Roman and Julio-Gregorian calendars 2, 942-945 Canalization: Examples of ancient canalization 2,
Columns: Openwork capital; Constantinople, Hagia Sophia, west conch (6th cent. AD) 3, 597 Conchoid, see Nicomedes [3] 9, 734-735 Constantinople, Hagia Sophia, see Central-plan building 3, 118-122 Constantinople, Hagia Sophia, see Columns 3, 597 Constantinus, [1] C. I.: Stemma of the family of Con-
Canals: Section of the canal built by Xerxes between Tripiti and Nea Roda 2, 1037-1038 Capital of the Hagia Sophia, Constantinople, see Columns 3, 597 Capitals, Corinthian, see Columns 3, 595-596 Capri, Villa of Tiberius, see Villa 15, 411-413 Carpentum, see Reaping machines 12, 415-416 Carts, types of , see Land Transport 7, 204-206 Cart-wheels, see Land Transport 7, 204-206 Castel Sant’Angelo, Rome, see Mausoleum Hadriani 8,
Constellations: [3]. Constellations south of the zodiac
1033-1037
4,
504-505
(1st
cent. BC) 3, 53-55
Central-plan building: Antiochia [1] on the Orontes: St. Babylas, AD 379/380 (ground-plan) 3, 118-122 Central-plan building: Spalatum (Split): Mausoleum of Diocletian, early 4th cent. AD (ground-plan) 3, 118tipap) Central-plan building: Ravenna: S. Vitale, consecrated AD 547 (ground-plan) 3, 118-122 Central-plan building: Constantinople: Hagia Sophia, AD 532-537 nd 5 58-563 (ground-plan) 3, 118-122 Cerveteri, chamber tomb, see Funerary architecture 5,
599-600
4,
1188-1190
1188-1190
Construction material, quarrying and transport, see Construction technique 3, 735 Construction technique: Greek construction technique using ashlars: quarrying and transport of building material 3, 735 Construction technique: Roman construction technique: construction of a core made of opus caementicium and various facings of tuffa and brick 3, 736TE
Catapult: catapult according to Vitruvius 3, 10-12 Catapult: gastraphetes according to Hero (r) 3, 12 Catapult: Trigger mechanism of the gastraphetes according to Hero 3, 12 Catapult: Torsion spring of a catapult (schematic representation) 3, Io-12 Cavalry: Roman riding harness; reconstruction
stantine the Great 3, 715-720 Constellations: [1]. Zodiac 4, 1188-1190 Constellations: [2]. Constellations north of the zodiac
Chalice krater, see Perspective 10, 852-853 Chronographer of 3 54: The November leaf in the Chronographer of AD 354 (Codex Romanus Ims, Barb. Lat. 2154, fol. 22) represents an ingenious summarizing depiction of the cult of Isis 3, 275-276 Clocks: Sundials 3, 461 Clock: Water-clock of Ctesibius; hypothetical reconstruction (after Vitr. 9,8,2-7) 3, 462-463 Clothing (Greek) 3, 474-477 Clothing (Roman) 3, 477-481 Cochlear(e): Table 3, 494-495
Construction technique: Greek construction technique
using cut stone : joggling and clamping 3, 735 Construction technique: Greek construction technique : various lifting devices 3, 735 Contours of columns, see Entasis 4, 996-997 Corinthian vases: Vessel shapes in Corinthian pottery 3, 792-796 Cornelii Scipiones: The Cornelii Scipiones and their family relations (3rd/znd cents. BC) 3, 816-824 Corpus Hippocraticum, see Hippocrates [6] of Cos 6,
354-356 Crane, see Deus ex machina 4, 323-324
Crane, see Lifting devices 7, 546-548 Crockery: Bronze vessels (depot find) from Augusta Raurica/Augst (Roman) 3, 951-953
Crypta, Cryptoporticus: Tivoli, Villa Hadriana, Crypta below the temple of Aphrodite 3, 967 Ctesiphon, Underground brick-built tomb with barrel vault, see Funerary architecture 5, 590-592 Cuneiform script 3, 1000-1002 Cursus honorum: Republican cursus honorum at the time of Cicero 3, 1020-1022 Curvature: Schematic representation of the curvature of a Greek temple 3, 1027 Cutlery: Silver spoons (ligulae and cochlearia) from Augusta Raurica/Augst (Roman) 3, 1030-1032 Cynicism: The Cynic movement: the representatives of the earlier phase (4th-3rd cents. BC) according to Diogenes Laertius (stemma) 3, 1052-1060 Cypriot script: Cypriot script (‘syllabaire commun’, standardized form) 3, 1071-1073
LIST OF MAPS
AND
280
ILLUSTRATIONS
Cypselids: The Cypselids and their external connections (stemma) 3, ro81-1082
Dardanidae: Stemma 4, 86-87 Daunian vases 4, 105-106 Defixio: Curse tablet from Hadrumentum (Tunisia) 4,
175-177
Deinomenids:
The Deinomenids
and the Emmenids
Entasis: Contours of ancient columns 4, 996-997
Ephesus, Library of Celsus, see Library 7, 498-503 Ephesus, Newer Artemision, see Dipteros 4, 530-532 Epic: The ancient epic: an inventory 4, 1042-1051 Epidaurus: Sanctuary of Asclepius and of Apollo Maleatas 4, 1086-1089 Epidaurus, stone gaming-table, see Board games 2,
691-693
(stemma) 4, 186
Deinostratus: Construction of the quadratrix according to Deinostratus 4, 186-188 Delos, Temple of Apollo of the Athenians, see Window
Epidaurus, see Theatre 14, 383-387
Epinetron: Production of the roving with the help of the epinetron 4, 1114
15, 647-652
Epirus, Province, see Macedonia, Macedones 8, 65
324
Epistylion: [2] Athens, Parthenon (drawing depicting the structure of an epistylion in three sections) 4, 1149-1151 Epistylion: [3] Priene, Temple of Athena (view of one of the long sides) 4, 1149-1151
Delphi: Sanctuary of Athena, see Tholos 14, 591-592 Delphi: II, Sanctuary of Apollo (Detailed plan) 4, 216221 Deus ex machina: hypothetical reconstruction 4, 323-
Didyma: Cult precinct beside the Sacred Road from Miletus to Didyma (perspectival aerial view from
SW) 4, 390-395 Diocletianus: Mausoleum in Spalatum (Split), see Cen-
tral-plan building 3,
118-122
Diocletianus, Palace in Spalatum, see Palace 10, 368aN,
Diocletianus: Administration of the Empire after Diocletian and Constantine (stemma) 4, 437-438 Dipteros: Ephesus: Newer Artemision (schematic ground-plan) 4, 530-532 Discus of Phaestus 4, 541-542 Divination: communication model according to Cicero, De divinatione 4, 574-577
Epistemology: Schematic representation of Stoic epistemology and theory of action 4, 1136-1137 Epistylion: 1. Paestum, Temple of Hera I (monolithic epistylion) 4,
1149-1151
Eretria, so-called House of the Mosaics, see House 6,
543-544
Esagil: ’Esagil’ temple complex in Babylon (6th cent.
BC) 5, 57-58 Etruscan: Text sample: opening lines of the dedicatory inscription Pyrgi A 5, 90-92 Etrusci, Etruria: The Etrusca disciplina in the context of the Roman system of divination 5, 116-120 Exedra: Tenos, fountain exedra (Hellenistic); top view 5, 261-262
Divination, system of, Roman, see Etrusci, Etruria 5, 116-120
Fabius [I 21] F. Maximus, Q.: The Fabii Maximi and their family connections (4th cent. BC to rst cent.
Dodekatropos, see Planets 11, 328-334 Dodona, Dodone: Sanctuary of Zeus (site map) 4, 605-
Fasti Antiates, Reconstruction,
607
Dome, construction of domes: Domes with circular and square bases 4, 624-627 Doric capitals, see Echinus 4, 786 Doric colonization, see Colonization 3, 558-559 Doric columns, see Columns 3, 588-590 Duenos inscription: Duenos inscription; schematic
view 4, 734-736
Duplication of the cube: the mechanical solution by means of an angle bar, attributed to Plato 4, 741-743 Dur Sarrukin, palace of Sargon II, see Palace ro, 358360
Dura-Europus, house church, see Baptisterium 2, 498-
499
Echinus, [3] E., Echinus: Different forms of echinus on Doric capitals 4, 786 Egg-and-dart moulding: Miletus: Egg-and-dart moulding in relief between painted ornamental bands, from the temple on the Kalabak Tepe (6th cent. BC) 4, 840 Egypt, House of the Amarnaperiod, see House 6, 537-
538 Ekphrasis: Garden architecture in the house of Loreius Tiburtinus (Pompeii) 4, 879-880 Eleusis [1]: Sanctuary of Demeter (site map) 4, 913-917 Eleusis [1]: Mystery, initiation scene, see Bacchus 2,
449-451
Emmenids, see Deinomenids 4, 186 Ensigns: Ensigns of the Roman army 4, 992-996
Ensigns: the standards of the Roman army during the Principate 4, 992-996
AD) 5, 292
see Calendar
2, 938-
951 Fayence: Glazing techniques 5, 319-320 Fibula, see Pins r1, 282-283 Fish-bone perspective, see Perspective 10, 852-853 Flavian dynasty, see Vespasianus 15, 334-338 Forum:
Functions
of the different areas, Ostia
(2nd
cent. AD) 5, 510-512 Forum:
Gallo-Roman
forum
with,
respectively,
a
temple and a transverse basilica at the two narrow sides. Lugdunum Convenarum/Saint-Bertrand-deComminges (1st—2nd cents. BC) 5, 512-516 Forum: Forum Romanum, 42 BC with the area of the Comitium built over by the Forum Iulium 5, 523-526 Forum: Rome, Forum Traiani (t0o7-112 AD) 5, 526-
529
Fresco: Layers of plaster in a Pompeian fresco (schematic representation) 5,
550-551
Fresco: Setting of the mortar and binding of the pigments 5, 550-551 Frieze: visual angles for looking at the cella frieze of the Parthenon 5, 557-558 Funerary architecture: House tomb with gable roof. Tomb of Cyrus in Pasargadae (2nd half 6th cent. BC), north-west face 5, 590-592 Funerary architecture: Funerary tower of Iamblichou, Palmyra (AD 63) 5, 590-592 Funerary architecture: Rock tomb facade from Petra; so-called Step Tomb (1st—2nd cents. AD) 5, 590-592 Funerary architecture: Underground brick-built tomb with barrel vault. Near Ctesiphon (2nd cent. AD) 5,
590-592
281
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
Funerary architecture: Vergina, so-called Tomb of Philip: burial chamber with vestibule and tumulus (4th-3rd cents.), reconstruction 5, 596-597
Funerary Architecture: Mausoleum of Belevi, 3rd cent. BC (reconstruction) 5, 597-599 Funerary Architecture: Cerveteri, chamber tomb under monumental tumulus. Tomba r del tumulo III - della tegola dipinta, 2nd half 7th cent. BC 5, 599-600 Funerary Architecture: Pillar monument with columned front above 5, 600-602 Funerary architecture: Funerary monument of Aefionius Rufus in Sarsina (rst cent. BC) 5, 600-602
Funerary Architecture: Deus Rediculus’ (mid 2nd cent. AD), east face. Rome, Via Appia 5, 602 Furniture: ancient furniture 5, 620-624 Futhark, see Runes 12, 781-782 Gardens [2]: Gardens and courtyards at the villa of Torre Annunziata (Oplontis) 5, 694-697 Garden architecture in Pompeii, see Ekphrasis 4, 879880
Gastraphetes, see Catapult 3, 12 Gates, porches: Athens, Acropolis: Propylaea, c. 530 BC (reconstructed ground-plan) 5, 706-709 Gates, porches: Athens, Acropolis: Propylaea, 437-432 BC (ground-plan) 5, 706-709
Heating: hypocaust heating 6, 28-29 Helmet: helmet types 6, rr1-115 Herodes [1] I Herod the Great: Stemma 6, 254-256 Hippocrates, [5] H. of Chios: Three geometrical figures
6, 351-354 Hippocrates[6] of Cos: Writings of the Corpus Hippocraticum (Selection) 6, 354-356 Hippopede, see Planets 11, 320-323 Hispania, Iberia: The Northeast Iberian script 6, 395396 Hittite kings and queens, see Hattusa 6, 15 Homerus [x]: Internal chronological structure of the Iliad 6, 455-458 Homerus [1]: Structure of the Iliad 6, 455-458 Horned crown: Shapes of Ancient Oriental horned crowns: : chronological and geographical distribution 6, 496 House: Babylon, late Babylonian domestic dwelling 6,
537-538
House: Egyptian house, Amarna 6, 537-538 House: Olynthus, pastas-house 6, 541 House: Piraeus, prostas-house 6, 541-543
House: Orraon (Ammotopus) 6, 543
House: Eretria, so-called House of the Mosaics 6, 543544
Gates, porches: Miletus: Market Gate, c. AD 120 (ground-plan) 5, 706-709 Gates, porches: Augusta Treverorum (Trier): Porta
House:
Nigra, 2nd half 2nd cent. AD (plan of the ground floor) 5, 706-709 Geometrical figures, two-dimensional, see Mathemat-
House: House: House: House
ics 8, 469-474 Gestures: Selection of Egyptian gestures, based on the iconography of the Old and Middle Kingdoms 5, 831-832
Glass: Roman glass works near Niederzier, district of Diiren. Cross-section of a reconstructed furnace (4th cent. AD) 5, 860-861
Glazing techniques, see Fayence 5, 319-320 Gold-ivory technique: Inside view of the statue of Athena Parthenos: hypothetical reconstruction 5, 920-923 Gortys, bath, see Baths 2, 553-554 Gracchian agrarian commission, see Sempronius II 13, 246-252
Greece, systems of writing 5, L001-1002 Groma (schematic depiction) 5, 1033-1034 Gymnasium: Gymnasium according to Vitruvius
LO50-1059 Gymnasium: Olympia, Gymnasium ILO50-1059 Hadrumetum
and Palaistra
5,
5,
(Tunisia), Curse tablet, see Defixio 4,
175-177
Hagia Sophia (Constantinopolis), see Central-plan building 3, 118-122 Hagia Sophia (Constantinopolis), see Columns 3, 597 Hagia Triada, see Linear A 7, 612-614 Hairstyle: I. Greek women’s hairstyles 5, 1100-1101 Hairstyle: II. Roman women’s hairstyles 5, 1102-1104 Hallstatt period fibula, see Pins 11, 282-283 Haruspices: Terminology of ancient haruspicy 5, 1154 Haruspicy, Terminology, see Haruspices 5, 1154
Hasmonaeans: Stemma 5, 1162-1163 Hattusa [2]: Summary of Hittite kings and queens 6, 15 Headgear: Greek and Roman headgear 6, 18-20
544 House:
Rome, Palatine, Etruscan patrician house 6,
Atrium house 6, 545-546 Ostia: tenement building 6, 545-546 Pompeii: Casa dei Capitelli figurati 6, 545-546 Pompeii: Casa del Fauno 6, 545-546 tomb, see Funerary architecture 5, 590-592
Hypocaust heating, see Heating 6, 28-29
Hypogaeum: Royal necropolis of Sidon 6, 637-638 lalysus, fountain-house, see Wells 15, 621-624 Iliad, see Homerus [1] 6, 455-458 Imperial Villa, see Piazza Armerina 11, 229-233 Ionian colonization, see Colonization 3, 560-561 ‘Iraq al-Amir, see Palace 10, 366-368 Isis: Epithets of Isis 6, 966-972 Italy, alphabetical scripts 6, 1007-1011 Italy, Languages of: languages and their interrelation 6, 1012-1018
Iynx [1]: Shapes of iynges 6, 1157 lynx [1]: Handling of the iynx 6, 1157 Julio-Claudian dynasty, see Augustus 2, 363-376 Julio-Gregorian calendars, see Calendar 2, 942-945 Karchemish, dynasty of, see Asia Minor 2, 118-123 Karchemish: Dynasty of the Hittite secundogeniture of Karchemish (Stemma) 7, 20-23 Knossos: Palace (Ground-plan) III, 79-90 Knossos, tablet, see Linear B 7, 616-617
Kymation: Frontal view of ornament and side view 7, Tey] Laconian vase painting: Vessel shapes of Laconian pottery 7, 147-148 La Graufesenque, Potter’s kiln, see Pottery, production of 11, 727-730 Leptis Magna, forum and basilica, see Basilica 2, 525-
531 Land Transport: Harnessing in Roman times 7, 201-
204 Land Transport: Different types of cart-wheels 7, 204206
Land Transport: Types of Roman carts (1st—2nd cents. AD) 7, 204-206
LIST OF MAPS
AND
282
ILLUSTRATIONS
Laurion, Ore-washing plant, see Metallurgy: 8, 780-
Mesopotamia: selected rulers in Babylonia and Assyria (Overview) 8, 730-733
781
Lefkandi: Tripartite apsidal building (‘Heroon’) 7, 348-
349
Messapian pottery: Vessel shapes in Messapian pottery
8, 758-759
Legionary camp, Neuss, see Novaesium 9, 832-834
Library: Pergamon. Library in the sanctuary of Athena (ground-plan), as of the rst halfof the 2nd cent. BC 7,
Messene [2]: Asklepieion (ground-plan) 8, 762-765 Metallurgy: Ore-washing plant at Laurion 8, 780-781 Metre: Metrical terms (overview) 8, 816-819
498 Library: Ephesus. Library of Celsus, rst half 2nd cent.
Metre: Table with an overview of Greek and Latin me-
AD (front elevation) 7, 498-503 Licinii Crassi: The Licinii Crassi and their family connections (stemma) 7, 520-535 Lifting devices: crane from the Tomb of the Haterii 7,
Miletus [2]: Market Gate, see Gates, porches: 5, 706—
546-548 Limes: construction stages (reconstruction) 7, 561
Limes: Main buildings in an auxiliary fort 7, 561 Lindus: Acropolis with sanctuary of Athena, 300 BC (reconstruction) 7, 609-612 Linear A: Linear A script: tablet Hagia Tridia no. 88 7, 612-614
Linear B: Linear B tablet from Knossos 7, 616-617 Linear B: Linear B: numerals/number signs 7, 616-617 Linear B: Linear B: deciphered syllabic characters 7, 616-617
Liturgy: Types of liturgy in Christian antiquity 7, 73 5Vow
Lock, Key: Greek and Roman locks 7, 766-768 Loom, see Textiles, production of 14, 344-345 Lucianus [1]:Works by Lucian (selection) 7, 838-841 Lugdunum Conyenarum, forum, see Forum 5, 512-516 Macellum: Puteoli (modern Pozzuoli), remains of macellum (ground-plan) 8, 88-90
Magic, Magi: Amulet for the protection against the female demon Lamastu 8, 128-131 Mago: Magonids (stemma) 8, 177-181 Magnesia [2] on the Maeander, Temple of Artemis, see
Pseudodipteros 12, 116 Magnesia
on the Maeander,
tre 8, 820-822
709
Miletus [2]: the temple on the Kalabak Tepe, see Eggand-dart moulding 4, 840 Mills: Ancient mills 8, 9t0-915 Mira: The dynasty of the kings of Arzawa/Mira, late rsth to late 13.th cent. BC (stemma) 9, 48-50 Money boxes: Ancient money boxes 9, 144-145 Monogram:
Greek
monograms
on
inscriptions
and
coins 9, 166-167
Murus Gallicus: Cross-section of a murus Gallicus (reconstruction) 9, 316-317 Music: the two systems of notation 9, 342 Musical instruments: Ancient Orient 9, 349-350
Musical instruments: Egypt 9, 350-352 Musical instruments: Ancient Israel 9, 353-354 Musical instruments: Greece 9, 3 54-362 Musical instruments: Rome 9, 362-363 Nag Hammadi codices, Cover, see Codex 3, 497-502 Nenning (Saarland), see Villa II 15, 414-416 Nestorpalace, see Pylos [2] 12, 243-245 Neuss, Legionary camp, see Novaesium 9, 832-834 Nicomachus [9] N. of Gerasa: Diagrams of polygonal numbers 9, 731-734 Nicomedes [3]: Conchoid, mechanical device for producing the conchoid 9, 734-735 Niederzier, district of Diren, Roman glass works, see
Glass 5, 860-861 monumental
altar, see
Altar 1, 544-546
Mahdia, ship, see Shipbuilding 13, 390-392 Malida, dynasty of, see Asia Minor: 2, 118-123 Malgata, Palace of Amenophis III, see Palace ro, 362-
364
Masks: Greek theatre masks 8, 431-434 Masonry: Examples of ancient masonry techniques 8,
434-440
Mastaba: Isometric schematic drawing of a Mastaba tomb (4th Dynasty) 8, 449 Mathematics: igm-ibigim-problem 8, 461-465 Mathematics: Two-dimensional geometrical figures and the terms for them according to Euclid’s definitions 8, 469-474
Mausoleum: hypothetical reconstruction of the east side 8, 501-503 Mausoleum Augusti: schematic front elevation 8, Mausoleum Hadriani: Castel Sant’ Angelo, groundplan of the southern half 8, 504-505 Measure of length, Roman, see Pes 10, 859 Measure of length, Greek, see Pous 11, 740 Measure of volume, Roman, see Quadrantal 12, 308 Measure of volume, Roman, see Sextarius 13, 364-365
Notation, system of, see Music 9, 342
Number: Number signs and number systems (Overview table) 9, 887-889 Number signs, see Linear B 7, 616-617 Numerals, see Linear B 7, 616-617
Ogam: Table of the Ogam script 10, 65 Olympia, ash altar of Zeus, see Altar 1, 544-546 Olympia:
Greek
bath
(reconstruction),
see Baths
2,
553-554
Olympia, Gymnasium, see Gymnasium 5, 1050-1059 Olympia: Overall plan with stadium and hippodrome 10, 94-108
Olympia: Plan of the sanctuary 10, 94-108 Olympia, temple of Zeus, see Peripteros 10, 801-802 Olympia, workshop of Phidias, see Apse 1, 912-914 Olynthus, pastas-house, see House 6, 541 Oplontis, villa, see Gardens [2 5, 694-697 Opus caementicium, see Construction technique 3,
736-739 Orchomenus, ’false’ corbelled vault, see Vaults and arches 15, 243-245 Ornaments: Greek vase painting 10, 224-229
Ornaments: Sculpture and architecture 10, 229-230
Megara, Fountain-house, see Wells 15, 621-624
Orraon (Ammotopus), see House 6, 5 43 Ostia, functions of the different forum areas, see Forum
Megara Hyblaea, see Agora 1, 349-355 Menelaus [6] of Alexandria: Theorem (Transversal Theorem) 8, 681-682
Ostia, tenement building, see House 6, 545-546 Ostia, harbour district of, see Portus [1] 11, 665-666
of Menelaus
§9 10-512
283
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
Ostia, sanctuary of Hercules, see Sanctuary 12, 946949
Paestum, temple of Hera I, see Epistylion: 1. 4,
1149-
aetyat Palace: [2] Bityiikkale: palace complex of Hattusa (13th cent. BC; ground-plan) ro, 3 58-360 Palace: Achaemenid palace complex at Persepolis, begun under Darius [1] I (ground-plan) ro, 3 58-360 Palace: Dur Sarrukin: palace of Sargon II (722-705 BC; ground-plan) 10, 358-360 Palace: [4] Palace of Amenophis III at Malqata (groundplan) ro, 362-364 Palace: [5] Aegae (Vergina): Palace (late 4th cent. BC;
ground-plan) 10, 365-366 Palace: [6] ‘ Iraq al-Amir (Jordan): Palace of Hyrcanus [x] (187 BC; ground-plan) ro, 366-368 Palace: [7] Rome: Palatine (overall ground-plan) ro,
368-373 Palace: [8] Spalatum: Palace of Diocletian (early 4th cent. AD; ground-plan) 10, 368-373 Palatine (Rome), see Palace 10, 368-373 Palmyra, funerary tower of Iamblichou, see Funerary architecture 5, 590-592 Pantheon: ground-plan (3rd building phase; AD 118125) and cross-section 10, 467-468 Papyrus: Manufacture of writing papyrus 10, 493-494 Parthenon, cella frieze, see Frieze 5, 557-558 Parthenon, Athena Parthenos, see Gold-ivory technique 5, 920-923 Parthenon: ground-plan and distribution of the architectural sculptures (447-432 BC) and positions of the sculptures 10, 566 Pasargadae, tomb of Cyrus, see Funerary architecture
55 590-592 Pentathlon: Example of a pentathlon competition ro,
727-728 Perachora, see Wells 15, 621-624
Pergamon, Library in the sanctuary of Athena, see Library 7, 498 Peripteros: Olympia: Temple of Zeus (472-457 BC); ground-plan ro, 801-802 Persepolis, Achaemenid palace complex, see Palace ro,
358-360
Perspective: Fragment of a chalice krater: foreshortened representation of proskenion ro, 852-853 Perspective: Fish-bone perspective 10, 852-853
Pes: Roman Measure/unit of length (table) ro, 859 Petra, rock tomb fagade so-called Step Tomb, see Funerary architecture 5, 590-592 Petra: The most important monuments (c. 1st cent. BC —c. AD 150) 10, 869-870
Peucetian pottery: Vessel shapes in Peucetian pottery
Planets: Hippopede 11, 320-323 Planets: Dynamic (three-dimensional) representation of the movement of planets according to Eudoxus 11, 320-323 Planets: Epicycle 11, 323-325 Planets: Excenter 11, 323-325 Planets: Deferent 11, 325-326 Planets: Planet names 11, 328-334 Planets: Symmetry of the astrological planet system 11,
328-334
Planets: Quincunx of the five true planets 11, 328-334 Planets: Heptazonos of the planet houses 11, 328-334 Planets: Exaltation and dejection of the planets 11, 328-
334
Planets: The planets of the dodekatropos 11, 328-334 Planets, sequence, see Sun 13, 944-946 Plostellum, see Threshing 14, 624-626 Plough: Roman plough (schematic drawing) 11, 406-
407 Plutarchus [2]: The writings in Plutarch’s Moralia 11,
417-418 Polygonal numbers, see Nicomachus [9] N. of Gerasa 9,
731-734 Pompeii, altar of Zeus Meilichios, with volutes, see Altar 1, 546-547
Pompeii, basilica, see Basilica 2, 525-531 Pompeii, house of Loreius Tiburtinus, Garden architecture, see Ekphrasis 4, 879-880 Pompeii, Casa dei Capitelli figurati, see House 6, 5 45-
546
Pompeii, Casa del Fauno, see House 6, 545-546 Pompeii, Stabian Baths, see Thermae 14, 539-540 Pompeii, Villa dei Misteri, see Villa 15, 416-419 Pontic Vases: Vessel types in Pontic pottery 11, 591-592 Porta dei Borsari (Verona), see Window 15, 647-652 Porta Nigra (Trier), see Gates, porches 5, 706-709
Portus [1]: the harbour district of Ostia 11, 665-666 Potter’s kiln, see Pottery, production of 11, 727-730 Pottery, Greek, see Pottery, shapes and types of 11,
732-740 Pottery, Messapian, see Messapian pottery 8, 758-759
Pottery, production of: Greek pottery kiln 11, 727-730 Pottery, production of: Potter’s kiln of the Imperial period at La Graufesenque (Aveyron), rst-2znd cents
II, 727-730
Pottery, shapes and types of : Vessel shapes in Greek pottery (8th-znd cents. BC) 11, 732-740 Pous: Greek units/measures of length and the relationship between them 11, 740 Presses, Roman presses 11, 811-813 Presses: Trapetum according to Cato 11, 811-813 Priene, agora, see Agora 1, 349-355
Phaestus, discus, see Discus 4, 541-542 Phidias workshop (Olympia), see Apse 1, 912-914 Phigalia (Bassae): Temple of Apollo Epikoureios (c. 420 BC), ground-plan 11, 6-7 Piazza Armerina, Imperial Villa; AD 305-325 (groundplan) 11, 229-233 Pigments: Ancient pigments in Pliny 11, 239-240 Pins: Components of an ancient fibula (example of a Hallstatt period fibula) 11, 282-283
Priene, temple of Athena, see Epistylion 4, 1149-1151 Propylaea (Athens), see Gates, porches 5, 706-709 Proskenion, see Perspective 10, 852-853 Proto-Corinthian vases: Vessel forms in Proto-Corinthian pottery 12, 69-70 Psalmody 12, to1—102 Pseudodipteros: Magnesia [2] on the Maeander, Temple of Artemis Leukophryene, 2nd half of the 2nd cent. BC (schematic ground-plan) 12, 116 Ptolemaeus: The dynasty of the Ptolemies 12, 129-171
Piraeus, prostas-house, see House 6, 541-543
Ptolemaic system, see Sun 13, 944-946
Piraeus, Skeuotheke of Philon, see Skeuotheke 13, 5 19520
Puteoli, remains of macellum, see Macellum 8, 88-90 Pylos [2], ‘Palace of Nestor’ 12, 243-245
10, 888-889
LIST OF MAPS
AND
284
ILLUSTRATIONS
Pyrrhus [3] of Epirus — Family and dynastic relations 12, 274-276
ee
Pythagoras [2], philosopher, c. 600 BC 12, 276-281 Quadrantal: Roman unit/measures of volume and their relationship (table) 12, 308 Quadratrix, construction, see Deinostratus 4,
186-188
Ravenna, S. Appollinare in Classe, see Basilica 2, 525-
531
Ravenna, S. Vitale, see Central-plan building 3, 118122 Reaping machines, Gallic: Vallus (drawing based on a relief) and Carpentum (reconstruction) 12, 415-416 Rhetoric: The system of ancient rhetoric 12, 547-549 Riding harness, Roman, see Cavalry 3, 53-55 Roads and bridges, construction of: Construction of Roman roads 12, 651-652 Rome, Ara Pacis, see Ara Pacis Augustae 1, 951-953
Rome, Baths of Caracalla, see Thermae 14, 540-543 Rome, Colosseum, see Amphitheatre 1, 610 Rome, Colosseum, Tuscan half columns, see Columns
3, 596-597 Rome, Field of Mars, see Theatrum Pompei(i) 14, 400-
401 Rome, Forum Traiani, see Forum 5, 526-529 Rome, Palatine, Etruscan patrician house, see House 6,
544
Rome, Pantheon, see Pantheon 10, 467-468 Rome, Arch of Septimius Severus, see Triumphal arches
14, 952-953 Rome, Via Appia, "Deus Rediculus’, Architecture 5, 602 Runes: the older futhark 12, 781-782
Sextarius: Roman measures/units of fluid and dry capacity and their relationships (table) 13, 364-365 Severan dynasty: The Severan house 13, 352-356 Shipbuilding: Sail-freighter. Mahdia ship, 80-70 BC (reconstruction) 13, 390-392 Shipbuilding: (1) schematic representation of shipbuilding 13, 390-392 Shipwrecks, exploration of: Chronological table of ancient wrecks (2nd millennium BC — 7th cent. AD) 13,
392-403
Shoes: Greek shoes 13, 404-407 Shoes: Roman shoes 13, 404-407 Side, see Theatre 14, 387-390 Sidon, royal necropolis of Hypogaeum,
see Hypo-
gaeum 6, 637-638
Siegecraft 13, 440-445 Skeuotheke of Philon in Piraeus (ca 330 BC), hypothetcal reconstruction 13, 519-520 Soldiers’ pay: Development of salaries in the Roman army 13, 612-613
Spalatum, Mausoleum of Diocletian, see Central-plan building 3, 118-122 Spalatum, Palace of Diocletian, see Palace 10, 368-373 Spartocids: Dynasty of the Spartocids (stemma) 13, 711 Sperlonga: So-called Villa of Tiberius, ground-plan 13,
723-724 Stadion: ancient stadium complexes (schematic devel-
see
Funerary
Sacrifice: Roman sacrificial implements 12, 851-853 Sail-freighter, see Shipbuilding 13, 390-392 Samarra: (up toc. AD 850) 12, 920-923 Samos: The Heraion in the archaic period 12, 930-932 Samos: The Heraion from the Classical to the Late Roman periods 12, 934-935
Samos, Vathy, House model, see Window 15, 647-652 Samothrace, Sanctuary of the Great Gods in the rst cent. AD. 12, 938-942 Sarsina, Funerary monument of Aefionius Rufus, see Funerary architecture 5, 600-602
Sanctuary: The sanctuary of Hercules at Ostia 12, 946-
949 Sciences and technical disciplines in Antiquity, see Technical literature 14, 195-201 Scroll, see Book 2, 722-724 Sculpting, technique of 13, 128-129 Seals: Sealing a papyrus document 13, 174-176 Séha (Seha River Land): The dynasty of the kings of Séha 13, 206-207 Seleucids: The Seleucids and their dynastic connections 13, 214-217 Selinus:[4]: overall map and Temples of Selinus (ground-plans) 13, 226-228 Sella curulis: schematic structure 13, 230-231 Semitic languages: Sub-classification of Semitic languages 13, 238-241
Sempronius: The members of the Gracchian agrarian commission 13, 246-252 Sempronius: The Sempronii Gracchi and their family connections in the 3rd and 2nd cents. BC (stemma) 13, 246-252
Septuagint, book-titles in the Hebrew bible 15, 535557,
Septuagint, differences of numbering, see Vulgate 15,
opment) 13, 777-778 Steelyard: ancient steelyards 13, 813-817 Stoa: Greek stoai from the Archaic to the Hellenistic Periods (schematic ground-plans) 13, 842-846 Sun: Fig. 1: The sequence of the planets from the centre (= Earth) according to Plato 13, 944-946 Sun: Fig. 2: The Ptolemaic system 13, 944-946 Sundials, see Clocks 3, 461
Surgical instruments: Surgical Roman times 13, 963-967
instruments
from
Syllabic characters, see Linear B 7, 616-617
Syracusae: Euryalos Fort, Reconstruction of Phase IV (3rd cent. BC) 14, 47-49 Syracusae, the Ninfeo aqueduct, see Water supply 15,
581-583 Systems of writing, see Greece, systems of writing 5, IOOI-1002 Teano ware: Teano pottery 14, 192 Techne: Sciences and technical disciplines in Antiquity; simplified overview 14, 195-201 Technical literature: Sciences and technical disciplines in Antiquity; simplified overview (?) 14, 195-201 Temple: Greek temples; types of layout 14, 249-255 Temple: Roman podium temples: origin and development 14, 257-261
Templum: Hypothetical reconstruction of a templum, based on the findings of the excavations at Bantia (Basilicata); rst cent. BC 14, 265-266
Tenos, fountain exedra, see Exedra 5, 261-262
Tetrarches, Tetrarchia: Schema: Tetrarchy 14, 323-327 Textiles, production of: diagram of a vertical warpweighted loom (side view left: opened natural shed; side view right: opened artificial shed) 14, 344-345 Theatre: Theatre of Thoricus 14, 383-387 Theatre: Theatre of Epidaurus; 2nd half ath cent. BC (ground-plan) 14, 383-387
285
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
Theatre: Theatre of Arausio (Orange) 14, 387-390 Theatre of Side; mid 2nd cent. AD (ground-plan) 14,
387-390 Theatre masks, Greek, see Masks 8, 431-434 Theatrum Pompei(i): Rome, Field of Mars: Theatre and Porticus of Pompeius [I 3]; 61-55 BC (reconstructed ground-plan) 14, 400-401 Thebes [2]: The dynasty of Cadmus and of the Spartoi (stemma) 14, 414-419 Theodericus (Theoderic) [3] T. the Great: The house of Theoderic the Great and its dynastic connections
(stemma) 14, 442-445 Theodosius [II 2] T. I the Great: The ValentinianicTheodosian dynasty (stemma) 14, 471-475 Thermae: Schematic representation of the main types
14, 536-539 Thermae: Pompeii. Stabian Baths, last phase until AD
79 (ground-plan) 14, 539-540
Unit of volume, Roman, see Quadrantal 12, 308 Unit of volume, Roman, see Sextarius 13, 364-365 Valentinianic-Theodosian dynasty, see Theodosius [II
2] 14, 471-475
Valerius: The Valerii Messallae and their family connections, stemma (3rd cent. BC — 1st cent. AD)) 15,
177 Varro [2]: Overview of his works 15, 209-226 Vase painting, see Ornaments 10, 224-229
Vase painting, black-figured: Chronological table for the Attic black-figure vase groups and painters 15, 231-234 Vase painting, black-figured: Vessel shapes of black-figure vase painting outside Attica 15, 234-238 Vaults and arches, construction of: ’False’ corbelled vault, tholos tomb at Orchomenus (16th cent. BC); reconstruction 15, 243-245 Vaults and arches: Voussoir vault, technical terminol-
Ogy 15, 243-245
Thermae: Rome, Baths of Caracalla; c. AD 212-217; enclosure wall under Elagabalus (AD 218-222) and
Vaults and arches, construction of: Construction of a
Severus Alexander (AD 222-235); ground-plan 14,
Voussoir Arch with the aid of a timber centring frame
540-543
Tholos: Athens, agora: tholos, cylinder construction; 5th cent. BC (ground-plan) 14, 591-592 Tholos: Delphi, Sanctuary of Athena; peripteral tholos; 4th cent. BC (ground-plan) 14, 591-592 Tholos: Athens, Acropolis, Monopteros of Roma and Augustus; after 27 BC 14, 592-593 Thoricus, see Theatre 14, 383-387 Threshing: tribulum (threshing-sledge) and plostellum Poenicum 14, 624-626
Tiberius, villa of, see Sperlonga 13, 723-724 Timgad, the small central baths, see Baths 2, 554-556 Titus, Arch of, see Triumphal arches 14, 952-953 Tivoli, Villa Hadriana, see Crypta, Cryptoporticus 3, 967 Torre Annunziata (Oplontis), villa, see Gardens [2] 5,
694-697 Torture: Eculeus
(’little horse’), hypothetical
recon-
struction 14, 795-796
Torsion spring of a catapult, see Catapult 3, ro-12 Transversal Theorem, see Menelaus [6] of Alexandria 8, 681-682
Tribulum, see Threshing 14, 624-626 Tribus: List of Roman Tribus 14, 911-912 Triclinium: Positions of guests reclining in a triclintum (diagram) 14, 915-916 Triumph, Triumphal procession: Pompa Triumphalis: route of the triumphal procession through Rome 14,
945-948
Triumphal arches: Rome, Forum Romanum: Arch of Titus (after AD 81; elevation) 14, 952-953 Triumphal arches: Rome, Forum Romanum: Arch of Septimius Severus (AD 203; elevation) 14, 952-953
Tumulus: Phellus (Lycia). Tumulus, so-called type B; 9th/8th — 6th cents. BC (reconstruction) 15, 18-19 Tumulus: Larisa [6] on the Hermus. Tumulus necropolis; 6th cent. BC (reconstruction) 15, 18-19 Tumulus: Caere (Cerveteri), Banditaccia necropolis: Great tumulus II; early 7th cent. — late 6th cent. BC (ground-plan) 15, 19-214 Tuscan half columns, see Columns 3, 596-597 Tympanum, see Water lifting devices 15, 570-571 Unit of length, Roman, see Pes ro, 859 Unit of length, Greek, see Pous 11, 740
15, 245-247
Vergina, so-called Tomb of Philip, see Funerary architecture 5, 596-597
Vergina, Palace, see Palace 10, 365-366 Verona, SW main gate (so-called) Porta dei Borsari), see Window 15, 647-652 Vespasianus: The Flavian Dynasty (stemma) 15, 334-
338
Vetera: Double legionary fortress of the 5th and rs5th Legions (AD5 4-68); ground-plan 15, 346-350 Villa: Capri, ’Villa Jovis’ of Tiberius; rst cent. AD (ground-plan) 15, 411-413 Villa: Nenning (Saarland), villa rustica with corner risalits; 2nd cent. AD (ground-plan) 15, 414-416 Villa :Boscoreale: Villa della Pisanella; rst cent. BC (ground-plan) 15, 414-416 Villa: Pompeii: Villa dei Misteri; 2nd cent. BC (groundplan) 15, 416-419 Vulgate: Book names in the Hebrew Bible, the Septuagint and the Vulgate 15, 535-537 Vulgate: Differences of numbering and variant book-titles between the Hebrew Bible and the Septuagint/Vulgate 15, 535-537 Wall construction, Roman, see Construction technique
3, 736-739 Water-clock of Ctesibius, see Clock 3, 462-463 Water lifting devices: Tympanum (reconstruction according to Vitr. 10,4) 15, 570-571 Water lifting devices: Water-wheel from Dolaucothi, Wales (reconstruction) 15, 570-571 Water lifting devices: so-called Archimedean (Archimedes [1]) screw pump or water snail (coclea) from Centenillo, Spain (reconstruction) 15, 571 Water lifting devices: Bucket-chain 15, 571 Water supply: Fig 1 Syracusae. Double gallery of the Ninfeo aqueduct; late Classical Period; southern section, longitudinal section 15, 581-583 Water supply: Fig. 3: Ramp of the siphon near Chaponost: Gier Aqueduct to Lyons (Lugdunum);rst half 2nd cent. AD (reconstruction) 15, 581-583 Water supply: Fig. 4: Roman pressure line (functional drawing) 15, 581-583 Wealth, distribution of: [1] Average size of estates and the Gini coefficient 15, 593-595
LIST OF MAPS
AND
286
ILLUSTRATIONS
Wealth, distribution of: [2] The total area of a territory and the percentage size of the largest property 15, Sa) Ses)
Wedding customs and rituals: Wedding in 5th cent. BC Athens as ritual of transition: Embedding of the wedding into the complex transition process 15, 605-610 Wedding customs and rituals: Wedding in 5th cent. BC Athens as ritual of transition: The ideal sequence of procedures 15, 605-610 Wells: Athens, Agora. Fountain-house at the southwest corner; reconstruction 15, 621-624
Wells: Aulis, Stepped well (ground-plan and section) 05, 620—-62:4
Wells: Ialysus, fountain-house: reconstructed crosssection; reconstructed longitudinal section and elevation; ground-plan 15, 621-624 Wells: Megara, ‘Fountain-house of Theagenes’ (ground-plan) 15, 621-624 Wells: Megara, ‘Fountain-house of Theagenes’ (longitudinal section) 15, 621-624
Wells: Perachora: reconstructed cross-section; recon-
structed elevation;ground-plan 15, 621-624
Window: House model, Samos; Vathy, Arch. Museum,
inv. no. C25 (1st half 6th cent. BC), elevation r5, 647-652
Window: [2]: Athens, Erechtheion (421-409/06 BC), east-side windows 15, 647-652 Window:
Verona, SW main gate (Porta dei Borsari),
mid rst cent. AD 15, 647-652 Window: Delos, Temple of Apollo of the Athenians (425-417 BC), east front with window openings 15, 647-652
Wine: Training of the vine with and without support (cum/sine pedamento) 15, 665 Zakros: Palace and neighbouring houses (1700 — 1450 BC) 15, 866-869
Zeus, temple of, see Peripteros 10, 801-802 Ziggurat: Babylon, Etemenanki temple tower; c. 600 BC (reconstruction) 15, 931-932 Zodiac, see Constellations 4, 1188-1190
Zodiac: The signs of the zodiac 15, 937-946 Zodiac: the four Trigons 15, 937-946 Zodiac: The three quadrants 15, 937-946
287
LIST OF AUTHORS
List of Authors
The following list of authors is ordered alphabetically
Annegret Plontke-Lining, Jena
on the basis of the abbreviations of the authors names.
Anneliese Peschlow-Bindokat, Berlin
The affiliation or place of residence represents the most recent information available to the Editors.
Anthony Green, Berlin Almut Hintze, Cambridge Augusta Honle, Rottweil Anne Kolb, Zurich
Albert Schachter, Montreal Anke Schiitte-Maischatz, Minster Antonio Sartori, Milan Andreas Schwarcz, Vienna H.Alan Shapiro, Baltimore Andreas Speer, Cologne Anthony J.S. Spawforth, Newcastle Arnulf Stefenelli, Passau Andreas Thomsen, Tiibingen Alain Touwaide, Madrid Alexandra von Lieven, Berlin Anne Viola Siebert, Hannover Artur Volkl, Innsbruck Anne-Maria Wittke, Tubingen A.W. Lintott, Oxford Aloys Winterling, Bielefeld Annette Zgoll, Leipzig Achim Schyboll, Schliengen Albrecht Berger, Munich Alexandra Frey, Basle Albert Henrichs, Cambridge, MA Alberto Jori, Tubingen Alexander P.D. Mourelatos, Austin Aldo Messina, Triest Aliki Maria Panayides, Berne Alfred Schafer, Cologne Alfred Schindler, Heidelberg Andrea Becker, Berlin Antoine Cavigneaux, Geneva Angelika Dierichs, Minster Andreas Glock, Jena Anthony Grafton, Princeton, NJ Andreas Merkt, Regensburg
Andreas Kessler, Luzern
Anneliese Mannzmann, Munich
Arno Kose, Berlin Amélie Kuhrt, London Andreas Kilzer, Vienna Anne Ley, Xanten Adrienne Lezzi-Hafter, Kilchberg André Laks, Paris
Andreas Schubert, Hamburg Andreas Willi, Basle Anja Wieber, Dortmund Arnulf Hausleiter, Berlin Armin Lange, Vienna Astrid Schiirmann, Mannheim Burchard Brentjes, Berlin Balbina Babler, Gottingen Bruno Bleckmann, Dusseldorf Bernhard Brehmer, Tiibingen Barbara Cassin, Paris Birgit Christiansen, Berlin Brent D. Shaw, Philadelphia, PA Brigitte Dominicus, Diersdorf Beate Ego, Osnabriick Bernhard Forssman, Erlangen Beate Fey-Wickert, Hagen Betina Faist, Berlin Bernhard Fritscher, Munich Bernhard Greiner, Tubingen Beatrix GefSler-Lohr, Heidelberg Bettina Goffin, Bonn Bardo Maria Gauly, Kiel Bernhard Herzhoff, Trier Brad Inwood, Toronto Bianca-Jeanette Schréder, Munich Barbara Kowalzig, Oxford
Annemarie Ambihl, Groningen Alice A. Donohue, Bryn Mawr A.R. Birley, Diisseldorf Alison Burford Cooper, Ann Arbor Andreas Bendlin, Toronto Angelika Berlejung, Heidelberg Annalisa Bove, Pisa
Aquinata Bockmann OSB, Rome Angelos Chaniotis, Heidelberg Armando Cherici, Arezzo Albert Dietrich, Géttingen Armenuhi Drost-Abgarjan, Halle/Saale Anne-Marie Doyen-Higuet, Ciney Albrecht Dihle, Cologne Annie Doubordieu, Paris
Andrew Dyck, Los Angeles Arne Effenberger, Berlin Andreas Fuchs, Tiibingen Alec F. Tilley, Waterlooville Andrea Falcon, Udine
Angelika Franz, Hamburg Alfons First, Bamberg Andreas Gutsfeld, Minster Ann Graham Brock, Cambridge, MA Adalberto Giovannini, Geneva Anne Glock, Potsdam
Anna Lambropoulou, Athens Andreas Lehnardt, Tubingen Adolf Lippold, Regensburg Angelika Lohwasser, Berlin Alexander Mlasowsky, Hannover Ariel M. Bagg, Berlin Andrea Maria Gniers, Basle Anna Maria Schwemer, Tubingen Attilio Mastino, Sassari Attilio Mastrocinque, Verona Andreas Mehl, Halle/Saale Anja Moritz, Potsdam Astrid Moller, Freiburg Anna Muggia, Pavia Anne Nercessian, Paris
Alessandro Naso, Innsbruck Ada Neschke-Hentschke, Lausanne Astrid Nunn, Frankfurt/Main
Alexis Oepen, Madrid Anna Pappa, Ioannina Anastasia Pekridou-Gorecki, Frankfurt/ Main
288
LIST OF AUTHORS
Claudia Schindler, Hamburg Catherine Trimpy, Basle Claudia Ungefahr-Kortus, Alten-Buseck Christine Walde, Mainz Clemens Zintzen, Cologne
Bernhard Kytzler, Durban Bernhard Linke, Dresden Burkhard MeifSner, Halle/Saale Barbara Patzek, Essen
Beate Pongratz-Leisten, Bryn Mawr Britta Stengl, Eningen Brigitte Schaffner, Basle Bernhard Smarczyk, Cologne Basil Studer, Engelberg Barbara von Reibnitz, Basle Bernhard van Wickevoort Crommelin, Hamburg Beate Wagner-Hasel, Darmstadt Bernhard Zimmermann, Freiburg Bella Zweig Vivante, Tucson Barbara Bock, Berlin Beate Gundert, London, Ontario Bernd Schaller, Gottingen Birgitta Eder, Vienna Bjorn Onken, Kassel Blahoslav Hruska, Prague Boris Dreyer, Erlangen-Nirnberg
Catherine Baroin, Paris Carsten Binder, Kiel Cécile Morrisson, Paris
Christoph Briese, Randers Christopher Brown, London, Ontario
Bruno Garozzo, Pisa
Bruno Jacobs, Vienna Brigitte Schirmer, Freiburg Bruno Steimer, Freiburg Christoph Auffarth, Bremen Claudia Antonetti, Venice C.B.R. Pelling, Oxford Carsten Colpe +, Berlin Claude Calame, Lausanne Constanze Ebner, Innsbruck C.E.A. Cheesman, London Christa Frateantonio, GiefSen-Erfurt Christian-Friedrich Collatz, Berlin Christine Salazar, Cambridge Christian Gizewski, Berlin Christopher Gill, Exeter Claudia Giuffrida, Catania Claus Haebler, Minster
CHR.TR.
Christoph Burchard, GGttingen Christos Fakas, Berlin Christiane Goldberg, Berlin Christoph Koch, Berlin Christian Kafer, Heidelberg Christopher Krebs, Kiel Christina Kuhn, Kassel Christoff Neumeister, Frankfurt/Main Christiane Reitz, Rostock Christian Schulze, Bochum Christopher Steimle, Erfurt Christian Winkle, Stuttgart Christian Wildberg, Princeton, NJ Christfried Bottrich, Leipzig Christo Danoff, Sofia Christoph Kugelmeier, Berlin Christine Trevett, Cardiff Christiane Schmidt, Tubingen Claudia Englhofer, Graz Claudia Klodt, Bochum Claudia Nauerth, Heidelberg Claus Schonig, Mainz Cornelia Becker, Berlin
Cordula Scholz, Cologne Dorothea Baudy, Constance
Dietwulf Baatz, Bad Homburg Dietrich Berges, Hamburg Dominique Briquel, Paris Dominique Charpin, Paris Dorothee Elm, Erfurt
Christine Harrauer, Vienna
Donatella Frioli, Rimini
Clemens Heucke, Munich
Dorothea Frede, Hamburg
Christoph Horn, Bonn Christoph Hocker, Ziirich Christian Hiinemorder, Hamburg
Dietrich Huff, Berlin
Christa Kessler, Emskirchen Christa Miuller-Kessler, Emskirchen
Domenico Magnino, Pavia Dietrich Mannsperger, Tubingen
Christoph Kohler, Bad Krozingen Christoph Krampe, Bochum
Deszpa Mihaly-Lorand, Constance
Christiane Kunst, Potsdam Cay Lienau, Munster
Christoph Markschies, Berlin Calum M. Carmichael, Ithaca, NY Claire Muckensturm-Poulle, Besancon Christian Marek, Zurich Christian Muller, Bochum
Claudia Ott, Erlangen Christoph Georg Paulus, Berlin Christian Pietsch, Mainz
Christoph Rottler, Tubingen C.Robert III. Phillips, Bethlehem, PA Christoph Riedweg, Zurich Christoph Selzer, Frankfurt/Main Christine Sourvinou Inwood, Oxford Christoph Schuler, Tiibingen
Dietmar Kienast, Neu-Esting David Leitao, San Francisco
Dietmar Najock, Berlin Dietz Otto Edzard, Munich Daniel P. Harmon, Seattle Dominic Rathbone, London Dirk Rohmann, Manchester Daniel Strauch, Berlin Deborah Salsano, Catania Dietmar Schanbacher, Dresden
Dorothea Sigel, Tibingen Dieter Steinbauer, Regensburg Daniel T. Potts, Waverley David T. Runia, Melbourne David T. Vessey, Huntingdon Dietmar Wyrwa, Bochum David Wardle, Kapstadt David Balch, Forth Worth David Brown, Berlin
LIST OF AUTHORS
Dario Palermo, Catania
Fritz Graf, Columbus, Ohio
Daniel Schwemer, Wurzburg Dietrich Klose, Munich Dietrich Simon, Jena Dirk Steuernagel, Heidelberg Dietrich Willers, Berne DNP-Gruppe Kiel, Kiel Dominik Bonatz, Freiburg Doris Meyer, StrafSburg
Franz Glaser, Klagenfurt Fritz Gschnitzer, Heidelberg Friedrich Hild, Vienna Frank Kolb, Tubingen
Domenico Musti, Rome
Frauke Latsch, Stuttgart
Ernst Axel Knauf, Bern
Franco Montanari, Pisa
Ernst August Schmidt, Tiibingen Ernst Badian, Cambridge, MA Eva Andrea Braun-Holzinger, Mainz Enrico Berti, Padova Ewen Bowie, Oxford Elke Bohr, Wiesbaden Ezio Buchi, Verona Eckhard Christmann, Heidelberg Eva Cancik-Kirschbaum, Berlin Elisabetta Caldelli, Cassino Enzo Degani, Bologna Eckart E. Schiitrumpf, Boulder, CO Egon Flaig, Greifswald Erika Feucht, Heidelberg Edmond Frezouls t+, StrafSburg Eckart Frahm, Heidelberg Ernst-Ginther Schmidt, Leipzig Elisabeth Hollender, Cologne
Franz Mali, Fribourg Franz-Stefan Meissel, Vienna
Elke Hartmann, Berlin
Eberhard Heck, Tubingen Eric Junod, Lausanne Elisabeth Jastrz?bowska, Warschau Emily Kearns, Oxford Evelyn Klengel-Brandt, Berlin Edward John Kenney, Cambridge Ernst Kiinzl, Mainz Eckhard Lefévre, Freiburg
Friedrich Karl Dorner, Miinster
Foteini Kolovou, Berlin Fritz Krafft, Marburg/Lahn F. Lasserre, Lausanne
Florian Meister, Marburg Fabio Mora, Messina Frank Pressler, Freiburg Friedhelm Prayon, Tubingen Frangois Renaud, Moncton, NB
Frank R. Trombley, Cardiff Frank Starke, Tubingen Friedrich Sauerwein f, Heidelberg Franz Schon, Regensburg Friedrich Spoth, Munich Franz Tinnefeld, Munich Franz Tichy, Erlangen Francesca Veronese, Padova
Franco Volpi, Vicenza Frans Wiggermann, Amsterdam Frieder Zaminer, Berlin Felix Blocher, Heidelberg Friederike Dohrer, Kiel Friedhelm Hoffmann, Wirzburg Francesca Prescendi, Geneva
Fritz Raber, Innsbruck Frank Rumscheid, Berlin Franz Ferdinand Schwarz +, Graz Gian Andrea Caduff, Zizers
Eckart Mensching, Berlin Erwin Maria Ruprechtsberger, Linz
Gustav Adolf Lehmann, Gottingen Gerhard Baudy, Constance Gabor Betegh, Budapest
Ernst Meyer t, Zurich
Gerhard Binder, Bochum
Eckart Olshausen, Stuttgart Edgar Pack, Cologne Emmet Robbins, Toronto Ellen Rehm, Frankfurt/Main Elisabeth Rieken, Berlin Ekkehard Stark, Leipzig Eleonora Salomone Gaggero, Genova Elke Stein-Hélkeskamp, Cologne Eberhard Sauer, Leicester
Giovanni Brizzi, Bologna Gunther Burkard, Munich Gualtiero Calboli, Bologna
Elmar Schwertheim, Minster
Ekkehard Stegemann, Basle
Giovanella Cresci Marrone, Turin
Giorgio Camassa, Udine Gudrun Colbow, Munich Giuliana De Francesco, Genova
Giuseppe De Gregorio, Rome Giovanna Daverio Rocchi, Milan Gerhard Dohrn-van Rossum, Chemnitz Gotz Distelrath, Constance
Francesca Brancaleone, Bari
Gérard Freyburger, Mulhouse Gudrun Fischer Saglia, Munich Gisela Febel, Stuttgart Giuseppe Guzzetta, Milan Gianfranco Gaggero, Genova Gerhard Hiesel, Freiburg Gerhard H. Waldherr, Regensburg Ginther Holbl, Vienna Gernot Krapinger, Graz Grammatiki Karla, Berlin
Francois Baratte, Paris Frangois Bovon, Cambridge, MA Francesco Donadi, Padova
Gunnar Lehmann, Jerusalem Giovanna Menci, Florence Gerta Maaf{s-Lindemann, Karlsruhe
Edzard Visser, Basle
Eckhard Wirbelauer, Strasbourg Erika Zwierlein-Diehl, Bonn Edward Courtney, Charlottesville, VA
Egert Pohlmann, Erlangen Ellen Hickmann, Hannover Eliane Stoffel, Altkirch
Ernst Gamillscheg, Vienna Ernst Kutsch, Vienna
290
LIST OF AUTHORS
Georgios Makris, Munster Giovanni Mennella, Genova Gert Melville, Dresden Gunter Neumann, Minster Giancarlo Prato, Cremona Gerald P. Schaus, Waterloo, Ontario
Gianfranco Paci, Macerata
Georg Petzl, Cologne Gertrud Platz-Horster, Berlin Ginther Prinzing, Mainz Georges Raepsaet, Briissel Gerhard Radke, Berlin Gottfried Reeg, Berlin Gottfried Schiemann, Tubingen Georg Schollgen, Bonn Ginter Spitzbart, Herscheid Giancarlo Susini, Bologna Gerhard Thiir, Graz Gunther E. Thiiry, Salzburg
Hugh Elton, Miami Helmut Freis, Saarbriicken Helmut Freydank, Potsdam Hans Gottschalk, Leeds Hans Georg Gundel, Giefen Hans Georg Niemeyer +, Hamburg Heinz-Ginther Nesselrath, Gottingen Hartmut Galsterer, Bonn
Hermann Genz, Istanbul Herwig Goérgemanns, Heidelberg Herbert Grafl, Salzburg
Hartwig Heckel, Bochum Hatto H. Schmitt, Munich Herbert Hausmaninger, Vienna
Heinz Hofmann, Tubingen Hermann Hunger, Vienna Hans-Peter Isler, Ziirich
Giovanni Uggeri, Florence Gregor Vogt-Spira, Marburg Gabriella Vanotti, Novara Gerold Walser +, Basle
Hans-Joachim Drexhage, Marburg/ Lahn Hans-Jiirgen Feulner, Tiibingen Hans-Joachim Gehrke, Freiburg Hans Jorg Nissen, Berlin Heinz-Joachim Schulzki, Mannheim Helen King, Reading
Glenn W. Most, Pisa
Helke Kammerer-Grothaus, Bremen
Gerd Weisgerber, Bochum Gerhard Wirth, Nirnberg Greg Woolf, Oxford
Hans Kaletsch, Regensburg Hansjorg Kalcyk, Petershausen Horst Klengel, Berlin
Gabriele Marasco, Pisa
Heiner Knell, Darmstadt
Gabriella Poma, Forli
Heidemarie Koch, Marburg/Lahn Heinrich Konen, Regensburg Helmut Krasser, GiefSen Hans-Peter Kuhnen, Trier
Giusto Traina, Lecce
Gabriele Weiler, Cologne Gebhard Bieg, Tubingen Gerd Grafhoff, Bern Gerhard May, Mainz Gerhard Meiser, Halle/Saale Gerd Stumpf, Munich Gerson Schade, Berlin Gernot Wilhelm, Wurzburg Gerda Wolfram, Vienna Giovannangelo Camporeale, Florence Giulia Falco, Athens Giacomo Manganaro, Sant’ Agata li Battiata Giuseppe Mariotta, Florence
Hartmut Kuhne, Berlin
Hartmut Leppin, Frankfurt/Main Hans Lohmann, Bochum Heide Mommsen, Stuttgart . Hans-Martin Schenke, Berlin
Hans-Markus von Kaenel, Frankfurt/ Main Heinrich Marti, Kusnacht Hugo Meyer, Princeton, NJ Hans Neumann, Berlin
Herbert Niehr, Tubingen
Gottfried Heinemann, Kassel
Heinz-Otto Lamprecht, Cologne
Graziano Arrighetti, Pisa Gregor Ahn, Heidelberg Gregor Damschen, Halle/Saale Gregor Weber, Erfurt Guglielmo Cavallo, Rome Guido Kryszat, Minster
Hans-Peter Drégemiiller, Hamburg Hans-Peter Miller, Miinster
Gunter Wesener, Graz
Hans Armin Gartner, Heidelberg Herbert Arens, Aachen Hartwin Brandt, Bamberg Han Baltussen, Adelaide Heinz Bellen, Mainz Hanswulf Bloedhorn, Jerusalem Hanns Brennecke, Erlangen Heinz Cuppers, Trier Hildegard Cancik-Lindemaier, Tiibingen Heinrich Dorrie +, Minster Horst-Dieter Blume, Minster
Herbert Donner, Tiibingen
Hans-Peter Obermayer, Munich
Hans-Peter Schénbeck, Halle/Saale Helmut Rix +, Freiburg
Hans Rupprecht Goette, Athens Helena Stegmann, Bonn Helen Sancisi-Weerdenburg, Utrecht Henri D. Saffrey, Paris Héléne Sader, Beirut Helmuth Schneider, Kassel Hanne Schonig, Halle/Saale Hans Seidel, Markkleeberg Holger Sonnabend, Stuttgart Helmut Storch, Tubingen Hans Treidler, Berlin Hildegard Temporini — Grafin Vitzthum +, Tubingen Hans Tauber, Vienna Hendrik S. Versnel, Warmond
LIST OF AUTHORS
Hans von Mangoldt, Tubingen Hans Volkmann, Cologne Hermann J. Vogt, Tubingen Hans-W. Fischer-Elfert, Leipzig Hartmut Westermann, Luzern
Heidy Zimmermann, Basle Hans Beck, Cologne Halet Cambel, Istanbul Hannes D. Galter, Graz
Hans Jiirgen Scheuer, Gottingen Hans Schwerteck, Tiibingen Henning Borm, Kiel Heide Blédorn, Mainz Heinrich Chantraine, Mannheim Helmut Engelmann, Cologne Heinz Felber, Leipzig Henriette Harich-Schwarzbauer, Basle Heike Kunz, Tubingen Helen Kaufmann, Basle Herwig Kramolisch, Eppelheim Hubert Cancik, Tubingen Annette Imhausen, Cambridge, MA Istvan Bodnar, Budapest Iris Banholzer, Tubingen Ilsetraut Hadot, Limours Inge Nielsen, Hamburg Ian C. Rutherford, Reading Ingeborg Scheibler, Krefeld Ines Stahlmann, Berlin Isabel Toral-Niehoff, Berlin Ioannis Vassis, Athens Iris von Bredow, Bietigheim-Bissingen Irma Wehgartner, Wiirzburg Irina Wandrey, Hamburg Ingomar Weiler, Graz Isabell Veigel, Berlin Jean Andreau, Paris John A. Richmond, Blackrock, VA Jan Assmann, Heidelberg Jan N. Bremmer, Groningen James B. Rives, Toronto Jens Bartels, Bonn Jurgen Bar, Berlin Jan Biskup, Kiel Josine H. Blok, Groningen Jan Burian, Prague Jorg Bichli, Zurich Johannes Christes, Berlin J.Brian Campbell, Belfast Justus Cobet, Essen Joachim Dingel, Hamburg Jan den Boeft, Leiderdorp Juliette de la Geniére, Nevilly-sur-Seine Jacques Duchesne-Guillemin, Liittich J.D. Hawkes, Cambridge Johannes Engels, Cologne Jaques Flamant, Venelles Jorg Frey, Stuttgart Jost Gippert, Frankfurt/Main José Luis Garcia-Ramon, Cologne Julia Gonnella, Berlin Joachim Gruber, Munich Johannes Hahn, Minster Jeffrey Henderson, Boston Jens Holzhausen, Bamberg
James I. Porter, Ann Arbor, MI Juan José Ferrer Maestro, Castellon Jean-Jacques Glassner, Paris
James J. John, Ithaca, NY Jens-Uwe Krause, Munich Jochem Kahl, Minster Jorg Klinger, Bochum Johannes Kramer, Trier Jochem Kiippers, Dusseldorf Joachim Latacz, Basle Jean-Louis Ferrary, Paris Jean Louis Labarriére, Paris Jean-Luc Lamboley, Grenoble Jurgen Leonhardt, Marburg/Lahn Jerzy Linderski, Chapel Hill, NC Jan-Waalke Meyer, Berlin José Miguel Alonso-Niafiez, Madrid Jeanne-Marie Demarolle, Nancy Johannes Niehoff, Berlin John H. Oakley, Williamsburg, VA Joachim Oelsner, Leipzig Jurgen Osing, Berlin Johannes Pahlitzsch, Mainz J.P. Mahé, Paris Jurgen Paul Schwindt, Heidelberg Jorg Riipke, Erfurt Johannes Renger, Berlin Josef Rist, Wiirzburg John Scheid, Paris Jorg Schulte-Altedorneburg, Marburg/ Lahn Julia Sinskes Thompson, Miinster Johannes Schwind, Trier Jiirgen Seeher, Istanbul Jan Stenger, Berlin Joseph Tropper, Berlin Jurgen Untermann, Pulheim Johannes M. van Ophuijsen, Leiden Jiirgen von Ungern-Sternberg, Basle Josef Wieseh6fer, Kiel Jan-Wilhelm Beck, Regensburg Jochen W. Mayer, Stuttgart Jorg Wagner, Tubingen Jost Weyer, Hamburg Jonathan Williams, London Jurgen Zangenberg, Leiden James Allen, Pittsburgh Janine Andrae, Bochum Jean Bollack, Paris Jens Halfwassen, Cologne Jens Heyrup, Roskilde Jens Kroger, Berlin Johannes Brachtendorf, Tibingen Jorg Findling, Bonn Jorg Gerber, Berlin Johannes Heinrichs, Bonn Joost Hazenbos, Leipzig Jorg Hardy, Berlin Joachim Hengstl, Marburg/Lahn Johanna Loehr, Kiel Johannes Nollé, Munich Joachim Quack, Heidelberg Josef Riederer, Berlin Jorg Rieker, Trier Johannes Scherf, Tubingen
292
LIST OF AUTHORS
JO.SP. JO.VO. JU.BL. JU.HA.
Jorg Spielvogel, Bremen Joachim Vogeler, Baton Rouge Jiirgen Blansdorf, Mainz Judith Hallett, College Park, MD Judith Hendricks, Bochum Jurgen Strothmann, Bochum Karlhans Abel, Marburg Keimpe Algra, Utrecht Klaus Alpers, Lineburg Klaus Bieberstein, Fribourg Karin Bartl, Berlin Klaus Belke, Vienna Klaus Bringmann, Frankfurt/Main Kai Brodersen, Erfurt Kevin Clinton, Ithaca N.Y. Klaus Doring, Bamberg
Klaus-Dietrich Fischer, Mainz
Karlheinz Dietz, Wiirzburg Klaus Freitag, Aachen Klaus Fitschen, Leipzig Kirsten Grof$-Albenhausen, Frankfurt/ Main
Katharina Giesen, Tubingen
Katerina Ierodiakonou, Oxford Karl Hoheisel, Bonn K. Tuchelt, Berlin Klaus Fischer, Bonn Klaus Geus, Bamberg Klaus Hallof, Berlin Klaus Sallmann, Mainz Klaus Tausend, Graz Klaus Zimmermann, Jena
Knut Backhaus, Paderborn Konrad Volk, Tubingen Kurt Rudolph, Marburg/Lahn Luciana Aigner-Foresti, Vienna Larissa Bonfante, New York Luigi Bernabo Brea, Syrakus Luc Brisson, Paris
Lucia Calboli Montefusco, Bologna Ludmil Duridanov, Freiburg Lorena De Faveri, Venice
Loretana de Libero, Hamburg Ludwig D. Morenz, Tubingen Lavinio Del Monaco, Rome Lorraine Daston, Berlin
Katharina Greschat, Mainz
Ludwig Fladerer, Graz
Konrad Hitzl, Tubingen/Kiel
Lucia Galli, Florence Lars Hoffmann, Mainz
Karl-Heinz Hiilser, Constance
Karl-Heinz Stanzel, Tubingen Karl Hecker, Minster Karin Hornig, Freiburg Karl-Joachim Hélkeskamp, Cologne Karl Jansen-Winkeln, Berlin Kristina Janje, Tubingen Klaus Karttunen, Helsinki Karlheinz Kessler, Emskirchen Konrad Kinzl, Peterborough Klaus Koch, Hamburg Karl-Ludwig Elvers, Bochum Karl Leo Noethlichs, Aachen Karin Metzler, Berlin Klaus Meister, Berlin Karin Neumeister, Frankfurt/Main Karla Pollmann, St.Andrews Klaus-Peter Johne, Berlin Klaus Rosen, Bonn Kurt A. Raaflaub, Rhode Island Kai Ruffing, Marburg/Lahn
Lutz Kappel, Kiel
Klaus Strunk, Munich
Michael Blech, Madrid Marco Buonocore, Rome Michael Hewson Crawford, London Maria Constanza Lentini, Naxos (Mes-
Luigi Lehnus, Milan Luca Mondin, Venice Linda-Marie Gunther, Bochum Leo Perdue, Fort Worth Lukas Richter, Berlin Luigi Santi Amantini, Genua
Livio Sbardella, L’Aquila Luigi Sensi, Perugia Lothar Wierschowski, Oldenburg
Luisa Zanoncelli, Milan Leonid Zhmud, St.Petersburg Leonhard Burckhardt, Basle Leonhard Schumacher, Mainz Lore Benz, Bielefeld
Ludolf Kuchenbuch, Hagen Lukas Kundert, Basle Manuel Baumbach, Bochum
Marina Benedetti Conti, Pisa Matthias Baltes, Minster
Karl Suso Frank, Freiburg Kyriakos Savvidis, Bochum Karin Schlapbach, Ottawa Klaus Seibt, Leonberg
sina)
Kurt Smolak, Vienna
Maria Cecilia Parra, Pisa
Karl Strobel, Klagenfurt Kurt Tomaschitz, Vienna Karl-Theodor Zauzich, Sommershausen
Maureen Carroll-Spillecke, Cologne
Karl-Heinz Uthemann, Amsterdam
Michel Crubellier, Villeneuve d’Ascq
Kathrin Umbach, Kassel Konrad Vossing, Bonn
Marie-Luise Deifsmann-Merten, Frei-
Klaus-Valtin von Eickstedt, Athens Kocku von Stuckrad, Erfurt Karl-Wilhelm Weeber, Wuppertal Karl-Wilhelm Welwei, Bochum Katharina Waldner, Erfurt
Konrat Ziegler +, Gottingen Karin Geppert, Tubingen
Michele Cataudella, Florence M. Christol, Paris
burg Margherita di Mattia, Rome Massimo Di Marco, Fondi (Latina)
Michael Drager, Kirchlinteln Marion Euskirchen, Bonn Michael Erler, Wurzburg Menso Folkerts, Munich Maria Federica Petraccia Lucernoni, Milan
LIST OF AUTHORS
Marco Fantuzzi, Florence Martin Fell, Minster
Michael Frede, Oxford Massimo Fusillo, L’Aquila Michela Gargini, Pisa Maria Grazia Albiani, Bologna Maria Gabriella Angeli Bertinelli, Genova Marie-Odile Goulet-Cazé, Antony Matthias Giinther, Bielefeld Marlies Heinz, Freiburg Mustafa H. Sayar, Cologne Mareile Haase, Toronto Martin Heimgartner, Halle Malte Hossenfelder, Graz Maria Ida Gulletta, Pisa Michael Job, Marburg/Lahn Maria Jagoda Luzzatto, Florence Matthias Kockert, Berlin Mirko Kirschowski, Freiburg Martin Kléckener, Fribourg Manfred Korfmann +, Tubingen
Manfred Krebernik, Munich Mario Lombardo, Lecce Marie-Luise Lakmann, Minster Martin L. West, Oxford
Marcel Leglay t, Lyon Martin Miller, Berlin Michael Meier-Brigger, Berlin Maria Milvia Morciano, Florence Maria Macuch, Berlin Mischa Meier, Tubingen J.Michael Padgett, Princeton, NJ Marina Molin Pradel, Venice Martin Pujiula, Kassel Michael Redies, Berlin Michael Rathmann, Bonn Martin Rese, Minster
Michael Roberts, Middletown Malte Romer, Berlin Michael P. Streck, Munich Marjeta Sasel Kos, Ljubljana Michele Renée Salzman, Riverside, Ca Maren Saiko, Bochum
Martin Schottky, Pretzfeld Markus Sehlmeyer, Rostock Matthias Steinhart, Freiburg Michael Trapp, London Michael Theobald, Tubingen Malcolm Todd, Exeter Marc van de Mieroop, New York Mischa von Perger, Freiburg Michael WeifsSenberger, Greifswald Martin Wallraff, Bonn Michael Worrle, Munich
Michael Zahrnt, Kiel Michaela Zelzer, Vienna Maaike Zimmerman, Groningen Maria Brosius, Oxford
Maria Broggiato, London Martina Dirrkop, Potsdam Robert Malcolm Errington, Marburg/ Lahn Manfred Fuhrmann +, Constance Max Haas, Basle
Manfred Heim, Munich Martin Hose, Munich Marion Lausberg, Augsburg Marilena Maniaci, Rome Markus Rose, Kassel Marten Stol, Leiden Margot Schmidt, Basle Magdalene Stoevesandt, Basle Martin Zimmermann, Munich Meret Schmidt, Bochum Meret Strothmann, Bochum Michael Chase, Victoria, BC Mireille Corbier, Paris Michael Heinzelmann, Rome Michael Jameson, Stanford Michael Lesky, Tiibingen Michael Maafs, Karlsruhe Michel Narcy, Paris Michel Polfer, Luxemburg Mirjo Salvini, Rome Michael Stausberg, Heidelberg Michel Tardieu, Joigny Nikolaus Boroffka, Berlin Nadja Cholidis, Berlin Nikolaus Forg6, Vienna Nicoletta Giové Marchioli, Triest Nicola Hoesch, Munich Nadia Justine Koch, Salzburg Norbert Oettinger, Augsburg Nigel Wilson, Oxford Nicole Blanc, Paris Nils HeefSel, Heidelberg Nina Johannsen, Kiel Notker Schneider, Cologne Norbert Zimmermann, Vienna Oliver Auge, Tubingen Otto A. Baumhauer, Bremen Olaf Héckmann, Mainz Otto Hiltbrunner, Munich Oliver Hilden, Tubingen Ornella Montanari, Bologna Omer Ozyi?it, Izmir
Oliver Primavesi, Munich Oliver Stoll, Mainz Otta Wenskus, Innsbruck Otto Wermelinger, Fribourg
Orell Witthuhn, Marburg Peter Apathy, Linz Petra Amann, Vienna
Pierre Aubenque, Paris Pedro Barcelo, Potsdam
Paul A. Cartledge, Cambridge Pierre Carlier, Nancy Paul Drager, Trier Philip de Souza, Twickenham Paul Demont, Le Mee Paolo Eleuteri, Venice Peter Funke, Miinster Peter Flury ¢, Munich Paolo Gatti, Triento
Peter Garnsey, Cambridge Peter Groschler, Mainz Peter Guyot, Hildesheim Peter Herz, Regensburg Pierre Hadot, Limours
294
LIST OF AUTHORS
Peter J. Rhodes, Durham P. Kunitzsch, Reading Peter Kehne, Hannover Peter Kruschwitz, Berlin
Peter Lebrecht Schmidt, Constance
Piero Meloni, Cagliari Peter Marzolff, Heidelberg Peter C. Nadig, Duisburg Paul Potter, London, Ontario
Philip R. Hardie, Cambridge Peter Riemer, Potsdam Peter Schreiner, Cologne Pauline Schmitt-Pantel, Paris Peter Scherrer, Vienna
Peter Siewert, Vienna
Renate Rolle, Hamburg Reinhard Rathmayr, Salzburg Robert Sharples, London Robert Sallares, Manchester Reinhard Senff, Bochum Roswitha Simons, Dusseldorf
Raphael Sobotta, Heidelberg Ruth Stepper, Potsdam Renzo Tosi, Bologna Robert Todd, Vancouver Rainer Voigt, Berlin Ralf-B. Wartke, Berlin Rudolf Wachter, Basle Reinhard Willvonseder, Vienna Reinhard Wolters, Tubingen
Paul Speck, Berlin
Raimondo Zucca, Rome
Piotr Taracha, Warschau Peter Weif$, Kiel Peter Wick, Basle
Ralf Behrwald, Chemnitz
Peter Wulfing, Cologne Peter Calmeyer f, Berlin Peter Frisch, Cologne Peter Habermehl, Berlin Peter H6gemann, Erlangen Philippe Borgeaud, Geneva Philippe Hoffmann, Paris Pierre Cabanes, Clermont-Ferrand Pierre Ducrey, Lausanne Ruth Albrecht, Hamburg Robert A. Kaster, Princeton, NJ René Bloch, Berne Roland Baumgarten, Berlin Remy Boucharlat, Lyon Rudolf Brandle, Basle Remi Brague, Paris Raffaela Cribiore, New York Roald Frithjof Docter, Gent Raphael Dammer, Bochum Reinhard Fortsch, Cologne Richard Gamauf, Vienna Renate Germer, Hamburg Reinhold F. Glei, Bochum Richard Goulet, Antony Richard L. Gordon, Ilmmiunster Reinhard Grieshammer, Heidelberg Rolf Hurschmann, Hamburg Ruth Elisabeth Harder, Ziirich Robin Hagg, Goteborg Rudolf Haensch, Cologne Richard Hunter, Cambridge Reinhard Jung, Vienna Rolf Krauss, Berlin Robert K. Englund, Berlin Rudiger Liwak, Berlin Recep Meric, Izmir
Raphael Michel, Basle Rainer Warland, Freiburg Raymond Westbrook, Baltimore Rainer Wiegels, Osnabriick René Niinlist, Cologne Renate Schlesier, Berlin
Reto Zingg, Basle Richard Haase, Leonberg
Richard Lorch, Munich Richard Talbert, Chapel Hill, NC
Roland Deines, Herrenberg Roland Frohlich, Tubingen Robert Fischer, Baden-Baden Roger Harmon, Basle Rosario Patané, Catania Robert Porod, Graz
Rudolf Hanslik, Vienna Ruth Palmer, Athens, Ohio
Schafik Allam, Tubingen Serena Bianchetti, Florence Susanne Bobzien, Oxford
Sebastian P. Brock, Oxford
Sigrid Deger-Jalkotzy, Salzburg Santo Daniele Spina, Catania Stefania de Vido, Venice Stella Drougou, Thessaloniki Stefan Esders, Bochum Sotera Fornaro, Sassari
Sabine Follinger, Mainz Susanne Gédde, Munich Simon Gerber, Berlin Stephen Heyworth, Oxford
Susanne Heinhold-Krahmer, Feldkirchen Stefan R. Hauser, Constance Simon Hornblower, London
Sibylle Ihm, Hamburg Sarah Iles Johnston, Columbus
Rosa Maria Piccione, Jena
Seth Jerchower, Philadelphia, PA
Rolf Michael Schneider, Cambridge
Stefan Link, Paderborn Silvia Letsch-Brunner, Ziirich Steven Lundstrém, Berlin
Renate Miller-Wollermann, Tubingen Richard Neudecker, Rome Reviel Netz, Paris Robin Osborne, Oxford Renate Oswald, Graz
Robert Plath, Erlangen Robert Parker, Oxford Rossella Pera, Genova
Stefan Maul, Heidelberg Silvia Maria Marengo, Macerata Stefan Meyer-Schwelling, Tubingen Sabina Magrini, Florence Simone Michel, Hamburg Saskia Motullo, Kiel
LIST OF AUTHORS
Sigrid Mratschek, Rostock Stefan Miiller, Hagen Silke Petersen, Hamburg Sabine Panzram, Miinster
Stefania Quilici Gigli, Rome Sergey R. Tokhtas’ev, St.Petersburg Stefan Radt, Groningen Stephan Johannes Seidlmayer, Cairo Steven Scully, Boston, MA Stephanie Thurmann, Kiel Sarolta A. Takacs, New Brunswick, NJ
Sitta von Reden, Freiburg Stefano Zamponi, Padova Sabine Ziegler, Wurzburg Sylvia Zimmermann, Freiburg Sabine Zubarik, Erfurt Sabine Tausend, Graz Seraina Plotke, Basle Silke Antoni, Kiel
Simona Marchesini Velasco, Tubingen Simon R.F. Price, Oxford Stefan Breuer, Bonn Stefano Bruni, Florence Steffen Diefenbach, Erfurt
Stefan Krauter, Tubingen Stephan Meier-Oeser, Berlin Stephanos Matthaios, Thessaloniki Susanna Braund, New Haven
Susanne Eiben, Kiel
Susanne Fischer, Tiibingen Susan Treggiari, Stanford Sven Rausch, Kiel
Thomas A. Szlezak, Tubingen Thomas Baier, Freiburg Tomris Bakir-Akbasoglu, Izmir Tiziano Dorandi, Paris Thomas Drew-Bear, Lyon Teresa De Robertis, Florence
Theodor Thomas Thomas Therese
Ebert, Erlangen/Niirnberg Franke, Bochum
Frigo, Bonn
Fuhrer, Berlin Tomasz Giaro, Frankfurt/Main Tobias Goldhahn, Kiel Theodor Heinze, Wiesbaden
Thomas Hidber, Gottingen Tim Junk, Kiel Ted Kaizer, Oxford Thomas Leisten, Princeton, NJ Torsten Mattern, Marburg Tanja Scheer, Rome Timothy Peter Wiseman, Exeter Tassilo Schmitt, Bielefeld Teun Tieleman, Leeuwarden Theofried Baumeister, Mainz Thomas Gotzelt, Berlin
Thomas Griinewald, Duisburg Thorsten Knorr, Hamburg Thomas Oberlies, Freiburg Thomas Paulsen, Bochum Thomas Podella, Liibeck Thomas Richter, Frankfurt/Main Thomas Séren Hoffmann, Bonn Thomas Schirren, Salzburg Thomas Zinsmaier, Tubingen
Ulf-Dietrich Schoop, Tiibingen Ulrich Eigler, Ziirich Uwe Finkbeiner, Tibingen Ulf Hailer, Tuibingen Ulrich Heider, Cologne Ulrich Luz, Gottingen Ulrich Manthe, Passau Ulrike Peter, Berlin Umberto Pappalardo, Naples Uwe Sievertsen, Tubingen Ulrich Schmitzer, Berlin Udo Schnelle, Halle/Saale Ursula Seidl, Munich Udo W. Scholz, Wirzburg Ulrike Wagner-Holzhausen +, Erlangen Uwe Walter, Bielefeld Ulrich Wickert, Berlin Ulrike Zimbrich, Frankfurt/Main
Ulrike Egelhaaf-Gaiser, GieSen Ulrich Fellmeth, Stuttgart Ulrich Sinn, Wurzburg Vera Binder, GiefSen Virginia Brown, Toronto Volker Henning Drecoll, Miinster Volkert Haas, Berlin Valentina Isabella Cuomo, Bari Valentin Kockel, Augsburg Volker Losemann, Marburg/Lahn Vivian Nutton, London Volker Pingel, Bochum Vinciane Pirenne-Delforge, Romesée
Veit Rosenberger, Augsburg Vera Sauer, Stuttgart Verena Tiziana Halbwachs, Vienna Volkmar von Graeve, Bochum Walter Ameling, Jena Wolfram-Aslan Maharam, Munich Wolfram Ax, Cologne Walter Berschin, Heidelberg Wolfgang Bliimel, Cologne Wolfram Brandes, Frankfurt/Main Wolfgang Decker, Cologne William D. Furley, Heidelberg Wolf-Dietrich Niemeier, Heidelberg Wolfgang Detel, Frankfurt/Main Werner Eck, Cologne Wulf Eckart Vofs, Osnabriick Walter Eder +, Berlin Werner Eisenhut, Berlin Wolfgang Hiibner, Minster
Walter Hatto Grof$ +, Hamburg Wolfgang Helck, Hamburg Werner Huf$, Munich Willem Jongman, Groningen Wilhelm Kierdorf, Cologne Wolfgang Kaiser, Tubingen Wolfgang Leschhorn, Volklingen Wolf-Liider Liebermann, Bielefeld Winrich Alfried Lohr, Cambridge Wesley M. Stevens, Winnipeg Wolfram Martini, GieSen Wilfried Nippel, Berlin Werner Portmann, Berlin Wolfgang Polleichtner, Bochum Wolfgang Rollig, Tubingen
296
LIST OF AUTHORS
Wolfgang Radt, Istanbul Werner A. Reus, Stuttgart Will Richter, Géttingen Wolfgang Rosler, Berlin Winfried Schmitz, Bielefeld Werner Sauer, Graz
Walter Simon, Tiibingen Walther Sontheimer, Stuttgart Wolfgang Spickermann, Bochum Wolfgang Stegemann, Heidelberg Wilfried Stroh, Munich Werner Suerbaum, Munich Werner Tietz, Munich
Wolfgang Will, Bonn Walter W. Miller, Marburg/Lahn
Walther Sallaberger, Leipzig Werner Liitkenhaus, Marl
William W. Fortenbaugh, New Brunswick, NJ Wolfgang Habermann, Heidelberg Wolfgang Mann, New York Wolfgang Speyer, Salzburg Charalampos Tsochos, Erfurt Yvonne Domhardt, Zirich Yves Lafond, Bochum
Yann Le Bohec, Lyon Yun Lee Too, Liverpool Zofia Halina Archibald, Liverpool Zoltan Végh, Salzburg
Lists and Tables
f| sgBg ne1p thi
7 a : ae | -
-
ces
eve
Ga~ © aie
i>
od
299
A. I. LAW CODES,
LEGAL NORMS
AND
EDICTS
A. Laws AND LAW CODES
A. I. ANCIENT NEAR East A. Il. Ecypr A. Ill. Rome A. I. Law CODES, LEGAL NORMS AND EDICTS: ANCIENT NEAR EAST
(Johannes Renger)
On the definition of Ancient Near Eastern collections of legal norms as law codes (not as laws), cf. [x] (contra WILCKE 298f.). On the fundamental function of ruler edicts in the Old Babylonian period, cf. [2]. 1 J. RENGER, Noch einmal: Was war der ‘Kodex’ Hammurapi — ein erlassenes Gesetz oder ein Rechtsbuch?, in: H. J. Genrxe (ed.) Rechtskodifizierung und _ soziale
WILCKE
C. WiicxE, Der Kodex Urnamma (CU): Versuch einer Rekonstruktion, in: T. ABUSCH (ed.), Riches Hidden in
Secret Places. Studies in Memory of Th. Jacobsen, 2002, 291-333. R. Yaron, The Laws of Eshnunna,
YARON
*1988.
Normen im interkulturellen Vergleich, 1994, 27-59 2 Idem, Royal Edicts of the Old Babylonian Period, in: M. VAN DE MiEROOP (ed.), Debt and Economic Renewal in the Ancient Near East (The International Scholars’ Conference in Ancient Near Eastern Economies, vol. 3), 2000, 139162. . LAW
CODES
AND
LEARNED
COMPILATIONS
SUMERIAN
Abbreviations: Akkad. Assyr. cas. col(s).
CT(s) fr. Hebr. Hitt. L/L.
LG para(s). Sumer.
aA
CODES,
ROYAL
LEARNED
DECREES
COMPILATIONS
IN AKKADIAN
Akkadian Assyrian
. LAW CODE IN HITTITE
Casuistic column(s) clay tablet(s)
. ANCIENT SOUTHERN ARABIAN EDICTS
fragmentary, fragment Hebrew Hittite line(s) law code paragraph(s) Sumerian
Abbreviations in bibliography: BEESTON 1937
A. F.L. BEESTON, Sabaean Inscriptions,
BEESTON 1971 BEESTON 1977
A. F.L. BEESTON, The Mercantile Code of Qataban, 1971. A. F.L. BEESTON, Decree from the God >ALMQH, in: Corpus des inscriptiones et antiquités sud-arabes, vol. 1, 1977,
Driver/Mites_ 1935 Driver/Mites
G. R. Driver, J. C. Miles, The Assyrian Laws, 1935. G. R. Driver, J. C. Miles, The
1955 GRAYSON
Babylonian Laws, vol. 2, 1955. A. K. Grayson, Assyrian Royal Inscriptions, vol. 1, 1972.
HOFFNER
H. A. Horener, The Laws of the Hittites, 1997.
Kraus
F. R. Kraus, K6nigliche Verfigungen in altbabylonischer Zeit, 1984.
LANDSBERGER
B. LANDSBERGER, Die Serie ana ittisu,
ROTH
M. T. Rotn, Law Collections from
WEIDNER
Mesopotamia and Asia Minor, 1995. E. F. Werpner, Hof- und Haremserlasse assyrischer K6nige aus dem 2. Jt.
1937.
15-18.
1937.
BC, in: AfO 17, 1954-1956, 257-293.
. LEGAL NORMS IN THE OLD TESTAMENT
AND
IN
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
300
CODES
A. I. 1. LAw CODES AND LEARNED COMPILATIONS
IN SUMERIAN
all dates BC date
name
author(ity)
observations
ith
IAWOTS)
Code of Urnamma
Urnamma* orig. written on a statue of Urnamma; (2112-2095; second king preserved only in fr. copies on CTs of of the Utuhegal-Urthe 18th cent. Text comprised c. 770 ll. namma Dynasty/ Third (of which 190 prologue/epilogue; cf. Dynasty of Ur) also 3.), probably in approx. too paras.
DC
TLORO
Code of Lipit-IStar
Lipit-Istar originally written ona stele (two small (1934-1924; fifth king of fr. preserved), otherwise fr. preserved the Dynasty of Isin) in CT copies of the 18th cent.; most substantial CT orig. comprised 22 cols. each of approx. 60 ll.
B35
G2LOO
Scholastic compilation
in Sumer.; learned compilation or the
(LX)
final section of the LC of Urnamma
(cf. 1.); 18th cent. copy ACA
TS OO
Scholastic compilation
in Sumer.; learned compilation; fr.
on hiring of oxen (LOx)
text from Nippur*
5.
¢. 1800
School exercise with Sumer. legal norms
in Sumer.; learned compilation; fr. text
6.
C¢.1700
Sumer. Handbook of Forms (SLHF)
in Sumer.; tetrahedral clay prisms, each with 3 cols. of 45-48 Il. each; col.
(SLEx)
IX partly and cols. X-XII completely broken off
A. I. 2. Law CODES, LEARNED COMPILATIONS AND ROYAL DECREES IN AKKADIAN
Te
Ga 7.9 6
Laws of Esnunna
DaduSa in Akkad.; preserved in its entirety on (c. 1796-1787; king of — several CTs ESnunna, a city NE of present-day Baghdad)
8.
after 1763
Code of Hammurapi
Hammurapi * (1792-1750; sixth king of First Dynasty of Babylon*)
in Akkad.; preserved on a basalt stele (found at Susa*, now in — Paris, LouverkE [I C], fig. 5) and several stele fr. as well as in numerous (part) copies on CT from the 17th to the 7th cents.
9.
between 1749 and 1712 (perhaps 1742)
Edict of Samswiluna
Samsuiluna (1749-1712; seventh king of First Dynasty of Babylon*)
in Akkad.; preserved on a CT fr.; on the date, cf. KRAUS 69
ro.
afterr711
— Edict of Abi’eSuh
Abresuh
in Akkad.; preserved on a CT fr. (on
(1711-1684; eighth king of First Dynasty of Babylon*)
dating cf. M. Jursa, in: Revue d’Assyriologie 91, 1997, 142); issue of edict probably early in the reign of
Abresuh "The paragraph count is modern and is based on the first word of the protasis ‘if ...’ characteristic of all casuistically-formulated legal provisions. * Cf. H. PerscHow, Zur ‘Systematik’ in den Gesetzen von Eschnunna, in: J. A. ANKUM et al. (ed.), Symbolae iuridicae et historicae M. David dedicatae, vol. 2, 1968, 131-143. > Cf. H. Perscuow, Zu den Stilformen antiker Gesetze und Rechtssammlungen, in: ZRG 82, 1965, 24-38; Idem, Zur Systematik und Gesetzestechnik im Kodex Hammurabi, in: ZA 57, 1965, 146-172.
301
A. I. LAW
content
CODES,
edition
LEGAL
NORMS
AND
EDICTS
transl./comm.
1.
prologue (epilogue lost, but cf. 3.); presently known are WILCKE approx. 56 paras. (cas. formulated’ )dealing with delicts of criminal, matrimonial, slave, debt and other civil law
WILCKE; less up to date: ROTH 1-22 and TuarT 1, 17-23
2.
prologue and epilogue; presently known are approx. 45 (of ROTH 23-39 probably more than roo) paras., cas. formulation; includes provisions of slave, personal, family, matrimonial, lease and tenancy law
ROTH 23-39; TUAT 1, 23-31 (with bibliog. for further reading)
3.
19 paras. some only fr. preserved (cas. formulation) and epilogue; inc. tariffs for physicians, weavers, provisions re loans and purchase/rent of intra-urban land (purchase and rental price set)
ROTH 36-39
ROTH 36-39
4.
9 paras. (cas. formulation) re the hiring of oxen (for agricultural activities)
Rortu 4of.
Rotu 4of.
5.
to paras. (cas. formulation) re cases of bodily injury, adoption, rape, and compensation for hiring of ships and oxen
ROTH 42-45
ROTH 42-45
6.
contains text formulae for creating legal documents of civil law content
ROTH 46-54
ROTH 46-54
7.
‘prologue’ is the date formula of Year 1 of DaduSa, i.e. approx. contemporary with Hammurapi* of Babylon (cf. 8.); 60 paras. (cas. formulation) re prices for staple goods (incl. grain, oil, wool) and for services and hiring of agricultural equipment; provisions of personal, slave, matrimonial, debt and criminal law*
YARON
YARON; ROTH 57-70; TUAT I, 32-38
8.
prologue and epilogue; 282 paras. (cas. formulation); provisions of personal, slave, matrimonial, debt and criminal law. The LC is not a comprehensive collection of legal norms comprising the entirety of the legal material. The organizing system follows the principle of attraction/ association.’
Driver/MILES 1955, 6-114
TUAT 1, 39-80; ROTH 7FI-142
9.
date formula for Year 8 of Samsu’iluna and 3 provisions largely corresponding to the provisions of the Edict of
KRAUS 152-157
KRAUS 152-157
KRAUS 160-163
KRAUS 160-163
Ammisadugqa (r1.)
10.
8 provisions, some only preserved in fr., largely corresponding to the provisions of the Edict of Ammisaduqa (r1.)
A. LAWS
II.
12.
AND
LAW
302
CODES
date
name
author(ity)
observations
1645
Edict of Ammisaduqa
Ammisaduqa (1683-1647; tenth king of First Dynasty of Babylon*)
in Akkad.; preserved in two fr. CT copies from the reign of Ammisaduqa; on date, cf. KRAUS 80
c.12th/r1th
Middle Assyrian Laws
in Akkad.; preserved in 14 CT copies
cents.
(some fr.) (Tablets A-O) from the reign of Tiglath-Pileser [1] I (1114-1076), found at Assur’, one fr. at Ninive*; Tablet A the most comprehensive
13.
14th-r1th cents.
Assyriancourtandharem edicts
Assyr. king (14th—1 rth cents.)
in Akkad.; numerous fr. of a total of 23 edicts, mostly belonging to four duplicated tablets; found at Assur, compiled in the reign of Tiglath-Pileser [1] I.
I4.
C.700
New Babylonian Laws
in Akkad.; preserved in a fr. CT copy from Sippar*; probably a learned compilation
15.
18th/r7th cents.4
Form series ana ittisu (‘at a time appointed for this purpose’)
bilingual Sumer./Akkad. handbook, composed in the Old Babylonian scribe schools of Nippur* (18th/17th cents.)
A. I. 3. Law CoDE IN HITTITE 16.
17. by 12th cent.
Hittite Law Code
Hitt. kings’
in Hitt.; copies from the 17th/16th and 14th/r2th cents.; found at Hattusa* (Boghazkéy)
A. I. 4. LEGAL NORMS IN THE OLD TESTAMENT
17.
8thcent.
so-called ‘Book of the Covenant’
?
in Hebr.
18.
6th cent.
Decalogue (and other apodeictic formulations of legal norms)
?
in Hebr.
The god ‘Almagah, ‘royal god’ at Saba’*
inscription on stone
A. I. 5. ANCIENT SOUTHERN ARABIAN EDICTS
19.
?
Edict of the god ‘Almaqah
20.
7th cent.
Edict of a Sabaean ruler Karib’il (king of Saba’*) and the legislative body —_and the ‘advisors’
21.
3rd cent.
Market regulations of the Qatabanian capital of Timna‘ *
Shahr Hilal (king of Qataban*) and ‘the Qatabanians’ (i.e. probably a legislative body)
|Old Sabaean stone inscription
inscribed on four sides of a granite obelisk
4 Preserved in 7th cent. copies > Oldest version: reigns of Labarna I and Hattusili I (1st half of 16th cent. BC); content/language revision, probably in reign of Telibinu (c. 1500 BC).
393
A. I. LAW
CODES,
LEGAL
NORMS
AND
EDICTS
content
edition
transl./comm.
BB Bey
preamble and 22 provisions, mostly referring to the release of debts owed to the palace
KRAUS 168-183
KRAUS 168-183
12.
tablet A: 59 paras. (cas. formulation) containing provisions of criminal, debt, family and slave law, most concerning or relevant to women. The other CTs mostly deal with delicts of debt, succession and criminal law and agricultural issues
DriveR/MILES 1935
TUAT 1, 80-92 (only Tablet A); RoTH 153-194
13.
edicts (lit. ‘binding edict’/riksum), some cas. formulation,
WEIDNER
WEIDNER; GRAYSON §§
regulating etiquette and duties of service at the royal court
304-306, 335-341, 517, 681-683, 850-859,
905-912, 928, 989 14.
15.
15 paras. (cas. formulation) re debt and matters of matrimonial law
DRIVER/MILES
TUAT 1, 92-95; ROTH
19555 324-347
143-149
7 four-columned tablets, totalling approx. 1,650 ll., used
LANDSBERGER
LANDSBERGER I-I07
in the training of scribes and as a manual; contains text formulae for creating documents of mostly debt and family law
I-107
16.
approx. 200 paras. (cas. formulation) re issues of arable and livestock farming and industry, as well as issues and corpus delicti of family, personal and criminal law (incl. reference to incest: rape, sodomy); price tariff(s)
|HOFFNER
H. A. HOFENER, in: ROTH 217-237; TuaT 1, 96-123
17.
formulated as cas. law, concerned with corpus delictiof slave and criminal law (bodily injury, homicide, theft, embezzlement) and matters of law of obligation; included lex talionis provisions
Ex 21,1-22, 26 Ex 21, 22-25
Ex 21,1-22, 26 Ex 21, 22-25
18.
formulated as apodeictic law
Ex 20, 2-17;
Ex 20,2-17; 23,1-9
23,1-9
19. 20.
21.
concerning people who are bewitched, and giving the making of a sacrifice as a remedy
BEESTON 1935
W. W. MULLER, in: TuaT
stating that the king’s troops may only requisition foodstuffs from the members of the Sirwah tribe with permission of the council of elders of that tribe
BEESTON 1937,
W. W. MULLER, in: TUAT
OTS
I, 271-273
concerning the activities of traders and the restrictions to which they were subject
BEESTON 1971
W. W. MULLER, in: TUAT 1, 278 (partial transl.)
I, 268
A. LAWS
AND
304
LAW CODES
A. II. Laws, LAW CODES AND EDICTS: EGYPT
(Sandra Lippert)
KRUCHTEN
J. KrucHTEN, Le décret d’Horemheb,
LEGRAIN
G. LeGRAIN, Catalogue Général des Antiquités Egyptiennes du Musée du Caire. Statues et statuettes de rois et de particuliers, 1914. S. Lippert, Fragmente demotischer juristischer Biicher. pBerlin 23890 a-b, d-g rto und pCarlsberg 628, in: F. HOFFMANN, H.-J. THISSEN (ed.), Res severa verum gaudium. FS K.-Th.
1981.
Abbreviations:
Ge d. doc. fr. leg. or. pap. pap. dat. pph.
Rey.
collection of laws death penalty Document
LIPPERT FR
Fragmentary
Legislator (conjectured) period of origin
papyrus papyrus date Paraphrase regnal year
Zauzich (Studia Demotica), 2004,
389-405.
LiprerT Lp
S. Lippert, Ein demotisches juristisches Lehrbuch. Unt. zu pBerlin 23757 rto.
Agyptologische Abhandlungen 66, Abbreviations in bibliography: ALLAM S. ALLAM, Urkunden zum Rechtsleben im Alten Agypten I. Hieratische Ostraka und Papyri aus der Ramessidenzeit, 1973. BRESCIANI
BOuRIANT
Wiesbaden, 2004. LiprerT ZPO
MARIETTE
E. BRESCIANI, Frammenti da un
Musée de Boulag, vol. 2, Paris
‘prontuario legale’ demotico da Tebtuni nell’ istituto papirologico G. Vitelli di
(repr. 1982).
MaTTHA
Firenze, in: Egitto e Vicino Oriente 4, 1981, 201-215. U. BourtanT, A Thebes I. La Stéle de Hor-em-heb, in: Recueil de Travaux
G. MatruHa, The Demotic Legal Code of Hermopolis West, with commentary and glossary by G. R. Hughes
PESTMAN 1985
P. W. PEsTMAN, Le manuel de droit égyptien de Hermoupolis. Les passages transmis en démotique et en grec, in: idem (ed.), Textes et études de papyrologie grecque, démotique et
rélatifs a la Philologie et a |’Archéologie
41-51. J. Cerny, T. E. Peet, A Marriage
copte (Papyrologica Lugduno-Batava
Settlement of the Twentieth Dynasty. An Unpublished Document from Turin,
23), 1985, 16-143. PESTMAN 1992
P, W. PestTMaN, Il processo di Hermias e altri documenti dell’archivio dei
P. J. FRANDSEN (ed.), Demotic Texts
PETRIE 1896
W. M. FLINDERS PETRIE, Koptos, 1896.
from the Collection. The Carlsberg Papyri 1 (CNI Publications 15), 1991,
PETRIE 1903
W. M. FLINDERs PETRIE, Abydos,
in: JEA 13, 1927, 30-39. CHAUVEAU
M. CHAUVEAU, P. Carlsberg 301: Le manuel juridique de Tebtynis, in:
choachiti (P. Tor. Choachiti), 1992.
vol. 2 (Memoirs of the Egypt
103-127. GOEDICKE
H. GoepickE, K6nigliche Dokumente
Exploration Fund 24), 1903.
QUIRKE
aus dem Alten Reich (Agyptologische Abhandlungen 14), 1967. GRIFFITH
F, LL. GrirritH, The Abydos Decree of
REA
Seti I at Nauri, in: JEA 13, 1927, 193-208. Hayes
W.C. Hayes, A Papyrus of the Late Middle Kingdom in the Brooklyn Museum (Pap. Brooklyn 35.1446),
SETHE/ SPIEGELBERG
W. SPIEGELBERG, Aus einer agyptischen
Zivilprozefordnung der Ptolemaerzeit (ABAW N. F. 1), 1929. STADLER
1994.
M. A. STaDLER, Rechtskodex von
Hermupolis (P. Kairo JE 89.127—30+89.137—43), in: B.
hieroglyphischen und demotischen Texte (Kurzberichte aus den GiefSener Papyrus-Sammlungen 42), 1986.
JaNowski and G. WILHELM (eds.), Dokumente zur Rechts- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte (TUAT N. F. 1), 2004, 185-207.
K. A. KircHEN, Ramesside
Inscriptions: Translations, vol. 1:
Beitrage zu dem Bruchstiick einer agyptischen Zivilprozefordnung in
1929. SPIEGELBERG
KapLony-HEckeL U. KarpLony-HEcKEL, Die GiefSener
KITCHEN
K. SETHE, W. SPIEGELBERG, Zwei
demotischer Schrift (ABAW N. F. 4),
(ed.), For His Ka. Essays Offered in Memory of Klaus Baer (Studies in
Ancient Oriental Civilization 55),
Memoires no. 65,
1978.
J. H. Jonnson, ‘Annuity Contracts’
and Marriage, in: D. P. SILVERMAN
S. QuiRKE, The Administration of Egypt in the Late Middle Kingdom, 1990. J. R. Rea, The Oxyrhynchus Papyri 46. Graeco-Roman
1955. JOHNSON
1872
(Bibliothéque d’ Etude 45), 1975.
egyptiennes et assyriennes 6, 1885,
CERNY/PEET
S. Lippert, Die sog. Zivilprozefordnung, in: The Journal ofJuristic Papyrology 33, 2003, 91-135. A. MARIETTE, Les papyrus égyptiens du
Ramesses I, Sethos I and
J. Tarr, P. Carlsberg 236: Another Fragment of a Demotic Legal Manual,
Contemporaries, 1993.
in: P. J. FRANDSEN (cf. CHAUVEAU),
TAIT
93-101.
55
A. II. LAWS, LAW CODES
THISSEN
H. J. Toissen, Zwei demotische Prozefprotokolle, in: Acta Demotica. Acts of the Fifth International Conference for Demotists, Pisa 1993 (Egitto e Vicino Oriente 17, 1994),
THEODORIDEs
A. THEODORIDES, Le Testament
1968
d’Imenkhaou, in: JEA 54, 1968,
THEODORIDES
A. THEODORIDES, L’acte de disposition
1985
de la statue stéléphore Caire CG 42.208 et son exécution, in: Chronique d’Egypte 60, 1985, 322-346. H. THompson, A Family Archive from Siut from Papyri in the British Museum,
283-288.
149-154.
THOMPSON
1934. WEILL WENTE
R. WEILL, Décrets royaux de l’ancien Empire, 1912. E. WenTE, Letters from Ancient Egypt,
1990. — Demotic law; Egypt; Egyptian law A. II. 1. Laws A. II. 2. Law COLLECTION
A. II. 3. Law CODEs A. IL. 4. Epicrs A. Il. 1. Laws
Apart from law collections, which, however, have only been found in Egypt dating from the sth cent. BC onwards (see below I. B.), laws only occur sporadically, e.g. in Egyptian (demotic and Greek) petitions and records of legal proceedings. There, they are often cited as utterances of the king (called ‘Pharaoh’ or ‘Great God’, but never referred to by name). An indication of source, referring to the relevant section of the law collections, is occasionally given in the Greek and demotic citations of the Ptolemaic period. The renditions of laws supplied by Diodorus [18] Siculus in the first book of his Bibliotheke must be treated with some caution. For some (e.g. laws regarding loans), confirmation has been obtained from other sources; yet, so far no supporting evidence for the criminal provisions has been found. The indications of the age of the laws given in the table are conjectured periods of origin.
AND
EDICTS: EGYPT
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
306
CODES
all dates BC
pap. dat.
or./leg.
Amenemhet III Amenemhet III
ancient name
source
‘Law on deserters’
Pap. Brooklyn 351446 rto, |. ro
(185 3-1806/5)
as I
as I
‘Law about one who has deserted for more than six months’
Pap. Brooklyn 351446 rto, Il. 55-56
as I
as I
‘Law on desertion from work’
Pap. Brooklyn 351446 rto, vertical ll. before Il.
as I
as I
‘Law on one who flees without fulfilling his
Pap. Brooklyn 351446 rto, |. 63
duties’ as I
Ramesses [3]
as I
‘Law on one who absconds from the work camp/prison’
Pap. Brooklyn 351446 rto, ll. 1, 3,
14, 25-54 Pap. Boulag 10, 1,10—-11 (= Pap. Cairo 58092)
unknown
Il (1183/2-11 52/1)
Late zoth Dyn. unknown
Pap. Turin 2021 (= 271) + Pap. Geneva D 409 2,11
(c. T1900)
Late 20th Dyn. unknown
Pap. Turin 2021 (= 271) + Pap. Geneva D 409 3,4-5
(c. L100)
Osorkon II/
unknown
Statue Cairo CG 42208 c.14
Harsiese
(c. 870-8 50)
LO.
170
before 526
‘from the law of the RY 21’ (the king is not
Pap. Siut B 1,17; 2,20
named)
Il.
170
before 526
‘from the law of the RY 21° (the king is not
Pap. Siut B 10,7; 9
named)
TZ.
170
before 526
‘law from the eighth
Pap. Siut Vo 3,17-19
section(?) of the Law of
Egypt that is called “of prison”?
ie
7,
before 526
‘from the law of the land’
Pap. Hermias 12, 4,18-19
ian
Toy)
before 526
as 13
Pap. Hermias 12, 4,19-20
5
15/114
before 526
Pap. Cologne 7676, 2,21-23
DOr,
A. Il. LAWS,
text context
content
LAW
CODES
AND
EDICTS:
EGYPT
bibliography
Entry journal from a work camp
Ep.: HAYES 47 TRANSL./COMM.: QUIRKE 135, who does not see these passages as descriptions of laws.
as I
Ep.: HAYEs 48 TRANSL./COMM.: QUIRKE 13 5 ED.: Hayes 48
as I
Transl./Comm.: QUIRKE 135 as I
as I
quoted in an accusation
quoted in the context of a division of goods before a court as7
The legacy passes to him who carries out the burial
Anyone may freely dispose of his own
Ep.: THEODORIDES 1968, 149
possession
TRANSL./COMM.: ALLAM, no. 280
The dowry is presented by the wife herself
TRANSL./COMM.: ALLAM, no. 280
quoted in an invocation of Anyone may freely dispose of his own possession the god Amun (the Egyptian formulation does not entirely correspond to
Ep.: CERNY/PEET Ep.: LEGRAIN 22
TRANSL./COMM.: THEODORIDES
1985, 334
7) Io.
Pph. of a law mentioned in In case of two successive marriages Ep.: THOMPSON with maintenance regulated by a doc., TRANSL./COMM.: JOHNSON 126 the first petition and the children of the first wife inherit repeated verbatim in the first statement of defence quoted in statement of grounds for judgment
The sale of possessions that serve as ED.: THOMPSON security for a doc. of maintenance is Transl./Comm.: JOHNSONI26 void if the woman benefiting from the doc. or her eldest son does not assent
quoted in a letter to judges
Transfer of possessions pursuant to a judgment takes place only after the judgment has been recorded
Ep.: THOMPSON
Greek translation of an Egyptian law, quoted in statement of grounds for judgment
Docs. without witness signature are
Ep.: PESTMAN 1992
14.
Greek translation of an Egyptian law, quoted in statement of grounds for judgment
False docs. will be torn up
ED.: PESTMAN 1992
15.
quoted in statement of grounds for judgment
Should anyone dispute the existence
Ep.: THISSEN (esp. 286) TRANSL./COMM.: LIPPERT LB.
1ie
I2.
ssh
not admissible as evidence in court
of one who has died childless, he must swear an oath on it
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
CODES
pap.dat. 16.
17.
115/114
308
or./leg.
ancient name
before 526
2nd half of rst unknown
source Pap. Cologne 7676, 2,24-26
‘laws of the Egyptians’
_Diod. Sic. 1,77,2
unknown
ASwue,
Diod Sie. 157733,
unknown
AST,
Diod. Sic. 1,77,4
2nd half of rst unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,77,5
cent. 18.
2nd half of rst
cent. 19.
20.
2nd half of rst cent.
cent. aT
ap
2nd half of rst cent.
unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,77,6
2nd half of rst
unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,77,7
2nd half of rst cent.
unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,77,8
2nd half of rst
unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,77,9
unknown
aS 17
Diod. Sic. 1,785
unknown
as 7
Diod. Sic. 1,78,3
cent.
2:3), 24.
cent. 5
2nd half of rst
cent. 26.
2nd half of rst
cent.
Dg
2nd half of rst cent.
unknown
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,78,3
28.
2nd half of rst cent.
unknown
Asny
Diod. Sic. 1,78,4
29.
2nd half of rst cent.
unknown
Auta
Diod. Sic. 1,78,5
30.
2nd half of rst cent.
Bokchoris* (719/17-7 14/12)
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,79,1
ane
2nd half of rst cent.
Bokchoris* (719/17-714/12)
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,79,2
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,79,3
as 17
Diod. Sic. 1,80,1
Ban
Boke
2nd half of rst
Bokchoris*
cent.
(719/17-71 4/12)
2nd half of rst
unknown
cent.
309
A. Il. LAWS,
LAW
CODES
AND
EDICTS:
EGYPT
text context
content
bibliography
16.
quoted in statement of grounds for judgment
In the absence of children and siblings, relations by marriage (?) also inherit
ED.: THISSEN (esp. 287) Transl./Comm.: Lippert LB.
17.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian
For perjury, the penalty is d.
17.-33.: cf. > Diodorus [18] Siculus
law 18.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
For failure to assist one who is
19.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian
Whoever falsely accuses another shall be punished as for the crime alleged
law 20.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
attacked, the penalty is d.
False statements regarding livelihood and illegal occupation shall be punished with death
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
the penalty is d.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Whoever kills his child must carry the corpse in his hands for three days
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Whoever kills a parent shall first be tortured, then burnt to death
ZA.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
D. shall only be imposed upon a pregnant woman after she has given
25.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Deserters and insubordinates shall be
26.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
The betrayal of military secrets shall be punished by cutting out the tongue
Agee
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Forgers shall be punished by cutting off the hands
Greek pph. of an Egyptian
The rape of a free, married woman shall be punished by castration
2D
22.
For the murder of a free man or slave,
birth
28.
law
punished by dishonour
29.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
For adultery, the man shall be punished with a thousand strokes of the cane, the woman with removal of the nose
30;
Greek pph. of an Egyptian
If no doc. exists recording an alleged loan, the alleged debtor may purge himself by an oath
law
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
For monetary loans (with doc.),
Bi.
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Debts may only be enforced by the possessions of the debtor; no imprisonment for debt
33+
Greek pph. of an Egyptian law
Existence of a registered guild of thieves; stolen objects could be recovered there in exchange for one quarter of their value
BT
interest may not exceed the amount of the sum loaned
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
310
CODES
A. Il. 2. Law COLLECTION
As far as is currently known, all surviving fragments of Egyptian law collections belong to a single collection, the codification ordered by Darius [1] I (according to a report on the verso of a papyrus, Pap. Bibl. nat. 215
asty (719/7). The work’s Egyptian title means “The Law of Egypt’. The Greek translation, which was prepared in the Ptolemaic period, was given as ‘Law of the Land’ (némos tés choras).
c.6—-16), between the third and nineteenth years of his
reign (520/19-504/3 BC) [1]. The laws compiled there date from the period up to the end of the reign of Amasis* (526), and it is uncertain whether the collection reached back any farther than the 24th Dyn-
Pap. dat.
Source
1 W. SPIEGELBERG, Die sog. Demotische Chronik des Pap. 215 der Bibliotheque Nationale zu Paris (Demotische Studien 7), 1914.
Observations
34.
2nd half of 3rd Pap. Cairo JE 89127-89130 cent. BC and JE 89137-89143
so-called Pap. Mattha (= so-called Codex Hermupolis)
35
2nd half of znd P Oxy. XLVI 3285 cent. AD
Fr. of a copy of the Greek translation from the Ptolemaic period
36.
3rd—2nd cents. BC
Pap. Berlin 13621, a-d, f; so-called ‘civil action order’ Pap. Cairo 50108 a and b; Pap. Giefen UB ror.3, Fr. II, III, [V, VIb and VII rto
357
st half of 3rd cent. BC
Pap. Carlsberg 236
38.
tstcent.BC
Pap. Berlin 23890 a-b, d-g rto
311
A. Il. LAWS, LAW CODES AND EDICTS: EGYPT
Content 34.
Bibliography
Plot leasing (1,1-2,11), public protest (2,12-22),
Ep.: MATTHA
building leasing (2,23-4,6), maintenance docs.
TRANSL.: STADLER
(4,6-5,31), disputes over land and houses (6,1-8,29), succession (8,30-9,26), miscellaneous
(9,26-10,30) AG
36.
Disputes over house possession. Text correspondsto 34 (above), 6,3-11 and 8,14-24
TRANSL.: PESTMAN 1985
Ep.: REA
miscellaneous topics, e.g. conduct of trials, priestly
Pap. Berlin 13621:
service
EpD.: SPIEGELBERG; TRANSL.: LIPPERT ZPO
Pap. Cairo 50108: Ep./TRANSL.: SETHE/SPIEGELBERG TRANSL.: LIPPERT ZPO
TRANSL.: LIPPERT ZPO Pap. GiefSen UB ro1.3: Ep.: KAPLONY-HECKEL 12-18, pl. 2f. TRANSL.: LIPPERT ZPO
Bie
Self-sale into slavery
Ep./TRANSL.: TAIT
38.
Monetary loans: interest, repayment
Ep./TRANSL.: LIPPERT FR
A. LAWS AND
Awl
LAW CODES
AWAGGIDES
Pap. dat. 39.
312
Source
2nd half of rst Pap. Carlsberg 301 and Pap. cent. BC Florence s. n. Orig.: Darius [1] I or later, but before 2nd
Observations Didactic commentary on CL of Darius [1] I, very fr., probably same textual basis as 40
cent. BC
40.
2nd half of 3rd Pap. Berlin 23757 rto
as 39
cent. BC Orig.: as 39
4I.
Ptolemaic period
Pap. GiefSen UB 107
very fr., CL or law code?
42.
2nd cent. (?) BC
Pap. Carlsberg 628
very fr., CL or law code?
A. II. 4. Epicrs
Another instrument of lawmaking (esp. for regulation _ staff of a temple or foundation from state service, with of individual cases) was the edict or decree of the Egyp- _ the establishment of new foundations or with appointtian king. These are mostly preserved where they were ments to public office. Only a representative selection published on stone steles for public proclamation.Such from the great abundance of Egyptian decrees can be examples frequently deal with the exemption of the _ presented here. 43.
Neferirkare
Stele from Abydus [2]
(2483/24332463/2413)
44.
Phiops II? (2279/2229-
45.
Neferkauhor (c. 2216/2166)
Stele Koptos G from the Temple of Min at Coptus *
Stele was used as spolia in a temple refurbishment
Stele Koptos L,
as 44
2219/2169)
46.
WRU Cont Nubkheperre Antef V
as 44.
Stele from Coptus *
(c. 1645) 47.
Haremhab* (1319-1292)
48.
4.RY of Sethos Nauri stele {x}I
(1287)
Stele of Haremhab on the — tenth pylon of the Temple of Karnak Rock stele at the Third Cataract
313
39.
A. II. LAWS, LAW CODES AND EDICTS: EGYPT
Content
Bibliography
miscellaneous topics, e.g. maintenance, leasing, succession, priestly service
Pap. Carlsberg 301: Ep./TRANSL.: CHAUVEAU Pap. Florence s. n.: Ep./TRANSL.: BRESCIANI
40.
miscellaneous topics: e.g. burial, attestation of docs., military service, protection of sacred animals, grain loans, maintenance law, marriage docs., conduct of trials
Ep./TRANSL.: LIPPERT LB
41.
not possible to determine in detail
Ep./TRANSL.: KAPLONY-HECKEL 133; 19-20; pl. Init
42.
not possible to determine in detail
ED./Transl.: Lippert FR
Ae
Ban on calling up priestly staff and agricultural labourers from the Temple of Abydus [2] for compulsory labour
Ep.: PETRIE 1903, 42; pl. 14, 18 TRANSL./COMM.: GOEDICKE 22-36
44.
Setting up of a statue and appointment of a sacrificial foundation for it
Ep.: WEILL 87-90, pl. 4, 11 TRANSL./COMM.: GOEDICKE 128-136
45.
Allocation of land for a pyramid foundation
Ep.: WEILL 81-86, pl. ro TRANSL./COMM.: GOEDICKE 165-171
46.
Conviction and dismissal of a priest who had stolen a relic; transfer of the office to another family
47.
Prohibition of unauthorized sequestration and tax collection
48.
Protecting the Nubian domains of the Temple of Osiris at Abydus [2] from infringements by the regime
__ED.: PETRIE 1896, 10; pl. 8. TRANSL./COMM.: WENTE 25f. (no. 13)
— Ep.: BOURIANT TRANSL./COMM.: KRUCHTEN Ep.: GRIFFITH TRANSL./COMM.: KITCHEN 38-50 (no. 24)
SSS
O6 151ESii
a
aE
6
I
pees
=n
Te ¢ Oye OG SF nie "| = Sew ©quee! ) eatin 7
a
aa
7
nul”
@u=ee
Cer
os
7
@)
webchat RwHhiie-.Galt=
&
eee gi a=
®
=
ones
Gund 9Oy Jee eh
oF
[-»
=
a
Ons 004
a)
mi
‘
-
_
eee
ehh
a
Shaw =
hs
=
rs
a
:
Pas aly
Cae
“)
=
:
nee)
: a
Cig
Gu_uqga®«.
G.cmmry 1 69%
»
—_~
“.
.
Ny
me
ee
ty
af
a
26 :
a
‘e
=e
ee
a
BS Eee
Sa
o)
Gana ier 68
69>)
0) eae
and) ae
eee. tae
a@ —_
ir -
0
ee aed i : LGR 9041 1)ODO Os) on
ee
|
325
A. Il]. ROMAN
LEGES AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
A. IU. ROMAN LEGES AND SENATUS CONSULTA: SELECTION
(Gottfried Schiemann) LUCREZI
The
following
selection
of particularly
important
Roman leges (laws) and senatus consulta (senate decrees) collates the specific acts of legislation discussed in the historical and biographical articles in the New Pauly. It also includes a small number of other laws that usefully supplement this information. No distinction has been made here between the types of law (e.g., for the /eges, between comitial laws, plebiscita, leges datae, leges rogatae etc.), because the classification of particular acts of legislation under these types and forms of edict appears too uncertain, and is, in any case, not relevant to its validity (applicability). In each case, where textual editions are available, the most recent or most readily available is given. Otherwise, for the /eges, the most important key to the sources remains the work of G. ROTONDI, to which, in
MANTHE
Pegasianum, 1989.
F. DE Martino, Wirtschaftsgeschichte des alten Rom, 1991. MULLER-EHLEN M. MULLER-EHLEN, Hereditatis petitio,
Martino, WG
1998. NOrrR
RS 1, RS 2
Eck ELSTER
G. Rotonp! (ed.), Leges publicae populi Romani. Elenco cronologico con una introduzione sull’ attivita
legislativa dei comizi romani, 1912 (repr. 1990).
SHERK
L. SCHUMACHER (ed.), Lateinische Inschriften, 1990. R. K. SHERK (ed.), Roman Documents from the Greek East: Senatus Consulta and Epistulae to the Age of Augustus,
SPITZL
T. Spirzu (ed.), Lex municipii
SCHUMACHER
E. BALTRUSCH, Regimen morum, 1989.
F.J. Bruna (ed.), Lex Rubria (with transl. and comm..), 1972. W. Eck et al., Das Senatus consultum de Cn. Pisone patre (with transl.), 1996. M. ELsTER (ed.), Die Geschichte der
ZRG £18, 2001, 1-72. M.H. CrawForp (ed.), Roman 1996.
ROTONDI
Abbreviations in bibliography: BALTRUSCH BRUNA
D. Norr, Zur Palingenesie der romischen Vormundschaftsgesetze, in:
Statutes, vols. 1-2 (BICS Supp. 64.1-2),
the absence of more recent editions, reference is there-
fore made by default. — Law [1]; Law [2]; Law, codification of [II]; Lex, leges; Plebiscitum; Senatus consultum; CODIFICATION
F. Lucrezi, Senatusconsultum Macedonianum, 1998. U. Mantue, Das senatus consultum
1969.
malacitani (Vestigia 36; with transl. and comm.), 1984. WATSON
A. Watson, Roman Slave Law, 1987.
mittleren romischen Republik (with comm.), 2003.
ERMANN
J. ERMANN, Strafprozess, Offentliches
Interesse und private Strafverfolgung, 2000. FIRA
S. RICCOBONO,J. BAviERA (ed.), Fontes iuris Romani anteiustiniani, 3 vols.,
FIRBRUNS
K.G. Bruns, TH. MOMMSEN, O. GRADENWITZz (ed.), Fontes iuris Romani antiqui, 1909 (repr. 1969). D. FLacH (ed.), Die Gesetze der friihen
1968.
FLACH
romischen Republik, 1994. FREIS
H. Frets (ed.), Historische Inschriften
zur romischen Kaiserzeit, *1994 (with HOBENREICH
KASER/HACKL
transl.). E. HOBENREICH, Annona, 1997. M. Kaser, K. Hack, Das rémische
Zivilprozefrecht (Rechtsgeschichte des Altertums 3.4; HdbA 10.3.4), *1996. KASER, RPR
M. Kaser, Das rémische Privatrecht
KUNKEL
(Rechtsgeschichte des Altertums 3.3; HdbA 10.3.3), 2 vols., *1971-1975. W. KunKEL, Untersuchungen zur
Entwicklung des romischen Kriminalverfahrens in vorsullanischer KUNKEL/ WITTMANN LAMBERTI LAZZARINI
Zeit (ABAW 56), 1962. W. KUNKEL, R. WITTMANN,
Staatsordnung und Staatspraxis der romischen Republik, Vol. 2, 1995. F. LAMBERTI, Tabulae Irnitanae: municipalita e ‘ius Romanorum’, 1993. S. LAZZARINI, Lex metallis dicta, 2001.
A. Ill. 1. LEGEs A. Ill. 2. SENATUS CONSULTA
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
316
CODES
A. Ill. 1. LEGES
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor
1.
Lex Acilia repetundarum
123 Of 122. BG
M’. Acilius [I 12] Glabrio
2.
Lex Acilia Minucia
201 BC
M’. Acilius [I 10] Glabrio and Q. Minucius [I 77] Thermus
3.
Lex Acilia de intercalando
Grigor BG
M’. Acilius [I 10] Glabrio
4.
Lex Aebutia
mid- to late 2nd cent. BC
Aebutius [1]
5.
Lex Aelia (et Fufia)
fer, anos LBA,
Aelius [I 1]
6.
Lex Aelia Sentia
AD 4
Sex. Aelius [II 7] Catus and C. Sentius [II 5] Saturninus
7.
Lex Aemilia
367 BC (2)
M. Aemilius [I 21} Mamercinus (ostensibly)
8.
Lex Aemilia sumptuaria
Ts SG
M. Aemilius [I 37] Scaurus
9.
Lex agraria
eer ah
unknown
10.
Lex Alearia
204 BC (?)
unknown
11.
Lex Antia sumptuaria
71 or 68 BC
C. Antius [4] Restio
12.
Lex Antonia de Termessibus
71 or 68 BC
C. Antonius [I 2]
13.
Lex Apuleia de maiestate
103 BC
L. Ap(p)uleius [I 11] Saturninus
14.
Lex Apuleia de sponsu
unknown
unknown
15.
Lex Aquilia
286 BC (?)
unknown
16.
Lex Atilia
2 TO DG (7)
L. Atilius [I 6] ?
17.
Lex Atinia de usucapione
6, 200 BC
C, Atinius [6] Labeo
18.
Lex Atinia
2nd cent. BC
Atinius [1]
19.
Lex Aurelia iudiciaria
70 BC
L. Aurelius [9] Cotta
Lex Aurelia de tribunicia
75 BC
L. Aurelius [5] Cotta
20.
potestate
21.
Lex Caecilia Didia
98 BC
Q. Caecilius [I 28] Metellus Nepos; T. Didius [I 4]
22.
Lex Calpurnia
90 BC (?)
L. Calpurnius [I 13] Piso Frugi
23.
Lex Calpurnia de ambitu
67 BC
C. Calpurnius [I ro] Piso
24.
Lex Calpurnia repetundarum
149 BC
L. Calpurnius [III 1] Piso Frugi
25.
Lex Canuleia
445 BC (?)
C. Canuleius [1]
26.
Lex Cassia
45 BC (?)
L. Cassius [I 14] Longinus (?)
27.
Lex Cassia tabellaria
17 Be
L. Cassius [I 17] Longinus Raviila
28.
Lex Cicereia
173 BC (?)
unknown
29.
Lex Cincia
204 BC
C. Cincius [3] Alimentus
317
iy
A. III. ROMAN
LEGES
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
ed./source
subject
observations/lit.
URNS) 1 mo}, a0 = OLUass3
introduction of criminal procedure against extortion (by -—> repetundarum crimen (with provincial governors) lit.)
ELSTER, no. 129
measures for ending the Second — Punic War
cf. E. Weiss, s.v. Lex. A.M., RE 12,2319 f.
ELSTER, no. 150
empowerment of the priests to order intercalation
— Calendar; cf. A. BERGER, s.v. Lex A. d. i.,
ELSTER, no. 194
ban on proposing relatives of magistrates against candidates for an extraordinary magistracy
— Aebutius [1]
ELSTER, no. 192
right of the magistrates to prevent popular assembles from making laws (and holding elections) on religious grounds
cf. E. Weiss, s.v. Lex A. 2,
Gai. Inst. 1,18-20
restriction of manumission and its effect
— ManumissionC.(withlit.)
ROTONDI 209;
term of office of the — censores
cf. KUNKEL/WITTMANN 395
Gell. NA 2,24,12
against culinary luxury
— Aemilius [I 37]
TIS
regulation of land ownership
— Agrarian laws
ELSTER, no. 118
against games of dice
— Dice (game)
ROTONDI 367
against culinary luxury
— Luxus
RS 1, no. 19
freedom and amity privileges for Termessus [1]
— Termessus [1]
ROTONDI 329
high treason, procedure for its prosecution
RE Suppl. 7, 378 f.
REir2
523208:
Liv. 4,24 — Luxus
8:5
— amicitia
— Ap(p)uleius [I 11] — matestas
Gai. Inst. 3,122
settlement among multiple sponsors
— Surety C.
RS 2, no. 41
main pillar of Roman liability law
— Lex Aquilia
ELSTER, no. 158
appointment of the guardian by the magistrate
— tutela [1x];
RS 2, no. 48
inapplicability of adverse possession to stolen goods
— usucapio
Gell. NA 14,8,2
people’s tribunes’ membership of the senate
— tribunus [7]
ROTONDI 369
composition of the quaestio trials
— Aurelius [9] — quaestio
20.
ROTONDI 365
restoration of the right of the people’s tribunes to continue the cursus honorum
— Aurelius [5]
21.
ROTONDI 335
procedure for presenting bills
— Didius [I 4] — plebiscitum
22.
ROTONDI 340
citizenship and tribus affiliation
— Calpurnius [I 23] — tribus
238
ROTONDI 374
obtaining office by deception
— Calpurnius [I 10] — ambitus
BAe
ELSTER, no. 200
quaestio proceedings against extortion by officials
— repetundarum crimen — quaestio
25.
FLACH, no. 37
marriage entitlement between patricians and plebeians
26.
Tac. Ann. 11,25,2
= ELSTER, no. 57
cf. NORR (passim) = ELSTER, no. 198
Dgfe ELSTER, no. 214
— tribunus [7]
— conubium
— plebs Il raising plebeians to the patrician rank
— plebs Il
voting in writing at trials
— iudicium — quaestio
28.
ELSTER, no. 226
citizenship quotas
— Surety C.
29.
ELSTER, no. 120
prohibition of donations and fees
— donatio
A. LAWS
30.
AND
LAW
318
CODES
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor
Lex Claudia
218 BC
(Oy audies (Iri
58 BC
P. Clodius [I 4] Pulcher
P. Clodius [I 4] Pulcher
Leges
Clodiae: 31.
Lex Clodia de collegiis
58 BC
32.
Lex Cocceia
AD 96
Nerva [2]
82-79 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
81 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
Leges
Corneliae
(33-375 39.-41.): 33. Lex Cornelia de adpromussoribus 34.
Lex Cornelia de ambitu
81 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
35.
Lex Cornelia de captivis
c. 80 BC
m=.
36.
Lex Cornelia de falsis
81 BC
L. Cornelius {I 90] Sulla
37.
Lex Cornelia de iniuriis
8x BC
ee .
38.
Lex Cornelia de iurisdictione
67 BC
C. Cornelius [I 2]
39.
Lex Cornelia de maiestate
81 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
40.
Lex Cornelia repetundarum
81 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
41.
Lex Cornelia de sicariis et venefictis
81 BC
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
42.
Lex Domitia
104 or 103 BC
Cn. Domitius {I 4] Ahenobarbus
43.
Lex Duilia
449 BC (?)
M. Duilius [3]
44.
Lex duodecim tabularum
c. 450 BC
Decemviri [1]
45.
Lex Fabia
2nd or rst cent. BC
unknown
46.
Lex Falcidia
40 BC
C. (P. ?) Falcidius
47.
Lex Fannia
161 BC
C. Fannius [I 6] Strabo
48.
Lex Fufia Caninia
DANSE
C. Fufius [II 1] Geminus; L. Caninius Gallus
49.
Lex Furia de sponsu
unknown
unknown
50.
Lex Furia testamentaria
between 204 and 169 BC
C. Furius {I r]
51.
Lex Gabinia de piratis persequendis
67 BC
A. Gabinius [I 2]
52.
Lex Gabinia tabellaria
139 BC
A. Gabinius [I 1]
53.
Lex Genucia
342 BC
L. Genucius [I 3]
54.
Lex Hortensia
286 BC (2)
Q. Hortensius [4]
55.
Lex Hostilia
2nd cent. BC (?)
Hostilius [1]
Lex Icilia
v. Lex Sicinia (122.)
Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
Lex de imperio (Republican period: Lex curiata de imperio): 56.
Lex de imperio Vespasiani
AD 69
Senate of Rome
57.
Lex Irnitana
before AD roo
conferrer of municipal charter: Domitianus [1]
Leges
Iuliae (58.-61., 63.-72.):
the laws of C. Iulius Caesar* and Augustus*
319
A. III. ROMAN
ed./source 30.
LEGES
subject
ELSTER, no. 83
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
observation/lit.
prohibition of commercial activity by senators
— Commerce V.A.
a series of political measures couched as legislation
— Clodius [I 4]
am.
Gice Piss Sh
readmission to collegia
— collegium [x]
32.
ROTONDI 470
prohibition of castration
— castratio
comprehensive legislation of the dictator Sulla, including:
— Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
ROTONDI 362
maximum sums for sureties
— Surety
34.
ROTONDI 361
against obtaining office by deception
— ambitus
Riya
|Dhkees ochre
‘fiction’ of valid testament in spite of subsequent
— postliminium
33.
captivity
36.
Dig. 48,10
counterfeiting of testaments and coins
— falsum
B77
Dee AT rOss
prosecution of — iniuria (bodily harm and breach of domestic peace) in the > quaestio procedure
cf. ERMANN 77-84
38.
ROTONDI 371
binding praetors to the edict
— edictum [2]
BOn
Cle Lis. 50
high treason, quaestio trials
— quaestio
40.
ROTONDI 360
extortion by public servants
— repetundarum crimen
Ale
RSG,
murder, esp. poisoning
— homicidium
42.
ROTONDI 329, 380
election of priests by the people (plebs)
— Domitius [I 4] — pontifex, pontifices
43.
LACH, no. 28
restoration of people’s tribunate and right of provocatio
— Duilius [3] — tribunus [7] — provocatio
44.
FLACH, no. 26
most comprehensive legislation record of the Roman Republic
— Tabulae duodecim
45.
ROTONDI 258
kidnapping, human trafficking, etc.
— plagium
46.
RS2,no. 51
protection of heirs against unreasonable bequests
— WillsandtestamentslV.B.
47.
ELSTER, no. 190
against luxury at feasts and games
— Fannius [I 6] — luxus
48.
Gai. Inst. 1,42-46
restrictions on testamentary manumissions
— Manumission C.
— matestas
50
49.
ELSTER, no. 225
limitation of liability of co-guarantors
— Surety C.
50.
ELSTER, no. 180
restrictions on legacies
— legatum
Cie
SIRALI. 02
Pompey’s (Pompeius [I 3]) supreme command against the pirates
52.
ELSTER, no. 212
secret ballot for magistrate elections
— Elections
53.
ELSTER, no. 19
prohibition of interest
— Interest I.B.
54.
ELSTER, no. 55
legal force of resolutions of the plebeian assembly
— plebiscitum
55.
ELSTER, no. 229
representation in court against the perpetrator of a property delict (fur, cf. + furtum)
cf. KASER/HACKL 63
confirmation of a particular > imperium by law
— imperium
|— Pompeius [I 3]
— Piracy
56.
RS xno. 39
transfer of the > imperium to Emperor Vespasian
— Lexdeimperio Vespasiani
57.
LAMBERTI
— Municipal law for Irni (southern Spain)
— Lex Irnitana — Latin law II.C.
the laws of C. Julius Caesar* and Augustus*
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
320
CODES
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor
Lex Iulia de adulteriis
18 BC
Augustus
Lex Iulia agraria
59 BC
Caesar*
Lex Iulia de ambitu
18 BC
Augustus*
Lex Iulia de annona
18 BC (?)
Augustus*
Lex Iulia de civitate
90 BC
L. Iulius [I 5] Caesar
%
Lex Iulia de fundo dotali
18 BC (?)
Augustus*
Lex Iulia tudiciorum
Ty.
(2)
Augustus*
Lex Iulia iudiciorum privatorum
17 BC (?)
Augustus*
Lex Iulia maiestatis
46 and 8 BC
Caesar* and Augustus*
Lex Iulia de maritandis ordinibus
18 BC
Augustus*
publicorum
83.
Lex Iulia de modo aedificorum
18 BC (?)
Augustus*
Lex Iulia municipalis
45 BC (?)
Caesar* (2)
Lex Iulia repetundarum
59 BC
Caésar*
Lex Iulia vicesimaria
AD 6 (?)
Augustus* (?)
Leges Iuliae de vi
19-16 BC (?)
Augustus*
Lex Iunia (Norbana ?)
AD 19
M. Iunius [II 41] Silanus; L. Norbanus [II 2] Balbus (?)
Lex Iunia Vellaea
AD 28
L. Junius Silanus; C. Vellaeus Tutor
Lex Laetoria
Ex, 2001 BE
unknown
Lex Latina Tabulae Bantinae
late 2nd cent. BC
unknown
Lex Licinia de sodaliciis
Sob
M. Licinius [I 11] Crassus
Lex Licinia Iunia
62 BC
L. Licinius [I 35] Murena; D. Tunius [I 30] Silanus
Lex Licinia Mucia
95 BC
L. Licintus [I ro] Crassus; Q. Mucius [I 9] Scaevola
Leges Liciniae Sextiae
367 BC
C. Licinius [I 43] Stolo; L. Sextius [I 6] Lateranus
Lex Licinia
5th or 4th cents. BC
unknown
Lex Maenia
3rd cent. BC (?)
unknown
Lex Malacitana
before AD too
conferrer of municipal charter:
e
Domitianus [1] 84.
Lex Mamilia Roscia Peducaea Alliena Fabia
c. 100 BC
85.
Lex Manciana
c.. AD 75 (?)
86.
Lex Manilia
66 BC
five people’s tribunes, perhaps incl. C. Mamilius [4] Limetanus
Mancia, legate of Vespasian (— Vespasianus),
probably on his behalf C. Manilius [I 2]
321
A. III. ROMAN
ed./source 58.
LEGES
subject
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
observation/lit.
RS2,no. 60
prosecution of adultery by quaestio trial
— adulterium — Marriage III.
SO
ROO
land allocations
— Agrarian laws
60.
ROTONDI 443
against obtaining office by deception
— ambitus
ROTONDI 448
campaign against malpractice in the supply of grain
— cura annonae — Grain laws; cf. HOBENREICH, esp.
ROTONDI 338
grant of citizenship to Latins and socii
— Tulius [I 5] — Citizenship IL.
Dig. 23,5
ban on sale of land from a dowry
—> dos
fundamental reform of the criminal proceedings of the
— iudicium
54
L52—078
ROTONDI 448-450
— quaestio RS 2, no. 61
transition to the formula trial
— formula
ROTONDI 422, 453
proceedings and penalty for high treason
— quaestio
RS 2, no. 64
bans on marriage
— Lex Iulia et Papia
ROTONDI 447
heights of buildings in Rome
— Building law B.
RS 1, no. 24
community constitution (probably draft only)
— municipium
— maiestas
— Municipal law RS 2, no. 55
extortion by public servants
— repetundarum crimen
ROTONDI 457
inheritance tax
— vicesima
RS 2, no. 62
violence perpetrated by mobs and public officials
—
ROTONDI 463
award of Latin citizenship to + Freedmen
— Latini Iuniani
RS 2, no. 65
hereditary appointment of postumi (children born after the death of the father)
— postumus [2]
RS 2, no. 44 = PESTER, NO. 147
protection of those under 25 in contractual business
— minores
RS
and no. 13
Oscan — Municipal law, penalties for piracy (?) and violent crime
cf. J.S. RICHARDSON, in: RS 1, no. 7; M.H. CRAWFORD, R.G. COLEMAN, in: RS 1, no. 13 (both: intr. and comm.)
ROTONDI 407
collusion for electoral fraud
— ambitus
ROTONDI 383
promulgation and archiving of bills
— Licinius [I 35]
ROTONDI 335
expulsion of non-Romans (trigger for the Social War)
— Social War [3]
FLACH, no. 62 a-d
one of the two consuls to be plebeian; (probably misattributed) agrarian law; (partial) debt redemption
— consul(es) — Agrarian laws
Gai. Inst. 4,17
procedure for division of a legal community
— communio
ELSTER, no. 81
senate confirmation of candidates and bills for the
— auctoritas Il.
anon 7,
vis
popular assembly — Lex Malacitana — Latin law II.C.
83.
SPITZL
— Municipal law of Malaca* (modern Malaga)
84.
FIRA 1, 138
procedure for establishing boundaries of land property
perhaps identical to 59.; — Agrarian laws
85.
Fira 1, 484, 493
cf. MARTINO, WG 277-283
86.
ROTONDI 375
administration of imperial + Domains in North Africa (?) bestowal of supreme command in the — Mithridatic War on Pompey
— Municipal law
— Pompeius [I 3]
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
222
CODES
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor
87.
Lex Maria
C. Marius [I r]
88.
Lex Menenia Sestia de multa et
T. Menenius [7] Lanatus; P. Sestius [5] Capitolinus
sacramento
89.
Lex metalli Vipascensis
2nd cent. AD
Hadrian
90.
Lex Ogulnia
300 BC
Q. Ogulnius [1] Gallus
QI.
Lex Ovinia
€, 3105 BG
Ovinius [I 1]
92.
Lex Papia Poppaea
9 BC
M. Papius [II 1] Mutilus; Q. Poppaeus [2] Secundus
93.
Lex Papiria
3rd or 2nd cent. BC
L. Papirius
94.
Lex Papiria tabellaria
131 BC
C. Papirius [I 5] Carbo
Lex Philonis
v. Lex Publilia (107.)
Lex Plaetoria
v. Lex Laetoria (75.)
95:
Lex Plautia de vi
before 63 BC
Plautius [I 1] or, more probably, M. Plautius [I 12] Silvanus
96.
Lex Plautia iudiciaria
89 BC
M. Plautius [I 12] Silvanus
97.
Lex Plautia Papiria
89 BC
M. Plautius [I 12] Silvanus; C. Papirius [I 6] Carbo
98.
Lex Poetelia de ambitu
358 BC
C. Poetelius [3] Libo Visolus
99.
Lex Poetelia Papiria
326 BC
C. Poetelius [3] Libo Visolius (oder C. Poetelius [4] Libo Visolius)
Ioo,
Lex Pompeia de ambitu
62 BC
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus
Iol.
Lex Pompeia de magistratibus
Foe
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus
102.
Lex Pompeia de parricidio
FS LOL SG
Cn. Pompetus [I 3] Magnus
103. Lex Pompeia de provinctis
52. bE
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus
104. Lex Pompeia de Transpadanis
89 BC
Cn. Pompeius [I 8] Strabo
105. Lex Pompeia Licinia
70 BC
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus; M. Licinius [I rr] Crassus
2nd cent. BC
M. Porcius Cato [1];
106.
Leges Porciae
P. Porcius [I 11] Laeca (?)
107. Lex Publilia (Lex Philonis)
339 BC
Q. Publilius [I 3] Philo
108. Lex Publilia de magistratibus
471 BC
Publilius [I 2] Volero
109. Lex Publilia de sponsu
4th/3rd. cents. BC
unknown
IIo.
Lex Pupia
61 BC
M. Pupius [I 3] Piso Frugi
OU is Be
Lex Quinctia
9 BC
T. Quinctius [II 2] Crispinus Sulpicianus
Ii2.
Lex Rhodia de iactu
latest rst cent. AD
Tae Lex Rubria
48-42 BC
Rubrius [I 2] for Caesar*
II4. Lex Salpensana
befcre AD roo
conferrer of municipal charter: Domitianus [1]
32:3
A. III. ROMAN
ed./source
LEGES
subject
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
observation/lit.
87.
ROTONDI 318
secret ballot at the popular assembly
— comitia
88.
FLACH, no. 24
maximum financial penalties
— multa
89.
FIRA 1, 104, 105 = LAZZARINI 19-37
organization of > Mining (III.) in Vipasca (Spain)
cf. MARTINO, WG 3 50-3 53
go.
ELSTER, no. 46
raising the number of priests and augurs, and proportional representation in favour of the plebeians (= plebs)
— augures —> pontifex, pontifices
91.
ELSTER, no. 38
selection of senators by the censors
— censores — lectio senatus
92.
RS 2, no. 64
Augustan marriage law
— Lex Iulia et Papia — Augustus
3m
RS 2 NOW'S
selection of the ‘three men’
— tresviri [1] capitales
= BISTER, nO, 223
94.
ROTONDI 302
secret ballot on laws in the popular assembly
— comitia
95.
ROTONDI 377f.
criminal prosecution of violent attacks on public institutions and buildings
= Vis
96.
ROTONDI 342
selection of judges (15 per tribus) for the — quaestio
cf. KUNKEL, 62note232;116
97.
ROTONDI 340
citizenship for the socii
— Social War [3]
98.
ELSTER, no. 6
election bribery
— ambitus
99.
ELSTER, no. 30
limitation (or abolition) of + nexum and debt bondage
— Poetelius [3] — Debt, debtredemption II.
100. ROTONDI 410
electoral bribery; procedures to counter it
— ambitus
tor. ROTONDI 411
unavoidable absence from Rome of candidates for office
102. ROTONDI 406
clarification of the elements of the offence of murder; abolition of the ‘sack’
103. ROTONDI 411
five-year interval between magistracy and promagistracy
— Pompeius [I 3] D. — magistratus C.4.
104. ROTONDI 342
award of Latin law to the Transpadani
— Latin law
105. ROTONDI 369
restoration of the status of the people’s tribunes
—> Pompeius [I 3] B. — tribunus |7]|
106. ELSTER, no. 142
three laws abolishing the punishment of flogging and extending the right of objection to the — coercitio
—> Pompeius [I 3] D.
= —> parricidium — culleus
= —> provocatio
— coercitio; cf. J. BLEICKEN, s.v. provocatio, RE23,2447-2450
107. ELSTER, no. 21
presentation of bills to the senate prior to the popular — — Publilius [I 3] assembly; one of the two — censores must be a plebeian
108. FLACH, no. 19
establishment of five comitia tribute for the election of people’s tribunes
— comitia — concilium — tribus
109. ELSTER, no. 224
limitation of recourse and enforcement by the sponsor against the debtor
-> Surety C.; cf. KAsER, RPR 1, 172
110. ROTONDI 399
prohibition of senate sittings on assembly days
— senatus II.C.
TINS
penalties for damaging water supply facilities
— Water supply ILF.
Tia Dig an:
collective risk in shipwreck
— iactus (term for a Roman common-law institute derived from the Greek)
113. FIRA I, 169
administrative and judicial ordinance for — Gallia cisalpina; surviving parts deal with building law
— Building law; cf. BRUNA
114. FREIS, no. 59
— Municipal law for Salpensa* (modern Facialcazar
— Lex Salpensana
near Utrera, southern Spain)
—> Latin law II.C.
2 NOs
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
324
CODES
name of law 115. Lex Scantin(i)a
year of promulgation
“and cent. BC (2)
sponsor
unknown
116. Lex Scribonia
50 BC (2)
C. Scribonius {I 4] Curio (?)
117. Lex Sempronia agraria
133 BC (?)
Ti. Sempronius [I 16] Gracc(h)us
118. Lex Sempronia de capite civis
123 BC
C. Sempronius [I 11] Gracc(h)us
119. Lex Sempronia frumentaria
123 BC
C. Sempronius [I 11] Gracc(h)us
120. Lex Sempronia iudiciaria
122 BC
C. Sempronius [I 11] Gracc(h)us
121. Lex Servilia de repetundis
tor BC (?)
C. Servilius [I 22] Glaucia (?)
122. Lex Sicinia de tribunorum plebei sanctitate
492 BC
C. Sicinius [I r]
123. Lex Silia
2nd half of 3rd cent. BC
unknown
124. Lex Tarentina
Ist cent. BC
magistrate of Tarentum
125. Lex Terentia
189 BC
Q. Terentius [I 5] Culleo
126, Lex Trebonia
448 BC
L. Trebonius [I 2] Asper
127. Lex Ursonensis
after 44 BC
M. Antonius [I 9]?
128. Lex Valeria
509 BC
P. Valerius [I 44] Poplicola
509 BC;
P. Valerius [I 44] Poplicola; M. Valerius [I rr] Corvus
129. Lex Valeria de provocatione
300 BC
130. Lex Valeria
82 BC
L. Valerius [I 22] Flaccus
131. Lex Valeria Horatia
449 BC
L.Valerius [I 46]
132. Lex Varia de maiestate
90 BC
Q. Varius [I 3] Severus Hibrida
133. Lex Villia Annalis
180 BC
L. Villius [2] Annalis
134. Lex Voconia
169 BC
Q. Voconius [I 2] Saxa
325
A. III]. ROMAN
ed./source
LEGES AND
subject
SENATUS
CONSULTA
observation/lit.
115. ELSTER, no. 201
seduction of minors
— Homosexuality III.B
116. ROTONDI 414
abolition of usucaption for servitudes
— usucapio — praescriptio longi temporis; cf. KAseR, RPR 1,444f.
117. ROTONDI 298
distribution of land
— Agrarian laws — Sempronius [I rr]
118. ROTONDI 309
extraordinary courts (quaestiones extraordinariae) only
—» Sempronius [I 16]
to be deployed by — plebiscitum; regulation of the
— quaestio
provocatio
— provocatio
119. ROTONDI 307
Roman grain supply
— Grain laws
120. ROTONDI 308
admission of equestrians (— equites Romani) as jurors
— Sempronius [I rr]
121. ROTONDI 322
procedure and legal consequences for extortion in public office
— repetundarum crimen
122. FLACH, no. 15
sacrosanctity of the people’s tribunes
— sacrosanctus — tribunus [7]
123. RS 2, no. 46
claim for restitution of a monetary sum
— condictio
TIA ROA NOLL 5
constitution and administration of Tarentum
=» larasyllez
125. ELSTER, no. 154
full — Citizenship for the sons of freedmen
— Freedmen
126. FLACH, no. 35
apparently prohibition of the co-opting of people’s tribunes
— Trebonius [I 2] — cooptatio
1272 NS ly DO: 2,5
Municipal law of Urso* (modern Osuna, southern
— Lex Ursonensis
Spain)
— Latin law II.C. — Municipal law
128. FLACH, no. 7
(legendary) threat of the death penalty for efforts to restore the monarchy
cf. FLACH 63 (on no. 7)
129. FLACH, no. 6
right to object to the — coercitio
— provocatio
130. ROTONDI 348f.
appointment of Sulla as dictator
— Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
131. FLACH, nos. 29-31
apparently, binding effect of resolutions of the popular assembly; sacrosanctity of the people’s tribunes;
— plebiscitum — tribunus [7]
archiving of senate resolutions in the — aerarium
— sacrosanctus
= ELSTER, no. 119
— Manumission
132. ROTONDI 339
prosecution of those responsible for the — Social War [3] for high treason
133. ELSTER, no. 164
minimum age for magistrates and compulsory intervals
— senatusconsultum [1] — maiestas -—> cursus honorum
between different offices 134. ELSTER, no. 181
limitations on right of succession, esp. of patrician women
— Lex Voconia
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
326
CODES
If. 2. SENATUS CONSULTA
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor/eponymous magistrate
SC Acilianum
AD 122
Acilius [II 4], Hadrian*
SC Atinianum
AD 62(?)
unknown
SC de advocationibus
AD
Imp. Claudius [III 1]
SC de aquaeductibus SC de Asclepiade
11 BC
Augustus*
78 BC (?)
unknown
SC de Bacchanalibus
186 BC
Q. Marcius [I 17] Philippus, Sp. Postumius [I 8] Albinus
SC Calvisianum
A BG
C. Calvisius [7] Sabinus for Augustus* (?)
SC Calvisianum
AD 61
P. Calvisius (?)
SC Claudianum
AD 47
Imp. Claudius [II] 1]
Io.
SC Claudianum
AD 49
Imp. Claudius [III r}
ri.
SC Claudianum
AD 52 or 54
Imp. Claudius [III 1]
12.
SC de collegiis
between 30 BC and AD 14
Augustus*
13}
SC Dasumianum
after AD 117
Dasumius [3] Rusticus for Hadrian
4.
SC de Iudaeis
Taz b
unknown
rey
SC Hosidianum
AD 47
Cn. Hosidius [4] Geta
16.
SC Iuncianum
AD 127
Hadrian*
ath
SC Iuventianum
AD 129
P. Iuventius [II 1] Celsus
18.
SC Largianum
AD 42
Imp. Claudius [III 1}
19.
SC Libonianum
AD 16
unknown
20.
SC de ludis saecularibus
gh OG)
Augustus*
21.
SC Macedonianum
between AD 70 and 79
unknown
22.
SC Neronianum
between AD 60 and 64
Imp. Nero [1]
23.
SC Ninnianum
between AD 81 and 96.
Imp. Domitianus [I]
24.
SC de nundinis saltus Beguensis
AD 138
Lucilius [II 1] Africanus as beneficiary ?
25.
SC Orfitianum
AD 178
Ser. Scipio Orfitus cos. (cf. Cornelius [II 53])
55
Gite)
*
oi,
A. III. ROMAN
LEGES
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
ed./source
subject
observations/lit.
Dig. 30,41,1 — 43,3
prohibition on bequeathing parts of a still-standing house as > legatum
cf. KASER, RPR 1,749 fn. 39
Inst. Iust. 3,1,14
right of succession of an (emancipated?) adoptive son
cf. KasER, RPR 1, 713
Plin. Ep. 9,4
prohibition on paying or promising a fee to a lawyer
— advocatus
before a trial FIRA I, no. 41
administration of the Roman > Water supply (II.)
SHERK, no. 12
declaration of amity (admission to the formula — sOcit sociorum; preserved in Greek and Latin) with the citizens of Cos (?); exemption from taxes and duties for Greek captains
SCHUMACHER, no.
persecution of manifestations of the Bacchus cult
—
senatus consultum
de
Bac(ch)analibus — Bacchus
Aoi
FIRA I, 410-414
— cura [2]
proceedings against provincial extortion
— repetundarum crimen
dowry of a woman over 50 forfeit to the state on her
— caducum
death
— Lex Iulia et Papia
limit on permitted fees for lawyers (up to 10,000
— advocatus
(no. 68)
= SHERK, no. 31
Ulp. 16,3f. Plin. Ep. 5,9
sestertit) Io.
Gai. Inst. 1,62
legalization of marriage between uncle and niece
— Claudius [III 1] — Agrippina [3]
Ae
Gai. Inst. 1,84; 1,91
child of a citizen by a slave is enslaved, sometimes the mother too
— Slavery; cf. KASER, RPR 1, 289
12.
FIRA I, no. 46
foundation and supervision of collegia
— collegium [x]
Efe
Dig. 40,5,22,25 40,5536
facilitation of manumission granted by — fidei-
— Manumission C.
Jos. Ant. Iud.
opinion on the appeal of the — Antiochus [9] VII
14.
13,260-265
commissum
Hasmonaeans against
— Hyrkanos [2]
£5.
FREIS, no. 35 = FIRA I, no. 45
state regulation of private building work
16.
FIRBRUNS, no. 59
compulsory implementation of manumission by — fidei- — Manumission C.;
U7.
Dig. 5,3,20,6-6d
— senatus consultum Hosidianum — Baurecht B.
commissum
cf. KASER, RPR 1, 295
recovery of an inheritance forfeit to the state; extension of inheritance claim against vendors
— petitio
— caducum; cf. MULLER-EHLEN (passim)
18.
Gai. Inst. 3,63
right of succession to a — Freedman subject to Latin law
— Latini Iuniani
19.
Dig. 48,10 (22)
arising from the trial of M. Scribonius [II 6] Libo (?): invalidity of bequests in favour of the writer of the will;
— falsum
from the reign of Claudius [III 1], this was grounds for prosecution for forgery 20.
FIRA 1, no. 40
design of festival celebrating the dawn of a new age
— saeculum Ill.
— ludi IL.K 21.
Dig. 14,6,1pr.
— Loans (III.) to sons subject to the — patria potestas void
— mutuum D.;
22.
Ulp. 24,11 a
revision of (ineffective) legacies per vindicationem into legacies per damnationem
— legatum
23%
Dig. 40,16,1-3;
prevention of the evasion of manumission provisions
— Manumission;
cf. LUCREZI (passim)
cf, KAsER, RPR 1, 289
Cod. Iust. 7,20,2 24.
FIRA I, no. 47
granting of market rights
DiS
Inst. Iust. 3, 4
right of succession of children ahead of agnatic relatives
— Market — saltus — agnatio — Succession, law of III.C.; cf. KASER, RPR 1, 702
A. LAWS
AND
LAW
328
CODES
name of law
year of promulgation
sponsor
26.
SCde pago Montano
rst cent. BC
unknown
27.
SC Pegasianum
between AD 70 and 79
Pegasus*
28.
SCde philosophis et rhetoribus
161 BC
C. Fannius [I 6] Strabo
29.
SCde Cn. Pisone patre
AD 20
Tiberius*
30.
SCPlancianum
between AD 70 and 79
unknown
31.
SC Rubrianum
AD 103 (?)
Rubrius [II 4] Gallus (?)
32.
SCSilanianum
AD to
Augustus* ?
33.
SCde sumptibus ludorum gladiatorum
AD 176
Imp. Marcus [2] Aurelius
34.
SC Tertullianum
between AD 117 and 138
~—Hadrian* ?
35.
SCde Thisbensibus
170 BC
unknown
36.
SCde Tiburtinis
159 BC
unknown
37.
SC Trebellianum
AD 56 or 57
M. Trebellius [II 2] Maximus
38.
SC Turpillianum
AD 61
unknown
39.
SC Vellaeanum
mid-rst cent. AD
unknown
40.
SC Volusianum
AD 56
Q. Volusius [II 4]
329
A. III]. ROMAN
ed./source
LEGES
subject
AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
observation/lit.
26.
FIRA TI, no. 39
against the use of a plot of land in the district of Montanus as a rubbish tip
— pagus
274
Gai. Inst: 252/54
compulsion on heirs charged by — fideicommissum to accept the inheritance; admission of a minimum inheritance of one quarter
— legatum; cf. MANTHE
28.
FIRA I, no. 32
expulsion of Greek philosophers and rhetors from Rome
— Rhetoric VI.B.1 — Tolerance II.C.; cf. BALTRUSCH 81-85
29.
EcK
punishment of conspirators (death of Germanicus [2], _— senatus consultum de Cn. cf. Calpurnius [II 16]) Pisone patre
30.
Dig.25,3,1and3
obligation upon a divorced woman to give notification of her pregnancy, with maintenance consequences for the divorced husband
cf. KASER, RPR 1, 346
31.
FIRBRUNS,no. 58
manumission by the praetor in case of absence of the party obligated under — fideicommissum
cf. KASER, RPR 1, 295
32.
Dig. 29,5
torture and killing of all house slaves following the violent death of the head of the household
—» Torture; cf. WATSON 134-138
33.
FrRa1,no. 49
restrictions on gladiatorial combat
— munus, munera C.3
34.
Inst. Iust. 3,3
right of succession of the mother to her children, if she possessed the ius liberorum
— ius E.2
35.
SHERK, no. 2
administration of the town of Thisbe (Boeotia) following its conquest by the Romans
— Thisbe [1]
36.
FIRA I, no. 33
amnesty for the town of Tibur (modern Tivoli)
— Tibur
a7.
Die, 316,151.)
equivalence of fideicommissary to true inheritance for creditors and in cases of hereditatis — petitio
—> fideicommissum — heres — bonorum possessio
38.
Dig. 48,16
punishment of false accusation in (abandoned) private action
-> tergiversatio
39.
Dig. t6s1,2,1
prohibition on intercessio by women
—> intercessio II.
40.
Dig. 48,7,6;
prohibition on the purchase of buildings to tearthem down, incl. participating in an appeal to divide the profits thereby gained (?)
— Building law B.
FIRA I, no. 45
A. LAWS
AND
35°
LAW CODES
CHRONOLOGICAL
LIST: LEGES
year of promulgation
no.
unknown unknown
14. 49. 128. 129.
509 BC 509 BC; 300 BC
name of law
Lex Apuleia de sponsu Lex Furia de sponsu
Lex Valeria Lex Valeria de
year of promulgation
no.
name of law
173 BC (?)
28.
Lex Cicereia
169 BC 161 BC c. 158 BC mid/late 2nd cent.
134. 47. 5. 4.
Lex Lex Lex Lex
149 BC
24.
Lex Calpurnia repetundarum Lex Gabinia tabellaria Lex Cassia tabellaria Lex Sempronia agraria Lex Papiria tabellaria Lex Sempronia de capite civis Lex Sempronia frumentaria Lex Acilia repetundarum Lex Sempronia iudiciaria
5th or 4th cents. BC
8r.
Lex Licinia
139 BC
52
492 BC
T22),
Lex Sicinia (Icilia) de
137 BC 133 BC (?) 170, BE £245,
27. Eige 94. 118.
124, BG
119
124 OL 122 BG
¥,
sanctitate
471 BC
108.
Lex Publilia de magistratibus
452 BC
88.
c. 450 BC 449 BC (?) 449 BC 448 BC 445 BC (?) 4th or sthcents. BC 4th/3rd cents. BC 367 BC (2)
44. 43. 130. 126. Ds 81. 109. Te
Lex Menenia Sestia de multa et sacramento Lex duodecim tabularum Lex Duilia Lex Valeria Horatia Lex Trebonia Lex Canuleia
367 BC
80.
358 BC
98.
342 BC 339 BC
Bhs 107.
Lex Aemilia Leges Liciniae Sextiae Lex Poetelia de ambitu Lex Genucia Lex Publilia (Philonis)
326 BC
99.
Lex Poetelia Papiria
G05 be 300 BC 300 BC; 509 BC
gt. 90. 129.
Lex Ovinia Lex Ogulnia Lex Valeria de
3rd cent. BC (?) 3rd or 2ndcents. BC
82. 93.
286 BC (?)
15.
Lex Aquilia
286 BC (?) 2nd half of 3rd cent.
54. 123.
Lex Hortensia Lex Silia
30. 16. 10. 29. 50.
Lex Lex Lex Lex Lex
201 BC
Oye
Lex Acilia Minucia
c. 200 BC 6G: 200 BC
GP, Tis.
Lex Atinia de usucapione Lex Laetoria (Plaetoria)
2nd cent. BC 2nd cent. BC (?) 2nd cent. BC
18. Cees 106.
Lex Atinia Lex Hostilia Leges Porciae
2nd cent. BC (?)
mi 5
2nd or rst cents. BC c. 191 BC
45. 2 eae
180 BC
maige
120
119 BC
87.
Lex Maria
115 riz 104 103 ro1 late
8 9. 42. nes I21 76.
c. 100 BC
84.
rst cent. BC 98 BC
124 21
Peducaea Alliena Fabia Lex Tarentina Lex Caecilia Didia
95 BC
79.
Lex Licinia Mucia
90 BC (?)
BON
Lex Calpurnia
90 BC
62.
Lex Iulia de civitate
90 BC 89 BC
Ea 2. 96.
Lex Varia de maiestate Lex Plautia iudiciaria
89 BC
97.
Lex Plautia Papiria
89 BC
104.
82 BC 82-79 BC
130
Lex Pompeia de Transpadanis Lex Valeria Leges Corneliae
81 BC
Bae
81 81 8r 81 81
BC BC BC BC BC
3A. 36. ag. 2G. 40.
81 BC
4I.
Lex Scantin(i)a
c. 80 BC 75 BC
BS. 20.
Lex Fabia Lex Acilia de intercalando Lex Terentia Lex Villia Annalis
71 or 68 BC 71 or 68 BC
1 Ta
70 BC
19.
Lex Licinia Lex Publilia de sponsu
provocatione Lex Maenia
Lex Papiria
Claudia Atilia Alearia Cincia Furia testamentaria
169
189 BC
122 BC
Lex Aemilia sumptuaria Lex agraria Lex Domitia Lex Apuleia de maiestate Lex Servilia de repetundis Lex Latina Tabulae Bantinae Lex Mamilia Roscia
BC 218 BC 210 BC (?) 204 BC (?) 204 BC between 204 and
Aelia (et Fufia) Aebutia
BC
provocatione
tribunorum plebei
Voconta Fannia
BC BE or 103 BC BC BC (?) 2nd cent. BC
Lex Cornelia de adpromissoribus Lex Cornelia de ambitu Lex Cornelia de falsis Lex Cornelia de iniuriis Lex Cornelia de maiestate Lex Cornelia repetundarum Lex Cornelia de sicariis et veneficiis Lex Cornelia de captivis Lex Aurelia de tribunicia potestate
Lex Antia sumptuaria Lex Antonia de Termessibus Lex Aurelia iudiciaria
33%
A. III. ROMAN
LEGES AND
SENATUS
CONSULTA
year of promulgation
no.
name of law
year of promulgation
no.
name of law
70 BC 67 BC
105. 23%
Lex Pompeia Licinia Lex Calpurnia de ambitu
2nd cent. AD
89.
Lex metalli Vipascensis
67 BC
38.
Lex Cornelia de
CHRONOLOGICAL LIST: SENATUS CONSULTA
67 BC
sii
iurisdictione Lex Gabinia de piratis persequendis
66 BC
86.
T ox Ata
year of
before 63 BC 62 BC ‘ 62 BC 61 BC
95. 8. J 100. ‘
Lex Plautia de vi Lex Licinia Iuni fen Lex Pompeia de ambitu Lex P.
promulgation
59 BC
59.
Lex Iulia agraria
59 BC 58 BC
70. ore
Lex Iulia repetundarum Lex Clodia de collegiis
oP ci
77°
a
ae
an
52 BC
IOl.
The number of heavy infantry to be provided was cut from 150 to 60.
343
nes
B. 1). HITTITE
LAG
TREATIES
treaty provisions
text
edit./transl.
[very fr.]
KUB 36.106 (+)
GLIN Sp, MNS 216-223
Bhs
RF Sp
sharing of booty [very fr.]
Akkad.: A. KUB 4.76 B. KUB 31.82 Hitt.: A. KUB 31.81 B. KBo 19.36 C. Kbo 19.37
Be
R
mutual discretionary military support;
A. KBo 28.107
sharing of booty; free passage for emissaries
B,. KBo 28.108 B,. KBo 28.109+
non-aggression pact [very fr.]
KUB 36.108
4.
P
MDOG
103, 1971, 59-68
KES, Git; LOGIE
129-132 Ge
RI
treatment of emissaries; treatment of
| KUB 34.1+
HDT 11-13
nomadic groups and overrun settlements 6.
P PH Sc Sp
Fe
8.
MF
obligation to audience with GK; alliance against Hurrians*; pb. of diplomatic relations with Hurrians; trustworthiness of emissaries*; Local defections?
Akkad.: A. KBo 1.5 B. KUB 3.4 C. KBo 28.106 D. KBo 28.75 Hitt.: A.KUB 8.81+
PDK 88-111; HDT 17-26
PSpFR
hostage provision (?), sharing of booty
KUB 3.16+
PDK 136-147
PRCW
hostage provision [very fr.]
KBo 16.27+
KASKAER
B. KUB 36.127
134-138
9.
Sp R#*G
Free passage for Hittite troops passing through; non-aggression pact;
1. KUB 13.27+ 2. KUB 31.105
KaSKAER I 17-130, 139-140
peace treaty to halt Kaskaean* incursions (apparently with Kaskaean
A. KBo 8.35 _B. KUB 23.78b+
KASKAER 109-117
hostages sent)
C. KBo 16.29
Kaskaean trade by permission; pb. on giving support to enemies of the Hittites and on frontier-crossing by cattle (T draft) 10.
GCBW
D. KUB 31.104
te.
RIC
12,
PMSRLIGCW
13.
PSpMRL
14.
Kaskaean trade by permission; pb.on incursions into Hittite territory; pb.on joint grazing by Kaskaean and _
1. KUB 26.19 2. A. KUB 26.20+ B. KUB 40.14
KASKAER 130-134
enemies’ cattle
3. KUB 40.21
right of troops from Ismerika to plunder rebel towns
KUB 23.68+
WO 5, 1970, 191-217; HDT 13-17
KUB 26.294
Eothen 5, 73-79
non-aggression pact (?) Hatti— Eg.
A. KBo 8.37
[very fr.
B. KUB 23.7 C. KUB 40.28
B. INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
344
CTH
period
lang.
signatory 1: Hittites
signatory 2
type
Sh
146
MH
Hitt.
N.N.
elders of Pahhuwa, ISuwa* et al.
VT
16.
28
MH
Hitt.
N.N.
Huhazalma of N.N.
?
7.
42
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma I
Hukkana of Hajasa_
VT
(Gol
5 $=135 20)
18.
44
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma I, Henti, Arnuwanda, Ziti
Telibinu (Hitt. prince VT and High Priest at Kizzuwatna*
19.
53
NH
Akkad.
Suppiluliuma |
Tette of Nuhasse
VI
20.
136
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma I
N.N. of Mukis
?
a8Ee
46
NH
Akkad.
Suppiluliuma I
Niqmaddu of Ugarit*
VT
22s
49
NH
Hitt., Akkad.
Suppiluliuma I
Aziru of Amurru [2] VT
DBE
50
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma I
Sarrikusuh of Karkemis* (son of
VT
the GK)
24.
55 Se
NH
Hitt., Akkad.
Suppiluliuma I
2:5.
69
NH
Hitt.
Mursili II (c.
13 18-1290)
Sattiwaza of Mittani*
VT
Manapa-Tarhunta’
VT
of Seha* (River Land) 26.
67
NH
Hitt.
Mursili IL
Targasnalli of Hapalla
VT
° Accusation of Mita of Pahhuwa, justifying the demand for his extradition. 7 mutual. * The vassal’s marriage to a sister of the GK does not entitle him to make improper advances to her female relatives or other palace women. ? Support for Telibinu from the GK. *° Including transfer of refugees from third countries to Hatti. ™ The Hitt. troops were to be supplied, but were for their part forbidden aggressive action. "2 There are several versions of the T, some as the T of Suppiluliuma I with Sattiwaza, some as the T. of Sattiwaza with Suppiluliuma I. But all versions were written in the same chancellery. "3 Sattiwaza married a daughter of Suppiluliuma. “4 Including repatriation of absconded civilian prisoners under duty of service. *S Only farmers and craftsmen to be delivered up to TargaSnalli. Civilian prisoners under duty of service from Arzawa*, fleeing home from Hatti, must be returned.
345
Boll.
BITTITE
TREATIES
treaty provisions
text
edit./transl.
15.
PH°’SpMRLW
extradition of Mita and his entourage; pb. of diplomatic relations with the enemy; prevention of rebellions; pb. on making booty; support for Hitt. forces
KUB 23.72+
HDT 160-166; AAA 28, 1948, 32-47
iy
URORIG
[very fr.]
KBo 16.47
MDAI(Ist) 17,
1967, 55-625 Eothen 5, 63-72
17,
PPHSpML’GCB
moe
Op
19.
PPHSpMR'LGC B
confidentiality of information; treatment of women*®
A. KBo 5.3+ B. KBo 19.44+ 1. KUB 19.25 2. KUB 19.26
obligation to tribute and audience
A. KBo 1.4+ B. KUB 3.2 C. KBo 1.16
SV 2, 103-163; HDT 26-34 Kizz. 12-17
PDK 58-71; HDT 54-58
D. KUB 3.3 E. KBo 28.98
20;
G
{very fr.]
KBo 13.55
or,
PiPEER RAY GC
(including a tablet describing tribute to be brought: gold, noble garments)
A. RS 17.340 B. RS 17.369A
22.
PPHSpMRLGC B
tribute: 300 gold shekels (c. 3.6 kg); stationed troops™
Akkad.: B. KUB C. KBo D. KBo
A. KUB3.7+ 3.19+ 28.118 28.140
HDT 34-36 =PDK 70-75; HDT 36-41
Hitt.: KBo 10.12(+)
poe, |
24.
PHSc%SpFRLGC B
archiving and implementation of the T KUB 19.27 (gold tablet) [very fr.]
Forsch. I/z, 48-50
relations among vassals: pb. on hostile
PDK HDT PDK HDT
prevention of the overrunning of towns; recording and regular reading of the T
Akkad.: A. KBo 1.1 _B. KBo 1.2 C. KUB 3.1a-d+ Hitt.: A. KUB 21.18(+)
(duplicates in several temples)
Akkad.: KBo 1.3(+)
action among Princes of Mittani* and
2-37; 41-48 36-57; 48-54
Hitt.: KUB 8.80+ 25.
PPHScSpFR™GC B
prevention of hostilities against neighbours
A. KUB 19.49+ B. KUB 19.50+ C. KUB3 1.83
SV 2, I-41; HDT 82-86
26.
SpR®LIGB
stationed troops; the vassals in Arzawa* must preserve the peace among themselves; obligation to
KBo 5.4
SV I, 51-94; HDT 69-73
support and inform local Hitt. officials
B. INTERNATIONAL TREATIES
346
CTH
period
lang.
signatory 1: Hittites
signatory 2
type
Oo
62
NH
Hitt., Akkad.
Mursili I
Tuppi-Tessup of Amurru [2]
VT
28.
63
NH
Hitt.,
Mursili II
Tuppi-Tessup of
VI
Akkad.
Amurru [2]
29.
63
NH
Hitt.
Mursili I
Abiratta of Barga
VT
30.
66
NH
Akkad.
Mursili II
Niqmepa of Ugarit*
VT
Zyl
68
NH
Hitt.
Mursili II
Kupanta-Kurunta of VT Mira*-Kuwalija
Bon
76
NH
Hitt.
Muwattalli II (c.
Alaksandu of Wilusa VT
1290-1272)
BB.
75
NH
Akkad.
Muwattalli II
Talmi-Sarruma of Aleppo*
VT
"6 Mutual. "7 Insurgents in particular to be transferred to the GK and groups of refugees to be led to Hatti. The GK makes no repatriations, not even of Ugaritians.
"8 Relations with Eg. and Hanigalbat ( 2) forbidden. *° Conditions similar to no. 26. *' If Kupanta-Kurunta did not display loyalty to the GK, he could expect no support if his own people took the side of the GK. ** An earlier treaty tablet was stolen. *3 Mutual assurance of the succession. *4 Mutual.
S47,
7
B. IJ. HITTITE
PPHSpMRL'IG CB
TREATIES
treaty provisions
text
edit./transl.
tribute: 300 gold shekels by the Hitt. standard (c. 3.6 kg); pb. of diplomatic relations with Eg.; stationed troops; unquestioning obedience of commands
Akkad.: KUB 3.14 Hitt.: A. KBo 5.9
SV 1, I-51;
B. KUB 3.119 (+)
HDT 59-64
PDK 76-79;
C. KUB 21.49(+)
of the GK.
GK supreme judicial authority in territorial disputes among the vassals.
28
29.
PPHSe iL
30.
P SpMR” L*8_, Mittani’?
stationed troops GC
B
Jel sys alod Laat,
stationed troops"’; obligation of vassals in Arzawa* to preserve the peace among themselves; obligation to resist invading enemies; regular readings of the T
KBo 3.3+ KUBr9.41+ KUB 19.42+ KUB 19.44 KUB 19.45 KBo 16.23 KBo 19.43
Or 32, 1963, 32-55
KBo 3.3+ KUBr9.41+ KUB 19.42+ KUB 19.44 KUB 19.45 KBo 16.23 KBo 19.43
Or 32, 1963, 32-55
RS 17.338+ RS 17.353+ RS 21.53
HDT 64-69
KBo 4.3+ KBo 4.2+ KBo 5.13 KUB 6.41+ KUB 6.44+ KUB 19.54 KUB 6.48 H. KUBr9.51+ J. KUB 19.52+ K. KUB40.42
SV 1, 95-1795 HDT 74-82
DOMMOORE BOOP OB OF> O7MUOP>
Boe
PPHScSpMRLIG
support for Kupanta-Kurunta (cousin
of the GK); regular readings of the T
A. KUB 21.1+ B. KUB 21.5+ C. KUB 21.2+
SV 2, 42-102;
HDT 87-93
D. KUB 21.3 E. HT 8
33-
Pe] Pi sce tant W.
A. B. C. D. E.
KBo KUB KUB KBo KUB
1.6 3.6 3.5 28.120 48.72
PDK 80-89;
HDT 93-95
B. INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
348
CTH
period
lang.
signatory 1: Hittites
signatory 2
34.
43
NH
Hitt.
N.N.
N.N. of Hajasa(?)
?
AGE
92
NH
Akkad.
Hattusili If (*IE’) (c.
Pendisena of Amurru
VT
1265-1240)
[2]
36.
9
NH
Akkad.,
— Hattusili II (‘III’)
Ramesses [2] IJ of
Eg.
type
PrT
Egypt
Be
89
NH
Hitt.
Hattusili I (‘IID’)
city of Tiliura
VT
38.
96
NH
Hitt.
Hattusili II (‘III’), Puduheba
N.N. of Tarhuntassa*
VT
39.
97
NH
Hitt.
Hattusili II (‘III’), Puduheba, [+Tudhalija (?)]
Kurunta of Tarhuntassa*
VT
40.
106
NH
Hitt.
Hattusili IJ (IP) or Tudhalija IV
Ulmitessup of Tarhuntassa*
i.
Vb tee
a
NH
Hitt.
Tudhalija IV (c.
Kurunta of Tarhuntassa*
VT
42.
105
NH
Hitt.
Tudhalija IV
Sausgamuwa of Amurru [2]
VT
43.
nize.
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma II (toc.
Talmi-Tessup of
?
1240-1215)
1190)
Karkemis*
44.
123
NH
Hitt.
NN.
NIN. of N.N.
VT
45.
145
NH
Hitt.
Suppiluliuma II
N.N. of N.N.
?
46.
Te
NH
Hitt.
N.N.
N.N. of Kummani
?
(Kizzuwatna* )
47.
I4I
NH
Hitt.
N.N.
N.N. of AlaSija
?
(Alaschia*)
*5 Securing the vassal’s succession. *© The Eg. version gives a date and states that the original was recorded on a silver tablet and presented to the Pharaoh. The purpose of the T was permanent peace. *7 Only refers to the securing of the Hitt. succession. 8 (Political) refugees on both sides to be repatriated, but granted amnesty. *9 900 infantry to be provided. 3°Number of troops to be provided by Ulmitessup reduced to 200, enabling him to fulfil obligations to the temple. 3” so-called ‘Bronze Tablet’ 3* too infantry to be provided, 200 only in case of major attack on the GK by a ruler of equal status or Hitt. campaign outside this region. Reduction of burdens of duties and services, to enable Kurunta to maintain the temple. 33 For him, in relations with the GK, the same protocol applied as for the kg. of Karkemi&*, except that the Hitt. crown prince outranked him. *4Tudhalija described the kgs. of Babylon, Assyria, Eg. and Ahhijawa as of equal rank. Depending on the state of Hitt. relations with these territories, SauSgamuwa was to treat them as friends or enemies, and, where ap-
propriate, break commercial ties with them. Sausgamuwa was to provide infantry and chariot troops, but it is not clear whether he was to provide a muster.
349
B. Il. HITTITE
TREATIES
treaty provisions
text
edit./transl.
[very fr.]
KUB 26.39
FsO 69-70
KBo 1.8+
PDK 124-135; HDT 100-103
BAe
Gr
Boo
Met sye® Syoy NINE
36.
P?°PHSc*?SpR*G
declarations of friendship: renewal of | A. KBo 1.7+
PDK 112-123;
Gis
T; non-aggression pact
B. KBo 1.25+ C. KUB 3.120
HDT 96-100
Bin
PBI
Pb. on Kaskaeans* entering the city
A. KUB 21.29 B. KUB 23.123 C. KUB 31.15
Kaskaer 145-151
awe
“REM
[very fr.]
544/f
SBo II, 10-11
39.
PHM”
ABoT 57
HDT 108-109
40.
ScM??FLGCBW
archiving of the T
KBo 4.10+
HDT 109-113; StBoT 38
41.
PPHM?*FLGCB W
maintenance of the temple; status of the kg. of T.33; no Hitt. garrison; archiving of copies of the T
Bo 89/299
StBoT Br; HDT 114-123
Ag
PPRERSSHBATNG
A. KUB 23.1+ B. KUB 8.82+
StBoT 16; HDT 103-107
Five
2
A. KBo 12.41 B. KUB 40.37
MDOG 94, 1963, 7-8
Ad.
SPINE
KBo 4.14+
AANL 20, 1965,
Asses
(GB
[very fr.]
KUB 19.28
Aone
G'C
[very fr.]
KBo 12.31
[very fr.]
KBo 12.39
scribe name; [very fr.]
39579
Age | Ral
MDOG 94, 1963, 10-13
B. INTERNATIONAL
350
TREATIES
B. II. 1,000 SELECTED INTERNATIONAL TREATIES OF GRAECO-ROMAN ANTIQUITY
(Peter Kehne)
The following presentation offers a full chronological overview of the international treaties (INt.) of Graeco-
Roman antiquity from the late 8th cent. BC to AD 562, and is the first to do so since the collection published in 1739 by [9]. All terminology based on the word ‘state’ is purposefully avoided, especially in the context of international relations of the Imperial period. This is because many partners of the Imperium Romanum, esp. the foreign tribes (gentes externae), lacked the organizational structures of states, and so were anything but ‘states’ in the modern sense of the word. The term ‘international treaty’ is much more fitting; particularly if it is understood in the original sense of the words as an official legal treaty inter nationes. The standard, though still incomplete, reference work, Staatsvertrage des Altertums (as yet comprising only vols. 2 and 3, which encompass the period 700200 BC), tends to prefer those INt.s for which “at least one condition is recognizable in some form” in the sources (StV 2, VI). However, the present list takes into
account the deficient transmission conditions for some phases of the Hellenistic period and late antiquity, and also contains some INt.s whose contents and/or purpose are only ascertainable from context or from the subsequent relations as they emerged between the nations concerned. Some fragmentary documents are also listed which betray the structure of an INt. or whose remains permit meaningful epigraphic reconstruction. 1. THE PARTIAL INADEQUACY OF GREEK AND ROMAN TERMS FOR THE CLASSIFICATION OF INTERNATIONAL TREATIES Classification of types of Greek and Roman treaties (— Contract V) cannot be reliably supported on the basis of the terminology in the sources; this fluctuated and changed considerably over the course of more than a thousand years. For instance, an analogous widening of the terms eirene and pax [1] is noticeable. From the 4th cent. (BC in Greece, AD in Rome), each term came to mean not only the international state of concord, but
also the peace treaty that brought that state about [9o0. 2 ff., 23 f., 73 ff. and passim; 7. 92 f. with note 6]. It is also important to note that the international law of Graeco-Roman antiquity never reached a standard definition of its institutes. As a result, many authors of the Greek and Latin sources never use a consistent terminology. The scope and political applications of Greek treaty types were also subject to changes, likewise hampering their identification in the sources. Furthermore, spor dai, > synthekai, — homologia, symbasis etc. refer less to a particular institute of international law than to various components
[75. 28-31; 83. 26-32; 7. 99 ff.,
147 f., 202-205]. Although Roman international law was characterized by a high degree of formal conservatism, the extent to which we can ascertain Roman conditions remains largely theoretical. Long periods of Roman history are only known through the reports of historians of the Imperial period who wrote in Greek. Consequently, difficulties of interpretation not only include the incon-
gruent use of Greek terms for Roman institutes of international law, but also these authors’ adaptation of classical style, which further hampers the adequate description of international accords in a world of international relations that had, by now, changed entirely. What are, in essence, familiar institutes must nonetheless be distilled, as it were, from the contexts in which they are found. Yet, even those authors who wrote in Latin were
frequently subject to genre-specific stylistic conventions, which often made it impossible to provide accounts that were precise in terms of international law. Hence, by no means every — foedus that occurs in Imperial literature is also a ‘treaty’ in the technical sense. Even an eye witness like Ammianus Marcellinus
provides little in the way of terminological exactitude, tending to apply the term foedus to any international agreement leading to any form of concrete compact, irrespective of which institute of international law may have been applied in the particular case. Since it is not always possible, then, to establish the exact form of the INt., the following overview classifies INt.s, as is customary in ancient historical studies, primarily according to their recognizable content and the conditions that resulted from the stipulations.
2. PROBLEMS OF IDENTIFICATION OF INTERNATIONAL TREATIES: THE TREATYLESS SOCIETY (societas) The identification of INt.s. is further hampered by the spread of the ‘treatyless society’ (— societas sine foedere) from the 2nd cent.
BC, which
grew
from an
increasing reluctance on the part of the Roman state to conclude permanent treaties (foedera) outside Italy. The Roman senate encouraged this titular societas, since, by means of occasional declarations of ‘international amity’ (— amicitia), traditionally enacted without treaty, it achieved in foreign policy terms not merely the equivalent, but (in the absence of any commitment on Rome’s own part) a far greater benefit than that offered by the Roman — international treaty, which was always made in perpetuity (cf. [76. 10-12; 74.26 f. note 1; 4. 12; 93. 330-367; 40. 163-170, 226—
2293; 65. 13-95; 82. 185]). It is true that even the declaration of this unilateral and often merely honorific societas was not entirely informal (cf. [137. 64 f.; 28. 23-25, 32 note 23]): kings, communities and, as shown by the Senatus consultum de Asclepiade Clazomenio sociisque of 78 BC (ILLRP 513; SHERK, no. 22 with comm.; on which also [107]), even private individuals, became amici (lit. ‘friends’) and/or socii (‘allies’) of the Roman people by means of an official entry, ordered by — senatus consultum, in the formula sociorum populi Romani (‘Register of Allies of the Roman People’ (AE 1976, 677)) on public display on the Capitol in Rome, a process sometimes associated with ritual sacrifice. Politically speaking, such unilateral declarations of recognition remained largely without obligation for Rome, and they could be withdrawn at any time with no right of appeal (even to the Roman — fides) for the party ‘privileged’ in this way. Above all, though, they were nct even treaties at all in the strict legal sense. Therefore, with the exception of those cases that were legally debated, they are not included here. Although it
351
B. II. 1,000 SELECTED
was for ideological reasons that the Latin titles for ‘allies without treaty’ and ‘allies bound by treaty’ remained identical. Indeed, Rome also expected a variety of forms of material support and foreign policy attitudes from such socii that were entirely comparable to those of the true treaty partners (— foederati).
3. FORMAL SELECTION CRITERIA: MORPHOLOGY OF ROMAN INSTITUTES OF INTERNATIONAL LAW IN THE IMPERIAL PERIOD Deliberately excluded from consideration here are also those types of Roman treaty, such as the pure ‘friendship treaty’, ‘clientele treaty’ or even ‘deditio treaty’, which are nothing more than the product of modern theoretical speculation (either long refuted by scholars or else shown to be unproven constructs), as well as
hypotheses or speculations on the alleged emergence of new forms of international law in the Imperial period, e.g. the supposed conflation of — deditio and > foedus (thus [116. 62 ff., 80 ff.]; cf. [30. 192 ff.]) or a postulated sui generis treaty type for the conclusion of the Marcomannic War (thus [140]). Perhaps only the homaichmia [132.157 f.] of late antiquity constitutes a genuine exception here, denoting a fighting alliance strictly limited in time. Though in fact this, too, sometimes seems to have been nothing more than an instrument for enlisting soldiers from abroad. Apart from this, all of the institutes of international law that were known in the Republican period (including the fetiale foedus) continued to be used in the Principate and, with the exception of the antiquated rites of the — fetiales, even in late antiquity (KEHNE, AuV; [S52 32-5 LO. 50.572 6241655 D645 165° 166);
The particular usage may often be disguised by a lack of technical terminology or by the circumstance that the bearer of the Roman imperium might incorporate ‘common-law’ usages (e.g. supplementary confirmation of deditio or restitution conditions by — oath) of foreign adversaries into a settlement in order to achieve better adherence (—> Treaties, upholding of). However, such measures changed neither the form nor the legal effect of the provision. The clear decline in the tendency to conclude actual INt.s from the 2nd cent. BC continued without interruption through the first two centuries of the Imperial period. The discretionary implementation of the treatyless amicitia and societas, and the — restitutio (implemented by the imposition of conditions) and subjection by deditio of defeated enemies had long emerged in place of foedera. This finding is in no way inferred from a lack of information associated with transmission, but from the political situation. Only when the Roman state again found itself faced with opponents of equal power in the 3rd cent. AD, and was no longer always powerful enough to compel foreign compliance (— obsequium) in treatyless international relationships, did the use of foedera re-emerge. Also excluded here is the associated controversy over the status in (international) law of the Goths, Germans etc. settled on Imperial territory (v. here [120; 121; 313 70; 62; 146; 160]). In any case, political conditions soon after AD 378 meant that the legal incorporation of those settled on Imperial territory as — dediticii, — coloni, — laeti or provincial subject —+ gens gradually died out. The number of INt.s that
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
can be deduced with certainty in late antiquity rises once more with the “delegation of international relations to the Imperial regions” [132. 84-96]. This also revitalized the international law structure of the Imperium Romanum.
Finally, the largest of the tribal groupings settled within Imperial frontiers, being — foederati furnished with a formal international treaty, were international partners both formally and politically. This development also emerged without the introduction of any new form of treaty, in the context of the traditional — foedus, to which was added for the new => socii only a reconception of—> hospitalitas [62. 40-55, 162-175; 146. 25-29, 64 f.].
4. INSTITUTES AND INSTITUTIONS OF INTERNATIONAL LAW NOT INCLUDED OR ONLY EXEMPLIFIED Since the — restitutio under international law, i.e. the
legal institute by which the Roman state formally released a population group from its authority, still constituted an international relationship, some clear examples of restitutiones are included in the table. Not included, on the other hand, are cases of titular amicitia and societas (with the exception of a few procedures that are still a matter of scholastic debate), and all deditiones (Republican cases in [1443 74; 93; 40], Imperial in [85; 10; 132.]) that did not lead to the restitutio of the dediticii, their legal character being that of an enactment under international law by which an international partner ceased to exist [74; 40]. For the same formal juristic reason, all those Greek treaties of capitulation that led either to the enslavement or deportation of the defeated population or to its incorporation into the victorious state, or that concer-
ned only troops or units are also excluded. In addition, for the most part disregarded are those transient compacts in the field (except truces) that rightly belong among contracts of war (on the relevant cases cf. esp. FN; [83; 164]; > War, law of). Caution has also led to the exclusion of releases from provincial subservience of civitates liberae in the late Republican and Imperial periods, and of the constitution of civitates foederatae where these were mere honorific titles (cf. [115. 30 f., 60 f.; 15; 16; 17; 64]). A similar approach has been taken with collective declarations of freedom in the Greek world, as the Roman
state sought, in the end, to also adapt these in the course of its dealings with the Hellenistic states [74. 94-113]. Limitations of space greatly restrict the countless isopoliteia and sympoliteia treaties (on which [33. esp. 154-160, 225 f., 1314-1316,
15 10-1519; 593 60; 113;
97]; — isopoliteia; — sympoliteia), as well as treaties of legal security and legal assistance (on which [35; 166.
36, 393; 167; 58]).
International compacts whose classification as treaties would seem far-fetched have been almost entirely ignored. These include the foundation of amphictyonies (on which [145]), declarations of — proxenia (on which [66; 106]) and guarantees of asylum (v. [1273 73; 167; 153]; cf. > asylon). The same applies to almost all inter-state arbitration procedures (on which [123]; PrcCIRILLI; AGER; SHERK; [6. 336-359; 108; 45; 82)), where these did not evidently lead to an INt.
B. INTERNATIONAL
354
TREATIES
5. TECHNICAL SELECTION CRITERIA — Only in important cases are further editions of the same inscriptions given in addition to the standard (by virtue of the often outstanding commentary) editions of the StV (the many concordances in the SCs offer this service). For the period following 200 BC, these other editions are esp.: Syll., OGIS, AGER,
SHERK and CHANIOTIS. — Only in SCs is special reference made to existing commentaries and translations. For individual authors, their editions, commentaries and translations may be ascertained via their lemmata. — As access to the catalogue of [9] and the typewritten dissertation of [109] is difficult to obtain, they have not been included in the list of works providing sequential treaty lists (TL). — All references to literature are selective. Due to limitations of space, the usual standard works are preferred here: these are generally pertinent and primarily deal with phenomena of international law. — Where the StV are given as SC, the older literature recorded there is not reiterated here. — As this overview primarily concerns the period of time that was not yet covered by the StV, references to more recent literature on cases that have already been dealt with is very selective, and is limited to the most important cases of all. — Literature already listed in the BNP articles on individual treaty signatories is only reiterated here in exceptional circumstances. The lemmata marked with an asterisk (*) in the table therefore offer further information (e.g. on localization). 6. LEGEND The individual columns of the table (reading left to right) give: (1) consecutive numbers of the INt.s. (2) year(s) of the treaty’s conclusion, approximate dating, dating margin or approximate values, or a terminus post quem/ante quem.
(3) signatory 1 (usually the more politically powerful). (4) signatory 2 (usually the less politically powerful). If signatory 2 is not explicitly given, the treaty may be a multilateral alliance, a peace or the founding of a league. (5) classification of the INt. according to categories of politics and international law customary in the literature, together with selected treaty clauses, often followed, for the sake of clarity, by details of the Roman institute of international law and finally the reference of an INt. only deduced from secondary references. (6) unilateral, bilateral or multilateral style of the INt. (7) language of the source(s). (8) nature of transmission (literary, epigraphic or numismatic).
(9) name of the INt., if any, usually used by scholars,
subsequent international relationship differentiated according to Greek and Roman forms (usually omitting the specification of ‘peace’ as a consequence of a PCt.), further observations on this. (1o)edition(s), source collections, source authors, translations, works with treaty lists, dating variants etc., and selected secondary literature (on selection criteria see above). On translations and commentaries on ancient authors, cf. the relevant individual
lemmata. The commentary contained in the SCs is not reiterated in references to literature here. On understanding the table, cf.: — International treaties; International law; War, law of; War guilt, problem of; Treaties, upholding of. As well as these, all other articles on international law are of use: on international relations (amicitia, epimachia, homonoia, isopoliteia, koine eirene, pax [1], obsequium, philia, on societas v. socii and foederati, symmachia); on individual institutions (deditio, ekecheiria, foedus, homologia, indutiae, koine etrene; pactio, pax [x], sponsio, syntheke), on tribes/groups (dediticit, fetiales, foederati, hostis, obses, socii, transfuga) and on other supranational ancient institutions (amphiktyonia, asylon, koinon, maiestas).
Abbreviations: all. ALt. AMa. AMece. anth. arb. ARc. ARt.
ally/allies alliance, treaty of amity agreement
ASt.
amendment clause anthology arbitration arbitration clause arbitration treaty asylum, treaty of
AUc. AUd.
autonomy clause autonomy, decree of
bl. BSc.
bilateral booty-sharing clause
G
commentary
GPx GPE
capitulation agreement capitulation, treaty of
Daf.
dominion, affirmation of
ded. E EPt. FEc. FRt. heg. IFt. inf. ins.
deditio edition (some with commentary) epimachia treaty friend/enemy clause frontier treaty hegemony definition of spheres of influence, treaty of inferred inscription
INt.
international treaty
ISt. kg. ie LAa. LAt. lit. LSt.
isopoliteia treaty king literature legal assistance agreement legal assistance treaty literary legal security treaty
MCWce
mitigation of consequences of war
med. ml. Na. Ne. Nt. obs. pap. BGE Pile: prov. pry.
clause mediation multilateral neutrality agreement neutrality clause neutrality, treaty of observations Papyrus peace treaty prohibition of hostilities clause provisional province
B. II. 1,000 SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
Abbreviations in the bibliography
restitutio
Ager
source(s)
subordination, treaty of source collection(s) settlement, treaty of separate peace prohibition clause surrender, treaty of secondary texts subsequent relationship symp oliteia treaty treaty, affirmation of
Barcelo
Cameron/Hall
DL
treaty
treaty, extension of traffic treaty treaty list translation (some with commentary; in addition to the indicated SA and special U., v. in each case the lemmata of the individual source authors)
EJ
FCHLRE
FN
Turis Gentium. Quellen zur Geschichte des Volkerrechts, Bd. 1: 1380 v. Chr. — 1493, 1995 (with German and English transls.; cited by page no.). F.J. Fernandez Nieto, Los acuerdos
Abbreviations of ancient authors:
Chron. Gall. Euagr.
Eunap. fr. Exc. Vales. Faust. Byz.
GLQFM
Hydat. Ioh. Antioch.
Gutmann
Malchus fr. Marcell.
Olympiodorus fr: Paul. Pell.
152-220. Paulinus of Pella; on ed. cf. > Paulinus
[4] Petr. Patr.
Prisc. fr. Theod. HR
Theoph.
Petrus [3] Patrikios; ed.: FHG 4. Priscus [3]; ed.: FOHLRE 2, 222-400. Theodoretus, Historia religiosa; on ed. cf. + Theodoretus [1]
Theophanes Homologetes, Chronographia anno mundi; on ed. cf. — Theophanes [2]
B. Gutmann, Studien zur romischen
Aufenpolitik in der Spatantike (364 — 395 n. Chr.), r99r (with SA and GW
comm.; cited by no.). H.-W. Goetz, K.-W. Welwei (ed.), Altes
Germanien. Ausziige aus den antiken Quellen tiber die Germanen und ihre Beziehungen zum Rémischen Reich,
Festus [4] Rufius; on ed. cf. > Festus [4] Hydatius [2] (Chron. min. 2) Johannes of Antioch; on ed. cf. — Iohannes [21] Malchus [4]; ed.: FCHLRE 2, 402-462. Marcellinus [14] Comes, Chronicon (Chron. min. 2) Olympiodorus [3]; ed.: FCHLRE 2,
Griechische und lateinische Quellen zur Fruhgeschichte Mitteleuropas bis zur Mitte des 1. Jt. u. Z., Vol. 1-4, cited by no.).
— Faustus [4] Fest. Ruf.
bélicos en la antigua Grecia, Vol. 1-2, 1975 (with SA and comm; cited by no.).
1988-1991 (with transl. and comm..;
Chronica Gallica (Chron. min. 1)
Euagrius Scholastikos, Historia ecclesiastica; on ed. cf. > Euagrius [3] Eunapius; ed.: FCHLRE 2, 1-150. on ed. cf. + Excerpta Valesiana Faustus [4] of Byzantium; on ed. cf.
V. Ehrenberg, A.H.M. Jones (ed.), Documents Illustrating the Reigns of Augustus and Tiberius, *1955 (expanded repr. 1976; cited by no.). R.C. Blockley (ed.), The Fragmentary Classicising Historians of the Later Roman Empire, 2 vols., 1981-1983 (with English transl.). W.G. Grewe (ed.), Fontes Historiae
unilateral
Agathangelus [2]; ed.: FHG 5; transl. R.W. Thompson, 1976. Anonymus Valesianus; on ed. cf. — Excerpta Valesiana
A. Chaniotis, Die Vertrage zwischen den kretischen Poleis in der hellenistischen Zeit, 1996 (ed. with German transl. and comm.). M. Dodgeon, S.N.C. Lieu (ed.), The Roman Eastern Frontier and the Persian
FHIG 1
text(s)
war reparations
no.). A. Cameron, St.G. Hall, Eusebius, Life of Constantine, 1999 (transl. and
Wars (AD 226-363), *1994 (English transl.).
trading agreement
truce treaty, renewal of trading treaty treaty, revision of
Sh.L. Ager, Interstate Arbitration in the Greek World 337-90 B.C., 1996. P.A. Barcelo, Roms auswartige Beziehungen unter der Constantinischen Dynastie (306-363), 1981 (with SA and comm.; cited by
comm.).
Chaniotis
trading, commercial and/or traffic
clause trading, commercial and/or traffic
ANTIQUITY
A. Source collections and commentaries
succession, affirmation of
Anon. Vales.
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
provisional treaty queen recognition, treaty of revision
Agath.
TREATIES
Vol. 2, 1995 (with German transl.; cited
by page no.). HGIU
K. Brodersen, W. Gunther, H.H. Schmitt (ed.), Historische griechische
Inschriften in Ubersetzung, Vol. 1-3, 1992-1999 (cited by no.).
HIRK
H. Freis (ed.), Historische Inschriften zur romischen Kaiserzeit von Augustus
bis Konstantin, 1984 (German transl.; cited by no.). P. Heather, J. Matthews, The Goths in
the Fourth Century, r99r. M. Guarducci (ed.), Inscriptiones
Creticae I-IV, 193 5—1950 (with transl. and comm.).
B, INTERNATIONAL
Kehne, AuV
Maas
WD
AufSenpolitik und rémisches Volkerrechts in der frihen und hohen Kaiserzeit (31 v. Chr. -238 n. Chr.), in preparation (with TL and S data; cited by no.).
Welles
comm.).
C.B. Welles, Royal Correspondence in the Hellenistic Period: A Study in Greek Epigraphy, 1934 (cited by no.).
M. Maas (ed.), Readings in Late Antiquity, 2000 (English transl.; cited B. Literature
L. Moretti (ed.), Iscrizioni storiche
ellenistiche, Vol. 1-2, 1967-1975 (with Italian transl. and comm.; cited by no.). Piccirilli
E. Winter, B. Dignas, Rom und Persien, 2001 (with SA in German transl. and
P. Kehne, Formen rémischer
by page no.). Moretti
a4
TREATIES
Anton 1
M.G. Angeli Bertinelli, Roma e Poriente, 1979. H.H. Anton, s.v. Burgunden,
J. Reynolds, Aphrodisias and Rome, 1982 (ed. with English transl. and
Anton 2
RGA 4, 235-248. H.H. Anton, s.v. Franken, RGA 9,
comm.).
Badian
Angeli Bertinelli
L. Piccirilli (ed.), Gli arbitrati
interstatali greci, 1973 (with Italian transl. and comm.; cited by no.).
Reynolds, AR
RGW
H.H. Schmitt (ed.), Rom und die
Scala
griechische Welt von der Frihzeit bis 133 v. Chr., 1992 (German transl.). R. von Scala, Die Staatsvertrage des Altertums, Vol. 1, 1898 (ed. with comm.) (repr. 1968; cited by no.).
Scardigli
B. Scardigli (ed.), I trattati romano-cartaginesi, 1991 (with Italian transl. and comm.).
Schulz, Volk.
R. Schulz, Die Entwicklung des romischen Volkerrechts im vierten und funften Jh. n. Chr., 1993 (with TLandS data; cited by no.). M. Back, Inschrift Sahpurs I. an der
SKZ
TDGR 1
TDGR 2
414-435.
Balcer
1995.
Baldus
1998.
Baltrusch,
E. Baltrusch, Symmachie und Spondai, 1993. E. Baltrusch, Die Juden und das
Juden Barbeyrac
Romische Reich, 2002. J. Barbeyrac, Histoire des anciens
Baltrusch
traitez, ou Recueil historique et
chronologique des traitez répandus dans les auteurs grecs et
Archaic Times to the End of the Peloponnesian War, *1983 (English transl.; cited by no.). Translated Documents of Greece &
latins, et autres monuments de
l’antiquité, depuis les temps les plus reculez, jusques a |’Empereur Charlemagne, 1739 (supplement
Rome, Vol. 2: P. Harding (ed.), From
TDGR3
to: J. Dumont, Corps universel Io.
Barcelo
II.
Baronowski r
Translated Documents of Greece & Rome, Vol. 4: R.K. Sherk (ed.), Rome Baronowski 2
Id., Sub umbra foederis aequi, in:
Augustus, 1984 (repr. 1993) (English transl.; cited by no.).
TL2
Translated Documents of Greece & Rome, Vol. 6: R.K. Sherk (ed.), The Roman Empire: Augustus to Hadrian,
£3; Bastini
A. Bastini, Der achaische Bund als hellenistische Mittelmacht. Geschichte des achaischen Koinon in der Symmachie mit Rom, 1987.
4.
F. Beisel, Studien zu den frankisch-rémischen Beziehungen, 1987.
Phoenix 44, 1990, 345-369.
1988 (repr. 1994) (English transl.; cited Tod
D.W. Baronowski, Treaties of
Military Alliance Between Rome and Hellenistic States in the Last Three Centuries B.C., thesis, Toronto 1982 (microfilm).
and the Greek East to the Death of
TDGR 6
diplomatique du droit des gens). P.A. Barcelo, Roms auswartige Beziehungen unter der Constantinischen Dynastie (306-363), 1981 (with SA).
no.).
TDGR 4
Chr. Baldus, Regelhafte Vertragsauslegung nach Parteirollen im klassischen romischen Recht und in der modernen Volkerrechtswissenschaft, 2 vols.,
Ka’be-ye ZartoSt, in: id., Die sassanidischen Staatsinschriften, 1978 (ed. with comm.). Translated Documents of Greece & Rome, Vol. 1: C.W. Fornara (ed.),
the End of the Peloponnesian War to the Battle of Ipsus, 1985 (English transl.; cited by no.). Translated Documents of Greece & Rome, Vol. 3: St.M. Burnstein (ed.), The Hellenistic Age from the Battle of Ipsos to the Death of Kleopatra VII, 1985 (repr. 1991) (English transl.; cited by
E. Badian, Foreign Clientelae (264-70 B.C.), 1958. J.M. Balcer, The Persian Conquest of the Greeks 545-450 B.C.,
by no.). M.N. Tod, A Selection of Greek Historical Inscriptions to the End of the Fifth Century BC, Vol. 1, *1951 (repr. 1985), Vol. 2. *1950 (cited by no.).
Beisel
. Bernhardt r
R. Bernhardt, Imperium und Eleutheria. Die romische Politik
pp)
B. Ill. 1,000 SELECTED
16.
Bernhardt 2
Gh
Bernhardt 3
gegentiber den freien Stadten des griechischen Ostens, 1971. R. Bernhardt, Polis und romische Herrschaft in der spaten Republik
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
34.
Cargill
35-
Cataldi
36.
Catalano
37:
Chaumont
(149-31 BC), 1985. R. Bernhardt, Rom und die Stadte des hellenistischen Ostens (3.-1. Jh. v. Chr.). Literaturbericht
1965-1995, 1998 18.
19.
Best/Isaac
J.G.P. Best, B.H. Isaac, The
Birley 1
Helvetians: From Foederati to Stipendiarii. Cicero’s Pro Balbo and the Legal Status of the Helvetians, in: Talanta 8-9, 1977, 11-32. A. Birley, Marcus Aurelius, +1993 (repr. 2001).
20.
Birley 2
A. Birley, Hadrian, 1997 (repr.
21.
Bleicken
22.
Blockley x
J. Bleicken, Die athenische Demokratie, *1994. R.C. Blockley, The Roman-Persian Peace Treaties of A.D. 299 and 363, in: Florilegium
2000).
R.C. Blockley, Subsidies and Diplomacy. Rome and Persia in Late Antiquity, in: Phoenix 39,
Blockley 3
26.
Bonk
27.
Brandt
R.C. Blockley, East Roman Foreign Policy. Formation and Conduct from Diocletian to Anastasius, 1992. P. Bonk, Defensiv- und Offensivklauseln in griechischen Symmachievertragen, 1978. H. Brandt, Adada — eine pisidische Kleinstadt in hellenistischer und romischer Zeit, in: Historia 51, 2002, 385-413.
28.
Braund
Pavénement de Dioclétien, in: ANRW II 9.1, 1976, 71-194. 38.
Chrysos
E. Chrysos, De foederatis iterum, in: Pohl 2 (q.v.), 185-206.
39.
Cimma
M.R. Cimma, Reges socii et amici
40.
Dahlheim
W. Dahlheim, Struktur und
41.
populi Romani, 1976.
Demandt
42. Derow
43.
Dreyer
B. Dreyer, Untersuchungen zur
44.
Drinkwater
Geschichte des spatklassischen Athen, 1999. J.F. Drinkwater, Julian and the Francs and Valentinian J. and the Alamanni. Ammianus on Romano-German Relations, in:
45.
Eckstein,
A.M. Eckstein, Rome, The War
Rome
with Perseus, And Third Party Mediation, in: Historia 37, 1988,
46.
Ellis
J.R. Ellis, Macedon and North-West Greece, in: CAH 6,
47.
Errington, RaG
R.M. Errington, Rome and Greece to 205 B.C.; Rome Against Philip and Antiochus, in: CAH 8,
Francia 24, 1998, I-15.
414-444. 1994, 723-759-
D. Braund, Rome and the Friendly
1989 (repr. 2000), 81-106; 244-289.
P. Brule, La piraterie crétoise hellenistique, 1978.
30.
Brunt
P.A. Brunt, Italian Manpower 222 BiG
31. Burns
Aud,
48.
Fernandez Nieto
1971.
T.S. Burns, Barbarians Within the
Gates of Rome. A Study of Roman Military Policy and the Barbarians, ca. 375-425 A.D.,
1994. ese, Burstein
St.M. Burstein, The Aftermath of
the Peace of Apamea, in: AJAH 5, 1980, I-12.
33°
Busolt/
Swoboda
G. Busolt, H. Swoboda, Griechische Staatskunde
(HdbA
IV 1,1), 2 vols., 31920-1926 (repr.
1972-1979).
Entwicklung des r6mischen Volkerrechts im 3. und 2. Jh. v. Chr., 1968. A. Demandt, Die Spatantike. Romische Geschichte von Diocletian bis Justinian 284-565 n. Chr., 1989. P.S. Derow, Rome, The Fall of Macedon and the Sack of Corinth, in: CAH 8, 1989 (repr. 2000),
King, 1984.
29. Brulé
M.-L. Chaumont, L’Arménie entre Rome et I’Iran, I: De
290-323.
R.C. Blockley, The Division of Armenia Between the Romans and the Persians at the End of the Fourth Century A.D., in: Historia 36, 1987, 222-234.
Die Blockley 4
J. Cargill, The Second Athenian League, 1981. S. Cataldi (ed.), Symbolai e relazioni tra le citta greche nel V secolo a.C., 1983. P. Catalano, Linee del sistema sovrannazionale romano, Vol. 1,
Pavénement d’Auguste a
1985, 62-74.
24.
ANTIQUITY
1965.
6, 1984, 28-49.
238 Blockley 2
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
F.J. Fernandez Nieto, Die Abanderungsklausel in den griechischen Staatsvertragen der klassischen Zeit, in: P. Dimarkis (ed.), Symposion 1979. Vortrage zur griechischen und hellenistische Rechtsgeschichte, 1983, 273-286.
49.
Ferrary
J.-L. Ferrary, Traités et domination romaine dans le monde hellénique, in: M. Liverani et al. (ed.), I trattati nel mondo antico, 1990, 217-235.
B. INTERNATIONAL
50. Fisch
Se
Flach
356
TREATIES
J. Fisch, Krieg und Frieden im Friedensvertrag. Eine universalgeschichtliche Studie iiber Grundlagen und Formelemente des Friedensschlusses, 1979. D. Flach, Das romisch-karthagische Biindnisabkommen im Krieg gegen Pyrrhos, in: Historia 27,
68.
Habicht, Sel.
C. Habicht, The Seleucids and Their Rivals, in: CAH 8, 1989
69.
Hantos
T. Hantos, Das rémische Bundesgenossensystem in Italien,
70.
Heather r
P.J. Heather, Goths and Romans
(repr. 2000), 324-387.
1983.
332-489, 1991.
Freber
Ph.-St. Freber, Der hellenistische Osten und das Illyricum unter
53:
Frei-Stolba
Caesar, 1993.
54.
Friesinger
55°
Funke
R. Frei-Stolba, Bemerkungen zum Helvetierfoedus, in: Schweizer Zeitschrift fiir Geschichte 25, 1975, 127-141. H. Friesinger et al. (ed.), Markomannenkriege — Ursachen und Wirkungen, 1994. P. Funke, Homonoia und Arché,
56.
Galsterer
H. Galsterer, Herrschaft und
Gauger
Verwaltung im republikanischen Italien, 1976. J.-D. Gauger, Zur Rekonstruktion der r6misch-jiidischen Beziehungen im 2. Jh. v. Chr., in: H. Kalczyk et al. (ed.), Studien zur
P.J. Heather, The Goths, 1996
. Heather 3
P.J. Heather, Foedera and Foederati of Fourth Century, in: Pohl 2 (q.v.), 57-74 P. Herrmann, Rom und die Asylie griechischer Heiligtiimer, in: Chiron 19, 1989, 127-164. A. Heuss, Die volkerrechtlichen Grundlagen der romischen Aufenpolitik in republikanischer Zeit, 1933. A. Heuss, Abschluf und Beurkundung des griechischen und romischen Staatsvertrages, in: Klio 27, 1934, 14-53; 218-257. H. Horn, Foederati. Untersuchungen zur Geschichte ihrer Rechtsstellung im Zeitalter der romischen Republik und des
(repr. 1998).
1978, 615-617.
52.
. Heather 2
. Herrmann
74.
Heuss
. Heuss, AuB
1980.
57:
58.
Gauthier
59.
Gawantka
60.
Giovannini
One
Giovannini/
Miller
alten Geschichte. FS S. Lauffer, Vol. 1, 1986, 263-291. P. Gauthier, Symbola. Les étrangers et la justice dans les cités greques, 1972. W. Gawantka, Isopolitie, 1975. A. Giovannini, Untersuchungen ber die Natur und die Anfange der bundesstaatlichen Sympolitie in Griechenland, 1971. A. Giovannini, H. Muller, Die Beziehungen zwischen Rom und den Juden im 2. Jh. v. Chr., in: MH 28, 1971, 156-171.
62;
Goffart
76.
Horn
friihen Prinzipates, thesis, Frankfurt/Main, 1930.
77:
Hornblower
S. Hornblower, Persia, in: CAH 6,
78.
Hoyes
1994, 45-96. B.D. Hoyes, Unplanned Wars. The Origin of the First and Second Punic Wars, 1998.
. Isaac
*1992.
. Jehne
M. Jehne, Koine Eirene, 1994.
. Kagan
D. Kagan, The Peace of Nicias and the Sicilian Expedition, 1981 (repr. 1996).
Kallet-Marx
82.
W. Goffart, Barbarians and Romans A.D. 418-584. The 1980 (repr. 1998).
Greatrex
G. Greatrex, Rome and Persia at War, 502-532, 1998.
64.
Grelle
F. Grelle, Citta e trattati nel sistema romano imperiale, in: M. Liverani et al. (ed.), I trattati nel
65.
Gruen
mondo antico, 1990, 237-257. E.S. Gruen, The Hellenistic World and the Coming of Rome, 1984
83.
Karavites
84.
Kasceev
Gschnitzer
67.
Gutmann
F. Gschnitzer, s.v. Proxenos, RE Suppl. 13, 629-730. B. Gutmann, Studien zur romischen Aufenpolitik in der Spatantike (364 — 395 n. Chr.), 1991 (with SA).
literature list). P. Karavites, Capitulations and Greek Interstate Relations, 1982. V. Kaséeev, Schiedsgericht und Vermittlung in den Beziehungen zwischen den hellenistischen Staaten, in: Historia 46, 1997, 419-433.
. Kehne 1
(repr. 1986). 66.
R.M. Kallet-Marx, Hegemony to Empire. The Development of the Roman Imperium in the East from 148 to 62 B.C., 1995 (with
Techniques of Accommodation, 63.
B. Isaac, The Limits of Empire. The Roman Army in the East,
. Kehne 2
P. Kehne, Formen romischer
Aufenpolitik in der Kaiserzeit. Die auswartige Praxis im Nordgrenzenbereich als Einwirkung auf das Vorfeld, thesis, Hannover 1989. P. Kehne, Interessensspharen, in: H. Sonnabend (ed.), Mensch und
B. III. 1,000 SELECTED
Landschaft in der Antike. Lexikon der historischen Geographie,
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
104 . Luraschi
1999, 234-236 Kehne 3
87.
P. Kehne, s.v. Markomannnenkrieg, RGA 19,
Kehne 5
89.
P. Kehne, Externae gentes und regna intra fines im Nordgrenzenbereich des Imperium Romanum vom t. bis zum 3. Jh.: Eine Kritik der Klientelrandstaaten-Theorie, in: Eos 87, 2000, 3 11-334.
. Marek
. Marshall
augusteischen Prinzipats, in: J.
Spielvogel (ed.), Res publica
297-321. Keil . Kerler
B. Keil, Eirene, 1916.
G. Kerler, Die AufSenpolitik in der Historia Augusta, 1970.
92.
Kettenhofen
(SKZ) (TAVO, 55), 1982. 93-
94. 95.
Kienast 1
Kienast 2 Klose
96.
Kreuter
97-
Larsen
98.
Lee 1
IIo.
Mattingly
E. Kettenhofen, Die romisch-persischen Kriege des 3. Jh. n. Chr. nach der Inschrift
Sahpurs I. an der Ka’be-ye Zartost D. Kienast, Entstehung und Aufbau des romischen Reiches, in: ZRG 85, 1968, 330-367. D. Kienast, Augustus, *1999. P. Klose, Die volkerrechtliche Ordnung der hellenistischen Staatenwelt in der Zeit von 280 bis 168 BC, 1972. S. Kreuter, AufSenbeziehungen kretischen Gemeinden zu den hellenistischen Staaten im 3. und Za ie LOGo. J.A.O. Larsen, Greek Federal
Meiggs, AE
R. Meiggs, The Athenian Empire,
Ii2.
Millar
F. Millar, The Roman Near East
1979 (corr. repr.). 31 BC-AD
. Moggi
. Norr . Paradisi
Lig Petzold 1
. Petzold 2
366-374.
I0o.
Iol.
Lehmann
Lewis
zur historischen Glaubwirdigkeit des Polybios, 1967. D.M. Lewis, Mainland Greece, 479-451 B.C.: The Thirty Years’ Peace, in: CAH 5, 1992, 96-120; I2I-146.
Io2.
Lippold x
A. Lippold, Der Germanenfeldzug des Kaisers C. Iulius Verus Maximinus, in: id., Die Historia Augusta, 1998, 114-130.
103. Lippold 2
A. Lippold, Konstantin und die Barbaren, ibid. 254-273.
337, *1996.
M. Moggi (ed.), I sinecismi interstatali greci, Vol. 1, 1976.
. Noethlichs
A.D. Lee, The Role of Hostages in Roman Diplomacy with Sasanian
A.D. Lee, Information and Frontiers. Roman Foreign Relations in Late Antiquity, 1993. G.A., Lehmann, Untersuchungen
I. Masur, Die Vertrage der germanischen Stamme, thesis, Berlin, 1952 (with TL, not used here because the typewritten thesis is no longer available for loan). B. Mattingly, Rome’s Earliest Relations with Byzantium, Heraclea Pontica and Callatis, in:
Itt.
Persia, in: Historia 40, 1991, Lee 2
A.J. Marshall, The Survival and Development of International Jurisdiction in the Greek World under Roman Rule, in: ANRW II
A.G. Poulter (ed.), Ancient Bulgaria, Vol. 1, 1983, 239-252.
States, 1968.
99.
O.J. Maenchen-Helfen, Die Welt der Hunnen, 1997. C. Marek, Die Proxenie, 1984. A.J. Marshall, Friends of the Roman People, in: AJPh 89, 1968,
13, 1980, 626-661.
109. Masur
reperta. FS J. Bleicken, 2002,
90.
G. Luraschi, Foedus, ius Latii, civitas. Aspetti costituzionali della romanizzazione in Transpadana,
Bde) o0 . Marshall 2
P. Kehne, Limitierte Offensiven: Drusus, Tiberius und die
Germanienpolitik im Dienste des
ANTIQUITY
1979.
. MaenchenHelfen
308-316.
Kehne 4
88.
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
K.L. Noethlichs, Das Judentum und der rémische Staat, 1996. D. Norr, Imperium und Polis in der hohen Kaiserzeit, *1969. B. Paradisi, Dai ‘foedera iniqua’ alle ‘crisobulle’ bizantine, in: SDHI 20, 1954, 1-127. K.E. Petzold, Die beiden romisch-karthagischen Vertrage und das foedus Cassianum, in: ANRW I 1, 1972, 364-411. Id., Die Grundung des Delisch-Attischen Seebundes: Element einer ‘imperialistischen’ Politik Athens?, in: Historia 42, 1993, 418-443; 43, 1994, I-31.
rg. Pistorius
T. Pistorius, Hegemoniestreben
und Autonomiesicherung in der griechischen Vertragspolitik klassischer und hellenistischer Zeit, 1985. I20.
Pohl x
W. Pohl, s.v. Hunnen, RGA 15,
121.
Pohl 2
W. Pohl (ed.), Kingdoms of
246-256.
Empire. The Integration of Barbarians in Late Antiquity, 1997. I22
. Quass
F, Quass, Der Konigsfriede von 387/6 BC Zur Problematik einer allgemein-griechischen
B. INTERNATIONAL
358
TREATIES
Friedensordnung, in: HZ 252,
EAD Steinbrecher
1991, 33-56. 023): Reeder
A. Reeder, L’arbitrage international chez les Hellénes, 1912.
124. Richardson, Hisp.
J.S. Richardson, Hispaniae, 1986.
25ShsRyder
T.T.B. Ryder, Koine Eirene, 1965.
126.
Scardigli, Bez. B. Scardigli, Conveniunt itaque Gothi Romanique ... (Ein Forschungsbericht iiber die romisch-gotischen Beziehungen im 4. Jh. n. Chr.: 1950-1975), in: Romanobarbarica 4, 1979,
255-340. Tae Schlesinger 128. Schmidt x
E. Schlesinger, Die griechische Asylie, 1933. L. Schmidt, Geschichte der deutschen Stamme bis zum Ausgang der Volkerwanderung: Die Ostgermanen, *1941 (repr.
1969). 129. Schmidt 2
L. Schmidt, Geschichte der Wandalen, * 1942 (repr. 1970).
130. Schmitt
H.H. Schmitt, Rom und Rhodos,
1957. E30. Schuller
Tigi Schulz, Volk.
. Schwertfeger
134. Seager
W. Schuller, Die Herrschaft der Athener im Ersten Attischen Seebund, 1974. R. Schulz, Die Entwicklung des romischen Volkerrechts im vierten und fiinften Jh. n. Chr., 1993 (with TL).
Thompson
Western Empire, 1982 (repr. 2001).
147. Timpe 1
D. Timpe, Der romische Vertrag mit den Juden, in: Chiron 4, 1974, 133-152.
148. Timpe 2
D. Timpe, Zur Geschischte der
Rheingrenze zwischen Caesar und Drusus, in: E. Lefévre (ed.),
Monumentum Chiloniense, FS E. Burck, 1975, 124-147.
149. Tod, Arbitration
150. Urban
M.N. Tod, International
Arbitration Amongst the Greeks, 1913. R. Urban, Der Konigsfrieden vom J. 387/86 BC, 1991.
Bet Vollmer 152. Walbank
D. Vollmer, Symploke, 1990. F.W. Walbank, Macedonia and Greece, in: CAH 7.1, 1984 (repr.
1989), 221-256.
R. Seager, The King’s Peace and the Second Athenian Confederacy, in: CAH 6, 1994,
. Werner
R. Werner, Der Beginn der
836-844.
romischen Republik, 1963. I§5-
Will
J. Seibert, Forschungen zu Hannibal, 1993.
East (168 B.C.—1 A.D.), 1984.
138. Sherwin-
Id., Lucullus, Pompey and the
monde héllenistique (323-30 av. 156. Will,
Randstaaten . Winter
W. Will, ROmische ‘Klientel-Randstaaten’ am Rhein?, in: BJ 187, 1987, 1-61. E. Winter, Handel und Wirtschaft in Sasanidisch-(Ost-)R6mischen
Vertragen und Abkommen, in:
East, in: CAH 9, 1994, 229-273.
MBAH
P. Southern, The Roman Empire 2001. M. Stahl, Zwischen Abgrenzung und Integration: Die Vertrage der Kaiser Mark Aurel und Commodus mit den Vélkern jenseits der Donau, in: Chiron 19,
E. Will, Histoire politique du
J.C.), 2 vols., *1979-1082.
Id., Roman Foreign Policy in the
from Severus to Constantine,
I4I. de Ste. Croix
146.
L. Wegner, s.v. Asylrecht, RAC 1,
N37. SherwinWhite 2
140. Stahl
145. Tausend
1990. E. Taubler, Imperium Romanum. Studien zur Entwicklungsgeschichte des romischen Reichs, Vol. 1, 1913. K. Tausend, Amphiktyonie und Symmachie, 1992. E.A. Thompson, Romans and Barbarians. The Decline of the
. Wegner
A.N. Sherwin-White, The Roman Citizenship, *1973 (repr. 1996) .
White 3
144. Taubler
R.D. Sullivan, Near Eastern Royalty and Rome, 100-30 BC,
1974.
136. SherwinWhite x
139. Southern
Ara, 1985.
143. Sullivan
T. Schwertfeger, Der Achaische Bund von 146 bis 27 v. Chr.,
156-186.
Lise Seibert
M. Steinbrecher, Der delisch-attische Seebund und die athenisch-spartanischen Beziehungen in der kimonischen
158. Winter 2
6.2, 1987, 46-74.
E. Winter, Die
sasanidisch-romischen
Friedensvertrage des 3. Jh.s n. Chr., 1988. . Wirth
G. Wirth, Rome and Its Germanic Partners in the Fourth Century, in:
Pohl 2 (q.v.), 13-55.
1989, 289-317.
160. Wolfram
H. Wolfram, Die Goten, 1990.
G.E.M. de Ste. Croix, The Origins of the Peloponnesian War, 1972
161. Wolters
R. Wolters, Romische Eroberung und Herrschaftsorganisation in Gallien und Germanien (Bochumer historische Studien: Alte Gesch. 8), 1990 (thesis, Bochum, 1987).
(repr. 1989).
359
162. Ziegler 1
163. Ziegler 2
164. Ziegler 3
B. II]. L,O00 SELECTED
K.-H. Ziegler, Die Beziehungen zwischen Rom und dem Partherreich, 1964. K.-H. Ziegler, Das Vélkerrecht der romischen Republik, in: ANRW I 2, 1972, 68-114. K.-H. Ziegler, Kriegsvertrage im antiken romischen Recht, in: ZRG 102, 1985, 40-90.
165. Ziegler 4
166. Ziegler 5 167. W. Ziegler
K.-H. Ziegler, Friedensvertrage im romischen Altertum, in: Archiv des Volkerrechts 27, 1989, 45-62. K.-H. Ziegler, Volkerrechtsgeschichte, 1994. W. Ziegler, Symbolai und Asylia, thesis, 1975.8
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
B. INTERNATIONAL
360
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
before 700
Ionian poleis
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
ALt. inf.
ml.
SRt.
bl.
Greek
ALt. with BSc. inf.
ml.
Greek
BC Aeolians
Cc. 700
Iones*
Cc. 700
Samos”, Priene*, Miletus [2], Colophon [1]
Cc. 699-660 ?
Miletus [2]
Chios*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
C.. 600
Alyattes*
Miletus [2]
PGR.
bl.
Greek
Cc. 600
Alyattes*
Priene* and Colophon [1]
PCG?
c. 610-545 ?
Samos*
Miletus [2]
ALt.
C. 600-575
Samos*
Priene*
591/90
Delphic Amphiktyonia*
c. 585
Alyattes*
c. 569
Amasis [2]
Cc. 560
Greek
bl.
Greek
PCt. inf.
bl.
Greek
EPt.
ml.
Greek
Cyaxares [1]
PCt./FRt.
bl.
Greek
Cyrene*
ALt.
Athens
Thessali*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
555-550?
Croesus* of Lydia
Ephesus*
PCt.2/ AUd.?
ul.
Greek
Mid-6th cent. ?
Elis [2]
Heraea™
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Greek
or c. 500?
Tie
c. 550
Anaeans
Metapi
AMa.
bl.
Greek
16.
c. 550
Sparta *
Tegea [1]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
Cc. 546
Cyrus [2]
Miletus [2]
Trn.?/ AUd.?
ul.
Greek
before 540
Carthago*
Etrusci*
EPt./LAt. with Cle. ete:
bl.
Greek
c. 540
Carthago*
Massilia (Massalia*)
PCt.
Greek
Gago
Amasis [2]
Polycrates [3] of
ALt.
Greek
Samos* 526
Polycrates [3 |
Cambyses*
ALt.
526/5
Cambyses
Arabs*
ALt.
519
Athens
Plataeans*
ALt. with FEc.?
Cus ag
Hippias [1]
Hippoclus* of
ALt.
*
bl.
Greek Greek
bl.
Greek
Greek
Lampsacus
27.
STI-$05
Lemnos*
Miltiades [1] the Elder
CPt.? inf.
ul.
Greek/Latin
E. 6th cent./ before 510
Rome
Gabii*
ISt.?
bl.
Greek/Latin
before 510
Sybaris [4]
Serdaei
ALt.
bl.
Greek
361
I.
B. Ill. L,O00
SELECTED
subseq.
observations
symmachia
foundation of the Ionian
INTERNATIONAL
text
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature L: Tausend 90-95
League, which later comprised 12 poleis on
lit.
SA/C: StV 2 no. tor; FN, no. 146
ins.
E: [Priene 37 L: Tausend 70-74
symmachia
lit.
xceeidta rem 054 L: Tausend 78-83
5.
peace
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 105; Scala, no. 23 L: Tausend 95f.; Baltrusch 7f.
6.
peace
lit.
SA/C: Scala, nos. 24-25
7.
symmachia against Priene*
ins.
E: [Priene 37 L: Tausend 74-78
ins.
E: OGIS 13; Tx/Tr/C: Welles, no. 7, 1. 13; TDGR 3, no. 12
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 104; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 44-5
3.
symmachia
4.
alliance of these four cities against Melia* (so-called Melian War)
8.
six-year peace
9.
symmachia
IO.
peace
war restriction clauses of the Delphic amphiktyones
Il.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 107; Scala, no. 26
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 28
12.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 108; Scala, no. 29
13.
autonomia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 109; Scala, no. 30; FN, no. 82
14.
00-year symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 110; Scala, no. 27 (dated to 588-572); Tx/C/Tr: ML, no. 17; FHIG 1, 46f.; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 29 (c.
500?); TDGR 1, no. 25; SEG 35, 378 L: Bonk 36f.; Fisch 343; Baltrusch 9-11 15.
philia
ins.
E/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 111; Scala, no. 33; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 37; HGIU 1, no. 12
16.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 112; Scala, no. 34; Tx/Tr: TDGR 1, no. 27 (c. 560)
L: Baltrusch 25 17.
partial autonomia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 115; Scala, no. 35; FN, no. 856
18.
philia and epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 116; Scala, no. 36
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 37
20.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 38; StV 2, no.
21.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 118
22.
symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 39; FN, no. 147
23.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 40; StV 2, no. 119 (without Tr) L.: Baltrusch 12-14
24.
symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 40a
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 87
lit.
Tx: Dion. Hal. Ant. Rom. 4,53,1-58,3; Fest. p. 48 s.v. clipeum; cf. Liv. 1,54,10
19.
25
26.
historicity of treaty (so-called foedus Gabinum* ) disputed
27.
eternal
symmachia
117 (without Tr)
L: Sherwin-White 1, 19, 10; Werner 430 with note 2; Dahlheim 113 note 7 ins.
E/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 120; ML, no. 10; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 38;
Tr: HGIU 1, no. 16; TDGR 1, no. 29 (550-525 BC); SEG 30, 4245 31, 357
L: Pistorius 29-31; Baltrusch rrf.
B. INTERNATIONAL
28.
362
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
before 510?
Sybaris [4], Croton* and
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
ALt.?
ml.?
Latin
IFt.
bl.
Greek
PCt. after tre.
ul.
Greek/Latin
LAt.
ml.
Greek
ALt. with Nc.,
ml.
Greek/Latin
ul.
Greek
Metapontum*
29.
508/7?
Rome
Carthago*
with BSc., TCTc.
etc. 30.
508 or 507
31.
493
Rome
Porsenna”, kg. of Clusium*
treaties among Ionian poleis
32
AOS
Rome
Latini*
ARc., BSc., PHc. etc.
33-
493
Hippocrates [4] of Gela*
Samians of Zankle
PCt.2/AMa.? with
(Messana [1])
BSc.
34.
492
Hippocrates [4] of Gela*
Syracusae*
PCt.?/SRt.
bl.
Greek
35.
486
Rome
Hernici*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
36.
481
Xerxes [1]
Carthago*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
37.
Aon
Hellenic Confederation
ALt. with PHc.,
ml.
Greek
against Xerxes [r1]
BSc.
PCE
ul.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
PCt.
bl.
Greek
Metapi
AMa.
bl.
Greek
38.
480
Gelon [1]
39.
478/7
Athens, Iones*, island poleis et al.
40.
476
Hieron [1] of Syracusae*
4I.
475-450?
Anaeans
Carthago*
Theron* of Acragas
PG
PGpe
Tegea [1]
Argos [II 1]
ALt.
43.
463
Athens
Thasos*
CPt./SRt. with WR
ul.
Greek
Greek
44.
462/1
peace conference of Sicilian poleis
PCr.
ml.
Greek
45.
460
Athens
Argos [II 1]
EPt.
46.
460
Athens, Argos [II 1]
Thessali*
EPt.
ml.
Greek Greek
47.
460
Athens
Inaros* of Egypt
ALt.
bl.
Greek
48.
460/59
Sparta”
Messenians
(Pt:
ul.
Greek
(Messana [2])
49.
459
Athens
Megara [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
50.
458/7 or 418/7
Athens
Segesta*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Ste
A577
Sparta*
Thebes [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
52.
4572
Athens
Aegina*
CPi? inf.
ul.
Greek
53.
457 or later
Athens
Delphic
EPE.
ml.
Greek
amphikytonia*
363
B. III. 1,000
subseq. 28. 29.
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
observations
text
sources/literature
symmachia? historicity disputed
lit.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 20,2,3 L: Pistorius 32 (rightly sceptical)
amicitia
lit.
ANTIQUITY
SA/C: StV 2, no. 121; Scala, no. 41; Scardigli 53-5; Tx/
Tr: FHIG 1, 147-9, 230f. L: Werner 299-3 40; Petzold 1, 366-385; Dahlheim 50 note 49, 137, 147; Scardigli 5 5-87; Hoyos 7f. with note 7 30.
pax
historicity of treaty
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 122 (S in final vol. of StV); Scala, no. 42
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 12.4; Piccirilli, no. 11
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 126; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 15 8f. L: Werner 443-473; Catalano 250-253 and r9off.
disputed Blity
32.
pax, amicitia and conditional
so-called foedus* Cassianum; eternal foedus
societas with commercium
(cf. Socii (Roman confederation)
passim; Dahlheim 120 note 23, 118 note 16, 122f. with note 30; 158-162; Sherwin-White 1, 21-32, cf. 15-20;
and conubium
Brunt 44ff., 84-90, 677ff.; Petzold 1, 386-411; Fisch 3.46, 348; Hantos 15off.; Ziegler 4, 54; FN 281; Baronowski 2,
3531 355-8 Bae 34. 35.
peace defensive
accession of the Hernici to
societas
the Latin League
lit.
T/C: StV 2, no. 125; Scala, no. 43 L: Dahlheim rg9r A. 32; cf. Taubler 431
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 127; Scala, no. 45; FN, no. 148; Piccirilli, no. 12
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 128
36.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 129 (historicity disputed)
37.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 130; Scala, no. 46; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 70 L: Baltrusch 30-51
38. 39.
formally coordinated hegemonic
foundation of the Delian’ League
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 131; Scala, no. 47
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 132; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 64 L: Meiggs, AE; Petzold 2, passim; Bonk 78-83; Schuller; Steinbrecher; Bleicken 66ff., 127ff.; Pistorius 9ff., 3 9ff.,
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 133; Scala, no. 48, cf. 49 L: Fisch 3.43
symmachia
82ff., Baltrusch 52-64
40. 41.
50-year philia
ins.
EP SEG wi, 0n83502..4 305274477
42.
symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 49a
43.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 135; FN, no. 97
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 136; Scala, no. 50
44.
45.
epimachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 51
46.
epimachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 52
47.
symmachia
48.
Messenians relinquish Ithome*
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 137
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 138; FN, no. 98 L: E. Badian, in: id., From Plataea to Potidaea, 1993,
73-107, 201-215 49.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 54
50.
symmachia
ins.
E: IG F? 19; Tod, no. 31; StV 2, no. 139; ML, no. 37; SEG 37, 3339, 1; cf. 26, 8; 36,14; Ir:HGIU 1,no. 58; TDGR no. 81
51.
symmachia
Sparta guarantees Thebes _ lit.
x,
SA/C: StV 2, no. 140; Scala, no. 55
[2] heg. in Boeotia* 52:
ins.
E:IG 1”, 18; SEG 3,5; 14, 2; StV 1, no. 141; FN, no. ror;
Tr: HGIU 1, 61 (457-445?) 53.
epimachia
ins.
E: IG F* 26; Tod, no. 39; StV 2, no. 142; Scala, no. 56; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 57; TDGR 1, no. 82
L: Bonk 38
B. INTERNATIONAL
364
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
VB
IGS
Athens and all.
Sparta* and all.
tre.
ml.
Greek
Kone
Aggie
Athens
Erythrae [2]
SBt.?/ CPt.? inf.
ul.
Greek
56.
451/0
Sparta*
Argos [II 1]
PGE.
bl.
Greek
57-
€.450
Knossos*
Tylissus*
EPt. with BSc.,
bl.
Greek
HE iWe SPe5 boc. ere,
on
GEaSO
Athens
Phaselis*
LAt.
bl.
Greek
59.
c.4500r 425?
Athens
Hermion(e)*
ALT,
bl.?
Greek
60.
450 0r later
Oeanthea*
Chaleion
LAt.
bl.
Greek
61.
450/49
Athens
Miletus [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
62.
449/8
Athens
Persia
PCt./IFt. with
bl.?
Greek
AUc. and TCTc.
63.
447/6?
Athens
Colophon [1]
GEE?
ul.?
Greek
64.
446
65.
before 446/5
Athens
Boeotians*
LGt.
bl.
Greek
Athens
Chalcis [1]
GPE. inf.
ul.
Greek
66.
446/5
Athens and all.
Sparta®* and all.
PCt. with AUc.,
bl./
Greek
ARe., TCYc.?
ml.
67.
446/5
Athens
Eretria [1]
ALt.
ul.
Greek
68.
444
Rome
Ardea*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
69.
after 444/3
Thurii*
Tarentum [1]
PG
bl.
Greek
70.
439/8
Athens
Samos*
CPi
ul.
Greek
Fleas
Epidamnos
Corcyra [1]
CPE
ul.
Greek
72
AGS
Athens
Corcyra [1]
EPt.
bl.
Greek
Ushi,
AiG aN!
Athens
Rhegium*
Trn.
bl.
Greek
FAs
“433/2
Athens
Leontini*
ALt./Trn.
bl.
Greek
ALt.
ml.
Greek
ices}
Potidaea*, Chalcis (Chalcidice*), Bottiaei (Bottice* )
365
B. III.
subseq. 54.
55.
1,000
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
for five years
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 60 (dated to 450/49); StV 2, no. 143 (without Tx); Piccirilli, no. 20; Lewis 111-120
subordinate
ins.
E: Syll.3 41; Tod, no. 29; StV 2, no. 134; ML, no. 40; SEG
symmachia
31, 5; Ir: HGIU 1, no. 63; TDGR
1, no. 71
L: Pistorius 10-1; Baltrusch 62-3 56.
30-year peace
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 144; Scala, no. 59 L: Lewis 120
57.
epimachia*
ins.
E/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 147-148; Piccirilli, no. 18-19; ML, no. 42; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 142f.; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 71-72; TDGR 1, no. 89
L: Bonk 25-7, 173; Chaniotis 153-6 58. 59.
symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 149
ins.
E: SEG 10,15; 34, 9; Tx/C: StV 2, no. 150; Tr: HGIU r,
ins.
E/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 146 LOG 32555157
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 151; SEG 31, 6; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 65
no. 66
60.
61.
symmachia
62.
peace
so-called ‘Peace of Callias’
lit.
(cf. Callias [4])
SA/C: StV 2, no. 152; Ir: TDGR 1, no. 95 L: K. Meister, Die Ungeschichtlichkeit des Kalliasfriedens
und deren historischen Folgen, 1982; E. Badian, in: JHS 107, 1987, 1-39; Balcer 299ff.; Lewis 121-7; cf. in
general Kehne 2, 234-6 63.
symmachia
64. 65.
symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, 145; ML, no. 47 L: Pistorius 41f., 72
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 153; Scala, no. 61; FN, no. 149
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 155; ML, no. 52; FN, no. 103; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 49f.; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 79; TDGR 1, no. 103
L: J.M. Balcer, The Athenian Regulations for Chalkis, 1978 (with Tx/Tr); Meiggs, AE 178ff.; Baltrusch 62 66.
30-year peace
Athens and all. relinquish _ lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 156; Scala, no. 63; Piccirilli, no. 21; Tx/
bases on the Peloponnese. Neutral states assured of
Tr: FHIG 1, 92f. L: D. Kagan, The Outbreak of the Peloponnesian War,
freedom of coalition
1969 (repr. 1989), 120-130; de Ste. Croix 180-200;
Lewis 133-8; Baltrusch 158-169 67.
symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 154; FN, no. 103; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 78; TDGR 1, no. 102
Victi65.
68.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 157 L: Hantos 54 note 13
69. 70.
subordinate
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 158; Scala, no. 65
lit/ins.
SA/E/C: StV 2, no. 159; Scala, no. 63a; FN, no. 104; ML,
symmachia
no. 56; SEG 34, 16; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 90; TDGR
1, no. 115;
SEG 39, 33 44, 5 L: Meiggs, AE 189-194; Pistorius 45-7, 72
oh 72.
epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 160; FN, no. 106
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 161; Scala, no. 66; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 5rf.
L: Bonk 18-24; Baltrusch 64 73.
symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 162; Scala, no. 67; SEG ro, 48; ML, no. 63; Ir: HGIU 1, no. 99; TDGR 1, no. 124
L: Bonk 40; SEG 35, 5; SEG 39, 4 (ALt. 448; Trn. 3 33/2)
74.
symmachia
ins/lit.
E/C:StV 2, no. 163; Scala, no. 68; ML, no. 64; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 100; TDGR
1, no. 125
L: Bonk 41; SEG 32, 7; 35, 5 75.
symmachia
anti-Athenian alliance
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 70
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
366
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
76.
before 431
Lepreum*
Elis [2]
ALt./SRt.
bl.
Greek
77.
Ast
Athens
Sitalces [1], kg. of the Odrysae*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
78.
431
Athens
Perdiccas [2] II of Macedonia*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Foe
AGE
Sparta*
Greek and Italian all. of the Spartans
Taf.
ul.
Greek
80.
430-423?
Athens
Methone [3], Macedonia*
EPt./ARt. with UGK.
ul.
Greek
81.
429
Athens
Potidaea*
CPE.
ul.
Greek
82.
428/7?
Athens
Aphytis*
ALt. with TCTc.?
ull.
Greek
83.
before 427
Athens
Mytilene*
LAt.
bl.?
Greek
84.
427
Athens
Mytilene*
CPt.
ul.
Greek
85.
427
Athens
Mytilene*
ALt. with MCWe — ul.? and Ne.
Greek
86.
427
Athens
Corcyra*
ALt. with FEc.
bl.
Greek
Athens
Camarina*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
88.
427/6?
Athens
Halicyae*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
89.
426
alliance of Acarnanes”,
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Greek
byA
Amphilochi* and Ambracia* 90.
425
Athens
Sparta*
tre.
bl.
QI.
424
Athens/Nicias [1]
Cythera*
GPE
ul.
Greek
92
4AzA
peace conference of
PCt. after tre.
ml.
Greek
93.
424
Athens
Nisaea [1]
CPE
ul.
Greek
94.
424
Brasidas*
Acanthus [1] and Athenians
CPt.
ul.
Greek
95.
424
Brasidas*
Amphipolis* and Athenians
GPE
ul.
Greek
96.
424/3
Athens
Darius [2] II
AMa./Trn.
bl.
Greek
97.
424/3
Athens
Halieis*
EPt.
bl.?
Greek
98.
423
Athens
Sparta*
tre. with ARc., TCE ete,
bl.
Greek
99.
423/2
Athens
© bl.
Greek
Sicilian poleis
Perdiccas [2]
Zand
ALt. with AMa.,
Arrabaeus [1]
FRc. TCGle:
100. 422
Athens
Bottiaei (Bottice*)
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
LOme An
Athens
Sparta” and all. (= Peloponnesian
PCt. after tre. 423
bi.
Greek/Latin
EPt.
bl.
Greek
League)
102. 421
Athens
Sparta*
367
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
text
sources/literature
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
76.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 164
77.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 165; Scala, no. 72
78.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 165; Scala, no. 71
79.
symmachia with guarantee of extant Possessions
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 166; Scala, no. 74 L: Baltrusch 27-30
ins.
E/C: Syll.3 75; ML, no. 65; Tr: HGIU 1, 104
80. 8x.
82.
subordinate (?)
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 168; FN, no. 108
ins.
Tx: IG B 62; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 106
symmachia
ANTIQUITY
L: Pistorius 14
83.
ins.
84.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 169
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 170; FN, no. 110
85.
symmachia
ins.
E: IG I? 60; Syll.3 76; Tod, no. 63; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 108; cf. IG I 53; StV 2, no. 67; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 109
86.
subordinate symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 172; Scala, no. 75 L: Bonk 84-6; Baltrusch 64
87.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 173; Scala, no. 76
88.
symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 174; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 96 (dated to 43 3/2)
89.
1oo-year symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 175; Scala, no. 77 L: Bonk 42-4; Fisch 3 43f.
go.
local
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 176; FN, no. 64
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 178; FN, no. 115
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 179; Scala, no. 78; cf. FN, no. 65
93.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 180; FN, no. 116
94.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 181; FN, no. 117
95.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 182; FN, no. 118
ins./lit.
SA/E/C: StV 2, no. 183; Scala, no. 80
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 184; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 47f.; Tr: HGIU 1, no.
gt.
92.
96.
peace as per status quo
eternal philia
so-called ‘Peace of
Epilycus’: renewal of ‘Peace of Callias’ 97.
epimachia
118
L: Bonk 28f.; Pistorius 47-8; Baltrusch 72-3
98.
99.
lit.
symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 185; Scala, no. 79; FN, no. 66; Piccirilli, no. 25; [x/Tr: FHIG 1, 93, 105, 116, 139-141
SA/C: StV 2, no. 186; Scala, no. 81; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 121 L: Bonk 87—9; FN 280; Pistorius 48-9
100. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 187; Scala, no. 82; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 122
L: Bonk gof.; Fisch 6rf.; Pistorius 50; Baltrusch 64-6 with note 357
IOI.
5o-year peace
_—_so-called ‘Peace of Nicias’ _ lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 188; 185 (cf. 176); Scala, no. 83; 79; Piccirilli, no. 27; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 39ff.
L: Fisch 344; D. Kagan, The Archidamian War, 71987, 303-349; Meiggs, AE 340-343; FN 280; Baltrusch
134-151 102.
epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 189; Scala, no. 84; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 62f.
L: Bonk 51-4; Kagan 26ff.; FN 280; Baltrusch 73-5
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
368
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
103. 421
‘Triple Alliance’ of Argos [II x], Mantinea*; Elis [2]
Corinthus* and poleis of the Chalcidice*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
104. 420
Sparta*
Boeotians*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
105. 420
Athens and all.
Argos [II 1], Mantinea’, Elis [2] and all.
Fv and ALt.
ml.
Greek
106. 418
Sparta*
Argos* and Perdiccas
PCt./ALt.
ml.
Greek
[2] Il of Macedonia*
107. 418/7?
Sparta*
Mantinea*
PCt.
bl.
Greek
108. 416
Athens
Argos [II 1]
EPt.
bl.
Greek
109. 415
Athens
Segesta [1]
ALt. with BSc.
bl.
Greek
IIO. 414
Athens
Centuripae*
CPt.2?/ALt. with Ne.
bl.?
Greek
III. 413
Athens
Artas of Messapia
Trn.
bl.?
Greek
Te,
mes ye
Athens
Thurii*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
03.
402
Sparta*
Persia
ALt.
bl.
Greek
II4. 412
Sparta*
Persia
ALt.
bl.
Greek
TiS. Aue
Sparta*
Persia
ALt.*
bl.
Greek
TG.) GeATaL
Eretria [1]
Histiaea*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
II7. 409
Athens/strategoi
Pharnabazus [2]
tre.
bl.
Greek
118. c. 409 0r 407?
Athens
Selymbria*
PCt.? with AUc., TGIc ete,
bl.
Greek
II9. 407
Athens
Clazomenians in Daphnus*
CPt.?
ul.?
Greek
Carthago*
Dionysius [1] I
PCE
bl.
Greek
I2I. 404
120.
405
Athens
Sparta*
GPR PCt./ALt.
ul.
Greek
T2e
Dionysius [1] I
Naxos [2]
GPE.
ul.
Greek
123. 402/1
AO! I
Dionysius [1] I
Leontini*
CPt:
ul.
Greek
124. 401
Athens
Eleusis [1]
PGE?
bl.?
Greek
125. 400
Sparta”
Elis [2]
PCt/ALt.
bl.
Greek
126. late 5thcent.or later?
Gortyn*
Rhizenia
PGE:
bl.
Greek
Aetolians*
PCt./SBt./ALt.
ul./bl.
Greek
(Erxadieis)
with FEc., SPc.
127. early 4th cent. ? Sparta*
and protection clause
" After initial failed negotiations from 420. * Only this treaty was officially ratified.
369
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
observations
103. epimachia?
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 190; Scala, no. 85 L: Kagan 33-59
ANTIQUITY
104. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 191; Scala, no. 86
105.
lit/ins.
E/SA/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 193; Scala, no. 87; Tr: FHIG 1, 55-7; HGIU 1, no. 125; SEG 32, 12
100-year peace and symmachia
L: Bonk 5 5-8; Fisch 343; Pistorius 11-3; Kagan 60-77; Baltrusch 76-81 106.
50-year peace _ alliance between Sparta* lit. and symmachia and Argos*! with subsequent accession of poleis of the Chalcidice and of Perdiccas [2] II of Macedonia*
SA/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 194 (cf. 192); Scala, no. 88; FN, no. 12; Piccirilli, no. 29, 31; FHIG 1, 52-4, 94 L: Bonk 59f.; Fisch 343; Kagan 134-6; Jehne 43 note 78, 53 note 34; Baltrusch 81-2
107. 30-year peace
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 195
108. epimachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 196; SEG 47, 2313; Scala, no. 89; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 129
L: Bonk 30f.; Baltrusch 81-2 109. symmachia
lit.
110. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Thuc. 6,62,3; Diod. Sic. 13,6,1; Plut. Nicias 15
L: Bonk 18 5f. SA/C: StV 2, no. 197; Scala, no. 90; FN, no. 120
ites
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 198; Scala, no. 91
112. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Thuc. 7,33,6 L: Bonk 92f.
113. symmachia;
not ratified
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 200
114. symmachia;
not ratified
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 201
115. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 202
116. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 205; Tr: HGIU x, no. 139
117.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 206; SA/C: FN, no. 68
118.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 207; Scala, no. 93; ML, no. 87 (dated to
119.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 207a; ML, no. 88; Tr: HGIU 1, no. 148;
407); Tr: HGIU 1, no. 146 (408); TDGR
1, no. 162 (407)
TDGR 1, no. 163 rZ0. 121.
symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 210; Scala, no. 94
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 211; Scala, no. 95; FN, no. 125
L: Bonk 71; Fisch 63, 343; Funke 1, 12, 26, 142 22.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 127
023.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 128
124.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 215 L: Fisch 61, 64
125. peace and symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 217; Scala, no. 96 L: Funke 34, 36 note 31, 40 notes 42-43
126.
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 216; SEG 43, 607 (dated to 500-450)
127. subordinate symmachia
ins.
E: SEG 26, 461 (500-470?); 28, 408; 32, 398 (wrongly attributed to Arcadians); Tx/Tr: Liverpool Classical Monthly 1, 1976, 87-92; Tx/C: ML 312, no. 67 to; HGIU
1,no. 154 L: Bonk 73-77; authoritative Baltrusch 21-30 with note 102
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
57°
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
128. 398/7
Dionysius [1] I
Sicilian poleis
ALt.
129.3197,
Dercylidas*
Tissaphernes”, Pharnabazus [2]
tre.
ml.?
130. 396
Agesilaus [2]
Tissaphernes*
{KC;
bl.
Greek/Latin
131. 396
Sparta*
Nepherites I of Egypt
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
Greek Greek
132. 395
Agesilaus [2]
Tithraustes [1]
tre.
ul.
Greek
£9303 95
Athens
Boeotians*
EPt.
bl.
Greek
134. 395
Athens
Locris (Locri, Locris
EPt.
bl.
Greek
tre.
bl.
Greek
ALt.
ml.
Greek
[1]) 135.
395
136. 395
Thebes [2] and all.
Pausanias [2]
Athens, Argos, Boeotia*, Euboea*, Locri (Locri, Locris [1]), Acarnanes*, Corinthus* et al.
137305
Agesilaus [2]
Otys* of
ALt.
Greek
Paphlagonia* 138. 394
Rome
Falisci*
PCE:
ul.?
Greek/Latin
139. 394
Eretria [1]
Athens
EPt.?
bl.
Greek
140. before 393
Italiot League (Magna* Graecia)
ALt.
ml.
Greek
I4I. c.3930r391?
Amyntas [3] Dl
poleis of the Chalcidice*
EPt.
bl.
Greek
142. 393-377
Ceos
Eretria [1]
ISt.
bl.
Greek
Greek
Dionysius [1] I
Carthago*
PGt:
bl.
144. C.390
TAs
sos:
Athens
Troezen*
LAt.
bl.?
Greek
I45. 390
Athens
Evagoras [1] of
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
146. 390
Italiot League in Magna*
Cyprus *
Lucani*
PGE
Greek
Acoris [2]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
bl.?
Greek
Graecia
147. 390-389
Athens
148. 390-386
Barcaeans, Evagoras [1], Pisidians (Pisidia*)
149. 389
Athens
Medocus* I and Seuthes [2] II of Thracia*
ALt.
150. 389
Acarnanes*
Achaea*
PGE
151. 389
Sparta*
Acarnanes*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
152. 388
Dionysius [1] I
Italiot League
Per
bl.
Greek
Acoris [2] of Egypt*
Greek
153. 388
Dionysius [1] I
Rhegium*
PCt. with WR
ul.
Greek
Doda Gia
Persia
Sparta*
PGE
bl.
Greek
155. 387/6
Persia
Hellas [1]
Ret:
ml.
Greek
371
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
128. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 97
129.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 219; FN, no. 70
130.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 220; FN, no. 71
131. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 221
Weed,
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 222; FN, no. 72
Tt By
ins/lit.
E/SA/C: StV 2, no. 223; SEG 47, 2313; Scala, no. 100; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 202; TDGR 2, no. 14
134.
ins.
L: Bonk 32; FN 280; Jehne 103; Funke 66-70 SA/G: StV 2, no: 224; SEG 47, 23:13; Scala, no. rox; In:
HGIU 2, no. 202; TDGR 2, no. 16 L: Bonk 33; Funke 72 note 3 135.
lit.
136. coordinated
symmachia
Corinthian alliance (with
lit.
— synedrion in Corinthus*) against Sparta
SA/C: StV 2, no. 226 L: Funke 71 SA/C: StV 2, no. 225; Scala, no. 102; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 68f.
L: Funke 71-3
137.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 103
138.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 227; Scala, no. 104
139.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 229; SEG 29, 84; Scala, no. 106; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 205; TDGR 2, no. 2
L: Bonk 3.4; SEG 30, 55; 35, 533 45, 12183 47, 2313; Funke 80 note 23
140.
foundation of the league
141.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 230
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 231; Scala, no. 107; [x/Ir: FHIG 1, 106f.; HGIU 2, no. 208; TDGR 2, no. 21 (two treaties?)
L: Bonk 35 142
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 232; SEG 14, 530; 45, 1141; Ir: HGIU 2,
no. 209 143.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 233; Scala, no. 108
144.
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 235
145. symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 234; Scala, no. 111
146.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 110
147. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 236; Scala, no.
148. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 237
149. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 238; Scala, no. 113; Piccirilli, no. 37 L: SEG 32, 43 (dated to 389); 30, 56; Funke 154, 157-8
150.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 114 L: Funke 93
151. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 115
1525
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 239
inte
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 240; Scala, no.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 241
112
with note 94
L: Funke 93 (388 BC)
154. L555
King’s Peace (so-called ‘Peace of Antalcidas’)
lit.
117
SA/C: StV 2, no. 242; Scala, no. 121; Tr: FHIG 1, 42f.
L: Ryder 27-36, 122f.; Urban 101-125; Jehne 3 1-47; Funke 89-101, 137ff., 164-7; Hornblower 117-9
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
37%
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
156. 386
Sparta*
157- 386
Sparta*
158. 386 159. 386
160. before 385 ? 161. 385
Thebes [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Corinthus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Dionysius [1] I
Celts*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
Rome
Massalia*
ALt.?
bl.
Greek/Latin
Mantinea*
Helisson [3]
Sxe
bl.
Greek
Sparta
Mantinea*
CPt.
ul.
Greek
162. 385
Dionysius [1] I
Illyricum”*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
163. 384
Athens
Chios*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
164. 383
Sparta*
Acanthus [1], Apollonia [2], Amyntas [3] II
ALt.
ml.?
Greek
165. ¢. 383
Athens
Olynthus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
166. 381
Rome
Tusculum*
PCt.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
167. 380
Artaxerxes [2] II
Evagoras [r]
PGE.
bl.
Greek
168. 379
Sparta*
Olynthus*
PCt.
ul.
Greek
169. 378
Athens
Byzantium*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
170. 378/7
Athens
Thebes [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
GAS
Athens and )53 all.
Daa
ALt. inf.
lang.
Greek
172. 377,
Athens
Methymna*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
WB
397.7.
Athens
Icos*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
T74.
377
Athens
Chalcis [1]
ALt.
U7s
aeons 74.5
Dionysius [1] I
Carthago*
PCt. after tre.
bl.
Greek
Athens
Acarnanes”*,
ALt.
bl.
Greek
176: 375
Greek
Cephallenia”, Corcyra [1]
U7Te SES
Athens
Corcyra [1]
EPt. with SPc.
bl.
Greek
E78: 375.00 726
Athens
Cephallenia*
ALt.
bi.
Greek
179. 375-373
Athens
Amyntas [3] II]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
180. 375/4
Athens
Sparta*
PCt. with detailed — bl. AUc.
Greek
373
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
156. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 243
157. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 244; Scala, no. 124
158. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 246; Scala, no. 126
lit/ins.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 43,5,3. 8-10; cf. Syll.3 sor, |. 26f., 5.45
159. amicitia and
observations
INTERNATIONAL
historicity disputed
societas
SA/C: Scala, no. 127 L: Horn r4f., rof.; Werner 363 note 3 and Dahlheim 138f. with note 36 deny historicity; cf. Baronowski 2, 366 with note 41
160.
ins.
Tx: SEG 37, 340; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 213
161.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 131
162. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 247; Scala, no. 128
163. symmachia
ins.
E/C: IG IIE 3.5; Syll.3 142; Tod, no. 118; StV 2, no. 248 (cf. 257); Scala, no. 122 (dated to 386); Tr: HGIU 2, no. 214; TDGR 2, no. 31 L: Urban 140, r6rf.; Jehne 38, 57; Seager 163f.
164. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 249; Scala, no. 135
165. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 250
166.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 251 (without Tx)
167.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 252; Scala, no. 132
168. peace and symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 253; Scala, no. 135; FN, no. 132 L: Bonk 72
169. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 256; Scala, no. 137; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 34 L: Pistorius 20
170. symmachia
ins./lit.
SA/C:StV 2, no. 255 (cf. 254); Scala, nos. 136 and 139 (cf.
ins.
E: 1G I/II? 43; Syll.3 147; Tod, no. 123; E/C: StV 2, no.
£33), it: LDGR 2.0133; 0hG 340, 62832) 52:
171. symmachia
foundation of the (Second) Athenian* League, which
257; Scala, no. 138; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 65-7; Tr: TDGR 2,
Thebes also joined. Only
no. 35
the prospectus exists, a ‘Decree of Aristotle‘ (Aristoteles [6])
172. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 258; Scala, no. 140; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 216; TDGR 2, no. 37 L: Pistorius 23
173. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: Scala, no. 142
174. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 259; Scala, no. 141; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 217; TDGR 2, no. 38
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 261; Scala, no. 134; cf. FN, no. 73a
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 262; Scala, no. 143; SEG 21, 234; Tx/Tr:
07.53 176. symmachia
Athenian prospectus
decree for the
Athenian
Cargill 103-7; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 219; TDGR 2, no. 41
League (Second)
177. epimachia
L: SEG 39, 65; Pistorius 23
ins.
Athenian treaty document: SA/C: StV 2, no. 263; Scala, no. 143B; SEG 21, 2353 47,
2313; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 58f.; Cargill 72-4; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 220; TDGR
2, no. 42
L: Pistorius 23f. 178. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 267; SEG 21, 237; Tx/Tr: Cargill 74f.; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 222
179. symmachia
180. renewal ofthe King’s Peace
— recognition of Persian
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 264; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 43
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 265; Scala, no. 145; Ir: TDGR 2, no. 44
supremacy over the Greeks
L: Ryder 58f., 62-3, 124-6; Jehne 57-64, 44 note 83;
of Asia Minor
Urban 169-171; Seager 175f.
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
TREATIES
signatory 1
374
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
181. 374/3 or 373/2
Thebes [2]
Plataeae*
CPt.
ul.
Greek
182.
Telmessus*
Limira
CPt.
ul.
Greek
LAt.?/arb.?
ml.2
373-363
T83. 372
Athenian* League
184. 372
Athens
Ly
Sat
Greek states, among themselves and with Persia
PCr
ml.
Greek
186. 371
Greek states, among themselves and with Persia
PCt. with alliance clause
ml.
Greek
£87.63 70
Thebes [2]/Boeotians* and Aetolians*, Locri*,
EPt.
bl.
Greek
188. 370
Boeotians*
EPt.
bl.
Greek
189. 370
Arcadian poleis
ALt.
ml.
Greek
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Epidaurus* and Paralia”
BCE:
Greek Greek
Euboea*, Malieis* et al.
Phocis*
(Arcadians, Arcadia*)
190. 370
Thebes [2] and all.
Arcadian League (Arcadians*, cf.
I9I. 370
Iason [2] of Pherae*
Amyntas [2] I
ALt.
bl.
Greek
192. 369
Athens and all.
Sparta* and all.
ALt.
ml.
Greek
193. 368
Athens
Alexander [15] of Pherae*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
194. 368
Athens
Leucas*
PCt.?/ALt.?
195. 368-364?
Athens
Stymphalus*
DAY
196. 368
Thebes [2]
Macedonia *
ALt. with FEc.
197.
189.)
368/7?
Greek Greek bl.
Greek
Dionysius [1] I
Carthago*
tre.
bl.
Greek
198. 367
Persian kg.
Thebes [2] and all.
PGE,
ml.
Greek
199. 367
Athens
Dionysius [1] I
ALt.
bl.
Greek
200.
367
Thebes [2]
Alexander [15] of Pherae*
tre./PCt.?
bl.?
Greek
201.
367
Thebes [2]
Achaea*
PCt/ALt.?/SRt.?
ull?
Greek
375
B. III. L,OOO0
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
text
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
sources/literature
181.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 266; FN, no. 135
182.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 136
183.
very fr. enactment
ANTIQUITY
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 268; SEG 31, 67; Tx/Tr: Cargill 163-4
184.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 146
185. koine eirene* undertaken in Sparta on Spartan initiative (failed when Thebes refused Boeotian autonomy)
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 269; Scala, no. 147; L: Ryder 127-130; Jehne 65-74; Urban 171-3
186. quasi epimachia against treaty
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 270; Scala, no. 148 L: Ryder 64-70, 131-133; Urban 173f., Jehne 74-79; cf.
renegers; koine eirene*
Seager 176, 185-6
concluded on Athenian initiative on the basis of the King’s Peace and general demobilization 187. epimachia
(defensive?) alliance
lit.
Tx: Xen. Hell. 6,5,23; Ages. 2,24; Diod. Sic. 15,27,1 (cf. StV 2, no. 271)
L: Jehne 85 188. epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 271 L: Jehne 85
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 272; Scala, no.
190. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 273; Scala, no. 152
191. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 151
192. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 274; Scala, no. 153
189. symmachia
foundation of the so-called
150
‘Second’ Arcadian League
L: Jehne 61, 76, 79
193. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 276; Scala, no. 157
194.
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 278
195.
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 279
196. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 277 L: Bonk 128f.
197.
lit.
SA/C: EN, no. 74
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 161; StV 2, no. 282; Piccirilli, no. 46 L: Ryder 79-81, 136; Jehne 82-90
199. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 280; Scala, no. 159; SEG 31, 68; 32, 58; 47, 2313; It: HGIU 2, no. 226; TDGR 2, no. 52 L: Pistorius 25
200.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 281; Scala, no. 160; FN, no. 75
201.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 162; StV 2, no. 283
198.
so-called ‘Peace of Pelopidas’*; rescript of the
Persian kg.; not ratified as a koine eirene* by the Greeks
B. INTERNATIONAL
202.
376
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
366
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Thebes [2]
Eretria [1]
ALt.
203. 366
Sparta*
Achaea*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Greek
204. 366
Athens
Arcadian League
EPt.
bl.
Greek
205. 366/5
Thebes [2]
Corinthus*, Argos*,
PCt.
ml.
Greek
Phleius*, Messene [2], Epidaurus*
206. 365
Achaea”
Elis [2]
ALt.
207.
365
Sparta*
Elis [2]
ALt.
Greek Greek
208.
365/4-362
Arcadian League
Pisae*?
ALt.
Greek
209. 364
Clearchus [3] of Heraclea
Mithridates (great-grandfather of
ALt.
210. C. 364
Ceos*
Histiaea*
210365
Boeotians*
Alexander [15] of
bl.?
Latin
SYt./LAt.?
bl.
Greek
CPt
ul.
Greek
M. [1])
Pherae* Die
362
213. 362/1
Athens
Ceos*
GPE
ul.
Greek
Athens
Arcadian League
ALt.
ml.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
PGE.
ml.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
bl.?
Greek
(Arcadians*),
Achaeans”*, Elis [1], Phleius* 214. 362/1
Mantinea*
215. 362/1
various Greek states (incl. Athens, Thebes [2], Sparta*)
Sparta*
216. 36t/0
Athens and all.
Thessalian League
217. after 360?
Athens
Cretan polis
LAt.
218. 360-350?
Orchomenus
Euaemon
Sits
Greek
219. 359
Sparta *
Phocis*
ALt.
Greek
220. 359
Athens
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
221.
359
Bruttui*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
222.
359
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Agis of Paeonia
PCt.
223. 359-356?
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Potidaea*
ALt.
ul.?
Greek Greek
224. 358
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Illyrians
PGr
ul.
Greek
225. 358
Rome
Latium (Latini*)
ALt.
ul.
Latin
226.
358/7-342
Rome
Privernum*
rest./ALt.?
bl.?
Latin
DOT
23 57,
Athens
kgs. of the Odrysae*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
ALt. after tre. with
bl.
Greek
(Berisades*, Amadocus [2], Cerso-
bleptes* D180 57,
Athens and all.
Eretria [rt], Chalcis [1], Carystus [1], Histiaea*
Thebes
Bd!
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
text
sources/literature
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
202. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 165
203. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 163
204. epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 284; Scala, no. 164
205. nota koine eirene™ (?), buta
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 285; Scala, no. 166; Piccirilli, no. 47 L: Ryder 137-139, cf. 83ff.; Urban 175; Jehne 88-90, cf.
special peace made by Thebes
go-5 and 82ff.
[2] with the Spartan all. 206.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 167 (cf. 172)
207. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 168
208. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 285a
209. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 286
210.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 287; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 230
20
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 288; Scala, no. 171; FN, no. 138
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 289; Scala, no. 173; Tx/Tr/C: Cargill
212. subordinate symmachia
138-140; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 231; TDGR 2, no. 55
L: Pistorius 25f., 5 xf. 213. eternal symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 290; Scala, no. 174; SEG 47, 2313; Ir: HGIU 2, no. 232; TDGR 2, no. 56 L: SEG 32, 61; Jehne 110 note 84, 139 note 4; Pistorius 26
214. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 291; Scala, no. 174B
215. koine eirene* confirming autonomia of Messana [2]
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 292; Scala, no. 175; Piccirilli, no. 48; Tr: FHIG 1, 71; HGIU 2, no. 233 L: Ryder 84ff., 140-144; Jehne 96-115
216.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 293; Scala, no. 176; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 234;
eternal
symmachia
TDGR 2, no. 59 L: SEG 32, 62; Jehne 113; Pistorius 26
7aig
ins.
218.
ins.
E/C/Tr: StV 2, no. 297; Piccirilli, no. 52
219. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 190
220.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 298; Scala, no. 177; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 61
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 299; Scala, no. 188 (dated to 3 56/5)
222,
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 178
223. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 300
B24;
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 301; Scala, no. 179
Dp
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 302
lit.
Tx: Liv. 7,42,8; 8,1,1ff.; 8,19,4ff. L: Dahlheim 71
peace and
E: SEG 17, 20; E/C: StV 2, no. 296
symmachia 221,
foundation of the Bruttian League
226. societas
227. symmachia
after ded.
ins./lit.
|E/SA/C: StV 2, no. 303; SEG 47, 2313; Scala, no. 182; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 238; TDGR 2, no. 64
L: SEG 31, 72; Ellis 736 228. symmachia; readmission of
Euboea* into the League
ins.
E: IG I/MI 124-125; Tod, no. 153f.; E/C: StV 2, no. 304; Scala, no. 181; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 65
B. INTERNATIONAL
date 229.
357
378
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
Chios*, Rhodos*, Byzan-
type
style
lang.
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Greek
tium*, Cos*, Maussolus* 230. 357
Athens
Leucon [3] I, Bosporan kg.
Tele
bl.
231. 357
Grabus, kg. of Illyricum*
Chalcidian League
EPt.
bl.
Greek
232. 357/6
Philip (Philippus [4]) Il
Chalcidian League
ALt.
bl.
Greek
233. 356
Athens
Cetriporis*, kg. of Thracia; Lyppeus* of
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Paeonia; Grabus, kg.
of Illyricum* 234. 356
Athens
Phocis
ALt.
bl.
Greek
235. 356/5
Athens
Locris (Locri*)
ALt.
bl.
Greek
236. 355
Athens
Neapolis [2]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
PETA
Athens and all.
Chios*, Rhodos*, Byzantium* et al.
PCt. with AUc.
ml.
Greek
238. 354
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Methone [3]
CEE
ul.
Greek
239. 354
Rome
Samnites*
ALt. with FEc.
240. 353
Philip (Philippus [4]) 1
Thessali*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
ZAI. 353 /0L 351 2
Philip (Philippus [4]) Il
Thebes [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Daz
Rome
acre;
tre.
bl.
Greek/Latin
243. 352
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Pherae*
CPt.
BAAS 52
Athens
Olynthus*
PCt.
DAS
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Amadocus [2] of the Odrysians
ALt.?
CAs
Bo
352
246. 352/1orlater
Greek bl.
Greek Greek
Byzantium*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
DATE 350
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Cersobleptes *
PCt./SRt.
ul.
Greek
248. before 350
Athens
Ceos*
ALt.
249. before 350
Athens
Carthaea, Coresus, lulis
TRa.
Z5On
350
_ Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Greek/Latin
Greek
bl.?
Greek
Athens
Naxos [1]
LAt.
251. after 350
Hermias [1] of Atarneus*
Erythrae [1]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Greek
252. 349
Athens
Olynthus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
253. 349/82?
Athens
Orontes [6], satrapof
TRt.
Greek
Mysia
254. 348
Rome
Carthago*
IFt. and AMa.
bl.
Greek/Latin
255. 347/6-310
Athens
Regnum *
ALt./Trn.?
bl.?
Greek
Bosporanum
256. 346
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Cersobleptes*
GPE?
ul.
Greek
257. 346
Athens
Mytilene*
Trn.
bl.?
Greek
258. 346
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Phocis*
CPE
ul.
Greek/Latin
259. 346
Athens and all.
Philip (Philippus [4])
PCt.
bl.
Greek
Il and all.
72
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 305; Scala, no. 183
230.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 306
231. epimachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 307
232. symmachia
ins/lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 308; Scala, no. 185; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 67
233. symmachia
ins/lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 309; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 242; TDGR 2, no. 70
234. epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 310; Scala, no. 189
235. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 311
236. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 312; Scala, no. 191; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 2.43
237. peace; seceded
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 313; Scala, no. 192
229. symmachia
against Athens
all. become autonomous
L: Jehne 116; Ellis 736-9
238.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 314; FN, no. 141
239. amicitia and societas
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 193 (cf. StV 2, no. 335) L: Taubler 387-9; Dahlheim 59 note 26, 61f.; Hantos
240. symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 315
241. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 198; StV 2, no. 327
242.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 316; Scala, no. 199 (assumes PCt. 351 BC)
170; Baronowski 2, 363 note 37
100-year (?) indutiae*
243.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 142
244.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 317; Scala, no. 196
245. symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 195
246. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 318; Scala, no. 194
247.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 319; Scala, no. 197; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 76
248. symmachia
ins.
E: IGM? 4045 SEG 19, /5.0313535 733132570
249.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 320
250.
ins.
E/CESty 2500.3 2m
251. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 322; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 248; TDGR 2, no.
252. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 323; Scala, no. 200; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 80
253.
ins.
E/C: StV 2, no. 324
254.
lit.
Wied
SA/C: StV 2, no. 326; Scardigli 93-96; Scala, no. 202; Tx/
Tr: FHIG 1, 149f., 224, 231. L: Werner 341-368; Dahlheim 50 note 49, 214 note 81; Petzold 1, 366-385; Scardigli 96-127; Hoyos 7f. with note 7 255. symmachia
ins.
256.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 205
Gye
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 328; Scala, no. 203; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 250; TDGR 2, no. 83
258.
259. not a koine eirene*
so-called ‘Peace of Philocrates’
SA/C: StV 3, no. 401
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 330; FN, no. 143
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 329; Scala, no. 204 L: Ryder 96ff., 145-149; Jehne; 116-137; Ellis 75 1-9
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
TREATIES
signatory 1
380
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
PCE
ml.
Greek
260. 346
Delphic amphiktyonia
261. 346
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Thebes [2]
Trn.?
262.
Dionysius [2] II
Timoleon*
CPt.
263. 343
Rome
Capua*/Campanians (Campania”)
_rest.? after ded.
ul.
Latin
264. 343
Athens
Megara [2]
ALt.
ul.
Greek
265. 343
Nectanebus [2] II
Lacrates
CPt.
266. 343
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Artaxerxes [3] Ili
ALt.
bl.
Greek
267. 342
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
Aetolians*
SRt.?
ul.?
Greek
268. 342
Athens
Achaea*, Arcadia*,
ALt.
each
Greek
344
Argos [II 1], Megale* Polis; Messene [2] 269. 342/1
Sicilian poleis
Greek Greek/Latin
Greek
bl. ALt.
ml.
Greek
bl.
Greek
270. 341
Athens
Chalcis [1]
ALt.
27
SAL
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Apollonia
ALt.?
27
SA
Philip (Philippus [4]}) I
Odessus*
ALt.
273
ZAL
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Artaxerxes [3] III
ALt.
274. 341
Athens
Byzantium*, Abydus_
ALt.
2755 SAT
Athens
Eretria [1]
EPt.
ul.?
276. 341
Carthago*
Catane*, Leontini*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
277.
Euboean poleis (Chalcis
bl.
Greek
ALt.
ml.
Greek
340
Greek/Latin Latin bl.
Greek Greek Greek
[x], Eretria [1], Oreus et als)
278. 340
Athens, various Greek poleis
279. 339
Timoleon*
Carthago*
PGE
bl.?
Greek
280. 339
Athens
Thebes [2]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
281. 338
Sicilian League
Aetna? and Agyrium*?
ALt.
ml.
Greek
282.
338
Rome
Latini* and Campanians (Campania*)
rest./ALt. foedus aequum
_ bl.?
Latin
283. from 338
Rome
Italian all.
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
> Ruling of the Delphic amphiktyonia* at the behest of Philip (Philippus [4]) I: punitive measures against Phocis*, restoration of Theban heg. in Boeotia* and admission into the amphictyony of Macedonia‘.
381
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
260. not a koine eirene*3
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 331 L: Ryder roo, Jehne 125-131
261.
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 206
262.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 144
263. civitas sine suffragio
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 335 L: Horn 98; Dahlheim 59-62, r14f.; Hantos
ANTIQUITY
111-3 with
note 68; Baronowski 2, 366, 360 note 29
264. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 332, Scala, no. 207
265.
lit.
SA/C: FN, no. 145
266. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 333
267.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 336
268. symmachia
lit./ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 337; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 89
269. symmachia against Carthago*
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 338
270. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 339; Ir: TDGR 2, no. 91
271. symmachia?
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 211
272. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 212
273. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 214
274. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: Scala, no. 213
275. epimachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 340; Scala, no. 215; SEG 32, 77 (dated to
341/340); 355 59 L: Pistorius 27f. 276. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 341
277. symmachia; foundation of the Euboean League under Athenian heg.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 342
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 343; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 93 L: Jehne 139
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 344; Scala, no. 217
278. symmachia
foundation of the Hellenic League, under Athenian leadership, against Philip (Philippus [4]) II
279.
280. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 345; Scala, no. 216
_lit./ num.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 3.46
282. conditional societas; after ded.
lit.
SA/C: StV 2, no. 347 L: Badian 22ff.; Sherwin-White 1, 3 8ff., 190-205; Dahlheim r18f. with notes 20-21; Hantos 5off.
283. unconditional or conditional
lit./ins.
cf. no. 282 L: Badian 22-32; Sherwin-White 1, 38ff., 96ff., ro2ff.,
281. symmachia
expansion of the Sicilian League to include both cities
societas;
r1off., 174-189, 214ff.; Dahlheim 118-125; Hantos
foundation of
122ff., r5off.; Galsterer 84-100, 101-4 and passim;
the Italian
Baronowski 2, 3 6off.; > Socii (Roman confederation)
defensive confederation under Roman
heg.
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
284. 338
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Philip (Philippus [4]) I
Thebes [2]/Boeotian
PCt.? or AUd.?
ul.
PCt. and ALt.
bl.
Greek
League (Boeotia”*)
285. 338
Philip (Philippus [4]) II
286. 338/7
Greek states among themselves (excl. Sparta*)
ALt.
ml.
Greek
287. 336
members of the Corinthian* League
Trn. or Tex.?
ml.
Greek
288. 331/0
Corinthian* League
Sparta* and all.
PCE
ul.
Greek/Latin
289. 333
Mytilene*
generals of Darius [3] CPt. Ii
ul.
Greek
290.
Alexander [4] the Great
333
ZOL. Ba3/2
Rome
Athens
| Aspendus*
Alexander [6] of
CPt:
ul.
Greek
PGE
bl.
Latin
LAt. symbola
bl.
Greek
Greek
Epirus*
292.
330 or earlier
Miletus [2]
Sardeis*
293. 3300rearlier
Miletus [2]
Olbia [1]
LAt./1St.?
bl.
294. 330 or earlier
Miletus [2]
Cyzicus*
ISt.
bl.
Greek
295. 326
Rome
Neapolis [2]
ALt. after ded.
bl.
Latin
296. 326
Lucani*
Samnites*
ALt.
ul.
Latin
297.
Rome
Lucani*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
298. 326-300
Miletus [2]
Phygela
Trn./ISt.
bl.
Greek
299. 325
Rome
Samnites*
tre. 1 yr. indu-
bl.
Greek/Latin
ALt.
ml.
Greek/Latin
ALt.
bl.
Greek
326
tiae*/PCt.?
300. 323
Hellenic League led by Athens
GOLag25
Athens
Aetolian League (Aetolians*)
BO2n 422
Antipater [1]
Athens
CPt. and ALt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
2 Ocmeg om
Samnites*
Roman army
sponsio*, pactio* or PCt.?
ul.
Latin
304.
Eumenes [1] of Cardia
Antigonus [1] I Monophthalmus
ALt.
ul.
Greek
305. 318 or 316
Argos*
Pallantium
AMa./Taf.?
bl.
Greek
BOG. 9 U7
Messeni (Messana,
Macedonia *
319/8
Greek
Messene [2])
30703 Ly.
Rome
Teanum Apulum
ALt.; so-called
(Teate [2])
foedus iniquum
ul.
Latin
BOS. Sty,
Cassander*
Athens
PCt./ALt. (Trn.)
bl.
Greek
309. 317
Cassander*
Epirotes (Epirus*)
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
Bon
Apollonia [1]
Illyria (Illyricum*)
ARt.
35
Greek
* Excluding Sparta and either under Macedonian*/Philippine (Philippus [4] II) heg. or as a body allying with Philip.
383
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
284. symmachia?
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
text
sources/literature
inf.
L: Jehne 1426.
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
285. philia and symmachia
dissolution of the Second _ lit. Athenian* League
SA/C: StV 3, no. 402 L: SEG 31, 75; 35, 60; 30, 63; Jehne 143
286. koine eirene* and symmachia
foundation of the Corinthian* League
SA/C: StV 3, no. 403; Ager, no. 2; SEG 47, 2313; Ix/Tr: FHIG 1, 72f., 110; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 256; TDGR 2, no. 99 L: Ryder 99f., 102-6, 150-162; Jehne 148ff., 152-197
287.
symmachia under heg. of — ins./lit. Alexander [4]
ins.
|SA/C: StV 3, no. 404; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 259; TDGR 2, no. 102 L: Ryder 106; Jehne 198-200
288.
lit.
Tx: Diod. Sic. 17,73; Curt. 6,1,20 L: Jehne 23 9f.
289.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 406
290.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 405
291. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Liv. 8,3,6; 8,17,9; 8,24,1ff.; Pomp. Trog. 12,2,1-15;
Gell. NA 17,21 L: Dahlheim 125-7 292.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 407 L: Gruen 72
293.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 408
294.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 409
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 410 L: Horn 85; Dahlheim 64, 70, Hantos 173
295. amicitia and societas
Neapolis [2] receives foedus aequum
296.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 411
297. societas
lit.
Uxs Live 8509.05 25,35 2752 L: Hantos 140
298.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, 453; Ir: HGIU 2, no. 294
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 412 (S in final vol. of StV) L: Ziegler 3, 44 note 23
299.
suspension of bellum
300. symmachia
alliance against
lit-/ins.
Macedonia* (cf. + Lamian War)
E:1G IVI 367, 370, 448, 467; SA/C: StV 3, no. 413; Tr: TDGR 2, no. 123, ch. 12.4
301. symmachia
ins.
302. symmachia
lit.
E: IG I/II? 370; SEG 21, 299
SA/C: StV 3, no. 415 L: — Lamian War
303. pax [x]? so-called pax Caudina
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 416; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 211f., 217 L: Taubler 140-152; Dahlheim r4f. note 15; Ziegler 2, 93-4; Ziegler 3, 53; Baronowski 2, 358
304. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 418 L: Bonk 132-4
305. philia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 419; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 275
306.
ins.
SA/C: SEG 43, 135 L: SEG 47, 381
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 420
308. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 421
309. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 422
310.
lit.
SA/C: Ager, no. 9
307. subordinate societas
L: Hantos 16of.; Baronowski 2, 3 52f., 367
B. INTERNATIONAL
384
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
Celt
Cassander*
Glaucias [2]
202,
Agathocles [2]
Acragas*, Gela*, Messana [r]
313.
Antigonus [1] I
date
style
lang.
PCt.
bl.
Greek
PGs
ml.
Greek
Rhodos*
ALt
ul.
Greek
Asander [2]
PCt.
ul.
Greek
PCt.
ml.
Greek
Monophthalmus 314.
Antigonus [1] I
Monophthalmus Antigonus [1] I
Cassander*,
Monophthalmus
Lysimachus [2], Ptolemaeus [1] I
Seleucus [2] I
Sandracottus*
PGE.
cptoy 310°?
Rome
Camerinum*
ALt. foedus aequum
epitteyn Canto
Eupolemus
Theangela*
CEE:
319. c. 309
Agathocles [2]
Ophellas [2] of
ALt.
315-
316.
after 311
Greek bl.
Latin
Greek bl.
Greek/Latin
Cyrene 320.
309-306 ?
Ptolemaeus [1] I
lasus [5]
SRt./CPt.?, AUc.
ml.
Greek
B21.
c. 309/8
Ptolemaeus [1] I
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes (probably for
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Foie
308
Ptolemaeus [1] I
Cassander*
PGE
bl.
Greek
325%
308
Rome
Tarquinii*
tre./PCt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
324.
308
Rome
Etrusci*
tre./PCt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
Carthago*
army of Agathocles
PCt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
Antigonus [1] I?)
32:5« 307
{2] in Africa 326.
307/6
Athens
Aetolians*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
227
306
Agathocles [2]
Carthago*
PCE.
bl.
Greek/Latin
328. 306
Rome
Carthago*
Trn. ?/IFt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
329. 3,06
Rome
Hernici*
a: tre./ded. b: ALt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
306
Rome
Aletrium*,
ALt.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
330.
Ferentis*, Verulae*
EY i te 306
Rome
Samnites*
tre.
bl.
Latin
232. C. 305— 303
Seleucus [2] I
Sandracottus*
PGE.
bl.
Greek/Latin
Antigonus [1] I
Rhodos*
PCt/ALt. with Ne.
ul.?
Greek
333+
304
Monophthalmus 334-
304
Rome
Samnites*
PCt./Irn.
bl.
Greek/Latin
335-
c. 303/2
Rome
Tarentum [1]
IFt./PCt.? with PGT
bl.
Greek
336.
Guao3
Lebedus*
Teos*
SY.
bl.
Greek
Sidi]
c. 303/2
Athens
Sicyon*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
338.
C. 302
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes
Aetolians*
PCt.?
339. 340.
302
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes
Cassander*
PCt.
ml.
Greek
302
Antigonus [1] IMonophthalmus, Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes; Greek poleis
ALt.
ml.
Greek
341.
302
Cassander*, Lysimachus [2], Ptolemaeus [1] I; Seleucus [2] I
ALt.
ml.
Greek/Latin
Greek
385
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
text
sources/literature
300.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 423
312.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 424
313. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 426 L: Klose 31
314. philia
lit.
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
SA/C: StV 3, no. 425 L: Gruen 72
315. peace and
excludes Seleucus [2] I
ins.
division of the
E: OGIS 5; StV 3, no. 428; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 276; TDGR 2,
no. 132; Tx/Tr/C: Welles, no. 1
empire
L: Fisch 344; Ryder 113, 163-4; Klose 18-22; Gruen 135
316. peace and philia
lit.
Tx: App. Syr. 55
317. amicitia and societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 430 L: Dahlheim 119 note 21; Luraschi 27f. note 19; Galsterer
318.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 429
319. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 432
320.
ins.
SA/Tr: HGIU 2, no. 278; L: SEG 31, 936; Pistorius 61-3
321. epimachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 433; Ir: TDGR 2, no. 133
B22).
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 434
alee
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 435
324.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 435
BS:
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 436
L: Gruen 72
102, 108f.; Baronowski 2, 361, 367 with note 43
326. symmachia
lit/ins.
E: 1G IVI? 3.58; SEG 21, 326; Paus. 1,26,3
Zag hy
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 437
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 438; Scardigli 133-135 L: Scardigli 13 5-162; Hoyos 8-11 contra
329.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 439
330.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 439 StV 3, no. 440 (S in final vol. of StV)
328.
historicity of treaty disputed
33%.
lit.
Baa.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 441
333. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 442
334. societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 443
HAGE
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 444 L: Badian 31 note 1, 34 note 3; Dahlheim 154-158
336. following arb. by Antigonus [1]
ins.
E/C: Welles, no. 3; Ager, no. 13
337. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 445; SEG 31, 86
338.
ins.
E/C: SEG 48, 588
339.
lit.
L: Klose 31
I
SA/C: StV 3, no. 448
340. symmachia
refoundation of the ins/lit. Panhellenic League (cf. Corinthian* League) led by Antigonus and Demetrius
E/SA/C: StV 3, no. 446; Ager, no. 14; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 282; TDGR 2, no. 138 L: Bonk 109-112; Ryder 114
341. symmachia
anti-Macedonian alliance _ lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 447
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
342. 4th or 3rd cents.
Sparta*
343. late4thor3rd cents.
Aegae
unknown partner
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Olympeni
TRt.
bl.
Greek
344. 3rd cent. ?
Rhodos*
Telos [1]
ALt. with FEc.
bl.
Greek
345. 3rd cent.
Teos*
Cyrbissus
SYt./SBt. quasi CPt.?
ul.
Greek
346. 3rd cent.
Gortyn*
Arcadians*
SBt.?
Greek
347. 3rd cent.
Polyrrhenia*
Melos
LSt.
Greek
348. 3rd cent.
Ttanus*
Hierapytna*
PCt.?/ALt.?
349. 3rd cent.
Itanus*
Hierapytna*
ISt.
bl.
Greek Greek
350. 3rd cent. ?
Praesus*
Lyctus*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
351. 3rd cent. ?
Praesus*
Lyctus*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
352. 3rd cent.
Scepsis*
Parium*
ALt.
bl.
353. gtd cent.
Gortyn*
Amyclae [2]
LAa.?
Greek Greek
354. 3rd cent.
Cnidus*
Lyctus*
355- 3rd cent. ?
Praesus*
unknown
ALt.?
Greek
Greek
356. early 3rdcent.
Praesus*
Stalae
GP?
Greek
357. early 3rdcent.
Hierapytna*
Praesus*
ISt.
bl.
Greek
358. early 3rdcent.
Pergamum*
Temnus*
ISt.
bl.
Greek
359. early 3rdcent.
Sadalas of Thracia
Mesembria
LSt.
360. early 3rdcent.
Praesus*
Stalites and Setaea
SBE/EGIT:
ul.
Greek
361. early 3rdcent.?
Aptara*
Cydonia*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
362. early 3rdcent.
Praesus*
n. n.
ALt.?
363. early 3rd cent. ? Dragmus
Itanus*
FRt.
364. early 3rdcent.
Hierapytna*
Itanus*
ISt.
bl.?
365. 3rd cent.
Chyretiae
Ericinium?
366. early 3rd cent.
Hierapytna*
Praesus*
ISt.
bl.?
367. early 3rdcent.
Eleutherna*
Knossos*?
ALt.?
368. 299-273?
Polyrrhenia*
Phalasarna*
ALt. with FEc.
Greek
Greek Greek Greek Greek
Greek Greek
bl.
Greek
369. 299-366
Chaleum
Tritea*
Vet
Greek
370. 299-250
Knossos*
Drerus
ALt.
Greek
371. 299-250
Gortyn*
Arcadians*
ALt.?
Greek
372. 299-250
Melos [1]
unknown
373. 299250
Delphi
Pellana
LAt.
bl.?
Greek
374.
Rome
Picentes*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
Seleucus [2] I
Demetrius [2]
ALt.
bl.
ALt.
ml.
ALt.
bl.
299
375- 299
Greek
Poliorcetes 376. 296
Lysimachus [2], Ptolemaeus [1] I; Seleucus [2] I
Bos
Agathocles [2]
295
Peucetii and lapyges*
Greek
387
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
text
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature
342. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 455
343.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 456
344. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 561; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 345
L: Bonk 138f.; SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; Baltrusch 64-68 345.
ins.
E: SEG 26, 13063 30, 1376; StV 3, no. 575; Ir: HGIU 2,
no. 351 L: Chaniotis ro5-8 notes 630, 638, 646 346.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 576 L: SEG 45, 1288
347.
ins.
E/EIStV 2, NO. 5775 SHG Al, 77a
348.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 578
349.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 579
350. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 580 L: Bonk 156
351. symmachia
ins.
E/G:StV 3,.no. 581
352. symmachia
ins.
SA/Tr: HGIU 2, no. 349
Bina
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 67
354.
ins.
E/C: SEG 45, 1528
B55.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 582
356.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 553
357-
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 554; Tr: HGIU 2, 341
358.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 555; Ir: HGIU 2, no. 342
359.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 556
360.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 64, 65
361. symmachia
ins.
E/C: SEG 41, 731; T/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 2
362.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 3
363.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 4
364.
ins.
L: SEG 46, 1224
365.
ins.
E/C: SEG 45, 588
366.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 5
367.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 6; SEG 45, 1258
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 471; Ager, no. 29; T/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no.
368. symmachia
following arb. by
Cleonymus of Sparta
I L: Bonk 113; SEG 38, 896 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; cf. Baltrusch 64-68
369.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 557
370. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 7
371. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 8
Bias
ins.
E/C: SEG 41, 772
Bu:
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 558 L: SEG 27, 116 (285-280 BC)
374. societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. 10,10,11 L: Hantos 140
375. symmachia
conference of Rhosus
Tx: Plut. Demetrius 32 L: Klose 23
376. symmachia
coalition against
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 16,2,1
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes
L: Klose 23
377. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 457 L: Bonk 187
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
388
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Pyrrhus [3] I
Alexander V of Macedonia*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
379. 294
Agathocles [2]
Bruttii*
CPt
ul.
Greek
380. 294
Lysimachus [2]
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes
PCt./SRt.
bl.
Latin
381. 294
Pyrrhus [3] lof Epirus*
378. 295/4
| Acarnanian League
AL?
Greek
(Acarnanians*)
382. 294
Rome
Volsinii*, Perusia*,
— tre. (or likelier
Arretium*
PCt.)
bl.
Latin
383. 293
Rome
Falisci*
after tre. PCt./ ALt.
bl.
Latin
384. 292? (or301?)
Aetolian League
Boeotian League
ALt.
bl.
Greek
(Aetolians*, and Phocis*)
(Boeotia*)
385. 292?
Pyrrhus [3] lof Epirus*
Agathocles [2]
ALt.?/SRt.
bl.
Greek
386. 290?
Agathocles [2]
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
387. c. 289
Syracusae*
mercenary army
PCt.
bl.
Greek
388. 288
Lysimachus [2], Ptolemaeus [1] I; Seleucus [2] I
ALt.
ml.
389. 287
Demetrius [2]
Athens
390. 286
Pyrrhus [3] lof Epirus *
Athens
391.
287-280
GPt
Greek
Greek
Orchomenus [r]
Chaeronea*
PGt2
392. 282
Rome
Thurii*
rest.? after inf. ded.?
ul.
Greek/Latin
BOI
ae
Rome
Rhegium*
rest.? after inf. ded.? later ALt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
394. 282
Rome
Locri (Locri, Locris
ul.
Greek/Latin
ml.
Greek
[r]) 395. 281/0
Achaeans*
396. 280
Pyrrhus [3] lof Epirus*
_ rest.? after inf.
ded.? ALt./SYt.
_ neighbouring peoples
397. 281-269
Antiochus [2] I?
398. 280
Sparta, Antiochus [2] land
Lysimachus [2]
Greek
PCt.
Latin
ALt
bl.
Greek
ALt
ml.?
Latin
ALt. inf.
ml.?
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
bl.
Greek/Latin
other Greek states 399. 280-260 ?
Gortyn*
Cretan polets
400.
Nicomedes [2] I of Bithynia*
Heraclea [7] onthe Pontus
Rome
Carthago*
280 or 279
401. 280-278
ALt.; additional clause?
389
B. III]. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
378. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 458
379.
lit.
Tx: Diod. Sic. 21,7,8
380.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 460 L: Klose 23 note 90
381.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 459
382. 40-year indutiae*
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 461
383. one-year indutiae*
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 462
384. symmachia
ins.
E/C: Syll.3 366; StV 3, no. 463; Ir: HGIU 2, no. 303; SEG
385. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Plut. Pyrrhus 5 L: Vollmer 31
32, 515
386. symmachia
Dx Diod. Sic. 21,15
(implemented?) 387.
lit.
388. symmachia
SA/C: StV 3, no. 464 L: Fisch 63
coalition against
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 16,2,1-2
Demetrius [2] Poliorcetes.
L: Klose 23
Later joined by Pyrrhus [3] I
389.
with arb. by Ptolemaeus [1] lit./ins. I
|E/C: K. Bringmann, H. von Steuben, Schenkungen hellenistischer Herrscher an griechische Stadte und Heiligtiimer 1, 1995, no. 7, 15 (Syll.3 409), 16 S overview and L: Dreyer 197-223
390.
lit.
Tx: Plut. Pyrrhus 12,8 L: Dreyer 221
391.
ins.
E/C: SEG 28, 461
392. soctetas?
lit.
Tx: cf. Plin. HN 34,32; Dion. Hal. Ant. Rom. 19,13, 20,4; Val. Max. 1,8,6; Liv. Per. 11; Liv. 42,48,7 (on which Badian 36-7 note 6; Galsterer 107) et al.
lit.
Tx: Pol. 1,7,6; Dion. Hal. Ant. Rom. 19,13; 20,4; Liv. Per. 12, cf. 35,16,3. 8; App. Sam. 9 * L: Horn 85; Badian 34f.; Dahlheim 63 note 39
lit.
Tx: Liv. 42,48,7 L: Badian 36-7 note 6; Dahlheim 63 note 39; Galsterer 107
lit./ins.
Tx: Moretti 1, no. 60; SEG 1, 74; Pol. 2,41, cf. 2,37,9-11
L: Badian 31, 35f.; Dahlheim 63 note 39 393-
societas? Rhegium became civitas foederata in 193
394. societas
395. symmachia
foundation of the koinon*
(Achaean League) 396.
L: Schwertfeger 28-38; Klose 102-109; Walbank 244 lit.
397. symmachia
398. symmachia
399. symmachia;
alliance against Antigonus [2] II Gonatas
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 17,2,15
ins.
SA/Tr: TDGR 3, no. 22
lit.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 24,1,2 L: Klose 114
ins.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 78
foundation of the Cretan League under
L: Chaniotis 29ff., 94-100
heg. of Gortyn* 400. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 465
401. societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 466; Scardigli 166-169 L: Dahlheim 134 note 22, r51f. note 67, 156; Flach (279 BC); Scardigli 169-203; Hoyos 11-16
B. INTERNATIONAL
399
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
402. C. 280-250
Oreii (Crete)
Magas [2], kg. of
ALt. with FEc.
bl.
Greek
Greek
Cyrene
403.
279
Antiochus [2] I
Ptolemaeus [3] I
Por
bl.
404.
278
Antigonus [2] Il Gonatas
Antiochus [2] I
PCt./SRt.
bl.
405.
278
Nicomedes [2] I of
Galatians (Galatia*)
ALt. with FEc.,
bl.
Bithynia
Greek/Latin
PHc. against all.?
406. before 277
Athens
Aetolians*
ALt.? inf.
407. 277—-266/5
Athens
Aetolians*
LSt. (Trn./ALt.?)
bl.
Greek Greek
408. after 274
Antiochus [2] I
Magas [2], kg. of
ALt.?
bl.?
Greek
Cyrene
409.
273
Rome
Paestum*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
410. before 272?
Rome
Heraclea [ro] onthe Siris
ALt.; foedus aequum
bl.
Latin
Atte
272)
Rome
Bruttii*
rest.? after ded.
ul.
Greek/Latin
Ala.
272)
Rome
Tarentum [r]
Greek/Latin
PCt./ALt. after
ul./
pactio*
bl.
413. after 272
Achaeans*
Olenus*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
414. 267/6 or 265/4
Athens
Sparta* with all.and Ptolemaeus [3] II
ALt.
ml.
Greek
415. after 266
Rome
Sal(l)entini*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
416. 264
Hieron [2] II
Carthago*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
417. 264
Carthago*
Acragas*
ALt.
418. after 264
koinon of Pergamum*
koinon of the Aterargi
AMa. and Trn.
bl.
Greek
419. after 264
Rome
Mamertini* in
rest./ALt. after
ul./
Latin
Messana
ded.
bl.
Greek
420. 263/2 or 262/1
Athens
Antigonus [2] II Gonatas
PCr. after CPt/ie.
ul.
Greek
421. after 263
Rome
Halaesa*
rest./AUd.?
ul.
Latin/Greek
422. after 263
Rome
Centuripae*
rest./ AUd.?
ul.
Greek/Latin
423. 263/2
Rome
Hieron [2] I
PCt./15 years’
bl.
Greek/Latin
bl.
Greek
bl.?
Greek
ALt.
424. C. 263
Aetolian League
Acarnanian League
(Aetolians, Aetolia*)
(Acarnanians,
= PCt./ALt./FRt./ ISt.
Acarnania*) 425. before 262/1
Ptolemaeus [3] II
Miletus [2]
ALt.
391
B. Ill. L,O0OO
subseq. 402. symmachia
observations
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
text ins. inf.
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature SA/C: StV 3, no. 468; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 78; Tr:
HGIU 2, no. 313 L: Bonk 114-6; SEG 45 1321; SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 33, 78-82, 107-118; cf. Baltrusch 64-68; Chaniotis 16f.,
66-77, 421f., 445-8 403.
ins.
E: A. Rehm, Milet 1.3, 1914, no. 139
L: Klose 54 with note ror, 162 note 706 404.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 25,1,1; Memnon fr. ro (FGrH 434)
L: Klose 25, 54,75 405. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 469 L: Bonk 13 5-7; cf. Chaniotis 91; Dahlheim 215f. note 85;
406. symmachia?
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 470
407. symmachia?
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 470 L: Klose 112 note 420; SEG 45, 475
408. symmachia
lit.
ix Pasay L: Klose 54f.
409. societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. 26,39,5
410. amicitia and societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 473 L: Dahlheim rrg note 21, 121; Galsterer 99, Hantos 160
411. societas?
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 474
412. societas navalis
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 475
413. symmachia
ins.
ESEG 1.74
414. symmachia against Antigonus Gonatas
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 476; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 323 L: SEG 31, 915; 33, 1123 3.4, 843 39, 1213 35, 89; Klose 7of., 112f., 115; Pistorius 34; Dreyer 331-341
415. societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. Per. 19; Vell. Pat. 1,14 et al. L: Hantos 140
416. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 1,11; Diod. Sic, 23,x7,2 L: Dahlheim 127
417. symmachia*
lit.
TxeDiod olen 30,2
418. philia and proxenia*
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 568 (E. 3rd cent.); SEG 26, 719
419. societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 478 L: Badian 34-7; Dahlheim 56f., 70
420.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 477 SA/Tr: TDGR 3, no. 58
421. amicitia; after ded.
lit.
Tx: Diod. Sic. 24,4; Cic. Verr. 3,13 L: Dahlheim 7of.
422. amicitia; after
lit.
Tx: Diod. Sic. 24,4; Cic. Verr. 3,13
Pistorius 99-101
L: Horn 87; Hantos 140
L: Hantos 173ff. L: Galsterer to1-4, 107; Hantos 172
L: Dreyer 361-370; Klose 112
ded.
L: Dahlheim 7of.
423. amicitia and societas
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 479 L: Dahlheim 127-136; Cimma, 37-41; Gruen 67
424. eternal epimachia
ins.
E/C: Syll.3 421; StV 3, no. 480; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 103; Tr: HGIU 2, 326 L: Klose 1ro with note 407; Gruen 73 note ror; SEG 46, 594; SEG 47, 562; cf. Chaniotis 521; Vollmer 35
425. symmachia
ins.
E: A. Rehm, Milet 1.3, 1914, no. 13.9; SA/Tr/C: Welles, no. 14, |. 8; TDGR 3, no. 95
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
392
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
426. 261
Ptolemaeus [3] II
Antigonus [2] Gonatas
PCt. or tre.? inf.
bl.
Greek
427. after 261 ?
Antiochus [3] II
Erythrae [2]
AUd.
ul.
Greek
428. before 260
Knossos*
Cretan poleis
ATES. ink.
ml.?
Greek
429. after 260
Miletus [2]
Knossos* and all.
LAt.
bl.
Greek
430.
Miletus [2]
Gortyn* and all.
LAt.
bl.
Greek
260
431.
260
Miletus [2]
Phaestus and all.
LAt.
bl.
Greek
432.
255
Ptolemaeus [3] II
Antigonus [2] II Gonatas
PGE
bl.
Greek
433.
254
Rome
Panormus [3]
CPt./pactio in
ul.
place of ded.? 25S
Antiochus [3] II
Ptolemaeus [3] II
PCr
bl.
AB Se 250
ABA
Achaean League
Sicyon*
ALt./SYt.
ml.
436. 252 or 243/2
Aetolian League (Aetolians*)
Alexander [ro] Epirus
ALt./IFt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
437. before 250
Lyctus*
Cretan poleis
ml.?
Greek
(Achaeans*)
lof
ALt. inf.
438. mid-3rd cent. ?
Phaestus
Tenos*
ISt.?
439. mid—3rd cent. ?
Oaxus
Gortyn*
LAt.? ALt.?
440. mid—3rd cent. 2?
Lyctus*
Malla
ALt.
441. mid—3rd cent.
Greek
bl.?
Greek
Praesus*
ALt.
Antiochus [3] II
Lyctus*
Trn./ALt.?
443. after 250
Malla
unknown Cretan polis?
ALt.?
444. after 250
Thisbe*
Chorsiae*
TeTt
bl.?
Greek
445. after 250
Rhodos*
los*
AMa. perhaps ALE?
bl.
Greek
446. after 250
Rhodos*
Ceramus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
447. after 250
Hierapytna*
Itanus
ISt.
Greek
448. after 250
Lyctus*
Praesus
ALt.
Greek
449. 250-230?
Eleutherna*
Phaestus
ALt.
450.
248/7
Rome
Hieron [2] Il
Tex.; eternal foedus
bl.
Greek
451.
245
Achaean League
Boeotian League
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Corinthus*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Epidaurus*, Megara* and
ALt.
ml.
Greek
442.
250
—_Lyctus*
Greek
Greek bl.
Greek
Greek
Greek
(Achaeans*)
AS
2zA3
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
453- 243
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
454. 243
Smyrna*
Magnesia [3] inthe Sipylus
SYt. with MCWe?
ASSuzA Bes
Antigonus [2] I] Gonatas
Aetolians*
ALt/IFt. with BSc.
Troezen* Greek
bl.
Greek
393
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
426. 427. philia*
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
ins.
L: Klose 71 with note 199, 85
ANTIQUITY
ins.
E: OGIS 223; SA/Tr/C: Welles, no. 15; TDGR 3, no. 23
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 79 L: Klose 110 with note 410; Chaniotis 29ff., 94-100
429. philia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 482A L: Gruen 72; Brulé 9-11; Chaniotis 33-6, 426-8, 445-8
430. philia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 482B
428. symmachia
foundation of the Cretan League under heg. of Knossos*
431. philia
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 482C
432.
ins.
E: H.I. Bell, Symbolae Osloenses 5, 1927, 1-11 L: Klose 56, 71, 76-7 with note 236, 86
433.
SA/C: StV 484; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 213
434.
L: Klose 56 (without S records)
435. symmachia
admission of Sicyon
Tx: Pol. 2,43,3; Plut. Aratus 9; 41; Paus. 2,8,4 et al. L: Klose 102
436. symmachia
partition of Acarnania
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 485 L: Bonk 188f.; Klose
437. symmachia
foundation of the Cretan League under heg. of
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 80 L: Klose 110 with note 410; Chaniotis 29ff., 94-100
110 with note 407; Vollmer 3 sf.
Lyctus*
438.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 562
439. symmachia?
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 571; Chaniotis, no. 9
440. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 11 L: SEG 32, 910
441. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 12
442. philia and symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 486; Tr: HGIU 2, no. 336; SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 80 L: Pistorius 35
443. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 17
444.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 565
445. philia and symmachia?
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 566
446. defensive symmachia
ins.
TE Kes 0% 6 L: Schmitt 176; Magie tor, 957; Gruen 42 note 155
447.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 20
448. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 23
449. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 10; SEG 45, 1259
450.
lit.
Tx: Zon. 8,16,2; cf. Diod. Sic. 23,4,1 and StV 3, no. 479
lit.
Tx: Plut. Aratus 16,1
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,43,43 2,50,9; Plut. Aratus 18
societas
L: Dahlheim 13 4f. 451. symmachia 452. symmachia
admission to Achaean
League
453. symmachia
admission to Achaean
L: Klose 102f.
lit/ins.
League
SA/C: StV 3, no. 489 L: Klose 103
454.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 492 L: Bonk 117-9; Fisch 61
455. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 490 L: Klose 73, 95
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
394
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
456. 243
Achaeans*
Ptolemaeus [6] II
ALt.
bl.
Greek
457. 242/1
Achaeans*
Sparta*
ALt.? inf.
bl.
Greek
458. 241
Aetolian League (Aetolians*, and
Achaeans*
Eee
bl.
459.
Seleucus [4] II
Ptolemaeus [6] III
PCr.
bl.
Latin
460. 241
Rome
Falisci*
ded./rest.?
ul.
Greek/Latin
461. 241
Rome
Carthago*
PCt./SRt./IFt. with
bl.
Greek/Latin
Antigonus [2] I] Gonatas?)
241
MCWc, PHc. etc.
Gortyn*
Phaestus
Sit
Greek
463. 240-221 ?
462,
240-222?
Oaxus
Gortyn*/ Phaestus
ALt. FEc.?
Greek
464. before 240
Aetolian League (Aetolians*)
Messana*
AMa.?/ALt.?
ml.
Greek
465. ¢.240?
Messenians (Messana,
Phigalia
ISt./LAt. after
bl.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Messene [2])
466. 240/39
Achaeans*
arb.?
Aetolian League (Aetolians*
)
AGie 23 it
Rome
Carthago*
SRt./Trv.?
ul.
Greek/Latin
468. 237/6
Demetrius [3] II
Gortyn* and all.
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
469. C. 234
Achaean League
Orchomenus [3]
ALt.
ml.
Greek
(Achaeans*)
470. 232-220?
Sinope*
Histiaea*
LSt./Trn.?
bl.?
Greek
471. 230
Epirus*
Teuta*
ALt.
ul.?
Greek
AT
Acarnania (Acarnanians*)
Teuta*
ALt.
ul?
Achaean League
Megale Polis*
ALt.
ml.
_Aetolian League
PCt./SRt.
ul.
Argos*
ALt.
ml.
Phleius*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Hermion(e)*
ALt.
ml.
Greek
PCt./SRt. with
bl.
Greek/Latin
eaaO
473. before 229
Greek
(Achaeans*)
474. 229
Antigonus [3] If Doson
(Aetolians*)
475.
228
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
476. 228
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
ATT. 228
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
478. 228
Rome
Teuta*
TCTc., WR etc.
479. 228
Rome
Corcyra*
rest.
ul.
Greek
480. 228
Rome
Apollonia [1]
rest.
ul.
Greek
395
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
456. symmachia with subsidies
lit.
Tx: Plut. Aratus 24,4; 41; cf. Pol. 4,30,8 L: Klose 73 with note 210, 96, 109
457. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,45
458. peace
lit.
Tx: Plut. Aratus 33 L: Klose 95, 103
459. ten-year peace
lit.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 27,2,9 L: Klose 58, 163
460.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 494 L: Dahlheim 32
461. pax and amicitia so-called ‘Treaty of Lutatius’; prov. and ratified treaty; — Punic Wars
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 493; Scardigli 207-218; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, nO L: Taubler 188-190; Dahlheim 84f. with note 4-5, 131, 137, 147-8, 268-9; Fisch 70; Scardigli 218-223; Hoyos 118-123, 130f.; Baldus 380-388
462.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 72
463. symmachia
ins.
L: Klose 115
E/C: StV 3, no. 510; E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 13
L: Bonk 120 464. symmachia
inf.
Vv. 465.
465. philia*
ins.
T/C: Syll.3 472; StV 3, no. 495; Ager, no. 40; Reder, no.
466. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,44,1
467. amicitia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 497; Scardigli 213-218 L: Dahlheim 156, 175; Seibert 158-161; Scardigli
468. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 498 L: Pistorius 3 5f.
51; Ir: HGIU 3, no. 410
231-235; Hoyos 132-143
469.
admission to the Achaean _ ins. League
E/C: Syll.3 490; StV 3, no. 499; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 414 (or 199-190?); SEG 33, 318
470.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 563
471.
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,6,1-10; App. Ill. 7
L: Gruen 363f.
472. 473. symmachia
Vv. 471. admission to the Achaean
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,44,5
League
474. symmachia
TREP GI, 2543) L: Klose 95 (without S records)
475. symmachia
admission to the Achaean
Tx: Pol. 2,44,6
League
476. symmachia
admission to the Achaean League
lit.
Tx: Plut. Aratos 35,3; Pol. 2,44,6
477. symmachia
admission to the Achaean
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,44,6
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 500
League
478. pax and amicitia
L: Dahlheim 156; Gruen 17, 56, 60, 366-8; Vollmer 48-55; Errington, RaG 85-90
479. autonomia
lit.
Tx: App. Ill. 8
480. autonomia
lit.
Tx: App. Ill. 8 L: Dahlheim 54
L: Dahlheim 54
B. INTERNATIONAL
481.
396
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
227-225
Rome
Massalia*
type
style _ lang.
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
foedus aequum
482. 227-221
Arcadians*
Hierapytna*
ISt.
483. 227-224?
Antigonus [3] II] Doson
— Eleutherna*
484. 227-224
Antigonus [3] If Doson
_—_Hierapytna*
485. 226/5
Rome
Hasdrubal [2]
486. 226
Ptolemaeus [6] III
Cleomenes [6] III, kg. ALt.?
Euergetes
of Sparta
ALt. with ARc.
Greek bl.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Greek
IFt./FRt. with Mere:
bl.
Greek/Latin
ul.?
Greek
with SPc.?
487. 225-200
Eleutherna*
n. n.
488. 225
Achaean League (Achaeans*)/Aratus [2]5
Cleomenes [6] III, kg. PCt. of Sparta*
bl.
Greek Greek
489. 225/4
Antigonus [3] II Doson
Achaean League (Achaeans*)/Aratus
ALt./ SRt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
490. 224
Antigonus [3] II Doson
ALt.
ml.
Greek
bl.
Greek
[2]
491. 223/2
Ceos*
Naupactus*
ISt.
492. 223/2
Aetolians*
Ceos*
ISt.
493. 222
Knossos* and all.
Gortyn* and all.
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
494. after 222
Rome
Insubres*
rest./ALt. after ded.
ul./ bl.
Greek
495. before 221 ?
Gortyn*
Oaxus [?]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
BOG. C221
Malla
Lyctus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
497.
Lyctus*
Polyrrhenia* and all.
ALt.
Arcadians*
221/0
498. Cc. 220
Hierapytna*
499.
Messenia (Messana[z])
220
500. 220
Scerdilaedas of Illyria
Greek
Greek
AMa./ALt./ISt.?
bl.
Greek
| Achaean League (Achaeans*)
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Aetolian League
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Prusias [1] | of Bithynia
ALt.
bl.
Greek
(Aetolians*)
5OI. 220
502.
Rhodos*
220
Byzantium*
Rhodos*
PCt. with TCTc.
bl.
Greek
503. 220
Byzantium*
Prusias [1] I of Bithynia*
PCt. with MCWe
bl.
Greek
5 ratification refused.
Byles
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
481. societas
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit./ins.
Tx: Syll.3 591, 1. 26f., 54; Pomp. Trog. 43,3,43 4355538-10; Str. 4,1,5; Cass. Dio 41,19,2; Cic. Balb. 23; Cic. Font. 13; Cic. Off. 2,28; Plin. HN 3,34; cf. Str. 4,1,5 p. 181; Flor. 1,37,3; Oros. 5,15,25 (often only amicitia) et al. L: Horn rof.; Badian 47f.; Dahlheim 138-141 with note 35; Sherwin-White 1, 183; Scardigli 259
482.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 14
483. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 501; Ager, no. 47 (dated to 22.4?); SEG 46,
1211 L: SEG 32, 866; 46, 1222 484. symmachia
485. amicitia
so-called ‘Ebro Treaty’
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 502; Ager, no. 48 (dated to 224?)
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 503; Scardigli 249-255 L: Dahlheim 15 4-158; Scardigli 258-296; Seibert 121-135
(annalistic invention); Kehne 2; Hoyos 15 4-173;
Baldus 383f. 486. symmachia with subsidies
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 505; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, r4rf. L: Klose 73, 116
487.
ins.
E/G: SEG 41,741
488. war, because Aratus refused
lit.
SA/C: Stv 3, no. 504 L: Klose 115f. with note 451
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 506 L: Klose 104-6, 115
ratification 489. subordinate symmachia
490. indefinite subordinate symmachia
(re-)foundation of the ins/lit. Panhellenic League under leadership of Antigonus [3]
SA/C: StV 3, no. 507 L: Klose 96, 106f.
II Doson
491.
ins.
492.
ins.
493. symmachia; foundation of the Cretan koinon*
lit./ins.
494. societas
foedus for Insubres
E/C: StV 3, no. 508; Tr: HGIU 3, 417.2 E/C: StV 3, no. 508; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 417.3
|SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 75 L: Brulé 33; Chaniotis 36-38
lit.
Tx: Pol. 2,35,1; cf. Zon. 3,10; Plut. Marcellus 4 L: Dahlheim 71
495. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 510
496. symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 511; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 82, 143; HGIU 3,
no. 419 L: Bonk 174f. 497. symmachia
lit.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 82 L: Chaniotis 36-8
498.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 512
499. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 513
500. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 515
sor. limited symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 514
502.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 516; Ager, no. 51; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, r13f.
503. peace as per
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 516; Ager, no. 5x L: Gruen 72f.; Klose 119 note 473
L: Dahlheim 191 note 34;
status quo ante
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
398
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
504. 220
Philip (Philippus [7]) V
Greek states
Trn.
ml.
Greek
505. ¢. 220/19
Polyrrhenia*
Cretan poleis
ALt. inf.
ml.?
Greek
506. 220/19
Scerdilaedas” of Illyria
Panhellenic League under heg. of Philip
ALt.
ul.?
Greek
LAt.
bl.
Greek
(Philippus [7]) V
507. 219-216?
Lato*
Gortyn*
508. 219-204?
Hierapytna*
Itanus*
ALt.
509. 219-205 ?
Gortyn*
Lyctus*
Alte
510.
Lyctus*
Lato*
FRt.
Chieti, elas)
Achaeus [4]
Selge* (Pisidia)
Bee
bl.
Greek
Guiely aay
Antiochus [5] II]
Ptolemaeus [7] IV Philopator
PCt.
bl.
Greek
Sisis Pez
Hellenic League under Philip (Philippus [7]) V
Aetolians*
PCE
bl.?
Greek/Latin
Birks eS
Cretan poleis
ALt./
ml.?
Greek
219-184?
Greek
bl.?
Greek Greek
Trn.?
515. 226
Hannibal [4]
Capua*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
516. 216
Hannibal [4]
Nuceria* and Acerrae [1]
CPt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
Suge, 2S
Hannibal [4]
garrison of Casilinum*
CRE.
ul.
Greek/Latin
bl.
Latin
518. 216/5
Hannibal [4]
Locri [2] Epizephyrii
ALt.
519. 216-200 ?
Lato*
Gortyn*?
ALt.
520.205
Hannibal [4]
Philip (Philippus [7]) Vv
EPt. with conditions for
Greek
bl.
Greek/Latin
PCt. with Rome, AMc.
520.
204
Hannibal [4]
Hieronymus [2] Ilof Syracusae*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
522,
204
Rome
Syracusae*
PVt. after tre.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
y23
2035/2
Peraea
Melitaea*
Sits
5240
202)
Hannibal [4]
Tarentum [1]
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
S25
Bane
Hippocrates [8]
Sicilian cities
ALt.
ml.
Greek
Rome
Tauromenium*
prov. PCt. and
bl.
Greek/Latin
bl.
Latin
FH, Baw
Greek
ALt. (foedus)
Gag, She
Rome
Netum (Sicily)
prov. PCt. and ALt. (foedus)
399
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
504. symmachia; renewal of the Panhellenic League under Macedonian heg.
lit.
Tx: Pol. 4,26,8
505. symmachia; foundation of the Cretan League under Polyrrhenian heg.
lit.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 81 L: Klose rrof.; Chaniotis 29ff., 94-100
506. unconditional symmachia
admission of Scerdilaedas _ lit. to Panhellenic League
507. peace
ins.
508. symmachia
ins.
509. symmachia
ins./lit.
510.
ins.
ANTIQUITY
SA/C: StV 3, no. 517 L: Errington, RaG 91-95; cf. Vollmer 45-7, 7off., 144ff. E/C: StV 3, no. 569; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 18 (dating); SEG 46, 1229 E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 19 |E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 25 (or 216 ?) E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 30
Caen
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 518
512. peace and philia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 15,87; Pomp. Trog. 30,1,7 L: Gruen 73; Klose 6rf., r61f. with note 705
513.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 520
lit.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 76
515. alliance
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 524
516.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 525
517.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 526
514. symmachia
refoundation of the koinon
518. alliance
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 527
519. symmachia
ins,
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 34 L: SEG 46, 1230
520. epimachia*
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 528; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 159ff. L: Dahlheim 55 note 9, 182, 206 note 66; Gruen 60,
375f., 3853 Scardigli r03f., 186, 268, 202 note 282; Seibert 271f.
Cydia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 529 L: Seibert 289
522. tre. broken by
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 530
Leontini
ey
ins.
SA/C: Ager, no. 56; C: Reder 41
524.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 531
525. symmachia
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 533
526. amicitia and societas
ratified 210
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 534; cf. Liv. 25,29-29 L: Dahlheim 71 note 7, 273 note 38; cf. Eckstein, Rome 4r7f.
527. amicitia and
ratified 210
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 535; cf. Liv. 25,29-29 L: Badian 37 note 3; Dahlheim 71 note 7, 273 note 38; cf. Eckstein, Rome 417f.
societas
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
400
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
DNs Planes
Rome
Aetolian League (Aetolians*)
ALt. with ml. accession clause and BSc.
bl./ ml.?
Greek/Latin
529.
(at least) Rome, Aetolian League (Aetolians*),
temporary? ALt.
mil.
Greek/Latin
212
Sparta*, Messene [2],
Elis*
530. 212 0r 211/0
Rome
Sparta*/Pelops [3]
ALt. foedus or, likelier, sponsio?
bl./ —ml.?
Latin
eis
Rome
Elis*
ALt. foedus or likelier sponsio?
blL./ ml.?
Latin
Rome
Messene [2]
ALt. foedus or likelier sponsio?
bl./ ml.?
Latin
Rome
Attalus [x] I
ALt.? (foedus or likelier sponsio?)
bl./ —ml.?
Latin
534. 212/1
Miletus [2]
Seleucia (Tralleis [2])
ISt.
bl.
Greek
535. before 210
Arsaces [2] II, Parthian kg. Diodotus II, kg. of
ALt.
bl.?
Latin
Ouch elnokere
Sao
On 2
5330 202, OLare
Bactria* 596. co2L0
Miletus [2]
n.n.
ISt.
bl.
Greek
537- after 209
Rome
Tarentum [1]
rest./Trn. after conquest
ul./ bl.
Latin
538. 209/8
Miletus [2]
Mylasa*
ISt.
bl.
Greek
539. 209-206 ?
Antiochus [5] III
Arsaces [2] II, Parthian kg.
PCt./ALt./SBt.?
bl.?
Latin
540. 208
Rome
Indibilis*
ALt.
ul.
Greek
541.
Philip (Philippus [7]) V
Aetolian League
PCt./SRt.?
ul.
Latin
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
rest./ALt. after
ul./
Latin
ded.
bl.
206
(Aetolians*)
542. 206
Antiochus [5] II]
Euthydemus [2], kg. of Bactria*
543. after 206
Rome
Gades*
544. after 206
Rome
Saguntum*
545. after 206
Aetolians*
Mintccar
ISt.
FAG. C. 2050
Hierapytna*
Biannus?
ISt.
Rome and adscripti (i.e.
Philip (Philippus [7])
PCt./pax commu-
bl./
amici and/or socit)
V and all.
nis after arb./med. and tre.
ml.
547. 205
ALt.?
Latin
bl.
Greek Greek Greek/Latin
401
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
528. conditional and limited (?) societas
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit/ins.
Tx: IGIX 17, 241; SEG 13, 382; 16, 370; 17, 280; cf. Liv. 26,24,8-133 31,46,3 SA/C/Tr: StV 3, 536; FHIG 1, 162, 225; HGIU 3, no. 428; TDGR 4, no. 2
L: Taubler 210-214; Lehmann 144f., 369f.; Cimma 55ff.; Bonk 176f.; Dahlheim 181-207; Baronowski 1, 165ff.; Sherwin-White 2, 60; Gruen 17-20, 377f., 439-4415 Seibert 276-280; Baldus 374ff. 529. societas/ symmachia
530. limited? societas
lit.
separate treaty or clause to lit. no. 528?
AxsPolh6.n353% 10.25 ,4etnbives1.46,3 L: Heuss 32; Lehmann 366ff. (for separate clause); Sherwin-White 2, 61; Gruen 440, 77f., 530 Tx: Liv. 34,31,5 (vetustissimum foedus); cf. Liv. 34,32,13 34,32,14-16
L: Taubler 217; Badian 57-9; Sherwin-White 2, 63; ALt. von Dahlheim 221-224 and Gruen 20f. too formulaic and hence rightly disputed, otherwise 440; cf. Klose 98
note 330, 531. limited (?) societas 532. limited (?)
societas 533-
117
separate treaty or clause to lit.inf.
Tx: Pol. 18,42,7; cf. Pol. 16,13,3
no. 528?
L: Horn 24f.; Badian 57, 59; Gruen 20, 440
separate treaty or clause to lit.
1xt334.32, 16;\ch\Poly16,13335108,42
no. 528?
L: Badian 57-59; Sherwin-White 2, 63; on Dahlheim 210f., 221f. and Gruen 20, 440
limited (?) societas or only
lit.
Tx: Liv. 31,46,3; cf. 29,11,2; Pol. 16,25,4; and Pol.
amicitia? separate treaty or
16,13,3
clause to no. 528?
L: Horn 24f.; Taubler 215; Heuss 3 2f.; Cimma 67-8;
Sherwin-White 2, 61; Badian 58 and Lehmann 366ff. and Gruen 20 sceptical 534.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 537
535. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 41,4,9 L: Ziegler 1, 13 note 54
536.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 538
537- amicitia and societas
lit.
Tx Veiv.15 5, 26.35 Gite 2 On7525ee L: Heuss 70; Dahlheim 76f. note 38
538.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 539
539. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pomp. Trog. 41,5,7
540. foedus
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 540
541.
lit.
Txslives ours, 1 L: Dahlheim 195f. with note 43, 207f.
542. subordinate symmachia
lit.
Ts Pollrans'4 L: Ziegler 1, 14 with note 56
543. subordinate societas
lit. inf.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 541 (Cic. Balb. 34; cf. r4f.) L: Horn 43f.; Dahlheim 58-9 note 25, 70; Ziegler 4, 54-55; Baronowski 2, 348f.
544. societas
lit.
Tx: cf. Cic. Balb. 23; Liv. 28,39,1-22 L: Horn 44, §2; sceptical Badian 118, cf. 49-51; contra Richardson, Hisp. 74; cf. Dahlheim 157 note 87
545.
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 542
546.
ins.
Us Ziegler 1035:
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 35 L: SEG 46, 1223
547. pax and amicitia Peace of Phoenice*
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 543; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 152f.; on the arb. Ager, no. 57 L: Taubler 214-228; Will 94ff.; Dahlheim 85, 207-220, Gruen 21, 381, 385, 389f., 439; Eckstein, Rome, 418-420; Seibert 282f.; Errington, RaG 104-106; Kaséeev 430f.; ~ Macedonian Wars
B. INTERNATIONAL
402
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
548. after 205
Hierapytna*
Lyctus*
ALt.
549. after 205
Gortyn*, Hierapytna*
Priansus
ALt.
ml.2
Greek
550. after 205
Hierapytna*
Priansus
ISt./TCTt.; BSc. etc.
bl.
Greek
551. 205-201/0?
Cos*
Calymna*
Site
bl.?
Greek
552. 205/4
Carthago*
Syphax, kg. of Numidia*
ALt. with FEc.
bl.
Latin
553- 204
Antiochus [5] III
Ptolemaeus [7] IV Philopator
Tag,
ul.
Greek
554. before 203
Ptolemies*
Amyzon
ALt. inf.
Greek
Greek
5582 6.203
Antiochus [5] Il
Amyzon
ALt.? inf.
ul.?
Greek
556. 203
Antiochus [5] II]
Philip (Philippus [7])
ALt. or IFt.
bl.
Greek
Vv
S57
2Os/2
Rome
Carthago*
rst PCt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
558. 202-197
Philip (Philippus [7]) V
Lysimachia [1]
ALt. with FEc.?
ul.?
Greek
559. 201
Rhodos*
Attalus [4] I of Pergamum
ALt.
bl.
Greek
560. 201
Rome
Carthago*
2nd PCt./SRt. with PHc., MCWc, WR
bl.
Greek/Latin
561. c. 201/0 or 2.205
Rhodos*
Hierapytna*
ALt. with BSc.
bl.
Greek
562. c. 201/0
Rhodos*
Olous*
ALt. with FEc.
bl.
Greek
563. c.2000rlater
numerous Cycladic and Aegean states and Cretan poleis under heg. of Rhodos*
ALt.
ml.
564. C. 200
Cos*
Calymna*
565. C. 200
Chersonesus*
Rhodos*
very frg.
566. Cc. 200
Malla
Attalus [4] I of Pergamum
ALt.
567. late 3rd cent.
Oaxus (Crete)
Tylissus*
ISt.
568. late 3rd cent.
Oaxus (Crete)
n.n. (Crete; name
Greek Greek bl.?
Greek
Greek Greek
lost)
569. late 3rd cent.
Gortyn*
Lato*
EA
bl.?
Greek
570. late 3rd cent.
Gortyn*
Amyclaeans (Amyclae [2])
SBt.?
ul.
Greek
571. late 3rd cent.
Eleutherna*
Artemitae
LAt.?
Greek
572. late 3rd cent.
Gortyn*
Hierapytna*
ALt.
Greek
573. late 3rd cent.
Stymphalus*
Aegira*
LAt.
Greek
574. late 3rd cent.?
Oaxus (Crete)
unknown partner
ALt.?
bl.?
Greek
403
B. III. L,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
548. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 26 L: Bonk 159
549. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 27 L: Bonk 160-162
550. philia and symmachia
ins,
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 28; SEG 46, 1239 L: Bonk 178-180
551.
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 545
552.
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 546
553. philia
lit.
Tx: Polixr5,2.5 303 L: Klose 63f.
554. symmachia
ins.
E/Tr/C: Welles, no. 38
555. symmachia*
ins.
SA/Tr/C: Welles, no. 38
ANTIQUITY
556. symmachia
so-called ‘secret treaty’ (to partition Ptolemaic kingdom)
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 547 SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 144f. L: Bonk 192-194; Klose 74f.; Gruen 387f., 615f.
oes
— Punic Wars
lit.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 548; Scardigli 299-300 L: Scardigli 308-317
558. subordinate symmachia
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 549; SEG 38, 603; U: HGIU 3, no. 432 L: Dahlheim 237 with note 10; Gruen 27f. with note 79
559. symmachia
inf.
L: Klose 123
560. pax [1]
lit./P
SA/C: StV 3, no. 548; Scardigli 304-7 L: Taubler 190-202; Dahlheim 18, 84 note 3-4, 149 note 64, 174, 232f.; Seibert 317f.; Scardigli 3 16-3 31
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 551; Tr: FHIG 1, soff.; HGIU 3, no. 434 L: Dahlheim 1g9of. with note 34; Pistorius 36, 53-5;
ins.
SA/C: StV 3, no. 552 L: Bonk 140-144; SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 5 5-7; 78-82, 107-118; cf. Baltrusch 64-68; Kreuter 65-83; Brulé 51-55; cf. Chaniotis, 90-92, 521
561.
symmachia
Kreuter 70f.; Chaniotis, 17 (c. 205); v. next no.
562. symmachia
563. symmachia; foundation of a new Nesiotic League
S and L: Schmitt 71f.; Klose 121 with note 485, 112
(— Nesiotai [2])
564.
ins.
S: v. SEG 46, 1082
565.
ins.
E: Chiron 21, 1991, 258-260, no. 4; SEG 41, 768; cf. StV
3, MO. §51 566. symmachia
ins.
E: BCH 94, 1970, 638-642, no. 2; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 437;
SEG 46, 1232 L: Kreuter 96f.; Chaniotis, 17 with note 62, 40
567.
ins.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 15 (c. 221?)
568.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 16 (c. 221?)
569.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 18 (219-216?)
570.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 66
$7 ie
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 68
572. symmachia
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 24 (or 216-206 ?)
573:
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 567 L: SEG 30, 418
574:
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 572
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
404
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
575. late 3rd cent.
Oaxus (Crete)
Tylissus*
ISt.
Greek
576. late 3rd or early 2nd cent.
Knossos*
Drerus?
ALt.
Greek
577. late 3rd orearly 2nd cent.
Aetolians*
Oaxus (Crete)
ALt.
Greek
Biannus?
ISt.
Greek
SBt.
578. 3rd/2nd cents.
|Hierapytna*
579. 3rd/znd cents.
Gortyn*
Caudus
580. 3rd/znd cents.
Gortyn*
Chersonesus”* ?
581. early 2ndcent.
Gortyn*
Cretan? city
ALt.
582. early 2ndcent.
Hierapytna*
dependency?
[St./ALt.
583. c. 199-189 ?
Gortyn*
Rhaucus*
ALt.
584. c. 199-189 ?
Gortyn*
Lappa*
ALt./EPt. with
style _ lang.
ul.
Greek Greek Greek
ul
Greek
bl.
Greek
bl.
Greek
Greek
Teles Fee:
585. c. 199-189?
Gortyn*
Sybrita
ALt.?
586. c. 199-189 ?
Gortyn*
Elyrus*
ALt./FEc.
Greek
587. c. 199-189 ?
Lyctus*
Cydonia*
ISt.
Greek
PCt. after arb.
588. c. 199-175 ?
rngaa
n.n.
589. c. 199-150?
Troezen*
Hermion(e)*
590.
199
Rome
Aetolians*
591.
197
Antiochus [5] III
502m
om
Rome
593. 197
Rome
594. 197/6
Rome
Greek bl.
Greek
ALt./sponsio no foedus
bl.
Greek/Latin
Philippi*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
Epirus*
ALt.? (sponsio?)
bl.
Greek
Philip (Philippus [7]) _ tre. Vv
bl.
Greek
Philip (Philippus [7]) Vv
ul.
Greek
Trn.? or informal _ bl.?
Latin
PCt. with MCWe, AUc., etc.
595.
197/6
Rome
Nabis*/Sparta*
AMa.?
596.
196-194
Rome
Cenomanni*
ALt. after ded.
ul.?
Latin
597. between196and 183/2
Rome
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
ALt. (EPt.) with FEc. foedus aequum
bl.
Greek/Latin
598. 196-194
Rome
Insubres*
ALt. after ded.
ul.?
Latin
405
B. III]. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
text
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature
Saisie
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 570
576. symmachia
ins. inf.
E/C: StV 3, no. 584
577. symmachia
ins.
E/C: StV 3, no. 585
578.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 35 (or c. 205 BC?)
579.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 69
580.
ins.
E/C: Chaniotis, no. 36
581. symmachia
ins.
E: ICIV 180; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 46
582. symmachia
ins.
E: IC Ill 3,5; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 74
583. symmachia
lit. inf.
_E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 29 (or 216-204?)
584. subordinate
ins.
E: ICIV 186B, 187; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 31 (or
L: Bonk 147f.
L: Pistorius 58-61
symmachia/ epimachia?
216-204?) L: SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; Bonk 126f.; cf. Baltrusch 64-68
585. symmachia?
ins.
E: IC IV 183; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 32 (or 216-204?)
586. symmachia
ins.
E: IC IV 185; Ix/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 33 L: Bonk 158
587.
ins.
E: ICI 18,10; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 42
588.
ins.
E/C: IG XI 1063; Ager, no. 68
589.
ins.
BalGI
590. de facto societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. 31,40-41; 31,46; cf. Pol. 18,38 L: Taubler 211-214
7520 IV 77s SEG 30,395
591. symmachia
ins.
E: SEG 36, 973; Ir: HGIU 3, no. 452; RGW, no. 59b
592. conditional societas
lit.
Tx: Pol. 21,26 L: Taubler 218
593. for four months
lit.
Tx: Pol. 18,36-39; cf. Liv. 33,12-13; App. Mac. 4,1-2; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 202ff.; Tr: RGW, no. 58
594. pax, probably not amicitia
Rome also dictates liberty __lit.
Tx: Pol. 18,44, cf. 18,42; Liv. 33,30, cf. 33,24-25; App.
clauses for the Greek cities
Mac. 9,2~-4 et al.; SA/C: Taubler 228-230; Tr: RGW, no. 60, 62
L: Taubler 230-239, 432f.; Sherwin-White 1, 176; Dahlheim 83-89, 9r1ff., 267f.; Gruen 447f., cf. 399-402; Baronowski 2, 3 53f.; Errington, RaG 260f. 595. societas; Nabis also agreed to
lit.
indutiae* with
Axeivey 3.453 0s 5piciaia2s4Osd L: Badian 57f.; Dahlheim 222f.; Klose 117; Sherwin-White 2, 63; Gruen 20 (only amicitia)
the Achaeans* 596. societas
lit.
TEx:'Gic» Balb. 145325 ct. Liv. 34,46,x L: Luraschi 23f., 98f., r1o8-110
597. conditional
lit.
Tx:\Pol. 18,42,6-7; 23,4,02523,9,12, ch. 23,7335
soctetas
24,8-133 24,13,33 Liv. 35,48,8-95 35,50,25 39537,10. 13 L: Horn 30-34; Heuss 12 (eternal ALt. c. 196); Taubler
219-228, 447; E. Badian, in: JRS 42, 1952, 76-80 (c. 192); Sherwin-White 1, 183; Sherwin-White 2, 6rf. (197 or 196); Dahlheim 26rf. with note 8 (192/r);
Baronowski 1; Baronowski 2, 13.5 4f., 367 with note 44; SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; Baltrusch 64-68; Gruen 33-38, 184f.; Bastini 63f.,237f. note 14-15 (7194/3 BC); Derow 298 with note 14; Kallet-Marx 189 with notes 29 and 190-197
598. societas
lit.
Tx: Cic. Balb. 14,32 L: Dahlheim 71; Luraschi 24, 100, 108-110
B. INTERNATIONAL
406
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
599. ¢. 196
Antiochus [5] Il
Lysimachia [1]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
600.
Miletus [2]
Magnesia [1]
PCt.
bl.
Greek
Rome
Athens
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
602. before 112
Rome
Athens
ALt.
bl.
603. 196
Rome
Melitaea*
rest./AUd. and
ul./
later ALt.?
bl.?
date
c. 196 o0rafter
185/4 ?
601.
196? after 1672 after 146? latest 112
Greek
604. 196
Rome
Narthacium (inf.)
rest./AUd. and later ALt.?
ul./ bl.?
Greek
605. 196
T. Quinctius [I 14] Flamininus
Greek cities
rest.
ul.
Greek
606.
Rome
Nabis*/Sparta*
PCt./SRt./PHc.
bl.
Latin
607. c. 195
Antiochus [5] II
Perinthus*
ALt.
608.
192
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
Sparta*
ALt.
ml.
609.
I9I
Achaean League (Achaeans*)
Messene [2]
ALt./rest. after ded.
ul.
Greek
610. before 189
Gortyn*
Knossos*
LAt.?
bl.
Greek
611.
Eleutherna*
Lato*
ALt./ISt. with FEc.
bl.
Greek
612. before 189 ?
Lato*
Eleutherna*
bl.
Greek
613. 190
Achaean League
Sparta*
Pt.
bl.
Latin
Greek/Latin
195
before 189 ?
Greek
(Achaeans*)
614.
189
Rome
Magnesia*
rest. (inf.) after ded.
ul.
615.
189
Rome
Sparta*
ded. with rest.
ul.
616.
189
Rome
Aetolians*
rest./ALt. with FEc.
ul.
Greek/Latin
Rome
Heraclea [5] on
rest. afterded. r90__
ul.
Greek
PCt./SRt./IFt./ AMc.
ul.
Greek/Latin
Megas
Ariarathes [4] IV
ded. with rest.?
ul.
Latin
617. 189/8
Latmus
618.
188
619. 188
Rome
Rome
Antiochus [5] III
Eusebes
407
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
text
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature
599. symmachia
ins.
E: SEG 31, 1056; 38, 12523 46, 1563; Ix: HGIU 3, no. 457
600.
ins.
E: Syll.3 588; SEG 37,984; Tr/C: TDGR 3, no. 37 L: Dahlheim 214 note 84, 216 (c. 200); Gruen 93; Sherk 47; SEG 39, 1254 (not before 184)
lit./ins.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 2,53,3 (foedus sociae); Suet. Cal. 3,2 (libera ac foederata oppida); IG Il* 1224; Syll.3 705; Sherk, no. 15; cf. Zon. 8,19; Cic. Verr. 5,127; Plin. HN 4,24 et al.
peace
societas or initially only amicitia? Athens still civitas foederata in Augustan period
601.
L: Dahlheim 2rof. note 75, 219f.; contra Taubler 216f.; Heuss 33f. and Gruen 24, 57 note 16, 738 note 40, but with insufficient explanation of the Tac./Suet. position; cf. Badian 59; pro Horn 6sf. (for 196); Bernhardt 1, 86, rozf. (1672); Baronowski 1, 303-4 (146-88?); Kienast 2, 510
(still in force under Augustus); Kallet-Marx 164, 201 602.
Tis ac Anns 535351chs Clee VEltn 5 127,
societas
603. societas (foedus inf.)
ins.
Tx: Syll.3 674; Sherk, no. 9 L: Heuss rrof.; Dahlheim 72 with note 16; SherwinWhite 2, 66; cf. below no. 675.
604. societas (foedus
ins.
cf. no. 603.
inf.)
605. amicitia
declaration of liberty for Greek cities
lit.
Tx: Pol. 18,46,5 L: Taubler 437f.; Sherwin-White 1, 176
606.
after six-month tre. in 196
lit.
Tx: Liv. 34,3 5,1-36,23 34,40,43 34,43,1-2; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 204f.; RGW, no. 72
amicitia
L: Dahlheim 267f., 150 note 64; Gruen 454f.; Sherwin-White 2, 63 607. symmachia
ins.
608. symmachia
Achaean League compels
609. symmachia
Accession of Messene to Achaean League with Roman approval
E: IPerinthos 3; SEG 48, 908 (with refs. to Tr/C)
UxsLiv. 3 §337,2 et ale L: Baronowski 2, 354 with note 22
Sparta to join it lit.
ixciPolls213.,6
L: Dahlheim 65, 73
610.
ins.
IGIV 175; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 77 (or c. 222?)
611. symmachia
ins.
E: ICI 16,17; SEG 13, 463; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 37 L: SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; Bonk 121;
Baltrusch 64-68 612. symmachia
ins.
SA/Tr: HGIU 3, no. 496
613.
lit.
Tx: Liv. 38,34,4
ins.
E: Syll.3 679; Ager, no. 120; cf. Liv. 37,45,1 (ded.) L: Dahlheim 72; Baldus 336-339
614. amicitia and societas
Tx iv, 30,5085
615.
L: Dahlheim 65 note 52 616.
subordinate societas with maiestas clause
lit. Rome accords the Aetolians a so-called foedus iniquum following the ded. cancelled in 191 and a six-month tre. in 190
617. amicitia and amicitia
Treaty of Apamea: after a
2313; Baldus 373f.
ins.
T/C: Syll.3 618; Tr: RGW, no. 90a L: Heuss 98; Sherwin-White 1, 179; Dahlheim 72, 78f.
lit.
Tx: Pol. 21,17,2-8; 21,41,10-43,2, Liv. 38,38,1-39,1;
societas 618.
Tx: Pol. 21,32; Liv. 38,11; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 154 f, 220 L: Taubler 46, 51, 62-66; Horn 24f., 29; Badian 84-87; Dahlheim 33ff., zorf., Gruen 26-32, 291-293; Sherwin-White 1, 183f.; Baronowski 2, 349f.; SEG 47,
Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 15 5ff., 220; cf. Syll.3 591; RGW, no. 65b L: Taubler 46, 48-52, 68f., 80, rorf., 442-445; Heuss 13f., Cimma 128-130; Dahlheim 98-100, 156f., 265f.; Fernandez-Nieto 281; Gruen 32f., 86f., 639-643;
preliminary peace in 189, Antiochus [5] III concedes WR, partial disarmament, Pre Texete:
Errington, RaG 286-289
619. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Liv. 38,39,6; cf. 38,37,5-6 L: Burstein; Derow, 290-303 (on the context of the regulations after Apamea; cf. no. 618.)
B. INTERNATIONAL
408
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
188
Rome
Phocaea*
rest.
ul.
Latin
621. after 188
Rome
Priene*
Rest/AUd. inf.
ul.
Greek/Latin
622. after 188
Miletus [2]
Priene*
LAt. after arb.
bl.
Greek
623. after 188 ?
Rome
Heraclea [7] Pontica
ALt.?
bl.?
Greek
624. after 188/7 ?
Miletus [2]
Pidasa*
Alt,
bl.?
625.
188 ? or 170?
Rome
Alabanda*
not a foedus
626.
187
Rome
Ambracia*
AUd./rest. after ded. 189
ul.
Latin
Achaean League
Ptolemaeus [8] V
Trn.
bl.
Greek
Eleutherna*
ALt.?
620.
627. 186/5
lang.
Greek
Greek
(Achaeans*)
628. before 184 ?
Aptera
629. 184
Cretan poleis
630. 184-181 ?
Miletus [2]
Heraclea [5] on
Greek
PCt.
ml.
Greek
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
Latmus
631. c. 184-170?
Cydonia*
Apollonia (Crete)
ISt.
bl.
Greek
632. 183/2
Rome
Achaeans*
Trn.?
bl.?
Greek
633. 183
Eumenes [3] II
Cretan League
ALt.
Greek
(with c. 30 poleis) 634. after 183
Lytus
635. 180/79
Eumenes [3] II, Prusias [2] Pharnaces [1] I of II, Ariarathes Pontus, Mithridates [4] of Pontus
636.
Chersonesus (Crimea)
180/179 or
157/5?
637.
179
Chersonesus*
Pharnaces [1] I of
SYt. inf.
bl.?
Greek
PCt.
ml.
Greek
EPt.
bl.
Greek
PCt.; sworn
bl.
Greek
Pontus
Sempronius [I 15]
Celtiberi
Gracchus
foedus
638. 174/3
Perseus [2]
Boeotians*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
639. after 173
Rome
Statielli*
rest. after ded.
ul.
Latin
640. 173
Rome
Antiochus [6] IV
Trn.? or RCt.? inf.
641. 170
Rome (by SC)
Thisbe*
rest./AUd.
ul.
Greek
642. C. 170?
Rome (by SC)
Coronea*
rest./AUd.
ul.
Greek
643.
Gortyn*
Knossos*
PCt.
c. 168
bl.?
Latin
Greek
409
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
observations
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
620. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Liv. 38,39,12
621. amicitia and societas
ins.
E: [Priene 40 (Irn. with Rome); Syll.3 688; Ager, no. 99, 160; cf. Pol. 33,6 L: Dahlheim 72; Sherwin-White 2, 90, 23 5-237; Baldus
622.
ins.
E: [Priene 28
623. amicitia and societas?
lit.
Tx: Memnon fr. 18,10 (FGrH 434) L: Taubler 46; Dahlheim 148 note 62, 164 note 2; Baronowski 1, 260f.; Kallet-Marx 186f. and 190-196;
336-339 L: Ager 508; Baldus 338
sceptical Badian 111, 295; contra Mattingly 241-243; Bernhardt 2, 68f. note 373 and Gruen 73 5-737 624. symmachia
ins.
Tx: SEG 37, 987 (cf. 39, 1254)
625. amicitia and
ins.
Tx/C: REG 11, 1898, 258-266; Ir: RGW, no. 96a
societas?
L: Schmitt 87f.; Gruen 48, 733-735 rightly dismisses assumption of foedus and dates philia* to 170 BC
626. amicitia with Cie;
lit.
Tx: Liv. 38,44,4 L: Dahlheim 7; Sherwin-White 1, 179
627. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 22.12: L: Klose 109
628. symmachia
ins.
629.
ins./lit.
630. symmachia
ins.
E: SEG 41, 742; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 38 |SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 40
E: Syll.3 633; SEG 37, 984 (on date cf. SEG 39, 1254); Tr: HGIU 3, no. 469
L: Gruen 93; Bonk 123-5 631.
lit.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 41
632. societas
lit.
Tx: Poll23,,4512
633. symmachia*
ins.
E:ICIV 179 L: Kreuter 99-105; Chaniotis 17f.
634.
ins.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 73
635. peace including many poleis
lit.
UxaPoliais.2 L: Dahlheim 214f. note 84f.; Gruen 554; Habicht, Sel.
636. epimachia
ins.
Tx: IOSPE? 402; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 30; HGIU 3, no. 483; RGW, no. 125
328-330
L: Dahlheim 216 note 85, 265 note 17; Burstein; Sherwin-White 2, 43, 65 (180 BC)
637. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 43,1793 Pol. 35,2,15
638. symmachia
lit./ins.
Tx: BE 2000, 453; SEG 48, 786; Pol. 27,1,8; Liv. 42,12,5-6; App. Mac. 11,7 et al. L: Gruen 404f.
639.
lit.
Tx: Liv. 42,8
640. amicitia and (contractual?) societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. 42,6,6-10 L: Sherwin-White 2, 64f. (who himself, however, contradicts Liv. 43,6,10)
641. amicitia and
ins.
E/C: Syll.3 646 (SC); Sherk, no. 2; Tr: RGW, no. 113; cf.
L: Richardson, Hisp. 118, 142
L: Dahlheim 40
societas; after
Pol. 27,5,1-8; Liv. 42,46,7-8; 42,63,12
ded. of 171
L: Dahlheim 72, 80f. (also Tx); H.-J. Gehrke, Thisbe in
Boiotien, in: Klio 75, 1993, 145-154 642. amicitia
ins.
E/C: Sherk, no. 3 L: Dahlheim 81f.; Gruen 513 note 161
643.
ins.
E: ICIV 181; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 43; SEG 23, 588
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
410
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
644. 168
Perseus [2]
Genthius*, kg. of the Illyrians
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
645. before 167
Perseus [2]
Molossi*
ALt.
bl.
Greek
646. 167
Rome
gentes in Macedonia* and Ilyricum*
ded. with rest.
ul.
Latin
647. not before 167
Rome
Cibyra [1]
ALt.; foedus
bl.
Greek/Latin
ALt.
bl.
Greek
ALt.
ml.
Greek
(or 188?)
648. c.167 0rafter
aequum
Rome
Maronea [1]
146?
649. after 167 (or not Plarasa, Aphrodisias [1], until 129?) Cibyra [1], Tabae*
650. after 167 orafter Rome
Stratoniceia [2]
rest./AUd/ALt.?
Greek
129?
651. c. 167/6
Gortyn*
Knossos*
ALt./BSc.
bl.
Greek
652. c. 165/4
Rome
Galatians
rest./AUd. with FRt. and PHc.
ul.
Greek
653. after 164/3
Itanus*
Praesus*
PCt./FRt.
bl.?
Greek
654. 164 or 163
Rome
Rhodos*
ALt. (with FEc.?) — bl.
Greek
655. 162/1 and 156/5 publ.
Ptolemaeus [12] VII Euergetes II
Rome
testamentary (posthumous
ul.
Greek
656.
Rome
Jews
ALt. or AUd.?
blL./ ul?
Greek/Latin
657. c. 160
Ambracia*
Charadrus [1]
FRt.
bl.
Greek
658. after 160
Rome
Mithridates [4] TV of
ALt.; foedus?
bl.?
Greek/Latin
Tex.)
161%
Pontus [2]
659. 152
M. Atilius [I 9]
Lusitani*
PCt. or conditional rest. after ded.
ul.
Greek
660.
Rome/Claudius {I 13] Marcellus
Celtiberi*
tre.; Irn. rejected by SC
bl.
Greek
151
° SHERWIN-WHITE 2, 72-74 and GAUGER 266-286 argue for liberation and informal amicitia (and societas).
41L
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
644. symmachia
lit.
Sis/ ies FH G23 Pol2953365\4.5 L: Derow 307-8, 315-6; Klose 162 with note 705
645. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Pol. 30,7,1-2; cf. 30,6,8
646. amicitia with
lit.
Tx: Liv. 45,26,14; 45,29,4; cf. 45,18,1-2
tribute obligation
L: Sherwin-White 1, 179f.; Klose 202f.; Gruen 424-436; Derow 317f.
647. societas
ins./lit.
E: OGIS 762; Baronowski 1, 42-3; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 477; RGW, no. 118d; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 25 (each different date); cf. Liv. 38,14,3 L: Taubler 44f., 55-58, 61f., 4 and Dahlheim 99 note 62 and Sherwin-White 1, 177, 184 (each 188 BC); Badian
295f. and Gruen 16, 48, 731-733 (this dating); Mattingly 244; FN 281; Ferrary; Baronowski 1, 264f.; Kallet-Marx 186 and 190-197 648. societas
ins.
ESEG3 555235 57100) Ghat
74959) DOH 111987,
501-4 L: Mattingly 244f.; Gruen 16, 48, 738-40 (after 146); Ferrary; Baronowski 1, 268f.; Sherwin-White 2, 68; Kallet-Marx 187f. and 190-197 649. symmachia
ins.
E/C: Reynolds, AR, no. x (c. 129 BC); Tr: HGIU 3, no. 478; RGW, no. 118e
L: R.M. Errington, in: Chiron 17, 198, 97-118 with this early dating 650. amicitia and societas
ins. inf.
29, 1076)
L: Horn 72; Taubler 158f.; Dahlheim 73, 106 note 85; Kallet-Marx 185
(without contract)?
651. symmachia
alliance for the conquest of lit./ins. autonomy for the
E: ICIV 182; SEG 23, 590; Pol. 31,1; SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis,
no. 44
Rhaucus 652. amicitia
E: OGIS 441; Sherk, no. 18; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 508 (cf. SEG
lit.
MxPoliet.2
Galatians 653.
peace
654. defensive or subordinate societas
foedus (aequum or iniquum?) for Rhodos
ins.
E: IC Ill 4,9; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 47
lit.
Tx: Pol. 30,5,4-31,1; 7; Liv. Per. 46; Zon. 9,24 L: Taubler 47, 204-210; Horn 60-65; Badian ror; Schmitt 151-167, 168-171; Gruen 39-42, 572, 578; idem, in: CQ 69 (N.S. 44), 1975, 58-81; Sherwin-White 2, 31; Baronowski 1, 230-244; Baronowski 2, 352 note 18,
363 note 37; SEG 47, 2313; Klose 208f.; Habicht, Sel. 338; Kallet-Marx 189 with note 29 and 190-197 655.
societas
Cyrenaica transferred to
ins.
E: SEG 9,7; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 482; TDGR 4, no. 31
lit.
Tx: 1 Macc, 8,23-30; Taubler 240f.; cf. Pomp. Trog. 3,6,3,93 36,1, 10 [source criticism in Sherwin-White 2,
Rome
societas or only amicitia? Jews granted foedus
656.
73£.]; Tr/C: TDGR 3, no. 44; SA/Tr: RGW, no. 124 L: Taubler 47-62, 239-254; Dahlheim 148 note 62, 160 note 4; Giovannini/Miller; Timpe 1; Gauger 266-286; Gruen 42-46, 745-747; Baltrusch, Juden 92-98
aequum®
657.
ins.
Tx: SEG 35, 665; 35, 1845; cf. 45, 660; 47, 797
658. societas
ins. inf.
E: OGIS 375; ILLRP 180; IGUR I 9
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 58,243; 59, 249 L: Richardson, Hisp. 147
lit.
Tx: Pol. 35,2-3; SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 206 L: Ziegler 3, 63; Richardson, Hisp. 141-5
L: Sherwin-White 2, 43, 65; Habicht, Sel. 360 note 135 659.
pax
660.
bellum
indutiae* in order to negotiate PCt. in Rome
B. INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
412
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
661.
151
Licinius [I 24] Lucullus
Cauca”*/Vaccaei*
CPt.; pactio* rather than ded.
bl.
Greek
662.
150
Carthago*
Massinissa*
RGt
bl.
Greek
Sulpicius [I 10] Galba
Lusitani*
Trn./Asv.
bl.
Greek
664. mid—2nd cent. ? Adada
Termessus [1]
ALt.
bl.
Greek
665. 150
Rome
Carthago*
ded.
ul.
Greek
666. after 149
Rome
Utica*
Greek
663. 150
667.
149/8
rest./ALt. after
ul./
ded.
bl. bl.
Rome
Byzantium*
ALt.
668. after 146
Rome
Troezen*
ALt.? inf.
669. after 145 ?
Hierapytna*
Knossos*
LAt.?/AMc.
670. ¢. 145-121
Gortyn*
Olous*
ALt. inf.
Greek
671. C. 145-121
Knossos*
Lato*
ALt. inf.
Greek
672. 144
Rome
Jews/Jonathan
Taf. or only Saf.?
bl. /ul.
Greek
673. 144
Jews
Sparta*
Taf.
bl.
Greek
674. 143-141 ?
Rome
Jews/Simon [6]
Taf. or Saf.?
bl./ ul.?
Greek
675. 140 or earlier
Rome
Narthacium* and Melitaea*
Trn.? orinformal _ bl. AMa.? before arb.
Greek
676. 140
Hierapytna*
Itanus*
PCt.2/FRt.? inf.
bl.?
Greek
677. 140
Q. Fabius [1 29] Maximus
Viriatus*
PCt.; foedus
bl.
Greek
Servilianus 678. 139
Q. Pompeius [I 1]
679. 139/8? 680.
139/8 ?
Latin
Greek
bl.?
Greek
aequum Numantia*
CPt.; ded., pactio* or foedus pacis?
bl.
Greek
Antiochus [9] VII
Jews/Simon [6]
Trn.?
bl.
Greek
Rome
Jews/Simon [6]
Taf. or Saf.?
bl./
Greek
ul.?
681.
137
Numantia*
Roman army under the consul C. Hostilius [8] Mancinus
CPt. sworn foedus
ul.
Greek/Latin
682.
135-104
Rome
Jews/lohannes
Taf. or Saf.?
bl./ul.
Greek
Hyrcanus [2]
7 Sulpicius [I ro] Galba broke his own treaty. ® According to SHERWIN-WHITE 2, 74f. only amicitia.
413
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
661. illegal conquest
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 52,218-220 L: Dahlheim 41; Richardson, Hisp. 149f.; Ziegler 3, 67-8
662.
lit.
Tx: App. Pun. 73,335
663. bellum?
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 59-60,249-253 L: Richardson, Hisp. 151; cf. Ziegler 3, 63
664. epimachia
ins.
E: TAM 3, 2; Tx/Tr/C: Brandt 39 5-397; cf. StV 3, no. 551 L: Bonk 157
665.
lit.
Dx/rsbHiG rex Aiea, L: Dahlheim 18
666. societas
Utica granted foedus
lit.
Tx: Pol. 36,3,1; Cic. Balb. 51; cf. App. Lib. 135,640 L: Dahlheim 71; Sherwin-White 1, 181 note 5
667. societas
Byzantium becomes civitas
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 12,62; cf. Diod. Sic. 32,15,6
libera and foederata
668. societas or only
L: Gruen 22 note 50 und Mattingly 239-241 contra; pro E. Grzybek, in: MH 37, 1980, 50-59; Kallet-Marx rsf. note 25 187, 189 and 190-197 ins.
amicitia?
E: IGIV 791
L: Gruen 738 rightly sceptical
669.
ins.
E: IC 1 8,13; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 50
670.
ins.
E/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 51
671.
ins.
SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 52
672. societas®
lit.
Tx: 1 Macc, 12,1-4. 16; Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,5,8(163-165)
L: Giovannini/Miller 168f.; Gruen 748; Noethlichs 12 with note 82; Baltrusch, Juden 98-102;
673. philia* and symmachia
lit.
Tx: 1 Macc, 12,6-18; Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,5,8 (166-170) L: Noethlichs 154 note 82; Baltrusch, Juden roof.
674. societas
lit.
Tx: 1 Macc. 14,16-23 cf. 40 L: Gruen 749; Baltrusch, Juden ro2f.; Sherwin-White 2,
ins.
Tx/C: (SA) Syll.3 674; Sherk, no. 9; Ager, no. 156; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 38 L: Sherwin-White 2, 66; on arb.: Tod, Arbitration 23f.; Ager 425-429; Kallet-Marx 162-177, esp. 166; Baldus
676.
ins.
Tx: IC III 4,9; Sherk, no. 14; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 49
677. pax and amicitia rejected by SC
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 69,293-4; Liv. Per. 54 et al. L: Richardson, Hisp. 127, 147-8
678. pax rejected by SG
lit.
Tx: App. Hisp. 79,3 38-344 L: Richardson, Hisp. 14 5f.
679. symmachia
lit.
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,7,2(219ff.)
680.
lit.
Tx: 1 Macc, 15,15—-24; cf. 14,24. 40; Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,7,3; 14,8,5 (on which Gauger 290f.)
75
~ 675. amicitia and societas
336-339
societas
L: Timpe 147 note 34; Giovannini/Miuller; Gruen 749; Sherwin-White 2, 75 with note 52; Noethlichs 12 with note 84; Baltrusch, Juden 103—105 681.
pax rejected by SC; oathgiver
lit.
3,109 et al. L: Taubler 138-140; H. Simon, Roms Kriege in Spanien
(consul) handed
154-133 BC, 1962, 149-159; Ziegler 3, 168; Richardson, Hisp. 127, 146-7, 150
over 682.
societas or only amicitia?
Tx: Liv. Per. 5.5; Vell. Pat. 2,1; Val. Max. 1,6,7; Cic. Off.
lit.
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,9,2(260-265); 14,10,22(247-255)
(Giovannini/Miller, 157f. date it later than 113; Gauger
289 to 126/5; cf. Sherwin-White 2, 73-76 with note 53f.) L: Gauger 287-291; Gruen 749f.; Noethlichs 13f.; Baltrusch, Juden 105-109
B. INTERNATIONAL
date (ein ee aigiel
684. 133-129 or later?
414
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Antiochus [9] VII
Iohannes Hyrcanus
_—ALt.?/SBt. after
ul.
Greek
[2]/Jews
CPt,
unnamed polis in Asia Minor: Elea [1]
ALt. foedus
bl.
Greek
Rome
or Pergamum*
685. c. 129 orearlier or after 90?
Rome
Methymna*
Epy.
bl.
Greek
686.
Rome
lapodes*
ALt. after ded.
ul.?
Latin
129
687. before 121
Lyctus*
Olous*
ALt.
688.
Rome
Haedui*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
689. 118-115?
Lato*
Olous*
ARt./PCt.2/AMc.
bl.
Greek
690. 114-107
Rome
Callatis*
ALt.
bl.?
Latin
Rome
Epidaurus*
ALt./
bl.
Greek
121?
Greek
(100-90, 71 or
soon after 146?)
69, coir
foedus
(feyin.Veinear>
Lyctus*
Lato*
ALt. inf.
(elejn Tea)
Hierapytna*
Itanus*
ARt.
bl.
Greek Greek
694. ITI
Rome
Leptis Magna*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
695. 111/0
Hierapytna*
Lato*
ALt./ISt./BSc./ AMc.
bl.?
Greek
696. 111/0
Lyctus*
Olous*
ALt/ISt./TCTe/
— bi.?
Greek
BSc. etc.
697. c. 110/9-109/8
Lato*
Olous*
AMa./ALt./ISt. with FEc., BSc., AMc.
bl.
Greek
698. 109
Antiochus [9] VIII
Seleucia [2] Pieria
Aue./ALt.?
ul.
Greek
699. 107
Rome
Helvetii* and Tigurini*
ALt. after ded.?
bl.?
Latin
7OO.
Rome
Astypalaea*
ALt./Epv. (foedus aequum) with Nc./
bl.
Greek
105
({r1] IX?)
AMc.
415
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq. 683. peace in
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
observations
text
sources/literature
Jews provide hostages
Lit
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 13,8, 4(246f.), cf. 13,8,3; Diod. Sic.
exchange for
34/35,1,5
disarmament, tribute etc.
L: Noethlichs 13; Baltrusch, Juden 107
684. societas
685. conditional societas
ANTIQUITY
Methymna granted foedus aequum
ins.
Tx/C: Syll.3 694 (Elea [1] or Pergamum?, cf. Cic. Verr. 5,127); Ir/C: TDGR 4, no. 44 L: Gruen 49, 605, 741f.; Baronowski 1, 304f.; Sherwin-White 2, 67; Kallet-Marx 186 with note 10; also 190-197
ins.
SA/C: IGR 4, 2; Syll.3 693; cf. SEG 3, 710; Baronowski 1, 52-3; It/C: TDGR 4, no. 33 (dated to 154) L: Taubler 45, 49f., 54f., 59, 62; Dahlheim 160 note 4, 165 note 5; Mattingly 244f. (90s?); Sherwin-White 1, 184; Gruen 16, 49, 741; Baronowski 1, 272f.; Ferrary;
Kallet-Marx 187 and 190-197 686. societas
lit.
Tx: Cic. Balb. 14,32; cf. Liv. Per. 59; CIL 17, 48
687. symmachia
ins.
Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 53; cf. SEG 41, 770
688. societas
lit.
Tx: Liv. Per. 61; App. Celt. 16; Caes. 6,4,2; Plin. HN
L: Luraschi, 24, 100, 108-110
4,107 L: Horn 54; cf. Wolters 79ff., 97-116
689. arb. by
ins.
Knossos* 690. societas
E: IC 116,3-4. 18; SA/Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 54-56; Tx/C: Ager, no. 164 (117/6-111/o); Tr: HGIU 3, no. 491
ins.
E/C: CIL F- 2676 (100-90 BC); ILLRP 516 (71 BC, cf.
Eutr. 6,10); cf. Epigraphica 10, 1948, 103-130, here 104-114 (after 146) = AE 1950, 92; AE 1933, p. 30, 106
L: Mattingly 239, 243-246 and Gruen 16, 49, 740 (114-107 BC); Baronowski 1, 75ff., 278ff.; Kallet-Marx 188f., cf. 190-197 691. societas
ins.
E: IG IV? I 63; ArchE 1918, 117 L: Gruen 49, 742; Sherwin-White 2, 67 (dated to 165-150); Kallet-Marx 186, 189 and 190-197
692. symmachia
ins.
S/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 58
693. arb. by Rome
ins.
E: IC Il 4,10; Tx/C: Sherk, no. 14; SA/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 57
694. societas
lit.
Tx: Sall. lug. 77 L: Sherwin-White 1, 181 note 5
695. symmachia
ins.
E: SEG 26, 1049; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 59
696. symmachia
ins.
EMG
L: Kallet-Marx 162ff., 177-180, 185
12135; 1G Ur3dion SEG 32,,163:83335 1345°97.,.93..
698;
Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 60 697. philia*, symmachia
ins.
E: IC I 16,5; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 61 L: SEG 47, 2313; Pistorius 78-82, 107-118; Baltrusch
698. symmachia
ins.
E: OGIS 257; Tx/Tr/C: Welles, no. 71; cf. 72
699. societas
lit.
Tx: Cic. Balb. 14,32
700. pax and amicitia and conditional
ins.
Tx/C: IGR 4, 1028; Sherk, no. 16; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1, 164f.; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 493; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 53 L: Taubler 45, 48, 50, 54, 56, 59, 62 (Irn.); Horn 70-81;
64-68
L: Luraschi 24, 99f., ro8-110; Frei-Stolba; Best/Isaac
societas
Norr 6r (still in force in reign of Gordian); Mattingly 244f.; Sherwin-White 1, 184f.; Sherwin-White 2, 67; Ferrary; Gruen 16, 49, 742; Kallet-Marx 164, 186 and
190-197
B. INTERNATIONAL
416
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
7O1.
104
Rome
Seanol...|
ded.
ul.
Latin
702.
rst cent.
Arcadians
Knossos” ?
FRt.?
Sardis*
Ephesus”
PCt./LAt
703. before 97 or
before 93
Greek
St.
bl.
Greek
with ban on hostilities, Ne., ARc.
704. 94
Rome
Thyrrheum*
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
TOS
aio
Rome
Mithridates [13] II Megas, kg. of Parthia*
AMa.?/ IFt.?/Nt.?
bl.
Greek/Latin
706. before 90
Rome
Mithridates [6] VI Eupator
ALt.
707.
L. Cornelius [I 90] Sulla
Mithridates [6] VI Eupator
PCt./SRt./RCt. with MCWe (after med.)
bl.
Greek/Latin
708. c. 81
Rome
Stratoniceia [2]
Trn.?
bl.?
Greek
709.
80
Rome
Chios*
rest.
ul.
Greek
FIO, 7S
Rome
Gades*
Trn.
bl.?
7II. 69
L. Licinius {I 26] Lucullus
Phraates [3] II
Trn./Nt.?
bl.
Greek/Latin
Tan
866
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus
Phraates [3] III
Trn./ALt./IFt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
GAG
(oh
Cn. Pompeius [I 3] Magnus
Iohannes Hyrcanus [2] I
rest. inf./Daf.
ul.
Greek
714. after 63 ?
Rome
Tyrus*
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
715. after 63
Rome
Amisus*
rest./AUd.,
ul.
Greek
85
Greek
later ALt.
716. 59
Rome
Ptolemaeus [18] XII
foedus
bl.
Latin
LT aes 8
C. Iulius Caesar*
Helvetii*
ded. with rest.
ul.
Greek/Latin
417
B. III. 1,000
subseq. 7Ol.
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
observations
text
sources/literature
tabula Alcantarensis
ins.
Tx: AE 1984, 495; Ix/C: D. Norr, Aspekte des romischen Volkerrechts, 1989, 19-23 and passim; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1,
216; Ix/C/Tr: Richardson, Hisp. 199-201 FOOD.
ins.
Tx: ICI 5,19B; Tx/C/Tr: Chaniotis, no. 62
703. philia* after arb.
ins.
E/C: OGIS 437; Sherk 47; Ager, no. 170; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 57 (extract); Tr: HGIU 3, no. 502; cf. SEG 38, 12.67
704. societas
Thyrreum granted foedus
ins.
(aequum?) 705. amicitia and
E/C: Syll.3 732; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 503 L: Taubler 46, 48; Gruen 49, 742f.; Sherwin-White 2, 67; Kallet-Marx 186 and 190-197
lit.
neutrality
Tx: Vell. Pat. 2,24; Plut. Sulla 5,4; Liv. Epit. 70; Flor. 3,12;
Fest. Ruf. 15 L: Ziegler 1, 20-23; Sherwin-White 2, 219f.
706. amicitia and societas
lit.
E: Syll.3 742; App. Mithr. 12 (written ALt.) L: Sherwin-White 2, 65, 113f.
707. amicitia
so-called “Treaty of Dardanus’
lit.
Tx: App. Mithr. 5 5-58; Plut. Sulla 22-24; Granius Licinianus fr. 3 5,74-78 Criniti; Memnon fr. 25 (FGrH 434); Liv. Per. 83; Vell. Pat. 2,23,6 et al. L: Sherwin-White 2, 143-5; Eckstein, Rome 425; Kallet-Marx 261-264
708.
renewal (without contract) of amicitia and societas?
ins.
Tx: OGIS 441; Sherk, no. 18; Tr: HGIU 3, no. 508 (cf. SEG 29, 1076) L: Horn 72; Taubler 158f.; Sherwin-White 2, 66;
Kallet-Marx 185, 268-272, 275-7
709. amicitia
Chios becomes civitas
lit/ins.
libera (also Cos et al.)
Tx: Syll.3 785; Sherk, no. 70; App. Mitr. 61 L: Sherk 352; Kallet-Marx 128 note 10, 270f.;
Sherwin-White 2, 245 TiO.
Tx: Cic. Balb. 3 5-36 L: Horn 44-7; Taubler 47; Badian 118; Baronowski 2, 348f.
711. amicitia and neutrality
foedus Luculli
lit.
Tx: Memnon fr. 58,2 (FHG) = fr. 38,8 (FGrH 434); App. Mithr. 87; Dio 36,3,1-3; Oros. Hist. 6,13,2
lit.
Tx: Flor. 3,6; 3,12; Fest. Ruf. 3; 16; Oros. 6,13,2; Cass.
L: Ziegler 1, 24-28; Sherwin-White 2, 220f. 712.
amicitia et
societas
713. amicitia with tribute obligation
Dio 36,45,33 36,51,1; cf. App. Mithr. 97 L: Ziegler 1, 28-31; Ziegler 2, 56; Sherwin-White 2, 221f.
After the conquest of Jerusalem*, Pompeius
lit.
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 14,73, cf. 14,71. 74. 156; 20,244; Bl 1,153f.; Cass. Dio 37,16,4; Str. 16,2,40 p. 762 et al.
revokes recognition of
L: Sherwin-White 2, 214-218; Sherwin-White 3, 261f.;
Hyrcanus’ [2] royal title;
Noethlichs 15; Baltrusch, Juden 13 4f.
Hyrcanus consents to hostages, territorial losses and disarmament 714. societas; Tyre becomes civitas
lit./ins.
Tx: CIL X 1601; ILS 8819a; Dig. 50,15,1 L: Horn 59, 69
lit.
Tx: App. Mithr. 83; Memnon fr. 30,5 (FGrH 434); Plut. Lucullus 19,4—-5; Plin. Epist. 1o,92F. L: Horn 69f.; Norr 60 note 110; Kallet-Marx 327
lit.
Tx: Caes. B Civ. 3,107,2 (ex lege and senatus consulto
foederata 715. Amisus becomes civitas libera, later foederata 716. amicitia and
societas
717. amicitia (not
foedus)
Ptolemy (Ptolemaeus [18])
XII officially amicus et socius populi Romani
societas erat facta); Cic. Rab. Post. 6 (quicum foedus feriri in Capitolio) L: Sherwin-White 2, 65 lit.
Tx: Caes. B Gall. 1,27-28 (ded.)
L: Best/Isaac (Cic. Balb. 32 does not think it a new measure, but a regulation of the 2nd cent.; cf. under 107
BC; Luraschi 99f.; honorary treaty under Vespasian: ILS 1020; 2697); Frei-Stolba; Wolters 77-79 contra speculations of F. Fischer, in: BJ 185, 1985, 1-26.
B. INTERNATIONAL
418
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
718. after 57 or after 16?
Rome
Remi*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
719. after 57 orafter
Rome
Lingones*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
Rome
Treveri*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
721. after 55
C. Tulius Caesar*
Ubii*
rest. after ded.
ul.
Latin
Fan.
Rome
Rhodos*
Trn.?/Trv.?
bl.
Greek
bl.
Greek/Latin
date
16?
720. after 57 or after 16?
Sa
(fictitious?)
723.
48
Rome
Rhodos*
Trn. or Trv.
724. 48/7
Rome
tribes of Illyricum*
— ALt. foedera
Gta
C. Tulius Caesar*
Johannes Hyrcanus
AUd./
[2]
Daf.
oi
726. 9.2.44
C. Iulius Caesar*
Johannes Hyrcanus
ALt. by SC
Latin ul.?
Greek
bl.
Greek
[2] I 727.
11.4.44
Rome
Jews
Trn./Taf.
bl.
Greek
728. 44
Rome
Germani*
Taf.? or more likely CPa.
ul.
Latin
729.
39 or 38?
Rome
Aphrodisias [1]
rest.?/AUd.? by SC
ul.
Greek/Latin
730.
38
Rome/Agrippa [1]
Ubii*
Asy.? after ded.
ul.?
Greek/Latin
731.
37/6
M. Antonius [I 9]
Cleopatra [I] 12] VI
SRt.
ul.
Greek
TB2 36
Rome
Pharnabazes, kg. of | ALt. after ded.? Iberia*
ul.
Greek
722408
6
Rome
Zober, kg. of Albania*
ALt. after ded.?
ul.
Greek
734.
36
Phraates [4] IV
Artavasdes [6] II
ALt.
bl.
Greek
Tose
ot)
M. Antonius [I 9]
Artavasdes [6] II, kg. of Media* Atropatene
ALt.
bl.
Greek
TRON gS
Augustus*
tribes of Illyricum*
rest. afterded.in peace
ul.
Greek
Gieths GXO)
Rome
Nicopolis [3] (Actia Nicopolis)
bl.?
Latin
ALt.
419
B. II.
subseq.
L,OOO0
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
sources/literature
718. societas
lit.
Tx: Plin. HN 4,106; cf. Tac. Hist. 4,67 L: Horn 53; cf. Wolters 79ff., 97-116
719. societas
lit.
Tx: Plin. HN 4,106; cf. Tac. Hist. 4,67 L: Horn 53f.; cf. Wolters 79ff., 97-116
720. societas
lit.
Tx: Plin. HN 4,106 L: Wolters 98-100
721. amicitia (and
lit.
Tx: Caes. B Gall. 9,6,6; 4,16,5.7
ANTIQUITY
societas?)
722. unconditional societas with
FEc. 723. unconditional societas
Rome downgrades foedus | lit. with Rhodos to an
xs Cie, Pam) 1.05.2
iniquum, or Rhodos has foedus iniquum confirmed
Baronowski 2, 352 note 18, 363-4 note 37
Rome confirms foedus aequum or Rhodos only receives this now
724. societas 725.
amicitia and
admission of Hyrcanus II
formal societas
into the formula amicorum et sociorum
726. societas
L: Horn 64; Taubler 206-208; Schmitt 171; Gruen 4of.;
lit.
Tx: App. B Civ. 4,66; 68; 70 et al. L: Taubler 47, 205, 208-210; Schmitt 183ff.; Gruen 4of.;
lit.
Tx: Bell. Alex. 44,1
lit.
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 14,8,3; 14,8,5(144); 14,10,1(185);
Baronowski 2, 363-4 note 37
14,10,2-3(190-196); Bl. 1,194-199. 199-273 L: Taubler 158; Freber 54-58 and Noethlichs 82f. with good surveys lit.
Tx: Jos. Ant. Iud. 14,10,10(221f.); cf. 14,10,3(197f.); 14,10,1(186)
L: Taubler 158; Freber 57f. 727. societas
lit.
Jos. Ant. Iud. 14,10,10(217—-222); cf. 266-267)(137. 143-144); TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 1
728. confirmation of obsequium*
lit.
Tx: Cic. Att. 14,9,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 2 L: Wolters 149
729. societas; Aphrodisias becomes civitas
lit/ins.
Tx: OGIS 453-455; Ix/C: Sherk, no. 28; Reynolds, AR, no. 6, 8, 9; cf. Plin. HN 5,109; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 3 L: Taubler 158; Kienast 2, 456, 511; Grelle; Gruen 50,
L: Freber, 58-63
foederata
743; J. Reynolds, in: Akten des 6. Internationalen Kongresses fiir lateinische und griechische Epigraphik, 1973, 115-122; Kallet-Marx 186 and 190-197
730. probably provincial subjection
lit.
Tx: Str. 4,3,4 p. 194; Tac. Germ. 28,4; Ann. 12,27,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 9 L: Timpe 2, 132f., Kehne 1, 298-300; Wolters 147f.; J.
731. societas after donation
lit.
Tx: Porphyrius fr. 2,17 (FGrH 260); Plut. Antonius 36,2; Jos. Ant. Iud. 15,4 et al.; Tr/C: TDGR 4, no. 88; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. ro L: T. Schrapel, Das Reich der Kleopatra, 1996
732. societas
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 49,24,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 11
733. soctetas
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 49,24,1; cf. Plut. Antonius 34,10; TL:
Heinrichs, Civitas Ubiorum, 2000
Kehne, AuV, no. 12
L: Sherwin-White 2, 307
734. alliance
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 49,25,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 13
735. soctetas
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 49,44,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 26 L: Ziegler 1, 36
736. amicitia
lit.
Tx: App. Ill. 28; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 29
737. societas; Nicopolis [3] becomes civitas foederata
lit.
Tx: Plin. HN 4,5 (civitas libera); cf. Serv. Aen. 3,501; Tac. Ann. 5,10; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 30
L: Horn, 87; Kienast 2, 511 note 233
B. INTERNATIONAL
date 738. before 29
TREATIES
420
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Rome
Sitas, kg. of the
ALt.
Greek
Denthalii* 739. 29
Rome
Roles, kg. of the Geti*
ALt.? or societas without contract
Greek
740. after 28 ?
Rome
Odrysae*
ALt.? or societas without contract
Greek
TAD.
28
Rome
Cnidus*
ALt./Trn.?
742. 26
Rome
Polemon [4], kg. of | ALt.? Pontus*
Tage
Rome
Mytilene*
25
BV.
bl.
Greek
Greek bl.
Greek
(probably not Trn.)
TA
Iass
Rome
Juba [2], kg. of Mauretania*
ALt.?
TAs.
23
Augustus*
Phraates [4] IV
AMa.? with
Latin bl.
Greek
MCWe? inf. 746. 20
Augustus *
Samos*
rest./AUd.
ul.
Greek/Latin
747. 20
Augustus*
Phraates [4] IV
IFt./Gv./PCt.?
bl.
Latin
748. latest 19
Rome/Agrippa [1]
Batavi*
ALt.?
Latin
749. latest 19
Rome/Agrippa [1]
Mattiaci*
ALt.?
Latin
750.
16
Augustus*
Sugambri*
PCt. or rest.
751.
latest 14
Augustus*
Cottius [1]
ALt.?
ul.
Greek Latin
inf. 752.
before 12
7532 8 bG
Rome
Scordisci*
Rome
Germani*
ALt. after ded.?
PCt. or rest. after
Greek
ul.
Latin
ul.
Greek
ded. 754. c.3 BCorAD1
L. Domitius [II 2]
Hermunduri*
rest. after ded.
Ahenobarbus
? Following establishment of amicitia and societas without contract in 46/5.
421
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
738. societas
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 51,23,4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 31 L: Kehne 1, 208
739. societas
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 51,24,6-7; 26,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 32 L: Kehne 1, 209; V. Lica, Philoromaios oder philokaisar?, in: BJ 192, 1992, 225-230
740. societas
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 4,5,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 34
741. societas; Cnidus granted foedus (aequum?)
ins.
E: J. Matsa, in: Athena 11, 1899, 283f.; Taubler 4 50f.; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 33 L: Magie 1259f. note 5 dates to 45; Taubler 46, 450-454
L: Kehne 1, 205-8; Kehne 4, 329
expands maiestas clause; accepted by Grelle; cf. Dahlheim 148 note 62; Sherwin-White 2, 59 with note 3; rejected by Gruen 50, 743 with note 72; Ferrary and Baronowski 2,
352 742.
amicitia and societas
lit.
Tx: Dio 53,25,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 35
ins.
E/C: Syll.3 764; IGRIV 33; EJ, no. 307; Sherk, no. 26; Tx/
(without contract)
743. subordinate
L: Sullivan 161-3
societas with
Tr: FHIG 1, 165f.; Tr: HIRK, no. 26; TDGR 4, no. 97; TL:
maitestas clause;
Kehne, AuV, no. 37
Mytilene
L: Heuss 248; Taubler 46, sof., 54, 56, 62-66, 158, 4533
granted? a
Sherwin-White 1, 185; Gruen 16, 50, 743f.; cf. Bernhardt
so-called foedus
I, 149-151; Baronowski 2, 3 50-2; Kallet-Marx 185 with
iniquum
note 8, cf. 190-197
744.
societas (without contract)
745. amicitia 746. amicitia
Samos becomes civitas
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 4,5,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 38 L: Kienast 2, 348
lit.
Tx: Dio 53,33,2; 5458,1; but Pomp. Trog. 42,5,9 L: Taubler 185; cf. Ziegler 1, 47; Sherwin-White 2, 322f.
lit.
six: Plins HIN 5303/5; D105 4.957 cl. ies Verne 5,027
libera
Reynolds, AR, no. 13 L: Kienast 2, 511
747. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Oros. Hist. 6,21,29; Prop. 4,6,79; cf. Vell. Pat. 2,100; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 39
L: Taubler 185; Ziegler 1, 48-51; Sherwin-White 2, 323-325; Kienast 2, 342-4f. 748. societas
lit.
Tixs Vac; Histi4, 02.30 4.2> 07.2 Germ. 29.0; DL: Kebne, AuV, no. 41 L: Kehne 1, 209, 448-420 (sceptical); Will, Randstaaten
749. societas or provincial subjection
lit.
Tx: Tac. Germ. 29,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 42 L: Kehne 1, 301f.; Will, Randstaaten 5 5ff.; Wolters 264ff.
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 54,20,6; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 44 L: Timpe 2, r4of.; Kehne 1, 190; Kehne 5, 303
6ff.; Wolters 24 6ff.
750. pax and amicitia 751.
societas
Sugambri provides hostages
lit./ins.
Tx: ILS 94; EJ, no. 165; Amm. Marc. 15,10,2. 7; cf. Suet.
Tib. 37,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 46 L: Kehne 1, 203-205 752. societas
lit.
Txs Cass. Dio 54,31,3; cf. Vell. Pat: 2,393; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 50
Sa:
lit.
Tx: Cassiod. Chron. AUC 746 = Aufidius Bassus fr. 2
L: Kehne 1, 201f. (HRR); Dio 55,6,1-3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 52
L: Kehne 5, 313f. 754. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 55,10a,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 54 L: RGA 5, 602-604; Kehne 1, 293-5; Wolters 181-4
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
422
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
755. AD1t
Caesar [II 32]
Phraates [5] V
IFt./Taf.
bl.
Greek/Latin
756. 4
Rome
Cherusci*
ALt. after ded.
bl.
Greek/Latin
757.
Tiberius [1]
Chauci*
rest.? after ded.
ul.
Latin
Rome/Tiberius [1]
Maroboduus* (Marbod*), kg. of the Marcomanni*
PCt.; foedus on same conditions with TCTc.
bl.
Latin
Rome/
Artabanus [7] III
Trn. foedus
bl.
Greek/Latin
5
758. 6
759.
18/19
Germanicus [2]
760. 37 or 38 ?
Rome/Vitellius [2]
Artabanus [7] III
Trn.; sponsio/ continuum foedus
bl.
Greek/Latin
761. 38
Vardanes*
Gotarzes* II
PCt./SBt.?/IFt.
bl.
Latin
762. 41
Claudius [III 1]
Agrippa I, kg. of Tudaea
ALt.
bl.
763. after 41
Claudius [III r]
various reges'®
foedera according to the rite of the fetiales*
bl.
Latin
764. 43
Claudius [III 1]
Iceni*/Prasutagus* and other Britanni*
rest.or ALt. after ded.
ul.
Latin
765. 50
Rome
Chatti*
trc.? orrest. after ded.
ul.
Latin
766.
Rome
Vologaises [1] I
Trv.? inf.
ul.
Latin
767. 61
Cn. Domitius [II 11] Corbulo
Vologaises [1] I
trc. (with secret additional clause?)
ul./bl.
Greek/Latin
768. after 61
Ti. Plautius [II 14] Silvanus Aelianus
Bastarnae*, Rhoxolani* and
rest. or PCt. (or Trn.?) after formal
ul.
Latin
Daci*
ded.
769. 62
Caesennius [3] Paetus
Vologaises [1] I
CPt.?/tre.?/pactio*
bl.
Greek/Latin
55?
"© Possibilities are: Cottius [2] II, Cotys [II 1] lof the regnum Bosporanum, Mithridates [20] of Armenia, Antiochus [18] IV of Commagene, Mithridates [9] VIIi and Polemon [5] of the regnum Bosporanum, Italicus [1]; Prasutagus*, Cogidubnus”*.
423
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
755. amicitia and
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Vell. Pat. 2,101; Cass. Dio 5 5,10a,4; TL: Kehne, AuV,
societas?
no. 56
L: Taubler 3 44; Ziegler 1, 53-5 5; Sherwin-White 2, 326f.; Kienast 2, 346
756. amicitia and
lit.
societas
Tx: Vell. Pat. 2,105,1; Tac. Ann. 1,58,2; Manil. 1,898; Str. 7,1,4 p. 291-2; cf. Oros. historiae 6,21,13; TL: Kehne,
AuV, no. 57 L: D. Timpe, Arminius-Studien, 1970, 74-77; Will, Randstaaten 47; Kehne 1, 202; Wolters 188 757. amicitia and societas or likelier provincial subjection
lit.
758. amicitia and
Marbod receives a Roman _ lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 2,45,33 2,46,2; cf. Cass. Dio 55,28,6; Tac.
territorial guarantee
Ann. 2,62,3; Vell. Pat. 2,109,2; 2,129,3; SA/Tr: GW 118-127; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 60
commercium (not societas)
Tx: Vell. Pat. 2,106,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 58
L: Kehne 1, r91f.; idem, s.v. Marbod, RGA 19, 258-262; Kehne 5, 315f. 759. amicitia and
lit.
societas?
Tx: Tac. Ann. 2,58,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 73
L: Ziegler 1, 58f.; Sherwin-White 2, 327; P. Kehne, s.v. Germanicus, RGA 11, 446
760. amicitia and societas?
lit.
Tx: Suet. Cal. 14,3; Vit. 2,4; Dio 59,27,3; Jos. Ant. Iud. 18,96. ror—-102; cf. Tac. Ann. 12,10,1; 15,1,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 78 L: Taubler 344; Ziegler 1, 62-64
761. subjection
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 11,9 L: Ziegler 1, 64
762. amicitia and societas
lit./ num.
Tx: Suet. Claud. 25,5; Jos. Ant. Iud. 19,274ff.; Bl. 2,215-2; cf. Cass. Dio 60,8; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 80
763. amicitia and societas
lit.
Tx: Suet. Claud. 25,5; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 86 L: Kehne, AuV, chap. C II 3d
764. amicitia and societas? with regna reddita
lit./ins.
E: CIL VI 920 = ILS 216; cf. Oros. Hist. 7,6,10; Suet. Claud. 17,2; 21,6; 25,5 et al.; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 84 L: S. Frere, Britannia, 31987 (repr. 1994), 60-61, 82; Kehne, AuV, chap. C II 3c
765. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 12,28,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 90 L: Kehne, AuV, chap. C II 3a
L: Braund 33 with note 36; TL: Kehne, AuV, chap. CII 3d
766. amicitia
Vologaises gives obsides* _ lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 13,9; 13,34; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 92
(hostages), but does not
L: Ziegler 1, 67
recognise Roman sovereignty over Armenia
767. indutiae* prov.
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 15,5-6; Cass. Dio 62,20,4
with
SA/Tr: FHIG 1, 207f.; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 96
demilitarization of Armenia
L: Ziegler 1, 69; Ziegler 3, 64-67; Kehne, AuV, Ch. C 2. 3a; — Parthian and Persian wars
768. pax and amicitia
ins.
E: CIL XIV 3608 = ILS 986; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 97 L: P. Conole, R.D. Milns, in: Historia 32, 1983, 183-200;
Kehne 1, 494-498 769. prov.
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 15,16; Cass. Dio 62,21,2; 62,22,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 99 L: Ziegler 1, 7of.; Ziegler 3, 64f.; Kehne, AuV, chap. C 2.
3a
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
TREATIES
424
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Fi On 02s
Cn. Domitius [II 11] Corbulo
Vologaises [1] I
tre. indutiae*
bl.
Greek/Latin
File
163
Cn. Domitius [II 11] Corbulo
Vologaises [1] I
tre.
bl.
Greek/Latin
772.
63
Cn. Domitius [II 11] Corbulo
Tiridates [5] !
ded.
ul.
Greek/Latin
Fike
oe
Rome/Cn. Domitius {Il rr] Corbulo
Vologaises [1] I
PCt./IFt. sponsio*
bl.
Greek/Latin
774.
66
Nero [1]
Tiridates [5] I
rest./ RCt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
775.
67
Nero [1]
Greece/prv. of Achaia*
AUd.
ul.
Latin
776. 69
Galba [2] or Otho*
Vologaises [1] I
Trn. inf.
bl.
Latin
777.
69
Vespasian (Vespasianus*)
Vologaises [1] I
Trn. inf.
bl.
Latin
Toe
72
Rome
Bructeri* and other __ rest.? after ded.
ul.
Latin
Germani* E of the Rhine 779. 70
Rome
Batavi*
PCt.? or likelier ded.
Latin
780. after 70
Rome
Helvetii*
ALt.
ul.
Latin
781. 89
Rome
Decebalus*
PCt. after formal
bl.
Greek
ded. with WR, Ne.
782.
102,
Rome/ Trajan (Traianus [1])
Decebalus*
PCt. after ded.
ul.
Greek
783.
114
Trajan (Traianus [1])
Iberians*, Colchians, Bosporans et al.
ded. with rest.
ul.
Latin
784. 114
Trajan (Traianus [1])
Parthamasiris*, kg. of Armenia*
ded. withoutthe expected rest.
— ul.
Greek
785.
114
Trajan (Traianus [1])
Abgar [3] VIII of Osr(h)oene*
ded.
ul
Greek
786.
116
Trajan (Traianus [1])
Athambelus, kg. of Messene [2]
ded. with rest.
ul.
Greek
787.
016
Trajan (Traianus [r])
Parthamaspates
Constitution with inf. RCt./ALt.?
ul.
Greek/Latin
425
B. Ill. [1,000
subseq. 770.
SELECTED
observations
prov. as per
INTERNATIONAL
text lit.
status quo ante
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature Tx: Tac. Ann. 15,17; cf. 15,28,1; Cass. Dio 62,22,2-3;
Jos. Bl. 2,389; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 100 L: Ziegler 1, 98; Ziegler 3, 65f.
771. prov. on ded. and PCt.
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 15,27-28; cf. 15,30-31 After failure of negotiations conducted in Rome by a Parthian legatio* (cf. Tac. Ann. 15,24-25; 15,28; Cass. Dio 62,22,3); TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 102
L: Ziegler 1, 72f.; Ziegler 3, 66f. 772. prospect of rest
lit.
Tx: Tac. Ann. 15,28-29: Dio 62,23,2-3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 103 L: Ziegler 1, 72f.
773. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 62,23,4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 104 ee Zler ernie, 5
lit.
Tx: Dio 63,1-5; Suet. Nero 13; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 1o5
774.
amicitia and societas?
repeated symbolic ded. of Tiridates [5] I
L: Ziegler 1, 73-77; Angeli Bertinelli 56; Braund 27, 114
775. amicitia
ins.
E: Syll. 3 814; ILS 8794; cf. Syll. 3 796A; IG IV* 1,80-81 SA/Tr: HIRK no. 12; TDGR 6, no. 71, cf. 73; TL: Kehne,
776. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Suet. Nero 47,2; 57,2; cf. Aur. Vict. Epit. 5,8; TL:
AuV, no. 106
Kehne, AuV, no. 107 L: Ziegler 1, 78 777. amicitia
lit.
(societas?)
Tx: Tac. Hist. 4,51; cf. 2,82; Suet. Dom. 2,2; Cass. Dio 66,15,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 108
L: Taubler 185; Ziegler 1, 78f., 80 778. pax and amicitia
lit.inf.
Tx: Tac. Hist. 5,24-26; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 112
L: Wolters 260 779. more likely
lit. inf.
provincial subjection than
Tx: Tac. Hist. 5,26; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 113
L: R. Urban, Der ‘Bataveraufstand’ und die Erhebung des Tulius Classicus, 1985, 92ff.
societas 780. societas
ins.
Tx: ILS 1020; 2697; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 114 L: Best/Isaac; Horn 59 note 28
781. pax and amicitia in exchange for subsidies
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 67,7,2-4; cf. Mart. 5,3; 6,10, |. 7; Plin. Pan. 12,2 et al.; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 118 L: Taubler 186; Kehne 1, 193f.; B.W. Jones, The Emperor
782. pax
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 68,10,1; cf. 68,9,6; TL: Kehne, AuV, no.
Domitian, 1993, 15off. 119 L: Taubler 185f.; K. Strobel, Untersuchungen zu den Dakerkriegen Trajans, 1984, 198-201; Kehne 1, 188,
199f., 251-4 783. societas
lit.
Tx: Fest. 20; cf. OGIS 544 =IGR 3,173; IGR 1,192; SA/ Tr: TDGR 6, no. 128, 131; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 112, 127,
124 L: Birley 2, 69 784. captivity; Armenia
lit.
becomes a prv.
Tx: Dio 68,19,1-20,4; Fest. 14; 20; Fronto, principia historiae 15; Arr. fr. 51 (FGrH 156); Eutr. 8,3,1 et al.; TL:
Kehne, AuV, no. 129 L: Ziegler 1, ror; Chaumont 135f.; Birley 2, 69f.
785. provincial subjection
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 68,21-22; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 130 L: Ziegler 1, 102; Birley 2, 7of.
786. societas?
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 68,28,4; Exc. Vales. 292; TL: Kehne, AuV,
no. 131 L: Ziegler 1, 103 787. societas?
lit./
Tx: Joh. Mal. 11,273-274 = Arr. fr. 49 (FGrH 156); Cass.
num.
Dio 68,30,3; 68,3 3,2; BMCRE 3, p. 223, no. 1045-1049, esp. 1046: REX PARTHIS DATUS; SA/Tr: TDGR 6, no.
1343 135C; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 132 L: Taubler 186; Ziegler 1, 104; Chaumont 141; Angeli 1, eeky | OS RY oe
Ee A Aees Sour e amee ek mee, ; PR [ee
eg
eee
B. INTERNATIONAL
426
TREATIES
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
788.
117
Hadrian (Hadrianus* )
Osroes [1]
PCt./SRt.
bl.
789.
117
Hadrian (Hadrianus* )
Palmyra*
rest. inf./RCt.?;
ul.
Latin
Nec.?
790.
117?
Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
Pharasmanes [2], kg of Iberia*
_Trn./ALt. inf.
bl.
Latin
791.
I17
Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
Parthamaspates
RCt./ALt.? inf.
ul.
Latin
7OO—
Lane?
Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
Rhoxolani* (under
bl.
Latin
= PCt.?/Trn.
kg. Rasparaganus?)
793. after 121?
Rome
Olbia [1]
ALt.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
794.
Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
Osroes [1]
Taf.
bl.
Latin
795. after 138
Antoninus [1] Pius
Pharasmanes [2], kg. of Iberia*
rn.
bl.
Greek/Latin
796.
140-144?
Antoninus [1] Pius
Vologaises [3] II
Taf.?
bl.
Latin
797.
163
L. Verus*
Sohaemus [4]
RCt.?/
ul.
Latin
123
enthroned as kg. of — ALt.? inf. Armenia*
798.
166
L. Verus*
Vologaises [4] III
PCt./SRt.? inf.
ul.
799.
C. 166
Rome
Marcomanni* etal.
PCt.?
ul.
Greek
ALt. or societas without contract
bl.
Greek
PCt. or unilateral — ul.
Greek
led by kg. Ballomarius (Vadomarius [r]) 800.
171/2
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Germani* under Battarius
801.
1713/2
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Quadi*
sworn rest. 802.
1713/2
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Lacringi* and Astingi*
ALt. or societas without contract
™ Incorporated into Moesia* inferior under Septimius [II 7] Severus; lit.: SCARDIGLI 260f.
bl.
Greek
427
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
788. pax and amicitia
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Aur. Vict. Caes. 14,1; SHA Hadr. 21,10; cf. 5,3; 9,13 Fronto, principia historiae 15; Eutr. 8,3; Fest. 14; 20; TL:
Kehne, AuV, no. 133 L: Ziegler 1, 105-107; Kerler 28f. 789. amicitia (or clause in no. LLG)
Tx: cf. no. 788. L: Ziegler 1, 107
790. societas
lit.
Tx: SHA Hadr. 17,11; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 134 L: Kerler 42
lit.
Tx: SHA Hadr. 5,4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 132a
792. pax and amicitia with subsidies
lit/ins.
Tx: SHA Hadr. 6,6-8; cf. ILS 852-853; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 135 L: Kerler 29-31; A. Mocsy, Pannonia and Upper Moesia, 1974, 100; Birley 2, 86; D. Williams, The Reach of Rome,
793. societas; Olbia [1] becomes civitas foederata™'
ins.
E: IOSPE 1,39; cf. 167, 263, 322; SHA Pius 9,9; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 136 L: Kerler 45 with note 53; J. Vinogradov, S.D. Kryzickij, Olbia, 1995; J. Vinogradov, V.V. Nazarov, in: C. von Carnap-Bornheim (ed.), Beitrage zu romischer und barbarischer Bewaffnung, 1994, 101-108
794. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: SHA Hadr. 12,8; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 137
795. societas with expansion of Pharasmanes’ realm
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 69,15,3; SHA Pius 9,6; cf. AE 1959, 38; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 138 L: Kerler 41-43
lit./ num.
Tx: SHA Pius 9,6; BMCRE 4, 204, no. 1272 = RIC 3, r10, no. 619: REX ARMENIIS DATUS; TL: Kehne, AuV, no.
791.
societas? P. enthroned as
kg. of Osroene*
L: Ziegler 1, 105f.; Kerler 28f.; Birley 2, 78, 153f.
1996, 89
L: Ziegler 1, 108; Kerler 34; Birley 2, 153f.
796. amicitia
Vologaises [3] Il withdraws own kg. from Armenia*
139 L: Ziegler 1, rrof.; Chaumont 146f.; Kerler 44f.; Birley 1, 61
797. soctetas
lit./ num.
Tx: RIC 3, 255, no. 511-513 und 322, no. 1370-1375: REX ARMEN(iis) DAT(us); TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 141
L: Chaumont 1 5of.; Ziegler 1, 113f.; Kerler 52; Birley 1, 131 798. pax and amicitia 799. pax and amicitia
800. societas in exchange for
TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 142 L: Ziegler 1, 114; Kerler 55; Birley 1, 145 Roman negotiations with
lit.
Tx: Dio 71,3,1a; cf. SHA Aur. 14,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no.
legatio* of the
143
Marcomanni et al.
L: Birley 149, 168f.; Kehne 1, 190-1; Kehne 3, 310; idem, in: Friesinger, 39-50 lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,11,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 146 L: Kehne 1, 209; Stahl; Kehne 3, 311
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,11,2-4; 13,2-4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no.
subsidies 801. pax and amicitia
147 L: Kehne 1, 194-5; Stahl; Kehne 3, 311 802. societas in
exchange for subsidies;
prospect of settlement
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,11,6; 12,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 148
L: Kehne 1, 210; Stahl; Kehne 3, 3112
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
428
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
803. 172
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Marcomanni*
rest.? after ded.
ul.
804. 173?
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Quadi*
rest.? after ded.
ul.
Greek
805.
174 Or 175
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Marcomanni*
rev. of rest. conditions
ul.
Greek
806.
175
Marcus [2] Aurelius
lazyges*
rest.? after ded.
ul.
Greek
807. 176
Marcus [2] Aurelius
Vologaises [4] II]
Taf.
bl.
Latin
808.
176
Marcus [2] Aurelius
unnamed kgs. of the east
PCt.?/Taf.
bl.
Latin
809. after 177
Marcus [2] Aurelius
lazyges*
rev. of rest. conditions?
ul.
Greek
810.
Commodus*
Marcomanni*
likelier unilateral sworn rest. than PGE
— ul.
Greek
180
Greek/Latin
with FRt.; WR, Ne,, PHe.: PCie:
et al. 811.
180
Commodus*
Quadi*
likelier unilateral sworn rest. than PEE
ul.
Greek
Sion cue
Commodus*
Quadi*
rev.
ul.
Greek
Sia cmos
Commodus*
Marcomanni*
rey.
ul.
Greek
814. 182 or 183 ?
Commodus*
Buri*
PGE?
ul.?
Greek
815. 193
Pescennius* Niger
Vologaises [5] IV
ALt.?
ul.
Greek
816.
Pescennius* Niger
Barsemius, kg. of Hatra*
ALt.?
ul.
Greek
Septimius [II 7] Severus
Barsemius
ALt.? after ded.?
ull.
Latin
PCtr ink
bl.?
Greek
Trn.
bl.
Latin
ul.
Greek
193
817. 198
inf. 818.
199?
819. 210
Septimius [II 7] Severus
Rome
—_—-Vologaises [5] IV
Camerinum*
foedus aequum
820. 212/3
Caracalla*
Germani* on North — conditional rest. Sea coast after ded.
Som. 2s
Caracalla*
Germani* E of Rhine
not foedus
Greek
(Alamanni*)
822. 218
Macrinus*
Artabanus [8] IV
PCt.
bl.
Greek
429
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
803. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,8,1; 71,15; SHA Aur. 22,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 149 L: Stahl; Kehne 3, 311; idem, s.v. Markomannen, RGA
804. pax and amicitia
lit. inf.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,16,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 150
805. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,15; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 151 L: Kehne 1, 142 with note 172; Stahl; Kehne 3, 311; idem,
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,16,1—-2; 17,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 152
807. amicitia
lit.
Tx: SHA Aur. 26,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 153 L: Ziegler 1, 116; Birley 1, 193
808. amicitia
lit.
Tx: SHA Aur. 26,1; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 154 L: Ziegler 1, 116; Birley 1, 193
809. amicitia; (not
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 71,18; 19,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 155
lit.
Ix: Cass. Dio 72,2,1-4; cf. Cass. Dio 71,15; SHA Comm. 3,5; Hdn. 1,6,8; SA/Tr: GW 320-327; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 156 L: G. Alfoldy, in: Historia 20, 1971, 84-10; Kehne 1, 216-265; idem, s.v. Markomannen, RGA 19, 298; Kehne 3, 313f.; Stahl
similar conditions to 810., lit. but settlement-free zone 76 stadia deeper
Tx: Cass. Dio 72,2,1-4; cf. SHA Comm. 3,5; Hdn. 1,6,8; SA/Tr: GW 320-327; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 157 L: as no. 810
Commodus excuses Quadi
Tx: Cass. Dio 72,2,1-4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 158
19, 297
s.v. Markomannen, RGA 19, 297 806. pax and amicitia
(not societas)
permanent grant of 8,000
lazygian cavalry
L: Kehne 1, 157-8; Stahl; Kehne 3, 312
societas)
L: Ziegler 1, 116; Birley 1, 193
810. pax and amicitia, not societas
811. pax and amicitia
812. amicitia
lit.
from grain supply; one-off provision of £3,000 Quadi soldiers in place of annual
L: cf. 810.
recruitment
813. amicitia
as 812, but fewer soldiers to be provided
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 72,2,1-4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 158 L: cf. 810.
814. pax and amicitia
lit./pap.
E:R.J.A. Talbert, in: ZPE 71, 1988, 137-147; cf. Cass. Dio 72,3,1-2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 159 L: K. Dietz, in: Friesinger, 7-15; Kehne 3, 314
815. societas?
lit.
Tx: Hdn. 3,1,2; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 161
816. societas?
lit.
Tx: Hdn. 3,1,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 162
L: Ziegler 1, 130 L: Ziegler 1, 130 817. societas?
ins.
Tx: AE 1958, 239f.; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 162a
818. pax as per status
lit.
Tx: Hdn. 4,15,7. 8; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 166
quo
L: Ziegler 1, 132 with note 30, cf. 137; — Parthian and Persian Wars.
819. societas
ins.
Tx: CIL XI 5632 = ILS 432; SA/C: StV 3, no. 430; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 168 L: Horn 59 note 28; Norr 61; Luraschi 27f. note 19; Galsterer rorf.
820. amicitia in
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 77,14,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 171
821. amicitia and societas without contract
lit.
Tx: Hdn. 4,7,3; cf. Cass. Dio 77,14,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 172
822. pax; Artabanus
lit.
Tx: Hdn. 4,10,15 4,15,8-9; Cass. Dio 79(78),27,1-3; cf.
exchange for subsidies
receives
AE 1964, 229; SHA Macr. 8,3; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 174
substantial WR
L: Ziegler 1, 13.4f.; WD 33
B. INTERNATIONAL
date 823. 218
TREATIES
430
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
Macrinus*
Tiridates [6] Il, kg. of PCt./SRt.?
style
lang.
bl.
Greek
Armenia*
824. c. 226/7
Rome
Hatra*/regnum Araborum
ALt. inf.
bl.
Latin
825. 233
Severus [2] Alexander
Ardashir [1] I
AMa.?
bl.?
Greek/Latin
826.
Rome
Goti*
PCt./
bl.
Greek/Latin
238
ALt.?
827. 244
Philippus [2] Arabs
Sapor [1] I
PCt./SRt.
ul.
Greek/Latin/ Persian
828. 245
Rome
Baquates*
Taf.?
bl.
Latin
S2omeass
Trebonianus* Gallus
Goti* (under
RCE
ul.
Greek/Latin
Cniva*?)
830. after 260 and before 270
Rome/Claudius [I] 2] If Gothicus ?
Tuthungi* (and Alemanni* ?)
rest./PCt./ALt. after ded.? inf.
bl.
Greek
831. C. 260-264
Gallienus*
Odaenathus [2]
ALt.?
ul.?
Latin
83250270
Aurelian (Aurelianus [3])
Vandali*
rest./PCt./ALt. after ded.?
bl.
Greek
"* According to which M. Tullius [II 7] Menophilus (who, as governor of Moesia” inferior was in no position to make a binding stipulation of the annual payments to the Goti*) rejected a similar request from the Carpi*. "3 Where, in the reign of Philippus Arabs, the Goths were designated amici and foederati granted annual payments, and their stipendia were withheld "4 Historicity as an INt. is disputed, as there is also evidence of mere sharing in power as Augustus: SHA Gall. 12.
431
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
823. pax with subsidies?
lit.
Tx: Cass. Dio 79(78),27,4; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 175
824. societas
ins.
SA/C: D. Oates, in: Sumer 11, 1955, 39-43, here nos. 79-81; A. Maricq, in: Syria 34, 1957, 288-296; TL:
Kehne, AuV, no. 176 L: Winter 2, 70f.; Kettenhofen 20f.; J. Wieseh6fer, in: Klio 64, 1982, 437-447; Isaac 154; St.R. Hauser, in: J. Wieseh6fer (ed.), Das Partherreich und seine Zeugnisse, 1998, 493-528; WD 184-186.
825. pax on the basis of the status quo ante
inf.
SA/C: WD 87-93; TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 177 L: — Parthian and Persian Wars; Ziegler, 142
826. pax and amicitia in exchange for
lit.
Tx: Petr. Patr. fr. 8;1* cf. SHA Max. Balb. 16,3 and Iord. Get. 89;'3 TL: Kehne, AuV, no. 179
annual payments of money; also societas? 827. pax and amicitia
L: Scardigli, Bez. 225; Kerler 150, 153
Sapor [1] I receives ransom, ins./lit./ Roman WR‘/tribute, part of num.
E: Inscription of Sapor J on Ka’be-ye Zartost (SKZ) in Naq§-e Rostam*; RIC 4,3, no. 69; Zon. 12,19; Zos.
Armenia (Greater Armenia or Persarmenia)
1,19,13 3,32,43 Euagr. 5,73 Sync. 683,1; Aristid. 35,3 5-36 et al. SA/Tr/C: WD 141-144; SA/Tr: DL 45f. L: Ziegler 1, 142f.; Winter 2, 97-113 (on the S), 114-123 (evaluation); Kettenhofen 34-36 with note 72; M. Zyromski, in: Eos 85, 1998, 107-119; Southern, 71; WD
40-44 828. pax
ins.
E: E. Frézouls, in: Bullétin d’Archéologie marocaine 2, 1957, no. 9 = AE 1954, 110 L: D. Di Vita-Evrad, in: ZPE 68, 1987, 193-225; A. Gutsfeld, Romische Herrschaft und einheimischer Widerstand in Nordafrika, 1989, 143-146; cf. C.R. Whittaker, in: CAH 11, 2000, 514-546, here 523f.
829. pax and amicitia
lit.
in exchange for annual payment 830. pax and amicitia in exchange for
Tx: Zos. 1,24, cf. 1,31; lord. Get. 106; Zon. 12,21
L: Scardigli, Bez. 226-241 lit.
annual payment
Tx: Dexippus fr. 6,1. 5. 7. 12 (FGrH); cf. AE 1993, 1231; Tr/C: GLOFM 3, no. 73 L: L. Bakker, in: Germania 71, 1993, 369-386; I. Konig, in: Historia 46, 1997, 341-354; H. Castritius, in: D. Geuenich (ed.), Die Franken und die Alemannen bis zur
‘Schlacht bei Ziilpich’ (496/97), 1998, 349-366; Southern ro9f.; cf. no. 833
831. societas
lit./
Tx: SHA Tyr. Trig. 21,5; cf. (the confused report) Ioh.
ins.?
Mal. 12, p. 298 and (the better one) 12, p. 297; cf. CIL VIII
22765; ILS 8923;'4 SA/Tr: DL 68-83, 5 sf. L: Kettenhofen 125; Kerler 170-174; Ziegler 1, 143f.; Isaac 220f.; WD 44; Southern ror, 316f. note 23 832. pax and societas
Vandali give hostages and _ lit. are allowed to withdraw unhindered
Tx: Dexippus fr. 24 (FHG 4,685) = fr. 7 (FGrH); Zos. 1548,2; Ix/C: GLQEM 3..no. 73, 14x L: Schmidt 2, rof.
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
432
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
833. 271
Aurelian (Aurelianus [3])
Tuthungi*
ALt. after ded.? inf.
ul.
Greek/Latin
834. 276
Probus [1]
9 kgs. of the Transrhenane Germani*
rest. with PHe.
ul.
Latin
S35. 277
Probus [1]
Goti*
ded. with rest.
ul.
Latin
Sa Guna 7)
Probus [1]
Lugii* (under
ded. with rest.
ul.
Greek
Semno)
837. c. 278
Probus [1]
Burgundiones* and __ rest./PCt. (after Vandali* ded.?)
ul.
Greek
838. 276-279
Probus [1]
Narses [1] (brother of Sapor [1] I), prince-governor of Persian Armenia*
PC.
bl.
Latin/ Aramaic
839. 288
Diocletian (Diocletianus [r])
Vahram [2] II (= Bahram = Varanes)
PCt./ sponsio*
bl.
Latin
840. 289
Maximian (Maximianus — Franci* (Chattua[r]) rii*?) under Gennobaudes
ded. with rest.
ul.
Latin
841. c.290?
Narses [1]
Tiridates [7] III (?) of Armenia*
PCt.?
Persian
842, G 20300
Rome
Imrw’ulgais, rex Araborum
RCt/ALt.?
Arabic
843. 298 or 299
Diocletian (Diocletianus [7])
Narses [1]
PCt./SRt./TRt.
844. 323
Constantine I
Ariaricus, kg. of the
(Constantinus [1])
Goti*
Constantine I
Sapor [2] II (Shapur)
845. 324
bl.
Greek/Latin/ Syrian
—ALt.
ul.
Latin
Taf.
bl.
Greek
(Constantinus [1])
"’ The peace of 337 referred to in Euseb. V. Const. 4,57 is Eusebius’ invention: CAMERON/HALL 336; cf. BLOCKLEY 4, 12. Sapor also denied Constantius [2] Il pax and amicitiae foedus on the basis of the status quo ante: Amm. Marc. 17,14,1-3, cf. 17,5,£0—-15; on which e.g. ScHULZ, Vélk. 101; BLOCKLEY 4, 12-14.
ADS
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
833. societas
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Not. Dign. Or. 28,43; 33,31; cf. 32,36; Aur. Vict. Caes. 35,2; Ps. -Aur. Vict. 35,2; Dexippus fr. 6 (FGrH); 7,4; LOS. 1,49,1 et al.;
Tr/C: GLOFM 3, no. 73; H.W. Bird, Liber de Caesaribus of Sextus Aurelius Victor, 1994, 148 (Intro./Tr/C) L: A. Alfoldi, in: idem, Studien zur Geschichte der
Weltkrise des 3. Jh. n. Chr., 1967, 427-430; Kerler 216-225; Lippold 2o1f.; R.T. Saunders, in: Historia 41, 1992, 311-327; E. Cizek, L’Empereur Aurélien et son
temps, 1994, 94-96 834. pax
Germanic kgs. give hostages etc., make war
Tx: SHA Prob. 14,2-7 ; Tr/C: GLQFM 3, no. 106 L: Kerler 240-252; Lippold 1, 211f.; Southern 129, 329
contributions and provide
note 68
lit.
16,000 recruits
835. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: SHA Prob. 16,3 L: Scardigli, Bez. 258f.; Kerler 251
836.
pax
lit.
Ix:'Z0s. 1367,3; 1t/€: GEORM 35 no. 142
837.
pax
lit.
Tx: Zos. 1,68,1-3; Ir/C: GLQFM 3, no. 141
838.
pax
lit.
839.
indefinite pax
lit.
L: Schmidt 2, 9 Tx: Moses [2] of Chorene*, Historia Armeniae 2,77 (with wrong names); SHA Prob. 17,1-6 (with wrong names); 18,1; SA/Tr: DL 111, 317 with note 3
L: Schulz, Volk. ror; Kerler 253-256 and amicitia
Tx: Pan. Lat. 10(2),9,2; 7,5-63 9,23 cf. 8(5),3,33 11(3),6,63 SA/Tr/C: DL 1arf.; C: U. Asche, Roms
Weltherrschaftsidee und Aufsenpolitik in der Spatantike im Spiegel der Panegyrici Latini, 1983; C.E.V. Nixon, B.S. Rodgers, The Panegyrici Latini, 1994
L: Winter 2, 137-148; WD 46f.; Angeli Bertinelli 120-133. lit.
840. amicitia
‘Ex: Bans Wats 16, 10;45 ci. m1,5,45 1037525 114752
L: Beisel 16; H. Castritius, s.v. Gennobaudes, RGA 11, 77. 841.
amicitia?; shared rule?
ins.
‘Paikuli* inscription’ 842. amicitia/ societas?
843. pax and amicitia
‘Peace of Nisibis’; cession of the Transtigritan prvs.
E/Tr/C: H. Humbach, P.O. Skjaervo, The Sassanian
Inscription of Paikuli III 1, 1983 L: Winter 2, 148-151 with note 4 ins.
Tx: F. Altheim, R. Stiehl, Die Araber in der Alten Welt, Vol. 2, 1965, 312-317; J. A. Bellamy, in: Journal of the American Oriental Society 105, 1985, 31-51. L: WD 197-200; Isaac 23 9f.
lit.
Tx: Petr. Patr. fr.
13-14; Fest. 14, 25; Amm. Marc. 25,7,9;
Aur. Vict. Caes. 39,33; Josua Stylites 7; loh. Mal. 12, p. 312, 16ff.; Expositio totius mundi 22 et al.; SA/Tr/C: WD
144-155; DL 131-134 L: Ziegler 1, 145; Blockley 1; Winter 1, 47-58; Winter 2, 169-207 (Sandcontent), 208-215 (evaluation), 163-168;
WD 48-51, 144-155; Angeli Bertinelli 120-133; Isaac 229; Blockley 4, 5-7 844. societas
lit.
Tx: Anon. Vales. 21; lord. Get. 111-112 SA/C: Barcelo, no. 1; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 1
845. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Euseb. V. Const. 4,8-13;'5 SA/C: Barcelo, no. 2; Tr/
C: DL 150-152; Cameron/Hall, 313f.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 4 L: Lee 2, 37; Blockley 4, 10
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
434
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
846. 324?
Constantine I (Constantinus [1])
Tiridates [8], kg. of Armenia”*
Sa
Constantine I (Constantinus |r])
Indians, Ethiopians, Blem(m)yes*
Constantine |
Iberians*
PCia
Constantine I
Ariaricus, kg. of the
PCt./ALt.
(Constantinus [1])
Goti*
Beano)
848. 324?
type | AMa./ALt.
AMa.?
style
lang.
bl.
Greek
bl.
Greek/Latin
Greek
(Constantinus [1])
849. 332
ul.
Greek/Latin
850. c. 338
Constantius [2] II
Arabs*
PCt./ALt.
851. 342
Constans [1]
Franci*
rest., SPOnsio
ul.
Greek Greek/Latin
852. 354
Constantius [2] II
Gundomadus and Vadomarius [2], kg. of the Alamanni*
Per
bl.
Latin
853. 356
Constantius [2] II
Alamanni*
RG
854. 356
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Franci*
PGE.
ul.
Latin
Latin
855. 357
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Alamanni*
PCr tre.
bl.
Latin
856. 358
Julian (Iulianus [1r])
Chamavi*
rest./PCt.
ul
Greek/Latin
857. 358
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Suomarius, kg. of the _rest./ Alamanni* sponsio
ul.
Latin
858. 358
Julian (ulianus [11])
Hortarius*, kg. of the Alamanni*
rest./ sponsio
ul.
Latin
859. 358
Constantius [2] II
Sarmatae*
rest./
ul.
Latin
ul.
Latin
ul.
Latin
ul.
Latin
ul.
Latin
ul.
Greek/Latin
al:
Greek/Latin
sponsio
860.
358
Constantius [2] II
Arahar (son ofa kg. _ rest./ of the Quadi*) and
— foedus
Usafer (dux of the Sarmatae*)
861.
358
Constantius [2] Il
Zizais, kg. of the Sarmatae*
rest./ sponsio
862.
358
Constantius [2] II
Vitrodor (son of the _ rest./sponsio
kg. of the Quadi*), Vidurus, Agili-
mundus (subregulus) 863. 358
864. 358
865. 358
Constantius [2] I
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Limigantes (Picenses)
rest./sponsio/foedus?
Salian Franks
ded./
(Franci*)
rest.?/Asv.?
Chamavi*
ded. with rest.
435
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 20,11,1-2; Agath. (FHG 5,187f.) et al.; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 3; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 5 L: Schulz, Volk. 97f.
lit.
Tx: Rufin. 1,9; Socr. 1,19; Euseb. V. Const. 4,7; 4,50; Tr/ C: Cameron/Hall; TL: Schulz, , Volk., no. 2
848. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Sozom. Hist. eccl. 2,7; Socr. 1,20; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 3
849. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Euseb. V. Const. 4,5; lord. Get. 112; Anon. Vales. 31; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 4; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 6 L: Blockley 4, 8f.; Lippold 2; Schulz, Volk. 23, 28-41, esp. 32-35, 66; Barcelo 54-56; Gutmann 114f.; Scardigli, Bez. 261-271; Heather 1, 108f.
846. societas
847. amicitia;
formal AMa. or merely diplomatic contacts through a legatio*?
850. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Julian. Or. 1,21d; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 7
851. pax, amicitia and obsequium
lit.
Tx: Jer. Chron. a. 2358; Chron. min. 9, 236 (for 342); Socr. 2,13; Lib. Or. 19,129. 13 1f. et al.; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 6; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 8 L: Beisel17f.
852. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 14,10,14. 16; 16,12,17; 21,3,4; SA/C: Barcel, no. 7; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 9
853. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 16,12,16; SA/C: Barcelé, no. 8
854. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 16,3,2; SA/C: Barceld, no. 9; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 10 L: Drinkwater; Beisel 24
855. ten-month pax/ indutiae*
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,1,11-13, cf. 17,6,1; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 10; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 12
856. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,8,5; Eunap. fr. 18.6; Zos. 3,7,6-7; cf. Julian. Ep. 280 b-c; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 97, 116, 141; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 14 L: Drinkwater
857. pax, amicitia and obsequium
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,10,3-4. 10; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 11; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 15
858. pax, amicitia and obsequium
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,10,7—10; SA/C: Barcel6, no. 12; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 16
859. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 18,12,11; SA/C: Barcel6, no. 13; TL:
860. pax, amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,12,12—16; SA/C: Barceld, no. 14; TL:
Schulz, Volk., no. 17
and obsequium
861.
pax, amicitia
Schulz, Vélk., no. 18
lit.
and obsequium 862. pax, amicitia
Barcelo, no. 15; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 19 lit.
and obsequium
863. pax, amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,13,21-23; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 18; TL:
lit.
Tx: Zos. 3,6,2-3; Amm. Marc. 17,8,3—-4 et al.; TL: Schulz,
Schulz, Volk., no. 21
societas? 865. pax and amicitia
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,12,21; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 16; TL:
Schulz, Volk., no. 20
and obsequium 864. obsequium or
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,12,9-10. 17-20; 17,14,30; SA/C:
Volk., no. 13 L: Beisel 2 5f. lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 17,8,5; Zos. 3,7,6-7; Julian. Ep. ad Athen. 280b-c; SA/C: Barceld, no. 20
L: Drinkwater; Beisel 27f.
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
436
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Julian (Iulianus [11])
kgs. of the Alamanni*
BGt
ul.
Greek/Latin
867. before 360
Rome
Picti* and Scotti*
PCt.?
868.
Julian (Iulianus [11])
Attuarian Franks
PCr
ul.
Latin
PCt./SRt./TRt./ IFt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
866. 359
360
Latin
(Franci*)
869.
363
Sapor [2] II (Shapur)
Jovian (lovianus*)
870. before 367
Sapor [2] II
Arsaces [4] II, kg. of |PCt. Armenia*
bl.
Greek
871. 369
Valens [1]
Athanaric*, kg. of the Goti*
PGE:
bl.
Greek/Latin
872. 369
Valentinian | (Valentinianus [1])
Alamanni*
PCE:
ul.
Latin
873. 370
Valentinian I (Valentinianus [1])
Burgundiones*
ALt.
bl.
Latin
874. 371 or
Valens [2]
Sapor [2] II
tre./
bl.
Latin
37516 ?
IFt.?
875. 374
Valentinian | (Valentinianus [1r])
Macrianus*,kg.of the Alamanni*
PCt.
bl.
Latin
876. 374
Valentinian | (Valentinianus [1])
Sarmatae™* (liberi)
PCE:
ul.
Latin
877. 375 or 376
Valentinian II (Valentinianus [3])
Quadi*
PCt.?
ul.
878. 376
Valens [2]
Tervingi* (later Visigoths*)
rest.? after ded.*® ALt.?
ul.
Latin
STON B77
Valens [2]
Mavia", gn. of the Saraceni*
PCt./ALt.
ul.
Greek
880.
378
Gratian (Gratianus [2])
Lentienses*
rest.
ul.
Latin
881.
380
Gratian (Gratianus [2])
Alatheus (dux or kg.
Asv./ALt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
of the Greuthungi*), Safrax (dux or kg. of the Alani*, Hunni*)
882. 381
Theodosius [2] I
Athanaric* and successor
rest./ALt./Asv.
ul.
Greek/Latin
883. 382
Theodosius [2] I
Visigoths*
ALt./Asv.
bl.
Greek/Latin
‘© The formal restitution following deditio* is questionable; provision of troops, at least, was formally agreed.
437
B. III.
subseq.
1,000
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
866. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 18,2,15-19; Eunap. fr. 13; SA/C: Barceld, no. 21; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 22
867. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 20,1,1
868. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 20,10,2; SA/C: Barcelo, no. 23; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 23
869. 30 years’ pax and neutrality
lit.
L: Drinkwater Tx: Amm. Marc. 25,7,5-14; 27,12,1; ZOS. 3,313 333 Oros. 753 1,1-2; cf. Lydus, Mag. 3,52; SA/Tr/C: Barcelé, no. 24; DL 237-274; WD 155-160, 222-224 (on the issue of joint frontier protection duties); TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 24 L: Ziegler 1, 146f.; Blockley 1; Lee 1, 369; Schulz, Volk. 101-107; Winter 1, 58-62; WD 219-227; Angeli
Bertinelli 13 4-164 with overall historical context 870. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Procop. Pers. 1,5,13—-15; cf. Amm. Marc. 27,12,1-4;
871. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 27,5,7—10; Zos. 4,11,4; Them. Or. 10,206; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 3; Tr/C: HM 44; TL: Schulz,
SA/Tr/C: WD 112-114
Volk., no. 25 L: Burns 17, cf. 12-16; Schulz, Vélk. 42-56 872. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 28,2,6; Symmachus, Or. 2,1,1. 12. 15. 23; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 1 L: Gutmann 3o0f.; Drinkwater
873. societas
lit.inf.
Tx: Oros. 7,32,10-12; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 2; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 26 L: Anton 1, 238
874. indutiae* or
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 30,2,; 31,7,1
pax? and
L: Ziegler 1, 147; Blockley 4, 35-38
amicitia
875. pax and amicitia
lit.
or societas
Tx: Amm. Marc. 30,3,4-7; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 5; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 27 L: Schulz, Volk. 42-56; Drinkwater
876. pax
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 29,6,16; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 6
877. pax
inf.
SA/C: Gutmann, no. 7; cf. Amm. Marc. 30,6,1-2
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 31,4-5; Eunap. fr. 42; lord. Get. 131;
878.
sub dicione Romae or societas? Valens [2] allows
Zos. 4,26,1
the Tervingi collective
L: Burns 25-28; Schulz, Vélk. 58-65; Scardigli, Bez.
settlement and Roman supply
293-297; Heather 1, 122-128; Gutmann 13 5-142, 215
879. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Socr. 4,36; Sozom. Hist. eccl. 6,38; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 8; TL: Schulz, V6élk., no. 29 L: Schulz, Volk. 99
880.
lit.
Tx: Amm. Marc. 31,10,17; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 9; Tr/C:
pax, amicitia
and obsequium (also societas?)
881. societas
GLQFM 4, no. 97; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 28
lit.
Tx: lord. Get. 141; 142; Zos. 4,3 4,2; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 10; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 30 L: Burns 60-69; Gutmann 204-207
882. societas
lit.
Tx: Zos. 4,34,4; Oros. 7,34,6-7; lord. Get. 142-144; SA/ C: Gutmann, no. 11; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 31 L: Burns 56-60; Gutmann 207-209
883. societas
lit.
Tx: Iord. Get. 28 (145); 29 (146); Procop. Goth. 4,5,13; Pan, Lat. 2(12),32,3-43 22,3; Z08. 4,34,5; hem. Or.
18,211a.d; cf. Sozom. Hist. eccl. 7,4; Socr. 5,10 et al.; SA/ C: Gutmann, no. 12; TL: Schulz, no. 32 L: Burns 77-88; Schulz, Volk. 65-78; Scardigli, Bez.
305-307; Heather 1,
158-165; Gutmann 207-225
B. INTERNATIONAL
date 884. 384 ?, 386?, 388/9?
438
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
Theodosius [2] I
Sapor [3] Ill (or already Vahram [4]
PCt./IFt. PVt.?
bl.
Greek/Latin/ Armenian
ul.?
Latin
IV (Bahram/ Varanes?)
885. 389
Valentinian II
Marcomer” and
PCGt?
(Valentinianus [3])
Sunno
inf.
886. c. 391
Arbogastes*
Franci*
rest./PCt./ALt. ? after ded.?
ul.
Latin
887. 392?
Theodosius [2] I/Stilicho*
Visigoths* (Alaricus
rn.
bl.
Latin
[2] I?) 888.
392
Eugenius [1]
Franci*
Trn.
bl.?
Latin
889. 392
Eugenius [1]
Alamanni*
‘Ten:
bl.?
Latin
890. 395
Stilicho*
Franci*
Trn.?
bl.?
Latin
891. 395
Stilicho*
Suebi*
Trn.?
bl.?
Latin
892. 394/5
Alaricus [2] I
PCt/ALt.
bl.
Latin
893. 397
Arcadius*/Eutropius [4]
Alaricus [2] I
PCt./Asv.
bl.
Latin
894. 400?
Arcadius*/Anthemius [1]
Sassanids*/Yazdgird
Trn.
bl.
Greek/Latin
Arcadius*/Rufinus [3]
[x] I 895. 400
Arcadius*
Hunni*/Uldin*
PGE.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
896. 401?
Honorius [3]
Alaricus [2] I
Asv.2%7
bl.
Latin
897. 401 or 402
Honorius [3]
Vandali*
PGE?
bl.
Latin
898. 403, 404 or 405
Alaricus [2] I
Honorius [3 ]/Stilicho*
PCt/ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
899. 406 ?
Honorius [3]/Stilicho*
Hunni*
ALt./Asv.
bl.
Greek/Latin
900. 407-409 ?
Constantinus [3] II]
Franci* and
ALt./Taf.?
ul
Greek/Latin
Alamanni* (also
Burgundiones* ?)
"7 Treaty not observed by Honorius.
A439
B. III.
subseq.
1,000
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
884. pax and amicitia after partition of Armenia
lit.
Tx: Oros. 7,34,8; Aur. Vict. epit. 48,5; Faust. Byz. 6,1 et al.; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 13; TL: Schulz, no. 33 L: Ziegler 1, 137, 148; Blockley 3; WD 53 with note 142, 114 with note 356
885. pax?
lit.
Tx: Sulpicius Alexander 1,4 = Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 107; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 14 L: H. Castritius, s.v. Gennobaudes, RGA r1, 78
886. societas
Tx: Sulpicius Alexander 1,6 = Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; cf.
Paulinus of Milan, Vita Ambrosii 30 and Oros. Hist. 753557; It/C: GLQFM 4, no. 107, 119 887. societas
lit.
Tx: Claud. de consulatu Stilichonis 1,115; TL: Schulz,
Volk., no. 34 L: Gutmann 223; Heather 1, 185f. 888. pax and societas?
lit.
Tx: Sulpicius Alexander 1,7 = Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; cf. Paulinus of Milan, vita Ambrosii 30 and Oros. Hist. 753557; It/C: GLQFM 4, no. 107, 119; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 15; TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 36
889. pax and
lit.
societas?
Tx: Sulpicius Alexander 1,7 = Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 107; SA/C: Gutmann, no. 16; TL: Schulz,
Volk., no. 36 890. societas
lit.
Tx: Claud. in Eutropium 1,377-383; panegyricus de IV consulatu Honorii 439-459; cf. de consulatu Stilichonis 1,188—245; Oros. 7,40,3 et al.; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 105;
TL. Schulz, Volk., no. 35 891. societas
lit.
v. 890.
892. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Claud. in Rufinum 2,73-76 L: Scardigli, Bez. 324, 330f.; otherwise Heather 1, 201
893. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Claud. in Eutropium 2,213-218; bellum Gothicum
496f., 53 5ff. et al.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 37 L: Scardigli, Bez. 324-3315 Schulz, Volk. 79-83; Heather I, 204-206
894. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Cod. Iust. 4,63,4; Theod. HR 8; CSCO, Scriptores Syri 3,3 p. 106 Brooks et al. L: Blockley 4, 48f., 196 note 17-22
895. pax and societas?
lit.
Tx: Zos. 5,22,3; Marcell. 406 et al.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 47 L: Blockley 4, 53, 198 note 3
896. societas?
lit.
Tx: lord. Get. 152-153
897.
lit.
Tx: Claud. bellum Gothicum 414f.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 39
898. pax and societas
‘Treaty of Pollentia’? Alaric lit.
Tx: Claud. bellum Gothicum 566; Claud. paneg. de VI
confirmed as magister
consulatu Honorii 206, 210; Zos. 5,29,5-9; Oros. 7,38,25
militum”
per Illyricum
Olympiodorus fr. 2; TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 40; cf. ibid., no. 38
L: Scardigli 324-331; Heather 1, 211f.; Wolfram r59f.; 899. societas or
lit.
Tx: Salv. Gub. 7,39; Sid. Apoll. Carm. 7,3 44ff.; cf. Zos.
provincial
5550513 Oros. 7,37,12; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 41,
subjection?
probably identical to ibid. no. 48
900. societas
lit.
Tx: Sozom Hist. eccl. 9,13,25 cf. 9,12,3; Oros. 7,40,4. 73 Frigeridus in Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; Prosp. 1056 p. 4525 Zos. 6,3,1-3; It/C: GLQFM 4, no. 118, 125, 131, 141;
TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 43 L: Anton 1, 238
B. INTERNATIONAL
date gor. 408
440
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Alaricus [2] I
city of Rome/
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
Honorius [3]"®
902. 408/09
Theodosius [3] II
Sassanids*/Yazdgird [x] 1
Trn./TRa.
bl.
Greek
903. 409/10
Alaricus [2] I
Attalus [rr] Priscus
PCt./ALt. after ded.
bl.
Greek
904. 411
lovinus [2]
Burgundiones*/ ALt./Taf.? Alamanni*/Franci*/ _ inf. Alani*
bl.
Latin
905. 412 (or 414?)
Theodosius [3] II
bl.
Greek
bl.
Latin
POE ALE Hunni*/Khan Karaton
906. 412 Or 413
Honorius [3]
Ataulfus* (Athaulf)
=PCt./ALt./Asv.
907. 412?
Honorius [3]
Vandali*'?
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Latin
908. 413?
Honorius [3 ]/Constantius [6] as magister militum
Burgundiones*/ Gundahar
Asv./ALt.
bl.
Latin
909. 416
Honorius [3]/ Constantius [6] Il
Vallia*, kg. of the Visigoths*
PCt./ALt.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
910. 418
Honorius [3]
Vallia* or Theodericus (Theoderic) [1] I
PCt./Asv./ Trn.?/ALt.?
bl.
Greek
QII. 422
Theodosius [3] II
Sassanids*/ Vahram [5] V Gor (Bahram = Varanes)
PGr
bl.
Greek/ Syrian
912. 426 (427, 430, 439°)
Aetius [2]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [1] I, kg. of the Visigoths*
Trn.
bl.
Latin
913. 427?
Aetius [2]/ Valentinian II (Valentinianus [4])
Hunni*
ALt./SRt.
bl.
Greek
914. before 430
Theodosius [3] II
Amilzuri, Itimari,
PCt.?/ALt.
bl.?
Greek/Latin
bl.
Greek
Tounsoures, Boisci
(sub-tribes of the Hunni*)
915.
430?
916. 430
Theodosius [3] II
Rua(s), kg. of the Hunni*
PCt.
Valentinian III (Valentinianus [4])
Suebi*
IGhs
"8 Honorius [3] supposed to make Alaric magister militum* "? Mistaken reference to Godigiselus*.
per Gallias but did not adhere to treaty.
Latin
441
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
gor. subordinate
INTERNATIONAL
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Zos. 5,42,1-2; 44,1-2, cf. 5,40,1ff.; 41,43 50,2-5 1,2;
societas in exchange for hostages and war contribution 902.
TREATIES
TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 45
100 years’ pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Socr. 7,8; Sozom. Hist. eccl. 9,4; cf. Cod. lust. 4,63,4; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 44 L: Blockley 4, 48, 54; Winter 1, 62-65
903. societas
inf.
Ixt\Zos: 6,6,1-7,25 10,1
904. soctetas
lit.
Tx: Frigeridus in Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,9; cf. sources in no. 900.3; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 131; cf. Schulz, Vélk., no. 42 L: Demandt, Spatantike 148; Anton 1, 239
905. societas
lit.
Tx: Zos. 5,22,3; TL: Schulz, Vélk., no. 47
906. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: lord. Get. 164; Oros. 7,43,3. 7-8; Olympiodorus fr. 19. 22 et al.; SA/Tr: Maas, 303; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 49
907. short-term
lit.
Tx: Procop. Vand. 1,3,2-3; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 50
908. societas (provincial subjection?)
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1250 a. 4133; Cassiod. chron. a. 413; Tr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 129; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 46 L: Anton 1, 239
909. societas
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1259 a. 416; Chron. Gall. 562, p. 655; Oros. 743,10. 12-15; lord. Get. 165; Jord. Rom. 326; Olympiodorus fr. 30; Hydat. 60 (Chron. min. 2,19); TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 51 L: Schulz, Volk. 86-89
910. societas
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1271 a. 419; Chron. Gall. 73, p. 654; Hydat. 69, cf. 63, 67, 69 (Chron. min. 2,19); Paul. Pell. 564-581 et al.; SA/Tr: Maas 303f.; TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 52 L: Pohl 1, 432; Heather 224; Schulz, Volk. 38, 86-89; Burns 247-274; Goffart 103-126; Thompson 50-52
9II.
lit.
Tx: Sozom. Hist. eccl. 9,4; Marcell. 422; Theoph. chr. a. m. 5921 (for AD 428/9); Malchus, fr. 1; Procop. Pers. I,12,5; Josua Stylites 7-8; Ioh. Mal. 18 p. 449 et al.; SA/ Tr/C: WD 160-164; TL: Schulz, no. 53 L: Schulz, Vélk. ro8f.; Blockley 4, 57f., 200 note 37
lit.
Tx: Sid. Apoll. Carm. 7,214ff. (Heather 1, 224 considers part of the treaty of 418); TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 54
lit.
Tx: Prise, fr. 111; cf: fr. 11.2, ). 578f.; cf. Marcell. 427: TL: Schulz, no. 58 L: W. Dahlheim, s.v. Aetius, RGA 1, 92; Schulz, Volk. 112
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 2; cf. lord. Get. 90 L: Maenchen-Helfen 66, 272f.
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 2; Chron. Gall.
societas
100 years’ pax and amicitia
912. societas
L: Burns 275
913. societas
Hunni receive Pannonian settlements in the prv. of Savia
note 11; Maenchen-Helfen 64-67; Pohl 1, 250
914. pax? and short-term alliance 915. pax
Rua(s) receives annual
tribute of 350 lb of gold
116 p. 660; TL: Schulz, Volk.,
no. 55 L: Schulz, Volk. 112, 120; Pohl 1, 250; Maenchen-Helfen
69 916. pax
lit.
Tx: Hydat. 91 a. 430; TL: Schulz, no. 56
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
442
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
917. 432
Aetius [2]
Franci*
PCt.
ul.
Latin
918. 433
Aetius [2]*°
Rua(s), kg. of the
PCt.?/Asv.2/ALt.
bi.
Latin
PCt./ALt.?
bl.
Latin
PCt. with Nc. and
ul.
Greek
Hunni*
919. mid—430s
920. 434
Aetius [2]
Franci*
Hunni*/Khan Bleda and
Theodosius [3] II
Khan Attila*
TCTs
921. 434
Aetius [2]/ Valentinian II] (Valentinianus [4])
Hunni*/Khan Bleda and Khan Attila*
922.
Valentinian III (Valentinianus [4])
Geisericus*, kg. of the Vandali*
435
923. 435
Aetius [2]
Gundicharius*, kg.
= Trn./Taf.?
bl.
PCt./Asv.
bl.
Greek/Latin
ul.
Latin
PCt.
of the Burgundiones* 924. 439
Valentinian III (Valentinianus [4])
Theodericus (Theoderic) [1] I, kg. of the Visigoths*
PCt/Trn.2/ALt.?
bi.
Latin
925. 440
Aetius [2]
Alani* (under Sambida)
PCt./Asv.
bl.
Latin
926. 442
Aetius [2]
Alani* (under Goar)
PCt./Asyv.
bl.
Latin
927. 442
Valentinian III
Geisericus*, kg. of
PCt./SRt.
bl.
Latin
(Valentinianus [4])
the Vandali*
928. 442
Theodosius [3] II
Geisericus”, kg. of the Vandali*
PGr
929. 442
Attila*
Theodosius [3] II/ Aspar Ardabur [2]
PCt./Trn.? after one-year indutiae
930. 442
Theodosius [3] II/ Anatolius [2]
931. 443
Aetius [2]
Greek ul.
Greek
Yazdgird [2] Il, kg. of PCt. after one-year the Sassanids* indutiae?
bl.
Greek
Burgundiones*
bl.
Latin
Asv./ALt.?
*° Ratified by Valentinian III (Valentinianus |4]) at Ravenna. ** Theodosius concedes handover of prisoners, expulsion of refugees, unilateral neutrality, trade and annual tribute of 700 |b gold.
443
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
917. pax after ded.?
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF
GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
lit.
Tx: Hydat. 98 a. 432; cf. Prosp. 1298; Tr/C: GLQFM 4,
no. 129, 133; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 57 L: Anton 2, 417 918. societas
Rua(s) receives the Valeria, lit.
part of Pannonia*?
Tx: Merobaudes (MGH AA 14,11); Chron. Gall. 116 p.
660; Prosp. 1310 a. 432; Prisc. fr.
11.1 , cf. 11.2, |. 579;
TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 59 L: Pohl 1, 250; Schulz, Volk. 88 note 28;
Maenchen-Helfen 64-66 disputes the cession 919.
societas? inf.
lit.
Tx: Merobaudes (MGH AA 14,11); cf. lord. Get. 191 L: Anton 2, 417
920. pax (not amicitia); duration
“Treaty of Margus’*!
lit/ins.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 25 cf. fr. 6; 9.1 (reference to fugitivi in fr. 2); TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 60 L: Schulz, Volk. rrrf.; Blockley 4, 59-62;
dependent on
Maenchen-Helfen 66f.
Roman
subsidies 921. societas and amicitia;
Khan Attila becomes magister militum of the Western Empire
922. pax and societas
inf.
cf. no. 920.
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1321 a. 435; cf. Chron. min 3,458; Paul. Fest. 13,11; Procop. Vand. 1,4; Isid. historiae 74; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 62 L: Schulz, Volk. 92-96
923. pax
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1322 a. 435; Itr/C: GLQFM 4, no. 129; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 61 L: Anton I, 241
924. societas?
lit.
Tx: Hydat. 117 (for AD 439); Sid. Apoll. Carm. 7,308f.; Prosp. 1338 a. 439; lord. Get. 176-177; TL: Schulz,
925. societas and settlement in Gaulish Valentia
lit.
Tx: Chron. Gall. 124 p. 660; cf. Iord. Get. 194, 197, 204; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 64 L: Thompson 25
Volk., no. 63
926.
societas? settlement of the _ lit. Alani at Orléans
Tx: Chron. Gall. 127 p. 660; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 65 L: Thompson 25
927. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1347 a. 442; Victor Vitensis, Historia persecutionis 1,13; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 66 L: Schulz, Volk. 92-96
928.
lit.
Tx: Theoph. 5942 (for AD 449/50); cf. ibid. 5941
lit.
Tx: Marcell. 441; cf. Prisc. fr. 9.1 and the sources for the treaties of 447 and 450 L: Blockley 4, 62, 205 note 31, 206 note 38; Maenchen-Helfen 81-86
lit.
Tx: Procop. Pers. 1,2,15; 16,6; Theod. Hist. eccl. 5,37,53 Lydus, Mag. 3,52ff.; Sozom. Hist. eccl. 9,4; Marcell. 441 et al.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 67 L: Schulz, Volk. 107-109; Blockley 4, 6rf.
lit.
Tx: Chron. Gall. 128 p. 660; cf. ord. Get. 191; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 68 L: Goffart 127-161; Thompson 26f.; Anton 1, 241f.
929. pax
Rome grants Attila annual tribute of (1,000 lb?) gold etc.
930. pax and amicitia as per status quo ante 931.
societas? Settlement of the Burgundiones* in the Sapaudia
B. INTERNATIONAL TREATIES date
444
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style _ lang.
932. 447
Attila*
Theodosius [3] II/ Anatolius [2]
PCt./Trn.?
ul.
933. 449/450
Attila*
Theodosius [3]
Trn., perhaps with
ul.
934.
and
Anatolius [2]
tribute reduction?
Greek
450/1?
Attila*
Geisericus”*
ALt.?
Latin
935. before 450/1
Attila*
Gepidae*
ALt.?
Latin
936. before 450/1
Attila*
Ostrogoths*
ALt.?
Latin
937. 451
Aetius [2]/ Valentinian III (Valentinianus [4])
Theodericus (Theoderic) [1] I, kg. of the Visigoths*
ALt.
938. 451/2?
Aetius [2]/ Valentinian II] (Valentinianus [4])
939. 452
bl.
Latin
Thorismud [2], kg. of Trn. the Visigoths*
bl.
Latin
Attila*
Pope Leo [3] I
Per
ul.
Latin
940. 453?
Ardabur [3]
Saraceni*
POE?
941. 453?
Marcianus [6]
Blem(m)yes*
100 years’ PCt.
ul
Greek
942. 453?
Marcianus [6]
Nubians
PCt./Asv.
ul
Greek
943- 453
Valentinian III
Suebi*
REE
Valentinian III
Theodericus
Taf.
(Valentinianus [4])
(Theoderic) [2] I, kg.
Greek
Latin
(Valentinianus [4])
944. 453
bl.
Latin
bl.
Latin
of the Visigoths* 945. 454/52?
Marcianus [6]
Valamer*, kg. of the Ostrogoths*, with
=PCt./ALt./ Asy.
brothers Theodemir and Vidimir* 946. 454/5 ?
Marcianus [6]
Gepidae*
PGE.
bl.
Latin
947. 454/52
Marcianus [6]
Sarmatae*,
PCE/ALEC/ SRE?
bl:
Latin
Cemandri, Hunni*
948. 454/5 ?
Marcianus [6]
Scirit, Alani* et al.
PCt./SRt.?
bl.
Latin
949. 454/52
Marcianus [6]
Rugi* et al.
PCt./ALt.?/ Asv.
bl.
Latin
** Theodosius [3] Il and Anatolius [2] concede return of prisoners, expulsion of refugees, buffer zone south of the Danube, 6,000 lb gold as WR or tribute arrears and annual tribute of 2,100 |b gold to Attila.
445
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
observations
text
sources/literature
932. pax
‘First Peace of Anatolius’??
Li.
Tx: Marcell. 441 (ct. 442 and Chron. pasch. a. 442); Prisc. fr. 9.3, cf. fr. 10; Theoph. 5942 (for AD 449/50 = Prisc. fr. 9,4, a conflation of events between 442 and 450: Maenchen-Helfen 82-84 and Blockley 4, 206 note 38); TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 69 L: Blockley 4, 63f.; Schulz, Volk. 111-126; Maenchen-Helfen 82-93; Pohl 1, 251
933. pax
“Second Peace of Anatolius’? Rome agrees to return of prisoners and conditions of 447?
Tx: Prisc. fr. 15,3-4 , cf. fr. 13.1; Theoph. 5942 (for AD 449/50). Wrongly conflated by Schulz, Vélk., no. 69 with the PCt. of 442/3? L: Blockley 4, 66; Maenchen-Helfen 92
934. societas?
inf.
Tx: lord. Get. 184-185 E:Pohlin.25
935. societas?
inf.
Tx: Jord. Get. 199
L: Pohl 1, 251f. 936. societas?
inf.
Tx: Iord. Get. 199 EePohl ny 25 rt.
937. societas
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1364 a. 451; Hydat. 150; Paul. Fest. 14,3; Sid.
Apoll. Carm. 7,306-3 56, esp. 308; cf. Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,6-7; Prisc. fr. 21.1; lord. Get. 186-190; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 70 L: Wolfram 183; Schulz, Volk. 89-91; cf. Maenchen-Helfen 97f.; Pohl 1, 251f.
938. societas
lit.
Tx: Fredegar chron. 2,53; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 71
939. pax
lit.
Tx: Prosp. 1367 a. 452; lord. Get. 223-224 = Prisc. fr. 22.1; SA/Tr: Maas 324 L: Pohl 1, 252 (with lit. on source criticism);
940.
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 26
941. pax
lit.
Tx: Prisc. 27.1-2; TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 72
942. pax
lit.
Tx: Prisc. 27.1-2; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 72
943. pax
lit.
Tx: Hydat. 155; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 73
944. societas
inf.
Tx: Hydat. 158 L: Wolfram 184; Thompson 56
Maenchen-Helfen 105
945. pax
Valmer* and his brothers _ lit. receive Pannonia* and
Tx: Iord. Get. 263, 270; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 74 L: Pohl 1, 434
annual tribute payments 946. only pax and amicitia
Gepidae receive annual tribute payments
lit.
Tx: ord. Get. 263-264; TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 75
947. pax by settlement of the three tribes in Thracia*/Haemimontus
lit. inf.
Tx: lord. Get. 265 EpPohl 1.252)
948. pax; settlement in Moesia* and Scythia*
lit. inf.
Tx: lord. Get. 265
949. societas?; settlement in the prv. of Europa*
lit. inf.
Tx: Tord. Get. 266
B. INTERNATIONAL
date 950. 454/5 ?
446
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
Marcianus [6]
Hunni*
PCt/ALt.?/ Asv./
bl.
Latin
SRt.? 951. 455
Petronius Maximus [8]/Avitus [1]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [2] I
"Vath
bl.
Latin
952. 455
Avitus [1]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [2] II
Trn.
bl.
Latin
953. 455/6?
Avitus [1]
Suebi* and Visigoths*
PCt2
ml.
Latin
954. 455/6
Theodericus (Theoderic) {2] II
Burgundiones* (kg. Gundiok”*) et al.
ALt
bl.
Latin
955. before 456?
Marcianus [6]
Gobazes*, kg. of the
ALt
bl.
Greek
bazi*
956. 457?
Leo [4] I
Trn.
bl.
Greek
957. 457/8 ?
Majorian (Maiorianus [1]) Burgundiones*
Scirii
PCt./Asv.
bl.
Latin
958. before 459
Leo [4] I
ALt.
bl.
Latin
959- 459
Majorian (Maiorianus [1]) Theodericus (Theoderic) [2]
PGt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
960. 460
Majorian (Maiorianus[1])
Geisericus*
PGE
ul.?
Greek
961. 461
Leo [4] I
Valamer*, Amalikg. of the Ostrogoths*
PCt./Trn.
bl.
Greek/Latin
962. 462/3
Leo [4] I
Geisericus*
PGE
963. C. 465
Perozes [1] I, kg. of the Sassanids*
Kunchas, Khanofthe Kidarites
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
964. 467
Leo [4] I
Dengizich*, kg. of the Hunni*
PCt./ALt./Asv.
bl.
Greek
965. c. 468?
Leo [4] I
Arabs*/Saraceni* (Phylarch Amor-
ALt.
bl.
Greek
PCt.
bl.
Greek
Ostrogoths**4
Greek
cesus/Amrulkais/ Imru’ al-Quays) 966. 468
Leo [4] I
Geisericus*
967. before 469
Ostrogoths*
Scirii
ALt.
bl.
Latin
968. 473
Leo [4] I
Theodericus
PCt./Nt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
(Theoderic) [5]
Strabo
969. 474
Leo [4] I?
Thiudimir, Amali kg. ALt./Asv. of the Ostrogoths*
bl.
Latin
970. 474
Zeno [18]
Geisericus*
bl.
Greek
PCt./Nt.
*3 Historicity doubtful; cf. HEATHER 2, 188 and WOLFRAM 184.
*4 Part of tribe in Thracia*, led later by Theodericus (Theoderic) [5] Strabo. *S Valmer gave his son Theodericus (Theoderic) [3] as hostage.
447
B. III. L,000
subseq.
SELECTED
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
950. pax by settlement
lit. inf.
Tx: Iord. Get. 266 (settlement in Scythia*, Dacia* Ripensis and generally in Romania‘)
951. societas
lit. inf.
Tx: Sid. Apoll. Carm. 7,398-440, 464-471 L: Wolfram 184
952. societas
lit.
Tx: Sid. Apoll. Carm. 7,499-506 L: Wolfram 184
953. pax?
lit. inf.
954. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Hydat. 170; cf. lord. Get. 231; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. WE Tx: Iord. Get. 231
955. societas
lit. inf.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 51 (applying to the reign of Leo[4] I, confirming societas)
956. societas
lit.inf.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 45
957. pax and societas?
lit.
Tx: Sid. Apoll. Carm. 5,566f., 571f. et al.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 77
958. societas with tribute
lit.
Tx: Iord. Get. 270
959. pax
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 36.1; Sid. Apoll. Carm. 5,562ff; Hydat. 197;
960. pax
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 38.1; cf. 36.1; Ioh. Antioch. (FHG 4, fr. 2orff.) et al.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 78
961. societas with tribute
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 37; lord. Get. 270-271, cf. 272; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 80
962.
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 39.1, cf. 38,2 and 52; cf. loh. Antioch. (FHG
963. societas
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 41.3
964. societas with
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 48.1 , cf. 46; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 82
L: Anton 1, 242
L: Anton 1, 242
payments TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 78
payments?5
L: Heather 2, 247 4, fr. 204); TL: Schulz, V6lk., no. 81
tribute payments
L: Pohl 1, 252
965. societas
lit.
Tx: Malchus fr. 1 L: Greatrex 226f.
966. pax and amicitia
lit.
Tx: Theoph. 5963 (for AD 469/70); TL: Schulz, Volk., no.
967.
lit.
Tx: Iord. Get. 275
968. conditional societas with tribute payments; Theoderic recognized as sole kg. of the Ostrogoths*
lit.
Tx: Malchus fr. 2 , cf. 18.3; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 84
969. societas
lit.
Tx: lord. Get. 287 (settlement in Macedonia*)
970. eternal pax and
lit.
Tx: Procop. Vand. 1,7,26; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 85
83
amicitia
B. INTERNATIONAL
date
448
TREATIES
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
971. C.475
Euricus*, kg. of the Visigoths*
Franci*
PCEt.
972. 475
Nepos [3]
Euricus*
PCt./Nt./SRt.
bl.
Latin
973. after 475
Perozes [1] I, kg. of the Sassanids*
Hephthalites*
PGE:
ul.
Greek
ALt.
bl.
Latin
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
974.
476
Orestes [4|/Romulus [2]
Geisericus*
style
lang. Latin
Augustulus 975- 476
Zeno [18]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3], kg.
976. C. 477
Euricus*, kg. of the Visigoths*
Odoacer*
PCt./SRt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
977. 478
Zeno [18]
Theodericus
PCt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
of the Ostrogoths*
(Theoderic) [5]
Strabo, kg. of the Ostrogoths* 978. before 481
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [5] Strabo
PCt.
bl.
Greek
979. 483
Zeno [18]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3], kg. of the Ostrogoths*
PCt./Trn.
bl.
Latin
980. 487/8
Zeno [18]
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]
eternal? PCt.2/ALt.
bl.
Latin
981. 493
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]
PCt./SRt. after ded.
bl.
Greek
982. 494-511
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]
kgs. of the Franci*, Vandali*, Burgundiones*, Visigoths* etc.
ALt.
bl.
Greek/Latin
983. 497/8
Anastasius [1] I
Theodericus (Theoderic) [3], rex in Italia
IOVS
ul.
Latin
984. 502
Clovis I (Chlodovechus)*
Alaricus [3]
BCE.
bl.
Latin
985. 506
Anastasius [1] I
Cavades [1] I (Kavadh)
PGE
bl.
Greek
986. 508
Anastasius [1] I
Clovis I
RCt.?
ul.
Latin
ALt.
bl.
|Odoacer*
(Chlodovechus) *
987. 522
Byzantium*
kg. of the Lazi* in Dazicace
988. 326?
Amalaricus*, kg. of the Visigoths
— Athalaricus*, kg. of | IFt. / FRt. the Ostrogoths*
989.
532
Justinian I (Iustinianus [1]) Chosroes [5] I Anushirvan
990.
535
Justinian I (Iustinianus [1]) Franci*
bl.
Greek
PCt.
bl.
Greek
ALt.
bl.?
Greek
(homaichmia?)
*© ke. baptized at Constantinople.
449
B. III. 1,000
subseq.
SELECTED
observations
INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
ANTIQUITY
text
sources/literature
971.
lit.
Tx: Sid. Apoll. Epist. 8,3,3
972. pax
lit.
Tx: Ennod. vita Epiphani 88; Sid. Apoll. Epist. 8,3,3; 9,53 SA/Tr: Maas 305f.; TL: Schulz, Voélk., no. 86 L: Schulz, Volk. 92-96
973. pax
lit.
Tx: Procop. Pers. 1,3-4
974. peace
lit.
Tx: Paul. Fest. 15,7
975. conditional
lit.
Tx: Malchus fr. 18.2, cf.
976. pax
lit.
Tx: lord. Get. 284; Procop. Goth. 1,12,20 et al.
977. societas with tribute
lit.
Tx: Malchus fr. 18.4 , cf. 15, 18.1; Ioh. Antioch. fr. 211.2; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 87
978. pax
lit.
Tx: Prisc. fr. 18.2-3
979. societas
lit.
Tx: Marcell. 483; cf. lord. Get. 289-290; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 89
980. societas against the Western Roman Empire
lit.
Tx: Paul. Fest. 15,14; Anon. Vales. 49; Cassiod. Var. 10,2,33 10,32,4; cf. lord. Get. 29o0ff.; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 90 L: Schmidt 1, 290f., 326; Heather 2, 217f.; Wolfram 279, 3426.
981. pax and partition of realm
lit.
Tx: Ioh. Antioch. fr. 214a; lord. Rom. 349 L: Schmidt 1, 299f.; Heather 2, 219f.
lit.
Tx: Anon. Vales. 70 et al.; SA/Tr: Maas 309 L: Heather 2, 230-233; Wolfram 306-322; Beisel 82; Anton 1, 243f.; overview v. Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]
983. societas
lit.
Tx: Anon. Vales. 64 L: Heather 2, 220; Wolfram 284
984. peace
lit.
Tx: Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,35 L: Beisel 84
985. seven-year pax
lit.
Tx: Procop. Pers. 1,9,24
L: Schmidt 1, 316 15; TL: Schulz, Volk., no. 88
societas
L: Schmidt 1, 493; Wolfram 193f.
payments
982.
societas? marriage alliances
(stemma)
L: Greatrex 115-118 986. amicitia
lit.
Tx: Greg. Tur. Franc. 2,38
L: Anton 2, 424f. 987. societas
S/C: D. Braund, Georgia in Antiquity, 1996, 238-314
988. pax and societas
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,13,4-6
989. pax; so-called
lit.
Tx: Procop. Pers. 1,22,1-19, esp. 1,22,3
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,5,8—-10; 1,13,28
‘eternal peace’ 990. amicitia and societas
L: Greatrex 213-221;WD 58f.
B. INTERNATIONAL
TREATIES
450
date
signatory 1
signatory 2
type
style
lang.
991.
535
Justinian I(Iustinianus [r]) Waccho* (Wacho/ Vaces), kg. of the
ALt. (homaichmia)
bl.?
Greek
992.
536
Theodahatus Justinian I (Theodahat)*, kg. of the —_(Iustinianus [1]) Ostrogoths*
RCt.?/SRt./ALt. unilateral sworn PVt.
ul.
Greek/Latin
993.
536
Theodahatus (Theodahat)*
Justinian I (Iustinianus [r])
SRt./ded. unilateral sworn PVt.
ul.
Greek
994.
536
Theodahatus (Theodahat)*
Franci*
PCt/SRt./ALt. not implemented
bl.
Greek
995.
537
Witigis*
Franci*
PCt./SRt./ALt.
bl.
Greek
Langobardi*
(homaichmia)
996. 539
Witigis*
Chosroes [5] I Anushirvan
ALt.? (homaichmia?)
bl.?
Greek
997. 540
Witigis*
Belisarius*
SRt.? sworn proy.
bl.
Greek
agreement on ded.
998. 546
Totila*
Theodebert*, kg. of | SRt. with prov. the Franci* clause
bl.
Greek
999.
Ostrogoths*
Narses [4]
sworn CPt. on the classical Greek model
bl.
Greek
PCt./Gv./TRa./ LAa./Na./ARc.
ml.
Greek
552
1000.562
Justinian J (Iustinianus [1]) Chosroes [5] I Anushirvan
*7 Theodahat prepared to cede Sicily and pay tribute. Justinian I (Iustinianus [1]) refused. 28 Theodahat prepared to cede Italy and his throne. Justinian I (Iustinianus [1]) accepted this SRt., but Theodahat reneged.
451
B. Ill. 1,000
subseq.
991.
SELECTED
observations
amicitia and
INTERNATIONAL
societas*7
993- analogous to
alliance;
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 2,22,11-12 L: Schmidt 1, 579
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,6,2-7. 11; cf. Cassiod. Var. 10,1-4 L: Heather 2, 220, 263; Wolfram 340
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,6,11. 14-27 (esp. 19)
L: Wolfram 340 Theodahatus* ceded Gothic part of Gaul
995- peace and
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,13,14-15; Agathias 1,6,3ff. L: Wolfram 341, cf. 315
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 1,11,16-18; 1,13,17-27
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 2,22,15-20 L: Heather 2, 266
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 2,29,17-27; cf. 2,29,38-41 L: Heather 2, 266
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 4,12,6-10
lit.
Tx: Procop. Goth. 4,35,33-38; Agathias 1,1; Tx/Tr: FHIG 1,3 80f. L: Heather 2, 271; Wolfram 360; Pohl 1, 437
lit.
Tx: Menander Protector fr. 6.1; SA/Tr/C: FHIG 1,381-384; WD 164-177; on the indutiae: Procop. Pers.
alliance 996.
ANTIQUITY
sources/literature
consequences of a einer ded.*8 994. peace and
OF GRAECO-ROMAN
text
societas
992.
TREATIES
L: Wolfram 315, 343; Heather 2, 264; Anton 2, 426
alliance for war against the common enemy, Justinian I (lustinianus [1])
997-
subjection (intention:
Belisarius to take control) 998.
999-
pax on the basis of the status quo
L: Heather 2, 268
pax, Ostrogoths
free to withdraw, possessions
safeguarded; or subjection 1000.
after three five-year indutiae 545, 5 52/3 and 5 56/7; 50 years’ pax including socii and guarantee of Roman subsidies
2,28,6-11; BG 4,15,1-6. 12-13; Agath. 4,30,8—10; SA/ Tr: FHIG, 208-209 L: Winter 1, 67-72; WD 60-62; Isaac 260-264
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
SYSTEMS
452
C. WEIGHTS AND MEASURES; COINAGE SYSTEMS C. 1. ANcrENT NEAR EAST Call EGyrr C, Ill. GREECE AND ROME C. I. ANCIENT NEAR East
(Walther Sallaberger) Abbreviations: Akkad. Akkadian
Bab.
Babylonia
conv.
conventional
Mesop. Sumer.
Mesopotamia Sumerian
1. MEASURES OF LENGTH 2. SQUARE MEASURES
. 3. MEASURES OF VOLUME 4. WEIGHTS
C. I. 1, MEASURES OF LENGTH (3RD-IST MILLENNIA BC) Sumer.
Akkad.
transl./conv.
name
name
term
value/modern
equivalent
observations
dana
beru
(mile, double-hour)
3,600 reeds (approx. 10.8 km)
in astronomy: 12 miles = 360° = 1 day
=
US
&
60 rods
in astronomy = I° = 4 min
ese
aslu
(rope)
Io rods = 20 reeds
nindan
nindanu
(rod)
2 reeds (approx. 6 m)
basis for larger units in Bab.
gl
gant
(reed)
a) 6 cubits (approx. 3 m) b) 7 cubits (approx. 3.5 m;
basis for larger units in N. Mesop.
kus
ammatu
(cubit)
a) 50 +3cm b) Assyria: approx. 53-54 cm? c) also ‘great cubit’ to approx. 75 cm (Bab., Ist mull.)
Su-si
ubanu
(finger)
a) */,. cubit (1.67 cm) b) */,, cubit (Bab., rst mill.)
Se
uttetu
(barleycorn)
'/, finger
Bab., Ist mill.)
often for denoting larger measures; various systems of subdivision
Standard Mesopotamian system (also still known in rst mill.): conversion factors S00
x6
Pan
x30
Syste
>
RUS
x2
x6
hg)
=e
dana / beru
I
US
30
I
ese / aslu
180
6
x10
7
tindam
=
x6
ee
=e
=¥
1 US:
x30
>
dane
r
nindan / nindanu
1,800
60
10
I
gi / gant
3,600
120
20
2
I
kus / ammatu
21,600
720
120
I2
6
I
Su-si_ / ubanu
648,000
21,600
3,600
360
180
30)
Se / uttetu
3,888,000
129,600
21,600
2,160
1,080
180
Babylonia,
ubanu
x24
—>
— Measures
Ist mill.: conversion
ammatu I
x
7
— — qanil
factors
6
I
453
C. I. ANCIENT
NEAR
EAST
C. 1. 2. SQUARE MEASURES
a) Mesopotamia, 3rd to early 2nd mill. BC, also in use in 1st mill. BC
Sumer.
Akkad.
transl./
name
name
conv.
value/modern
equivalent
observations
bur
biru
?
6.48 ha
iku
iki
(field)
I square ‘rope’, 0.36 ha
basic unit in field surveys; see above: Measures of length
sar
musaru
(garden plot)
I square ‘reed’, 36 m*
see above: Measures of Length
gin
Siglu
(surface shekel = ‘sixtieth part’)
0.6 m*
term
Conversion factors: x60
xI0o
ieee
x8
1
=
DUP
Upon these square measures depended measures of volume with 1 cubit as the nominal height: 1 sar x I cubit = 1 volume-sar = 60 kor. b) Babylonia, rst mill., depending on measures of length with side length from 1 reed to 7 cubits (35 m). c) Babylonia, rst mill., depending on seed per area (conversion factors by measures of volume, later Babylonian system) 100 x 100 cubits = 33 */, qa I qi = 300 square cubits (approx. 75 m7’)
1 kuru corresponded to approx. 1.35 ha. d) Assyria and northern Mesopotamia, late 2nd—1st mill. BC, depending on seed per area: 100 qi = I imeru = 5 iku (approx. 1.8 ha) puridu (foot) —
—>
Square measures;
kumanu (2)
-y
+ Measures
ika (field)
Sy
imenn (donkey load)
I
Standard Mesopotamian system (also still known in Ist mill.): conversion factors fe
x6
>
x30
Susi
>
kuf
x6
>
gi
‘
x2
>
:
nindan
x10
>
ek
x6
—»
US
x30
>
dana
dana / béeru
I
US
30
I
ese / aslu
180
6
I
nindan / nindanu
1,800
60
IO
I
gi / gant
3,600
120
20
2
I
kus / ammatu
21,600
720
120
ite
6
I
Su-si / ubanu
648,000
21,600
3,600
360
180
BOL
Se / uttetu
3,888,000
129,600
20,600
2.160
L080
TSO
Babylonia, rst mill.: conversion factors ubanu
x24
—>
— Measures
ammatu I
x7
— — qanit
6
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
454
SYSTEMS
C. I. 3. MEASURES OF VOLUME Sumer. name
Akkad. name
Transl./
guru
kara
(storehouse)
=
ugaru
(field)
conv.
Distribution
value/modern
observations
equivalent
term
Bab.
3,600 kor
to early 2nd mill.
Paes
Mari
early 2nd mill. gur
kurru
Bab. 3rd—1st mill.; Mari
(kor)
=
narugqu
(sack)
=
imeru
(donkey load)
usu.
5 bushels, also
4 or 2 (Mani)
Assynia early 2nd mill.
4 vessels
N Mesop.
IO seah
from early 2nd mill. bariga
panu
(bushel)
reading of bariga
6 seah, usu. approx. 50-60 litres (qi)
Bab. 3rd—1st mill; Mari
uncertain
(also nigida,
pl.) =
karpatu
(vessel)
Assyria
3, seah
otherwise with liquids, usu. 20 (also 30) litres
early 2nd mill.
ban
sila
situ
Mesop., 3rd—rst mull.
(seah)
qu
Mesop., 3rd—1st mill.
(litre)
usu. IO (also 6)
anomalous values with
litres (qi)
qualifying terms (‘old’, ‘great’) frequent
usu. approx. 0.8—1 |
also different standards, esp. larger qi
Conversion factors in important ancient Near Eastern volume measurement systems:
Babylonia mid-3rd mill. (standard system)
sila —»
ban
bariga “y
Babylonia from late 3rd mill. (standard system)
sila
*S
ban
b
Man early 2nd mill.
qa Sy
sutu
Babylonia mid-2nd — ist mill.
qa sy qa
Assyria
early 2nd mill. N Mesop. incl. Assyria from early 2nd mill.
— Measures of volume I
45
.
f
gur
ariga
x5
—»
gur
panu
=
—>»
x2
kuru
sutu
panu
S.
kurru
sutu
patu
kar=
xe
sutu
imeru
naruqqu 99
6
SS” guru
x3600
‘
|r gur = 240 sila
=
ie
—>
guru
x10
ugaru | 1 kurru = 120 qi
—»
| 1 gur = 300 sila
=
i sila = approx. 1 | -
also situ to 4-12 qi
1 kurru = 180 qid :
P
naruqqu arg = 120 q qi also sfitu to 8 or 9 qi
455
G.
1s
ANGIENT
NEAR
EAST
C. I. 4. We1GHTs (MESOPOTAMIA, 3RD-IST MILL. BC)
modern equivalent (approximate)
Sumer. name
Akkad. name.
transl./conv.
gun
biltu
(load, talent)
mana
mani
(mina)
30 kg 500 g (+ 408)
gin
Siqlu
(shekel)
8.33 g (= I dareikos*)
Se
uttetu
(barleycorn, grain)
0.0463g
term
Conversion factors: "
Se / uttetu
x180
-
r
—-> — gin / Siqlu
gun / biltu
I
mana / mani
60
gin / Siglu
3,600
Se / uttetu
648,000
— Weights I
x60
—
mana
/ mani
x60
—>
gun / biltu
observations
specific terminology for fractions in the rst mill.
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
456
SYSTEMS
CE GyP iT (Knut Buroh) C. II. 1. MEASURES OF LENGTH C. IL. 2. SQUARE MEASURES
C. IL. 3. MEASURES OF VOLUME C. Il. 4. WEIGHTS Abbreviations
conv.
conventional
equiv. MK OK
equivalent Middle Kingdom Old Kingdom
C. I. 1. MEASURES OF LENGTH
Egyptian unit of length
transl., conv.
term
modern
equiv.
factor
(approx)
jtrw
mile, iteru, schoinos*
10.5 km
I
ht-n-awh
rod of cord, shennokh
52.5 m
200
mh
cubit, meh
52.5 cm
20,000
Ssp
palm, shesep
7-5 em
140,000
700
db’
finger, djeba
1.9 cm
560,000
2,800
The unit of length nbj (rod, nebi/naubion) used by craftsmen was approximately 65 cm long.
C. II. 2. SQUARE MEASURES II. 2.1. OLD KINGDOM Egyptian
transl., conv. term
square measure sBt
modern
equiv.
factor
(approx.)
aroura*®, setjat
2756.5 m*
= 10,000 sq. cubits
hs
thousand, kha =
B
275-7 m°*
Io
27.6 m*
100
Io
1,000 sq. cubits
land-unit, ta
= 100 sq. cubits rn
half (a land-unit), remen = 50 sq. cubits
13.8 m*
200
20
hsb
quarter (ofa land-unit), heseb
6.9 m*
400
40
3.5) mr
800
80
= 25 sq. cubits 8
eighth (ofa land-unit), sa
= 1205) sq: cubits
ie)
457
Call
GVipw
I]. 2.2. MiDDLE AND New KInGpoms Egyptian square measure
transl., conv.
term
modern equiv. (approx.)
kha-ta
eae
1-8
thousand-land,
tees
= 100,000 sq. cubits
sBt
aroura™®, setjat
Lid
factor
>
DTM
A
2,756.5 m*
10
I
1,378 m*
20
2,
1
689 m*
40
4
2:
I
8
4
7
ee
25
la.
= 10,000 sq. cubits
mn
half (of an aroura*), remen
= 5,000 sq. cubits hsb
quarter (of an aroura*), heseb = 2,500 sq. cubits
3
eighth (of an aroura*), sa = 1,250 sq. cubits
344.5 m*
80
mh-B
land-cubit meh-ta
277.6 me
TEOOO | LOOMESO
transl., conv. term
modern equiv. (approx.)
factor
= 100 sq. cubits C. Il. 3. MEASURES OF VOLUME II. 3.1. OLD AND MIDDLE KINGDOMS Egyptian unit of volume 2 h3rh
double sack, double khar
96 |
I
hr
sack, khar
48 |
2
I
4 h@t
quadruple bushel, quadruple heqat
19.2 1
5
2a
0
h@tj
double bushel, double hegat
9.6 |
ite)
5
2;
ht
bushel, heqat
4.8 1
20
TOM
tees
hnw
hin*®, henu
0.48 |
200
I00
40
II. 3.2. New KINGDOM Egyptian unit
transl., conv.
term
of volume
modern
equiv.
factor
(approx.)
her
sack, khar
76.8 |
I
Jpt
oipe, ipet = quadruple hegat
19.2 |
4
I
hnw
hin*, henu
0.48 |
160
AO
I
out 20
I0
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
SYSTEMS
458
C. II. 4. WEIGHTS IL. 4.1. OLD AND MIDDLE KINGDOMS Egyptian unit of weight
transl., conv.
dbn dbn
term
modern equiv. (approx.)
dating
(gold) deben
Loe
OK/MK
(copper) deben
B75
MK
modern equiv. (approx.)
factor
as
Il. 4.2. NEw KIncbpoM Egyptian unit of weight
transl., conv.
term
dbn
deben
91 g
I
qdt
kite, qedet
9.1 g
10
All details from: W. Hetck, s.v. MaBe und Gewichte, LA 3, 1980, 1199-1209 1926ff., repr. 1971 (41982) On weights and measures
in the Late Period, cf. S. VLEEMING,
* Wérterbuch
s.v. MaBe
3, 1980, 1209-1214. —> Square measures
II; — Weights I];
+ Measure
of volume
II
I
der agyptischen Sprache, vols. 1-4,
und Gewichte
in den demotischen
Texten,
LA
459
C. Ill.
GREECE
AND
ROME
C. III. GREECE AND ROME (Hans von Mangoldt)
Cf. in general: F. Huttscu, Griechische und roémische Metrologie, *1882, 27-348; tables 2-19 ® K. Hirz1, s.v. Weights I-IV, BNP 15, 614-662. C. C. C. C.
Ill. III. Ill. I.
1. MEASURES OF LENGTH 2. SQUARE MEASURES
3. MEASURES OF VOLUME 4. WrEIcHTs C. Ill. 5. Corns C. Ill. 1. MEASURES OF LENGTH
Ill. 1.1. GREEK (ATTIC) Ill. 1.2. ROMAN Ill. 1.4. GREEK (ATTIC) Greek
unit
transl., conv.
term
of length
modern
factor
equiv.
stadion [1]
(stadion, stade)
184.98 m
plethron*
(orig. ‘furrow-length’)
30.83 m
6
I
akaina*/ kalamos
(orig. ‘goad’, ‘measuring-rod’)
3.083 m
60
ae)
orgyia*
(fathom)
1.85 m
TOOme
bema diplun
(double step)
1.541 m
ye
2)
2
1
a
bema haplun
(single step)
77.075
cm
240
40
4
PHY
oe
pechys*
(cubit)
46.245 cm
400
6677/5
167/56)
4
Bie/a e/a
pus*
(foot)
30.83 cm
600"
x00")
“9
6
spithame”
(span)
23.123 cm
SOOM WS ar/a lain
palaiste [x]
(palm)
7.708 cm
2,400
400
40
daktylos [x]
(finger)
1.927 cm
9,600
1,600
160
I
|LOe/40 la/ou ee oe I
5
2b /ep nese
Gi/e
Salar
ez
Tey
er
ZA)
202
LO!
6
4
Bu
96
80
40
24
16
I2
4
At 192.3 m, the stadion of + Olympia was longer than the Attic, so that calculations produced a different measure for the foot (192.3 m : 600 feet = 32.05 cm; cf. — stadion [1]). The absolute values for the measures follow HuLTsSCH 27—39, 42-73; tabs. 2-4. — Measures
II
Ill. 1.2.
ROMAN
Roman
unit
transl., conv.
term
of length mille passus
modern
factor
equiv. (1,000 double steps,
1,480 m
I
35.52 m
Atle
I
mile)
actus [2]
(orig. ‘cattle drive’, ‘furrow-length’)
passus*
(double step)
1.48 m
1,000
24
I
cubitus*
(cubit)
44.4 cm
4533505.
SO.
Beha
a
pes*
(foot)
29.6 cm
5,000
120
5
ToS
ak
palmus*
(palm)
7.4 cm
20,000
480
20
«66
Hy
ae
digitus
(finger)
1.85 cm
80,000
1,920
80
24
16
4
C.
WEIGHTS
The Roman multiplied:
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
foot could also be subdivided
duodecimally
sicilicus*
/48
= 0.62 cm
semuncia*
/,, foot
= 1.23 cm
uncia*
'/,, foot
= 2.46 cm
sescuncia*
‘/, foot
= 3.69 cm
sextans*
'/, foot
= 4.93 cm
quadrans*
"/, foot
= 7.39 cm
triens*
POGOe
= 9.86 cm
quincunx*
5/,, foot
=P 4 eer
semis/semipes
'/, foot
= 14.79 cm
septunx
7/,, foot
= ine/esty fesoa)
bes*
*/, foot
= 19.71 cm
dodrans*
3/, foot
="22,.00) Cid
dextans*
5/, foot
= 24.64 cm
deunx*
at
pes*/as*
I foot
LOOt
= 29.6 cm
dupondius*
2 feet
= 59.2 cm
pes Sestertius
2
= 74.0 cm
teet
= 27.11
460
SYSTEMS
into ounces
(the
— uncia was also a unit of length), and
cm
The absolute values for the measures follow HuttscH 74-82, 88-98; tabs. 6—8. — Measures II
C. IIL. 2. SQUARE MEASURES Ill. 2.1. GREEK (ATTIC) Ill. 2.2.
ROMAN
III. 2.1. GREEK (ATTIC) Greek
transl., conv.
modern
square measure
term
equiv.
factor
plethron*
(orig. ‘working field of the plough animal’, ‘morning’)
950.49 m*
I
akaina*
(ong. ‘goad’, ‘measuring-rod’)
9.50 m*
100
pus*
(square foot)
0.095 m*
10,000
The absolute values for the measures follow HULTscH 39-42; tab. 5. — > Square measures III
Too
461
C. Ill.
GREECE
AND
ROME
Ill. 2.2. ROMAN Roman
transl., conv.
modern
square measure
term
equiv.
factor
saltus*
(lit. ‘pasture’)
201.87 ha
I
centuria*
(century, 1.e. L00 heredia)
50.47 ha
4
I
heredium*
(hereditary plot’)
5,046.68 m*
400
100
I
iugerum*
(morning)
2,523.34 m*
800
200
2
I
actus [2] quadratus
(lit. ‘cattle-drive’, surveying unit)
1,261.67 m*
1,600
400
4
2
I
(lit. ‘region’,
315.42 m*
6,400
1,600
16
8
4
clima
I
surveying unit)
scripulum*
(scruple)
8.76 m*
230,400
57,600
576
288
144
36
I
pes® quadratus
(square foot)
0.09 m*
23,040,000
5,760,000
57,600
28,800
14,400
3,600
I00
Further fractions of the iugerum unit (also known as the as) according to the duodecimal system: uncia
(*/,2 tugerum)
= 210.28 m?
dimidium scripulum
(*/ 576 iugerum)
=F Ana6 inl
The scripulum was also known as the decempeda quadrata, because of its side length of ten feet.
The explicit measurements follow HuLtscH 82-88; tab. 9. Small deviations from the articles and tables in the BNP occur because the latter assumes the approximate value of 29.6 cm for the Roman foot, while HuULTSCH assumes 29.57 cm. —» Square measures III
C. II. 3. MEASURES OF VOLUME As in modern metrology, a distinction was probably made in antiquity between measures of volume for fluids and for dry goods (cf. —- Measure of volume). For the sake of simplicity, however, measures for dry goods and fluids are presented together here. Il. 3.1. GREEK (ATTIC)
Ill. 3.2. ROMAN
Il. 3.1. GREEK (ATTIC) Greek measure
transl./conv.
modern
factor
of volume
term
equiv.
medimnos*
(bushel)
525531
I
metretes* /
(‘measurer’ /
39.4 1
me /,
I
amphoreus
amphora*)
hekteus*/ modios
(‘sixth part’ / modios)
S77 5il
6
Atte
1
hemiekton
(half a sixth part’, twelfth)
4.38 |
12
9
2
I
chous [1]
(jug)
Fetes!
16
2,
choinix*
(grain measure)
1.09 |
48
36
so a ea a
4
3
I
xestes*
(pitcher, pint)
547.2 ml
96
72
LOO
eS
6
2
I
kotyle [2]
(cup)
273.6 ml
192
tA4
32>
3X6
2
4
2)
I
oxybaphon*
(vinegar-saucer)
68.4 ml
768
576
128
64
48
16
8
Ake
kyathos [2]
(ladle)
45.6 ml
I,I52
864
192
96
Gh
PWNS
Nets
Seah
0=— 8
The absolute values for the measures follow HuttscH 99-111; tab. 10. — Measure of volume III
it
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
SYSTEMS
462
Ill. 3.2. ROMAN Roman measure
of volume
transl./conv. term
modern equiv.
factor
culleus*
(sack)
Cpa
quadrantal* / amphora
(cubic foot /
26.26 |
Mom
20
as I
amphora*) uma*
(urn)
ES xdae
40
Zi
modius [3]
(bushel)
8.75 |
60
3
1
ae
semodius
(half bushel)
4.38 |
120
6
3
v3
congius*
(‘mussel’, congius)
3.28 |
160
8
4
Df
gE
a
sextarius*
(‘sixth part’)
547.2 ml
960
48
24
16
8
6
I
hemina*
(beaker)
273.6 ml
1,920
96
48
32
ro
Es
2
x
quartarius*
(‘quarter part’)
136.8 ml
3,840
192
96
64
32
24
4
2
F
acetabulum*
(vinegar-saucer)
6h:41ml
Fi6So0
384°
192
128
64
48
8
4
2
&
cyathus*
(ladle)
45:6 ml
“RE§20
576
“8288
“192
96
“Fa"
22°6)
a
“SP
2
cochlear [1]
(spoonful)
Ii.4ml
46080
2304
1152
768
384
288
48
12
6
4
The absolute values for the measures follow HULTSCH
112-126;
I I
tab. IT.
— Measure of volume [V
C. III. 4. SYSTEMS OF WEIGHTS II. 4.1. GREEK (ATTIC) Ill. 4.2. ROMAN Ill. 4.1. GREEK (ATTIC) On the Aeginetic and Corinthian weights, cf. the coin tables below, III. 5.1. and III. 5.2. a) ‘Solonic’ system (2nd half of the 6th cent.—430/420 BC)
Greek weight
transl./conv.
talanton
(talent*)
27.506 kg
I
stater
(stater)
916.86 g
30
I
hemistateron
(half-stater)
458.43 g
60
2
I
drachme [2]
(drachme)
4.366 g
6,300
210
I05
[x]
term
modern
equiv.
factor
b) Late Classical system (430/420—3rd cent. BC)
Greek weight
transl./conv. term
modern
talanton
(talent*)
28.816 kg
stater
[1]
equiv.
factor I
(stater)
960.52 ¢
30
I
mna
(mina*)
480.26 g
60
2
I
drachme [2|
(drachme)
4.366 g
6,600
220
IIO
24
463
G.
Ill.
GREECE
AND
ROME
c) Hellenistic system (3rd cent.—2nd half of 2nd cent. BC)
Greek weight
transl./conv. term
modern equiv.
factor
talanton
(talent*)
36.150 kg
I
stater [1]
(stater)
1,205.016 g
30
I
mna
(mina*)
602.508 g
60
DS
it
drachme [2]
(drachme)
4.366 g
8,280
276
138
d) Late Hellenistic system (2nd half of 2nd cent.—c. 86 BC)
Greek weight
transl./conv. term
modern
equiv.
factor
talanton
(talent*)
39.294 kg
I
2No record of
[two-mina piece]
1309.8 g
30
I
ancient name. mna
(mina*)
654.9 g
60
2
I
drachme |2]
(drachme)
4.366 g
9,000
300
150
— Weights III
Ul. 5.2. ROMAN Roman weight
transl./conv. term
modern equiv.
factor
227A yO) oe
libra [x]
(pound)
semis*
(‘half’, half-pound)
163.725 g 2
I
uncaa*
(ounce)
27 2
6
semuncia*
(half-ounce)
13.644 2
24
LZ
I
binae sextulae
(two sixths =
9.096¢g
36
T8e3
Lee
ait
Oust:
I
third of an ounce)
sicilicus* / quartuncia
(sicilicus / quarter-ounce)
6.822 ¢
48
ZA
4
z
Teen
sextula*
(sixth = sixth of an ounce)
4.548 g
72
36
6
3
2
drachma
(drachme = eighth of an ounce)
coy so ara)
48
8
4
Hii
dimidia sextula
(half-sixth = twelfth of an ounce)
2.274 g
Adee
72)
2:
eG
4
3
2
scripulum*
(scruple)
Talay
288
AA
24
£2
8
6
4
3
Zane
obolus
(obol = halfscruple)
0.568 g
576
288
48
24
16
ive
t33
6
A
OR
(lupine =
0.284 g
1,152
576
96
48
32
24
16
12
8
“42
2
0.189 g
1,728
864
144
72
48
36
24
16
T2
1623)
0/5.
lupinus*
ies
aE C5 es
|a
quarter-scruple) stliqua*
(pod = sixth ofa scruple)
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
SYSTEMS
464
Multiples of the libra: libra |x]
1 pound
= 327.4508
dupondius* /dussis
2 pounds
= 654.908
tressis
3 pounds
= 982.352
quincussis
5 pounds
= 1,09,7 2518
decussis*
10 pounds
= 3,274.50 2
Multiples of the uncia / fractions of the libra: uncia*
I ounce
= 27.288 ¢
sescuncia*
11/2 ounces
= 40.931 g
sextans*
2 ounces
=54557 5 2
quadrans*
3 ounces
Se Recep oR
tnens*
4 ounces
= 109.150 g
quincunx*
5 ounces
= 136.438 g
semis*
5 ounces
= 1697252
septunx
7 ounces
= TOOLS
bes*
8 ounces
= 218.300 g
dodrans*
9 ounces
= 245.588 g
dextans*
IO ounces
= 272207 52
deunx*
II ounces
= 300.163 g
libra [x]
12 ounces
= 327. 4502
The absolute values of the measures follow HULTSCH
144-I61; tab. 13.
— Weights IV
C. Ill. 5. Corns Ill. 5.1. GREEK Ill. 5.2. ROMAN Ill. 5.1. GREEK a) Aeginetic (Archaic and Classical periods): silver currency and system of weights Aeginetic unit
transl./conv. term
modern
equiv.
talanton
(talent*)
26.196 kg
factor
observations
I
not coinage (silver bars),
only a unit of calculation; cf. — Talent; attested as a real
weight mna
(mina*)
436.6 g
60
I
stater [II] = didrachmon*
(stater)
12.474 2
2 TOO.
85)
drachme |x|
(drachme)
6.237 ¢g
AOC
eam!
obolos*
(obol)
1.040 g
ZS.200)
ALO
Based
on
the — drachme
as minted
coinage and basic unit of weight,
not coinage, only a unit of calculation; attested as a real weight
E26)
it
the other fractions
and multiples are identical in
— Aegina’s systems of coinage and weights. It is not clear whether the stater, which was worth two drachmai (didrachmon) in the coinage system, was also equivalent to two drachmai in the system of weights, or whether, as in the Attic system, it equated to a double mina.
465
Ge
Tils
GREECE
AND
ROME
b) Corinthian (Classical period); silver currency and system of weights
Corinthian unit
transl./conv. term
modern equiv.
factor
observations
talanton
(talent*)
26.196 kg
I
not coinage, only a unit of calculation
mna
(mina*)
436.6 g
60
I
stater [II]
(stater)
8.732 ¢
3,000
5o
-
drachme {I}
(drachme)
2.911 g
9,000
Ti
Ons
ee
obolos*
(obol)
0.485 g
54,000
900
18
61
not coinage, only a unit
of calculation
Based on the —
drachme as minted coinage and basic unit of weight, the other fractions and multiples are identical in
the systems of coinage and weights of Corinth (> Corinthus). It is not clear whether the stater, which was worth three
drachmai in the coinage system, was also equivalent to three drachmai in the system of weights, or whether, as in the Attic system, it equated to a double mina. c) Attic (Classical period): silver currency
Attic unit
transl./conv. term
modern
talanton
(talent*)
mna stater [II] = tetradrachmon*
equiv.
factor
observations
26.196 kg
I
not coinage, only a unit of calculation
(mina*)
436.6 g
60
I
(stater)
17.464 g
1,500
Aya
drachme {I}
(drachme)
4.366 g
6,000
I0o0
4
I
obolos*
(obol)
0.728 g
36,000
600
24
61
not coinage, only a unit of calculation
d) Attic (Classical period): bronze currency Attic unit
transl./conv.
obolos*
(obol)
I
chalkos*
(‘bronze coin’, chalko(u)s)
8
Unlike in Aegina and Corinth
term
factor
observations token coin, hence not a standard weight
I
token coin, hence not a standard weight
(see above), the coin mina (100 drachmai) and the commercial mina were of different
weights in — Attica; cf. above, tables below III. 4.1.
— Money, money economy II.; — Minting I.C.; > Coinage reforms; Coins, debasement of
C.
WEIGHTS
AND
MEASURES;
COINAGE
SYSTEMS
466
Ill. 5.2. ROMAN a) Principate Roman
unit
transl./conyv.term
material
modern equiv.
value relationship
aureus*
(‘gold piece’, aureus)
gold
77%
I
denarius*
(denarius)
silver
3.8 gt
25
observations
I
factor sestertius*
(sestertius, sesterce)
brass
27 g L
100
A
ok
dupondius*
(‘twice-weight’,
bronze
16g¥
200
Si,
Geet
copper
13g +
400
3¢7
1,600
token coin
gE
token coin
nora
ee
token coin
64
8
dupondius) as*
(as)
quadrans*
(‘quarter’, quadrans)
— copper
16
4
1_
token coin
+ cumulative reduction of weight Under Caesar, the aureus was minted at a greater weight. Under Augustus, it was already reduced to 7.72 g. In the reign of Nero, there was a reduction from '/,, of the full pound to '/,..
From the 3rd cent. AD, the so-called Antoninianus (double denarius) was minted at 1'/, times the weight of the denarius. It soon entirely superseded the denartus. The original coin metals (— Brass for sestertius and dupondius, > Copper for as and quadrans) were not used consistently over time, but fluctuated. Many alloys are difficult to classify. Under Nero, all non-ferrous metal coins were briefly minted in brass.
b) Late antiquity and early Byzantine period Roman
unit
transl./conv.
term
material
modern
equiv.
factor
solidus*
(‘sterling’, solidus)
gold
4.52
I
semis*
(‘half as’, semis)
gold
2331 f
2
I
tremissis*
(‘third as’, tremissis)
gold
1.5 2g
3
oy a
There were various silver and bronze nominals to the gold currency used during late antiquity and the early Byzantine period: The miliarense was minted light and heavy in silver, the heavy coin weighing approx. 5.4 g. 12 (heavy) miliarensia were equated to one solidus. The hexagrammon (hexagrammon nomisma) was minted in the reign of Emperor Heraclius [7] as a silver coin weighing approx. 6.8 g (cf. Chron. Pasch. 1,706, 9 f. for AD 615). The siliqua was minted in silver, weighed a maximum of 2.7 g and served as a token coin. Like the miliarense, the siliqua existed in light and heavy minting, these bring reckoned equivalent to '/ 2, and '/,, solidus respectively.
— Money, money economy III.-[V.; — Minting I.D.-E.;
— Coinage reforms; Coins, debasement of
467
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
D. PapyRI, OSTRAKA AND MANUSCRIPTS
D. I. EDITIONS OF PAPYRI D. II. EDITIONS OF OSTRAKA D. II. GREEK AND LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
D. I. EDITIONS OF PAPYRI
(Hans-Albert Rupprecht) Abbreviations (series and periodicals): Am.Stud.Pap. American Studies in Papyrology APF Archiv fiir Papyrusforschung BIFAO Bulletin de l’Institut Frangais d’Archéologie Orientale Pap.Brux. Papyrologica Bruxellensia Pap.Colon. Papyrologica Coloniensia Pap.Flor. Papyrologica Florentina Pap.Lugd.Bat. Papyrologica Lugduno-Batava PTA Papyrologische Texte und Abhandlungen, Bonn Publ.Soc.Fouad. Publications de la Société Fouad Premier de Papyrologie SHAW Sitzungsberichte der Heidelberger Akademie der Wissenschaften, Philosophisch-Historische Klasse Stud.Amst. Studia Amstelodamensia ad epigraphicam, ius antiquum et papyrologicam pertinentia UMS, Hum.Ser. University of Michigan Studies, Humanistic Series LE Zeitschrift fir Papyrologie und Epigraphik — Ostrakon; Papyrus; PAPYROLOGY; PAPYRUS COLLECTIONS P.Aberd.
Catalogue of Greek and Latin Papyri and Ostraca in the Possession of the University of Aberdeen, ed. E.G. Turner, Aberdeen 1939 (Aberdeen University Studies 116).
P.Abinn.
The Abinnaeus Archive: Papers of a Roman Officer in the Reign of Constantius II, ed. H.1. Bell, V. Martin, E.G. Turner, D. van Berchem, Oxford 1962.
P.Achm.
Les papyrus grecs d’Achmim 4 la Bibliothéque Nationale de Paris, ed. P. Collart, Cairo 1930 (Extrait de: BIFAO 31, 1930, 33-111).
Actenstiicke
Actenstiicke aus der k6niglichen Bank zu Theben in den Museen zu Berlin, London, Paris, ed. U. Wilcken, Berlin 1887, nos. 1-12 (Abhandlungen der Koniglichen Akademie der Wissenschaften
in Berlin
1886, Anhang, Abh. 1; repr. in: U. Wilcken, Berliner Akademieschriften zur Alten
Geschichte und Papyruskunde I, in: UPZ II, 205-207, 214, 215, 217-221, 226-228). P. Adler
P.Agon.
The Adler Papyri. Greek Texts, ed. E.N. Adler, J.G. Tait, F.M. Heichelheim. Demotic Texts, ed. LI. Griffith, Oxford 1939. Zehn agonistische Papyri, ed. P. Frisch, Opladen 1986 (Pap.Colon. 13).
P.Alex.
Papyrus grecs du Musée Gréco-Romain d’Alexandrie, ed. A. Swiderek and M. Vandoni, Warsaw 1964 (Polska Akademia Nauk. Zaklad Archeologii Srodziemnomorskiej. Prace 2. Travaux du Centre d’Archéologie Méditerranéenne de |’Académie Polonaise des Sciences).
P.Alex.Giss.
Papyri variae Alexandrinae et Gissenses, ed. J. Schwartz, Brussels 1969 (Pap.Brux.7; SB X,
P.Amh.
The Amherst Papyri. Being an Account of the Greek Papyri in the Collection of the Right Hon.
10617-10653).
Lord Amherst of Hackney, F.S.A. at Didlington Hall, Norfolk, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt,
London. I. The Ascension of Isaiah and Other Theological Fragments, 1900, nos. 1-9. II. Classical Fragments and Documents of the Ptolemaic, Roman and Byzantine Periods, 1901, P.Ammon
nos. 10-201. The Archive of Ammon Scholasticus of Panopolis (P.:Ammon) I: The Legacy of Harpocration. Texts from the Collections of Duke University and the University of Kéln, ed. W.H. Willis, K. Maresch, Opladen 1997 (Pap.Colon. 26.1), nos. 1-25.
P.Amst.
yv. P.Gron.
P.Amst. I
Die Amsterdamer Papyri I, ed. R.P. Salomons, P.J. Sijpesteijn, K.A. Worp, Zutphen 1980 (Stud.Amst. 14), nos. 1-100.
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
P.Ant.
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
468
The Antinoopolis Papyri, London. I. ed. C.H. Roberts, 1950 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 28), nos. 7-50. Il. ed. J.W.B. Barns and H. Zilliacus, 1960 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 37), NOS. 5I-IIO.
Ill. ed. J.W.B. Barns and H. Zilliacus, 47), NOS.
1967 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs
I11-214.
P.Amstel.
v. P.Gron (Amst.).
P.Apa Apollo
Coptic and Greek Texts Relating to the Hermopolite Monastery of Apa Apollo, ed. S.J. Clackson, Oxford 2000, nos. 1-66.
Apokrimata
v. P.Col. VI.
P.Apoll. (And)
Papyrus grecs d’Apoll6nos And, ed. R. Remondon, Cairo 1953 (Documents de fouilles de l'Institut frangais d’Archéologie Orientale du Caire 19).
P.Argent.
v. P.Stras.
P.Arsinoe
v. P.Haw.
P.Ashm.
Greek Documents and Subscriptions, ed. J.W.B. Barns, in: E.A.E. Reymond (ed.), Catalogue of Demotic Papyri in the Ashmolean Museum I, Oxford 1973 (SB XIV, 11404-13).
P.Artemisia
SBay amos sUPZile ne
P.Athen
WaPo.
P.Aur. Sakaon
The Archive of Aurelius Sakaon. Papers of an Egyptian Farmer in the Last Century of Theadelphia, coll. and re-ed. G.M. Parassoglou, Bonn 1978 (PTA 23). P.Flor. Ill 291, 357, 358. v. P.Yadin.
P.Ausonia
P.Babatha P.Bacch.
The Archives of the Temple of Soknobraisis at Bacchias, ed. E.H. Gilliam, in: Yale Classical Studies 10, 1947, 179-281 (SB VI, 9319-9339).
P.Bad.
Ver6ffentlichungen aus den badischen Papyrus-Sammlungen, Heidelberg. I. Demotische Papyri, ed. W. Spiegelberg, 1923. II. Griechische Papyri (Urkunden, Briefe, Mumienetiketten), ed. F. Bilabel, 1923, nos. 1-45.
III. Ein koptisches Fragment tiber die Begriinder des Manichaismus, ed. F. Bilabel, 1924, no. 46. IV. Griechische Papyri (Urkunden, Briefe, Schreibtafeln, Ostraka etc.), ed. F. Bilabel, 1924, nos.
47-111. V. Griechische, koptische und arabische Texte zur Religion und religidsen Literatur in Aegyptens Spatzeit, ed. F. Bilabel and A. Grohmann, 1934, nos. 112-167. VI. Griechische Papyri (Urkunden und lit. Texte aus der Papyrus-Sammlung der Universitatsbibliothek Heidelberg), ed. G.A. Gerhard, 1938, nos.
P.Bakchias
P.Bala’izah P.Bankakten P.Barc.
168-180.
Sequence continues in P.Heid. (N.F.) Vf. v. P.Lund IV. Coptic Texts from Deir el Bala’izah in Upper Egypt I-II, ed. P.E. Kahle, London 1954. v. P.Berl.Frisk. P. Barcinonenses, Anafora de Barcelona i altres Pregaries (Missa del segle IV), ed. R. Roca-Puig, Barcelona 1994. P. Barcinonenses Inv. n. 158-161, Alcestis. Hexametres llatins, ed. R. Roca-Puig, Barcelona
P.Bas.
P.Batav.
P.Beatty
2000. Papyrusurkunden der 6ffentlichen Bibliothek der Universitat zu Basel. I. Urkunden in griechischer Sprache, ed. E. Rabel. Il. Ein koptischer Vertrag, ed. W. Spiegelberg, Berlin 1917 (Abhandlungen der Akademie der Wissenschaften in Gottingen, Philologisch-historische Klasse N.F. 16.3). v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 19. Chester Beatty Biblical Papyri, ed. F.G. Kenyon, London. I. General Introduction, 1933.
II. The Gospels and Acts, 1933. Part 2: plates, 1934. Ill. Pauline Epistles and Revelation, 1934. part 2: plates, 1936.
Suppl. Pauline Epistles, 1936. Plates, 1937. IV. Genesis, 1934. Part 2: Genesis (Pap. IV), plates, 1935. Part 3: Genesis (Pap. V), plates, 1936. V. Numbers and Deuteronomy, 1935. IV. and V. newly ed. by A. Pietersma (Am.Stud.Pap. 16), Toronto 1977. VI. Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ecclesiasticus, 1937.
V. and VI.: plates, 1958. VII. Ezekiel, Daniel, Esther, 1937. Part 2: plates, 1938.
VIII. Enoch and Melito. Plates, 1941. Text published in: The Last Chapters of Enoch in Greek, ed. C. Bonner, London 1937 (Studies and Documents VIII).
XIII.-XIV. Two Manuscripts of the Greek Psalter, ed. A. Pietersma, Rome 1978.
469
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
XV. The Acts of Phileas, Bishop of Thmuis, with new ed. by P. Bodmer XX and Halkin’s Latin
P.Beatty Panop.
Acta, ed. A. Pietersma, Geneva 1983 (Cahiers d’Orientalisme 7). XVI. The Apocryphon of Jannes and Jambres the Magicians, ed. A. Pietersma, Leiden 1994 (Religions in the Graeco-Roman World 119). v. P.Panop.Beatty.
P.Beauge
v. P.Cair.Masp. II 67156, Ill 67279, 67305.
P.Berl.Bibl.
Frammenti di papiri greci asservati nella Reale Biblioteca di Berlino, ed. G. Parthey (Memorie dell’ Istituto di Correspondenza Archeologica 2, 1865, 438-462). Greek Papyri in the Benaki Museum, from the Collections of the Historical Archives, ed. E. Papapolychroniou, Athens 2000, nos. 1-7. Une description topographique des immeubles a Panopolis, ed. Z. Borkowski, Warsaw 1975 (SB
P. Ben.Mus.
P.Berl.Bork.
XXIV, 16000). P.Berl.Frisk
Bankakten aus dem Faijum nebst anderen Berliner Papyri, ed. H. Frisk, Gothenburg 1931 (Goteborgs kungliga Vetenskaps- och Vitterhets-Samhalles Handlingar, Femte Foljden, Ser. A,2,2.; SB V, 7515-7520).
P.Berl.Leihgabe
P.Berl.Moller
Berliner Leihgabe griechischer Papyri. I. Herausgegeben vom Griechischen Seminar der Universitat Uppsala durch Ture Kalén, Uppsala 1932 (Uppsala Universitets Arsskrift 1932, Filosofi, Sprakvetenskap och Historiska Vetenskaper 1), nos. 1-25. II. Aus dem Nachlafs T. Kaléns fortgefiihrt und in franzésischer Tracht herausgegeben von Alfred Tomsin, Uppsala 1977 (Studia Graeca Upsaliensia 12), nos. 26-46. Griechische Papyri aus dem Berliner Museum, ed. S. Méller, Gothenburg 1929 (SB IV,
7338-7350). P.Berl.Schmidt P.Berl. Thun P.Berl.Zill.
Die griechischen Papyrusurkunden der K6niglichen Bibliothek zu Berlin, ed. W.A. Schmidt, Berlin 1842 (Forschungen auf dem Gebiet des Altertums 1; SB I, 4503, 4504). Sitologen-Papyri aus dem Berliner Museum, ed. K. Thunell, Uppsala 1924 (SB III, 7193-7196, P.Berl.Leihgabe I 1-4). Vierzehn Berliner griechische Papyri, ed. H. Zilliacus. Helsinki 1941 (Societas Scientiarum Fennica, Commentationes Humanarum Litterarum XI.4).
BGU
Aegyptische Urkunden aus den Koniglichen (later: Staatlichen) Museen zu Berlin, Griechische Urkunden, Berlin. I. 1895, nos. 1-361. Il. 1898, nos. 362-696. Ill. 1903, nos. 697-1012.
IV. 1912, nos. 1013-1209. V. Der Gnomon des Idios Logos. Erster Teil: Der Text, ed. W. Schubart, 1919. Zweiter Teil: Der Kommentar von W. Graf Uxkull-Gyllenband, 1934, no. 1210. VI. Papyri und Ostraka der Ptolemaerzeit, ed. W. Schubart and E. Kithn, 1922, nos. 1211-1499.
VII. Papyri, Ostraka und Wachstafeln aus Philadelphia im Fayum, ed. P. Viereck and F. Zucker, 1926, NOS. 1500-1729.
VIII. Spatptolemaische Papyri aus amtlichen Biiros des Herakleopolites, ed. W. Schubart and D. Schafer, 1933, nos. 1730-1890. IX. Steuerlisten romischer Zeit aus Theadelphia, ed. H. Kortenbeutel, 1937, nos. 1891-1900. X. Papyrusurkunden aus ptolemaischer Zeit, ed. W. Miiller, 1970, nos. 1901-2011. XI. Urkunden rémischer Zeit, ed. H. Maehler. Teil I, 1966; Teil I, 1968, nos. 2012-2131.
XII. Papyri aus Hermupolis, ed. H. Maehler, 1974, nos. 2132-2210. XII. Greek Papyri from Roman Egypt, ed. W.M. Brashear, 1976, nos. 2211-2366. XIV. Ptolemaische Urkunden aus Mumienkartonage, ed. W.M. Brashear, 1981, nos.
2367-2457.
XV. Financial and Administrative Documents from Roman Egypt, ed. C.A. Nelson, 1983, nos.
2458-2557. XVI. The Archive of Athenodoros (and Assorted Documents of the Augustan Period), ed. W.M.
Brashear, 1995, nos. 25 58-2674. XVII. Griechische Papyrusurkunden spatromischer und byzantinischer Zeit aus Hermupolis, ed. G. Poethke, Munich-Leipzig 2001 (Archiv fiir Papyrusforschung Beiheft 7), nos. 2675-2730. XVIII. 1. Spatptolemaische Urkunden aus dem Herakleopolites, ed. P. Sarischouli. 2000, nos.
2731-2759. BGU Sert.
Berliner Griechische Papyri. Christliche literarische Texte und Urkunden aus dem 3. bis 8. Jahrhundert n. Chr., ed. P. Sarischouli, Wiesbaden 1995 (Serta Graeca, Beitrage zur Erforschung griechischer Texte 3).
P.Bibl.Univ.Giss.
v. P.Giss.Univ.
P.Bil.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 19.
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
470
P.Bingen
Papyriin honorem Johannis Bingen octogenarii (P.Bingen), ed. H. Melaerts, Leuven 2000 (Studia varia Bruxellensia ad orbem graeco-latinum pertinentia V).
BKT
Berliner Klassikertexte, Berlin.
I. Didymos, Kommentar zu Demosthenes (Papyrus 9780) nebst Worterbuch zu Demosthenes’ Aristocratea (Papyrus 5008), ed. H. Diels and W. Schubart, 1904. II. Anonymer Kommentar zu Platons Theaetet (Papyrus 9782) nebst drei Bruchstiicken philosophischen Inhalts (Pap.N. 8; P.9766, 9569), ed. H. Diels and W. Schubart, 1905. IIL. Griechische Papyri medizinischen und naturwissenschaftlichen Inhalts, ed. K. Kalbfleisch and H. Schone, 1905.
IV. Hierokles’ ethische Elementarlehre (Papyrus 9780) nebst den bei Stobaus erhaltenen ethischen Exzerpten aus Hierokles, ed. H. von Arnim, 1906.
V. Griechische Dichterfragmente: Teil I, Epische und elegische Fragmente; Teil II, Lyrische und dramatische Fragmente, ed. W. Schubart and U. von Wilamowitz-Moellendorff, 1907. VI. Altchristliche Texte, ed. C. Schmidt and W. Schubart, rg10.
P.Bodl. I
P.Bodm.
VII. Rhetorische Papyri, ed. K. Kunst, 1923. VII. Berliner Septuagintafragmente, ed. O. Stegmiller, 1939. IX. Catalogue of Greek and Latin Literary Papyri in Berlin (P. Berol. inv. 21101-21299, 21911), ed. G. loannidou, Mainz 1996. Papyri Bodleianae I, ed. R.P. Salomons, Amsterdam 1996 (Stud.Amst. 34), nos. I — 171. Papyrus Bodmer. Publications of the Bibliotheca Bodmeriana, Cologny-Geneva (unless otherwise indicated).
I. Iliade, chants 5 et 6, ed. V. Martin, 1954. II. Evangile de Jean (chap. 1-14), ed. V. Martin, 1956 Supplément, chap. 14-21, ed. V. Martin, 1958. New edition, ed. V. Martin and J.W.B. Barns, 1962. Ill. Evangile de Jean et Genése I-IV, 2 en bohairique, ed. R. Kasser, Louvain 1958 (Corpus Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium 177, 178 = Scriptores Coptici 25, 26). IV. Ménandre: Le Dyscolos, ed. V. Martin, 1958. V. Nativité de Marie, ed. M. Testuz, 1958. VI. Livre des Proverbes, ed. R. Kasser, Louvain 1960 (Corpus Scriptorum Christianorum Orientalium 194, 195 = Scriptores Coptici 27, 28).
VII-IX. L’épitre de Jude, les deux épitres de Pierre, les Psaumes 33 et 34, ed. M. Testuz, 1959. X-XII: X, Correspondance apocryphe des Corinthiens et de |’ap6tre Paul; XI, Onziéme Ode de Salamon; XII, Fragment d’un hymne liturgique, ed. M.Testuz, 1959. XIII. Méliton de Sardes: Homélie sur la Paque, ed. M. Testuz, 1960. XIV-XV. Evangile de Luc chap. 3-24, Evangile de Jean chap. 1-15, ed. V. Martin and R. Kasser, 1961.
XVI. Exode I-XV, 21 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1961. XVII. Actes des Apétres, Epitres de Jacques, Pierre, Jean et Jude, ed. R. Kasser, 1961. XVIII. Deutéronome I-X, 7 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1962. XIX. Evangile de Matthieu XIV, 28 — XXVIII, 20; Epitre aux Romains I, 1-II, 3 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1962.
XX. Apologie de Philéas, evéque de Thmouis, ed. V. Martin, 1964. XXI. Josué VI, 16-25, VII, 6 — XI, 23, XXII, r-2,19 — XXII, 7, 15 — XXIV, 23 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1963. XXII. Jeremie XL, 3 — LIT, 34; Lamentations; Epitre de Jeremie; Baruch I, 1-V, 5 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1964. XXIII. Esaie, XLVI, 1-LXVI, 24 en sahidique, ed. R. Kasser, 1965. XXIV. Psaumes XVII-CXVIII, ed. R. Kasser and M. Testuz, 1967. XXV. Ménandre: La Samienne, ed. R. Kasser, 1969. XXVI. Ménandre: Le Bouclier, ed. R. Kasser, 1969. XXIX. Vision de Dorothéos, ed. A. Hurst, O. Reverdin and J. Rudhardt, 1984.
XXX-XXXVIII. Codex des Visions, Poémes divers, ed. A. Hurst and J. Rudhardt, 1999. XXXVI.
Erma, Il pastore, ed. A. Carlini with L. Giaccone, r99r.
P.Boissier
v. WChr. 13.
P.Bon.
Papyri Bononienses I, ed. O. Montevecchi, Milan 1953 (Pubblicazioni dell’Universita Cattolica del Sacro Cuore, N.S. 42). v. P.Schow. Les Papyrus Bouriant, ed. P. Collart, Paris 1926.
P.Borgiani P.Bour.
P.Brem.
Die Bremer Papyri, ed. U. Wilcken, Berlin 1936 (Abhandlungen der PreuSischen Akademie der Wissenschaften, Philosophisch-Historische Klasse 1936.2; repr. in: U. Wilcken, Berliner
Akademieschriften zur Alten Geschichte und Papyruskunde II, 193-368, Leipzig 1970). P. Brook.
Greek and Latin Papyri, Ostraca and Wooden Tablets in the Collection of the Brooklyn Museum (P.Brook.), ed. J. Shelton, Florence 1992 (Pap.Flor. 22), nos. 1-184.
471
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
P.Buttmann
Papyri Bruxellenses Graecae. I. Papyrus du nome Prosopite, ed G. Nachtergael, Brussels 1974, nos. 1-21. II. Le poéme élegiaque hellénistique P.Brux. inv. E 8934 et P.Sorb. inv. 2254, ed. M. Huys, Brussels 1991, no. 22. v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 5 (P.Brux. 1-18). Die verkohlten Papyri aus Bubastos (P. Bub.). I. ed. J. Fréseén and D. Hagedorn, Opladen 1990 (Pap. Colon. 15/r), nos. 1-4. II. ed. D. Hagedorn and K. Maresch (P. Bub. II 5), Opladen 1998 (Pap. Colon. 15/2), no. 5. Vi UPA lnrsbe
P:Gair.
Catalogue général des antiquités égyptiennes du Musée du Caire: Greek Papyri nos.
P.Brux.
P.Brux. inv. 7617
P.Bub.
10001-10869, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, Oxford 1903. Cf. now K.A. Worp, Die
P.Cair.Boak P.Cair.Byz. P.Cair.GH P.Cair.Goodsp.
P.Cair.Isid.
P.Cair.Masp.
ver6ffentlichten P.Cair. —- Eine Konkordanz, in: ZPE 91, 1992, 95 ff. v. P.Cair.Isid. v. P.Cair.Masp.
Vek. Gain:
Greek Papyri from the Cairo Museum Together with Papyri of Roman Egypt from American Collections, ed. E.J. Goodspeed, Chicago 1902 (University of Chicago, Decennial Publications, from Vol. 5). The Archive of Aurelius Isidorus in the Egyptian Museum, Cairo, and the University of Michigan, ed. A.E.R. Boak and H.C. Youtie, Ann Arbor 1960. Catalogue général des antiquités égyptiennes du Musée du Caire: Papyrus grecs d’époque byzantine, ed. J. Maspero, Cairo.
I. (Cat. Vol. 51), 1911, nos. 67001-67124. II. (Cat. Vol. 54), 1913, nos. 67125-67278. Ill. (Cat. Vol. 73), 1916, nos. 67279-67359.
P.Cair.Mich. 359
A Tax List from Karanis (P.Cair.Mich 3 59). Part 1, The Text, ed. H. Riad and J.C. Shelton; Part 2, Commentary and Indexes, J.C. Shelton, Bonn 1976-1977 (PTA 17, 18).
P.Cair.Preis.
Griechische Urkunden des Aegyptischen Museums zu Kairo, ed. F. Preisigke, Strasbourg 1911 (Schriften der Wissenschaftlichen Gesellschaft zu Strafburg 8).
P.Cair.Zen.
Catalogue général des antiquités égyptiennes du Musée du Caire: Zenon Papyri, ed. C.C. Edgar, Cairo. I. (Cat. Vol. 79), 1925, nos. 59001-59139. II. (Cat. Vol. 82), 1926, nos. 59140-59297.
Ill. (Cat. Vol. 85), 1928, nos. 59298-59531. IV. (Cat. Vol. 90), 1931, nos. 59532-59800. V. posthum ed. O. Guéraud and P. Jouguet, 1940, nos. 59801-59853 (Publ.Soc.Fouad. 5). P.Casati
v. UPZ II, 180 a.
P.Gatt.
v. APF 3, 1906, 55 ff. (MChr. 88, 372, SBI, 4284).
GEL
Corpus epistularum latinarum papyris tabulis ostracis servatarum (CEL), Vol. I: Textus, Vol. II: Commentarius, ed. P. Cugusi, Florence 1992 (Pap.Flor. 23).
CEM
Corpus des étiquettes de momies grecques, ed. B. Boyaval, Villeneuve-d’Aseq 1976 (Publications de l'Université de Lille III).
P.Ceriani
v. UPZI,46.
P.Charite
Das Aurelia Charite Archiv, ed. K.A. Worp, Zutphen 1981 (Stud.Amst. 12).
P.Chepteliers
v. Recherches de papyrologie 3, 1964, 49 ff. (new ed. SB VIII, 9908-9917; v. P.Aur.Sakaon 86,
P.Chester Beatty
v. P.Beatty.
P.ehic,
Chicago Literary Papyri, ed. E.J. Goodspeed, Chicago 1908. v. P.Kar.Goodsp. Chartae Latinae Antiquiores, ed. A. Bruckner and R. Marichal, Basel, Dietikon-Ziirich 19 54 ff.
87, 95-97).
P.Chic.Goodsp.
CHLA Chrest.Mitt. Chrest. Wilck. P.Colt
v. MChr. v. WChr.
Columbia Papyri. I. Upon Slavery in Ptolemaic Egypt (P.Col.inv. 480), ed. W.L. Westermann, New York 1929. II. Tax Lists and Transportation Receipts from Theadelphia, ed. W.L. Westermann and C.W. Keyes, New York 1932, no. 1 recto. III. Zenon Papyri: Business Papers of the Third Century B.C. Dealing with Palestine and Egypt (P.Col.Zen.), Vol. I, ed. W.L. Westermann and E.S. Hasenoehrl, New York 1934, nos. 2-59. IV. (P.Col.Zen.II), ed. W.L. Westermann, C.W. Keyes and H. Liebesny, New York 1940, nos. 60-122.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
472
V. Tax Documents from Theadelphia. Papyri of the Second Century A.D., ed. J. Day and C.W. Keyes, New York 1956, no. 1 verso.
VI. Apokrimata. Decisions of Septimius Severus on Legal Matters, ed. W.L. Westermann and A.A. Schiller, New York 1954, no. 123 (SB VI, 9526). VII. Fourth Century Documents from Kanaris, ed. R.S. Bagnall and N. Lewis, Missoula 1979 (Am.Stud.Pap. 20), nos.
124-191.
VIII. Columbia Papyri VIII, ed. R.S. Bagnall, T.T. Renner, K.A. Worp, Atlanta 1990 (Am.Stud.Pap. 28), nos. 192-246.
IX. The Vestis Militaris Codex, ed. J.A. Sheridan, Atlanta 1998 (Am.Stud.Pap. 39), nos. 247-248.
PGolfaras P.Col. 480 P.Coll. Youtie
X. Columbia Papyri X, ed. R.S. Bagnall and D.D. Obbink, Atlanta 1996 (Am.Stud.Pap. 34), nos. 249-292. XI. Columbia Papyri XI, ed. T.M. Teeter, Atlanta 1998 (Am.Stud.Pap. 38), nos. 293-303. v. P.Col. VI. VoLsGolel: Collectanea Papyrologica: Texts Published in Honor of H.C. Youtie, ed. A.E. Hanson, Bonn
P.Colon.
v. P.Koln.
1976 (PTA 19-20) I, nos. 1-65; II, nos. 66-126.
P.Colon. inv. 3328
Die Phoinikika des Lollianos: Fragmente eines neuen griechischen Romans, ed. A. Henrichs, Bonn 1972 (PTA 14).
P.Colon. inv. 4780
Der K6lner Mani-Kodex, ed. A. Henrichs and L. Koenen, in: ZPE 19, 1975, 1 ff.; ZPE 32, 1978,
87 ff.; ZPE 44, 1981, 201 ff.; ZPE 48, 1982, x ff. Abbildungen und diplomatischer Text, ed. L.Koenen and C. Romer, Bonn 1985 (PTA 35). Kritische Edition, Text und Ubersetzung, ed. L. Koenen and C. Romer, Opladen 1988 (Pap.Colon. 14).
P.Colon.Panop. P.Colon.Theol. 1 P.Col.Zen. 1,II P.Colt. P.Cond. P.Congr.Omaggio P.Congr. XV
v. P.Panop.
Der Psalmenkommentar von Tura, Quart. IX, ed. A. Kehl, Koln/Opladen 1964 (Pap.Colon. 1).
v. P.Col. Hl, IV. v. P.Ness.
Letters of Condolence in Greek Papyri, ed. J. Chapa, Florence 1998 (Pap.Flor. 29). v. PS] Ommaggio. Actes du XVe Congrés International de Papyrologie (ed. J. Bingen and G. Nachtergael), II: Papyrus inédits, Brussels 1979 (Pap.Brux. 17).
P.Copenhagen P.Corn. C.Ord.Ptol.
C.P.Herm.
CPJ
v. P.Haun; v. also SBI, 428.
Greek Papyri in the Library of Cornell University, ed. W.L. Westermann and C.J. Kraemer Jr., New York 1926.
Corpus des Ordonnances des Ptolémées, ed. M.T. Lenger, Brussels 1964 (Académie Royale de Belgique, Classe des Lettres, Mémoires, coll. in 8, Vol. 57, fasc.r), 2nd bound ed. 1980 (Mémoires 64.2). Addenda: Atti 17.C. I 123 ff. and Bilan des additions et corrections (1964-1988). Complements a la bibliographie, Brussels 1990 (Pap.Brux. 24). v. Stud.Pal. V. Corpus Papyrorum Judaicarum, Cambridge, Mass. I. ed. V.A. Tcherikover, 1957, nos. 1-141.
CPL Cr Gr
Il. ed. V.A. Tcherikover and A. Fuks, 1960, nos. 142-450. Ill. ed. V.A. Tcherikover, A. Fuks and M. Stern, 1964, nos. 451-520. Corpus Papyrorum Latinarum, ed. R. Cavenaile, Wiesbaden 1958. Corpora Papyrorum Graecarum. I. [contratti di baliatico, ed. M. Manca Masciadri and O. Montevecchi, Milan 1984; I.1 (texts), I.2 (plates).
Il. Il controllo della popolazione nell’Egitto romano. Le denunce di morte, ed. L. Casarico, Azzato 1985; II.1 (texts), Il.2 (plates).
CPR
Corpus Papyrorum Raineri, Vienna. I. Griechische Texte I, Rechtsurkunden, ed. C. Wessely, 1895.
V. Griechische Texte II, ed. J.R. Rea and P.J. Sijpesteijn, 1976, nos. 1-25 and P.Vindob. G 39847 (no. 26). VI. Griechische Texte III, Lief. 1, ed. H. Harrauer and S.M.E. van Lith, 1978, nos. 1-71. Lief. 2, Papyriin Wiener Dissertationen (1934-1938), ed. H. Harrauer, nos. 72-85, 1985 and volume
of plates. VII. Griechische Texte IV, ed. H. Zilliacus, J. Frosén, P. Hohti, J. Kaimio, M. Kaimio, 1979. I (text), II (plates). VIII. Griechische Texte V, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn and K.A. Worp, 1983. I (text), II (plates).
473
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
IX. Griechische Texte VI, ed. J.M. Diethart, 1984. I (text), II (plates). X. Griechische Texte VII, ed. H. Harrauer, 1986. I (text), II (plates). XIII. Griechische Texte IX, Neue Papyri zum Steuerwesen im 3. Jh. v. Chr., ed. H. Harrauer, 1987.
XIV. Griechische Texte X, Greek Papyri of the Byzantine Period, ed. G. Fantoni, 1989. I (text), II (plates).
CSkl. PCusts
XV. Griechische Texte XI, Papiri greci di Socnopaiu Nesos e dell’ Arsinoites, ed. G. Messeri Savorelli, 1990. I (text), II (plates). XVIIA. Griechische Texte XIIA, Die Archive der Aurelii Adelphios und Asklepiades, ed. K.A. Worp, 1991. I (text), II (plates). XVIIB. Griechische Texte XIIB, Papyri aus Panopolis, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, r99r. I (text), II (plates). XVIII. Griechische Texte XIII, Das Vertragsregister von Theogenis (P. Vindob. G 40618), ed. B. Kramer, 1991. I (text), II (plates). XXI. Arabic Agricultural Leases and Tax Receipts from Egypt 148-427 A.H./765-1035 A.D., ed. G. Frantz-Murphy, 2001. XXII. Griechische Texte XV, Documenti greci per la fiscalita e la amministrazione dell’ Egitto arabo, ed. F. Morelli, 2001. I (text), II (plates). XXIII. Griechische Texte XVI, Neue Dokumente aus dem rémischen und spatantiken Agypten zu Verwaltung und Reichsgeschichte (1.-7. Jh. n. Chr.), ed. F. Mitthoff, 2002. XXIV. Griechische Texte XVII, Dokumente zu Verwaltung und Militar aus dem spatantiken Agypten, ed. B. Palme, 2002. I (text), II (plates). Corpus der ptolemaischen Sklaventexte, 1. Teil: texts 1-114, 2. Teil: texts 115-260, 3. Teil: Indices (Forschungen zur antiken Sklaverei, Bh. 1), ed. R. Scholl, Stuttgart 1990. Custom Duties in Graeco-Roman Egypt, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, Zutphen 1987 (Stud.Amst. 17).
P.Denkschriften
Denkschriften der Philosophisch-historischen Klasse der Akademie Wien, Vol. 37 (1889); v. list in SB II, 74-82.
P.Didot
v. URZiA56:
Dikaiomata
¥. Pildal:
P.Diog.
Les archives de Marcus Lucretius Diogenes et textes apparentés. Textes édités par P. Schubert, Bonn 1990 (PTA 39).
P.Dion. Doc.Eser.Rom.
Pap.Lugd.Bat. 22. Documenti per la storia dell’esercito romano in Egitto, ed. $. Daris, Milan 1964 (Pubblicazioni dell’ Universita Cattolica del Sacro Cuore. Contributi, Serie Terza, Scienze Storiche 9).
P.Dresden
v. UPZI, 34, 43, 44.
P.Droysen
v. UPZ II passim.
P.Dryton
The Bilingual Family Archive of Dryton, His Wife Apollonia and Their Daughter Senmouthis (P. Dryton), ed. K. Vandorpe, Brussels 2002 (Collectanea Hellenistica 4). Greek Papyri from Dublin (P.Dub.), ed. B.C. McGing, Bonn 1995 (PTA 42). The Excavations at Dura-Europos Conducted by Yale University and the French Academy of Inscriptions and Letters. Final Report V, Part I: The Parchments and Papyri, ed. C.B. Welles, R.O. Fink and J.F. Gilliam, New Haven 1959.
P.Dub. P.Dura
D.J.D.
v. P.Mur.
P.Edfou
Papyri und Ostraka publiziert in: Fouilles Franco-Polonaises Rapports I-III, ed. Institut Francais d’Archéologie Orientale du Caire and University of Warsaw. I. Tell Edfou 1937, ed. B. Bruyére, J. Manteuffel, K. Michalowski, J. Sainte Fare Garnot, Cairo 1937, Chap.V, 141-191 (Papyri I-IV, Ostraka 1-230). II. Tell Edfou 1938, ed. K. Michalowski, J. de Linage,J.Manteuffel,J.Sainte Fare Garnot, Cairo 1938, Chap. Ill, 138-166 (Papyri V-VII, Ostraka 23 1-325).
P.Edg.
Ill. Tell Edfou 1939, ed. K. Michalowski, C. Desroches,J. de Linage, J. Manteuffel, M. Zejmo-Zejmis, Cairo 1950, Chap.V, 331-372 (Papyrus VIII, Ostraka 326-483). Papyrus IX: SB VI, 9613. Selected Papyri from the Archives of Zenon, ed. C.C. Edgar, in: Annales du Service des Antiquites de l’Egypte, Cairo (new ed. in P.Cair.Zenon). nos. 1-10: Vol. 18 (1918), 159-182; nos. 11-21: Vol. 18 (1918), 225-244; nos. 22-36: Vol. 19 (x919), 13-363 nos. 37-48: Vol. 19 (1920), 81-104; nos. 49-54: Vol. 20 (1920), 19-40; nos. 55-64: Vol. 20 (1920), 181-206; nos. 65-66: Vol. 21 (1921), 89-109; nos. 67-72: Vol. 22
(1922), 209-2313 nos. 73-76: Vol. 23 (1923), 73-98; nos. 77-88: Vol. 23 (1923), 187-209; nos. 89-111: Vol. 24 (1924), 17-52. P.Edmondstone P.Eitrem
v. MChr. 361. SBI, 5661-5664; no. 5: F. Preisigke, SHAW 1916, no. 3.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
P.Egerton
P.Egger P.Eleph.
P.Eleph. DAIK
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
474
Fragments of an Unknown Gospel and Other Early Christian Papyri, ed. H.I. Bell and T.C. Skeat, London 1935. (E.) Egger, in: Bulletin de la Société des antiquaires de France, Paris 1862, 123 ff. Aegyptische Urkunden aus den kéniglichen Museen in Berlin: Griechische Urkunden, Sonderheft. Elephantine-Papyri, ed. O. Rubensohn, Berlin 1907. Les papyrus et les ostraka grecs d’Elephantine (P. et O.Eleph.DAIK), ed. G. Wagner, Mainz 1998 (Archaologische Ver6ffentlichungen 70).
P.Ent.
Enteuxeis: Requétes et plaintes adressées au Roi d’Egypte au Ile siecle avant J.-C., ed. O. Guéraud, Cairo 1931 (Publ.Soc.Fouad 1).
Pip:
The Monastery of Epiphanius at Thebes. Part II. Coptic Ostraca and Papyri, ed. W.E. Crum.
P.Erasm.
Papyri in the Collection of the Erasmus University (Rotterdam). I. ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn and P.A. Verdult, Brussels 1986 (Pap.Brux. 21). II. Parts of the Archive of an Arsinoite Sitologos from the Middle of the Second Century BC, ed. P.A. Verdult, Amsterdam 1991 (Stud.Amst. 32). Die Papyri der Universitatsbibliothek Erlangen, ed. W. Schubart, Leipzig 1942 (Katalog der Handschriften der Universitatsbibliothek Erlangen, revision, Vol. 3, Part r). Ein spatantikes Wirtschaftsbuch aus Diospolis Parva. Der Erlanger Papyruskodex und die Texte
Greek Ostraka and Papyri ed. H.G. Evelyn White, New York 1926 (SBIV, 7477-7514).
P.Erl.
P.Erl.Diosp.
aus seinem Umfeld (P.Erl.Diosp.), ed. F. Mitthof, Munich-Leipzig 2002 (APF, suppl. 12), nos.
I-5. P.Euphr.
Documents d’archives romaines inédits du Moyen Euphrate (III s. aprés J.-C.), ed. D. Feissel and J. Gascou. Journal des Savants 1995, 65 ff. (SB XXII, 15496-15500), 1997, 3 ff. (SB XXIV,
P.Fam.Tebt.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. VI. Fayum Towns and their Papyri, ed. B.P. Grenfell, A.S. Hunt and D.G. Hogarth, London 1900 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 3). Feste pubbliche e private nei documenti greci, ed. M. Vandoni, Milan 1964 (Testi e documenti per lo studio dell’antichita, Serie Papyrologica VIII). Papiri greco-egizii, Papiri Fiorentini (Supplementi Filologico-Storici ai Monumenti Antichi), Milan.
16167-16171).
P.Fay. Feste
P.Flor. (also P.Fior.)
I. Documenti pubblici e privati dell’eta romana e bizantina, ed. G. Vitelli, 1906, nos. 1-105.
Il. Papiri letterari ed epistolari, ed. D. Comparetti, 1908-1911, nos. 106-278. III. Documenti e testi letterari dell’eta romana e bizantina, ed. G. Vitelli, 1915, nos. 279-391.
P.Forshall
P.Fouad
Description of the Greek Papyri in the British Museum, by J. Forshall, London 1839 (v. SB II, 84 fale Les Papyrus Fouad I, ed. A. Bataille, O. Guéraud, P. Jouguet, N. Lewis, H. Marrou, J. Scherer and
W.G. Waddell, Cairo 1939 (Publ.Soc.Fouad 3).
P.Fouad 266
Three Rolls of the Early Septuagint: Genesis and Deuteronomy, a Photographic Edition by Z. Aly, Bonn 1980 (PTA 27).
P.Frankf. P.Fraser
Griechische Papyri aus dem Besitz des Rechtswissenschaftlichen Seminars der Universitat Frankfurt, ed. H. Lewald, Heidelberg 1920 (SHAW 1920, Abh.14). v. UPZ Il, 158 b-c.
P.Freer
Greek and Coptic Papyri in the Freer Gallery of Art, ed. L.S.B. MacCoull, thesis, Washington
P.Freib.
Mitteilungen aus der Freiburger Papyrussammlung.
DGeo 73% I. Literarische Stiicke, ed. W. Aly. Ptolemaische Kleruchenurkunde, ed. M. Gelzer, Heidelberg 1914 (SHAW 1914, Abh.z), nos. 1-7 (7 = SBI, 5942). Il. Juristische Texte der romischen Zeit, ed. J. Partsch, Heidelberg 1916 (SHAW 1916, Abh. ro) > nos. 8-11 (SB II, 6291-6294).
Ill. Juristische Urkunden der Ptolemaerzeit, ed. J. Partsch, Heidelberg 1927 (Abh. Heidelberg 1927, Abh. 7), nos. 12-38. IV. Griechische und demotische Papyri der Universitatsbibliothek Freiburg, ed. R.W. Daniel, M. Gronewald and H.J. Thissen, Bonn 1986, nos. 45-75. (no. 39 = SB V 7600; nos. 40,41 = SBIII, 6094, 6095; no. 42 = SBIV, 7351; no. 43 = SB VI, 9562; no. 44 = P. Cust. 206). P.Frisk
v. P.Berl.Frisk.
P.Fuad I Univ.
Fuad I University Papyri, ed. D.S. Crawford, Alexandria 1949 (Publ.Soc.Fouad 8).
(also P.Fuad Crawford) P.Fuad.
y. also P.Fouad.
475 Fihrer PER/PERF P.Gen.
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer: Fiihrer durch die Ausstellung, Vienna 1892, 1894 (2nd ed.; v. edition of texts in: Stud.Pal. XX). Les Papyrus de Genéve. I. ed. J. Nicole, Geneva 1896-1906, nos. 1-81. 2nd ed.: nos. 1-10, 12-44, 66-78, 80-81, Textes documentaires, ed. P. Schubert and I. Jornot, Geneva 2002. I]. Textes littéraires et documentaires, ed. Cl. Wehrli, Geneva 1986, nos. 82-117. Ill. Textes litteraires et documentaires, ed. P. Schubert, Geneva 1996, nos. 118-146.
P.Gen.lat
Textes grecs inédits de la collection papyrologique de Genéve, ed J. Nicole, Geneva 1909. Archives militaires de ler siécle. Texte inédit du papyrus latin de Genéve no. 1, ed. J. Nicole and C.
P.Genova
v. PUG.
P.Gentili
v. SBI, 5658, P.Flor. Ill 368-370. v. SBI, 3924.
P.Genf.inéd.
Morel, Geneva 1900 (CPL 106).
P.Germ. P.Giss.
Griechische Papyri im Museum des oberhessischen Geschichtsvereins zu Giessen, ed. O. Eger, E. Kornemann and P.M. Meyer, Leipzig-Berlin 1910-1922. Teil I, nos. 1-35; Teil II, nos. 36-57; Teil III, nos. 58-126.
P.Giss. Lit.
Die Giessener Literarischen Papyri und die Caracalla-Erlasse. Edition, translation and commentary by P.A. Kuhlmann (Berichte und Arbeiten aus der Universitatsbibliothek und dem Universitatsarchiv Giessen 46), Giessen 1994.
P.Giss.Univ.
Mitteilungen aus der Papyrussammlung der Giessener Universitatsbibliothek, Giessen. I. Griechische Papyrusurkunden aus ptolemdaischer und rémischer Zeit, ed. H. Kling, 1924 (Schriften der hessischen Hochschulen, Universitat Giessen 1924,4), nos. I-16. II. Ein Bruchstiick des Origenes uber Genesis I 28, ed. P. Glaue, 1928 (Schriften 1928,1), no. 17. Ill. Griechische Privatbriefe, ed. H. Bittner, 1931 (Schriften 193 1,3), nos. 18-33. IV. Literarische Sticke, ed. H. Eberhart, 1935 (Schriften 193 5,2), nos. 34-45. V. Alexandrinische Geronten vor Kaiser Gaius: Ein neues Bruchstiick der sogenannten Alexandrinischen Martyrer-Akten, ed. A. von Premerstein, 1939 (Schriften der Ludwigs-Universitat zu Giessen, Jg. 1936), no. 46.
VI. Griechische Verwaltungsurkunden von Tebtynis aus dem Anfang des dritten Jahrhunderts n. Chr., ed. G. Rosenberger, 1939, nos. 47-53. Indices zu den Papyri Bibliothecae Universitatis Gissensis (P.bibl.univ.Giss.), K.A. Worp, 1975 (Kurzberichte 3 5). P.Gloss.bil.
Glossaria bilinguia in papyris et membranis reperta, ed. J. Kramer, Bonn 1983 (PTA 30). Glossaria bilinguia altera (P. Gloss. biling. II), ed. J. Kramer, Munich-Leipzig 2001 (APF, suppl.
PGM
Die griechischen Zauberpapyri (Pap. graecae magicae), Vol. 1-2, ed. K. Preisendanz, Berlin 1928/1931. 2nd bound ed., ed. A. Henrichs, Stuttgart 1973-74.
P.Gnomon
v. BGU V.
P.Goodsp.
v. P.Cair.Goodsp., P.Chic. and P.Kar.Goodsp. Papyrus grecs de la Bibliotheque municipale de Gothembourg, ed. H. Frisk, Gothenburg 1929 (Goteborgs Hégskolas Arsskrift 35, 1929.1). Griechische Papyri der Sammlung Gradenwitz, ed. G. Plaumann, Heidelberg 1914 (Sitzungsberichte der Heidelberger Akademie der Wissenschaften 1914, Abh. 15; nos. r-19 = SB
8).
P.Got.
P.Grad.
I, 5680, SB Ill, 6275-6290). Gradenwitz, Erbstreit
SB LAsi2.
P.Graec.Berol.
Papyri Graecae Berolinenses, ed. W. Schubart, Bonn 1911 (Tabulae in usum Scholarum 2).
P.Gramm.
The Grammatical Papyri from Greco-Roman Egypt. Contributions to the Study of the ‘ars grammatica’ in Antiquity, ed. A. Wouters, Brussels 1979 (Verhandelingen van de koninklijke Academie voor Wetenschappen van Belgié, Klasse der Letteren 41, 1979, no. 92).
P.Graux
I. SBIV, 7461-7468. Il. P. Graux II (9-29), ed. H. Cuvigny, Geneva-Paris 1995 (Ecole pratique des Hautes Etudes, IV
sect.: Sciences historiques et philologiques III], Hautes Etudes du Monde gréco-romain 19). Ill. P. Graux III (P. Graux 30), ed. S. Kambitsis, Geneva-Paris 1997 (Ecole pratique des Hautes
Etudes, IV sect.: Sciences historiques et philologiques III, Hautes Etudes du monde gréco-romain 23). P.Graz
v. Stud.Pal. IV, 114-121.
P.Grenf.
I. An Alexandrian Erotic Fragment and Other Greek Papyri Chiefly Ptolemaic, ed. B.P. Grenfell, Oxford 1896. II. New Classical Fragments and other Greek and Latin Papyri, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, Oxford 1897.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
476
P.Grey
v. UPZ Il, 165-167.
P.Gr.Texte
v. P.Meyer.
P.Gron.
Papyri Groninganae. Griechische Papyri der Universitatsbibliothek zu Groningen nebst zwei Papyri der Universitatsbibliothek zu Amsterdam, ed. A.G. Roos, Amsterdam 1933 (Verhandelingen der Koninklijke Akademie van Wetenschappen te Amsterdam, Afdeeling Letterkunde. Nieuwe Reeks, Deel 32, no. 4). The two Amsterdam papyri published on pp. 53-58 should be cited as P.Gron.Amst. 1 and 2.
G.S.M.
v. Shorthand Manuals.
P.Gur.
Greek Papyri from Gurob, ed. J.G. Smyly, Dublin 1921 (Royal Irish Academy, Cunningham Memotrs 12).
P.Hal.
P.Hamb.
Dikaiomata. Ausziige aus alexandrinischen Gesetzen und Verordnungen in einem Papyrus des Philologischen Seminars der Universitat Halle mit einem Anhang weiterer Papyri derselben Sammlung, ed. von der Graeca Halensis, Berlin 1913. I. Griechische Papyrusurkunden der Hamburger Staats- und Universitatsbibliothek I, ed. P.M. Meyer, Leipzig-Berlin 1911-1924. Teil I, nos. 1-23; Teil II, nos. 24-56; Teil III, nos. 57-117.
P. Harrauer
II. Griechische Papyri der Hamburger Staats- und Universitatsbibliothek mit einigen Stiicken aus der Sammlung Hugo Ibscher, ed. B. Snell et al., Hamburg 1954 (Ver6ffentlichungen aus der Hamburger Staats-und Universitatsbibliothek 4), nos. 118-192. Ill. Griechische Papyri der Staats- und Universitatsbibliothek Hamburg, ed. B. Kramer and D. Hagedorn, Bonn 1984 (PTA 31), nos. 193-234. IV. Griechische Papyri der Staats- und Universitatsbibliothek Hamburg, ed. B. Kramer and D. Hagedorn, Stuttgart-Leipzig 1998 (APF, suppl. 4), nos. 23 5-283. Wiener Papyri als Festgabe zum 60. Geburtstag von Hermann Harrauer (P. Harrauer), ed. B. Palme, Vienna 2001.
PeElarrs
The Rendel Harris Papyri of Woodbrooke College Birmingham. I. ed. J.E. Powell, Cambridge 1936, nos. 1-165. Il. ed. I. Andorlini et al., Zutphen 1985 (Stud.Amst. 26), nos. 166-240.
P.Haun.
Papyri Graecae Haunienses. I. Literarische Texte und ptolemdische Urkunden, ed. T. Larsen, Copenhagen 1942, nos. 1-12 (documents = SB VI, 9422-9425). II. Letters and Mummy Labels from Roman Egypt, ed. A. Biilow-Jacobsen, Bonn 1981 (PTA 29),
P.Haw.
P.Heid.
nos. 13-44. Ill. Subliterary Texts and Byzantine Documents from Egypt, ed. T. Larsen and A. Bulow-Jacobsen, Bonn 1985 (PTA 36), nos. 45-59. Hawara, Biahmu and Arsinoe, ed. W.M. Flinders Petrie, London 1889, 16-36. Cf. overview in SB II, 126-27. As published in APF 5, 1913, 380-397: SB XVIII, 13219-13245. Ver6ffentlichungen aus der Heidelberger Papyrussammlung. I. Die Septuaginta-Papyri, ed. A. Deissmann, Heidelberg 1905. II. Acta Pauli aus der Heidelberger koptischen Papyrus-Handschrift no. 1, ed. C. Schmidt, Leipzig 1904. Ill. Papyri Schott-Reinhardt I, ed. C.H. Becker, Heidelberg 1906 (Greek documents = SB I,
5638-55). IV. Griechisch literarische Papyri I, Ptolemaische Homerfragmente, ed. G.A. Gerhard, Heidelberg rorr. (N.F.) I. Zum Drogenhandel im islamischen Aegypten, ed. A. Dietrich, Heidelberg 1954. (N.F.) IL. Literarische griechische Texte der Heidelberger Papyrussammlung, ed. E. Siegmann, Heidelberg 1956, nos. 181-209 (continuation of sequence of P.Bad. VI); nos. 210-224
continued by J. Seyfarth, in: APF 16, 1958, 143-68 = SB VI, 9530-9544.
(N.F.) I. Griechische Papyrusurkunden und Ostraka der Heidelberger Papyrussammlung, ed. P. Sattler, Heidelberg 1963, nos. 225-288. (N.F.) IV. Griechische Texte der Heidelberger Papyrus-Sammlung, ed. B. Kramer and D. Hagedorn, Heidelberg 1986, nos. 289-342. (N.F.) V. Vertragliche Regelungen von Arbeiten im spaten griechischsprachlichen Agypten mit Editionen von Texten der Heidelberger Papyrus-Sammlung, des Istituto Papirologico ‘G.Vitelli’, des Agyptischen Museums zu Kairo und des British Museum, London, ed. A. Jordens, Heidelberg 1990 (Abh. Heidelberg, Philosophisch-historische Klasse N.F. 6), nos.
343-361. (N.F.) VI. Ptolemaische Urkunden aus der Heidelberger Papyrussammlung (P.Heid. V1), ed. R. Duttenh6fer, Heidelberg 1994 (Abh. Heidelberg, Philosophisch-historische Klasse N.F. 7), NOS. 362-386.
(N.F.) VU. Fiinfundzwanzig griechische Papyri aus den Sammlungen von Heidelberg, Wien and Kairo (P.Heid. VII), ed. A. Papathomas, Heidelberg 1996 (Abh. Heidelberg, Phil.hist. KI. N.F. 9), nos. 387-411.
477
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
(N.F.) VII. Dokumentarische Papyri des 2. Jh. v. Chr. aus dem Herakleopolites (P.Heid. VIII), ed. D. Kaltsas, Heidelberg 2001 (Abh. Heidelberg, Phil-hist. Kl. N.F. 10), nos. 412-421. P.Hels.
Papyri Helsingienses. I. Ptolemaische Urkunden, ed. J. Frésén, Helsinki
1986, nos. 1-47 (Commentationes
humanarum litterarum 80). P.Hercul.
M. Gigante, Catalogo dei papiri ercolanesi, Naples 1979. M. Capasso, Primo supplemento al catalogo dei papiri ercolanesi, in: Cronache Ercolanesi 19, 1989, 193 ff. T. Dorandi, Supplemento ai Supplementi al Catalogo dei Papiri Ercolanesi, in: ZPE 135, 2001, 45 ff.
P.Herm.(Rees)
P.Herm.Landl.
Papyri from Hermopolis and Other Documents of the Byzantine Period, ed. B.R. Rees, London 1964 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 42), nos. 1-85. v. P.Landl.
P.Herm.
v. P. Herm.(Rees) and Stud.Pal. V.
P.Hernals
v. overview in SB Il, 93.
P.Hess.
v. P.Giss.Univ.
P.Hib.
The Hibeh Papyri, London. I. ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1906 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 7),
nos. I-171. Il. ed. E.G. Turner and M.-T. Lenger, 1955 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 32), nos. 172-284. P.Holm. P.Hombert
Papyrus Graecus Holmiensis. Recepte fiir Silber, Steine und Purpur, ed. O. Lagercrantz, Uppsala and Leipzig 1913 (Arbeten utgifna med understéd af Vilhelm Ekmans Universitetsfond 13). La Collection Marcel Hombert. I. Timbres amphoriques et autres documents écrits acquis en Egypte, ed. G. Nachtergael, Brussels 1978 (Pap.Brux. 15).
P.Horosc.
P.Ibscher P.IFAO
II. Nouveaux documents grecs d’Egypte et Addenda au Tome I, ed. G. Nachtergael, Brussels 2003 (Pap.Brux. 32). Greek Horoscopes, ed. O. Neugebauer and H.B. van Hoesen, Philadelphia 1959 (Memoirs of the American Philosophical Society 48). v. P.Hamb. II. Papyrus grecs de l'Institut Francais d’Archéologie Orientale, Cairo (Institut Francais d’Archéologie Orientale du Caire. Bibliothéque d’Etude). I. ed. J. Schwartz, 1971 (Bibl.54).
II. ed. G. Wagner, 1971 (Bibl.5 5). IIL. ed. J. Schwartz and G. Wagner, 1975 (Bibl.56). P.Innsbruck
WPRZ IS 3.6:
P.Isid.
v. P.Cair.Isid. Die nichtliterarischen lateinischen Papyri Italiens aus der Zeit 445-700, ed. J.-O. Tjader (Acta
P.Ital.
Instituti Romani Regni Sueciae, ser. in 4, XIX 1,2,3).
I. Lund 1955, nos. 1-28. II. Stockholm 1982, nos. 29-59.
III. Plates. Lund 1954. Pajac.
P.Jand.
v. P.Mil. Papyri Jandanae, cum discipulis ed. C. Kalbfleisch, Leipzig, ab V: Leipzig-Berlin. I. Voluminum codicumque fragmenta Graeca cum amuleto christiano, ed. E. Schaefer, 1912, nos. I-7. II. Epistulae privatae Graecae, ed. L. Eisner, 1913, nos. 8-25. III. Instrumenta Graeca publica et privata, Teil I, ed. L. Spohr, 1913, nos. 26-51. IV. Instrumenta Graeca publica et privata, Teil II, ed. G. Spiess, 1914, nos. 52—68b. V. Literarische Stiicke und Verwandtes, ed. J. Sprey, 1913, nos. 69-90. VI. Griechische Privatbriefe, ed. G. Rosenberger, 1934, nos. 91-133. VII. Griechische Verwaltungsurkunden, ed. D. Curschmann, 1934, nos. 134-145. VII. Griechische Wirtschaftsrechnungen und Verwandtes, ed. J. Hummel, 1938, nos. 146-155.
P.Jand. inv. 653
A Sixth Century Account of Hay, ed. T. Reekmans, Brussels 1962 (Pap.Brux. 1; SB VIII, 9920).
P.Jena
Jenaer Papyrus-Urkunden, ed. F. Zucker and F. Schneider, Jena 1926 (SB III, 7165-7168).
P.Jews
v. P.Lond. VI. v. WChr. 155. We baatispe 57. Juristische Papyri, ed. P.M. Meyer, Berlin 1920.
P.Jernstedt P.Jormard jp
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
P.Jud.Des.
v. P.Mur.
P.Kalbfleisch
Papyri graecae Musei Britannici et Musei Beroliensis, ed. C. Kalbfleisch, Rostock 1902.
P.Karanis
v. P.Kar.Goodsp. Papyri from Karanis, ed. E.J. Goodspeed, Chicago 1902 (University of Chicago, Studies in
P.Kar.Goodsp.
478
Classical Philology II, 1-66; SB Beiheft 2, 1961).
P.Kell.G.
Greek Paypri from Kellis, Oxford. I. Greek Papyri from Kellis I, ed. K.A. Worp in Collaboration with J.E.G. Whitehorne and R.W. Daniel, 1995 (Dakhleh Oasis Project: Monograph 3), nos. 1-9o. II. Kellis Literary Texts I, ed. I. Gardner, 1996 (Dakhleh Oasis Project: Monograph 4), nos. G
91-94, C 1-9. Il. The Kellis Isocrates Codex, ed. K.A. Worp, A. Rijksbaron, 1997 (Dakhleh Oasis Project: Monograph 5), no. 95. IV. The Kellis Agricultural Account Book, ed. R.S. Bagnall, 1997 (Dakhleh Oasis Project: Monograph 7), no. 96. P.KI.Form.
v. Stud.Pal. Ill and VHUI.
P.Koln
Kolner Papyri, Opladen — Wiesbaden. I. ed. B. Kramer and R. Hiibner, 1976 (Pap.Colon.7,1), nos. 1-57.
II. ed. B. Kramer and D. Hagedorn, 1978 (Pap.Colon.7,z), nos. 58-124. III. ed. B. Kramer, M. Erler, D. Hagedorn, R. Hiibner, 1980 (Pap.Colon.7,3), nos. 125-166. IV. ed. B. Kramer, C. Romer and D. Hagedorn, 1982 (Pap.Colon.7,4), nos. 167-202. V. ed. M. Gronewald, K. Maresch, W. Schafer, 1985 (Pap.Colon.7,5), nos. 203-240. VI. ed. M. Gronewald et al., 1987 (Pap.Colon. 7,6), nos. 241-281. VII. ed. M. Gronewald and K. Maresch, 1991 (Pap.Colon. 7,7), nos. 282-326.
VIII. ed. M. Gronewald, K. Maresch, C. Rémer, 1997 (Pap.Colon. 7,8), nos. 327-355. IX. ed. M. Gronewald et al., zoo (Pap.Colon. 7,9), nos. 356-397.
P.Koln Panop.
v. P.Panop.
P.Kom.Ischkaw
Fragments of Coptic and Greek Papyri from Kom Ischkaw, ed. H. Messiah, Cairo 1983 (Suppl. aux Ann. Service Ant.de |’Egypte). Eine ptolemdische K6nigsurkunde, ed. L. Koenen, Wiesbaden 1957 (Klassisch-philologische
P.Kroll
Studien 19; SB VI, 9316). P.Kron.
P.Landl.
L’archivio di Kronion, ed. D. Foraboschi, Milan 1971 (Collana di testi e documenti per lo studio dell’antichita 36). Zwei Landlisten aus dem Hermupolites, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn and K.A. Worp, Zutphen 1978 (Stud.Amst. 7).
Pau:
Dai Papiri della Biblioteca Medicea Laurenziana, Florence. I. ed. R. Pintaudi, 1976 (Pap.Flor. 1), nos. 1-20. II. ed. R. Pintaudi, 1977 (Pap.Flor. 2), nos. 21-50.
Ill. ed. R. Pintaudi, 1979 (Pap.Flor. 5), nos. 51-125. IV. ed. R. Pintaudi, 1983 (Pap.Flor. 12), nos. 126-192. P.Leeds Museum
A Selective Publication and Description of the Greek Papyri in the Leeds City Museum, ed. S. Strassi (Proceedings of the Leeds Philosophical and Literary Society, Literary and Historical Section, XIX.4), Leeds 1983 (SB XVI, 12862, 12958-12978, 13082).
P.Leid.
Papyri Graeci Musei Antiquarii Lugduni-Batavi, ed. C. Leemans, Leiden (newly edited in UPZ except nos. R, V, W, X).
I. 1843, nos. A-U. II. 1885, nos. V-Z. P.Leid.Inst.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. XXV.
P.Leid.Reuvens
Lettres a M. Letronne sur les papyrus bilingues et grecs par C.J.C. Reuvens, Leiden 1830. Die griechischen Papyri der Leipziger Universitats-Bibliothek, ed. K. Wessely, Leipzig 1885 (Verhandlungen der kéniglichen Sachsischen Gesellschaft der Wissenschaften 37, 237-275). Leitourgia Papyri, ed. N. Lewis, Philadelphia 1963 (Transactions of the American Philosophical Society N.S. 53, Teil 9; SB VIII, ror92-10208). v. P.Frankf. SB Los v. overview in SB II, r4o. Papyrus grecs (Institut Papyrologique de I’ Université de Lille). I. in 4 fasc., 1907, 1908, 1923 and 1928 (Vol. I partly repr. in Travaux et mémoires de l’Université
PLeip7z.
Bilere P.Lewald
P.Libbey P.Libelli
P.Lille
de Lille, hors série, 1929), ed. P. Jouguet, P. Collart, J. Lesquier, M. Xoual, nos. 1-60.
P.Lips.
II. Papyrus de Magdola, ed. J. Lesquier, 1912 (repr. in: P.Ent.). Griechische Urkunden der Papyrussammlung zu Leipzig. I. ed. L. Mitteis, Leipzig 1906, nos. 1-123. II. ed. R. Duttenh6fer, Munich-Leipzig 2002 (APF, suppl. ro), nos. 124-152.
479
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
P.Lit.Lond.
v. P.Lond.Lit.
P.Lit.Palau Rib.
Papiros literarios griegos del fondo Palau-Ribes, ed. J. O’Callaghan, Barcelona 1993 (Estudis de papirologia i filologia biblica 3). Greek Papyri in the British Museum, London. I. ed. F.G. Kenyon, 1893, nos. 1-138. II. ed. F.G. Kenyon, 1898, nos. 139-484. Ill. ed. F.G. Kenyon and HI. Bell, 1907, nos. 485-1331. IV. The Aphrodito Papyri, ed. H.I. Bell, with Appendix of Coptic Papyri, ed. W.E. Crum, r9r0,
P.Lond.
nos. 1332-1646.
V. ed HI. Bell, 1917, nos. 1647-1911. VI. Jews and Christians in Egypt. The Jewish Troubles in Alexandria and the Athanasian Controversy, ed. H.I. Bell, 1924, nos. 1912-1929 (subsequently counted as Vol. VI). VII. The Zenon Archive, ed. T.C. Skeat, 1974, nos. 1930-2193. P.Lond.Lit. P.Louvre
Catalogue of the Literary Papyri in the British Museum, ed. H.J.M. Milne, London 1927. v. UPZ.
P.Louvre
Griechische Papyri aus Soknopaiu Nesos (P. Louvre I), ed. A. Jordens, with contributions from K.-T. Zauzich, Bonn 1998 (PTA 43), nos. 1-92.
Pap.Lugd.Bat.
Papyrologica Lugduno-Batava, Leiden. I. The Warren Papyri, ed. M. David, B.A. van Groningen and J.C. van Oven, 1941. II. Einige Wiener Papyri (P. Vindob.Boswinkel), ed. E. Boswinkel, 1942. Ill. Some Oxford Papyri, ed. E.P. Wegener (A/B), 1942/8. IV. De Herodoti reliquiis in papyris et membranis aegyptiis servatis, ed. AJH.R.E. Paap, 1948. V. Recherches sur le recensement dans l’Egypte romaine (P.Bruxelles inv. E.7616), ed. M. Hombert and Cl. Préaux, 1952 (repr. as P.Brux. I 1-18).
VI. A Family Archive from Tebtunis, ed. B.A. van Groningen, 1950. X. Aeschylus Dictyulci, ed. M. Werre-de-Haas, 1961. XI. Einige Wiener Papyri (P.Vindob. Sijpesteijn), ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, 1963. XIII. Papyri selectae (P.L.Bat. XIII), ed. E. Boswinkel, P.W. Pestman and P.J. Sijpesteijn, 1965. XVI. The Wisconsin Papyri I (P.Wisc. I), ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, 1967, nos. 1-37.
XVII. Antidoron Martino David oblatum. Miscellanea papyrologica, ed. E. Boswinkel, B.A. van Groningen, P.W. Pestman, 1968 (Greek texts = SB X, 10281-10287).
XVIII. The Xenophon Papyri (Anabasis, Cyropaedia, Cynegeticus, De Vectigalibus), ed. A.H.R.E. Paap, 1970.
XIX. Textes grecs, démotiques et bilingues, ed. E. Boswinkel and P.W. Pestman, 1978. XX. Greek and Demotic Texts from the Zenon Archive, ed. P.W. Pestman, 1980.
XXI. A Guide to the Zenon Archive (2 vols.), ed. P.W. Pestman, 1981.
XXII. Les archives privées de Dionysios, fils de Kephalas, ed. E. Boswinkel and P.W. Pestman, 1982.
P.Lund
XXV. Papyri, Ostraka, Parchments and Waxed Tablets in the Leiden Papyrological Institute, ed. F.A.J. Hoogendijk and P. van Minnen, 1991. XXVI. Ostraka varia — Tax Receipts and Legal Documents on Demotic, Greek, and Greek-Demotic Ostraka, Chiefly of the Early Ptolemaic Period, from Various Collections, ed. S.P. Vleeming, 1994. Aus der Papyrussammlung der Universitatsbibliothek in Lund, published in: Kungliga Humanistiska Vetenskapssamfundet i Lund; Arsberattelse. I. Literarische Fragmente, ed. A. Wifstrand, 1934-1935, 53-65. Ii. Griechische Privatbriefe, ed. A. Wifstrand, 1936-1937,161-172 (SB V, 8088-8092). Ill. Kultische Texte, ed. K. Hanell, 1937-1938,
119-142.(SB, V 8741-8750, VI 9332-9339).
IV. Bakchiastexte und andere Papyri, ed. K. Knudtzon 1945-1946, 63-78 (SB VI, 9333, 9338, 9340-9350, without no. 12). V. Zwei astronomische Texte, ed. E.J. Knudtzon and O. Neugebauer, 1946-1947, 77-88. Indices to Teil I-IV by E.J. Knudtzon, 1946-1947, 89-110. VI. Vermischte Texte, ed. E.J. Knudtzon, 1951-1952, p.119-137 (SB VI, 9351-9359).
P.Magd.
v. P.Lille II.
P.Magirus
SB I, 5317-5340.
P.Marm.
Il papiro vaticano greco II, ed. M. Norsa and G. Vitelli, Vatican City 1931 (Biblioteca Vaticana. Studi e Testi 53). The Acts of the Pagan Martyrs (Acta Alexandrinorum), ed. H.A. Musurillo, Oxford 1954. Masada II. The Yigael Yadin Excavations 1963-1965. Final Reports: The Latin and Greek Documents, ed. H.M. Cotton and J. Geiger, with a Contribution by J.D. Thomas, Jerusalem 1989, nos. 721-738: Latin texts; 739-747: Greek texts; 748-749: bilingual texts; 750-794: ostraka).
P.Mart.
P.Masada
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
480
P.Maspero
v. P.Cair.Masp.
P.Matrit.
Dieci Papyri Matritenses, ed. $. Daris, Madrid 1990 (Cuadernos de la Fundacion Pastor, 36).
MChr.
L. Mitteis and U. Wilcken, Grundziige und Chrestomathie der Papyruskunde, U. Band, Juristischer Teil, II. Halfte, Chrestomathie, Leipzig-Berlin 1912. v. also WChr.
P.Med.
v. P.Mil.
P.Medinet Madi
v. O.Medinet Madi.
P.Mert.
A Descriptive Catalogue of the Greek Papyri in the Collection of Wilfred Merton. I. ed. HI. Bell and C.H. Roberts, London 1948, nos. 1-50. II. ed. B.R. Rees, H.1. Bell, J.W.B. Barns, Dublin 1959, nos. 51-100. Ill. ed. J.D. Thomas, London 1967 (Bulletin of the Institute of Classical Studies, Suppl. Vol. 18), nos. 101-128. nos. 129-131 ed. J.D. Thomas, in: JEA 56 (1970), 172-78 (SB XII,
10886-10888). nos. 132-136 ed. J.D. Thomas, in: JEA 68 (1982) 283-89 (SB XVI, 12470-12472).
P.Meyer
P.Mich.
Griechische Texte aus Aegypten. I: Papyri des Neutestamentlichen Seminars der Universitat Berlin; Il: Ostraka der Sammlung Deissmann, ed. P.M. Meyer, Berlin 1916, papyri nos. 1-45, ostraka nos. 1-92. Michigan Papyri. I. Zenon Papyri, ed. C.C. Edgar, Ann Arbor 1931 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 24), nos. 1-120. II. Papyri from Tebtynis, Part I, ed. A.E.R. Boak, Ann Arbor 1933 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 28), nos. 121-128 (nos. 129-130, A Papyrus Codex of the Shepherd of Hermas, ed. C. Bonner, Ann Arbor 1934. UMS,
Hum. Ser. 22).
III. Miscellaneous Papyri, ed. J.G. Winter et al., Ann Arbor 1936 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 40), nos. 131-221 (no. 222: A Third Century Codex of the Epistles of Paul, ed. H.A. Sanders, Ann Arbor 1935. UMS, Hum.Ser. 38, nos. 167 and 168 y. Vol. VII). IV. Pt. I, Tax Rolls from Karanis, ed. H.C. Youtie, Ann Arbor, 1936 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 42), nos.
223-225. IV. Pt. Il, Texts nos. 357-363 and Indexes, ed. H.C. Youtie and O.M. Pearl, Ann Arbor 1939 (UMS, Hum. Ser. 43). v. also P.Cair.Mich. V. Papyri from Tebtynis, Part II, ed. EM. Husselman, A.E.R. Boak and W.F. Edgerton, Ann Arbor 1944 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 29), nos. 226-356. VI. Papyri and Ostraca from Karanis, ed. H.C. Youtie and O.M. Pearl, Ann Arbor 1944 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 47), nos. 364-428. Ostraca nos. 700-971 (nos. 1-699 v. O.Mich.). VII. Latin Papyri, ed. H.A. Sanders with Contributions by J.E. Dunlap, Ann Arbor 1947 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 48), nos. 167-168, 429-463. VIII. Papyri and Ostraca from Karanis, Second Series, ed. H.C. Youtie and J.G. Winter, Ann Arbor 1951 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 50), nos. 464-521; Ostraca nos. 972-1111. IX. Papyri from Karanis, Third Series, ed. E.M. Husselman, Cleveland 1971 (American
Philological Association Monograph 29), nos. 522-576. X. Documentary Papyri from the Michigan Collection, ed. G.M. Browne, Toronto 1970 (Am.Stud.Pap. 6), nos. 577-602. XI. Papyri from the Michigan Collection, ed. J.C. Shelton, Toronto 1971 (Am.Stud.Pap. 9), nos. 603-625.
XII. Michigan Papyri XII, ed. G.M. Browne, Toronto 1975 (Am.Stud.Pap. 14), nos. 626-658. XIII. The Aphrodite Papyri in the University of Michigan Papyrus Collection, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, Zutphen 1977 (Stud.Amst. 10), nos. 659-674. XIV. Michigan Papyri XIV, ed. V.P. McCarren, Chico 1980 (Am.Stud.Pap. 22), nos. 675-684. XV. Michigan Papyri XV, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, Zutphen 1982 (Stud.Amst. 19), nos. 685-756. XVI. Michigan Papyri XVI, A Greek Love Charm from Egypt (P.Mich. 757). Edition and Commentary by D.G. Martinez, Atlanta 1991 (Am.Stud.Pap. 30), no. 757. XVIL. Michigan Papyri XVII, The Michigan Medical Codex (P.Mich. 758 = P. Mich. inv. 21), ed. L-C, Youtie, Atlanta 1996 (Am.Stud.Pap. 35), no. 758.
XVIII. Michigan Koenen. Michigan Texts Published in Honor of Ludwig Koenen, ed. C. Romer and T. Gagos, Amsterdam 1996 (Stud.Amst. 36).
XIX. P. Michigan XIX, Baptized for Our Sakes: A Leather Trisagion from Egypt (P. Mich 799), ed. D.G. Martinez, Stuttgart — Leipzig 1999 (Beitrage zur Altertumskunde 120).
P.Mich. Michael
v. P.Mich. X. v. P.Mich. XVIII. A Critical Edition of Select Michigan Papyri, ed. E.M. Michael, Thesis, Michigan 1966 (SB XII,
P.Mich.Shelton
v. P.Mich. XI.
P.Mich.Browne P.Mich.Koenen
ILILO3—-I1130). P.Mich.Sokn.Nes.
SB V, 7818-32.
P.Mich.Zen.
v. P.Mich. I.
481
P.Michael.
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
P.Mil.Primi
Papyri Michaelidae, Being a Catalogue of Greek and Latin Papyri, Tablets and Ostraca in the Library of Mr. G.A. Michailidis of Cairo, ed. D.S. Crawford, Aberdeen 1955. Papiri Milanesi. I, fasc. I, ed. A. Calderini, Milan 1928. 2nd ed., ed. S. Daris 1967 (Pubblicazioni dell’Universita Cattolica del Sacro Cuore, Contributi, Serie Terza, Pubblicazioni di Aegyptus 1), nos. I-12. II. ed. S. Daris, Milan 1966 (Pubbl. 2), nos. 13-87. v. P.Mil. Vogl.
P.Mil. Vogl.
I. Papiri della R. Universita di Milano, ed. A. Vogliano, Milan 1937, nos. 1-28 (nos. 23-28 = SB
P.Mil.
Beiheft 2, 1961).
Il. Papiri della Universita degli Studi di Milano, ed. V. Arangio-Ruiz et al., Milan 1961, nos. 29-110. Ill. Milan 1965, nos. 111-203. IV. Milan 1967, nos. 204-257. VI. Milan 1977, nos. 258-300. VII. La contabilita di un’ azienda agricola nel II sec. d.C., ed. D. Foraboschi, Milan 1981, nos. 301-308.
P.Mimaut
VIII. Posidippo di Pella. Epigrammi — Immagini, ed. G. Bastianini, Cl. Gallazzi, Milan 2001, no. 309. yv. P.Rom.Mil.Rec. v. PGM 13.
P.Minutoli
v. UPZ I 181.
P.Mitt.PER,
v. MPER.
P.Milit.
P.Mitt.Rain.,
P.Mitteilungen Wien
P.Moller
v. P.Berl.Moller
P.Mon.
Byzantinische Papyri in der Koniglichen Hof- und Staatsbibliothek zu Miinchen I, ed. A. Heisenberg and L. Wenger, Leipzig-Berlin 1914, nos. 1-18 (Ver6ffentlichungen aus der Papyrussammlung der Koniglichen Hof- und Staatsbibliothek zu Miinchen. I. 2nd expanded ed., ed. D. Hagedorn, Stuttgart 1986. II. Die Papyri der Bayerischen Staatsbibliothek Miinchen, Griechische Papyri, Vol. If (nos. 19-44): Papiri letterari greci, ed. A. Carlini, Stuttgart 1986. III. Die Papyri der Bayerischen Staatsbibliothek Miinchen, Griechische Papyri, Vol. III (nos. 45-154): Griechische Urkundenpapyri, Teil 1, ed. U. Hagedorn, D. Hagedorn, R. Hubner and J.C. Shelton, Stuttgart 1986.
P.Mon.Epiph.
VePBps
MPER
Mitteilungen aus der Sammlung der Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer, ed. J. Karabacek, Vienna I, 1887.
MPER N.S.
Mitteilungen aus der Papyrussammlung der Nationalbibliothek in Wien, Neue Serie. I. Griechische literarische Papyri I, ed. H. Gerstinger, H. Oellacher, K. Vogel, Vienna 1932. III. Griechische literarische Papyri II, ed. H. Oellacher, with an index to parts I and II by
II-III, 1887. IV, 1888. V, 1892. VI, 1897.
H. Gerstinger and P. Sanz, Vienna 1939.
IV. Griechische literarische Papyri christlichen Inhalts I (Biblica, Vaterschriften und Verwandtes), ed. P. Sanz, Vienna 1946.
XIII. Medizinische Rezepte und Verwandtes, ed. H. Harrauer and P.J. Sijpesteijn, Vienna 1981. XV. Neue Texte aus dem antiken Unterricht, ed. H. Harrauer and P.J. Sijpesteijn, I (texts), II (plates), Vienna 1985. XVII. Griechische literarische Papyri christlichen Inhalts II, ed. K. Treu and J. Diethart, I (texts), II (plates), Vienna 1993. P.Minch.
v. P.Mon.
P.Mur.
Discoveries in the Judaean Desert of Jordan, Oxford. I, 195 5;1V, 1965; V, 1968 and VI, 1977: no Greek texts. II. (with separate volume of plates) Les grottes de Murabba.at, ed. P. Benoit, J.T. Milik, R. de Vaux, 1961 (nos. 89-91, 94,
114-117 = SB X, 10300-10307).
Ill. Les petites grottes de Qumran, ed. M. Baillet, J.T. Milik, R. de Vaux, 1962. P.Musurillo P.Nag.Hamm. P.Nahal Hever
v. P.Mart.
Nag Hammadi Codices. Greek and Coptic Papyri from the Cartonnage of the Covers, ed. J.W.B. Barns, G.M. Browne, J.C. Shelton, Leiden 1981 (Nag Hammadi Studies 16). Aramaic, Hebrew and Greek Documentary Texts from Nahal Hever and Other Sites, with an Appendix Containing Alleged Qumran Texts (The Seiyal Collection 2), ed. H.M. Cotton and A. Yardeni, Oxford 1997 (Discoveries in the Judean Desert 27).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
482
P.Naqlun
Deir El-Naqlun: The Greek Papyri (I), ed. T. Derda, Warsaw 1995 (Studia Antiqua), nos. 1-14.
P.Nepheros
Das Archiv des Nepheros und verwandte Texte, ed. B. Kramer and J.C. Shelton with two Coptic articles by G.M. Browne, Mainz 1987 (Aegyptiaca Treverensia 4).
P.Ness.
Excavations at Nessana.
I. Introductory Volume (259-62: P. Mayerson, survey of the agricultural papyri), ed. H.D. Colt, London 1962. II. Literary Papyri, ed. L. Casson and E.L. Hettich, Princeton 1950, nos. 1-13. Ill. Non-Literary Papyri, ed. C.J. Kraemer Jr, Princeton 1958, nos. 14-195. P.Neutest
v. P.Meyer.
P.NYU
Greek Papyri in the Collection of New York University. I. Fourth Century Documents from Karanis, ed. N. Lewis, Leiden 1967 (New York University, Department of Classics, Monographs on Mediterranean Antiquity 1), nos. 1-25.
P.Oasis
Les Oasis d’Egypte a l’epoque grecque, romaine et byzantine d’aprés les documents grecs par G. Wagner (Bibl. d’études 100), Cairo 1987 (SB XX, 14732-14945).
P.Odissea
Papiri dell’Odissea, Seminario papirologico 1977/78, ed. M. Manfredi, Florence 1979.
P.Oslo
Papyri Osloenses. Oslo. I. Magical Papyri, ed. S. Eitrem, 1925, nos. 1-6. II. ed. S. Eitrem and L. Amundsen, 1931, nos. 7-64. Ill. ed. S. Eitrem and L, Amundsen, 1936, nos. 65-200.
P.Oxf. P.Oxy.
P.Lugd.Bat. 3 A/B. The Oxyrhynchus Papyri (now published by the Egypt Exploration Society in Graeco-Roman Memoirs, London; formerly by the Egypt Exploration Fund, Graeco-Roman Branch; ( ) denote nos. in the series). i. nos. 1-207, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1898. (1). II. nos. 208-400, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1899. (2). Ill. nos. 401-653, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1903. (5). IV. nos. 654-839, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1904. (6). V. nos. 840-844, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1908. (8).
VI. nos. 845-1006, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1908. (9). VII. nos. 1007-1072, ed. A. S. Hunt, rg1o. (ro).
VIII. nos. 1073-1165, ed. A.S. Hunt, ror. (11). IX. nos. 1166-1223, ed. A.S. Hunt, 1912. (12).
X. nos. 1224-1350, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1914. (13). XI. nos. 13 51-1404, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, rors. (14). XII. nos. 1405-1593, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1916. (15). XIE. nos. 1594-1625, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, r9r19. (16). XIV. nos. 1626-1777, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1920. (17). XV. nos. 1778-1828, ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, 1922. (18). XVI. nos. 1829-2063, ed. B.P. Grenfell, A.S. Hunt and H.I. Bell, 1924. (19); no. 2064 in: Two Theocritus Papyri, ed. A.S. Hunt and J. Johnson, London 1930. (22). XVIL. nos. 2065-2156, ed. A.S. Hunt 1927. (20). XVIII. nos. 2157-2207, ed. E. Lobel, C.H. Roberts, E.P. Wegener, 1941. (26).
XIX. nos. 2208-2244, ed. E. Lobel, E.P. Wegener, C.H. Roberts, H.I. Bell, 1948. (27). XX. nos. 2245-2287, ed. E. Lobel, E.P. Wegener, C.H. Roberts, 1952. (29).
XXI. nos. 2288-2308, ed. E. Lobel, 1951. (30).
XXIL. nos. 2309-23 53, ed. E. Lobel and C.H. Roberts, 1954. (31). XXIII. nos. 23 54-2382, ed. E. Lobel, 1956. (34). XXIV. nos. 2383-2425, ed. E. Lobel, C.H. Roberts, E.G. Turner and J.W.B. Barns, 1957. (35). XXV. nos. 2426-2437, ed. E. Lobel and E.G. Turner, 1959. (36). XXVI. nos. 2438-2451, ed. E. Lobel, r96r. (38). XXVII. nos. 2452-2480, ed. E.G. Turner, J.R. Rea, L. Koenen and J.M.F. Pomar, 1962. (39).
XXVIII. nos. 2481-2505, ed. E. Lobel, 1962. (40). XXIX. nos. 2506, ed. D. Page, 1963. (41). XXX. nos. 2507-2530, ed. E. Lobel, 1964. (44). XXXI. nos. 2531-2616, ed. J.W.B. Barns, P.J. Parsons, J.R. Rea, E.G. Turner, 1966. (45).
XXXII. nos. 2617-2653, ed. E. Lobel, 1967. (46). XXXII. nos. 2654-2682, ed. J.P. Parsons, J.R. Rea, E.G. Turner, 1968. (48). XXXIV. nos. 2683-2732, ed. L. Ingrams, P. Kingston, P.J. Parsons, J.R. Rea, 1968. (49).
XXXV. nos. 2733-2744, ed. E. Lobel, 1968. (50). XXXVI. nos. 2745-2800, ed. R.A. Coles, D. Foraboschi, A.H. Soliman el-Mosallamy, J.R. Rea, U. Schlag et al., 1970. (51). XXXVII. nos. 2801-2823, ed. E. Lobel, 1971. (53). XXXVI. nos. 2824-2877, ed. G.M. Browne, J.D. Thomas, E.G. Turner, M.E. Weinstein et al.,
1971. (54).
483
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
XXXIX. nos. 2878-2891, ed. E. Lobel, 1972. (55). XL. nos. 2892-2942, ed. J.R. Rea, 1972. (56). XLI. nos. 2943-2998, ed. G.M. Browne, R.A. Coles, J.R. Rea, J.C. Shelton, E.G. Turner et al.,
1972. (57). XLII. nos. 2999-3087, ed. P.J. Parsons, 1974. (58).
XLII. nos. 3088-3150, ed. J.R. Rea et al., 1975. (60). XLIV. nos. 3151-3208, ed. A.K. Bowman, M.W. Haslam, J.C. Shelton, J.D. Thomas, 1976. (62).
XLV. nos. 3209-3266, ed. A.K. Bowman, M.W. Haslam, S.A. Stephens, M.L. West et al., 1977.
(63). XLVI. nos. 3267-3315, ed. J.R. Rea, 1978. (65). XLVI. nos. 33 16-3367, ed. R.A. Coles and W.M. Haslam, 1980. (66). XLVIIL. nos. 3368-3430, ed. M. Chambers, W.E.H. Cockle, J.C. Shelton, E.G. Turner, 1981.
(67). XLIX. nos. 3431-3521, ed. A. Bilow-Jacobsen and J.E.G. Whitehorne, 1982. (69). L. nos. 3522-3600, ed. A.K. Bowman et al., 1983. (70). LI. nos. 3601 —3646, ed. J.R. Rea, 1984. (71).
LII. nos. 3647-3694, ed. H.M. Cockle, 1984. (72). LUI. nos. 3695-3721, ed. M.W. Haslam, 1986. (73).
LIV. nos. 3722-3776, ed. R.A. Coles, H. Maehler, P.J. Parsons, 1987. (74). LV. nos. 3777-3821, ed. J. Rea, 1988. (75). LVI. nos. 3822-3875, ed. M.G. Sirivianou, H.C. Ginther, P.J. Parsons, P. Schubert et al., 1989.
(76). LVIL. nos. 3876-3914, ed. M.W. Haslam, H. el-Maghrabi, J.D. Thomas, 1990. (77). LVIII. nos. 3915-3962, ed. J.R. Rea. 1991. (78).
LIX. nos. 3963-4008, ed. E.W. Handley, H.G. Ioannidou, P.J. Parsons, J.E.G. Whitehorne, 1992. (79). LX. nos. 4009-4092, ed. R.A. Coles, M.W. Haslam, P.J. Parsons, 1994. (80).
LXI. nos. 4093-4300, ed. T. Gagos, M.W. Haslam, N. Lewis, 1995. (81).
nos. 4133-4300a: Astronomical Papyri from Oxyrhynchos, ed. A. Jones, Philadelphia 1999 (Memoirs of the American Philosophical Society, 233). LXII. nos. 4301-43 51, ed. J.C. Shelton, J.E.G. Whitehorne, 1995. (82). LXIII. nos. 4352-4400, ed. J.R. Rea, 1996. (83). LXIV. nos. 4401-4441, ed. E.W. Handley, U. Wartenberg et al., 1997. (84). LXV. nos. 4442-4493, ed. M.W. Haslam, A. Jones, F. Maltomini, M.L. West et al., 1998. (85). LXVL. nos. 4494-4544, ed. N. Gonis et al., 1999. (86). LXVII. nos. 4545-4638, ed. R.A. Coles et al., 2001. (87). nos. 4630-4638: Nine Homeric Papyri from Oxyrhynchos, ed. J. Spooner, Florence 2002. (Studi e testi di papirologia N.S. 19).
P.Oxy.Elmaghrabi P.Oxy.Hels.
An Edition of Unpublished Greek Papyrus Documents from Roman Egypt, ed. H.M.A. Elmaghrabi, doctoral thesis, Durham 1982 (printed only in P.Oxy. LVII). Fifty Oxyrhynchus Papyri, ed. H. Zilliacus, J. Frosén, P. Hohti, J. Kaimio, M. Kaimio, Helsinki 1979 (Societas Scientiarum Fennica, Commentationes Humanarum Litterarum 63).
P.Oxy. 984
The Census Register P.Oxy. 984: The Reverse of Pindar’s Paeans, ed. R.S. Bagnall, B.W. Frier, I.C. Rutherford, Brussels 1997 (Pap.Brux. 29).
P.Palau Rib.
Papiri documentari greci del fondo Palau-Ribes, ed. S. Daris, Barcelona 1995 (Estudis de
P.Panop.
papirologia i filologia biblica 4). Urkunden aus Panopolis, ed. L.C. Youtie, D. Hagedorn, H.C. Youtie, Bonn 1980, nos, 1-31 (repr. from: ZPE 7, 1971, 1-40; 8, 1971, 207-34 and 10, 1973, 101-70 = SB XII, 10968-10981, 10992-10996, 11213-11224).
P.Panop.Beatty
Papyri from Panopolis in the Chester Beatty Library Dublin, ed. T.C. Skeat, Dublin 1964 (Chester Beatty Monographs 1).
P.Panop.Borkowski v. P.Berl.Bork. v. P.Princ.Roll. P.Papyrus Roll Notices et textes des papyrus du Musée du Louvre et de la Bibliotheque Imperiale (Notices et P.Paris extraits des manuscrits de la Bibliothéque Impériale et autres Bibliothéques 18.2), ed. J.A. Letronne, W. Brunet de Presle and E. Egger, Paris 1865 (partial repr. in: UPZ and O.Wilck). P.Passalacqua
v UPZAlier 50%
P.Petaus
Das Archiv des Petaus, ed. U. Hagedorn, D. Hagedorn, L.C. Youtie and H.C. Youtie, Opladen,
1969 (Pap.Colon. 4).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
P.Petra
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
484
The Petra Papyri I, ed. J. Frosén, A. Arjava, M. Lehtinen, Amman 2002 (American Center of Oriental Research Publ. 4), nos. 1-16.
P.Petersb.
P.Ross.Georg. (I 22; Ill 26; V 5, 19, 56).
P.Petr.
The Flinders Petrie Papyri, Dublin (Royal Irish Academy, Cunningham Memoirs). I. ed. J.P. Mahaffy, 1891 (Memoirs VIII), Part II: Plates.
If. ed. J.P. Mahaffy, 1893 (Memoirs IX), plates. Ill. ed. J.P. Mahaffy and J.G. Smyly, 1905 (Memoirs XI), plates. P.Petr.*
The Petrie Papyri. Second Edition (P.Petrie’).
P.Pher.
Eine Steuerliste aus Pheretnuis (P.Pher.), ed. P.J.Sijpesteijn and K.A. Worp, Amsterdam 1993 (Stud.Amst. 33).
P.Phil.
Papyrus de Philadelphie, ed. J. Scherer, Cairo 1947 (Publ.Soc.Fouad. 7). Das Archiv des Phrurarchen Dioskurides (154-145 BC?) (P.Phrur. Diosk.), ed. J.S. Cowey, K. Maresch and C. Barnes, Paderborn 2003 (Pap.Colon. 30). Urkunden des Politeuma der Juden von Herakleopolis (14 4/3—13 3/2 BC; P.Polit.Iud.), ed. J.M.S. Cowey and K. Maresch, Wiesbaden 2001 (Pap.Colon. 29). Ein frihbyzantinisches Szenario fiir die Amtswechslung in der Sitonie. Die griechischen Papyri aus Pommersfelden (PPG) mit einem Anhang iiber: die Pommersfeldener Digestenfragmente und die Uberlieferungsgeschichte der Digesten, ed. A.J.B. Sirks, P.J. Sijpesteijn, K.A. Worp, Munich 1996 (Minchener Beitrage zur Papyrusforschung und antiken Rechtsgeschichte 86).
I. The Wills, ed. W. Clarysse, Brussels 1991 (Collectanea Hellenistica 2).
P.Phrur.Diosk. P.Polit.Iud.
PPG
PPrage
P.Prag. (Varcl)
Papyri graecae Wessely Pragenses. I. ed. R. Pintaudi, R. Dostalova and L. Vidman, 1988 (Pap.Flor. 16), nos. 1-117.
II. ed. R. Pintaudi, R. Dostalova and L. Vidman, Florence 1995 (Pap.Flor. 26), nos. Papyri Wessely Pragenses, ed. L.Varcl, in: Listy Filologické.
118-205.
I. LF 70 (1946) 273-86 (SB VI, 9052-9064). Il. LF 71 (1947) 177-85 (SB VI, 9072-9083).
Theadelphia Papyri: nos. 1-3, LF (Eunomia Suppl.) 80 (1957) 16-31 and 56-80 (SB VI, 9406-9408). nos. nos. nos. nos. nos.
4-8, LF (Eunomia) 81 (1958) 6-27 (SB VI, 9409). 9-10, LF (Eunomia) 81 (1958) 69-77 (SB VI, 9409). 11-17, LF (Eunomia) 82 (1959) 3-18 (SB VI, 9410). 18-21, LF (Eunomia) 82 (1959) 81-86 (SB VI, 9411-9414). 22-33, LF (Eunomia) 83 (1960) 16-25 (SB VI, 9415).
nos. 34-39, LF (Eunomia) 83 (1960) 50-55 (SB VI, 9415). nos. 40-53, LF (Eunomia) 84 (1961) 37-46 (SB VI, 9415). P.Preis.
v. P.Cair.Preis.
P.Primi
v. P.Mil. Vogl. I.
P Prine:
Papyri in the Princeton University Collections. I. ed. A.C. Johnson and H.B. van Hoesen, Baltimore 1931 (The Johns Hopkins University Studies in Archaeology ro), nos. 1-14. Il. ed. E.H. Kase Jr., Princeton 1936 (Princeton University Studies in Papyrology r), nos. 15-107. Ill. ed. A.C. Johnson and S.P. Goodrich, Princeton 1942 (Princeton University Studies in
Papyrology 4), nos. 108-191. P.Princ.Roll P.Princ.Scheide P.Rainer Cent.
A Papyrus Roll in the Princeton Collection. ed. E.H. Kase Jr., Baltimore 1933 (SB V, 7621; new ed. R.S. Bagnall and K.A. Worp in: Archiv 30, 1984, 53-82). The John H. Scheide Biblical Papyri: Ezekiel, ed. A.C. Johnson, H.S. Gehman and E.H. Kase Jr., Princeton 1938 (Princeton University Studies in Papyrology 3). Festschrift zum 1oojahrigen Bestehen der Papyrussammlung der Osterreichischen Nationalbibliothek Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer, Vienna 1983. Text volume; Plate volume.
P.Rain.Unterricht
v. MPER N.S. 15.
P.Real.Ist. Veneto
v. P.Flor. III 280, 283, 286.
P.Rein.
I. Papyrus grecs et demotiques recueillis en Egypte, ed. T. Reinach, W. Spiegelberg and S. de Ricci Paris 1905, nos. 1-58.
IL. Les Papyrus Théodore Reinach, ed. P. Collart, Cairo 1940 (BIFAO 39), nos. 59-143. P.Rend.Harr.
Vebebdarr
P.Rev.Laws
Revenue Laws of Ptolemy Philadelphus, ed. B.P. Grenfell, Oxford 1896. New ed.: J. Bingen in: SB suppl. 1, 1952.
PRG
v. P.Ross.Georg.
P.Rom.Mil.Rec.
Roman Military Records on Papyrus, ed. R.O. Fink, Cleveland 1971 (Phil. Monographs of the American Philological Association 26).
3
485 P.Ross.Georg.
PRUM
P.Ryl.
PSAA PSA P.Sachini, P.Sakkinis,
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
Papyri russischer und georgischer Sammlungen, Tiflis. I. Literarische Texte, ed. G. Zereteli, 1925. II. Ptolemaische und frithromische Texte, ed. O. Kriiger, 1929. III. Spatromische und byzantinische Texte, ed. G. Zereteli and P. Jernstedt, 1930. IV. Die Kome-Aphrodito Papyri der Sammlung Lichacov, ed. P. Jernstedt, 1927. V. Varia, ed. G. Zereteli and P. Jernstedt, 1935. v. P.Mil. Vogl. I. Catalogue of the Greek Papyri in the John Rylands Library Manchester, Manchester. I. Literary Texts, ed. A.S. Hunt, r91r1, nos. 1-61. II. Documents of the Ptolemaic and Roman Periods, ed. J. de M. Johnson, V. Martin and A.S. Hunt, 1915, nos. 62-456. III. Theological and Literary Texts, ed. C.H. Roberts, 1938, nos. 457-551. IV. Documents of the Ptolemaic, Roman and Byzantine Periods, ed. C.H. Roberts and E.G. Turner, 1952, nos. 552-717. V.PSAG Papyri Societatis Archaeologicae Atheniensis, ed. G.A. Petropoulos, Athens 1929 (Pragmateiai tes Akademias Athenon 10). v. UPZ Il, r58a.
P.Sakkakinis
P.Sakaon P.Saltp. P.Sarap.
P.Sarga
vy. P.Aur.Sakaon. v. UPZ II, 188.
Les Archives de Sarapion et de ses fils: une exploration agricole aux environs d’Hermoupolis Magna (de 90 a 133 p.C.), ed. J. Schwartz, Cairo 1961 (Institut Francais d’Archéologie Orientale. Bibliothéque d’Etude 29). Wadi Sarga, Coptic and Greek Texts, ed. W.E. Crum and HI. Bell, Copenhagen 1922 (Coptica 3; SB XVIII, 13370-13562).
SB
Sammelbuch griechischer Urkunden aus Aegypten. Begonnen von F. Preisigke, fortgefiihrt von F. Bilabel and E. KiefSling, ed. H.-A. Rupprecht. I. StrafSburg and Berlin 1913-1915, nos. I-6000. II. Berlin and Leipzig 1918-1922, Index to I. Ill. Berlin and Leipzig 1926-1927, nos. 6001-7269. IV. Heidelberg 1931, nos. 7270-7514. V. Heidelberg and Wiesbaden 1934-1955, nos. 7515-8963. VI. Wiesbaden 1958-1963, nos. 8964-9641. VII. Wiesbaden 1964, Index to VI. VIII. Wiesbaden 1965-1967, nos. 9642-10208. IX. Wiesbaden 1969, Index to VIII. X. Wiesbaden 1969-1971, nos. 10209-10763.
XI. Wiesbaden 1973, Index to X. XII. Wiesbaden 1976-1977, nos. 10764-11263.
XIII. Wiesbaden 1979, Index to XII. XIV. Wiesbaden 1981-1983, nos. 11264 —12219. XV. Wiesbaden 1994, Index to XIV.
XVI. Wiesbaden 1985-1988, XVII. Wiesbaden 1995, Index XVIII. Wiesbaden 1993, nos. XIX. Wiesbaden 1994-2001,
nos. 12220-13084. to XVI. 13085-14068. Index to XVIII.
XX. Wiesbaden 1997, nos. 14069-15202. XXI 1, Wiesbaden 1998, Index Part 1 to XX.
XXII. Wiesbaden 2001, nos. 15203-15874. XXI 2. Wiesbaden 2002, Index Part 2 to XX. XXIII. Wiesbaden 2002, Index to XXII.
XXIV. Wiesbaden 2003. nos. 15875-16340. Supplements from P.Rev.Laws (suppl.1), P.Kar.Goodsp. and P.Mil.Vogl I (suppl. z). P.Schmidt P.Schott-Reinh. P.Schow
v. P.Berl.Schmidt. v. P.Heid. III. Charta Papyracea graece scripta Musei Borgiani Velitris (Charta Borgiana), ed. N. Schow, Rome 1788 (SBI, 5124).
P.Schub.
Griechische literarische Papyri, ed. W. Schubart, Berlin 1950 (Berichte uber die Verhandlungen der Sachsischen Akademie der Wissenschaften Leipzig, Philosophisch-Historische Klasse 97, no.
5).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
P.Select. Shorthand Manuals PSI
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
486
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. XIII. Greek Shorthand Manuals, ed. H.I.M. Milne, London 1934 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 24). Papiri greci e latini (Pubblicazioni della Societa Italiana per la ricerca dei papiri greci e latini in Egitto), Florence. I. 1912, nos. 1-112.
Il. 1913, nos. 113-156. Ill. r914, nos. 157-279. IV. 1917, nos. 280-445.
V. 1917, nos. 446-550. VI. 1920, nos. 5 51-730. VII. 1925, nos. 731-870. VIII. 1927, nos. 871-1000. IX. 1929, nos. Loor-1096.
X. 1932, nos. 1097-1181. XI. 1935, nos. 1182-1222.
XII. fasc. I, ed. M. Norsa; fasc. II, ed. V. Bartoletti, 1943-1951, nos. 1223-1295. XIII. ed. M. Norsa and V. Bartoletti, 1949-1953, nos. 1296-1370. XIV. ed. V. Bartoletti, 1957, nos. 1371-1452.
XV. fasc. I., ed. V. Bartoletti and M. Manfredi, 1979, nos. 1453-1468. V. also Dai Papiri della Societa Italiana, Estratto dal Vol. XV dei P.S.I., ed.
M. Manfredi, Florence, 1966 (nos.
1478-79, 1484, 1489, 1508, 1513-14, 1522, 1526, 1532, 1536-38, 1540, 1546, 1557,
1562, 1564-66, 1569).
Also: PSI XV 1528 = SB XII, 11046. PSLXY 1531 =SB sll 11047. PSI XV 1543 =SB XII, 11049.
PSI XV 1544 = SB XII, 11048. PSI XV 1556 = SB XII, 11050. PSI XV 1561 = SB XII, 11052. PSUAYV 1563'= 5B X10 rio057.
List of reprints in: P. Pruneti, Papiri della Societa Italiana, Lista delle riedizioni dei testi documentari, in: Miscellanea papyrologica in occasione del Bicentenario dell’edizione della Charta Borgiana, ed. M. Capasso et al., Florence 1990, 475ff. (Pap.Flor. 19). Complete list of the Zenon papyri — published in the PSI — with photos: I papiri dell’archivio di Zenon a Firenze, Catalogo della Mostra documentaria Settembre 1993, ed. G. Messeri
PSI Congr. XI PSI Congr.X VII
Savorelli and R. Pintaudi, Florence 1993 (Pap.Flor. 24). v. PSI Omaggio. Trenta testi greci di papiri letterari e documentari editi in occasione del X VII Congresso Internazionale di Papirologia, Florence 1983, nos. 1-30.
PSI Congr.XX
Dai Papiri della Societa Italiana - Omaggio al XX Congresso Internazionale di Papirologia,
PSI Congr. XXI
Dai Papiri della Societa Italiana - Omaggio al XXI Congresso Internazionale di Papirologia,
Florence 1992, nos. 1-20.
PSI Omaggio
Florence 1995, nos. 1-19. Correzionie Riedizioni di papiri della Societa Italiana I, ed. M. Manfredi, Florence 1977 (new ed. of PSI 240, 835, 1148, 1150, 1156 and 1244; v. also SB XIV, 11932-11937). Trattato di medicina su papiri, ed. I. Andorlini, Florence 1995. Dai papiri della Societa Italiana; Omaggio all’ XI Congresso Internazionale di Papirologia,
PSI Trenta
v. PSI Congr. XVIL.
P.Sitol.
v. P.Berl. Thun.
PSI Corr.] PSI inv. 3054
Florence 1965, nos. 1-14.
P.Soc. Ital.
vy. PSI.
P.Soknobr.
v. P.Bacch.
P.Sorb.
Papyrus de la Sorbonne. I. ed. H. Cadell, Paris 1966 (Publications de la Faculté des Lettres et Sciences Humaines de Paris, Serie Textes et Documents, X: Travaux de I’Institut de Papyrologie de Paris, fasc. IV), nos. 1-68.
II. ed. J. Gascou, Un codex fiscal Hermopolite (P.Sorb. II 69), Atlanta 1994 (Am.Stud.Pap. 31), no. 69.
P.Soterichos
Das Archiv von Soterichos, ed. S$. Omar, Opladen 1979.
SP
Select Papyri (The Loeb Classical Library), London and Cambridge, Mass.
I. Private Affairs, ed. A.S. Hunt and C.C. Edgar, 1932, nos. 1-200.
487
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
II. Public Documents, ed. A.S. Hunt and C.C. Edgar, 1934, nos. 201-434. II. Literary Papyri: Poetry, ed. D.L. Page, 1942.
SPP
v. Stud.Pal.
P.Sta.Xyla
v. P.Xyla.
Pestass
Griechische Papyrus der Kaiserlichen Universitats-und Landesbibliothek zu StraSburg, ed. F. Preisigke, Leipzig. I. 1912, nos. 1-80. Il. 1920, nos. 81-125.
Ill. Papyrus grecs de la Bibliothéque Nationale et Universitaire de Strasbourg, ed. P. Collomp et ses éléves, Paris 1948 (Publications de la Faculté des Lettres de l'Université de Strasbourg. fasc. 97), NOS. 126-168.
IV. Papyrus grecs de la Bibliotheque Nationale et Universitaire de Strasbourg, ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, Strasbourg 1963 (Publications de la Bibliothéque Nationale et Universitaire de Strasbourg 1), nos. 169-300 (with index to nos. 126-300).
V. ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, 1973 (Publ. 3), nos. 301-500. VI. ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, 1971-1975 (Publ. 4), nos. 501-600. VII. ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, 1976-1979 (Publ. 5), nos. 601-700. VIII. ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, 1980-1984 (Publ. 6), nos. 701-800. IX. ed. J. Schwartz et ses éléves, nos. 801-820 (Publ. 9.1, 1985); 821-840 (Publ. 9.2, 1987); 841-860 (Publ. 9.3, 1987); 861-880 (Publ. 9.4, 1988); 881-900 (Publ. 9.5, 1989). X. Index to nos. 501-800, ed. B. Kramer (Publ. ro), 1986.
P.Stras.gr. inv.
L’Empédocle de Strasbourg, ed. A. Martin and O. Primavesi, Strasbourg 1999.
1665-1666
P.Stud. Stud.Pal.
v. Stud.Pal.
Studien zur Palaeographie und Papyruskunde, ed. C. Wessely, Leipzig 1901-1924. I. 1901. Il. 1902.
Ill. Griechische Papyrusurkunden kleineren Formats (P.KI.Form. I), ed. C. Wessely, 1904, nos.
1-701. IV. 1905. V. Corpus Papyrorum Hermopolitanorum I (C.P.Herm.), ed. C. Wessely, 1905.
VI. Kolotes und Menedemos: Texte und Untersuchungen zur Philosophen- und Literaturgeschichte, ed. W. Cronert, 1906.
VII. Demotische und griechische Texte auf Mumientafelchen in der Sammlung der Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer, ed. N. Reich, 1908. VII. Griechische Papyrusurkunden kleineren Formats (P.KI.Form. II), ed. C. Wessely, 1908, nos. 702-1346.
IX. Griechische und koptische Texte theologischen Inhalts I, ed. C. Wessely, 1909, nos. 1-54. X. Griechische Texte zur Topographie Aegyptens, ed. C. Wessely, 1910. XI. Griechische und koptische Texte theologischen Inhalts II, ed. C. Wessely, 1911, nos. 5 5-113. XII. Griechische und koptische Texte theologischen Inhalts III, ed. C. Wessely, 1912, nos. 114-192. XU. 1913.
XIV. Die altesten lateinischen und griechischen Papyri Wiens, ed. C. Wessely, 1914. XV. Griechische und koptische Texte theologischen Inhalts IV, ed. C. Wessely, 1914, nos.
193-259.
XVI. Duodecim prophetarum minorum versionis Achmimicae Codex Rainerianus, ed. C. Wessely, 1915. XVI. 1917.
XVIII. Griechische und koptische Texte theologischen Inhalts V, ed. C. Wessely, 1917, nos. 260-290.
Suppl.Mag.
XIX. Studien zu den koptischen Rechtsurkunden aus Oberagypten, ed. A. Steinwenter, 1920. XX. Catalogus Papyrorum Raineri. Series Graeca. Pars 1: Textus Graeci papyrorum, qui in libro ‘Papyrus Erzherzog Rainer — Fihrer durch die Ausstellung Wien 1894 descripti sunt’, ed. C. Wessely, 1921. XXI. Griechisch-agyptischer Offenbarungszauber, ed. T. Hopfner, 1921. Revised ed, Amsterdam 1974. XXII. Catalogus papyrorum Raineri. Series Graeca. Pars 2: Papyri nos. 24858-25024, ed. C. Wessely, 1922. XXIII. Griechisch-agyptischer Offenbarungszauber: seine Methoden, ed. T. Hopfner, 1924. Repr. Amsterdam 1983 (p. 1-344), 1990 (p. 345-667). Supplementum Magicum, ed. with Translations and Notes by R.W. Daniel and F. Maltomini. I. Opladen 1990 (Pap.Colon. 16.1), nos. 1-5r. II. Opladen 1992 (Pap.Colon. 16.2), nos. 52-100.
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
488
P.Survey
The Archive of the Theban Choachytes (Second Century B.C.). A Survey of the Demotic and Greek Papyri Contained in the Archive, ed. P.W. Pestman, Leuven 1993 (Studia demotica 2), nos.
P.Taur.
Vi Deore
1-84. P.Taxroll
v. P.Princ.Roll.
P.Tebt.
The Tebtynis Papyri. I. ed. B.P. Grenfell, A.S. Hunt and J.G. Smyly, London 1902 (University of California Publications, Graeco-Roman Archaeology 1; Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 4), nos. 1-264.
II. ed. B.P. Grenfell and A.S. Hunt, London 1907 (University of California Publications, Graeco-Roman Archaeology 2; Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 52),
nos. 265-689. Ostraka nos. 1-20. I. Part 1, ed. A.S. Hunt and J.G. Smyly with B.P. Grenfell, E. Lobel and M. Rostovtzeff, London 1933 (University of California Publications, Graeco-Roman Archaeology 3; Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 23), nos. 690-825.
Ill. Part 2, ed. A.S. Hunt, J.G. Smyly and C.C. Edgar, London 1938 (University of California Publications, Graeco-Roman Archaeology 4; Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 25), nos. 826-1093. IV. ed. J.G. Keenan and J.C. Shelton, London 1976 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 64), nos. 1094-1150. P.Tebt. Tait
Papyri from Tebtynis in Egyptian and Greek, ed. W.J. Tait, London 1977 (Egypt Exploration Society, Texts from Excavations 3).
Tebt. Wall
New Texts in the Economy of Tebtunis, ed. E.W. Wall, doctoral thesis, Duke University, Durham, N.C., 1983 (SB XVIII, 13782-13793).
P.Testa
SBI, 4505, 5285-86.
P.Test.Rom.
I testamenti romani nei papiri e nelle tavolette d’Egitto. Silloge di documenti dal I al IV secolo d.C., ed. L. Migliardi Zingale, Turin 1988.
P.Thead.
Papyrus de Théadelphie, ed. P. Jouguet, 1911 (new edition in P.Aur.Sakaon). v. Actenstiicke. The Family of the Tiberii Iulii Theones, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn, Amsterdam 1976 (Stud.Amst. 5). Le papyrus Thmouis I col. 68-160, ed. S. Kambitsis, Paris 1985 (Université de Paris IV Sorbonne, Serie Papyrologie 3). Essays and Texts in Honor of J.David Thomas, ed. T. Gagos and R.S. Bagnall (Am.Stud.Pap. 42), s.l. 2001, nos. 1-31. v. P.Theon.
P.Theb.Bank P.Theon. P.Thmouis I P. Thomas
P.Tiberii Julii Theones
P. Tjader
v. P.Ital.
P.Top.Ag.
v. Stud.Pal. X.
Palor:
Papyri graeci Regii Taurinensis Musei Aegyptii, in: Reale Accademia di Torino, Classe di Scienze Morali, Storiche e Filologiche, Memorie 31, 1827, 9-188 and 33, 1829, 1-80, ed. A. Peyron (new
P.Tor.Amenothes
ed. in UPZ; cf. Berichtigungsliste IV, p.122). L’Archivio di Amenothes figlio di Horos. Testi demotici e greci relativi ad una famiglia di imbalsamatori del secondo sec. a.C., ed. P.W. Pestman, Milan 1981 (Catalogo del Museo egizio
di Torino, Ser. 1, Monumenti e testi 5). P.Tor.Choachiti
Il processo di Hermias e altri documenti dell’archivio dei choachiti (P.Tor. Choachiti). Papiri greci e demotici conservati a Torino e in altre collezioni d'Italia, ed. P.W. Pestman, Turin 1992 (Catalogo del Museo egizio di Torino, Ser. 1, Monumenti e testi 6).
P.Troph.
P. Trophitis: New Ptolemaic Papyri Relating to Egyptian Alimentary and Sale Contracts. Greek Abstracts from a ‘kibotos’ Archive, ed. D.G. Herring, doctoral thesis, Austin r989 (SB XX,
14470-14493). P.Tura
Tura-Papyrus (some in: PTA, Bonn).
Didymos der Blinde, Kommentar zu Hiob. I. ed. A. Henrichs, 1968 (PTA 1). II. ed. A. Henrichs, 1968 (PTA 2).
Ill. ed. U. Hagedorn, D. Hagedorn and L. Koenen, 1968 (PTA 3). IV.1. ed. U. Hagedorn, D. Hagedorn and L. Koenen, 1985 (PTA 33). Didymos der Blinde, Psalmenkommentar. I. ed. L. Doutrelau, A. Gesché and M. Gronewald, 1969 (PTA 7). II. ed. M. Gronewald, 1968 (PTA 4). Ill. ed. M. Gronewald, 1969 (PTA 8). IV. ed. M. Gronewald, 1969 (PTA 6). V. ed. M. Gronewald, 1970 (PTA 12).
489
D. I. EDITIONS
OF PAPYRI
Didymos der Blinde, Kommentar zum Ecclesiastes. I.1. ed. G. Binder and L. Liesenborghs, 1979 (PTA 25). I.2. ed. G. Binder, 1983 (PTA 26). II. ed. M. Gronewald, 1977 (PTA 22). Ill. ed. J. Kramer, 1970 (PTA 13). IV. ed. J. Kramer and B. Krebber, 1972 (PTA 16). V. ed. G. Binder and M. Gronewald, 1979 (PTA 24). VI. ed. G. Binder and L. Liesenborghs, 1969 (PTA 9). Kleine Texte aus dem Turafund, ed. B. Kramer, 1985 (PTA 34). Didymos der Blinde, Sur la Genése, ed. P. Nautin et L. Doutrelau, I: Paris 1976, Il: Paris 1978 (Sources chretiennes 233, 244). Didymos der Blinde, Sur Zacharie, ed. L. Doutrelau, I-III, Paris 1962 (Sources chretiennes 83-85).
Origenes, Sur la Paque. Traité inédit publié d’aprés un papyrus de Toura par O. Guéraud et P. Nautin, Paris 1979 (Christianisme antique 2). P.Turner
PUG
P.Ups.8
P.Ups.Frid
UPZ
Papyri Greek and Egyptian Edited by Various Hands in Honour of Eric Gardner Turner on the Occasion of His Seventieth Birthday, ed. P.J. Parsons, J.R. Rea et al., London 1981 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 68). Papiri dell’Universita di Genova. I. ed. M. Amelotti and L. Zingale Migliardi, Milan 1974 (Universita di Genova, Fondazione Nobile Agostino Poggi ro), nos. 1-50. Il. ed. L. Migliardi Zingale, Florence 1980 (Pap.Flor. 6), nos. 51-90. Ill. ed. L. Migliardi Zingale, Florence 1991 (Pap.Flor. 20), nos. 91-130. Der Fluch des Christen Sabinus, Papyrus Upsaliensis 8, ed. G. Bjork, Uppsala 1938 (Arbeten utgivna med understéd av Vilhelm Ekmans Universitetsfond 47). Ten Uppsala Papyri, ed. B. Frid, Bonn 1981 (PTA 28). Urkunden der Ptolemaerzeit (altere Funde), ed. U. Wilcken. I. Papyri aus Unteragypten, Berlin-Leipzig 1927 (repr. Berlin 1977), nos. 1-150. II. Papyri aus Oberagypten, Berlin 1935-1957 (repr. Berlin 1977), nos. 151-229.
P.Variae
v. P.Alex.Giss.
P. Vats.
Papyri Varsovienses, ed. G. Manteuffel, L. Zawadowski and C. Rozenberg, Warsaw 1935
P.Vat.
UPZ (v. Berichtigungsliste IV, p. 122).
P.Vat.Il,
vy. P.Marm.
(Universitas Varsoviensis: Acta Facultatis Litterarum I).
P.Vat.gr. 11 Weiseiae
I papiri Vaticani greci di Aphrodito, ed. R. Pintaudi, und Tafelband, Rome 1980. v. P.Bad.
V-EUP:
v. P.Heid.
P.Vat.Aphrod.
P.Vindob.Bosw.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 2.
P.Vindob.Sal.
Einige Wiener Papyri, ed. R.P. Salomons, Amsterdam 1976 (Stud.Amst. 4).
P.Vindob.Sijp. P.Vindob. Tandem P.Vindob.Worp
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 11. Fiinfunddreifgig Wiener Papyri, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn and K.A. Worp, Zutphen 1976 (Stud.Amst. 6). Einige Wiener Papyri, ed. K.A. Worp, Amsterdam 1972 (Stud.Amst. 1).
P. Warr.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 1.
P. Wash. (Univ.)
Washington University Papyri I. ed. V.B. Schuman, Missoula 1980 (Am.Stud.Pap. 17), nos. 1-61. Il. ed. K. Maresch, Z.M. Packman, Opladen 1990 (Pap.Colon. 18), nos. 62-108.
WChr.
L. Mitteis and U. Wilcken, Grundziige und Chrestomathie der Papyruskunde, I. Historischer Teil, 2. Halfte, Chrestomathie, Leipzig-Berlin 1912. V. also MChr.
P. Weil
We UP Zrlens Gs
P.Wessely Prag
v. P.Prag.
P.Wisc.
The Wisconsin Papyri, ed. P.J. Sijpesteijn. I. Leiden 1967. = Pap.Lugd.Bat. 16, nos. 1-37. II. Zutphen 1977 (Stud.Amst. 11), nos. 38-87. Mitteilungen aus der Wiirzburger Papyrussammlung, ed. U. Wilcken, Berlin 1934 (Abhandlungen der Preufischen Akademie der Wissenschaften, Philosophisch-Historische Klasse 1933.6; repr. in: U. Wilcken, Berliner Akademieschriften zur Alten Geschichte und Papyruskunde 2, 43-164, Leipzig 1970).
P.Wiirzb.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA AND MANUSCRIPTS
490
P.Xen. P.Xyla
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 18. The Byzantine Papyri of the Greek Papyrological Society (P.Sta. Xyla), ed. with Translations and
P.Yadin
The Documents from the Bar Kokhba Period in the Cave of the Letters. Greek Papyri (P. Yadin), ed. N. Lewis; Aramaic and Nabatean Signatures and Subscriptions, ed. Y. Yadin and J.C. Greenfield, Jerusalem 1989 (Israel Exploration Society). Yale Papyri in the Beinecke Rare Book and Manuscript Library. I. ed. J.F. Oates, A.E. Samuel and C.B. Welles, New Haven and Toronto 1967 (Am.Stud.Pap. 2),
Notes by B.G. Mandilaras I, Athens 1993.
Pevale
nos. 1-85.
II. ed. S.A. Stephens, Chico 1985 (Am.Stud.Pap. 24), nos. 86-136. Ill. A Yale Papyrus (P. Yale If 137) in the Beinecke Rare Book and Manuscript Library, ed. P. Schubert, Oakville 2001 (Am.Stud.Pap. 41), no. 137.
P.Zen.Pestm.
v. Pap.Lugd.Bat. 20.
P.Zereteli
v. P.Ross.Georg.
P.Zill.
v. P.Berl.Zill.
P.Zois
ve WRZAl, mig:
P.967
Papyrus 967, Papyrologische Texte und Abhandlungen (PTA), Bonn. Der Septuaginta-Text des Buches Daniel, Kap. 1-2, ed. W. Hamm, 1969 (PTA 10). Der Septuaginta-Text des Buches Daniel, Kap. 3-4 nach dem KOlner Teil des P. 967, ed. W. Hamm, 1977 (PTA 21).
Der Septuaginta-Text des Buches Daniel Kap. 5-12, Bel et Draco sowie Esther Kap. 1, 1a-2,15 nach dem KOlner Teil des P. 967, ed. A. Geissen, 1968 (PTA 5). Der griechische Text des Buches Ezechiel nach dem KOlner Teil des P. 967, ed. L.G. Jahn, 1972 (PTA 15).
Tab.cer.
Tavolette lignee e cerate da varie collezioni, ed. R. Pintaudi and P.J. Sijpesteijn, with contributions from R.S. Bagnall, P. Cauderlier, AE. Hanson and S. Pernigotti, Florence 1989 (Pap.Flor. 18).
Other details of older and less widely-used abbreviations for editions in U. WILCKEN, in: APF 1, 1901, 24 ff. and
U. WILcKEN, Grundziige und Chrestomathie der Papyruskunde, Vol.1: Historischer Teil, Leipzig-Berlin 1912, XXV ff. Cf. also concordance in SB II, 1-69. On the texts from Palestine, cf. now: H.M. Corron, Documentary Texts from the Judaean Desert: A Matter of Nomenclature, in: Scripta Classica Israelica 20, 2002, 113 ff. Cf. otherwise the Fifth Edition of the Checklist of Editions of Greek and Latin Papyri, Ostraka and Tablets, ed. J.O. Oates, R.S. BAGNALL, K.A. Worr et al. (BASP Suppl. 9), 2001, available updated online at: ‘http://scripto-
rium.lib.duke.edu/papyrus/texts/clist.html’. Reference is also made to the Duke Data Bank (edited and managed by Duke University, Durham, N.C. 27706, USA), which reproduces recent papyrus editions on CD-ROM (CD ROM no. 7, The Packard Humanities Institute).
D. II. EDITIONS OF OSTRAKA’
(Hans-Albert Rupprecht) O.Amst.
Ostraka in Amsterdam Collections, ed. R.S. Bagnall, P.J. Sijpesteijn and K.A. Worp, Zutphen
O.Ashm.
Ostraca in the Ashmolean Museum at Oxford, in: O.Bodl. I, 63-81, nos. 1-106.
1976 (Stud.Amst. 9).
O.Ashm.Shelton
— Greek Ostraca in the Ashmolean Museum from Oxyrhynchus and Other Sites, ed. with Translation and Notes J.C. Shelton, Florence 1988 (Pap.Flor. 17), nos. 1-229.
O.Ber.
Documents from Berenike I: Greek Ostraka from the 1996 —1998 Seasons, ed. R.S. Bagnall, Ch. Helms and A.M.F.W. Verhoogt, Brussels 2000 (Pap.Brux. 31), nos. 1-117.
O.Bodl.
Greek Ostraca in the Bodleian Library at Oxford and Various Other Collections. I. ed. J.G. Tait, London 1930 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 21), nos. 1-406. The volume also contains O.Ashm., O.Camb., O.Minor and O.Petr., which are cited
as such. II. Ostraca of the Roman and Byzantine Periods, ed. J.G. Tait and Cl. Préaux, London 1955 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 33), nos. 407-2588. III. Indices of J. Bingen and M. Wittek, London 1964 (Egypt Exploration Society, Graeco-Roman Memoirs 43). Concordance of inv. no. and publication: K.A. Worp, in: ZPE 89, 1991, ros ff.
" Only lists separate ostraka editions. Ostraka are also published in the papyrus editions given above.
491
D. Il. EDITIONS
OF OSTRAKA
O.Brooklyn
v. O.Wilb.
O.Briss.Berl.
Ostraka aus Briissel und Berlin, ed. P. Viereck, Berlin-Leipzig 1922 (Papyrusinstitut Heidelberg, Schriften 4), nos. 1-99. Brussels ostraka: new ed. by J. Bingen in: idem, Au temps ou on lisait le grec en Egypte, Brussels 1977.
O.Cair.GPW
Ostraka greci del Museo egizio del Cairo, ed. C. Gallazzi, R. Pintaudi and K.A. Worp, Florence 1986 (Pap.Flor. 14).
O.Camb.
Ostraca in the Cambridge University Library in O.Bodl. I, 153-73, nos. 1-141. Mons Claudianus. Ostraca graeca et latina. I. ed. J. Bingen et al., Cairo 1992, nos. 1-190. Il. ed. J. Bingen et al., Cairo 1997, nos. 191-416.
O.Claud.
Ill. ed. H. Cuvigny, Cairo 2000, nos. 417-631. O.Deissmann
v. P.Meyer.
O.Douch.
Les Ostraca grecs de Douch (O.Douch.), ed. H. Cuvigny and G. Wagner. Fasc. I., Cairo 1986, nos. 1-57. Fasc. Fasc. Fasc. Fasc.
II., Cairo III., Cairo IV., Cairo V., Cairo
1988, nos. 1992, nos. 1999, nos. 2001, nos.
58-183. 184-355. 356-505. 506-639.
O.Edfou
v. P.Edfou.
O.Elkab gr.
Elkab III. Les ostraca grecs (O. Elkab gr.), ed. J. Bingen and W. Clarysse, Brussels 1989, nos.
O.Erem. O.Florida
OGNI
O.Heid. O.Joach.
I-227. Griechische Ostraka in der Kaiserlichen Eremitage in St. Petersburg, ed. G. Zereteli in: Archiv 5, 1913, 170-180 (SB XVIII, 13179-13217). The Florida Ostraka: Documents from the Roman Army in Upper Egypt, ed. R.S. Bagnall, Durham, N.C., 1976 (Greek, Roman and Byzantine Monographs 7). Ostraka greci da Narmuthis, ed. R. Pintaudi, P.J. Sijpesteijn, Pisa 1993 (Quaderni di Medinet Madi 2), nos. 1-131.
v. P.Heid. (N.F.) Ill. Die Prinz-Joachim-Ostraka, ed. F. Preisigke and W. Spiegelberg, StraSburg 1914 (Schriften der Wissenschaftlichen Gesellschaft in StraSburg, Heft 19; SB III, 6027-6034, 6920-6933).
O.Leid.
Greek Ostraka: A Catalogue of the Greek Ostraka in the National Museum of Antiquities at Leiden, with a Chapter on the Greek Ostraka in the Papyrological Institute of the University of Leiden, ed. R.S. Bagnall, P.J. Sijpesteijn, K.A. Worp, Zutphen 1980 (Collections of the National Museum of Antiquities at Leiden 4).
O.Leiden Insinger
v. O.Leid.
O.Lips.
v. P.Lips.
O.Lund
Ostraca Lundensia. Ostraka aus der Sammlung des Instituts fiir Altertumskunde an der Universitat zu Lund, ed. C. Tsiparis, Lund 1979.
O.Medinet Madi
Ostraka e papiri greci da Medinet Madi nelle campagne 1968 e 1969, ed. D. Foraboschi, Milan 1976 (Collana di testi e documenti per lo studio dell’antichita 53).
O.Meyer
v. P.Meyer.
O.Mich.
Greek Ostraca in the University of Michigan Collection. I. Texts, ed. L. Amundsen, Ann Arbor 1935 (UMS, Hum.Ser. 34), nos. 1-699. II. nos. 700-971, v. P.Mich. VI. III. nos. 972-1111, v. P.Mich. VIII. IV. nos.
1112-1144, ed. H.C. Youtie, in: ZPE 18, 1975, 267-282 (SB XIV, 11499-11531).
O.Minor
Ostraca in Various Minor Collections, in: O.Bodl. I, p.174-181.
O.Narm.
v. O.Medinet Madi.
O.Ont.Mus.
Ostraka in the Royal Ontario Museum. I. Death and Taxes, ed. A.E. Samuel, W.K. Hastings, A.K. Bowman, R.S. Bagnall, Toronto 1971
(O.ROM)
(Am.Stud.Pap. to), nos. 1-72.
O.Petr.
Il. ed. R.S. Bagnall and A.E. Samuel, Toronto 1976 (Am.Stud.Pap. 15), nos. 73-289. Ostraca Osloensia, Greek Ostraca in Norwegian Collections, ed. L. Amundsen, Oslo 1933 (Avhandlinger utgitt av det Norske Videnskaps-Akademi i Oslo, Hist. Fil. Kl. 1933, no. 2). Ostraca in Prof. W.M. Flinders Petrie’s Collection at University College, London, in: O.Bodl. I,
O.Rom.
y. O.Ont.Mus.
O.Sarga
v. P.Sarga.
O.Sijpesteijn
v. O.Leid.
O.Oslo
82-152, nos. 1-476.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
O.Stras.
Griechische und griechisch-demotische Ostraka der Universitats- und Landesbibliothek zu Strafsburg im Elsass I, ed. P. Viereck, Berlin 1923.
O.Tait.
v. O.Bodl.
O.Tebt.Pad.
Ostraka da Tebtynis della Universita di Padova. I. ed. C. Gallazzi, Milan 1979.
492
O.Theb.
Theban Ostraca, ed. A.H. Gardiner, H. Thompson, J.G. Milne, London 1913 (University of
O.Viereck
Toronto Studies Philological Series 1). v. O.Stras.
O.Wilb.
Les Ostraca grecs de la collection Charles-Edwin Wilbour au Musée de Brooklyn, ed. Cl. Preaux,
O.Wilck (= WO)
New York 1935. Griechische Ostraka aus Aegypten und Nubien, ed. U. Wilcken, Leipzig-Berlin 1899, I-II; Texte: Vol. Il, nos. 1-1624. 2nd impression 1970 with addenda by P.J. Sijpesteijn.
WO
v. O.Wilck.
D. II. GREEK AND LATIN MANUSCRIPTS (Christiane Reitz, with Paolo Eleuteri and Anja Behrendt)
The following presentation is an updated and expanded revision of the manuscript list by H. Hornung and H. Widmann in ‘Lexikon der Antiken Welt’ (LAW; 3375-3388). References to manuscripts of Greek and Latin texts, names of owners and collectors, libraries and important places are compiled in alphabetical order. References within this list are indicated by 7 . — Manuscripts; LIBRARY;
CODICOLOGY Abbreviations: B.
Bibliothek, Bibliotheca, Bibliothéque, Biblioteca
BN
Bibliothéque Nationale, Biblioteca Nazionale, Biblioteca Nacional
MS (MSS) RL
Manuscript(s)
NL SB coll., colls. StB SuStB UB (Git
Royal Library Library Landesbibliothek National Library Staatsbibliothek Collection(s) Stadtbibliothek Staats- und Stadtbibliothek Universitatsbibliothek University Library
Univ.
University, Universitaire, Universiteit etc.
Ae LB
Aberdeen
/ Regius [4].
Abrincensis
MS from Avranches/Abrincae (France).
Admontensis
MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Admont (Austria).
Aesinas (Aesinus, Esinus)
MS from Jesi/Aesini near Ancona. A MS containing Tacitus’ Agricola and Germania was found
Albertina
7 Lipsiensis [1]. [x] MS from the B. Alexandrina, today part of the 7 Vaticana.
Alexandrinus
in the L. of Count Balleani at Jesi in 1902; it is part of the lost 7 Hersfeldensis.
[2] MS from the Biblioteca Alessandrina (Universitaria) at Rome (MS of the OT and NT), today in the British L. (London). Altissiodorensis B. Ambrosiana (Milan) Ambrosianus
MS from Auxerre/Autessiodurum, Altissiodorum (France).
Founded in 1602 by Cardinal Federico Borromeo (1564-1631), open to the public since 1609, named after St. Ambrosius (c. 340-397). Cf. 7 Ambrosianus, 7 Borromeus, 7 Decembrius, 7 Pinellianus, 7 Puteanus.
MS from the B. 7 Ambrosiana (Milan).
493
D. Ill. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
Amplonianus
MS from the property of the doctor Amplonius Ratinck de Berka (d. c. 1435); in 1412, he founded the Collegium Amplonianum at Erfurt, donating his substantial coll. of MSS to it (cf. / Erfurtensis).
Amstelodamensis
MS from the UB 7 Amsterdam. Founded 1578, linked with the Athenaeum Illustre in 1632. Cf. 7 Amstelodamensis. MS from Angers/Andecavi (France); today dispersed. First public L. in Rome, founded 1605/1614 by the Augustine monk and future titular bishop Angelo Rocca (1545-1620).
UB Amsterdam
Andegavensis B. Angelica (Rome)
Angelic(an)us
Antverpiensis
Arcerianus Argentinensis (Argentinus, Argentoratensis)
Cf. 7 Angelic(an)us, 7 Passioneus, 7 Romanus, 7 Sfortianus. MS from the B. 7 Angelica. MS from Antwerp (Belgium). MS from the property of Johannes Arcerius Theodoretus (1538-1604). His MS of the Agrimensores is today at Wolfenbiittel (B. 7 Augustea). MS from the BN et Universitaire, Strasbourg/Argentina (Argentoratum), founded 1531 by the Humanist Jakob Sturm. Many MSS burned in 1870.
Armamentarius
7 Parisiensis [2].
Aroviensis
MS from Aarau/Arovia (Switzerland).
Arundelianus (Arondellianus)
MS from the L. of Thomas Howard, Earl of Arundel (c. 1585-1646); this coll. passed via the Royal Society to the British Museum, London, in 1831.
Ashburnhamensis Ashmoleanus
MS from the property of Bertram, Earl of Ashburnham (1797-1878). MS from the property of the antiquarian Elias Ashmole (1617-1692); his coll. today in the
Athous
MS from the monastery L. of Mount Athos (Chalcidice, Greece).
7 Bodleiana, Oxford. Audomarensis MS from Saint-Omer/Audomaropolis (France). (Audomaropolitanus)
Augiensis
Augustanus
MS from Reichenau/Augia Maior (Augia Dives), a Franconian monastery foundation under Pirmin (AD 724); zenith of the scriptorium: 8th/gth cents. After secularization in 1803, most of the MSS went to Karlsruhe (7 Carolsruhensis). [1] MS from Augsburg/Augusta Vindelicorum (monastery Ls. and StB, the latter founded 1537, today SuStB). At secularization in 1806, valuable MSS and prints were moved from Augsburg to the 7 Bayerische SB at Munich. At the same time, a new Kreisbibliothek was founded out of Ls. of other abolished Augsburg monasteries; in 1811, this library was amalgamated with the StB, and in 1818 it was further expanded with the inventories of other monastery Ls. of the region (e.g. Ottobeuren, Memmingen, Eichstatt).
B. Augustea (Wolfenbiittel)
Augusteus
[2] MS from the B. 7 Augustea, Wolfenbiittel. Herzog-August-B., founded at Hitzacker by Duke August of Braunschweig-Ltineburg the Younger (d. 1666); in 1644, he had it moved to Wolfenbittel. The older Wolfenbiittel L. (B.
Aulica) had been founded c. 1560 by Duke Julius; under Friedrich Ulrich (d. 163 4) it passed to the Univ. of Helmstedt in 1618, before returning from there to Wolfenbittel in the r9th—zoth cents. Augustanus [2], 7 Augusteus [2], 7 Brunsvicensis, 7 Guelferbytanus, 7 Til(I)ianus, 7 Wolfenbuttelensis. [x] Term for the Virgil MS A (Schedae Berolinenses et Vaticanae) formerly believed to be of the Augustan period, today in the SB Berlin and the 7 Vaticana. [2] 7 Augustanus [2].
Augustodunensis
MS from Autun/Augustodunum (France).
Aureatensis
MS from the State L. of Eichstatt/Aureatum. In 1810, the old court L. of the prince-bishops of
Aurelianensis
B. Bamberg (Babenberga)
Bambergensis B. Barberini (Rom)
Eichstatt became the collecting point for secularized abbey and monastery Ls. MS from Orléans/Aurelia: UB in the 16th cent.; Bibl. de la Nation germanique, amalgamated with the city library in r806. Contains the coll. of Guillaume Prousteau (1626-1715), which he had acquired from the bequest of Henricius Valesius (7 Valesianus). Founded 1611 as Jesuit L., enlarged in 1802 with inventories from secularized Ls. Cf. 7 Bambergensis. MS from the State L. of 7 Bamberg/Bamberga (Babenberga). Founded by Cardinal Francesco Barberini (1597-1679); contains many MSS from the monastery of Grottaferrata (7 Cryptensis); purchased in 1902 for the 7 Vaticana. Cf. 7 Barberin(ian)us, 7 Vaticanus.
Barberin(ian)us
MS from the property of Cardinal Francesco Barberini (1597-1679), founder of the B. 7 Barberini, Rome.
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
494
Baroccianus
MS named after Giacomo Barocci; cf. 7 Bodleianus.
Basileensis
MS from Basel/Basilea (Switzerland).
Basilianus
MS from Basilian monasteries in southern Italy, today in the 7 Vaticana and / Grottaferrata.
Basilicanus
[x] MS from the Chapter L. of St. Peter’s, Rome (Tabularium Capituli Basilicae Vaticanae).
[2] generally, MS from a cathedral L., e.g. the 7 Hittorpianus Cicero. Bavaricus
7 Monacensis.
Bayerische SB
Founded 1558. Heavy losses in 1632 during the Swedish invasion. Considerable expansion from 1803 because of secularization and the abolition of the Imperial cities (because of which, for instance, Greek MSS came to Munich from the StB Augsburg). Cf. 7 Augustanus, 7 Bessarion, Johannes Basilius, 7 Crusianus, 7 Eparchus, 7 Frisingensis, / Fuggerianus [2], 7 Mannhe(i)mensis, 7 Monacensis [2], 7 Pataviensis, 7 Schedelianus, / Tegernseensis. [1] MS from Beauvais/Bellovacum (France). [2] MS from the property of Vincent of Beauvais (Vincentius Bellovacensis, c. 1190-1264). [x] MS from the property of Bernardo Bembo (1433-1519), e.g. the best Terence MS (today in the 7 Vaticana). [2] MS named after Pietro Bembo/Petrus Bembus (1470-1547), son of Bernardo Bembo, librarian in his home city of Venice, then cardinal and Bishop of Gubbio, later of Bergamo, pupil of Constantinus 7 Laskaris. MSS from his coll. went to the 7 Vaticana (7 Ursiniani, 7 Urbinates), to Modena (7 Mutinensis) and to Venice. 7 Augusteus, 7 Berolinensis, 7 Claromontanus, 7 Diezianus, 7 Eparchus, / Goerresianus, 7 Hamilton Palace Library, 7 Phillippicus (Phillippsianus), 7 Pighi(an)us, 7 Toletanus. Founded in 1661 by Frederick William of Brandenburg, the Great Elector, as the Churfirstliche B. zu Collin an der Spree; from 1701, RL. After the fall of the monarchy (1918), renamed the PreufSische SB (PSB). During World War II, the inventories were dispersed to more than 30 locations through the German Reich; the process of returning them continues in part to this day. Two Ls. were formed from the returned inventories in the post-war period: in West Berlin, the SB Preufischer Kulturbesitz (SBPK) from the inventories stored until 1963 at Marburg and
(Munich)
Bellovacensis
Bembinus
Berlin SB zu Berlin
Tubingen (esp. HSS), in East Berlin, the Deutsche SB (DSB). 1992, unification as the SB zu Berlin — Preuffischer Kulturbesitz (SBB). StB Bern
Founded 1528; the StB was amalgamated with the Hochschul-B. in 1903. In 1632, the Ls. of the French historian and philologist Jacques Bongars (1546-1612) went to the Berne B. (7 Bongarsianus). Cf. 7 Bernensis, 7 Bongarsianus, 7 Danielinus.
Bernensis
MS from the StB 7 Bern.
Berolinensis
MS from the SB zu Berlin, PreufSischer Kulturbesitz, deriving from the Kurfiirstliche B., founded
1661. 1701-1918 RL, 1918-45 Preufsische SB. The MSS inventories of the UB Berlin, founded in 1831, were also moved to the then RL in 1893. The inventories, which were split up after World War II, were reunited in 1992. Bertinianus (Bertiniensis) Bessarion,
Johannes Basilius Bituricensis (Bituricus)
Cf. 7 Diezianus, 7 Hamiltonensis, 7 Phillippicus. MS from the Benedictine Abbey of St. Bertin at Saint-Omer (France). c. 1395-1472, cardinal from 1439. He bequeathed his MSS to the Senate of Venice (cf. 7 Marcianus [2]). MSS from his estate are also found in Grottaferrata and Munich (/ Bayerische SB). [1] MS from Bourges/Bituricae (France). [2] MS from the estate of Jean de Berry (13 40-1416), brother of Charles V of France, whose coll. was dispersed after his death. MSS in Bourges, Paris, Brussels, London (British L.).
Blandiniensis (Blandinius, Blandinianus)
MS from the Benedictine Abbey of St. Pierre du Mont-Blandin (Blankenberg) de Gand (Ghent,
Blesensis
MS from Blois (France). After the dissolution of the L. of the Louvre around 1430, the French
Bobiensis
kings founded a new L. in the castle of Blois; it was moved to Fontainebleau in the reign of Francis I (15145-1547), then later to Paris, where it was renamed BN in 1793. MS from the monastery of Bobbio (Italy), founded in 612 by St. Columbanus (c. 530-615). Pre-Columbian MSS are preserved in palimpsest form in e.g. Milan, Rome, Turin, Naples and Vienna. In 1499, Aulus Janus Parrhasius made important MS finds at Bobbio.
B. Bodleiana (Oxford)
Belgium).
Founded in 1598 by Sir Thomas Bodley (1545-1613), opened 1602. Among the holdings at the Bodleian are the Ashmole, Barocci, Canonici, Digby, Laud and Selden colls. Cf. 7 Ashmoleanus, 7 Bodleianus, 7 Clarkeanus (Clarkianus), 7 Cromwellianus, 7 Digbeianus 7 Dorvillianus, 7 Dunelmensis, 7 Heinsianus [2], 7 Holkhamicus, 7 Laudianus, 7 Mantuanus, 7 Oxoniensis [2], 7 Savilianus.
>
3) Bodleianus
Bongarsianus
D. II]. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
MS from the B. 7 Bodleiana/Bodleian L., Oxford.
MS from the L. of Jacques Bongars (c. 15 54-1613, French philologist, historian and diplomat); cf. Bernensis, 7 Floriacensis.
Bonifatianus
7 Fuldensis.
Bonnensis
MS from Bonn.
Bononiensis
[1] MS from Boulogne (France).
Borbonicus (Burbonicus)
B. Borghesiana
[2] MS from Bologna/Bononia (Italy). The B. del Collegio di Spagna there was founded in 1364, and the UB emerged in 1605 from the donation of the naturalist and professor of philosophy Ulisse Aldovrandi; the B. Comunale dell’ Archiginnasio (1801) was enlarged with inventories from libraries of religious orders, among others. 7 Neapolitanus [1]. Founded by Cardinal Scipio Caffarelli Borghese (1576-1633), a nephew of Pope Paul IV, in Rome. The B. Borghese contained numerous MSS of the old Papal L. of Avignon, until these were acquired along with other MSS from the B. Borghese for the 7 Vaticana in the reign of Pope Leo XII in 1891.
Borghesianus
Cf. 7 Borghesianus. MS from the B. 7 Borghesiana.
Borgianus
[1] MS from the Museo Borgiano, Rome, now in the 7 Vaticana.
Borromeus
MS from the property of Cardinal Federico Borromeo (1564-1631), now in the 7 Ambrosiana
Brancaccianus
MS from the B. Brancacciana of S$. Angelo, Naples, founded 1647 by Cardinal Francesco Maria Brancaccio, open to the public since his death in 1675.
Brescia
/ Brixianus, 7 Quirinianus. / Francofurtanus (Francfurtensis) [2], 7 Vratislaviensis (Wratislaviensis).
[2] Charta Borgiana, Papyrus. (Milan).
Breslau (Wroclaw, Bratislava) British L.
(London)
Following several attempts from the 15th cent. on to make the semi-private RL into a national L., the L. was founded in 1753 as the L. of the British Museum (now British L.). The main holding was formed of existing colls. and the RL. From the mid—ro9th cent., development into a coll. encompassing all fields of knowledge. Also, in Edinburgh/Scotland the Advocates’ L. (founded 1682), since 1925 the National L. of Scotland; in Aberystwyth/Wales since 1907 the National L. of Wales; in Dublin/Ireland the
National L. of Ireland, founded 1877. Brixianus
7 Londin(i)ensis [1]. MS from the B. Civica 7 Queriniana in Brescia/Brixia (Italy).
Broukhusianus
MS named after the collector Jan (Johann) van Broekhuyzen (Broekhuizen/Brukhusius;
Brunsvicensis
MS from Braunschweig/Brunsvig(i)a (Brunsvicum), today mostly at Wolfenbittel.
Bruxellensis
MS from the B. Royale, Brussels, deriving from the B. de Bourgogne founded in 1569. Some of the MSS were lost in a fire in 1731. 1837: foundation of the RL in Brussels as the BN through the amalgamation of several Ls.
Budaeus
MS from the property of Guillaume Budé/Budaeus (1468-1540), who was in the diplomatic service of Louis XII and Francis I. His L. went to the BN Paris, apart from a few MSS which are in
Britann(ic)us
1649-1707).
Budapestensis (Budensis)
Burbonicus (Borbonicus) Burmannus
Burneianus
Buxheimianus Caesaraugustanus
Leiden. MS from the L. of the Pazmany Univ. of Budapest. After the university founded in 1526 by King Matthias Corvinus in Buda, a new university was established in 1635 at Tyrnau/Irnava (comitatus of Pressburg/Bratislava); its library went to Budapest in 1777, and the university too was moved there in 1783. The L. contains MSS from the property of Matthias Corvinus (7 Corvinianus). 7 Neapolitanus [1]. MS from the property of: [x] Pieter Burman (1668-1741), professor of history, then of Greek, at first at Utrecht, from 1715 at Leiden. His MSS are in Leiden. [2] Pieter Secundus Burman (1714-1778), nephew of [1], professor at Amsterdam. MS named after Charles Burney Jr. (1757-1817); cf. 7 Londin(i)ensis [1]. MS from the Charterhouse of Buxheim near Memmingen (Bavaria). MS from Zaragoza/Caesaraugusta (Spain), today also at New Haven (Connecticut).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
496
Caesareus
MS from an Imperial L. (e.g. Vienna, St. Petersburg).
Caesenas
MS from Cesena; cf. 7 Malatestianus.
Calabricus
MS from the property of the Duke of Calabria, later Ferdinand I of Aragon (1424-1494), who had received southern Italy as a kingdom in its own right in 1458. His MSS went to the UL of Valencia via the monastery of San Miguel de los Reyes near Valencia (Spain).
Cambridge
7 Cantabrigiensis, 7 Eliensis, 7 Galeanus, 7 Regius [3], 7 Sancroftianus. 1500-1574, from Bamberg; professor at Tubingen 1535, Leipzig 1541. In his possession were
Camerarius (Kammerer/ Kammermeister),
Plautus MSS, among others, which went to Heidelberg (Palatini; one of which, Palatinus Vetus, is now in the 7 Vaticana; cf. 7 Palatinus [2]).
Joachim Canonicianus
MS from the coll. of the Jesuit Matteo Luigi Canonici (1727-1805); cf. 7 Bodleianus.
Cantabrigiensis
MS from Cambridge (England): [1] from the UL, attested since 1348, including the coll. of Bishop John Moore (cf. / Eliensis). [2] from the college Ls.
Canterbury
7 Cantuariensis; cf. 7 Laudianus; cf. Sancroftianus.
Cantuariensis
MS from Canterbury (England).
Capponianus
MS from the L. of the Marchese Alessandro Gregorio Capponi, which he bequeathed to the / Vaticana c. 1745.
Carbonensis
MS from the monastery of S. Elia in Carbone (southern Italy), now in the 7 Vaticana and
Carolsruhensis
Casanatensis
Casinensis
B. Chigiana
/ Grottaferrata. MS from the Baden LB, Karlsruhe (Caroli Hesychia); founded before 1500 at Pforzheim as the Markgrafliche B., moved to Durlach in 1560, moved to the Residenz Karlsruhe (founded 1713) in 1765. In 1522, it acquired the oriental and Greek Ls. from the estate of Johannes Reuchlin; enlarged 1803-1822 with Ls. of the secularized abbeys and monasteries (esp. Reichenau; cf. 7 Augiensis). MS from the L. of Cardinal Girolamo Casanate (1620-1700, librarian of the 7 Vaticana), which
he bequeathed to the Dominican convent of $. Maria sopra Minerva (Rome). MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Monte Cassino (Italy), founded in 529 by Benedict of Nursia. Founded by Pope Alexander VII (1655-1667), formerly Fabio Chigi, at Rome. Acquired by the Italian state in 1918, incorporated into the 7 Vaticana in 1923. Cf. 7 Chigianus, 7 Chisianus, 7 Romanus [6].
Chigianus, Chisianus
MS from the B. 7 Chigiana.
Cisalpinus (Italus)
MS from Italy, e.g. the Thucydides A MS currently in Paris.
Clarkeanus (Clarkianus)
MS named after Edward Daniel Clarke (1769-1822). His MSS went to the B. 7 Bodleiana,
Clermont-Ferrand
Oxford in 1809 (cf. 7 Bodleianus). MS from the Jesuit College of Clermont in Paris, founded in 1561 by Guillaume Duprat, Bishop of Clermont-Ferrand. After the expulsion of the Jesuits in 1595, some MSS went to J.A. de Thou (7 Thuaneus) and H. de Mesmes (7 Memmianus). At the second suppression, MSS went to Gerard Meerman, before being acquired by Sir Thomas Phillipps in 1824 and going to Berlin in 1887 (7 Phillippicus). MS from B. Municipale et Universitaire, Clermont-Ferrand. [x] MS from the B. Comunale Classense, Ravenna, named after Classe, now a suburb of Ravenna (monastery L.); MSS from there at Ravenna since 1804. [2] MS from the L. of Det Classenske Litteraturselskab, Copenhagen, amalgamated in 1843 with the UL founded in 1482. 7 Claromontensis; cf. 7 Claromontanus.
Cluniacensis
MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Cluny/Cluniacum (France), founded c. 908; plundered in the
Coislinianus
French Wars of Religion in 1562. MS from the property of Henri Charles du Cambout de Coislin (1664-1732), Bishop of Metz, who had inherited the coll. of his grandfather Pierre Seguier and bequeathed it to the Benedictine Abbey of St-Germain-des-Prés. The MSS went to the BN, Paris.
Claromontanus
Claromontensis
Classensis
Colberti(a)nus
MS from the property of Jean-Baptiste Colbert (1619-1683), minister of finance under Louis XIV. His heirs donated his coll. of MSS to the B. du Roi (now BN), Paris, in 1732.
Cologne (K6ln)
/ Coloniensis, 7 Hittorpianus, 7 Wallraffianus. MS from Koln/Colonia Agrippina: [1] StB, attested since 1602. Important enlargement in 1824 from the legacy of Canonicus Ferdinand Franz Waliraf, who had assembled many books and MSS from monasteries. Since
Coloniensis
1919, UBand StB.
[2] MS from the Erzbisch6fliche Diézesan- und Dom-B.
497 Colotianus
D. III. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
MS from the property of Angelo Colocci (1467-1549), secretary to Leo X and Clement VII, Bishop of Nocera (Italy), owner of the Virgil M MS and the 7 Arcerianus.
Columnensis
MS from the L. of the Colonna family, today in Florence, NL, and the 7 Vaticana. MS from the Collegium S. Ildefonso in Alcala de Henares/Complutum (Spain), founded by Cardinal Ximenes 1510, now in the Madrid UL. Constantinopolitanus MS from Constantinople: Complutensis
(ia|
Copenhagen (Kg@benhavn) Corbeiensis
[2] Patriarchal L. and L. of the Metochion of the Patriarch of Jerusalem. 7 Classensis [2], 7 Hauniensis. [1] MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Corbie (Picardie, France), founded c. 660. The best MSS went to Paris in 1636 (St-Germain-des-Prés, Petersburg (Russia).
7 Sangermanensis), others to Amiens (France), St.
[2] 7 Corveiensis. B. Corsiniana
Corsinianus Corveiensis
Corvinianus
Cottonianus
Cracoviensis
L. at Rome, originating with Cardinal Nereo Corsini (d. 1678) and Pope Clement XII (d. 1740),
opened to the public in 1754 by Cardinal Neri Maria Corai. Part of the L. of the Accademia Nazionale dei Lincei, Rome, from 1884. Cf. 7 Corsinianus, 7 Romanus [9]. MS from the B. 7 Corsiniana. MS from the monastery of Corvey (Weser); set up as a subsidiary monastery of Corbie in the 9th cent. MSS dispersed; some are at Wolfenbiittel and Marburg. Cf. B. 7 Augustea, 7 Corbeiensis. MS from the former L. of the Hungarian king Matthias Corvinus, who reigned 1458-1490 and created a valuable coll. at Buda. After his death, his L. was quickly dispersed and most MSS are lost; cf. 7 Budapestensis, 7 Dacicus. MS from the property of Sir Robert Bruce Cotton (1571-163 1); his L. was opened to the public in 1700 at Ashburnham House by his grandson John; it was partly destroyed in 1731. The remaining inventory was transferred to the British Museum, London, in 1753. MS from Cracow/Krakow (Poland): [1] from the Jagellonic UL/B. Jagiollonska, founded 1517. [2] from the Museum, Archiwum i B. Czartoryskich, founded by Princess Isabella Czartoryska c. 1800.
Cracow (Krakow)
Crippsianus Cromwellianus Crusianus
Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis) Cuiacianus
Cusanus
Dacicus
/ Cracoviensis. MS named after John Marten Cripps (d. 1853). MSS from his estate in the British Museum, London, including the MS of the Attic Orators of the Burney Collection. MS from the Barocci coll., which Oliver Cromwell donated to the 7 Bodleiana in 1654. MS from the property of Martinus Crusius/Martin Kraufs (1526-1607), Professor of Greek and Rhetoric at Tiibingen. His MSS are today at Munich (/ Bayerische SB), Stuttgart and Tiibingen. MS from Grottaferrata, monastery near Rome, founded 1004. MSS from there went to the 7 Vaticana, Naples, Brussels, Paris, Monte Cassino and Vienna.
MS from the property of Jacques Cujas (French jurist, 1522-1590, Toulouse). Many MSS from his estate were acquired by Jacques Bongars (7 Bongarsianus), some are in Paris. MS from the L. of Cardinal Nicolaus Cusanus (Nikolaus of Kues/Cusa, 1401-1464). Held at Kues (Mosel) in the Hospital he founded there; a few of the MSS went to Brussels and to the British Museum, London. MS from Hungary, e.g. the Valerius Flaccus MS, probably from the estate of Matthias Corvinus (7 Corvinianus), now in the 7 Vaticana.
Danicus
Danielinus
/ Hauniensis. MS from the property of the jurist Pierre Daniel of Orléans (c. 1530-1603). His MSS were purchased by Paul Petau (7 Petavianus) and Jacques Bongars (7 Bongarsianus). Petau’s MSS went via his son to Queen Christina of Sweden, and from her to the 7 Vaticana (7 Reginensis);
Bongars’ MSS went to Berne (7 Bernensis). Darmstadiensis (Darmstadtinus)
MS from the Hessische Landes- und Hochschul-B. Darmstadt.
Daventriensis (Deventriensis)
MS from the Athenaeum-B. Deventer/Daventria (Netherlands), founded before 1597.
Decembrius
MS named after Pier Candido Decembrio/Petrus Candidus Decembrius (b. 13.99 at Pavia). Some of his MSS went to the 7 Ambrosiana (Milan).
Decurtatus
MS with abridged, mutilated text (also: mutilus), e.g. the Terence G Codex in the 7 Vaticana or the Plautus Palatinus C.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA AND MANUSCRIPTS
498
Deventriensis
7 Daventriensis.
Didotianus
MS named after Ambroise Firmin Didot (1790-1876, member of the French family of printers and publishers). MS from the coll. of the Legationsrat G.F. von Diez (1751-1817), went to the RL Berlin in 1817 by purchase. MS from the property of Sir Kenelm Digby (1603-1665), later passed to the 7 Bodleiana.
Diezianus
Digbeianus Dionysianus
[x] MS from the monastery of St. Denis (S. Dionysius), Paris, founded c. 623. [2] MS from the monastery of §. Dionysios, one of the monasteries on Mount Athos (Greece).
Divionensis
MS from Dijon/Divio (France).
(Diviobenignanus) Dominicanus
MS from a Dominican monastery.
Donaueschingiensis MS from MS from Dorpatensis MS from Dorvillianus coll. has
the Fiirstliche Fiirstenbergische Hof-B. Donaueschingen. Dorpat (Estonia). the property of the philologist Jacques Philippe D’ Orville (1690-1751); since 1804, his been at the 7 Bodleiana.
Dovoriensis
MS from Dover (England).
Dresdensis
MS from the Sachsische LB, Dresden, successor to the private L. of Elector August (1553-1586) founded in 1556.
Duacensis
MS from Douai/Duacum (France).
Dunelmensis
MS from Durham/Dunelmum (the Terence Dunelmensis, Bentley’s Codex vetustissimus, went to
Eboracensis
MS from: [1] York/Eboracum (England). [2] Ebrach near Wiirzburg, Cistercian monastery.
Eboricanus (Ebroicensis)
MS from Evreux (France).
Edinburgensis
MS from Edinburgh (Scotland). MS from the property of John Moore (d. 1714, Bishop of Ely, England); his MSS went to the UL Cambridge by a donation of George I in 1714. Antonius Eparchus (b. c. 1492 on Corfu) emigrated to Venice in 1536 when the Turks invaded.
the 7 Bodleiana).
Eliensis Eparchus
The MSS from his estate went to Augsburg, Madrid (Escorial), Rome (7 Vaticana), Paris, Milan, Munich (7 Bayerische SB) and Berlin.
Erlangensis
MS from Erfurt. The L. of the faculty of artists, founded in 1407, became the UL, which in turn became the StB; in 1842 the L. of the Collegium Amplonianum (7 Amplonianus) was also incorporated. MS of the UL Erlangen.
Escorialensis (Escurialensis)
MS from the B. de San Lorenzo del Escorial (Madrid), built 1563-1584 by Philip II. He began to acquire books in 1565, and passed them to the monastery in 1576.
Esinus
7 Aesinas. 7 Mutinensis. MS from Eton (England). MS in Florence, e.g. the Seneca E Codex of the Laurentiana (7 Medicea-Laurenziana).
Erfurtensis
Estensis Eton(i)ensis Etruscus
Farnesi(a)nus
[x] MS from the property of Franciscus Fabricius Marcoduranus/Franz Schmidt von Diiren (1523-1573, Latinist, pupil of 7 Turnebus). [2] 7 Hauniensis [2]. 7 Fesulanus. MS from the property of Gerard Falckenburg of Nijmegen (1535-1578). 7 Neapolitanus [1].
Fesulanus (Faesulanus)
MS from the monastery of S. Bartolomeo, Fiesole/Faesulae (Italy), now in the Laurentiana (7 Medicea Laurenziana) in Florence.
Florentinus
MS from Florence: [1] Aedilium Florentinae ecclesiae. L. founded by the Republic of Florence c. 1448 near the cathedral. MSS now in the Laurentiana (Medicea Laurenziana, [6]). [2] B. Leopoldina, MSS coll. added to the B. Laurentiana in 1765 by Peter Leopold, Grand Duke of Tuscany. [3] B. Magliabecchiana, founded by Antonio Magliabecchi (1633-1714), librarian to the Duke of Florence, now in the BN Centrale (see below [7]). [4] B. 7 Marciana. [5] B. Marucelliana; L. left by Francesco Marucelli (d. 1703) of Florence, open to the public since
Fabricianus
Faesulanus Falcoburgianus
Lys ae
499
D. II. GREEK AND
LATIN
MANUSCRIPTS
[6] B. 7 Medicea Laurenziana (Laurentiana). [7] BN Centrale, founded 1861 (contains the Magliabecchiana, Palatina and other colls.).
[8] B. Palatina, the private L. of the Dukes of Tuscany, formerly in the Palazzo Pitti, now in the der BN Centrale (see above [7]). [9] B. Riccardiana, founded by Riccardo Romolo Riccardi c. 1590, sold by his heirs in 1815. [xo] B. Sanctae Crucis/Monastery of Santa Croce. MSS in the Laurentiana (see above [6]) since 1766.
Florence (Firenze)
/ Columnensis, 7 Etruscus, 7 Fesulanus (Faesulanus), 7 Florentinus, 7 Marcianus, / Strozzianus [2]; cf. 7 Gaddianus, cf. 7 Lagomarsinianus, cf. 7 Victorianus.
Floriacensis
MS from Fleury-sur-Loire/Floriacum ad Ligerim (France). MSS from the monastery founded c. 651, whose L. was destroyed or dispersed in the French Wars of Religion in 1562, passed to Pierre Daniel (1530-1603; cf. 7 Danielinus), whose coll. was purchased by Jacques Bongars
Fontebla(n)densis
MS from the B. Royale au Chateau de Fontainebleau, brought there from Blois (7 Blesensis) in
(7 Bongarsianus) and his cousin Paul Petau (7 Petavianus); the other MSS went to Orléans. the reign of Francis I; now in the BN, Paris. Foroiuliensis Foucaultianus
MS from Cividale del Friuli / Forum Tulium (Italy). MS from the property of Nicholas Joseph Foucault, Paris, Conseiller d’état and antiquarian (1643-1721). MSS from this coll. went to Leipzig, Paris, Leiden, Glasgow and Oxford.
Francofurtanus (Francfurtensis, Francofurtensis)
[1] MS from StB Frankfurt/Main, founded 1668, Stadt- und UB since foundation of the Univ. in
Frisingensis
MS from Freising/Frisinga (Bavaria), now at Munich, 7 Bayerische SB.
Fuggerianus
MS from the property of: [1] Ulrich Fugger of Augsburg, Freiherr von Kirchberg (1528-1584); went to the B. 7 Palatina
1914. Particular enlargement of MS coll. by the lay assessor Zacharias Conrad Uffenbach (7 Uffenbachianus). [2] MS from Frankfurt/Oder. Inventories went to Breslau/Wroctaw after the dissolution of the university in 1811; cf. 7 Vratislaviensis [2].
(Heidelberg), then with that in 1622/23 to the 7 Vaticana. [2] Hansjacob Fugger (1516-1575), now at Munich, 7 Bayerische SB. [3] Raymund Fugger (1489-1535), went to the Vienna NL in 1656. Fuldensis
Gaddianus Galeanus
Gandavensis Gedanensis Gemblacensis Genevensis
Genuensis (Genovensis, Januensis)
MS from Fulda. The monastery was founded in 744; the LB Fulda was founded in 1776 from inventories of the Benedictine, Court, Jesuit and other Ls. Some MSS are named / Bonifatianus
after the founder of the monastery. MS from the property of Francesco di Angelo Gaddi (c. 1500) and other members of his family. Most MSS have been in the Laurentiana (7 Medicea Laurenziana), Florence, since 1755. MS named after Thomas Gale (c. 1635-1702). His MSS are in Trinity College, Cambridge. Cf. 7 Cantabrigiensis. MS from the State UL of Ghent/Gandavum/Gand (Belgium), founded 1797. MS from Danzig/Gdansk/Gedanum. MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Gembloux/Gemblacum (Belgium). MS from the B. Publique et Univ., Geneva, founded 1560. In 1742, Amadeée Lullin donated numerous Greek MSS from the coll. of Paul Petau (7 Petaviani). MS from Genoa (Italy).
Ghent
7 Gandavensis; cf. 7 Blandiniensis (Blandinius, Blandinianus).
Gi(e)ssensis
Gifani(an)us
MS from the UL GieSen, founded 1612 by Landgrave Ludwig V of Hesse. MS from the property of Hubert van Giffen (Giphanius, 1534-1604), jurist and philologist. A Nepos MS from his estate is lost.
Goerresianus
MS from the property of the German journalist and scholar J.J. von Gorres (1776-1848); most
Goettingensis
MSS are from St. Maximin’s Abbey in Trier and are today in Koblenz, Berlin and elsewhere. MS from the UL (today Niedersachsische Staats- und Univ.-B.) Gottingen (founded 1737).
(Gotingensis) Goldastianus
MS from the property of the Swiss jurist Melchior Goldast von Heimingsfeld (1576-1635). Part of his L. was purchased by Queen Christina of Sweden (7 Reginensis).
Gothanus
MS from Gotha. / Goettingensis. MS from Schloss Gottorp in Schleswig; L. destroyed. MS from the property of Jan Georg Graefe/Graevius (1632-1703), Professor of History at
Gotingensis Gottorpianus Graevianus
Utrecht. His MS coll. went to the British Museum, London, and to Heidelberg (there forming the
basis of the UL newly founded after its destruction in 1693).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA AND MANUSCRIPTS
Gratianopolitanus
MS from UL Grenoble/Gratianopolis (Grannopolis; France), founded 1879.
Grenoble
/ Gratianopolitanus. MS from the property :
Gronovianus
soo
[x] of the Latinist Johann Friedrich Gronov of Hamburg (1611-1671), professor at Deventer from 1642, at Leiden from 1659.
[2] of his son, the Latinist and Graecist Jakob Gronov (1645-1716), professor at Pisa and Leiden. Grottaferrata
Gudianus
Guelferbytanus Gyraldensis
7 Basilianus, 7 Bessarion, 7 Carbonensis; cf. 7 Barberin(ian)us, cf. 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis). MS from the property of the Danish Privy Councillor Marquard Gude (1635-1689) of Rendsburg (Leibniz acquired the Codices Gudiani for Wolfenbiittel in 1710). MS from 7 Wolfenbiittel. MS from the property of Giglio Gregorio Giraldi of Ferrara (1479-1552), Papal pronotary.
(Giraldinus)
Hamburgensis
MS from Hamburg (today Staats- und Univ.-B.); the main coll., attested from 1480, was enlarged during the Reformation with inventories from monastery Ls.
Hamilton Palace L. (L. of the Dukes of Hamilton, Scotland)
Alexander, Duke of Hamilton (1767-18 52) was particularly renowned as a collector. Most of the MSS were sold to Berlin in 1882 (RL and Kupferstichkabinett). Cf. 7 Berolinensis, 7 Hamiltonensis (Hamiltonianus).
Hamiltonensis (Hamiltonianus)
MS from the family L. of the Dukes of 7 Hamilton (Hamilton Palace L.).
Harleianus
MS his MS [1] [2]
Hauniensis
from the property of Robert Harley, later Earl of Oxford and Mortimer (1661-1724), and successor Edward Harley (1689-1741). The MSS went to the British Museum, London. from Copenhagen/Haunia (Hafnia): RL, founded in 1665 in the reign of Frederick II. UL, founded 1482, contains the coll. of J. A. Fabricius (cf. 7 Fabricianus [2]) acquired in
1770. Heidelberg
/ Graevianus, 7 Heidelbergensis, 7 Ladenburgensis; cf. Camerarius, cf. 7 Fuggerianus [1], cf. Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis) [1], cf. 7 Palatinus [2].
Heidelbergensis
MS MS [1] [2]
Heinsianus
from Heidelberg; cf. 7 Palatinus [2]. from the property of: Daniel Heinsius (1580-1655), Professor of Classical Languages at Leiden. Nicolaas Heinsius (1620-1681), Latinist; most MSS now in the 7 Bodleiana (Oxford), some at Leiden and in the Reginenses coll. at the 7 Vaticana.
Helmstadiensis
MS from Helmstedt; the UL there was founded in 1614/1618 by transfer of the Wolfenbittel L. (cf. B. 7 Augustea). When the university was dissolved in 1810, the L. was returned to Wolfenbiuttel; the remaining inventory was divided between Marburg, Braunschweig and
Herbipolitanus
MS from UL Wirzburg/Herbipolis (Wirceburgum), founded c. 1620. This was plundered by the Swedes in 163 1-34, and re-established by Prince-Bishop Johann Philipp II von Greiffenclau (1699-1719). Secularization in 1803 brought a large influx of MSS. MS from the former Benedictine Abbey of Hersfeld (founded c. 740). Cf. 7 Aesinas. MS from Jerusalem/Hierosolyma, Patriarchal L. MS from Hildesheim. MS from the monastery of Hirsau (also Hirschau, Black Forest), founded 830. MS named after Melchior Hittorp (c. 1525-1584; theologian, dean of the Abbey of St. Cumbert, Cologne).
Gottingen. (Wirceburgensis) Hersfeldensis
Hierosolymitanus Hildeshe(i)mensis Hirsaugiensis
Hittorpianus
Holkhamicus
MS from the coll. of Thomas William Coke, Earl of Leicester, of Holkham Hall (1752-1842); MSS today in London (British L.) and Oxford (7 Bodleiana).
Hugenianus
MS from the property of Constantin Huygens (1596-1687) of Zuylichem (Holland). Some MSS went to Leiden.
Hummelianus
MS (now lost) of Tacitus’ Germania, which Bernhard Friedrich Hummel used in 1776.
Hydruntinus
MS from Otranto/Hydruntum (Italy). Numerous MSS of 7 Bessarion come from the L. of the monastery of S. Nicola di Casole, which was destroyed in 1480.
Januensis
7 Genuensis.
Innsbruck
/ Oenipontanus. Cisalpinus.
Italus
501 Jenensis Karlsruhe Kenaunensis
Ladenburgensis Lagomarsinianus Landianus
Langres Laskaris
Laudensis Laudianus Laureacensis (Laureshamensis,
D. III]. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
MS from the UB Jena (formed from the Kurfiirstliche B. in Wittenberg 1512). / Augiensis, 7 Carolsruhensis. MS from Kells (Ireland). MS from the property of Johann Dalberg, Bishop of Worms (d. 1503); his L. in Ladenburg went to the 7 Palatina in Heidelberg. MS from the property of Girolamo Lagomarsini (1698-1773), Professor of Rhetoric at Florence and Rome. MS from the B. Passerini-Landi in Piacenza (Italy), founded by Pier Francesco Passerini (d. 1695). / Lingonensis. [1] Constantinus L. of Constantinople (1434-1501), Professor of Greek at Milan 1460-1465, then at Messina. His L., which he bequeathed to the city of Messina, went via Palermo to the newly-founded BN Madrid (cf. Matritensis [r]). [2] Janos L. (1445-1535), sponsored by Lorenzo de’ Medici, assisted G. Budé in the foundation of the L. at Fontainebleau for Francis I (cf. 7 Blesensis, cf. 7 Fonteblandensis); he later returned to Italy. A list made by him of the MSS of his coll. is in the 7 Vaticana. MS from Lodi/Laus Pompeia (Italy). MS from the property of William Laud (1573-1645, Archbishop of Canterbury); his coll. went to the 7 Bodleiana and St. John’s College, Oxford. [1] MS from the Benedictine monastery of Lorsch (in modern Hesse). Founded 764, it was dissolved during the Reformation; the MSS went to the 7 Palatina at Heidelberg (then in 1622/23
Laurishamensis)
to the 7 Vaticana), to Vienna (NB) and Montpellier. [2] MS from Lorsch near Passau.
B. Laurentiana (Laurenziana)
B. 7 Medicea Laurenziana.
Laurentianus
/ Florentinus [6].
Laureshamensis (Laurishamensis)
/ Laureacensis.
Leiden
/ Budaeus, 7 Burmannus [1], 7 Foucaultianus, 7 Heinsianus, 7 Hugenianus, 7 Leidensis (Lugdunensis), 7 Lugdunensis [1], 7 Perizonianus, 7 Scaligeranus, 7 Susianus, / Til(l)ianus,
Leidensis (Lugdunensis)
MS from the L. of the Rijks-Univ. Leiden/Lugdunum Batavorum (founded 1575). In 1722, the L. of the classical philologist Justus Lipsius was purchased. It also contains MSS from the property of Gronov, Heinse, Scaliger and Isaac Voss.
/ Vossianus; cf. Gronovianus.
Leipzig
/ Foucaultianus, 7 Lipsiensis, 7 Sinaiticus; cf. Camerarius.
Leodi(c)ensis
MS from Liége (Luik/Littich)/Leodicum (Leodium); the UL there formed from the city library
Leopoldi(a)nus
Libri
Liége (Luik,
founded in 1732. / Florentinus [2]. Guillaume Brutus Icilius Timoléon Libri Carucci della Sommaia (1803-1869) assembled a collection of around 2,000 MSS by theft, and sold it to the Earl of Ashburnham in 1847. After the Earl’s death in 1878, most of the MSS were restored to their original Ls. in France and Italy. 7 Leodi(c)ensis.
Littich) Lingonensis Lipsiensis
Lollinianus
Londin(i)ensis
MS from Langres/Lingonum urbs (France). MS from Leipzig: [x] UB (B. Albertina). Until 1543, there were only minor faculty and bursa libraries; after the Reformation, an UB was founded from the inventories of dissolved Saxon monastery Ls. [2] StB, founded 1677. MS from the coll. of Alvise Lollino (1557-1625), today in Belluno (Italy) and the 7 Vaticana. {x] MS from the British Museum, London, Dept. of Greek and Roman Antiquities. The stimulus to its foundation came from Sir Hans Sloane (doctor, naturalist, Secretary of the Royal Society, d.
1753). Contains the Arundel (7 Arundelianus), Bumey (7 Burneianus), Cotton (7 Cottonianus), Egerton, Harley (7 Harleianus) and Old Royal 7 Regius [2]) MS colls. [2] MS from UL Lund/Londinum Gothorum (Sweden), founded 1666. London
Lorsch
Gio British L, Cf. 7 Alexandrinus [2], 7 Arundelianus (Arondellianus), 7 Bituricensis (Bituricus) [2], / Cottonianus, 7 Crippsianus, 7 Cusanus, 7 Graevianus, 7 Harleianus, 7 Holkhamicus, 7 Londin(i)ensis [1], 7 Sinaiticus, 7 Stephanus, 7 Towneleianus. / Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis) [2], 7 Nazarianus; cf. Laureacensis
(Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis) [1].
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
AND
502
MANUSCRIPTS
Louvain (Leuven, Louvain, Lowen)
7 Parcensis; cf. 7 Puteanus [2].
Lucensis
MS from Lucca/Luca, Italy. [1] MS from Leiden/Lugdunum Batavorum (/ Leidensis).
Lugdunensis
[2] MS from Lyon/Lug(u)dunum.
Magliabecchianus
MS from the BN Luxembourg, founded 1798. 7 Lugdunensis [2]; cf. 7 Tornesianus. 7 Complutensis, 7 Eparchus, 7 Escorialensis (Escurialensis), 7 Laskaris [1], 7 Matritensis. / Florentinus [3].
Milan (Milano)
7 Ambrosianus, 7 Bobiensis, 7 Eparchus,
Mainz
7 Moguntinus; cf. 7 Up(p)saliensis.
Malatestianus
MS from the B. Malatestiana, Cesena, founded by Domenico Malatesta Novello in 1452, merged with the B. Comunale since 1797.
Mallersdorfianus
MS from the Benedictine monastery of Mallersdorf (Bavaria).
Luxemburgensis Lyon
Madrid
7 Mediolanensis; cf. 7 Laskaris [1], cf. 7 Trivulzianus.
(Mallersdorfiensis) Mancuniensis
MS from Manchester/Mancunium (England), John Rylands L., founded 1900 by Mrs. Rylands
in memory of her husband. Mannhe(i)mensis
MS from Mannheim, in Munich, 7 Bayerische SB, since the transfer of Mannheim to Baden (1803), as Wittelsbach Hausgut.
Mantuanus
MS from the B. Gonzaga, Mantua. Many MSS came into the possession of Cardinal Richelieu, some (in 1708) to the 7 Marciana at Venice, others to the 7 Bodleiana.
B. Marciana
(Florence)
Founded in 1441 by Cosimo I in the Dominican monastery of S. Marco which he had had newly built. The core inventory was formed of the 800 MSS acquired by Cosimo’s librarian, Niccolo Niccoli (1363-1437). Since 1884, in the B. 7 Medicea Laurenziana and the BN Centrale (Florence). Cf. 7 Florentinus [4] and [7].
B. Marciana (Venice)
Founded in 1468.; main inventory from the donation of MSS of Cardinal / Bessarion (1403-1472) to the Republic of Venice. Cf. 7 Mantuanus, 7 Marcianus, 7 Nanianus.
Marcianus
[x] MS from the B. Marciana in Florence (7 Florentinus [4]). [2] MS from the B. Marciana in Venice.
Matritensis
MS [x] {2] [3]
Mazarinensis
MS from the property of Cardinal Jules Mazarin (Giulio Mazzarini, 1602-1661), successor of Richelieu. Mazarin’s L. was the first L. in France to be opened to the public, in 1643. It fell into dilapidation during his exile, but was later restored by him.
from Madrid/Matritum/Madritum: BN founded in 1712 by Philip V as the main repository of Spanish literature. Faculty and Institute Ls. B. de Palacio, formerly private RL, founded 1716; MSS inventories from the Monastery of Colegios Mayores in Salamanca. [4] B. de la Academia de la Historia; the Academy, founded in 1738, contains MSS from dissolved monasteries.
(Mazarinianus)
B. Medicea Laurenziana
(Laurentiana; Florence)
Mediceus
Founded by Cosimo de’ Medici the Elder (1389-1464) as a house L. near the Cathedral of S. Lorenzo in Florence; expanded by Cosimo’s grandson, Lorenzo il Magnifico (1449-1492). After the death of Leo X, in 1522, Giulio de’ Medici had the library, which had been taken to Rome,
returned to Florence, and (as Pope Clement XII from 1523) had a building erected for it beside the Cathedral of S$. Lorenzo: the B. Medicea-Laurenziana. Cf. 7 Florentinus [6]. [x] 7 Florentinus [6]. [2] MS from the property of Caterina de’ Medici, whose L. was added to the B. Royale, Paris, in 1599. Also termed the Medicei Regii.
Mediolanensis
MS from Milan (Milano)/Mediolanum; cf. 7 Ambrosianus.
Mediomatricensis
MS from Metz/Mediomatrica (France).
Mediomontanus
7 Phillippicus.
Meerman(n)ianus Melk
MS from the property of Gerard Meerman (1722-1771); cf. 7 Claromontanus. 7 Mellicensis.
Mellicensis
MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Melk/Mellicum/Melicium (Lower Austria).
Memmianus
MS from the coll. of Henri de Mesmes (d. 1596) and his son Jacques (d. 1642). Coll. dispersed,
parts in Paris and Oxford. Cf. 7 Claromontanus.
593
D. Ill. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
Messanius, Messanicus
MS from Messina/Messana (Sicily).
Metz
7 Mediomatricensis; cf. 7 Coislinianus.
Modena
Monte Cassino
/ Bembinus [2], 7 Mutinensis (Estensis), 7 Vallensis; cf. Nonantulanus. MS from Mainz/Moguntia. MS from Munich/Miinchen/Monachium: [x] UB 7 Munich. [2] 7 Bayerische SB. Cf. 7 Victorianus. MS from UB Minster (Westphalia). The core of the L. was the Jesuit book coll. (1586); enlarged with the B. Fiirstenbergica (1795) and by secularization. MS of the Naturalis Historia of Pliny, a sth cent. palimpsest, found by the French philologist Franz-Josef Mone in 1853 at St. Paul, Carinthia (now in Vienna, Nationalbibliothek). / Casinensis, 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis).
Montepessulanus
MS from Montpellier/Mons Pessulanus (Univ. founded 1289).
Moguntinus Monacensis
Monasteriensis Moneus
Moscow
7 Mosquensis.
Mosquensis
MS from Moscow. 7 Bayerische SB.
Bayerische SB Miinchen (Munich) UB Minchen
Munich (Miinchen) Minster
Murbacensis
Mutilus Mutinensis (Estensis)
Founded at Ingolstadt in 1472; moved with the university to Landshut in 1800, then to Munich in 1826. Valuable enlargement in 1803 from secularized monasteries and abbeys. Cf. 7 Monacensis [1]. 7 Augustanus [1], 7 Bessarion, Johannes Basilius, 7 Crusianus, 7 Eparchus, / Frisingensis, / Fuggerianus [2], 7 Mannhe(i)mensis, 7 Monacensis, 7 Pataviensis, 7 Ratisponensis, 7 Schedelianus, 7 Tegernseensis, 7 Victorianus. 7 Monasteriensis, 7 Paulinus [1]. MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Murbach in Alsace, founded in 727 by St. Pirmin (d. 753). / Decurtatus. MS from the L. of the Este family, Modena/Mutina (Italy).
Nanianus
MS from the property of the Nani family of Venice (17th cent.); today at Venice, B. 7 Marciana.
Naples (Napoli)
7 Bobiensis, 7 Brancaccianus, 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis),
Nazarianus
Neapolitanus
7 Neapolitanus; cf.
7 Vindobonensis [1]. MS from the monastery of S. Nazarii at Lorsch. Cf. 7 Laurcacensis. MS from Naples: [x] BN, founded by Alessandro Farnese in Rome (Pope Paul III, 1534-1549). Moved to Naples, the B. was merged with the B. Palatina in 1804, becoming the B. Borbonica. It also contains MSS from Bobbio (7 Bobiensis). [2] 7 Brancaccianus. [3] UL, founded 1812.
Nicolianus
Nonantulanus
MS named after the Italian Humanist Niccolo de’ Niccoli (1363-1437); cf. 7 Florentinus [4]. MS from the Benedictine monastery of S. Silvester in Nonantula near Modena. The MSS from this monastery went via the B. Sessoriana (7 Sessorianus) to the B. Vittorio Emanuele, Rome.
Nostradamensis Oenipontanus
MS from the cathedral of Notre-Dame in Paris. MS from the UB Innsbruck/Oenipons/Oenipontum, founded 1745.
Oiselianus
MS named after Jacobus Oiselius (1631-1686), Professor of Law at Groningen.
Ortelianus
MS named after Veit Ortel (Vitus Ortelius, also called Winshemius after his place of birth;
Ottobonianus
1501-1570), classical philologist, professor at Wittenberg and Jena. MS from the property of the Ottoboni family (Pope Alexander VIII); moved to the 7 Vaticana under Benedict XIV (Pope 1740-1758). The MSS colls. contain a few MSS of Queen Christina of
Oxford
Sweden (7 Reginensis). 7 Ashmoleanus, 7 Bodleianus, 7 Clarkeanus (Clarkianus), 7 Foucaultianus, 7 Heinsianus [2], 7 Holkhamicus, 7 Laudianus, 7 Memmianus, 7 Oxoniensis, Savilianus; cf. 7 Harleianus.
Oxoniensis
MS from Oxford/Oxonium: [x] 7 Bodleianus. [2] College Ls.; the MSS of some colleges are in the 7 Bodleiana.
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
504
Padua (Padova)
/ Patavinus.
B. Palatina
general: palace or court L.
B. Palatina (Heidelberg)
The Palatina derives from the coll. of the Univ. of Heidelberg, founded in 1386, and the
Kurfiirstliche B. In 1622/23, it was taken as war booty by Maximilian of Bavaria to Rome to the 7 Vaticana. Some of the inventory returned in 1815. The L., which had meanwhile been refounded, burnt down in 1693 in the destruction of Heidelberg. The present UB Heidelberg derives from the once more refounded L. Cf. 7 Florentinus [7-8], 7 Fuggerianus [1], 7 Ladenburgensis, 7 Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis), 7 Neapolitanus [1], 7 Palatino-Vindobonensis, 7 Palatinus, 7 Vindobonensis [1]. Palatino-Florentinus 7 Florentinus [8]. Palatino-Vindobonensis MS from the Viennese B. Palatina (Kaiserliche und K6nigliche Hofbibliothek), Palatinus
Panormitanus
Papiensis
7 Vindobonensis [1]. [1] MS from a palace or court L. {2] MS from the B. 7 Palatina (Heidelberg). Cf. 7 Graevianus. MS from Palermo/Panormus (Sicily). MS from Pavia/Papia. The MSS coll. of the Visconti family was acquired by Louis XII c.
1500 and
thus went to Paris (BN). Parcensis Paris
MS from the Premonstratensian Parc Abbey near Louvain/Leuven, Belgium. / Bituricensis (Bituricus), 7 Blesensis, 7 Budaeus, 7 Cisalpinus (Italus), 7 Coislinianus, 7 Colberti(a)nus, 7 Corbeiensis [1], 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis), 7 Cuiacianus, / Dionysianus [1], 7 Eparchus, 7 Fontebla(n)densis, 7 Foucaultianus, 7 Mediceus [2], 7 Memmianus, 7 Nostradamensis, / Papiensis, / Parisiensis (Parisianus, Parisinus),
7 Puteanus
[x], 7 Regius [x], 7 Ridolfianus, 7 Sangermanensis, 7 Stephanus, 7 Thuaneus, 7 Toletanus, 7 Vallensis; cf. 7 Armamentarius; cf. 7 Claromontanus, cf. 7 Pithoeanus, cf. Sorbonianus (Sorbonnensis), cf. 7 Turnebus. Parisiensis (Parisianus, Parisinus)
MS from Paris: [x] BN (7 Blesensis, 7 Fonteblandensis). The MSS colls to come to the BN include: 7 Colbertini 1732, 7 Mazarinenses 1668, 7 Puteani 1754, 7 Salmasiani 1719, 7 Sangermanenses 1795.
[2] B. de l’Arsenal (cf. Armamentarius). [3] B. Ste Geneviéve, founded 1624. [4] B. Mazarine, 7 Mazarinensis.
[5] B. de la Sorbonne. The present B. de la Sorbonne has no connection with that of the old Collége de la Sorbonne dissolved during the Revolution. It is mostly based on the coll. of the rector Gabriel Petet de Montempuis (c. 1736), and became the B. de l'Université in 1770. Parrhasianus
MS from the property of the Neapolitan Humanist Aulo Giano Parrasio (Aulus Janus Parrhasius,
1470-1534). Cf. 7 Bobiensis. Passau
cf. 7 Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis), cf. 7 Pataviensis.
Passioneus
MS of Cardinal Domenico Passionei (1682-1761); today in the B. 7 Angelica, Rome.
Pataviensis
MS from Passau (now at Munich, 7 Bayerische SB, and Klosterneuburg).
Patavinus
MS from Padua/Padova/Patavium: [r] B. Pontificia Antoniana. [2] B. Capitolare. [3] UL, founded by the Republic of Venice in 1629. [4] B. del Seminario Vescovile. MS from the Cluniac monastery of Payerne (Paterniacum/Peterlingen, Switzerland). MSS now dispersed. MS from Patmos (Greece). [x] MS from B. Paulina, Minster. The cathedral L. was incorporated into the old UB in 1823; cf. / Monasteriensis. [2] MS from UB Leizpig, kept until 1891 in the Paulinum (L. of the Dominican monastery,
Paterniacensis
Patmi(ac)us
Paulinus
founded 1229); cf. Lipsiensis [1]. Peirescianus
cf. 7 Papiensis, cf. 7 Decembrius. MS named after Nicolas Claude Fabri de Peiresc (1580-1637), a French bibliophile.
Perizonianus
MS named after Jacob Perizonius (Voorbroek), Professor of Philology (1651-1715; at Leiden
Perusinus
from 1693). MS from Perugia (Italy).
Pavia
Petavianus
MS from the property of the French jurist and antiquarian Paul Petau (1568-1614), a cousin of Jacques Bongars (cf. 7 Bongarsianus). Part of his coil. was sold by his son Alexander to Queen Christina of Sweden (7 Reginensis) and went to the 7 Vaticana. Another part went to Geneva.
595
D. Ill. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
Petriburgensis (Petropolitanus)
MS from the: [1] Public State L. (Saltykov-Scedrin L.) of St. Petersburg, founded 1814; MSS include some from monasteries dissolved in 1917, also from St-Germain-des-Prés; cf. 7 Sangermanensis. [2] L. of the Russian Academy of Sciences. [3] Hermitage, founded 1765. [4] UL, founded 1819.
Peutingerianus
MS from the property of the Augsburg patrician and Humanist Konrad Peutinger (1465-1547). The map (Tabula Peutingeriana) left to him by Conrad Celtis (1459-1508) is today in Vienna, NL.
Phillippicus (Phillippsianus)
MS from the property of Sir Thomas Phillipps of Middle Hill (from which also 7 Mediomontanus; 1792-1872). In 1824, he acquired parts of the Meerman Coll. (cf.
Pighi(an)us
Codex containing the records of the Dutch archaeologist Stephan Winand Pighius (1520-1604); now in the SB Berlin. MS from the property of Gian Vincenzo Pinelli of Genoa (1535-1601). His coll. was purchased by Cardinal Borromeo in 1608 for the 7 Ambrosiana.
/ Claromontanus), which went to Berlin after his death. MSS now dispersed.
Pinellianus Pistoriensis
MS from Pistoia/Pistoria (Italy).
Pithoeanus
MS from the property of the jurist and antiquarian Pierre Pithou (1539-1596) and his brother Francois Pithou, Procurator-General of the Parliament of Paris (d. 1621). Their MSS coll. went to Troyes and Montpellier. MS named after the Italian Humanist Gian Francesco Poggio di Guccio Bracciolini (13 80-1459). [x] (also Puteaneus). MS from the property of the brothers Pierre (1582-1651) and Jacques (1586-1656) Dupuy, who from 1635 worked in the B. du Roi in Paris. They left their private L., most of which was bequeathed to them by their father, Claude Dupuy (d. 1594), to the B. du Roi. [2] Name of the Belgian Humanist and philologist Ericius/Eyricius Puteanus (Errijck van de Put, 1574-1646), who, commissioned by Cardinal Borromeo, assembled MSS for the 7 Ambrosiana and succeeded Justus Lipsius (1574-1606) at the Univ. of Louvain on his death. Founded by the Benedictine Angelo Maria Quirini (d. 1755), Bishop of Brescia/Brixia (Italy). From 1730, he was Apostolic Librarian; in 1747, he bought back his own collection, which he had donated to the 7 Vaticana, for Brescia. Cf. 7 Brixianus / Brescia.
Poggianus Puteanus
B. Civica Queriniana (Brescia)
Quirinianus
MS from the B. Queriniana, Brescia (cf. Brixianus).
Ratisponensis
MS from Regensburg/Ratispona; MSS from St. Emmeram are now at Munich (cf. Monacensis).
Ravenna, Ravennas
/ Classensis [rx].
Reginensis
MS from the property of Queen Christina of Sweden (1626-1689); the coll., founded by Isaac Voss c. 1650, contains MSS from the estates of Melchior Goldast (7 Goldastianus) and P. and A. Petau (7 Petavianus, 7 Floriacensis), as well as MSS from Germany (booty from the Thirty Years’ War). In 1654, Kristina abandoned her realm and moved to Rome. After her death, her MSS went via interim owners to the 7 Vaticana in Rome.
Cf. also 7 Ottobonianus. Regius
[x] MS from B. Royale (B. du Roi), now BN, Paris (cf. Blesensis, 7 Fonteblandensis, 7 Parisiensis
[r]). [2] MS from the Old RL im St. James’ Palace, incorporated into the British Museum in 1752, 7 Londin(i)ensis [1].
Rehdiger(i)anus
Reichenaviensis Riccardianus
Ridolfianus
Romanus
[3] MS from King’s College, Cambridge (England). [4] MS from King’s College, Aberdeen (Scotland). / Vratislaviensis [1]. / Augiensis. / Florentinus [9]. MS from the property of Cardinal Niccolo Ridolfi (1501-15 50), nephew of Pope Leo X; his coll. of MSS, in the acquisition of which he had been assisted by Janos 7 Laskaris, went after his death to various Ls., including the BN, Paris. MS from Rome: [x] B. Alessandrina, UL, founded 1667 by Pope Alexander VII. [2] B. 7 Angelica (cf. Angelic(an)us). [3] B. Apostolica 7 Vaticana (cf. Vaticanus). [4] B. Barberin(ian)a (cf. 7 Barberin(ian)us). [5] B. Casanatense (cf. 7 Casanatensis).
[6] B. 7 Chigiana (cf. 7 Chisianus). [7] BN Centrale Vittorio Emanuele, founded 1876, contains MSS from over 60 monasteries. [8] Collegio Romano, L. of the Jesuit College, part of the B. Vittorio Emanuele (see above [7]).
D. PAPYRI, OSTRAKA
Rossianus
Rostochiensis
Saibantinus
AND
506
MANUSCRIPTS
[9] B. 7 Corsiniana (cf. 7 Corsinianus). [10] Tabularium Capituli Basilicae Vaticanae 7 Basilicanus. [x1] B. Vallicelliana (cf. 7 Vallicellianus). MS from the L. of Francesco Rossi (d. 1854); in the Vienna Jesuit College in the 7 Vaticana.
1877-1920, since then
MS from Rostock. MS from the property of the Veronese collector Giulio Saibante (18th cent.).
Salamantinus (Salamanticensis, Salmanticensis)
MS from Salamanca/Salmantica (Spain).
Salmasianus
MS from the property of the French scholar and politician Claude de Saumaise (Claudius Salmasius, 1588-1653). (Zsamboky, Janos). Doctor and polymath (1531-1584); MSS from his coll. today in Vienna, NL.
Sambucus,
Johannes Sancroftianus
MS of William Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury (c. 1617-1693), coll. today at Emmanuel College, Cambridge (England).
Sangallensis
Sangermanensis
[x] MS from Abbey L. of 7 St. Gallen. [2] MS from StB, B. Vadiana or Oppidana, St. Gallen. In 1551, Joachim von Watt (Vadianus, 1484-1551), mayor and reformer of St. Gallen, bequeathed to the city his coll. of books, which included many MSS and incunabula. MS from the Benedictine Abbey of St-Germain-des-Prés/S. Germania pratis monasterium (Paris). The L. of this monastery, which was founded around the mid—6th cent., owned valuable MSS,
including Virgil fragments in Tironian notes; in 1636, some 400 MSS arrived from Corbie (7 Corbeiensis [1]), and in 1732 the L. of the Chancellor of France, Pierre Séguier (cf. 7 Coislinianus). The monastery was dissolved in the French Revolution, and the L. suffered Sannazarianus
Savilianus
Scaligeranus Schedelianus
plunder and fire. The remaining inventories are today in the BN, Paris. MS from the property of the poet Jacopo Sannazaro (1458-1530); his coll., including the MS A of Ovid’s Halieutica, is now in Vienna (NL). MS from the property of the philologist and mathematician Sir Henry Savile (1549-1622), today in Oxford, 7 Bodleiana. MS of the philologist Joseph Justus Scaliger (1540-1609) in Leiden. MS from the property of Hartmann Schedel (1440-1514), doctor and polymath of Nuremberg, author of a world chronicle. In 15 52, a descendant, Melchior Schedel, sold the coll. to Hans
Schlettstadtensis Scorialensis Seitenstettensis
Seldenianus Selestadiensis Senensis
Jakob Fugger; the L. thus came to the 7 Bayerische SB, Munich; cf. 7 Fuggerianus [2]. 7 Selestadiensis. / Escorialensis. MS from the Abbey L. of the monastery of Seitenstetten (Lower Austria), founded in 1112; the old monastery L. was greatly enriched in the 15th and 18th cents. MS named after the jurist John Selden (c. 1585-1654); cf. 7 Bodleianus. MS from Schlettstadt/Seléstat (Alsace). Found there, among other things, the completely preserved L. of Beatus Rhenanus (1485-1547). MS from Siena/Sena Iulia (Italy): {r] B. Comunale, founded 1759.
[2] R. Archivio di Stato di Siena, founded 1858. [3] B. del Seminario Archivescovile. Sessorianus
MS from the Cistercian college in the church of $. Croce in Gerusalemme, Rome (also Basilica
Sessoriana after the Sessorium, the nearby palace of Constantine); today in Rome, NL. Sfortianus Siena
Sinaiticus
MS from the B. of the Sforza family in Rome. The MSS from the property of Cardinal Guido Ascanio Sforza (1518-1564) went to the B. 7 Angelica, Rome. 7 Senensis. MS of the Old (part) and New Testament from St. Catherine’s monastery on Mount Sinai, today on Sinai, in London (British L.), Leipzig and St. Petersburg.
Sorbonianus (Sorbonnensis)
Parisiensis [5].
Speyer
/ Spirensis.
Spirensis St. Gallen
MS from Speyer/Spira Nemetum. / Sangallensis.
Stifts-B. (Abbey
Founded with the monastery by the Irish peripatetic monk St. Gallus, c. AD 612; first written
L.) St. Gallen
reference under Abbot Gozbert (816-836). In 1805, at the dissolution of the monastery, the L.
went to the Catholic part of the canton. In 1930, the MSS of the Episcopal L. were deposited at
DOF,
D. II]. GREEK AND
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
the Abbey L. Stabulensis
Stephanus, Henricus
Cf. 7 Sangallensis. MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Stavelot, Belgium. Henri If Estienne (1528-1598), son of Robert Estienne (1503-1559), French publisher and scholar. His coll. of MSS was later dispersed (now mostly in the British Museum, London, and Paris, BN).
Strozzianus
MS from the property of: [1] Piero Strozzi (1 500-1558), Marshal of France. [2] Carolus Strozzi (1587-1670), Senator of Florence. The MSS went to the Laurentiana (7 Medicea Laurenziana) and the Magliabecchiana, Florence (cf. 7 Florentinus).
Sueco-Vaticanus
MS from the coll. of Queen Christina of Sweden, now in the 7 Vaticana (cf. 7 Reginensis).
Susianus Taurinensis
MS of the Dutch Humanist Jacobus Susius (Jacques de Suys; MS from Turin/Augusta Taurinorum: [1] BN (also UL), founded 1720.
Tegernseensis
MS from the Benedictine Abbey of Tegernsee (Bavaria), now at Munich, / Bayerische SB.
Thosanus
MS from the Cistercian monastery of Ter Doest (Belgium). Most of the L. is now at Bruges. MS from the property of Jacques-Auguste de Thou (Thuanus), Procurator-General of the Parliament of Paris and director of the B. du Roi (1553-1617). The L. was divided in 1669; in 1680, the MSS were purchased by Jean-Baptiste Colbert (cf. 7 Colbertianus), finally going to the
1520-1592) in Leiden.
[2] B. Reale.
Thuaneus
B. du Roi, Paris. Til([)ianus
MS of Johannes Tilius (Du Tillet, d.
Toletanus
7 Augustea) and the 7 Vaticana. MS from Toledo (Spain), cathedral L. Many MSS went to the BN, Paris; the Fragmentum
1570), Bishop of Meaux; in Leiden, Wolfenbiittel (B.
Toletanum of Sallust is now at Berlin, SB. Tornesianus
Towneleianus
Jean de Tournes (1504-1564), printer of Lyon, owner of a Cicero MS of the Letters to Atticus, later lost. MS from the property of the English Towneley family. After the death of Charles T. Towneley (1737-1805), the coll. was dispersed; some MSS went via C. Burney (7 Burneianus) to the British Museum, London.
Traguriensis
MS from Trogir (Trau)/Tragurium (Croatia), esp. the Petronius MS discovered in 1650 by
Treverensis (Trevirensis)
MS from Trier/Augusta Trevirorum.
Trier
/ Treverensis (Trevirensis); cf. 7 Goerresianus. MS from the B. Trivulziana. The L. of the Trivulzi family of Milan was founded by the Governor of that city, Gian Giacomo Trivulzio (1440-1518). MS from Tubingen. / Crusianus, 7 Tubingensis; cf. 7 Camerarius.. MS from Zirich/Turicum.
Marinus Statius.
Trivulzianus
Tubingensis Tubingen Turicensis Turin (Torino)
Bobiensis, 7 Taurinensis.
Turnebus
Adrien Turnébe (1512-1565), professor in Toulouse, then Paris, where he was became of the Imprimérie Royale (1552-1556). The Codex Turnebi, a Plautus MS (T) of the Palatine recension
(cf. 7 Palatinus [2]), was originally in the Benedictine Abbey of Sainte Colombe in Sens-sur- Yonne. Uffenbachianus
Up(p)saliensis
MS from the property of the book collector Zacharias Conrad von Uffenbach (1683-1734), Frankfurt/Main. Cf. 7 Francofurtanus. MS from the UL Uppsala (Sweden), founded 1620. The L. received MSS from Germany (Wiirzburg, Mainz et al.) and inventories from Bohemia and Moravia as war booty from the Thirty Years’ War.
Urbinas
MS from Urbino/Urbinum (Italy). The MSS of the Duke of Urbino, Federigo da Montefeltro
Ursin(ian)us
(1422-1482), were given to the city of Urbino in 1631, before being incorporated into the / Vaticana in 1658. MS from the property of Fulvio Orsini (Fulvius Ursinus), numismatist and antiquarian
Valentianensis
MS from Valenciennes/Valentiana (France).
Valesianus
MS from the property of the French scholar Henri de Valois (Henricus Valesius, 1603-1676),
(1529-1600); from 1600 in the 7 Vaticana.
now in the L. at Orléans (cf. 7 Aurelianensis), or that of his brother, Adrien de Valois (1607-1692).
D. PAPYRI,
OSTRAKA
Vallensis Vallicellianus B. Vaticana (Rome)
AND
MANUSCRIPTS
508
MS from the property of the Italian Humanist Lorenzo Valla (1417-1467), now in Paris (BN), in the 7 Vaticana and in Modena. MS from the L. of the Chapel of S$. Maria in Vallicella, Rome, founded 1581 by the Portuguese scholar Achilles Statius. Founded by Tommaso Parentucelli (1397-1455, as Pope Nicholas V 1447-1455). The coll. of his predecessors had been lost in the relocation of the Popes to Avignon. With an inventory of 1,209 codices, the L. was at the time of Pope Nicholas’ death the largest in existence. Sixtus IV (1471-1484) completed the work of Nicholas V. Further important enlargements took place under the Medici Popes Leo X (1513-1521) and Clement VII (1523-1534). The oldest MSS colls. to come to the Vatican are the 7 Borghesiani, 7 Capponiani, 7 Ottoboniani, / Palatini [2], the L. of Pope Pius II (Piccolomini), 7 Reginenses (acquired from the estate of the abdicated Queen Christina of Sweden in the reign of Alexander VIII, 1689-1691; cf. 7 Alexandrini) and
7 Urbinates. More recent acquisitions include the 7 Barberini and 7 Columnenses. Cf. 7 Alexandrinus [1], 7 Augusteus [1], 7 Barberin(ian)us, 7 Basilianus, 7 Bembinus [1], / Borghesianus, Borgianus [1], 7 Brixianus, 7 Camerarius, 7 Capponianus, 7 Carbonensis,
/ Casanatensis, 7 Chigianus, 7 Chisianus, 7 Columnensis, 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis), 7 7 7 /
Dacicus, 7 Danielinus, 7 Decurtatus, 7 Eparchus, 7 Fuggerianus [1], 7 Heinsianus [2], Laskaris [2], 7 Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis), 7 Lollinianus,
Ottobonianus, 7 Palatinus [2], 7 Petavianus, 7 Reginensis, 7 Rossianus, Sueco-Vaticanus, 7 Til(l)ianus, 7 Urbinas, 7 Ursin(ian)us, 7 Vallensis, 7 Vaticanus.
Vaticanus
MS from the B. 7 Vaticana, Rome.
Venetus Venice (Venezia)
7 Marcianus [2]. 7 Bembinus [2], 7 Bessarion,
Vercellensis
MS from Vercelli/Vercellae (Italy).
Veronensis
MS from Verona; the tradition of library history there dates from the early Christian church L. to the present-day B. Capitolare. MS of Pietro Vettori (Petrus Victorius, 1499-1585), classical philologist of Florence. His L. went to the RL Munich.
Victorianus Vienna
7 Mantuanus, 7 Marcianus [2], Nanianus; cf. Eparchus.
/ Bobiensis, 7 Cryptensis (Cryptoferratensis), 7 Fuggerianus [3], 7 Laureacensis (Laureshamensis, Laurishamensis), 7 Moneus, 7 Palatino-Vindobonensis 7 Sannazarianus, 7 Vindobonensis; cf. Caesareus, cf. 7 Rossianus, cf. 7 Sambucus.
Vindobonensis
Vossianus
MS from Vienna/Vindobona: [1] The B. Caesarea or Palatina, Kaiserliche und K6nigliche Hofbibliothek, now the Austrian NL, founded c. 1526 by King (Emperor) Ferdinand I, contains MSS from the property of Matthias Corvinus (7 Corvinianus), Raymund Fugger (7 Fuggerianus [3]) and Peter Lambeck and many Greek MSS from Naples. [2] B. des Schottenstiftes (founded 1o6r at the same time as the abbey). [3] Fideikommif-B. (now in the Austrian NL). [4] UB, founded 1775 by Empress Maria Theresa, opened in 1777 (the old UB, founded 1384, was absorbed into the then Hofbibliothek, the present NL, in 1756). The core of the new UB was formed of the five Ls. of the dissolved Lower Austrian Jesuit monasteries; enlargement by influxes from other monastery Ls. under Joseph II and at secularization in the early r9th cent. MS from the property of Isaac Vof§ (Vossius, 1618-1689), confidant of Queen Christina of Sweden. His coll. of 762 MSS was sold to the UL Leiden.
Vratislaviensis (Wratislaviensis)
MS from Breslau/Wroctaw/Vratislavia.
Vulcan(ian)us
MS from the coll. of the Privy Secretary, librarian and Graecist Bonaventura Vulcanius (Bonaventura de Smet, 1538-1614), now at Leiden.
Wallersteinensis
MS from the L. of the Princes of Oettingen-Wallerstein in Schlof$ Harburg an der Donau.
Wallraffianus
MS from the L. of the Wallraf-Richartz Museum, Cologne, founded 1824. Now in the Cologne StB.
Werdensis
MS from [r] Donauwéorth, Bavaria. [2] the Benedictine Abbey of Werden (now Essen-Werden).
Wirzeburgensis
MS from Wiirzburg; cf. 7 Herbipolitanus. / Arcerianus, 7 Augustanus [2], 7 Brunsvicensis, Corveiensis,
Wolfenbittel
7 Til(ljianus. Wolfenbuttelensis
Cf. B. 7 Augustea. / Guelferbytanus.
Wormaciensis
MS from Worms/Wormatia.
7 Gudianus, 7 Guelferbytanus,
509
D. II]. GREEK AND
Wratislaviensis Wroclaw (Breslau, Bratislava) Wurzburg
/ Vratislaviensis. / Francofurtanus (Francfurtensis) [2], 7 Vratislaviensis (Wratislaviensis).
York Zulichemius Zurich
/ Eboracensis [1]. / Hugenianus. Turicensis.
/ Herbipolitanus (Wirceburgensis),
LiBRARY HisTory: F. Mrikau, G. Levu (ed.), Handbuch der Bibliothekswissenschaft, Vol. [II, r-2: Geschichte der Bibliotheken,
“1955-1957. CODICOLOGY AND PALAEOGRAPHY:
H. Forster, Abrifs der lateinischen Palaographie, *1963-K. LOFFLER, W. MILpE, Einfiihrung in die Handschriftenkunde, 1997: L. D. REYNoLDs, N.G. WILSON, Scribes and Scholars, 1968 (31991) D. HARLFINGER (ed.), Griechische Kodikologie und Textiiberlieferung,
1980: B. BiscHoFF, Palaographie des romischen Altertums und des abendlandischen Mittelalters, *1986. NOMENCLATURE AND REPOSITORIES OF MSS: A. GUDEMAN, Grundrif$ der Geschichte der Klassischen
Philologie, *1909, 156-167- F.W. Hatt, A Companion to Classical Texts, 1913, 291-357 (Nomenclature of Mss.)+ A. Turyn, Dated Greek Manuscripts of the
LATIN MANUSCRIPTS
7 Wirzeburgensis; cf. Eboracensis, cf. 7 Up(p)saliensis.
Thirteenth and Fourteenth Centuries in the Libraries of Italy, 1972+ P.O. KRISTELLER, Latin Manuscript Books before 1600, 1965 (41993): Idem, Iter Italicum, 6 vols., 1965-1997: Idem, Iter Italicum on CD-ROM, 1995+ Handbuch der Handschriftenbestande in der Bundesrepublik Deutschland (ed.: Deutsches Bibliotheksinstitut),1992 (hitherto Vol. 1)- M. RICHARD, Répertoire des bibliothéques et des catalogues de manuscrits grecs, 3rd impression 1995.
NAMES AND PLACES: J.G. Tu. Grasse, F. BENEDICT, Orbis Latinus, *1909. INDIVIDUAL SCHOLARS: C. G. JocHER, Allgemeines Gelehrten-Lexicon, Leipzig 1750 (repr. Hildesheim 1961, with numerous additional vols.)- W. POKEL, Philologisches Schriftsteller-Lexikon, 1882 (still helpful alongside more recent biographical literature and literature of history of scholarship).
ss
DATA
. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
AND
COMPUTATION
COMPUTATION
510
OF TIME
OF TIME
. Il. ROMAN AND BYZANTINE RULERS . I. CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE OF CLASSICAL ARCHAEOLOGY . I. EcLipses
. IV. CALENDARS
eoMcscoicsMcslics) . V. SYSTEMS OF TIME COMPUTATION
E. I. ROMAN AND BYZANTINE RULERS
(Meret Strothmann) E. I. r. ROMAN RULERS
FROM AUGUSTUS (30/27 BC) TO ROMULUS AUGUSTULUS (AD 476) AND Nepos (AD 480) lulius Caesar, there now (until 360) developed a term
1. On the history of the Roman emperor concept The beginnings of the Roman Imperial period lie in the Republican period. A list of ‘Roman Emperors’ might thus equally begin with C. Iulius Caesar, but for the fact that the Republican constitutional structures continued to be valid during his rule. It was — Augustus who, slowly and by the manipulation of these same Republican structures, created a monarchical constitution for the Roman Empire, in which — auctoritas (‘initiatory power’, ‘dignity’ of the office) made the ‘Caesar’ (— Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor)). Only with time
did a defined Imperial office develop out of this through the integration of various constitutional elements (esp. the tribunicia potestas). The Empire, in its instituticnal form, was the result of a process. Hence, the ‘soft’ constitutional concepts introduced by Augustus, at first describing no fixed and concrete — potestas, became defined official terms of rulership (cf. — princeps). It was, above all, urban Romans and the patrician elite who dictated the structure of rulership through the — Julio-Claudian dynasty (cf. table a.). Italians were increasingly involved in political events during the — Flavian dynasty (AD 69-96; cf. table c.). The geo-
graphical framework expanded still further during the period of the — Adoptive emperors (AD 98-180; cf. table d.), the era during which the Roman Empire reached it’s greatest geographical extent and enjoyed its longest period of peace: the Emperor (optimus — princeps) might now come from the western provinces. Conversely, through the succeeding —> Severan dynasty (AD 193-235; cf. tables e. and h.), in which, contrary to Roman tradition at other times, power was handed down via the women of the Imperial house, it
was mainly conflicts of foreign policy that determined the actions of those in power. This became significant for the following period of the — Soldier emperors (AD 235-284; cf. table f.), when the military assumed political leadership. However, the principle of the dynasty (cf. — dynasteia) was never abandoned. Rulers constantly sought to legitimize themselves not only by their performance, but also by their ancestry. To secure the succession in perpetuity, Diocletian introduced the Tetrarchy (— tetrarches, tetrarchia I; cf. table j.). Yet, this attempt failed after a few years, having not been implemented consistently. From the personal name ‘Caesar’, which stood for succession to the pater (‘father of the Roman people’)
for one of two junior sub-emperors (C), while the honorific title Augustus, which denoted the supreme auctoritas of the ruler, developed into the official title for one of two senior emperors (A). This illustrates that both the office of ruler itself, as well as its terminology, underwent change in the Roman Imperial period. During the dynasty of Constantine (Constantinus [x]) (AD 312-363; cf. table j.), the pressure for legitimacy, exacerbated by internal and external tensions, was leading to the further distancing, and hence alienation, of the state apparatus and its personalities from the Roman people. The development towards an abstracted form of statehood came to ultimate fruition in the Byzantine Empire. The division of the Roman Empire into the Western and Eastern Roman Empires began with Valentinian (Valentinianus [1]) and Valens [2] (cf. table k.). The numbering of rulers here is clarified by the addition of W. and E. respectively. Theodosius I (E. 153), also ruler of the Western Roman Empire from AD 388-395, is not given a second number for that period. 2. Sources We are quite comprehensively informed about the lives of the Roman Imperial families thanks to a large number of inscriptions and citations in the biographical and historiographic literature, and to numismatic
and archaeological material. The first two centuries AD are eloquently attested to, especially by the historians Tacitus and Cassius [III 1] Dio, and the biographers Suetonius [2] and Plutarch (Plutarchus [2]); while Herodian (Herodianus [2]) and the Scriptores Histo-
riae Augustae give detailed accounts of Reliable sources for the 4th cent. include with his Latin editions made by Jerome [8]), Ammianus Marcellinus, Eutropius lius Victor [7].
the 3rd cent. Eusebius [7], (Hieronymus [1] and Aure-
Inconsistencies or contradictions in the sources and their transmission pose a number of issues and pro-
blems of dating. For instance, the authority of the tribunicia potestas, annually renewed, is of considerable importance to the reckoning of the regnal years of individual rulers (cf. table E.V.2: Systems of time compu-
tation; cf. > princeps). After this authority was granted by the consilium plebis, it came to be iterated at various points in time. It might begin at the turn ofthe year on 1 January (as in the case of Philippus Arabs) or on ro December, the regular date of accession of the people’s tribunes (usual since the reign of Nerva). For the rulers of the Julio-Claudian and Flavian dynasties, this dies
511
E. I. ROMAN
imperii also marked the beginning of the official term of their tribunician authority. 3. On the tables: content and legend In distinguishing between usurpers and rival emperors, the definition of usurpation proposed by E. Faia is useful [x]: it does not denote the illegitimate appropriation of rulership, but a challenge to the incumbent ruler by a rival, i.e. it is to be understood less as a category of constitutional law than one of politology, as a possible stimulus to regime change in the context of monarchy. Seen in this light, those figures of the Roman Imperial period who are often referred to as ‘rival emperors’ may all be designated ‘usurpers’, and are categorized as such in the following list (names in italics). The term ‘rival emperor’ (R) is only now used for regents who confronted a usurper. The list (not only table g.) shows the great number of usurpers. Their proliferation at particular periods of Roman history always marks a crisis of the relevant rulers or their dynasty. In the third column, the name generally used to refer to the ruler is highlighted. The ‘Genealogy’ column gives the ruler’s father and mother and siblings (where known) who took an active
part in political life or were of significance to the dynastic succession. Likewise, the column ‘Wives (children)’ only gives those relatives of the ruler who played a definite part in the succession or were of great political influence (cf. — Women rulers; cf. Imperial family, women of the). Hence, this column, too, makes no claim to completeness. Where usurpation is indicated in Table j., the relevant
provinces
of the Roman
Empire
are
named.
‘Splinter Empire’ refers to the separate government set up in that place. The geographical definition of the territories of the Eastern and Western Roman Empires fluctuated constantly from Valentinian I to Valentinian
18
30/27 BC-AD
14
AND
BYZANTINE
RULERS
Ill, and from Valens to Theodosius. From AD 395 (accession of the sons of Theodosius: Honorius in the west, Arcadius in the east), the final frontier between the Western and Eastern Roman Empires ran alongside Sirmium on the bend of the Danube, and reached the Adriatic coast north of Dyrrachium. 1 E. Fraic, Fur eine Konzeptualisierung der Usurpation in der Spatantike, in: F. PascHoup, J. Szrpar (ed.), Usurpationen in der Spatantike, 1997, 15-34, 17.
— Adoptive emperors; Augustus [2]; British Usurpation; Caesar; Emperors, child; Flavian dynasty; Imperium Galliarum (addenda vol. 15); Julio-Claudian dynasty; Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor); Palmyra I; Periods, division into; Princeps II; Principate; Roma I; Rulers IV;
Rulership; Severan dynasty; Soldier emperors; Tetrarches/Tetrarchia; Theodosius [2] I; Year of four emperors Abbreviations: (€ A
Caesar Augustus
R WwW Italics: Dem.
Rival emperor Wife Usurper A. DEMANDT, Die Spatantike. Romische Geschichte von Diocletian bis Justinian; 284-565 n. Chr. (HdbA
KIEN.
D. KrenastT, Romische Kaisertabelle.
3,6), 1989.
ELB.
Grundziige einer romischen Kaiserchronologie, *1996. St. ELBERN, Usurpationen im Spatromischen Reich, 1984.
From Constantine I (132.) cf. also the list of Byzantine rulers
Name
Genealogy
Octavianus/ Augustus*
son of C. Octavius [I 2] and Atia [1]
Wives (children)
— Clodia; Scribonia [1] (daughter: lulia [6]); Livia [2]
14-37
32
37-41
Tiberius [1]
C. Caesar Germanicus
(Caligula*)
son of Ti. Claudius [I 19] Nero and Livia [2]; brother: Claudius [II 24]
Vipsania Agrippina [1]
Drusus maior
Julia [6]
son of Germanicus [2] and Vipsania Agrippina [2] maior
lunia [5] Claudilla; Cornelia [II 7] Orestilla; Lollia [1] Paulina; Milonia Caesonia
(son: Drusus [II 1] minor);
E. DATA
4.
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
Gane
OF TIME
Reign
Name
Genealogy
Wives (children)
41-54
Ti. Claudius [III 1] Drusus
son of Claudius [II 24]
Plautia [x] Urgulanilla; Aelia [3] Paetina (daughter: Antonia [5]); Valeria Messalina [2]
Drusus maior and Antonia
[4] minor
(son: Britannicus*;
daughter: Octavia [3]);
Julia Agrippina [3] 5
42
Scribonianus
54-68
L. Domitius Ahenobarbus
son ofIulia Agrippina [3] and
Octavia [3];
Cn. Domitius [II 1]
(Nero*)
Ahenobarbus
Poppaea [2] Sabina (daughter Claudia
[II 2]); Statilia Messalina [1] 7
68
8
68
C. Iulius [IT 150] Vindex
L. Clodius [117] Macer
b. ‘Year of four emperors’ AD 68/69
9.
8.6.68-15.1.69
L. Livius Ocella Ser.
son of C. (?) Sulpicius [II 6]
Sulpicius Galba [2]
Galba and Mummia [1] Achaica
Aemilia Lepida (adoptive son: L. Calpurnius [II 24] Piso Frugi Licinianus)
Io.
68R
Tale
15.1.69-16.4.69
C. Nymphidius [2] Sabinus
M. Salvius Otho*
son of L. Salvius [II 7] Otho
Poppaea [2] Sabina
and Albia Terentina a2
2.2.69-20. 12.69
son of L. Vitellius [II 4] and Sextilia*
Petronia;
T. Flavius Vespasianus*
son of Flavius [II 39] Sabinus and Vespasia Polla*
Flavia [1] Domitilla
Titus [3] Flavius Vespasianus
son of 13. and Flavia [1] Domitilla maior
Arrecina* Tertulla
T. Flavius Domitianus
son of 13. and Flavia [r] Domitilla maior
Domitia [6] Longina (one son, two adoptive sons: Flavius [II 23] Domitianus, Flavius [II 48] Vespasianus)
A. Vitellius [II 2]
Galeria [2] Fundana
c. Flavian dynasty (AD 69-96)
13.
69-79
maior (daughter: Flavia
[2] Domitilla minor) 14.
79-81
(daughter (?): Flavia Julia);
Marcia [9] Furnilla D5
81-96
[r]
16.
89
L. Antonius [II 15] Saturninus
513
E. I. ROMAN
Reign
Name
AND
BYZANTINE
Genealogy
Wives (children)
(adoptiveson:18.)
Pompeia Plotina* (adoptiveson:19.)
RULERS
d. Adoptive emperors (AD 96-180) 7.
96-98
M. Cocceius Nerva [2]
18.
98 -117
M. Ulpius Traianus
son of M. Cocceius [5] Nerva and Sergia Plautilla; sister:Cocceia son of M. Ulpius [12]
[1]
Traianus and Marcia;
19.
117-138
P. Aelius P.F. Sergia Hadrianus*
20.
138-161
T. Aurelius Fulvus Boionius Antoninus {1, Pius]
161-169
L. Aelius Aurelius Commodus (L.
22.
161-180
sister: UlpiaMarciana* son of P. Aelius [II 13] Hadrianus Afer and Domitia [9] Paulina; sister:Domitia[1o0]Paulina son of T. Aurelius [II 15] FulvusandArria[3|Fadilla
Verus*)
son of L. Ceionius [3] Commodus and Avidia [1] Plautia
M. Annius Verus (after adoption 138: Marcus [2] Aelius Aurelius Verus)
son of M. Annius [II 16] Verus and Domitia [8] Lucilla; sister: Annia Cornificia Faustina(—> Domitia[8])
Vibia Sabina* (two adoptive sons: L. Ceionius [3] Commodus,20.) Annia Galeria Faustina [2] I (two adoptive sons: 21. and 22.; two daughters: Aurelia Fadilla, Annia Galeria Faustina[3 JI) betrothed: Annia Galeria Faustina [3] IJ; Annia Aurelia Galeria Lucilla* (son: Pompeianus; daughter: Aurelia) betrothed to Ceionia [1] Fabia; Annia Galeria Faustina [3] Il (sons: 24. anda twin brother; six daughters: Domitia Faustina [4], Annia
Aurelia Galeria Lucilla’, Annia Aurelia Galeria Faustina [x], Fadilla, Cornificia, Vibia Aurelia Sabina)
23%
175
Avidius [1] Cassius
2Ae
180-192
L. Aurelius Commodus*
son of 22. and Faustina [3] II.
Bruttia* Crispina
25.
192-193
P. Helvius Pertinax*
son of Helvius [II 5] Successus
Flavia [5] Titiana (son: P. Helvius [II 4]
193
M. Didius [II 6]
son of Q. Petronius Didius SeverusandAemiliaClara
Pertinax) 26.
Severus Iulianus
Manlia* Scantilla (daughter: Didia* Clara)
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
Reign
AND
COMPUTATION
514
OF TIME
Name
Genealogy
Wives (children)
L. Septimius [II 7]
son of P. Septimius Geta and
Paccia* Marciana;
Severus
FulviaPia
Iulia [12] Domna (sons:
e. Severan dynasty (AD 193-235) 27,
193-211
30. and 31.; sister of Iulia Domna: Iulia [17] Maesa, grandmother of 33. and 38. Daughters of Iulia [17] Maesa and C. Julius [I] 22] Avitus Alexianus: Iulia [22] Soaemias and Julia [9] Mamaea) 28.
193-194 193-197
Clodius [II 1] Albinus
30.
211-217
L. Septimius
son of 27. and Iulia [12]
Bassianus (Caracalla*
Domna
Pescennius* Niger
209-211
) P. Septimius Geta [2]
217-218
M. Opellius
Publia Fulvia [3] Plautilla
son of 27. and Iulia [12] Domna
Nonia Celsa (son: Opellius [1]
Macrinus*
Diadumenianus)
3)5}
21 — 222,
Varius Avitus
(Elagabalus [2])
son of S. Varius [II 6] Marcellus and Julia [22] Soaemias
Iulia [11] Cornelia Paula;
Iulia Aquilia Severa (cf. Elagabalus [2]); Annia Faustina
(adoptiveson:3 8.) 34.
Seleucus
35-
Uranius
(KIEN. 176)
(KIEN. 176) 36.
219
Gellius Maximus
37-
219
...S Verus
38.
222-235
Bassianus Alexianus
son of Gessius Marcianus
Sallustia* Orbiana;
(Severus [2] Alexander)
andlulia{9]Mamaea
Memmia
(KIEN. 176)
(KIEN. 176)
39.
225-227
L. Seius Sallustius
[II 5] 40.
Taurinus
(KIEN. 182)
(?)
(daughter: Sallustia* Orbiana)
oS)
E. I. ROMAN
Reign
Name
Genealogy
AND
BYZANTINE
RULERS
Wives (children)
f. Soldier emperors (AD 235-284) Al.
235-238
Maximinus [2] Thrax
2:35 236
Magnus [2]
238
Gordianus [1] I
Caecilia Paulina (son: C. Tulius [II 145] Verus Maximus)
(Titus) Quartinus*
45.
238
Gordianus [2] II
46.
238
Pupienus*
son of Maecius [II 3]
Marullus (?) and Ulpia Gordiana son of 44. and Fabia [6] Orestilla son of Clodius Maximus and Prima
Fabia [6] Orestilla (son: 45.; daughter: Maecia Faustina)
unmarried,s.p. (sons: T. Clodius
Pupienus Pulcher Maximus, M. Pupienus
Africanus; daughter: Pupiena Sextia Paulina Cethegilla) 47-
238
48.
238-244
Balbinus [1] Gordianus [3] III
244-249
Sabinianus [1] Carthago/Africa Philippus [2] Arabs
244-247C 247-249 A
M. ITulius [II 107] Severus Philippus
248
Ti. Claudius [II 46]
240
son of Caelius [II 1] Calvinus son of Iulius Balbus and MaeciaFaustina
Furia* Sabinia Tranquillina(s.p.)
sonoflulius[II 88]Marinus
Marcia [10] Otacilia Severa(son:5
52
1.)
son of 50. and Marcia [10] Otacilia Severa
Marinus Pacatianus Pannonia/Moesia
53-
249
54
lotapianus* Syria/Cilicia/ Cappadocia
Sponsianus Dacia (KIEN. 203)
Silbannacus
55°
248/49
56.
249-251
C. Messius Quintus Traianus Decius [II r]
57:
250
Priscus [1]
58.
raya
Tul. Valens Licinianus [3] Rome
59-
250-251 C ST
Q. Herennius [II 3]
son of 56. and Herennia
Etruscus Messius Decius
Etruscilla
C. Valens Hostilianus*
son of 56. and Herennia Etruscilla
Germania sup. (KIEN. 202)
60.
Herennia Etruscilla (sons:59. and 60.)
Philippopolis
250-251 C 251A
E. DATA
61.
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
OF TIME
Reign
Name
Genealogy
Wives (children)
251-253
Trebonianus* Gallus
son of C. Vibius
Afinia Gemina Baebiana
Veldumnianus
(son: 62.; adoptive son:
60.; daughter: Vibia Galla)
62.
PCH i 251-253 A
Volusianus*
son of 61. and Afinia Gemina Baebiana
63.
253-254
Uranius” Antoninus Emesa
64.
so
M. Aemilius Aemilianus [1]
65.
253-260
P. Licinius Valerianus
Egnatia [1] Mariniana
[2]
(sons: 66., P. Licinius
Cornelia Supera
Valerianus) 66.
253.C 253-268 A
P. Licinius Egnatius Gallienus*
son of 65. and Egnatia [1]
67.
256-258C
P. Licinius Cornelius Egnatius Valerianus [3] minor
son of 66. and Cornelia Salonina
68.
69.
258-260 C
P. Licinius [II 6]
son of 66. and Cornelia
260A
Cornelius Saloninus Valerianus
Salonina
268-270
Claudius [III 3]
brother: 70.
Cornelia Salonina (sons: 67., 68., Marinianus [3])
Gothicus 70.
270
Quintillus*
A
270-275
L. Domitius Aurelianus [3]
brother: 69.
Rhine
Ulpia [2] Severina
Danube
Euphrates
g. Usurpers, AD 258-274 Fide
between 258
Ingenuus |r|
Pannonia/
and 260
Moesia
Ghee
260-269
Postumus [3] Imperium
Whe
260
Regalianus* W: Sulpicia [5] Dryantilla
ye 76.
260-261 260-261
Macrianus [2] Macrianus son of 75., brother of 77. (KEN. 225)
Syria/East Syria/East
TGs
260-261
Ouietus*
Syria/East
Galliarum Pannonia/ Moesia
son of 75., brother of 76. 78.
between 260
=Saturninus [3]
79.
and 268 between 260 and 268
Trebellianus (KIEN. 229)
Isauria
Other
S17
E. I. ROMAN
Rhine
Danube
Euphrates
AND
BYZANTINE
Other
80.
between 260 and 268
—Celsus [4]
Africa
81.
261
Ballista*
82.
261
Valens [1]
Greece
83.
261
Piso (cf. Valens
Macedonia
84.
261-262
Mussius* Aemilianus
Alexandria
85.
262
Memor*
Egypt
86.
261-267
Septimius
Palmyrene
Odaenathus [2] of Palmyra
Empire
Syria/East
[1])
2nd W:
Zenobia [2] (sons: Herennianus*,
87.) 87.
267-271
Vaballathus*
Palmyrene
(under guardianship of Zenobia
Empire
[2]) 88.
89.
between 268
Censorinus
and 270
[1]
268
Aureolus* (first
Persia, Sarmatia
Milan
proclaimed A 260?)
90.
269
Laelianus* (R of
gt.
269
Marius [It]
Imperium Galliarum
Postumus)
Imperium
Galliarum 92.
269-271
Victorinus [2] Imperium
93.
271
Domitianus
Galliarum Ilyricum (?)
[2] 94.
27
Septimius (KIEN. 237)
Dalmatia
95.
271
Felicissimus*
96.
271-274
Esuvius [1]
Imperium
Tetricus son: 100,
Galliarum
97.
Rome
271-272
Urbanus
272,
Vaballathus* (cf. 87.)
Palmyrene Empire
Ngfo)
Maeonius* (R of Vaballathus)
Palmyrene Empire
(KIEN. 237)
98.
RULERS
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
OF TIME
Rhine 99.
272
Danube
Antiochus brother of
Euphrates
Other
Palmyrene Empire
87. (KIEN. 242)
100.
273-274
Esuvius [2]
Imperium
Tetricus
Galliarum
minor (son of 96.)
1Ol.
2.73
Faustinus [3] (Rof96.)
Loon
273-274
Firmus [2]
Reign
Imperium Galliarum
Alexandria
Name
Genealogy
Wives (children)
h. Severan dynasty (restored)
103.
275-276
M. Claudius Tacitus
104.
276
Annius [II 4] Florianus
105.
276-282
M. Aurelius Probus
106.
280
Bonosus [1] Cologne
107.
280-281
Proculus [3]
108.
280-281
Saturninus [4] Antioch
109.
282-283
Tio.
282-283 C 283-284A
ITti.
282-283 C 283-285 A
M. Aurelius M. Aurelius Numerianus M. Aurelius
Ii2.
284
[2] half-brother of 103.
[x] Hunila
Cologne
Carus [3]
(sons:110.andr1rtr.)
Numerius [2]
son of 109.
Carinus*
sonofiog.
Magnia* Urbica (son:
Nigrinianus)
(Sabinus) Iulianus [7] Pannonia/northern
Italy
519
E. I. ROMAN AND BYZANTINE RULERS
j. Tetrarchy and Constantinian dynasty (284-363)
rst Tetrarchy (293-305) 2nd Tetrarchy (305-306) 3rd Tetrarchy (306-308) 4th Tetrarchy (308-311)
ocr
II4.
Reign
Name
Wives (children)
284 — 305
Diocletianus*
Prisca [2]
284-286 sole ruler
(d. 313)
(daughter: Galeria Valeria [6]); adoptive son: Gage
286-310
Maximianus [1]
Eutropia [1]
Reign in West
Reign in East 286-305 A
285 C (daughter of 286-310 A Eutropia from rst marriage:
Theodora [1]; children together: son: 126.,
daughter: Fausta*, adoptive son: 122.)
115.
285-286
Amandus
Gaul
(KIEN. 276) 116.
286-293
Carausius*
British Usurpation
1
293-297
Allectus*
British Usurpation
118.
297
L. Domitius [II 14] Domitianus
119.
297
Aurelius Achilleus [2]
120.
298
Tulianus
TZ iis
303
Eugenius (KIEN. 271)
122.
305-306
Constantius [1] I
Egypt
Egypt Africa
(DEM. 53)
Syria
Partner: Helena [2] (son: 132.)5 W: Theodora [1]
293-305 C 305-306A
(sons: Flavius
Dalmatius [1], Fl. Julius Constantius [4], Fl. Hannibalianus [2]; daughters: Flavia Iulia Constantia [1], Anastasia |r], Eutropia [2])
Togs
305-311
Galerius [5
first W. (daughter: Valeria Maximilla [r1]); Galeria Valeria [6] (adoptive son: 124.)
293-305 C 305-311 A
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
520
OF TIME
Reign
Name
Wives (children)
Reign in West
124.
310-313
Maximinus [1] Daia
(son: Maximus)
Teat5
306-307
Valerius [II 31] Severus
(son: Severianus)
305-306 C 306-307 A
126.
306-312
Maxentius* (son of 114. and
Valeria Maximilla [x]
A
Eutropia [1]; not
(son: Valerius
Reign in East 305-310 C 310-313 A
recognized by the other Romulus [4])
co-rulers of the 3rd Tetrarchy) 127.
308 -310
L. Domitius [II4] Alexander
eA,
308-324
Licinius [II 4] (d. 325)
129.
317 -324
Licinius [II 5] minor
A (Africa and Sardinia) Constantia [1] (son: 129.)
308-311 A
311-313 A (Illyria) 313-324A
C
(d. 326; son of 128. and Constantia [1]) 130.
between 314 and Valens 316 (KIEN. 297)
A (appointed by
Tig}
324
A
Licinius; Dacia?)
Martinianus*
(d. 325)
(appointed by Licinius)
Tu,
311 — 337 324-337 sole A.
Constantinus [1] I
Minervina
306-310 C
(sonof122.and Helena
(son: 133.);
311-324 A
{2])
Fausta* (sons: TZ Acs LS Seg
3 Oss
daughters: Constantina*, Helena [3]) 1236
317-326
Crispus [1]
Helena
(@
(son of 132. and Minervina)
134.
337-340
Constantinus [2] II
317-337 C
(son of 132. and
337-340A
Fausta*)
135.
337-350
Constans [1]I (son of 132. and
136.
337-361 350-361 sole A.
Constantius [2] Il (son of 132. and Fausta*)
betrothed to Olympias [3]
Fausta*)
340-350A 337-340A
333-337 C 337-340 A (Illyria)
(Italy, Africa)
daughter of FI. lulius Constantius [4] (son of 122.); Eusebia [1];
324-337C 337-350A
Faustina [4] (daughter: Constantia [3])
T3470 138.
334 335-337
Calocaerus *
Cyprus
Dalmatius [2] (murdered 337; son of
C
Fl. Dalmatius [1];
grandson of 122.; brother of Hannibalianus [3])
521
TIO):
E. I. ROMAN
Reign
Name
350
Nepotianus [1] (son of FI. Nepotianus
Wives (children)
Reign in West
AND
BYZANTINE
RULERS
Reign in East
A (four weeks)
and Eutropia [2], daughter of 122.) 140
350
Vetranio* (d. 356)
141
350-353
Magnus Magnentius*
142
3 50-353
Magnus Decentius [x] (relative of 141.)
143.
351
Patricius (ELB. 71 with note 237)
144.
351-354
Constantius [5] Gallus (executed 354; son of Fl. Julius Constantius [4] and Galla [1]; grandson of 122.)
145.
355
Silvanus [3]
146.
359
Barbatio
A lustina* (?)
A
Cc Palaestina
Constantina*
¢
A (four weeks) Illyria (executed at Sirmium for high treason at the court of Constantius [2] ING Teiaiss, aus32%))
LA7
355-360 C
Flavius Claudius
Helena [3]
360A 361-363 sole A.
Julianus [11] ‘Apostata’
(daughter of 132.)
(son of FI. Iulius
Constantius [4], son of 122, and Basilina)
148.
363-364 sole A.
Flavius lovianus* (son of Varronianus)
Charito (sons: — Varronianus, name of second son unknown)
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
522
OF TIME
k. Western and Eastern Empires Eastern Empire (Byzantine Empire)*
Western Empire’ Reign
Name
364-375
Fl. Valentinianus [1] I (son of Gratianus [1] maior; brother of
E.149.
Reign
Name
364-378
Valens [2] (son of Gratianus [1] maior; brother of W.149.) W: Albia Domnica (son: Valentinianus [2]
E.149) W: Marina [1] Severa (son: W.152.); W: lustina* (son:
Galates;
W.153.; daughters: usta, Grata, Galla
daughters:
Carosa, Anastasia [2])
[2]) W.150.
369
Valentinus [3]
3727375
Firmus [3] Mauretania, Africa
Britain
W.1I5I.
leettop
365 —366
Procopius [1] (relative of 147.)
Biasi
366
Marcellus [4] (relative of E.150.) Calchedon
|aaely
Cx 9TE
Theodorus [22] (executed at the court of E.149. for high treason)
leant
LID BD
Theodosius [2] I (son of Flavius Theodosius [1] and Thermantia [r]) W: Aelia Flavia
Constantinople
W.152.
367-383
Gratianus [2]
(son of W.149. and Marina [1] Severa) W: Constantia [3]
(daughter of 136.); W: Laeta [1]
Flacilla* (sons: E.154. ,
WiEs7s daughter: Pulcheria [1]); W: Galla [2] (sons: Gratianus,
daughter: Placidia) WWeaenas
SHS) wmse)
Valentinianus [3] II (son of 149. and
W.154.
383-388
Magnus Maximus |7] Britain (son: W.155.)
W.155.
384-388
Flavius Victor (son of W.154.)
388-395
Theodosius [2] I
392-394
Flavius Eugenius [1]
Ioannes;
Galla
Tustina*)
W.156.
' Cf. also the stemma of the Valentinianic-Theodosian dynasty under — Theodosius [2] I. ; cf. + Emperors, child > Cf. also the list of Byzantine rulers below (E.II.2.).
[3]
543
W.157.
E. I. ROMAN
Name
395-423
Honorius [3] (cf. Os 32) (son of E.153. and Flacilla*) W: Maria [I 3]; W: Thermantia [3] (both daughters of Stilicho*)
Arcadius*
Theodosius [3] II (son of E.154.) W: Aelia Eudocia [1] (son: Arcadius; daughters: Licinia Eudoxia [2], Flacilla)
Marcus [3] Britain
W.159.
407
Gratianus Britain (DEM. 143)
W.160.
407-411
Constantinus [3] III (son: W.161.)
408 C 409-410 A 409-411 418-422
Constans [4] (son of W.160.) Maximus [11]
(named emperor in 409 by Gerontius [3],
fled to Spain 411, proclaimed emperor there in 418, executed
422) W.163.
409 —410 414-415
Attalus [11]
(named emperor in 409 by the senate, deposed 410, named emperor in 414 in
Africa, captured 415) W.164.
411-413
Tovinus [2] (brother of W.165.)
Gaul W.165.
411-413 (?)
Sebastianus (brother of W.164.) Gaui (DEM. 148) Constantius [6] III (co-emperor, not
W.166.
recognized in the east) W: Galla [3] Placidia (son: W.168.; daughter: Iusta Grata Honoria)
W.167.
RULERS
Name
406-407
W.162.
BYZANTINE
Reign
W.158.
W.161.
AND
423-425
Iohannes [7] Primicerius
(not recognized in the east)
(son of E.153.) W: Aelia [4] Eudoxia (son: E.155.; daughters: Marina [2], Pulcheria [2], Flacilla, Arcadia)
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
OF TIME
Reign
Name
W.168.
425 -455
Valentinianus [4] II] (son of W.166. and Galla [3]) W: Licinia Eudoxia [2] (daughters: Eudocia [2], Placidia
W.169.
428
Pirrus Italy (ELB. 27 with note
W.170.
455
Fl. Petronius Maximus [8] W: Licinia Eudoxia
W.171.
455-456
Fl. Eparchius Avitus [1]
524
Reign
Name
450-457
Marcianus [6] W: Pulcheria
[2])
288)
[2] E.156.
(not recognized in the
[2]
(daughter of E.154.)
east)
W.172.
457-461
Tulius Maiorianus [1]
E.157.
457-474
(not recognized in the east)
Leo [4] I
W: Verina* (daughters:
Ariadne,
Leontia)
W.173.
461-465
Libius Severus [5] (not recognized in the
W.174.
467-472
Anthemius [2] (son of Procopius) W: Aelia Marcia Euphemia (sons: Anthemiolus, FI. Marcianus, Procopius Anthemius, Romulus; daughter: Alypia)
W.175.
472
east)
Fl. Anicius [II 15]
Olybrius W: Placidia [2]: daughter of W.168. (daughter: Anicia luliana) W.176.
473-474
Glycerius* (not recognized in the east)
W.177.
474-47 5/480
Iulius Nepos [3]
(son of Nepotianus [2]; recognized as emperor in the east until 480) W: niece of Verina” (W of E.157.)
E.r58.
474
Leo [5] U (son of
E.r59.
and
Ariadne.)
Zeno [18]
W: Ariadne (daughter of E.157.)
525
W.178.
E. I. ROMAN
Reign
Name
475-476
Romulus [2] Augustulus (son: Orestes [4])
AND
BYZANTINE
RULERS
Reign
Name
E.160.
475-476
Basiliscus* (brother of Verina*)
E.16I.
475-476
Marcus [4] (son of E.160.)
476-491
Zeno [18]
E.162.
479 & 484
Flavius Marcianus [7] W: Leontia (daughter
E.163.
484-488
Leontius (Tarsus)
(again)
of E.157.) (DEM. 190)
OF TIME
526
The list of Byzantine rulers runs from Constantine | (Constantinus [1]) to the end of the Doukid dynasty (AD 1078). After the Early Byzantine period (4th—6th cents.), five dynasties ruled from — Constantinople from the early 7th cent., beginning with that of Heraclius [7] (610-711). He was followed by the > Syrian dynasty (717-802), the Amorian dynasty (820-867) and the — Macedonian dynasty (867-1056). The year 1078 marks the end of this overview, as the transition from the Doukid to the Comnenid dynasty marked a profound change in the focus of power, from the civilian to the military aristocracy. Always at the centre of Imperial power were the emperor and his family (the role of the women of the Imperial household can hardly be overstated here), and they were surrounded by a court state that was strictly and comprehensively organized (cf. + Court titles D.). The late Imperial concept of power, which even in the west was indivisible and personal, reached its zenith at Constantinople. Personal rule now came to derive its legitimacy entirely from the sacred, ‘by the grace of God’. The existence of one sole heavenly Lord permitted the earthly ruler to make a claim to exclusivity (under the pantheistic heavenly array of gods, a monarchy of absolutist aspiration could not have prevailed). In the reign of Justinian I (Iustinianus [1]) the heartland of the Byzantine Empire was the Mediterranean, while later the focus shifted to the Eurasian region, and, under the Comnenids, the Aegean. As befits the character of the Byzantine Empire as a largely centralized state, there is a preponderance of sources dealing with the emperors, the empire and the capital. Only sporadic information is found on the provinces. We owe our most important insights into Byzantine history to historiographic writings. There is also a large number of saints’ lives and the epistolary literature that documents Byzantine everyday life (— Literature VI.A. and VII.). During the 6th cent., the rich sources of — Church history run entirely dry, as the church became increasingly incorporated into the state, such that there was no longer a place for independent accounts characterized by a particular dogmatic perspective. Instead, church matters also became a concern of historiography. For the 7th cent., our only remaining original sources are the world chronicle of Theophanes [2] Homologetes/Confessor, and the Historia syntomos Nikephorus [1] (for the years 602-769). Theophanes [4] Continuatus and Iosephus [6] Genesius (both cover the years 813-886), Leon [11] Diakonos (for 959-976) and Michael Psellos (for 976-1078) are each preserved in just a single MS. Contributing to the loss of many sources were the constant military invasions, to which Byzantium was already exposed due the there being only a few natural defensive frontiers that could offer protection to the empire. Works that were not in safe keeping by 1453 did not survive the Ottoman conquest. Further complicating the already shaky foundation of sources available to modern scholarship is the fact that many testimonies were written in languages that are today somewhat obscure (Coptic, Armenian). The process of discovering and commenting on them is still in its infancy. The first results hold out the prospect of
the future emergence of a more differentiated historical picture of this period.
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY AND COMPUTATION E. I. 2. BYZANTINE RULERS
H.G. Breck, Kirche und theologische Literatur im byzantinischen Reich, 1959 - A. DUCELLIER, Byzanz, 1990 (French 1986) - J. GARLAND, Byzantine Empresses, 1999+ H. HunGeErR, Byzantinische Geisteswelt,
1958+ G. Ostrocorsky,
Geschichte des byzantini-
schen Staates, +1963 - P. SCHREINER, Byzanz, 1986.
— Basileus II; Byzantium; Constantinople II]; Rulers IV; Kaiser (Caesar, Emperor); Roma IJ.E.3.c.
For the period up to the year of the death of Zeno (AD 491), cf. also the above list of Roman
rulers (k.)/Ea-
stern Empire (as per the genealogy of the Byzantine emperors).
527
E. I. ROMAN
AND
BYZANTINE
RULERS
Reign
Ruler
Wife/wives
Observations
if
AD324 3B
Constantinus [1] I
(1) Minervina (2) Fausta*
cf. list of Roman rulers ihep LO
Pe
337-361
Constantius [2] II
(x) daughter of Iulius
cf. list of Roman rulers
Constantius [4] (name unknown)
ey Ge
(2) Eusebia [1] (3) Faustina [4]
35
361 — 363
lulianus [11]
Helena [3]
cf. list of Roman rulers
4.
363 — 364
lovianus*
Charito
cf. list of Roman rulers j., 148.
53
364-378
Valens [2]
Albia Domnica
cf. list, Eastern Empire, E.149.
6.
379 - 395
Theodosius [2] I
(1) Aelia Flavia Flacilla* (2) Galla [2]
cf. list, Eastern Empire, Bers.
Te
395 — 408
Arcadius*
Aelia [4] Eudoxia
J 147.
cf. list, Eastern Empire, |ee a
8.
408 — 450
Theodosius [3] II
Aelia Eudocia [1] (orig. name: Athenais)
cf. list, Eastern Empire, Bans 5¢
9.
450-457
Marcianus [6]
Pulcheria [2]
cf. list, Eastern Empire,
Io.
457-474
Leo [4] I
Verina*
cf. list, Eastern Empire, ESTs oR
ri a
474
Leo [5] II
Ts
474-475
Zeno [18]
Eas
475-476
Basiliscus*
476-491
Zeno [18] (again)
4.
491-518
Anastasius [1] I
15.
518 — 527
Justinus [1] I
Euphemia
16.
527-565
lustinianus [r] I
Theodora [2]
17.
565-578
Iustinus [4] II
Sophia
18.
578 — 582
Tiberius [2] II
Anastasia (orig. name: Ino)
19.
582-602
Mauricius*
Constantina
20.
602 — 610
Phocas [4]
610-711
Heraclian dynasty
20
610-641
Heraclius [7]
22,
641
Constantinus III and Heraclonas*
Pipe
641
Heraclonas*
E.15 6:
cf. list, Eastern Empire, ems.Se
Ariadne
cf. list, Eastern Empire, EAE 9:
Rival emperor; cf. list, Eastern Empire, E.160.
ch 12. Ariadne
(1) Eudocia (2) Martina
represented by his mother Martina
DA.
641 — 668
Constans [2] II
Fausta
25.
668 — 685
Constantinus [6] IV
Anastasia
26.
685 — 695
Iustinianus [3] II
(1) Eudocia (2) Theodora [3]
Mahe
695 — 698
Leontius [9]
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
528
OF TIME
Reign
Ruler
698 —705 705-711
Tiberius [3] Ill lustinianus [3] II (again)
29.
7II1-713
Philippicus*
30.
Bits
713-715 715-717
Anastasius [2] II Theodosius [4] Ill
717 — 802 324
717-741
Maria
Boke
741-775
— Syrian dynasty Leo [6] ll Constantinus [7] V
34.
775-780
Leo [7] IV
Irene* (Eirene)
35.
780-797
Constantinus
36.
797 - 802
Bie 38. 39. 40.
802-811 811 811-813 813-820
Irene* (Eirene) Nikephorus [2] I Stauracius [1] Michael [3] I Leo [8] V
Alls
820 — 867 820-829
— Amorian dynasty Michael [4] II
42.
829-842
Theophilus [ro]
(1) Thecla (2) Euphrosyne Theodora [4]
43.
842 — 867
Michael [5] Il]
Eudocia Decapolita
44.
867-1056 867 — 886
— Macedonian dynasty Basilius [5] I
45.
886-912
Leo [9] VI
28.
Wife/wives
Observations
cf.26. Irene
(1) Irene (2) Maria
year of death uncertain, 77501776
(3)Eudocia
[8] VI
(1) Maria (2) Theodote
Procopia
d.before802
Theophano Procopia Theodosia
(1) Maria (2) Eudocia Ingerina (1) Theophano (2) Zoé Zautzina
(3) Eudocia
(4) Zoé 46.
912-913
Alexander [20]
Aire 48.
913-959 920-944
Romanos [2] I Lekapenos
49.
959-963
Romanos [3] Il
50. Git.
963-969 969 -976
Nikephorus [3] Il Phokas Theophano* Iohannes [35] I Tzimiskes (1) Maria
G2.
976-1025
Constantinus [9] VII
Helena (r) Bertha Eudocia (2) Theophano*
(2) Theodora
can
1025 -
Basilius [6] Il
Constantinus
[ro]
Romanos
Il
VIII Helena
1028
54.
1028
[4]
Argyros Zoé*
-1034 555
1034 1041
Michael [6] IV
56.
1041 —
Michael [7] V
ST
1042 1042
Zoé* and Theodora [5]
58.
1042 —
Constantinus [11] IX
Zoé*
(ByrZoes
1055
1055 1056
Theodora [5] (again)
chs7.
ee)
E. Il. CHRONOLOGICAL
TABLE
OF CLASSICAL ARCHEOLOGY
E. II. CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE OF CLASSICAL ARCHAEO-
LOGY (Balbina Babler) Abbreviations: D(s)
Document(s)
DR
Document relief
IN(s)
Inscription(s)
Se.
Town plan
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
566/5 BC
Burgon Amphora (— Panathenaic prize amphorae, London, BMB 130)
Reform of the Panathenaea at Athens (Jer. chron. p. rozb 4f.)
560-550
36 relief column shafts (columnae caelatae) on the Artemision at Delphi, commissioned by the Lydian King Croesus*
IN fragments; Hdt. 1,92,1
shortly before
Siphnian Treasury at Delphi
Destruction of Siphnus* by the Samians (Samos) 524
Goi:
Altar of Apollo Pythios in the sanctuary on the Ilissus and Altar of the Twelve Gods on the Agora (Athens), commissioned by Peisistratus [5] the Younger
IN in fragments (IG 2 948); Thuc. 4,54,6f.
513-506
Alcmaeonid Temple at Delphi
Construction taken over by the Alemaeonids*, who were residing at Delphi after a failed attempt to depose the tyrannis at Athens from Leipsydrium (Hadt. 5,62f.)
SLO-O5
Attic vessels bearing the IN Leagros kalos (cf. — Kalos inscriptions)
Leagrus [2] was a contemporary of Themistocles* (cf. 8. Themistocles letter), and fell in 465 BC while
490-480
Nike of Callimachus [1] of Aphidna
Callimachus [1] fell while polemarchos at the Battle of Marathon* (Hdt. 6,114); statue connected with the IN IGT 609
47D
Serpent column with golden tripod at Delphi (today at Istanbul)
Votive offering from the Persian booty from Plataeae™ (Syll.3 31; Hdt. 9,81; Thuc. 1,132)
477/16
Statue group of the tyrannicides Aristogiton [1] and Harmodius [1] by the sculptors Critius* and Nesiotes on the Agora at Athens
Commissioned to replace the older group which Xerxes {1] I looted to Susa in 480 BC when he overran Athens (Marmor Parium FGrH 239 A 54)
472-456
Temple of Zeus at Olympia*
Financed by the population of Elis [1] from rich booty from a local war (Paus. 5,10,2)
448-432 448-442 442-438 438-432 437-432 425
Parthenon* at Athens
Accounting Ds (IG I’ 436-451)
BC (Hdt. 3,57-58)
525
strategos at Drabescus* (Hdt. 9,75)
424/3
Parthenon metopes
Accounting Ds (IG I? 436-440)
Parthenon frieze
Accounting Ds (IG P 441-444)
Parthenon pediment
Accounting Ds (IG I? 445-451)
Propylaea on the Athenian Acropolis
Accounting Ds (IG > 462-466)
Nike of Paeonius [1] at Olympia*
Dedicated by Messenians (Messana, Messene [2]) for a victory against Sparta at Sphacteria* (Paus. 5,26,1; IN.: Loewy no. 49)
D: Special provisions for Methone [3]; dexiosis (right handshake) of Artemis and seated Athena (Athens, Epigraphical Mus. 6596)
IGP 6r
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
55°
OF TIME
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
422/1
D: Bridge construction at Eleusis [1]; Demeter and Kore, dexiosis (right handshake) of Iacchus and Athena (Eleusis, Mus. 5093)
IGP 79
421-407
Erechtheium on the Athenian Acropolis
Accounting Ds (IG I’ 474-476)
421-413
Erechtheium korai
Accounting Ds (IG I’ 474)
409-407
Erechtheium frieze
Accounting Ds (IG > 475-476)
417/6
D: Symmachy between Athens and Argos*; seated Zeus, dexiosis of Hera and lost figure (Athens, Epigraphical Mus. 6588, AM 2431-2981)
IG P 86
D: Honorific for the demos of Samos;
IGP 96
412/1
seated male fig. which a coiling serpent is entwining, female fig. turning away (Athens, Epigraphical Mus. 6592-6592a) 394
Funerary relief of Dexileus in the Athenian Kerameikos*
Funerary epigram below the relief (IG IVIII* 5222) states that Dexileus, son of Lysanias of Thoricus, fell at Corinth under the archontate of Eubulides
384/3
D: Symmachy between Athens and Chios*; standing female fig. in chiton and cloak (Athens, Epigraphical Mus.
IG Il? 34
376/5
D: Treaty between Athens and Corcyra*; Zeus, Athena and Hera, who is unveiling herself (Athens, NM
367/6
— Panathenaic prize amphorae
69074)
Date deducible from the Stele of the Allies IG II* 43
1467) IN: Polyzelos Archon
(London, BM B 604) 351-344
Relief (London, BM) of Zeus Stratios with devotees Ada* and Idrieus*
Endowed by the son and daughter of Hecatomnos* (i.e. brother and sister of Maussolus*), who reigned jointly in Caria 351-344.
347/6
D: Honorific for the Bosporan princes Spartocus [2] II, Pairisades [1] I and Apollonius (Athens, NM 1471)
IG I? 212
341/0
Archaistic + Herm of Delos*
Dedicated by amphiktyones 341/0 BC (IDélos 42)
339/8
Votive relief of Lysimachides, son of Lysimachus of Acharnae, for Asclepius (Athens, NM 3526)
IG II* 4387; sponsor was the eponymous archon of Athens for the year, cf. Philochoros FGrH 328 F 56a.
338
Lion of Chaeronea*
Tomb of the Thebans who fell at the Battle of
338-334
Monument to Daochus at Delphi
Chaeronea* against the Macedonians (Paus. 9,40,10) (eight marble statues of six
Monument of Daochus [2] II, the tetrarches of Thessalia and supporter of Philip II (Philippus [4]),
generations of the family)
endowed in connection with his term of office as hieromnemon
335/4
Monument to Lysicrates at Athens
Marble surround with Corinthian columns for the tripod Lysicrates won as a prize for the dithyrambic chorus he had financed; sponsor’s IN on the architrave (IG IP 3042)
332/12
— Panathenaic prize amphorae (London, BM B 610)
IN: Niketes Archon
ah!
- Il. CHRONOLOGICAL
TABLE
OF CLASSICAL ARCHEOLOGY
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
320/19
Monument to Thrasyllus on the southern slope of the Acropolis (Doric fagade architecture for the tripod prize)
IG I’ 3056; cf. also Hypereides* and Philochorus* in Poll. 4,123; Harpocr. s.v. katatome
soon after 300
Statue of Tyche von Antioch [1] by
Erected on the occasion of the foundation of the city in
Eutychides*
300 BC (Ioh. Mal. 8, 200-201)
280
Portrait statue of Demosthenes [2] of Polyeuctus [5]
Erected on the Athenian Agora 42 years after the death of Demosthenes [2] (Ps.-Plut., Vitae decem oratorum
230-220
Greater Attalid Dedication
Erected for the victories achieved over the Gauls (Galatians) and Seleucids* by King Attalus [4] I of Pergamum between 233 and 223 BC (cf. Plin. HN
soon after 190
Nike of Samothrace*
Victory monument of the Rhodians (Rhodos*), whose
44)
34,84) fleet won a decisive victory in 190 BC at Side over the Seleucids* under Antiochus [5] III (date also confirmed by pottery from the bowl in which the sculpture stood) 180-160
Great Altar of Pergamum*
soon after 168/7 Monument to Aemilius [I 32] Paullus at Delphi
Construction began after the victories of Eumenes [3] II over Pontus and Bithynia and in connection with the foundation of the Nicephoria festival Victory monument for the Battle of Pydna* (votive IN on column base: ILLRP 323; cf. Plut., Aemilius Paullus 18; Liv. 44,40,4-10)
138/7
ag
Dioscurides and Cleopatra (citizens
According to an IN on the base (IDélos 1987),
of Delos)
Cleopatra had the statues put up in commemoration of the dedication of two silver tripods at the Sanctuary of the Delphic Apollo under the archontate of Timarchus in Athens.
Isis of Delos*
According to an IN on the base (IDélos 2044), dedicated by the Athenian people under the priestly auspices of Euthymachus, son of Ergochares (list of priests of Egyptian deities on Delos is preserved)
Tabularium* (place of safe-keeping for public and private Ds) on the
Built by Q. Lutatius [4] Catulus, consul 78 BC (CIL I*
736, 737; ILLRP 367, 368)
Forum [III 8] Romanum at Rome
Honorific statues of the women of the family of Lucius Valerius [I 24] Flaccus of Magnesia [2]
Put up in connection with his governorship of the Roman province of Asia in 62 BC, as referred to in the honorific IN
Venus Genetrix of Arcesilaus [7]
lulius Caesar* consecrated the Temple of Venus Genetrix at Rome in 46 BC (App. B Civ. 2,102; Cass.
Dio 43, 22,2-3,7; cf. Plin. HN 35, 155f.). 42-29
Temple of the Deified Julius Caesar* on the Forum [III 8] Romanum
Begun by the triumvirs at the place of cremation in 42 BC (Cass. Dio 47,18,4), completed and consecrated 18.8.29 BC by Octavianus [1] (Cass. Dio 51,22,2; R.
Gest. div. Aug. 19) 30
Roman camp of Petrisberg (Trier/
Dendrochronology
Augusta [6] Treverorum) 28
Commencement of the Mausoleum* Augusti on the Field of Mars (Campus
Suet. Aug. 100,4
Marti”) 16
City wall, Tour Magne and Maison Carrée of Nimes (Nemausus [2])
3 ae)
—Ara* Pacis Augustae in Rome
Built by Augustus*; city wall: CIL XII 3151; temple of Crand I Gresar Cue xi 3 56 Ordered by the senate 4.7.13 BC, after Augustus’* return from Spain and Gaul; consecrated 30.1.9 BC (Ov. Fast. 1,709-722)
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
3)2
OF TIME
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
11 -8/7
Roman fort at Oberaden an der Lippe (—Lupia* B.)
Dendrochronology; cf. Cass. Dio 5 4,33,4
7 BC -— AD to
Construction of the Temple of Concordia* in Rome
Begun by Tiberius [1] as part of his triumph, using spoils from Germania, and consecrated on 16.1. (Ov. Fast. 1,637-38) AD ro (Cass. Dio 56,25,1; according to Suet. Tib. 20 AD 12) in the names of himself and his
late brother Claudius [II 24] Drusus
AD 3
Roman Rhine shore fortifications at_ Mainz (Mogontiacum”, with map)
16
Arch of Tiberius at Rome
|Dendrochronology Only the foundations survive.; built by Tiberius [1] on
the occasion of the recovery of the standards lost in AD 9 in the Teutoburg Forest (Saltus* Teutoburgiensis) (CIL VI 906, 31422, 31575; lac. Ann. 2,41)
25
Roman baths at Aachen (Aquae [III 3] |Dendrochronology
38-52
Aqueducts in Rome: 1. Anio Novus 2. Aqua Claudia (— Water supply)
Both begun by Caligula* and completed by Claudius {II 1] (x.: CIL VI 1256; 2.: Suet. Cal. 21, Frontin. Aq. 1,
44
First Roman bridge at Trier (Augusta [6] Treverorum, with TP)
Dendrochronology; cf. Tac. Hist. 4,77
60-62
Baths and Gymnasium of Nero [1] in Rome
Tac. Ann. 14,47; Cass. Dio 61,21,1
70- 80
Colosseum* in Rome
Construction began under Vespasian (Vespasianus* ) (Suet. Vesp. 11,1), consecrated by Titus [3] 80 (CIL VI
Gran(n)i)
13)
2059; Cass. Dio 66,25; Suet. Tit. 7,3; Aur. Vict. Caes. 10,5)
soon after 81
Structural IN (CIL VI 945) for the deified Emperor
Arch of Titus on the via* sacra E of the Forum in Rome
Titus [3]
I0o
Roman military camp at Timgad (Thamugadi*) in Algeria
Founded by Munatius [II 4] Gallus as colonia Marciana Traiana Thamugadi (CIL VIII Suppl. 2,17842f.)
Ts
Trajan Column at Rome
Relief shows Trajan’s (Traianus [1]) war in Dacia
114
Trajan Arch at Beneventum*
IN (CIL IX 1558) indicates that Trajan (Traianus [1]) was invested for the 18th time with the tribunicia potestas, was imperator for the 7th time and consul for
I2I-135
Double Temple of Venus and Rome in Rome
Construction began under Hadrian ( Hadrianus*) 121
122-138
Hadrian’s Wall in Britain (Limes*)
SHA Hadr. 11,1
139
Mausoleum” Hadriani (Castel
Emperor Antoninus [1] Pius completed the tomb of Emperor Hadrian (Hadrianus*) and his successors in
(101-106); consecrated 18.5.113 (CIL VI 960).
the 6th time
Sant’ Angelo)
(SHA Hadr. 19,12); consecrated 135 (Chron. min. 2, 142)
the year after Hadrian’s death (CIL VI 984-995)
Temple of Hadrian (Hadrianus*) at Rome
180-192
Built by Antoninus [1] Pius for the deified Hadrian (Hadrianus*) (SHA Pius 8,2; SHA L. Verus 3,1)
Parthian Monument at Ephesus*
Built for the triumph of Lucius Verus* over the Parthians in 166 ; i.a. depiction of the — consecratio of Lucius Verus, who d. in 169
Marcus Aurelius Column in Rome
Built in the reign of Emperor Commodus* for Marcus [2] Aurelius for his victories over the Marcomanni* and Sarmatae* (172-175; Aur. Vict. Caes. 16)
5)5)5)
E. Il. CHRONOLOGICAL
TABLE
OF CLASSICAL ARCHEOLOGY
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
203
Triumphal Arch of Septimius [II 7] Severus on the Forum [III 8] Romanum in Rome
216
Baths of Caracalla* near the Porta Capena on the via* Appia
Built by order of the senate for Septimius [II 7] Severus, Caracalla* and Geta [2] (name of the last of these was later chiselled off) for victories in the East; INs on both sides (GI Wikroz3ck CIL Vibz1220) Aur. Vict. Caes. 21 (earliest brick stamps make commencement of construction c. 211 likely)
Dock on west bank of the Mosel at
Dendrochronology
230
Trier (Augusta [6] Treverorum)
238
Sarcophagus (Rome, Praetextat Catacombs) and portraits of Emperor Balbinus [1]
Reign and death of Emperor Balbinus [1]
265
City wall of Verona*
Built by Gallienus* in view of threat of barbarian attacks (CIL V 3329)
gai pd
Aurelian city wall of Rome
SHA Aurelian. 21,9; 39,2; Aur. Vict. Caes. 35,7; Oros.
293
Porphyry Tetrarch Monument in Venice
Proclamation of the Tetrarchy (— tetrarches IV); depiction of Diocletian (Diocletianus*), Maximian (Maximianus [1]), Constantius [1] and Galerius [5] as Augusti (bearded) and Caesares
294
Stage machinery in cellar of the amphitheatre of Trier (Augusta [6] Treverorum, with TP)
Dendrochronology
296-299
Gold medallion of Constantius [1] Chlorus (minted at Trier; London, BM)
IN and depiction celebrate the victorious entry of the emperor into London (i.e. end of the — British Usurpation, v. addenda).
297
Arch of Galerius at Thessalonica [1]
T2318
Built on the occasion of Galerius’ [5] victory over the Persians
303
soon after 305
Five column monument (Decennalia base) on Forum [III 8] Romanum in
Built on the occasion of the vicennalia of the Augusti
Rome
Diocletian (Diocletianus*) and Maximian (Maximianus [1]) and the decennalia of the Caesares Galerius [5] and Constantius [1] Chlorus
Building of Trier Basilica begins
Brick stamp; coin find
(Augusta [6] Treverorum, with TP)
305/6
Baths of Diocletian (Diocletianus*) in Rome
Consecrated by the Augusti Diocletianus* and Maximianus [1] after their abdication between 1.5.305
Roman bridge at Cologne-Deutz
Dendrochronology
and 25.7.306 (CIL VI 1130= 3142) (Colonia® Agrippinensis, with TP)
S. Giovanni in Laterano (= Basilica Constantiniana) in Rome
Built by Constantine I (Constantinus (1)) in thanks for the victory in the Battle of the Milvian Bridge at Rome
Arch of Constantine at Rome
Built by order of the senate for Constantine I (Constantinus [1]) for his victory over Maxentius* and
to celebrate his decennalia (CIL VI 1139); sculptural decoration comes from other, earlier buildings 322
Licinian largitio bowls (silver bowl of Licinius [II 4] I, two silver bowls of Licinius [II 5] Il) (Munich, Bayerische Hypotheken- und Wechselbank, Inv.
The legend around the portrait medallions shows that the bowls were made on the occasion of the fifth anniversary (quinquennalia) of the reign of Licinius {Il 5] Il on 1.3.322
I, 2, 3) soon after 324
St. Peter’s Basilica, Vatican, Rome
Brick stamp in the masonry of the apse; Liber* Pontificalis (6th cent. Papal chronicle) names Constantinus [1] as founder; land donations for maintenance of basilica and clergy from the eastern Empire, which were only available to Constantine after his victory over Licinius [JI 4] lin Sept. 324
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
534
OF TIME
Date
Work of art
Context of dating/source
330
Emperor Constantine I (Constantinus [r]) has the Church of the Holy Sepulchre built in Jerusalem
Euseb. V Const. 3,28
337-351
Sta Agnese fuori le mura (Rome)
Built by Constantina*, daughter of Constantine I, in the years of her widowhood on her estate on the via Nomentana (votive IN ICUR no. 12); mausoleum
(modern Sta. Costanza) built after her d. in 354 359
385
Sarcophagus of Junius Bassus in Rome
Silver casket of Proiecta (London, BM Inv.
1866,12—-29,1)
IN on upper edge of the casket indicates that Iunius Bassus was urban prefect and d. in 359 at 42 (CIL VI 32004) The bride, Proiecta, named on the IN, d. on 30.12.385 shortly before her wedding (funerary epigram of Pope Damasus*, cf. Epigrammata* Damasiana 51)
388
Missorium (round silver dish decorated in relief) of Theodosius [2] I (Madrid, Real Academia de la
Made on the occasion of the tenth jubilee of the emperor’s reign (IN on upper edge)
Historia)
388-394
Diptych of the Symmachi and Nicomachi (London, Victoria and Albert Mus.)
Made on the occasion of the marriage of Nicomachus Flavianus [3] to the daughter of Quintus Aurelius Symmachus [4]
Part of an ivory diptych showing a consul (Darmstadt, Hessisches
IN gives name and title of Flavius Asturius, a soldier in
Landesmuseum)
Arles
450-452
Marcian Column at Istanbul (Constantinople*, with TP)
IN (CIL III 1, 738); dedicated to the emperor by urban prefect Tatianus [2]
470
Ivory diptych of Messius Severus (Leipzig, Stadtbibliothek)
IN; Flavius Messius Phoebus Severus was urban prefect of Rome, consul and an influential advisor to Emperor Anthemius [2], who summoned him to join him at Rome in 467 on his accession to the throne
488
Ivory diptych of Sividius
IN; Rufius Achilius Sividius was simultaneously urban
449
Gaul and Spain who took office as consul in 449 at
prefect of Rome and consul 506
Ivory diptych of Areobindus [2] (Zurich, Landesmuseum, Inv. 3564)
IN indicates that the diptych was made in 506, when Areobindus [2] was consul
524-527
St. Polyeuctus in Constantinople*
Built by Anicia Iuliana (Anth. Gr. 1,10)
526
Tomb of Theoderic (Theodericus (Theoderic) [3]) at Ravenna* (with TP)
Procop. Goth. 1,1,39; Anon. Vales. 16,94f.
526-530
Apse and front wall mosaic of the church of SS. Cosma e Damiano in
Foundation of Pope Felix [V (526-530)
Rome
530 533-537
Ivory diptych of Orestes (London, Victoria and Albert Mus.)
Gennadius Probus Orestes, son of Avienus (cos. 502)
Construction of Hagia* Sophia in Constantinople* by order ofJustinian
Reconstruction of the second church totally destroyed in the Nika Revolt*; consecration 27.12.537 (Procop.
IN: made on the occasion of the consulship of Rufus
I (Iustinianus [1])
Aed. 1,1,21-78)
C. 535-549
San Apollinare in Classe in Ravenna*
Consecrated by Archbishop Maximianus [3] (545-5 53)
536
Sts. Sergius and Bacchus at Constantinople* (with TP)
Built by Justinian (lustinianus [1]) and Theodora [2] (Procop. Aed. 1,4,1-4)
547
San Vitale in Ravenna* (with TPq)
Consecrated by Archbishop Maximianus [3]
(with TP)
— Athens II; Delphi I; Roma III (all with maps)
y35
E. IIT. ECLIPSES
E. I. EcLipses E. Ill. 1. EcLrpses In ASSYRIAN AND BABYLONIAN SOURCES
E, II. 2. EcLipses IN EGYPTIAN SOURCES E. Ill. 3. EcLipses In GREEK AND ROMAN SOURCES
E. III. 1. EcLrpses in ASSYRIAN AND BABYLONIAN SOURCES
(Hermann Hunger)
The following lists contain only observed eclipses. Uncertain cases are generally omitted. For instance, this applies to the eclipse in the Eponym Chronicle of Mari, for which there is as yet no agreement on date, and for the supposed solar eclipse in Ugarit (the text on which is probably not referring to an eclipse at all). Eclipses in Omina are not to be interpreted as observations, nor are they associated with information that is possible to evaluate against a calendar. Therefore, the eclipses listed here begin only in the 8th cent. BC. The few earlier textual references drawn upon for eclipses are disputed in interpretation or dating. Unless otherwise indicated in the right-hand column, the place of observation may be assumed to have been — Babylon. Almost all of the so-called ‘Astronomical Diaries’ and related texts originated there. Other than the text editions, details will be found in [1]. Some of the eclipses mentioned here are also treated in [2]. — Astronomy B; Eclipses; Cosmology C. 1 P. J. Huser, S. DE Mets, Babylonian Eclipse Observations 750 BC to 1 BC, 2004.
J. Megeus, H. Mucxe, Canon of Lunar Eclipses -2002 to +2526, 1983 -H. Mucxg, J. MeEus, Canon of Solar Eclipses —2003 to +2526, 1983 - J. M. STEELE, F. R. STEPHENson, Canon of Solar and Lunar Eclipses for Babylon, 750 B.C.-A.D. 1, in: AfO 44/45, 1997/98, 195-209.
Abbreviations: Diaries
A. J. Sacus, H. HuNGEr, Astronomical
Diaries and Related Texts from Babylonia, 1988 ff. (Volume, page; Volume V by number). LBAT
T. G. PINCHEs, J. N. STRASSMAIER,
Rochberg
A. J. Sacus, Late Babylonian Astronomical and Related Texts, 1955 (by number). F, ROCHBERG, Babylonian Horoscopes, 1998.
SAA VIII
H. Huncer, Astrological Reports to Assyrian Kings, 1992 (by number). S. PaRPOLA, Letters from Assyrian and Babylonian Scholars, 1993 (by number).
SAA X
2 S. DE Mets, Eclipses. An Astronomical Introduction for Humanists, 2002.
IlI.1.1. LUNAR ECLIPSES
all dates BC
date
reference
6 Feb. 2 Aug.
747
747
26 Jan.
22 Jul.
observations
date
uncertain
22 May 5 Nov. 23 May 3 Sep. 27 Oct. ro Apr. 19 Feb.
~ Diaries V, no. x Diaries V, no. r
uncertain
746
Diaries V, no. 1
uncertain
746
Diaries V, no. 1
uncertain
19 Apr.
713
+ Diaries V, no. 2
20 Mar.
702 ~~ Diaries V, no. 3
t May
22 Apr. 3, Oct. 22 May 2 Jul. 28 Dec. rr Jun. 21 Apr. rs Oct.
695 686 685 678 671 671 669 667 667
ro Apr.
666
Diaries V, no. 2 Diaries V, no. 3 Diaries V, no. 3 SAA VIII, 316,336 SAA X, 347 SAA X, 351 SAA VIII, 4; X,128 SAAX, 57,75 Diaries V, no. 3; SAA VIII, 103 Diaries V, no. 3; SAA X, 89-90
Assyria
Assyria Assyria Assyria Assyria Assyria Assyria
reference 659 Diaries 650 Diaries 632 Diaries 609 Diaries 603 Diaries 601 __ Diaries 599 Diaries
V, V, V, V, V, V, V,
observations no. no. no. no. no. no. no.
2 3 3 4 6 6 6
27 Nov.
595
Diaries V, no. 6
23 May 1 Apr. 22 Mar. 19 Jan. 8 Jan. 14 Jun. PaADEce 3 Jun. 1 Apr.
594 592 591 588 587 577. 577. 576 573
Diaries Diaries Dhiaries Diaries Diaries Diaries Diaries Diaries Diaries
5 Sep. 2 Mar. 6 Oct.
563 562 555
Diaries V, no. 7 Dhiaries V, no. 7 Diaries V, no. 4
V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V,
no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no.
6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
date
AND
COMPUTATION
reference
23 Apr. 17 Oct.
537 537.
Diaries V, no. 4 Diaries V, no. 4
17 Nov.
529
Diaries V, no. 8
16 Sep. 7 Nov. 19 Nov. 5 Jun. 29 Nov. 25 Mar.
526 501 483 465 465 442
Diaries Dhiaries Diaries Diaries Diaries Diaries
2 Feb.
440
Diaries V, no. 9
14 Apr. 9 Oct. 28 Sep. 2 Feb. 19 Sep. 21 Dec. 16 Jun. SOC. 21 Oct. 15 Apr. 10 Oct. 5 Apr. 18 Sep. 18 Jun. 12 Dec: 17 Apr. 6 Apr.
425 Diaries 425 Dhiaries 424 Dhiaries 421 Diaries 415 Diaries 410 Diaries 409 _ Diaries 408 Diaries 407 Diaries 406 _ Diaries 406 Diaries 397 Diaries 396 Diaries 382 Diaries 382 Diaries 379 ~~ Diaries 378 Diaries
3 Reb:
375
Diaries I, 97
17 May 11 Nov.
37 371
Diaries V, no. 2 Diaries I, 123; V,
30 Aug. 2 Jan. 29 Jun. 22 Dee 18 Jun. m2) Dec: 17 Apr. 22 Nov. Tap\any 29 May 20 Sep.
367 364 364 364 363 363 360 353 346 334 ait
V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V, V,
no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no. no.
no. 2 ~~ Daiaries I, 135 Dhiaries V, no. Diaries V, no. Diaries V, no. Diaries V, no. ~+Diaries V, no. Diaries V, no. Diaries V, no. Dhiaries I, 145 DhiariesI, 165 Diaries I, 177
8 4 4 4 4 9 9 57 9 9 3 9 9 9 9 9 9 3 3 ro ro 3 3
ro 10 10 10 10 3 2
13 Jan.
327
9 Jul. 3, Jan.
327 ~~ Diaries V, no. 12 326 Diaries V, no. 12
Diaries V, no. 12
18 Jun.
3 17
ne Dec: 9 Jul. 8 May 23 Nov.
317. ~~ Diaries V, no. 2 308 — Daaries I, 239, 243 305 Diaries I, 243 288 Rochberg, no. 4
19 May
287
‘Diaries I, 289
16 Feb.
273 251 248
~+Diaries I, 343 LBAT 1366 Diaries II, 55
4 Dec. sacle 29 Mar. 3 Nov. 28 Apr.
Diaries V, no. 2
247 Daiaries Il, 57 Pytifey IL) BVA Sori aiite 239 ~~ Diaries II, 85
536
OF TIME
observations
date
uncertain
t Aug. 20 Mar 25 Dec. 30 Apr. 24 Oct.
226 219 215 2s 202,
5 Nov.
194
28 Feb. 23 Aug 17 Feb.
190 190 189
~—CDiaries V, no. 18 ~)3—sdLBAT 1251 LBAT 1251
1 Aug.
188
Diaries V, no. 17
30 May 24 Nov
185 185
4 Oct. 23 Aug. 30 Mar 26 Jan.
reference
observations
Diaries I, 141 Rochberg, no. 14 Diaries Il, 157 | (OBAL era g7, “EBA **5237 Diaries II, 279; V, no. 16
Diaries Diaries no. 17 183 Diaries 171 __—Daaries 163 Diaries LBAT 160 _— Diaries
V, no. 17 II, 355; V, I, 371 II, 451 Ill, 15; 1264 III, 41; V,
no. 16
14 Nov 21 Mar 3 Jul. 17 Feb. eA pi. 24 Sep. 21 Mar ro Mar 3 Sep.
157. Diaries III, 65 154 Diaries V, no. 20 150 _ Diaries III, 85 143 LBAT 1278 136 _ Diaries III, 183; LBAT 1285 136 LBAT 1285 135 Diaries II, 191; LBAT 1285 134 Diaries Ill, 197 134 Diaries III, 199
7 lane
132
Dihiaries III, 229
2 Jul:
131
Diaries Il, 239
5 Nov. 24 Aug.
129 125
Diaries V, no. 21 Diaries II, 271;
13 Aug.
124
Diaries Ill, 285,
2 Aug.
123
Diaries III, 295,
t Jun.
120
Rochberg, no. 21 289 297
24 Sep. 5 Nov. t May 28 Feb. 25 Aug 13 Aug rx Apr. 5 Oct. 31 Mar
3 Aug. 13 Jul. 5 Nov. 28 Feb. 21 Apr.
t17.__—-
~— Diaries Il, 311
Rochberg, no. 22a
110. —— Diaries UI, 349 109 __—Diaries Ill, 355 106 _ Diaries III, 377 106 _ Diaries III, 389 roy.) (LBAT** 7205 99
Diaries II, 407
99 98 96
Diaries III, 407 Diaries Il, 407
94 gI 87 81
Diaries Diaries Diaries Diaries no. 23 Diaries no. 24; no. 25
Il, III, III, III,
425 429 433 453; V,
III, 483; V, Rochberg,
537
E. III. ECLIPSES
date
reference
TAD L: 5 Oct. 28 Jan. HOINOVe 3, Sep. 19 Jan.
80 80 76 73 69 67
8 Jan. 28 Dec.
66 66 47 41
4 Jul. 2 Mar.
Diaries V, no. 25 Diaries V, no. 26 Diaries II], 505 Diaries Ill, 511 Rochberg, no. 27 Diaries V, no. 27, 28 Diaries V, no. 29 Diaries V, no. 30 LBAT 523 LBAT 1304
observations
uncertain
III. 1. 2. SOLAR ECLIPSES
all dates BC
15 Jun.
763
AssyrianEponym List
Assur
27May
669
Assyria
15 Apr.
657.
SAA VIII,384;SAA X, 148 SAAVII,104;SAA X, 100
rx Apr.
369
29 Feb.
357.
~+Dhiaries I, 125 ~+Diaries I, 141
FOG.
323
Diaries I, 209
26 Sep.
$22)
| Diaries lj229
30 Jan. 16 Sep. 31 Jan.
28x 256 254
Diaries I, 313 Diaries II, 21 Dhiaries Il, 29
4 May
249
~~ Diaries Il, 51; LBAY 1206
15 Jun.
ZAd
Diaries 1177
28 Nov.
241
Diaries I, 79
6 May
203
6 Jun.
195
Diaries II, 270; LBAT 1249
14Mar.
190
Diaries Il, 315; V, no. 19
17 28 17 rs
180 __— Diaaries Il, 399 170 ~=36LBAT 1263 166 Diaries II, 487 136 Diaries III, 185; LBAT 1285 133 ~+Daiaries III, 203 126 —_—Diaries Ill, 263; Rochberg, no. 20
Aug. Jul. May Apr.
13 Feb. 19 Sep.
~~ Diaries II, 209
18 Jun. 29 Sep.
Tr2, 89
—Wiaries Mls 4x Diaries V, no. 23
30 Jun.
10
Diaries V, no. 31
Assyria
OF TIME
538
Documentation of eclipses in Ancient Egypt is hitherto distinctly patchy. Solar eclipses have yet to be demonstrated clearly and with absolute dates (and are therefore also not listed below). Of the lunar eclipses, the
(6th—sth cent. BC). In addition, in the (as yet unpublished) Papyrus BM 10651 (London), eclipses have a divinatory function in association with the particular decan' in which they appear [1. 102]. The manual for the director in the ‘Book of the Temple’ likewise presents eclipses as baleful pnenomena requiring interpre-
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
E. Il. 2. EcLipses IN EGYPTIAN SOURCES
(Joachim Quack)
first recorded (c. 9th cent. BC) is associated in the sources with the outbreak of internal unrest. However, owing to uncertainties of translation and dating, it
cannot yet be regarded as definitely proven [1. rozf.]. Chronologically reliable details of Egyptian lunar eclipses are found, firstly, in one literary record (preserved on a fragmentary papyrus dating from around the beginning of the Christian era [5]), and secondly in fragments of a papyrus (probably rst cent. BC, today in Berlin) containing a list of certain eclipses. These are dated according to the fourth Callippic period (76-year Callippic cycle, named after + Callippus [5]) [2]. The essentially ominous interpretation of eclipses is attested by a demotic manual [3], ina fragmentary state of preservation. Its surviving papyrus version dates from approximately the 1st-2nd cents. AD, but probably originates from an Egyptian translation with Mesopotamian antecedents from the Persian period
tation [4.168].
— Eclipses 1 A. von Lieven, Divination im Alten Agypten, in: Altorientalische Forschungen 26, 1999, 77-126.
2 O. NEUGEBAUER et al., A Demotic Lunar Eclipse Text of the First Century B.C., in: PAPhS 125, 1981, 312-327. 3 R.A. Parker, A Vienna Demotic Papyrus on Eclipseand Lunar-Omina, 1959. 4 J.F. Quack, Die Dienstanweisung des Oberlehrers aus
dem Buch vom Tempel, in: H. BEINLICH et al. (ed.), 5. Agyptologische Tempeltagung, Wiirzburg (Sep. 1999), 2002, 159-171. 5 M. SmiTH, Did Psammetichus I Die Abroad?, in: Orientalia Lovaniensia Periodica 22, 1991, IOI-109.
LUNAR ECLIPSES
date
event/reference
observations
22 Mar.
610 BC
28 Dec.
85
Death of King Psammetichus [1] I; Nile Delta (Pap. Berlin 13588; [5]) from eclipse list [2] (Pap. Berlin
Eof the
eclipse passing as Moon rose in the evening; lit. total
23 Jun.
84
from eclipse list [2] (ibidem, A 4)
daytime, not observable
w7Decs 3/4 May 27) Oct. 21/22 Apr. 16 Oct. rr Apr. Oct: 19/20 Feb. 15 Aug.
84 82 82 81 81 80 80 78 78
from from from from from from from from from
eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse
list list list list list list list list list
[2] [2] [2] [2] [2] [2] [2] [2] [2]
(ibidem, (ibidem, (ibidem, (ibidem, (ibidem, (ibidem (ibidem, (ibidem, (ibidem,
9 Feb. 3 Aug.
a, via 76 76
from from from from
eclipse eclipse eclipse eclipse
list list list list
[2] [2] [2] [2]
(ibidem, B 7f.) (ibidem, B 8f.)
daytime, not observable partial partial total daytime, not observable partial partial almost total began shortly before sunrise, probably not observable daytime, not observable daytime, not observable very slight partial; possibly not observable; wrongly dated by one month in the text
13146+13147, A 2)
28 Jan.
24 Jul.
A 7) A 10) A 12-16) A 17f.) A 20) A 21) A 22f.) B 4f.) B 6)
(ibidem, B 10-12)
(ibidem, B 124.)
' A decan is a traditional Egyptian value (approx. ro degrees) of astronomical and astrological relevance which, from the Ptolemaic period, was subordinate to the + Zodiac (three decans per zodiacal sign).
59
E. I1J. ECLIPSES
date 14 Jun. 8 Dec. 4 Jun.
75 75 74
event/reference
observations
from eclipse list [2] (ibidem, B 16f.) from eclipse list [2] (ibidem, B 17-19) from eclipse list [2] (ibidem, B 20-24)
daytime, not observable partial total
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
540
OF TIME
E. III. 3. ECLipses IN GREEK AND LATIN SOURCES (Astrid Mller)
‘Of the 250 or so accounts of solar and lunar eclipses in
A. DemanpT, Verformungstendenzen in der Uberlieferung antiker Sonnen- und Mondfinsternisse, AAWM 1970, no. 7.
ancient literature, over 200 are imprecise or wrong’ [1.
5]. The transmission of information on most of the eclipses in the following lists is, therefore, in some way distorted. Many can be classified as synchronized eclipses, i.e. a historical event was made out to be simultaneous with an eclipse that was observed at only roughly the same time. Other cases may be termed literary, i.e. a fictitious eclipse was assigned to an event of the mythical past, e.g. the foundation of Rome. ‘Magical’ eclipses foreshadowed important events, such as a death; or else transfigured such an event, e.g. the crucifixion of Christ [2. 43-47; 3. ili-iv]. — Astronomy; Eclipses
R.R. Newron, Ancient Astronomical Observations and
the Accelerations of the Earth and Moon, 1970. D. J. ScHove, A. FLETCHER, Chronology of Eclipses and Comets AD 1-1000, 1984.
T.A. ScHMitTz, Delphine als Bergwanderer: Die Sonnenfinsternis bei Archilochos (fr. 122 W.), in:
H. KOHLER et
al. (ed.), ‘Stiirmend auf finsterem Pfad...’. Ein Sympown
sion zur Sonnenfinsternis in der Antike, 2000, 125-149. E. PRACK, Der romische Kalender (264-168 BC), 1996. O. NEUGEBAUER, A History of Ancient Mathematical Astronomy, 3 vols., 1975. F.K. GINZEL, Spezieller Kanon der Sonnen- und Mond-
finsternisse fiir das Landergebiet der klassischen Alter-
Abbreviations: Ptol. Alm.
Ptolemy, Mathématike syntaxis
Ol.
Olympiad
(so-called ‘Almagest’)
tumswissenschaften und den Zeitraum von 900 BC bis 600 n. Chr., 1899. F. BOLL, s.v. Finsternisse RE 6.2, 2329-2364. F.K. GinzEL, Handbuch der mathematischen und technischen Chronologie, 1911 (repr. 1958), Vol. 2, 210-8,
523-43 (Pl. Il).
III. 3.1. SOLAR ECLIPSES The solar eclipses are listed here before the lunar eclipses, because to the Greeks and Romans, unlike the Ancient
Near Eastern cultures, they were clearly regarded as more important (cf. Hdt. 7,37). date 24 Jun.
772 BC
21 Apr.
753
7 Jul.
708
6 Apr. 28 May
648 585
19 May
Sy
2 Oct.
480
17 Feb.
478
30 Apr. 3 Aug.
463 431
event/reference
observations
conception of Romulus [1] (Tarrutius* in Plut. Romulus 12,5) foundation of Rome®* (Plut. Romulus 12,2 relying on Antimachus [4] of Teos: Ol. 6.3 =
literary literary
754 BC) death and apotheosis of Romulus [1] (Cic. __ literary Rep. 1,16,25: 5 Jul. 714; Dion. Hal. Ant. Rom. 2,56,2; Plut. Romulus 27,5-6) Archil. Fr22W on discussion cf. [4. 125-127] solar eclipse of Thales* (Hdt. 1,74; Plin. HN on discussion ef. [1. 25-29]
2,53) during siege of Larisa [8] by Cyrus [2] II (Xen. An. 3,4,8) during Cleombrotus’ [1] sacrifice on the Isthmus* of Corinth (Hdt. 9,10) reconstructed by Hdt. 7,37 on the decamping of the Persian army from Sardis*
probably atmospheric annular
uncertain, possibly atmospheric annular synchronized
(480 BC)
Pind. F 52k SNELL, Paean 9 Thuc. 2,28; according to Plut. Pericles 35,2, on the departure of the Athenian fleet for Epidaurus (430 BC)
total annular synchronized
541
E. III. ECLIPSES
date 21 Mar.
424
3 Sep.
404
21 Jun.
400
14 Aug.
394
13 Jul.
364
12 May
361
15 Sep.
340
15 Aug.
310
event/reference
observations
at the beginning of the summer of the eighth year of the — Peloponnesian War (Thuc. 4,52,1); according to Aristoph. Nub. 584: supposedly on the election of Cleon [1] as strategos Lycophron’s [2] defeat of the Thessalians (Xen. Hell. 2,3,4; Sen. Ben. 5,6,3) eclipse of Ennius [1] (Cic. Rep. 1,16,25)
annular synchronized, cf. lunar eclipse of 9 Oct. 425 BC
annular synchronized cf. [5. 26] on attempts at identification on the invasion of Boeotia by Agesilaus [2] II annular and the news of the death of Peisander [8] synchronized (Xen. Hell. 4,3,10; Plut. Agesilaus 17,2) before the move of Pelopidas* against total Alexander [15] of Pherae (Diod. Sic. 15,80,2; Plut. Pelopidas 3 1,2) said to be foreseen by Helicon [2] of Cyzicus annular (Piut. Dion 19,6) Liv. 7,28,7 annular, perhaps only atmospheric; synchronized on Agathocles’ [2] voyage against Carthago* total (Diod. Sic. 20,5,5; lust. 22,6,1; Frontin. Str. 1,12,9; Marmor Parium B ep. 16
JACOBY, 312/311 BC) 11 Feb.
217
bad omens before the Battle of Lake Trasimene (Lacus* Trasumenus; Liv. 22,1,9)
6 May
203
Liv. 30,38,8; associated with the Battle of | annular-total synchronized; cf. list
14 Mar.
190
C7 jul. 20 Nov.
188 129
19 Jul.
104
29 Jun. 7 Mar.
94 51
19 20 28 24
36 ao AD 5 29
May Aug. Mar. Nov.
total synchronized
Zama [1] (202 BC) by Zon. 9,14C
I. 2 above
as Cornelius [J 72] Scipio Asiagenes marched against Antiochus [5] III (Liv. 37,4,4) Liv. 38,36,4 observed by Hipparchus [6] (Ptol. Alm. 5,11 with Pappus comm. ad loc., 1,68 ROME) after the unification of the Cimbri* and Teutoni* (Obseq. 43) perhaps meant in Obseq. 51 bad omens before the outbreak of the Roman Civil War (Cass. Dio 41,14) Chron. pasch., Ol. 186.1 (p.1360 DinporgF) ibidem, Ol. 187.2 (p. 1 361 DinDoRE) Cass, Dio § 5.22.3 so-called ‘Crucifixion Eclipse’: Phlegon of Tralleis FGrH 257 F16, wrongly associated with the death of Christ (Ol. 202.4 = AD 32)
total well-attested; cf. list I. 2 above total total annular-total annular annular synchronized total annular annular-total total synchronized, magical
in Euseb. Chron. 2,148 SCHONE (213 KARST:
Ol. 203.4) 1 Aug.
45
day of Emperor Claudius’ [III 1] birth (Cass. Dio 60,26)
total
30 Apr.
59
total
20 Mar. 5 Jan. 3, Sep.
71/75
Plin. HN 2,180; Tac. Ann. 14,12; Cass. Dio 62,16,4; Philostr. VA 4,43 probably also refers to this Plin. HN 2,57; possibly the eclipse mentioned in Plut. Mor. 931D-E Fasti Vindobonenses priores MGH AA
118
9,285
annular-total total
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY AND COMPUTATION OF TIME date
542
event/reference
observations annular annular synchronized total
4 Sep. 28 Dec.
164 186
14 Aug.
212
Procl. hypotyposis 4,98 observed in Rome on the Kalends of January (SHA Comm. 16,2) Tert. ad Scapulam 3
7 Oct.
218
announcing the fall of Emperor Macrinus*
annular
(Cass. Dio 78,30,r)
synchronized
5 Aug.
240
SHA Gord. 23,2
15 May
291
6 May
319
17 Jul. 6 Jun.
334 346
28 Aug.
360
16 Jun.
364
20 Nov.
393
[7. no. 43]: 3 Jun. 197
total uncertain Consularia Constantinopolitana MGH AA _ total, possibly atmospheric 9,230 Consularia Constantinopolitana MGH AA _ total, possibly atmospheric 9,232 for AD 318 prophesied (Firm. mathesis 1,4,10) annular Jer. Chron. 236 *HELM (AD 347); total Theophanes 1,38 DE Boor; Kedrenos Georgios 1,523,16 BEKKER; also dated to AD 325 in Georgius Monachos, Chron. PG 110,612A and Kedrenos Georgios 1,499,3 BEKKER during the Persian War under Constantius annular [2] (Amm. Marc. 20,3,r)
solar eclipse of Theon [8] (cf. K. ZIEGLER, __ total RE 5VA; 2107.5) Marcellinus MGH AA 11,63; Fasti total Vindobonenses priores MGH AA 9,298
II. 3.2. LUNAR ECLIPSES 19 Mar.
Fpae |G
Ptol. Alm. 4,6
8 Mar.
720
ibidem
TSep:
720
ibidem
22 Apr.
16 Jul.
ibidem 5,14
525
ibidem
ibidem 4,9
19 Nov.
25 Apr.
491
ibidem
9 Oct.
425
supposedly on Cleon’s [1] election as strategos (Aristoph. Nub. 584)
total in Babylon 29/30 Thoth in the rst year of Mardocempadus partial in Babylon 18/19 Thoth in the 2nd year of Mardocempadus partial in Babylon 15/16 Phamenoth partial in Babylon 27/28 Athyr in the 5th year of Nabupolassar* partial in Babylon 17/18 Phamenoth in the 7th year of Cambyses [2] II partial in Babylon 28/29 Epiph in the 2oth year of Darius [1] I partial in Babylon 3/4 Tybi in the 31st year of Darius {r] I total synchronized; cf. solar eclipse of 21 Mar. 424 BC and list I. x above
543
EB. WIS ECLIPSES
date
event/reference
27 Aug.
ree}
15 Apr. 23 Dec.
406 383
18 Jun.
382
T2DEGs
382
9 Aug.
357
20 Sep.
33
observations
prevented the departure of Nicias [x] from __ total Sicily (Thuc. 7,50,4; Plut. Nicias 23,1—2) Xen. Hell. 1,6,1 total; cf. list I. 1 above Hipparchus [6] in Ptol. Alm. 4,11 partial in the month of Posideon under the Athenian archon Phanostratus, 26/27 Thoth ibidem partial in the month of Skirophorion under the Athenian archon Phanostratus, 24/25 Phamenoth cf. list I. r above ibidem total in the month of Posideon I (embolismic year) under the Athenian archon Evander; 16/17 Thoth; cf. list I. x above before Dion [I 1] set off against Dionysius [2] partial II (Plut. Dion 24,1; Plut. Nicias 23,1-2; Quint. Inst. 1,10,48)
before the Battle of Gaugamela* (Plut. Alexander 31,4; Arr. Anab. 3,7,6; 15,7;
total synchronized; cf. list I. r above
Curt. 4,10,2; Cic. Div. 1,121; Plin. HN 2,180)
20 Mar.
219 201
during the campaign of Attalus [4] l against Greek cities (Pol. 5,78,1) Hipparchus [6] in Ptol. Alm. 4,11
total ct. list I. x above partial in Alexandria [1]
22 Sep. 19 Mar.
200
ibidem
12 Sep.
200
ibidem
total in Alexandria [1] 9 Mekhir total in Alexandria [1] 5 Mesore
30 Apr.
174
ibidem 6,5
21 Jun.
168
3 Jul. or
150
supposedly prophesied before the Battle of Pydna* (5 Sep. 168: Pol. 29,16; Plut. Aemilius Paullus 17,7—10; Liv. 44,37,5-9) associated with the death of Ptolemy Eupator (Ptolemaeus [1o]) (Antipater of Sidon, Anth. Gr. 7,241) Ptol. Alm. 6,5
16 Mesore
28 Dec.
Or7 aad
141
5 Nov.
129
at the death of Carneades [1] (Diog. Laert. 4,64; Suda s.v. Carneades)
3 May 13 Mar.
63 4
GicyDiveete te no Jos. Ant. Iud. 17,167
ZoASED:
AD 14
partial in Alexandria [1] 27/28 Phamenoth in the 7th year of Ptolemy VI (Ptolemaeus [9]) total synchronized
total
partial on Rhodes 2/3 Tybi or 2 May 128 partial in Athens cf. list I. 1 above total partial not precisely determinable
at the mutiny of the Pannonian legions (Tac. total Ann. 1,28; Cass. Dio 57,4,4)
E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY
date 3 Apr.
33}
r Jan.
47
AND
COMPUTATION
OF TIME
544
event/reference
observations
corresponds to the church dating of the crucifixion of Christ, and fell on a Friday afternoon, but was a lunar eclipse (not a solar eclipse as in the NT: ‘sixth to ninth hour, cf. skotos egeneto / tenebrae factae sunt, Mt 27,45; Mk 15,33; Lk 23,44) appearance of small volcanic island off
partial magical, calculated, not observed
total
Thera* (Cass. Dio 60,29,7; Sen. Nat. 2,26,6)
synchronized cf. [6. I. 847-8]
13 Mar.
62
Hero, Peri dioptras 35,16
18 Oct.
69
during the Battle of Cremona* (Cass. Dio _ partial 64,8,1 and 64,11,1; Tac. Hist. 3,23)
date disputed
4 Mar. 5 Apr.
yl 1G)
Plin. HN 2,57 Ptol. Alm. 4,9
partial partial in Alexandria [1] 17/18 Pakhon in the 9th year of
6 May
133
ibidem 4,6
20 Oct.
134
ibidem
6 Mar.
136
ibidem
25 Nov.
364
m7 Dec.
400/
lunar eclipse of Theon [8] (cf. K. ZIEGLER, RE 5 A, 2075) Claud. Bellum Geticum, 233-243
12 Jun. 6/7 Dec.
401/ 401
Hadrian (Hadrianus* )
total in Alexandria [1] 20/21 Payni in the 17th year of Hadrian (Hadrianus* ) partial in Alexandria [1] 2/3 Khoiak in the rgth year of Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
partial in Alexandria [1] 19/20 Pharmuthi in the 2oth year of Hadrian (Hadrianus*)
visible in northern Italy
545
E. IV. CALENDARS
E. IV. CALENDARS
(Astrid Moller) E. IV. 1. GREEK CALENDARS
The lunisolar calendar of the Greeks was divided into twelve months, with an intercalary month inserted as needed. The months were 29 (so-called ‘hollow’ months) or 30 days (‘full’ months) long. Although the Greeks were familiar with the principles of periodical intercalation of months, these intercalary months were probably often simply inserted when they became needed. The beginning of the year was not uniform across the Greek world. The table below shows the first month of the given calendar by a (1) next to the name of
the first month of the year. Many Greek month names (—> Months, names of the) have come down to us from the various Greek communities. Only calendars that have been transmitted in an adequately reliable and complete state are given here. The Athenian calendar is the best known. In Athens, alongside the twelve-month festival calendar (the archontic calendar), the year was also divided into official periods: this was the bouleutic or civic calendar. The fifty members (— Prytaneis II) of the Council of Five Hundred (— boule II), each belonging to one of the ten Cleisthenic — Phylai (Erechtheis, Aegeis, Pandionis, Leontis, Acamantis, Oeneis, Cecropis, Hippothon-
tis, Aantis, Antiochis), each took the chair for one tenth of the year. The sequence was determined by lot (Aristot. Ath. pol. 43,2). This subdivision of the council and the resultant period of one-tenth of a year were both called prytaneia (prytany). In normal years, a prytany lasted 35-36 days, in embolismal years it lasted 38-39 days. Two
‘Macedonian’
phylai (Antigonis, Demetrias)
were added to the Athenian phylai in 307/6 BC, bringing the number of prytanies to 12. Later changes followed. E. BICKERMAN, Chronology of the Ancient World, *1980, 20f., 27-38- F.K. GinzeL, Handbuch der mathematischen und technischen Chronologie, 1911 (repr. 1958), Vol. 2, 333-50: P. J. RHovEs, The Athenian Boule, 1972, 224-229 - A. E. SAMUEL, Greek and Roman Chronology. Calendars and Years in Classical Antiquity (HdbA 1.7), 1972: C. TRUMpy, Untersuchungen zu den altgriechischen Monatsnamen und Monatsfolgen, 1997.
— Calendar; Months, names of the II; Chronography; CALENDAR (CT)
E. IV. 2. ROMAN CALENDAR AFTER THE REFORM OF C.
TuLius CAESAR (FROM 45 BC)
Although to this day we still use the names of the months of the so-called ‘Julian calendar’, named after Gaius Iulius — Caesar (I.E.), the days were expressed differently in Latin. Three key days divided the month into three unequal parts: Kalendae was the name of the first day of the month, Nonae that of the fifth or seventh day, and Idus that of the thirteenth or fifteenth day. The other days were called by an ordinal number in the formula ante diem (a.d., ‘on the [ordinal] day before’), to indicate at how many days’ duration the day in question was from the next key day, inclusive of that day. The day preceding a key day was called pridie (‘on the day before’); e.g. a.d. II Kalendas Februarias: 30 January, pridie Idus Martias: 14 March. In intercalary years, 25 February was given the same ordinal as 24 February with the suffix bis (‘for a second time’), i.e. 24 February was counted twice: a.d. VI bis (bissextum) Kalendas Martias. The following table omits the indication a.d. before the ordinals. Legend to the Julian calendar (examples): on 1 January: on 2 January:
Kalendis lanuariis ante diem IV (quartum) Nonas
on 4 January: on 6 January:
pridie Nonas lanuarias
lanuarias
ante diem VIII (octavum) Idus lanuarias
on 21 January:
ante diem XII (duodecimum) Kalendas Februarias
on 31 January:
pridie Kalendas Februarias
on 5 February: on 15 March:
Nonis Februariis Idibus Martiis
soipudpny
somwpyady
(1) sorq
somwyjasaqsada HY]
somwidioy
somskuo1d
(1) sompasyjag
so1aungovW
SO1aUusDYy
so1p1aH
so1doapog
souogdoping
somw4day]
sooqipog
soupyng
4d
uoapisog
DUD
uo1ausy
(1) uomuospog
uomMpasrja
uoapisod
uolnqwdy
uoisdouvk y
uUOIMOApAO
uoluplasvjayw
so4auv
snyoyIWW
‘yAad jo Aep jst =
uOLLAaTYyDUIDW OF
‘yAad jo Aep 4st =
uUOLALYDULID 1
‘yAid yo Aep 4st = uoisdouvkg 1
IA
A
Il
Il
Al
‘yAid jo Aep 4s1 = uUommospaog TZ
‘yAad Jo Aep isi = uolUp1asvIaW-W 1
] 343d Jo Aep jst = uoIpquioqwyxay] 1
wou saruejAid 71
Aueadad sad
skep 9€-S€
:("JuUa9
oI
yrs)
q sustry
uoapisod
U014A1YDUUDN
(1)
uoisdouvk J
uoIMmo.paog
u01up1a8 DAW
uUOIDQuULOjDAAH
9/L0€ sorueyAid “Og
J suayiy
Jaquiasaq]
JOqUuIdAON
raquiaidag
jsnsny
aya
J3qo139Q
yeo “nf
J suey
(x) AIg Aueydrg
uo0add]
snsoydy
IsT
(1) somwyady
1ydpoq
JO YIUOUW
soogdojpw
umnnuezig
ay]
SO10T
emopaseyy
Iepus]ed
Jepueyes (SMUOYIIL) [eANsaz
Jepugyes (STAID) SNaJnog =g susyIYy
“siya SUIMOT[OF 9]qGeI 2YI “JD (UUMJOS puey-IYe]) Jepusyjes uerN{ ayI JOF
Jeak
546 OF TIME COMPUTATION AND E. DATA ON CHRONOLOGY
547
E. IV. CALENDARS
eIUOpadeyy
soympuvX so1shq
Sontag
SOISIWMAILY
SOWAaUD
SO1sID
I
umnnuezig so1ajyny
SOISIMAIAY so1aykT
so1odsog
SOMDLBY
SO10JDT
sordosiodskpuq
somaxoag tydjaq
soyvuy
so1ajyvsayy
soiskg
SOID]]
|,
Uuol1lasaqjUuy uolsiuajAy snsoydq uolpUuaT
uONassDY uUOadnDy,
(1) uollajsaqqIUy UuoIsnuazLy snqo]TVI uotwuaT
[,
é
uUoyasAvg
uUOWUDIDY
uoadnvy], J
‘1Aid
‘yAid uoyogaydnyq uOLLOGGOAYAG uo1gokunyy uoyasivgy] Jo Aep
uOtauUDYy Jo Aep
3st
3sI
gq susiy
I yo of = IIA Aep 3st "1Aid = IIAuOolauUpy
uolauUlvyy q swampy
1 yo Aep ‘yAid jsI = XI
I Jo Aep ‘yA1d 3s = x
I = TX
1 yo Aep ‘yA1d 3s = IX
uoyogaydn|z u014ajsaqIUy uo1goKunw uOouas1DY
uo140gdouyg
[
1eD Avenuef
Areniqay
‘Inf yey]
judy
key
aun{
‘12M Al Il aipiad uoN IIA ILA IA A Al Ill arpisd Pl XIX TAX IIAX IAX AX AIX LX Ix IX x ai IA IIA TAG A Al Il
aipiud
“EE
2x Al Il atpiad "uON IA IIA IA A Al Il aipiud PI IAX AX AIX TIX x IX x XI IA IIA IA A Al I arpisd
snienuey
snnieyy
12” Al Il arpiad uoN TIA IIA IA A AI ran arpisd ‘PI IMAX TAX IAX AX AIX xX 1X IX x XI TILA IIA IA A AI I aipiad
syudy
‘12M Al il arpisd uoN IA IA IA A Al Il arpisd ‘PI WAX AX IAX AX AIX IX Ix Ix x XI IA A IA A Al rin aipisd
sniuny
ampiad
1M IA A AI I aipud ‘uON IA ILA IA A AI Il aipiad PI TAX IAX AX AIX TIX 1X IX x XI IA IA IA A Al Il
SIN]
arpid
12M AI Il aipid uoN IIA IIA IA A Al Ill arpisd PI XIX TAX IAX IAX AX AIX IX IX IX x Yall IA IIA IA A Al Il
I3q0190
arpid
]?X IA A Al Il aipisd uoN IA IIA IA A Al I aipid ‘PI TAX IAX AX AIX IX IIX iD Xx XI ILA IA IA A Al Il
Joquiaidasg
aI AI runt arpisd uoN TA TA IA A Al I arpiad ‘PI TAX IIAX IAX AX AIX TIX IX IX x XI IA IIA IA A Al Il aipiad
7snisnsny
72x AI Il aipiad uoN IA A IA A Al rn aipisd PI IIAX IIAX IAX AX AIX TIX IX iB x XI IA TA IA A Al Il aipud
Jaquisseq
aipiid
aL Al I atpisd uoN THA TIA IA A Al il aipiad ‘PI Dads INAX TAX IAX AX AIX IX IX IX Sk XI IIA IA IA A Al Ill
JaquisaoNy
COMPUTATION
aipiad
12M IA A Al Il aipid uoN TA IIA IA A Al I aipisd PI TAX IAX AX AIX x x Ix xe Bal IIA [IA IA A Al tn
snieywy
AND
aipid
PM IA A Al I aipid uoN THA IIA IA A Al Ill arpisd ‘PI TAX IAX AX AIX Tx Tie 1B a Sal TIA IIA IA A Al I
sniseniqa,
ON CHRONOLOGY OF TIME
"syiqxag sueisn3ny-d1g 7
“sUING sueIsN3NY-d1g ;
=p ov "€ "y G 9 Ve 8 6 ‘OL i= oral! “EL as acy “OT aii oi “61 07 BG CC "€7 “p7Z “STZ ‘97 msZc 8T 67 ‘0€
keq E. DATA
548
549
E. V. SYSTEMS
OF TIME COMPUTATION
E. V. SYSTEMS OF TIME COMPUTATION
(Astrid Moller)
The following tables give an overview of various systems for numbering the years in the ancient cultural sphere. The Christian Era [2. Vol. 3, 178-185] was established in AD 525 by Dionysius [55] Exiguus, a Syrian monk living in Rome, and is therefore also called the ‘Dionysian Era’. He rejected the predominant numbering system of his day, that of the anno Diocletiani, because Diocletian had persecuted the Christians. Instead, he proposed commencing the numbering of years from the birth of Christ. He calculated his Easter dates using a 532-year cycle derived from the multiplication of the 19-year cycle of lunar years by the 28year solar cycle. After 532 years, a year of the Julian calendar again begins with the same day of the week. Dionysius calculated that this cycle would be completed in seven years’ time (his basis for doing so is unknown
to us), in 248 anno
Diocletiani. He must,
therefore, have performed his calculation in AD 525
(532-7=525) [14. 35]. However, it was only through the writings of the Venerable Bede (—> Beda Venerabilis) in the early 8th cent. AD that the use of the Christian Era took hold. Finally, calculation in years BC (Before Christ) dates back to the French Jesuit Dionysius Petavius, who, in
1627, devised the key for translating pre-Christian dates into the Julian calendar [3. ro]. The Olympiad Era was used in Greek historiography from the 3rd cent. BC. From the holding of the Olympic Games during the second full moon after the summer solstice in later times [1. 7 f.], it may be inferred that the epoch’ — Eras of the Olympiad Era began in the second half of 776 BC. The year of the traditional first Olympic Games (—> Olympia IV) must therefore, in accordance with the Athenian calendar, in which the year began in July, correctly be given as 776/5 BC. According to the Laconian and Macedonian calendar, in which the year began in the autumn, the Olympiad 1,1 covered the year from autumn 777 to autumn 776 BC. The Olympic Games were held for the last time in AD 393, when they were abolished by Theodosius [2] I. However, their use as a theoretical numbering system continued in the Byzantine period [6. 192, 211 f.]. The Roman system of numbering ab urbe condita [z. Vol. 2, 192-198; 3. 77; 4. 622-625] was not used as an era in any private or public dating practice in antiquity. Only literary sources and associated inscriptions refer to the length of time ‘since the foundation of the city [of Rome]? in years. The actual year of the city’s foundation was calculated in different ways, but the proposition of — Varro [2], made in the mid—rst cent. BC, prevailed. The beginning of the year was 1 January, and not the ‘birthday of Rome’ (the — Parilia) on 21 April. 1 Thoth [2. Vol. 1, 187-195, Vol. 2, 576-585 Plate V; 4. 653-665], the beginning of the year in the Egyptian calendar, runs through the entire Julian calendar in acycle of 1,460 years (Sothic cycle). Due to the fact that the Egyptian Wandeljahr is 's day per annum shorter than the solar year, at 365 days, 1 Thoth recedes by one day every four years against the Julian calendar. A new
Sothic cycle began on 19 July AD r4o. In 23 BC, the Alexandrian numbering was introduced, with Thoth and the intercalary year fixed. In the first year, 1 Thoth fell on 30 August, in the second, third and fourth years on 29 August. However, the Egyptian Wandeljabr remained in use until the 3rd/4th cents. The Nabonassar Era [4.615 f.; 5. 301-306; 6. 207 f.] was a literary or astronomical era based ona king list, in which regnal years were calculated as complete years from the reign of — Nabonassar. The year of the king’s death was disregarded if it formed only a fraction of a year, while the first year of the reign was counted as whole. This era was used primarily in the ‘Handy Tables’ of Ptolemy (Claudius — Ptolemaeus [65]), which continued to be expanded and amended in the subsequent astronomical tradition [7. 1823-1825; 8. 1025 f.], and were later also used by chronographers. A variation of the Nabonassar Era was the Philippic Era [4. 616; 6. 208], named after Philip III Arrhidaeus [4], who was proclaimed Macedonian king after the death of Alexander the Great. It was mostly also used in the astronomical canon. The Augustan Era [4. 616-618] was also a variant on the Nabonassar Era, and, as such, is almost exclusively attested to in the astronomical canon. According to the Egyptian Wandeljahr, the epoch (the first day) had to fall on 31 August. The date was only later set to 30 August after the introduction of the Alexandrian calendar, witha fixed Thoth (see above) [2. Vol. 1, 226— 228].
The first political or dynastic era was the Seleucid Era [6. 209 f.; 9. 9 f., 22-43]. It began, according to the Macedonian reckoning, on 1 October 312 BC, or, according to the Babylonian reckoning, on 3 April 311 BC. The Macedonian reckoning was still used in the Byzantine period, although the year began in September at Byzantium. To this day, the Syrian Christians continue to follow this era and use the Macedonian calendar. The Arsacid Era [2. Vol. 1, 137 f.; 6. 210; 10. 782] began with the foundation of the Parthian kingdom (— Parthians). The Babylonian tablets have double dating, with the Seleucid Era recorded alongside the Arsacid, the difference between the two always being 64 years. The Babylonians probably continued to reckon according to their lunisolar calendar, while the Parthians used a calendar similar to the Egyptian Wandeljahr. According to the latter, the epoch of the Arsacid Era fell on x Frawardin, i.e. 22. January 248 BC. Conversely, in Babylonia, the era would have begun on t Nisan, corresponding to 14 April 247 BC. After the foundation of the Sassanid Empire in AD 226, the Arsacid Era fell into disuse. The epochal year of the Bithynian/Pontic Era [9. 82-86, 179-189, 417 f.] is inferred, with reasonable certainty, to have been 297/6 BC, when — Zipoites [1] accepted the Bithynian royal title. + Mithridates [6] VI, King of Pontus (120-63 BC), probably adopted the Bithynian Era to promote his claims to the region. After the Roman takeover of the Pontic/Bithynian kingdom, the era ceased to be used, but the Bosporan kingdom on the Crimea continued to reckon dates according to the
' Epoch (from the Greek epoche) in the chronological sense means the first day of an Era, cf.
E. DATA
ON CHRONOLOGY
AND
COMPUTATION
IS
OF TIME
opportune. The use of the era in private inscriptions of the northern Black Sea coast is attested until AD 497/8
table against that year of the Christian reckoning in which the greater part of the tribunician term lay (i.e. not its first weeks). For further details cf. [rr] and
l9. 457].
— poiestas.
Bithynian/Pontic era for as long as this was politically
The Diocletianic Era [2. Vol. 3, 175; 4. 651], also called the ‘Era of the Martyrs’, only acquired significance in post-Roman times. The Church of Alexandria used it, and it continues to be used in the Coptic Church. It was also used by Arabic astronomers. The Spanish Era [2. Vol. 3, 175-178; 4. 611-613, 639 f.; 6. 218], or the ‘Era of Caesar’, was found, from the 5th cent., in documents on the Iberian Peninsula,
and was used by chroniclers until the 15th cent. It has not yet been possible to establish the date at which this era was introduced; its epoch is 1 January 38 BC. The Spanish inscriptions were the first to use the word era (sic) rather than the Latin amno (‘in the year ...’). The Christian chroniclers (— Chronicles E) used various world eras commencing with the creation of the world. The epoch of the widely-used Byzantine World Era [2. Vol. 3, 292-294; 6. 219-221] was set at 1 September 5509 BC. The use of this era spread in public and private documents alike from the 7th/8th cents. The Era of the Incarnation [2. Vol. 3, 179-82; 6. 222-224] was used by Byzantine chronographers. It began with the birth of Christ, which was given various dates differing by day as well as year. With Dionysius [55] Exiguus, the date of 25 December 1 BC for the birth of Christ began to prevail in the west. The Jewish World Era [2. Vol. 2, 87] begins with the precise date of Creation, which, according to Jewish reckoning, took place on 7 October 3761 BC, at 5-11:20 pm. It is still in use today. The epoch of the Muslim Era [6. 225 f.; 16] is the flight of — Mohammed from Mecca to Medina (— Hejira, Latin Hegira, hence counted AH = Anno Hegirae), and was introduced by the Caliph (— Omar, successor to Mohammed and founder of the Islamic world kingdom). Astronomically speaking, the era begins on 15 July AD 622, according to the civic reckoning on 16 July. In the purely lunar Muslim calendar, approximately 34 years of the Muslim Era equate to 33 years of the Julian calendar. The Julian Era [4. 614; 13. 61-69; 15] was founded by Joseph Justus Scaliger (1540-1609), the founder of scientific chronology, as a kind of fundamental era. It is still used as an aid in chronological calculations. He tried to avoid the calculation errors of his predecessors by determining the ‘character’ of a year. This character is determined by the Julian Period, a cycle of 7,980 Julian years, at which Scaliger arrived by multiplying the 19-year lunar cycle by the 28-year solar cycle and the 15-year indiction cycle (cf. below). Scaliger placed the epoch of the Julian Era at 1 January 4713 BC, 0.00 midnight [15. 184 f.]. This created the problem that this era dated back beyond the date of Creation in the Hebrew Bible, which Scaliger dated to 3949 BC. The tribunicia potestas, which formed one basis for the power of the Roman emperor (— princeps II), was renewed annually, usually on 10 December. The emperor would transfer the tribunicia potestas to his chosen successor during his own lifetime, as he could not bequeath his power, which was granted by the senate. The names of the emperors, their successors and any rival emperors, as well as the iterations of the tribunicia potestas (I, Il, II etc.) are entered in the synchronistic
The dates of Easter Sunday [z. Vol. 3, 210-51; 6. 240-242] have only been dictated since the Council of Nicaea (— Nicaenum) in AD 325, where the first regulation aimed at standardizing the reckoning of Easter was arrived at. Even after this, the churches of Rome and Alexandria continued to calculate the dates of Easter according to different cycles, until Dionysius [55] Exiguus achieved recognition for a single form of calculation from AD 532, at least for the Roman church. The different systems of determining the date of Easter continue to separate the Orthodox and Roman churches today. From AD 312, indictions (— indictio) [3. 78 f.; 4. 666; 6. 192-203] were counted in a cycle of 15 years. The individual cycles were not numbered. As the cutoff date for tax debt (outside Egypt) was 1 September, the first cycle began on 1 September AD 3 12. Yet, since most of this tax year coincided with the year AD 313, the first cycle in the table is given as the year 313. Indictions were in use into the modern period. — Calendar; Chronography; Eras; CALENDAR; CHRONOLOGY 1 H.M. Lee, The Program and Schedule of the Ancient Olympic Games (Nikephoros suppl. 6), 2001. 2 F.K. GinzeL, Handbuch der mathematischen und tech-
nischen Chronologie, 3 vols., 1906-1914. 3 E. BICKERMAN, Chronology of the Ancient World, *T980.
4 W. Kusirscuex, s.v. Ara, RE 1, 606-66. 5 K. WacHsMuTH, Einleitung in das Studium der Alten
Geschichte, 1895. 6 V. GRUMEL, La chronologie (Traité d’etudes byzantines I), 1958.
7 B. L. VAN DER WAERDEN, S.v. Klaudios Ptolemaios [66], RE 23, 1793-1831.
8 O. NEuGEBAUER, A History of Ancient Mathematical Astronomy, Vol. 3, 1975. 9 W. LescHHorN, Antike Aren. Zeitrechnung, Politik und Geschichte im Schwarzmeerraum und in Kleinasien nOrdlich des Tauros, 1993.
10 E. BICKERMAN, Time-Reckoning, in: The Cambridge History of Iran, 1983, Vol. 3(2), 778-91. 11 D. Krenast, Romische Kaisertabelle, *1996. 12 SAMUEL 245-248. 13 H. ZEMANEK, Kalender und Chronologie, 1981. 14 P. DaFFinA, Senso del tempo e senso della storia: com-
puti cronologici e storicizzazione del tempo, in: Rivista degli Studi Orientali 61, 1987, 1-71.
15 A. GRAFTON, Joseph Scaliger and Historical Chronology, in: History and Theory 14, 1975, 156-85. 16 F.C. DE Bots, s.v. ta’rikh, Encyclopédie de I’Islam (nouv. éd. 2002), Vol. 10, 276-283.
1. SYNOPSIS OF IMPORTANT ERAS The following table gives an overview of various — Erasa from ancient to modern history. Beginning with the World Era of the Byzantine chronographers, which dates back farthest, and ending with the Muslim Era, the respective epoch dates, i.e. the first day of each era, are given translated into the Christian chronology and the corresponding calendar used in each case. The
pe!
E. V. SYSTEMS
OF TIME COMPUTATION
synopsis hence also serves to aid understanding of the synchronistic table of chronologies. On the Egyptian, Babylonian and Jewish calendars, cf. [13. 78, 82].
2. SYNCHRONISTIC COMPILATION OF CHRONOLOGIES This table juxtaposes important chronologies and eras, and the ancient Easter dates (according to the Nicaean norm) in a synchronous overview. By presenting the parallels between different systems of reckoning the years, it offers scope for their comprehensive study and for conversion. Based on the Christian chronology, then, it makes the most important chronological aids available. This table cannot take into account beginnings of years that differ from the 1 January of the Julian calendar. For details, cf. the synopsis of important eras and the indicated literature. Abbreviations Chr Ol. asus
Christian chronology Olympiad Era Roman chronology ab urbe condita (Varro)
tThoth Nab. Sel.M
1 Thoth Nabonassar Era Seleucid Era (Macedonian reckoning, “western’)
Sel.B
Seleucid Era (Babylonian reckoning,
Ars.P Ars.B B.-P. trib. pot. Easter
Arsacid Era (Parthians) Arsacid Era (Babylonian reckoning) Bithynian/Pontic Era Roman tribuniciae potestates Easter Sundays from the Synod of Nicaea AD 325 (Roman/Alexandrian reckoning) Indictions
‘eastern’)
Ind.
Eras
1st day (epoch)
date by Christian chronology
Byzantine World Era
1 Sept.
1 Sep. 5509 BC
Julian
Scaliger’s Julian Era
1 Jan.
t Jan. 4713 BC, 0.00 midnight
Julian
Jewish World Era
1 Tishrei
7 Oct. 3762 BC, 5.n1:20\pm
Jewish
ab urbe condita (Varro)
21 April
2x1 Apr. 753 BC
Julian
Nabonassar Era
Egyptian 1 Thoth
26 Feb. 747 BC
Egyptian
Philippic Era
Egyptian 1 Thoth
12 Nov. 324 BC
Egyptian
Seleucid Era West (Alexander Era)
1 Dios
t Oct.
Macedonian
312 BC
calendar used
Seleucid Era East
t Nisan
3 Apr. 311 BC
Babylonian
Arsacid Era (Parthians)
1 Frawardin
22 Jan. 248 BC
Persian
Arsacid Era (Babylonian)
t Nisan
14 Apr. 247 BC
Babylonian
Spanish Era
1 Jan.
t Jan. 38 BC
Julian
(Era of Caesar)
Augustan Era
Alexandrian 1 Thoth
30 Aug. 30 BC
Alexandrian
Era of the Incarnation
aS Decr
25 Decur BC
Julian
Christian Era
1 Jan.
1 Jan. AD 1
Julian
Diocletianic Era (Era of the Martyrs)
Alexandrian 1 Thoth
29 Aug. AD 284
Alexandrian
Muslim Era
t Muharram
15/16 Jul. AD 622
lunar
he
are cue tae ivy ty an
b+ ToS,
aS £°S bs
I'9
can) £9 b9 Th ls 76 WL 13) T'S
ete
ane)
19Z og
6SZL gL Sie
9SZL
SSL PSL ES eae SY,0 o$Z 6rZ gr LYL
9tZ
Srl
Tea wi eat an de (age Oe Hz
TO
LoL 99L SoZ rol £9L tOL
O”d
Doe oLZL 69L gol
9LL GEE LL CLE CLL,
240)
6
I I
67
9t
97
Bz gz gz Lz Lz Lt £7 97 97
Bt
“Gay
“qa
“qaq ‘qayq ‘gaz ‘qaq “qaq “gay
“gay “gay “Gay
“qa
“reJ ‘rey “gay
‘rey “Tey
€
z
I
W'PS TPsa cstv asty ‘da ‘yod-quy SE ey
COMPUTATION
I I
“TE|W “Tey “IEW “Tey “Ie “ey
“rep
‘rey “rey “Tey “Tey ‘rey “Ie “Tey “Ie
“qEN
AND
€ 7 Z 7 Z
V ¥ £ &
S$ $ § +
TROL
ON CHRONOLOGY
8
I ve € b g 9 L
pogaae E, DATA OF TIME
ye
“qa.J “gay
17 oz
a4
Sz 97 LE Bz
67 of
Soca
gece amet lei ASI
VARET cVa
ofl
SzL Vel
TZ
tt 17 Iz Iz
“Ga,y
“gay "qoq ‘qo “qo
ea VI St 91 ii gi 61 Ot IZ ae ee vz
OL
OI 11
z 8 6
“qaq ‘qaq ‘qaq “qoq “gay *‘qay "qay “qaq “qay “qa *qoq
672 gzl Eas 9zL
Sz bz rz hz vz €z €z £z €t tz ZZ
€I FI Se 9I Li gI 61 Oz IZ TZ ez
6 I‘O1 TOI €°Or bor 6a in 5 CAN 52 raed Aiea erat raen
Ivl oFZ 6EL gel Bee 9¢ZL SEZ vel SEL zEL réZ
ee tL
F iS 9
TVIEVI
“gaz “gaz “qaq
16 76 €°6
Sz Sz Sz
Or II CE
ire ZE
vol Evl tHL
woytt
oz OT
10
one
*qaq“qaJ
“19
“qeN
WPS aps a's3y q'siy ‘dd rod-qun 103seq “pul 93 ?
% . 3
a 3
Ke 97
Bz 67 of
r€
ce
‘qaq“qaq“qa‘qaq
61 61 61
61
gi
ve S¢ 9£
LE
6e
Lisecasa€°StSr
TOL
wee, age “‘qay a Laat €€ Oz
owl612giZ£1
“qoq F ge gi 91Z 1°91 Ze
Saye
“qoq
“qaq gi €-91 ov vE bxZ oa “qaq gi v'9r Iv S€ “gaq eZ 5 9£ eaecere Tea ra LI tik “gay < ‘qaq tr LI UWALz Soest ge g vy 21 orl
1°61 61 Tw
€°61
61 I‘O@ ZOC SO v-O7
ge Siar
eae SCG
yaar
vol £oL
zol
toZ ool 669 869 L169
969
S69 469
£69
VS7z
E92
TOT
9L9
SL9
ele ere
6L9 glo
LL9
bbz SiraIe
189 089
PARTE 01/4
S99 $39
Cs
fz
989
Cie
Zee
£89
789
v77
689
£39
a4
889
(ELE (See
169 069
89
62
gl
LL
SZ gL
€Z vl
cays
IZ
69 oL
L9
99
{9
19 79 £9 +9
6
8
8
6
6 6
11
Or
Or
O1
It Or
Ir
ZI
tt
EI TI ZI tI
€I x
£1
Sx FI Fr v1 rr
$1
SI $1
91 91
91
“gaz
‘qaq
"qaq
"qaq
“qa
“qaq “qay
“qaq ‘Gay
‘qa
"qo
“qoq “qaq
‘gay
“qoq
“qaq
‘qoq ‘qaq ‘qoq *qay
‘gay “qoq
“qaq
“gaz ‘qoq ‘gaz “qaq ‘gaz
“gay
“qay ‘gag
“qaq “qa
“gay
“qaq
EL
nage
igh
69 oL
L9 89
99
S9
£9 +9
779
09
19
6S
gs 9§$ LS gs
eS vs
oS
LY gv 6h of ES
9+
vy Sr
ca ev
Iv
ov
6€
pSEIN
WPS Ps a sty qsty itlecd “yod-quy a do7sy "pul
COMPUTATION
6S 09
gS
€S$ +S gs 9S DS
gr 6F
LI
9
Oury
AND
reresie
zo
€°QT ot
90L SoZ
Ly
‘Orme
ON CHRONOLOGY
769
of 1
ZQI
Cha
LoL
Sb
b-Lt
I°QI
60L
1O
gol
eit) E. DATA OF TIME
554
229)
E. V. SYSTEMS
OF TIME COMPUTATION
Pal
BEE!
"yod-quy
‘dd
SIV
d'stv
a Tes
W'PS
“qeN
2
SZ 9Z£ LL gt 6L 08 Ig 78 €g rg Sg 98 Lg 88
POuLt
“qed“gay“qaq“qoq“qaq‘goa? "Ged “qaq“gay“qay‘qed‘qaq“Ged“qedeRe.
4
8
8 Z Z
0g
Ig ze €g rg Sg 98 Lg 88 68 06 16 z6 £6 +6
Z 9 9
9
§ §
§ §
86 66
“‘qaq“qaq“goyq“qaq
“qa“‘qaqz "qoq
vr ¥ £ £
z
enue 96 L6 gé 66 ‘qaq 68 S6 F
OO
06 16 76 £6
I
vor Sor 901
L6 tz£O1 “gay +6 “gay €oor 86 “gay £IOI 96 zTOI“qaq
LOI CEL‘uel © ‘gaz IOI iLol“qo gor ZOI I “qaq £01 I601‘uel VOI OIL“uel 1 Sor‘uef III 1 901 canta“uel 1 gor Fil o€
CLs LE RONG TBE £°QE Qe
of9 679
V6E
I'oF TOF
O79 619 B19
err vir Ut Cay Grey aca
Tey CoV ec ber
S19 b19 £19 T19 r19 O19 609
809 Lo9 909 So9
for bor rir eens
£°6E
TTO
It9
L19 919
ieee
be coals
aa)
‘uel
‘uel
‘uel
‘uel
‘uel
‘uef ‘uel
“uel
‘uel
‘uel ‘uel
‘uel
77 ZZ
ce
61
€z
vz +z +z faire £z
Sz rz
"Tel
‘Mefles ‘uel ‘uel
‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ia ‘uef Meee ‘uel
‘uel ‘uel
Sz El Sz ‘uel Se rE
9z
97
97
97
gz gz Zz 22 Zz Zz
LVI QgrI
6£1 ov Ivi raat ev br Shr Chae
Len ger
ber cea 9€I
oan
Ger
ite
O€L
QTI gti
Lor
QTI
vTI Stat
gz
gz
‘uel
‘uel ‘uel
‘ue[ ‘uel
‘uel
‘uel
YOU
EVI
Ihr THI
€€1 vEI SEI gt BEG ger 6£1 ovr
O€I a1 mo TEI
gz 671
LEE
971
SzI
VT
gir 611 O71 I7I TTI ars
Ler
9II
SUT
VII
€1I
III TII
OIl
601
“GEN
WPS TPsa dSLy qsiy ‘dd “yod-quy pad PSE
COMPUTATION
£79
979 Sz9
£79
TTI
€7I
67
67 67
of 67
o£
of
EE
AND
8z9
cape
TLE
S
seed
611 OTI
(OTE SII
9II
Saeie
BANS
ON CHRONOLOGY
I£9
Z£9
S£9 F£9
b-9€
ZOie £9
£69 9£9
££9
VaSS IgE
gc9
£
(eae
Ce
6£9
TO
AYO E. DATA OF TIME
556
357
E. V. SYSTEMS
OF TIME COMPUTATION
iPS
Beyse |
“yod-qiy
‘dd
astv
cstv
aes
W'PS
“GEN
rr Str OrtLVI gr 6F1 oSt IST zS1 ESa St Gor 9$t ESE gSr6ST o9t 191 Z9O1£91 torSor991 L9IBOI 691oLt LEY.cereELI VLI
Moy
‘uel‘uel‘uelWe]‘uel‘uel‘uef‘uel‘uel‘uel‘uel‘uel‘uel‘ueluel“uelcuef‘uelwell‘uel‘uel‘ueluel‘uelueluefsae]‘uel‘uel‘uel‘uel
Lt
Iz Iz Iz
LY
oz oz oz Oz 61 61 61 61 gt gr gr gr ZI £1 Za 21 91 91 91 91 $1 Sr $0 St vr FI FI
oStSatcantFSG VST SS 9StESE gSr681 O9t 191 TOI £91 ForSor991 Lorgor 691oLt TEs CLE €ZI vLI SLI gLILLY gli6L1 Ogr
JO
ro$zoS£°0Sb-oSr-ESTendBES ibythyEbybbyShcan eS¥SPrI'9Pvtov€-9vtorwLYyLYELVbLYyI°ghTQr€°ghbgI'64Fzw €°6Pb'64r 6r
eu,
vo9£09TOO 109 00966S gosL6S 96S66s F6S £6S 76S 16S 06S 6g ggsZ£gS98SSes$gS€gS7g gS ogs6LS gZsLS gL GZS PLS ‘uel Igt +I ELS brs SLi‘uel TQI 9LI £1 we) TLS re €gi Su TES LEXECs, 1Z$ ‘uel vgr gL £1 oLS
1O
wz Tea cama eae bes AS 1a
TVS
ES brS £6
TS cao vss
19S
z9S £98 r'9S 8 eLS EL LS
I'°gS
zgS E°9S bgS 16S 768 €°6S v°6S 1°09 T09
£°09
b-09
LES)
TIO
yO
698 89S L9$ 998 SoS v9S
£9S
zZ9S 196 09S
6SS gss LESS
9Ss
sss bSs (ARS zSS rS$ o$$ 64S
grs
LYS ors Svs vrs £vs caad FS ors 6S
ges
SEAS
9c
EGS
907
617
giz
LIt
gIZ
Loz Boz 607 OIz II7 TIT alg Fiz Sac
6
‘uel
(VE ase
‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel
+
+
$
‘uel
‘ue{
‘uel
‘uef
uel [5 ue PPE tig 9 ‘uel 9 ‘uel 9 ‘uel 9 ‘uel S uel $ “uel
2
6 6 6 g 8 g g
(ae
TEE
ie ie
Oz
107 ZOT £07 bor Soz 907 Loz Boz 607
00%
£61 vor S61 961 £6 gor 661
T61
681 O61 161
981 LgI Sgi
Sgr
Igt TRI €QI gr
6L1 OgI
W'S GPs dstyv Sty: ‘da yod-qia Shea “pu
COMPUTATION
661 Oz 107 TOT £07 voz Soz
g6I
‘uel ‘uel ‘uel
‘uel SEE, ue{
ae
aie) wel ais ‘uel Pinel ‘uel
EN!
AND
OL Or Or
Ir to Or
1
fea cr en| ZI cea Ir
TROMnEE
ON CHRONOLOGY
S61 961 L61
T61 £61 FOI
O61 161
Cor 981 LEI gi 6gI
oe E. DATA OF TIME
558
OF TIME COMPUTATION E. V. SYSTEMS
yy)
(Poy
oye
‘yod'qin
‘dd
qSty
dsIVy
aes
WPS
TOL +69 £°69 769 1°69 $39
oo$ tro$ zos €oS bos Sos
aes Sr
Sz Sz OSs Me o$z 6bz
£°99 7Z'99
gris
91 ZEUS
‘29q 97 29q 97 ‘oaq Lz DIGqnee “s9q Ac Doq Le
oz 6£7
1°99 $89
61S
ghz LYz 9vz Srz VVt €vz
get ES
€°S9
o7$
Los
"daq o£ "Daq Of
9£7
$9
zS9
7Z°89
"Jaq Of "Daq of
Sez
LYz
VET €£z
aq] TE
vez
"29 Bz
(exe Eee
‘daq 1
Ivz
oft
mS q jake
1z$ CES Bros vzS Szs
TT
97S
67Z
I I
€°£9
gzs
Les
br9 £-v9 t+9 r't9 b-£9
I°tg
ZO
QzT
QTZ
LUT
wee TET nec oft 677
‘uel Zz
67S os eS
I Zz
“uef 7%
-z9 £79 TTO
ees
zES
ea ba
Tee
Szz VUZ €t
I'tg
‘uef ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel ‘uel
OTT
uel € ‘uel € ‘uel €
TCE
LEE QT7T Szz b7z Ezz
617 giz Le
“wef